.
S&.
*™f»
n
m
wmm
■R
^m^mXMm
Vv;VUV.
'^P®$^
Pil
MiSmm
w^s§
,m\;,vw
M$
HM$
mbm ri/i/yw
W» n,w
m0'
rSr^WS
mmwm
v«'Wk
Wfe^fi
Ajv*v, .' *\ v >
AUK »sri
M, Effl.A.
c^SM^m ^ ty/Mf a^J2%fm \
IB E :
PUBLISHED BY KNIGHT & SOW.
FOXE'S
BOOK OF MARTYRS:
A COMFLETE AND AUTHENTIC ACCOUNT OP
THE LIVES, SUFFERINGS, AND TRIUMPHANT DEATHS OF
THE PRIMITIVE AND PROTESTANT MARTYRS,
IN ALL PARTS OF THE WORLD.
WITH NOTES, COMMENTS, AND ILLUSTRATIONS,
BY REV. J. MILNER, M.A.,
ASSISTED BY ORIGINAL COMMUNICATIONS FROM LEARNED AND EMINENT MINISTERS.
% $efo antf Corrector «Rrtttwi.
WITH AN ESSAY ON POPERY. AND ADDITIONS TO THE PRESENT TIME,
BY REV. INGRAM COBBIN, M.A.
LONDON:
PUBLISHED. BY KNIGHT AND SON,
11, CLERKENWELL CLOSE.
1856.
l$dr£
I
i
qi-n*
P It. E F A C E.
Fox;:'s Martyrs are among our earliest recollections; and their
spirit-stirring incidents rivetted our eyes to their pages in our
earliest childhood. Here we see " the great things that faith can do,
and the great things that faith can suffer." Here we behold, in
fact, what Bunyan has so admirably described in fiction ; here is
Faithful again suffering and dying ; here are graphically described
the reacting in all parts of the world, and in our own country in
particular, of the awful tragedies of Jerusalem, in which the Saviour
of men was put to death, and the proto-martyr Stephen followed
his holy example, dying by wicked hands, as a witness to the truth.
Here in particular are seen anew the men of modern ages of
whom the world was not worthy, " who loved not their lives unto
the death/' and whose cry mingles with that of the souls of them that
were slain for the word of God and for the testimony which they
held : " How long, O Lord, holy and true, dost not thou judge and
avenge our blood on them that dwell on the earth r" These are
they arrayed in white robes ; these are they which came out of
great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and made them white
in the blood of the Lamb.
Here is "the patience of the saints," showing the influence of pure
Christianity upon the mind, and the triumphs of the real believer
over the world. These sufferers truly believed the word of God, and
received it " not as the word of men, but as it is in truth the word of
God, w T hich effectually worketh in them that believe." To them,
houses and lands, w r ealth and honours, friends and relations, not
even the dearest ties on earth, nor life itself, were of any estimation
when set in competition with their love to the Saviour ; and they
practically illustrated in their end, the doctrine of their Divine
Master, "He that loveth father or mother more than me, is not
worthy of me;" while they now reap the reward promised by Him
who is "faithful and true." "And every one that hath forsaken
houses, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother, or wife, or chil-
dren, or lands, for my name's sake, shall receive an hundredfold,
and shall inherit everlasting life," Matt. xix. 29.
The present times especially call for the multiplication of copies
of such a work as that of Foxe. Every one can understand facts,
though every one may not be capable of following up a chain of
reasonings. And "facts are stubborn things," which no subtilty
can evade. The papists point us to paganism as the persecutor of
the saints, but Popery is but paganism under a mask ; and while it
IV PREFACE.
mingles paganism with its Christianity, it has the heart and spirit
of paganism. It is to be hoped that " the man of sin" has arrived
at the period when his strength is decayed : but perhaps his dying
struggles will be the most violent, and they may not be short or
few. He is losing much of his power in lands which he has hitherto
ruled with a rod of iron, but he is aiming to redeem his losses in
distant regions of the globe, and is obtaining subtle entrance into the
British Isles. Under the cloak of Jesuitism and the mask of
Puseyism, the inveterate foe of God and man is diligently at work,
and may at length boldly show his face even in high places. The
increased circulation of such a work as this may greatly assist in
defeating his plans, and in throwing a fence around our common
Protestant faith.
Rome indeed is ashamed of her own acts, and never admits that
she is a persecutor. Hence Foxe, and all other writers who have
published her crimes, are denounced as liars. It is in the creed of
Jesuitism, for expediency's sake, to aver anything or deny anything.
And if we are to believe the statements of the papists, those who
have suffered as martyrs, have not suffered by the hands of the
church, but of the civil power, to whom the church has always con-
signed them, that they might be punished " according to law." In
the teeth of fire and fagot, they have represented themselves as
merciful ; and the sanguinary murderers, glutted with the blood of
the saints, have dared to assume the name of the meek and lowly
Jesus. Let them tell us that there have been Protestant persecu-
tors ; there have, to their shame. But persecution is not inherent
in Protestantism, while in Popery it is an essential ingredient ; and
where ten have perished by the hands of Protestant persecutors, in
times of darkness and ignorance preceded by Popery, whose example
they copied, ten thousand have perished by those of the papists.
Let us, then, hold up the inhuman system to merited execration.
Let parents teach their children, and children teach their children, to
dread and to oppose this " abomination of desolation," and to shun
this " pestilence that walketh in darkness." By aiding to circulate
this work they will be doing an essential good ; and by the light
issuing from the flames of the martyrs' funeral piles, they may help
to scatter the darkness which is gathering around.
This edition, already improved by the able hands of the Rev.
J. Milner, and by original communications from other learned and
eminent ministers, will now r be continued to the present time, and
furnish the most complete as well as the cheapest Book of Martyrs
which has yet been published.
INGRAM COBBIN.
ESSAY ON POPERY.
Protestant writers often seem to take up the pen rather in self-defence
than as assailants of Popery ; or, at least, they do not think of assailing
it till it has assumed an imposing posture, and threatened their faith by
its daring advances. Such is the relative position of Popery and Protes-
tantism among us at the present moment, though in many other countries
the former is on the decline ; and every true servant of Christ is called
upon to use his best efforts to repel the artful destroyer.
Though apologies are offered for truth, truth needs no apology. We are
accused by Papists as schismatics and heretics ; but the so-called schism
consists in separating from their church, and not from the church of Christ;
and our heresy is shunning their tradition, and not the word of God — the
only standard of truth and infallible guide of our judgments. Whatever
does not come from the fountain of truth in doctrine, and whatever does
not accord with the practice of the primitive church before the Fathers
wrote, or human creeds were invented, or Popish councils assembled,
should be avoided as we would avoid the most destructive pestilence.
On these grounds would we warn against Popery as the moral Upas-tree
— to come within the atmosphere of which is to inhale the most deadly
poison for the soul. The limits to which this Essay is restricted, require
us to plunge at once into the heart of the subject, without further intro-
ductory remarks : —
The Church or Rome is erroneous in its doctrines. The Papists,
with us, believe (1) in original sin, its defiling and ruinous nature, its being
entailed from one child of Adam to another; but for the cure of this they
have, as they imagine, a special remedy, which is baptism, " rightly
administered according to the forms of the church :" in which ordinance
the merits of Christ are applied, and thus what was contracted in genera-
tion is cleansed away by this sort of regeneration ! The same doctrine is now
notoriously enforced by the semi-papists who have started up in the church of
England — a doctrine which at once sets aside the need of a change of heart,
and deludes thousands with the idea that they have by this ordinance
been made Christians, instead of having only received " an outward and
visible sign of an inward and spiritual grace," which if they do not after-
wards possess, will cause them to fall short of that qualification which
fits for the kingdom of heaven.
(2.) The doctrine of Justification lies at the root of the tree of life. With-
out an entire faith in the merits of a better righteousness than our own, we
can never be saved. So conscious are mankind of guilt in the sight of
vi ESSAY ON POPERY.
God, that all the world have virtually at least acknowledged it. Infidels
themselves, in moments of danger, have trembled at the thought of eternity,
and have even prayed. " How shall man be just with God?" is a ques-
tion of the utmost moment; yet, deceived by the arch-adversary, men have
ever been ready to prefer a religion of external forms, to a religion of the
heart — an outside, to an inside cleansing : a religion in which they fancy
there is much merit, rather than one in which they must be indebted
wholly to Divine grace. Popery panders to this lust of pride. One
article, among many others on the subject, by the council of Trent, the
indisputable standard of popery, says, " If any one shall affirm that good
works do not preserve and increase justification, but that good works
themselves are only the fruits and evidence of justification already had,
let such an one be accursed." If justification is to be preserved by us,
then the justification wrought out by Christ is, at best, but a precarious
justification ; and if we can increase it, then it is incomplete justification.
If we appeal to the Bible standard, the question there occurs, " It is God
that justifieth; who is he that condemneth?" But popery is a jumble
on this great doctrine; it makes Christ to do part and the sinner to do
part, and undervalues the efficacy of the atoning blood and all-sufficient
righteousness of " the Lord our Righteousness." Thus one of its
acknowledged standard authors says, " These penitential works, he [the
papist,] is taught to be no otherwise satisfactory, than as joined and
applied to the satisfaction Jesus made upon the cross; in virtue of which
alone, all our good works find a grateful acceptance in God's sight."
Here is the most complete confusion. A man's works must be joined
and applied to the satisfaction of Christ; and yet it is in virtue of Christ's
satisfaction that our good works can be acceptable to God ! If we ask
how far the efficacy of Christ's atonement extends, we are told that it
extends to all mortal sins, as if there conld be any sin not mortal, and
exposing us to eternal death ; but then there are sins from which we
must be justified by our own deeds, venial transgressions, which prayers,
fastings, almsgiving, penance, and purgatory may in the end remove.
While many poor souls are deluded by this doctrine of mixed justification,
partly by Christ and partly by the sinner himself, the Roman Catholic
church, by working on the pride of the human heart on the one hand,
and on the fears of trembling souls on the other, derives no small advan-
tage from these misnamed meritorious labours and toils.
Moreover, in addition to his own good deeds, the papist can help
himself from the stock of others, who need to perform them no longer!
Those saints who have lived such immaculate lives, that they have done
more than their duty to God and man, and have got safe to heaven with
a treasure of works of supererogation to spare, are kind enough to allow
the pope for the time being to assign to such as he thinks proper " a
portion of this inexhaustible source of merit, suitable to their respective
guilt, and sufficient to deliver them from the punishment due to their
crimes!" This doctrine was first invented in the twelfth century, and
modified and embellished by St. Thomas in the thirteenth. To suppose
that a sinful creature, who is bound to love God with all his heart and
soul and mind and strength, could with his sinful nature perform more
than is here required, is one of the most preposterous ideas that ever
ESSAY ON POPERY. vn
entered into the mind of man. The belief of such a doctrine is " the first-
born of delusion ;" it need be answered but very briefly from the words of
our Divine Lord himself, " When ye shall have done all those things which
are commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants : we have done
that which was our duty to do," Luke xvii. 10. And could we serve and
worship God incessantly, with the purity and ardour of the burning seraphs
around the eternal throne, we should still do no more than our duty.
(3.) Absolution is a power presumed to belong to the popish priesthood.
By this the priest pronounces remitted the sins of such as are penitent.
The council of Trent and that of Florence declare the form or essence
of the sacrament to lie in the words of the absolution, " I absolve thee
of thy sins ! " According to this, no one can receive absolution without
the privity, consent, and declaration of the priest : therefore, unless the
priest be wWing, God himself cannot pardon any man. They found this
doctrine on John xx. 23 : " Whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted
unto them ; and whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained." Had
the words implied power to pardon sins, still that power could not, from
this warrant, go beyond the apostles on whom it was conferred, as was
the power of working miracles. But we see no such power claimed. The
apostles preached the forgiveness of sins to those that repented and
believed, (Acts iii. 19, etc. ;) and in all cases their theme was the same, " Be
it known unto you therefore, men and brethren, that through this man is
preached unto you the forgiveness of sins," Acts xiii. 38. It was, there-
fore, no more than a declarative absolution, assuring sinners that " He
pardoneth and absolveth all them that truly repent, and unfeignedly
believe his holy gospel." No power here belongs to the priest; it is God
only who can forgive sins.
(4.) Indulgences. Nearly allied to the doctrine of absolution, is the power
of granting indulgences, or " a remission of the punishment due to sin,
granted by the church, and supposed to save the sinner from purgatory."
With all his absolution, the good papist stops short of heaven at last ;
for the moment his breath is out of his body, he enters purgatory. But
the keys of heaven being committed to St. Peter, and the popes in
succession, they can unlock the gates, and let in the vilest sinners that
ever corrupted the world! For various prices souls may be redeemed out
of purgatory, and any one may make his friends a present of a plenary
remission of all sins ! This is too ridiculous to merit notice, but for the
awful delusion with which it is connected. The popish priest having
asserted his power to forgive sins, poor souls who give credit to his
assertion are naturally anxious to obtain pardon from him. But in order
so to do, he requires that to him they should make confession.
(5) Purgatory must here be noticed. It has been defined as " a place
in which the just who depart out of this life are supposed to expiate certain
offences, which do not merit eternal damnation." Now, all sin is sin;
and every sin is " the transgression of the law," 1 John iii. 4; and sin,
then, must merit death, " for the wages of sin is death," Rom. vi. 23.
Nor does the Scripture tell us anything about the wicked being in
punishment for a limited time, or even going to an intermediate state, or
passing from hell to heaven. It tells us that the duration of the misery
of the wicked is like that of the happiness of the righteous, which is for
via ESSAY ON POPERY.
ever, Mark ix. 44; 1 Thess. iv. 17, etc.; that the good go instantly into
the paradise of God, Luke xxiii. 43, Phil. i. 23; and that the wicked
as instantly lift up their eyes in torments — torments from which escape to
heaven is rendered impossible by an impassable gulf, Luke xvi. 26.
There are two scriptures on which the papists found their doctrine
of purgatory, Matt. xii. 32, and 1 Pet. hi. 18 — 20. The language of the
former is a strong mode of expressing the unchangeable punishment of
him who sins against the Holy Ghost. " It shall not be forgiven him,
neither in this world, neither in the world to come." But it does not
warrant us to say that any are forgiven in the world to come ; and
St. Paul assures us, " Behold, now is the accepted time; behold, now is
the day of salvation," 2 Cor. vi. 2. The second passage must be greatly
wrested if we attempt to make anything more from it than what appears
on its very face. Christ, who by his Spirit inspired Noah the preacher of
righteousness, preached to the antediluvian sinners, now, and when the
apostle Peter wrote, confined in the prison to which all unbelievers are for
ever consigned. This doctrine of purgatory is, however, in harmony with the
other parts of the popish creed, as it evidently leaves the work of pardon
through Christ incomplete, and leaves even the best to make atonement
to justice in another world !
(6.) The sacrifice of the mass is one of the peculiar doctrines of popery.
For not believing in this, many a one has been sent by the papists in a
chariot of fire, to join " the noble army of martyrs." The mass is similar to
what Protestants call the communion service. High mass is the same
thing more lengthened and showy. In the early ages of the church, the
congregation was dismissed before the celebration of the Lord's Supper,
none but the communicants being allowed to remain. The officiating
minister said, " Ita missa est/' and the congregation withdrew; hence in
process of time arose the name. The mass is held to be a true and
proper sacrifice for sin ; and a sacrifice for the living and the dead !
Here again is a reflection on the merits of the Divine Redeemer, and a
vile anti-scriptural doctrine, the work of human invention. When Christ
died on the cross, his work was " finished," John xix. 30; and the apostle
assures us that " by one offering he hath perfected for ever them that are
sanctified," Heb. x. 14. Besides, a sacrifice must have a victim; but at
best it is but the commemoration of the offering of the one only and spot-
less Victim — " the Lamb of God, that taketh away the sin of the world."
Every time that mass is offered, Christ is insulted and dishonoured.
There is no praise to the mass, any more than to human merit, given by
the redeemed in heaven; but their song is, " Worthy is the Lamb that
was slain, to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and
honour, and glory, and blessing," Rev. v. 12.
(7.) Transubstantiation is closely connected with the preceding
doctrine. A momentary glance only can here be taken of this leading
article of popery. In the Romish church the belief of this doctrine was
often made a test of the faith of an individual, and was admirably evaded
in those memorable lines of queen Elizabeth : —
" Christ was the word that spake it ;
He took the bread, and brake it;
And what that word doth make it,
That I believe and take it."
ESSAY ON POPERY. IX
Revelation is often above reason ; as, for example, in describing the nature
and existence of God: " Canst thou by searching find out God? canst
thou rind out the Almighty unto perfection?" Job xi. 7. Revelation
is not contrary to reason, nor contrary to common sense; but nothing can
be more absurd than the popish pretence of making a bit of wafer to be
the body of Christ, which body, in that case, has been multiplied like the
loaves and fishes, and eaten over and over again in all places, for many
ages to the present time ! And the words on which this doctrine is
founded are known to every scholar of the humblest pretensions to
mean no more than " this represents my body." A man must want
common sense to suppose that Christ really gave his body to his
disciples, when he administered the last supper, and yet that the same body
was afterwards crucified, rose from the dead, and ascended into heaven.
The bread is bread that the priest gives, and the wine is wine; and what
pretence soever he may make, he can make nothing more of it.
Having thus briefly touched on the leading doctrines of Popery as its
ground-work, the due notice of which would furnish matter for volumes,
our space will only admit of a rapid glance at its practice ; —
I. The Church of Rome is arbitrary in its discipline. There
is laxity enough among its priests, but woe be to the poor laity that fall
within its power, even if they be monarchs on their thrones. All must
lick the dust before the sentence- of popes, councils, cardinals, inquisitors,
and priests ! Operating on the peace of whole nations, the curse or
excommunication of the pope has unseated the monarch on his throne,
and sent the potentate on his knees to ask the restoration of his crown !
It will be sufficient to mention the cases of Henry IV., emperor of Germany,
and of king John of England. Penances the most absurd and degrading
have been submitted to by the slaves of popery, for which there is not
the shadow of authority in the word of God, and which could never in
their nature show real sorrow of heart, or make the least atonement for
sin. What can be the real benefit derived from repeating continually
as many Ave Marias, Pater-nosters, or Credos, as the priest may deter-
mine? from walking barefoot? from licking the dust? consigning the
penitent to a hair-shirt, or obliging or advising the poor devotee to inflict
sharp castigations on his naked body?
II. The Church of Rome is presumptuous in its claims. Its popes,
besides claiming to be successors of St. Peter, claim to sit in the seat of
God himself. The man who has suffered himself to be called " Dominus
Deus Noster Papa" — " Our Lord God the Pope" — is surely the apostate
of Scripture, who, " as God, sitteth in the temple of God, showing
himself that he is God," 2 Thess. ii. 4. No being, how great soever he
may be supposed to be, can forgive sins, but God only, Mark ii. 7 ;
but this the bishop of Rome and his priests, authorized by him, claim
as their prerogative. With great artifice they will pretend that this is
ultimately the work of God ; but with the most presumptuous assumption
they dare to teach their deluded votaries that it is the work of the pope
and the church ! The catechism of the council of Trent declares that the
Almighty has given to his church the keys of the kingdom of heaven,
and that the penitent's sins are forgiven by the minister of religion,
x ESSAY ON POPERY.
through the power of the keys. The arrogance that presumes to dispose
at pleasure of heaven itself, may easily be supposed to claim no inferior
power on earth. Hence the bull of pope Sixtus V. against Henry, king
of Navarre, and the prince de Conde, claims an authority which exceeds
all the powers of earthly kings and potentates. " And if," says the bull,
" it find any of them resisting the ordinance of God, it takes more sum-
mary vengeance upon them, and hurling them from their throne, debases
them as the ministers of aspiring Lucifer, whatever may be their power,
to the lowest abysses of the earth !" Acting under this supposed autho-
rity, pope Pius V. excommunicated queen Elizabeth, asserting that " him
God hath constituted prince over all nations and kingdoms, that he might
pluck up, destroy, dissipate, overturn, plant and build !" In fact, the
claims of popery for its head, have gone so far as to attribute to the
pontiff all power in heaven and on earth ; and it has been asserted that
" the pope could do all things, sin excepted ;" that " the sentences of
God and the pope were one;" that his "indulgence remitted even the
punishment of hell;" and that " no appeal could be made from the pope
to God, because he is the Christ of God ! " Accursed apostasy ! where
a sinful man, whose carcase must soon pay the forfeiture of sin, and rot
in corruption, the best emblem of his own church, presumes to claim the
homage of mankind, and the prerogatives that belong only to Deity !
III. The Church of Rome is iniquitous in its practices. And
what else is to be expected from a church which gives permission to do
whatever is sinful. The daring sale of indulgences by Tetzel, when they
excited the abhorrence of Christendom, was publicly condemned by the
nuncio of pope Leo X. Tetzel, in his zeal to raise money for the holy see,
probably went further than it was thought prudent to express so publicly,
for he even asserted that any one might be permitted to commit the
grossest debauchery, and offer violence to the holy Virgin herself, and be
forgiven by the power of the pope, whose arms were equal to the cross of
Christ! But after the death of Tetzel, a. d. 1519, a list of fees to the
people for absolutions, dispensations, etc., was published in Paris, a. d.
1520. Absolution for fornication in a church was to be obtained for
nine shillings ; for murdering a layman, seven shillings and sixpence ; for
killing a father, mother, or wife, ten shillings and sixpence ; for a priest
keeping a concubine, ten shillings and sixpence ; for a layman keeping a
concubine, the same sum ; and for other crimes the mention of which
would but defile these pages. " Such is the celebrated tax-book of the
Apostolic Chancery, the publication of which stamps the church of Rome
with eternal infamy." This publication was indeed, at last, partially con-
demned, but not till it had been a hundred years in circulation.
But let us see if the holy popes have been more holy than their doc-
trines, licenses, or agents. No ; a worse set of men never corrupted the
earth. From the time of Gregory the Great, in the sixth century, to the
latest period, the popes have been more or less of abandoned principles.
There have been covetous popes, proud popes, profane popes, unchaste
popes, dishonest popes, murdering popes, all of whose names and characters
may be seen in any impartial history of these pretended representatives
upon earth of Him who was " holy, harmless, and undefiled!"
ESSAY ON POPERY. XI
As were the popes, so we must expect to find the priesthood. The
" forbidding- to marry, "a gross mark of the man of sin, has led the popish
clergy to practise all kinds of iniquity with greediness; and the secret
interviews, at the confessional, with females of every class and character
afford facilities for the indulgences of forbidden propensities, of which
the priests have not failed to avail themselves. Facts in abundance
could be related to justify this charge, but it is not pleasant to dwell
upon them, and they are too well known to require reference to authorities.
The monasteries and nunneries have been often described as the seats of
iniquity; and, in fact, the latter were no better than brothels, of the very
worst description. In the days of Henry VIII., when these monasteries
were fully explored in England, the abbots, priors, and monks kept as
many women each, as any lascivious Mohammedan could desire, and their
crimes renewed the existence of Sodom and Gomorrah!
IV. The Church of Rome is cruel in its spirit. Those who are
conversant with its writers know the hatred which it breeds towards
heretics. The council of Trent, besides anathematizing all the great
doctrines of the gospel, consigned their defenders to eternal torments.
" Cursed be all heretics," cried the cardinal of Lorraine, at the closa of its
last session ; and " Cursed ! cursed ! " responded all the prelates. " Cursed !
cursed ! " echoed back the lofty dome of the old cathedral of Trent.
Never had there been so much cursing " in any other synod, since the
world was made." Here, too, the pages might be filled with specimens
of this spirit. But let it suffice to remark how different from the spirit of
Jesus, when he reproved his disciples for wishing to call down fire from
heaven to consume the Samaritans : " He turned, and rebuked them, and
said, Ye know not what manner of spirit ye are of," Luke ix. 55.
Carrying out her principles, the popish apostate has deluged the earth
with the blood of her victims. The murders committed by queen Mary,
and by the Irish papists, are facts too well known in history to be denied.
Hundreds of martyrs have perished at the stake, thousands in dungeons,
and millions form the aggregate of unfortunate Protestants, that have
fallen under the bitter spirit of popery. Papists have imitated Saul of
Tarsus, when he was the messenger of death to Damascus, and haled
men and women, committing them to prison ; and are the fac-similes of
those persecutors whom our Lord warns his disciples to expect : " Yea,
the time cometh, that whosoever killeth you will think that he doeth God
service," John xvi. 2. Torturing, shooting, hanging, strangling, burning
alive, starving to death, — in short every variety of suffering that diabolical
ingenuity could invent, has been employed to glut the infernal appetites of
the demons of the papacy ! Among these the holy fathers of the inqui-
sition have shared no inconsiderable part, and have become " drunk with •
the blood of the saints." Spain and Italy have been the slaughter-houses
for the Protestants. Nor are the barbarities of popery confined to those
lands ; at the present moment their horrid cruelties are not unknown
in Sclavonia, and bordering countries. We may say of these blood-thirsty
men, as Jacob said of Simeon and Levi, " Instruments of cruelty are in their
habitations. O my soul, come not thou into their secret ; unto their as-
sembly, mine honour, be not thou united!" Gen. xlix. 5, 6.
xii ESSAY ON POPERY.
V. The Church of Rome is worldly in its policy. Its object is to
gain dominion ; to get a footing in every court ; to direct the affairs of
kingdoms and empires ; and to accumulate wealth. The Jesuits, though
at times expelled or pretendedly so from Rome, have been its awful emis-
saries to augment its power. The intrigues and deceptions of these men
would fill volumes, and the conveniency of their creed to deny or affirm
anything, or assume any profession as it may serve their purpose, is too
well known to need recapitulating here. These men have at times as-
sumed so much that every papal state has alternately ejected them ; and
large numbers are now in this country — doubtless many under false colours
— waiting the most favourable opportunities to corrupt the rising generation,
and, as far as possible, restore the dark days of former ages. The Jesuits
are unchangeable. So is Popery. And to show that these observations
are not without being confirmed by facts, one sufficiently strong may
here be quoted. After tho Reformation had been carried a considerable
length in the minority of king James VI. of Scotland, it was in danger of
being overthrown by the artifice of the duke of Lennox, a papist and a
creature of the Jesuit court, who had acquired undue ascendancy over the
young king. The ministry of the church were alarmed, and more especially
when they saw several Jesuits and seminary priests arrive from abroad,
and by the open revolt of some who had hitherto professed the Protestant
faith. They warned their hearers of the state of things. Lennox at once
publicly renounced the popish religion. But the jealousy of the nation
was revived and inflamed by the interception of letters from Rome, grant-
ing a dispensation to the Roman Catholics to profess the Protestant tenets
for a time, provided they preserved an inward attachment to the ancient
faith, and embraced every opportunity of advancing it in secret. This
discovery was the cause of originating the national covenant.
Confession is of most important use in establishing this dominion over
men, and even over states and cabinets. Every member of the family is
inadvertently made a spy. Every secret is known to the confessor. The
king and the subject become alike the slaves of the church ! Such a
machinery is one of the most profound pieces of policy that could ever be
employed by arbitrary states. Entering into the deepest recesses of the
human bosom, it brings to light every hidden thing, and at once assumes
the control of every heart. Thus have papists learned to rule the world !
VI. The Church of Rome is selfish in its motives. There is nothing
in it noble, expansive, or benevolent. While it calls itself the " Catholic"
church, it is the most sectarian of all churches, shutting from heaven all
that do not enter within its pale. It never teaches its votaries to wish
"grace, mercy, and peace" to any but those of its own community.
If the most lovely Christians in the world are not papists, they cannot
offer up for them the benevolent wish, " Grace be with all them that love
our Lord Jesus Christ in sincerity."
Whatever the church teaches, or whatever it does, doctrines, sacraments,
discipline, all are made to operate in filling her own gaping coffers, ever
crying, " Give, give ! " Idolatrous as she is in other matters, money is her
chief idol. Her churches have been notorious for accumulating wealth,
and so also have her convents and monasteries ; and the contrivances for
ESSAY ON POFERY. Xlil
that purpose have been most subtle and successful. The doctrine of pur-
gatory, in particular, has been a mine of wealth to the church. By con-
signing g'ood and bad to that indescribable yet horrible state, and keeping
them there at the pleasure of the keys, mass upon mass has been heaped
up mountains high, like Ossa upon Pelion ; so that the poor deluded re-
latives of the departed have exhausted their money and patience in raising
the golden ascent, by which to scale the heavens with more facility !
Without going back to the disgusting period which called forth the
Reformation, it is sufficient to state, that these vile sources of revenue are
still especiallv made productive at certain periods. The Jubilee bulls
every twenty-five years call the faithful to Rome by promising " a plenary
indulgence, remission, and pardon of all their sins." In Spain, a lucrative
traffic is driven in this article of papal merchandise. Four bulls contain-
ing special indulgences are annually sent thither from Rome, which are
bought by almost all the Spaniards, at prices suited to the condition of
the purchasers. One bull gives plenary indulgences to commit what would
otherwise be a mortal sin, by eating various articles of food during Lent.
Another relates to frauds on property, allowing the guilty participants to
retain it under certain qualifications. And what is called the Defunct
bull obtains a plenary indulgence for any dead person, if his soul should
happen to be still in purgatory ! But no release from purgatory without
money ! Not a single mass nor pater-noster can be offered up for a poor
sinner without money ! And the pope and the priest will allow the soul
to suffer all the horrible torments which in their books and pictures are
described as inflicted on the impenitent through countless ages, unless
they have money to turn the keys, and release the poor victims from
their misery. Truly, the " spirit of Popery" is the spirit of the evil one
' — " the spirit that now worketh in the children of disobedience."
VII. The Church of Rome is idolatrous in its worship. The wor-
shipping of any creature, how exalted soever he may be, or the likeness of
anything " in the heaven above, or in the earth beneath," is idolatry. The
Virgin Mary, the popes, the saints, the very bones of the saints, have been
and are the objects of papal idolatries. So much homage is paid to the
Virgin Mary that it has been well observed by a modern deceased writer,
that it looks as if the papists thought that there were four subsistences in
the Godhead, the Virgin Mary being the fourth. The " One Mediator,"
" Jesus Christ the righteous," is lost in the crowds, or rather the clouds of
petitions offered up to the Virgin. This idolatry has no seeming authority
anywhere in the Scriptures but in the angelic salutation, "Hail! highly
favoured, the Lord is with thee ! blessed art thou among women ! " and
Mary's words, " From henceforth all generations shall call me blessed,"
Luke i. 28, 48. Blessed rather signifies " happy;" and not a word is here
respecting worship to be offered to Mary by future generations. But " it is
a favourite mode of declaiming amongst Roman Catholic divines," says
Fletcher, "to represent Jesus Christ as far more willing to listen to the
prayers and intercession of the Virgin, than to those of other saints. The con-
sequence of such representations is obvious. More prayers are addressed
to the Virgin in the Roman Catholic Church than to any other saint ; and
in some services there are ten Ave Marias for one Pater-noster." One
xiv ESSAY ON POPERY.
exhortation in the Catholic school-book is, " Have recourse to her in all
your spiritual necessity ; and for that end offer to her daily and particular
prayers." The same book says, " She is most powerful with God to obtain
from him all that she shall ask of him. She is all goodness in regard to
us, by applying to God for us. Being mother of God, he cannot refuse
her request; being our mother, she cannot deny her intercession, when
we have recourse to her. Our miseries move her, our necessities urge her ;
the prayers we offer her for our salvation bring us all that we desire." And
St. Bernard is not afraid to say, that " never any person invokes that
Mother of mercies in his necessities who has not been sensible of the effect
of her assistance." The prayers to the Virgin in the Breviary are generally
known ; they are in harmony with the above declarations.
The following are a few of the appellations of the Virgin : Holy Mother
of God ; Refuge of Sinners ; Comforter of the Afflicted ; Queen of Angels,
of Patriarchs, of Apostles, of all Saints; Mirror of Justice; Seat of Wis-
dom; Mystical Rose ; Tower of Ivory ; House of Gold ; and others equally
extravagant. In the former, the honour due to Father, Son, and Spirit
is given to a mortal — to the Virgin Mary; and the latter are too ridiculous
to require comment. Popery is the same now as it was in the dark ages
of the church ; and the worship of the Virgin is still one of the favourite
tenets of Romanism, as shown in the following extract from an encyclical
letter of Pius IX. — "In order that our most merciful God may the more
readily incline his ear to our prayers, and grant that which we implore, let
us ever have recourse to the intercession of the most holy Mother of God,
the immaculate Virgin Mary, our sweetest mother, our mediatrix, our
advocate, our surest hope and firmest reliance, than whose patronage
nothing is more potent, nothing more effectual with God ! "
VIII. The Church of Rome is absurd, ridiculous, and blas-
phemous in its pretensions. These absurdities and blasphemies are
so numerous, and so notorious, that a few only need be selected; and on
these it is unnecessary largely to expatiate.
(1.) Transubstantiation is one of the most notorious absurdities of their
doctrine. A greater insult was never offered to the human understanding.
A wafer and wine are transformed by the priest into the real body and
blood of Christ; and though eaten and drunk millions of times, still it is so
transformed, eaten, and drunk. Truly, Catholic priests must be knaves, and
those of their community who really believe this absurdity must be num-
bered amongst the most silly of fools. The latter deserve pity, the former
only to be ranked with the greatest and most dangerous rogues in society.
(2.) Relics have brought no small revenue to the churches in which they
have been deposited ; and these have rivalled each other in the absurd in-
ventions of popery. At Rome are the heads of St. Peter and St. Paul, en-
cased in silver busts set with jewels ; a lock of the Virgin's hair ; a phial
of her tears ; a piece of her green petticoat; a robe of Jesus Christ,
sprinkled with his blood ; some drops of blood in a bottle ; some of the
water which flowed out of the wound in his side ; some of the sponge ; a
large piece of the cross; all the nails used in the crucifixion; a piece of the
stone of the sepulchre on which the angel sat; the identical porphyry piiiar
on which the cock perched when lie crowed after Peter denied Christ; the
ESSAY ON TOrERY. xv
rods of Moses and Aaron, and two pieces of the wood of the real ark of
the covenant; — this is Rome in the nineteenth century! We might fill
columns with relics of sacred bones, beards, hair, etc., but we must
desist. In the church of the Escurial only, in Spain, there are no less
than eleven thousand of these ridiculous impositions on the credulity of the
weak and superstitious. The most extraordinary efficacy is ascribed to
some of these relics, greatly benefiting the churches which have the good
fortune to possess them.
(3.) Patron saints are another happy invention to bring in grist to the
mill. For the accommodation of the worshippers, there are in many
churches altars belonging to a variety of these. These eminent saints are
many of them doctors of high repute. St. Anthony cures diseases; St.
Anthony of Padua delivers from water ; St Barbara protects against
thunder and war ; St. Blass cures the throat ; St. Lucia, the eyes ; St.
Nicholas helps young women to husbands ; St. Ramon protects the preg-
nant ; St. Lazaro serves the purpose of a nurse in giving childbirth ; St.
Polonia preserves the teeth ; St. Domingo cures the fever; and St. Roche
guards against the plague !
(4.) The Agnus Dei is a wonderful little article. It is made chiefly of
virgin wax, and has the image of the Lamb of God on it. The pope con-
secrates the Agnus Deis the first year of his pontificate, and every seventh
year afterwards. It is the object of much devotion ; for, kept about the
person, it preserves from spiritual and temporal enemies, from the dangers
of fire, water, storms, tempests, hunder, lightning, and sudden and unpre-
pared death ; puts devils to flight, takes away the stains of past sins, and pro-
duces other extraordinary benefits.
(5.) Pardons. The marvellous ways in which these might be obtained
were published in 1517, in a work entitled the Customs of London. Some
of these were as follows : — In St. Peter's at Rome, beneath the image of
our Lord at the door, was one of the pence that God was sold for, the
looking upon which obtained each time fourteen hundred years of pardon!
Beholding a cloth made by our Lady, and exhibited on the Lady-day
Assumption, obtained four hundred years of pardon! All who sat in
Pope Accensius's chair obtained a hundred thousand years of pardon !
(6.) Miracles must be classed among popish absurdities. St. Raymond
de Pennafort laid his cloak on the sea, and sailed thereon from Majorca to
Barcelona, a distance of one hundred and sixty miles, in six hours ! The
miracles of other saints are of a like kind. The story of the house of our
Lady of Loretto being carried through the air from Nazareth by angels is
another prodigious absurdity. The priestly juggle of the annual liquefac-
tion of the blood of St. Januarius at Naples is well known. Nor are these
miracles yet finished : Prince Hohenloe recently revived them in Germany,
and the Earl of Shrewsbury has attested a new one in Italy. How unlike
are these " inventions" of Popery to the miracles of Christ and his apostles,
which were wrought before the world, attested by competent witnesses,
designed to confirm their mission, and were all free acts -of 'benevolence.
The " Miracles of Popery" may be dismissed by writing simply beneath
them, " Lying wonders !"
(7.) Pilgrimages have for ages been of great repute in the Church of
Rome. Tribes emerging from barbarism may through this delusion have
xvi ESSAY ON POPERY.
become acquainted with the blessings of civilized life ; but that pilgrimages
should be undertaken in the nineteenth century is another proof that popery
loves darkness rather than light. A famous shrine of the Madonna, near
Leghorn, is constantly visited; and the Dominicans have lately found an
image of the Virgin there, which has brought their order into great repute.
IX. The Church of Rome is insulting to the word of God. It is
too notorious, that in all countries where popery prevails, the Bible is not
permitted to enter. If some favourable opportunities for its access are
embraced, it is soon again interdicted. The darkness of popery cannot
bear its light. Numerous proofs could be brought forward that the word of
God has always been hated and destroyed by popes and priests. The
church substitutes numerous inventions for Scripture authority. Hence
its pope, falsely called the successor of St. Peter, who never was at
Rome; its seven sacraments, two only of which are found in sacred
writ — baptism and the Lord's Supper ; hence its purgatory, pilgrimages,
images, and other absurdities. Though Christ has left the command,
" Search the Scriptures," and apostolic authority records another, " Let
the word of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom," the church of Rome
takes the greatest pains to keep the people in ignorance, and prevent the
clear shining of this light. If it had free course, it would soon consume
all her false doctrines, and shame all her absurdities and wickednesses.
Nothing is hated more by popes and priests than the Bible, and the Bible
Society. Against the latter a tremendous bull was thundered forth by the
pope only as recently as the year 1824. If the Bible is occasionally
found in circulation, it is grossly interpolated, its phrases are adapted to
the inventions of the popish church, and its price too high for general 'use ;
and indeed, from the ignorance of the people in papal states, but few
could use it. Even then the authority of the church is paramount to
everything, and nothing is to be believed in the Bible if it is not believed
by the church ! The Bible, God's book, is fallible ; the church of Rome,
its head, is infallible !
X. The Church of Rome is inimical to freedom. To the present
moment popish rulers, under the guidance of their priests, have suppressed
knowledge, fettered the press, prevented free inquiry after truth, and the
labours of Protestants. Papists claim everything for themselves in free
countries ; but popish countries allow no such liberty to Protestants.
Truth is not afraid of papal error, but popery fears the truth. How
numerous have been the martyrs in old France, Spain, Portugal, Italy,
and other popish countries. And where now is the liberty of worship in
most of them? They domineer over the minds of men, and chain both
their consciences and their understandings with fetters of iron. Books
adapted to enlighten the mind are excluded, while fabulous accounts of
the saints are abundantly circulated. Catechisms indeed they have, but
they altogether omit the second commandment. Everywhere in the
churches you are urged to pray for the dead, and to drop a little money
for masses for their poor souls in purgatory; but no effort dare you make
to enlighten the living. In all the nations where the Reformation burst
forth, it was extinguished by persecution and the inquisition.
ESSAY ON POPERY. xvii
XI. The Church of Rome is unholy in its influences. Its breath is
poison to morality. Its doctrines are calculated to encourage men to sin,
because they can always obtain ghostly pardon. From its bosom spring
a generation of the worst infidels, disgusted with its fooleries and enormities;
and who, for want of better light, confound superstition with religion. Its
trickeries and crimes which have occasionally been brought to light, have
made hosts of genuine unbelievers. The practices discovered in its monas-
teries—often sinks of vice— and the lives of many of its clergy, have all aided
to make men secret infidels, where they have not been weak enough to
become dupes. Religion and pastime have been mingled together to
defraud the people. The Sabbath may be desecrated by the covetous
dealer or the mountebank ; and the songs of the opera be listened to after
the chants of the church. The fourth commandment is set aside, like the
second, and papists defy the moral authority which says, " Remember the
Sabbath day to keep it holy." The scenes of commerce, pleasure, dissi-
pation and vice, which abound in continental cities on the Sabbath, mark
them at once as under the dominion of " the man of sin."
XII. The Church of Rome is comparatively modern in its
origin, principles, and customs. Its antiquity is often a boast of the
advocates of popery; but if antiquity stamped excellency on a religion,
then Paganism and Judaism are older than Popery. The church of Rome,
however, boasts of its antiquity without cause. The question has been
proposed by the papist to the Protestant, " Where was your religion before
the days of WicklifFe?" " Where ?" was the reply ; " why, where yours
never was — in the Bible." Primitive Christianity bears no resemblance to
popery. We find there no popes; no cardinals; no monks, nor nuns; no
holy wafer, nor holy water ; no baptism of bells, nor canonization of
saints; no mass, nor giant candles ; no chrism, nor cross ; no repeating of
Pater-nosters nor Ave Marias ; no saints' days, nor popes' jubilees ; no
plenary indulgences, nor purgatories; no bulls, nor inquisitions; in fact, we
find nothing like popery, except what is under the ban of heaven, and
doomed to everlasting destruction : the " man of sin — the son of perdi-
tion, who opposeth and exalteth himself above all that is called God, or
that is worshipped; so that he, as God, sitteth in the temple of God,
showing himself that he is God. — That Wicked, whom the Lord shall
consume with the spirit of his mouth, and shall destroy with the bright-
ness of his coming : even him, whose coming is after the work of Satan,
with all power and signs and lying wonders, and with all deceivableness
of unrighteousness in them that perish, because they received not the love of
the truth that they might be saved," 2 Thes. ii. 3, 4, 8,10. The Bible further
delineates Popery with unmistakeable accuracy : " Now the Spirit speaketh
expressly that in the latter times some shall depart from the faith, giving
heed to seducing spirits and doctrines of devils ; speaking lies in hypocrisy ;
having their conscience seared with a hot iron ; forbidding to marry, and
commanding to abstain from meats, which God hath created to be received
with thanksgiving of them that believe and know the truth." " And
there came one of the seven angels which had the seven vials, and talked
with me, saying unto me, Come hither; I will show unto thee the judgment
of the great whore that sitteth upon many waters : with whom the kings
xviii ESSAY ON POPERY.
of the earth have committed fornication. So he carried me away in the
spirit into the wilderness ; and I saw a woman sit upon a scarlet- coloured
beast, full of names of blasphemy, having seven heads and ten horns.
And the woman was arrayed in purple and scarlet colour ; and decked in
gold and precious stones and pearls, having a golden cup in her hand full
of abominations and filthiness of her fornication : and upon her forehead
was a name written Mystery, Babylon the Great, the Mother of
Harlots and Abominations of the Earth. And I saw the woman
drunken with the blood of the saints, and with the blood of the martyrs
of Jesus : and when I saw her I wondered with great admiration. And
the angel said unto one, Wherefore didst thou marvel ? I will tell thee the
mystery of the woman, and of the beast that carrieth her, which hath the
seven heads and ten horns. The beast that thou sawest was, and is not;
and shall ascend out of the bottomless pit, and go into perdition," 1 Tim.
iv. 1—3; Rev. xvii. 1—8.
Every part of Popery corrupts Christianity, and its corruptions have crept
into its church by degrees. The Bible was not proscribed till the fourtn
century — this proscription was a novelty ; the idolatry of popery did not
commence till then — this was another novelty; the clergy were not for-
bidden to marry till then — another novelty. Infallibility was not claimed
till the seventh century ; the service was not performed in an unknown
tongue before that time ; purgatory was then introduced. Transubstantiation
was not introduced till the eighth century. Half- communion was not
begun till the eleventh century. Priestly absolution and excommunication
were powers not claimed till the twelfth century ; nor till then was it
determined that there should be seven sacraments. The sacrifice of the
mass, the worship of the host, and auricular confession, were established
only in the thirteenth century. Tradition did not make its claims before
the sixteenth century. Thus it appears that popery is a monster of slow
growth, and all its parts have not been perfected till within a few centuries.
Such is the church against whose iniquities, doctrines, and practices the
martyrs protested, and sealed the truth with their blood. It is heathenism
new-modelled, and Christianity foully corrupted. It is doomed to perish,
but yet struggles for existence. Its throne totters, but many hands yet
strive to hold it up. Its subtle agents are at work to renew its influences
in this land of martyrs. The Jesuit, like a sly serpent, creeps into every
hole and corner. The " slimy viper" stealthily crawls into our families,
schools, colleges, universities, and senate. We trace its existence under
the mitre and the cassock ; we see it polluting the pulpit and the press.
We should beware of its corruptions in innovating ceremonies creeping
under the Protestant altars, and in leading articles published in our most
popular newspapers. If we would not again fall a prey to the reptile foe,
let us learn dexterously to handle the sword of the Spirit, which it cannot
resist ; and let us say to each other, as Jesus to his disciples — Watch !
LIFE OF THE
REV. JOHN FOX, A.M.
It is seldom we are deeply interested in the works of an author,
with whose personal and private history we have no desire to be ac-
quainted. The few instances in which this may be the case regard
writers of acknowledged fiction, and such other works as from their
nature require no guarantee of their being conformable to the reality
of things; but will never be found to include a single writer on civil or
personal, political or sacred, history. Authors who have undertaken to
inform us on the latter subject, especially, and who have succeeded in
winning general attention to their works, are the men whose own history
becomes a field of curiosity and research, that the scenes through which
they passed may assure us of their competency to the task, and the
character they have preserved amidst ordinary or peculiar trials may
attest the honesty of every part of their important record. Hence it is
that histories of the Christian church have, beyond all other works,
required a sure and safe appeal to the character of their authors to give
them currency, and have circulated and flourished in the walks of
literature in proportion as that appeal has been fearlessly and faithfully
answered.
When special periods of ecclesiastical fame or disgrace, triumph or
suffering, are chosen by an historian, it becomes of greater importance
that we know who and what he is. Few will commit their faith to the
details of such a period, who are not first informed to their satisfaction
that the author was a man above suspicion — resolved, in the love of
truth and the fear of God,
Nothing to extenuate
Or set down aught in malice."
It is true that such periods are most fertile in determined partisans, and
it is equally true that they require every public character deliberately
to choose and resolutely to defend his party: and this, in reference to
active and warlike agents, can scarcely ever be done without inflaming
the passions beyond all reasonable bounds, and giving ascendancy to
feelings often at perfect variance with integrity and charity. But
writers, who undertake a subsequent record of what these fierce com-
batants have done, need not be under the same injurious impulse — may
without difficulty release themselves from the angry constraint — have
xx LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
in fact, the best opportunity and the most pure and powerful motive to
atone for the wrong doing of their friends, while they wield the weapons
of truth against their foes. How far the subject of the present memoir
merited the censure or the praise to which these remarks refer, will
appear in some measure from the annals of his life and the features of
his general character: while from his great work which this memoir
precedes, it must be sufficiently manifest that with whatever errors of
spirit or judgment he may have been chargeable, he could have fairly said
of himself in the words of a later author — "My work is for the service
of truth, by one who would be glad to attend and grace her triumphs ; as
her soldier, if he has had the honour to serve successfully under her
banner; or as a captive tied to her chariot wheels, if he has committed
any offence against her."
John Foxe, or Fox, was born at Boston in Lincolnshire, a. d. 1517,
the year in which Luther published his Theses against the papal church,
and just before the growing power of Henry VIII. led him to shake the
foundations of the vast Roman hierarchy, which no British prince before
had the courage to speak of but in terms of the profoundest reverence
and submission. The town of Fox's birth, on account of its remoteness
and seclusion, contained an unusual proportion of independent gentle-
men of small fortune, to which class his father belonged; but not being
a native of the place his constitution suffered from confinement in the
extreme humidity of that corner of the kingdom, so that he died ot
decline a few years after the birth of this his distinguished child, and
we believe only son. His mother, a woman very generally admired and
esteemed, soon embraced a second offer of marriage; which, however,
neither drove her son from under the paternal roof, nor diminished the
care with which she had begun to tutor and train him. His second
father became warmly attached to his foster son, and is said to have
elicited more of his rising talent than the mother, sanguine as she was
on this point, could venture to hope he would ever display. Afterwards
indeed, when young Fox openly avowed partiality to protestant prin-
ciples, his father-in-law either became deeply prejudiced against him on
this ground, or was alarmed at the probable consequences of the change
to the family, so that he withheld from him the means of support; but
as one remarks, "As the hunted deer takes sanctuary by flying to the rest
of the herd, they, out of a principle of self-preservation, drive him away
for fear lest the hounds in pursuit fall on them ; so Foxe's father-in-law was
lothe to receive him, and forbade him the protection of his family, lest per-
secution in quest of his son should bring him and his house into trouble."
At the age of sixteen his " good inclinations and towardness to learning "
led to his being sent to the university of Oxford. He was accordingly
entered at Brazennose college ; and placed under Mr. Hawarden, one
of the fellows. It would seem strange. that, at a period of difficult com-
munication between one town and another, the more distant university
should have been preferred; especially as Cambridge lay mid-way on
the road from Boston to Oxford, and was, moreover, of easier access as
a place of learning for the sons of the poorer gentry of the land. It
was a favourable circumstance for young Fox that the frugality of his
parents, while it did not shrink from the expence of an Oxford education,
LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xx\
rendered it necessary that the youth should share his college apartment
with another pupil. This incident was the more favourable from that
Di her pupil being some years the elder of the two, and a youth of dis-
tinguished genius, industry, and kindness. But the most favourable as
well as extraordinary feature of the event was, the decided and growing
protestantism of the other collegian, whose abode by night and day it
was the privilege of young Fox to share. This undoubtedly laid the
foundation of his early and decided love of reforming principles, and of
his resolute undeviating course in their defence, when poverty stared
him in the face, and death seemed to threaten him at every step.
The companion referred to was no other than Alexander Nowell, the
celebrated preacher of Elizabeth's days, and the exemplary dean of St.
Paul. He had entered Brazennose at an early age, and continued an
under-graduate thirteen years. This suspension of graduateship did not
imply inferiority, for the first degree was not then, as at the present day,
usually taken at the expiration of the fourth year. At the age of twenty,
two years before Fox was admitted as a student, and after a residence of
seven years, Nowell was appointed public reader of Logic in the university,
which he taught from the work of Rodolphus Agricola. There is some-
thing worth dwelling upon in the circumstance of two such individuals
being thus early, and as it were accidentally coupled, — not to pull in
opposite directions, and thus impede each other's progress, but to ad-
minister each to the other's strength, and thus multiply their separate
talents and zeal, as well as furnish to both all the additional energy and
efficiency that could be derived from the most friendly combination. The
few years difference in age was soon lost sight of, or became a motive
for the elder to be more generously and faithfully communicative, and
for the younger to receive his communications with all the openness of
an ardent pupil united with all the gratitude of an obliged and affec-
tionate friend.
But it is in their like-mindedness as studious and zealous protestants,
that we reflect on their early union and later co-operation with the
greatest delight. At that period there was just enough in the pos-
ture of public affairs to encourage two such minds to proceed in
their investigation of ecclesiastical evils, and at the same time so little
as to convince them that such investigations alone might expose them to
the greatest danger; that one new impulse acting upon the fickle mind
of an arbitrary monarch might spoil all their hopes, transfer them for
the remainder of a short life from a college to a prison, exile them from
their native country, or bring upon them a violent and barbarous death.
How far these considerations stimulated their zeal and tempered it with
due discretion, we have no means of accurately judging; but that their
critical circumstances, which must have suggested some such reasoning,
neither abated their protestant energy nor deprived them of christian
prudence and caution, we have enough in their history to convince us.
Undoubtedly the universities contained many young inquirers eager to
ascertain whether the protestant or the papal cause were the more just
as well as more likely to triumph in the approaching conflict; but it is
still more certain that the number was comparatively small of those who
turned their inquiries to so much real edification, and directed them to
xxu LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
such honourable purposes and aims as these noble and persevering
reformers, Alexander Novvell and John Fox.
The latter took his bachelor's degree in the year 1538, when he reached
his twenty-first year; and his master's degree in 1543. In the latter
year he was elected fellow of Magdalen college, though many objections
were made from various causes. About the same time, Nowell left Oxford
to become second master of Westminster School, " where he instructed his
pupils in the ancient principles of the true catholic faith, as they were cleared
from the papal errors which had so long blended with and disfigured them."
The change in both instances, especially in the latter, arose doubtless
from the growing disaffection of the leading men at Brazen-nose to a
reform in the church, which had now begun to assume a rather auspicious
and active appearance. Westminster afforded Nowell a more secure and
promising sphere for his bolder efforts in this great and growing cause;
while Oxford, having offered to Fox a fellowship which he thought he
might safely accept in a more liberal college, continued a few years
longer to shelter him in the less public and more cautious pursuit of pro-
testant principles.
Cultivating an early taste for poetry, some portion of the seclusion of
his fellowship was given to this pleasing art ; but it was an art which he
never dissociated from theology, nor allowed essentially to interfere
with that sacred and ascendant theme. Nor was his love of poetry ever
permitted to divert his attention from those protestant views of theology,
which were every year acquiring the strongest influence over him. It
was, in fact, very early and efficiently subservient to the extension
of those views, and to his assurance that they were strictly in unison
with the will of God as revealed in holy writ. In very few years he
made himself master of all the controversies which then agitated the
christian world, and before he was thirty he had read all the Greek and
Latin fathers, together with all the decrees of consistories, convocations,
and councils. His acquaintance with Jewish and Rabbinical literature
was not so extensive or so profound, as with the erudition and the annals
of christian churches ; still he was a respectable Hebrew scholar, ana
had by this time become master of the chief intricacies of that ancient
and sacred language.
In early youth he had been, like most others, a zealous and bigoted
papist: he might be said to belong to the strictest sect of the Romish
church ; and had he possessed less ingenuousness of mind, his studies,
receiving a papal direction, might have rendered him a still more devoted
catholic, and prepared him for the honours of the conclave, if not the
glories of the popedom. But his native candour was equal to his in-
dustry, and led him to examine and compare at every step; and this
soon turned the balance of his judgment in favour of protestant truth.
He is said to have been first shaken in his popish belief by perceiving in
the writing of its advocates things most repugnant to each other ; as
that the same man might be superior in matters of faith, and yet his life
and manners be inferior to all the world besides. He now pursued his
investigations of the system with more ardour than ever, and his mind
rapidly advanced to a perfect assurance, which nothing could shake,
that some great effort must soon be made, and had in fact already com-
LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxm
menced, to reform the church of Christ, especially in his own beloved
but deluded country, in which the heresy and tyranny of the Romish
faith had acquired a long and almost inveterate entrenchment.
There can be no doubt that his conscience and character became pro-
portionably conformed to the will of Christ — that he grew as a christian
in the grace of the gospel with the same rapidity, enlargement, and
strength as he increased in an acquaintance with its history and truth,
and in zeal for its most extensive diffusion. So ardent was his pursuit
of personal godliness, that he would spend whole nights in sacred stu-
dies and spiritual devotion ; reading the scriptures in their original
tongues, beseeching in humble prayer to God the spirit of wisdom and
knowledge rightly to understand them, and comparing spiritual things
with spiritual that he might comprehend the whole truth as it is in Jesus
Christ. He would often leave his study or his bed at midnight, and
resort to a neighbouring grove, to meditate on what he had been reading,
and pour forth the desires of his soul in earnest supplication and grateful
thanksgiving. On these occasions his fellow students would sometimes
watch and listen to him, and several were deeply impressed by what they
overheard in favour of a more earnest pursuit of christian truth and
duty.
Some, however, to whom these extraordinary studies and exercises of
mind were known, were neither so candid nor so charitable. They report-
ed Mr. Fox to the heads of the university as an abettor of the new faith,
which occasioned him to be narrowly watched and restrained in many of
his most favourite pursuits. At length his conscience constrained him to
cease from attendance on the national worship, which continued, espe-
cially in the universities, to be conducted in strict conformity to papal
rules and rites. Without abetting the formation of separate protestant
societies — a proceeding commenced by some elder and less exposed
members of Oxford — he was yet constrained to absent himself, except
on necessary and official occasions, both from the Magdalen chapel and
the university church. At last he w r as openly charged with heresy,
brought before the heads of his college, and commanded to leave the
city and county without delay, and to be thankful that he had met with
judges so merciful, and a sentence so far below what his apostacy
merited !
Very small is the number of true friends who will firmly stand the day
of trial. Many will fawn, and smile, and live upon us in our prosperitv,
who, when adversity overtakes us will refuse to know us, and even basely
deny that they ever knew us before. They leave the garden in winter
when there is nothing to gather. So fared it with Mr. Fox. He had
several patrons and friends both in the university and the country, who,
while he continued but privately a protestant, afforded him their coun-
tenance and protection. But so soon as his new principles assumed a
tangible and public shape — that is, so soon as he became faithful to his
trust, and began to appear a protestant openly, in deed and in truth ;
especially when the rulers of the university took cognizance of his neg-
lect of papal ceremonies, and his opposition to papal credence and
authority ; those who had before most befriended him, either in anger or
in fear avoided his societv and left him to his fate. Hitherto he had
xxiv LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
found no difficulty in obtaining periodical remittances of the little pro-
perty he claimed from his mother, and to which she usually made some
addition from her own ; but now either her mind was tur/ied from him,
or she was obliged to yield to the influence of her husband, whose rigid
Romanism made him the adversary of his "heretic" son-in-law, and
determined him to withhold all further pecuniary supply. Some of this
incensed gentleman's friends have apologised for his conduct, on the
plea that the courts of justice would have called him to account for grant-
ing further supply to one who had become a voluntary outlaw ; but there
is much greater reason to believe that he was induced by superstition
and priestcraft to appropriate the property of a heretic to the support
of a tottering church and the absolution of his own guilt. Be these
things as they may, Mr. Fox was reduced by the simultaneous loss of
his fellowship and fortune to the deepest personal distress.
"Troubled on every side, yet not distressed ; perplexed, but not in
despair ; persecuted, but not forsaken ; cast down, but not destroyed" —
Mr. Fox now went from one place to another in the hope and search of
honourable and useful occupation. The county of Warwick, and espe-
cially the city of Coventry, being well disposed towards the protestant
cause, he bent his steps thither, and made his injured case known to a
few families in whom he could safely confide ; but for some time without
any success beyond the temporary supply of pressing necessity. At last
when hope appeared to fail, divine Providence directed him to the man-
sion of Sir Thomas Lucy, in whom he found a patron both able and
willing to render him efficient aid. Averse to receiving that aid but as
the recompense of honest service, Mr. Fox undertook, at the request of
Sir Thomas, the tutorship of his sons, on which task he entered with the
best mental, moral, and theological qualifications for its due performance.
While in this occupation Vox married the daughter of a citizen of
Coventry, who visited at Charlecote, the seat of his patron. His engage-
ment as tutor could not have been of long duration ; and was probably
terminated either in consequence of his marriage, or of the strict search
then being made for supposed heretics, both publicly and in private
families. On leaving Charlecote, Mr. Fox was reduced to great distress.
He remained with his wife's father, at Coventry, so long as he could do so
with safety; and from thence wrote to his father-in-law at Boston, to ask
if he could there be sheltered. He received for answer, " That it seemed
to his step-father a hard condition to take into his house one whom he
knew to be guilty of and condemned for a capital offence ; neither was he
ignorant what hazard he should undergo in so doing : nevertheless he
would show himself a kinsman, and for that cause neglect his own danger.
If he would alter his mind he might come, on condition, to stay as long
as himself desired ; but if he could not be persuaded to that, he should
content himself with the shorter tarriance,,and not bring him and his
mother into hazard of their lives and fortunes, who were ready to do any-
thing for his sake."
The necessities of Fox compelled him to accept this offer of protection,
to which he was also privately urged by his mother ; but how long he re-
mained at Boston is uncertain. It was probable of very brief continuance.
Nothing is known of his trials and mode of life after leaving the country,
LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxv
till within a few months of the king's death, when the influence of the
queen and Cianmer allowed the reformers to appear more openly in
public, at which time Mr. Fox was discovered in London. The doors of
St. Paul's were then always open ; and numerous idlers, as well as wor-
shippers, were continually found within its precincts. ''He is as much
known as the middle walk of St. Paul's," became a proverb ; and in
Lupton's description of the metropolis at that period, the "idlers" in
the cathedral are called " dinnerless pedestrians :" some watching the
opportunity of an invitation, having on their visiting garments; others, in
tattered clothes and with a mournful visage, brooding over their discon-
solate condition. Mr. Fox appears to have been among the latter; and
the circumstance is thus portrayed by his son, whose narrative of the sub-
sequent events in his father's life are set forth with less interruption : —
"As Master Fox one day sate in St. Paul's church, spent with long
fasting, his countenance thin, and eyes hollow, after the ghastly manner
of dying men, every one shunning a spectacle of so much horror, there
came to him one whom he never remembered to have seen before, who,
sitting down by him, and saluting him with much familiarity, thrust an
untold sum of money into his hand, bidding him be of good cheer, adding
withal, that he knew not how great the misfortunes were which oppressed
him, but supposed it was no light calamity ; that he should, therefore,
accept in good part that small gift from his countryman which common
courtesy had forced him to offer ; that he should go and take care of
himself, and take all occasions to prolong his life ; adding, that within a
few days new hopes were at hand, and a more certain condition of liveli-
hood." Fox used every endeavour to discover to whom he was indebted
for this relief in his hour of need, but without success. Great cities are
great solitudes, and Fox felt himself alone in the metropolis, without friends
or occupation ; though his want of them probably arose more from the
danger of making application to individuals likely to patronize him, than
from the scarcity of employment for a scholar of his attainments. " Some
who looked further into the event by which that prophecy became fulfilled,
believed that the friend who performed the kindness came not of his own
accord, but was employed by others who were deeply concerned for Mr.
Fox's safety ; and that it might possibly be through the negligence of
the servant, or person commissioned, that he had endured so much misery
before the means of relief were afforded him. Certain it is, however, that
within three days after the transaction, the presage was made good. Some
one waited upon him from the duchess of Richmond, who invited him,
upon fair terms," says the writer, " into her service. It had so fallen out,
not long before, that the duke of Norfolk, the most renowned general of
his time, together with his son, the earl of Surrey, a man, as far as may be
imagined, of sincere meaning and sharp understanding, were committed to
custody in the Tower of London, for what crime is uncertain. While they
were in prison, the earl's children were sent to the aforesaid duchess, their
aunt, to be brought up and educated : Thomas, who succeeded in the
dukedom ; Henry, afterwards earl of Northampton ; and Jane, wife of
Charles, the last Neville, earl of Westmoreland, afterwards countess of
Westmoreland."
To these Fox became tutor. It is uncertain whether his first publication
xxyi LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
appeared just before or just after he entered on the duties of this honour-
able office. The probability is that while in London and in want he
had offered the manuscript to some booksellers, and that when they
found him thus nobly patronised one of them ventured to publish it.
The reader will be pleased to have the title of this curious work before
him in its own tongue and shape. It is as follows: —
DE NON PLECTENDIS MORTE
ADULTERIS CONSULTATIO,
JOANNIS FOXI.
Impressum Londini per Hugonem Stngletonum,
sub intersignio D. Augustini,
Anno Domini. M. D. 1548.
The work is preceded by an affectionate and able dedication, which
the author thus introduces: —
generoso viro Thome Pictono,
I. Foxus salutem et pacem in
% christo.
There are in the body of the work about forty pages ; but not a num-
ber to any one of them. It is the duodecimo size ; the letter is large
and open, a Roman character, and the impression is on the whole uniform
and good. We have not been able to discover a second edition of this
work, nor is it on a subject likely to have created popularity for the
author. It contains many admirable remarks, amidst some doubtful
propositions, and as a whole is inferior both in style and sentiment to the
later productions of the excellent author.
We now follow him to Ryegate, where he commenced the important
duties of his new office and where he passed six or seven years in great
activity and peace, until the accession of Mary clouded his prospects
and sent him into exile. It is here proper to remind the reader that
the outraged earl of Surry had five lovely children, three daughters
and two sons, and that his death rendered his eldest son immediate heir
to the dukedom of Norfolk — a rank which the youth seemed likely very
soon to reach, as no hope was at this time entertained that either the
duke or the earl, who were both prisoners in the tower, could be saved
from death. It will be remembered that the rage of Henry soon cut off
the earl,* and that the king's rather sudden death alone gave the con-
demned duke a few years more of life, though not of liberty. A ques-
tion or two of some importance here suggest themselves. How came
the children of the earl of Surry under the care of the duchess of Rich-
mond ? and how was it that the heir of the dukedom of Norfolk, always
* The cruel eagerness with which Henry hastened the execution of the earl of Surry
has generally been pronounced a mystery ; but, if the report be true that he had aspired
to a marriage with the princess Mary, the mystery becomes easily solved.
LIFE OF THE REV. .JOHN FOX. xxvii
a popish family, was committed for education to John Fox, one of the
most marked protestants of the age?
These problems can be solved only by referring to the peculiar cir-
cumstances under which the arrangement took place, and the control
which the government, if not the king himself must have exercised in the
affair. The duchess of Richmond was Surry's sister and the children's aunt :
she was a retired widow without son or daughter of her own, and was
withal a protestant of superior education and understanding. But then
she was the chief witness against her injured and innocent brother! She
was in fact the cause — it is to be feared the voluntary cause — of bringing
him to the block, by deposing against him all that could be construed
into treason ! These distressing recollections create the greatest wonder
that she, in preference to all others, should have been chosen to govern
and guide their youthful course. It would seem scarcely possible to
conceal from the children themselves the dreadful secret that they were
in the hands of the cruel relative, whose testimony had been mainly in-
strumental in depriving them of the protection of one of the best of
fathers! How could their mother submit with any patience to such a
disposal of her almost infant and orphan family.
The only explanation of these mysteries which has been offered is this
— that their father being doomed to death, however unjustly, on a charge
of treason, the children were at the disposal of government, and the
duchess, whose loyalty was undoubted, was most likely to train them in
a course of devotion to the reigning prince. Such had been the rapid
advance of the reformation that loyalty was likely henceforward to be
identified with protestantism. Henry was drawing towards his end, and
had appointed his son Edward to set aside the claims of Mary; and the
earl of Hertford, into whose hands the regency was likely to fall, was
known to be resolute in carrying on the reformation. Hence the expe-
diency of imparting a protestant education to the earl of Surry's chil-
dren, and hence the policy of substituting as their governess the earl's
sister, a protestant, for the more natural appointment of their own
mother. The latter was more than suspected of cleaving to the ancient
faith, and was known to prefer obscurity and a separation from her
family to whit she deemed the fellowship and fate of heretics. In her
retirement in the north she soon married a second husband, a catholic
gentleman of the name of Steyning.
Returning to the incidents of Fox's personal history, we find him re-
siding at Ryegate about seven years, comprehending a few of the last
months of Henry VIII., the whole short reign of his son Edward VI.,
and until his cruel sister and successor commenced the measures which
turned the kingdom into a protestant furnace, heated by her fury "seven
times hotter than it was wont to be heated." With the exception of the
duchess of Richmond and some few of her attendants and friends,
Ryegate had not only hitherto been without advocates or examples of
the protestant faith ; but it had betrayed for ages unusual features of
gross ignorance and vulgar superstition. The glad tidings of christian
truth had never been heard by its inhabitants, nor had they been directed
to any of the spiritual and scriptural exercises of christian worship. No
disciple of WicklifFe — no faithful Lollard — no enlightened reformer had
xxviil LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
ever been known to lift up his voice in the church or in the streets
agamst a system of the most absurd and stupid idolatry, which the se-
cluded and populous town of Ryegate had been known to prefer to every
other mode of expressing its religious feelings. The fame of the virgin
Mary had long fled from the town and its temple, and her image,
wherever it had aforetime been exhibited, had given way to that of an
old fortune-teller and quack-doctress, reverently called by the besotted
people of all ranks, the old lady of Ouldsworth. This woman, if she
ever had existence beyond the ancient fables of the place, was reported
to have been skilful in recovering the sick to health, and causing the
lame to leap for joy. There were other saintly idols held in esteem and
adoration by the sages as well as peasants of Ryegate; but no one had
such lasting and abounding popularity as this lady — no one was sup-
posed to have conferred half so much benefit on the church and people
as she had done. " Great is Diana of the Ephesians !" was not a louder
or a warmer cry than was uttered continually by all ranks in her praise,
and more than half the industry and traffic of the town were occasioned
by the embellishment which she was thought to claim, and by the new
honours which her priests and people gathered around her !
No wonder that at such scenes the spirit of Fox "was stirred within
him," and that he burned with zeal to bear his testimony against them,
and to cast from the temple of religion such profane and vulgar abuse
of divine service. But it was some time before he had an opportunity
of accomplishing his pious purpose. He had to wait for a pioneer of
government to break up the way, before he could begin a successful
march against evils almost as inveterate as they were absurd and con-
temptible. Soon, however, the establishment of the reformation under
Edward VI. enabled him to cast off every restraint, and to stand forth
the first protestant preacher in the church of Ryegate. He embraced
the opportunity with the liveliest feelings of gratitude, and began pro-
claiming the glad tidings of salvation through Christ alone with a zeal
sufficiently tempered by discretion to obviate improper offence, yet con-
straining him to bear a testimony not to be mistaken against the idolatries
which had so long darkened and deluded the people. The old lady of
Ouldsworth met with little forbearance from him ; and, through the
power of his persuasive eloquence and resistless reasoning and wit, she
soon lost her hold of the public confidence, and was removed by common
consent from her lofty place in the church.
Uncertain and inconsistent dates render it difficult to determine the
precise year in which Mr. Fox commenced his public ministry. Some
have led us to believe that he opened his faithful commission soon after
the accession of Edward VI.; while others tell us that he was not or-
dained till the midsummer of 1550, more than two years after that wel-
come event. The probability is, either that he was licensed to preach
before his ordination, and eagerly availed himself of the privilege, or
that the latter is the date of his ordination to the priesthood, and that
he had become a deacon of the church some time before. Of one fact,
however, we are certain — that as he had no clerical appointment at
Ryegate, his ministerial labours, however irregular, were as gratuitous as
LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxix
they were intrepid and faithful.* He rather abounded than relaxed in
liis services as tutor to Surry's children, and received nothing beyond
the stipulated compensation which those services merited. They now
began to impose upon him a task as difficult as it was honourable, and
requiring the utmost prudence as well as assiduity and erudition. The
duke of Norfolk had been reprieved from death by the rather sudden
death of Henry; but the timid and cautious advisers of Edward would
not allow the old man to enjoy his liberty, notwithstanding imprisonment
was uniting with age to weaken a frame naturally robust, and to hasten
a departure which at best could not have been far distant. Thus the
eldest pupil of Fox was likely soon to reach the most ancient ducal title
in the realm; and this illustrious pupil, with his brother and one sister,
were to be fully initiated — such was the engagement — in religious prin-
ciples the reverse of those which a long line of ancestors had held as a
sacred inheritance.
Contrary to general expectation the task of the tutor was nearly over,
and his continuance in England began to be unsafe, before the elevation
of his pupil took place. The duke of Norfolk, after escaping execu-
tion by the death of Henry, obtained release from imprisonment by the
death of Edward. One of the first acts of Mary, upon her accession
to the throne, was to restore to liberty this aged nobleman, whom she
called her father's most faithful servant — an act and a speech too plainly
intended to censure his imprisonment by protestant influence over the
minds of her father and brother. One purpose of his release evidently
was to employ his high military talents against the forces of Sir Thomas
Wyatt. This task he executed with great success; but the excitement
it produced in his aged and tottering frame very soon brought him to the
grave.
" Of no distemper, of no blast, he died ;
But fell like Autumn fruit that's mellow'd long :
Even wonder'd at because he dropt no sooner.
He pass'd man's life of threescore years and ten,
And then ran on eleven winters more;
'Jill, like a clock worn out with eating time,
The wheels of weary life at last stood still."
Now came on the clouds, most dark and dense, portending the storms
which soon burst upon all the distinguished protestants who were either
resolved or compelled to continue in the land. Persecution had begun
to assume its worst forms: many excellent men were already thrown into
dungeons, and some were brought to the scaffold and the stake after
brief proceedings which too clearly shewed the malignant purpose of the
court, and that it was religion and not sedition which Mary was resolved
to punish and suppress. On hearing of these events, and especially find-
ing that they most abounded in the diocese of Stephen Gardiner, who had
been appointed bishop of Winchester, and to whom as a clergyman Mr.
Fox was locally subject, he began to prepare means for the safety of
* Anthony Wood tells us that Edward VI. restored Fox to his fellowship of Magdalen
college, Oxford: if this were the case, marriage was in that day no impediment, as it is in
the present day, to a protestant being fellow of an university college. Fox was then, as
at all other times, living openly with the wife of his bosom.
xxx LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
himself and his beloved wife. On his purpose being mentioned to his
chief pupil, who had now become duke of Norfolk he spurned the thought
of danger, and assured his revered tutor that in the shelter of his mansion
he was perfectly safe. Undoubtedly the young nobleman thought as
he spoke, since he then looked upon Gardiner as his friend, and not
having studied the character of that dissembling prelate, he considered
he might implicitly confide in his promise and influence. A remarkable
circumstance is mentioned, which appears to have suddenly undeceived
him, and while it shews that crafty men as often impose upon themselves
as others, manifests the perception which the young duke at once ac-
quired of Gardiner's real character and of Fox's actual danger.
The bishop's intimacy with the Norfolk family, and the obligations he
had been under to them for much of his dignity, often led him to visit
their mansion in London ; and now he had additional reasons to repeat
and multiply his visits: he feared the effects of Mr. Fox's instructions,
and supecting the tutor to be concealed in the house deemed it necessary
to dispossess him as soon as possible. He began his scheme by request-
ing of the duke that he might see his tutor, and on one occasion Mr.
Fox, not knowing he was present, entered the room, but instantly with-
drew. The bishop inquired of the duke who that stranger was ? when
the duke, fearing some craft in the question, answered that he was a
physician, fresh from the university and somewhat uncourtly in his be-
haviour. The reply of the bishop was — " I like his countenance and
aspect well, and when occasion offers I will send for him." This speech
confirmed the duke in his suspicion of the bishop, and determined him
to provide without delay for the flight and security of Mr. Fox. He
dispatched a faithful servant to Ipswich, where he had agents on whom
he could depend, and where a vessel was prepared to take his tutor, with
a i'ew other protestant friends, to some near and safe port of the oppo-
site shore. Mrs. Fox was at this time near her confinement ; but the
danger was too great to delay their departure, and they journeyed to
Ipswich and embarked with the utmost possible speed.
A sudden and violent storm drove them back to Ipswich the day after
they had set sail, and Mr. Fox soon heard that a messenger from the
bishop had been in the town inquiring after him and his companions.
The officer had even broken into the house of a tenant of the duke,
where Mr. Fox had slept the night before his departure, and where he
was returning for renewed shelter. On receiving this intelligence he left
the town privately on horseback, and returned with the same caution so
soon as the weather would allow the vessel again to put to sea. His
second embarkation was successful, and within two days he and his wife
and friends were safely landed and lodged in the secluded town of Nieu-
port in Flanders. In a few days he left that place for Antwerp, then
the most flourishing city in Europe, and containing within its ample
walls a large number of protestant merchants and some few ministers of
the reformation. As, however, the object of Mr. Fox was active occu-
pation, and no opportunity immediately presented itself in this place
of turning his talents to any profitable account, he went to Strasburg,
and soon after to Basle, where a considerable number of his English
brethren, as well as protestant ministers from other countries, had already
LIFE Ob' THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxxi
taken refuge, and were uniting in measures to diffuse and propagate the
truth.
Mr. Fox cheerfully joined with these pious refugees, and soon made
them sensible of his superior worth both as a private christian, and a
public minister and author. To secure an independent subsistence he
engaged to assist John Oporimus, a distinguished printer in Basle, in
conducting several valuable works through the press; and in a short
time he produced a singular work of his own, which he had evidently
prepared for publication in England, and would have printed here but
for the necessity of his sudden flight. His early taste for poetry, and
the subserviency of his poetic studies and compositions to theology, have
been mentioned in an early part of this memoir ; and the work now
referred to is a remarkable proof of both facts. The reader will be in-
terested in a literal transcription of the title.
CHRISTUS TRIUMPHAUS
Comoedia Apocalyptica
Autore Joanne Foxo Anglo.
Basileae per Joannem Opohinum.
There precedes the drama an epistle dedicatory thus addressed
Clarissimus Viris, D. Bynksio, D. Alcosto,
D. Kelko, cumque his universo Mercatorum
Christiana? pietati fanentium Sodalitio
Joannes Foxus, salv.
The dramatis persona are rather numerous, comprising about twenty
five characters, including angels and adolescentes. The leading parts of
the drama are taken by Christus, Eva, Saulus quiet Paulus, and Maria
Petris also occupies a conspicuous place ; while the " principalities and
powers of darkness" often come forth to commit " spiritual wickedness
in high places." The first edition of this remarkable work is printed in
a good clear italic type, and is of the duodecimo size. There were two
other editions of the work, one published in 1556, and the other in 1672.
It was also translated into English, by John Daye, jun. son of the
printer to queen Elizabeth over Aldersgate ; and three editions of the
English version were published, in 1579, 1607, and in 1672.* The
distaste of the people of this country to sacred dramas will account for
their not being acquainted with this and numerous similar works. Highly
dramatic as are most parts of the old testament, especially a few entire
books held in the greatest esteem, and read with the deepest delight,
even these meet with little or no attention when the hand of man has
presumptuously attempted to improve upon the form which the inspira-
tion of divine wisdom chose to give them.
Soon after this publication, Mr. Fox prepared for the press a Latin
*The last was revised by a clergyman of Cambridge who signs himself T. C. and who
dedicates it " to all schoolmasters, on account of the peculiar excellence of its style !"
xxxii LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
translation of Cranmers Answer to Gardiner on the Sacrament, intending
it to circulate through the several states of Germany, and other parts of
the continent where symptoms of reformation in religion began to ap-
pear. But upon inquiry and advice he saw fit to withhold it, on account
of the several points it contained being warmly contested among protes-
tants themselves, and the diversion it might give to their talents and zeal
from objects of more general interest and more essential advantage.
In some notes appended to the translation he complains strongly and
satirically of Gardiner's style of writing. In a letter to Peter Martyr he
repeats some of his animadversions, and observes — " You may as soon
extract water from pumice stone as find light from Gardiner's sentences !"
His next work was the commencement of the undertaking which has
immortalised his name in all protestant churches. Its title is as follows.
"Commentarii Rerum in Ecclesia gestarum
maximarumque per totam Europam persecu-
tionem a wiclevi Temporibus. Strasburg 1.054."
In all probability it was printed as he tarried awhile in that city, and
where he might have stayed to print the other volumes, but for the dis-
putes then prevailing among the reformers on ceremonial questions. The
remaining volumes, all in octavo, were therefore printed at Basle, whither
he proceeded in the hope of greater quiet as well as more active and
profitable employ.
The contention of the protestant exiles in Strasburg and other conti-
nental cities at this time was not confined to the sacramental points just
referred to, but extended to questions of ecclesiastical discipline and
ritual service. It is well known that the Swiss and French reformers
from the beginning proceeded much farther than the English in simpli-
fying both the government of the church and the performance of
divine worship. Most of the English exiles were of course at-
tached to the laws and ceremonies established in their own country
by the statutes of Edward ; while a few were won over to the less
intricate and burdensome system adopted by the leading spirits of re-
form in Switzerland and France. Mr. Fox was among them, and ad-
vocated with his usual zeal the general adoption of the rites and rules
of the people among whom they had taken refuge, and which, with
very slight alterations, continue in force to this day in most of the pro-
testant churches of the continent. In this honest preference he met
with much unbecoming opposition from his British brethren, then abroad
and afterwards at home. We have no proof that he ever behaved un-
civilly to them ; but in some of his letters he complains of great inci-
vility from them. In one to Peter Martyr he has a passage worth recit-
ing. " I have discovered what otherwise I could not have believed, how
much bitterness is to be found among those, whom continued acquaint-
ance with the sacred volume ought to render gentle, and should
alway incline to all kindness. As far as in me lies I persuade all parties
to concord."
We shall soon observe how far this variation from the national standard
obstructed Mr. Fox's promotion in the church of England under the
rigid dominion of Elizabeth : at present the order of events requires us
LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxxiii
to trace his progress as an author, labouring with the utmost diligence
to defend and diffuse the principles for which he had emigrated to a
\ a and friendly land. He appears, supremely dependent on the
divine blessing, to have relied for subsistence and the support of his wife
and infant daughter on his daily labour in revising manuscripts and cor-
recting the press for John Oporinus, whose famous printing office was at
that time honoured by the services, while it gave permanence and pub-
licity to the works, of some of the most enlightened and devout men that
everlived. Mr. Fox also found time to proceed with the great work which
he had auspiciously commenced, and of which Oporinus was more than
willing to undertake the pecuniary responsibility. It has been frequently
said that the entire materials of his " Acts and Monuments of the Church"
were collected by himself, without the assistance of an individual. The
honour of our protestant hero and literary colossus by no means requires
us to credit this report : nor is it correct in point of fact. In the ab-
sence of direct evidence against it, we should fairly infer that among his
brother exiles there must have been a few at least, who, unaccustomed
to authorship, were yet both able and willing to render him valuable aid
in gathering appropriate facts for his use. But we have information of
one distinguished individual at least, who greatly assisted him in this
respect. Grindal, who became one of Elizabeth's archbishops, was at
that time in Strasburgh, and did much by his studies and letters to fur-
nish Fox with matter for his great work. We have seen that the first
volume was published in that city, perhaps under Grindal's own eye,
since we find that faithful friend peculiarly anxious that the work should
appear in as accurate a state as possible. Still the disputes in Stras-
burgh, and the greater facilities for printing in Basle, will sufficiently
account for the remainder being published at the latter place.
Leaving further mention of the progress of the various editions,
we cast an eye a little back to notice a circumstance not mentioned in
its proper place — that on his way to Basle Mr. Fox tarried a short time
at Frankfort. His name occurs in a tract descriptive of the "Troubles"
of that city, published some years after this period ; but evidently re-
ferring to events which then occurred, and which appear to have involved
him, as well as others in some tribulation. They were in fact "Troubles"
rising out of the old question of ecclesiastical discipline and ceremonies,
and probably contributed, like those of Strasburgh, to hasten his de-
parture towards Basle and determined him to fix his residence there.
Either at Strasburgh or at Frankfort the birth of his first child and
only daughter took place; an event which gave him much satisfaction,
because it not only removed the fears he had entertained of the effect of
recent events on the weak constitution and timid nerves of Mrs. Fox,
but was the occasion of her henceforward enjoying a remarkable share
of health and spirits. The child was baptised by his friend Grindal,
and received the name of Anne, perhaps in memory of Anne Boleyn,
for whom he always cherished great esteem. The child grew up an
object of great admiration, more for her mental qualities, and the excel-
lence of her religious character, than for any remarkable attractions of
person. At a proper age she became the esteemed wife of Sir Richard
Willis, bart. of Ditton in the county of Essex.
d
xxxiv LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
No further events of importance occurred during the sojourn of Mr.
Fox on the continent. He printed four or five more octavo volumes
towards completing his great work, and two or three minor works, all
in latin; persevering through the greater portion of his time in the more
humble task he had undertaken for his employer, with the utmost in-
dustry and integrity. At length the time arrived in which he might
safely return to England. The death of Mary and the accession of
Elizabeth created the opening for this desirable change; of which, how-
ever he did not avail himself till several months after his brethren from
England were again settled in this country. The delay on his part
appears to have arisen, not from any distrust of the new government,
but from the advice of Grindal and his own conviction, that it was
rather his duty to remain abroad some time longer the better to advance
his important undertaking. It is not improbable that his peculiar opi-
nions on church government rendered him either indifferent to or appre-
hensive of an immediate return. Though he disapproved of the heat of
the rigid puritans, and called them on one occasion factious and turbu-
lent spirits — a new sort of monks more pernicious than the old* — it was
yet manifest that he himself was partly a non-conformist; and he might
wish to know how Elizabeth would deal with such ultra reformers, before
he ventured to place himself at her mercy. Grindal, too, might be
fearful of hastily exposing so bold a protestant and so good a man to
the displeasure of a queen, known to be almost as hostile to dissenters
from high episcopacy as to catholics themselves. That he wished, as
some have insinuated to keep back Fox from preferment until he had se-
cured preferment for himself, is contradicted by every part of Grindal's
character, and every act of his behaviour toward his esteemed friend.
The first month of the year 1551 saw Elizabeth seated on the throne
and before the spring arrived most of the English exiles had returned
to support the protestant cause at home. Mr. Fox, however, remained till
the year had closed, ostensibly at least, for completing the first folio
edition of his work in latin, the title page of which bears the date of
1559. Even then he was with difficulty persuaded to leave his studies
and labours at Basle, though he knew that preferment awaited him in
England. It does not appear that any communication had passed
between him and his pupil, the young duke of Norfolk, during his ab-
sence; but soon after he arrived in London he addressed to his grace a
latin letter, soliciting his future patronage and some present aid. He
received an immediate and favourable answer, and soon took up his
abode in the city mansion of the duke, then in Aldgate. There he was
furnished with all desirable facilities for proceeding with the English
translation of his recently published latin folio, and was thus engaged
without interruption, for twelve or thirteen months; when he visited
Norwich, whither his patron sent him on some commission, probably
with the kindlier purpose of promoting his health and that of Mrs. Fox,
who accompanied him, by a sojourn at one of his country seats. There
Mrs. Fox gave birth to a first son in the spring of 1560; of whom the
few particulars claiming insertion may at once be introduced.
* This was done, we believe, when puritan ascendancy deprived his son of the fellowship
he held in Magdalen college.
LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX. xxxv
A note on the preceding page intimates that this son was trained and
intended for the church, but was deprived of his fellowship in his father's
college by puritan influence. To him we are indebted for what must
be deemed the most accurate life of Mr. Fox, prefixed to the fourth
English edition of the Acts and Monuments. He differs on several ma-
terial facts from Anthony Wood; but every candid reader will take his
integrity for granted, while drawing the inference that he must have been
much better acquainted than Wood with the motives and movements of
his father's course. Upon leaving Oxford, he took up his residence,
probably as tutor, in the house of Sir Moyle Finch, an ancestor of the
present earl of Winchelsea, at Eastwell in Kent, where he married a
distant relation of his patron, a widow of the name of Leveson.
Mr. Fox continued in the duke of Norfolk's house till that ill-fated
nobleman entangled himself in the affairs of Mary queen of Scots. His
personal attachment to the unhappy queen is generally undoubted;
on no other supposition can we account for the excess of his romantic
zeal in her cause, and his willingness to sacrifice life rather than become
indifferent to her fate. His gallantry brought him to the scaffold in the
year 1572. Both Mr. Fox and his friend Nowell, then dean of St. Paul's,
attended him on the melancholy occasion, and we may imagine much
easier than describe the feelings of the former on witnessing the execu-
tion of one, to whom he had supplied the place of father, and whom,
both as pupil and patron, he had held in the highest esteem. This
event put the fidelity and prudence of Mr. Fox to the severest test.
The tendency of the duke notwithstanding his protestant education, to
the religion of his fathers, met from his tutor with no indulgence, else
the latter would not have enjoyed as he did the smiles of government,
and a respect from the queen amounting to avowed filial reverence. On
the other hand, his inflexible protestantism did not extinguish or abate
his sympathy with the duke, amidst the perils of his courtly life and the
calamities of his early death. It is due both to Mr. Fox and the duke
to remark that the latter died professing protestant principles.
Mr. Fox now took up his abode in the famous Grub-street, then the
resort of authors of slender substance and laborious habits. In addition
to unwearied study and toil through the week, he preached generally
twice on the Lord's day, and was seldom recompensed except by the
consciousness of labouring for the public good, and often hearing that
he had actually promoted it. His popularity was such as to create the
warm desire of the bishops that he would be sufficiently decided and
comprehensive in his subscription to allow of his taking a place on the
episcopal bench. As it was, he received from secretary Cecil a prebend
in Salisbury cathedral, which he retained through life. It is said, also,
that he was once summoned by archbishop Parker to subscribe, " that the
reputation of his piety might give the greater countenance to conformity ;"
but that, instead of complying, he drew from his pocket the New Testament
in Greek, and said emphatically, " To this I will subscribe." When
reminded that he was already a dignitary of the church, a post which
required subscription to the canon law, he mildly answered, " I have
nothing in the church but a prebend at Salisbury, and if you take that
from me much good may it do you." From this answer we infer that
xxxvi LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
he had somehow lost his vicarage of Cripplegate, and that the report
of his having been a prebendary of Durham is incorrect.
Although he preached more sermons at this period than any other
London divine, very few have ever been published. The most remark-
able among them was delivered at St. Paul's cross in the year 1570, and
was printed soon after by John Daye. The following year it was trans-
lated into latin, and in both languages it obtained a wide circulation,
and was productive of much benefit to the protestant cause. The English
edition, as it was preached, is printed in a fine black letter, and is pre-
ceded by the following quaint notice : —
" Faults excepted in the printing, which I pray thee good reader first
to correct, and then read." The faults are only four. The text of this
sermon is the last two verses of the fifth chapter of St. Paul's second
epistle to the Corinthians — which he thus translates :
" For Christ therefore, or in Christ's name, we come to you as mes-
sengers, even as God himself desiring you, we pray you for Christ's
stead that you will be reconciled unto God. For him who knew no sin,
God hath made to be sin for us, that we might be made the righteousness
of God in him."
The sermon contains much that we should be glad to extract: the
following passage is too good to be omitted. " I remember, about the
beginning of queen Mary's reign, there was a certain message sent, not
from heaven, but from Rome — not from God, but from the pope — not
by any apostle, but by a certain cardinal Pole, a legate of the pope's
own white side. And what was the message? Forsooth, that the realm
of England should be reconciled to the pope!" After such an introduc-
tion, the reader may imagine the sort of sermon John Fox would deliver:
on such a back ground, every one will look for a bright and beautiful
picture of evangelical truth, and no one will be disappointed. The
sermon is followed by an admirable prayer, and by a " Postcript to
papists." Some of his letters mention this sermon, or rather the effect
of preaching it, in terms which imply that as it was the first he had de-
livered at St. Paul's cross, so he wished it to be the last. No mention
is made of his preaching on that remarkable spot a second time.
As no order of time is observed in any of the lists of Mr. Fox's works,
and as several of them are without date or clue to the year in which they
were published, the chief of those which have not been mentioned may
here be introduced. He wrote treatises on the Eucharist, on the Apo-
calypse, on the doctrine of Election, and on Free Justification in Christ.
The latter drew forth animadversions from Jerome Osorio, author of se-
veral theological works, whom he answered by a second treatise on the
subject, entitled Contra Osorium de Justitia. He also published " A
new year's gift concerning the deliverance of certain christians from
Turkish galleys," and an ingenious essay on the restoration of backsliders,
which he entitles " De lapsis per errorem in Ecclesiam restituendis."
In addition to these and some other original productions, he undertook,
at the request, or rather command, of archbishop Parker, an edition of
the Saxon gospels; and he also edited the works of Tindal, Frith, and
Barnes. His prefaces and letters were innumerable, and as Daye ob-
LIFE OF THE ItEV. JOHN FOX. xxxvii
tained the name of the reformed printer, so Fox was called the author
and editor of the reformation.
We now come to a point concerning Mr. Fox, which has been mag-
nified into a prophetic and miraculous character. The boldness of his
speech often led his unthinking admirers to attribute to his superior
mind a prescience more than human or christian. The first remarkable
instance of this was when he avowed his conviction that Mary would
soon die, before he could possibly know of her decline and danger.
This was soon ascribed to a prophetic acquaintance with the will of
Heaven, imparted for the comfort of the banished English. Aylmer,
afterwards bishop of London, who was then at Basle is appealed to in
support of this extravagant conclusion. It is also confidently asserted,
and on authority quite as good as that of the credulous bishop, that Fox
predicted the defeat of the Spanish Armada. The good man's reputa-
tion receives neither support nor adorning from such an attribute, and
had he assumed it, that reputation would not have stood so high as it
does. No supernatural prescience was requisite in a sanguine protestant
like him to foretell the defeat of the Spanish Armada ; and the delight
and heat of hope frequently rise high enough to assure us of the speedy
fall of those by whom we are unrighteously coerced and persecuted.
Between prophecy and miracle there is but a slender partition. Pro-
phecy is the miraculous in word, and miracle is the prophetic in deed.
Hence the enthusiasm which made Mr. Fox a prophet, had no difficulty
in announcing his words to have produced miraculous effects. He is
said to have assured Lady Anne Heneage that she should not die of a
mortal sickness, and contrary to the verdict of her physicians she reco-
vered! On a visit to the earl of Arundel they were walking together
towards the river, when Mr. Fox, wishing to depart, was exhorted by the
earl to remain because the river, which he had to cross, was greatly
agitated by a boisterous wind. Mr. Fox persisted in going, and said,
" So let these waters deal with me, as I have in truth delivered to you
all that I have spoken." He then stepped into the boat, when the wind
ceased and there was a perfect calm ! A Mrs. Honiwood, hopeless of
life and even longing for death, sent for Mr. Fox, who assured her that
she would recover and live to a great age. She is said to have thrown a
small glass she had in her hand against the wall, asserting her recovery
to be as impossible as that the glass should not be broken. The glass
did not break, nor did she die till she had seen ninety winters, and
reckoned as many descendants as there are days in the year.
Giving full credit to these statements without feeling the least necessity
of drawing prophetic or miraculous inferences from them, we refer with
greater pleasure to the high moral qualities by which Mr. Fox was dis-
tinguished. His charity was conspicuous. Coming on one occasion
from the palace of Aylmer, bishop of London, he saw some miserable
beggars at the gate. He found his own pockets empty ; but stepped
back to the bishop and requested the loan of five shillings, which he
obtained, and on passing the gate again distributed the whole among the
astonished and grateful mendicants. Some time after, the bishop re-
minded him of the debt and requested it might be paid: " My lord,"
answered Fox, " I laid it out for you, and soon you will be paid with
xxxvm LIFE OF THE REV. JOHN FOX.
ample interest." He was a man of remarkable discretion : his motto
was, " Give none offence." A gentleman with whom he was dining in
a large party freely canvassed the character of the earl of Leicester.
Mr. Fox felt it an imperious duty to rebuke the offender, and ordered a
certain cup to be brought to him. Drinking to the gentleman's health
he added, " This cup was given me by the earl of Leicester."
His disinterestedness might be traced through every step of a long
life. Although his scruples prevented his promotion, he discovered that
Elizabeth had consented to the advancement of some who were as
averse to complete conformity as himself. He had courage enough even
to rebuke the queen; but he preferred congratulating her on doing jus-
tice to others, and wrote an admirable latin panegyric on her conduct
towards them, without a syllable of complaint about his own case. His
characteristic compassion was often manifested, especially in interced-
ing for the anabaptists, whose extravagance and suspected treason had
drawn down upon them the vengeance of the court and council. He
gave himself no rest till he had obtained pardon for the greater number
and bitterly lamented the fate of two, natives of Holland, who suffered
the sentence of death. To these testimonies in his favour we add one
specimen of his wit. A young man in his presence remarked that he
saw no reason why old authors should be so greatly admired. " No
marvel indeed," answered Mr. Fox, "for if you could conceive the rea-
son you would yourself admire them."
We come to the closing scene of this life of distinguished honour and
usefulness. For some time Mr. Fox knew his departure to be at hand —
a knowledge to be accounted for without ascribing it, as some have done
to inspired and prophetic discernment. Incessant and untiring exertion
had reduced a frame naturally vigorous and robust to almost the weak-
ness of infancy : leaving him, however, as were his wishes and prayers,
in the full possession of reason and enjoyment of religion to the last
moment. He died at his lodging in the city on the 20th of April 1587,
and was buried in the church at Cripplegate, of which he had been vicar
some short time after his return to England. A monument in the chan-
cel marks the spot of his interment : it is on the south side of the com-
munion table, and contains a Latin inscription, partly concealed by wood-
work subsequently raised. In the register of burials stands this plain
record : —
"April 20th, 1587 — John Fox, householder and preacher."
fnft luok rf Blurhjti
LIST OF ENGRAVINGS.
Page
Massacre of St. Bartholomew (frontispiece)
Burning of Eidley and Latimer (vignette)
Slaughter of Christians at Alexandria 88
An Auto da Fe at Madrid 155
A Lady brought before the Inquisition after the Torture 165
Massacre at Vassy, headed by the Duke of Guise . 203
Persecutions in the Valleys of Piedmont 250
King John resigning his Crown to the Pope's Legate 283
Trial of Lambert before Henry VTJI 350
Burning of George Wishart 438
Roger Clarke turning away from the Host 448
Representation of a Manufactory of "Saints" 496
Burning of John Bradford 720
Bishop Ridley before the Convocation at Oxford 843
AN UNIVERSAL 1IIST0KY
CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM
BOOK I.
An account of the ecclesiastical matters which passed in the Church of Christ from its
first establishment till the period of three hundred years ; particularly showing the
differences between the ancient and present Church of Rome ; in which the absurdity,
impiety, and blasphemous doctrines of that Church in modern times are fully illus-
trated. a
CHRIST, in the gospel of St. Matthew, chap, xvi., hearing- the confes-
sion of Simon Peter, who first openly acknowledged him to be the Son
of God, and perceiving the secret hand of his Father therein, answered
again; and alluding to his name, called him a rock, upon which rock
he would build his church so strong, that, the gates of hell should not
prevail against it, &c. In these words three things are to be noted.
First, that Christ will have a church in this world. Secondly, that the
same church should be mightily impugned, not only by the world, but
also by the utmost strength and powers of all hell. And, thirdly, that
the same church, notwithstanding the efforts of the devil and all his
malice, should continue. This prophecy of Christ we see wonderfully
verified, insomuch that the whole course of the church to this day, seems
nothing else but a verification of it. First, that Christ hath set up a
church, needs no proof. Secondly, what force, what sides and sorts of
men, of princes, kings, monarchs, governors, and rulers of this world,
with their subjects publicly and privately, with all their strength and
cunning, have bent themselves against this church. And, thirdly, how
the said church, notwithstanding all this, hath yet endured.
To bring these events home to the minds of Christians, it will be ne-
cessary to treat in the following order :
First, of the suffering time of the church, which continued from the
apostles' age about three hundred years.
Secondly, of the flourishing time of the church, which lasted other
three hundred years.
Thirdly, of the declining time of the church, which comprehends
other three hundred years, or about the thousandth year after the ceasing
of persecution. During which space of time, the church, although
ambitious and proud, was much altered from the simple sincerity of the
primitive time; yet in outward profession of doctrine and religion, it was
a To the disgrace of all modern editions which we have seen of the " Lives of the
Martyrs," this most interesting and truly historical part of the original work has been
totally omitted.
1 B
2 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
something tolerable, notwithstanding some corruption of doctrine, with
superstition and hypocrisy, had then crept in.
Fourthly, followed the time of Antichrist, or, as it is scripturally called,
the loosing of Satan, or desolation of the church, which contains the
space of four hundred years. In this time both Christian doctrine and
sincerity of life was almost extinguished ; particularly in the chief heads
and rulers of the west church, through the means of the Roman bishops,
especially from Gregory the seventh, called Hildebrand, Innocentius
the third, and the friars who crept in with him, till the time of John
Wickliffe and John Huss, during a space of four hundred years.
Fifthly and lastly, after this time of Antichrist reigning in the church
of God by violence and tyranny, followed the reformation, or, as it may
properly be called, the purging of the church of God, wherein Anti-
christ begins to be revealed, and his antichristian doctrine to be detected,
the number of his church decreasing, and the number of the true church
increasing greatly.
With respect to the church of Rome, in all the ages above specified,
it challenged to itself the supreme title, and ringleading of the whole
universal church on earth, by whose direction all other churches have
been governed. In writing therefore of the church of Christ, one can-
not but intermeddle with the acts and proceedings of the said church,
because the doings and orderings of all other churches, from time to
time, as well in England as in other nations, have chiefly depended
upon it; in order to give a general description, briefly to show, as
in a summary table, the misguiding of that church, comparing the for-
mer primitive state of the church of Rome with the latter times of the
same, and then to proceed more at large with all the particulars thereof.
The title and style of that church was such, that it surpassed all other
churches : being called the Holy Universal Mother Church, which could
not err; and the bishop thereof, Holy Father the Pope, Bishop Univer-
sal, Prince of Priests, Supreme Head of the Universal Church, and
Vicar of Christ on Earth, who must not be judged, having all know-
ledge of Scripture, and all laws contained within his breast.
The jurisdiction of that bishop was such, that, challenging to him-
self both the swords, that is, both the keys of the scripture and the
sceptre of the laity, he not only subdued all bishops under him, but also
advanced himself above kings and emperors, causing some of them to
lie under his feet, some to hold his stirrup, others to lead his horse by
the bridle, to kiss his feet, and placing and displacing emperors, kings,
dukes, and earls, where and when he listed, taking upon him to trans-
late the empire at his pleasure ; b first from Greece to France, from France
b The disgrace and contempt into which this Antichrist has now fallen, must convince
all true Christians of the fulfilment of the scriptures, as they describe his overthrow. No-
thing proves so clearly that Buonaparte was intended by the Almighty as a scourge to the
nations of the Continent, as his conduct towards the popes of his time, whom he
robbed, insulted, and trod under foot, with as great a degree of contumely as preceding
popes did the rightful but bigoted sovereigns of great nations in former ages. Some years
a#o, when the Editor of tins work was making a tour through Italy, he was shewn the
statues of the popes which are preserved in the pantheon at Rome. It was shortly after
the death of Pius VI.; and he remarked that there was only one niche remaining unfilled.
The guide, with a melancholy shake of the head, observed that a prophecy had long pre-
POPISH USURPATIONS.
to Germany, preferring' and deposing whom he pleased, confirming
them which were eleeted. Also being 1 emperor himself, sede vacante,
pretending authority or power to invest bishops, to give benefices, to
spoil churches, to give authority to bind and loose, to call general coun-
cils, to judge over them, to set up religions, to canonize saints, to
take appeals, to bind consciences, to make laws, to dispense with the
law and word of God, to deliver from purgatory, to command angels, &c.
This doctrine was tedious to students, pernicious to men's con-
sciences, injurious to Christ, and contrary in itself.
But it should be noted, that all these deformities, vain title, pretended
jurisdiction, heretical doctrine, and schismatical life, came not into
the church of Rome at once, nor sprang with the beginning of
the same church, but with long working, and continuance of time, by
little and little crept in, and came not to full perfection- till the time
partly of pope Sylvester, partly of pope Gregory the seventh in 1170,
partly of Innocent the third, and finally of pope Boniface the eighth
in 1300. Of these four popes, the first brought in the title, in the year
of the Lord 670, which was never before publicly enacted and received
or acknowledged in the church of Rome. The second brought in juris-
diction. The third, which was pope Innocent, with his rabble of monks
and friars (amongst whom were Thomas Aquinas, Petrus Lombardus,
Johannes Scotus) and such other bishops as succeeded in the see after
him, corrupted and obscured the sincerity of Christ's doctrine and man-
ners. And lastly, pope Boniface, the eighth, and Clement the fifth,
added the temporal sword to be carried before them. x4nd they decreed,
that no ejnperor (were he never so justly elected) should be sufficient and
lawful, without the pope's admission. This was in the year 1300,
whereby the pope's power was now brought to its full pride and perfec-
tion. And thus arose the corruption of the Romish church in continu-
ance of years by degrees, and not at one time, as is here shown.
Hence the church of Rome, as it is now governed with this titular
jurisdiction, and institution of doctrine, never descended from the primi-
tive age of the apostles, or from their succession, nisi tantum cequivoce ,
et non univoce ; like as Sancta Maria picta non est Sancta Maria, et
homo pictus non est homo : that is, as the picture of the Holy Virgin is
not the Holy Virgin, and as a man painted on the wall is not a man :
so it is to be said of the church of Rome, that although it hath the name
of the church Apostolic, and doth bring forth a long genealogy of
outward succession from the apostles, as the Pharisees in Christ's time
brought their descent from Abraham their father ; yet all this is but only
cequivoce, that is, the name only, and not in effect or matter.
With respect to the order and qualities of life, let us ask of this Ro-
vailed in that city, that when the niche in question should be Jilted there would be no need
for any others. Since then the temporal authority of the pope has been degraded even to
ridicule ; and every hour seems to prognosticate that the papal supremacy is approximating
to its end, at least on the continent.
c JEquivoce, that is in name only, and not in deed. Univoce, that is both in name and
also in definition and effect, agreeing with the name.
4 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
man clergy, where was this church of theirs which now is, in the ancient
time of the primitive church of Rome ; with this pomp and pride ; witli
this riches and superfluity ; with this gloria mundi, and name of car-
dinals ; with this extortion, bribing, buying and selling of spiritual dig-
nities ; these annats, reformations, procurations, exactions, and other
practices for money ; this avarice insatiable, ambition intolerable, fleshly
filthiness most detestable, barbarousness and negligence in preaching,
promise-breaking faithlessness, poisoning and supplanting one another;
with such schisms and divisions, which never were more practised than
in the elections and courts of Rome within these seven hundred years ;
with such extreme cruelty, malice, and tyranny in burning and perse-
cuting their poor brethren to death?
If a man were to write at large all the schisms that have been in the
church of Rome since the time of Damasus the first, what a volume
would it require ? Or if here should be recorded all whom this church
hath burnt and put to death, who would be able to number them ?
If there were no other difference in the matter, but only corruption
of life, all that we would tolerate, or impute to the common frailty
of man, and charge them no farther than we might charge ourselves.
But besides this deformity of life, wherein they have strayed from the for-
mer steps of the true church of Rome, we have to charge them in greater
points, more nearly affecting the substantial ground of the church.
Although Victor, bishop of Rome, in the year 200, went about to ex-
communicate the east churches for the observance cf Easter day ; yet
neither did he proceed therein, nor was he permitted by Ireneus so to
do. And although Boniface the first, writing to the bishops of Carthage,
required of them to send up their appellations to the church of
Rome, alleging the decree of the Nicene council for his authority ;
the bishops and clergy of Carthage assembling together in a general
council (called the sixth council of Carthage) to the number of two
hundred and seventeen bishops, after that they had perused the decrees
in the authentic copies of the Nicene council, and found no such order,
made a public decree, that none out of that country should make any ap-
peal beyond the see, &c. It is no wonder if appeals were forbidden them
to be made to Rome ; for here in England the kings would not permit
any to appeal from them to Rome, till Henry II. from political motives
submitted to the influence of pope Alexander III. on account of the
murder of Thomas a Becket. And also in France the like prohibitions
were expressly made by Ludovicus Pius, anno 1264, which forbade, by a
public instrument called Pragmatica sanctio, all exactions of the pope's
court within that realm. The like was done also by king Philip, named
Le Bel, anno 1296, which not only restrained all sending or going of
his subjects to Rome, but also that no money, armour, nor subsidy
should be transported out of his realm. King Charles the fifth, sur-
named the Wise, and his son likewise, Charles the sixth, also punished
as traitors certain seditious persons for appealing to Rome.
The like resistance was made in France, against the pope's reservations,
preventions, and other practices of his usurped jurisdiction, in the days
of pope Martin the fifth, anno 1418, when king Henry the sixth in Eng-
LAWS OF JUSTINIAN. b
land, and king Charles the seventh in France, both accorded with the
pope in investing and in the collation of benefices ; yet notwithstanding
the high court of parliament in France did not admit the same, but still
maintained the old liberty and customs of the French church. And
when the duke of Bedford came with the king's letters patent to
have the pope's procurations and reservations admitted, the parliament
would not agree to it, but the king's procurator-general was obliged
to interfere.
The Roman emperors made frequent attempts to curtail and check the
powers of the popes. The emperor Honorius enacted a law, that none
should be made bishops of Rome through ambition, charging all ec-
clesiastical ministers to cease from ambition; appointing, moreover,
that if two were elected together, neither of them should be taken,
but the election to proceed to another, who was to be chosen by a full
consent of voices.
To this may be added also the law and constitution of Justinian the
emperor, ratified and renewed afterwards in the council of Paris, in the
time of king Ludovicus Pius ; where all bishops and priests were ex-
pressly forbidden to excommunicate any man before his cause was
known and proved to be such, for which the ancient canons of the
church would have him to be excommunicate. And if any should pro-
ceed contrary to this law, then the excommunicate person to be absolved
by the authority of a higher decree, and the excommunicate to be se-
questered from the communion, so long as should seem convenient to
him that had the execution thereof, as is expressed 24. q. 3. De illicita.
Justinian also, in his laws and constitutions, ordained many things of
high importance in church matters, such as to have a determinate
number of churchmen or clerks in churches ; also concerning monas-
teries and monks ; how bishops and priests should be ordained ; the
removing of ecclesiastical persons from one church to another ;
the constitution of the churches in Africa; and that the holy
mysteries should not be performed in private houses, so that whoever
should attempt the contrary should be deprived. Const. 58. Also con-
cerning the order and manner of funerals; and that bishops should not
keep from their flock. The same Justinian granted to the clergy of
Constantinople the privilege of the secular court in cases only civil,
and such as touched not the disturbance of the bishop : in all
criminal causes he left them to the judgment of the secular court. He
also gave laws and decrees for breach of matrimony. And in his Const.
123, after the doctrine of St. Paul, he commanded all bishops and
priests to sound out their service and to celebrate the mysteries, not after
a secret manner, but with a loud voice, so as they might not only be
heard, but also that the faithful people might understand what was said
and done; whereby we learn that divine prayers and service was then in
the vulgar tongue.
These and numerous other instances that could be adduced, shew that
even in the early ages of papacy the sovereigns of Europe were jealous
of, and adverse to, the institutions and authority of the popes; insomuch
that they thought it necessary to point out to the catholic bishops and
b HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
priests what they ought to consider as their duty. Carolus Magnus,
besides his other laws and political edicts, called five synods, one at
Mentz, the second at Rome, the third at Rheims, the fourth at Cabi-
lone, the fifth at Arelate, where sundry rites and ordinances were given
to the clergy, about eight hundred and ten years after Christ. The
same Carolus also decreed, that only the canonical books of Scripture
should be read in the church and none other ; which before was also
decreed anno 417, in the third general council of Carthage. This mo-
narch also exhorted bishops and priests, to preach the word with a godly
injunction; and ordered them to dispense with the superstition which is
used at certain places in the burial of the dead.
The said kings and emperors likewise forbade that any freeman or ci-
tizen should enter the profession of a monk, without licence asked of the
king; and added a double cause for this regulation, first, because many
not for mere devotion, but for idleness, and avoiding the king's wars, do
give themselves to religion; again, that many be craftily circumvented
and deluded by subtle covetous persons seeking to get from that which
they have; that no young children or boys should be shaven, or enter
any profession, without the will of their parents; and that no young
maiden should take the veil or profession of a nun before she came to
sufficient discretion of years to discern and chuse what to follow. That
none should be interred or buried thenceforth within the church: which
also was decreed by Theodosius and Valentinianus forty years before
them. The said Carolus, two and twenty years before this emperor,
enacted that murderers, and such as were guilty of death by the law,
should have no sanctuary by flying into the church, SfC. which also was
decreed by Justinian three hundred years before Carolus. e
Amongst the numerous other improprieties of the modern church of
Rome may be mentioned their vowsons and pluralities of benefices,
which were then things as much unknown as they are now pernicious
to the church, by taking away all free election of ministers from the
flock of Christ.
As these inconveniences came and crept in chiefly by the pretended
authority and jurisdiction abused in this latter church of Rome; so it
cannot be denied, but the said latter church of Rome hath taken and
attributed to itself much more than either the limits of God's word
gives, or as stands with the example of the old Roman church, in these
three things especially.
The first is this, that whatsoever the Scripture giveth and referreth,
either to the whole church universally, or to every particular church se-
verally, this present church of Rome doth arrogate to itself absolutely and
only; both doing injury to other churches, and also abusing the Scrip-
e This singular historical fact forcibly shews the increase of the papal supremacy in
modern ages. The sanctuary of the church, in catholic countries, is a safeguard for mur-
derers and criminals of every description. In Italy and Spain, in particular, to the present
day, a man who chuses to murder another in the public streets receives protection from
entering the porches of a church, and a summary vengeance would fall upon any one who
should molest him in such a sacred spot. One of the writers in the Spectator has intro-
duced a beautiful story from a subject of this nature: it is the adventure of a gentleman
who takes refuge in a church after killing his antagonist in a duel.
CORRUPTIONS OF THE POPE'S CHURCH. '
tares of God. For though the Scripture doth give authority to bind and
loose, it liimteth it neither to person nor place, that is, not to the city of
Home more than other cities, nor to the see of Peter more than to
other apostles; but giveth it clearly to the church, whereof Peter did
bear the figure, so that wheresoever the true church of Christ is, there
is annexed power to bind and loose, given and taken merely as from
Christ, and not immediately by the pope or bishop of Peter's see.
The second point wherein this present church of Rome abuses its ju-
risdiction contrary to the Scripture and steps of the old Roman church,
is this, that it extendeth its authority farther and more amply, than
either the warrant of the word, or example of time, will give. For al-
though the church of Rome hath (as other particular churches have)
authority to bind and absolve, yet it hath no authority to absolve subjects
from their oath, subjection, and loyalty to their rulers and magistrates,
to dispense with perjury , to pronounce remission where no earnest repent-
ance is seen before, to number remission by days and years, to dispense
with things expressly in the word forbidden, or to restrain that which the
word maketh free, to divide religion into religions, to bind and burthen
consciences with constitutions of men, to excommunicate for worldly mat-
ters, such as not ringing of bells at the bishop's coming, for not bringing
litter for their horses, for not paying their fees and rents, for withholding
the church goods, for holding on their prince's side in princely cases,
for not going at the pope's commandment, for not agreeing to the pope's
election in another prince's realm, with other such things more vain than
these, &c. Again, although the Scripture giveth leave and authority to
the bishop and church of Rome to minister sacraments ; yet it giveth
no authority to make sacraments, much less to worship sacraments.
And though their authority serveth to baptise men, yet it extendeth not
to christen bells ; neither have they authority by any word of God to
add to the word of God, or take from the same, to set up unwritten ve-
rities under pain of damnation, to make other articles of belief, to insti-
tute strange worship, otherwise than he hath prescribed who hath told
us how he would be worshipped, &c.
The third abuse of the pope's jurisdiction is, that as in spiritual juris-
diction they have vehemently exceeded the bounds of Scripture, so they
have impudently intermeddled themselves in the temporal jurisdiction,
wherein they have nothing to do. Insomuch that they have translated
their empire, they have deposed emperors, kings, princes, rulers, and
senators of Rome, and set up others or the same again at their pleasure ;
they have also proclaimed wars, and have warred themselves. And
though emperors in ancient times have dignified them with titles, have
enlarged them with donations, and they received their confirmation by
the emperors, yet, like ungrateful clients to such benefactors, they after-
wards stamped upon their necks, made them hold their stirrup, and also
the bridle of their horse ; have likewise caused them to seek confirma-
tion at their hand ; and, in fact, have made themselves emperors, sede
vacante, et in discordia electionis, and also have been senators of the
city ; moreover, have extorted by their own hands the plenary fulness
of power and jurisdiction of both the swords, especially since the time
of pope Hildebrand ; which Hildebrand deposing Henry, the fourth
8 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
emperor, made him give attendance at his city gate. And after him
pope Boniface the eighth shewed himself to the people on the first day
like a bishop, with his keys before him ; and the next day in his robes
imperial, having a naked sword borne before him, like an emperor ; this
happened in the year 1298.
Thus having sufficiently shewn the manner of life, title, jurisdiction,
and government of the pope's see (in all which points it is to be seen how
this latter church of Rome hath receded from the true ancient church of
Rome) it now remains to proceed to the fourth and last point, which is
of doctrine, wherein consisteth the chief matter that is with us and
against them, and which proves that they are neither to be reputed for
true catholics, being altered so far from them ; nor we other than
heretics, if we should now join with them. For the proof whereof, let
us examine the doctrine and rites of the said church of Rome now used,
and compare the same with the teaching of the ancient catholics, to
the intent that such persons as have been hitherto, and yet are
seduced by the false statements and image of this pretended church,
perceiving what lieth within it, may be warned betimes either to avoid
the peril, or if not, to blame none but themselves for their own wilful
destruction.
And though I could here charge the new fangled church of the pope
with seven or eight heinous crimes, such as blasphemy, idolatry, heresy,
superstition, absurdity, vanity, cruelty, &c. yet to pass this matter
with them, these two things I will and dare boldly affirm, that in this
doctrine of the pope, now taught in the church of Rome, is neither any
consolation of conscience, nor salvation of man's soul. For seeing
there is no life nor soul's health but only in Christ, nor any promise of
salvation or comfort made but only by faith in the Son of God, what
assurance can there be of perfect peace, life, or salvation, where that
which only maketh all, is least made of, and other things which are of
least import are most esteemed ?
And, therefore, as it may be truly said that this doctrine of the pope
is void of all true comfort and salvation, so likewise it seemeth that those
which addict themselves so devoutly to the pope's learning, were never
earnestly afflicted in conscience, never humbled in spirit, nor broken in
heart ; never entered into any serious feeling of God's judgment, nor
ever felt the strength of the law and of death. For if they had, they
would soon have seen their own weakness, and been driven to Christ ;
then would they have seen what a horrible thing it is to appear before
God the judge, or once to think on him (as Luther says) without Christ;
and, on the contrary, they would know what a glory, what a kingdom,
what liberty and life it were to be in Christ Jesus by faith.
And thus were the old Romans first taught by St. Paul writing to
them. The same did Cornelius the Roman, the first that was bap-
tized of the Gentiles, learn of St. Peter when he received the Holy
Ghost, not by the deeds of the law, but only by hearing the faith of
Jesus preached. And in the same doctrine the said church of the Ro-
mans many years continued, so long as they were in affliction. And in
the same doctrine the bishop of Rome with his Romans now also should
still remain, if they were such ancient Catholics as they pretend, and
TRUE CHRISTIAN PRINCIPLES. 9
would follow the old mother church of Rome; but what wonder if the
Romans now in so long- a tract of time have lost their first sap, seeing
that the church of the Galatians, in the very time of St. Paul, their
schoolmaster, he being amongst them, had scarcely turned his back but
they almost turned from the doctrine of faith.
And lest any should think that we here protest against the corrupt
errors and deformities of this latter church of Rome from motives of
any rancour, rather than necessary causes and demonstrations, I
shall take some little pains to descry the particular branches and con-
tents of the pope's doctrine, now set forth, to the intent that all true
christian readers, comparing the one with the other, may discern what
great alteration there is between the church of Rome that now is, and
the church of Rome that then was planted by the apostles in the primi-
tive time. And to open to the simple reader some way whereby he may
the better judge in such matters of doctrine, and not be deceived in dis-
cerning truth from error. First, we will mention certain principles or
general positions, as infallible rules or truths of the Scripture, whereby
all other doctrines and opinions of men being tried and examined, may
the more easily be judged whether they be true or contrary to the holy
Scripture.
CERTAIN PRINCIPLES, OR GENERAL VERITIES, FOUNDED UPON
THE TRUTH OF GOD'S WORD,
1. As sin and death came originally by the disobedience of one to all
men of his generation by nature, so righteousness and life came origi-
nally by the obedience of one to all men regenerated of him by faith
and baptism. Rom. 5.
2. The promise of God was freely given to our first parents without
their deserving ; that the seed of the woman should break the serpent's
head. Gen. 3.
3. Promise was given freely to Abraham before he deserved any thing,
that in his seed all nations should be blessed. Gen. 12.
4. To the word of God neither must we add nor take from it. Deut. 4.
5. He that doth the works of the law shall live therein. Lev. 18.
Gal. 3.
6. Accursed is he who abideth not in every thing that is written in
the book of the law. Deut. 27. Gal. 3.
7. God only is to be worshipped. Deut. 6. Luke 4.
8. All our righteousness is like a defiled cloth. Isa. 64.
9. In all my holy hill they shall not kill nor slay, saith the Lord.
Isa. 1 1 ; 65.
10. God loveth mercy and obedience more than sacrifice. Hos. 6.
1 Sam. 15.
11. The law worketh anger, condemneth and oppresseth sin. Rom. 3.
12. The end of the law is Christ, for righteousness to every one that
believeth. Rom. 10.
13. Whosoever believeth and is baptized, shall be saved. Matth. ult.
14. A man is justified by faith, without works; freely by grace, not
of ourselves. Gal. 2. Ephes. 2.
15. There is no remission of sins without blood. Heb. 9.
10 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
10. Whatsoever is not of faith is sin. Rom. 14. Without faith it is
impossible to please God. Heb. 11.
17. One mediator between God and man, Christ Jesus. 1 Tim. 2.
And he is the propitiation for our sins. 1 John 2.
18. Whosoever seeketh by the law to be justified, is fallen from
grace. Gal. 5.
19. In Christ be all the promises of God, Est & Amen. 2 Cor. 1.
20. Let every soul be subject to superior powers, giving to Csesar
that which is Coesar's, and to God that which is God's. Rom. 13.
These principles and infallible rules of Scripture, which no man can
deny, prove that the doctrine of the pope's church is not catholic, but
full of errors and heresies, as in the sequel will be more expressly and
particularly explained.
A SUMMARY COLLECTION OF THE ERRORS, HERESIES, AND
ABSURDITIES
Contained in the Pope's Doctrines, contrary to the Rules of God's Word, and the
First Institution of the Church of Rome.
OF FAITH AND OF JUSTIFICATION.
First, as to the only means and instrumental cause of our justification,
whereby the merits of Christ's passion is applied to us and made ours,
ye heard before how St. Paul ascribes the same only to faith, as appears
by all his letters, especially to the Romans; where he, excluding all
kind of works, ascribes all our salvation, justification, righteousness, re-
conciliation, and peace with God only to faith in Christ. Contrary to
which doctrine, the pope and his church hath set up sundry other means
of their own devising, whereby the merits of Christ's passion, they say,
are applied to us and made ours, to the putting away of sins, and for
our justification, as hope, charity, sacrifice of the mass, auricular con-
fession, satisfaction, merit of saints, and holy orders, the pope's par-
dons, &c. So that Christ's sacrifice, stripes, and suffering, by this
teaching, do not heal us, nor are beneficial to us, though we believe
never so well, unless we had also these works and merits above recited.
This error and heresy of the church of Rome, though it seems at first
sight to the natural reason of man to be of small importance, yet if
it be earnestly considered, it is in very deed the most pernicious heresy
that ever crept into the church; upon which, as the only founda-
tion, all or the most part of all the errors, absurdities, and inconveni-
encies of the pope's church are grounded. For this being once ad-
mitted, that a man is not justified by his faith in Christ alone, but that
other means must be sought by our own working and merits, to apply
the merits of Christ's passion unto us ; then is there neither any cer-
tainty left of our salvation, nor end in setting up new means and merits
of our own devising for remission of sins. Neither has there been
any heresy that either hath rebelled more presumptuously against the
high majesty of God the Father, nor more perniciously hath injured the
souls of the simple, than this doctrine.
Secondly, the christian reader in the gospel, reading of the great
grace and sweet promises of God given to mankind in Christ his son,
might thereby take much comfort of soul, and be at rest and peace with
the Lord his God ; but there comes in the pestiferous doctrine of these
I \i SE 1 ■; NETS OF ROMANISTS, 11
heretics, wherewith they obscure this free grace of God to choke the
sweet comforts of man in the Holy Ghost, and oppress Christian liberty,
and bring- us into spiritual bondage.
Thirdly, as in this their impious doctrine they shew themselves mani-
fest enemies to God's grace, so they are no less injurious to christian
men, whom they leave in a doubtful" distrust of God's favour and of their
salvation, contrary to the word and will of God, and right institution
of the apostolic doctrine.
OF SIX.
Of sin likewise they teach not rightly, nor after the institution of the
apostles and the ancient church of Rome; as they consider not the
deepness and largeness of sin, supposing it still to be nothing else but
the inward actions with consent of will, or the outward, such as are
against will: whereas the essence of sin extends not only to these, but
also comprehends the blindness and ignorance of the mind, lack of
knowledge, the untowardness of man's mind, the privy rebellion of the
heart against the law of God, the undelighting will of man to God and
his word, &c.
OF PENANCE OR REPENTANCE.
Of penance, this corrupt Lateran church of Rome has made a sacra-
ment (contrary to the fourth principle), which penance, say they,
standeth of three parts, contrition, confession, and satisfaction cano-
nical. Contrition, as they teach, may be had by strength of free-will,
without the law and the Holy Ghost, per actus elicitis, through man's
own action and endeavour. Which contrition first must be sufficient,
and so it meriteth remission of sin. In confession they require a full
rehearsal of all sins, whereby the priest knowing the crimes, may minister
satisfaction accordingly . And this rehearsing of sins, ex opere operato,
deserveth remission, contrary to the fourteenth principle before men-
tioned. Satisfactions they call opera videbita, enjoyed by the ghostly
father. And this satisfaction (say they) taketh away and changeth
eternal punishment into temporal pains, which pains also it doth miti-
gate. And again, these satisfactions may be taken away by the pope's
indulgence, SfC.
OF FREE AVILL.
Concerning free-will, as it may in some case be admitted, that men
without grace may do some outward functions of the law, and keep
some outward observances or traditions; so as touching things spiritual
and appertaining to salvation, the strength of man being not regenerate
by grace, is so infirm and impotent that he can perform nothing neither
in doing well nor willing well; though, after he be regenerated by
grace, may work and do well, but yet that there still remains, notwith-
standing, a great imperfection of flesh, and a perpetual repugnance
between the flesh and spirit. And thus was the original church of the
ancient Romans first instructed, from which we may see now how far
this latter church of Rome has degenerated, which affirms, that men
without grace may perform the obedience of the law, and prepare them-
selves to grace by working, so that those works may be meritorious and
obtain grace. Which grace once obtained, then men may (say they)
12 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
perfectly perform the full obedience of the law, and accomplish those
spiritual actions and works which God requires, and to those works of
condignity deserve everlasting life. As to the infirmity which still re-
mains in nature, that they do not regard nor once speak of.
OF INVOCATION AND. ADORATION.
Besides these uncatholic and almost unchristian absurdities and de-
fection from the apostolical faith above specified, let us consider the
manner of their invocation, not to God alone, as they should, but to
dead men, saying that saints are to be called upon, tanquam mediatores
intercessiones, as mediators of intercession ; Christum vero tanquam me-
diatorem salutis, and Christ as the mediator of salvation. They affirm,
moreover, that Christ was a mediator only in time of his passion, which
is repugnant to the words of St. Paul, writing to the old Romans, chap,
viii., where lie, speaking of the intercession, of Christ, saith, "who is
even at the right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us,"
&c. And if Christ be a mediator of salvation, what needs then any
other intercession of saints for our suits? Or what does he want more
of the saints, who is sure to be saved only by Christ?
Hitherto also pertains the worshipping of relics, and the false adora-
tion of sacraments, that is, the outward signs of the thing signified,
contrary to the seventh principle before stated. Add to this also the
profanation of the Lord's supper, contrary to the use for which it was
ordained, in reserving it after the communion ministered, in setting it to
sale for money, and falsely persuading both themselves and others, that
the priest doth merit both to himself who speaks, and to him who hears
ex opere operato, sine bono motu utentis, Sfc. that is, only by the mere
doing of the work, though the party that useth the same hath no motion
in him.
OF SACRAMENTS, BAPTISM, AND THE LORD'S SUPPER.
With respect to sacraments, their doctrine is likewise corrupt and
erroneous.
In the sacrament of baptism they are to be reproved, not only for
adding to the simple words of Christ's institution divers many new-found
rites and fantasies of men, but also where the use of the old church of
Rome was only to baptise men, they baptise also bells, and apply the
words of baptism to water, Jive, candles, stocks, and stones, Sfc.
But especially in the supper of the Lord their doctrine most filthily
swerves from the right meaning of the scripture, and should be explod-
ed out of all christian churches. The first error is their idolatrous abuse
by worshipping, adoring, censing, knocking, and kneeling to it, in reserv-
ing also and carrying about in pomp and processions in towns and fields.
Secondly, also in substance thereof their teaching is monstrous, leaving
no substance of bread and wine to remain, but only the real body and
blood of Christ, putting no difference between calling and making.
Because Christ called bread his body, therefore, say they, he made it his
body, and so of a wholesome sacrament make a perilous idol : and that
which the old church of Rome did ever take to be a mystery, they turn
into a blind mist of mere accidents to deceive the people ; and to wor-
ship a thing made, for their maker ; a creature for their creator ; and
PARADOXES OF PURGATORY. 13
that which was threshed out of a wheaten sheaf, they set up in the
church and worship for a saviour; and when they have worshipped him,
then they otter him to his Father; and when they have offered him, then
they eat him up, or else close him fast in a cell, where if he corrupt and
putrify before he be eaten, then they burn him to powder and ashes.
And notwithstanding 1 they know well by scripture that the body of
Christ can never corrupt and putrify, yet for all this corruption will they
needs make it the body of Christ, and burn all them who believe not
that which is against true christian belief.
OF MATRIMONY.
Contrary to the ordinances of the scripture, the new catholics of the
pope's church call marriage a state of imperfection, and prefer single
life be it never so impure, before the former, pretending that where the
one replenishes the earth, the other fills heaven. Ministers and priests
such as are found to have wives, they not only remove out of their place,
but also pronounce sentence of death upon them, and account their
children illegitimate. Again, as good as the third part of the year they
exempt and suspend from liberty of marriage. Besides all this, they
have added a novel prohibition of spiritual kindred, that is, that
such as have been gossips, or godfathers and godmothers together in
christening another man's child, must not by their law marry together.
Finally, in this doctrine and cases of matrimony, they gain much mo-
ney from the people, nourish adultery, and fill the world with offences
that give great occasion of murdering infants.
OF MAGISTRATES AND CIVIL GOVERNMENT.
It is known what rules and lessons St. Paul gave to the old Romans
concerning magistrates, to whose authority he would have all human
creatures subjected, as they are the ministers of God, having the sword
given unto them, wherewith they ought to repress false doctrine and
idolatry, and maintain that which is true and right, Rom. xiii. Now
let us survey the pope's proceedings, and mark how far he transgresses
in this, as he doth in all other points, from true Christianity.
1. First, The pope with all his clergy, exempt themselves from all
civil obedience.
2. They arrogate to themselves authority to ordain and constitute,
without leave or knowledge of the ordinary magistrate.
3. They take upon themselves to depose and set up rulers and magis-
trates when they please/
OF PURGATORY.
The paradoxes, or rather the fantasies, of the latter church of Rome,
concerning purgatory, are monstrous, and neither old nor apostolical.
1. First (they say) there is a purgatory where souls burn in fire after
this life.
2. The pain of purgatory differs nothing from the pains of hell, but
only that it has an end ; the pains of hell have none.
f It is likely that this degree of power is lost to them for ever; but it still remains their
nominal prerogative.
14 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
3. The painful suffering of this fire scours away the sins before com-
mitted in the body.
4. The time of these pains endures in some longer, in some less, ac-
cording as their sins deserve.
5. After the time of their pains has expired, then the mercy of God
translates them to heavenly bliss, which the body of Christ hath bought
for them.
6. The pains of purgatory are so great, that if all the beggars of the
world were seen on the one side, and but one soul in purgatory on the
other side, the whole world would pity more that one, than all the
others.
7. The whole time of punishment in this purgatory must continue till
the fire has scoured away the spots of every sinful soul there burning,
unless there come some release.
8. Helps and releases that may shorten the time of their purgation,
may be obtained by the pope's pardon and indulgences, sacrifices of the
altar, dirges and trentals, prayer, fasting, &c.
Lack of belief of purgatory bringeth to hell.
In short, let us examine the whole religion of this latter church of Rome,
and we shall find it to consist altogether in outward and ceremonial
exercises ; as outward confession, absolution at the priest's hand, out-
ward sacrifice of the mass, buying of pardons, purchasing of obiits,
external worshipping of images and relics, pilgrimage to this place or
that, building of churches, founding of monasteries, outward works of
the law, outward gestures, garments, colours, choice of meats, difference
of times and places, peculiar rites and observances, set prayers, and
number of prayers prescribed, fasting of vigils, keeping of holidays,
coming to church, hearing of service, external succession of bishops
and of Peter's see, external form and notes of the church, &c. So that
by this religion to make a true christian and a good catholic, there is
scarcely any working of the Holy Ghost required. As for example, to
make this matter more demonstrable, let us define a christian man after
the pope's making, whereby we may see the better what is to be judged
of the scope of his doctrine.
A CHRISTIAN MAN, AFTER THE POPe's MAKING, DEFINED.
According to the catholic religion, a true christian man is thus de-
fined : first, to be baptised in the Latin tongue (which the godfathers
ffrofess they cannot understand), then confirmed by the bishops; the mo-
ther of the child to be purified; after he is grown in years, then to come
to the church to keep his fasting days, to fast the lent, to come under
benedicite ; that is, to be confessed of the priest, to do his penance, at
Easter to take his rites, to hear mass and divine service, to set up can-
dles before images, to creep to the cross, to take holy bread and water,
to go in procession, to carry his palms and candle, and to take
ashes ; to fast the ember days, rogation days, and vigils ; to keep the
holidays, to pay his tithes and offerings, to go on pilgrimage, to
buy pardons, to worship his Maker over the priest's head, and to receive
the pope for his supreme lord, and to obey his laws ; to receive St.
Nicholas' clerks, 'to have his beads, and to give to the high altar; to
THE FIRST TEN PERSECUTIONS. I .
take orders if he will be a priest, to keep his vow, and not to marry ;
when he is sick to be anointed and take the rites of the holy church,
to be buried in the church-yard, to be rung for, to be sung for, to be
buried in a friar's cowl, and to conform living and dying to the Romish
rule. All these points being observed, who can deny but this is a
devout man, and perfect christian catholic, and sure to be saved, as a
true faithful child of the holy mother church?
Now look upon this definition, and say, good reader, what faith or
spirit, or what working of the Holy Ghost in all this doctrine is to be
required. The grace of our Lord Jesus give the true light of his gos-
pel to shine in our hearts. Amen.
SECTION II.
Containing a history of the first Ten Persecutions of the Primitive Church, from the year
of our Lord, 67, and the reign of Nero Domitius, till the time of Constantine the Great;
in which are detailed the lives and actions of* the principal Christian martyrs of both
sexes, who suffered for their faith in Europe and in Africa.
The dreadful martyrdoms we are now about to describe, arose from
the persecutions of the Christians by pagan fury, in the primitive ages
of the church, during the space of three hundred years, until the time
of Constantine the great. §
It is both wonderful and horrible to peruse the descriptions of the
sufferings of those godly martyrs, as they are described by ancient
historians. Their torments were as various as the ingenuity of man,
excited by the devil, could devise ; and their numbers were truly in-
credible. " Some," says Robanus, " were slain with the sword ; some
burnt with fire ; some scourged with whips ; some stabbed with forks of
iron; some fastened to the cross or gibbet; some drowned in the sea;
some had their skins plucked off; some their tongues cutout; some
were stoned to death ; some frozen with cold ; some starved with
hunger; some with their hands cut off, or otherwise dismembered, were
left naked to the open shame of the world." Augustine, speaking of
these martyrs, h says, that though their punishments were various, yet
the constancy in all was the same. And notwithstanding the sharpness
of so many torments, and cruelty of the tormentors, such was the
number of these faithful saints, that as Hierome, in his epistle to
Cromatius and Heliodorus, observes, " There is no day in the whole
year, unto which the number of Jive thousand martyrs cannot be ascribed,
except only the first day of January ."
s Eusebius was the principal historian who has transmitted to us an account of the
sufferings of these blessed martyrs, and to his works we are indebted for many valuable
anecdotes not to be found in any other writer.
h De Civit. 22. cap. 6.
16 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
The first martyr to our holy religion was its Blessed Founder himself.'
His history is sufficiently known, as it has been handed down to us in
the New Testament ; nevertheless it will be proper here to give an out-
line of his sufferings, and more particularly as they will be followed by
those of the apostles and evangelists. (A. D. 1 to 18.) The persecutions
by the emperors took place long after the death of our Saviour.
It is known that in the reign of Herod, the angel Gabriel was sent by
divine command to the Virgin Mary. This maiden was betrothed to a
carpenter named Joseph, who resided at Nazareth, a city of Galilee;
but the marriage had not then taken place ; for it was the custom
of the eastern nations to contract persons of each sex from their child-
hood, though the alliance was not permitted till years of maturity.
The angel informed Mary how highly she was favoured of God, and that
she should conceive a son by the Holy Spirit, which happened accord-
ingly ; for travelling to Bethlehem to pay the capitation-tax then levied,
the town was so crowded that they could get lodgings only in a stable,
where the Holy Virgin gave birth to our Blessed Redeemer, which was
announced to the world by a star and an angel : the wise men of the
east saw the former, and the shepherds the latter.
After Jesus had been circumcised, he was presented in the temple by
the Holy Virgin ; upon which occasion Simeon exclaimed in the cele-
brated words mentioned in the liturgy : "Lord, now lettest thou thy ser-
vant depart in peace, according to thy word : for mine eyes have seen
thy salvation." Luke ii. 29, 30.
Jesus, in his youth, conversed with the most learned doctors in the
temple, and soon after Avas baptized by John in the river Jordan, when
the Holy Ghost descended upon him in the form of a dove, and a voice
was heard audibly to pronounce these words: " This is my beloved Son,
in whom I am well pleased."
After this Christ fasted forty days and nights in the wilderness, where
he was tempted by the devil, but resisted all his allurements. He per-
formed his first miracle at Cana, in Galilee ; he likewise conversed with
the good Samaritan, and restored to life a nobleman's dead child. While
travelling through Galilee he restored the blind to sight, he cured the
lame, the lepers, &c. Among other benevolent actions, he cured at the
pool of Bethseda, a paralytic man who had been lame thirty-eight years,
bidding him take up his bed and walk ; and he afterwards cured a man
whose right hand was shrunk up and withered, with many acts of a simi-
lar nature.
When he had chosen his twelve apostles, he preached the celebrated
sermon on the Mount ; after which he performed several miracles, par-
* A reverend editor of an edition of the Book of Christian Martyrs, published some
years since, with a pompous title-page, and announced as the only "complete and original
History of Martyrdom," has absurdly described as martyrs, Noah, Lot, Joseph, the
Children of Israel, Shadrach, Meshach, Abednego, &c. It is, nevertheless, evident, that
these characters, who sustained with all becoming fortitude, as we learn from scripture, the
malignity of their persecutors, ought not to be classed amongst the blessed martyrs, whose
lives were sacrificed for their perseverance in the doctrines of Christianity. As well might
be recorded in a history of martyrs every man who had been in danger of perishing
by the hand of an assassin.
TRIAL OF CHRIST. 17
ticularly the feeding of the multitude, and the walking on the surface
of the sea.
On the celebration of the passover, Jesus supped with his disciples ; he
informed them that one of them would betray him, and another deny him :
in short he preached his farewell sermon. A multitude of armed men
soon afterwards surrounded him, and Judas kissed him, in order to point
him out to the soldiers, who were not acquainted with his person. In
the conflict occasioned by the apprehension of Jesus, Peter cut off the ear
of Malchus, the servant of the high-priest, for which Jesus reproved him,
and, by touching- the wound, healed it. (A. D. 34.) Peter and John
followed Jesus to the house of Annas, who refusing to judge him, sent
him bound to Caiaphas, in whose house Peter denied Christ, as he had
predicted ; but, on Christ reminding him of his perfidy, the apostle went
out and wept bitterly.
When the council had assembled in the morning, the Jews mocked
Jesus, and the elders suborned false witnesses against him : the princi-
pal accusation being, that he had said, " I will destroy this temple
made with hands, and within three days I will build another made
without hands." Caiaphas then asked him if he was Christ the Son of
God, or not ; being answered in the affirmative he was accused of blas-
phemy, and condemned to death by Pontius Pilate, the Roman gover-
nor, who, though conscious of his innocence, yielded to the solicitations
of the Jews, and condemned him to be crucified. His remarkable ex-
pression at the time of passing sentence proved how much he was con-
vinced that the Lord was persecuted.
Previous to the crucifixion, the Jews, by way of derision, clothed
Christ in a regal robe, put a crown of thorns upon his head, and a reed,
for a sceptre, in his hand ; they then mocked him with ironical compli-
ments, spat in his face, smote his cheeks, and taking the reed out of
his hand, they struck him with it upon the head. Pilate would have
released him, but the general cry was, Crucify him, crucify him ; which
occasioned the governor to call for a basin of water, and having washed
his hands, he declared himself innocent of the blood of Christ, whom
he termed a just person. But the Jews said, " Let his blood be upon
us, and our children :" and the governor found himself obliged to com-
ply with their wishes. Their imprecation, too, has manifestly taken
place, as they have ever since been a people scattered and cursed. J
i A similar example of punishment is to be noted amongst the Romans ; for when Tiberius
Caesar, having received accounts from Pontius Pilate, of the doings of Christ, of his miracles,
resurrection, and ascension into Heaven, and how he was received as a divine messenger,
was himself also moved with belief, and conferred with the whole senate of Rome to have
Christ adored as God : they refused, because that, contrary to the law of the Romans, he
was consecrated for God, before the senate of Rome had so decreed and approved him.
Tertul. Apol. cap. 5. Thus the senate following rather the law of man than of God, the
permission of God stirred up their own emperors against them in such a degree, that tht
senators were almost all destroyed, and the whole city horribly afflicted for the space of
three hundred subsequent years. Tiberius, who for a great part of his reign was a mode-
rate prince, was afterwards a severe tyrant, who neither favoured his own mother, spared
his own nephews, nor the princes of the city, nor such as were his own counsellors, of whom,
to the number of twenty, he left only two or three alive. History relates him to have been
so tyrannical, that in his reign many were accused, and condemned with their wives and
children. In one day, according to Suetonius, he ordered twenty persons to be drawn to the
C
18 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
While they were leading Christ to the place of crucifixion, he
was obliged to bear the cross, which being unable long to sustain, his
enemies compelled one Simon, a native of Cyrene, to carry it the rest
of the way. Mount Calvary was fixed on for the place of execution,
where, having arrived, the soldiers offered Christ a mixture of gall and
vinegar to drink, which he refused. Having stripped him, they nailed
him to the cross, and crucified him between two malefactors. On
being fastened to the cross, he uttered this benevolent prayer for his
enemies: "Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do."
Four soldiers who crucified him, now cut his mantle to pieces, and
divided it between them ; but his coat being without seam, they cast lots
for it. While Christ remained in the agonies of death, the Jews mocked
him, and said, " If thou art the son of God, come down from the cross."
The chief priests and scribes also reviled him, and said, " He saved
others, but cannot save himself." One of the criminals who was
crucified with him, also cried out, and said, " If thou art the Messiah,
save thyself and us ;" but the other malefactor, having great faith,
exclaimed, " Lord, remember me when thou comest into thy kingdom."
To which Christ replied, "This day shalt thou be with me in paradise."
When Christ was upon the cross, the earth was covered with darkness,
and the stars appeared at noon-day, which struck the people and even
the Jews with terror. In the midst of his tortures, He cried out,
" My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me !" and then expressed
a desire to drink, when one of the soldiers gave him, upon the point of
a reed, a sponge dipped in vinegar, which however he refused* About
three o'clock in the afternoon he gave up the ghost, and at that moment
a violent earthquake commenced, when the rocks were rent, the moun-
tains trembled, and the dead emerged from the graves. These and
other prodigies attended the death of Christ, and such was the mortal
end of the Redeemer of mankind. It is not a subject of wonder that
the heathens who lived so long after him, endeavoured by persecution
and the most horrid cruelties, to prevent the propagation of that source
of comfort and happiness in all affliction, which has resulted from the
blessed system of faith that our Saviour confirmed with his blood.
ACCOUNT OF THE LIVES, SUFFERINGS, AND MARTYRDOM OF THE
APOSTLES, EVANGELISTS, &c.
I. ST. STEPHEN.
This early martyr was elected, with six others, as a deacon of the first
Christian church. He was also an able and successful preacher. The
principal persons belonging to five Jewish synagogues entered into
dispute with him ; but he, by the soundness of his doctrine, and the
place of execution. By him, also, Pilate, under whom Christ was crucified, was apprehended
and accused at Rome, deposed, then banished to the town of Lyons, and at length coihmltted
suicide. Herod and Caiaphas also did not long escape. We shall here, combining his-
torical facts with our narrative, inform the reader, that it was in the reign of Tiherius, that
Jesus, the Son of God, in the four-and-thirtieth year of his age, which was the seventeenth
of this emperor, suffered martyrdom. After this, Tiberius lived six years, during which
time no persecution had begun in Rome against the Christians. It was in the reign of this
emperor that St. Paul was converted to the faith.
MARTYRDOM OF THE APOSTLES. 19
strength of his arguments, overcame them all, which so much irritated
them, that they bribed false witnesses to accuse him of blaspheming
God and Moses. On being carried before the council, he made a noble
defence; but this so much exasperated his judges, that they resolved
to condemn him. At the instant Stephen saw a vision from heaven,
representing Jesus, in his glorified state, sitting at the right hand ot
God. This vision so enraptured him, that he exclaimed, "Behold I
see the heavens open, and the Son of Man standing on the right hand
of God." This caused him to be condemned, and having dragged him
out of the city they stoned him to death. On the spot where he was
martyred, Eudocia, the empress of Theodosius, erected a superb church,
and the memory of the martyr is annually celebrated on the 26th day
of December.
The death of Stephen was succeeded by a severe persecution in
Jerusalem, in which 2000 Christians, with Nicanor the deacon, were
martyred, and many others obliged to leave their country. k
II. ST. JAMES THE GREAT.
He was a Galilean, and the son of Zebedee, a fisherman, the elder
brother of St. John, and related to Christ himself; for his mother
Salome was cousin to the Virgin Mary. Being one day with his father
fishing in the sea of Galilee, he and his brother John were called by the
Saviour to become his disciples. They cheerfully obeyed the mandate,
and leaving their father, followed Jesus. It is to be observed, that
Christ placed greater confidence in them than in any other of the
apostles, Peter excepted. Christ called these brothers Boanerges, or
sons of thunder, on account of their vigorous minds and zealous spirits.
When Herod Agrippa was made governor of Judea by the emperor
Caligula, he raised a persecution against the Christians, and particularly
selected James as an object of his vengeance. This martyr, on being
condemned to death, showed such intrepidity and constancy of mind,
that even his accuser was struck with admiration, and became a convert
to Christianity. This transition so enraged the people in power, that
they condemned him likewise to death; when the apostle, and his
penitent accuser, were both beheaded on the same day and with the
same sword. These events took place in the year of Christ 44; and the
25th of July was fixed by the church for the commemoration of James's
martyrdom. About the same period, Timon and Parmenas, two of the
seven deacons, suffered martyrdom, the former at Corinth, and the
latter at Philippi, in Macedonia.
III. ST. PHILIP.
This apostle and martyr was born at Bethsaida, in Galilee, and was
the first called by the name of disciple. He was employed in several
important missions by Christ, and being deputed to preach in Upper
k Dorotheus, in his Synopsis, asserts, apparently upon good authority, that Nicanor, one
of the seven deacons, with two thousand others, who believed in Christ, suffered on the
same day when Stephen was martyred. He also adds, that Simon, another of the deacons,
afterwards bishop of Bostrum, in Arabia, was there burned. Parmenas, another of the
deacons, suffered at the same time.
20 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Asia, laboured very diligently in his apostleship. He then travelled
into Phrygia, and arriving- at Heliopolis, found the inhabitants so sunk
in idolatry, as to worship a large serpent. St. Philip, however, was the
means of converting many of them to Christianity, and even procured the
death of the serpent. This so enraged the magistrates, that they com-
mitted him to prison, had him severely scourged, and afterwards crucified.
His friend, St. Bartholomew, found an opportunity of taking down the
body, and burying it; for which, however, he was very near suffering the
same fate. The martyrdom of Philip happened eight years after that
of James the Great, A. D. 52 ; and his name, together with that of
St. James the Less, is commemorated on the 1st of May.
IV. ST. MATTHEW.
This evangelist, apostle, and martyr, was born at Nazareth, in Galilee;
but resided chiefly in Capernaum, on account of his business, which was
that of a tax-gatherer, to collect tribute of such as had to pass the sea
of Galilee. On being called as a disciple, he immediately complied,
and left every thing to follow Christ. After the ascension of his Lord,
he continued preaching the gospel in Judea about nine years. Intend-
ing to leave Judea, to go and preach among the Gentiles, he wrote
his gospel in Hebrew, for the use of the Jewish converts ; but it
was afterwards translated into Greek by St. James the Less. He then
went to Ethiopia, ordained preachers, settled churches, and made many
converts. He afterwards proceeded to Parthia, where he had the same
success ; but returning to Ethiopia, he was slain by a halberd in the
city of Nadabar, about the year of Christ 60 ; and his festival is kept by
the church on the 21st day of September. He was inoffensive in his
conduct, and remarkably temperate in his mode of living.
v. ST. MARK.
This evangelist and martyr was born of Jewish parents of the tribe
of Levi. It is supposed that he was converted to Christianity by St.
Peter, whom he served as an amanuensis, and whom he attended in all
his travels. Being entreated by the converts at Rome to commit to
writing the admirable discourses they had heard from St. Peter and
himself, he complied with their request, and composed his gospel in
the Greek language. He then went to Egypt, and constituted a
bishopric at Alexandria : afterwards he proceeded to Lybia, where he
made many converts. On returning to Alexandria, some of the Egyp-
tians, exasperated at his success, determined on his death. They tied
his feet, dragged him through the streets, left him bruised in a dungeon
all night, and the next day burned his body. This took place on the
25th of April, on which day the church commemorates his martyrdom.
His bones were carefully gathered up by the Christians, decently inter-
red, and afterwards removed to Venice, where he is honoured as the
tutelar saint and patron of the state.
VI. ST. JAMES THE LESS.
This apostle and martyr was so called to distinguish him from St.
James the Great. He was the son of Joseph, the reputed father of Christ;
MARTYRDOM OF THE APOSTLES. 21
and after the Lord's ascension was elected bishop of Jerusalem. He wrote
his general epistles to all Christians and converts whatever, to suppress
a dangerous error then propagating, viz. " That faith in Christ was alone
sufficient for salvation, without good works." The Jews, being at this
time greatly enraged that St. Paul had escaped their fury, by appealing
to Rome, determined to wreak their vengeance on James, who was now
ninety-four years of age: they accordingly threw him down, beat,
bruised, and stoned him ; and then dashed out his brains with a club,
such as was used by fullers in dressing cloths. His festival, together
with that of St. Philip, is kept on the first of May. l
VII. ST. MATTHIAS.
This martyr was called to the apostleship after the death of Christ,
to supply the vacant place of Judas, who had betrayed his master. He
was also one of the seventy disciples. He was martyred at Jerusalem,
by being first stoned, and then beheaded ; and the 24th of February
is observed for the celebration of his festival.
VIII. ST. ANDREW.
This apostle and martyr was the brother of St. Peter, and preached
the gospel to many Asiatic nations. On arriving at Edessa, the gover-
nor of the country, named Egeas, threatened him for preaching against
1 Egissippus in his commentaries, gives the following interesting account of this martyr .
— "James, the brother of our Lord, took in hand to govern the church after the apostles,
being counted of all men, from the time of Christ, to be a just and perfect man. There
were many others of the name ; but this was born holy : he drank no wine nor any strong
drink, neither did he eat any living creature, the razor never came upon his head, he was
not anointed with oil, neither did he use bath ; to him only was it lawful to enter into the
holy place; neither was he clothed with woollen cloth, but with silk; and he entered into
the temple, always wponhis knees, asking remission for the people, so that his knees, by con-
stant use, lost the sense of feeling, being benumbed and hardened like the knees of a camel.
He was (for worshipping God, and craving forgiveness for the people), called the Just,
and for the excellency of his life named Oblias, which is the safeguard and justice of
the people, as the prophets declare of him : therefore, when many of the heretics which
were among the people asked him what manner of man Jesus should be, he answered,
that he was the Saviour. But the aforesaid heretics, neither believe the resurrection,
nor that one shall come, who shall render unto every man according to his works ; but
as many as believe, they believe in James's faith. When some, therefore, of the princes
did believe, there was a tumult made of the Scribes, Jews, and Pharisees, saying, it is
dangerous lest that all the people do look for this Jesus as for Christ. Therefore, they
gathered themselves together, and said to James — 'We beseech thee restrain the people,
for they believe in Jesus as though he were Christ ; we pray thee persuade them all which
come unto the feast of the passover of Jesus; for we are all obedient unto thee, and
all the people do testify of thee that thou art just, neither that thou dost accept the
person of any man ; therefore persuade the people that they be not deceived in Jesus, and
all the people and we will obey thee; therefore stand upon the pillar of the temple,
that thou mayest be seen from above, and that thy words may be perceived of all the
people, for to this passover all the tribes do come with all the country.' And thus the
Scribes and Pharisees did set James upon the battlements of the church, and they cried
unto him and said, ' Thou just man, whom we all ought to obey, because this people is
led after Jesus, who is crucified, tell what is Jesus crucified 1' And he answered with a
great voice, 'What do you ask me of Jesus the Son of Man, seeing that he sitteth on
the right hand of God, and shall come in the clouds of Heaven. ' When many were
persuaded of this, they glorified God upon the witness of James, and said, ' Hosanna in
the highest to the Son of David.' "
22 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the idols they worshipped. St. Andrew, persisting in the propagation of
his doctrines, was ordered to be crucified, two ends of the cross being
fixed transversely in the ground. He boldly told his accusers, that he
would not have preached the glory of the cross, had he feared to die
on it. And again, when they came to crucify him, he said that he
coveted the cross, and longed to embrace it. He was fastened to the
cross, not with nails, but cords ; that his death might be more slow.
In this situation he continued two days, preaching the greatest part of
the time to the people; and expired on the 30th of November, which is
commemorated as his festival.
IX. ST. PETER.
This great apostle and martyr was born at Bethsaida in Galilee, being
the son of Jonas, a fisherman, which employment St. Peter himself fol-
lowed. He was persuaded by his brother to turn Christian, when Christ
gave him the name of Cephas, implying, in the Syriac language, a rock.
He was called, at the same time as his brother, to be an apostle, gave
uncommon proofs of his zeal for the service of Christ, and always ap-
peared as the principal speaker among the apostles. He had, however,
the weakness to deny his Master after his apprehension, though he
defended him at the time; but the sincerity of his repentance proved
that he soon became deeply convinced of the greatness of his crime.
After the death of Christ, the Jews still continued to persecute the
Christians, and ordered several of the apostles, among whom was Peter,
to be scourged. This punishment they bore with the greatest fortitude,
and rejoiced that they were thought worthy to suffer for the sake of their
Redeemer.
When Herod Agrippa caused St. James the Great to be put to death,
and found that it pleased the Jews, he resolved, in order to ingratiate
himself with the people, that Peter should be the next sacrifice. He
was accordingly apprehended, and thrown into prison ; but an angel of
the Lord released him, which so enraged Herod, that he ordered the
sentinels who guarded the dungeon in which he had been confined, to
be put to death. St. Peter, after various miracles, retired to Rome,
where he defeated the artifices, and confounded the magic of Simon
Magus, a great favourite of the emperor Nero: he likewise converted
to Christianity one of the concubines of that monarch, which so exas-
perated the tyrant, that he ordered both St. Peter and St. Paul to be
apprehended. During the time of their confinement, they converted
two of the captains of the guard, and forty-seven other persons to
Christianity. Having been nine months in prison, Peter was brought
from thence for execution, when after being severely scourged, lie
was crucified with his head downwards; which position, however, was
at his own request." 1 His festival is observed on the 29th of June, on
m As to the cause and manner of his death there are many who describe them, as
Hierome, Egissippus, Eusebius, Abdias, and others, although they do not all precisely agree
in the time. The words of Hierome are these, " Simon Peter the son of Jonas, of the
province of Galilee, and of the town of Bethsaida, the brother of Andrew, after he
had been bishop of the church of Antioch, and had preached to the dispersed of them that
believed of the circumcision, in Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia, and Bithynia, in the
MARTYRDOM OF ST. PAUL. 23
which day lie as well as Paul suffered. His body being taken down,
embalmed, and buried in the Vatican, a church was erected on the
spot; but this being destroyed by the emperor Heliogabalus, the body
was concealed till the 20th bishop of Rome, Cornelius, conveyed it
again to the Vatican; afterwards Constantine the Great erected one
of the most stately churches in the universe over the place. Before we
quit this article, it is requisite to observe, that previous to the death of
St. Peter, his wife suffered martyrdom for the faith of Christ, when he
exhorted her, as she was going to be put to death, to remember her
Saviour.
X. ST. PAUL.
This apostle and martyr was a Jew of the tribe of Benjamin, born
at Tarsus in Cilicia. He was at first a great enemy to, and persecutor
of the Christians; but after his miraculous conversion, he became a
strenuous supporter of Christianity." At Iconium, St. Paul and St.
Barnabas were near being stoned to death by the enraged Jews ; on
which they fled to Lycaonia. At Lystra, St. Paul was stoned, dragged
out of the city, and left for dead. He, however, happily revived, and
escaped to Derbe. At Philippi, Paul and Silas were imprisoned and
whipped; and both were again persecuted at Thessalonica. Being
afterwards taken at Jerusalem, he was sent to Cesarea, but appealed to
Caesar at Rome. Here he continued a prisoner at large for two years ;
and at length being released, he visited the churches of Greece and
Rome, and preached in France and Spain. Returning to Rome, he was
again apprehended, and by the order of Nero, martyred, by beheading.
second year of Claudius the emperor (which was about the year of our Lord 44) came to
Rome to withstand Simon Magus, and there kept the priestly chair the space of five-and-
twenty years, until the last year of the aforesaid Nero, which was the fourteenth year of
his reign, in which he was crucified, his head being down, and his feet upward, himself so
requiring, because he was, he said, unworthy to be crucified after the same form and
manner as the Lord Jesus.
n The circumstances of the conversion of this apostle are not so well known as they ought
to be : in fact, there are many important events in the lives of the martyrs which none can
properly know but those who read the Greek and Latin works of theological historians.
The following particulars of St. Paul are from Hieronymus, (De viris IUustribus.)
Paul, before his conversion was called Saul; and after performing many journeys and
unspeakable labours in promoting the gospel of Christ, he suffered under persecution and
was beheaded. Before he was converted he was a promoter of the death of Stephen. He
was brought up under Gamaliel. While on his way to Damascus, the Lord's glory came
suddenly upon him, and he was struck to the earth ; on which, from a persecutor, he
immediately became a professor, an apostle, and a martyr.
Among his labours in spreading the doctrine of Christ he converted to the faith Sergius
Paulus, the proconsul of Cyprus, on which he took his name, and, was thence called
Paulus instead of Saulus. After many labours he took to him Barnabas, and went up
to Jerusalem to Peter, James, and John, where he was ordained, and sent out with Barnabas
to preach to the Gentiles.
Besides what is mentioned of his miraculous conversion, in the sacred scriptures,
we may add, that this apostle, in the 25th year after the passion of our Lord, and in the
second of Nero, was sent in chains to Rome, where he almost daily disputed for two years
against the Jews. Nero, who had not then broken out in his wickedness, caused him to be
discharged, and he was sent to preach the gospel in the west, and about the coasts of
Italy ; where he did much good, and, to use his own words, was delivered by the Lord
out of the lion's mouth. He was beheaded on the same day on which Peter was crucified.
24 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Two days are dedicated to the commemoration of this apostle ; the one
to his conversion, which is on the 25th of January, and the other to
his martyrdom, which is on the 29th of June, A. D. 72.
XI. ST. JUDE.
This apostle and martyr, the brother of James, was commonly called
Thaddaeus. Being sent to Edessa, he wrought many miracles, and made
many converts, which exciting the resentment of people in power, he
was crucified, A. D. 72 ; and the 28th of October is, by the church,
dedicated to his memory.
XII. ST. BARTHOLOMEW.
This apostle and martyr preached in several countries, performed
many miracles, and healed various diseases. He translated St. Matthew's
gospel into the Indian language, and propagated it in that country ;
but at length, the idolators growing impatient with his doctrines, severely
beat and crucified him. He was scarcely alive when taken down and
beheaded. The anniversary of his martyrdom is on the 24th of August.
XIII. ST. THOMAS.
He was called by this name in Syriac, but Didymus in Greek ; he was
an apostle and martyr, and preached in Parthia and India, where dis-
pleasing the pagan priests, he was martyred by being thrust through
with a spear. His death is commemorated on the 21st of December.
XIV. ST. LUKE THE EVANGELIST.
This martyr was the author of the third most excellent gospel ; and
also of the Acts of the Apostles. He travelled with St. Paul to Rome,
and preached to divers barbarous nations, till the priests of Greece
hanged him on an olive-tree. The anniversary of his martyrdom is on
the 1 8th of October.
XV. ST. SIMON.
This apostle and martyr was distinguished from his zeal by the name
of Zelotes. He preached with great success in Mauritania, and other
parts of Africa, and even in Britain, where, though he made many con-
verts, he was crucified, A. D. 74 ; and the church, joining him with St.
Jude, commemorates his festival on the 28th of October.
XVI. ST. JOHN.
He was distinguished as a prophet, an apostle, a divine, an evangelist,
and a martyr. He is called the beloved disciple, and was brother to
James the Great. He was previously a disciple of John the baptist, and
afterwards not only one of the twelve apostles, but one of the three to
whom Christ communicated the most secret passages of his life. He
founded churches at Smyrna, Pergamos, Sarclis, Philadelphia, Laodicea,
and Thyatira, to which he directs his book of Revelations. Being at
Ephesus, he was ordered by the emperor Domitian to be sent bound to
Rome, where he was condemned to be cast into a caldron of boiling
oil.° But here a miracle was wrought in his favour ; the oil did him no
° With respect to this punishment the Legend and Perionius say, it took place at Rome,
Isidorus also writing of him, declares that he turned certain places of wood into gold, and
FIRST PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 25
injury; and Domitian, not being able to put him to death, banished
him to Patmos to labour in the mines, A. D. 73. He was, however, re-
called by Nerva, who succeeded Domitian, but was deemed a martyr on
account of his having undergone an execution, though it did not take
effect. He wrote his epistles, gospel, and Revelation, each in a different
style; but they are all equally admired. He was the only apostle who
escaped a violent death, and lived the longest of any, he being nearly
100 years of age at the time of his death. The church devotes the 27th
of December to his memory.
XVII. ST. BARNABAS.
He was a native of Cyprus, but of Jewish parents : the time of his
death is uncertain ; but it is supposed to have been about the year of
Christ 73 ; and his festival is kept on the 11th of June.
ACCOUNT OF THE FIRST PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION,
Beginning in the year 67, under the reign of the emperor Nero.
The first persecution in the primitive ages of the church, was under
Nero Domitius, the sixth emperor of Rome, A. D. 67. This mo-
narch reigned for the space of five years with tolerable credit to him-
self; but then gave way to the greatest extravagance of temper, and to
the most atrocious barbarities, p Among other diabolical outrages, he
ordered that the city of Rome should be set on fire, which was done by
his officers, guards, and servants. While the city was in flames, he went
up to the tower of Maecenas, played upon his harp, sung the song of
the burning of Troy, and declared, " That he wished the ruin of all
things before his death." Among the noble buildings burnt was the
Circus, the place appropriated to civic sports : it was half a mile in length,
of an oval form, with rows of seats rising above each other, and capable
of receiving with ease upwards of 100,000 spectators. Many other
palaces and houses were consumed ; and several thousands of the people
perished in the flames, were smothered, or buried beneath the ruins.
This dreadful conflagration continued nine days.
Nero, finding that his conduct was greatly blamed, and a severe odium
cast upon him, determined to charge the whole upon the Christians, at
once to excuse himself* and have an opportunity of fresh persecutions.
The barbarities inflicted on the Christians, during the first persecution,
were such as excited the sympathy of even the Romans themselves.
stones by the sea-side into pearls, to satisfy the desire of those whom he had persuaded to
renounce their riches; and they afterwards repenting that for worldly treasure they had
lost Heaven, the apostle again changed the same into their former substance. It is said by
Eusebius that he raised a widow and a young man from death to life. That he drank
poison and it hurt him not. These and other miracles, though they may be true, and
are found in several writers, yet are not mentioned in the sacred books, and may there-
fore be considered at best as apocryphal.
P Eusebius, speaking of his cruelties, says, that one might then see cities full of men's
bodies, and carcases cast out naked, without reverence of sex, in the open streets. Nero
was the first who began persecution against the Christians, and not only in Rome, but also
through the provinces, thinking to abolish and to destroy the name of Christians in all
places. In consequence of his cruelties towards the Christians, he was the fir*t who re-
ceived the name of anti-ehrist. See Orosius, lib. 7. and Hist. Eccles. lib. 2. cap. 24.
26 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Nero nicely refined upon cruelty, and contrived all manner of punish-
ments for his victims. He had some sewed up in the skins of wild
beasts, and then worried by dogs till they expired ; and others dressed in
shirts made stiff with wax, fixed to axletrees, and set on fire in his
garden. This persecution was general throughout the Roman empire;
but it increased rather than diminished the spirit of Christianity.
Besides St. Paul and St. Peter, many others, whose names have not
been transmitted to posterity, and who were mostly their converts and
followers, suffered ; the facts concerning the principal of them we shall
proceed to describe.
Erastus, the chamberlain of Corinth, was converted by St. Paul,
and determined to follow the fortunes of that apostle. He resigned his
office, and accompanied the apostle in his voyages and travels, till the
latter left him in Macedonia, where he was first made bishop of that
province by the Christians. He afterwards suffered martyrdom, being
tortured to death by the pagans at Philippi.
Aristarchus, the Macedonian, was born in Thessalonica, and being-
converted by St. Paul became his constant companion. He was with
the apostle at Ephesus, during a commotion raised in that city by De-
metrius the silversmith. They both received severe insults on the
occasion from the populace, which they bore with christian patience,
giving good advice in return for ill usage, and not in the least resenting
any indignity. Aristarchus accompanied St. Paul from Ephesus into
Greece, where they were very successful in propagating the gospel, and
converting many to Christianity. Having left Greece they traversed a
great part of Asia, and made a considerable stay in Judea, where they
were also very prosperous in making converts. After this Aristarchus
went with St. Paul to Rome, where he suffered the same fate as the apos-
tle ; for being seized as a Christian, he was beheaded by the command
of Nero.
Trophimus, an Ephesian by birth, and a Gentile by religion, was
converted by St. Paul to the christian faith. On his conversion he
accompanied his master in his travels; and on his account the Jews
raised great disturbance in the temple at Jerusalem, the last time St.
Paul was in that city. They even attempted to murder the apostle, for
having introduced a Greek into the temple; such an one being looked
upon by the Jews with detestation. Lysias, the captain of the guard,
however, interposed, and rescued St. Paul by force from the hands of
the Jews. On quitting Jerusalem, Trophimus followed his master to
Rome, and did him very essential service. He then attended him to
Spain, and passing through Gaul, the apostle made him bishop of that
province, and left him in the city of Aries. There he continued about
twelve months, when he paid another visit to St. Paul in Asia, and
went with him for the last time to Rome, where he was witness to the
martyrdom of his master, which was but the fore-runner of his own :
for being soon after seized on account of his faith, he was beheaded by
order of the emperor Nero.
Joseph, commonly called Barsabas, was a primitive disciple, and is
usually deemed one of the seventy. He was, in some degree, related to
the Redeemer ; and he became a candidate, together with Matthias, to
SECOND PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 27
till the vacant place of Judas Iscariot, to which Matthias was elected.
Ecclesiastical writers make very little other mention of Joseph ; but
Papias informs us, that he was once compelled to drink poison, which
did not do him the least injury, agreeably with the promise of the Lord to
those who believe in him. He was during his life a zealous preacher of
the gospel ; and having received many insults from the Jews, at length
obtained martyrdom, being murdered by the pagans in Judea.
Ananias, bishop of Damascus, is celebrated in the sacred writings
as the person who cured St. Paul of the blindness with which he was
struck by the amazing brightness which shone upon him at his conversion.
He was one of the seventy, and was martyred in the city of Damascus.
After his death a christian church was built over the place of his burial,
which is now converted into a Turkish mosque.
ACCOUNT OF THE SECOND PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION.
UNDER THE EMPEROR DOMITIAN.
The emperor Domitian was naturally of a cruel disposition ; he first
slew his brother, and then raised a second persecution against the
Christians. His rage was such, that he even put to death several Ro-
man senators ; some through malice, and others to confiscate their
estates. He then commanded all the lineage of David to be sacrificed
Two Christians were brought before the emperor, and accused of being
of the tribe of Judah, and line of David ; but from their answers, he despis-
ed them as idiots, and dismissed them accordingly. He, however, was de-
termined to be more secure upon other occasions ; and on this plea he
took away the property of many Christians, put several to death, and banish-
ed others. Among the numerous martyrs that suffered during this perse-
cution was Simeon, bishop of Jerusalem/* who was crucified ; and St. John,
who was boiled in oil, and afterwards banished to Patmos. Flavia, the
daughter of a Roman senator, was likewise banished to Pontus ; and a
cruel law was made, '" That no Christian, once brought before the tribunal,
should be exempted from punishment without renouncing his religion."
During this reign there were various tales published in order to
injure the Christians. Among other falsehoods, they were accused of
indecent nightly meetings, of a rebellious turbulent spirit, of being ini-
mical to the Roman empire, of murdering their children, and even of
being cannibals ; and at this time, such was the infatuation of the Pa-
gans, that if famine, pestilence, or earthquakes, afflicted any of the
Roman provinces, it was charged on the Christians. These persecutions
naturally multiplied the number of informers ; and many, for the sake
of gain, swore away the lives of the innocent. When any Christians
were brought before the magistrates, a test was proposed, when, if
they refused to take the oath, death was pronounced against them ;
and if they confessed themselves Christians, the sentence was the same.
The various kinds of punishments and inflicted cruelties were, during
this persecution, imprisonment, racking, searing, broiling, burning,
i A curious anecdote relative to Simeon will be found at the commencement of the third
persecution.
28 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
scourging, stoning, hanging, and worrying. Many were lacerated with
red hot pincers, and others were thrown upon the horns of wild bulls.
After having suffered these cruelties, the friends of the deceased Chris-
tians were refused the privilege of burying their remains.
The following were the most remarkable individual martyrs who
suffered during this persecution.
Dionysius the Areopagite, was an Athenian by birth, and educated
in all the useful and ornamental literature of Greece. He travelled
into Egypt to study astronomy, and made particular observations on the
great supernatural eclipse, which happened at the time of our Saviour's
crucifixion. On his return to Athens he was highly honoured by the
people, and at length promoted to the dignity of senator of that cele-
brated city. Becoming a convert to the gospel, he advanced from the
worthy pagan magistrate to the pious christian pastor ; for even while
involved in the darkness of idolatry, he was as morally just as when he
became a disciple and minister of Christ. After his conversion, the sanc-
tity of his conversation and purity of his manners recommended him so
strongly to the Christians in general, that he was appointed bishop of
Athens. He discharged this duty with the utmost diligence till the
second year of this persecution, A. D. 69, when he was apprehended, and
received the crown of martyrdom, by being beheaded.
Nicomedes, a Christian of distinction at Rome, during Domitian's
persecution, made great efforts to serve the afflicted ; comforting the
poor, visiting the imprisoned, exhorting the wavering, and confirming
the faithful. For those and other pious actions he was seized as a
Christian, and was sentenced and scourged to death.
Protasius and Gervasius were martyred at Milan ; but the particu-
lar circumstances attending their death are not recorded.
Timothy, the celebrated disciple of St. Paul, and bishop of Ephesus,
was born at Lystra in the province of Lycaonia ; his father was a
Gentile, and his mother a Jewess ; but both his parents and his grand-
mother embraced Christianity, by which means Timothy was taught
from his infancy the precepts of the gospel. Upon St. Paul's reaching
Lycaonia, he ordained Timothy, and made him the companion of his
labours. St. Paul mentions him with peculiar esteem, and declares, that
he could find no one so truly united to him, both in heart and mind.
Timothy attended St. Paul to Macedonia, where, together with Silas,
he laboured in the propagation of the gospel. When St. Paul went
to Achaia, Timothy was left behind to strengthen the faith of those
already converted, and induce others to adopt the true faith. St Paul
at length sent for Timothy to Athens, and then despatched him to Thes-
salonica, to protest to the suffering Christians there against the terrors of
the persecution which then prevailed. Having performed his mission,
he returned to Athens, and there assisted St. Paul and Silas in compos-
ing the two epistles to the Thessalonians. He then accompanied the
apostle to Corinth, Jerusalem, and Ephesus. After performing several
of his commissions for him and attending him on various journeys, the
apostle constituted Timothy bishop of Ephesus, though he was only
thirty years of age ; and in two admirable epistles gave him in-
structions for his conduct. Timothy was so temperate in his living,
PLINY'S DEFENCE OF CHRISTIANS. 29
that St. Paul blamed him for being too abstemious, and recommended to
him the moderate use of wine to recruit his strength and spirits.
St. Paul sent to Timothy to come to him in his last confinement at
Rome ; and after that great apostle's martyrdom, he returned to Ephesus,
where he zealously governed the church till nearly the close of the cen-
tury. At this period the Pagans were about to celebrate a feast, the
principal ceremonies of which were, that the people should carry
sticks in their hands, go masked, and bear about the streets the images
of their gods. When Timothy met the procession, he severely reproved
them for their ridiculous idolatry, which so exasperated the people, that
they fell upon him with their clubs, and beat him in so dreadful a man-
ner, that he expired of the bruises two days after.
ACCOUNT OF THE THIRD PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS.
Only one year elapsed between the second and third Roman persecu-
tions. Upon Nerva succeeding Domitian, he gave a respite to the Chris-
tians ; but reigning only thirteen months, his successor Trajan, in the
tenth year of his reign, and in the year 108, began the third persecution
against them. While this persecution raged, Plinius Secundus, a heathen
philosopher, wrote to the emperor in favour of the Christians, 1 " to whose
epistle Trajan returned this indecisive answer: — " That Christians ought
not to be sought after, but when brought before the magistracy they
should be punished." Provoked by this reply, Tertullian exclaimed in
the following words : " O confused sentence ! he would not have them
sought for as innocent men, and yet would have them punished as guilty."
His officers were uncertain, if carried on with severity, how to interpret
the meaning of his decree. Trajan, however, soon after wrote to Jeru-
salem, and gave orders to exterminate the stock of David; in conse-
quence of which, all that could be found of that race were put to death. s
r This second Pliny was one of the most strenuous defenders of the persecuted Christians.
He wrote to Trajan to stop the cruelties exercised against them. He observed in his letter,
that he examined them, " and found some, who, though theij hud embraced Christianity, did
not object to sacrifice to the gods, and to Trajan's image." — " Others," said he, " confessed
they had been Christians, but afterwards denied the fact, affirming to me the whole sum
of that sect or error to consist in this, that they were wont, at certain times appointed, to
convene before day, and to sing certain hymns to one Christ their God, and to confederate
among themselves : to abstain from all thejt, murder, and adultery ; to keep their faith, and
to defraud no man; which done, then to depart for a time, and afterward to resort again to
take food in company together, both men and women, one with another, and yet without
any act of evil.'' "In the truth whereof to be further certified whether it were so or not, /
caused two maidens to be laid on the rack, and with torments to be examined of the same.
But finding no other thing in them, but only strange and immoderate superstition, I thought
to cease of farther inquiry, till I might be further advertised in the matter from you."
8 When the order for extermination arrived at Jerusalem, it appears, according to
Egissippus, that certain sectaries of the Jewish nation accused Simeon, then bishop of
Jerusalem, and son of Cleophas, as being of the stock of David, and that he was a
Christian. Some of his accusers, says Egissippus, were apprehended and proved to be of
the stock of David, and so were justly put to death themselves who sought the destruction
of others. Of Simeon, the blessed bishop, Egissippus thus writes, "The Lord's nephew,
when he was accused to Attalus the pro-consul, by the malice of the Jews, to be of the
line of David, and to be a Christian, was scourged many days together, being of age 120
years; which martyrdom he endured so firmly, that both the consul and the multitude
wondered at the sight.
30 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
About this period the emperor Trajan was succeeded by Adrian, who
continued the persecution with the greatest rigour. When Phocas,
bishop of Pontus, refusing to sacrifice to Neptune, was, by his imme-
diate order, cast first into a hot lime-kiln, and being drawn from thence,
was thrown into a scalding bath till he expired.
Trajan likewise commanded the martyrdom of Ignatius, bishop of
Antioch. This holy man, when an infant, Christ took in his arms, and
showed to his disciples, as one that would be a pattern of humility and
innocence: he received the gospel afterwards from St. John the evan-
gelist, and was exceedingly zealous in his mission and ministry. He
boldly vindicated the faith of Christ before the emperor, for which he
was cast into prison, and was tormented in a cruel manner ; for, after
being dreadfully scourged, he was compelled to hold fire in his hands,
and, at the same time, papers dipped in oil were put to his sides and
lighted ! His flesh was then torn with hot pincers, and at last he was
despatched by the fury of wild beasts.
Ignatius had either presentiment or information of his fate; for
writing to Polycarp at Smyrna, he thus described his adventures;
" From Syria, even till I came to Rome, had I battle with beasts, as
well by sea as land, both day and night, being bound in the midst of a
cruel legion of soldiers who, the more benefits they received at my
hands, behaved so much the worse unto me. But being now well ac-
quainted with their injuries, I am taught every day more and more.
And would to God I were once come to the beasts which are prepared for
me; which also I wish with gaping mouths were ready to come upon
me, whom also I will provoke that they, without delay, may devour me.
And if they will not, unless they be provoked, I will then enforce them
against myself. Now begin I to be a scholar; I esteem no visible
things, not yet invisible things, so that I may get or obtain Christ Jesus.
Let the fire, the gallows, the wild beasts, the breaking of bones, the
pulling asunder of members, the bruising of my whole body, and the
torments of the devil and hell itself come upon me, so that I may win
Christ Jesus!"
Symphhosa, a widow and her seven sons, were commanded by this
emperor to sacrifice to the heathen deities. Refusing to comply with
the impious request, the emperor, in a rage, told her, that for her obsti-
nacy, herself and her sons should be slain, and ordered her to be carried
to the temple of Hercules, where she was scourged while she hung up
by the hair of her head: then a large stone was fastened to her neck,
and she was thrown into a river. The sons were bound to seven posts,
and being drawn up by pulleys, their limbs were dislocated: these
tortures, not affecting their resolution, they were thus martyred —
Cresentius, the eldest, was stabbed in the throat: Julian, the second,
in the breast; Nemesius, the third, in the heart; Primitius, the fourth,
in the navel; Justice, the fifth, in the back; Stacteus, the sixth, in
the side ; and Eugenius, the youngest, was sawed asunder.
About this time, Alexander, bishop of Rome, with his two deacons,
were martyred; as were Quirinus and Hermes, with their families;
DEATH OF ADRIAN. 31
Zenon, a Roman nobleman, and about ten thousand other Christians. 1
Many were crucified on Mount Ararat, crowned with thorns, and
spears run into their sides, in imitation of Christ's passion. Eustachius,
a brave and successful Roman commander, was ordered by the emperor
to join an idolatrous sacrifice, in celebration of some of his own victories;
but his faith was so strong, that he nobly refused it. Enraged at the
denial, the ungrateful emperor forgot the services of this skilful com-
mander, and ordered him and his whole family to be martyred.
During the martyrdom of Faustines and Jovita, brothers and citizens
of Bressia, their torments were so many, and their patience so firm,
that Calocerius, a pagan, beholding them, was struck with admiration,
and exclaimed, in ecstasy, "Great is the God of the Christians!" for
which he was apprehended and put to death. Many other cruelties and
rigours were exercised against the Christians, till Quodratus, bishop of
Athens, made a learned apology in their favour before the emperor, who
happened to be there; and Aristides, a philosopher of the same city,
wrote an elegant epistle, which caused Adrian to relax in his severities,
and relent in their favour. He went so far as to command that no
Christian should be punished on the score of religion or opinion only;
but this gave occasion against them to the Jews and pagans, for then
they began to suborn false witnesses, to accuse them of crimes against
the state.
The history of Nicephorus makes mention of Anthia, a godly woman,
who committed her son Eleutherius to Anicetus, bishop of Rome, to be
brought up in the doctrines of the christian faith. He afterwards
became bishop in Apulia, and was there beheaded with his mother
Anthia. Justus also and Pastor, two brethren, ended their lives in a
city of Spain called Complutum, by an exemplary martyrdom.
Adrian died in the year 138, and was succeeded by Antoninus Pius,
so amiable a monarch, that his people gave him the title of "The Father
of Virtues." Immediately on his accession to the throne, he published
an edict, forbidding further persecution of the Christians, and concluded
it in these words: — " If any hereafter shall vex or trouble the Christians,
having no other cause but that they are such, let the accused be released,
and the accusers be punished." This stopped the persecution, and the
Christians enjoyed a respite from their sufferings during this emperor's
reign, though their enemies took every occasion to do them what
injuries they could. u
1 Florigellus, the author of " Flores Historiarum," affirms that Alexander bishop of
Rome was beheaded seven miles out of the city, in the year 105. Eusebius records no
more of him, but that in the third year of Adrian he ended his life and office, after he had
been bishop ten years. Various miracles are reported of this Alexander, in the canon
legends, and lives of saints. A singular circumstance, well worthy of notice, is mentioned
of him. He is said to have been the founder of holy water, which was mixed with salt, to
purge and purify those on whom it is sprinkled, after receiving the priest's blessing. It is
also believed that he was the first who ordained water to be mixed with wine in the
chalice.
u Adrian died of a bleeding at the nose in the year 129, according to some historians.
He commanded the cessation of the persecutions against the Christians some years before
his death; as is proved by Justin, who quotes his letter to Fuodanus, the pro-consul, in
which he orders that nothing shall be done to the Christians, unless they are complained of
as malefactors acting contrary to law. The piety and goodness of Antoninus were so great,
32 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
ACCOUNT OF THE FOURTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS, WHICH COMMENCED A. D. 162.
Antoninus Pius was succeeded by Marcus Aurelius Antoninus Verus,
who began the fourth persecution, in which many Christians were
martyred, particularly in several parts of Asia, and France. Such
were the cruelties used in this persecution, that many of the spectators
shuddered with horror at the sight, and were astonished at the intrepidity
of the sufferers. Some of the martyrs were obliged to pass, with their
already wounded feet, over thorns, nails, sharp shells, &c. ; others were
scourged till their sinews and veins lay bare ; and after suffering most
excruciating tortures, they were destroyed by the most terrible deaths.
Germanicus, a young and holy Christian, being delivered to the
beasts on account of his faith, behaved with such astonishing courage,
that several pagans became converts to a faith which inspired so much
fortitude. This so enraged others, that they cried he merited death,
as they did also of Polycarp, the pious and venerable bishop of Smyrna.
At the death of Germanicus, many of the multitude wondering at the
beloved martyr for his constancy and virtue, began suddenly to cry with
a loud voice, "Destroy the wicked men, let Polycarp be sought for."
And whilst a great uproar and tumult began to be raised upon these
cries, a certain Phrygian, named Quintus, lately arrived, was so afflicted
at the sight of the wild beasts, -that he rushed to the judgment seat,
and abused the judges, for which he was put to death without mercy
or delay.
Polycarpus hearing that persons were seeking to apprehend him,
escaped, but was discovered by a child. From this circumstance, and
having dreamed that his bed suddenly became on fire, and was consumed
in a moment, he concluded that it was God's will he should suffer
martyrdom. He therefore did not attempt to make a second escape
when he had an opportunity of doing it. Those who apprehended him
were amazed at his serene countenance and gravity. After feasting
them, he desired an hour for prayer, which being allowed, he prayed
with such fervency, that his guards repented they had been instrumental
in taking him. He was, however, carried before the pro-consul, con-
demned, and conducted to the market place. Wood being provided,
the holy man earnestly prayed to Heaven, after being bound to the
stake ; and as the flames grew vehement, the executioners gave way on
each side, the heat becoming intolerable. In the mean time the bishop
sung praises to God in the midst of the flames, but remained uncon-
sumed therein, and the burning of the wood spreading a fragrance
around, the guards were much surprised. Determined, however, to put
an end to his life, they struck spears into his body, when the quantity
that he used to say, that he had rather save one citizen, than destroy one thousand of his
adversaries. At the beginning of his reign, such was the state of the churchy as Adrian his
predecessor had left it, that although there was no edict to persecute the Christians, yet the
tumultuous rage of the heathen multitude did not cease to disturb and afflict the quiet
people of God, imputing to the Christians whatever misfortune happened contrary to their
desires.
MURDER OF A LADY AND HER SONS. 33
of blood that issued from the wounds extinguished the flames. After
considerable attempts, they put him to death, and burnt his body when
dead, not being able to consume it while living. Twelve other Chris-
tians who had been intimate with Polycarp, were soon after martyred. v
Metro do it us, a minister who preached boldly, and Pionius, who
made some excellent apologies for the christian faith, were likewise
burnt. Carpus and Papilus, two worthy Christians, and Agathonica,
a pious woman, suffered martyrdom at Pergamopolis, in Asia, about the
same period.
Felicitas, an illustrious Roman lady of a considerable family, and
great virtues, was a devout Christian. She had seven sons, whom she
had educated with the most exemplary piety. The empire being about
this time grievously troubled with earthquakes, famine, and inunda-
tions, the Christians were accused as the cause, and Felicitas was
included in the accusation. The lady and her family being seized, the
emperor gave orders to Publius, the Roman governor, to proceed against
her. Upon this Publius began with the mother, thinking that if he
could prevail to change her religion, the example would have great
influence with her sons. Finding her inflexible, he changed his
entreaties to menaces, and threatened destruction to herself and fa-
mily. She despised his threats as she had done his promises ; on which
he began with the sons, whom he examined separately. They all, how-
ever, remained steadfast in the faith, and unanimous in their opinions,
on which the whole family were ordered for execution. Januarius, the
eldest, was scourged and pressed to death with weights ; Felix and
Philip, the two next, had their brains dashed out with clubs; Sylvanus,
the fourth, was murdered by being thrown from a precipice ; and the
three younger sons, viz. Alexander, Vitalis, and Mertialis were all behead-
ed. The mother was beheaded with the same sword as the three latter.
Justin, the celebrated philosopher, fell a martyr in this persecution.
He was a native of Neapolis, in Samaria, and was born A. D. 103.
He had the best education the times could afford, and travelled into
Egypt, the country where the polite tour of that age was made for im-
provement. At Alexandria he was informed of every thing relative to
the seventy interpreters of the sacred writings, and shewn the rooms, or
rather cells, in which their work was performed. Justin was a great
lover of truth, and an universal scholar ; he investigated the Stoic and
Peripatetic philosophy, and attempted the Pythagorean system ; but the
behaviour of one of its professors disgusting him, he applied himself to
the Platonic, in which he took great delight. About the year 133, when
he was thirty years of age, he became a convert to Christianity. Justin
wrote an elegant epistle to the Gentiles, to convert them to the faith he
v The ancient historians assert, that this extraordinary event had such an effect upon the
people that they began to adore the martyr ; and the pro-consul was admonished not to
deliver the body, lest the people should leave Christ and begin to worship him. It appears
from the accounts of Ireneus and Eusebius, that Polycarp was a very aged man, who had
served Christ eighty-six years, and laboured also in the ministry about the space of seventy
years. He was a scholar and hearer of John the evangelist, and was placed by him in
Smyrna. Of him also Ignatius makes mention in his epistle which he wrote in his journey
to Rome, going towards his martyrdom, and commends to him the government of the church
at Antioch, whereby it appears that Polycarp was then in the ministry.
D
34 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
had newly acquired, and lived in so pure and innocent a manner, that
he well deserved the title of a christian philosopher. He likewise em-
ployed his talents in convincing the Jews of the truth of the christian
rites, and spent much time in travelling, till he took up his abode in
Rome, and fixed his habitation on the Veminal mount. He kept a pub-
lic school, taught many who afterwards became great men, and wrote
a treatise to confute heresies of all kinds. As the pagans began to treat
the Christians with great severity, Justin wrote his first apology in their
favour, and addressed it to the emperor Antoninus, to two princes whom
he had adopted as his sons, and to the senate and people of Rome in
general. This piece, which occasioned the emperor to publish an edict
in favour of the Christians, displays great learning and genius.
A short time after, he entered into frequent contests with Crescens, a
person of a vicious life, but a celebrated cynic philosopher ; and his ar-
guments appeared so powerful, yet disgusting to the cynic, that he re-
solved on his destruction, which in the sequel he accomplished. The
second apology of Justin was occasioned by the following circumstances :
a man and his wife who were both evil characters, resided at Rome.
The woman, however, becoming a convert to Christianity, attempted to
reclaim her husband ; but not succeeding, she sued for a divorce, which
so exasperated him, that he acccused her of being a Christian. Upon
her petition, he dropped the prosecution and levelled his malice against
Ptolemeus, who had converted her. Ptolemeus was condemned to die ;
and one Lucius, with another person, for expressing themselves too freely
upon the occasion, met with the same fate. Justin's apology upon these
severities gave Crescens an opportunity of prejudicing the emperor
against the writer of it ; upon which Justin and six of his companions
were apprehended. Being commanded as usual to deny their faith, and
sacrifice to the pagan idols, they refused to do either ; they were, there-
fore, condemned to be first scourged and then beheaded.
It appears that only seven pieces of the writings of this celebrated
martyr, and great philosopher, are now extant, viz : The Two Apologies;
An Exhortation to the Gentiles ; An Oration to the Greeks ; A Treatise
on Divine Monarchy ; A Dialogue withTrypho the Jew; and An Epistle
to Diagnetus. His Oratio, and Parcenesis ad Grecos, are well known.
About this time many were beheaded for refusing to sacrifice to the
image of Jupiter: in particular Concordus, a deacon of the city of
Spoleto, being carried before the image, and ordered to worship it, not
only refused, but spat in its face; for which he was severely tormented,
and afterwards had his head cut off with a sword.
At this time some of the northern nations having armed against Rome,
the emperor marched to encounter them ; he was, however, drawn into
an ambuscade, and dreaded the loss of his whole army. Surrounded by
mountains and enemies, and perishing with thirst, the troops were driven
to the last extremity. All the pagan deities were invoked in vain ; when
the men belonging to the militine, or thundering legion, who were nearly
all Christians, were commanded to call upon God for succour: they
immediately withdrew from the rest, prostrated themselves upon the earth,
and prayed fervently. A miraculous deliverance immediately ensued : a
prodigious quantity of rain fell, which being caught by the men, and
CONVERSION OF AN ARMY. 35
filling the dykes, furnished a sudden and astonishing relief. The empe-
ror, in his epistle to the Roman senate, wherein the expedition is describ-
ed, after mentioning the difficulties to which he had been driven, speaks
of the Christians in the following manner.
" When I saw myself notable to encounter with the enemies, I craved
aid of our nation's gods; but finding no relief at their hands, and being-
cooped up by the enemy, I caused those men whom we call Christians,
to be sent for ; who being mustered, I found a considerable number of
them, against whom I was more incensed than I had just cause, as I
afterwards found : for, by a marvellous power, they forthwith used their
endeavours, not with ammunition, drums, and trumpets, abhorring such
preparations and furniture, but only praying to, and trusting in their
God, whom they carry about with them in their consciences. It is there-
fore to be believed, although we call them wicked men, that they worship
God in their hearts ; for they, falling prostrate on the ground, prayed,
not only for me, but for the army also which was with me, beseeching
God to help me in our extreme want of food and fresh water (for
we had been five days without water, and in our enemies land, even
in the midst of Germany) : I say, falling upon their faces, they prayed
to a God unknown to me, and immediately thereon fell from heaven
a most cool and pleasant shower ; but amongst our enemies great store of
hail, mixed with thunder and lightning : so that we soon perceived the
invincible aid of the most mighty God to be with us ; therefore we give
these men leave to profess Christianity, lest, by their prayers, we be pu-
nished by the like : and I thereby make myself the author of all the
evil that shall arise from the persecution of the Christian religion. " w
It appears that the storm which so miraculously flashed in the faces
of the enemy so intimidated them, that part deserted to the Roman
army, the rest were defeated, and the revolted provinces were entirely
recovered. This affair occasioned the persecution to subside for some
time, at least in those parts immediately under the inspection of the
emperor ; for we find that it soon after raged in France, particularly at
Lyons, where the torture, to which many Christians were put, almost
exceeds the powers of description. All manner of punishments were
adopted, torments, and painful deaths ; such as being banished,
plundered, hanged, burnt. Even the servants and slaves of opulent
Christians were racked and tortured, to make them accuse their
masters and employers. The following were the principal of these
martyrs : Vetius Agathus, a young man, who having pleaded the Chris-
tian cause, was asked if he was a Christian ; when answering in the
affirmative, he was condemned to death. Many, animated by this
young man's intrepidity, boldly owned their faith and suffered like him.
Blandina, a Christian, but of weak constitution, being seized and tor-
tured on account of her religion, received so much strength from Hea-
ven, that her torturers became frequently tired ; and were surprised at
her being able to bear her torments for so great a length of time, and
with such resolution. Sanctus, a deacon of Vienna, was put to the
w Marcus Aurelius, in this letter, states his army tc have consisted of 975,000
fighting men ; but this must be a prodigious overstatement.
36 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
torture, which he bore with great fortitude, and only cried. " I am a
Christian." Red hot plates of brass were placed upon those parts of
the body that were tenderest, which contracted the sinews ; but remain-
ing inflexible, he was re-conducted to prison. Being brought from
his place of confinement a few days afterwards, his tormentors were
astonished to find his wounds healed, and his person perfect : however
they again proceeded to torture him ; but not being able, at that time
to take his life, they remanded him to prison, where he remained for
some time, and was at length beheaded. Biblias, a timid woman,
had been an apostate, but having returned to the faith, was martyred,
and bore her sufferings with great patience * Attalus, of Pergamus, was
another sufferer ; and Pothinus, the venerable bishop of Lyons, who was
ninety years of age, was so treated by the enraged mob, that he expired
*wo days after their outrage in the prison.
At Lyons, exclusive of those already mentioned, the martyrs were
compelled to sit in hot iron chairs till their flesh broiled. This was
inflicted with peculiar seventy on Sanctus, already mentioned, and some
others. Some were sown up in nets, and thrown on the horns of wild
bulls ; and the carcases of those who died in prison, previous to the
appointed time of execution, were thrown to dogs. Indeed, so far did
the malice of the pagans proceed, that they set guards over the bodies
while the beasts were devouring them, lest the friends of the deceased
should get them by stealth; and the offals left by the dogs were ordered
to be burnt. The martyrs of Lyons are said to have been forty-eight
in number, and their executions happened in the year of Christ, 177.
They all died with great fortitude, glorifying God and the Redeemer.
Besides the above martyrs of Lyons, whom Mr. Fox enumerated
together, many others suffered in that city, and different parts of the
empire, soon after. Of these the principal were, Epipodius and Alex-
ander, celebrated for their great friendship, and their christian union.
The former was born at Lyons, the latter in Greece ; they were of
great assistance to each other, by the continual practice of all manner
of christian virtues and godliness. At the time the persecution began to
rage at Lyons, they were in the prime of life, and to avoid its severities,
they thought proper to withdraw to a neighbouring village. Here they
were, for some time, concealed by a christian widow, named Alice. But
the rage of their persecutors sought after them with indefatigable in-
dustry, and pursued them to their place of concealment, whence they
were committed to prison without examination. At the expiration of
three days, being brought before the governor, they were examined in
the presence of a crowd of heathens, when they confessed the divinity
of Christ; on which the governor, being enraged at what he termed their
insolence, said, " What signifies all the former executions, if some yet
remain who dare acknowledge Christ!"
They were then separated, that they should not condole with each
other, and he began to tamper with Epipodius, the younger of the two.
He pretended to pity his condition, and entreated him not to ruin him-
self by obstinacy. " Our deities," continued he, " are worshipped by
the greater part of the people in the universe, and their rulers ; we adore
them with feasting and mirth, while you adore a crucified man : we, to
SHOCKING DEATH OF EPIPODIUS. 37
honour them, launch into pleasures ; you, by your faith, are debarred
from all that indulges the senses. Our religion enjoins feasting-, your's
tasting ; our's the joys of licentious blandishments, your's the barren
virtue of chastity. Can you expect protection from one who could
not secure himself from the persecutions of a contemptible mob? Then
quit a profession of such austerity, and enjoy those gratifications
which the world affords, and which your youthful years demand."
Epipodius, in reply, contemning his compassion, said, " Your pre-
tended tenderness is actual cruelty ; and the agreeable life you describe
is replete with everlasting death. Christ suffered for us, that our
pleasures should be immortal, and hath prepared for his followers an
eternity of bliss. The frame of man being composed of two parts, body
and soul ; the first as mean and perishable, should be rendered subser-
vient to the latter. Your idolatrous feasts may gratify the mortal, but
they injure the immortal part : that cannot, therefore, be enjoying life
which destroys the most valuable moiety of your frame. Your pleasures
lead to eternal death, and our pains to eternal happiness."
For this admirable speech, Epipodius was severely beaten, and then
put to the rack; upon which being stretched, his flesh was torn with iron
hooks. Having borne his torments with incredible patience and forti-
tude, he was taken from the rack and beheaded. Alexander, his compa-
nion, was brought before the judge two days after his friend's execution;
and on his absolute refusal to renounce Christianity, he was placed on the
rack and beaten by three executioners, who relieved each other. He
bore his sufferings with as much fortitude as his friend had done, and
the next day was crucified. These martyrs suffered A. D. 179; the
first on the 20th of April, and the other in three days after.
Valerian and Marcellus, who were nearly related to each other, were
imprisoned at Lyons, in the year 177, for being Christians. By some
means, however, they made their escape, and travelled different roads.
The latter made several converts in the territories of Besanc.on and
Chalons; but being apprehended, was carried before Priscus, the go-
vernor of those parts. This magistrate, knowing Marcellus to be a
Christian, ordered him to be fastened to some branches of a tree, v/hich
were drawn for that purpose. When he was tied to different branches,
they were let go, with a design to tear him to pieces by the suddenness
of the rebound. This invention failing, he was conducted to Chalons,
to be present at some idolatrous sacrifices, refusing to assist in them,
he was put to the torture, and afterwards fixed up to the neck in the
ground, in which position he expired, A. D. 179, after remaining three
days. Valerian was also apprehended, and, by the order of Priscus,
was first brought to the rack, and then beheaded in the same year as
his relation Marcellus.
About the same time the following martyrs suffered: Benignus, at
Dijon; Spensippus, and others, at Langres; Androches, Thyrseus, and
Felix, at Salieu; Sympoviam and Florella, at Antun; Severinus, Feli-
cian, and Exuperus, at Vienna; Cecilia, the virgin, at Sicily; and
Thrasus, bishop of Phrygia, at Smyrna.
In the year 180 the emperor Antoninus died, and was succeeded by
his son Commodus, who did not imitate his father in any respect. He
38 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
had neither his virtues nor his vices ; he was without his learning and
his morality, and at the same time without his prejudices against Chris-
tianity. His principal weakness was pride, and to that may be chiefly
ascribed the errors of his reign; for having fancied himself Hercules,
he sacrificed those of every creed to his vanity, who refused to subscribe
to his own absurd opinions.
In this reign Apollonius, a Roman senator, became a martyr. This
eminent person was skilled in all the polite literature of those times,
and in all the purest precepts taught by the blessed Redeemer. He
was accused by his own slave Severus, upon an unjust and contradictory,
but unrepealed edict of the emperor Trajan. This law condemned
the accused to die, unless he recanted his opinion; and at the same
time ordered the execution of the accuser for slander. Apollonius,
upon this ridiculous statute was accused ; for though his slave Severus
knew he must die for the accusation, yet such was his diabolical malice
and desire of revenge, that he courted death in order to involve his
master in the same destruction. As Apollonius refused to recant his
opinions, he was, by order of his peers the Roman senators, to whom
he had appealed, condemned to be beheaded. The sentence was exe-
cuted on the 18th day of April, A. D. 186, his accuser having previ-
ously had his legs broken, and been put to death.
About this time succeeded Anicetus, Soter, and Eleutherus, about
the year of our Lord 189. This Eleutherus, at the request of Lucius,
King of Britain, sent to him Damianus and Fugatius, by whom the king
was converted to the christian faith, and baptized about the year 179.
Eusebius, Vincentius, Potentianus, and Peregrinus, for refusing to
worship Commodus as Hercules, were likewise martyred."
x This Commodus is said in history to have been so sure and steady-handed in casting
the dart, that in the open theatre, before the people, he would encounter with the wild
beasts, and be certain of striking them in the place specified. Among his vicious qualities,
he was so far overcome in pride and arrogance, that he would be called Hercules, and many
times would shew himself to the people, wishing to be counted king of men, as the lion is of
beasts. Once on his birth-day, Commodus calling the people of Rome together, having
his lion's skin upon him, made sacrifice to Hercules and Jupiter, causing it to be cried
through the city that Hercules was the patron and defender of the city. There was at
the same time at Rome, Vincentius, Eusebius, Peregrinus, and Potentianus, learned men,
and instructors of the people, who, following the steps of the apostles, went from place to
place, where the gospel was not yet preached, converting the Gentiles to the faith of Christ.
These, hearing the madness of the emperor and the people, began to reprove their
idolatrous blindness; and while teaching in some villages and towns, they discovered and
converted the senator Julius. Vide Vincentius, lib. 10. cap. 11. and Chron. Henr. de
Erfordia.
About the time of Commodus, among other learned men and famous teachers whom
God stirred up to confound the persecutors by learning and writing, as the martyrs to con-
firm the truth with their blood, was Seraphion, bishop of Antioch, and Egissippus a writer
of Ecclesiastical History from Christ's passion to his time. About the same time Heraclitus,
first began to write annotations upon the New Testament. Theophilus bishop of Cesarea,
Dionysius bishop of Corinth, a man famously learned, also wrote divers epistles to churches.
By the letters of Dionysius, we understand it to be the custom at that time, to read in the
churches such written epistles as were sent by bishops and teachers to the congregations, as
appears by these words to the church of the Romans and to Soter, " This day we celebrate
the holy dominical day, in which we have read your epistle, which also we will read
for our exhortation ; like as we do read the epistle of Clement sent to us before." By
him also mention is made of keeping of Sunday holy, of which we find no mention in
FIFTH GENERAL PERSECUTION. 39
Julius, a Roman senator, becoming a convert to Christianity, was
ordered by the emperor to sacrifice to him as Hercules. This Julius
absolutely refused, and publicly professed himself a Christian. On this
account, after remaining in prison a considerable time, he was in the
year 190, pursuant to his sentence, beat to death with a club.
ACCOUNT OF THE FIFTH GENERAL PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS.
In the year 191, the emperor Commodus dying, was succeeded by
Pertinax, and he was succeeded by Julianus, both of whom reigned
but a short time. On the death of the latter, Severus became emperor
in the year 192. When he had been recovered from a severe fit of sick-
ness by a Christian, he became a great favourer of Christians generally
and even permitted his son Caracalla to be nursed by a female of that
persuasion. Hence, during the reigns of the emperors who successively
succeeded Commodus, and some years of his reign, the Christians had
a respite for several years from persecution. But the prejudice and fury
of the ignorant multitude again prevailed, and the obsolete laws were
put in execution against them. The pagans were alarmed at the progress
of Christianity, and revived the calumny of placing incidental misfor-
tunes to the account of its professors. Fire, sword, wild beasts, and
imprisonments, were resorted to, and even the dead bodies of Christians
were torn from their graves, and submitted to every insult: yet the
gospel withstood the attacks of its barbarous enemies. Tertullian, who
lived in this age, informs us, that if the Christians had collectively with-
drawn themselves from the Roman territories, the empire would have been
greatly depopulated.
Victor, bishop of Rome, suffered martyrdom in the first year of the
third century, viz. A. D. 201, though the circumstances are not ascer-
tained.
Leonidas, the father of the celebrated Origen, was beheaded for being
a Christian. Previous to the execution, his son, in order to encourage
him, wrote to him in these remarkable words : " Beware, Sir, that your
care for us does not make you change your resolution." Many of Ori-
gen's hearers likewise suffered martyrdom ; particularly two brothers,
named Plutarchus and Serenus : another Serenus, Heron, and Heraclides
were beheaded. Rhais had boiling pitch poured upon her head, and was
then burnt. Marcella her mother, and Potamiena her sister, were exe-
cuted in the same manner as Rhais. Basilides, an officer belonging to
the army, who was ordered to attend their execution, became a convert
on witnessing their fortitude. When Basilides, as an officer, was
required to take a certain oath, he refused, saying, that he could not
ancient authors before his time, except only in Justin the martyr, who in his description
declares on two occasions especially used for Christians to congregate together: — first, when
any convert was to be baptized, the second was upon the Sunday, which was wont for two
causes then to be hallowed: first, because upon that day God began the creation;
secondly, because Christ upon that day first shewed himself, after his resurrection, to his
disciples.
40 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
swear by the Roman idols, as he was a Christian. The people could not
at first believe what they heard ; but he had no sooner confirmed his
assertion, than he was dragged before the judge, committed to prison,
and beheaded immediately.
Irenseus, bishop of Lyons, was born in Greece, and received a chris-
tian education. It is generally supposed, that the account of the per-
secution at Lyons was written by him. He succeeded the martyr
Pothinus as bishop of Lyons, and ruled his diocese with great propriety ;
he was a zealous opposer of heresies in general, and wrote a celebrated
tract against heresy, which had great influence at the time. Victor,
the bishop of Rome, wanting to impose a particular mode of keeping
Easter there, it occasioned some disorder amongst the Christians.
In particular, Irenaeus wrote him a synodical epistle in the name of
the Gallic churches. This zeal, in favour of Christianity, pointed him
out as an object of resentment to the emperor ; and he was accordingly
beheaded in A. D. 202.
The persecutions about this time extended to Africa, and many were
martyred in that part of the globe ; the principal of whom was
Perpetua, a married lady of about twenty-six years of age, with an
infant child at her breast. She was seized for being a Christian. Her
father, who tenderly loved her, went to console her during her confine-
ment, and attempted to persuade her to renounce Christianity. Perpe-
tua, however, resisted every entreaty. This resolution so much incensed
her father, that he beat her severely, and did not visit her for some days
after ; and, in the mean time, she and some others who were confined
were baptised, as they were before only catechumens. On being carried
before the pro-consul Minutius, she was commanded to sacrifice to the
idols: refusing, she was ordered to a dark dungeon, and deprived of
her child. Two deacons, however, Tertius and Pomponius, who had
the care of persecuted Christians, allowed her some hours daily to inhale
the fresh air, during which time she had the satisfaction of being allowed
to nourish her infant. Foreseeing that she should not long be permitted
to take care of it, she recommended it strongly to her mother's attention.
Her father at length paid her a second visit, and again entreated her to
renounce Christianity. His behaviour was now all tenderness and
humanity; but inflexible to all human influence, she knew she must
leave every thing for Christ's sake; and she only said to him, " God's
will must be done." He then, with an almost bursting heart,left her to
her fate.
Perpetua gave the strongest proof of fortitude and strength of mind
on her trial. The judge entreated her to consider her father's tears, her
infant's helplessness, and her own life; but triumphing over all the sen-
timents of nature, she forgot the thought of both mental and corporeal
pain, and determined to sacrifice all the feelings of human sensibility,
to that immortality offered by Christ. In vain did they attempt to per-
suade her that their offers were gentle, and her own religion otherwise.
Aware that she must die, her father's parental tenderness returned, and
in his anxiety he attempted to carry her off, on which he received a severe
blow from one of the officers. Irritated at this, the daughter immedi-
ately declared, that she felt that blow more severely than if she had re-
CRIMES ALLEGED AGAINST CHRISTIANS. 41
ceived it herself. Being conducted back to prison, she waited for exe-
cution, when several other persons were to be executed' with her ; of these
wore Felicitas, a married Christian lady, who was with child at the time
of her trial. The procurator, when he examined her, entreated her to
have pity upon herself and her condition; but she replied, that his com-
passion was useless, for no thought of self-preservation could induce her
to any idolatrous proposition. She was delivered in prison of a girl,
which was adopted by a christian woman as her own.
Revocatus was a catechumen of Carthage, and a slave. The names
of the other prisoners who were to suffer upon this occasion, were Satur,
Saturninus, and Secundulus. When the day of execution arrived, they
were led to the amphitheatre. Satur, Saturninus, and Revocatus, having
the fortitude to denounce God's judgments upon their persecutors, they
were ordered to run the gauntlet between the hunters, such as had the
care of the wild beasts. The hunters being drawn up in two ranks,
they ran between, and as they passed were severely lashed. Felicitas and
Perpetua were about to be stripped, in order to be thrown to a beast ;
but some of the spectators, through decency, desired that they might
remain as they were clothed, which request was granted. The beast
made his first attack upon Perpetua, and stunned her ; he then attacked
Felicitas, and wounded her much ; but not killing them, the executioner
did that office with a sword. Revocatus and Satur were destroyed in
the same manner; Saturninus was beheaded; and Secundulus died in
prison. These executions took place in the month of March, A. D. 205.
The crimes and false accusations laid against the Christians at this
time, were sedition and rebellion against the emperor, sacrilege, murder
of infants, incestuous pollution, eating raw flesh, libidinous converse,
for which the people called gnostici were disgraced. It was objected
against them that they worshipped the head of an ass, a report pro-
pagated by the Jews. They were charged also with worshipping the
sun, because before the sun rose, they met together, singing their
morning hymns to the Lord, and because they prayed together towards
the east; but particularly because they would not with them worship
the idolatrous gods of their adversaries. J
Seperatus, and twelve others, were likewise beheaded ; as was An-
droclus in France. Asclepiades, bishop of Antioch, suffered many tor-
tures, but was spared his life. Cecilia, a young lady of a good family
in Rome, was married to a gentleman named Valerian. Being a Chris-
tian herself, she soon persuaded her husband to embrace the same faith;
and his conversion was speedily followed by that of Tibertius his brother.
This information drew upon them all the vengeance of the laws ; the two
brothers were beheaded ; and the officer who led them to execution
becoming their convert, suffered in a similar manner. When the lady
was apprehended, she was doomed to death in the following manner :
she was placed in a scalding bath, and having remained there a con-
siderable time, her head was stuck off with a sword, A. D. 222.
y According to Tertullian, the captains and presidents of the persecution under the
emperor Severus, were Hilerianus, Vigellius, Claudius, Hermianus, ruler of Cappadocia,
Cecilius, Capella, Vespronius, also Demetrius, mentioned by Cyprian, and Aquila, judge
of Alexandria, of whom Eusebius, in his 6th book, gives a particular account.
42 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Calistus, bishop of Rome, was martyred A. D. 224; but the manner
of his death is not recorded: and in A. D. 232, Urban, bishop of
Rome, met the same fate. Agapetus, a boy of Praeneste, in Italy, who
was only fifteen years of age, refusing to sacrifice to the idols, was
severely scourged and then hanged up by the feet, and boiling water
poured over him. He was afterwards worried by wild beasts, and at
last beheaded. The officer, named Antiochus, who superintended this
execution, while it was performing, fell suddenly from his judicial seat,
and cried out in extreme agony from sudden disease !
ACCOUNT OF THE SIXTH GENERAL PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS.
Maximus, who was emperor in A. D. 235, raised a persecution against
the Christians; and in Cappadocia, the president Semiramus, made great
efforts to exterminate the Christians from that kingdom. A Roman
soldier, who refused to wear a laurel crown bestowed on him by the
emperor, and confessed himself a Christian, was scourged, imprisoned,
and put to death. Pontianus, bishop of Rome, for preaching against
idolatry, was banished to Sardinia, and there destroyed. Anteros, a
Grecian, who succeeded this bishop in the see of Rome, g'ave so much
offence to the government by collecting the acts of the martyrs, that,
he suffered martyrdom, after having held his dignity only forty days.
Pammachius, a Roman senator, with his family and other Christians,
to the number of forty-two, were, on account of their religion, all
beheaded in one day, and their heads fixed on the city gates.
Simplicius, another senator, suffered martyrdom in a similar way.
Calepodius, a christian minister, after being inhumanly treated, and
barbarously dragged about the streets, was thrown into the river
Tiber with a mill-stone fastened about his neck. Quiritus, a Roman
nobleman, with his family and domestics, were, on account of their
christian principles, put to most excruciating torture, and then the
most painful death. This nobleman suffered the confiscation of his
effects, poverty, reviling, imprisonment, scourging, torture, and loss of
life, for the sake of his Redeemer. Martina, a noble and beautiful
virgin, suffered martyrdom for Christ, being variously tortured, and
afterwards beheaded ; and Hippolitus, a christian prelate, was tied to a
wild horse, and dragged through fields, stony places, and brambles, till
he died.
While this persecution continued, numerous Christians were slain
without trial, and buried in indiscriminate heaps: sometimes fifty or
sixty being cast into a pit together. Maximus, died in A. D. 238; he
was succeeded by Gordian, during whose reign, and that of his successor
Philip, the church was free from persecution for the space of more than
ten years; but in the year 249, a violent persecution broke out in Alex-
andria. It is, however, worthy of remark, that this was done at the
instigation of a pagan priest, without the emperor's knowledge. At this
time the fury of the people being great against the Christians, they
broke open their houses, stole the ljest of* their property, destroyed the
PERSECUTIONS UNDER DEC1US. 43
rest, and murdered the owners; the universal cry was, "Burn them,
burn them! kill them, kill them!" The names of the martyrs, three
excepted, and the particulars of this affair, however, have not been
recorded. The three martyrs known were, Metus, an aged and
venerable Christian, who refusing to blaspheme his Saviour, was beaten
with clubs, pierced with sharp reeds, and at length stoned to death.
Quinta, a christian woman, being carried to the temple, and refusing to
worship the idols there, was dragged by her feet over sharp stones,
scourged with whips, and at last killed in the same manner as
Metus. And Appollonia, an ancient maiden lady, confessing herself a
Christian, the mob dashed out her teeth with their fists, and threatened
to burn her alive. A fire was accordingly prepared for the purpose,
and she was fastened to a stake: requesting to be unloosed, it was
done, on a supposition that she meant to recant, when, to their
astonishment , she immediately threw herself into the flames and was
consumed.
ACCOUNT OF THE SEVENTH GENERAL PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS.
In the year 249, Decius being emperor of Rome, a dreadful persecu-
tion was begun against the Christians. This was occasioned partly by
the hatred he bore to his predecessor Philip, who was deemed a Chris-
tian, and partly by his jealousy concerning the amazing progress of
Christianity ; for the heathen temples were almost forsaken, and the
Christian churches crowded with proselytes. Decius, provoked at this,
attempted, as he said, to extirpate the name of Christian; and, unfor-
tunately for the cause of the gospel, many errors had about this time
crept into the church : the Christians were at variance with each other,
and a variety of contentions ensued among them. The heathens in
general were ambitious to enforce the imperial decrees upon this occa-
sion, and looked upon the murder of a Christian as a merit to be
coveted. The martyrs were, therefore, innumerable. Fabian, bishop
of Rome, was the first person of eminence who felt the severity of this
persecution. The deceased emperor, Philip, had, on account of his
integrity, committed his treasure to the care of this good man; bul
Decius, not finding so much as his avarice led him to expect, determined
to wreak his vengeance on the good prelate. He was accordingly
seized, and on the 20th of January, A. D. 250, suffered martyrdom, by
decapitation. Abdon and Semen, two Persians, were apprehended as
strangers; but being found Christians, were put to death, on account of
their faith. Moyses, a priest, was beheaded for the same reason.
Julian, a native of Celicia, as we are informed by St. Chrysostom, was
seized for being a Christian. He was frequently tortured, but still
remained inflexible; and though often brought from prison for execution,
was again remanded, to suffer greater cruelties. He, at length, was
obliged to travel for twelve months together, from town to town, that
he might be exposed to the insults of the populace.
When all endeavours to make him recant his religion were found
ineffectual, he was brought before a judge, stripped, and whipped in a
44 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
dreadful manner. He was then put into a leathern bag, with a number
of serpents and scorpions; and in that condition thrown into the
sea. Peter, a young man, amiable for the superior qualities of his
body and mind, was apprehended for being a Christian, at Lampsacus,
on the Hellespont, and carried before Optimus, pro-consul of Asia. On
being commanded to sacrifice to Venus, he said, " I am astonished that
you should wish me to sacrifice to an infamous woman, whose de-
baucheries even your own historians record, and whose life consisted of
such actions as your laws would punish. No ! I shall offer the true God
the sacrifice of praise and prayer."
Optimus, on hearing this, ordered the prisoner to be stretched upon
a wheel, by which his bones were broken in a shocking manner; but
his torments only inspired him with fresh courage; he smiled on his
persecutors, and seemed, by the serenity of his countenance, not to
upbraid, but to applaud his tormentors. At length the pro-consul or-
dered him to be beheaded, and the command was immediately executed.
Nichomachus, being brought before the pro-consul as a Christian, was
ordered to sacrifice to the pagan idols. He answered, "I cannot pay
that respect to devils which is due only to the Almighty." The speech
so enraged the pro-consul, that Nichomachus was put to the rack.
He bore the torture for some time with patience and great resolution;
but, at length, when ready to expire with pain, he had the weakness to
abjure his faith, and become an apostate. He had no sooner given this
proof of his frailty than he fell into the greatest agonies, dropped down,
and expired immediately.
Denisa, a young woman, only sixteen years of age, who beheld this
signal judgment, suddenly exclaimed; " O, unhappy wretch, why
would you buy a moment's ease, at the expense of a miserable eternity;"
Optimus hearing this, called to her, and asked if she was a Christian?
She replied in the affirmative; and being commanded to sacrifice to the
idols, refused. Optimus enraged at her resolution, gave her over to two
libertines, who took her to their own home, and would have ruined
her, but for her astonishing courage. At midnight they were appalled
by a frightful vision, when both of them fell at the feet of Denisa, and
implored her prayers that they might not feel the effects of divine ven-
geance for their brutality. But this event did not diminish the cruelty
of Optimus; for the lady was beheaded soon after by his command.
Andrew and Paul, two companions of Nichomachus the martyr, on
confessing themselves Christians, were condemned to die, and delivered
to the multitude to be stoned. Accordingly, A. D. 251, they suffered
martyrdom by stoning, and expired, calling on the blessed Redeemer.
Alexander and Empimacus, of Alexandria, were apprehended for being
Christians, and on confessing the accusation, were beat with staves,
torn with hooks, and at length burnt. We are informed by Eusebius,
that four female martyrs suffered on the same day, and at the same place,
but not in the same manner ; for these were beheaded. Lucian and
Marcian, two pagans and magicians, becoming converts to Christianity,
to make amends for their former errors, adopted the life of hermits, and
subsisted upon bread and water. After spending some time in this
manner, they reflected that their life was inefficacious, and determined
CRUELTIES IN GREECE, &c. 45
to leave their solitude to make converts to Christianity. With this
pious and laudable resolution they became zealous preachers. Per-
secution, however, raging at the time, they were seized upon, and
eanied before Sabinus, governor of Bithynia. On being asked by
what authority they took upon themselves to preach, Lucian answered
"That the law of charity and humanity obliged all men to endeavour to
convert their neighbours, and to do every thing in their power to rescue
them from the snares of the devil." Marcian said, "Their conver-
sion was by the same grace which was given to St. Paul, who, from
a zealous persecutor of the church, became a preacher of the gospel."
When the pro-consul found that he could not prevail on them to
renounce their faith, he condemned them to be burnt alive, and the
sentence was soon after executed.
Trypho and Respieius, two eminent men, were seized as Christians,
and imprisoned at Nice. They were soon after put to the rack, which
they bore with admirable patience for three hours, and uttered the praises
of the Almighty the whole time. They were then exposed naked in the
open air, which benumbed all their limbs. When remanded to prison,
they remained there for a considerable time ; and then the cruelties of
their persecutors were again evinced. Their feet were pierced with
nails; they were dragged through the streets, scourged, torn with hooks,
scorched with lighted torches, and at length beheaded, on the 1st of
February, A. D. 251.
Agatha, a Sicilian lady, was remarkable for her beauty and endow-
ments: the former was so great that Quintain, governor of Sicily,
became enamoured of her, and made many attempts upon her virtue.
The governor being known as a great libertine and a bigoted pagan,
the lady thought proper to withdraw from the town ; but being discovered
in her retreat, she was apprehended and brought to Catana, when,
finding herself in the power of an enemy both to her soul and body,
she recommended herself to the protection of the Almighty, and prayed
for death. In order if possible to gratify his passion, the governor
transferred the virtuous lady to Aphroclica, an infamous and licentious
woman, who tried every artifice to win her to prostitution; but all her
efforts were in vain. When Aphrodica acquainted Quintain with the
inefficacy of her endeavours, he changed his desire into resentment, and,
on her confessing that she was a Christian, he determined to gratify his
revenge. He therefore ordered her to be scourged, burnt with hot irons,
and torn with sharp hooks. Having borne these torments, with admira-
ble fortitude, she was next laid upon live coals, intermingled with
glass, and being carried back to prison, she there expired on the 5th
of February, A. D. 251.
Cyril, bishop of Gortyna, was seized by order of Lucius, the governor
of that place, who first exhorted him to obey the imperial mandate,
offer sacrifice to idols, and save his venerable person from destruction ;
for he was then eighty-four years of age. The good prelate replied,
that he could not agree to any such requisitions ; but as he had long
taught others to save their souls, now he should only think of his
own salvation. When the governor found all his persuasion in vain, he
pronounced sentence against the venerable Christian in these words —
46 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
" I order that Cyril, who has lost his senses, and is a declared enemy of
our gods, shall be burnt alive." The good and worthy prelate heard this
sentence without emotion, walked cheerfully to the place of execution,
and underwent his martyrdom with a resolution which astonished all,
and converted some.
In the island of Crete persecution raged with great fury: the go-
vernor being exceedingly active in executing the imperial decrees, that
place streamed with the blood of many Christians. The principal
Cretan martyrs whose names have been transmitted to us, are these —
Theodulus, Saturnius, and Europus, inhabitants of Gortyna, who had
been confirmed in their faith by Cyril, bishop of that city: Eunicianus,
Zeticus, Cleomenes, Agathopas, Bastides, and Euaristus, were brought
from different parts of the island on accusations relating to their
profession of Christianity.
On their trial they were commanded to sacrifice to Jupiter, and
declining, the judge threatened them with the severest tortures. To
these menaces they unanimously answered, "That to suffer for the
sake of the Supreme Being would, to them, be the sublimest of plea-
sures." The judge then attempted to gain their veneration for the
heathen deities, by descanting on their merits, and recounting some of
their mythological histories. This gave the prisoners an opportunity of
remarking on the absurdity of such fictions, and of pointing out the
folly of paying adoration to ideal deities and material images. Provoked
to hear his favourite idols ridiculed, the governor ordered them to be
put to the rack, the tortures of which they sustained with surprising
fortitude. They at length suffered martyrdom, A. D. 251; being all
beheaded at the same time. Babylas, 2 a Christian of a liberal educa-
7 With respect to Babylas, bishop of Antioch, Eusebius and Zonaras assert that he died
in prison, at the time of Decius, as did Alexander, bishop of Jerusalem.
In the treatise of Chrysostom, entitled, " Contra Gentiles," there is an interesting history
of one Babylas, a martyr, who was put to death about this time, for resisting an emperor,
by not suffering him to enter into the temple of the Christians after a cruel murder;
the story of which is, that there was a certain emperor, who, upon concluding peace
with a certain nation, had received for hostage the son of the king, a youth of tender
age, on the condition that neither he should be molested by them, nor they be vexed by
him. Upon this the king's son was delivered to the emperor, who caused him in a short
time to be slain. This fact being committed, the tyrant would enter into the temple of the
Christians, where Babylas, being bishop or minister, resisted him. The emperor, in great
rage, had him forthwith bound in prison, with as many irons as he could bear, and from
thence shortly after brought to execution. Babylas went boldly to his martyrdom, and
desired after his death to be buried in his irons and bands. The story adds, that in the
reign of Constantinus, Gallus, then governor of the eastern parts, caused his body to be
removed into the suburbs of Antioch, called Daphnes, where was a temple of Apollo,
famous for oracles and answers given by that idol. In this temple, after the arrival of
the body of Babylas, the idol ceased to give any more oracles, complaining that the place
was wont to be consecrated unto him, but now it was full of dead men's bodies. Thus the
oracles there ceased for that time till the age of Julianus; who on learning why they ceased,
caused the bones of the holy martyr to be removed from thence by the Christians, whom
he called Galileans. They coming in a great multitude, both men, maidens, and children,
to the tomb of Babylas, transported his bones according to the command of the emperor,
singing by the way, the verse of the psalm, "Confounded be all that worship images, and
all that glory in idols, "etc. This coming to the emperor's ears, he flew into a rage with
the Christians, and excited persecution against them. Zonaras, however, declares the cause
otherwise, saying, that as soon as the body of Babylas and other martyrs were removed, the
LIFE OF BISHOP ALEXANDER. 47
tion, became bishop of Antioch in A. D. 237, on the demise of Zebinus.
He acted with inimitable zeal, and governed the church during the
most tempestuous times with admirable prudence. The first misfortune
that happened to Antioch during his mission, was the siege by
Saphor, king of Persia; who having over-run all Syria, took and plun-
dered this city among others, and used the christian inhabitants with
greater severity than the rest. His cruelties, however, were not lasting,
for Gordian, the emperor, appearing at the head of a powerful army, An-
tioch was retaken, the Persians driven entirely out of Syria, and pursued
into their own country, while several places in the Persian territories fell
into the hands of the emperor. Gordian dying, in the reign of Decius,
that emperor came to Antioch, where, having a desire to visit an assembly
of Christians, Babylas opposed him, and refused to let him enter.
The emperor dissembled his anger for the time; but soon sending for the
bishop, he sharply reproved him for his insolence, and ordered him
to sacrifice to the pagan deities as an expiation for his supposed crime.
Having refused this, he was committed to prison, loaded with chains,
treated with great severity, and then beheaded, together with three
young men who had been his pupils. On going to the place of execu-
tion, the bishop exclaimed, " Behold me and the children that the Lord
hath given me." They were martyred, A. D. 251, and the chains
worn by the bishop in prison were buried with him.
Alexander, bishop of Jerusalem, about this time was cast into prison
on account of his religion, where he died through the severity of his
confinement. When Serapian was apprehended at Alexandria, he had
his bones broken, and was thrown from a high loft, and killed by the fall.
Julianus, an old man, lame with the gout; and Cronion, another Chris-*
tian, were bound on the backs of camels, severely scourged, and then
thrown into a fire and consumed. A spectator who seemed to commise-
rate them was ordered to be beheaded, as a punishment for his sympathy
and tenderness. Macar, a Lybian Christian, was burnt. .Horonater
and Isidorus, Egyptians, with Dioschorus, a boy of fifteen, after suffer-
ing many torments, met with a similar fate; and Nemesion, another
Egyptian, was first tried as a thief; but being acquitted, was accused
of Christianity, which confessing, he was scourged, tortured, and
finally burnt. Ischyrian, the Christian servant of an Egyptian noble-
man and magistrate, was run through with a pike by his own master, for
refusing to sacrifice to idols. Venatius, a youth of fifteen, was martyred
in Italy; and forty virgins, at Antioch, after being imprisoned and
scourged, were destroyed by fire.
The emperor Decius having erected a pagan temple at Ephesus, in
the year 251, he commanded all who were in that city to sacrifice to
the idols. This order was nobly refused by seven of his own soldiers,
viz. Maximianus, Martianus, Joannes, Malchus, Dyonisius, Constantinus,
and Seraion. The emperor wishing to prevail on the soldiers to prevent
their fate by his entreaties and lenity, gave them a respite till he returned
temple of the idol, with the image, was consumed by a fire in the night. Nicephorus, in
his firth book, makes mention of another Babylas, who suffered under Decius, and was
bishop of Nicomedia.
48 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
from a journey. In the absence of the emperor they escaped, and
hid themselves in a cavern; but he was informed of it on his return,
the mouth of the cavern was closed up, and they all were starved or
smothered to death.
Theodora, a beautiful young lady of Antioch, on refusing to sacrifice
to the Roman idols, was condemned to the brothel, that her virtue
might be sacrificed. Didymus, a Christian, then disguised himself in
the habit of a Roman soldier, went to the house, informed Theodora who
he was, and prevailed on her to make her escape in his dress.
Being found in the brothel instead of the lady, he was taken
before the president, to whom confessing the truth, sentence of death
was immediately pronounced against him. In the mean time, Theodora,
hearing that her deliverer was likely to suffer, came to the judge, threw
herself at his feet, and begged that the sentence might fall only on her
as the guilty person ; but the inflexible judge condemned both ; and
they were executed accordingly, being first beheaded, and their bodies
afterwards burnt.
Secundianus having been accused as a Christian, was conveyed to pri-
son by some soldiers. On their way, Verianus and Marcellinus said,
" Where are you carrying the innocent ?" This interrogatory occasioned
them to be seized; and all three, after having been tortured, were hang-
ed, and their heads were cut off when they were dead.
Origen, the celebrated presbyter and catechist of Alexandria, at the
age of sixty-four, was seized, thrown into a loathsome prison, loaded
with chains, his feet placed in the stocks, and his legs extended to the
utmost for several days. He was threatened with fire, and tormented
by every means that the most infernal imagination could suggest. But
his Christian fortitude sustained him. Such was the rigour of the judge,
that his tortures were ordered to be as lingering as possible, that death
might not too soon put a period to his miseries. During this cruel
interval, the emperor Decius died, and Gallus, who succeeded him, en-
gaging in a war with the Goths, the Christians met with a respite.
Thus Origen obtained his enlargement, and retiring to Tyre, he re-
mained there till his death, which happened when he was in the sixty-
ninth year of his age. a
a The learned who have written the life of Origen assert, that he was of wit quick
and sharp, patient of labour, a man who knew many languages, of a spare diet, of a strict
and abstemious life; he went barefoot ; and was a strict observer of that saying of the
Lord, " Provide but one coat, &c." He is said to have written as much as seven
notaries. The number of his books, by the account of Jerome, amounted to seven thousand
volumes, copies of which he used to sell for the value of threepence or a little more, for
the support of his life. He kept seven maids in constant employ to copy for him. So
zealous he was in the cause of Christ and his martyrs, that he would assist and exhort
them going to their death, and kiss them, insomuch that he was near being stoned by the
multitude; and sometimes by providing for Christian men, had his house guarded with
soldiers, for the safety of those who daily resorted to hear his readings.
These historians also mention the following curious circumstance, which is confirmed by
Eusebius. When Leonidas, the father of Origen, was martyred, his son, then seventeen
years old, would have suffered by his own wish, had not his mother privily in the night
eonveyed away his clothes and his shirt. On which, more for shame to be seen than for
fear to die, he was constrained to remain at home ; and when he could do nothing else, he
wrote to his father a letter with these words: "Take heed to yourself, that you turn
not your thought and purpose for our sake." Such a fervency had young Origen
DEATH OF CORNELIUS AND OTHERS. 49
In the city of Antioch, Vincentius, lib. 11, speaks of forty virgins,
martyrs, who suffered in the persecution of Decius. In the country of
Phrygia, and in the town of Lampsar, Vincentius also speaks of one
Peter, who was there apprehended, and suffered bitter torments for
Christ's name, under Optimus, the pro-consul : and in Troada he also
speaks of other martyrs that suffered, whose names were Andrew, Paul,
Nichomachus, and Dionysia, a virgin. He adds, that in Babylon, many
christian confessors were found who were led away into Spain to be
executed.
In the country of Cappadocia, and the city of Cesarea, Germanus,
Theophilus, Cesarius, and Vitalis, suffered martyrdom for Christ; and
in the same book mention is also made of Polychronius, bishop of
Babylon, and of Nestor, bishop of Cesarea, who died martyrs.
At Perside, in the town of Cardalia, Olympiades and Maximus. In
Tyrus also, Anatolia, a virgin, and Audax, a senator, gave their lives for
a testimony to the name of Christ.
Gallus having concluded his wars, a plague broke out in the
empire ; and sacrifices to the pagan deities were ordered by the
emperor to appease their wrath. On the Christians refusing to comply
with these rites, they were charged with being the authors of the cala-
mity : thus the persecution spread from the interior to the extreme
parts of the empire, and many fell martyrs to the impetuosity of the
rabble, as well as the prejudice of the magistrates. Cornelius, the
Christian bishop of Rome, was, among others, seized upon this occasion.
He was first banished to Centum-Cellae, now called Civitia Vecchia ;
and after having been cruelly scourged, was, on the 14th of September,
A. D. 252, beheaded; having been bishop fifteen months and ten
days. Lucius, who succeeded Cornelius as bishop of Rome, was the
son of Porphyrius, and a Roman by birth. His vigilance as a pastor,
occasioned him to be banished ; but in a short time he was permitted
to' return from exile. Soon after, however, he was apprehended, and
beheaded, March the 4th, A. D. 253. This bishop was succeeded by
to the doctrine of Christ's faith, partly by the diligent education of his father, who
brought him up from his youth in good literature, but especially in reading the holy
scripture, that many times he would put questions to his father of the meaning of certain
parts of the sacred book. Insomuch that his father would frequently uncover his breast
when asleep, and kiss it, giving thanks to God who had made him so happy a father of such
a child. After the death of his father, all his goods being confiscated to the emperor, he,
with his poor mother, and six brethren, were reduced to such extreme poverty, that he sup-
ported both himself and them by keeping a school.
The treatise of the venerable Bede, cited by Henricus de Orford, gives the following list
of those who suffered in the reign of Decius, the particulars of whose martyrdoms have
not been handed down. Hippolitus and Concordia, Hiereneus and Abundus, Victoria, a
virgin, being noble personages of Antioch ; Bellias, bishop of the city of Apollonia, Lacus,
Tirsus, and Gallictus. Nazanzo, Triphon, in the city of Egypt called Tamas, Phileas,
a bishop, Philocomus, with many others in Persia, and Philcronius, bishop of Babylon •
Thesiphon, bishop of Pamphilia; Neffor, bishop in Corduba ; Parmenias, a priest, with
many more. In the province called Colonia, Circensis, Marianus, and Jacobus. In
Africa, Nemesianus, Eelix, Rogatianus, a priest, and Eelicissimus. At Rome, Jovinus and
Basileus; Tertullianus, Valerianus, Nemesius, Sempronianus, and Olympius. In Spain,
Teragon. At Verona, Zeno, a bishop; and Theodorus, sui named Gregorius, bishop of
Pontus. Vincentius in his eleventh book makes mention of certain children suffering mar-
tyrdom under the same persecution, in a city of Tuscia, called Aretium.
50 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Stephanus, a man of fiery temper, who held the dignity few years,
and might probably have fallen a martyr, had not the emperor been
murdered by his general iEmilian, when a profound peace succeeded
throughout the empire, and persecution was suffered to subside.
Many of the errors which crept into the Church at this time, arose
from placing human reason in competition with revelation ; but the fal-
lacy of such arguments being proved by some able divines, the opinions
they had created vanished before the sublimity and power of christian
truth.
ACCOUNT OF THE EIGHTH GENERAL PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS.
After the death of Gallus, iEmilian, the general, having many ene-
mies in the army, was slain, and Valerian elected to *he empire. This
emperor, for the space of four years, governed with moderation, and
treated the Christians with peculiar lenity and respect ; but in the year
257, an Egyptian magician, named Macriamus, gained a great ascen-
dency over him, and persuaded him to persecute the Christians. Edicts
were accordingly published, and the persecution which began in the
montli of April, continued for three years and six months.
The martyrs that fell in this persecution were innumerable, and their
tortures and deaths are various. The most eminent were the follow-
ing — Rufina and Secunda, two beautiful and accomplished ladies,
daughters of Asterius, a gentleman of eminence in Rome. Rufina the
elder, was designed in marriage for Armentarius, a young nobleman ;
and Secunda, the younger, for Verinus, a person of rank and immense
wealth. These suitors, at the time the persecution commenced, were
both Christians ; but when danger appeared, to save their fortunes they
renounced their faith. They took great pains to persuade the ladies to
do the same, but failed in their purpose; and as a method of safety,
Rufina and Secunda left the kingdom. The lovers finding themselves
disappointed informed against the ladies, who being apprehended as
Christians, were brought before Junius Donatus, governor of Rome.
After many remonstrances, and having undergone several tortures, they
sealed their martyrdom with their blood, by being beheaded in the
year 257.
In the same year, Stephen, bishop of Rome, was beheaded, and
about that time Saturninus, bishop of Thoulouse, was attacked and seized
by the rabble of that place, for preventing, as they alleged, their
oracles from speaking. On refusing to sacrifice to the idols, he was treat-
ed with many barbarous indignities, and then fastened by the feet to the
tail of a bull. On a certain signal the enraged animal was driven down
the steps of the temple, by which the martyr's brains were dashed out;
and the small number of Christians in Thoulouse had not for some time
courage sufficient to carry off the dead body ; at length two women
conveyed it away, and deposed it in a ditch.
-This martyr was an orthodox and learned primitive Christian, and his
doctrines are held in high estimation.
LAURENTIUS BROILED TO DEATH, 51
Stephen was succeeded by Sextus as bishop of Rome. He is suppos-
ed to l)i" a Greek by birth, or extraction, and had for some time served
in the capacity of a deacon under Stephen. His great fidelity, singular
wisdom and courage, distinguished him on many occasions ; and the
fortunate conclusion of a controversy with some heretics is generally
ascribed to his prudence. Marcianus, who had the management of the
Roman government in the year 258, procured an order from the emperor
Valerian to put to death all the Christian clergy in Rome.
The senate having testified their obedience to the imperial mandate,
Sextus was one of the first who felt the severity of the edict. Cyprian
tells us that he was beheaded August 6, A. D. 258, and that six of
his deacons suffered with him.
Laurentius, generally called St. Laurence, the principal of the dea-
cons, who taught and preached under Sextus, followed him to the place
of execution ; when Sextus predicted that he should meet him in heaven
three days after. Laurentius considering this as a certain indication of
his own approaching martyrdom, at his return collected all the Chris-
tian poor, and distributed amongst them the treasures of the church
which had been committed to his care, thinking the money could not be
better disposed of, or less liable to fall into the hands of the heathens.
His conduct alarmed the persecutors, who seized on him, and command-
ed him to give an immediate account to the emperor of the church trea-
sures.
Laurentius promised to satisfy them, but begged a short respite to put
tilings in proper order; three days being granted him, he was suffered to
depart. Then with great diligence he collected together a great number
of aged, helpless, and impotent poor, and repaired to the magistrate,
presenting them to him, saying "These are the true treasures of the
church. "
Provoked at the disappointment, and fancying the matter meant in
ridicule, the governor ordered him to be immediately scourged. He was
beaten with iron rods, set upon a wooden horse, and had his limbs dislo-
cated. He endured these tortures with such fortitude and perseverance,
that he was ordered to be fastened to a large gridiron, with a slow fire
under it, that his death might be more tedious. But his astonishing
constancy during these trials, and his serenity of countenance under
such excruciating torments, gave the spectators so exalted an idea of the
dignity and truth of the Christian religion, that many immediately be-
came converts.
Having lain for some time upon the gridiron, the martyr called out to
the emperor, who was present, in a kind of jocose Latin couplet, which
may be thus translated
" This side is broil'd sufficient to be food
For all who wish it to be done and good."
On this the executioner turned him, and after having lain a consider-
able time longer, he had still strength and spirit enough to triumph over
the tyrant, by telling him, with great serenity, that he was roasted
enough, and only wanted serving up. He then cheerfully lifted up his
eyes to heaven, and with calmness yielded his spirit to the Almighty.
This happened August 10, A. D. 258.
52 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Among the several converts to Christianity from this event, was a sol-
dier called Romanus who attended the martyrdom. He had taken the
opportunity of the martyr's imprisonment to make some inquiries con-
cerning the Christian faith, and it was reported that he had received bap-
tism at the hands of his captive. Be this as it may, he declared himself
a christian immediately after the death of Laurentius, and soon followed
him by a less lingering and torturing martyrdom to the world of blessed
spirits in heaven. On his avowal of the christian faith, he was scourged
and beheaded. He had a companion in both his faith and suffering,
named Hypolitus, to whom he was much attached, and who evinced no
desire to escape the fate of his courageous friend.
Fourteen years before this period persecution raged in Africa with
peculiar violence, and many thousands received the crown of martyrdom,
among whom the following were the most distinguished characters * —
Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, an eminent prelate, and a pious orna-
ment of the church. His doctrines were orthodox and pure ; his lan-
guage easy and elegant ; and his manners graceful. He was said to be
so perfectly a master of rhetoric and logic, and so complete in the prac-
tice of elocution and the principles of philosophy, that he was made
professor of those sciences in his native city of Carthage, where he be-
came so popular, and taught with such success, that many of his stu-
dents afterwards became shining ornaments of polite erudition. He was
educated in his youth in the maxims of the heathen, and having a con-
siderable fortune, he lived in great splendour and pomp. Gorgeous in
attire, luxurious in feasting, vain of a numerous retinue, and fond of
every kind of fashionable parade, he seemed to fancy that man was born
to gratify all his appetites, and created for pleasure alone. About the
year 246, Ccecilius, a Christian minister of Carthage, became the instru-
ment of Cyprian's conversion ; on which account, and for the great love
that he always afterwards bore for his adviser, he was termed Ccecilius
Cyprian.
Before his baptism, he studied the scriptures with care, and being
struck with the excellence of the truths they contained, he determined
to practise the virtues they recommended. After baptism he sold his
estate, distributed the money among the poor, dressed himself in plain
attire, and commenced a life of austerity and solitude. Soon after he
was made a presbyter ; and being greatly admired for his virtues and
his works, on the death of Donatus, in A. D. 248, he was almost una-
nimously elected bishop of Carthage. The care of Cyprian not only
extended over Carthage, but to Numidia and Mauritania. In all his
transactions he took great care to ask the advice of his clergy, knowing,
that unanimity alone could be of service to the church : this being one
of his maxims, " That the bishop was in the church, and the church in
the bishop ; so that unity can only be preserved by a close connection
between the pastor and his flock."
In the year 250, Cyprian was publicly proscribed by the emperor
Decius, under the appellation of Ccecilius Cyprian, bishop of the
Cyprians ; and the universal cry of the Pagans was, " Cyprian to the
lions, Cyprian to the beasts!" The bishop, however, withdrew from the
rage of the populace, and his effects were immediately confiscated.
WISE SAVINGS OF CYPRIAN. 53
During bis retirement he wrote thirty pious letters to his flock: but
several schisms then crept into the church gave him great uneasi-
ness. The rigour of the persecution abating, he returned to Carthage,
and did every thing in his power to expel erroneous opinions and false
doctrines. A terrible plague now breaking out at Carthage, it was as
usual laid to the charge of the Christians ; and the magistrates began to
persecute them accordingly : this occasioned an epistle from them to
Cyprian, in answer to which lie vindicates the cause of Christianity. b
b Cyprian was of an uncommonly meek and amiable disposition, and though he neither
wanted prudence nor circumspection, he was so modest that he never attempted any thing
without first consulting his partisans. He used to declare that he had visions and revela-
tions concerning the events that were to effect the Christian church. He never attempted
to thwart or circumvent any man; and St. Augustine, in his third book " De bapthmo
contra DonatUtas," declares that he was very diligent in reading, especially the works of
Tertullius. He adds, that he saw an old man whose name was Paulus, who told him he
saw the notary of blessed Cyprian, being then an old man, when he himself was but a
springal in the city of Rome, and told him that it was Cyprian's custom, never to let one
day pass without reading Tertullian, and that he was accustomed to say to him, " Give me
my master," meaning thereby Tertullian.
Several learned authors among the ancients have written on the virtues and good actions
of Cyprian, and it is much to be regretted that these accounts, as well as many others
which tend to enforce belief in, and respect for the sacred scriptures, are now unknown,
owing to the neglect into which the Latin and Greek languages have fallen, though every
man, whatever may be his station, may have now an opportunity of giving his sons a liberai
education. The principal divines and authors who wrote concerning Cyprian are, Nice-
phorus, Nazianzenus, Jacobus de Voragine, Henricusde Erfordia, Volateranus, Hieronymus,
and Vincentius; and Laziardus Celestinus made an abridgment of his works, or rather
what is now called ana, in which, amongst many others, are the following pithy sentences,
which we quote on account of their excellence.
Let nothing sleep in thy treasures, that may profit the poor.
Two things never wax old in man, — the heart ever imagining new cogitations, the tongue
ever uttering the vain conceptions of the heart.
Discipline is an inordinate amendment of manners present, and a regular observation of
evils past.
There can be no integrity, while they who should condemn the wicked, are ever wanting,
and they only who are to be condemned, are ever present.
A covetous man only possesseth his goods for this reason, because another should not
possess them.
Women that advance themselves in putting on silk and purple, cannot but lightly put on
Christ.
They who love to paint themselves in this world otherwise than God hath created them,
let them fear, lest when the day cometh of resurrection, the Creator will not know them.
He that giveth an alms to the poor, sacrificeth to God an odour of sweet smell.
All injury of evils present, is to be neglected, for the good hope of good things to come.
To set out virtue in words, and to destroy the same in facts, is nothing worth.
The more children and greater household thou hast at home, the more cause thou hast not
to hoard up, but to disperse abroad, for that many sins are to be redeemed, many con-
sciences are to be purged.
Eincentianus observes, that in another Book of Cyprian, not mentioned in the catalogue
of his works, he describes twelve principal abuses or absurdities in the life of man, which
are in the following order, and are unfortunately too frequently to be met with in every age
of the world ; but perhaps more at present than at any former period.
1. A wise man without good works. 7. A Christian man contentious.
2. An old man without religion. 8. A poor man proud.
3. A young man without obedience. 9. A king unrighteous.
4. A rich man without alms. 10. A bishop negligent.
5. A woman shameless. 11. People without discipline.
6. A guide without virtue. 12. Subjects without law.
54 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM
Cyprian was brought before the pro-consul Aspasius Paternus, A. D.
257, when being commanded to conform to the religion of the empire,
he boldly made a confession of his faith. This did not occasion his
death, but an order was made for his banishment and he was exiled
to a little city on the Libyan sea. On the death of the pro-consul who
banished him, he returned to Carthage, but was soon after seized, and
carried before the new governor, who condemned him to be beheaded ;
and on the 14th of September, A. D. 258, this sentence was executed.
This bishop was a pious Christian, an excellent philosopher, and an ac-
curate and eloquent preacher.
His disciples who were martyred in this persecution were, Lucius Fla-
vian, Victoricus, Remus, Montanus, Donatian, Julian, and Primolus.
Perhaps one of the most dreadful events in the history of martyrdom
was that which took place at Utica, where 300 Christians were, by the
orders of the pro-consul, placed around a burning lime-kiln. A pan of
coals and incense being prepared, they were commanded either to sacri-
fice to Jupiter, or to be thrown into the kiln. Unanimously refusing,
they bravely jumped into the pit, and were suffocated immediately.
Fructuosus, bishop of Tarragon, in Spain, and his two deacons,
Augarius and Eulogius, for avowing themselves Christians, were con-
sumed by fire. Malchus, Alexander, and Priscius, three Christians of
Palestine, with a woman of the same place, voluntarily avowed them-
selves to be Christians : for which they were sentenced to be devoured
by tigers, which sentence was accordingly executed. Donatilla, Maxima,
and Secunda, three virgins of Tuburga, had gall and vinegar given them
to drink, were then severely scourged, tormented on a gibbet, rubbed
with lime, scorched on a gridiron, worried by wild beasts, and at last
beheaded. Before the last act of barbarity took place they were how-
ever dead, and the headsman was said to admire the singular serenity
of their countenances.
Pontius a native of the city of Simela, near the Alps, being appre-
hended as a Christian, was tortured on the rack, worried by wild beasts,
half burnt, then beheaded, and his body thrown into the river. Protus
and Hyacinthus likewise suffered martyrdom about the same period.
A singular and miserable fate befel the emperor Valerian, c who had
c A very extraordinary and interesting event occurred in the reign of Valerian, which is
told, though in different ways, by Aquilinus, Antoninus, and Bergomensis. — Philippus, the
governor of Alexandria, had a daughter named Eugenia, who was singularly beautiful in
her person, and had received from her parents an elegant education ; but having been much
in the way of the Christians, was brought up to their faith, together with two eunuchs, her
schoolfellows, named Protheus and Hiacinthus; with whom, to avoid the persecutions then
going on, or else from refusing to marry a pagan, she eloped, and resorted to hear the
readings of Helenus, then an aged bishop; and with this view she put on man's apparel,
and named herself Eugenius, under which name she was at length admitted into a
monastery in the suburbs of Alexandria, where for her learning and virtue, she was made
head of the place.
It is said, that Eugenia, after the martyrdom of her father, returning to Rome with
Protheus and Hiacinthus, on account of converting Basilla to the Christian faith, was
assailed with sundry kinds of death : first, being tied to a great stone and cast into the
Tiber, where she was prevented from drowning ; then put into the hot baths, which were
extinguished, and she preserved ; afterwards by being prevented famishing in prison,
where they say she was fed by a miraculous hand.
PERSECUTIONS OF AURKLIAN. 55
so long - and so terribly persecuted the Christians. This tyrant, by a
stratagem, was taken prisoner by Sophores, emperor of Persia, who
carried him into his own country, and there treated him with the most
unexampled indignity, making- him kneel down as the meanest slave, and
treading upon him as a footstool when he mounted his horse, saying, in
a vaunting manner, " This posture is a greater proof which way the
victory went, than all the pictures the Roman artists can draw." Having
kept him, for the space of seven years, in this abject state of slavery,
he at last caused his eyes to be put out, though he was then eighty-three
years of age ; and his desire of revenge not being satisfied, he soon
after ordered his body to be flayed alive, and rubbed with salt, under
which torments he expired ; and thus fell one of the most tyrannical
emperors of Rome, and one of the greatest persecutors of the Christian
church.
Gallienus, the son of Valerian, succeeded him A. D. 260, and during
his reigns the empire suffered many commotions, particularly earthquakes,
pestilence, d inundations, intestine broils, and incursions of barbarians.
This emperor reflecting, that when his father favoured the Christians, he
prospered, and that when he persecuted them he was unsuccessful, deter-
mined to relax the persecution ; so that (a few martyrs excepted) the
church enjoyed peace for some years. The chief of those few martyrs,
was Marinus, a centurion, who being apprehended as a christian, had
but three hours allowed him to deliberate, whether he would sacrifice to
the pagan deities, or become a martyr; and wavering during this interval
a christian prelate placed the gospel and the sword before him, and de-
manded which he would choose. Marinus took the sword without hesi-
tation. On meeting again with the governor, he made a noble confession
of his faith, and was soon after beheaded, in the year 262.
ACCOUNT OF THE NINTH GENERAL PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS.
In the year 274, the emperor Aurelian commenced a persecution
against the Christians : the principal sufferer was Felix, bishop of Rome.
This prelate was advanced to the Roman see in 274, and was beheaded
in the same year on the 22d of December. Agapetus, a young gentle-
man, who sold his estate and gave the money to the poor, was seized as
a Christian, tortured, and then brought to Proeneste, a city within a
day's journey of Rome, where he was beheaded. These are the only
martyrs left upon record during this reign, as it was soon put a stop to
by the emperor being murdered by his own domestics, at Byzantium.
Aurelian was succeeded by Tacitus, who was followed by Probus, as
d This plague affected, more or less, the whole of the Roman provinces, and lasted
nearly ten years. In Egypt, it was particularly violent : and Dionysius, who was bishop
of Alexandria, writing to Hieros, a bishop in Egypt, declares, that at the former city it was
so great that there was no house exempt. Although the greatness of the plague affected
the Christians, yet it scourged the heathen idolaters much more: besides which, the
behaviour in the one and the other was very different. The Christians, through brotherly
love and piety, visited and comforted one another, notwithstanding the great danger that
attended them by so doing.
56 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
was the latter by Carnius : this emperor being struck with death by
lightning, his sons, Carnius and Numerian, succeeded him ; and during
these reigns the church enjoyed rest e .
Diocletian mounting the imperial throne, A. D. 284, at first shewed
great favour to the Christians. In the year 286, he associated Maximian
with him in the empire; when Felician and Primus, two Christian
brothers, were put to death before any general persecution broke out.
They were seized by an order from the imperial court ; and owning
themselves Christians, were scourged, tortured, and finally beheaded.
Marcus and Marcellianus, twin natives of Rome, and of noble descent,
whose parents were heathens, but the tutors, to whom the education of
the children were entrusted, brought them up as Christians, were also
apprehended on account of their faith, were severely tortured, and then
condemned to death. A respite of a month was obtained for them by
their friends, when their parents and other relations attempted to bring
them back to paganism, but in vain. At last their constancy subdued
their persuaders, and the whole family became converts to a faith they
had just before opposed.
Tranquillinus, the father of the two young men, was sent for by the
prefect to give him an account of the success of his endeavours, when
he confessed, that so far from having persuaded his sons to forsake the
faith they had embraced, he was become a Christian himself. He then
stopped till the magistrate had overcome his surprise, and resuming his
discourse, he used such powerful arguments that he made a convert of
the prefect, who soon after sold his estate, resigned his command, and
spent the remainder of his days in a pious retirement.
The prefect, who succeeded this singular convert, had none of the
disposition of his predecessor : he was morose and severe, and soon
seized upon the whole of this Christian race, who were accordingly
martyred by being tied to posts, and having their feet pierced with
nails. After remaining in this situation for a day and night, their
sufferings were put an end to by thrusting lances through their bodies.
Zoe, the wife of the gaoler, who had the care of these martyrs, being
greatly edified by their discourse, had a desire to become a Christian:
this, as she was dumb with a palsy, she could only express by gestures.
They gave her instruction in the faith, and told her to pray in her
heart to God to relieve her from her disorder. She did so, and was at
length relieved: for her paralytic disorder by degrees left her, her
speech returned, and like Zacharias she glorified God.
This enforced her belief, and confirmed her a Christian: and her
husband, finding her cured, became a convert himself. These con-
versions made a great noise, and the proselytes were apprehended.
Zoe was commanded to sacrifice to Mars, which refusing, she was
hanged on a tree, and a fire of straw lighted under her. When her
e This Carnius with his son Numerian, being slain in the East, Carinus, the other son,
reigned alone in Italy; where he overcame Sabinus striving tor the empire, and reigned
there with much wickedness till the return of the army from Persia, who then set up
Diocletian as emperor ; by whom Carinus, being forsaken by liis host, was overcome, and
at length slain by the hand of the tribune. Thus Carnius, with his two sons, Numerian
and Carinus, ended their lives, their reign continuing only three years.
PKRSKCUTIONS OF DIOCLKTIAN. 57
body was taken clown it was thrown into a river, a large stone being
fastened round her neck.
Tibertius, a native of Rome, was of a family of rank and distinction.
Being- accused as a Christian, he was commanded either to sacrifice to
idols, or to walk upon burning coals. He chose the latter, and is said
to have walked over them without damage, when Fabian passed sentence
upon him that he should be beheaded; which was executed in the
month of August, A. D. 286, and his body was afterwards buried by
some pious Christians.
A remarkable affair occurred in A. D. 286. A legion of soldiers,
consisting of 6666 men, contained none but Christians. This was
called the Theban legion, because the men had been raised in Thebais:
they were quartered in the East till the emperor Maximian ordered them
to march to Gaul, to assist him against the rebels of Burgundy; when
passing the Alps into Gaul, under the command of Mauritius, Candidus,
and Exuperuis, their commanders, they at length joined the emperor.
About this time, Maximian ordered a general sacrifice, at which the
whole army were to assist ; and he commanded that they should take
oaths of allegiance, and swear, at the same time, to assist him in the
extirpation of Christianity in Gaul. Terrified at these orders, each
individual of the Theban legion absolutely refused either to sacrifice, or
take the oaths prescribed. This so enraged Maximian, that he ordered
the legion to be decimated, that is, every tenth man to be selected from
the rest, and put to the sword. This cruel order having been put into
execution, those who remained alive were still inflexible, when a second
decimation took place, and every tenth man of those living were again
put to the sword.
This second severity made no more impression than the first; the
soldiers preserved their fortitude and their principles ; but, by the advice
of their officers, drew up a remonstrance to the emperor, in which they
told him that they were his subjects and his soldiers, but could not at
the same time forget the Almighty; that they received their pay from
him, and their existence from God. " While your commands, "said
they, " are not contradictory to those of our common Master, we shall
always be ready to obey, as we have been hitherto : but when the orders
of our prince and those of the Almighty differ, we must always obey the
latter. Our arms are devoted to the emperor's use, and shall be
directed against his enemies; but we cannot submit to stain our hands
with Christian blood; and how, indeed, could you, emperor, be sure
of our allegiance and fidelity, should we violate our obligation to our
God, in whose service we were solemnly engaged before we entered the
army? You command us to search out and to destroy the Christians :
it is not necessary to look any further for persons of that denomination ;
we ourselves are such, and we glory in the name. We saw our com-
panions fall without the least opposition or murmuring, and thought
them happy in dying for the sake of Christ. Nothing shall make us lift
up our hands against our sovereign ; we had rather die wrongfully, and
by that means preserve our innocence, than live under a load of guilt :
whatever you command we are ready to suffer ; we confess ourselves to be
Christians, and therefore cannot persecute Christians, nor sacrifice to idols."
58 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Such a declaration it might be presumed would have prevailed with
the emperor, but it had a contrary effect : for, enraged at their perse-
verance and unanimity, he commanded that the whole legion should be
put to death, which was accordingly executed by the other troops, who
cut them to pieces with their swords. This barbarous transaction oc-
cured on the 22d of September, A. D. 286 ; and such was the inveterate
malice of Maximian, that he sent to destroy every man of a few detach-
ments that had been drafted from the Theban legion, and despatched to
Italy. A veteran soldier of another legion, whose name was Victor, met
the executioners of this bloody business. As they appeared rather merry,
he enquired into the cause of their jocularity, and being informed of the
whole affair, he sharply reproved them for their barbarity. This excited
their curiosity to ask him if he was of the same faith as those who had
suffered. On answering in the affirmative, several of the soldiers fell
upon him, and despatched him.
Alban, from whom St. Alban's received its name, was the first British
martyr. This island had received the gospel of Christ from Lucius, the
first Christian king, but did not suffer by the rage of persecution. This
man was originally a pagan, but being of a very humane disposition, he
sheltered a Christian ecclesiastic, named Amphibalus, whom some officers
were in pursuit of on account of his religion. The pious example, and
edifying discourses of the refugee, made a great impression on the mind
of Alban ; he longed to become a member of a religion which charmed
him ; the fugitive minister, happy in the opportunity, took great pains to
instruct him ; and before his discovery, perfected Alban's conversion.
Alban now took a firm resolution to preserve the sentiments of a
Christian, or to die the death of a martyr. The enemies of Amphibalus
having intelligence of the place where he was secreted, came to the
house of Alban, in order to apprehend him. The noble host, desirous
of protecting his guest and convert, changed clothes with him in order
to facilitate his escape ; and when the soldiers came, offered himself up
as the person for whom they were seeking. Being accordingly carried
before the governor, the deceit was immediately discovered ; and
Amphibalus being absent, that officer determined to wreak his vengeance
upon Alban : with this view he commanded the prisoner to advance to
the altar, and sacrifice to the pagan deities. The brave Alban, however
declared that he would not comply with the idolatrous injunction, but
boldly professed himself to be a Christian. The governor therefore
ordered him to be scourged, but he bore the punishment with great for-
titude, and seemed to acquire new resolution from his sufferings : he
was then beheaded. The venerable Bede states, that upon this occasion,
the executioner suddenly became a convert to Christianity, and entreated
permission either to die for Alban or with him. Obtaining the latter
request, they were beheaded by a soldier, who voluntarily undertook
the task. This happened on the 22d of June, A. D. 287, at Verulam,
now St. Alban's, where a magnificent church was erected to his memory
about the time of Constantine the Great. This edifice was destroyed
in the Saxon wars, but was rebuilt by Offa, king of Mercia, and a monas-
tery erected adjoining to it, some remains of which are still visible.
Faith, a christian female, of Acquitain, in France, being informed
TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 59
that there was a design to seize her, anticipated the intention, by sur-
rendering herself a prisoner ; and being inflexible in her faith, was or-
dered to be broiled upon a gridiron, and then beheaded, which sentence
was executed A. D. 287. Capacius, a Christian, concealed himself from
the persecutors, but being informed of the fortitude of Faith, he openly
avowed his religion, and delivered himself up to the governor, who had
him tirst tortured, and then beheaded. Quintin was a Christian, and a
uative of Rome, but he determined to attempt the propagation of the
gospel in Gaul . He accordingly went to Picardy, attended by one Lucian,
and they preached together at Amiens ; after which Lucian went to
Beauvais where he suffered martyrdom. Quintin, however, remained in
Picardy, and was very zealous in his ministry. His continual prayers to
the Almighty were to increase his faith, and strengthen his faculties to pro-
pagate the gospel. Being seized upon as a Christian, he was stretched
with pullies till his joints were dislocated : his body was then torn with
wire scourges, and boiling oil and pitch poured on his naked flesh :
lighted torches were applied to his sides and arm-pits ; and after he had
been thus tortured, he was remanded back to prison. He died of
his wounds and bruises at a village not far from Amiens, before the year
was closed, and his body was thrown, by order of Varus the governor,
into the river Somme.
ACCOUNT OF THE TENTH GENERAL PERSECUTION
UNDER THE ROMAN EMPERORS.
Notwithstanding the efforts of the heathen to exterminate the Chris-
tians and abolish their mode of faith, yet they increased so greatly as to
render themselves formidable by their numbers. They, however, forgot
the precepts of their Redeemer, and instead of adopting his humility,
they gave themselves up to vain attire, living sumptuously, building
stately edifices for churches, and thus provoking envy and hatred.
Galerius, the adopted son of Diocletian, stimulated by his mother, a
bigoted pagan, persuaded the emperor to commence the persecution.
It began on the 23d of February A. D. 303, being the day on which
the Terminalia were celebrated, and on which, as the pagans boasted,
they hoped to put a termination to Christianity.
The persecution opened in Nicomedia. The prefect of that city re-
paired on a certain morning to the Christians' church, which his officers
were commanded to break open, and then commit the sacred books it con-
tained to the flames. Diocletian and Galerius, who were present, ordered
their attendants to level the church with the ground. This was followed
by a severe edict, commanding the destruction of all other christian
churches and books; and an order soon succeeded, the object of which
was to render Christians of all denominations outlaws, and consequently,
to make them incapable of holding any place of trust, profit, or dignity,
or of receiving any protection from the legal institutions of the realm.
An immediate martyrdom was the result of this edict ; for a bold Chris-
tian not only tore it down from the place to which it was affixed, but
60 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
execrated the name of the emperor for his injustice and cruelty : he was
in consequence seized, severely tortured, and then burnt alive. The
Christian prelates were likewise apprehended and imprisoned ; and
Galerius privately ordered the imperial palace to be set on fire, that the
Christians might be charged as the incendiaries, and a plausible pretext
given for carrying on the persecution with the greatest severity. A
general sacrifice was then commanded, which occasioned various martyr-
doms. Among others, a Christian named Peter was tortured, broiled,
and then burnt; several deacons and presbyters were seized and executed
by various means ; and the bishop of Nicomedia himself was beheaded.
So great was the persecution that there was no distinction made of age
or sex, but all fell indiscriminate sacrifices to their opinions. Many
houses were set on fire, and whole christian families perished in the
flames ; others had stones fastened about their necks, and were driven into
the sea. The persecution became general in all the Roman provinces, but
more particularly in the East ; and as it lasted ten years, it is impossible
to ascertain the numbers martyred, or to enumerate the various modes
of martyrdom : some were beheaded in Arabia ; many devoured by wild
beasts in Phoenicia ; great numbers were broiled on gridirons in Syria ;
others had their bones broken, and in that manner were left to expire, in
Cappadocia ; and in Mesopotamia several were hung with their heads
downwards over slow fires, and suffocated. In Pontus, a variety of tor-
tures were used ; pins were thrust under the nails of the prisoners,
melted lead was poured upon them, and other exquisite tortures were
inflicted, without however shaking their faith. In Egypt, some Chris-
tians were buried alive in the earth, others were drowned in the Nile,
many were hung in the air till they perished, and great numbers were
thrown into large fires, and suffocating kilns. Scourges, racks, daggers,
swords, poison, crosses, and famine, were made use of in various parts
to destroy the Christians ; and invention was exhausted to devise new
tortures against them.
A town of Phrygia, consisting entirely of Christians, was surrounded
by a number of pagan soldiers, who set it on fire, and all the inhabitants
perished in the flames.
At last, several governors of provinces represented to the imperial
court, that " it was unfit to pollute the cities with the blood of the in-
habitants, or to defame the government of the emperors with the death
of so many subjects." Hence many were respited from execution ; but
though they were not put to death, they were subjected to every species
of indignity and suffering. Many had their ears cut off, their noses slit,
their right eyes put out, their limbs dislocated, and the : r flesh seared in
conspicuous places with red hot irons. .
Among the most distinguished persons, who forfeited their lives during
this bloody persecution, was Sebastian, a celebrated holy man, born
at Narbonne in Gaul, instructed in the principles of Christianity at
Milan, and afterwards an officer of the imperial guard at Rome. He
remained a true Christian in the midst of idolatry, unallured by the
splendour of a court, and untainted by evil examples around him ;
esteemed by the most eminent, beloved by his equals, and admired by
his inferiors, he lived happily, and kept his faith and station, till the
TKNTII 1MUMIT1VK I'KllSKCU TION. Gl
rigour of persecution deprived him of the latter with his life. He was
in tunned against, and betrayed to Fabian the Roman prsetor, by Tor-
quatus, a pretended Christian ; but being of a rank too considerable to
be put to death without the emperor's express orders, Diocletian was
acquainted with the persecution.
On hearing the accusation, he sent for Sebastian, and charged him
with ingratitude in betraying the confidence reposed in him, and being
an enemy to the gods of the empire and to himself. To this he answered
that his religion was not of a pernicious tendency but the opposite ;
that it did not stimulate him to any thing against the welfare of the
empire or the emperor, and that the greatest proof he could give
of his fidelity, was praying to the only true God for the health and
prosperity of his person and government. Incensed at this reply, the
emperor ordered him to be taken to a field near the city, termed the
Campus Martius, and there to be shot to death with arrows ; which
sentence was speedily executed. A few Christians attending at the
place of execution, in order to give his body burial, perceived signs of
life in him, and removing him to a place of security, they in a short
time effected his recovery, and prepared him for a second martyrdom.
So soon as he was able to walk, he placed himself in the emperor's way
as he was going to the temple. The unexpected appearance of a person
supposed to be dead, greatly astonished the emperor, nor did the words
of the martyr less surprise him ; for he began with great severity to re-
prehend him for his various cruelties, and for his unreasonable prejudices
against Christianity. Having overcome his surprise, he ordered Sebas-
tian to be seized, carried to a place near the palace, and beaten to
death. That the Christians should not either bury or recover his body,
he ordered that it should be thrown into a common sewer. Neverthe-
less, a christian lady, named Lucina, found means to remove it and
bury it in the catacombs.
At this time the Christians, upon mature consideration, thought it
unlawful to bear arms under a heathen emperor. Their reasons w T ere :
— That they thereby were under the necessity of profaning the Christian
sabbath. — That they were obliged, with the rest of the army, frequently
to be present at idolatrous sacrifices before the temples of idols — That
they were compelled to follow the imperial standards, which were dedi-
cated to heathen deities, and bore their representations. These reasons
induced many to refuse to enter into the imperial army ; the Roman
constitution obliging all young men, of a certain stature, to make several
campaigns.
Maximilian, the son of Fabius Victor, being pointed out as a proper
person to bear arms, was ordered by Dion, the pro-consul, to be mea-
sured, that he might be enlisted in the service. He, however, boldly
declared himself a Christian, and refused to do military duty. Being
found of the proper height, Dion gave directions that he should be
marked as a soldier, according to the usual custom. He strenuously
opposed this order, and told Dion that he could not possibly engage in
the service. The pro-consul instantly replied, that he should either serve
as a soldier, or die for disobedience. " Do as you please with me
(replied Maximilian) ; behead me if you think proper ; I am already a
soldier of Christ, and cannot serve any other power."
62 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Dion, wishing notwithstanding to save the young man, commanded
his father to use his authority over him, to persuade him to comply ; but
Victor coolly replied, " My son knows best what he has to do." Dion
again demanded of Maximilian, with some acrimony, if he was yet dis-
posed to receive the mark. To which the young man replied, he had
already received the mark of Christ. " Have you! (exclaimed the pro-
consul in a rage) then I shall quickly send you to Christ." " As soon
as you please (answered Maximilian), that is all I wish or desire." The
pro-consul then pronounced this sentence upon him, " that for disobe-
dience in refusing to bear arms, and for professing the christian faith,
he should lose his head." This sentence he heard with great intrepidity,
and exclaimed with apparent rapture, " God be praised !"
At the place of execution, he exhorted those who were Christians to
remain so ; and such as were not, to embrace a faith which led to eternal
salvation. Then addressing his father with a cheerful countenance, he
desired that the military habit intended for him might be given to the
executioner ; and after taking leave of him, said, he hoped they should
meet again in the other world, and be happy to all eternity. He then
received the fatal stroke. The father beheld the execution with amazing
fortitude, and saw the head of his son severed from his body without any
emotion, but such as seemed to proceed from a conscious pleasure in
being the parent of one whose piety and courage rendered him so great
an example for the christian world.
Vitus, a Sicilian of a considerable family, was trained a Christian
from his infancy. His virtues increased with his years, his constancy
supported him under all afflictions, and his faith was superior to the
utmost perils and trials. Hylas, his father, who was a pagan, finding
that he had been instructed in the principles of Christianity by his nurse,
used all his endeavours to bring him back to paganism ; but finding all
efforts in vain, he forgot the feelings of a parent, and informed against
him to Valerian, governor of Sicily, who was very active in persecuting
the Christians at this period. When apprehended upon the information
of his father, Vitus was little - more than twelve years of age ; the go-
vernor therefore thought to frighten him out of his faith, and accordingly
threatened and ordered him to be severely scourged. After this, the
governor sent him back to his father, thinking that what he had suffered
would make him change his principles ; but in this he was mistaken ;
and Hylas, finding his son inflexible, basely allowed nature to sink under
superstition, and determined to sacrifice his son to the idols. On being
apprised of his design, Vitus escaped to Lucania, where being seized,
he was, by order of Valerian, put to death, June 14, A. D 303. His
nurse, Crescentia, who brought him up as a Christian, and Modestus, a
person who escaped with him, were martyred at the same time.
Victor, a Christian of good family at Marseilles, who spent great part
of the night in visiting the afflicted, and confirming the weak ; and his
fortune in relieving the distresses of poor Christians. His beneficence
becoming known, he was seized by the emperor's orders, and carried
before two prefects, who advised him to embrace paganism, and not for-
feit the favour of his prince, on account of a dead man, as they styled
Christ. In answer he replied, " That he preferred the service of that
man, who was in reality the Son of God, and had risen from the grave,
[KM I! PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. G3
to all the advantages he could receive from the emperor's favour: that
lie was a soldier of Christ, and would therefore take care that the post
he held under an earthly prince, should never interfere with his duty to
the King of heaven." For this reply, Victor was loaded with reproaches,
hut being" a man of rank, he was sent to the emperor to receive his
final sentence. When brought before him, the emperor, under the
severest penalties, commanded him to sacrifice to the Roman idols;
and on his refusal, Maximilian ordered him to be bound, and dragged
through the streets. During the execution of this order, he was treated
by the enraged populace with all manner of indignities. Remaining
inflexible, his courage was deemed obstinacy: to which he replied,
" That the ready disposition of the disciples of Christ to undergo any
sufferings for his sake, and the joy with which they met the most igno-
minious and painful death, were sufficient proofs of their assurance of
the object of that hope." He added, "That he was ready to give an
example of what he had said in his own person." When stretched on
the rack, he turned his eyes towards heaven, and prayed to God to give
him patience ; after which he underwent the tortures with admirable
fortitude. The executioners being tired with multiplying his tortures,
he was taken from the rack to a dungeon. During his confinement, he
convinced his gaolers, named Alexander, Felician, and Longinus. This
affair coming to the knowlege of the emperor, he ordered them to be
put to death, and the gaolers were immediately beheaded. Victor was
afterwards again put to the rack, beaten with clubs, and then sent to
his dungeon. Being a third time examined, he persevered in his prin-
ciples : a small altar was then brought, and he was commanded to offer
incense upon it immediately; but instead of complying he boldly
stepped forward, and with his foot overthrew both altar and idol !
The emperor, who was present, was so enraged at this, that he
ordered the foot which had kicked the altar, to be immediately cut off;
and Victor was afterwards sentenced to be thrown into a mill, and
crushed to pieces with the stones. This horrid sentence was carried
into execution: Victor was thrown into the mill, but part of the appa-
ratus breaking, he was drawn from it terribly bruised; and the emperor,
not having patience to stay till the machinery was repaired, ordered his
head to be struck off without delay.
While Maximus, governor of Cilicia, was at Tarsus, three Christians
were brought before him by Demetrius, a military officer. Tarachus
the eldest and first in rank, was addressed by Maximus, who asked him
what he was. The prisoner replied, " a Christian." This reply offending
the governor, he again made the demand, and was answered in a similar
manner. The governor then told him, that he ought to sacrifice to the
gods, as the only way to promotion, riches, and honours; and that
the emperors themselves did what he recommended him to perform.
Tarachus answered, that avarice was a sin, and gold itself an idol as
abominable as any other; since it promoted frauds, treacheries, rob-
beries, and murders ; it induced men to deceive each other, by which
in time they deceived themselves, and bribed the weak to their own
eternal destruction. As for promotion, he desired it not, as he could
not in conscience accept of any place which would subject him to pay
64 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
adoration to idols; and with regard to honours, he desired none greater
.than the honourable title of Christian. As to the emperors themselves
being pagans, he added, with the same undaunted spirit, that they were
deceived in adoring senseless idols, and evidently misled by the machi-
nations of the devil himself. For the boldness of this speech, his jaws
were ordered to be broken. He was then stripped, scourged, loaded
with chains, and thrown into a dismal dungeon, to remain there till the
trials of the other two prisoners. Probus was then brought before
Maximus, who, as usual, asked his name. Undauntedly the prisoner
answered, the most valuable name he could boast of was that of a
Christian. To this Maximus replied in the following words, " Your
name of Christian will be of little service to you, be therefore guided by
me; sacrifice to the gods, engage my friendship, and the favour of the
emperor." Probus nobly answered, " that as he had relinquished a
considerable fortune to become a soldier of Christ, it might appear
evident, that he neither cared for his friendship, nor the favour of the
emperor." Probus was then scourged; and Demetrius, the officer,
observing to him how his blood flowed, advised him to comply; but his
only anwer was, that those severities were agreeable to him. " What! "
cried Maximus, "does he still persist in his madness?" To which
Probus rejoined, " that character is wrongly bestowed on one who re-
fuses to worship idols, or what is worse, devils." After being scourged
on every part of his body, suffering with as much intrepidity as before,
and still repeating, " the more my body suffers and loses blood, the
more my soul will grow vigorous, and be a gainer," he was committed
to gaol, loaded with irons, and his hands and feet were stretched on
the stocks.
Andronicus was next brought up, when being asked the usual ques-
tions, he said, " I am a Christian, a native of Ephesus, and descended
from one of the first families in that city." He was ordered to undergo
punishments similar to those of Tarachus and Probus, and then was
remanded to prison. Having been confined some days, the three
prisoners were again brought before Maximus, who began to reason
with Tarachus, saying, that as age was honoured from the supposition
of its being accompanied by wisdom, he was in hopes that what had
already past must, upon deliberation, have caused a change in his sen-
timents. Finding himself mistaken, he ordered him to be tortured by
various means; fire was placed in the palms of Jiis hands; he was hung
up by his feet, and smoaked with wet straw; a mixture of salt and
vinegar was poured into his nostrils; and in this state he was remanded
to his dungeon. Probus being called, and asked if he would sacrifice,
replied, " I come better prepared to die than before; for what I have
already suffered, has only confirmed and strengthened me in my reso-
lution. Employ your whole power upon me, and you will find, that
neither you, nor your masters the emperors, nor the gods whom you
serve, nor the devil who is your father, shall oblige me to adore idols
whom I know not." The governor however attempted to reason with
him, paid extravagant praises to the pagan deities, and pressed him to
sacrifice to Jupiter; but Probus turned his causuistry into ridicule, and
said, "Shall I pay divine honours to Jupiter, to one who married his
IKMFI PRIMITIVE PKKSKCUTION. 65
own sister to an infamous debauchee, as lie is even acknowledged to
have done by your own priests and poets." Provoked at this speech,
the governor ordered him to be struck upon the mouth, for uttering
what, he culled blasphemy: his body was then seared with hot irons, he
was put to the rack, and afterwards scourged; his head was then
shaved, and red hot coals placed upon the crown; and after all these
tortures, he was remanded to prison.
When Andronicus was again brought before Maximus, the latter
attempted to deceive him, by pretending that Tarachus and Probus
had repented of their obstinacy, and owned the gods of the empire.
To this the prisoner answered, " Lay not, O governor, such a weakness
to the charge of those who have appeared before me in this cause, nor
imagine it to be in your power to shake my fixed resolution with artful
speeches. I cannot believe that they have disobeyed the laws of their
fathers, renounced their hopes in our God, and consented to your ex-
travagant orders : nor will I ever fall short of them in faith and de-
pendence upon our common Saviour. Thus armed, I neither know
your gods nor fear your authority; fulfil your threats, execute your
most sanguinary inventions, and employ every cruel art in your power
on me; I am prepared to bear it for the sake of Christ." For this
answer he was cruelly scourged, and his wounds were afterwards rubbed
with salt; but being well again in a short time, the governor reproached
the gaoler for having suffered some physician to attend to him. The
gaoler declared, that no person whatever had been near him, or the
other prisoners, and that he would forfeit his head if any allegation of
the kind could be proved against him. Andronicus corroborated the
testimony of the gaoler, and added, that the God whom he served was
the most powerful of physicians.
These intrepid Christians were brought to a third examination, when
they retained their constancy, were again tortured, and at length
ordered for execution. Being brought to the amphitheatre, several
beasts were let loose upon them; but none of the animals, though
hungry, would touch them. Pvlaximus was so surprised and incensed
at this circumstance, that he severely reprehended the keeper, and
ordered him to produce a beast that would execute the business for
which he was wanted. The keeper then brought out a large bear, that
had that day destroyed three men; but this creature, and a fierce
lioness, also refused to touch the Christians. Finding the design of
destroying them by the means of wild beasts ineffectual, Maximus
ordered them to be slain by a sword, which was accordingly done on
the 11th of October, A. D 303. The resolute martrys all declared
that as death was the common lot of men, they wished to meet it for
the sake of Christ; and to resign that life to faith, which must other-
wise be the prey of disease.
Romanus, a native of Palestine, was deacon of the church of Csesarea,
at the commencement of Diocletian's persecution. He was at Antioch
when the imperial order arrived for sacrificing to idols, and was greatly
afflicted to see many Christians, through fear, submit to the idolatrous
mandate, and deny their faith to preserve their existence. While cen-
suring some for their conduct, he was informed against to the emperor,
F
66 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
and soon after apprehended. Being brought to the tribunal, he con-
fessed himself a Christian, and said he was willing to suffer any thing
which he was pleased to inflict upon him for his confession. When
condemned for his faith, he was scourged, put to the rack, his body
torn with hooks, his flesh cut with knives, his face scarified, his teeth
beat from their sockets, and his hair plucked up by the roots. Thus
cruelly mangled, he turned to the governor, and calmly thanked him
for what he had done, and for having opened so many mouths to
preach the doctrines of Christianity; "for," said he, " every wound is a
mouth, to sing the praises of the Lord."
The following circumstance, which happened upon this occasion, is
related by Prudentius and other writers. Romanus offered to stand to
the decision of a young child, whose age must be free from malice, and
to put the truth of the Christian religion upon that test. Ascepiades is
said to have accepted of the proposal. A child about seven years of
age was called out of the crowd, and being asked whether he thought
it to be true, that men ought to worship but one God in Christ, or to
worship many gods, he answered, that he thought, whatsoever men
affirm to be God, must be but one, and as this one is Christ, he must
of necessity be God; " for that there are many gods," continued the
boy, "we children cannot believe." The governor amazed at this,
was highly enraged with the child, and calling him a little villain
and a young traitor, asked him who taught him that lesson. To
which the child replied, "My mother, with whose milk I sucked in
this lesson, that I must believe in Christ." This so incensed the
governor, that he ordered the infant to be severely whipped ; insomuch
that the beholders could not refrain from tears, the mother of the child
only excepted, who reproved him for asking for a draught of water,
charging him to thirst for that cup which the infants of Bethlehem had
drank of, and bidding him remember Isaac, who willingly offered
himself to death by his father's hand. While the woman was giving
her son this lesson, the executioner plucked the skin and hair from the
crown of his head; his mother at the same time saying to him, "though
you suffer here, my child, you shall shortly be with him, who shall adorn
thy naked head with a crown of eternal glory." Upon which the child
smiled upon her and his executioners, and bore their stripes with silent
fortitude. Romanus soon after was ordered to be strangled, and the
child to be beheaded; which sentence was executed on the 17th of
November, A. D. 303.
Marcellinus was an ecclesiastic at Rome ; being apprehended on ac-
count of his religion, he was ordered to be privately executed in the
forest, and was accordingly beheaded there. Peter, a Christian, appre-
hended for the same cause, was executed at the same time and place.
Also about this period, Smagardus, Largus, and Cyracus, a deacon of
the christian church, were martyred ; but the mode of their death is not
specified.
Susanna, the niece of Caius, bishop of Rome, was enjoined by the
emperor Diocletian to marry a noble pagan, who was nearly related to
him : but she refused the honour, on account of being a Christian, which
so enraged the emperor, that she was immediately afterwards beheaded
TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. (17
by his order. Dorotheas, chamberlain of the household to Diocletian,
was a Christian, and took great pains to make converts. He was assisted
by Gorgonius, another Christian belonging to the palace : they were both
high in the emperor's favour, but they soon proved that worldly honours
and temporary pleasures were nothing when set in competition with
the joys of immortality; for being informed against, they were first
tortured and then strangled. Peter, an eunuch belonging to the em-
peror, was a Christian of singular humility, insomuch that he did any
servile office to serve the afflicted, and gave whatever he possessed to
those who needed assistance. Having been informed against, and con-
fessing the charge, he was scourged till his flesh was torn in a terrible
manner; then salt and vinegar were thrown upon the wounds, and after
suffering these tortures with the utmost tranquillity, he was laid on a
gridiron, and broiled over a slow fire till he expired in the greatest
agony.
Cyprian, known by the title of magician, to distinguish him from
Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, was a native of Antioch. He received
a liberal education in his youth, and applied himself to astrology; after
which he travelled through India, Egypt, and Greece. He afterwards
settled near Babylon, and being skilled in Chaldean mysteries, he em-
ployed his talents in endeavouring to draw women from chastity and
conjugal faith, and in persecuting the Christians and ridiculing Chris-
tianity. He became acquainted with Justina, a young lady of Antioch,
of high birth, beauty, and accomplishments, who had been educated in
idolatry ; but being converted to Christianity, she induced her father and
mother to embrace the same faith. Her modesty was remarkable. A
pagan gentleman strongly attached to her, not being able to obtain
a favourable return to his addresses, applied for assistance to Cyprian,
who undertook the design, but with a treacherous intent: for under the
pretence of acting for his friend, he determined if possible, to possess the
lady himself. To effect this, he employed all his skill ; but his endeavours
proving ineffectual, he was convinced that a superior power protected
her from his evil intentions. Consequent reflection, caused him to search
into the truths of Christianity, and his enquiry became so beneficial, that
he renounced paganism. His repentance was sincere; he determined to
reform his conduct, and to make every amends in his power for the crimes
he had committed. He burnt his books of astrology and magic, received
baptism, and became animated with a powerful spirit of piety. The
conversion of Cyprian had a great effect on the pagan gentleman who
paid his addresses to Justina, and he also in a short time embraced
Christianity. During the persecution of Diocletian, Cyprian and Justina
were seized upon as Christians, when the former was torn with pincers,
and the latter chastised ; and after suffering other torments, both were
beheaded.
Sergius was an officer in the Roman army, and attended the emperor
Maximian into Syria. Being accused as a Christian, he was ordered to
sacrifice to Jupiter; but refusing, he was stripped of his military habit,
and, in derision, dressed in woman's clothes. He was then compelled
to walk a considerable way with nails in his sandals, and had an end
put to his sufferings by being beheaded. Bacchius, an officer of the
68 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
same rank with Sergius, being apprehended at the same time, underwent
similar sufferings, and was beheaded on the same day, A. D. 303.
A Spanish lady of a Christian family, named Eulalia, who was remark-
able in her youth for sweetness of temper and solidity of understanding,
was apprehended as a Christian. The magistrate attempted, by the
mildest means, to bring her over to paganism, but she answered him in
so ironical a manner, and ridiculed the pagan deities with such wit,
that, incensed at her behaviour, he ordered her to be tortured. Ac-
cordingly her sides were torn by hooks, and her breasts burnt in the most
shocking manner, till the fire catching her head and face, she expired.
This happened in December A. D. 303.
The emperor Diocletian becoming ill, in the year 304, the persecution
was carried on by Galerius, and the governors of the several provinces,
when many fell victims to the zeal or malice of the persecutors: among
whom the following persons are enumerated : —
Vincent, a Spanish Christian, brought up by Valerius, bishop of
Saragossa, who, on account of his great merits, ordained him a deacon.
When the persecution reached Spain, Dacian, the governor of Tarragona,
ordered Valerius the bishop, and Vincent the deacon, to be seized, loaded
with irons, and imprisoned. Some time after Dacian examined them with
great asperity, and threatened them with death, unless they renounced
their principles. Vincent undertaking to speak for both, avowed their
full determination to persist in the faith. Hereupon, Dacian, in a rage
at his freedom of speech, declared that unless he immediately offered
incense to the gods, he should fall a sacrifice. But the prisoners being
firm in their resolution, Valerius was banished, and the whole of Dacian's
rage directed against Vincent, who was racked, had his limbs dislocated,
his flesh torn with hooks, and was laid on a gridiron, which had not
only a fire placed under it, but spikes at the top, which run into his
flesh. These torments neither destroying him nor changing his resolu-
tion, he was remanded to prison, and confined in a dark dungeon.
Orders were also given not to allow him any provisions whatever, and
that the news of his death should be carried to Dacian as soon as known.
When the keepers thought him starved they entered the dungeon, but
instead of seeing a corpse as they expected, they beheld Vincent at
prayers, his wounds in a great measure healed, and his body in tolerable
health.
This speedy recovery and preservation had such an effect upon the
keepers, that.it became the means of their conversion. Dacian however,
instead of being softened, was enraged at the triumph of Vincent over
his cruelties, and gave orders for new tortures to be prepared, so severe
as to compel him to sink under them. But his malice was again dis-
appointed, for before the instruments could be prepared, God took him
to himself, and he died with all the serenity of a good conscience, and
with as much calmness as if he had only fallen into a gentle sleep.
Dacian then ordered that his body should be exposed in the fields to the
birds of prey; but they not offering to touch it, he commanded that it
should be thrown into the river, which was done accordingly. His death
happened on the 22nd of January, 304.
it was in this year the persecution of Diocletian began again to prevail,
TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 69
and many Christians were put to cruel tortures, and the most painful
deaths; the most eminent and particular of these were, Saturninus, a
priest of Albilina in Africa. He used to preach and administer the
sacrament to a society of Christians, who privately assembled at the
house of Octavius Felix; for the severity of the times was such, that
they could not publicly observe their religious duties. Having; been
informed against, Saturninus, with four of his children, and several other
persons, were apprehended; and that their punishment, might be the
more exemplary and public, they were sent to Carthage, the capital of
Africa, where they were examined before Anulinus, the pro-consul of
that quarter.
Saturninus, on the examination, gave such spirited answers, and vin-
dicated the christian religion with eloquence that shewed he was worthy
to preside over an assembly possessing a faith of purity and truth.
Anulinus, enraged at his arguments, ordered him to be silenced by being-
put to a variety of tortures, such as scourging, tearing his flesh with
hooks, and burning with hot irons. Having been thus inhumanly
treated, he was remanded to prison and there starved to death. His
four children, notwithstanding they were variously tormented, remained
steady in their faith ; on which they were sent to the dungeon in which
their father was confined, where they calmly and even cheerfully shared
his fate.
There were eight other Christians tortured on the same day as Satur-
ninus, and much in the same manner. Two expired on the spot through
the severity of their sufferings, and the other six being remanded to
prison, were suffocated for want of a pure air. Thelico, a pious Chris-
tian; Dativus, a noble Roman senator; Victoria, a young lady of con-
siderable family and fortune, with some others of less consideration, who
had been all auditors of Saturninus, were seized at the time, tortured in
a similar manner, and perished by the same means. About the same
time three sisters, Chionia, Agape, and Irene, were seized at Thes-
salonica. They had been educated in the christian faith, but had taken
great precautions to remain unknown. They therefore retired to a soli-
tary place, and spent their hours in performing religious duties. Being,
however, discovered and seized, they renounced their former timidity,
blamed themselves for being fearful, and begged of God to strengthen
them against the great trial they had to undergo.
When Agape was examined before Dulcatius, the governor, and was
asked whether she was disposed to comply with the law of the land, and
obey the mandate of the emperor, she answered, That being a Christian,
she could not comply with any law which commanded the worship of
idols and devils ; that her resolution was fixed, and nothing should deter
her from maintaining it. Her sister Chionia answered in the same
manner; when the governor, not being able to draw them from their
faith, pronounced sentence of condemnation on them, in consequence
of which they were burnt, March 25, A. D. 304.
Irene was then brought before the governor, who fancied that the
death of her sisters would have an effect upon her fears, and that the
dread of similar suffering would engage her to comply with his proposals.
He therefore exhorted her to acknowledge the heathen deities, to sacrifice
70 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
to them, to partake of the victims, and to deliver up her books relative
to Christianity. But she firmly refused to comply with any of them.
The governor then asked her, who persuaded her and her sisters to keep
those books and writings. She answered, It was that God who com-
manded them to love him to the last ; for which reason she was resolved
to submit to be burned alive rather than give them up into the hands of
bis professed enemies. When the governor found that he could make
no impression on her, he ordered her to be exposed naked in the streets;
which shameful order having been executed, she was burnt, April 1,
A. D. 304, on the same spot where her sisters had suffered before her.
Agatho, a man of a pious turn of mind, with Cassice, Philippa, and
Eutychia, were martyred about the same time; as was Marc ell in us,
bishop of Rome, who succeeded Caius in that see. He was greatly
perplexed during this persecution; and having strongly resisted paying
divine honours to Diocletian, who wished to exact them from the people,
and to appear as a god, he was at length seized and committed to a
dungeon. He suffered martyrdom, by a variety of tortures, in the
year 304.
Theodotus, a Dalmatian, kept an inn at Ancyra. Being a Christian,
and of a very humane disposition, he devoted a great part of his time to
visit the afflicted, and a great part of his property to relieve the poor.
Theotecnus, governor of these parts, whose cruelty was equalled by
nothing but his bigotry, received the mandate for persecuting the Chris-
tians with great satisfaction, and wrote the emperor word that he would
do his utmost endeavours to root out Christianity from every place under
his jurisdiction. Thus encouraged by the governor, the pagans began
to inform against and persecute the Christians. Great numbers were
seized and imprisoned; their goods were destroyed, and their estates
confiscated. Many fled to the woods, or retired to caves, where some
supported themselves by feeding upon roots, and others perished by
famine. Many were starved in the city, by means of the following
singular stratagem : the governor gave orders that no provisions what-
ever should be exposed to sale in the markets, without having been first
consecrated to the idols ; hence the Christians were compelled to eat
idolatrous food, or to starve and perish. The latter dreadful alternative
was chosen by most of them, who, to preserve the purity of their faith,
heroically gave up their lives. It was in these dreadful times, Theodotus
did all that he could to comfort the imprisoned, and buried the bodies
of several who had been martyred, though it was forbidden on pain of
death. He likewise privately assisted many with food; for having laid
in a great stock of corn and wine, he sold it at a low price, and often
gave it away.
Polychronicus, a Christian, being seized, forfeited his faith, in order
to preserve his life, and informed against his friend Theodotus, who
hearing of this treachery, surrendered himself to the governor of his
own accord. On his arrival in the court, he surveyed the instruments
of torture with a smile, and seemed totally regardless of their operation.
When placed at the bar, the governor informed him, that it was still in
his power to save himself, by sacrificing to the gods of the empire.
"And, (he continued,) if you renounce your faith in Christ, I promise
TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 71
you m\ friendship, and the emperor's protection, and will constitute you
one of the magistrates of the town." Theodotus displayed great courage
and eloquence in his answer : he refused to renounce his faith, declined
the friendship of the governor and protection of the emperor, and
treated their idols with the greatest contempt. The pagans on this were
extremely clamorous against the prisoner, and demanded that he should
bu immediately punished. The priests in particular rent their clothes,
and tore their chaplets, the badges of their offices, through rage. The
governor complied with their desire, when Theodotus was scourged, torn
with hooks, and then placed upon the rack. After this, vinegar was
poured into his wounds, his flesh was seared with burning torches, and
his teeth were knocked out of their sockets. He was then remanded to
prison ; and as he went, pointing to his mangled body, he said to the
people, " It was but just that Christians should suffer for him who
suffered for us all." Five days afterwards he was brought from prison,
tortured, and then beheaded.
Victor, a native of Ancyra, was accused by the priests of Diana for
having abused their goddess. For this imputed crime he was seized and
committed to prison, his house plundered, his family turned out of doors,
and his estate forfeited. When put to the rack, his resolution failed
through the variety and severity of his torments. Being carried back to
prison, that he might make a full recantation he suffered for his apostasy ;
his wounds mortified, and put an end to his life.
A Christian, of the name of Timothy, being carried before Urban,
governor of Palestine, was sentenced to be burnt to death by a slow
fire ; which sentence was executed at Gaza, on the 19th day of August,
A. D. 104.
Philip, bishop of Heraclea, had, in every act of his life, appeared a
devoted Christian ; the chief of his disciples were Severus a priest, and
Hermes a deacon ; who did much to promote the cause of Christianity.
This worthy bishop was advised to conceal himself, in order to avoid the
storm of the persecution ; but he reproved those who counselled him to
do so, telling them that their courage would be enhanced by their suffer-
ings, and that death had no terror for the virtuous. He therefore
publicly performed his duty.
An officer named Aristomachus, being employed to shut up the chris-
tian church in Heraclea, Philip took great pains to convince him, that
shutting up buildings made by hands could not destroy Christianity,
while the living temples of the Lord remained ; for the true faith con-
sisted not in the places where God is adored, but in the hearts of those
who adore God. Being denied entrance into the church where he used
to preach, Philip took up his station at the door, and there exhorted
people to patience, perseverance, and godliness. For this he was seized
and carried before the governor, who severely reprimanded him, and
then continued to speak sternly in these words — " Bring all the vessels
used in your worship, and the scriptures which you read and teach the
people, and surrender them to me, before you are forced to do it by
tortures." " If," replied the bishop, " you take any pleasure in seeing
us suffer, we are prepared for the worst you can do. This infirm body
is in your power ; use it as you please. The vessels you demand shall
72 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
be delivered up, for God is not honoured by gold and silver, but by fear
and love; but as to our sacred books, it is neither proper for me to part
with them, nor for you to receive them." This answer so much incensed
the governor, that he ordered him to torture. Hermes, expressing him-
self freely against such barbarities, was ordered to be scourged at the
same time.
The pagans having proceeded to the place where the scriptures and
the church plate were kept, immediately seized them ; they likewise
unroofed the church, walled up the doors, melted down the plate, and
burnt the scriptures. When Philip was taken to the market-place, he
was ordered to sacrifice to the Roman deities in general, and to a very
handsome image of Hercules in particular ; to which command, he made
an animated address on the real nature of the deity ; and concluded,
that from what he had already said, it appeared that the heathens wor-
shipped what might lawfully be trodden on, and made gods of such
things as Providence had designed for common use. The governor then
tried the constancy of Hermes, but finding him as inflexible as the
bishop, he committed them both to prison. Soon after this, the gover-
nor's time of ruling those parts being expired, a new governor named
Justin arrived ; but he was equally cruel as his predecessor. Philip was
then dragged by the feet through the streets, severely scourged, and
brought a'gain to the governor, who charged him with obstinate rashness
in continuing disobedient to the imperial decrees ; but he boldly replied
that he was obliged to prefer heaven to earth, and to obey God rather
than man. On this the governor immediately passed sentence on him
to be burnt, which was executed accordingly, and he expired, singing
praises to God in the midst of the fire. Hermes, for behaving in a
similar manner, and Severus, who had surrendered himself resolutely to
suffer with his friends, endured the same fate. Such were the effects of
a diabolical zeal for the adoration of idols.
St. Ambrose asserts that Agricola was a Christian of so amiable a
disposition, that he even gained the esteem and admiration of the
pagans. Being apprehended as a Christian, he was crucified in imita-
tion of the death of our Saviour; and his body, together with the cross,
were buried at Bologna in Italy, in one grave. Vitalis, the servant
and convert of Agricola, was seized on the same charge as his master,
and being put to the severity of the torture, died under the hands of
his tormentors. Carphorus, Victorius, Severus, and Severanus, were
brothers, and all employed in places of great trust and honour in the
city of Rome. Having exclaimed against worshipping idols, they were
apprehended, and scourged with a whip, to the ends of which were
fastened leaden balls. This punishment was exercised with such rigour,
that the pious brothers fell martyrs to its severity.
A Christian of Aquileia, named Chrysogonus, was beheaded by order
of Diocletian, for having instructed Anastasia, a young lady of that
city, in the christian faith. This lady was descended from an illustrious
Roman family. Her mother, named Flavia, was a Christian, and dying
while her daughter was an infant, she bequeathed her to the care of
Chrysogonus, with a strict injunction to instruct her in the principles of
Christianity. This Chrysogonus punctually performed; but the father
TENTH PRIMITIVE PERSECUTION. 73
of the lady, who was a pagan, gave her in marriage to a person of his
own persuasion, named Publius, who was of a good family, but bad
murals, and having spent his wife's and his own patrimony, he had the
baseness to inform against her as a Christian. Publius soon after dying,
she was released ; but continuing to perform many charitable actions to
Christians, she was again apprehended, and delivered up to Florus,
governor of Illyricum. Florus commanded that she should be put to
the torture; when finding her constant in the faith, he ordered her to be
burnt, which was executed on December 25, A. D. 304; the event
taking place about a month after the martyrdom of Chrysogonus, her
instructor.
In the same year, Mouris and Thea, two christian women of Gaza,
were martyred in that city. The former died under the hands of her
tormentors, and the latter perished in prison of the wounds she had
received.
Timothy, a deacon of Mauritania, and Maura his wife, had not been
married above three weeks, when they were separated from each other
by the persecution. Timothy was carried before Arrianus, the governor
of Thebais, who did all in his power to induce him to embrace the pagan
superstition. Perceiving his endeavours vain, and knowing that Timothy
had the keeping of the holy scriptures, the governor commanded him to
deliver them up, that they might be burnt: to which Timothy. answered,
" Had I children I would sooner deliver them up to be sacrificed, than
part from the word of God." The governor, incensed at this reply,
ordered his eyes to be put out with hot irons, saying, " The books
shall at least be useless to you, for you shall not see to read them."
He endured the punishment with such patience that the governor was
the more exasperated, and ordered him to be hung up by the feet, with
a weight tied about his neck, and a gag in his mouth. This treatment
he bore with the greatest courage, when some person acquainted
the governor that he had been but newly married to a wife of whom he
was extremely fond. Arrianus accordingly ordered Maura to be sent for,
and promised a handsome reward, with the life of her husband, if she
could prevail upon him to sacrifice to the idols. Maura, wavering in her
faith, tempted by a bribe, and impelled by an unbounded affection for
her husband, undertook the impious affair.
When conducted to him, she assailed his constancy with all the
persuasive language of affection. When the gag was taken out of his
mouth in order to give him an opportunity of replying, instead of
consenting to his wife's entreaties, as they expected, he blamed her
mistaken love, and declared his resolution of dying for the faith.
Maura repeated her importunities, till her husband reproved her so
strongly for her weakness, that she returned to his way of thinking,
and resolved to imitate his courage and fidelity, and either to accompany
or follow him to glory. Timothy advised her to repair her fault by
declaring that resolution to the governor, by whose order she had un-
dertaken the sinful commission. On which being strengthened by his
exhortations, and the grace of God, she went to Arrianus and told him,
that she was united to her husband in opinion as well as love, and was
ready to suffer any thing to atone for her late crime, in wishing to make
74 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
him an apostate. The governor immediately ordered her to be tortured,
which was executed with great severity; and after this Timothy and
Maura were crucified near each other, A. D. 304.
A bishop of Assisium, named Sabinus, refusing to sacrifice to Jupiter,
and pushing the idol from him, had his hands cut off by the order of
the governor of Tuscany. After patiently suffering this barbarity, he
was committed to prison, where he remained a considerable time without
any assistance or relief but what he received from a christian widow,
whose blind grandson had been restored by him to sight. The governor,
who was himself afflicted in his sight, on hearing this intelligence, began
to consider the behaviour of the Christians, and the tenets of Chris-
tianity in a more favourable light, and sending for Sabinus, he informed
him that he now entertained very different sentiments to what he had
hitherto done, both with respect to him and his faith; then throwing
himself at the feet of Sabinus, he entreated him to afford him assistance
and to undertake the cure of his body and soul. The undissembled
fervour with which he spoke convinced Sabinus of his sincerity; he was
accordingly baptized, and the disorder in his eyes immediately left
them : this conversion of the governor was followed by that of his whole
family, and some of his friends. When the tyrant Maximian was in-
formed of these circumstances, he immediately ordered the governor
and all his family to be beheaded. Immediately after their execution,
Sabinus was scourged to death; and two ecclesiastics, named Marcellus
and Experantius, who officiated under Sabinus, were scourged in a most
dreadful manner; but remaining constant in their faith, their flesh was
torn with hooks till they expired. This took place in December,
A. D. 304.
It now happened that, weary of the farce of state, and public
business, the emperors Diocletian and Maximian resigned the imperial
diadem, and were succeeded by Constantius and Galerius; the former,
a prince of the most mild and humane disposition, and the latter re-
markable for his tyranny and cruelty. These divided the empire into
two equal governments; Galerius ruling in the East, and Constantius in
the West; and the people in the two governments felt the effects of the
different dispositions of the two emperors; for those in the West were
governed in the mildest manner, but such as resided in the East felt all
the miseries of cruelty and oppression/
f Sulpicius, in the second book of his Sacred History, observes, that the primitive
Christians were more desirous of martyrdom than its professors in the after ages were of
bishoprics ! The number of martyrs increased under the persecutions of the contemporary
emperors, Maximian and Diocletian, so much, that there were never less than ten executed
daily, and from that to twenty, thirty, sixty, and even a hundred, who suffered various
kinds of deaths till at last it was found necessary to destroy all in one general sacrifice per
day, as the prisons became so crowded that there were no means of keeping the Christians
alive. Eusebius, in his eighth book, cap. 9. as well as Damasus, Bede, Orosius, Honorius,
and others witness, that there were slain in this persecution by the name of Martyrs, within
the space of thirty days, seventeen thousand persons !
Bede in his history writes, that this persecution began under Diocletian, and endured till
the seventh year of Constantinus. And Eusebius says that it lasted till the tenth year of
Constantinus. It was not yet one year from the day in which Diocletian and Maximian,
joining themselves together, began their persecution, before they saw the number of the
CHRISTIANS KILLED BY GALERIUS. 7. r >
As G ale 1 his bore an implacable hatred to Christians, we are informed,
that " he not only condemned them to tortures, but to be burnt in slow
fires, in this horrible manner: they were first chained to a post, then a
gentle fire put to the soles of their feet, which contracted the callus till
Christians rather increase than diminish, notwithstanding all the cruelty that ever they
could shew, and therefore they despaired of rooting them out.
Some important events which happened to Diocletian, seem so immediately the effect cf
divine judgment upon that tyrant, that we think it proper to call the attention of the reader
to the brief recital of them. When Diocletian and Maximian had reigned together as
emperors one and twenty years, (Nicephorus says, two and twenty years), Diocletian
abandoned his imperial dignity at Nicomedia, and lived at Salona ; Maximian did the same
at Milan ; and thus both of them led a private life, in the three hundred and ninth year
after Christ. This strange alteration made it happen, that, within a short space after, there
were in the Roman commonwealth many emperors at one time.
We have stated in the text in what manner the empire was divided between Galerius and
Constantius; but the latter deserves some farther mention on account of his virtues.
Constantius, as a modest prince, contented with the imperial title, refused Italy and Africa,
satisfying himself only with France, Spain, and Britain. On which Galerius chose to him
his two sons, Maximinius and Severus ; and on this Constantius took Constantinus his son
as Caesar under him. In the mean time, while Galerius with his two Caesars were in
Asia, the Roman soldiers set up for their emperor Maxentius, the son of Maximian, who
had before deposed himself. Against him Galerius, the emperor of the East, sent his son
Severus, who in the same voyage was slain of Maxentius, in whose place then Galerius
took Licinus. And these were the emperors and Caesars who succeeded after Diocletian
and Maximian, and continued that persecution which Diocletian and Maximian begun,
during the space of seven or eight years. Constantius had no desire of dominion ; but was
a prince, as Eutropius describes him, very excellent, meek, gentle, liberal, and desirous to
do good to all who had any authority under him: and as Cyrus once said, that he got
treasure enough, when he made his friends rich ; and Constantius would often say, that it
were better that his subjects had treasure, than he to have it in his treasury. He was
disgusted with finery, so that he used to eat and drink out of earthen vessels, a part of his
conduct which has been much praised by Agathocles, the Sicilian. To these virtues he
added devotion and affection towards the word of God, so that he neither levied any wars
contrary to piety and the christian religion, nor aided any other prince that did the same;
neither did he destroy the churches, but commanded that Christians should be preserved
and defended from all injury. Constantius knowing that he had many hypocrites in his
service, and wishing at a certain time to try what sincere Christians he had in his court,
called together all his officers and servants, pretending to choose out such as would do
sacrifice to devils, and that those only should keep their offices, while those who would refuse
should be banished the .court. At this appointment, all the courtiers divided themselves
into companies. The emperor marked which were the godliest; and when some said they
would willingly do sacrifice, others boldly denied to do so. Then the emperor sharply
rebuked those who were ready to do sacrifice, and called them traitors to God, account-
ing them unworthy to be in his court, and commanded that they should be banished. But
he greatly commended those who refused to do sacrifice, affirming, that they only were
worthy to be about a prince ; and commanded that henceforth they should be the trusty
counsellors and defenders both of his person and kingdom.
As before said, with Constantius was joined Galerius, a man, as Eutropius affirms, who
was very civil and a good soldier, as well as a favourer of wise and learned men. But
Eusebius far otherwise describes him. He says, he was of a tyrannical disposition, exces-
sively timid and curious in all superstition, insomuch that without the divinations and
answers of magicians, he durst do nothing at all; and therefore he gave great offices and
dignities to enchanters. He was an exacter and extortioner of the citizens, liberal to those
that were flatterers, given to surfeiting and riot, a great drinker of wine, and in his furious
drunkenness like a mad-man. To conclude, he was so great an idolater, that he built up
temples in every city, and repaired those that were falling in great decay : but to the
Christian religion, he was most incensive, and in the East churches exercised cruel
persecutions.
He at length revoked his cruelty by the just judgment and punishment of God. For
he was seized with a fatal and desperate disease. The physicians, not. able to abide the
76 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
it fell off from the bone; then flambeaux just extinguished were put to
all parts of their bodies, so that they might be tortured all over; and
care was taken to keep them alive, by throwing cold water in their faces,
and giving them some to wash their mouths, lest their throats should be
dried up with thirst, and choke them. Thus their miseries were length-
ened out, till at last, their skins being consumed, and they just ready
to expire, were thrown into a great fire, and had their bodies burned to
ashes, after which their ashes were thrown into some river."
Of the Christians martyred by the order of Galerius, the most eminent
are these : — Amphianus was a gentleman of distinction in Lycia, and a
scholar of Eusebius; pressing through the crowd while the proclamation
for sacrificing to idols was read, he caught the governor Urbianus by the
hand, and severely reproved him for his wickedness. On which the
governor, incensed at the freedom, ordered him to be put to the torture,
and then thrown into the sea. iEdesius, brother of the last mentioned
intolerable offence of the disorder, some of them were commanded to be slain, and others,
because they could not heal him, were cruelly put to death. At length, being reminded
that this disease was sent by God, he began to think of the wickedness that he had done
against the saints, and so confessed his offences: then calling those who were about him,
he commanded all men to cease from persecuting the Christians; requiring, moreover, that
they should set up his imperial proclamations, for restoring their temples, and that they
would require of the Christians, that they would devoutly pray to God for their emperor.
Then was the persecution discontinued.
Maximian, the other persecutor of the Christians, and the contemporary sovereign with
Diocletian, also met with a dreadful end. Maxentius, the son of Maximian, was set up at
Rome by the praetorian soldiers to be emperor. To this the senate, though they did not
consent, yet for fear did not resist. Maximian, his father, who had before deprived himself
with Diocletian, hearing of this, was inclined to resume his dignity, and laboured to persuade
Diocletian to do the same: but not succeeding, he repaired to Rome, thinking to wrest the
empire out of his son's hands. But as the soldiers would not suffer that, he fled to
Constantinus in France, under pretence of complaining of Maxentius his son, but in fact
to kill Constantinus; but the conspiracy being detected by Fausta, the daughter of
Maximian, whom Constantinus had married, Constantinus through the grace of God was
preserved, and Maximian returned. In his flight he was apprehended and put to death.
Maxentius all this while reigned at Rome with tyranny and wickedness like another
Pharaoh or Nero. He slew most of his noblemen, and took their estates. Sometimes in
his rage he would destroy great multitudes of the people of Rome by his soldiers, as
Eusebius declares. He is said to have left no mischievous nor lascivious act unattempted.
Letus declares, that being in love with a noble and chaste gentlewoman of Rome, he sent to
her such of his courtiers as he held in great estimation. These first fell upon her husband
and murdered him in his own house: and when they could by no means get her away from
him, she desired leave to go into her chamber, and after prayer she would accomplish what
they requested. When she had reached her chamber under this plea, she killed herself.
The end of Maxentius was as follows. Constantinus had a vision that commanded him
to bear the sign of a cross before his army and go against the pagans. The day following
this night's vision, Constantinus caused a cross after the same figure to be made of gold and
precious stones, and to be borne before him instead of his standard ; and with as much hope
of victory and confidence as one armed from Heaven, advanced towards his enemy.
Maxentius being constrained to issue out of the city against him, sent all his power to join
him in the field beyond the river Tiber, where Maxentius craftily breaking down the bridge
called Pons Milvius, caused an artificial bridge to be made of boats, thinking to take
Constantinus as in a trap. But here it came to pass, as is written, in the seventh Psalm,
"He digged a pit and fell therein himself." After the hosts met, he being unable to sustain
the force of Constantinus fighting under the cross against him, was put to such a flight, that
in returning back, thinking to get into the city upon the same bridge which he laid for
Constantinus, was overturned by the fall of his horse, and, with a great part of his men,
was drowned.
BURNING OF JULITTA. 7 7
martyr, was, about the same time, martyred at Alexandria, in a terrible
manner. Julitta, a Lyconian of royal descent, was a christian lady of
moat humility, constancy, and integrity. When the edict for sacrificing
to idols was published at Iconium, she withdrew from that city, taking
with her only her young son Cyricus, and two female servants. She
was, however, seized at Tarsus, and being carried before Alexander, the
governor, she acknowledged that she was a Christian. For this confes-
sion her son was taken from her, and she was immediately put to the
rack, and tortured with great severity; but she bore her sufferings with
true Christian resignation. The child however cried bitterly to get at
his mother; when the governor observing the beauty and melted at
the tears of the infant, took him upon his knee, and endeavoured to
pacify him. Nothing, however, could quiet Cyricus; he still called
upon the name of his mother, and at length, in imitation of her words,
lisped out, " I am a Christian." This innocent expression turned the
governor's compassion into rage; and throwing the child furiously
against the pavement, he dashed out its brains. The mother, who from
the rack beheld the transaction, thanked the Almighty that her child
was gone before her; and she should have no anxiety concerning his
future w r elfare. To complete the torture, Julitta had boiling pitch
poured on her feet, her sides torn with hooks, and received the end of
her martyrdom by being beheaded, April 16, A. D. 305.
Pantaleon, a native of Nicomedia, received an elegant education from
his father, who was a pagan, and was taught the precepts of the gospel
by his mother, who was a Christian. Applying to the study of medicine,
he became eminent in the knowledge of physic, and in process of time
was appointed physician to the emperor Galerius. The name of this
man in Greek signifies humane, and the appellation well suited his
nature, for he was one of the most benevolent men of his time; but his
extraordinary reputation roused the jealousy of the pagan physicians,
who accused him to the emperor. Galerius on finding him a Christian,
ordered him to be tortured, and then beheaded, which sentence was
executed on July 27, A. D. 305. Hermolaus, a venerable and pious
Christian, of great age, and an intimate acquaintance of Pantaleon,
suffered martyrdom for his faith on the same day, and in the same
manner.
Julitta, of Cappadocia, was a lady of distinguished capacity, great
virtue, and uncommon courage : she was martyred on account of a law-
suit, of which Basil, bishop of Csesarea, gives an account as follows: —
" She had a troublesome suit with one of the principal men in Csesarea,
who was unjustly possessed of a considerable part of her estate, and had
seized both her servants and cattle. This oppressive usurper had found
means to bribe the judges in his favour, and hired persons to swear, that
the land and goods in dispute were his property. Julitta, supported by
the justness of her cause, thought that she had nothing more to do but
to give the magistrates an ingenuous account of her title. When the
cause came to be tried, the defendant, instead of supporting his claim,
urged that the law would not suffer him to engage at that bar with one
of a different religion; so that he could not proceed in his defence,
unless the lady, who was the plaintiff, renounced Christianity. The
78 HTSTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
judge was too well instructed not to second the motion, and gave it as
his opinion, that what he insisted upon was according to the laws of the
empire. He then ordered an altar to be brought in, and some fire to be
put on it, and incense to be prepared, and then told the parties, that if
they expected, either of them, to enjoy any benefit from the laws, they
must both of them offer incense to the gods. The usurper who was a
heathen, immediately complied; but Julitta made it appear that her
faith was much dearer to her than her goods, or even than life itself.
' No, (said she), my affection to what is undoubtedly my own, shall
never hinder me from sacrificing my all, and even my life, if required,
rather than violate my fidelity to my God and Saviour.' For this de-
claration she was condemned to be burnt."
Eustratius, secretary to the governor of Armenia, was thrown into a
furnace, for exhorting some Christians, who had been apprehended, to
persevere in their faith. § Auxentius and Eugenius, two of Eustratius's
adherents, were burnt at Nicopolis; Mardarius, another friend of his,
expired under torment; and Orestes, a military officer, was broiled to
death on a gridiron for wearing a golden cross at his breast. Theodore,
a Syrian by birth, a soldier and a Christian, set fire to the temple of
Cybele, in Amasia, through indignation at the idolatrous worship prac-
tised in it, for which he was scourged, and on February 18, A. D. 306,
burnt to death. Dorothea, a Christian of Cappadocia, was, by the
governor's order, placed under the care of two women, who had become
apostates to the faith, in order that she might be induced to follow their
example. But her discourses had such an effect upon them, that they
became re-converted, and were put to death for not succeeding: soon
after which, Dorothea was tortured, and then beheaded. Pancratius
was a native of Phrygia, but being made a Christian and brought to
Rome, by his uncle, he there suffered martyrdom, by being beheaded
after the decease of his uncle, who died a natural death a little time
before. Cyrinus, Nazarius, Nabor, and Basilides, four worthy christian
officers at Rome, were thrown into prison for their faith, scourged with
rods of wire, and then beheaded.
Two Roman military officers, Nicander and Marcian, were appre-
hended on account of their faith. As they were both men of great
abilities, the utmost endeavours were made to induce them to renounce
Christianity ; but being without effect, they were ordered to be beheaded.
The execution was attended by vast crowds of the populace, among
whom were the wives of the two sufferers. The consort of Nicander
was a Christian, and encouraged her husband to meet his fate with
fortitude; but the wife of Marcian being a pagan, entreated her husband
s Nicephorus tells us that Eustralius was much skilled in the Greek language, and was
a scribe of great estimation. Tt appears that this man, beholding the marvellous constancy
of the martyrs, thirsted with the desire of martyrdom, and privily learned the Christian
religion. Therefore he detected himself, and professed that he was a Christian, only
execrating the madness and vanity of the wicked Ethnics. Being in consequence carried
away, he was tied up and cruelly beaten. After that he was scorched and mangled with
shells, so that his whole body seemed to be one continual wound; yet by God's great
goodness, it was speedily healed. After this he was carried to Sebastia, where with his
companion Orestes he was burnt to death.
|)1U)\\ NING OF QUIRINUS. 79
to save himself, for the sake of her and her child. Marcian, however,
reproved her for her idolatry and folly, but before the stroke was given
he embraced her and the infant. Nicander likewise took leave of his
wife in the most affectionate manner; and then both, with great reso-
lution, received the crown of martyrdom. Besides these there were
several others, whose names and sufferings are not recorded by the
ancient historians.
In the kingdom of Naples several martyrdoms took place : in par-
ticular, Januarius, bishop of Beneventum ; Sosius, deacon of Misene;
Proculus, another deacon; Eutyches and Acutius, two laymen; Festus,
a deacon; and Desiderius, a curate, were all condemned, by the
governor of Campania, to be devoured by wild beasts for professing
Christianity. The animals, however, not touching them, they were
beheaded. Marcellus, a centurion, of the Trajan legion, was posted at
Tangier, and being a Christian, suffered martyrdom, under the following
circumstances : — While he was there, the emperor's birth-day was kept,
and the sacrifices to the pagan idols made a considerable part of that
solemnity. All the subjects of the empire were expected on that occa-
sion to conform to the blind religion of their prince; but Marcellus,
who had been well instructed in the duties of his profession, expressed
his detestation of those profane practices, by throwing away his belt,
the badge of his military character, declaring aloud that he was a soldier
of Christ, the eternal king. He then quitted his arms, and added, that
from that moment he ceased to serve the emperor ; and that he thus
expressed his contempt of the gods of the empire, which were no better
than deaf and dumb idols. " If," continued he, "their imperial majesties
impose the obligation of sacrificing to them and their gods, as a necessary
condition of their service, I here throw up my commission and quit the
army." Marcellus's behaviour and speeches occasioned an order for his
being beheaded. Cassian, secretary to the court which tried Marcellus,
expressing his disapprobation of such proceedings, was ordered into
custody; when avowing himself a Christian, he met with the same fate.
Quirinus, bishop of Siscia, being carried before Matenius, the governor,
was ordered to sacrifice to the pagan deities, agreeable to the edicts of
various Roman emperors, but refusing, was ordered to be severely
scourged. When under the hand of the executioner, the governor was
urgent with him to sacrifice, and offered to make him a priest of Jupiter:
to which Quirinus replied, that he was already engaged in the priestly
office, while he thus offered a sacrifice to the true God. " I," continued
he, " scarce feel my torments, and am ready to suffer still greater, that
my example may show those whom God has committed to my care, the
way to the glory we wish for." The governor then sent him to prison,
and ordered him to be heavily ironed: after which he was sent to
Amantius, the governor of Parmonia, now Hungary, who loaded him
with chains, and carried him through the principal towns of the Danube,
exposing him to general ridicule. At length arriving at Sabaria, and
finding that Quirinus would not renounce his faith, he ordered him to
be cast into a river, with a stone fastened to his neck. The sentence
was accordingly put into execution, and Qnirinus, floating about for
some time, exhorted the people in the most pious terms, concluding his
80 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
admonitions with this prayer: — "It is no new thing, O all-powerful
Jesus! for thee to stop the course of rivers, or to cause a man to walk
upon the water, as thou didst thy servant Peter: the people have already
seen tire proof of thy power in me; grant me now to lay down my life
for thy sake, O my God!" After uttering these words, he immediately
sunk. This happened June 4, A. D. 308 : his body was afterwards
taken up, and buried by some Christian brethren.
Five Egyptian Christians being on a visit to their afflicted brethren in
Ccesarea, were apprehended and carried before Firmilian, the governor
of Palestine, who, on questioning them, was answered by one in the
name of the rest, that they were Christians, and belonged to the New
Jerusalem, and had their names recorded in the book of life. The
governor was surprised at the answer, as he knew Vespasian and his son
Titus had destroyed the ancient Jerusalem; and that the inconsiderable
town erected by Adrian upon the spot, was called iElia Capitolina: he
therefore enquired more particularly concerning it. The Christian who
had spoken before, again replied, and pursuing the allegory, described,
with great force of imagination, the beauty, riches, and strength of the
place. Firmilian still mistaking the Christian's meaning, by under-
standing his words in a literal sense, became much alarmed; for not
dreaming that a heavenly city was alluded to, he fancied that the Chris-
tians were strengthening and fortifying some place, in order to revolt
from their allegiance to the emperor. Prejudiced by this mistake, and
enraged at the supposed disloyalty, he condemned ihe five prisoners to
be cruelly tormented and then beheaded; which sentence was executed
on the 16th of February, A. D. 309.
Pamphilius, a native of Phoenicia, of a considerable family, was a
man of such extensive learning, that he was called a second Origen.
He was received among the clergy at Csesarea, where he spent his time
in the practice of every christian virtue. He copied the greatest parts
of the works of Origen with his own hand, and, assisted by Eusebius,
gave a correct copy of the Old Testament, which had suffered greatly
by the ignorance or negligence of former transcribers. He likewise gave
public lectures on religious and literary subjects, in an academy which
he had erected for that purpose, till the year 307, when he was appre-
hended and carried before Urban, the governor of Palestine, who exerted
himself to induce him to embrace paganism. Finding his endeavours
vain, he began to threaten him; but Pamphilius maintained his resolu-
tion, upon which he was ordered to be severely tortured, and then sent
to prison.
Soon after, Urban, having displeased the emperor, was displaced and
beheaded ; but another was appointed in his room, who was equally
prejudiced against the Christians. Pamphilius suffered martyrdom
under the new governor, by being beheaded; together with Valens, a
deacon of the church of Jerusalem; and Paul, a layman, of Jamnia,
in Palestine. Porphyrius, the servant of Pamphilius, was burnt by a
straw fire, for only requesting leave to bury the body of his master and
other martyrs. Theodolus, a venerable and faithful servant to Firmilian,
the governor, being accused of the Christian faith, confessed the charge,
and was, by order of his master, crucified on February 17, A. D. 309:
CONS r A N 1 I X ] :s VISION. 8 1
on the same day, Julian, a Cappadocian, was burnt. Marcellus, bishop
o[' Rome, being banished on account of his faith, fell a martyr to the
miseries he suffered in exile, A. D. 310, on the 16th of January. Peter,
the sixteenth bishop of Alexandria, by order of Maximinus Caesar, who
reigned in the East, was martyred November 25, A. D. 311. Lucian,
a learned Syrian, was a man of so benevolent a temper, that he disposed
of the greatest part of his fortune in charitable donations. He was
apprehended as a Christian, imprisoned for the space of nine years, put
to the rack, rolled upon sharp flints, and being tortured to death, his
body was thrown into the sea; but it was afterwards cast on shore, and
received Christian interment.
Valentine, a priest, suffered the same fate at Rome; and Erasmus, a
bishop, was martyred in Campania. Cosmus and Damian, Arabians
and brothers, were martyred in Cilicia; Adrian, an imperial officer, was
beheaded in Rome; Barbara, a young lady, was martyred at Nicomedia;
Lucia, a Christian virgin, was put to death at Syracuse; and Serena, the
empress of Diocletian, did not escape martyrdom when she declared
herself a Christian.
Gordius, a native of Csesarea, and a centurion in the Roman army,
was first tortured, and then burnt; Menas, an Egyptian soldier, was
beheaded; and Barlaam, a noble martyr, having endured the utmost
torments even to the point of death, his tormentors laid him on a pagan
altar, and put frankincense into his hand, which they lighted, that the
heat and force of the fire might oblige him to scatter the burning incense
on the altar, to enable them to say that he had sacrificed ; but they were
disappointed, for the flame went round his hand, which appeared covered
with red hot embers, while he uttered this exclamation of the psalmist:
"Blessed be the Lord my God, who teacheth my hands to war, and my
fingers to fight/' After which he surrendered his soul to the Redeemer.
The pagans about this time shut up the doors of a church in which a
Christian congregation were assembled, and having set fire to the build-
ing, every person perished.
Constantine the Great at length determined to redress the grievances
of the Christians, for which purpose he raised an army of 30,000 foot
and 8000 horse, with which he marched towards Rome, against Max-
entius, the emperor. But he reflected on the fatal miscarriages of his
predecessors, who had maintained a multiplicity of gods, and reposed
an entire confidence in their assistance. On the other hand, he con-
sidered that while his father adored only one God, he continually pros-
pered. He therefore rejected the adoration of idols, and implored the
assistance of the Almighty; who heard his prayers, and answered them
in a manner so surprising and miraculous, that Eusebius acknowledges
it could not have been credible, had he not received it from the em-
peror's own mouth, who publicly and solemnly ratified the truth with a
solemn oath. The extraordinary narrative is as follows: — "The army
arriving near Rome, the emperor was employed in devout ejaculations on
the 27th of October, about three o'clock in the afternoon, when, the sun
declining, there suddenly appeared to him a pillar of light in the heavens,
in the form of a cross, with this plain inscription, In hoc signo vinces, "In
this sign thou shalt conquer." Constantine was greatly surprised at the
82 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
astonishing sight, which was also visible to the whole army, who equally
wondered at it with himself. The officers and commanders, prompted
by the augurs and soothsayers, looked upon it as an inauspicious omen,
portending an unfortunate expedition. The emperor himself did not
understand it, till at length Christ appeared to him in a vision, with the
cross in his hand, commanding him to make it a royal standard, and
cause it to be continually carried before his army, as an ensign both of
victory and safety. Early the next morning, Constantine informed his
friends and officers of what he had seen in the night, and sending for
proper workmen, sat down by them, and described to them the form of
the standard, which he then ordered them to make with the greatest art
and magnificence. They made it thus: a long spear, plated with gold,
with a traverse piece at the top, in the form of a cross, to which was
fastened a four square purple banner, embroidered with gold, and beset
with precious stones, which reflected the brightest lustre: towards the
top was depicted the emperor between his two sons: above the cross,
stood a crown, overlaid with gold and jewels, within which was placed
the sacred symbol, namely the two first letters of Christ in Greek, X
and P, one intersecting the other. This device he afterwards bore, not
only upon his shields, but also upon his coins, many of which are still
extant." h
In the subsequent engagement with Maxentius, he defeated him, and
entered the city of Rome in triumph. A law was now published in
favour of the Christians, in which Licinius joined with Constantine, and
a copy of it was sent to Maximus in the East. Maximus was a bigoted
pagan, and greatly disliked the edict; but being afraid of Constantine,
did not openly avow his disapprobation. At length Maximus invaded
the territories of Licinius, but being defeated, he was so chagrined, that
he put an end to his life by poison. The death of Maxentius has al-
ready been described in a previous note.
Licinius was not a Christian in his heart, but affected to appear as
such, through the dread of Constantine's power; for even after publish-
ing several edicts in favour of the Christians, he put to death Blase,
Bishop of Sebaste, several bishops and priests of Egypt and Lybia, who
were cut to pieces, and thrown into the sea; and forty soldiers of the
garrison of Sebaste, who suffered martyrdom by fire. These things
offended Constantine the Great; and he marched against Licinius, who
was defeated by him, and afterwards slain by his own soldiers.
St. George, the tutelar saint and the patron of England, was born in
Cappadocia, of Christian parents, who brought him up according to the
tenets of the gospel. His father dying when he was young, he travelled
with his mother into Palestine, which was her native country. Here
h In the writings of Marsilius Patavinus, entitled "Defensor Pads," which were pub-
lished in the year 1324, it is observed of Constantine, that he was a singular spectacle for
all Christian princes to imitate; that his fervent zeal in favour of the servants of Christ
was notable ; but especially the affection and reverence of his heart towards those, who
had suffered for the confession of Christ in previous persecutions: these he held in peculiar
veneration, so much that he embraced and kissed their wounds and stripes. And if any
such bishop or other ministers brought to him any complaints one against another, (as
many times they did) he would take their bills of complaint and burn them before their
faces; so studious and zealous was his mind to have them agree.
CODS VENGEANCE EXEMPLIFIED. 83
she claimed a patrimonial estate, which afterwards descended to her
son. St. George being active, and of great spirit, became a soldier,
and was made a tribune or colonel. In this post he exhibited great
proofs of his courage, and was promoted in the army of the emperor
Diocletian. During the persecution, St. George threw up his com-
mand, went boldly to the senate-house, and avowed his being a Christian,
taking occasion at the same time to remonstrate against paganism.
This so greatly provoked the senate, that St. George was ordered to be
tortured, which he underwent with much constancy. He was after-
wards, by the emperor's command, dragged through the streets and
beheaded. The calendar commemorates his martyrdom on the 23rd of
April. 1
In the catalogue of holy martyrs, who suffered in the tenth persecu-
tion, many more are mentioned, particularly Philoromus, a man of
noble birth, and great possessions in Alexandria, who, being persuaded
by his friends to favour himself, to respect his wife, to consider his
children and family, not only rejected the counsel, but also neglected
the threats and torments of the judge, to keep the confession of Christ
inviolate to death. Of like estate and dignity was Procopius in Pa-
lestina, who after conversion brake his images of silver and gold, and
distributed the value of them to the poor, and after all kind of torments,
racking, tearing his flesh, at length had his head struck off. Georgius,
a young man of Cappadocia, boldly inveighing against the impious
idolatry of the emperors, was apprehended and cast into prison, then
torn with irons, burnt with lime, stretched with cords; after that, his
hands and feet being cut off, his tortures were closed, and his crown
of martyrdom was completed by beheading.
We cannot close our account of the ten persecutions under the
Roman emperors, without calling the attention of the. Christian reader
to the evident indignation which the Almighty manifested towards the
persecutors. History shews that no nation or individual can prosper
where Christ Jesus, the Son of God, is contemned. After these events,
the Romans were not only plagued and destroyed by their own em-
perors, but also by civil wars, three of which happened in two years at
Rome, after the death of Nero. In the days of Tiberius, five thousand
Romans were maimed or slain at one time by the fall of a theatre. By
the destruction of the Jews, about this time, there were destroyed by
Titus and Vespasian his father, eleven thousand, besides those whom
> The order of the Garter, instituted by Edward the third, on an occasion well known to
every child acquainted with English history, is placed under the tutelary protection of
St. George; but with a most ridiculous substitution of fable for fact. The saint is pictured
in the badge of the order — a badge worn even by the bishop of Winchester, as prelate of
the order, in every pulpit in which he preaches — in the traditionary attitude of tilting at a
dragon as a sort of knight errantry defence of some hopeful virgin; thus commemorating
by the highest order in the realm, a pagan fable, rather than any one of the christian
enterprises by which the saint is said to have been distinguished ! The apology for this
absurd preference is as ridiculous as the preference itself. The dragon is considered an
emblem of the devil, and the saint's encounter with it an allegory of his assailing the
powers of darkness by the life and death of a Christian hero! Subsequent ruling powers,
however, not satisfied with this apology, have associated with St. George in the protection
of the order, the Blessed Virgin, St. Edward the confessor, and even the Holy Trinity!
84 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Vespasian slew in subduing Galilee, and those who were sent into
Egypt, and other provinces to slavery, to the number of seventeen
thousand. Two thousand were brought with Titus in his triumph;
many of whom he gave to be devoured by the wild beasts, and the rest
were most cruelly slain. By this case all nations may take example,
what it is to reject the visitation of God's truth, and much more to
persecute those who are sent by God for their salvation.
And though the vengeance of God thus was shewn upon both Jews
and Romans, for their contempt of Christ, whom God so punished by
their own emperors; yet neither the emperors themselves, for perse-
cuting Christ in his members, escaped without their just reward. For
during the space of these first three hundred years, few or none of them
escaped some miserable end. First we record the poisoning of Tiberius,
and the slaughter of the three Neros after him. Then Domitius Galba
within seven months was slain by Otho. And Otho afterwards killed
himself, being overcome by Vitellius. Vitellius shortly after was drawn
through the city of Rome, and after being tormented was thrown into
the Tiber. Titus was thought to be poisoned by Domitian his brother;
and Domitian was slain in his chamber by the consent of his wife.
Commodus was murdered by Narcissus. Pertinax and Julianus met a
similar fate. Severus was slain in England ; his son Bassianus killed
his brother Geta, and he was murdered by Martialis. Macrinus with
his son Diadumenus were both slain by their own soldiers. Heliogabulus
was killed by his people, drawn through the city, and cast into the
Tiber. Alexander Severus, although in life and virtues he was much
superior to other emperors, yet met with the like end, being slain at
Mentz with his godly mother Mammea, by Maximinus, whom the
emperor from a mule-driver had advanced to great dignities. Maximinus
also, three years after, was slain by his soldiers. Maximus and Balbinus,
in like manner, were both massacred in Rome. Gordon was slain by
Philip. Decius was drowned, and his son slain at the same time in
battle. Gallus and Volusianus his sons, were both slain by a con-
spiracy of Emilianus, who rose against them in war, and within three
months was slain himself. Next to Emilianus succeeded Valerian and
Galienus his son. Valerian was taken prisoner by the Persians, and
there contemned by Sapores their king, who used him for a stool to
leap upon his horse ; while his son Galienus, sleeping at Rome, either
would not or could not revenge his father's ignominy^ After the taking
of Valerian, as many emperors rose up as there were provinces in the
Roman monarchy. At length Galienus was killed by Aureolus, who
warred against him. Aurelian was slain by his secretary. Tacitus and
Florinus his brother: the first reigned six months, and was slain at
Pontus; the other reigned two months, and was murdered at Tarsus.
Probus, although a good civil emperor, was destroyed by his soldiers.
After him Carus, the next emperor, was slain by lightning. Next to
Carus followed the impious Diocletian, with Maximian, Valerius, Maxi-
minus, Maxentius, and Licinius, under whom (during the time of
Diocletian) the greatest persecution was excited against Christians for
ten years. Diocletian and Maximian deposed themselves from the
empire. The miserable end of Galerius has been already described.
PERSECUTIONS IN PERSIA. 86
MaximmiuSj in his war, being- tormented with pain, died in misery.
Maxentius was vanquished by Constantine, and drowned in the Tiber.
Licinius, being overcome by Constantine the Great, was deposed from
bis empire, and afterwards slain by his soldiers. On the other hand,
after the time of Constantine, when the faith of Christ was received into
the imperial seat, we read of scarcely an emperor destroyed or molested.
Thus it may be seen that the punishment of God, though deferred, is
certain to alight on the wicked ; and if he has hitherto withheld his
hand from visiting our sins in this realm, let us not on that account be
high minded, but humbly thank him for his tender mercies; and while
we bow before him in faith, let us endeavour to preserve his worship free
from that ungodliness and superstition of which it is now purged. So
shall we be happy in this fleeting w T orld, and obtain everlasting life in
the world to come, through the intercession of our blessed Redeemer,
who offered up his life on the cross for our salvation.
BOOK II.
Containing an account of the persecutions in Persia under Sapores ; the persecutions under
the Arian ascendancy ; those under Julian the Apostate, the Goths and Vandals; and in
various parts of the world; with many other particulars.
SECTION I.
THE PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS IN- PERSIA.
The gospel having spread itself into Persia, the pagan priests became
greatly alarmed, and dreaded the loss of their influence over the public
mind. They therefore complained to the emperor, that Christians were
enemies to the state, and held a treasonable correspondence with the
Romans, the great enemies of Persia. The emperor, being averse to
Christianity, readily believed wdiat was said against its disciples, and gave
orders to persecute them throughout his empire. On account of this
mandate many fell martyrs, the sufferings of the most eminent of whom
we shall here relate.
Simeon, archbishop of Seleucia, with many other ecclesiastics, to the
number of 128, were apprehended and accused of having betrayed the
affairs of Persia to the Romans. The emperor being greatly exasperated
against them, ordered Simeon to be brought before him. The arch-
bishop in his presence boldly acknowledged his faith, and defended the
cause of Christianity. The emperor offended at his freedom, ordered
him to kneel before him, as he had done in former interviews. To this
Simeon answered "That being now brought before him a prisoner, for
the truth of his religion, and the sake of his God, it was not lawful
for him to kneel, lest he should be thought to worship and betray
his faith."
86 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
On this the emperor told him, that if he did not kneel, he and all the
Christians in his dominions should be put to death; but Simeon rejected
with disdain the proposal to kneel. The emperor then ordered him to
be sent to prison. A short time after, Simeon and his fellow-prisoners
were examined, and commanded to worship the sun, agreeable to the
Persian custom; but this they resolutely and unanimously refused. The
emperor then sentenced them to be beheaded, and the sentence was
executed without delay, exception, or remorse.
An aged eunuch, named Usthazares, who had been tutor to the em-
peror, and was in great estimation at court, on observing Simeon pro-
ceeding to prison, saluted him. Simeon, however, (as Usthazares had
formerly been a Christian, and since apostatized to oblige the emperor)
would not return his salute, but reproved him for his apostasy. This so
affected the eunuch, that he burst into tears, and exclaimed, "Ah! how
shall I hereafter look upon my God, whom I have denied, when Simeon,
my old companion and familiar acquaintance, disdains to give me a
gentle word, or to return my salute!"
The emperor learning that his ancient tutor was afflicted, sent for him,
and asked him whether he desired any thing which could be procured
for him; to which the eunuch replied, That there was nothing that he
wanted, which this earth could afford; but that his grief was of another
kind, and for which he justly mourned, namely, that to oblige him he
had denied his God, and had worshipped the sun, against his own con-
science ; for which, continued he, I am deserving a double death, first,
for denying Christ, and secondly, for dissembling with my king.
The emperor, offended at this explanation, ordered Usthazares to be
beheaded. While going to execution, he desired that a messenger might
be sent to the emperor, to request that it might be proclaimed, "That
Usthazares did not die for any crime against the king or state; but only
that being a Christian, he would not deny his God." This petition was
granted, and was a great satisfaction to Usthazares, whose chief reason
for desiring it was, because his apostasy from Christ had caused many
others to follow his example; but now, hearing that he died for no crime
but his religion, they might return to Christ. Usthazares then cheerfully
yielded his neck to the executioner.
On Good Friday after his execution, an edict was published to put to
death all who confessed themselves Christians, which caused the destruc-
tion of multitudes. About this time the empress of Persia falling sick,
the sisters of Simeon, the archbishop, were accused by some of the magi
of causing this calamity. This report being credited, they were, by the
emperor's orders, sawed in quarters, and their limbs fixed upon poles,
between which the empress passed as a charm to effect the restoration
of her health.
Acepsimus, and many other clergymen, were seized upon, and ordered
to adore the sun; which refusing, they were scourged, and then tortured
to death, or kept in prison till they expired. Athalas, a priest, though
not put to death, was so miserably racked, that his arms were rendered
useless: and he was ever after obliged to be fed like a child. In short,
by this edict, above 16,000 either suffered horribly by torture, or lost
their lives by some barbarous execution.
INTERFERENCE OF CONSTANTINE. 87
When Constantine the Great was informed of the persecutions in
Persi i, he was much concerned, and began to reflect in what manner
he should redress the grievances of the victims, when an ambassador
arrived from the Persian emperor upon some political business. Con-
stantine received him civilly, granted his demands, and wrote a letter to
the Persian monarch in favour of the Christians, in which he alluded to
the vengeance that had fallen on persecutors, and the success that had
attended those who had refrained from the persecution : and then refer-
ring to the tyrants and persecuting emperors of his own time, he said,
" I subdued those solely by faith in Christ; in which God was my helper,
who gave me victory in battle, and made me triumph over my enemies;
and hath so enlarged to me the bounds of the Romish empire, that it
extends from the Western Ocean, almost to the uttermost parts of the
East. For this purpose I neither offered sacrifice to the ancient deities,
nor made use of charm or divination, but only prayer to Almighty God,
and followed the cross of Christ: and how glad should I be to hear that
the throne of Persia flourished by embracing the Christians ; that so you
with me, and they with you, may en|oy all the felicity your souls could
desire; and no doubt but you would, as God, the Almighty Creator of all
things, would become your protector and defender. These men, there-
fore, I commend to your mercy; I commit them unto you, desiring
you to embrace them with humanity; for in so doing, you will procure to
yourself grace through faith, and bestow on me a benefit worthy of
my thanks."
In consequence of this appeal, the persecution ended during the life
of Sapores; but it was renewed under his successors, when the following
were the principal sufferers: — Hormisdas, a Persian nobleman, being
convicted of Christianity, was ordered to attend the emperor's elephants
naked. This disgusting task he performed for some time, when the
emperor one day looking out of a window which commanded the yard
where the elephants were kept, saw Hormisdas performing his office.
Determining to try him once more, he gave orders that a shirt should be
put on him, and that he should be brought into his presence. The
emperor asked him if he would now deny Christ. On which Hormisdas
tore off his shirt, and said, " If you think I will deny my faith for the
sake of a shirt, take your gift again." The emperor then banished him
from Persia, and he died in exile.
Theodoret, a deacon, was imprisoned for two years, and on being
released, was ordered not to preach the doctrine of Christ. He how-
ever did his utmost to propagate the gospel, for which he was miserably
tormented, by having sharp reeds thrust under his nails; and then a
knotty branch of a tree was forced into his body, and he expired in the
most excruciating agony. Bademus, a Christian of Mesopotamia, gave
away his fortune to the poor, and devoted his life to religious retire-
ment. This Christian, with seven others, was seized and cruelly
tortured. The Christians, who were apprehended with Bademus, re-
ceived martyrdom, though the manner is not recorded; and Bademus,
after having been four months in prison, was beheaded by Narses, an
apostate Christian, who acted as the executioner, in order to convince the
emperor that he was sincere in his renunciation of the Christian faith.
S8 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
SECTION II.
PERSECUTIONS UNDER THE ARIAN ASCENDANCY.
The sect denominated Arian, had its origin from Arius, a native of
Lybia, and a priest of Alexandria, who, in A. D. 31 8 ; began to publish
his errors. He was condemned by a council of the Lybian and Egyptian
bishops, and the sentence was confirmed by the council of Nice in
A. D. 325. After the death of Constantine the Great, the Arians found
means to ingratiate themselves into the favour of Constantius, his son
and successor in the East; and hence a persecution was raised against
the orthodox bishops and clergy. The celebrated Athanasius, and other
bishops, were banished at this period, and their sees filled with Arians.
In Egypt and Lybia, thirty bishops were martyred and many other
Christians cruelly tormented. George, the first Arian bishop of Alexan-
dria, under the authority of the emperor, began a persecution in that
city, and its environs, which was continued some time with the utmost
severity. He was assisted by Catophonius, governor of Egypt; Sebas-
tian, general of the Egyptian forces; Faustinus, the treasurer; and a
Roman officer, named Heraclius. So great was this persecution, that
the clergy were driven from Alexandria, their churches were shut, and
the severities practised by the Arian heretics became as great as those
that had been exercised by the pagan idolaters. If a man accused of
being an orthodox Christian made his escape, his whole family were
massacred, and his effects forfeited. By this means, being deprived of
all places of public worship in the city of Alexandria, the persecuted
used to perform their devotion in a desert at some distance from it. On
a Trinity Sunday, when they had met, George, the Arian bishop, en-
gaged Sebastian, the general, to fall upon them with his soldiers, while
they were at prayers; and several fell a sacrifice to the fury of the
troops. The modes of cruelty were various, and the degrees equally
diversified ; for they were beaten on their faces till their features were
disfigured ; or were lashed with twigs of palm-trees with such violence,
that they expired under the blows, or by the mortification of the wounds.
Several whose lives had been spared, were banished to the deserts of
Africa, where amidst their sufferings, they passed their time in prayer,
and general acts of piety and devotion.
Secundus, an orthodox priest, differing in point of doctrine from
a prelate of the same name, the bishop, who had imbibed the pecu-
liarities of Arianism, determined to put Secundus to death, for rejecting
opinions which he himself had thought proper to embrace. He went
with one Stephen, as much an Arian as himself, sought out Secundus
privately, fell upon and murdered him : the holy martyr, just before he
expired, called upon Christ to receive his soul, and to forgive his
enemies. At this time, being dissatisfied with the cruelties exercised
upon the orthodox Christians in Alexandria, the principal persecutors
applied to the emperor for an order to banish them from Egypt and
Lybia, and to put their churches into possession of the Arians. They
obtained their request, and an order was sent for that purpose to
SLAUGHTER OF CHRISTIANS AT ALEXANDRIA.— PACE 88.
AKI \\ PERSECUTIONS. 89
Sebastian, the commander in chief of the Roman forces in those pro-
vinces: the general signified the emperor's pleasure to all the sub-
governors and officers. Thus a great number of the clergy were seized,
and imprisoned tor examination ; when it appearing that they adopted
the opinions of Athanasius, an order was signed for their banishment
into uncultivated and mostly uninhabited regions. While the orthodox
clergy were thus used, many of the laity were condemned to the mines,
or compelled to work in the quarries. Some few indeed escaped to
other countries, and several were weak enough to renounce their faith,
in order to avoid the severity of the persecution. Paul, the bishop of
Constantinople, was a Macedonian, and was designed from his birth
for the clerical office. When Alexander, the predecessor of Paul, was
on his death-bed, he was consulted by some of the clergy on the choice
of a successor: he told them, " That if they were disposed to choose a
person of an exemplary life, and thoroughly capable of instructing the
people, Paul was the man ; but if they had rather have a person of a
well-composed appearance, acquainted with worldly affairs, and fit for
the conversation of a court, they might then choose Macedonius." The
latter was a deacon in the church of Constantinople, in which office he
had spent many years, and gained great experience; and the dying
prelate did both him and Paul justice in the different characters he
gave them. Nevertheless, the Arians gave out, that Alexander had
bestowed great commendations on Macedonius for sanctity, and had
only given Paul the reputation of eloquence, and a capacity for busi-
ness ; after some struggle, the orthodox party carried their point, and
Paul was consecrated. Macedonius, being offended at this preference,
did his utmost to calumniate the new bishop : but not gaining belief,
he dropped the charge, and reconciled himself to Paul. This was not
the case with Eusebius of Nicomedia, who resumed the accusations
under two heads, as follow :-—
" 1. That he had led a disorderly life before his consecration.
2. That he had been placed in the see of Constantinople without the
consent of the bishops of Nicomedia and Heraclea, two metropolitans,
who ought to have been consulted upon that occasion."
Eusebius, to support these accusations, procured the emperor's au-
thority, by representing that Paul, having been chosen during the
absence of Constantius, the imperial dignity had been insulted. This
artifice succeeded, and Paul being deposed Eusebius was placed in his
stead. Thus Paul having lost all his authority in the East, retired to
the territories of Constans, in the West, where he was well received by
the orthodox prelates and clergy. At Rome he visited Athanasius, and
assisted at a council held there by Julius, the bishop of that see. Let-
ters being written by this council to the eastern prelates, Paul returned
to Constantinople, but was not restored to his bishopric till the death of
Eusebius. The Arians, however, constituting Macedonius their diocesan,
by the title of bishop of Constantinople, a civil war ensued, in which
many were put to death.
Constantius the emperor, who was then at Antioch, hearing of the
schism, laid the whole blame upon Paul, and ordered that he should
be driven from Constantinople. But Hermogenes, the officer who had
90 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
received the emperor's order, attempted in vain to put it into execution ;
for the orthodox Christians rising- in defence of Paul, Hermogenes was
killed. This greatly exasperated the emperor, who left Antioch in the
depth of winter, and returned to Constantinople, resolving to punish
the Christians. He, however, contented himself with banishing Paul
and suspending Macedonius. After this, Paul retired again to the terri-
tories of Constans, implored the protection of that emperor, and by his
intercession, was restored to his see. His re-establishment exasperated
his enemies, who were constantly employed in secret and open attempts
against his life, against which the affections of his people were his
only security. Being convinced that the emperor had no other motive
for allowing his stay at Constantinople but the dread of disobliging his
brother, Paul could not think himself perfectly safe in his bishopric;
and being much concerned at what the orthodox bishops suffered from
the power and malice of the Arian faction, joined Athanasius, who was
then in Italy, in soliciting a general council. The council was held at
Sardica, in Illyricum, in the year 347, at which were present three hun-
dred bishops of the western, and seventy-three of the eastern empire.
But disagreeing in many points, the Arian bishops of the East retired to
Philippolis, in Thrace and forming a conference there, they termed it
the council of Sardica ; from which place they pretended to issue an
excommunication against Julius, bishop of Rome; Paul, bishop of
Constantinople ; Athanasius, bishop of Alexandria ; and several other
prelates. In the year 350, the emperor Constans died, which gave the
Arians fresh courage, and they applied to the emperor Constantius, who
being inclined towards them, he wrote an order to the prefect Philip, to
remove Paul from the bishopric of Constantinople, and to restore
Macedonius. Paul was exiled to Cucucus, and confined in a dark
dungeon for six days without food, and then strangled. He met death
with uncommon fortitude.
The Arian party now made Gregory of Cappadocia, an obscure per-
son, bishop of Alexandria, after having deposed Athanasius for his strict
adherence to the orthodox faith. In the accomplishment of this affair,
they were assisted by Philagerius, governor of Egypt, who was an apos-
tate, and who authorised them to commit all manner of outrage.
Arming themselves with swords and clubs, they broke into one of the
principal churches of Alexandria, where numbers of orthodox Christians
were assembled at their devotions ; and falling upon them in a barbarous
manner, without the least respect to sex or age, most of them were
destroyed. Potamo, a venerable bishop of Heraclea, who had formerly
lost one of his eyes in Diocletian's persecution, fell a martyr upon this
occasion ; being so cruelly scourged and beaten that he died of his
wounds. The Arians also broke into many places, public and private,
under pretence of searching for Athanasius, and committed innumerable
barbarities ; robbing orphans, plundering the houses of widows, impri-
soning the clergy, burning churches and dwelling-houses belonging to
the orthodox Christians, besides other enormous cruelties, which were
perpetuated by a mob of fanatics, under a name which every part of
their temper and conduct disgraced.
CONDUCT OF JIM. IAN. 91
SECTION III.
THE PERSECUTION UNDER JULIAN THE APOSTATE.
Julian the Apostate, was the son of Julius Constantius, and the nephew
of Constantine the Great. He studied the rudiments of grammar under
the inspection of Madronius, a heathen eunuch of Constantinople. His
father sent him afterwards to Nicomedia, to be instructed in the Chris-
tian religion by the bishop Eusebius, his kinsman ; but his principles
were corrupted by the pernicious doctrines of Maximus the magician,
and Ecebolius a professor of rhetoric.
Constantius died in the year 361, when Julian succeeded him; but
he had no sooner attained the imperial dignity, than he renounced Chris-
tianity and embraced paganism. He restored idolatrous worship, by
opening the several temples that had been shut up, rebuilding such as
were destroyed, and ordering the magistrates and people to follow his
example ; but he issued no public edicts against Christianity. He re-
called all banished pagans, allowed the free exercise of religion to every
sect; but deprived all Christians of office at court, in the magistracy, or
in the army. He was chaste, temperate, vigilant, laborious, and
apparently pious ; so that by his hypocrisy and pretended virtues, he for
a time did more mischief to Christianity than the most profligate of his
predecessors ; especially as he deprived the christian clergy of the pri-
vileges which had been granted them by Constantine the Great.
Accordingly, this persecution was more dangerous than any of the
former, since Julian, under the mask of clemency, practised the greatest
cruelty in striving to denude many thousands of their true belief ; and
the christian faith was in more danger of being subverted than it ever
had been, by means of a monarch at -once witty and wicked, learned
and hypocritical ; who, at first, made his attempts by flattering gifts
and favours — bestowing offices and dignities ; and then, by prohibiting
christian schools, he compelled the children of the gospel either to
become idolaters or remain illiterate.
Julian ordered that Christians might be treated coldly upon all occa-
sions and in all parts of the empire, and employed witty persons to turn
them and their principles into ridicule. Many were likewise martyred
in his reign : for though he did not publicly persecute them himself, he
connived at their being murdered by his governors and officers ; and
though he affected never to patronize these murderers, he never offered
to punish them for their delinquency. We shall recount the names,
sufferings, and martyrdoms of such as have been transmitted to posterity.
By his opposition to Arianism, Basil made himself famous, which,
brought upon him the vengeance of the Arian bishop of Constantinople,
who issued an order to prevent him from preaching. He continued,
however, to perform his duty at Ancyra, the capital of Galatia, till his
enemies accused him of being an incendiary, and a disturber of the
public peace. The monarch, however, was too intent on an expedition
to Persia, to take notice of the accusation, and their malice at that time
was wholly frustrated. Basil therefore continued to preach against the
92 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
idolatry of paganism on the one hand, and the errors of Arianism on
the other ; and earnestly exhorted the people to serve Christ in the purity
of faith and fervency of truth. By this conduct both heathens and
Arians were exasperated against him, and the consequence might be
conjectured.
One day meeting with a number of pagans going in procession to a
sacrifice, he boldly expressed his abhorrence of the idolatrous proceed-
ings, and inveighed against the absurd worship. This liberty caused
the people to seize him, and carry him before Saturninus, the governor,
when they brought three accusations against him, viz. reviling the gods,
abusing the emperor, and disturbing the peace of the city. Having
heard these accusations, Saturninus desired to know the sentiments of
Basil from his own mouth ; when finding him a strenuous Christian, he
ordered him first to be put to the rack, and then committed to prison.
The governor wrote an account of his proceedings to the emperor, who
was at this time very busy in establishing the worship of Cybele, the
fictitious mother of the fabulous deities. Julian, on receiving the letter,
sent Pagosus and Elipidius, two apostates, to Ancyra, the city where
Basil was confined, to employ both promises and threatenings to constrain
him to renounce his faith ; and in case of their failure, they had orders
to surrender him to the power of the governor. The emperor's agents
tampered with Basil in vain by means of promises, threatenings, and the
rack : he was firm in his faith, and remained in prison when the emperor
by accident came to Ancyra. As soon as the people knew of Julian's
approach, they met him in grand procession, and presented to him their
idol, the goddess Hecate. The two agents then gave the emperor an
account of what Basil had suffered, and of his firm resistance. Julian,
on this, determined to examine the sufferer himself, when that holy man
being brought before him, the emperor did every thing in his power to
dissuade him from persevering in the faith. Basil, however, not only con-
tinued firm, but with a prophetic spirit foretold the death of the emperor
and that he might be tormented in the other world. Julian then lost
his usual affection of clemency, and told Basil in great anger, that
though he had an inclination to pardon him at first, yet he had put
it out of his power to save his life by the insolence of his behaviour.
He then commanded that the body of Basil should be torn every day
in seven different parts, till his skin and flesh were entirely mangled.
The inhuman sentence was executed with rigour, and the martyr expired
under its severities on the 28th of June, A. D. 362.
About the same time, Donatus, bishop of Arezzo, and Hilarinus, a
hermit, suffered for the faith ; the first being beheaded, and the latter
scourged to death One Gordian, a Roman magistrate, having a Chris-
tian before him for examination, was so charmed with the confession of
his faith, that he not only discharged the prisoner, but became himself
a Christian. This so enraged the Roman prefect, that he ordered him
to be scourged and beheaded.
Two brothers, named John and Paul, of a good family, and in high
offices under the emperor, on being accused of professing Christianity,
were deprived of their posts, and allowed ten days to consider whether
they would renounce their faith and be promoted, or retain their faith
PERSEC1 TIONS UNDER JULIAN THE APOSTATE. 93
and be martyred. Resolutely choosing the latter alternative, they were
l>oth beheaded.
Artemius, commander in chief of the Roman forces in Egypt, being
a Christian, had two charges exhibited against him by the pagans —
That he had demolished several idols in the reign of Constantine ; and
that he had assisted the bishop of Alexandria in plundering the temples.
Julian, who was then at Antioch, on hearing these charges, ordered the
general to repair thither to answer them. On his arrival he boldly con-
fessed the charges, when he was first deprived of his commission, then
of his estate, and finally of his head.
Cassian, a school-master of Imola, in the province of Romagno, for
refusing to sacrifice to the idols, was taken before a judge ; who being
apprised of his profession, and informed that many of the boys had an
aversion to him on account of the strictness with which he kept them to
their studies, determined they should have permission to murder him.
He was accordingly delivered to the boys, with his hands tied behind
him, who fell upon him with rods, whips, and steel pencils, which were
then used in writing, and at length murdered him. This singular
martyrdom happened on the 13th of August, A. D. 362.
Maximilian and Bonosus, two officers of the Herculean guards, upon
Julian taking away Constantine the Great's standard of the cross of
Christ, threw up their commissions. Being apprehended, the governor
had them separately examined, and finding them inflexible, he ordered.
Bonosus to be beaten with whips with leaden bullets on the thongs, and
Maximilian to be scourged with the usual weapon. When remanded to
prison, they were allowed nothing but bread and water, and the bread
was marked with the seal of the emperor, the impression of which was
an idol ; on account of this they refused to eat it. They were soon after-
wards re-examined, and then beheaded.
Bibiana was the daughter of Flavian and Dafrosa, two Christians.
Flavian, her father, held a considerable post under the government, but
being banished for his faith, died in exile. Dafrosa, her mother, was,
for the same reason, ordered to be starved ; but Apronianus, governor of
Rome, to accelerate her death, had her beheaded. Bibiana and her
sister Demetria, after the death of her parents, were stripped of all
their effects, and being brought before the governor, were ordered to
renounce their religion. Demetria suddenly died in the governor's pre-
sence, and Bibiana resolutely refused to renounce her faith, on which
account she was scourged to death.
About the end of the year 363, the persecution raged with more than
usual violence. In Palestine many were burnt alive, others were dragged
by their feet through the streets till they expired ; some were scalded to
death, many stoned, and great numbers had their brains beaten out with
clubs. In Alexandria innumerable martyrs suffered by the sword,
burning, crucifixion, and stoning.
In Thrace, Emilianus was burnt at the stake ; and Domitius was mur-
dered in a cave, whither he had fled for concealment. Sozomenus as-
scribes the rage of the Arethusians against Christian virgins to the efforts
of Constantine, who had prevented their being exposed in the temple of
Venus at Heliopolis.
94 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Theodorus, for singing the praises of God, was apprehended and put
to the rack, though not to death. After being taken down, he was asked
how he could so patiently endure such exquisite tortures ; to which he
returned this remarkable reply : "At first I felt some pain, but after-
wards there appeared to stand by me a young man, who wiped the sweat
from my face, and frequently refreshed me with cold water, which so
delighted me, that 1 regretted being let down." k
Marcus, bishop of Arethusa, having destroyed a pagan temple in that
city, erected a christian church in its room, on which account he was
accused to Julian as a Christian. His persecutors stripped and cruelly
beat him. He was then thrust into a filthy sewer till he was almost suf-
focated ; afterwards he was goaded with sharp-pointed sticks; and lastly
he was hung up in a basket in the heat of the sun, after being smeared
over with honey, in order to be tormented to death by wasps. As soon
as he was hung up, they asked him if he would rebuild their temple.
To which he answered, that he would neither rebuild it nor advance a
single doit towards its being rebuilt; upon which they left him, and he
fell a martyr to the venom of the insects.
Maxentius and Juventius, two christian officers, were put to death
about the same time, for reproving the emperor on account of his idola-
tries. Eusebius and Nestabus, two brethren, with Nestor also, for their
Christianity, were dragged through the streets and murdered by the
idolatrous people of Gaza.
When Julian formed an expedition against the Persians, he imposed
a large fine upon every one who refused to sacrifice to the idols, and by
that means gained a great sum from the Christians towards defraying the
expence. Many of the officers in collecting these fines, exacted more
than was due, and some of them tortured the Christians to make them
pay what they demanded, telling them in derision, "that when they
were injured they ought to take it patiently, for so their God commanded
them." The inhabitants of Csesarea were fined three hundred weight
of gold, and several of the clergy obliged to serve in the wars, as a
punishment for having overthrown the temples of Jupiter, Fortune, and
Apollo. The governor at Meris, in Phrygia, having cleansed and opened
a pagan temple, the Christians in the night broke in and demolished the
idols. Next day the governor ordered all Christians that accidentally
came in the way to be seized, that he might make examples of them,
and by this means he would have executed several innocent persons ;
but those who really perpetrated the act, being too just to suffer such
retaliation, voluntarily delivered themselves up ; when they were scourged
severely, and then put to a cruel and lingering death.
Julian died of a wound which he received in his Persian expedition,
A. D. 363, and even while expiring he uttered the most horrid blas-
phemies. He w r as succeeded by Jovian, who restored peace to the
church. After the decease of Jovian, Valentinian succeeded to the empire,
and associated with himself Valens, who had the command in the East.
k For many interesting particulars of this martyr, those acquainted with classical
literature are referred to Ruff. 5, cap. 26; Theod. lib. 3, cap. 11 ; and Sozom. lib. 5,
cap. 10, 20.
PERSECUTIONS UNDER JULIAN THE APOSTATE. 95
The latter was a great favourer of Arianism, and so incensed against the
Christians, that on a certain day he ordered all in Edessa to be slain
while thev were at their devotion in the churches. The officers, how-
ever, being- more compassionate than the emperor, privately gave notice
to the Christians not to assemble on the day appointed, so that they
might escape death.
The Christians thanked the officers for their advice, but disregarded
both that and the emperor's menaces rather than neglect their duty.
They repaired to the church, and the troops were put in motion to
destroy them. As they marched along, a woman, with a child in her
arms, broke through the ranks, when the officer ordered her to be
brought before him, and asked her where she was going. She replied
to church, whither others were making all the haste they could. " Have
you not heard," said the officer, " of the emperor's order, to put to
death all who are found there?" " I have," said she, "and for .that
reason I make the more haste." " And whither," said the officer, " do
you lead that child ?" "I take him," replied she, "with me, that he
also may be numbered among the martyrs." Upon this the humane
officer returned to the emperor, and told him that all the Christians were
prepared to die in defence of their faith, represented to him the rash-
ness of murdering so great a multitude, and entreated him to drop the
design, at least for the present: reluctantly he complied with the humane
advice.
Urbanus, Menidemus, and Theodorus, with several other orthodox
clergymen, to the number of fourscore, at Constantinople, petitioned the
emperor to relieve them from the oppressions and cruelties of the Arians.
But the tyrant; instead of redressing their grievances, ordered them all
to be embarked in a ship, and the vessel to be set on fire. This infernal
order being executed, they all perished in the flames. 1
1 Although the truth of these cruel martyrdoms cannot be doubted, yet many persons
will wonder why the Almighty Director of all things would suffer his servants, who believed
in his word, to be so horribly treated; but as St. Jerome has justly observed, "We ought
not to be moved with this iniquity of things, to see the wicked prevail against the body:"
for even in the beginning of the world, we see Abel the just was killed by the wicked
Cain; and afterwards Jacob thrust out for Esau to reign in his father's house. The
Egyptians, also, afflicted the sons of Israel; and the Lord himself was crucified by the
Jews. The godly in this world therefore suffer for examples, and the wicked flourish and
prevail ; yet we may be sure that these afflictions of God's people in the world have not
come by chance or fortune, but by the provident appointment of God. For as by the
affliction of the children of Israel, he hath prefigured the persecution of the Christians, so,
by the words of Christ in the gospel did he forewarn his church of the troubles to come.
JN either did he suffer these great afflictions to fall upon his servants before he had warned
them by special revelation in the Apocalypse of John; in which he declared not only what
troubles were coming upon them, and where and by whom they should come, but also
assigned the true time, how long the said persecutions should continue, and when they
should cease. The feelings of the Editor, and he is sure those of his readers, on perusing
the accounts of such horrid cruelties, resemble those of Titus Livius, who, when writing of
the wars of Carthage, was so astonished and afflicted, that he cried out, " Ac si in parte
alequa labores, ac periculi ipse pariter fuisset."
96 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
SECTION IV.
THE PERSECUTIONS OF THE CHRISTIANS BY THE GOTHS, &c.
During the reign of Constantine the Great several Scythian Goths
embraced Christianity, the light of the gospel having spread consider-
ably in Scythia, though the two kings who ruled that country and the
majority of the people continued pagans. Fritegern, king of the
Western Goths, was an ally of the Romans ; but Athanaric, king of
the Eastern Goths, was at war with them. The Christians, in the
dominions of the former, lived unmolested ; but the latter, having been
defeated by the Romans, wreaked his vengeance on his Christian
subjects.
Sabas, a Christian, was the first who felt the king's resentment. He
was humble and modest, yet fervent and zealous for the advancement of
the church. Indeed the sanctity of his life and the purity of his manners
gave the greatest force to his doctrines.
In the year 370, Athanaric gave orders that all persons in his domi-
nions should sacrifice to the pagan deities, and eat the meat which had
been offered to idols, or be put to death for disobedienee. Some humane
pagans, who had christian relations, endeavoured to save them by offer-
ing them meat which had not received the idolatrous consecration, while
the magistrates were made to believe that all had been done according
to their direction. But Sabas too well knew St. Paul's principles, to
imagine that the sin lay in eating : he knew that giving the enemies of
the faith an advantage over the weak rendered that action criminal in
Christians. He, therefore, not only refused to comply with what was
proposed to him, but publicly declared, that those who sheltered them-
selves under that artifice were not true Christians.
Sabas was soon after apprehended on account of his faith, and car-
ried before a magistrate, who enquired into his fortune and circumstances;
when finding that he was a person of obscure station, he was dismissed
with contempt. He then went to spend the Easter with Sansala, a chris-
tian priest of great piety ; but on the third night after his arrival they
were both seized by a party of soldiers. The priest was allowed to dress
himself and to ride, but Sabas was obliged to leave his clothes behind
him and to walk; and, during the journey, they drove him through
thorns and briars, beating him almost continually. This cruelty he
bore without a single murmur. In the evening they extended him be-
tween two beams, fastening his legs to the one and his arms to the other;
and in that posture left him for the night. The woman of the house,
however, went and released him ; but though he was now at liberty, he
did not avail himself of the opportunity to make his escape. The next
morning the persecutofs began to tamper with Sabas and the priest to
renounce their religion, and eat the meat consecrated to the idols.
They, however, positively declared that they were ready to suffer the
most cruel death rather than comply. Sansala was at length discharged,'
and Sabas was ordered to be drowned.
Nicetas was of Gothic extraction ; his parents lived near the banks
EUSEBIUS AND THE AR1ANS. 97
of the Danube, and though he had long been a Christian he never met
with injury on that account, till the persecution was begun by Atha-
naric. That monarch ordered an idol to be drawn on a chariot through
all places where the Christians lived; and that it should be stopped at
the door of every one who professed the gospel, and the christian inha-
bitants ordered to pay it adoration. On a refusal being given, the
house was immediately set on fire, and all within consumed. This hap-
pened to Nicetas, who, on account of his religion, refusing to pay the
respect demanded to the idol, had his house burnt, and himself was
consumed in it.
The celebrated Eusebius, bishop of Samostatia, was a distinguished
example in ecclesiastical history, and was one of the most eminent
champions of Christ against the Arian heresy. The Arians having ad-
vanced Miletus to the see of Antioch, thinking Eusebius of their party,
the warrant of advancement was placed in his hands. When Miletus
preached his first sermon, the Arians, to their great surprise, found they
had been greatly mistaken in him, for his doctrines were pure. They,
therefore, persuaded the emperor to displace him, and likewise to get
the instrument out of the hands of Eusebius. Miletus was accordingly
deposed, and the emperor sent to Eusebius to deliver the instrument:
but he answered that he could not give up a trust reposed in him by so
great a number, without the consent of all concerned in it. The em-
peror, incensed at this reply, wrote to him, that he had commissioned
the bearer of the letter to cut off his right hand, if he refused to sur-
render the instrument in question ; which threat was added to awe him
into compliance. Eusebius, however, without the least emotion, offered
his hands, and declared he would lose them both rather than part with
the deed. The emperor was greatly surprised at his resolution, and
professed a high esteem for him ever after.
The Arians now looked upon Eusebius as a dangerous enemy. At
the time Jovian restored peace to the church, Miletus convened a
council at Antioch, which consisted of Eusebius and twenty-five other
prelates, who unanimously confirmed the doctrines of the council of
Nice. At this time the see of Csesarea becoming vacant, Eusebius was
instrumental in promoting Basil to it, on which occasion Gregory the
younger calls him, "The pillar of truth, the light of the world, the
fortress of the church, the rule of faith, the support of the faithful, and
an instrument in the hands of God for bestowing favours on his people."
When the Arians were the most vigilant to propagate their tenets,
Eusebius was assiduous in taking measures to prevent their success ;
and his zeal was always so governed by prudence, that his attempts
seldom failed, till at length the emperor, at their instigation, granted an
order for banishing him into Thrace. He was at Samostatia when the
messenger came with his commission; it was late in the evening, and
Eusebius, who was beloved by his people, begged he would make no
noise, but conceal his business; " for," says he, " if it be known, the
people will fall on you, throw you into the river, and then I shall be
charged with your death." Eusebius went through his usual devotions,
and when the night was far advanced he left his house on foot, attended
by only one trusty servant, who carried a pillow and book after him.
98 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Thus accommodated he took a boat, and proceeded to Zeugma, about
seventy miles down the river.
The people next day missing Eusebius, and hearing which way he
was gone, followed in a great number of boats, and overtaking would
have rescued him, entreating him, with tears in their eyes, not to
abandon them. Their cordiality deeply affected him ; but he said he
must go according to the emperor's order, putting them in mind of the
authority of St. Paul for paying due reverence to the civil power. On
finding they could not prevail, they provided him with things that would
comfort him in his journey, and then left him.
It happened that Thrace was now a scene of confusion, by means of
the war carried on between the Goths and the emperor's forces; and in
these contests, the life of Eusebius was in great danger. At length the
emperor, in order to terminate the war with the greatest expedition,
resolved to march against the Goths in person; but first, to engage the
prayers of the Christians, he gave peace to the church, and allowed
the prelates to return to their several stations. Thus was Eusebius re-
stored to his see, which, however, he did not long enjoy, for an Arian
woman threw a tile at him from the top of a house, fracturing his skull
and terminating his life. This happened in the year 380.
The bishop of Apamea, a prelate of great merit, was very active in
endeavouring to suppress idolatry in his own diocese, on which account
his life was in continual danger, till Cynegius, the prefect, arrived with
a considerable body of troops, which kept the pagans in awe. This
officer's design was to abolish idolatry, to effect which he determined to
destroy the temple of Jupiter. He, however, found this a difficult at-
tempt ; for the building was so strong, the stones so unwieldy, and the
cement so durable, that he despaired of being able to accomplish the
work; when a poor labouring Christian, recommended by Marcellus,
undertook to accomplish what the prefect had abandoned, and the
business was executed in the following manner : — The man examined the
edifice, and finding it surrounded by a gallery, supported by stately
pillars ten yards in circumference, he knew it would be more to his
purpose to weaken the foundation than to attack the body of the build-
ing; with this view he dug at the bottom of the pillars, and shored them
with timber beams. When he had thus undermined three of the strongest
pillars, he set fire to the wood, when the pillars fell, drew twelve more
with them, and brought down one whole side of the building; upon
which the Christians flocked from all parts of the town, and praised
God for the demolition of the temple.
The bishop and prefect continued destroying a great number of idol
temples, when being at a town called Aulo upon this business, while the
troops were busy in demolishing the buildings, some pagans privately
seized upon the venerable prelate, and burnt him, A. D. 393.
I EXECUTIONS UNDER THE AltlAN VANDALS. 5> ( )
SECTION V.
»
THE PERSECUTIONS OF THE CHRISTIANS
UNDER THE ARIAN VANDALS.
The Arian Vandals proceeding from Spain to Africa in the fifth century,
under their leader Genseric, committed many cruelties. They perse-
cuted the Christians wherever they went, and laid waste the country as
they passed, in order that those left behind, who had escaped, might not
be able to live. They plundered the churches, and murdered the bishops
and ministers by a variety of cruel devices. They also wreaked their
vengeance on several of the nobility, whom they loaded with heavy
burdens, and obliged them to carry their baggage; and if they did not
travel fast enough, they goaded them with sharp weapons, so that several
died under their burdens. Old men found no mercy, and even innocent
and feeble infants felt the rage of their barbarity. Stately buildings
were burned or destroyed ; and the chief churches in Carthage were
perverted to heretical worship, or put to profane uses ; and where any
castles held out against them, they brought great numbers of Christians
and slew them, leaving their bodies under the walls, that the besieged
might be forced to surrender by means of the offensive stench which
arose from them. When they had seized and plundered the city of
Carthage, they put the bishop and all the clergy into a leaky ship, and
committed it to the mercy of the waves, thinking that they must all
perish; but the vessel, through Divine Providence, arrived safe at
Naples.
Several Christians were beaten, scourged, and banished to Capsur,
where it pleased God to make them the means of converting many of
the Moors to Christianity; but this coming to the knowledge of Genseric,
he sent orders, that they and their converts should be tied by the feet
to chariots, and dragged till their life was extinct. Pempinian, bishop
of Mansuetes, was burnt to death with plates of hot iron. The bishop of
Urice was also burnt. The bishop of Habensa was banished, for refusing
to deliver up the sacred books which were in his possession ; and a whole
congregation, assembled in a church at their devotions, together with
the clergyman who was conducting the service, were murdered by the
barbarians who broke in upon them.
The Vandal tyrant, having made an expedition into Italy, and plun-
dered the city of Rome, returned to Africa, flushed with the success of
his arms ; and the Arians took this occasion to persuade him to persecute
the Christians, who differed from them.
Armogastus felt the rage of this persecution; Victor, the learned
bishop of Vita, who was acquainted with Armogastus, and who wrote the
history of this persecution, informs us, that " his legs were tied, and his
forehead bound with cords severely; which, though tightened, made not
the least impression on his flesh, nor left any mark on his skin. After
this, he was hung up by the feet; but in that posture seemed to be as
much at his ease as if he reposed on a bed. Theodoric, one of the
100 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
king's sons, finding all attempts on his life bad hitherto proved unsuc-
cessful, ordered his head to be struck off; but Jocundus, a priest, dis-
suaded him, by telling him it would be much better to destroy him
gradually, as a violent death would procure him the reputation of a
martyr. The prince therefore sent him to the mines, and some time
after removed him to a place near Carthage, where he was employed
in tending cattle. While Armogastus was thus engaged, he became ex-
ceedingly ill, and imagining that the end of his labours was near, he
communicated his thoughts to Felix, a virtuous Christian, employed in
that prince's service, from whom he received consolation. His disorder
soon deprived him of life, and he was buried by Felix according to his
own desire.
There was a devout Christian, named Archinemus, upon whom various
artifices were employed in vain to make him renounce his faith. At
length Genseric himself undertook to persuade him, but finding his en-
deavours ineffectual, he sentenced him to be beheaded. At the same
time he privately ordered the executioner really to perform his office, if
the prisoner seemed intimidated; " for then," said he, "the crown of
martyrdom will be lost to him; but if he seems courageous, and willing
to die, strike not, for I do not intend that he shall have the honour of
being deemed a martyr." The executioner finding Archinemus happy in
the thought of dying for the sake of Christ, brought him back again.
He was soon after banished, and never heard of more, though it is con-
jectured that he was privately murdered by the king's order.
Eugenius, bishop of Carthage, was eminent for his learning and piety,
which brought upon him the hatred of the Arians, who took great pains
to set the king Huneric against him and his orthodox brethren, several
thousand of whom were banished to a desert, where many perished.
Huneric also sent an edict to Eugenius, which he commanded him to
read in the cathedral on Ascension-day, A. D. 483. By this it was
ordered that the orthodox bishops should meet at Carthage on
the first of February, for the purpose of disputing with the Arian pre-
lates. The king's stratagem was discovered by Eugenius, and se-
veral other bishops, particularly Victor bishop of Vita, the learned
author of the account of this persecution ; and they determined
after deliberation, to send a petition to the king : it was written by
Eugenius, and presented by a person who had great interest at court. It
stated, that the African prelates did not decline the proposed conference
from the weakness of their cause, or a distrust of their own abilities to
maintain their mode of faith ; but as the whole church was concerned
in the dispute, they were of opinion that they could not engage in it
without the bishops of Europe and Asia. Huneric answered, that what
they desired was impossible, unless the whole world was in his hands.
Upon this Eugenius desired his majesty would be pleased to write to
Odoacer, king of Italy, and other princes in his interest ; and allow him
to send to the bishops, that the common faith might be thus authorita-
tively advocated. Disregarding this remonstrance, the king insisted
upon being obeyed; and then, previous to the time appointed, banished
several of the most learned of the orthodox prelates on various pre-
tences, that the Arians might have the advantage.
CRUELTIES OF HUNERIC. 101
At the time appointed for the conference, the orthodox clergy chose
ten of their number to speak in the name of the rest. Cyrilla, an Arian,
took the title of patriarch upon the occasion, and was seated. on a mag-
nificent throne. The Arian prelates were allowed to sit near him, but
the orthodox bishops were obliged to stand. They complained of this
partial treatment as an infringement of their liberty ; and Eugenius,
perceiving that they did not intend coming to any candid decision, pro-
posed to adjourn ; but instead of complying with this, each orthodox
prelate was threatened by the king's order with a hundred blows.
Eugenius protested against such violence, but in vain ; the prelates wefe
turned out of the place unheard, their churches were shut up, and the
revenues of their bishoprics confiscated. They were then compelled to
quit Carthage, and lay without the walls of that city, exposed to all the
inclemency of the weather. The king passing out at one of the gates,
the orthodox clergy presented themselves before him, and modestly com-
plained of the treatment they had received : but instead of redressing
their grievances, Huneric ordered his guards to chastise them. The
soldiers, in consequence, treated them unmercifully ; and the king
ordered them to appear on a future day at a certain place, where, at the
time appointed, they assembled ; when one of his officers showed them
a paper, and informed them that the king was inclined to forget what
was past, and to restore them to their livings, if they would swear to the
truth of what that paper contained. The prelates, surprised at this pro-
posal declared that they could not in conscience swear to the truth of
that to which they were total strangers ; but if they were suffered to
read the writing, and approved of the contents, they would take the
oath. The officer answered, that he would tell them the contents, which
were of a political nature, and only required them to swear that they
were willing prince Hilderic should succeed his father on the throne.
Several of the prelates innocently thinking there could be no harm in
taking such an oath, complied ; but the rest, with greater caution, refused
the oath, as they judged some artifice was in contemplation.
While they were disagreeing upon this head, the officer took ad-
vantage of their discord, and committed them to separate prisons
those who were willing to swear to one, and those who were un-
willing to another ; but they had not been long in confinement
before the artifice was exposed by an order from the king for the
banishment of both parties. Those who had been willing to swear were
banished, under the pretence of offering to break the established pre-
cept of the Scripture, " Swear not at all ;" and those who had refused
to swear, were banished as enemies to the legal succession. The former
were obliged to work as slaves in distant colonies, and the latter were
sent to the island of Corsica to cut timber. Eugenius was exiled to
Tripoli, where Anthony a violent Arian bishop, threw him into a dungeon,
and made him suffer severe hardship, in order to destroy him by a lin-
gering death. The dampness of the place gave Eugenius the palsy,
which Anthony hearing of went to the gaol, and finding him weak and
lying on the floor, he poured strong vinegar down his throat to choke
him. It had, however, a contrary effect; instead of suffocating, it promoted
copious perspiration, which removed the palsy and restored him to health.
102 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
When Huneric died, his successor recalled Eugenius and the rest of
the orthodox clergy. The Arians taking the alarm, persuaded him to
banish them again, which he did ; when Engenius, being exiled to
Languedoc in France, died there of the hardships he underwent, on the
6th of September, in the year 505.
A widow lady of fortune, named Dionysia, being apprehended as an
orthodox Christian, was stripped, exposed in a most indecent manner,
and severely scourged. Her son, a mere youth, was seized at the same
time, but seemed afraid of the torture, and looked piteously at his mother,
who ordered him not to fear torment, but to be constant to the faith in
which she had brought him up. When he was upon the rack, she again
comforted him with her pious speeches. On this the youth patiently
persevered, and resigned his soul to his Creator. The mother saw the
death of her son, and soon after herself received the crown of martyrdom.
Cyrilla, the Arian bishop of Carthage, was a furious persecutor, and
a determined enemy to those Christians who professed the faith in purity.
He persuaded the king that he could never prosper in his undertakings,
or enjoy his kingdom in peace, while he suffered any of the orthodox
Christians to practise their principles : and the monarch believing the
prediction, sent for several of the most eminent Christians, who were
obnoxious to the prelate. He at first attempted to draw them from
their faith by flattery, and to bribe them by the promise of immediate
worldly rewards ; but they were firm and constant, declaring resolutely
against Arianism, and saying, " We acknowledge but one Lord, and
one faith; you may therefore do whatever you please with our bodies,
for it is better that we should suffer a few temporary pains than to
endure everlasting misery." The king being greatly exasperated at this
remark, sent them to a dungeon, and ordered them to be put in irons.
The keeper, however, suffered their friends to have access to them ; by
which they became daily more confirmed in their resolution of dying for
the sake of their Redeemer.
The king heard of the indulgence they received, and was exceedingly
angry, sending orders that they should be closely confined, and loaded
with still heavier fetters. He then began to consider by what means he
should put them to death, and at length determined to imitate the bar-
barity of the emperor Valens, who caused fourscore clergymen to be
burnt in a ship. Resolving upon this infernal precedent, he ordered
these Christians to be put on board a vessel filled with combustible
materials, and set on fire. The names of those who suffered by this cruel
expedient were, Rusticus, Severus, Liberatus, Rogatus, Servus, Septimus
and Boniface.
103
BOOK III
SECTION I.
THE PERSECUTIONS FROM THE MIDDLE OF THE FIFTH, TO THE
CONCLUSION OF THE SEVENTH CENTURY.
Proterius was made a priest by Cyril, bishop of Alexandria. On
the death of Cyril, the see of Alexandria was filled by Dioscorus, an
inveterate enemy both to the memory and family of his predecessor.
Dioscorus, however, knowing the reputation of Proterius, and his great
interest, did all in his power to gain his confidence and favour, thinking
he might be of service to him in carrying on his evil intentions; but
Proterius was not to be corrupted, and no prospect of worldly prefer-
ment could bribe him to forego his duty. At length Dioscorus being
condemned by the council of Chalcedon for having embraced the errors
of Eutyches, was deposed, and Proterius chosen to fill the see, and ap-
proved of by the emperor On this an insurrection broke out, the city
of Alexandria being divided into two factions; one espousing the cause
of the old, and the other of the new prelate. Proterius was in immi-
nent danger from a set of schismatics, who would neither obey the de-
cision of the council nor the emperor's commands.
The disorders becoming serious, the governor of Thebias marched with
a body of troops in order to quell them. The people, however, were in
a kind of phrenzy : when they heard of the approach of the governor,
they armed themselves, marched out of Alexandria, gave him battle,
and defeated him. The intelligence of this affair so exasperated the
emperor, that he sent a detachment of two thousand men against them;
whose appearance, and the prudence of the governor of Alexandria,
whose name was Florus, soon restored peace to the city. Still the dis-
contented party beheld Proterius with resentment, so that he was obliged
to have a guard for his personal safety; and at length, though naturally
of a mild temper, was compelled to excommunicate some of his foes,
and obtain their banishment from Alexandria. When the emperor
Marcian's death, which happened two years after, gave a new turn to
affairs, the exiles returned to Alexandria, renewed their cabals against
Proterius, and resolved to be revenged on him for what they had suffered.
Timothy, a priest, who was at the head of the designs that had been
formed against Proterius, employed every art to ruin his credit, drawing
the people from his communion, and raising himself to the see. At
last taking advantage of the absence of Dionysius, who commanded the
forces of that province, and was then in Upper Egypt, he seized on the
great church, and was uncanonically consecrated by two bishops of his
faction, who had been deposed for heresy. He continued the exercise
of the episcopal functions, till the commander's return, who, hearing of
the disorders that had been committed, and that Timothy was the chief
author of them, expelled and exiled him.
104 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
This affair so enraged the Eutychians, that they determined to take
vengeance on Proterius, who fled to the altar for sanctuary : but on
Good Friday, A. D. 457, a large body of them rushed into the church,
and murdered the prelate ; after which they dragged his body through
the streets, cut it in pieces, burnt it, and dispersed the ashes.
When the Vandals sacked Carthage, a lady named Julia, was taken
prisoner, and after being sold and resold as a slave, she became the pro-
perty of a Syrian pagan, named Eusebius. Her master frequently took
her with him upon his voyages : in one of these they touched upon the
island of Corsica, where Eusebius joined in an idolatrous festival; but
Julia kept from it. The heathens complained of this conduct, as dis-
respectful to their gods, and informed the governor Felix of it, who sent
for Eusebius, and demanded what young woman it was who had re-
fused to join in worship to the gods. Eusebius replied, that the young
woman was a Christian, and that all his authority over her could not
induce her to renounce her religion ; but she was a very diligent and
faithful servant.
Felix pressed him to exert himself, either to oblige her to assist at the
pagan worship, or to part with her; and offered to give him his own
price, or four of his best female slaves in exchange for her, which the
pagan refused. When Felix found him inflexible, he determined to get
her into his power by artifice, and invited Eusebius to an entertainment,
when having intoxicated him, he sent for Julia in the name of her
master. The slave, not suspecting the design, immediately went; when
the governor told her that he would procure her liberty, if she would
sacrifice to the heathen gods; but not being able to prevail, he ordered
her to be severely beaten, and finding her still resolute, he commanded
that the hair of her head should be plucked by the roots. This bar-
barity having no greater effect, he sentenced her to be hanged. Scarcely
was Julia dead when Eusebius recovered from his intoxication, and un-
derstanding what had past, he in the first transports of his resentment
thought of complaining to the emperor, who being a Christian, would
have punished the perfidy of the governor; but reflecting that Felix had
only acted with zeal for the deities he himself adored, he determined to
put up with the loss, and retire from the place.
Hermengildus, a Gothic prince, was the eldest son of Leovigildus, king
of the Goths, in Spain. This prince, who was originally an Arian, be-
came a convert to the orthodox faith, by means of his wife, whose name
was Ingonda. The king, on hearing that his son had changed his reli-
gious sentiments, stripped him of the command at Seville, where he was
governor, and threatened to put him to death, unless he renounced the
new faith. On this the prince, in order to prevent the execution of his
father's menaces, began to prepare for defence; and many of the ortho-
dox persuasion in Spain declared on his side. Exasperated at this act
of rebellion, the king began to punish all the orthodox Christians who
could be seized and thus originated a very severe persecution. He
marched against his son at the head of a powerful army; and knowing
that he could not oppose the formidable force that his father was bring-
ing against him, the prince implored the assistance of the Roman troops
left to garrison those parts of Spain which the emperor still possessed.
HERMENGILDUS CAPTUUKD AND SLAIN. 10.5
Tlie Roman commander undertook to assist Hermengildus, but being
bribed by the king- lie broke his promise. Leovigildus then made it his
business, as much as possible, to detach the orthodox Christians from the
interest of his son ; and in this he was too successful, for it was effected in
581, by convening the Arian prelates at Toledo, who abolished the prac-
tice of re-baptising such as came over to their sect; and he drew up a
captious profession of faith which deceived many, and prevailed upon
them to quit the interest of Hermengildus. Finding himself forsaken
by numbers in whom he most confided, the prince was obliged to retreat
towards Seville, where he soon after shut himself up, and sent to Con-
stantinople for assistance from the emperor. The death of that
monarch, however, prevented him from receiving relief; for Maurice,
who succeeded him, had no opportunity to afford any succour to Her-
mengildus. The king, who knew of the conduct of his son, proceeded
to Seville and laid siege to it : the prince defended the place with great
bravery, and held out for twelve months ; but finding that it rrlust soon
be taken, he privately made his escape, and fled to the Roman troops
to beg protection. Being informed that they intended to give him up,
he hastily fled to Corduba, and from thence went to Asseto, which he
fortified and prepared for his defence. On the escape of the prince
from Seville that city surrendered, and the king having placed a gar-
rison in it, pursued his son, laid siege to Asseto, and soon obliged it to
surrender. The prince being driven to this distress, flew to a church,
when the king respecting the sanctity of the place, sent an officer,
named Reccaredus, to assure him of pardon, upon his submitting to
ask it. The prince believing his father to be sincere, immediately went
and threw himself at his feet : the king, however, instead of forgiving
him, loaded him with chains, and carried him to Seville, where he endea-
voured by promises and menaces to make him renounce the christian
faith. Nevertheless, the prince remained true, and at Easter, when
the king sent an Arian bishop to him to administer the eucharist, Her-
mengildus refused to receive it ; which so enraged the king, that he or-
dered some of his guards to go and cut him to pieces.
Anastasius, a Persian, was brought up a Pagan, and bore arms as a
soldier under Cosroes, king of Persia, at the time that monarch plun-
dered Jerusalem. Among other things they are said to have carried off
the very cross on which Christ was crucified. Anastasius could not
imagine why the Christians had such veneration for a person who died
so mean a death as that of crucifixion ; for that mode of death was
held by the Persians in the greatest contempt. At length some Christian
captives instructed him in the Christian mystery, and being charmed
with the purity of the faith, he left the army, and retired to Syria : here
he learned the trade of a goldsmith, and then going to Jerusalem, he
supported himself by that business, was baptized by Modestus, vicar-
general of Jerusalem, and stayed a week with his godfather Elias. When
the time was over, and he was to quit the white clothes which he wore
at his baptism, according to the practice of the church, he desired the
priest to put him in a way of renouncing the world. Elias recommend-
ed him to Justin, abbot of a seminary four miles from Jerusalem, who
106 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
employed a person to instruct him in the Greek tongue, and teach him
the Psalms ; and then admitted him into his community. Anastasius
passed seven years in that house, dividing his time between humble
domestic employments, and administering the word of God ; and at
length he conceived a strong desire to lay down his life for his
Redeemer.
On going to Caesarea, which was in the hands of the Persians, he was
taken as a spy, and brought before Marzabanes, the governor, to whom
he owned that he was a Christian, and was 'sent to prison. Many at-
tempts were made to convert him, and at length Justin being apprised
of his sufferings, recommended him to the prayers of the whole commu-
nity, and sent two of his people to encourage him to perseverance.
At last the governor wrote to the king concerning Anastasius, and
the sovereign did all in his power to engage him to renounce his religion,
but finding his endeavours vain, he ordered him to be executed in a sin-
gular and severe manner : he was hung up by one hand, with a weight
fastened to his foot ; and after being strangled, his head was cut off,
and sent to the king.
Martin, bishop of Rome, was born at Todi, in Italy. He was natu-
rally virtuous, and his parents bestowed on him an excellent education.
He took orders, and on the death of Theodore, bishop of Rome, was
advanced to that important see by an unanimous election, in which all
parties gave him the fullest praise, and admitted that he well merited a
trust of such importance.
The first vexation he received in his episcopal capacity, was from a set
of heretics called Monothelites ; who not daring, after the express deci-
sions of the council of Chalcedon, to maintain the unity of nature in
Christ, artfully asserted that he had but one will, one operation of mind.
This sect was patronized by the emperor Heraclius ; and the first who
attempted to stop the progress of these errors was Sophronius, bishop
of Jerusalem. Martin, who on this occasion coincided with the bishop
of Jerusalem, called a council consisting of 105 bishops, and they
unanimously condemned the errors in question. But the emperor pro-
voked at these proceedings, ordered Olympius, his lieutenant in Italy, to
repair to Rome and seize the bishop. The lieutenant performed the
journey; but on his arrival at Rome he found the prelate too much
beloved to induce him to attempt any open violence: he therefore
suborned a ruffian to assassinate the bishop at the altar; but the fellow,
after promising compliance, was seized with such horror of conscience,
that he had not the power to execute the bloody deed. Olympius finding
it would be difficult to destroy Martin, put himself at the head of his
troops, and marched against the Saracens, who had made inroads into
Italy; but during this expedition he died. His successor was Calliopas,
who received express orders to seize Martin, which, with the assistance
of a considerable body of soldiers, he effected ; shewing the clergy the
imperial mandate, which commanded him to dispossess Martin of his
bishopric, and convey him prisoner to Constantinople. Having endured
various hardships, during a tedious voyage, he reached Constantinople,
and was thrown into prison. While in confinement, he wrote two
epistles to the emperor to refute the calumnies forged against him
ACCOUNT OF VARIOUS MARTYRS. 107
concerning his faith and loyalty: for a proof of the soundness of the
former, he appealed to the testimony of the whole clergy, and his own
solemn protestation to defend the truth as long as he lived; and in
answer to objections against the latter, he declared he never sent either
money, letters, or advice to the Saracens; but only remitted a sum for
the relief of poor Christians among those people. He concluded with
saying, that nothing could be more false than what the heretics had
alleged against him concerning the blessed Virgin, whom he firmly
believed to be the mother of God, and worthy of all honour after her
divine Son. In his second letter he gave a particular account of his
being seized at Rome, and his indisposition and ill usage after he was
dragged from that city; and ended with wishing and hoping his perse-
cutors would repent of their conduct, when the object of their hatred
should be removed from this world.
The fatigues that Martin had undergone, and his infirmities were so
great, that on the day appointed for his trial, he was brought out of
prison in a chair, unable to walk. When he sat a moment before the
court, the judge commanded him to stand, which not being able to do,
two men were ordered to hold him up. Twenty witnesses were produc-
ed against him, who swore as they were directed, and charged him with
assumed and imaginary crimes. Martin began his defence, but as
soon as he entered upon an investigation of the errors which he had
combated, one of the senators stopped him, and said, that he was only
examined respecting civil affairs, and consequently ecclesiastical matters
must not be introduced. Martin was then ordered to be exposed in the
most public places of the town, and to be divested of all marks of dis-
tinction ; rigours which he bore with Christian patience and submission,
and without a murmuring word. After laying some months in prison,
he was sent to an island at some distance, and there barbarously put to
death.
John, bishop of Bergamo in Lombardy, a learned man and a good
Christian, did his utmost to clear the church from the errors of Arianism,
and joining with John, bishop of Milan, he was very successful against
the heretics. Grimoald an Arian, having usurped the throne of Lom-
bardy, the orthodox Christians feared that heresy would rise once more
in that country ; but the bishop of Bergamo used such persuasive argu-
ments with Grimoald, that he brought him to profess the orthodox
faith. On the death of Grimoald, and his son who succeeded him,
Pantharit came to the crown, and again introduced those errors
which had been combated with such spirit by the true clergy. The
bishop of Bergamo exerted himself strenuously to prevent the heresy
from spreading, on which account he was assassinated on the 11th of
July, A. D. 683.
Kilien was born in Ireland, and received from his parents a pious and
Christian education. His favourite study was theology, and hence he
was very assiduous in bringing many to the light of the gospel. In the
course of time he crossed the sea, with eleven other persons, in order to
make converts on the continent. On landing, they directed their route
to the circle of Franconia, in Germany. On arriving at the city of
Wurtzburg, they found the people in general with their governor
108 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Gozbert to be pagans ; but conceived great hopes of converting them to
the gospel faith. Previous to making this attempt, however, he deemed
it necessary to go to Rome, in order to obtain his mission from the
pontiff. He according went thither, attended by one Coloman a priest,
and Totman a deacon, two of those who had accompanied him from
Ireland, and found Conon in Peter's chair. He gave them a favourable
reception, and being informed of Kilien's business at Rome, after some
questions about his faith and doctrine, consecrated him bishop, with full
permission to preach to the infidels wherever he found them. Thus
authorized, Kilien returned to Wurtzburg, where he opened his mission;
but he had not long been employed in this labour when Gozbert sent
for him, and desired to know the nature and tendency of the new reli-
gion, which he so boldly recommended. The new bishop had several
conferences with the governor on the subject, and God gave such a
blessing to his endeavours, that Gozbert not only received the faith and
was baptised, but gave him leave to preach wherever he pleased in his
dominions. Gozbert also commanded the attention of his pagan sub-
jects to what our prelate had to offer ; and the greater part of them
became Christians in less than two years.
Gozbert had married his brother's widow, but Kilien, though he held
the sinfulness of the thing, did not choose to rebuke him till he was
thoroughly confirmed in his faith. When he thought him fully instruct-
ed in the principles of Christianity, he entreated him, as the last proof
of the sincerity of his conversion, to quit the person whom he had
hitherto looked upon as a wife, as he could not retain with her without
committing sin. Gozbert, surprised at the proposal, told the bishop
this was the hardest demand he had ever made upon him. ''But," said
he, " since I have renounced my own inclinations and pleasures in so
many particulars for the love of God, I will make the work complete,
by complying with your advice in this too." The wife of the governor
in consequence, determined to be revenged on those who had persuaded
Gozbert into such a resolution. She accordingly sent to the place were
they usually assembled, and had them all beheaded. Kilien, and his
companions, submitted without resistance, the former telling them, that
they need not fear those who had no power of the soul, but could only
kill the body, which in a short time, would of itself decay. This hap-
pened, A. D. 689, and the martyrs were privately buried in the night,
together with their books, clothes, and all that they had. It is said that
some days after this impious tragedy Gozbert, surprised that he had not
seen Kilien lately, ordered diligent search to be made for him. Geilana,
his wife, to stop the inquiry, reported that he and his companions had
left the town, without giving any account of their movements ; but the
executioner, filled with remorse, ran about like a mad man, and declared
that the spirit of Kilien was consuming his conscience. Thus distracted
he was seized, and Gozbert was considering what to do, when a creature
of the wife's and a pretended convert advised him to leave the God of
the Christians, to do himself justice on his enemies, and proposed the
event as a test of his power. Gozbert was weak enough to tempt God,
by putting it on that issue ; and the murderer being set at liberty, went
raving mad, tore his own flesh with his teeth, and died in a miserable
BONIFACE THE ARCHBISHOP. 109
condition. Geilana was so agonized in her conscience, that she soon
after expired in despair ; while Gozbert's criminal condescension was
punished by a violent death, and in a few years his whole race was ex-
terminated.
SECTION II.
THE SEVERAL PERSECUTIONS FROM THE EARLY PART OF THE EIGHTH TO
NEAR THE CONCLUSION OF THE TENTH CENTURY.
Boniface, archbishop of Mentz, and father of the German church,
was an Englishman,' 11 and is looked upon in ecclesiastical history, as one
m As we are speaking of a celebrated English martyr, and have already mentioned the
first person who was martyred in England for the christian faith, it will be interesting to the
reader to learn, that before the coming of St. Augustine into England, there were four
persecutions in Britain.
The first was under Diocletian, about the year 210; and that not only in England, but
generally throughout all the Roman monarchy, as is already specified. In this persecution,
Albanus, Julius, Aaron, with a great number of other christian Britons were martyred for
the cause of Christ.
The second persecution was by the invasions of Gnavius and Melga : the first was captain
of the Huns, the other of the Picts. These tyrants, after the cruel slaughter of Ursula
and 11,000 noble virgins, entered Britain, hearing it to be destitute of a sufficient military
force. They spoiled and wasted churches, without having mercy either on women or
children.
The third persecution was by Hengist and the Saxons; who likewise destroyed the
christian congregations within the land, like raging wolves flying upon sheep, and shedding
the blood of Christians, till the time of Aurelius Ambrosius, who restored the churches of
the land.
The fourth destruction of the christian faith and religion was by Gurmundus, a king of
the Africans; who joining in league with the Saxons, did much injury to the holy cause.
Theonus, bishop of London, and Thadioceus, bishop of York, and the rest of the people,
having no place to remain in with safety, fled some to Cornwall and some to the mountains
of Wales, about the year of our Lord 550. This persecution continued till the time of
Ethelbert, king of Kent, in the year 589.
In the reign of Ethelbert, who was the fifth king of Kent, the faith of Christ was first
received by the Saxons or English, by the means of Gregory, bishop of Rome, in the
following manner. It should be observed, that the christian faith first received of king
Lucius, endured in Britain till this time, about 400 years, when, by Gurmundus Africaous,
fighting with the Saxons against the Britons, it was nearly extinct in all the land, for the
space of about forty-four years. So that the first springing of Christ's gospel in this land,
was in the year of our Lord 180. The coming of the Saxons was in the year 449. The
coming of Augustine, who was sent by Gregory, was in the year 596. The occasion on
which Gregory sent him hither was this: —
In the days of Pelagius, bishop of Rome, Gregory chanced to see certain children in the
market-place of Rome, brought thither from England for sale, being fair and beautiful,
demanded out of what country they were ; and understanding they were heathens from
England, lamented the case of a land so beautiful in its people, and yet in pagan
darkness. Inquiring out of what province they were, he was answered out of Deira, a part
of Northumberland. Then alluding to the name of Deira, " These people," said he, " are
to be delivered de Dei ira," which is, from God's wrath. Also understanding the king of
that province to be named Alle, alluding to it, he said, "There ought Allelujah to be sung
to the living God." Some time afterwards becoming bishop himself after Pelagius, he sent
thither Augustine, with about forty other priests; but as the company were travelling, a
sudden fear entered into their hearts, that, as Antonius says, they all returned. Others
write, that Augustine went back to Gregory again, to solicit that they might not be sent on
110 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM
of the brightest ornaments of his country. His name originally was
Winfred, or Winfrith, and he was born at Kirton, in Devonshire, then
part of the West-Saxon kingdom. When only six years of age, he dis-
covered a propensity to study, and was solicitous to gain information on
religious subjects ; and some evangelical missionaries coming by chance
to Kirton, happened to fix their abode at his father's house, and profit-
ing by their discourse, he determined to devote himself to a religious
life. When he informed his father of his resolution, he would have
dissuaded him from it ; but finding him fully resolved, he permitted him
to go and reside at a monastery in Exeter. Wolfrad, the abbot, observ-
ing that he possessed a bright genius, had him removed to Nutscelle, a
seminary of learning in the diocese of Winchester, where he would have
a great opportunity of attaining improvement. The abbot of Nutscelle,
who was celebrated for his superior learning, took uncommon pains with
the young pupil, who, in time, became a prodigy in divine knowledge,
and was, at length, employed in the college as a principal teacher.
We are informed by the ancient Saxon historians, that those who
studied under him had no need to remove to any other place to finish
what they had begun, for he gave them lessons in grammar, poetry,
rhetoric, and philosophy, and explained the holy scriptures in the
literal, moral, and mystical senses. His example was as instructive as
his lectures, and while he formed his scholars to learning by his dic-
tates, he encouraged them to the practice of virtue by his own prudent
conduct. The abbot, finding him qualified for the priesthood, obliged
him to receive that holy order, when he was about thirty years old.
From this he began to labour for the salvation of his fellow-creatures ;
in the progress of which he gave the first proofs of that apostolical
zeal, which afterwards made such glorious conquests in this once
savage and barbarous part of the world.
There arose an important occasion to assemble a synod of bishops m
the kingdom of the West-Saxons, and it was judged expedient to
depute one of their body to the archbishop of Canterbury to inform him
of the exigency of affairs ; and Boniface being proposed, was unani-
mously chosen by the synod. He discharged this trust with great pru-
dence, and obtained the applause of every member of the synod ; but
far from being vain of the reputation he had acquired, he proposed to
forsake his country, relations, and friends, in order to be of service to
the faith, and extend Christianity on the continent. At first, the abbot
and monks of Nutscelle would have dissuaded him from his purpose ;
but finding him resolute, two of their number were ordered to assist him.
Boniface accordingly left Nutscelle, and arrived in Friesland about the
year 716 ; when he found that country in the utmost disorder and con-
fusion. It had belonged to the crown of France, but was at this time
in the possession of prince Radbord, who had established paganism in
it, persecuted the Christians, and was at war with Charles Martel, mayor
of the palace of Austrastia.
a voyage so dangerous and uncertain, among a barbarous people, whose language they
neither knew, nor were able to resist their rudeness. Gregory however sent him again with
letters to the bishop of Arelatensis, and his companions, exhorting him to go boldly forward
on the work of Christ.
CONVERSIONS BY BONIFACE. Ill
Boniface, therefore, went to Utrecht, where lie found the infidel prince,
and made him a tender of the gospel ; but he being obdurate, Boniface
imagined the time for converting that nation was not yet come, and
returned to his monastery in England. He had not been many months
there when the abbot died. Boniface undertook to comfort his brethren
under the calamity, and discovered such zeal and charity in the transac-
tion, that they desired he would supply the place of their deceased father
and friend. Either, however, he never accepted of the post, or quitted
it very soon ; for he obtained letters from Daniel, bishop of Winchester
his diocesan, recommending him to the pope, and all the bishops, abbots,
and princes, he should find in his way to Rome, where he arrived in the
beginning of the year 719. He was received by Gregory the Second
with great friendship, and after several conferences with him, finding
him full of zeal, he dismissed him with a commission to preach the
gospel to the pagans, wherever he found them.
Having passed through Lombardy and Bavaria, he came to Thuringia,
which country had before received the light of the gospel ; but at the
time he arrived there it had made little progress. The first exertions of
Boniface were to bring the corrupted Christians back to a profession of
the gospel in its purity ; and having completed this pious work with
great assiduity, and hearing that Radbord, whom he had formerly at-
tempted to convert, was dead, he repaired to Utrecht, to assist Willebrod,
the first bishop of that city. During three years these worthy pastors
laboured in extirpating idolatry and propagating the faith in north
Holland; and so far succeeded, that most of the people received
baptism, and many of the pagan temples were converted into christian
churches. At this time Willebrod being infirm, thought he could not
do better than appoint Boniface to succeed him; but this the English
missionary absolutely refused, pleading he could not stay so long- in any
place, as he had many other evangelical labours to perform. Willebrod
consented to his departure, and Boniface repaired to Hesse, where he
brought to a knowledge of the truth two brothers, who though they
called themselves Christians, were sunk into most of the errors of pa-
ganism. They, however, became such zealous converts, that they gave
their estate to Boniface, who instead of applying its revenues to his own
use, built and endowed a religious community with them ; after which
he proceeded to Saxony, where he converted some thousands to the
christian faith. Exerting himself in this new field with prodigious suc-
cess about a year, he dispatched one of his companions to Rome, with
an account of what he had done; upon which Gregory II. sent him a
letter, desiring him to repair to that city. On his arrival, the bishop
gave him every mark of esteem and affection, and was resolved not to
let him return to his labours without the episcopal character, that he
might pursue them with more authority and to greater advantage. He
was accordingly consecrated on the last day of November, 723 : from
which time he took upon himself the name of Boniface.
On being qualified for forming new churches, he left Rome having-
with him six letters from the pope ; one to Charles Martel ; a second
to all bishops, priests, dukes, and counts; a third to the clergy and
people under his more immediate direction ; a fourth to the five princes
112 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
of Thuringia and their christian subjects ; a fifth to the pagans in every
dominion ; and a sixth to the whole body of Saxons. The purport of
these was, to recommend him to the protection of the christian powers,
and exhort the pagans to hear him, and exchange their errors and super-
stitions for the pure religion of Christ. Having made converts in dif-
ferent parts, he returned to his mission in Germany, and was very suc-
cessful, though he met with many that would willingly have been Chris-
tians only in a partial degree. They were ready enough to acknowledge
Christ, but did not care to adhere strictly to his precepts : and some
were so far deluded, as to be exceeding fond of worshipping a large
oak-tree, which was dedicated to Jupiter. This tree Boniface ordered
to be cut down; and when the pagans, finding that Jupiter did not take
any notice of those who had destroyed it, owned the weakness of their
cause, and desired to receive Christian baptism.
Being naturally diffident of his own abilities, Bonifice had frequent
recourse to such persons as he thought might be of service to him in his
present difficult station. Pope Gregory and Daniel, his old diocesan,
were his most able and frequent counsellors ; but by the care of the
bishops of Winchester, he received from this island large supplies of
missionaries who rendered him valuable aid, and greatly advanced the
gospel in Europe.
In the year 731, Gregory the Third succeeded to the pontifical chair,
on whose accession Boniface sent proper persons to Rome, to acquaint
him with the success of his labours, testifying his allegiance, and desir-
ing assistance in some difficulties which occurred in his mission. The
pope not only answered the message by assuring him of the communion
and friendship of the see of Rome, but as a mark of respect sent him
the mantle of office newly consecrated, granted him the title of arch-
bishop, or metropolitan of all Germany, and empowered him to erect
new bishoprics wherever he should have opportunity. Boniface not
only did this, but also built several monasteries. He then made a third
journey to Rome in 738, when Gregory the Third, who had as great an
esteem as his predecessors for him, detained him the larger portion of
the year.
At length having left Rome, he went to Bavaria, upon the invitation
of Odillo, duke of that country, to reform some abuses introduced by
persons who had never received holy orders. At this time Bavaria had
only one bishop ; he therefore, pursuant to his commission from Rome,
erected three new bishoprics, one at Saltzburg, a second at Freisignen,
and a third at Ratisbon, and thus the country was divided into four dio-
ceses ; a regulation which was soon after confirmed by the pope. Boni-
face next established four other bishoprics in Germany : at Erford, for
Thuringia ; at Barabourg, for Hesse ; at Wurtzburg, for Franconia ;
at Achstat, for Bavaria. The bishopric of Barabourg is at present
translated to Paderborn, in Westphalia. Willebald, the original author
of the life of Boniface, was by him made bishop of Achstat.
In the year 741, Gregory the Third was succeeded in the popedom
by Zachary, who confirmed Boniface in his power and approved of all
he had done in Germany, making him at the same time archbishop of
Mentz, and metropolitan over thirteen bishoprics. He did not however,
CRUEL TIES OF THE SARACENS. 1 13
lose his simplicity, or forget his character in his ecclesiastical dignity
ami ministerial popularity.
During this period Pepin was declared king of France ; and it being
that prince's ambition to be crowned by the most holy prelate he could
find, Boniface was solicited to perform that ceremony, which he did at
Soissons in 752. The next year his great age and manyinfirmitiessoafflict-
ed him, that, with the consent of the new king, and the bishops of his
diocese, he consecrated Lullus, his countryman and faithful disciple, and
placed him in the see of Mentz, desiring him to finish the church at Fulda,
and see him buried in it, as his end was approaching. He then took a boat
for the Rhine, and went to Friesland, where he converted and baptised
several thousands of the natives, demolished the temples, and raised
christian churches on their ruins. He appointed a day for confirming a
number of new converts, and ordered them to assemble in an open plain
near the river Bourde, whither he repaired the day before; and pitching
a tent, determined to remain on the spot all night, in order to be ready
in the morning early. Several pagans having intelligence of this inten-
tion, poured down upon him and the companions of his mission in the
night, with a view to massacre them. The servants of Boniface would
have repelled the barbarians by force of arms ; but he told them and his
clergy, that the moment he had long wished for was now come, and
exhorted his assistants in the ministry to prepare themselves for martyr-
dom. While he was thus employed, the pagans rushed in upon them,
and killed him and fifty-two of his companions and attendants. This
happened on June 5, A. D. 755. Thus fell the great father of the
Germanic church, the honour of England, and the glory of his barba-
rous age. n
Forty-two persons of Armorian, in Upper Phrygia, were martyred
in the year 845, by the Saracens, the circumstances of which are thus
related: — In the reign of Theophilus, the Saracens ravaged many parts
of the eastern empire, gained considerable advantage over the Christians,
and at length laid siege to the city of Armorian. The garrison bravely
defended the place for a considerable time, and would have obliged
their enemies to raise the siege, but the place was betrayed by a re-
negado. Many were put to the sword ; and two general officers, with
some persons of distinction, were carried prisoners to Bagdad, where
n Having given the fair side of the character of Boniface, the archbishop, it behoves us
to say, that he was a great abettor of all the superstitions of popery : though for this he is
not so much to be blamed, because in his time the lamp of the true gospel was not lighted.
When he was appointed by pope Gregory archbishop of Mentz, he brought many countries
under the pope's influence, held many great councils, ordained bishops, built monasteries,
canonized saints, commanded relics to be worshipped, and permitted religious fathers to be
attended by nuns in their ministerial excursions. Among other works he founded the great
monastery of Fulda, in Germany, of English monks, into which no women were allowed
to enter but only Lieba and Tecla, two English nuns. By authority, which he received
from pope Zachary, Childeric, king of France, was deposed from the right of his crown,
and Pepin, the betrayer of his master, was confirmed in the sovereignty. From Boniface
proceeded the doctrine which now stands registered in the pope's decrees, that in case the
pope were of unholy living, and forgetful or negligent of himself, and of Christianity, in
such a degree, that he led innumerable souls with him to hell ; yet ought no man to rebuke
him for so doing, " for he hath power to judge all men, and ought of no man to be judged
again."
I
114 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
they were loaded with chains and thrown into a dungeon. They con-
tinued in prison for some time without seeing any persons but their
gaolers, or having scarcely food enough for their subsistence. At length
they were informed that nothing could preserve their lives but renounc-
ing their religion and embracing Mahometanism. To induce them to
comply, the caliph pretended great zeal for their welfare, and declared
that he looked upon converts in a more glorious light than conquests.
Agreeably with these maxims he sent some of the most artful Maho-
metans, with money and clothes, and the promise of other advantages
which they might secure to themselves by an abjuration of Christianity;
but the martyrs rejected the proposal with horror and contempt.
After this they were attacked with that fallacious and delusive argu-
ment which the Mahometans still use in favour of themselves, and were
desired to judge of the merits of the cause by the success of those who
were engaged in it, and choose that religion which they saw flourished
most, and was best rewarded with the good things of this life, which
they called the blessings of heaven. Yet the noble prisoners were
proof against all temptation, and argued strenuously in opposition to
the authority of the false prophet. This incensed the Mahometans,
and drew greaterhardshipsupon the Christians during their confinement,
which lasted seven years. Boldizius, the renegado who had betrayed
Armorian, then brought them the welcome news that their sufferings
would end in martyrdom the next day : when taken from their dungeon,
they were again solicited to embrace the tenets of Mahomet; but nei-
ther threats nor promises could induce them to adopt what they de-
clared to be the doctrines of an impostor. Perceiving that their faith
could not be shaken, the caliph ordered them to be executed. Theodore,
one of the number, had formerly received priest's orders, and officiated
as a clergyman; but afterwards quitting the church, he had followed
a military life, and raised himself by the sword to considerable posts of
honour, which he enjoyed at the time when he was taken prisoner.
The officer who attended the execution, being apprized of these circum-
stances, said to Theodore, " You might, indeed, pretend to be ranked
amongst the Christians, while you served in their church as a priest;
but the profession you have taken up, which engages you in bloodshed,
is so contrary to your former employment, that you should not now
think of passing upon us for one of that religion. When you quitted
the altar for the camp you renounced Jesus Christ. Why then will
you dissemble any longer? Would you not act more conformably to
your own principles, and make your conduct consistent, if you came to
a resolution of saving your life by owning our great prophet?"
Theodore, covered with religious confusion at this speech but still un-
shaken in his faith, made the following answer: — " It is true I did in
some measure abandon my God when I engaged in the army, and scarce
deserve the name of a Christian; but the Almighty has given me the
grace to see myself in a true light, and made me sensible of my fault;
and I hope he will be pleased to accept my life as the only sacrifice I can
now offer to expiate my guilt." °
• This, if accurate, shews a distressing defect in evangelical views and spiritual percep-
tions on the part of this individual. To think of expiating one crime by the voluntary
MARTYRDOM OF TWO LADIES. 115
This firm answer confounded the officer, who only replied, that he
should presently have an opportunity of giving that proof of his fidelity
to his Master. Upon which, Theodore and the rest, forty-two in number,
were beheaded. Two ladies of distinction, Mary and Flora, suffered
martyrdom at the same time. Flora was the daughter of an eminent
Mahometan at Seville ; from whence he removed to Corduba, where the
Saracen king resided and kept his court. Her father dying when she
was young, Flora was left to the care of her mother, who being a
Christian, brought her up in the true faith, and inspired her with senti-
ments of virtue and religion. Her brother being a professed enemy to
Christianity, and of a barbarous and savage temper, Flora was for some
time obliged to use great caution in the practice o„f such virtues as must
have exposed her to persecution. She was too zealous to bear this
restraint long; for which reason she left Corduba, in company with her
sister. Her departure soon alarmed her brother, who guessed her
motives, and in revenge informed against several Christians of Corduba;
for as he did not know whither his sister was gone, he determined to wreak
his vengeance on such Christians as were present. When Flora was
informed of these proceedings, she considered herself as the cause of
what the Christians had suffered at Corduba, and having an inward
conviction that God called her to fight for her faith, she returned to that
city, and proceeded to the persecutors, among whom she found her
brother. " If," said this glorious martyr, " I am the object of your
inquiry; if the servants of God are tormented on my account, I now
freely offer myself to your disposal. I declare that I believe in Jesus
Christ, glory in his cross, and profess the doctrines which he taught."
None of the company seemed so much enraged at this declaration as
her brother, who, after some threats, struck her; but soon endeavoured
to win her by expressions of pretended kindness. Finding her insen-
sible to all he could say, he then informed against her. He insinuated,
that Flora had been educated in the religion of Mahomet, but had re-
nounced it at the suggestion of Christians, who inspired her with the
utmost contempt of the great prophet. When she was called to answer
to the charge, she declared she had never owned Mahomet, but sucked
the Christian religion in with her milk, and was from infancy devoted to
the Redeemer of mankind. The magistrate finding her resolute, de-
livered her to her brother, and gave him orders to use his utmost endea-
vours to make her a Mahometan. She soon found an opportunity of
escaping over a wall in the night, and of secreting herself in the house
of a Christian. She then withdrew to Tucci, a village of Andalusia,
where she met with her sister, and they never separated again till her
martyrdom.
Mary, who was martyred at the same time, was the daughter of a
Christian tradesman at Estremadura, who afterwards removed to a
town near Corduba. When the persecution began under Abderrama,
king of the Saracens, in Spain, Mary's brother was one who fell a
sacrifice of life, sounds too harsh in modern christian ears for any thing like cordial
approval of the religion of such a man. His military habits might strengthen him to face
death with courage; but his self-righteousness ill prepared him to have boldness in the day
of judgment.
116 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
victim to the rage of the infidels. Hearing of his martyrdom, she was
filled with confusion at being left behind by one younger than herself,
and went to Corduba, where, going into a church, she found Flora, who
had left her retreat on the same motive. Conversing together, and find-
ing they acted upon the same heroic principles, and proposed the same
glorious end of their labours, they agreed to go together, and declare
their faith before the judge. Accordingly they proceeded to the magis-
trate, where Flora boldly told him, she looked on Mahomet as no better
than a false prophet, an adulterer, and a magician. Mary also told the
magistrate, that she professed the same faith, and entertained the same
sentiments as Flora, and that she was sister to Walabonzus, who had
already suffered for being a Christian. This behaviour so enraged the
magistrate, that he ordered them to be committed to prison for some
time, and then to be beheaded. The horrid sentence was executed on
the 4th of November, A. D. 850.
Perfectus was born at Corduba, and brought up in the christian
faith. He made himself master of all the useful and polite literature
of that age; and at length took priest's orders, and performed the
duties of his office with great assiduity and punctuality. One day
walking in the streets of Corduba, some Arabians entered into conver-
sation with him, and among other questions, asked him his opinion of
Jesus Christ and of Mahomet. Perfectus gave them an exact account
of the christian faith, respecting the divinity of Christ, and the re-
demption of mankind: but would not deliver his sentiments concerning
Mahomet. The Arabians pressed him to speak freely; but he said
that what he should utter would not be agreeable to their ideas, and
therefore he would be silent, as he did not wish to offend any one:
they however still entreated him to utter his thoughts, declaring at the
same time, that they would not be offended at any thing he should say.
Believing them sincere, and hoping this might be the favourable time
allotted by God for their conversion, Perfectus told them that the
Christians looked on Mahomet as one of the false prophets foretold in
the gospel, who were to seduce and deceive great numbers to their
eternal ruin. To illustrate this assertion, he descanted on some of the
actions of the impostor ; endeavoured to show the impious doctrines,
and abominable absurdities of the Alcoran; and exhorted them, in very
strong terms, to quit the miserable state in which they then were, and
which would certainly be followed by eternal perdition.
The infidels could not hear such a discourse without conceiving indig-
nation against the speaker. They thought proper, however, to disguise
their resentment ; but were resolved not to let him escape. At first,
indeed, they were unwilling to use any violence, because they had given
him a solemn assurance he should come to no harm : but they were soon
eased of that scruple ; and, watching a favourable opportunity, seized
on him, hurried him away to one of their chief magistrates, and accused
him of blaspheming their great prophet. On this the judge ordered him
to be put in chains and confined in prison, till the feast of their
Ramadan, or Lent, when he should be made a victim to Mahomet. He
heard the determination with joy, and prepared for his martyrdom with
great fervency. At the time appointed he was led to the place of exe-
ACTS OF THE EMPEROR WINCESLAUS. 117
cution, where he again made a confession of his faith, declared Mahomet
an impostor, and insisted that the Alcoran was filled with absurdities
and blasphemies. In consequence of this he was sentenced to be be-
headed, and was executed A. D. 850. His body was interred by the
Christians.
Winceslaus, duke of Bohemia, was educated in the faith of Christ.
His father Wrattislaus, the preceding duke, was a valiant prince, and a
pious Christian; but Drahomira, his mother, was a pagan, whose morals
were as bad as her religion: she consented, however, to entrust her
mother, Ludmilla, with the education of her eldest son. That holy lady
had resided at Prague ever since the death of Boriver, her husband, the
first duke of Bohemia who embraced the faith of Christ; and Winceslaus
was sent to that city, to be brought up under her. Ludmilla undertook
to form his heart to devotion and the love of God, and was assisted in
the work by Paul her chaplain, a man of great sanctity and prudence,
who likewise endeavoured to cultivate his mind in other branches of
knowledge. The young prince consented to their endeavours; and by
the grace of God, who had prepared him for their instructions, caused
him to make astonishing progress: he was sent to a college at Budweis,
about sixty miles from Prague, where several young persons of the first
rank were placed, and studied under an excellent master, a native of
Neisse in Silesia.
When Wrattislaus died, his son Winceslaus was very young, on which
account, Drahomira, his mother, declared herself regent during his
minority. This princess, not having any one to controul her, gave vent
to her rage against Christianity. She began her administration with an
order for shutting up the churches, repealed the laws in favour of the
Christians, and removed all magistrates of that profession, supplying
their places with pagans. Thus finding themselves encouraged, the
pagans upon every frivolous pretence murdered the Christians with
impunity; and if a Christian in his own defence killed a pagan, his life
and that of nine other Christians were forfeited.
Ludmilla was afflicted at these proceedings, as she could not behold
a religion which she professed despised, — a religion too which her
consort had established with so much difficulty and zeal. Yet she
could not think of any expedient to prevent the total extirpation of
Christianity in Bohemia, except persuading Winceslaus, young as he
was, to assume the reins of government. Winceslaus at first declined
engaging in this task; but upon his grandmother promising to assist
him with her advice, he complied with her request; and, to prevent
further disputes, divided the country between himself and his younger
brother Bolislaw, whose name is still retained by a town and a consider-
able district of that country. Drahomira now attached herself to
Bolislaw, who was a pagan, and implicitly followed her maxims. Con-
cerning the behaviour of Winceslaus after his assuming the sovereignty,
and the fate of the aged and worthy Ludmilla, the annals of Bohemia
state these particulars: "Winceslaus, pursuant to the impressions of
virtue which he had received from his grandmother and others employed
in his education, was more careful than ever to preserve the innocence
of his morals, and acquired some new degree of wisdom and goodness
118 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
every day. He was as humble, sober, and chaste, when master of his
own motions, and in full possession of sovereign authority, as when
under the government of those on whom he was taught to look as his
superiors. He spent great part of the night in prayer, and the whole
day in acts of piety; directing all his views to the establishment of
peace, justice, and religion in his dominions. He was assisted in these
charitable and Christian labours by able ministers ; and nothing of con-
sequence was done without the advice of Ludmilla. This excellent
princess being informed that Drahomira, transported with rage at the
success of her directions, had formed a design against her life, and that
it would scarcely be in her power to save herself, was so far from being
disturbed at the apprehension of death, or desisting from what had made
her odious to that wicked woman, that she exerted herself more vigorously
than ever for the maintenance of religion, and confirming the prince in
his resolutions. Being now assured that her death was near, and that
several persons were employed to dispatch her the first convenient op-
portunity, she called her servants together, acknowledged their fidelity
in her service with a liberal hand, and distributed her goods and money
among the poor. Thus divested of all she possessed in the world, she
went to her chapel, received the holy eucharist, and then employed
herself in prayer, recommended her soul to God, and expected his will
with the utmost tranquillity and resignation. This was her situation,
when two ruffians entered the chapel, seized on her, and strangled her
with her own veil.
The young duke severely felt the loss of his grandmother, yet he did
not punish the offenders, knowing that they had been instigated to what
they did by his mother. He therefore addressed himself to God only,
entreated the throne of grace for his mother's pardon and conversion,
and patiently submitted to the dispensations of Providence. As many
factions were erected in his dominions by means of his mother and
brother, and as Winceslaus himself seemed of an unwarlike disposition,
a neighbouring prince, Radislaus of Gurima, determined to invade that
part of Bohemia which belonged to him. He accordingly entered
Bohemia at the head of a considerable army, and immediately com-
menced hostilities. Winceslaus, on hearing of these proceedings, sent
a message to the invader, to know what offence he had given him, and
what terms he required to quit his dominions. Radislaus, mistaking the
temper of Winceslaus, looked upon this message as arising from timidity ;
he therefore answered in a haughty manner, made frivolous excuses for
having commenced the quarrel, and concluded by insisting that Win-
ceslaus should surrender to him his dominions. This insolent demand
obliged Winceslaus to put himself at the head of an army in defence
of himself and his people. He accordingly raised a considerable body
of forces, and marched against the enemy. When the two armies were
ready to engage, Winceslaus obtained a conference with Radislaus, and
observed, that as it would be unjust to hazard the lives of so many in-
nocent men, the most eligible method of putting an end to the dispute
would be by single combat. Radislaus accepted the proposal with joy,
thinking that he was much more expert in the use of arms than his anta-
gonist. They accordingly engaged in sight of the two armies, and the
WINCESLAUS TREACHEROUSLY MURDERED. 11!)
victory seemed doubtful for some time, till, at length, it declared in
favour of Winceslaus; when his antagonist was obliged to relinquish
his pretended claim, and retire into his own country.
Winceslaus being thus freed from the fears of a foreign enemy, turned
his thoughts to domestic reformation. He removed corrupt judges and
magistrates, and filled their places with persons of integrity : he put an
end to oppression, punished such nobles as tyrannized over their vassals,
and made other wise regulations, which while they relieved the poor and
helpless, gave great offence to the great and rich, as they abridged their
power, and took from them their self importance and assumed conse-
quence. Hence many became factious, and the malcontents censured
his best actions, and spoke contemptuously of his application to prayer,
fasting, and other acts of religion, which they insinuated were low em-
ployments for a prince, and incompatible with the courage and policy
necessary for the government of a state. His mother and brother were
still the most inveterate of his enemies, and they resolved to remove him
by the first favourable expedient. Drahomira and Bolislaw were con-
certing measures for executing their wretched purpose, when they under-
stood that Winceslaus had desired the pope to send some priests into
his dominions, with whom he proposed to spend the remainder of his
days in a religious retreat. This news suspended the execution of their
conspiracy against him for some time ; but, perceiving the affair did not
come to a conclusion as soon as was necessary for their ambitious views,
they resumed their cruel artifices against him, and gained their ends in
the following treacherous manner : —
Bolislaw having been some time married, his princess at length brought
him forth a son. This circumstance, which should have diffused joy
throughout the family, furnished Drahomira and Bolislaw with an idea
of the most horrid nature, and the innocent infant was made the occasion
of perpetrating a deed of unexampled cruelty. The scheme concerted
between the bigoted Bolislaw and his wicked mother was to get Winces-
laus into their power. The birth of the child furnished them with a
pretence, and a polite message was dispatched to the unsuspecting duke
to partake of an entertainment given upon the occasion. Winceslaus
not having the least suspicion of their purpose repaired to the court of
Bolislaw, where he was received with the greatest appearance of cor-
diality. He partook of the entertainment, and was festive till it grew
rather late, when he retired before the rest of the company, as he was
not fond of late hours, and never neglected his devotions to the
Almighty before he lay down to rest. When he had withdrawn, Dra-
homira urged Bolislaw to follow his brother instantly, and murder him.
The prince took his mother's sanguinary advice, and repairing to his
brother's chamber, he found him kneeling, and in fervent prayer, when
he rushed upon him, and plunged a dagger to his heart. Thus fell
Winceslaus, the third duke of Bohemia, by a most infernal act of
treachery and fratricide.
Adalbert, bishop of Prague, was a Bohemian by birth. His parents
were persons of rank, but more distinguished for virtue and piety than
for opulence and lineage. They had the highest expectations of their
son, and gave him a complete education; but their joy was in some
120 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
measure damped by his falling into a dropsy, from which he was with
difficulty recovered. When cured they sent him to Magdeburg-, and
committed him to the care of the archbishop of that city, who completed
his education. The rapid progress which Adalbert made in human and
divine learning made him dear to the prelate, who, to the authority of a
teacher, joined all the tenderness of a parent. Having spent nine years
at Magdeburg, he retired to his own country upon the death of the
archbishop, and entered himself among the clergy at Prague. Dithmar,
bishop of Prague, died soon after the return of Adalbert to that city ;
and, in his last moments, expressed great contrition for having been
ambitious and solicitous of worldly honours and riches. Adalbert, who
was present, was so sensibly affected at the bishop's dying sentiments,
that he received them as an admonition to the strict practice of virtue,
which he afterwards exercised with the greatest attention, spending his
time in prayer, and relieving the poor with his fortune.
Soon after the decease of Dithmar, an assembly was held for the
choice of a successor, which consisted of the clergy of Prague, and the
chief men of Bohemia. Adalbert's character determined them to raise
him to the vacant see, which they did on the 19th of February, 983,
and immediately dispatched messengers to Verona to desire that Otho II.
would confirm the election. The emperor granted the request, ordered
Adalbert to repair to court for investiture, gave him the ring and crosier,
and then sent him to the archbishop of Mentz for consecration. The
ceremony was performed on the 29th of June the same year, and
he was received at Prague with great demonstrations of public joy.
He divided the revenue of his see into four parts, according to the
direction of the canons extant in the fifth century. The first was
employed in building and ornaments of the church ; the second went
to the maintenance of the clergy ; the third was laid out for the relief
of the poor; and the fourth reserved for the support of himself and
family, which always comprehended twelve indigent persons, to whom
he allowed daily subsistence. He performed his duty with the utmost
assiduity, and spent a great portion of his time in preaching and exhort-
ing the people. His conduct was discreet and humane, and his man-
ners neither too severe nor too indulgent. Yet some things which he
could not remedy gave him great uneasiness, particularly having a
plurality of wives, and selling Christians to the Jews for trivial offences.
Hence he determined to consult the pope, and made a journey to Rome.
John, who then occupied the papal chair, received him with cordiality,
and advised him to give up his bishopric rather than be witness of enor-
mities which he could not remedy. He determined to take the pope's
advice, and to devote the remainder of his days to mortification and
silence ; and began by giving all his treasures to the poor. He was
desirous however before he entirely secluded himself from mankind, of
seeing the Holy Land, and set off accordingly in company with three
persons.
On their way they arrived at Mount Cassino, where the chiefs of the
monastery received them in a very friendly manner, and being apprised
of the cause of their journey, when they were about to depart, the
superior of the monastery addressed himself to Adalbert, observing, that
ACCOUNT OF ADALBERT, BISHOP OF PRAGUE. 121
the journey he had undertaken would give him more trouble and un-
easiness than lie was aware of; that the frequent desire of travelling
often proceeded more from a restless disposition than real religion.
" Therefore," said he, "if you will listen to my advice, leave the world
at once with sincerity, and settle in some religious community, without
desiring to see more than you have already seen." Adalbert adopted
the sentiments of the superior, and took up his residence in that monas-
tery, where he then thought he might live entirely recluse : but he was
mistaken ; for the priests by accident came to a knowledge of the rank
and dignity of their colleague, and began to treat him with great defer-
ence and respect, which occasioned him to leave the place. Nilus, a
Grecian, being then at the head of a community not far from Mount
Cassino, Adalbert went to him and begged to be received into his mon-
astery. He assured him he would comply with his request, if the prac-
tice of his religious family would be agreeable to him : he told him that
the house in which he and his people lived was given to them by those
of Mount Cassino ; and therefore it might not be safe for him to receive
one that had left that community ; but he advised him to return to
Rome, and apply to Leo, an abbot of his acquaintance there, to whom
lie gave him a letter of recommendation. Adalbert went to Rome,
where he found Leo, who, after putting his virtue and courage to a pro-
per test, conducted him to the pope, and, with the consent of that pon-
tiff and the whole college of cardinals, gave him the habit on Holy
Thursday, in the year 990. Of the three persons by whom he had been
attended since he had had the pope's advice for resigning his bishopric, two
of them had now left him; but the third, his brother Gaudentius, follow-
ed his example, and engaged in the same community. Adalbert, full
of humility, took a particular pleasure in the lowest employments of the
house, and lived an excellent pattern of christian simplicity and
obedience.
The archbishop of Mentz, the metropolitan, being exceedingly afflict-
ed at the disorders in the church of Prague, and wishing for the return
of the bishop, with whose retreat he was not for some time acquainted,
after five years absence heard that Adalbert was at Rome, whither he sent
a deputation to press his return to his diocese. The pope summoned a
council to consider of the deputation, and after a warm dispute between
the monks and deputies, the latter carried their point, and Adalbert was
ordered to return to his diocese ; but at the same time had permission to
quit his charge again if he found his flock incorrigible as before. The
inhabitants of Prague met him on his arrival with great joy, and promised
obedience to his directions : but they soon forgot their promises, and
relapsed into their former vices, which obliged him a second time to leave
them, and return to his monastery. Then the archbishop of Mentz sent
another deputation to Rome, and desired that his suffragan might be
again ordered back to his diocese. Gregory V. who was then pope,
commanded him to return to Prague ; and with great reluctance he
obeyed.
The Bohemians, however, did not look upon him as before, but
deemed him the censor of their faults, and the enemy of their pleasures,
and threatened him with death upon his arrival ; but not having him
122 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
yet in their power, contented themselves with falling on his relations,
several of whom they murdered, plundered their estates, and set fire to
their houses. Adalbert had intelligence of these outrageous proceed-
ings, and did not judge it prudent to proceed on his journey. He
therefore went to the duke of Poland, who had a particular respect
for him, and engaged that prince to sound the Bohemians in regard to
his return ; but could get no better answer from that wretched people
than "that they were sinners hardened in iniquity; and Adalbert a
saint, and consequently not fit to live among them ; for which reason he
was not to hope for a tolerable reception at Prague.'' The bishop thought
this message discharged him from any further concern for that church,
and began to direct his thoughts to the conversion of infidels; for which
purpose he repaired to Dantzic, where he converted and baptised many,
which so enraged the pagan priests, that they fell upon him and dis-
patched him with darts, on the 23rd of April, A. D. 997. p
p In concluding the second book of this history, the reader's attention is recalled to the
state of religion in this kingdom. It is true that no persecutions had taken place for the
sake of Christ, though many crimes were committed during the Saxon heptarchy, from the
time of Lucius to that of Egbert; and these kings, not aware what danger would ensue to
their own souls from their mistaken zeal, though acting as they thought in support of the
church of Christ, conceived that the greatest exertions they could make for the Christian
religion would be to build monasteries and nunneries, and fill them with monks and virgins.
Accordingly, during the Saxon heptarchy, which lasted about 200 years, they founded no
less than twenty-seven monasteries and nunneries in England; and not satisfied with
sending their children, and in some cases their wives, to inhabit them, many of them
became monks themselves. The following are examples: —
1. Kinigilsus, king of the West-Saxons. 6. Kenred, king of Mercia.
2. Ina, king of the West-Saxons. 7. Offa, king of the East-Saxons.
3. Ceolulf, king of Northumberland. 8. Sebbi, king of the East-Saxons.
4. Edbert, king of Northumberland. 9. Sigebert, king of the East-Angles.
5. Ethelred, king of Mercia.
Among ladies of rank who entered nunneries were, Hilda, daughter of the nephew of
Edwin, king of Northumberland, abbess of Ely ; Ercongota, with her sister Ermenilda,
daughters of Ercombert, king of Kent; Ethelberga, queen of Edwin, king of Northum-
berland, and daughter of Ethelbert, king of Kent ; Etheldreda, called St. Eldred, wife to
Egfrid, king of Northumberland, who being married to two husbands, could not give her
consent to either of them, during the space of twelve years, but lived a virgin, and was
a nun at Ely : Werburga, the daughter of Wolfer, king of the Mercians, a nun at Ely ;
Kinedreda, sister of Wolfer, and Kineswida, her sister, both professed nuns; Sexburga,
daughter of Anna, king of Mercia, and wife of Ercombert, king of Kent; was abbess at
Ely ; Elfrida, daughter of Oswy, king of Northumberland, was abbess of Whitby ; Mil-
dreda, Milburga, and Milguida, three daughters of Merwald, king of the West-Mercians,
took the profession and vow of virginity ; Kineburga, wife of Alfrid.king of Northumber-
land, and sister to Osric, king of the Mercians, and daughter of king Penda, was pro-
fessed abbess of the monastery of Gloucester ; Elfleda, daughter of king Oswy, and
wife of Peda, son of king Penda, likewise committed herself to the profession and vow
of Romish chastity ; as did Alfrida, wife to king Edgar, and Editha, daughter to the said
Edgar, with Wolfride, her mother, etc. All these holy nuns, with many more, the Roman
catholics have canonized for saints, and put the greater part of them in their calendar, only
because of the vow of their chastity. Concerning this chastity, it is not that which makes
saints before God, but only the merit of Christ Jesus, and a true faith in him.
While we are upon the subject of nuns and nunneries, we shall forcibly call the attention
of our readers to the increase of popery in our own country at the present day. In the
25th volume of the Anti-Jacobin Review, it is stated, that a body of nuns have purchased
the extensive domain of New-Hall, the property of the late Lord Waltham. The ludies
are natives of this ■kingdom, and they are charged with attempting to make proselytes, by
allowing English ladies to take the veil.
123
SECTION III.
A GENERAL ACCOUNT OF THE PERSECUTIONS IN THE
ELEVENTH CENTURA.
Alphage, afterwards archbishop of Canterbury, came from a considerable
family in Gloucestershire, and received an education suitable to his birth.
His parents were Christians, and he seemed to inherit all their virtues.
He was prudent, humble, pious and chaste; and made a rapid progress
both in polite literature and theological learning. In order to be more
at leisure to contemplate the beauties of sacred history, he determined
to renounce his fortune, quit his home, and become a recluse. He ac-
cordingly retired to a monastery of Benedictines at Deerhurst, in
Gloucestershire, and soon after took the monastic habit. Here he lived
with the utmost temperance, and spent the greater part of his time in
prayer. But not thinking the austerities he underwent in this monastery
sufficiently severe, he retired to a lonely cell near Bath, and lived in a
manner still more rigid; but some devout persons finding out his retreat,
his austerity soon became the subject of conversation in the neigh-
bouring villages, where many flocked to him and begged to be taken
under his pastoral care. Consenting to their importunities, he raised a
monastery near the cell by the contributions of several well-disposed
persons; formed his new pupils into a community, and placed a prior
over them. Having prescribed rules for their regulation, he again
retired to his cell, fervently wishing to pass the remainder of his days in
religious security; when the following affair again drew him from his
retreat : —
The see of Winchester being vacant by the death of Ethelwold, a
dispute arose respecting a successor to that bishopric. The clergy had
been driven out of the cathedral for their scandalous lives, but were
admitted again by king Ethelred, upon certain terms of reformation.
The monks who had been introduced upon their expulsion, looked upon
themselves as the chapter of that church ; and hence arose a violent
contest between them and the clergy who had been re-admitted, about
the election of a bishop ; while both parties were vigorously determined
upon promoting their own favourite. This dispute at last ran so high,
We have no wish to censure the conduct of those who devote themselves to a religious
life, merely because they are Catholics; but it is evident by historical authorities of the most
indubitable nature, that in the earliest ages the greatest disorders prevailed in houses of
nuns, whose professed vows have never yet been good to the church, nor profitable to the
common-wealth, and least of all to themselves. Of such young and wanton women,
St. Paul in his time complains, (1 Tim. v.) because they would take upon them the pro-
fession of single life, which they were not able to perform, but falling into shameless luxury,
deserved to be reprehended. How much better had it been for these lascivious nuns not
to refuse the safe yoke of christian matrimony, rather than to entangle themselves in a
superstitious vow of perpetual virginity, which neither was required of them, nor were they
able to keep.
124 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
that Dunstan, archbishop of Canterbury, primate of all England, was
obliged to interpose, and he consecrated Alphage to the vacant bishopric,
to the general satisfaction of all concerned in the election.
The behaviour of Alphage was a proof of his being equal to the dig-
nity of his vocation. Piety flourished in his diocese ; unity was esta-
blished among his clergy and people; and the conduct of the church
of Winchester made the bishop the admiration of the whole kingdom.
Dunstan had an extraordinary veneration for Alphage, and when at the
point of death, made it his ardent request to God that he might suc-
ceed him in the see of Canterbury, which accordingly happened, though
not till about eighteen years after Dunstan's death. In the interval the
metropolitan church was governed by three successive prelates, the last
of whom was Alfric; upon whose decease, 1006, Alphage was raised to
the see of Canterbury. The people belonging to the diocese of Win-
chester were too sensible of the loss they sustained by his translation
not to regret his removal to Canterbury. Soon after he was made arch-
bishop he went to Rome, and received the pall from pope John XVIII.
When Alphage had governed the see of Canterbury about four years
with great reputation, the Danes made an incursion into England.
Ethelred, who then reigned, was a prince of very weak mind and
pusillanimous disposition. Being afraid to face the enemy himself, and
too irresolute to furnish others with the means of acting, he suffered
his country to be ravaged with impunity, and the greatest depredations
to be committed by the enemy. Upon this occasion, archbishop Alphage
acted with great resolution and humanity : he went boldly to the Danes,
purchased the freedom of several whom they had made captives, found
means to send food to others whom he had not money enough to redeem,
and even made converts of some of the Danes : but the latter circum-
stance made the Danes, who still continued pagans, greater enemies to
him than they would otherwise have been, and they were determined
upon revenge. Edric, an English malcontent and traitor, gave the
Danes every encouragement, and assisted them in laying siege to
Canterbury. When the design of attacking the city was known, many
of the principal people made a precipitate flight, and would have per-
suaded Alphage to follow their example; but he refused to listen to such
a proposal, assured them he could not think of abandoning his flock
when his presence was more necessary than ever, and was resolved to
hazard his life in their defence. While he was employed in assisting
his people, Canterbury was taken by storm, the enemy poured into the
town, and destroyed all that came in their way. The monks endea-
voured to detain the archbishop in the church, where they hoped he
might be safe : but concern for his flock made him break from them and
run into the midst of danger. On this occasion he addressed the enemy,
and begged the people might be saved, and that they would discharge
their whole fury upon him. They accordingly seized him, bound, in-
sulted, and abused him, and obliged him to remain on the spot till his
church was burnt, and the monks were massacred. They then decimated
all the inhabitants; after which they confined the archbishop in a dun-
geon, where they kept him for several months. During his confinement
they proposed to him to redeem his liberty with the sum of 3,000/. and
GERARD THE VENETIAN. 125
to persuade the king to purchase their departure out of the kingdom
with a farther sum of 10,000/. His circumstances not allowing- him to
satisfy their exorbitant demand, they bound him, and put him to severe
torments, to oblige him to discover the treasures of his church; upon
which they assured him of his life and liberty. They then remanded
him to prison, confined him six days longer, and taking him with them
to Greenwich, brought him to trial. He still remained inflexible with
respect to the church treasures; but exhorted them to forsake their
idolatry and embrace Christianity. This so greatly incensed the Danes,
that the soldiers dragged him out of the camp, and beat him unmerci-
fully. Alphage bore this treatment patiently, and even prayed for his
persecutors. One of the soldiers who had been converted and baptised
by him, was greatly afflicted that his pains should be so lingering, as he
knew his death was determined on: he, therefore, in a kind of barbarous
compassion, cut off his head, and thus completed his martyrdom. This
happened on April 19, A. D. 1012, on the very spot where the church
at Greenwich, which is dedicated to him, now stands. After death his
body was thrown into the Thames, but being found the next day, it was
buried in the cathedral of St. Paul's by the bishops of London and
Lincoln; whence it was in the year 1023, removed to Canterbury by-
Ethel woth, the archbishop of that province.
Gerard, a Venetian, having devoted himself to the service of God
from youth, entered into a religious house for some time, and then
determined to visit the Holy Land. On arriving in Hungary, he became
acquainted with Stephen, the king of that country, who acted the parts
of prince and preacher, and not only regulated his subjects by whole-
some laws, but taught them religious duties. Finding Gerard qualified
to instruct his people, he tried to detain him in his kingdom; and, at
length, founding several churches, he made Gerard bishop of that of
Chonad. Here the new prelate had a very difficult task to perform, the
people of his diocese being accustomed to idolatry. Gerard however,
assiduous in his zeal for the salvation of his flock, laboured to bring
them to a sense of their duty, and soon had the pleasure to find that his
endeavours were successful, his sweetness of disposition winning greatly
upon the people. His success was not confined to his own diocese, but
extended to the adjacent country, where his doctrines successfully spread,
and many became converts to the pure faith of Christ. Wherever the
Gospel made its way by his ministry, he took care to establish eccle-
siastical discipline for the preservation of religion, and made several
useful regulations in the public service of the church. His exemplary
conduct was as instructive as his exhortations, and did much to convince
his converts of the truth and dignity of their new profession. He was
remarkable for an uncommon tenderness for the poor, especially those
who suffered sickness, or were incapable of following their accustomed
employments. During the life of Stephen, Gerard received every assist-
ance which that excellent monarch could afford him; but on his demise,
his nephew Peter, who succeeded him, was of so different a temper, that
Gerard was greatly perplexed. At length, the tyranny of Peter exas-
perated his subjects so much, that they deposed him, and placed Ouvo
on the throne. They, however, soon found that they had changed from
126 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
bad to worse; for Ouvo proved a greater monster of cruelty than his
predecessor. At Easter, he repaired to Chonad, in order to receive the
crown from the hands of Gerard. When he arrived, the other prelates
of the kingdom, who were assembled, assured the prince of their affec-
tion for his person, and promised to concur in his coronation; but
Gerard refused to pay that compliment to a public and malicious enemy;
and told him, that he could not look on Peter's exclusion as regular, and
consequently should not proceed to do any thing to the prejudice of his
title : he then said that if he persisted in his usurpation, Providence
would soon put an end to his life and reign. Ouvo, growing more in-
supportable than his predecessor, was brought to the scaffold in the year
1044 ; upon which Peter was recalled, and placed on the throne a second
time ; but his deposition and retirement had made no alteration in his
temper, so that he was again deprived of the royal dignity in less than
two years.
An offer was then made of the crown to Andrew, son of Ladislaws,
cousin-german of Stephen, on condition that he would employ his
authority in extirpating the Christian religion from Hungary. The
ambitious prince consented to the proposal, and promised to do his
utmost to re-establish the idolatrous worship of his deluded ancestors.
Gerard, informed of this impious bargain, remonstrated against the
enormity of Andrew's crime, and persuaded him to withdraw his promise.
He undertook to go to that prince, attended by three other prelates,
full of zeal for religion. The king was at Alba Regalis; but as the
four bishops were about to cross the Danube, they were stopped by a
party of soldiers posted there by order of a man of quality in the
neighbourhood, remarkable for his aversion to the christian religion,
and to Stephen's memory. They were attacked with a shower of stones,
and the soldiers beat them unmercifully, and at length dispatched them
with lances. Their martyrdom happened in the year 1045.
Stanislaus, bishop of Cracow, was of an illustrious popish family.
The piety of his parents was equal to their opulence, and they rendered
their wealth subservient to every purpose of benevolence. Stanislaus
was their only child, and when he was of proper age, they employed
masters in several branches of learning to instruct him. He possessed
a penetrating genius, retentive memory, and solid understanding; hence
study became his amusement. His disposition was not inferior to his
abilities; and he voluntarily gave himself, in the dawn of youth, to such
austerities as might have acquired reputation for a hermit. In process
of time he was sent to a seminary of learning in Poland, and afterwards
to the university of Paris. Continuing several years in France, lie
returned to his own country, and on the demise of his parents became
possessed of a great fortune; but he devoted most of his property to
charitable uses, retaining only a small portion for his own expenses.
His views were now solely directed to the ministry; but he remained for
some time undetermined whether he should embrace a monastic life, or
engage among the active clergy. He was at length persuaded to the
latter by Lambert Zula, bishop of Cracow, who gave him holy orders,
and made him a canon of his cathedral. In this capacity he lived in a
most exemplary manner, and performed his duties with unremitting
DISGRACEFUL CONDUCT OF 130LISLAUS. 127
assiduity. Lambert was charmed with the many virtues which so par-
ticularly distinguished Stanislaus, and would fain have resigned his
bishopric to him, alleging as a reason his great age; but Stanislaus
absolutely refused to accept of the see, for the contrary reason, his own
want of years: being then only 36 years old, he deemed that too early
an age for a man to undertake the important care of a diocese. Lambert,
however, made him a substitute upon various occasions, by which he
became thoroughly acquainted with all that related to the bishopric :
and the former dying on November 25, 1071, all concerned in the
choice of a successor declared for Stanislaus: but he declined the
acceptance for the same reason as before. At length the king, clergy,
and nobility unanimously joined in writing to pope Alexander the Second
who, at their entreaty, sent an express order that Stanislaus should accept
the bishopric. He then obeyed, and exerted himself to the utmost in
improving his flock. He was equally careful with respect both to clergy
and laity, kept a list of all the poor in his diocese, and by feeding the
hungry, clothing the naked, and administering remedies to the sick, he
proved himself not only the godly pastor, but the physician and bene-
factor of the people.
Bolislaus, the second king of Poland, had many good qualities, but
giving way too much to his passions, he committed several enormities,
till from being deemed a good king, he at length had the appellation of
cruel. The nobility were shocked at his conduct, and the clergy saw
his proceedings with grief; but Stanislaus alone had the courage to tell
him of his faults. The king was greatly exasperated at this freedom ;
but awed by the virtues of the bishop, he dissembled his resentment, and
appearing to be convinced of his errors, promised to reform his conduct.
However, so far from designing to perform his promise, he complained
to some of his sycophants of the freedom that Stanislaus had taken with
him, and they condemned the boldness of the bishop. The king soon
after attempted the chastity of a married lady, who rejected his offers
with disdain, which piqued his pride so much that he seized her by force
and ruined her. This greatly alarmed all the nobility : none knew how
long his own wife, daughter, or sister, might be safe ; they therefore
assembled, and calling the clergy to their assistance, entreated Peter,
archbishop of Gresne, to remonstrate to the king on the impropriety of
his conduct. Nevertheless, the archbishop declined the task ; for though
a man of virtue, he was of an uncommonly timid disposition. Several
other prelates imitated his example, and Stanislaus was, as before, the
only one who had courage and zeal sufficient to perform what he looked
upon as an indispensable duty. He, therefore, put himself at the head
of a select number of ecclesiastics, noblemen, and gentlemen ; and pro-
ceeding to court, addressed the king in a solemn manner on the heinous-
ness of his crime. The king, as soon as he had done speaking, flew into
a violent passion, complained of the want of respect to his royal dignity,
and vowed revenge for what he called an insult to his person. Stanislaus,
however, not in the least intimidated by his menaces, visited him twice
more, and remonstrated with him in a similar manner, which only
increased his anger.
The nobility and clergy finding that the admonitions of the bishop
128 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
had not the desired effect upon the king, thought proper to interpose.
The nobility entreated the bishop to refrain from exasperating a monarch
of so ferocious a temper; and the clergy endeavoured to persuade the
king not to be offended with Stanislaus for his charitable remonstrances.
But the haughty sovereign determined at any rate to get rid of a prelate,
who, in his opinion, was so censorious; and hearing that the bishop was
by himself in the chapel of St. Michael, at a small distance from the
town, he dispatched some soldiers to murder him. The men readily
undertook the task ; but when they came into the presence of Stanislaus,
the venerable aspect of the prelate struck them with such awe, that they
could not effect what they had promised. On their return, the king
rinding they had not obeyed his orders, flew into a rage, snatched a
dagger from one of them, and ran furiously to the chapel, where, finding
Stanislaus at the altar, he plunged the weapon into his heart. This
occurred on the 8th of May, A. D. 1079.
SECTION IV.
THE PERSECUTIONS OF THE WALDENSES IN FRANCE.
Before this time the church of Christ was more than tainted with the
errors of popery, and superstition began to predominate; but a few, who
perceived the pernicious tendency of such errors, determined to preserve
the light of the gospel in its purity and splendour, and to disperse the
clouds which artful priests had raised about it in order to delude the
people. The principal of these worthies was Berengarius, who, about
the year 1000, boldly preached evangelical truth according to its primi-
tive simplicity. Many from conviction embraced his doctrine, and were
on that account, called Berengarians. Berengarius was succeeded by
Peter Bruis, who preached at Toulouse, under the protection of the earl
Hildephonsus ; and the tenets of the reformers, with the reasons of their
separation from the church of Rome, were published in a book written
by Bruis, under the title of Antichrist.
In the year 1140, the number of the reformed was so great, that the
probability of their increasing alarmed the pope, who wrote to several
princes to banish them from their dominions, and employed many learned
men to write against them. In 1147, Henry, of Toulouse, being deemed
their most eminent preacher, they were called Henricians; and as they
would not admit of any proofs relative to religion but what could be
deduced from the scriptures, the popish party gave them the name of
Apostolics. Peter Waldo, a native of Lyons, at this time became a
strenuous opposer of popery; and from him the reformed received the
appellation of Waldoys, or Waldenses. Waldo was a man eminent for
learning and benevolence; his doctrines were very generally admired,
and he was followed by multitudes of all classes. The bishop of Lyons
taking umbrage at the freedom with which he treated the pope and the
Romish clergy, sent to admonish him to refrain in future from such
discourses; but Waldo answered, "That he could not be silent in a
TENETS OF THE WALDENSES. 129
cause of such importance as the salvation of men's souls, wherein he
must obey God rather than man." His principal charges against the pope
and popery were, that the Roman Catholics affirm the church of Rome
to be the infallible church of Christ upon earth, and that the pope is its
head, and the vicar of Christ; that they hold the absurd doctrine of
transubstantiation, insisting that the bread and wine given in the sacra-
ment is the identical body and blood of Christ who was nailed to the
cross; that they believe there is a place called purgatory where souls
after this life are purged from the sins of mortality, and that the pains
and penalties here inflicted may be abated according to the masses said
by and the money paid to the priest; that they teach the communion of
one kind, and the receiving the bread only to be sufficient for the laity,
though the clergy must be indulged with both bread and wine; that
they pray to the Virgin Mary and saints, though their prayers ought to
be immediately to God; that they pray for souls departed, though God
decides their fate immediately on the decease of the person ; that they
will not perform the service of the church in a language understood by
the people in general; that they place their devotion in the number of
prayers, and not in the intent of the heart; that they forbid marriage to
the clergy though Christ allowed it; and that they use many things in
baptism, though he used only water. When pope Alexander the Third
was informed of these transactions, he excommunicated Waldo and his
adherents, and commanded the bishop of Lyons to exterminate them.
Thus began the papal persecutions against the Waldenses.
The following were the tenets maintained by the Waldenses :—
1. Holy oil is not to be mingled with water in baptism.
2. Prayers used over things inanimate are superstitious.
3. Flesh may be eaten in Lent; the clergy may marry; and auricular
confession is unnecessary.
4. Confirmation is no sacrament; we are not bound to pay obedience
to ihe pope; ministers should live upon tythes; no dignity sets one
clergyman above another, for their superiority can only be drawn from
real worth.
5. Images in churches are absurd ; image-worship is idolatry ; the
pope's indulgences are ridiculous; and the miracles pretended to be
done by the church of Rome are false.
6. Fornication and public stews ought not to be allowed; purgatory
is a fiction; and deceased persons, though saints, ought not to be
prayed to.
7. Extreme unction is not a sacrament; and masses, indulgences,
and prayers, are of no service to the dead.
8. The Lord's prayer ought to be the rule of all other prayers.
Waldo remained three years undiscovered in Lyons, though the utmost
diligence was used to apprehend him, but at length he found an oppor-
tunity of escaping from the place of his concealment to the mountains
of Dauphiny. He soon after found means to propagate his doctrines in
Dauphiny and Picardy, which so exasperated Philip, king- of France,
that he put the latter province, which contained most of his followers,
under military execution ; destroying above 300 gentlemen's seats,
K
130 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
erasing some walled towns, burning many of the reformed, and driving
others into Normandy and Germany.
Notwithstanding these persecutions the reformed religion continued to
flourish, and the Waldenses, in various parts, became more numerous
than ever. At length the pope accused them of heresy, and the monks
of immorality; the former asserting that they had fallen into many
errors, and the latter that they committed many evils. These slanders
however they refuted; but the pope, incensed at their increase, used
all manner of arts for their extirpation; such as excommunications,
anathemas, canons, constitutions, decrees, &c. by which they were
rendered incapable of holding places of trust, honour, or profit; their
lands were seized, their goods confiscated, and they were not permitted
to be buried in consecrated ground. Some of the Waldenses having
taken refuge in Spain, Aldephonsus, king of Arragon, at the instigation
of the pope, published an edict, strictly ordering all Roman catholics
to persecute them wherever they could be found; and decreeing that all
who gave them the least assistance should be deemed traitors. The year
after this edict Aldephonsus was severely punished by the hand of Provi-
dence; for his son was defeated in a great battle, and 50,000 of his men
slain, by which a considerable portion of his kingdom fell into the hands
of the Moors.
The reformed ministers continued to preach boldly against the Romish
church; and Peter Waldo, in particular, wherever he went, asserted,
that the pope was antichrist, that mass was an abomination, that the
host was an idol, and that purgatory was a fable. These proceedings of
Waldo and his reformed companions, occasioned the origin of the
inquisition; for pope Innocent III. elected certain monks inquisitors, to
find and deliver over the reformed to the secular power. The monks
upon the least surmise or information delivered over the reformed to the
magistrate, and the magistrate delivered them to the executioner; for the
process was short, as an accusation was deemed adequate to guilt, and a
fair trial was never granted to the accused.
When the pope found that these cruel means had not the desired
effect, he determined to try others of a more mild nature; he therefore
sent several learned monks to preach among the Waldenses, and induce
them to change their opinions. Among these was one Dominic, who
was extremely zealous in the cause of popery. He instituted an order,
which from him was called the order of Dominican friars; and the
members of this order have ever since been principal agents in the
various inquisitions of the world. The power of the inquisitors was
unlimited ; they proceeded against whom they pleased without consider-
ation of age, sex, or rank. If the accusers were ever so infamous, the
accusation was deemed valid ; and even anonymous informations sent
by letter were thought sufficient evidence. To be rich was a crime
equal to heresy; therefore many who had money were accused of it, or
of being favourers of heretics. The dearest friends and kindred could
not, without danger, serve any one who was imprisoned on account of
religion : to convey to those who were confined a little straw, or give
them a cup of water, was called favouring the heretics: no lawyer dared
to plead even for his own brother, or to note or register any thing in
CRUEE PERSECUTIONS OF THE WALDENSES. 131
favour of the reformed. The malice of the papists, indeed, went beyond
the grave, and the bones of many Waldenses, who had been long dead,
were dug up and burnt. If a man on his death-bed were accused of
being a follower of Waldo, his estates were confiscated, and the heir
defrauded of his inheritance; and some were even obliged to make
pilgrimages to the Holy Land, while the Dominicans took possession of
their houses and properties, and when the owners returned would often
pretend not to know them.
A knight named Enraudus, being accused of embracing the opinions
of Waldo, was burnt at Paris, A. D. 1201. About twenty years after,
such numbers of the reformed were apprehended, that the archbishops
of Aix, Aries, and Narbonne, took compassion on them, and thus ex-
pressed themselves to the inquisitors — " We hear that you have appre-
hended such a number of Waldenses, that it is not only impossible to
defray the charge of their food and confinement, but to provide lime
and stone to build prisons for them."
In the year 1380, a monk inquisitor, named Francis Boralli, had a
commission granted him by pope Clement VII. to search for and punish
the Waldenses in Aix, Ambrone, Geneva, Savoy, Orange, Aries,
Vienna, Venice, and Avignon. He went to Ambrone, and summoned
all the inhabitants to appear before him ; when those who were found to
be of the reformed religion, were delivered over to the secular power,
and burnt ; and those who did not appear were excommunicated for
contumacy, and had their effects confiscated. In the distribution of
these effects, the clergy had the lion's share., more than two thirds of
every man's property who was condemned, and the secular power less
than one third, and sometimes next to nothing. All the reformed in-
habitants of the other places named in the commission of this ecclesiastic
were equal sufferers.
In the year 1400, the Waldenses who resided in the valley of Pragela,
were, at the instigation of some priests, suddenly attacked by a body of
troops, who plundered their houses, murdered the inhabitants, or drove
them to the Alps, where great numbers were frozen to death, it being in
the depth of winter. In 1460, a persecution was carried on in Dauphiny
against the same people, by the archbishop of Ambrone who employed
a monk, named John Vayleti ; and this monk proceeded with such vio-
lence, that not only the Waldenses, but even many papists were suf-
ferers : for if any of them expressed compassion or pity for the unoffend-
ing people, who were so cruelly treated, they were sure to be accused
of partiality to heretics, and to share their fate. At length Vayleti's pro-
ceedings became so intolerable, that a great number of the papists them-
selves signed a petition against him to Louis XI. king of France, who
granted the request of the petitioners, and sent an order to the governor
of Dauphiny to stop the persecution. Vayleti, however, by order of the
archbishop, still continued it ; for taking advantage of the last clause
of the edict, he pretended that he did nothing contrary to the king's
precept, who had ordered punishment to such as affirmed any thing
against the holy catholic faith. This persecution at length concluded
with the death of the archbishop, which happened in 1487.
Pope Innocent VIII. in 1488, determined to persecute the Waldenses.
132 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
To this end he sent Albert de Capitaneis, archdeacon of Cremona, to
France; who, on arriving in Dauphiny, craved the assistance of the king's
lieutenant to exterminate them from the valley of Loyse. The lieutenant
readily granted his assistance, and marched a body of troops to the
place ; but when they arrived in the valley, they found that it had been
deserted by the inhabitants, who had retired to the mountains, and hid
themselves in dens and caves of the earth. The archdeacon and lieu-
tenant immediately followed them with their troops, and catching many
cast them headlong from precipices, by which they were dashed to pieces.
Several, however, retired to the innermost parts of the caverns, and
knowing the intricacies, were able to conceal themselves. The arch-
deacon and lieutenant not being capable of finding them ordered the
mouths of the caves to be filled with faggots, which being lighted, those
within were suffocated. On searching the caves, numerous children were
found smothered, either in their cradles or in their mothers' arms ; and
upon the whole, about 3000 men, women, and children, were destroyed
in this persecution. After this tragical work, the lieutenant and arch-
deacon proceeded with the troops of Pragelo and Frassaniere, to perse-
cute the Waldenses in those parts. But these having heard the fate of
their brethren in the valley of Loyse, thought proper to arm themselves;
and by fortifying the different avenues, and bravely disputing the passages
through them, they so harassed the troops that the lieutenant was com-
pelled to retire without effecting his purpose.
In 1594, Anthony Fabria and Christopher de Salience, having a com-
mission to persecute the Waldenses of Dauphiny, put some to death,
sequestered the estates of others, and confiscated the goods of many ;
but Louis XII. coming to the crown in 1598, the Waldenses petitioned
him for a restitution of their properties. The king determined to have
the affair impartially canvassed, and sent a commissioner of his own,
together with a commissary from the pope; to make the proper inquiries.
Witnesses against the Waldenses having been examined, the innocence
of those poor people evidently appeared, and the king's commissioner
therefore declared — " That he only desired to be as good a Christian as
the worst of them." This favourable report being made to the king, he
immediately gave orders that the Waldenses should have their property
restored to them. The archbishop of Ambrone, having the greatest
quantity of their goods, it was generally imagined that he would set a
laudable example to others by being the first to restore them. However,
to the surprise of the people in general, and the affliction of the Wal-
denses in particular, the prelate protested that he would not restore any
of the property, for it was incorporated and become part of his arch-
bishopric. He, however, with an affectation of candour, offered to re-
linquish several vineyards, of which he had dispossessed the sufferers,
provided the lords of Dauphiny would restore all they had taken from
them; but this the lords absolutely refused, being as fond of keeping
their plunder as the archbishop himself.
The Waldenses finding that they were not likely to recover any of their
property, again appealed to the king; and the monarch having attended
to their complaints, wrote to the archbishop ; but that artful and avari-
cious prelate replied, — " That at the commencement of the persecution
UPRIGHTNESS OF THE WALUENSES. 133
the Waldenses had been excommunicated by the pope, in consequence
of which their goods were distrained ; therefore, till the sentence of
excommunication was taken off, which had occasioned them to be seized
they could not be restored with propriety." This plea was allowed to
be reasonable : and application was ineffectually made to the pope to
remove the sentence of excommunication ; the archbishop having used
all his interest at the court of Rome to prevent the petition from suc-
ceeding. Thus were the poor Waldenses robbed of their property, only
because they would not sacrifice their consciences to the will of their
enemies.
At length this sect having spread from Dauphiny into several other
parts, became very numerous in Provence. At their first arrival Pro-
vence was almost a desert, but by their great industry it soon abounded
with corn, wine, oil, fruit, &c. The pope, by being often near them at
his seat at Avignon, heard occasionally many things concerning their
differences with the church of Rome, which greatly exasperated him,
and he determined to persecute them on this ground with severity.
Proceeding to extremities, under the sanction of ecclesiastical authority
only, without consulting the king of France, the latter became alarmed
and sent his master of requests, and his confessor to examine the affair.
On their return they reported that the Waldenses were not such danger-
ous people as they had been represented ; that they lived with perfect
honesty, were friendly to all, caused their children to be baptised, had
them taught the Lord's prayer, creed, and ten commandments; expounded
the scriptures with purity, kept the Lord's day sacred, feared God,
honoured the king, and wished well to the state.
" Then," said the king, " they are much better Christians than myself
or my catholic subjects, and therefore they shall not be persecuted."
The king was as good as his word, and sent orders to stop the per-
secution.
Some time after the inhabitants of Merindol received a summons, that
the heads of the families of that town should appear before the eccle-
siastical court. When they appeared, and confessed themselves Wal-
denses, they were ordered to be burnt, their families outlawed, their
habitations laid waste, and the woods that surrounded the town cut
down two hundred paces square, so that the whole should be rendered
desolate. The king, however, being informed of this barbarous decree,
sent to countermand the execution of it ; but his order was suppressed
by cardinal Tournon, and the greatest cruelties were consequently per-
petrated with impunity.
The president of Opede sent several companies of soldiers to burn
some villages occupied by protestants : this commission they too faith-
fully executed, exceeding it by a brutal treatment of the inhabitants,
in which neither infancy, age, or sex, was spared. He also proclaimed
that none should give any manner of assistance or sustenance to the suf-
ferers. On reaching another small town, the president found only a boy,
who had surrendered himself to a soldier, the other inhabitants having de-
serted the place. The boy he ordered to be shot by the soldier to whom
he had surrendered, and then destroyed every house in the place. He
next marched against Cabrieres, and began to cannonade it. At this time
134 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
there were not above sixty poor peasants with their families in the town ;
and they sent him word that he need not expend powder and shot upon
the place, as they were willing to open the gates and surrender, provided
they might be permitted to retire unmolested to Geneva or Germany.
This was promised them ; but the gates were no sooner opened, than the
president ordered all the men to be cut to pieces, which cruel command
was immediately executed. Several women and children were driven
into a large barn, which was set on fire, and every one perished in the
flames. Other women and children having taken refuge in a church,
the president ordered one of his officers to go and kill them all : the
captain at first refused, saying, " unnecessary cruelty is unbecoming a
military man." The president, displeased at his reply, said, " I charge
you, on pain of being accused of mutiny, immediately to obey my
orders." When the captain, afraid of the consequences, thought pro-
per to comply. The president then sent a detachment of his troops to
ravage the town of Costa, which was done with the greatest barbarity.
At length the judgment of God overtook this monster of cruelty; he
was afflicted with a dreadful bloody-flux, and a painful strangury. In
this extremity he sent for a surgeon from Aries, who, on examining his
disorders, told him they were of a singular nature, and much worse than
he had ever seen in any other person. He then took occasion to repre-
hend him for his cruelties, and told him that unless he repented, he
might expect the hand of Heaven to fall still heavier upon him. On
hearing this, the president flew into a violent passion, and ordered his
attendants to seize the surgeon as a heretic. The surgeon, however,
found means to escape, and soon after the president's disorder increased
to a terrible degree. As he had found some little ease from the surgical
operations, he again sent for the faithful operator, having been informed
of the place of his retirement : his message was accompanied with an
apology for his former behaviour, and a promise of personal security.
The surgeon forgiving what was past, went to him, but too late to be of
any service; for he found the tyrant raving like a madman, and crying
out that he had a fire within him. After blaspheming for some time he
expired in dreadful agonies; and his body in a few hours became so
offensive, that hardly any one could endure the place where it lay.
John de Roma, a monk, having a commission from the pope to search
for heretics, executed it with great severity in Provence. The king of
France hearing of his proceedings, sent an order to the parliament of
Provence to apprehend him : the monk, however, made his escape to
Avignon, and thought to live luxuriously upon what he had taken from
the Waldenses. But in this he was mistaken, for robbers soon after
plundered him of the greater part of his treasure; and his grief on this
account brought on a violent disorder, which turned him, while living,
into a mass of putrefaction, and soon put a period to his existence.
The bishop of Aix, with some priests, being at Avignon together,
were one day walking along the streets with some courtezans, and seeing
a man who sold obscene pictures, they purchased several, and presented
them to the women. A bookseller, who had a number of bibles in the
French language for sale, lived at hand. The bishop stepping up to him,
said, " How darest thou be so bold as to sell French merchandize in
YILLANY OF THE BISHOP OF AIX. J J J.
this town ?" The bookseller replied with a kind of sneer, " My lord,
do you not think that bibles are so good as those pictures which you
have bought for the ladies'?" Enraged at the sarcasm, the bishop ex-
claimed — " I'll renounce my place in paradise if this fellow be not one
of the Waldenses. Take him away, take him away to prison." These
expressions occasioned him to be cruelly treated by the rabble; and the
next day he was brought before the judge, who, at the instigation of the
bishop, condemned him to the flames. He was accordingly burnt, with
two bibles hanging about his neck, the one before and the other
behind. 7
SECTION VII.
FARTHER ACCOUNT OF PERSECUTIONS IN THE VALLEYS OF
PIEDMONT IN THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY.
Pope Clement the Eighth sent missionaries into the valleys of Pied-
mont, witli a view to induce the protestants to renounce their religion.
These missionaries erected monasteries in several parts of the valleys,
and soon became very troublesome to the reformed, to whom the monas-
teries appeared not only as fortresses to awe them, but as sanctuaries for
all such to fly to as had injured them in any degree. The insolence and
tyranny of these missionaries increasing, the protestants petitioned the
duke of Savoy for protection. But instead of gaining redress, the duke
published a decree, in which he declared, that one witness should be
sufficient in a court of law against a protestant; and that any witness
who convicted a protestant of any crime whatever should be entitled to
a hundred crowns as a reward. In consequence of this, as may be
imagined, many protestants fell martyrs to perjury and avarice; for
several papists would swear anything against them for the sake of the
reward, and then fly to their own priests for absolution from their false
oaths. These missionaries, moreover, endeavoured to get the books of
the protestants into their power, in order to burn them ; the former
wrote to the duke of Savoy, who for the heinous crime of not sur-
rendering their bibles, prayer-books, and religious treatises, sent a num-
ber of troops to be quartered on them, which occasioned the ruin of
many families.
To encourage, as much as possible, the apostasy of the protestants,
the duke published a proclamation, wherein he said, "To encourage the
heretics to turn catholics, it is our will and pleasure*, and we do hereby
expressly command, that all such as shall embrace the holy Roman
faith, shall enjoy an exemption from all and every tax for the space of
five years, commencing from the day of their conversion." He likewise
established a court, called the council for extirpating the heretics. This
court was to enter into enquiries concerning the ancient privileges of the
protestant churches, and the decrees which had been, from time to time,
made in favour of them. But the investigation was carried on with the
most decided partiality. After this, the duke published several succes-
sive edicts, prohibiting the protestants from acting as schoolmasters or
tutors; from teaching any art, science, or language; from holding any
places of profit, trust, or honour: and finally, commanding them to
attend mass. This last was the sure signal for a persecution, and which
of consequence soon followed.
One of the first who attracted the notice of the papists, was Mr.
Sebastian Basan, a zealous protestant, who was seized by the mis-
sionaries, confined, tormented fifteen months, and then committed to the
flames. Before the persecution commenced, the missionaries employed
kidnappers to steal away the children of the protestants, that they might
privately be brought up Roman catholics; but now they took away the
children by open force, and if the wretched parents resisted, they were
258 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
immediately murdered. The duke of Savoy, in order to inspirit the
persecution, called a general assembly of the Roman catholic nobility
and gentry, whence issued a solemn edict against the reformed, contain-
ing many heads, and including several reasons for extirpating them,
among which the following were the principal: " for the preservation of
the papal authority; that the church livings may be all under one mode
of government; to make an union among all parties; in honour of all
the saints, and of the ceremonies of the church of Rome/'
This was followed by a most cruel order, published on January 25,
A. D. 1655, under the sanction of the duke, by Andrew Gastaldo,
doctor of civil laws. This order set forth, "That every head of a
family, with the individuals of that family, of the reformed religion, of
what rank, degree, or condition soever, none excepted, inhabiting and
possessing estates in Lucerne, St. Giovanni, Bibiana, Campiglione,
St. Secondo, Lucernetta, La Torre, Fenile, and Bricherassio, shall,
within three days after the publication thereof, depart, and be with-
drawn out of the said places and translated into the places and limits
tolerated by his highness during his pleasure; particularly Bobbio,
Angrogno, Villaro, Rorata, and the county of Bonetti. And all this
to be done on pain of death, and confiscation of house and goods,
unless within the limited time they turn Roman catholics." The
suddenness of the order affected all, and things which would have been
scarcely noticed at another time, now appeared in the most conspicuous
light. Neither women nor children, neither mothers nor infants, were
objects of pity on this order for sudden removal, for all were included
in the command; and to add to the distress, the winter was remarkably
severe.
Notwithstanding this, the papists drove them from their habitations at
the time appointed, without even sufficient clothes to cover them; and
many perished in the mountains through the severity of the season, or
want of food. Those who remained behind after the publication of the
decree, were murdered by the popish inhabitants, or shot by the troops.
A particular description of these cruelties is given in a letter, written by
a protestant, who was upon the spot, and who happily escaped the car-
nage. " The army," says he, " having got footing, became very nu-
merous by the addition of a multitude of the neighbouring popish
inhabitants, who finding we were the destined prey of the plunderers,
fell upon us witli impetuous fury. Exclusive of the duke of Savoy's
troops, and the Roman catholic inhabitants, there were several regiments
of French auxiliaries, some companies belonging to the Irish brigades,
and several bands formed of outlaws, smugglers, and prisoners, who had
been promised pardon and liberty in this world, and absolution in the
next, for assisting to exterminate the protestants from Piedmont. This
armed multitude being encouraged by the bishops and monks, fell upon
the protestants in a most furious manner. All now was horror and
despair ; blood stained the floors of the houses, dead bodies bestrewed
the streets, and groans and cries shocked the ears of humanity from
every quarter. Some armed themselves, and skirmished with the troops;
and many with their families fled to the mountains. In one village the
wretches vented their cruelty on one hundred and fifty women and
PERSECUTION RENEWED IN PIEDMONT. 259
children after the men had fled, beheading the women, and dashing-
out the brains of the children."
Sarah Rostignole des Vignes, a woman sixty years of age, being
seized by some soldiers, they ordered her to say a prayer to some saints;
which she refusing, they first stabbed and then beheaded her. Martha
Constantine, a beautiful young woman, was barbarously abused and
killed. Parts of their bodies were even cooked for food, and served up
for soldiers who were ignorant what was before them. When they had
done eating, the others told them what they had made a meal of, in
consequence of which a quarrel ensued, swords were drawn, and a
battle took place. Several were killed in the fray, the greater part of
whom were those concerned in the horrid massacre of the woman, and
who had practised such a brutal deception on their deluded comrades.
Peter Simonds, a protestant, about eighty years of age, was bound,
and then thrown down a precipice. In the fall the branch of a tree
caught hold of the ropes that fastened him, and suspended him in the
mid-way, so that he languished for several days till he perished of
hunger. Esay Garcino, refusing to renounce his religion, the soldiers
cut him into small pieces, saying, in ridicule, they had minced him. A
woman, named Armand, had her limbs separated from each other, and
then the respective parts were hung upon a hedge. Several men,
women, and children, were flung from the rocks, and dashed to pieces.
Among others was Magdalen Bertino, a protestant woman of La Torre,
who was bound and thrown down one of the precipices. Mary Ray-
mondet, of the same town, had her flesh mangled till she expired.
Magdalen Pilot, of Villaro, was cut to pieces in the cave of Castolus.
Ann Charboniere had one end of a stake thrust into her body, and the
other end being fixed in the ground, she was left in that manner to
perish. Jacob Perin the elder, of the church of Villaro, with David,
his brother, were flayed alive.
Giovanni Andrea Michialin, an inhabitant of La Torre, with four of
his children, was apprehended; three of them were killed before his
eyes, the soldiers asking him, at the death of every child, if he would
renounce, which he constantly refused. One of the soldiers then took
up the last and youngest by the legs, and putting the same question to
the father, he replied as before, when the inhuman brute dashed out the
child's brains. The father, however, at the same moment started from
them, and fled: the soldiers fired after him, but missed him; and he
escaped to the Alps, and there remained concealed. Giovanni Pelan-
chion, on refusing to abjure his oath, was fastened to the tail of a mule,
and dragged through the streets of Lucerne, amidst the acclamations of
an inhuman mob, who kept stoning him, and crying out, " He is pos-
sessed of the devil." They then took him to the river side, struck off
his head, and left that and his body unburied upon the bank.
Peter Fontaine had a beautiful child ten years of age, named Mag-
dalene, who was violated and murdered by the soldiers. Another girl,
of about the same age, they roasted alive at Villa Nova; and a poor
woman, hearing the soldiers were coming towards her house, snatched up
the cradle in which her infant son was asleep, and fled towards the
woods. The soldiers, however, saw and pursued her, when she light-
260 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
ened herself by putting down the cradle and child, which the soldiers no
sooner came to, than they murdered the infant, and continuing the
pursuit, found the mother in a cave, where they first abused and then
slaughtered her. Jacobo Michelino, chief elder of the church of
Bobbio, and several other protestants, were hung up by hooks fixed to
their bodies, and left to expire. Giovanni Rostagnal, a venerable pro-
testant, upwards of fourscore years of age, had his features mangled,
and was otherwise injured by sharp weapons, till he bled to death.
Daniel Saleagio and his wife, Giovanni Durant, Lodwich Durant,
Bartholomew Durant, Daniel Revel, and Paul Reynaud, had their
mouths stuffed with gunpowder, which being set fire to, their heads
were blown to atoms.
Jacob Birone, a schoolmaster of Rorata, for refusing to change his
religion, was stripped naked; and after having been exposed, had the
nails of his toes and fingers torn off with hot pincers, and holes bored
through his hands with the point of a dagger. He next had a cord tied
round his middle, and was led through the streets with a soldier on each
side of him. At every turning the soldier on his right-hand side cut a
gash in his flesh, and the soldier on his left-hand side struck him with a
bludgeon, both saying, at the same instant, "Will you go to mass?
Will you go to mass?" He still replied in the negative to these interro-
gatories, and being at length taken to the bridge, they cut off his head
on the balustrade, and threw both that and his body into the river.
Paul Gamier, a protestant beloved for his piety, had his eyes put out,
was then flayed alived, and being divided into four parts, his quarters
were placed on four of the principal houses of Lucerne. He bore all
his sufferings with the most exemplary patience, praised God as long
as he could speak, and plainly evinced the courage arising from a con-
fidence in God. Daniel Cardon, of Rocappiata, being apprehended by
some soldiers, they cut off his head. Two poor old blind women, of
St. Giovanni, were burnt alive. A widow of La Torre, with her daugh-
ter, was driven into the river, and stoned to death there. Paul Giles,
on attempting to run away from some soldiers, was shot in the neck :
they then mutilated and stabbed him, and gave his carcass to the dogs.
Some of the Irish troops having taken eleven men of Garcigliana,
prisoners, they heated a furnace and forced them into it. Michael
Gonet, a man about 90 years old, was also burnt to death. Baptista
Oudri, another old man, was stabbed. Bartholomew Frasche had his
heels pierced, through which ropes being put, he was dragged to the
gaol, where, in consequence of his wound mortifying, he soon died.
Magdalene de la Peire, being pursued by the soldiers and taken, was
cast down a precipice and dashed to pieces. Margaret Revella and
Mary Pravillerin, two very old women, were burnt alive. Michael
Bellino, and Anne Bochardno, were beheaded. Joseph Chairet and
Paul Carniero were flayed alive.
Cypryania Bustia being asked " if he would renounce his religion,
and turn Roman catholic," he replied, " I would rather renounce life,
or turn dog :" to which a priest answered, "for that expression you
shall both renounce life, and be given to the dogs." They, accordingly,
dragged him to prison, where they confined him till he perished of
I NPARALLELED CRl ELTIES. 261
hunger, after which they threw his corpse into the street before the
prison, and it was devoured by dogs. Joseph Pont was severed in two.
Margaret Soretta was stoned to death. Antonio Bertina had his head
cleft asunder. Daniel Maria, and all his family, being ill of a fever,
several ruffians broke into his house, telling him they were practical
physicians, and would give them all present ease; which they did, by
murdering him and his whole family. Three infant children of a pro-
testant, named Peter Fine, were buried in the snow. An elderly widow,
named Judith, was beheaded.
Lucy, the wife of Peter Besson, who lived in one of the villages of
the Piedmontese valleys, being in an advanced state of pregnancy,
determined, if possible, to escape from such dreadful scenes as every
where surrounded her: she accordingly took two young children, one
in each hand, and set off towards the Alps. But on the third day of
the journey she was taken in labour among the mountains, and delivered
of an infant, who perished through the inclemency of the weather, as
did the other two children; for all three were found dead by her side,
and herself just expiring, by the person to whom she related the above
circumstances.
Francis Gross, son of a worthy clergyman, was treated in a manner
which, if possible, surpasses in cruelty the worst instance which has been
mentioned. It is too heart-sickening to be detailed, and was aggravated
to the most inhuman extent by his wife being compelled to witness his
extreme sufferings. The torture was not at last suspended but through
the weariness of those who inflicted it. The Sieur Thomas Margher
fled to a cave, where being discovered, the soldiers shut up the mouth,
and he perished with famine. Judith Revelin, with seven children, were
barbarously murdered in their beds. Jacob Roseno was commanded
to pray to the saints, which he refusing, the soldiers beat him violently
with bludgeons to make him comply, but being steady to his faith, they
fired at him, and lodged many balls in his body. While in the agonies
of death, they cried to him, " Will you pray to the saints?" To which
he answered, "No!" when one of the soldiers, with a broad sword,
clave his head asunder, and put an end to his sufferings.
A young woman, named Susanna Ciacquin, being assaulted by a
soldier, she made a stout resistance, and in the struggle pushed him over
a precipice, when he was dashed to pieces by the fall. His comrades
immediately fell upon her with their swords, and cut her to atoms,
Giovanni Pullius, being apprehended as a protestant, was ordered by
the marquis of Pianessa to be executed in a place near the convent.
When brought to the gallows, several monks attended to persuade him
to renounce his religion. But he told them he never would embrace
idolatry, and that he was happy in being thought worthy to suffer for
the name of Christ. They then represented to him what his wife and
children, who depended upon his labour, would suffer after his decease:
to which he replied, " I would have my wife and children, as well as
myself, to consider their souls more than their bodies, and the next
world before this; and with respect to the distress I may leave them in,
God is merciful, and will provide for them while they are dependent on
his protection." Finding the inflexibility of this poor man, the monks
262 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
commanded the executioner to perform his office, when he launched the
martyr into the world of glory.
Paul Clement, an elder of the church of Rossana, being apprehended
by the monks of a neighbouring monastery, was carried to the market-
place of that town, where some protestants had just been executed. On
beholding the dead bodies, he said calmly, " You may kill the body,
but you cannot injure the soul of a true believer: with respect to the
dreadful spectacles which you have here shewn me, you may rest assured
that God's vengeance will overtake the murderers of those poor people,
and punish them for the innocent blood they have spilt." The monks
were so exasperated at this reply, that they ordered him to be hung up
directly ; and while he was hanging, the soldiers amused themselves by
shooting at the body.
Daniel Rambaut, of Villaro, the father of a numerous family, was
seized, and, with several others, committed to the gaol of Paysana.
Here he was visited by several priests, who, with continual impor-
tunities, strove to persuade him to turn papist: but this he peremptorily
refused, and the priests finding his resolution, pretended to pity his
numerous family, and told him, that he might yet have his life, if he
would subscribe to the belief of the following articles : — The real pre-
sence in the host. — Transubstantiation. — Purgatory. — The pope's infal-
libility. — That masses said for the dead will release souls from purgatory —
That praying to saints will procure the remission of sins. To these pro-
posals Rambaut replied, that neither his religion, his understanding,
nor his conscience, would suffer him to subscribe to any of these articles;
"For," said he, "to believe the real presence in the host, is a shocking
union of blasphemy and idolatry. To fancy the words of consecration
perform what the papists call transubstantiation, by converting the wafer
and wine into the identical body and blood of Christ, which was cruci-
fied, and which afterwards ascended into heaven, is too gross an absurdity
for even a child to believe ; and nothing but the most blind superstition
could make the Roman catholics put a confidence in anything so ridi-
culous. The doctrine of purgatory is more inconsistent and absurd than
a fairy tale. The infallibility of the pope is an impossibility, and he
arrogantly lays claim to what can belong to God only, as a perfect
being. Saying masses for the dead is ridiculous, and only meant to
keep up a belief in the fable of purgatory, as the fate of all is finally
decided in the departure of the soul from the body. Praying to saints
for the remission of sins, is misplacing adoration, as the saints themselves
have occasion for an intercessor in Christ ; therefore as God only can
pardon our errors, we ought to sue to him alone for pardon." Filled
with rage at these answers, the priests determined to shake his resolutions
by the most cruel method imaginable : they inflicted daily tortures on
his most susceptible limbs, and then deprived him of one limb after
another so gradually as to reduce him to the utmost agony ; when find-
ing that he bore his sufferings with unconquerable fortitude, and main-
tained his faith with steadfast resolution, they stabbed him to the heart
and gave his body to be devoured by dogs.
Peter Gabriola, a protestant gentleman, of considerable eminence,
being seized by a troop of soldiers, and refusing to renounce his religion,
VARIOUS PERSECUTIONS. 263
they hung several bags of gunpowder about his body, and then caused
them to explode. Anthony, the son of Samuel Catieris, a poor dumb
lad, and extremely inoffensive, was cut to pieces by a party of the
troops; and soon after the same ruffians entered the house of Peter
Moniriat, and cut off the legs of the whole family, leaving them to bleed
to death. Daniel Benech being apprehended, had his nose slit, and his
ears cut off; after which, he was divided into quarters, and each quarter
hung upon a tree ; Mary Monino had her jaw-bones broken, and was
left to languish till she was starved to death. Mary Pelanchion, a hand-
some widow, of the town of Villaro, was seized by a party of the Irish
brigades, who having beat her cruelly, and otherwise abused her,
dragged her to a high bridge which crossed the river, hung her by the
legs from an arch with her head downwards towards the water, and then
going into boats they shot at her till she died. Mary Nigrino, and her
daughter, a poor idiot, were cut to pieces in the woods, and their bodies
left to be devoured by beasts. Susanna Bales, a widow of Villaro, was
immured and starved to death.
Susanna Calvio, running away from some soldiers, and hiding herself
in a barn, they set fire to the place, by which she was burnt to death.
Daniel Bertino, a child, was burnt. Paul Armand was cut to pieces.
Daniel Michialino had his tongue plucked out. Andreo Bertino, a
lame and very old man, was mangled in a most shocking manner. But
to enumerate any but the most remarkable cases is impossible, without
rendering the volume almost an entire catalogue of names distinguished
only by the undeserved sufferings of those who bore them.
A protestant lady, named Constantia Bellione, was apprehended on
account of her faith, and asked by a priest if she would renounce the
devil and go to mass; to which she replied, "I was brought up in a
religion by which I was always taught to renounce the devil ; but should
I comply with your desire, and go to mass, I should be sure to meet
him there in a variety of shapes." The priest was highly incensed at
this, and told her to recant, or she should suffer cruelly. She, however,
boldly answered, that she valued not any sufferings he could inflict, and
in spite of them all she would keep her faith inviolate. The priest then
ordered flesh to be cut from several parts of her body. This she bore
with the most singular patience, only saying to the priest, " What horrid
and lasting torments will you suffer in hell, for the trifling and temporary
pains which I now endure !" Exasperated at this expression, and willing
to stop her tongue, the priest ordered a file of musqueteers to draw up
and fire upon her, by which she was soon dispatched. Judith Mandon,
a young woman, for the same offence, was fastened to a stake, and sticks
thrown at her from a distance, in imitation of the custom practised on
Shrove-Tuesday of throwing at cocks. By this inhuman proceeding, her
limbs were beat and mangled in a most terrible manner. At last one
of the bludgeons striking her head, she was at once freed from her pains
and her life.
Paul Genre and David Paglia, each with his son, attempting to escape
to the Alps, were pursued and overtaken by the soldiers in a large plain.
Here their foes hunted them for their diversion, goading them with their
swords, and making them run about till they dropped with fatigue.
264 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
When they found that their spirits were exhausted, and that they could
not afford them any more barbarous sport by running, the soldiers hacked
them to pieces, and left their mangled fragments on the spot. Michael
Greve, a young man of Bobbio, was apprehended in the town of La
Torre, and being led to the bridge, was thrown into the river. Being,
however, an expert swimmer, he swam down the stream, thinking to
escape, but the soldiers and mob followed on both sides the river, and
kept stoning him, till receiving a blow on one of his temples, he sunk
and was drowned. David Baridona was apprehended at Villaro, and
carried to La Torre, where refusing to renounce his religion, he was
tormented by brimstone matches being fastened to his hands and feet,
and set fire to, and afterwards, by having his flesh plucked off with red
hot pincers, till he expired. Giovanni Barolina, with his wife, were
thrown into a pool of stagnant water, and compelled, by means of pitch-
forks and stones, to immerse their heads till they were suffocated with
the stench.
A number of soldiers assaulted the house of Joseph Garniero, and
before they entered, fired in at the window, to give notice of their
approach. Mrs. Garniero was at that instant suckling her child, and
one of the balls entered her breast. On finding their intentions, she
begged them to spare the life of the infant, which they promised to do,
and sent it immediately to a Roman catholic nurse. They then seized
the husband and hanged him at his own door, and having shot the wife
through the head, left her body weltering in its blood.
Isaiah Mandon, a pious protestant, in the wane of life, fled from his
merciless persecutors to a cleft in a rock, where he suffered the most
dreadful hardships. In the midst of winter he was forced to lay on the
bare stone, without any covering ; his food was the roots he could pluck
up near his miserable habitation ; and the only way by which he could
quench his thirst was to put snow in his mouth till it melted. Here,
however, some of the soldiers found him, and after beating him unmer-
cifully, they drove him towards Lucerne, goading him all the way with
the points of their swords. Being exceedingly weakened by his manner
of living, and exhausted by the blows he had received, he fell down
in the road. They again beat him to make him proceed; till on his
knees, he implored them to put him out of his misery. This they at
last agreed to do ; and one of them shot him through the head, saying
''There, heretic, take thy request."
Mary Revel, a protestant, received a shot in her back while walking
along the street, which brought her to the ground: but recovering suf-
ficient strength, she raised herself upon her knees, and lifting her hands
towards heaven, prayed in a most fervent manner to the Almighty ;
when a number of soldiers, near at hand, fired a volley of shot at her,
and in an instant put an end to her miseries. To screen themselves
from danger, a number of men, women, and children, fled to a large
cave, where they continued for some weeks in safety, two of the men
going when it was necessary, by stealth, to procure provisions. They
were, however, one day watched, by which the cave was discovered,
and, soon after, a troop of catholic soldiers appeared before it. Many
of these were neighbours, and intimate acquaintances, and some even
ATTACK ON THE COMMONALTY OF RORAS. 265
relations to those in the cave. The protestants, therefore, came out,
and implored them, by the ties of hospitality, and especially by those ot
blood and neighbourhood, not to murder them. But, fulfilling the words
of the Lord, " the father shall be divided against the son, and the son
against the father," the papists, blinded by bigotry, told them they
could not shew any mercy to heretics, and therefore bade them all pre-
pare to die. Hearing this, and knowing the obduracy of their enemies,
the protestants fell prostrate, lifted their hearts to heaven, and patiently
awaited their fate, which the papists soon decided, by cutting them to
pieces.
The blood of the faithful being almost exhausted in the towns and
villages of Piedmont, there remained but one place that had stood aloof
from the general slaughter. This was the little commonalty of Roras,
which stood upon an eminence. Of this the earl of Christophe, one of
the duke of Savoy's officers, determined if possible to make himself
master; with that view he detached three hundred men to surprise it.
The inhabitants, however, had intelligence of the approach of these
troops, and captain Joshua Gianavel, a brave protestant officer, put
himself at the head of a small body of the citizens, and waited in am-
buscade to attack the enemy in a narrow passage, the only place by
which the town could be approached. As soon as the troops appeared
and had entered the passage, the protestants commenced a smart and
well-directed fire against them, and still kept themselves concealed
behind bushes from the sight of the enemy. A great number of the
soldiers were killed, and the rest, receiving a continual fire, and not
seeing any to whom they might attribute and return it, made a precipi-
tate retreat.
The members of this little community immediately sent a memorial
to the marquis of Pianessa, a general officer of the duke, stating,
that they were sorry to be under the necessity of taking up arms ; but
that the secret approach of a body of troops, without any previous
notice sent of the purpose of their coming, had greatly alarmed them ;
that as it was their custom never to suffer any of the military to enter
their territory, they had repelled force by force, and should do so again;
but in all other respects, they professed themselves dutiful, obedient,
and loyal subjects to their sovereign, the duke of Savoy. The marquis,
to delude and surprise the protestants of Roras, sent them word that
he was perfectly satisfied with their behaviour, for they had done right,
and even rendered a service to their country, as the men who had at-
tempted to pass the defile were not his troops, but a band of desperate
robbers, who had, for some time, infested those parts, and been a terror
to the neighbouring country. To give a greater colour to his treachery,
he published a proclamation to the same purpose, expressive of thanks
to the citizens of Roras.
The very day after, however, this treacherous nobleman sent 500 men
to possess themselves of the town, while the people, as he thought, were
lulled into security by his artifice.
Captain Gianavel was not thus to be deceived ; he, therefore, laid a
second ambuscade for the troops, and compelled them to retire with
greater loss and disgrace than before. Foiled in two attempts, the san-
266 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
guinary marquess determined on a third, which should be still more for-
midable ; but still to delude the brave citizens, he published another
proclamation, disowning any knowledge of the second attempt. He
soon after sent 700 chosen men upon the expedition, who, in spite of the
fire from the protestants, forced the defile, entered Roras, and began to
murder every person they met with, without distinction of sex or age.
Captain Gianavel, at the head of his friends, though he had lost the
defile, determined to dispute the passage through a fortified pass, that led
to the richest and best part of the town. Here he succeeded, by keeping
up a continual fire, which did great execution, his men being all complete
marksmen. The catholic commander was astonished and dismayed at
this opposition, as he imagined that he had surmounted all difficulties.
He, however, strove to force the pass, but being able to bring up only
twelve men in front at a time, and the protestants being secured by a
breast- work, he saw all his hopes frustrated.
Enraged at the loss of so many troops, and fearful of disgrace if he
persisted in attempting what appeared impracticable, he thought it wiser
to retreat. Unwilling, however, to withdraw his men by the defile at
which he had entered, on account of the danger, he endeavoured to
retreat towards Villaro, by another pass called Piampra, which, though
hard of access, was easy of descent. Here, however, he again felt the
determined bravery of captain Gianavel, who having posted his little
band here, greatly annoyed the troops as they passed, and even pursued
their rear till they entered the open the country. The marquis Pianessa,
finding all these attempts baffled, and that every artifice he used was
only a signal to the inhabitants of Roras, resolved to act openly ; and
therefore proclaimed, that ample rewards should be given to any
who would bear arms against the obdurate heretics of Roras, and
that any officer who would exterminate them should be honoured ac-
cordingly.
Captain Mario, a bigoted Roman catholic, and a desperate ruffian,
stimulated by this, resolved to undertake the enterprise. He therefore
obtained leave to raise a regiment in the towns of Lucerne, Borges,
Famolas, Bobbio, Cavos, and Bagnal. In these places he levied a regi-
ment of 1000 men. With this he resolved to attempt gaining the
summit of a rock, whence he could pour his men into the town without
opposition or difficulty. But the protestants, aware of his design, suf-
fered his troops to gain almost the summit of the rock, without appearing
in sight: when they made a most furious attack upon them; one party
keeping up a well-directed and constant fire, and another party rolling
down stones of a great weight. Thus were they suddenly stopped in
their career. Many were killed by the musquetry, and more by the
stones, which beat them down the precipices. Several fell sacrifices to
their own fears, for by attempting a precipitate retreat, they fell and
were dashed to pieces; and captain Mario himself, having fallen from
a craggy place into a river at the foot of a rock, was taken up senseless,
and remained ill of the bruises a long time ; and at length fell into a
decline at Lucerne, where he died. After this another body of troops
from the camp at Villaro made an attempt upon Roras, but were like-
wise defeated, and compelled to retreat again to their camp. Captain
HEROIC CONDUCT OF GIANAVEL. 267
Gianavel, for each of these signal victories, made a suitable discourse to
his men, kneeling down with them to return thanks to the Almighty for
his providential protection; and concluded with the 11th Psalm.
The marquis of Pianessa, now enraged to the highest degree at being
thus foiled by such a handful of men, determined on their expulsion, or
destruction. To this end, he ordered all the catholic militia of Piedmont
to be called out and disciplined. To these he joined eight thousand
regular troops, and dividing the whole into three distinct bodies, he
planned that number of formidable attacks to be made at once, unless
the people of Roras, to whom he sent an account of his great prepara-
tions, would comply with the following conditions: — To ask pardon for
taking up arms. To pay the expences of all the expeditions sent
against them. To acknowledge the infallibility of the pope. To attend
mass. To pray to the saints. To deliver up their ministers and school-
masters. To observe confession. To pay loans for the delivery of souls
from purgatory. Above all, to give up captain Gianavel and the elders
of their church at discretion. The brave and magnanimous inhabitants,
indignant at these proposals, answered, that sooner than comply with
them they would suffer their estates to be seized ; their houses to be
burnt; and themselves to be murdered.
Swelling with rage at this, the marquis sent them the following laconic
letter: — w You shall have your request, for the troops sent against you
have strict injunctions to plunder, burn, and kill.
" Pianessa."
The three armies were accordingly put in motion, and the attacks
ordered as follows : the first by the rocks of Villaro ; the second by the
pass of Bagnol; and the third by the defile of Lucerne. As might be
expected, from the superiority of numbers, the troops gained the rocks,
pass, and defile, entered the town, and commenced the most horrid de-
predations. Men they hanged, burnt, and racked to death, or cut to
pieces; women they crucified, drowned, or threw from the precipice;
and children they tossed upon spears, or dashed out their brains. On
the first day of their gaining the town, one hundred and twenty-six
suffered by these and other barbarous methods. Agreeably to the orders
of the marquis, their estates were plundered and their houses burnt.
Several protestants, however, made their escape, under the conduct of
the brave Gianavel, whose wife and children were unfortunately made
prisoners, and sent to Turin under a strong guard.
The marquis thinking to conquer at least the mind of Gianavel,
wrote him a letter, and released a protestant prisoner, that he might
carry it to him. The contents were, that if the captain would embrace
the Roman catholic religion, he should be indemnified for all his losses
since the commencement of the war, his wife and children should be
immediately released, and himself honourably promoted in the duke of
Savoy's army; but if he refused to accede to the proposals made to
him, his wife and children should be put to death; and so large a
reward should be given to take him, dead or alive, that even some of
his own confidential friends should, from the greatness of the sum, be
tempted to betray him.
268 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
To this, Gianavel returned the following answer :
" My Lord Marquis,
" There is no torment so great, or death so cruel, that I would not
prefer to the abjuration of my religion ; so that promises lose their
effects, and menaces only strengthen me in my faith. With respect to
my wife and children, my lord, nothing can be more afflicting to me
than the thought of their confinement, or be more dreadful to my
imagination than their suffering a violent death. I keenly feel all the
tender sensations of a husband and a parent ; I would suffer any tor-
ment to rescue them ; I would die to preserve them. But having said
thus much, my lord, I assure you that the purchase of their lives must
not be the price of my salvation. You have them in your power it is
true ; but my consolation is, that your power is only a temporary
authority over their bodies: you may destroy the mortal part, but their
immortal souls are out of your reach, and will live hereafter, to bear
testimony against you for your cruelties. I therefore recommend them
and myself to God, and pray for a reformation in your heart.
" Joshua Gianavel."
Gianavel now, with his followers, retired to the Alps, where, being
afterwards joined by several protestant officers, with a considerable
number of fugitive protestants, they resolved to defend themselves,
and made several successful attacks upon the Roman catholic 4owns and
forces; carrying terror by the valour of their exploits, and the boldness
of their enterprises.
SECTION VIII.
ACCOUNT OF THE PERSECUTIONS OF MICHAEL DE MOLINOS, A
NATIVE OT SPAIN.
Michael de Molinos, by birth a Spaniard, and of a rich and honour-
able family, entered at an early age into priest's orders, but would accept
of no preferment in the church. His talents were of a very superior
class, and he dedicated them to the service of his fellow-creatures
without any view of self-interest. His life was uniformly pious; nor
did he assume those austerities so common among the religious orders of
the Romish church. Being of a contemplative turn, he pursued the
track of the mystical divines, and having acquired great reputation in
Spain, he became desirous of propagating his mode of devotion, and, ac-
cordingly, left his own country, and settled at Rome. Here he soon
connected himself with some of the most distinguished among the
literati, who, approving of his religious maxims, assisted him in pro-
moting them. His followers soon augmented to a considerable number,
and, from the peculiarity of their doctrines, were distinguished by the
name of Quietists.
In 1675, he published a book, entitled, II Guida Spirituale, which
soon became known, and was read with great avidity, both in Italy
and Spain. His fame was now blazed abroad, and friends flowed in
upon him. Letters were written to him from numbers of people, and
PERSECUTION OF MOLINOS. 269
a correspondence was settled between him and those who approved of
his system, in different parts of Europe. Some secular priests, both
at Rome and Naples, declared themselves openly for it, and consulted
him as a sort of oracle; but those who attached themselves to him with
the greatest sincerity, were some of the fathers of the Oratory, the most
eminent of whom where Coloredi, Ciceri, and Petrucci. Many of the
cardinals also courted his friendship. Among others was the cardinal
d'Estrees, a man of great learning, who conversed with him daily.
Molinos opened his mind to this favourite without reserve; which led to
a correspondence between Molinos and some of the most distinguished
characters in France, of which the cardinal was a native.
The reputation of Molinos now began to alarm the Jesuits and Domi-
nicans, who determined to put a stop to the progress of this new sys-
tem of opinions. They, therefore, began to decry the author of it; and
as heresy is an imputation that makes the strongest impression at Rome,
Molinos and his followers were stigmatized as heretics. Books were
also written by the Jesuits against him and his opinions. These Molinos
answered with becoming spirit, which increased his popularity ; while
his disputes occasioned such a disturbance in Rome, that the affair was
noticed by the inquisition. Molinos and his book, and father Petrucci,
who had written some treatises and letters on the same subject, were
brought under severe examination ; and the Jesuits were considered as
the accusers. In the course of the examination both Molinos and
Petrucci acquitted themselves so ably, that their books were again ap-
proved, and the answers which the Jesuits had written were censured as
scandalous and unbecoming.
Petrucci, on this occasion, was so highly approved, that he was soon
after made bishop of Jesis. Their books were now esteemed more than
ever, their system was more followed, and its importance as well as
novelty contributed to raise the Credit, and increase the number of their
disciples. Thus the great reputation acquired by Molinos and Petrucci,
occasioned a daily increase of the Quietists. All who were thought
sincerely devout, or at least affected so to be, were reckoned among the
number. These persons, in proportion as their zeal increased in their
frequent and serious devotions, appeared less careful about the exterior
parts of the church ceremonies. They were not so assiduous at mass,
nor so earnest to procure it to be said for their friends; nor were they
so frequent either in processions, or at confession, or any other outward
observances.
Notwithstanding the approbation expressed for Molinos's book by the
inquisition had checked the open hostility of his enemies, they were still
inveterate against him in their hearts, and determined if possible to ruin
him. They therefore secretly insinuated that he had ill designs, and
was an enemy to Christianity: that under pretence of raising men to a
sublime strain of devotion, he intended to erase from their minds a sense
of the mysteries of religion. Because he was a Spaniard, they gave out
that he was descended from a Jewish or Mahometan race, and that he
might carry in his blood, or in his first education, some seeds of those
doctrines he had since cultivated with no less art than zeal. Thus
finding himself attacked with such unrelenting malice, Molinos took
270 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
every necessary precaution to prevent its effect upon the public mind.
He wrote a treatise, entitled, "Frequent and Daily Communion," which
was warmly approved by some of the most learned of the Romish clergy.
This, with his Spiritual Guide, was printed in the year 1675, and in the
preface to it he declared, that he had not written it with any design to
engage in matters of controversy, but by the earnest solicitations of
many pious people.
The Jesuits having again failed in their attempt to crush his in-
fluence at Rome, applied to the court of France, where they so far
succeeded, that an order was sent to cardinal d'Estrees, commanding
him to prosecute Molinos with all possible rigour. The cardinal, not-
withstanding his attachment to Molinos, resolved to sacrifice friendship
to interest. Finding, however, there was not sufficient matter for an
immediate accusation against him, he determined to supply that defect
himself. He went to the inquisitors, and informed them of several par-
ticulars relative both to Molinos and Petrucci, who, with several of their
friends, were put into the inquisitorial court.
On being brought before the judges, about the beginning of the year
1684, Petrucci answered the respective questions put to him with so
much judgment and temper, that he was soon dismissed: but with
regard to Molinos, though the inquisitors had not any just accusation
against him, yet they strained every nerve to find him guilty of heresy.
They first objected to his holding a correspondence in different parts of
Europe; but of this he was acquitted, as the matter of that correspond-
ence could not be made criminal. They then directed their attention
to some suspicious papers found in his chamber; but he so clearly
explained their meaning, that nothing could be made of them to his
prejudice. At length cardinal d'Estrees, after producing the order sent
him by the king of France for prosecuting Molinos, said he could
convince the court of his heresy. He then proceeded to pervert the
meaning of some passages in Molinos's books and papers, and related
many false and aggravating circumstances relative to the prisoner. He
acknowledged he had lived with him under the appearance of friendship,
but that it was only to discover his principles and intentions; that he
had found them to be of a bad nature, and that dangerous consequences
were likely to ensue; but in order to make a full discovery, he had as-
sented to several things, which in his heart he detested; and that by
these means he became master of all his secrets. In consequence of
this evidence, Molinos was closely confined for some time, during which
period all was quiet, and his followers prosecuted their course without
interruption. But, at the instigation of the Jesuits, a storm suddenly
broke out upon them with most inveterate fury. The count Vespiniani
and his lady, Don Paulo Rocchi, confessor to the prince Borghese, and
some of his family, with several others, to the amount of seventy
persons, among whom were many highly esteemed both for their learning
and piety, were put into the inquisition. The accusation laid against
the clergy was, their neglecting to say the breviary ; the rest were ac-
cused of going to communion without first attending confession, and
neglecting all the exterior parts of religion. The countess said, on
her examination before the inquisitors, that she had never revealed her
QUIETISTS PER3ECUTED. 271
method of devotion to any mortal but her confessor, without whose
treachery it was impossible they should know it. That, therefore, it
was time to give over going to confession if priests thus abused it,
betraying the most secret thoughts entrusted to them; and that, for the
future, she would only make her confession to God. From this spirited
speech, and the noise made in consequence of the countess's situation,
the inquisitors thought it most prudent to dismiss both her and her
husband, lest the people might be incensed, and what she had said
might lessen the credit of confession. They were therefore both dis-
charged; but bound to appear whenever they should be called upon.
Such was the inveteracy of the Jesuits against the Quietists, that
within the space of a month upwards of 200 persons, besides those
already mentioned, were put into the inquisition; and that method
of devotion which had passed in Italy as the most elevated to which
mortals could aspire, was deemed heretical, and the chief promoters of
it confined in wretched dungeons. To extirpate Quietism, the inquisitors
sent a circular letter to cardinal Cibo, as the chief minister, to suppress
it through Italy. It was addressed to all prelates, informing them that
whereas many schools and fraternities were established in several parts
of Italy, in which some persons, under a pretence of leading people
into the ways of the Spirit, and to prayers of quietness, instilled into
them many abominable heresies; therefore a strict charge was given to
dissolve all those societies, and to oblige the spiritual guide to tread in
the known paths; and, in particular, to take care that none of the new
sect should be suffered to have direction of the nunneries. Orders were
likewise given to proceed criminally against those who should be found
guilty of such abominable errors.
A strict enquiry was made after this into all the nunneries in Rome;
when most of their directors and confessors were discovered to be en-
gaged in the new pursuits. It was found that the Carmelites, the nuns
of the Conception, and those of several other convents, wholly devoted
themselves to prayer and contemplation ; and that, instead of their
beads, and other ceremonies before saints and images, they were much
alone, and often in the exercise of mental prayer: that when they were
asked, why they had laid aside the use of their beads, and their ancient
forms, their answer was their directors had advised them to do so. In-
formation of this being given to the inquisition, orders were sent that
all books written in the same strain with those of Molinos and Petrucci
should be sequestrated, and that the people universally should be com-
pelled to return to their original form of worship.
Little effect was produced by the circular letter sent to cardinal Cibo,
for most of the Italian bishops were inclined to Molinos's method. It
was intended that this, as well as all other orders from the inquisitors,
should be kept secret; but notwithstanding all their care, copies of it
were printed, and dispersed through most of the principal towns in Italy.
This gave great uneasiness to the inquisitors, who adopted every method
they could to conceal their proceedings from the knowledge of the
world. They blamed the cardinal, and accused him of being the cause
of it: but he retorted on them, and his secretary laid the fault on both.
In the mean time, Molinos suffered great indignities from the officers
272 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
of the inquisition ; and the only comfort he received was being some-
times visited by father Petrucci. Yet though he had lived in the highest
reputation at Rome for some years, he was now as much despised as he
had been admired, being generally considered as one of the worst of
heretics. Most of his followers, who had been placed in the inquisition,
having abjured his system, were dismissed; but a harder fate awaited
their leader. When he had lain a considerable time in prison, he was
brought again before the inquisitors, to answer to a number of articles
exhibited against him from his writings. As soon as he appeared in
court, a chain was put round his body, and a wax-light in his hand,
when two friars read aloud the articles of accusation. Molinos answered
each with great steadiness and resolution; but notwithstanding his ar-
guments defeated the force of all that was alleged against him, he was
found guilty of heresy, and condemned to imprisonment for life.
Having left the court he was attended by a priest, who had borne him
the greatest respect. On his arrival at the prison, he entered the cell
with great tranquillity; and on taking leave of the priest thus addressed
him: " Adieu, father; we shall meet again at the day of judgment, and
then it will appear on which side the truth is, whether on mine or on
yours." While in confinement he was several times tortured in the
most cruel manner, till at length the severity of the punishments over-
powered his strength and his existence. His followers were so affected
by his melancholy dissolution, that the greater part of them soon ab-
jured his principles; and by the assiduity of the Jesuits, Quietism was
totally extirpated.
SECTION IX.
ACCOUNT OF THE MARTYRDOM OF JOHN CALAS, OF TOULOUSE IN
THE YEAR 1761.
By this interesting story, the truth of which is not only certified in
historical records, but the event is still fresh in the memory of several
persons, natives of Toulouse, we have ample proofs, if any were requi-
site, that the abominable spirit of popish persecution will always prevail
wherever that religion has an ascendency. The shocking act took place
in a polished age ; and hence it proves, that neither experience nor im-
provement can root out the inveterate prejudices of the Roman catholics,
or render them less cruel, or exorable, to the protestants.
John Calas was a merchant, of the city of Toulouse, where he
had settled and lived in good repute : he had married an English
woman of French extraction. He and his wife were both protestants,
and had five sons whom they educated in the same religion ; but Lewis,
one of the sons, became a Roman catholic, having been converted by a
popish servant, who had lived in the family above thirty years. The
father, however, did not express any resentment on the occasion, but
kept the servant in the family, and settled an annuity upon the son. In
October 1761, the family consisted of John Calas and his wife, one
woman servant, Mark Anthony Calas the eldest son, and Peter Calas
ACCOUNT OF JOHN CALAS. 273
the second son. Mark Anthony was bred to the law, but could not be
admitted to practice, on account of being- a protestant : hence he grew
melancholy, read all the books which he could procure relative to suicide,
and seemed determined to destroy himself. To this may be added, that
he led a dissipated life, was greatly addicted to gaming, and did all
which could constitute the character of a libertine. On this account
his father frequently reprehended him, and sometimes in terms of seventy,
which considerably added to the gloom that seemed to oppress him.
M. Gober La Vaisse, a young gentleman about nineteen years of age,
the son of La Vaisse, a celebrated advocate of Toulouse, having been
some time at Bourdeaux, came back to Toulouse to see his father on
the 13th of October 1761 ; but finding that he was gone to his country-
house, at some distance from the city, he went to several places endea-
vouring to hire a horse to carry him thither. No horse, however, was
to be obtained ; and about five o'clock in the evening he was met by
John Calas the father, and the eldest son Mark Anthony, who was his
friend. Calas, the father, invited him to supper, as he could not set
out for his father's that night, and La Vaisse consented. All three,
therefore, proceeded to the house together, and when they came thither,
finding that Mrs. Calas was still in her own room, which she had not
quitted that day, La Vaisse went up to see her. After the first compli-
ments, he told her he was to sup with her by her husband's invitation,
at which she expressed her satisfaction, and a few minutes after left him,
to give orders to her maid. When that was done, she went to look for
her son Anthony, whom she found sitting alone in the shop, very pensive :
she gave him some money, and desired him to go and buy some Roche-
fort cheese, as he was a better judge of its quality than any other person
in the family. She then returned to her guest La Vaisse, who very soon
after went again to the livery stable, to see if any horse was come in,
that he might secure it for the next morning.
In a short time Anthony returned, having bought the cheese, and La
Vaisse also coming back about the same time, the family and their guest
sat down to supper, in a room up one pair of stairs; the whole company
consisting of Calas the father and his wife, Anthony and Peter Calas
the sons, and La Vaisse the guest; no other person being in the house,
except the maid-servant, who has been mentioned already. This was
about seven o'clock : the supper was not long ; but before it was over,
or, according to the French expression, " when they came to the des-
sert," Anthony left the table, and went into the kitchen, which was on
the same floor, as he was accustomed. The maid asked him if he was
cold ? He answered, " Quite the contrary, I burn ;" and then left her.
In the mean time his friend and family left the room they had supped
in, and went into a bed-chamber : the father and La Vaisse sat down
together on a sofa ; the younger son Peter in an elbow chair ; and the
mother in another chair ; and without making any enquiry after Anthony,
continued in conversation together till between nine and ten o'clock,
when La Vaisse took his leave, and Peter, who had fallen asleep, was
awakened to attend him to the door.
There was on the ground floor of the house a shop and a warehouse ;
which were divided from each other by a pair of folding-doors. When
T
274 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Peter Calas and La Vaisse came down stairs into the shop, they were
extremely shocked to see Anthony hanging in his shirt, from a bar
which he had laid across the top of the two folding-doors, having half
opened them for that purpose. On discovering this horrid spectacle,
they shrieked out, which brought down Calas the father, the mother
being seized with a terror which kept her trembling in the passage above.
The unhappy old man rushed forward, and taking the body in his arms,
the bar, to which the rope that suspended him was fastened, slipped off
from the folding door of the warehouse, and fell down. Having placed
the body on the ground, he loosed and took off the cord in an agony of
grief and anguish not to be expressed, weeping, trembling, and deplor-
ing himself and his child. The two young men, his second son and La
Vaisse, who had not had presence of mind to attempt taking down the
body, were standing by, confounded with amazement and horror.
Meanwhile the mother, hearing the confused cries and complaints of her
husband, and finding no one come to her, summoned resolution to go
down stairs. At the bottom she saw La Vaisse, and hastily demanded
what was the matter. This question roused Calas in a moment, and
instead of answering her, he urged her to return to her room, to which,
with much reluctance, she consented ; but the conflict of her mind being
such as could not be long borne, she sent down the maid to know what
was the matter. When the maid discovered what had happened, she
continued below, either because she feared to carry an account of it to
her mistress, or because she busied herself in doing some good office to
her master, who was still embracing the body of his son, and bathing it
with his tears. The mother again went down and mixed in the scene,
with such emotions as it must naturally produce. In the mean time
Peter had sent for La Moire, a surgeon in the neighbourhood. La Moire
was not at home, but his apprentice, named Grosse, came instantly.
Upon examination, he found the body quite dead ; and on taking off
the neckcloth, which was of black taffata, he saw the mark of the cord,
and immediately pronounced that the deceased had been strangled.
This particular had not been told, for the poor old man, when Peter was
going for La Moire, cried out, " Save at least the honour of my family;
do not go and spread a report that your brother has made away with
himself."
A crowd of people was by this time gathered about the house, and
one Casing, with another friend or two of the family, had come in.
Some of those who were in the street had heard the cries and exclama-
tions of the father, the mother, the brother, and his friend, before they
knew what was the matter ; and having by some means heard that
Anthony Calas was suddenly dead, and that the surgeon, who had ex-
amined the body, declared he had been strangled, they took it into their
heads he had been murdered; and as the family were protestants, they
presently supposed that the young man was about to change his religion,
and had been put to death for that reason. The cries they had heard
they fancied were those of the deceased, while he was resisting the vio-
lence that was offered him. The tumult in the street increased every
moment: some said that Anthony Calas was to have abjured the next
day; others, that protestants are bound by their religion to strangle
ACCOUNT OF JOHN CALAS AND HIS SON. 275
their children when they are inclined to become catholics; others, who
had found out that La Vaisse was in the house when the accident hap-
pened, confidently affirmed that the protestants, at their last assembly,
appointed a person to be their common executioner upon these occasions
and that La Vaisse was the man, who, in consequence of the office to
which he had been appointed, had come to the house of Calas to hang
his son.
The poor father, overwhelmed with grief for the loss of his child,
was advised by his friends to send for the officers of justice to prevent
his being torn to pieces by the multitude, who supposed that he had
murdered him. This was accordingly done : a messenger was dispatched
to the first magistrate of the place, and another to an inferior officer
called an assessor. The first had already set out, having been alarmed
by the rumour of a murder before the messenger got to the house. He
entered with forty soldiers, took the father, Peter the son, the mother,
La Vaisse, and the maid, all into custody, and set a guard over them.
He sent for M. de la Tour, a physician, and M. la Marque and Perronet,
surgeons, who examined the body for marks of violence, but found none
except the mark of the ligature on the neck : they found also the hair
of the deceased done up in the usual manner, perfectly smooth, and
without the least disorder ; his clothes were also regularly folded up,
and laid upon the counter, nor was his shirt either unbuttoned or torn.
The chief magistrate, notwithstanding these appearances, thought
proper to agree with the opinion of the mob, and took it into his head
that old Calas had sent for La Vaisse, telling him he had a son to be
strangled ; that La Vaisse had come to perform the office of executioner ;
and that he had received assistance from the father and brother. On
account of these notions the magistrate ordered the body of the deceased
to be carried to the town-house, with the clothes. The father and son
were thrown into a dark dungeon ; and the mother, La Vaisse, the maid
and Casing, were imprisoned in one that admitted the light. The next
day, what is called the process verbal was taken at the town-house,
instead of the spot where the body was found, as the law directs ; but
was dated at Calas's house to conceal the irregularity. This process
is somewhat like the coroner's inquest in England : witnesses are exa-
mined, and the magistrate makes his report, which is the same there as the
verdict of the coroner's jury here. The witnesses examined were the
physician and surgeon, who proved Anthony Calas to have been strang-
led. The surgeon having been ordered to examine the stomach of the
deceased, deposed that the food which was found there had been taken
four hours before his death. Finding that no proof of the murder could
be procured, the magistrate had recourse to a monitory, or general in-
formation, in which the crime was taken for granted, and all persons
were required to give such testimony against it as they were able, par-
ticularizing the points to which they were to speak. The recital was
that La Vaisse was commissioned by the protestants to be their executioner
in ordinary, when any of their children were to be put to death for
changing their religion : it said also, that when the protestants thus kill
their children, they compel them to kneel, and one of the interroga-
tories was, whether any person had seen Anthony Calas kneel before his
276 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
father when he strangled him : it added that Anthony Calas died a
Roman catholic, and required evidence of his Catholicism.
These ridiculous opinions being adopted and published by the princi-
pal magistrate of a considerable city, the church of Geneva thought
itself obliged to send an attestation of its abhorrence of opinions so
abominable and absurd, and of its astonishment that the family, or any
protestants, should be suspected of such opinions by persons whose rank
and office required them to have more knowledge and better judgment.
However, before this monitory was published, the mob had got a
notion, that Anthonv Calas was the next day to have entered into the
fraternity of the White Penitents. The magistrate immediately adopted
this opinion without the least examination, and ordered Anthony's body
to be buried in the middle of St. Stephen's church, which was accord-
ingly done ; forty priests, and all the white penitents, assisting in the
funeral procession.
A short time after the interment of the deceased, the white penitents
performed a solemn service for him in their chapel : the church was hung
with white, and a tomb was raised in the centre, on the top of which
was placed a human skeleton, holding in one hand a paper, on which
was written, "Abjuration of heresy," and in the other a palm, the
emblem of martyrdom. The Franciscans performed a service of the
same kind for him the next day; and it is easy to imagine how much
the minds of the people were inflamed by this strange folly of their
magistrates and priests.
The magistrates continued the prosecution with unrelenting severity;
and though the grief and distraction of the family, when he first came
to the house, were alone sufficient to have convinced any reasonable
being that they were not the authors of the event which they deplored,
yet having publicly attested that they were guilty in his monitory, with-
out proof, and no proof coming in, he thought fit to condemn the un-
happy father, mother, brother, friend, and servant, to the torture, and
put them all into irons on the 18th of November. Casing was enlarged
upon evidence that he was not in Calas's house till after Anthony was
dead. From these dreadful proceedings the sufferers appealed to the
parliament, which immediately took cognizance of the affair, and annulled
the sentence of the magistrate as irregular ; but the prosecution still
continued.
So soon as the trial came on, the public executioner, who had been
taken to Calas's house, and shewn the folding-doors and the bar, deposed
that it was impossible Anthony should have hanged himself as was de-
clared. Another witness swore, that he looked through the key-hole of
the door into a room, where he saw men running hastily to and fro.
A third swore, that his wife had told him a woman named Maundril
had told her, that a certain woman unknown had asserted she heard
the cries of Anthony Calas at the further end of the city. From this
ridiculous evidence the majority of the parliament were of opinion that
the prisoners were guilty, and therefore ordered them to be tried by the
criminal court of Toulouse.
There was among those who presided at the trial one La Borde, who
had zealously opposed the popular prejudices; and though it was mani-
MARTYRDOM OF JOHN CALAS. 277
lost to demonstration that the prisoners were either all innocent or all
guilty, he voted that the father should first suffer the torture, ordinary
and extraordinary, to discover his accomplices, and be then broken alive
upon the wheel ; to receive the last stroke when he had endured two
hours, and then to be burnt to ashes. In this opinion he had the con-
currence of six others; three were for the torture alone; two were of
opinion that they should endeavour to ascertain upon the spot whether
Anthony could hang- himself or not; and one voted to acquit the pri-
soner. After long debate the majority were for the torture and wheel,
and probably condemned the father by way of experiment, to know
whether he was guilty or not, hoping he would in the agony confess the
crime, and accuse the other prisoners, whose fate remained suspended.
It is, however, certain that if they had evidence against the father to
justify the sentence pronounced against him, that very evidence would
have justified the same sentence against the rest; and that they could
not righteously condemn him, as the rest were in the house toge-
ther when Anthony died. All concurred in declaring he hanged
himself, that the persons accused could have had no motive to do such
an act, nor could one have put him to death by violence without the
knowledge of the rest.
However, poor Calas, who was sixty-eight years of age, was con-
demned to this dreadful punishment alone. He suffered the torture with
great constancy, and was led to execution in a frame of mind which
excited the admiration of all who saw him. Father Bourges and father
Coldagues, the two Dominicans, who attended him in his last moments,
wished their latter end might be like his, and declared that they thought
him, not only wholly innocent of the crime laid to his charge, but an
exemplary instance of true christian patience, charity, and fortitude.
He gave but a single shriek, and that not very violent, when he re-
ceived the first stroke; after that he uttered no complaint. Being at
length placed on the wheel, to wait for the moment which was to end
his life and his misery together, he expressed himself with an humble
hope of a happy immortality, and a compassionate regard for the judges
who had condemned him. When he saw the executioner prepared to
give him the last stroke, he made a fresh declaration of his innocence
to father Bourges; but while the words were yet in his mouth, the
magistrate, the author of this catastrophe, and who came upon the
scaffold to gratify his desire of being a witness to the punishment and
death, ran up to him and bawled out, " Wretch, there are the fagots
which are to reduce your body to ashes; speak the truth." M. Calas
made no reply, but turned his head a little aside, and that moment the
executioner did his office. Donat Calas, a boy of fifteen years of age,
and the youngest son of the unfortunate victim, was apprenticed to a
merchant at Nismes, when he heard of the dreadful punishment by
which seven prejudiced judges of Toulouse had put his worthy father
to death. He was an amiable and serious youth, and nothing could
exceed his grief at the event, except the resignation he evinced on
finding with what innocence as well as fortitude his holy parent suffered
death.
So violent was the popular outcry against this family in Languedoc,
278 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
that every one expected to see the children broke upon the wheel, and
the mother burnt alive. Even the attorney-general expected it. So
weak, it is said, had been the defence made by this innocent family,
oppressed by misfortunes, and terrified at the sight of lighted piles, racks,
and wheels. Donat Calas was made to dread sharing the fate of the
rest of his family, and advised to fly into Switzerland: he found a gen-
tleman who at first could only pity and relieve him, without daring to
judge of the rigour exercised against his parents and brothers, Shortly
after, one of the brothers, who was only banished, likewise threw himself
into the arms of the same person, who, for more than a month, took
every possible precaution to be assured of the innocence of this family.
When he was once convinced, he thought himself obliged in conscience
to employ his friends, his purse, his pen, and his credit, to repair the
fatal mistake of the seven judges of Toulouse, and to have the pro-
ceedings revised by the king's counsel. The revision lasted three years,
and it is well known what honour Messrs. de Gaosne and Baquancourt
acquired by defending and reporting this memorable cause. Fifty masters
of the Court of Requests unanimously declared the whole family of
Calas innocent, and recommended them to the benevolent justice of his
majesty. The duke de Choiseul, who never let slip an opportunity of
signalizing the greatness of his character, not only assisted them with
money, but obtained for them a gratuity of 36,000 livres from the king.
The arret which justified the family of Calas, and changed their fate,
was signed on the 9th of March 1765. The 9th of March 1762^ was
the day on which the innocent and virtuous father of that family had
been executed. All Paris ran in crowds to see the family come out of
prison, and clapped their hands for joy, while the tears streamed down
their cheeks. Such a scene had never before been witnessed. There
are some few aged persons now living in the south of France who were
spectators, when children, of the sight, and it is a subject on which they
love to discourse, and on which they are more eloquent than on any
other.
%' Lt may be proper here to add that the chief contents of the following book — Book
IX. — are to be attributed, not to Fox, or to any who assisted him in his original compila-
tion, or who edited the early republications of his work. They are the compilation of the
editor of the edition of 1806 — the Rev. J. Milner, who acknowledges to have " prepared
them from the works of Dr. Burnet and numerous other learned writers on Ecclesiastical
History." To the editor of the present edition, however, they are indebted for the cor-
rectness with which they now appear, and for several interesting additions the reader will
observe them to have received.
279
BOOK IX.
Containing a History of the Reformation, and the circumstances which preceded it, fro^i
the time of Wicklifie to the reign of Mary, including a summary of events connected
with Christian Martyrdom, previous and subsequent to the reign of William the
Conqueror.
SECTION I.
PARTICULARS OF THE ASCENDANCY OF THE POPES THROUGHOUT CHRIS-
TENDOM, FROM THE TIME OF WILLIAM THE CONQUEROR, TO THAT OF
WICKLIFFE.
In a preceding part of our volume we traced the influence of popery
over the continent and in our own kingdom, down to the reign of the
vicious and monkish king Edgar, who was so great a patron of the re-
ligion of the popes, that he is said to have built as many monasteries
for them as there are Sundays in the year. Ediner reports that they
were forty-eight in number ; but perhaps he does not include the nun-
neries. It is certain that from this period till the reformation was at-
tempted by Wickliffe, the abominations of these arch and unchristian
rulers increased with rapid strides, till at length all the sovereigns of
Europe were compelled to do them the most servile homage. It was
in the reign of Edgar that monks were first made spiritual ministers,
though contrary to the old decrees and customs of the church, and in
the time of this sovereign they were allowed to marry, there being no
law forbidding them to do so till the reign of pope Hildebrand, other-
wise called Gregory VII.
There are many curious facts relating to king Edgar, mentioned by the
early writers, some of which we shall quote, because they are not to be
found in our principal, if in any of our histories of England. He was the
successor of Alfred, and though he imitated that great sovereign in some
praise-worthy actions, yet he committed many horrid crimes, which have
stained his name with infamy. His decree by which he compelled
Ludwallus, prince of Wales, to furnish 300 wolves as a yearly tribute,
is well known, by which, in the course of four years, the wolves were
exterminated from England, and he also set many other notable ex-
amples, which it would be well for all nations if modern princes were to
imitate. But in his religion he was superstitious to the greatest degree,
and consequently cruel to those towards whom he had any dislike or
antipathy. William of Malmsbury, and various other writers, report of
him that about the thirteenth year of his reign, being at Chester, eight
petty or under kings came and did homage to him. The first was the
king of Scots, called Kinadius, Macolinus of Cumberland, Muckus or
Mascusinus king of Monia and other Islands, and the kings of Wales,
the names of whom were Dunewaldus, Sifresh, Huwall, Jacob, Ulkell,
and Juchel. All these, after they had given their fidelity to Edgar, the
280 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
next day entered with him on the river Dee; where sitting in a boat, he
took the helm, and caused the eight kings to row him up and down the
river, to and from the church of St. John, to his palace, in token that
he was master and lord of so many provinces ; and on this occasion he
is reported to have said, " Tunc demum posse successor es suos gloriari, se
Reges Anglice esse, cum tanta prcerogativa honorum fruerentur." Un-
doubtedly he would have spoken much better, had he said with St.
Paul, " Absit mihi gloriari, nisi in Cruce Domini nostri Jesu Christi."
To trace the numerous disgusting innovations upon the religion of
Christ, during the space of three hundred years and upwards, or rather
from the time of king Edgar to the appearance of WicklifTe, would be
the province of a writer on church history, besides which, it would be
incompatible with our limits. Suffice it to say, that there was scarcely
a war or civil broil in which this country was engaged, which did not
originate in the artifices of popes, monks, and friars. It is true that
they sometimes fell victims to their own machinations; for, from the
year 1004, many popes were successively poisoned. Several died un-
natural deaths: for example, pope Sylvester was cut to pieces by his
own people, through the superstitious fears he had impressed upon their
minds. Several of his successors used all manner of infamous means to
gain the ascendancy, and their reigns were but short. Pope Benedict,
who succeeded John XXI. thought proper to resist the emperor Henry III.
the son of Conrad, and place in his room Peter, king of Hungary; but
afterwards being alarmed lest Henry should prevail in battle, he sold
his seat to Gratianus, called Gregory VI., for 1500/. At this time there
were three popes in Rome, all striving against each other for the supreme
power, viz. Benedict IX. Sylvester III. and Gregory VI. On which
Henry, the emperor, coming to that city, displaced the three at once,
and appointed Clement the second, enacting that there should no bishop
of Rome henceforth be chosen but by the consent and confirmation
of his imperial law. Though this law was both agreeable and neces-
sary for public tranquillity, yet the cardinals would not suffer it long to
stand, but strove to subvert it by subtlety and open violence. In the
time of Clement, the Romans made an oath to the emperor concerning
the election of the bishops, to intermeddle no farther, but as the assent
of the emperor should go; but the emperor departing thence into
Germany again, they forgot their oath, and within nine months after
poisoned the bishop. This fact, some impute to Stephen his successor,
called Damasus II. Some impute it to Brazutus, who is reported by
some historians to have poisoned six popes, viz. Clement II. Damasus II.
Leo IX. Victor II. Stephen IX. and Nicholas II.
Clement was succeeded by Damasus II. neither by consent of the
people, nor of the emperor, but by force and invasion ; and he also
within twenty-three days being poisoned, much contention and striving
began in Rome about the papal seat. Whereupon the Romans, through
the counsel of the cardinals, sent to the emperor desiring him to give
them a bishop. He gave them one whose name was Bruno, an Alman,
and bishop of Cullen, afterwards called Leo IX. This pope was
poisoned by Brazutus, in the first year of his popedom. After his
death Theophylactus made an effort to be pope, but Hildebrand, to
PAPAL EXCOiMMUNICATIONS. 281
defeat him, went to the emperor, and pnrsuaded him to assign another
bishop, a German, who ascended the papal chair under the title of
Victor II. The second year of his papacy, or little more, he also fol-
lowed his predecessors, being poisoned by Brazutus, through the insti-
tution of Hildebrand and his master.
.U this time the church and the clergy of Rome began to wrest from
the emperor's hands the election of the pope; electing Stephen IX.
contrary to their oath, and the emperor's assignment. From this period,
indeed, their ascendancy was so great, that the most powerful sovereigns
of Europe were obliged to do them homage, and it was in the time of
pope Nicholas, who succeeded Stephen, A. D. 1059, that the synod of
Sutrium was broken up by this pope, who came to Rome and established
the dreaded Concilium Lateranum, or Council of the Lateran. In this
council was first promulgated the terrible sentence of excommunication
mentioned in the decrees, and beginning In nomine Domini nostri. The
effect was that he undermined the emperor's jurisdiction, and transferred
to a few cardinals, and certain catholic persons, the full authority of
filling the pontiff chair. Then, against all such as crept into the seal
of Peter by money, or favour, without the full consent of the cardinals,
he thundered terrible blasts of excommunication, accursing them and
their children with the anger of Almighty God; giving authority and
power to cardinals, w 7 ith the clergy and laity, to depose all such persons,
and call a council-general, wheresoever they would, against them.
In the council of Lateran, under pope Nicholas II., Berengarius
Andegavensis, an archdeacon, was driven to the recantation of his doc-
trine, denying the real substance of Christ's holy body and blood to be
in the sacrament, otherwise than sacramentally and in mystery. In
the same council also was invented the doctrine and term of transub-
stantiation.
Nicholas however only reigned three years and a half, and then drank
of Brazutus's cup, like his predecessors. At the beginning of his reign
or somewhat before, about the year of our Lord 1057, Henry the fourth
•was made emperor, being but a child, and reigned fifty years ; but not
without great molestation and much disquietness ; for in the course of
time, when Hildebrand came to the popedom, he had the audacity to
excommunicate him, and absolve all his subjects from their oath of alle-
giance to him. On this all his nobles, through fear of the pope's curse,
deserted him ; and the emperor dreading the consequences that w^ould
ensue, though a brave man, found it necessary to make his submission.
He accordingly repaired to the city of Canosus, where the pope then
was, and went barefooted with his wife and child to the gate, where he
from morning to night, fasting all the day, most humbly desired absolu-
tion, craving to be let in to the bishop. But no ingress being given him
he continued three days together in his condition : at length answer came
that the pope's majesty had yet no leisure to talk with him. The emperor,
moved that he was not let into the city, patient and with an humble
mind stopped without the walls, with no little distress; for it was a sharp
winter, and the ground was frozen. At length his request was granted
through the entreating of Matilda, the pope's paramour, and of Arelaus,
earl of Sebaudia, and the abbot of Cluniak. On the fourth day being
282 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
let in, as a token of his repentance he yielded to the pope's hands his
crown, with all other imperial ornaments, and confessed himself unwor-
thy of the empire, if ever he did against the pope hereafter, as he had
done before, desiring for that time to be absolved and forgiven. The
pope answered that he would neither forgive him, nor release the bond
of his excommunication, but upon condition that he should be content
to stand to his arbitrement in the council, and to take such penance as he
should enjoin him ; also that he should be ready to appear in what place or
time the pope should appoint him. Moreover, that he, being content to
take the pope judge of his cause, should answer in the council to all
objections and accusations laid against him, and that he should never
seek any revenge; that he should stand to the pope's mind and pleasure
whether to have his kingdom restored, or to lose it. Finally, that before
the trial of his cause, he should neither use his kingly ornaments, sceptre
nor crown ; nor usurp authority to govern, nor exact any oath of alle-
giance from his subjects. These things being promised to the bishop by
an oath, and put in writing, the emperor was released from excommuni-
cation.
After the death of Hildebrand came pope Victor, who was set up by
Matilda and the duke of Normandy, with the faction and retinue of
Hildebrand. But his papal authority was brief, for being poisoned, it
is said in his chalice, he reigned only one year and a half. Notwith-
standing, the imitation and example of Hildebrand continued in them
that followed. And as the kings of Israel followed the steps of Jeroboam
till the time of their desolation ; so for the greatest part all popes fol-
lowed the steps and proceedings of Hildebrand, their spiritual Jeroboam,
in maintaining false worship, and chiefly in upholding the dignity of the
see against all rightful authority, and the lawful kingdom of Christ. In
the time of Victor began the order of the monks of the Charter-house,
through the means of one Hugo, bishop of Gracianople, and of Bruno,
bishop of Cologne.
In the time of pope Honorius the second, a christian preacher named
Arnulphus was martyred at Rome. Some say he was archbishop of
Lugdune, as Hugo, Platina, Sabellicus. Tritemius says he was a priest,
whose history, as he describes it, we will briefly give in English: —
About this time, in the days of Honorius the second, one Arnulphus,
a priest, a man zealous and of great devotion, and a worthy preacher, came
to Rome, and in his preaching rebuked the dissolute and lascivious loose-
ness and incontinency, avarice and immoderate pride of the clergy,
provoking all to follow Christ and his apostles rather in their poverty
and pureness of life. Thus this man was well accepted, and highly liked
of the nobility of Rome, for a true disciple of Christ; but by the car-
dinals and clergy he was no less hated than favoured by the other, inso-
much that privily in the night they took him and destroyed him. His
martyrdom is said to have been revealed to him before from God by an
angel, he being in the desert, when he was sent forth to preach ; where-
upon he said unto them publicly, " I know ye seek my life, and know
you will take me away privily : but why ? Because I preach to you the
truth, and blame your pride, stoutness, avarice, incontinency, with your
un measurable greediness in getting and heaping up riches ; therefore
KING JOHN RESIGNING HIS CROWN TO THE POPE S LEGATE.
SEE PACJE 283.
KING JOHN RESIGNING HIS CROWN. 283
you are displeased with me. I take heaven and earth to witness, that I
have preached unto you that which I was commanded of the Lord. But
you contemn me and your Creator, who by his only Son hath redeemed
you. And no marvel if you seek my death, being a sinful person,
preaching unto you the truth, when if St. Peter were here this day and
rebuked your vices which so multiply above all measure, you would not
spare him." And as he was expressing this, with a loud voice he said
moreover : " For my part I am not afraid to suffer death for the truth's
sake : but this I say unto you, that God will look upon your iniquities,
and will be revenged. You, being full of all impurity, play the blind
guides to the people committed unto you, leading them the way to hell."
Thus the hatred of the clergy being incensed against him for preaching
truth, they conspired against him, and laying wait for him, took him
and drowned him. Sabellicus and Platana say they hanged him.
We shall close our accounts of the ascendancy of the popes with one
more remarkable fact of history. In the time of pope Innocent, king
John of England, alarmed at the offence he had given to the see of
Rome, and fearful of the invasion which the infamy of that see had
excited against him, entreated for peace with the pope, and promised to
do whatever he should command him. On this the pope sent his legate
Pandulph to the king at Canterbury, where he waited their coming, and
on the 13th day of May the king received them, making them an oath,
" That of and for all things wherein he stood accursed, he would make
ample restitution and satisfaction ; and the lords and barons of England
who were with the king attending the legate sware in like manner, that
if the king would not accomplish in every thing the oath which he had
taken, then they would cause him to hold and confirm the same whether
he would or not."
Then the king himself submitted to the court of Rome and the pope,
and gave up his dominions and realms of England and Ireland from
him and from his heirs for evermore. With this condition, that the king
and his heirs should take again these dominions of the pope to farm,
paying for them yearly to the court of Rome 1000 marks of silver.
Then the king took the crown from his head, kneeling down in the pre-
sence of all his lords and barons of England to Pandulph, the pope's
chief legate, saying, " Here I resign the crown of the realm of England
to the pope's hands, Innocent the third, and put me wholly in his mercy
and ordinance." Then Pandulph took the crown of king John, and
kept it five days as a possession of the realms of England and Ireland.
This humiliating ceremony took place, some say at the Ewell monastery
between Canterbury and Dover; others, at the monastery of St. John,
then standing in all its glory at the extreme point of Dover, opposite
the coast of France. The latter is the more probable, as it was the
greater establishment ; and more likely from its situation and celebrity
to be chosen as the scene of this papal parade and disgraceful royal
resignation.
It was not to be expected that after this submission the king was
freed from popish influence; on the contrary, he was surrounded by
monks in the interest of foreign countries, who did every thing they
could to degrade and dishonour him. He died in the year 1216, after
284 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
an imbecile reign of eighteen years, and historians differ as to the man-
ner of his death, some asserting that he died of an inflammation, others
of a flux, while the fact generally believed is, that he was poisoned, as
we shall presently shew.
It is recorded in the chronicle of William Caxton, called Fructus
Temporum, that a monk named Simon, being much offended with a talk
that the king had at his table, concerning Ludovic the French king's
son, began to speculate how he most speedily might destroy him. First
he counselled with his abbot, shewing him the whole matter, and what
he was minded to do. He alleged for himself the prophecy of Caiaphas,
saying — " It is better that one^ man die, than all the people should
perish." " I am well contented," he added, "to lose my life, and so
become a martyr, that I may utterly destroy this tyrant." With that the
abbot wept for gladness, and much commended his fervent zeal. The
monk then being absolved by the abbot for doing this act, went secretly
into a garden near at hand, and finding there a venomous toad, he so
pricked him and pressed him with his pen -knife, that he made him vomit
all the poison that was within him. This done, he conveyed it into a
cup of wine, and with a smiling and flattering countenance said thus
to the king — " If it should like your princely majesty, here is such a cup
of wine as ye never drank better before in all your life-time : I trust
this draught shall make all England glad." With that the king drank
a great draught thereof, pledging him. The monk soon after went to
the farmery, and there is reported to have perished by a dreadful death.
However, he had continually from thenceforth three monks to sing mass
for his soul, confirmed by their general chapter.
The king within a short space after feeling great pain in his body,
asked for Simon the monk ; and answer was made that he had departed
this life. "Then God have mercy upon me," answered the king; " I
suspected as much, after he had said that all England should be glad."
In Gisburne, we find, that dissenting from others he says that the king
was poisoned with a dish of pears, which the monk had prepared for
him on purpose ; and asking the king whether he would taste of his
fruit, and being bid to bring them in, did so. At the bringing in where-
of the king doubting some poison, demanded of the monk what he had
brought. He said, some fruit, and that very good, the best that ever he
did taste. " Eat," said the king ; and he took one of the pears which
he knew, and did eat. Being bid to take another, he ate that also, and
so likewise a third. Then the king, refraining no longer, took one of
the other pears, and was poisoned.
Equally vindictive were the different popes towards the other christian
sovereigns of Europe, but particularly those of Germany, one of whom,
the valiant emperor Frederic, was compelled to submit to be stepped on
by the feet of pope Alexander, and dared not make any resistance. In
England, however, a spirit of resentment broke out in various reigns,
in consequence of the papal oppressions, which continued with more or
less violence till the exertions of the great WicklifFe, about whom we
shall speak in the following section. Previous, however, to this time,
there were several martyrdoms of religious men in England, though the
cruelties inflicted on them did not arise so much from their sacred cha-
ACCOUNT OF JOHN W1CKL1FFE. 28,0
meter, as from the political motives which caused the invasions and
insurrections. The massacre of the monks of Bangor, A. D. 856, was
a dreadful instance of barbarity under the Saxon government. These
monks were in most respects different from those who bear the name at
present. Though catholics, they were generally pious and holy men.
The Danes landing in different parts of Britain, both in England and
Scotland, in the eighth century, were at first repulsed ; but in A. D.
857, a party of them landed near Southampton, and not only robbed the
people, but murdered the clergy and burnt the churches. These bar-
barians penetrated into the centre of England, and took up their quarters
at Nottingham in 868 ; but the English, under their king Ethelfred,
drove them from those posts, and obliged them to retire into Northumber-
land. In the year 870, another body of these barbarians landed in
Norfolk, and engaged in battle with the English at Hertford. Victory
declared in favour of the pagans, who took Edmund king of the east
Angles prisoner, and after treating him with a thousand indignities,
transfixed his body with arrows, and then beheaded him. They burnt
many of the churches, and among the rest that belonging to the
Caldees at St. Andrew's, in Fifeshire, Scotland. The piety of this
order of men made them objects of abhorrence to the Danes, who,
wherever they went, singled out their priests for destruction, of whom
no less than 200 were massacred in Scotland. Similar scenes took
place in that part of Ireland now called Leinster; there the Danes mur-
dered and burnt the priests alive in their own churches; they carried
destruction wherever they went, sparing neither age nor sex ; but the
clergy were the most obnoxious to them, because they exposed their
idolatry, and persuaded the people to have nothing to do with them.
These Danish incursions and cruelties continued with greater or less
force till the conquest, when new scenes arrested the public attention,
and the pious ministers and members of the christian church had to
contend with new enemies
SECTION II.
HISTORY OF THE ENGLISH MARTYROLOGY AND REFORMATION, WITH AN
ACCOUNT OF WICKLIFFE AND HIS DOCTRINES.
The first serious attempts made in England towards the reformation
of the church, took place in the reign of Edward III. about A. D. 1350,
when the morning star of that glorious day arose in our hemisphere —
John Wickliffe. He was public reader of divinity in the university
of Oxford, and, by the learned of his day, was accounted most deeply
versed in theology and all kinds of philosophy. This even his adver-
saries allowed. Walden, his bitterest enemy, writing to pope Martin,
says, that he was astonished at his most strong arguments, with the
places of authority which he had gathered, with the vehemency and
force of his reasons. At his appearing, the greatest darkness pervaded
the church. Little but the name of Christ remained among the Chris-
tians, while his true and lively doctrine was as far unknown unto the
286 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
most part, as his name was common unto all men. As touching faith,
consolation, the end and use of the law, the office of Christ, of our
impotency and weakness, of the Holy Ghost, of the greatness and
strength of sin, of true works, grace, and free justification by faith,
wherein consisteth and resteth the sum and matter of our profession,
there was scarcely the mention of a word. Scripture, learning, and
divinity, were known but to a few, and in the schools only, and there it
was turned and converted almost entirely into sophistry. Instead of
Peter and Paul, men occupied their time in studying Aquinas and
Scotus, and the master of sentences. The world leaving and forsaking
the lively power of God's spiritual word and doctrine, was altogether
led and blinded with outward ceremonies and human traditions, wherein
the whole scope, in a manner, of all christian perfection did consist and
depend. In these was all the hope of obtaining salvation fully fixed:
hereunto all things were attributed. Scarcely any other thing was seen
in the temples or churches, taught or spoken of in sermons, or finally
intended or gone about in their whole life, but only heaping up of certain
shadowed ceremonies upon ceremonies; and the people were taught to
worship no other thing but that which they saw, and almost all they
saw they worshipped.
The christian faith was at that time counted none other thing but that
every man should know that Christ once suffered, that is to say, that all
men should know and understand that thing which the devils themselves
also knew. Hypocrisy was substituted for holiness. All men were so
addicted. to outward shews, that even they which professed the most ab-
solute and singular knowledge of the scriptures, scarcely understood
any other thing. And this did evidently appear, not only in the common
sort of doctors and teachers, but also in the very heads of the church ;
whose whole religion and piety consisted in observing days, meats, and
raiment, and such like rhetorical circumstances, as of place, time,
person, &c. Hence sprang so many sorts and fashions of vestures and
garments; so many differences of colours and meats, with so many
pilgrimages to several places, as though St. James at Compostella could
do that which Christ could not do at Canterbury; or else that God were
not of like power and strength in every place, or could not be found
but as being sought for by running hither and thither. Then the holiness
of the whole year was put off unto the Lent season. No country or
land was counted holy, but only Palestine, where Christ had walked
himself with his human feet. Such was the blindness of that time, that
men strove and fought for the material cross at Jerusalem, as it had
been for the chief strength of our faith. The Romish champions never
ceased, by writings, admonishing and counselling, yea, and by quarrel-
ling, to move and stir up princes to war and battle, even as though
the faith and belief of the gospel were of small force or little effect
without that wooden appendage. This was the cause of the expedition
of king Richard unto Jerusalem; who being taken in the journey, and
delivered unto the emperor, could scarcely be ransomed home again for
thirty thousand marks.
Wickliffe boldly published his belief with regard to the several arti-
cles of religion, in which he differed from the common doctrine. Pope
QUARRELS AMONGST THE POPES. 287
Gregory XL hearing this, condemned some of his tenets, and com-
manded the archbishop of Canterbury, and the bishop of London, to
oblige him to subscribe the condemnation of them; and in case of
refusal to summon him to Rome. This commission could not easily be
executed, WicklifFe having great friends, the chief of whom was John
of Gaunt, duke of Lancaster, who enjoyed very great power, and was
resolved to protect him. The archbishop holding a synod at St. Paul's,
WicklifFe appeared, accompanied by the duke of Lancaster and lord
Percy, marshal of England, when a dispute arising whether WicklifFe
should answer sitting or standing, the duke of Lancaster proceeded to
threats, and gave the bishop very hard words. The people present
thinking the bishop in danger, sided with him, so that the duke and the
earl- marshal thought it .prudent to retire, and to take WicklifFe with
them.
Soon after this an insurrection ensued, some incendiaries spreading
a report that the duke of Lancaster had persuaded the king to take
away the privileges of the city of London ; which fired the people to
such a degree that they broke open the Marshalsea, and freed all the
prisoners; and not contented with this, a number of them went to the
duke's palace in the Savoy, when missing his person, they plundered
his house, and dragged his armour and weapons through the streets.
For this outrage the duke of Lancaster caused the lord mayor and
aldermen to be turned out, imagining that they had not used their au-
thority to quell the mutineers. After this, the bishops meeting a second
time, WicklifFe explained to them his sentiments with regard to the
sacrament of the eucharist, in opposition to the belief of the Romanists;
for which the bishops only enjoined him silence, not daring at that time
to go to greater lengths.
A circumstance remarkably providential occurred at this period, which
greatly tended to facilitate the cause of truth. This was a wide schism
in the church of Rome. After the death of pope Gregory XL, who, in
the midst of his anxiety to crush WicklifFe and his doctrines, was re-
moved from his mortal career, the rise of the schism took place. Urban
VI., who succeeded to the papal chair, was so proud and insolent
to his cardinals, to dukes, princes, and queens, and so determined to
advance his nephews and kindred, to the injury of princes, that the
greatest number of his cardinals and courtiers gradually shrunk from
him, and set up another French pope against him, named Clement,
who reigned eleven years. After him Benedictus XIII. was elected,
who reigned twenty-six years. On the contrary side, Urban VI.
succeeded Boniface IX. Innocentius VIII. Gregory XII. Alexander V.
and John XIII. Concerning this miserable schism, it would require
another Iliad to comprehend in order all its circumstances and tragical
parts ; what trouble in the whole church, what parts taking in every
country, what apprehending and imprisoning of priests and prelates
taken by land and sea, and what shedding of blood followed in con-
quence. Otho, duke of Brunswick and prince of Tarentum, were taken
and murdered. Joan his wife, queen of Jerusalem and Sicilia, who
before had sent to pope Urban, in addition to other gifts at his corona-
tion, 40,000 ducats in pure gold, was by the said Urban committed to
288 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
prison, and there strangled. Cardinals were racked without mercy,
and tormented on gibbets, rather than instantly put to death. Battles
were fought between the two popes, whereof 5000 on the one side were
slain, besides the number of them which were taken prisoners. The
cardinals were beheaded on one day, after long torments. The bishop
of Aquilonensis, being suspected by pope Urban for not riding faster
with the pope, his horse not being good, was slain by the pope sending
his soldiers to cut him in pieces. Thus did these demons in human
form continue to torment one another for the space of thirty-nine years,
until the council of Constance somewhat appeased their wrath.
Wickliffe paid less regard to the injunctions of the bishops than to
his duty to God, continued to promulgate his doctrines, and gradually
to unveil the truth to the eyes of men. He wrote several works, which,
as may be supposed, gave great alarm and offence to the existing clergy.
But by the protection of the duke of Lancaster, he was secure from
their malice. He translated the Bible into English, which, amidst the
ignorance of the time, had the effect of the sun breaking forth in a
dark night. To this Bible he prefixed a bold preface, wherein he re-
flected on the bad lives of the clergy, and condemned the worship of
saints, images, and the corporeal presence of Christ in the sacrament:
but what offended his enemies most was, his exhorting all people to read
the Scriptures, in which testimonies against those corruptions appeared so
strongly, that the only way to prevent their being blazoned to the world
was not to permit the sacred writings to be translated or known.
About the same time fell a dissension in England between the people
and the nobility, which did not a little disturb the common-wealth. In
this tumult Simon of Sudbury, archbishop of Canterbury, was taken by
the people and beheaded. In his place succeeded William Courtenay,
who was no less diligent than his predecessor had been, in doing his
utmost to root out heretics. Notwithstanding this formidable opposition
Wickliffe's sect increased privily, and daily grew to greater force, until
the time that William Barton, vice-chancellor of Oxford, had the whole
rule of that university, who, calling together eight monastical doctors,
and four others, with the consent of the rest of his affinity, put the com-
mon seal of the university to an edict, declaring unto every man, and
threatening them under a grievous penalty, that none should hereafter
associate themselves with any of Wickliffe's favourers. Unto Wickliffe
himself he threatened the greater excommunication, and farther impri-
sonment, unless after three days canonical admonition or warning he
did repent and amend ; which when Wickliffe understood, forsaking
the pope and all the clergy, he thought to appeal unto the king : but
the duke of Lancaster interposing forbad him ; whereby, being beset
with troubles and vexations, as it were in the midst of the waves, he was
forced again to make confession of his doctrine ; in which confession,
to avoid the rigour of things, he by qualifying his assertions, mitigated
the severity he would otherwise have met with.
In consequence of Wickliffe's translation of the Bible and of his
preface, his followers greatly multiplied. Many of them, indeed, were
not men of learning ; but being wrought upon by the conviction of
plain reason, this determined them in their persuasion. In a short time
PERSECUTIONS OF WICKUFFE. 289
his doctrines made great progress, being not only espoused by vast
numbers of the students of Oxford, but also by the great men at court,
particularly by the duke of Lancaster and lord Percy, together with
several voting and well educated gentlemen. Hence Wickliffe may be
considered as the great founder of the reformation in this kingdom.
He was of Merton college in Oxford, where he took his doctor's
degree, and became so eminent for his fine genius and great learning,
that Simon Islip, archbishop of Canterbury, having founded Canterbury
college, now Christ Church, in Oxford, appointed him rector: which em-
ployment he filled with universal approbation, till the death of the arch-
bishop. Langhalm, successor to Islip, being desirous of favouring the
monks, and introducing them into the college, attempted to remove
Wickliffe, and to put one Woodhall, a monk, in his room. But the
fellows of the college would never consent to this, they loving their
old rector ; but this affair being afterwards carried to Rome, Wickliffe
was deprived in favour of Woodhall. However, this no ways lessened
the reputation of the reformer, every one perceiving it was a general
affair, and that the monks did not so much strike at Wickliffe's
person, as at all the secular priests who were members of the college.
And indeed, they were all turned out to make room for the monks.
Shortly after he was presented to the living of Lutterworth, in the
county of Leicester, and he there published, in his sermons and
writings, certain opinions, which were judged new, because con-
trary to the received doctrine of those days. It must be observed,
that his most bitter enemies never charged him with any immo-
rality. This great man was left in quiet at Lutterworth till his death,
which happened December 31, 1385. But after his body had lain in
the grave forty-one years, his bones were taken up by decree of the
synod of Constance, publicly burnt, and his ashes thrown into the river
near the town. This condemnation of his doctrine did not prevent its
spreading all over the kingdom, and with such success, that, according
to Spelman, two men could not be found together, and one not a Lollard
or Wickliffite.
The following are among the articles of Wickliffe which were condemned
as heretical: The substance of material bread and wine doth remain in
the sacrament of the altar after the consecration — The accidents do not
remain without the subjects in the same sacrament, after the consecra-
tion — Christ is not in the sacrament of the altar truly and really, in his
proper and corporeal person — If a bishop or a priest be in deadly sin,
he doth not ordain, consecrate, nor baptize — If a man be duly and truly
contrite and penitent, all exterior and outer confession is but superfluous
and unprofitable unto him — It is not found or established by the gospel
that Christ did make or ordain mass — If the pope be a reprobate and
evil man, and consequently a member of the devil, he hath no power by
any manner of means given unto him over faithful Christians — Since
the time of Urban VI. there is none to be received for pope, but
every man is to live after the manner of the Greeks, under his own law —
It is against the Scripture, that ecclesiastical ministers should have any
temporal possessions — No prelate ought to excommunicate any man ex-
cept he knew him first to be excommunicate of God — He who doth so
u
'290 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
excommunicate any man, is thereby himself either a heretic or excom-
municated — All such who leave off preaching or hearing the word
of God, or preaching of the gospel for fear of excommunication, they
are already excommunicated, and in the day of judgment shall be counted
as traitors unto God — It is lawful for any man, either deacon or priest,
to preach the word of God without authority or licence of the apostolic
see or any other of his catholics — So long as a man is in deadly sin, he
is neither bishop nor prelate in the church of God.
Wickliffe had written divers works, which in the year 1410 were
burnt at Oxford, the abbot of Shrewsbury being then commissary. And
not only in England, but in Bohemia likewise, his books were set on fire
by one Subinicus, archbishop of Prague, who made diligent inquisition
for all the reformer had written. The number of the volumes composed
and transcribed, said to have been destroyed, were most excellently and
richly adorned with bosses of gold, and embellished coverings, being
about the number of two hundred. But among all that he wrote no
piece is more interesting for its size than the following letter, which he
addressed to pope Urban VI. in the year 1382.
" Verily I do rejoice to open and declare unto every man the faith
which I do hold, and specially unto the bishop of Rome; the which
forasmuch as I do suppose to be sound and true, he will most willingly
confirm my said faith, or, if it be erroneous, amend the same.
" First, I suppose that the gospel of Christ is the whole body of God's
law ; and that Christ which did give that same law himself, I believe to
be a very man, and in that point, to exceed the law of the gospel, and
all other parts of the scripture. Again, I do give and hold the bishop
of Rome, forsomuch as he is the vicar of Christ here in earth, to be
bound most of all other men unto that law of the gospel. For the
greatness among Christ's disciples did not consist in worldly dignity or
honours, but in the near and exact following of Christ in his life and
manners : whereupon I do gather out of the heart of the law of the
Lord, that Christ for the time of his pilgrimage here was a most poor
man, abjecting and casting off all worldly rule and honour, as appeareth
by the gospel of St. Matthew, the eighth chapter, and the second of
the Corinthians, the eighth chapter.
" Hereby I do fully gather, that no faithful man ought to follow
either the pope himself, or any of the holy men, but in such points as
they have followed the Lord Jesus Christ. For Peter and the sons of
Zebedee, by desiring worldly honour, contrary to the following of Christ's
steps, did offend, and therefore in those errors they ought not to be
followed.
" Hereof I do gather, as a counsel, that the pope ought to leave unto
the secular power all temporal dominion and rule, and thereunto effec-
tually to move and exhort his whole clergy; for so did Christ, and
especially by his apostles. Wherefore if I have erred in any of these
points, I will most humbly submit myself unto correction, even by death
if necessity so require ; and if I could labour according to my will or
desire in mine own person, I would surely present myself before the
bishop of Rome ; but the Lord hath otherwise visited me to the contrary,
and hath taught me rather to obey God than man. Forsomuch then as
BURNING INTRODUCED^ 291
(rod hath given unto the pope just and true evangelical instinctions, we
ought to pray that they be not extinguished' by any subtle or crafty
device.
** And that the pope and cardinals be not moved to do any thing con-
trary unto the law of the Lord. Wherefore let us pray unto our
God, that lie will so stir up our pope Urban VI. as he began, that he
with Ii is clergy may follow the Lord Jesus Christ in life and manners ;
and that they may teach the people effectually ; and that they likewise
may faithfully follow them in the same. And let us specially pray, that
our pope may be preserved from all malign and evil counsel, which we
do know that evil and envious men of his household would give him.
And seeing the Lord will not suffer us to be tempted above our power,
much less then will he require of any creature to do that thing which
they are not able ; forsomuch as that is the plain condition and manner
of antichrist."
In the council of the Lateran, a decree was made with regard to
heretics, which required all magistrates to extirpate them upon pain of
forfeiture and deposition. The canons of this council being received in
England, the prosecution of heretics became a part of the common law;
and a writ, styled de heretico comburendo, was issued under king Henry
IV. for burning them upon their conviction ; after which special statutes
were made, which commenced under Richard II., about the year 1390.
The first made was assented to only by the lords ; but the king sanc-
tioned it without the concurrence of the commons. Yet the utmost
extent of the severity in this was, that writs should be issued to the
laws of the church. It appears that those heretics were, at this time,
very numerous, that they wore a peculiar habit, preached in churches
and many other places against the existing faith, aiid refused to pay
obedience to ecclesiastical censures.
On the accession of Henry IV. to the crown in 1399, as he owed it in
a great measure to the clergy, he passed an act against all who should
presume to preach without the bishop's licence, or against the established
church. It was enacted that all transgressors of this kind should be
imprisoned, and be brought to trial within three months. If upon con-
viction they offered to abjure, and were not relapsed, they were to be
imprisoned and fined at pleasure ; but if they refused to abjure, or were
relapsed, they were to be delivered over to the secular arm ; and the
magistrates were to burn them in some public place. About this time
William Sautre, parish priest of St. Osith in London, being condemned
as a relapse, and degraded by Arundel, archbishop of Canterbury, a
writ was issued, wherein burning is called the common punishment, and
referred to the customs of other nations. This was the first example of
that cruel punishment in this kingdom.
The clergy, alarmed lest the doctrines of Wickliffe should ultimately
become established, used every exertion in their power to check them.
In the reign of Richard II. the bishops obtained a general licence to
imprison heretics without being obliged to procure a special order from
court, which however the house of commons caused to be revoked. But
as the fear of imprisonment could not check the evil dreaded by the
bishops, Henry IV., whose particular object was to win the affection of the
clergy, earnestly recommended to parliament the concerns of the church.
292 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
How reluctant soever the house of commons might be to prosecute the
Lollards, the credit of the court, and the cabals of the clergy, at last
obtained a most detestable act, for burning obstinate heretics ; which
bloody statute was not repealed till the year 1677. It was immediately
after the passing of this statute that the ecclesiastical court condemned
William Sautre to the flames.
Notwithstanding the opposition of the popish clergy, Wickliffe's
doctrine continued to spread in Henry the IVth's reign, even to such a
degree, that the majority of the house of commons were inclined to it ;
whence they presented two petitions to the king, one against the clergy,
the other in favour of the Lollards. The first set forth, that the clergy
made ill use of their wealth, and consumed their income in a manner
quite different from the intent of the donors ; that their revenues were
excessive, and consequently it would be necessary to lessen them; that so
many estates might easily be seized as would provide for one hundred and
fifty earls at the rate of three thousand marks a year each, one thousand
five hundred barons at one hundred marks each, six thousand two hundred
knights at forty marks, and one hundred hospitals; that by this means
the safety of the kingdom might be better provided for, the poor better
maintained, and the clergy more devoted to their duty. In the second
petition the commons prayed, that the statute passed against the Lollards
in the second year of this reign might be repealed, or qualified with
some restrictions. As it was the king's interest to please the clergy, he
answered the commons very sharply, that he neither could nor would
consent to their petitions. And with regard to the Lollards, he declared
that he wished the heretics were extirpated out of the land. To prove
the truth of this, he signed a warrant for burning a man in humble life,
but of strong mind and sound piety, named Thomas Badly.
This individual was a layman, and by trade a tailor. He was arraigned
in the year 1409 before the bishop of Worcester, and convicted of
heresy. On his examination he said, that it was impossible any priest
could make the body of Christ sacramentally, nor would he believe it
unless he saw manifestly the corporeal body of the Lord to be handled
by the priest at the altar; that it was ridiculous to imagine that at the
supper, Christ held in his own hand his own body and divided it among
his disciples, and yet remaining whole. "I believe," said he, "the
Omnipotent God in trinity; but if every consecrated host at the altar
be Christ's body, there must then be in England no less than 20,000
gods." After this he was brought before the archbishop of Canterbury
at St. Paul's church, and again examined in presence of a great number
of bishops, the duke of York, and several of the first nobility. Great
pains were used to make him recant ; but he courageously answered
that he would still abide by his former opinions, which no power should
force him to forego. On this the archbishop of Canterbury ratified the
sentence given by the bishop of Worcester. When the king had signed
the warrant for his death, he was brought to Smithfield, 2 and there
z It will not be uninteresting to our city readers, to be informed, that that part of Smith-
field where a large board is erected, containing the laws and regulations of the cattle-
market, is the very spot on which our protestant forefathers suffered for the cause of Christ.
There many an English martyr's body mingled with dust, and from thence ascended many
a soul to inherit everlasting glory.
LAW AGAINST THE LOLLARDS. 293
being put into an empty tub, was bound with iron chains fastened to a
stake, and had dry wood piled around him. As he was thus standing
before the wood was lighted, it happened that the prince, the king's
eldest son, came near the spot; who acting the part of the good Sama-
ritan, began to endeavour to save the life of him whom the hypocritical
Levites and Pharisees sought to put to death. He admonished and
counselled him, that having respect to himself he should speedily with-
draw out of these dangerous labyrinths of opinions, adding oftentimes
threatenings, the which might have daunted any man. Also Courtenay,
at that time chancellor of Oxford, preached unto him, and urged upon
him the faith of the holy church.
In the mean time the prior of St. Bartholomew's, in Smithfield,
brought with all the solemnity the sacrament of Christ's body, with
twelve torches borne before, and shewed the host to the poor man at the
stake. He then demanded of him how he believed in it; he answered,
that he knew well it was hallowed bread, but not God's body. Then
was the tun put over him, and fire applied to it. On feeling the fire,
he cried, " Mercy!" — calling likewise upon the Lord — when the prince
immediately commanded to take away the tun, and quench the fire. He
then asked him if he would forsake heresy, and take the faith of holy
church, which, if he would do, he should have goods enough, promising
him also a yearly pension out of the king's treasury. But this valiant
champion of Christ, neglecting the prince's fair words, as also con-
temning all men's devices, refused the offer of worldly promises, being
more inflamed with the spirit of God, than with any earthly desire.
Wherefore, as he continued immoveable in his former mind, the prince
commanded him to be put again into the tun, and that he should not
afterward look for any grace or favour. As he could be allured by no
reward, so he was nothing at all abashed at their torments, but, as a
valiant soldier of Christ, he persevered invincibly till his body was re-
duced to ashes, and his soul rose triumphant unto God who gave it.
At the commencement of the reign of Henry V. about 1413, a pre-
tended conspiracy, evidently of priestly contrivance, was said to be
discovered of Sir John Oldcastle, and some others of the followers of
Wickliffe. Many of these were condemned, both for high treason and
heresy; they were first hanged, and afterwards burnt. A law followed,
enacting that all Lollards should forfeit their whole possessions in fee
simple, with their goods and chattels ; and all sheriffs and magistrates,
from the lord chancellor to the meanest officer, were required to take
an oath to destroy them and their heresies, and to assist the ordinaries
in the suppression of them. The clergy made an ill use of this law,
and vexed every one who any ways offended them, with imprisonment;
upon which the judges interposing, they examined the grounds of such
commitments, and, as they saw cause, either bailed or discharged the
prisoners; and took upon them to declare what opinions were heresies
by law, and what were not. Thus the people flew for protection to the
judges, and found more mercy from the common lawyers, than from
those who ought to have been the pastors of their souls.
The persecutions of the Lollards in the reign of Henry V. were
owing to the cruel instigations of the clergy, as that monarch was na-
turally averse to cruelty. It is supposed, that the chief cause of the
294 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
violent hatred which the clergy bore to the Lollards, was, that they had
endeavoured to strip them of part of their revenues. However this
might be, they thought that the most effectual way to check the progress
of Wickliffe's doctrine, would be to attack the then chief protector of
it, Sir John Oldcastle, baron of Cobham; and to persuade the king that
the Lollards were engaged in conspiracies to overturn the throne and
state. It was even reported that they intended to murder the king,
together with the princes his brothers, with most of the lords spiritual
and temporal, in hopes that the confusion which must necessarily arise
in the kingdom, after such a massacre, would prove favourable to their
religion. Upon this a false rumour was spread, that Sir John Oldcastle
had got together 20,000 men in St. Giles's in the Fields, a place then
overgrown with bushes. The king himself went thither at midnight,
and finding no more than fourscore or a hundred persons, who were
privately met upon a religious account, he fell upon them and killed
many, it is supposed before he knew of the purpose of their meeting.
Some of them being afterwards examined, were prevailed upon merely
by promises or threats, to confess whatever their enemies desired; and
these accused Sir John Oldcastle.
The king hereupon thought him guilty; and in that belief set a thou-
sand marks upon his head, with a promise of perpetual exemption from
taxes to any town which should secure him. Sir John was apprehended
and imprisoned in the Tower; but escaping from thence he fled into
Wales, where he long concealed himself. But being afterwards seized
in Powisland, in North Wales, by John Grey, Lord Powis, he was
brought to London, to the great joy of the clergy, who were highly in-
censed against him, and resolved to sacrifice him to strike a terror into
the rest of the Lollards. Sir John was of a very good family, had been
sheriff of Hertfordshire under Henry IV. and summoned to parliament
among the barons of the realm in that reign. He had been sent beyond
sea with the earl of Arundel, to assist the duke of Burgundy against
the French. In a word, he was a man of extraordinary merit, notwith-
standing which he was condemned to be hanged up by the waist with a
chain, and burnt alive. This most barbarous sentence was executed
amidst the curses and imprecations of the priests and monks, who used
their utmost endeavours to prevent the people from praying for him.
Such was the tragical end of Sir John Oldcastle, baron of Cobham,
who left the world with a resolution and constancy, which answered
perfectly to the brave spirit he had ever maintained in the cause of
truth and of his God. This was the first noble blood shed by popish
cruelty in England.
Not satisfied with his single death, the clergy got the parliament to
make fresh statutes against the Lollards : they never ceasing, with
amazing eagerness, to require their blood. It was enacted, among
other things, that whoever read the scriptures in English, should forfeit
land, chattels, goods, and life, and be condemned as heretics to God,
enemies to the crown, and traitors to the kingdom ; that they should
not have the benefit of any sanctuary ; and that, if they continued ob-
stinate, or relapsed after being pardoned, they should first be hanged
for treason against the king, and then burned for heresy against God.
sill J. OLDCASTLE'S CHELl). 295
The act was no sooner passed, than a violent persecution was raised
against the Lollards: several of them were burnt alive, some fled the
kingdom, and others abjured their religion, to escape the torments pre-
pared for them. From this picture of the horrid barbarities exercised
id those times, we may justly bless those we live in, when nothing of
that sort is practised, but when all are permitted to obey the dictates of
their own conscience, and openly profess their respective religions, pro-
vided they do not disturb the tranquillity of the kingdom. The most
likely means of preserving the nation in this security is for every cruel
statute to be expunged, and for the power and virtue of Christian
truth to be trusted with the sole defence of our orthodoxy and our
lives.
The following is the confession of the virtuous and Christian martyr
whose death we have just described; which, from its clearness and sim-
plicity, is well worthy of remembrance. He commences with the
apostle's creed.
" I believe in God the Father Almighty, maker of heaven and earth:
and in Jesus Christ his only Son our Lord, who was conceived by the
Holy Ghost, born of the virgin Mary, suffered under Pontius Pilate,
was crucified, dead, and buried, went down to hell, the third day arose
again from death, ascended up to Heaven, sitteth on the right hand of
God the Father Almighty; and from thence shall come again to judge
the quick and the dead. I believe in the Holy Ghost, the universal
holy church, the communion of saints, the forgiveness of sins, the up-
rising of the flesh, and everlasting life. Amen.
" For a more large declaration of this my faith in the catholic church,
I stedfastly believe, that there is but one God Almighty, in and of
whose godhead are these three persons, the Father, the Son, and the
Holy Ghost, and that those three persons are the self-same God Al-
mighty. I believe also, that the second person in this most blessed
trinity, in most convenient time appointed thereunto before, took flesh
and blood of the most blessed virgin Mary, for the safeguard and re-
demption of the universal kind of man, which was before lost in Adam's
offence. Moreover, I believe, that the same Jesus Christ our Lord, thus
being both God and man, is the only head of the whole christian church,
and that all those that have been or shall be saved, be members of this
most holy church. Whereof the first sort be now in Heaven, and they
are the saints from hence departed. These, as they were here conversant,
conformed always their lives to the most holy laws and pure examples
of Christ, renouncing Satan, the world, and the flesh, with all their
concupiscence and evils. The other sort are here upon earth, and called
the church militant. For day and night they contend against crafty
assaults of the devil, the flattering prosperities of the world, and the
rebellious filthiness of the flesh."
As touching the power and authority of the keys, the archbishops,
bishops, and other prelates, he said, that the pope is very antichrist,
that is, the head; that the archbishops, bishops, and other prelates, be
his members, and that the friars be his tail. The which pope, arch-
bishops, and bishops, a man ought not to obey, but so far forth as they
were followers of Christ and of Peter, in their life, manners, and con-
296 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
versation, and that he is the successor of Peter which is best and purest
in life and manners. " These men," said he, on his examination, to the
people who stood about him, " which judge and would condemn me,
will seduce you all and themselves, and will lead you unto hell ; there-
fore take heed of them."
SECTION III.
HISTORICAL ACCOUNT OF THE PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION
IN THE REIGN OF KING HENRY VIII.
The reader will, doubtless, attend to the transactions recorded in this
reign with peculiar interest. It was at this period that God, through
the instrumentality of the king, liberated our happy country from the
papal yoke, when England became an independent as well as pro-
testant kingdom, and the ascendancy of the papal power over this
island was preparing to be scattered to the four winds, never more to
be able to recover its settlement in a region so adverse to its character
and claims.
The wars between the houses of York and Lancaster had produced
such fatal revolutions, and cast England into such frequent convul-
sions, that the nation with great joy hailed the accession of Henry VII.
to the throne, who being himself descended from the house of Lancaster,
by his marriage with the heiress of the house of York, freed them from
the fear of any more wars by new pretenders. But the covetousness of
his temper, the severity of his ministers, his ill conduct in the matter of
Britagne, and his jealousy of the house of York, made him so generally
odious to his people, that his life was little respected, and his death as
little lamented. Henry VIII. succeeded, with all the advantages he
could have desired. His disgracing Empson and Dudley, the cruel
ministers of his father's designs for filling his coffers, his appointing re-
stitution to be made of the sums that had been unjustly exacted of the
people under covert of the king's prerogative, made the nation conclude
they should hereafter live secure, under the protection of such a prince,
and that the violent remedies of parliamentary judgments should be no
more necessary, except as in this case, to confirm what had been done
before in the ordinary courts of justice.
Either from the magnificence of his own temper, or the observation
he had made of the ill effects of his father's parsimony, the new king-
distributed his rewards and largesses with an unmeasured bounty ; so
that he quickly exhausted the two millions which his father had trea-
sured up, and emptied a coffer which he had left the fullest in Christen-
dom: but till the ill effects of this appeared, it raised in his court and
subjects the greatest hopes possible of a prince, whose first actions
shewed an equal mixture of justice and generosity.
The king had been educated with more than ordinary care: learning
being then in its dawning, after a night of long and gross ignorance,
his father had given orders that both his elder brother and he should be
well instructed ; not with any design to make him archbishop of Can-
EDUCATION OF HENRY VI II. 297
terbury, for lie bad made small progress in theological and ecclesiastical
lore, when his brother prince Arthur died, being' then but eleven years
old. The learning then most in credit among the clergy was the
scholastic divinity, which, by a shew of subtlety, recommended itself
to curious persons; and being very suitable to a vain and contentious
temper, agreed best with Henry's disposition. Further, being likely
to draw the most flattery, it became the chief subject of his studies, in
which he grew not only to be eminent for a prince, but he might really
have passed for a learned man had his quality been never so mean.
He delighted in the purity of the Latin tongue, understood philosophy,
and was so great a master in music that he composed better than many
professors of the art. He was a bountiful patron to all learned men,
more particularly to Erasmus and Polydore Virgil, and delighted much
in those returns which hungry scholars make to liberal princes; for he
loved flattery out of measure, and he had enough of it to have surfeited
a man of any modesty; for all the world, both at home and abroad,
contended who should exceed most indecently in setting out his praises.
The clergy carried it; for as he had merited most at their hands, both
by espousing the interests of the papacy, and by his entering the lists
with Luther,* so those that hoped to be advanced by these arts, were as
little ashamed in magnifying him out of measure, as he was in receiving
their gross commendations.
One of the most conspicuous men of this, or perhaps of any other
age, was Cardinal Wolsey. He was of mean extraction, but possessed
great parts, and had a wonderful dexterity in insinuating himself into
men's favours. He had but a little time been introduced to the king
before he obtained an entire ascendancy over him, and the direction of
all his affairs, and for fifteen years continued to be the most absolute
favourite ever known in England. He saw the king was much set on
his pleasures, and had a great aversion to business, and the other coun-
sellors being unwilling to bear the load of affairs, were unwelcome to
him, by pressing the king to govern by his own counsels; but he knew
the methods of favourites better, and so was not only easy, but assistant
to the king in his pleasures, and undertook to free him from the trouble
of government, and to give him leisure to follow his appetites. This
was the chief cause of that unbounded influence which Wolsey so soon
acquired over a sovereign quite as ambitious as himself. The accidental
circumstance of another and baser passion predominating in the king's
heart over pure ambition, gave the crafty Wolsey an opening, which he
did not for a moment neglect, of entering on a career which in different
directions gratified equally both minister and monarch.
Wolsey soon became master of all the offices at home and treaties
abroad, so that all affairs went as he directed them. He it seems became
soon obnoxious to parliaments, and therefore tried but one during his
ministry, where the supply was granted so scantily, that afterwards he
a It was for his writing against Luther, in defence of papacy, that the pope bestowed
upon him the title of Defender of the Faith, which the British monarchs have, ab-
surdly enough, retained to this day. Nothing can be said against the kingly office being
" set for the defence of the gospel ;" but to call a man, whatever be his infidelity and im-
morality, by this name, is indeed a monstrous anomaly.
298 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
chose rather to raise money by loans and benevolences, than by the free
gift of the people in parliament. He in time became so scandalous for
his ill life, that he grew to be a disgrace to his profession; for he not
only served the king, but also shared with him in his pleasures, and
became a prey to distempers of a sensual life. He was first made bishop
of Tournay in Flanders, then of Lincoln, after that he was promoted to
the see of York, and had both the abbey of St. Albans and the
bishopric of Bath and Wells in commendam ; the last he afterwards
exchanged for Durham, and upon Fox's death, he quitted Durham that
he might take Winchester; and besides all this, the king by a special
grant, gave him power to dispose of all the ecclesiastical preferments in
England ; so that in effect he was the pope of this reforming country,
as was said anciently of an archbishop of Canterbury, and no doubt
but he copied skilfully enough those patterns that were set him at Rome.
Being made a cardinal, and setting up a legatine court, he found it
fit for his ambition to have the great seal likewise, that there might be
no clashing between those two jurisdictions. He had, in one word, all
the qualities necessary for a great minister, and all the vices common
to a great favourite.
The manner of promotion to bishoprics and abbeys was then the same
that had taken place ever since the investitures by the ring and staff
were taken out of the hands of princes. Upon a vacancy the king seized
on all the temporalities, and granted a licence for an election, with a
special recommendation of the person; which being returned, the royal
assent was given, and it was sent to Rome, that bulls might be issued,
and then the bishop elect was consecrated: after that he came to the
king and renounced every clause in the bulls that was contrary to the
king's prerogative, or to the law, and swore fealty; and then were the
temporalities restored. Nor could bulls be sued out at Rome without a
licence under the great seal ; so that the kings of England had reserved
the power to themselves of promoting to ecclesiastical benefices, not-
withstanding all the invasions the popes had made on their temporal
authority.
The immunity of churchmen for crimes committed by them, till they
were first degraded by the spirituality, occasioned the only contest that
occurred in the beginning of this reign between the secular and eccle-
siastical courts. Henry VII. had passed a law, that convicted clerks
should be burnt in the hand. A temporary law was also made in the
beginning of his reign, that murderers and robbers, not being bishops,
priests, nor deacons, should be denied the benefit of the clergy : but
this was to last only to the next parliament, and so being not continued
by it, the act determined. The abbot of Winchelsea preached severely
against it, as being contrary to the laws of God, and the liberties of the
holy church, and said that all who assented to it had fallen under eccle-
siastical censure. Afterwards he published a book to prove that all
clerks, even of the lower orders, were sacred, and could not be judged
by the temporal courts. This being done in parliament, the temporal
lords and the commons addressed the king, desiring him to repress the
insolence of the clergy. Accordingly a public hearing was appointed
before his majesty and all the judges. Dr. Standish, a Franciscan,
Ill \\l. IMPRISONED AND BURNT. 299
argued against the immunity, and proved that the judging clerks had
in all times been practised in England ; and that it was necessary for the
peace and safety of mankind that all criminals should be punished.
The abbot argued on the other side and said, it was contrary to a decree
ot' the church, and was a sin in itself. Standish answered, that all
decrees were not observed: for notwithstanding the decree for residence,
bishops did not reside at their cathedrals. And since no decree was
binding till it was received, this concerning immunity, which was never re-
ceived in England, did not bind. After they had fully argued the matter,
the laity were of opinion that the friar had the best of the argument;
and therefore moved the king that the bishops might be ordered to make
him preach a recantation sermon. But they refused to do it, and said
they were bound by their oaths to maintain his opinion. Standish was
upon this much hated by the clergy, but the matter was allowed to fall;
yet the clergy carried the point, for the law was not continued.
Not long after this, an accident occurred that drew great consequences
after it. Richard Hunne, a merchant in London, was sued by his parish
priest for a mortuary in the legate's court; on this, his friends advised
him to sue the priest in the temporal court for a praemunire for bringing
the king's subjects before a foreign and illegal bar. This incensed the
clergy so much that they contrived his destruction. Accordingly, hear-
ing that he had WicklifFe's Bible in his house, he was upon that put
into the bishop's prison for heresy; but being examined upon sundry
articles, he confessed some things, and submitted himself to mercy. On
this they ought, according to the law, to have enjoined him penance
and discharged him, it being his first crime: but he could not be pre-
vailed on to let his suit fall in the temporal court ; so one night his neck
was broken with an iron chain, and he was wounded in other parts of
his body, and then knit up in his own girdle, and it was given out that
he had hanged himself; but the coroner's inquest by examining the
body, and by several other evidences, particularly by the confession of
the sumner, gave their verdict, that he was murdered ,=by the bishop's
chancellor, Dr. Horsey, the sumner, and the bell-ringer. The spiritual
court proceeded against the dead body, and charged Hunne with all the
heresy in Wickcliffe's preface to the Bible, because that was found in
his possession : thus he was condemned as a heretic, and his body was
burnt.
The indignation of the people was raised to the highest pitch against
this action, in which they implicated the whole body of the clergy,
whom they esteemed no longer their pastors, but barbarous murderers.
The rage went so high that the bishop of London complained he was not
safe in his own house. The bishops, the chancellor, and the sumner
were indicted as principals in the murder. In parliament an act passed
restoring Hunne's children; but the commons sent up a bill concerning
his murder, which, however, was laid aside by the lords, where the clergy
were the majority. The clergy looked on the opposition that Standish
had made in the point of their immunities, as that which gave the rise to
Hunne's first suit; and the convocation cited him to answer for his con-
duct ; but he claimed the king's protection, since he had done nothing,
but only pleaded in the king's name. The clergy pretended they did
300 H13TORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
not prosecute him for his pleading-, but for some of his divinity lectures,
contrary to the liberty of the church, which the king was bound to
maintain by his coronation oath : but the temporal lords, the judges,
and commons, prayed the king- also to maintain the laws according to
his coronation oath, and to give Standish his protection. The king
upon this being in great perplexity, required Veysy, afterwards of
bishop of Exeter, to declare upon his conscience and allegiance the
truth in that matter. His opinion was against the immunity ; so another
public hearing being appointed, Standish was accused for teaching — that
the inferior orders were not sacred ; that their exemption was not founded
on a divine right, but that the laity might punish them; that the canons
of the church did not bind till they were received ; and that the study of
the canon law was useless. Of these opinions he denied some, and jus-
tified others. Veysy being required to give his opinion, alleged — that the
laws of the church did only oblige where they were received ; as the law
of the celibate of the clergy, received in the West, did not bind the
Greek churches that never received it, so the exemption of the clerks
not being received did not bind in England. The judges gave their
opinion next, which was — that those who prosecuted Standish were all
in a praemunire. So the court broke up. But in another hearing, in
the presence of the greatest part of both houses of parliament, the car-
dinal said in the name of the clergy — that though they intended to do
nothing against the king's prerogative, yet the trying of clerks seemed
to be contrary to the liberty of the church, which they were bound by
their oaths to maintain. So they prayed that the matter might be
referred to the pope.
The king said, that he thought Standish had answered them fully :
the bishop of Winchester replied he would not stand to his opinion
at his peril. Standish upon that asked, "What can one poor friar do
against all the clergy of England?" The archbishop of Canterbury
answered, "Some of the fathers of the church have suffered martyrdom
upon that account;" but the chief-justice replied, " Many holy kings
have maintained that law, and many holy bishops have obeyed it." In
conclusion, the king declared, that he would maintain his rights, and
would not submit them to the decrees of the church, otherwise than as
his ancestors had done. Horsey was appointed to be brought to his
trial for Hunne's murder, and upon his pleading not guilty, no evidence
was to be brought, and so he was to be discharged. The discontent of
the people greatly increased at this, and very much disposed them to
all that was done afterwards, for pulling down the ecclesiastical tyranny
in this country, and dissolving the establishment by which it was chiefly
sustained.
This was the first disturbance in this king's reign, till the suit for his
divorce commenced. In all other points he was constantly in the pope's
interests, who sent him the common compliments of roses, and such
other trifles, by which that see had treated princes so long as children.
But no compliment wrought so much on the king's vanity, as the title of
" Defender of the Faith," sent him by pope Leo upon the book which
he wrote against Luther concerning the sacraments.
It will now be proper to consider the rapid progress of the doctrines
I'KKSRCUTION OF THE LOLLARDS. 301
of the reformation among the people. From the days of Wiekliffe
there were many that differed from the national faith. He wrote many
books that gave great offence to the clergy, yet being powerfully sup-
ported by the duke of Lancaster, they could not have their revenge
during his life ; but, as we have seen, he was after his death condemned,
and his body was raised and burnt. The Bible which he translated
into English, with the preface which he set before it, produced the
greatest effects. In these he reflected on the ill lives of the clergy,
and condemned the worship of saints and images, and the corporeal
presence of Christ in the sacrament; but the most criminal part in
the eyes of the papists was, exhorting all people to read the Scriptures.
Perhaps there cannot be a stronger proof of the depravity of the
Roman catholic religion, or its perversion of truth, than denying to
the laity the use of the sacred volume. — "To the law and to the tes-
timony," saith the prophet; " if they speak not according to this, it
is because there is no light in them." " Search the Scriptures," saith
the Lord. " These were more noble than those of Thessalonica, in that
they received the word with all readiness of mind, and searched the
Scriptures daily, to see whether these things were so," remarks the writer
of the Acts of the Apostles.
The following article respecting Wiekliffe and his followers, appeared
in the 16th volume of the Monthly Magazine, and maybe appropriately
introduced in this place.
Wiekliffe, the celebrated priest and reformer in the end of Edward Ill.'s
reign, was not educated at Cambridge, but at Oxford ; in which uni-
versity, being a man of distinguished learning, he possessed considerable
authority and influence: but his doctrines soon made their way among
all ranks of people ; and Cambridge, as may be supposed, was not
behindhand in giving them a hearing ; many of its members were
foremost among Wickliffe's advocates, but as the Lollards, his followers,
did not form themselves into societies or churches, they were obliged to
maintain their opinions privately, and in the hearing only of their par-
ticular confidants ; for besides the decree passed in the fourth council of
Lateran, that all heretics should be delivered over to the civil magistrate
to be burned, there were particular laws made in Richard II. and Henry
IV. 's reign, which put them from under the king's protection, and left
them at the mercy of the spiritual courts. We are not therefore to
expect, under these circumstances, that Wickliffe's doctrines should be
much agitated publicly at Cambridge. This, however, we collect, that
about the year 1401, archbishop Arundel, with his commissioners, visited
Cambridge ; the archbishop personally, the collective body of the uni-
versity in congregation, his commissioners every private college. One
article of their inquiries was, whether there were any members suspected
of Lollardism, or any other heretical pravity ? and ten years after,
Peter Hartford was, according to Dr. Fuller in his history of Cambridge,
ordered to abjure Wickliffe's opinions in full congregation ; and about
twenty years after this, several Lollards of Chesterton were obliged to
abjure. One of the opinions of the latter heretics will appear very
singular, which was that priests were incarnate devils. They had, no
doubt, poor creatures, been too painfully scorched with church disci-
302 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
pline, and were too likely to become fuel for some future flame of their
kindling.
The testimonies of this great man against those corruptions were such,
that there was no way to deal with them but if possible to silence him.
His followers were not men of letters, but being wrought on by the easy
conviction of plain common sense, were quite determined in their per-
suasions. They did not form themselves into a body, but were contented
to hold their opinions secretly, and did not spread them, but to their
particular confidants. The clergy sought them out every where, and
delivered them after conviction to the secular arm, that is, to the flames
of martyrdom, the odium of which, by this fiction, they sought to
avoid.
The canons of the council of the Lateran being received in England,
the proceedings against heretics grew to be a part of the common law,
and a writ for burning them was issued upon their conviction without
reserve.
In the beginning of this reign, there were several persons brought into
the bishops' courts for heresy, before Warham. Forty-eight were ac-
cused : but of these, forty-three abjured, twenty-seven men, and six-
teen women, most of them inhabitants of Tenterden. Five of them,
four men and one woman, were condemned; some as obstinate heretics,
and others as relapses : and against the common ties of nature, the
woman's husband, and her two sons, were suborned witnesses against
her. Upon their conviction, a certificate was made by the archbishop
to the chancery: upon which, since there is no pardon upon record, the
writs for burning them must have gone out in course, and the execution
of them is little to be doubted. The articles objected to them were,
that they believed that in the eucharist there was nothing but material
bread ; that the sacraments of baptism, confirmation, confession, ma-
trimony, and extreme unction, were neither necessary nor profitable;
that priests had no more power than laymen ; that pilgrimages were
not meritorious; that the money and labour they required were spent
in vain; that images ought not to be worshipped; that they were only
stocks and stones; that prayers ought not to be made to saints, but only
to God; that there was no virtue in holy water or holy bread. By this
it will appear, that many in this nation were prepared to receive those
doctrines, which were afterwards preached by the reformers, even before
Luther commenced his more determined and successful career.
The rise and progress of the reformation under him are well known :
the scandalous extolling of indulgences gave the first occasion to all
that followed between him and the church of Rome; in which, had not
the corruptions and cruelties of the clergy been so visible and scandalous,
so small a matter could never have produced such a revolution. Even
he himself did not expect so great a matter to be immediately kindled
by this little fire.
The bishops were grossly ignorant; they seldom resided in their
dioceses, except it was to riot at high festivals ; and all the effect their
residence could have was to corrupt others by their ill example. They
followed the courts of princes, and aspired to the greatest offices. The
abbots and monks were almost wholly given up to luxury and idleness;
PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION IN ENGLAND. 303
and their unmarried state gave infinite scandal to the world; for it ap-
peared that restraining them from having wives of their own, made them
conclude that they had a right to all other men's. The inferior clergy
were no better; and not having places of retreat to conceal their vices,
as the monks had, they became more public and shameless. In short,
all ranks of churchmen were so generally despised and hated, that
the world was very apt to be possessed with prejudice against their
doctrines, for the sake of the men ; and the worship of God was so
defiled with gross superstition, that the people were easily convinced
the church stood in great need of reformation. This was much increased
when the books of the fathers began to be read, in which the difference
between the former and latter ages of the church very evidently ap-
peared. They found that a blind superstition came first in the room of
true piety ; and when by its means the wealth and interest of the clergy
were highly advanced, the popes had upon that established their tyranny ;
under which, not only meaner people, but even crowned heads had long
groaned. All these things concurred to make way for the advancement
of the reformation : while the books of the Germans being brought into
England and translated, many were prevailed on by them. Upon this,
a hot persecution was vigorously set on foot, to such a degree that six
men and women were burnt at Coventry in passion-week, only for
teaching their children the creed, the Lord's prayer, and the ten com-
mandments in English. Great numbers were every where brought into
the bishops' courts; of whom some were burnt, while the greater part
fearfully abjured.
The king laid hold of this occasion to become the champion of the
the church, and wrote against Luther in the manner already described.
His book, besides the title of " Defender of the Faith," drew upon him
all that flattery could invent to extol it; whilst Luther, not daunted
with such an antagonist, answered it, and treated Henry as much below
the respect due to a king, as his flatterers had raised him above it.
Tindai's translation of the New Testament, with some notes added to it,
drew a severe condemnation from the clergy; there being nothing in
which they were more concerned than to keep the people unacquainted
with that book. Thus much may serve to shew the condition of affairs
in England both in church and state, when the process of the king's
divorce was first set on foot. This incident, so replete with consequences
the most important to the reformation, shall now be laid before the
reader with somewhat of particular detail.
Henry VII. had entered into a firm alliance with Ferdinand of
Spain, and agreed to a match between his eldest son prince Arthur, and
Katharine the Infanta of Spain. She came into England and was
married in November; but on the second of the following April the
prince died, leaving the throne as well as the lady open to his brother.
Arthur and Katharine had lodged and even slept together, to carry on
the farce of marriage ; but such was their youth, and the feebleness of
the young prince, that beyond this farce no effect detrimental to
Henry's hopes, or of service to the nation, could be expected. The
king, being unwilling to restore so great a portion as two hundred
thousand ducats, which the princess brought as her dowery, proposed a
304 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
second match for her with his younger son Henry. Warham objected
to it as unlawful; but Fox, bishop of Winchester, was for it, and the
opinion of the pope's authority was then so well established, that it was
thought a dispensation from Rome was sufficient to remove all objec-
tions. Accordingly one was obtained, grounded upon a desire of the
two young persons to marry together for preserving peace between the
crowns of England and Spain.
The pope was then at war with Lewis XII. of France, and would
refuse nothing to the king of England, being perhaps not unwilling
that princes should contract such marriages, since the lawfulness of their
issue depending on the pope's dispensation, they would be thereby
obliged in interest to support that authority. Upon this a marriage
followed, the prince being yet under age; but the same day in which
he came to be of age, he did, by his father's orders, make a protestation
that he retracted and annulled the contract. His father, at his death,
charged his son to break it off entirely, being perhaps apprehensive of
such a return of confusion upon a controverted succession to the crown,
as had occurred during the wars between the houses of York and
Lancaster; but the son being then eighteen years of age, married her
and she bore him two children who died soon after they were born ; and
another, Mary, afterwards queen of England. After this Katharine
contracted some diseases that made her unacceptable to the king; who,
at the same time beginning or pretending to have some scruples of con-
science with regard to the lawfulness of his marriage, determined to
have the affair investigated.
He seemed to lay the greatest weight on the prohibition in theLevitical
law of marrying the brother's wife, and being conversant in the writings
of Thomas Aquinas, he found that he and the other schoolmen looked
on those laws as moral, and for ever binding; and consequently the
pope's dispensation was of no force, since his authority went not so far
as to dispense with the laws of God. b All the bishops of England,
Fisher of Rochester only excepted, declared under their hands and
seals that they judged the marriage unlawful. The ill consequences
of wars that might follow upon a doubtful title to the crown, were also
much considered. It is not certain that the king's affections for any
other gave rise to all this. It is possible that, conceiving himself on
the point of being freed of his former marriage, he gave a free scope
to his affections, which settled on Anne Boleyn.
This lady was born in the year 1507, and at seven years of age was
sent to France, where she remained twelve years, and then returned to
England. She was much admired in both courts, was more beautiful
than graceful, and more cheerful than discreet. She wanted none of
b This was one of the firmest, as it was one of the first steps laid for advancing to a
glorious reformation on scriptural principles; and was infinitely preferable as an argument
to all the ressonings afterwards introduced, and exalted to the rank of infallible axioms,
when this, alas! became slighted and forgotten. Hitherto and afterwards, it was assumed
that no papal decree could err; but in a happy moment of sudden light it is here seen and
confessed that edicts of the pope may run contrary to the law of God, and thus be un-
doubtedly wrong-. Would to heaven that this principle were considered by protestant
as well as popish bishops, and carried by all people into their confidence in episcopal
SOME ACCOUM OF AiSNE BOLEYN. 305
the charms of wit or person, and must have had extraordinary attrac-
tions, since she could so long- manage such a king's affection ; for it is
evident that in the long course of seven years' courtship she kept him at
a due distance.
Knight, then secretary of state, was sent to Rome to prepare the pope
to grant a dispensation from the former marriage. He made application
to the pope in the most secret manner he could, and had a very favour-
able answer : for the pope promised frankly to dissolve the marriage ;
but another promise being exacted of him in the emperor's name, not
to proceed in that affair, he was reduced to great straits, being then at
the emperor's mercy, while he had no mind to lose the king of England;
he therefore studied to gain time, and promised that if the latter would
have a little patience, he should not only have that which he asked, but
every thing that was in his power to grant. The chief cardinal, indeed,
made some scruples concerning the bull that was demanded, till he had
raised his price, and got a great present; then the pope signed both a
commission for Wolsey to try the cause, and judge in it, and also a dis-
pensation, and put them into Knight's hands; but with tears prayed
him that there might be no proceedings upon them, till the emperor was
incapable of executing his revenge upon him ; and whenever that was
done he would own this act of justice which he did in the king's favour.
The pope was at this time displeased with Cardinal Wolsey ; for he
understood that during his captivity, he had been in an intrigue to get
himself chosen vicar of the papacy, and was to have sat at Avignon,
which might have produced a new schism. Staphileus, dean of the Rota,
being then in England, was wrought on by the promise of a bishopric,
and a recommendation to a cardinal's hat, to promote the king's
affair. By him the cardinal wrote to the pope, in a most earnest strain,
for a dispatch of this business ; and he desired, that an indifferent and
tractable cardinal might be sent over, with a full commission to join
with him, and to judge the matter ; proposing to the king's ambassadors
Campegio as the fittest man. Wolsey, in several letters to Cassali, who
was in great favour with the pontiff, offered to take the blame on his
own soul, if the pope would grant this bull ; and with an earnestness,
as hearty and warm as can be expressed in words, he pressed the thing,
and added, that if the pope continued inexorable, he perceived the king-
would proceed another way.
These entreaties had such effect that Campegio was declared legate,
and ordered to go to England, and join in commission with Wolsey for
judging this matter. He accordingly set out from Rome, and carried
with him a decretal bull for annulling the marriage, which he was autho-
rized to shew to the king and Wolsey ; but was required not to give it
out of his hands to either of them. In fact the divorce was trusted to
his authority. In October he arrived in. England, and after the usual
compliments were over, he first advised the king to give up the prosecu-
tion of his suit ; and then counselled the queen, in the pope's name, to
enter into a religious life, and make vows : but both were in vain ; and
he, by affecting an impartiality, almost lost his ground on either side.
But he in great measure pacified the king when he shewed him the bull
lie had brought over for annulling the marriage ; yet he would not part
x
306 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
with it either to the king- or the cardinal ; upon which, great instances
were made at Rome, that Campegio might be ordered to shew it to some
of the king's counsellors, and to go on and end the business, otherwise
Wolsey would be ruined, and England lost. All this however did not
prevail on the pope, who knew it was intended to get the bull out of
Campegio's hands, and then the king would leave him to the emperor's
indignation : but though he positively refused to grant that, yet he said
he left the legates in England free to judge as they saw cause, and pro-
mised that he would confirm their sentence.
The affair proceeding very slowly, ambassadors were dispatched to
Rome with new propositions for a speedy termination. On this, the
pope gave new assurances, that though he would not grant a bull, by
which the divorce should be immediately his own act, yet he would con-
firm the legate's sentence. Just after he granted this boon, the pope
was taken suddenly ill, upon which the Imperialists began to prepare
for a conclave; but Farnese, and the cardinal of Mantua, opposed
them, and seemed to favour Wolsey ; whom, as his correspondents wrote
to him, they reverenced as a Deity. Upon this he dispatched a courier
to Gardiner, then on his way to Rome, with large directions how to
manage the election. It was reckoned, that the king of France, joining
heartily with the king of England, the matter might be set at rest.
There were only six cardinals wanting to make the election sure ; and
besides sums of money, and other rewards, which were to be distributed
among them, he was to give them assurance that the cardinals' prefer-
ments should be equally divided. These were the secret methods of
attaining the chair: and indeed it would puzzle a man of an ordinary
degree of credulity, to think that one chosen by such means could pre-
sume to be Christ's vicar, and the infallible judge of controversies. The
recovery, however, of the pope put an end to these intrigues.
At length the legates began the process, when the queen protested
against them as incompetent judges. They, however, proceeded accord-
ing to the forms of law, although the queen had appealed from them
to the pope, and objected both to the place, to the judges, and her
lawyers ; when they pronounced her contumacious, and went on to
examine witnesses, chiefly to the particulars of the consummation of her
marriage with prince Arthur. But now since the process was thus going
on, the emperor's agents pressed the pope vehemently for an avocation;
and all possible endeavours were used by the king's agents to hinder it.
They spared nothing that would work on the pope, either in the way of
persuasion or threatening: it was told him there was a treaty set on foot
between the king and the Lutheran princes of Germany; and that upon
declaring himself so partial as to grant the avocation, he would cer-
tainly embark in the same interests with them. The pope however
thought the king so far engaged in honour on points of religion, that he
would not be prevailed upon to unite with Luther's followers ; he
did not imagine that the effects of his granting the avocation would
be so fatal as the cardinal's agents represented them. In conclu-
sion, therefore, after the emperor had engaged to restore his family to
the government of Florence, he resolved to publish his treaty with him,
and told the English ambassadors that he was forced to it; both because
FALL OF CARDINAL WOLSEY. 307
all the lawyers said it could not be denied, and that he could not resist
the emperor's forces, which surrounded him on all hands. Their endea-
vours to pain a little time by delay were as fruitless as other artifices,
for on the 15th of July, the pope signed the avocation, and on the 19th
sent it by an express messenger to England.
The legates, Campegio in particular, drew out the matter with all the
delay they could contrive, and gained much time. At last, it being
brought to the point that sentence was to be pronounced, Campegio, in-
stead of doing it, adjourned the court till October, and said, that as
they were members of the consistory they must observe their times of
vacation. This gave the king and his court great offence, when they saw r
what was like to be the issue of a process on which his majesty was
so much bent, and in which he was so far engaged both in honour and
interest. The king governed himself upon the occasion with more
temper than was expected : he dismissed Campegio civilly, only his
officers searched his coffers when he went beyond sea, with evident design
to see if the decretal bull could be found. Wolsey was now upon the
point of being disgraced, though the king seemed to treat him with all
his former confidence.
At this period, Dr. Cranmer, a fellow of Jesus College in Cambridge,
meeting accidentally with Gardiner and Fox at Waltham, and entering
into discourse upon the royal marriage, suggested that the king should
engage the chief universities and divines of Europe, to examine the
lawfulness of his marriage ; and if they gave their resolutions against it,
then it being certain that the pope's dispensation could not derogate from
the law of God, the marriage must be declared null. This novel and
reasonable scheme they proposed to the king, who was much pleased
with it, and said, " He had the sow by the right ear." He saw this way
was both better in itself and w T ould mortify the pope. Cranmer was
accordingly sent for, and on conversing with him, the king conceived a
high opinion both of his learning and prudence, as well as of his pro-
bity and sincerity, which took such root in the king's mind, that no
artifices nor calumnies were ever able to remove it.
From this moment and these circumstances began the rise of Cranmer
and the decline of Wolsey. The great seal was taken from the latter
and given to Sir Thomas More ; and he was sued in a prsemunire, for
having held the legatine courts by a foreign authority, to the laws of
England. Wolsey confessed the indictment, pleaded ignorance, and
submitted himself to the king's mercy; so judgment passed on him;
when his rich palace and furniture were seized for the royal use.
Yet the king received him again into his protection, and restored to him
the temporalities of the sees of York and Winchester, and above 6000/.
in plate and other goods; at wdiich he was so transported, that it is
said he fell down on his knees in a kennel before the messenger who
brought him the news. Articles were put in against him in the house
of lords for a bill of attainder, where he had but few friends : in the
house of commons, Cronnvell, who had been his secretary, so managed
the matter, that it came to nothing. This failing, his enemies procured
an order to be sent to him to go into Yorkshire : thither he went in great
state, with one hundred and sixty horses in his train, and seventy-two
308 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Carts following him, and there he lived some time. But the king being
informed, that he was practising with the pope and the emperor, he sent
the earl of Northumberland to arrest him of high treason, and bring
him up to London. On the way he sickened and died at Leicester,
making great protestations of his constant fidelity to the king, particu-
larly in the matter of his divorce : and wishing he had served God as
faithfully as he had done the king ; for then he would not have cast him
off in his grey hairs, as the king had done: words that declining
favourites are apt to reflect on in adversity ; but they seldom remember
them in the height of their fortune.
The king intending to proceed in the method proposed by Cranmer,
sent to Oxford and Cambridge to procure their conclusions. At Oxford
it was referred by the major part of the convocation to thirty-three
doctors and bachelors of divinity, whom that faculty was to name : they
were empowered to determine the question, and put the seal of the uni-
versity to their conclusion. They gave their opinions, that the marriage
of the brother's wife was contrary both to the laws of God and nature.
At Cambridge the convocation referred the question to twenty-nine ;
of which number, two-thirds agreeing, they were empowered to put the
seal of the university to their determination. These agreed in opinion
with those of Oxford. The jealousy of Cranmer's favouring Lutheranism
caused the fierce popish party to oppose every thing in which he was
engaged. They were also afraid of Anne Boleyn's advancement, who
was believed to be tinctured with the reformed opinions. Crook, a
learned man in the Greek tongue, was employed in Italy, to procure the
resolution of divines there; in which he was so successful, that besides
the great discoveries he made in searching the manuscripts of the Greek
fathers concerning their opinions in this point, he engaged several per-
sons to write for the king's cause. He also got the Jews to give their
opinions of the laws in Leviticus, that they were moral and obligatory —
that when a brother died without issue, his brother might marry his
widow within Judea, for preserving their families and succession ;
although that might not be done out of Judea. The state of Venice
would not declare themselves, but said they would be neutral; and
it was not easy to persuade the divines of the republic to give their
opinions, till a brief was obtained of the pope, permitting all divines
and canonists to deliver judgment according to their consciences. The
pope abhorred this way of proceeding, though he could not decently
oppose it; but he said in great scorn, that no friar should set limits to
his power. Crook was ordered to give no money, nor make promises
to any, till they had freely delivered their opinion ; which he faithfully
observed. This man sent over to England a hundred various books,
and papers, with many subscriptions ; all condemning the king's mar-
riage as unlawful in itself. At Paris, the Sorbonne made their deter-
mination with great solemnity; after mass of the Holy Ghost, all the
doctors took an oath to study the question, and to give their judgment
according to their consciences ; and after three weeks study, the greater
part agreed on this strange and contradictory decree — " that the king's
marriage was unlawful, and the pope could not dispense with it." At
Orleans, Angiers, and Toulouse, they determined to the same purpose.
OPINIONS ON THE KING'S MARRlAtiU. 309
Calvin thought the marriage null, and they all agreed that the pope's
dispensation was of no force. Osiander was employed to engage the
Lutheran divines, but they were afraid of giving the emperor new
grounds of displeasure. Melancthon thought the law in Leviticus was
dispensable, and that the marriage might be lawful; and that in such
matters, states and princes might make what laws they pleased. Though
the divines of Leipsic, after much disputing about it, did agree that
those laws were moral, yet they could never be brought to justify the
divorce, with the subsequent marriage that followed upon it. And the
king appeared very inclinable to receive their doctrine, so steadily did
they follow their consciences even against their interests : but the pope
was more compliant, for he offered to Cassali to grant his amorous pe-
titioner dispensation for having another wife, with which the Imperialists
seemed on the whole to be willing to comply.
The king's cause being thus fortified by so many resolutions in his
favour, he made certain members of parliament sign a letter to the pope,
complaining, that notwithstanding the great merits of their sovereign,
the justice of his cause, and the importance of it to the safety of the
kingdom, yet the pope made still new delays ; they therefore pressed
him to dispatch it speedily, otherwise they would be forced to seek other
remedies, though they were not willing to drive things to extremities, till
it was unavoidable. The letter was signed by the cardinal, the arch-
bishop of Canterbury, four bishops, twenty-two abbots, forty-two peers,
and eleven commoners. To this the pope wrote an answer, taking
notice of the vehemence of their style, and freeing himself from the
imputations o£, ingratitude and injustice. He acknowledged the king's
great merits; and said, he had done all he could in his favour: he had
granted a commission, but could not refuse to receive the queen's
appeal; all the cardinals with one consent judging that an avocation
was necessary. Since that time, the delays were not with him, but with
the king; that he was ready to proceed, and would bring it to as speedy
an issue as the importance of it would admit of; and as for their
threatenings, they were neither proofs of their wisdom, nor of their
religion.
The king, now disgusted at his dependence on the pope, issued a pro-
clamation against any that should purchase, bring over, or publish any
bull from Rome, contrary to his authority : and after that he made an
abstract of all the reasons and authorities of fathers, or modern writers,
against his marriage, to be published both in Latin and English. Both
sides having produced the strength of their cause, it evidently appeared
that, according to the authority given to tradition in the church of Rome,
the king had clearly the right on his side. At the same time he was not
exempt from opposition, even in England. The friends of Katharine
were more numerous than he had all along imagined, and the queen
herself, amidst these disputes, continued firm to her resolution of leaving
the matter in the pope's hands, and would hearken to no propositions
that were made to her, for referring it to the arbitration of a number
chosen on both sides.
The sovereigns of England claimed the same latitude of power in
ecclesiastical matters, as the Roman emperors had exercised before the
310 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
decline of their authority. Anciently they had divided bishoprics,
granted investitures, and made laws relating both to ecclesiastical
causes and persons. When the popes began to extend their power
beyond the limits assigned them by the canons, great opposition arose
to them in England; but they managed the advantages they found,
either from the weakness or ill circumstances of princes, so steadily,
that at length they subdued the world : and if they had not by their
cruel exactions so oppressed the clergy, that they were driven to seek
shelter under covert of the temporal authority, men generally were so
absorbed by superstition and credulity, that not only the whole spiritual
power; but even the temporal authority of the princes, was likely to
have fallen under papal tyranny. But the discontented clergy now
supported the secular power as much as they had before advanced that
of the papal. Boniface VIII. had raised his pretensions to that impudent
pitch, that he declared all power, both ecclesiastical and civil, was derived
from him; and this he established as an article of faith, necessary to
salvation ; on which he, and his successors, took upon them, to dispose
of all ecclesiastical benefices by their absolute bulls and provisions. To
restrain these invasions of the rights of princes, laws were made in
England against their authority; but no punishment being declared for
transgressors, the courtiers at Rome were not frightened at their publi-
cation ; so that the abuses still continued : but in the time of Edward III.
a more severe act was made, by which all that transgressed were to be
imprisoned, to be fined at pleasure, and to forfeit all their benefices.
These long forgotten statutes were now revived, to bring the clergy
into a snare : it was designed by the terror of this proceeding to force
them to an entire submission, and to oblige them to redeem themselves
by the grant of a considerable subsidy. They pleaded ignorance; it
was a public error, and they ought not therefore to be punished for it.
To this it was answered, that the laws which they had transgressed were
still in force, and so no ignorance could excuse the violation of them.
The convocation of Canterbury made their submission, and in their
address to the king he was called the protector and supreme head of
the church of England; but some objecting, it was added — " in so far as
it is agreeable to the law of Christ." This was signed by nine bishops,
fifty abbots and priors, and the greater part of the lower house; and
with it they offered the king a subsidy of 100,000/. to procure his favour,
and promised for the future not to make nor execute any constitutions
without his licence. The convocation of York did not pass this so
easily; they objected to the word head, as agreeing to none but Christ:
whereupon the king wrote them a long expostulatory letter, and told
them with what limitations those of Canterbury had passed that title;
upon which they all submitted, and offered 18,840/. which was accepted :
thus the clergy were again received into the king's protection, and re-
ceived his precarious pardon for their heavy offences.
After the prorogation of this session of parliament, new applications
were made to the queen to persuade her to depart from her appeal ; but
she remained fixed in her resolution, and said she was the king's lawful
wife, and would abide by it till the court at Rome should declare the
contrary. Upon that the king desired her to choose any of his houses
PAPAL AND ROYAL CORRESPONDENCE. 311
in the country to live in, and resolved never to see her more. She
chose the palace of Ampthill, in Bedfordshire, for her residence, and
the monastery of Kimbolton, at no great distance, for her religious
resorts. In these she passed the remainder of her life, beloved by all
around her, and respected by none more than by the king himself,
whose passions rather than judgment and conscience constrained him
to prefer the youth and beauty of another.
In January 1532, the pope, on the motion of the Imperialists, wrote
to the king, complaining that notwithstanding a suit was depending
concerning his marriage, yet he had put away his queen and kept one
Anne as his wife, contrary to a prohibition served on him; he therefore
exhorted him to live with his queen again, and to put away Anne.
Upon this the king sent Dr. Bennet to Rome with a dispatch in which he
complained that the pope proceeded in that matter upon the suggestion
of others, who were ignorant and rash men : that he had carried himself
inconstantly and deceitfully in it, and not as became Christ's vicar :
that he had granted a commission, had promised never to recall it, and
had sent over a decretal bull defining the cause. Either these were
unjustly granted, or unjustly recalled. It was plain that he acted more
with regard to his interests, than according to conscience; and that, as
the pope had often confessed his own ignorance in these matters, so he
was not furnished with learned men to advise him, otherwise he would
not defend a marriage which almost all the learned men and universities
in England, France, and Italy, had condemned as unlawful. He would
not question his authority without he was compelled to it, and would do
nothing but reduce it to its first and ancient limits, which was much
better than to let it run on headlong, and still do amiss. This high
letter made the pope resolve to proceed and end the matter, either by
a sentence or a treaty. The king was cited to answer to the queen's
appeal at Rome in person, or by proxy: accordingly, Sir Edward Karne
was sent thither in the new character of the king's apologist, to excuse
the king's appearance, upon such grounds as could be founded on the
canon law, and upon the privileges of the crown of England. The
Imperialists pressed the pope much to give sentence, but all the wise
cardinals, who observed by the proceedings of the parliament that the
nation would adhere to the king, if he should be provoked to shake off
the pope's yoke, suggested milder counsels.
In conclusion, the pope seemed to favour the king's plea, upon which
the Imperialists made great complaints. But this amounted to no more
than that the king was not bound to appear in person; therefore the
cardinals, who were in his interest, advised the king to send over a
proxy for answering the merits of the cause; and both the pope and
the college wrote to him to finish the matter next winter. Bonner, at
that time in Rome, was also sent to England to assure the king, that
the pope was now so much in the French interest, that he might con-
fidently refer this matter to him. On this the king sent for the speaker
of the house of commons, and told him he found the prelates were but
half subjects; for they swore at their consecration an oath to the pope,
inconsistent with their allegiance and oath to him. By their oath to the
pope, they swore to be in no council against him, nor to disclose his
312 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
secrets; but to maintain the papacy, and the regalities of St. Peter
against all men, together with the rights and authorities of the church
of Rome; and that they should honourably entreat the legates of the
apostolic see, and observe all the decrees, sentences, provisions, and
commandments of that see; and yearly, either in person, or by proxy,
visit the thresholds of the apostles. In their oath to the king, they re-
nounced all clauses in their bulls contrary to his royal dignity, and
swore to be faithful to him, and to live and die with him against all
others, and to keep his counsel; acknowledging that they held their
bishoprics only of him. By these it appeared they could not keep both
their oaths, in case a breach should fall out between the king and the
pope ; a discovery which would have been of serious consequence, had
not the plague broke off the consultations of parliament at this time.
Soon after, Sir Thomas More, seeing a rupture with Rome coming on
so fast, desired leave to lay down his office, which was upon that con-
ferred on Sir Thomas Audley. More had been satisfied with the king's
keeping up the laws formerly made in opposition to the papal encroach-
ments, and had concurred in the suit of the prsemunire; but now the
matter went farther, and not being able to keep pace with the new order
of things, he returned to a private life.
An interview soon followed between the kings of France and Eng-
land; to which Anne Boleyn, now marchioness of Pembroke, was car-
ried. After the first ceremonies and magnificence were over, Francis
promised Henry to second him in his suit: he encouraged him to pro-
ceed to a second marriage without delay; and assured him he would
stand by him in it: meantime, the pope offered to the king, to send a
legate to any indifferent place, out of England, to form the process,
reserving only the sentence himself to pronounce ; and proposed to
him and all princes a general truce, that so he might call a general
council. The king answered, that such was the present state of the
affairs of Europe, it was not seasonable to call a general council ;
and that it was contrary to his prerogative to send a proxy to appear at
Rome : that by the decrees of general councils, all causes ought to be
judged on the spot and by a provincial council ; and that it was fitter
to judge it in England than any where else : that by his coronation
oath, he was bound to maintain the dignities of his crown, and the
rights of his subjects, and not to appear before any foreign court. Sir
Thomas Elliot was therefore sent over with instructions, to move that
the cause might be judged in England. Soon after this, the king mar-
ried Anne Boleyn ; Rowland Lee, afterwards bishop of Coventry and
Litchfield, officiated, none being present but the duke of Norfolk, and
her father, her mother, her brother, and Cranmer. It was thought that
the former marriage being null, the king might proceed to another :
and perhaps they hoped, that as the pope had formely proposed this
method, so he would now approve of it. But though the pope had
joined himself to France, yet he was still so much in fear of the emperor
that he resolved to continue resisting Henry's marriage, rather than
provoke the imperial wrath. A new citation was therefore issued out,
for the king to answer to the queen's complaints ; but Henry's agents
protested that their master was a sovereign prince, and England a free
CRANMER CREATED ARCHBISHOP. 313
church, over which the pope had no just authority; and that the king
could expect no justice at Rome, where the emperor's power and the
pope's authority were paramount to all others.
At this time parliament met again, and passed an act condemning all
appeals to Rome. In it they set forth — That the crown was imperial,
and that the nation was a complete body, having full power to do
justice in all cases, both spiritual and temporal; and that as former
kings had maintained the liberties of the kingdom against the usurpa-
tions of the see of Rome, so they found the great inconvenience of
allowing appeals in matrimonial causes; that they put them to great
charges, and occasioned many delays: therefore they enacted, that
thereafter those should be judged within the kingdom, and no regard
be had to any appeals to Rome, or censures from it; but sentences
given in England were to have their full effect; and all who executed
any censures from Rome were to incur the pain of praemunire.
The archbishopric of Canterbury was now vacant by the decease of
Warham, who died the previous year: he was a great patron of learning,
a good canonist, and a wise statesman; but he was a cruel persecutor of
heretics, and inclined to believe fanatical legends. Cranmer was in
Germany, disputing in the king's cause with some of the emperor's
divines, when the king resolved to advance him to that dignity; and
sent him word of it, that he might make haste to return. But a pro-
motion so far above his thoughts, had not its common effects on him :
he had a true and primitive sense of so great a charge; and instead of
aspiring to it, he was afraid of it, and he both returned very slowly to
England, and used all his endeavours to be excused from the advance-
ment. Bulls were sent for to Rome in order to his consecration, which
the pope granted. , On the 13th of March, Cranmer was consecrated by
the bishops of Lincoln, Exeter, and St. Asaph. The oath to the pope
was of hard digestion to one " almost persuaded" to be a protestant:
he therefore made a protestation before he took it, that he conceived
himself not bound by it in any thing that was contrary to his duty to
God, to his king, or country; and this he repeated when he took it.
The convocation had then two questions before them ; the first was
concerning the lawfulness of the king's marriage, and the validity of the
pope's dispensation ; the other was a curious question of fact, whether
prince Arthur had consummated the marriage. For the first, the judg-
ments of nineteen universities were read ; and after a long debate, there
being twenty-three only in the lower house, fourteen were against the
marriage, seven for it, and two voted dubiously. In the upper house,
Stokesly bishop of London, and Fisher bishop of Rochester, maintained
the debate at great length, the one for the affirmative, and the other the
negative. At last it was carried nemine contradicente, the few that were
of the other side it seems withdrawing, against the marriage, two hun-
dred and sixteen being present. For the other, which concerned matter
of fact, it was referred to the canonists ; and they all, except five or
six, reported that the presumptions were very strong ; and these in a
matter not capable of plain proof were always received as legally con-
clusive.
The convocation having thus judged in the matter, the ceremony of
314 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
pronouncing the divorce judicially was now the only thing wanting-.
The new queen was reported to be in a promising condition for the
future monarchy. On Easter-eve she was declared queen of England :
and soon after, Cranmer, with Gardiner, who had succeeded Wolsey
as bishop of Winchester, and the bishops of London, Lincoln, Bath and
Wells, with many divines and canonists, went to Dunstable ; queen
Katharine living then near it, at Ampthill. The king and queen were
cited ; he appeared by proxy, but the queen refused to take any notice
of the court : so after three citations, she was declared contumacious,
and all the merits of the cause formerly mentioned were examined. At
last, on the 23rd of May, sentence was given, declaring the marriage to
have been null from the beginning. Among the archbishop's titles in
the commencement of the judgment, he is called " Legate of the apos-
tolic see," which perhaps was added to give it the more force in law.
Some days after this, he gave another judgment, confirming the king's
marriage with queen Anne, and on the first of June she was crowned
queen. All people admired queen Anne's conduct, who in a course of
so many years managed the spirit of so violent a king in such a manner,
as neither to surfeit him with too many favours, nor to provoke him with
too much rigour. They that loved the reformation looked for better
days under her protection : but many priests and friars, both in sermons
and discourses, condemned the king's proceedings. The king sent
ambassadors to all courts to justify what he had done: he sent also two
to queen Katharine, to charge her to assume no other title but that of
princess dowager; but she would not yield; she said she would not
take that infamy on herself; and so resolved that none should serve
about her who did not treat her as queen.
At Rome the cardinals of the Imperial faction complained much of
the attempt made on the pope's power, and urged him to proceed to
censures. But there was only sentence given, annulling all that the
archbishop of Canterbury had done ; and the king was required, under
pain of excommunication, to place things again in the state in which
they formerly were : this decree was framed at Rome, and brought for
publication to Dunkirk. The king sent a great embassy to the French
monarch, who was then setting out to Marseilles to meet the pope : their
errand was to dissuade him from the journey, unless the pope would
promise to give the king satisfaction. Francis said, he was engaged in
honour to go on; but assured them, he would mind the king's concerns
with as much zeal as if they were his own. In September the queen
brought forth a daughter, the renowned Elizabeth ; and the king having
before declared lady Mary princess of Wales, did now the same for the
infant: though since a son might exclude her from it, she could not be
heir apparent, but only heir presumptive to the crown. The eventful
moment was nigh at hand, when the incident should take place that
would cause the separation of England from the church of Rome.
There was a secret agreement between the pope and Francis, that if
Henry would refer his cause to the consistory, excepting only to the
cardinals of the Imperial faction, as partial, and would in all other
things return to his obedience to the see of Rome, the sentence should
be given in his favour. When Francis returned to Paris, he sent over
SENTENCE AGAINST THE KING. 315
the bishop of that city to the king, to tell what he had obtained of the
pope in his favour, and the terms on which it was promised. This wrought
so much on the king, that he presently consented to them; upon which
the bishop of Paris, though it was now in the middle of winter, went
to Rome with the welcome tidings. On his arrival there, the matter
seemed agreed: for it was promised that upon the king's sending a
consent under his hand to place things in their former state, and his
ordering a proxy to appear for him, judges should be sent to Cambray
for making the process, and then sentence should be given. Upon the
notice given of this, and of a day that was prefixed for the return of the
courier, the king dispatched him with all possible haste ; and now the
business seemed at an end. But the courier had a sea and the Alps to
pass, and in winter it was not easy to observe a limited day so exactly.
The appointed day came, and no courier arrived ; upon which, the
Imperialists gave out, that the king was abusing the pope's easiness;
and pressed him vehemently to proceed to a sentence : the bishop of
Paris requesting only a delay of six days. The design of the Imperial-
ists was to hinder a reconciliation : for if the king had been set right
with the pope, there would have been so powerful a league formed
against the emperor as would have frustrated all his measures; and
therefore it was necessary for his politics to embroil them. Seduced by
the artifice of this intriguing prince, the pope, without consulting his
ordinary prudence, brought in the matter to the consistory; and there
the Imperialists being the greater number, it was driven on with so
much precipitation, that they did in one day that which, according to
form, should have extended at least to three.
They gave the final sentence, declared the king's marriage with queen
Katharine good, and required him to live with her as his wife, other-
wise they would proceed to censures. Two days after this, the courier
came with the king's submission in due form ; he also brought earnest
letters from Francis in the king's favour. This wrought on all the in-
different cardinals, as well as those of the French faction, so that they
prayed the pope to recall what was done. A new consistory was called,
but the Imperialists urged with greater vehemence than ever, that they
would not give such scandal to the world as to recall a definitive sen-
tence of the validity of a marriage, and give heretics such advantage
by their unsteadiness in matters of that nature; it was therefore carried
that the former sentence should remain, and the execution of it be com-
mitted to the emperor. When this was known in England, it deter-
mined the king in his resolutions of shaking off the pope's yoke, in
which he had made so great a progress, that the parliament had passed
all the acts concerning it before he received the news from Rome; for
he judged that the best way to secure his cause was to let Rome see his
power, and with what vigour he could make war. All the rest of the
world looked on astonished to see the court of Rome throw off England,
as if it had been weary of the obedience and profits of so great a
kingdom.
In England people of nearly all ranks had been examining the foun-
dations on which the papal authority was built with extraordinary care
for some years ; and several books were written on that subject. It was
316 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
demonstrated, that all the apostles were made equal in the powers that
Christ gave them ; that he often condemned their contests about supe-
riority, but never declared in St. Peter's favour. St. Paul withstood him
to his face, and reckoned himself not inferior to him. If the dignity of a
person left any authority with the city in which he sat, then Antioch
must carry it rather than Rome; and Jerusalem, where Christ suffered,
was to be preferred to all the World, for it was truly the mother-church.
Christ said to Peter, "Upon this rock will I build my church." The
agents understood by the rock either the confession Peter had made, or,
which is the same, Christ himself; and though it were to be meant of
St. Peter, all the rest of the apostles are also called foundations ; and
the injunction, "Tell the church," was by many doctors of Rome
turned against the pope for a general council. The other privileges
ascribed to St. Peter, were either only a precedence of order, or were
occasioned by his fall; as that, "Feed my sheep," being a restoration of
him to the apostolic functions. St. Peter had also a limited province,
the circumcision, as St. Paul had the uncircumcision, which was of far
greater extent, and which shewed that Peter was not considered as the
universal pastor.
Several sees, as Ravenna, Milan, and Aquilea, pretended exemption
from the papal authority. Many English bishops had asserted that the
popes had no authority against the canons, and to that day no canon
made by the pope was binding till it was received, which shewed the
pope's authority was not believed to be founded on divine authority; and
the contests that the kings of England had with the popes concerning
investitures, bishops doing the king homage, appeals to Rome, and the
authority of papal bulls and provisions, shewed that the pope's power
was subject to law and custom, and so not derived from Christ and
St. Peter ; and as laws had given them some power, and princes had
been forced in ignorant ages to submit to their usurpations, so they
might as they saw cause change those laws, and resume their rights.
The next point enquired into was, the authority that kings had in
matters of religion and the church. In the New Testament, Christ was
himself subject to the civil powers, and charged his disciples not to
affect temporal dominion. The apostles also wrote to the churches to be
subject to the higher powers, and to call them supreme; they charged
every soul to be subject to them: in scripture the king is called head
and supreme, and every soul is said to be under him, which joined with
the other parts of their sage argument, brought the wise men of that
day to the conclusion, that he is supreme head over all persons. In the
primitive church the bishops only made rules or canons, but pretended
to no compulsive authority, but what came from the civil magistrate.
Upon the whole matter, they concluded that the pope had no power in
England, and that the king had an entire dominion over all his subjects
which extended even to the regulating of ecclesiastical matters. These
questions being fully discussed in many disputes, and published in
several books, all the bishops, abbots, and friars of England, Fisher
only excepted, were so far satisfied with them, that they resolved to
comply with the changes the king was determined to make.
At the next meeting of parliament there were but seven bishops and
ACTS RESPECTING HERETICS. ."517
twelve abbots present, the rest it seems were unwilling to coneur in
making- this change, though they complied with it when it was made.
Every Sunday during the session a bishop preached at St. Paul's, and
declared that the pope had no authority in England : before this, they
had only said that a general council was above him, and that the ex-
actions of that court, and appeals to it, were unlawful; but now they
went a strain higher, to prepare the people for receiving the acts then
in agitation. On the 9th of March the commons began the bill for
taking away the pope's power, and sent it to the lords on the 14th, who
passed it on the 20th without any dissent. In it they set forth the ex-
action of the court of Rome, grounded on the pope's power of dispen-
sation ; and that as none could dispense with the laws of God, so the
king and parliament only had the authority of dispensing with the laws
of the land : therefore such licences as were formerly in use, should be
for the future granted by the two archbishops, to be confirmed under the
great seal. It was moreover appointed that, thereafter, all commerce
with Rome should cease. They also declared that they did not intend
to alter any article of the catholic faith of Christendom, or that which
was declared in the scripture necessary to salvation. They confirmed
all the exemptions granted to monasteries by the popes, but subjected
them to the king's visitation, and gave the king and his council power to
examine and reform all indulgencies and privileges granted by the pope :
the offenders against this law were to be punished according to the
statutes of praemunire. This act subjected the monasteries entirely to
the king's authority, and put them in no small confusion. Those who
loved the reformation rejoiced to see the pope's power rooted out, and
to find the scripture made the standard of religion.
After this act another passed in both houses in six days' time without
any opposition, settling the succession of the crown, confirming the
sentence of divorce, and the king's marriage with queen Anne, and
declaring all marriages within the degrees prohibited by Moses to be
unlawful : all that had married within them were appointed to be
divorced, and their issue illegitimatized ; and the succession to the crown
was settled upon the king's issue by the present queen, or in default of
that to the king's right heirs for ever. All were required to swear to
maintain the contents of this act; and if any refused the oath, or should
say any thing to the slander of the king's marriage, he was to be judged
guilty of misprision of treason, and to be punished accordingly.
About this time one Phillips complained to the house of commons of
the bishop of London for using him cruelly in prison upon suspicion of
heresy : the commons sent up this to the lords, but received no answer;
they therefore sent some of their members to the bishop, desiring him
to reply to the complaints put in against him: but he acquainted the
house of lords with it; and they with one consent voted, that none of
their house ought to appear or answer to any complaint at the bar of
the house of commons. On this the commons let this case fall, and
sent up a bill to which the lords agreed, regulating the proceedings
against heretics: that whereas, by the statute made by Henry the
Fourth, bishops might commit men upon suspicion of heresy ; and
heresy was generally defined to be whatever was contrary to the scrip-
318 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tures or canonical sanctions, which was liable to great ambiguity;
therefore that statute was repealed, and none were to be committed for
heresy but upon a presentment made by two witnesses ; none were to
be accused for speaking against things that were grounded only upon the
pope's canons. Bail was to be taken for heretics, and they were to be
brought to their trial in open court; and if upon conviction they did not
abjure, or relapsed after abjuration, they were to be burnt; a royal writ
being first obtained. This was a great check to the bishops' tyranny,
and gave no small encouragement to all that favoured the reformation.
The convocation sent in a submission at the same time, by which they
acknowledged that all the convocations ought to be assembled by the
king's writ; and promised upon the words of priests, never to make nor
execute any canons without the king's assent. They also desired, that
since many of the received canons were found to be contrary to the king's
prerogative and the laws of the land, there might be a committee named
by the king of thirty-two, the one half out of the houses of parliament
and the other from the clergy, empowered to abrogate or regulate them
as they should see cause. This was confirmed in parliament, and the
act against appeal to Rome was renewed ; and an appeal was allowed
from the archbishop to the king, upon which the lord chancellor was to
grant a commission for a court of delegates.
Another act passed for regulating the elections and consecrations of
bishops, condemning all bulls from Rome, and appointing that upon a
vacancy the king should grant licence for an election, and should by a
missive letter signify the person's name whom he would have chosen ;
and within twelve days after these were delivered, the dean and chapter,
or prior and convent, were required to return an election of the person
named by the king under their seals. The bishop elect was upon that
to swear fealty, and a writ was to be issued for his consecration in the
usual manner ; after that he was to do homage to the king, upon which
both the temporalities and spiritualities were to be restored, and bishops
were to exercise their jurisdictions as they had done before. All who
transgressed this act were made guilty of a praemunire. A private act
passed depriving cardinal Campegio and Jerome de Gainuccii of the
bishoprics of Salisbury and Worcester : the reasons given for it were,
because they did not reside in their dioceses, for preaching the laws of
God, and keeping hospitality, but lived at the court of Rome, and drew
3,000/. a year out of the kingdom.
The last act of a particular nature, though relating only to private
persons, was concerning the nun of Kent and her accomplices. It was
the first occasion of shedding blood in these disputes, and it was much
cherished by all the superstitious clergy who adhered to the queen's
and the pope's interests. The nun, and many of her accomplices, came
to the bar of the house of lords and confessed the whole matter. Among
the concealers of this treason, Sir Thomas More and Fisher were named ;
the former of whom wrote a long letter upon the subject to Cromwell,
giving him a particular account of all the conversations he had with
the nun : he acknowledged he had esteemed her highly, not so much
out of any regard to her prophecies, but for the opinion he conceived of
her holiness and humility. But he added, that he was then convinced
ACCOUNT OF ELIZABETH BARTON. 319
that she was the most dissembling hypocrite he had ever known, and
guilty of the most detestable hypocrisy and devilish falsehood: he also
believed that she had communication with an evil spirit. This justifica-
tion of Af ore's prevailed so far, that his name was struck out of the
bill.
The tale of the nun thus incidently referred to is worth telling.
Her name was Elizabeth Barton; she lived in Kent, and in occasional
trances into which she fell, she spake such things as made those about
her think she was inspired of God. The parson of her parish, named
Master, hoping to draw advantage from this, informed archbishop
Warham of it, who ordered him to watch her carefully, and bring him
an account of whatever he should observe. But it seems she forgot all
that she said in her fits when they were over. The artful priest however
would not suffer his hopes thus to pass away, but persuaded her she was
inspired, and taught her so to counterfeit those trances, that she became
very expert in the trick, and could assume them at her pleasure. The
matter was soon noised about, and the priest intended to raise the credit
of an image of the blessed virgin, which stood in his church, that so
pilgrimages and offerings might be made to it by her means. He
accordingly associated to himself one Bocking, a monk of Canterbury,
and they taught her to say in her fits, that the blessed virgin appeared
to her, and told her she could not be well till she visited that image.
She spake many good words against ill life, and also against heresy,
and the king's suit of divorce then depending; and by many strange
motions of her body she seemed to be inwardly possessed.
Soon after this, a day was appointed for her cure ; and oefore an
assemblage of two thousand people, she was carried to that image: and
after she had acted over her fits, she seemed suddenly to recover, which
was ascribed to the intercession of the virgin, and the virtue of her
image. She then took the veil, and Bocking was her confessor: but
between this wolf in sheep's clothing and Elizabeth many persons strongly
suspected a criminal intercourse to subsist; while the esteem she was
held in bore them down. Many thought her a prophetess, d and Warham
c In the reign of queen Mary, the works of Sir T. More were published. But the
letter from which the above extract is taken, although printed among the rest, was sup-
pressed. The reason of which seems to be, that there was a design to canonize the nun
at that time, for she was considered as a martyr to the cause of queen Katharine. To
justify this extravagance, there were numbers of feigned miracles concerning the nun ;
therefore a letter so full and clear against her was judged best to he concealed.
d Amidst the comparative darkness of that age, much allowance may be made for the
delusion of the multitude. But in the present day it is unaccountable to see the pervading
influence of supersitition enveloping the minds of such numbers. We allude to the spreading
of Johanna Southcotte's doctrines. But it is as the apostle hath said, " God shall send
them strong delusions, that they should believe a lie." And why is it.l Because their
fear towards the Lord is taught by the precepts of men ; they are ever learning, and never
come to the knowledge of the truth ; beguiling unstable souls, led away with every wind
of doctrine. Not knowing " that many false prophets shall arise, which shall deceive
many."
The above note was printed in the edition of 1806 : had the editor of that edition lived
to become the reviser of this, he might have placed Edward Irving by the side of Johanna
Southcotte and Elizabeth Barton. Widely different from these women in intellect and
station, his patronage of the unknown tongues has reduced him to a humiliating level with
those two vulgar female impostors. Alas for human nature ! To what vile uses may
mind as well as body come!
320 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
among the rest. A book was written of her revelations, and an epistle
was shewed in letters of gold, pretended to be written to her from
Heaven by Mary Magdalen. She said, that when the king was last at
Calais, she was carried invisibly beyond sea, and brought back again ;
that an angel gave her the sacrament, and that God revealed to her
that if the king went on in his divorce, and married another wife, he
should fall from his crown and not live a month longer, but should die
a villain's death.
Several monks of the Charter-house, and the observant friars, with
many nuns, and bishop Fisher, came to give credit to all this, set a
great value on the woman, and grew very insolent upon her visions.
Friar Peyto, preaching in the king's chapel at Greenwich, denounced the
judgments of God upon him ; and said, though others as lying prophets
deceived him, yet he, in the name of God told him, that dogs should
lick his blood as they had done Ahab's. The king bore this patiently,
contenting himself with ordering Dr. Corren to preach the next Sunday,
and to answer ail that he had said ; who railed against Peyto as a dog
and a traitor. Peyto had gone to Canterbury; but Elston, a Franciscan
of the same house, interrupted him, and called him one of the lying pro-
phets who went about to establish the succession of the crown by adul-
tery, and spoke with such vehemence, that the king himself was forced
to command silence. So unwilling was Henry to go to extremities,
that all which was done upon so high a provocation was, that the parties
were summoned before the council, and rebuked for their insolence.
The nun's confederates proceeding to publish her revelations in all parts
of the kingdom, she and nine of her accomplices were at length appre-
hended, when they all, without any rack or torture, discovered the
whole conspiracy. Upon this confession they were appointed to go to
St. Paul's, where, after a sermon preached upon the occasion by the
bishop of Bangor, they repeated their confession in the hearing of" the
people, and were sent as prisoners to the Tower. It was given out of
course by the papal party that all was extorted from them by violence,
and messages were sent to the nun, inducing her to deny all that she had
confessed. The king, on this, judged it necessary to proceed to further
extremities : accordingly she and six of her chief accomplices were
attainted of treason, and the bishop of Rochester and five more were
attainted of misprision of treason. But at the intercession of queen
Anne, as is expressed in the act, all others that had been concerned with
her were pardoned.
After this, the nun with her coadjutors were executed at Tyburn.
There she voluntary confessed herself to be an impostor, and acknow-
ledged the justice of her sentence, laying the blame on those who suf-
fered with her, by whom she had been seduced into the crime ; adding,
that they had exalted her for no other cause than for her having been of
great profit to them, and they had presumed to say, that all she had
done was through the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, when they were
sensible the whole was human artifice. She then begged pardon of
God and the king, and resigned herself to her fate. Thus ended one
of the vilest impostures ever known in this country. Had this fallen
out in a darker age, in which the world went mad after visions, the king
MORE AND FISHER BEFORE THE COUNCIL. 321
might have lost his crown by it. The discovery of it disposed all to look
on older stories of the trances of monastical people, as contrivances to
serve base ends, and made way for the ruin of that order of men in
England ; but all that followed at present upon it was, that the Obser-
vants were put out of their houses, and mixed with the other Franciscans,
and the Austin friars were put in their room.
On the first discovery of the imposture, Cromwell sent Fisher's brother
to him to reprove him for his conduct in that business, and to advise
him to ask the king's pardon for the encouragement he had given to the
nun, which he was confident the king would grant him. But Fisher
excused himself, and said he had only tried whether her revelations were
true or not. He confessed, that upon the reports he had heard, he was
induced to have a high opinion of her, and that he had never discovered
any falsehood in her. It is true, she had said some things to him con-
cerning the king's death which he had not revealed; but he thought it
was not necessary to do it, because he knew she had told them to the
king herself : she had named no person that should kill the king, but
had only denounced it as a judgment of God upon him: and he had
reason to think that the king would have been offended with him if he
had spoken of it to him ; he therefore desired to be no more troubled
with that matter. On this statement Cromwell wrote him a sharp letter
shewing him that he had proceeded rashly in that affair ; being so partial
in the matter of the king's divorce, that he easily believed every thing
that seemed to make against it. Moreover, he told him how necessary
it was to use great caution before extraordinary things should be received
or spread about as revelations, since otherwise the peace of the world
would be in the hands of every bold and crafty impostor ; and in con-
clusion, he advised him again to ask the king's pardon for his rashness,
and he assured him that the king was ready to forgive him. But Fisher
would make no submission, and was in consequence included within the
act; though it was not executed till a new provocation drew him into
farther trouble. The secular and regular clergy every where took the
oath of succession, which none more zealously promoted than Gardiner,
who before the 6th of May got all his clergy to swear it : and the reli-
gious orders being apprehensive of the king's jealousies of them, took
care to remove them by sending in declarations under the seals of their
houses, that in their opinion the king's present marriage was lawful,
and that they would always acknowledge him head of the church of
England.
A meeting of the council was held at Lambeth, to which many were
cited that they might take the oath, among whom were Sir Thomas More
and Fisher. More was first summoned to take it: he answered, that he
neither blamed those that made the acts, nor those that took the oath ;
and that he was willing to swear to maintain the succession to the crown,
but could not take the oath as it was expressed. Fisher made the same
answer, but all the rest that were cited before them took it. More was
pressed to give his reasons against it : but he refused, for it might be
called a disputing against law: yet he would put them into writing if
the king commanded him to do it. Cranmer said, if he did not blame
those that took it, it seems he was not persuaded it was a sin, and so
Y
322 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
was only doubtful of it ; but he was sure he ought to obey the law, if it
was not sinful: so there was a certainty on one hand, and only a doubt
on the other, and therefore the former ought to determine him. This
More confessed did shake him a little, but he said he thought in his
conscience that it would be a sin in him. In conclusion, both he and
Fisher declared that they thought it was in the power of the parliament
to settle the succession to the crown, and so were ready to swear to that;
but they could not take the oath that was tended to them, for by it they
must swear to maintain the king's former marriage as unlawful, to which
they could not assent; so they were both committed to the Tower, and
denied the use of pen, ink, and paper. The old bishop was also hardly
used both in his raiment and diet; he had only rags to cover him, and
fire was often denied him ; a cruelty not capable of excuse, and as bar-
barous as it was imprudent.
In winter parliament met again, and the first act that passed declared
the king to be supreme head on earth of the church of England, which
was ordered to be prefixed to other titles ; and it was enacted, that he
and his successors should have full authority to reform all heresies and
abuses in the spiritual jurisdiction. By another act, parliament con-
firmed the oath of succession, which had not been specified in the
former, though agreed to by the lords. They also gave the king the first-
fruits and tenths of ecclesiastical benefices, as being the supreme head
of the church ; for the king being put in the pope's room, it was thought
reasonable to give him the annats which the popes had formerly exacted.
Another act passed, declaring some things treason ; one of these was the
denying the king any of his titles, or calling him heretic, schismatic, or
usurper of the crown. By another act, provision was made for setting
up twenty-six suffragan bishops over England, for the more speedy
administration of the sacraments, and the better service of God. The
supreme diocesan was to present two names to the king, and upon the
king's declaring his choice, the archbishop was to consecrate the person,
and then the bishop was to delegate such parts of his charge to his care
as he thought fitting, which was to continue during his pleasured The
great extent of the dioceses in England made it difficult for one bishop
to govern them with that exactness that was necessary; these were
therefore appointed to assist them in the discharge of the pastoral care.
Fisher and More, by two special acts, were attainted of misprision of
treason ; five other clerks were in like manner condemned, all for refus-
ing to take the oath of succession. The see of Rochester was declared
void ; yet it would seem that few were willing to succeed such a man,
for it continued vacant two years, and was at last with difficulty filled.
But now a new scene commenced ; and before we enter upon it we
shall find it necessary to state the progress that the new opinions had
made in England during the time of the king's suit of divorce. While
e These were the same as those whom the ancient church called Cherepiscopi, who were
at first the bishops of some villages, but were afterwards put under the jurisdiction of the
bishop of the next city. They were set up before the council of Nice, and continued in
the church for many ages; but the bishops devolving their whole spiritual power upon
them they were put down, and a decretal epistle was forged in the name of P. Damascus,
condemning them.
TINDAL'S NEW TESTAMENT BURNED IN CHEAPSIDE. 323
Wolsey was a minister, the reformed preachers were gently used ; and
it is probable the king- ordered the bishops to give over their enquiring
after them, when the pope began to use him ill; for the progress of
heresy was always reckoned at Rome among the mischiefs that would
follow upon the pope's rejecting the king's suit. But More coming into
favour, he offered new counsels, and thought the king's proceeding
severely against heretics would be so meritorious at Rome, that it would
work more effectually than all his threatenings had done. Upon this, a
severe proclamation was issued both against their books and persons,
ordering all the laws against them to be put in execution. Tindal and
others at Antwerp were every year either translating or writing books
against some of the received errors, and sending them over to England :
but his translation of the New Testament gave the greatest wound, and
was much complained of by the clergy as full of errors. Tonstal, then
bishop of London, being a man of great learning, returning from the
treaty of Cambray, to which More and he were sent in the king's name,
as he came through Antwerp, dealt with an English merchant who was
secretly a friend of Tindal's, to procure him as many of his Testaments
as could be had for money.
Tindal gladly received this ; for being engaged in a more correct
edition, he found he should be better able to proceed if the copies of the
old were sold off; he therefore gave the merchant all he had, and
Tonstall paying the price of them, got them over to England, and burnt
them publicly in Cheapside. This was called a burning of the word of
God : and it was said the clergy had reason to revenge themselves on
it ; for it had done them more mischief than all other books whatsoever.
But a year after this, the second edition being finished, great numbers
were sent over to England, when Constantine, one of Tindal's partners,
happened to be taken : believing that some of the London merchants
furnished them with money, he was promised his liberty if he would
discover who they were, when he told him the bishop of London did
more than all the world beside ; for he had bought up the greatest part
of a faulty impression. The clergy, on their condemning Tindal's trans-
lation, promised a new one ; but a year after they said it was unnecessary
to publish the Scriptures in English, and that the king did well not to
set about it.
About this time a singular book written by one Fish, of Gray's Inn,
was published. It was entitled, " The Supplication of the Beggars,"
and had a vast sale. The beggars complained that the alms of the people
were intercepted by the mendicant friars, who were a useless burthen
to the government ; they also taxed the pope with cruelty for taking no
pity on the poor, since none but those who could pay for it were deli-
vered out of purgatory. The king was so pleased with this publication,
that he would not suffer any thing to be done against the author. More
answered it by another supplication in behalf of the souls in purgatory;
setting forth the miseries they were in, and the relief which they received
by the masses that were said for them ; and therefore called upon their
friends to support the religious orders which had now so many enemies.
Fish published a serious answer, in which he shewed that there was
no mention made of purgatory in scripture; that it was inconsistent
324 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
with the merits of Christ, by which upon sincere repentance all sins
were pardoned ; for if they were pardoned, they could not be punished ;
and though temporary judgments, either as medicinal corrections or a
warning to others, do sometimes fall even on true penitents, yet fiery
punishments in another state cannot consist with a free pardon and the
remembering of our sins no more/ In expounding many passages of the
New Testament, he appealed to More's great friend Erasmus, and
shewed that the fire spoken of by St. Paul, as that which would con-
sume the wood, hay, and stubble, could only be meant of the fiery trial
of persecution. He shewed that the primitive church did not receive
the doctrine of purgatory. Ambrose, Jerome, and Austin did not
believe it; the last having plainly said that no mention was made of it
in scripture. The monks alone brought it in ; and by many wonderful
stories possessed the world of the belief of it, and had made a very
profitable trade in it. This book so provoked the clergy, that they re-
solved to make the author feel a real fire, for endeavouring to extinguish
their imaginary one. More objected poverty and want of learning to
the new preachers ; but it was answered, the same thing was made use
of to disgrace Christ and his apostles; while a plain simplicity of mind,
without artificial improvements, was rather thought a good disposition
for men that were to bear a cross, and the glory of God appeared more
eminent than the instruments seemed contemptible.
But the pen being thought too feeble and gentle a tool, the clergy
betook themselves to persecution. Many were vexed with imprison-
ments for teaching their children the Lord's prayer in English, for har-
bouring the preachers, and for speaking against the corruptions in the
worship, or the vices of the clergy; but these generally abjured and
saved themselves from death. Others more faithful were honoured with
martyrdom. One Hinton, formerly a curate, who had gone over to
Tindal, was seized on his way back with some books he was conveying
to England, and was condemned by archbishop Warham. He was kept
long in prison ; but remaining firm to his cause, he was at length burned
at Maidstone.
But the most remarkable martyr of this day was Thomas Bilney, who
was brought up at Cambridge from a child, and became a bold and
uncompromising reformer. On leaving the university, he went into
several places and preached ; and in his sermons spoke with great
boldness against the pride and insolence of the clergy. This was
during the ministry of Wolsey, who hearing of his attacks, caused him
to be seized and imprisoned. Overcome with fear, Bilney abjured, was
pardoned, and returned to Cambridge in the year 1530. Here he fell
into great horror of mind in consequence of his instability and the denial
of the truth. He became ashamed of himself, bitterly repented of his sin,
and, growing strong in faith, resolved to make some atonement by a
f It is evident that the papists, who hold the doctrine of purgatory, have no correct
notions of a future state, and on this primary doctrine of the New Testament are almost
in as great darkness and doubt as were the pagans of antiquity, and as are many heathens
to this day. Their future world is in fact much worse than this, and many pious sufferers
would infinitely prefer remaining here, with all the infirmities that beset them, than go
hence to fall into purgatorial fires, even though but of a few years duration.
MARTYRDOM OF THOMAS B1LNEY. 325
public avowal of his apostacy and confession of his sentiments. To
prepare himself for his task, he studied the scriptures with deep atten-
tion for two years ; at the expiration of which he again quitted the
university, and went into Norfolk, where he was born, and preached up
and down that country against idolatry and superstition; exhorting the
people to live well, to give much alms, to believe in Christ, and to offer
up their souls and wills to him in the sacrament. He openly confessed
his own sin of denying the faith; and using no precaution as he went
about, was soon taken by the bishop's officers, condemned as a relapse,
and degraded. Sir Thomas More not only sent down the writ to burn
him, but in order to make him suffer another way, he affirmed that he
had said in print that he had abjured; but no paper signed by him was
ever shewn, and little credit was due to the priests that gave it out that
he did it by word of mouth. Parker, afterwards archbishop, was an
eye-witness of his sufferings. He bore all his hardships with great forti-
tude and resignation, and continued very cheerful after his sentence.
He ate the poor provisions that were brought him heartily, saying, He
must keep up a ruinous cottage till it fell. He had these words of
Isaiah often in his mouth, " When thou walkest through the fire, thou
shalt not be burned:" and by burning his finger in the candle, he pre-
pared himself for the fire, and said it would only consume the stubble
of his body, while it would purify his soul, and give it a swifter con-
veyance to the region where Elijah was conveyed by another fiery
chariot.
On the 10th of November he was brought to the stake, where he re-
peated the creed, as a proof that he was a true Christian. He then
prayed earnestly, and with the deepest feeling offered this prayer —
"Enter not into judgment with thy servant, O Lord, for in thy sight
no flesh living can be justified." Dr. Warner attended and embraced
him, shedding many tears, and wishing he might die in as good a frame
of mind as Bilney then was. The friars requested him to inform the
people, that they were not instrumental to his death, which he did, so
that the last act of his life was full of charity, even to those who put
him to death.
The officers then put the reeds and fagots about his body, and set
fire to the first, which made a great flame, and disfigured his face :
he held up his hands, and often struck his breast, crying sometimes
" Jesus!" sometimes " Credo!" but the flame was blown away from him
several times, the wind being very high, till at length the wood taking
fire, the flame was stronger, and he yielded up his spirit to God who
gave it.
As his body shrunk up it leaned down on the chain, till one of the
officers with his halberd struck out the staple of the chain behind him,
on which it fell down into the bottom of the fire, when they heaped up
wood upon it and consumed it. The sufferings, the confession, and the
heroic death of this martyr, inspired and animated others with the same
fortitude.
Byfield, who had formerly abjured, was taken dispersing Tindal's
books; and he, with one Tewkesbury, were condemned by the bishop of
London, and burnt. Two men and a woman suffered the same fate at
326 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
York. Of these proceedings the parliament complained to the king;
but this did not check the sanguinary proceedings of the clergy. One
Bainham, a counsellor of the Temple, was taken on suspicion of heresy,
was whipped in the presence of Sir T. More, and afterwards racked in
the Tower ; yet he could not be wrought on to accuse any : through
fear, however, he abjured himself. After this being discharged, he was
in great trouble of mind, and could find no quiet till he went publicly
to church, where he openly confessed his sins, and declared the torments
he felt in his conscience for what he had done. Upon this he was again
seized on, and condemned for having said that Thomas a Becket was a
murderer, and was damned if he had not repented ; and that in the
sacrament, Christ's body was received by faith, and not eaten with the
mouth. Sentence was passed on him by Stokesly, and he was burnt.
Soon after this More delivered up the great seal, in consequence of
which the preachers had some ease.
The rage of persecution stopped not at the living, but vented itself
even on the dead. Lord Tracy made a will by which he left his soul to
God, in hope of mercy through Christ, without the help of any saint;
and therefore he declared that he would leave nothing for soul-masses.
This will being brought into the bishop of London's court to be proved,
after his death, gave so much offence, that he was condemned as a
heretic, and an order was sent to the Chancellor of Worcester to raise
his body ; but he proceeded farther and burnt it, which could not be
justified, since he was not a relapse. Tracy's heir sued him for it, and
he was turned out of his place, and fined 400Z. The clergy proclaimed
an indulgence of forty days' pardon to any that carried a fagot to the
burning of a heretic, that so cruelty might seem the more meritorious.
An aged man, Harding, being condemned by Longland, bishop of
Lincoln, as he was tied to the stake, a barbarian flung a fagot with such
force against him, that it dashed out his brains.
The reformed enjoyed a respite of two years, when the crafty
Gardiner represented to the king, that it would give him great advan-
tages against the pope if he would take some occasion to shew his
hatred of heresy. Accordingly a young man named Frith was chosen
as a sacrifice for this affected zeal for religion. He was distinguished
for learning, and was the first who wrote against the corporeal presence
in the sacrament in England. He followed Zuinglius's doctrine on these
grounds: Christ received in the sacrament gave eternal life, but this
was given only to those who believed, from which he inferred that he
was received only by faith. St. Paul said, that the fathers before Christ
eat the same spiritual food with christians; from which it appears that
Christ is now no more corporeally present to us than he was to them ;
and he argued from the nature of sacraments in general, and the end
of the Lord's supper, that it was only a commemoration. Yet, upon
these premises, he built no other conclusion but that Christ's presence
was no article of faith. His reasons he put in writing, which falling
into the hands of Sir Thomas More, were answered by him : but Frith
never saw his publication till he was put in prison; and then, though
he was loaded with irons, and had no books allowed, he replied. He
insisted much on the argument, that the Israelites did eat the same food,
1 Kt lll'S ARGUMENTS AGAINST TRANSUBSTANTIATION. 327
and drank of the same rock, and that rock was Christ; and since
Christ was only mystically and by faith received by them, he concluded
that be was at the present time also received only in the same manner.
He shewed that Christ's words, " This is my body," were accommodated
to the Jewish phrase of calling the lamb the Lord's passover; and con-
tained his opinion with many passages out of the fathers, in which the
elements were called signs and figures of Christ's body; and they said,
that upon consecration they did not cease to be bread and wine, but
remained still in their own proper natures. He also shewed that the
fathers were strangers to all the consequences of that opinion, as that
a body could be in more places than one at the same time, or could be
every where in the manner of a spirit : yet he concluded, that if that
opinion were held only as a speculation, so that adoration were not offered
to the elements, it might be well tolerated, but that he condemned it as
gross idolatry. This was intended by him to prevent such heats in
England, as were raised in Germany between the Lutherans and
Helvetians, by reason of their different opinions concerning the sacra-
ment.
For these offences he was seized in May, 1533, and brought before
Stokesly, Gardiner, and Longland. They charged him with not believ-
ing in purgatory and transubstantiation. He gave the reasons that de-
termined him to look on neither of these as articles of faith ; but thought
that the affirming or denying them ought to be determined positively.
The bishops seemed unwilling to proceed to sentence; but he continuing
resolute, Stokesly pronounced it, and so delivered him to the secular
arm, insisting that his punishment might be moderated, so that the
rigour might not be too extreme, nor yet the gentleness of it too much
mitigated. This obtestation by the bowels of Christ was thought a
mockery, when all the world knew that it was intended that he should
be burnt. One Hewitt, an apprentice of London, was also condemned
with him on the same account. They were brought to the stake at
Smithfield on the 4th of July, 1533. On arriving there, Frith expressed
great joy, and hugged the fagots with seeming transport. A priest
named Cook, who stood by, called to the people not to pray for them
more than they would do for a dog: at this Frith smiled, and prayed
God to forgive him ; after which the fire was kindled, which consumed
them both to ashes.
This was the last instance of the cruelty of the clergy at present; for
the act already mentioned, regulating their proceedings, followed soon
after. Phillips, at whose complaint that bill was begun, was committed
upon suspicion of heresy; a copy of Tracy's will was found about him,
and butter and cheese were also found in his chamber in Lent ; but he
being required to abjure, appealed to the king as supreme judge in such
matters. Upon that he was set at liberty; but whether he was tried by
the king or not, is not upon record.
The act being passed, gave the new preachers and their followers
some respite. The king was also empowered to reform all heresies and
idolatries: and his affairs now obliged him to unite himself to the
princes of Germany, that by their means he might so embroil the em-
peror's affairs, as not to give him leisure to turn his arms against Eng-
328 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
land ; and this produced a slackening of all severities against the
reformers at home; for those princes, in the first fervour of the refor-
mation, made it an article in all their treaties, that none should be pro-
secuted for favouring their doctrine. The queen also openly protected
them; she took Latimer and Shaxton to be her chaplains, and promoted
them to the bishoprics of Worcester and Salisbury. Cranmer was fully
convinced of the necessity of a reformation, and that he might carry it
on with true judgment, and justify it by good authorities, he made a
careful collection of the opinions of the ancient fathers, and later
doctors, in all the points of religion, comprising six folio volumes. He
was a man of great candour and much patience and industry; and thus
was on all accounts well prepared for that work, to which the providence
of God now called him : and though he was in some things too much
subject to the king's imperious temper, yet in the matter of the six ar-
ticles, he shewed that he wanted not the courage that became a bishop
in the most critical affairs. Cromwell was his great and constant friend ;
a man of mean birth but of excellent qualities, as appeared in his
adhering to his master Wolsey after his fall.
The following incident strongly characterizes the generous temper of
this minister : — At the height of his prosperity he happened to see a
merchant of Lucca, who had pitied and relieved him when he was in
Italy, but did not so much as know him, or pretended to any returns
for the small favours he had formerly shewed him, and was then reduced
to a low condition. Cromwell, however, made himself known to him,
gave him the strongest acknowledgments and the most substantial proofs
of his gratitude and liberality.
While these men set themselves to carry on a reformation, another
party was formed who as vigorously opposed it. This was headed by
the duke^of Norfolk and Gardiner ; and almost all the clergy joined with
them. They persuaded the king that nothing would give the pope or
the emperor such advantages, as his making any changes in religion ;
and it would reflect much on him, if he who had written so learnedly for
the faith, should in spite to the pope make any changes in it. Nothing
would encourage other princes so much to follow his example, or keep
his subjects so faithfully to him, as his continuing steadfast in the ancient
religion. These things made a great impression on him. On the other
hand, Cranmer represented to him that if he rejected the pope's authority
it was very absurd to let such opinions or practices continue in the church
which had no other foundation but papal decrees; and therefore he
desired that this might be put to the trial ; he ought to depend on God,
and hope for good success if he proceeded in this matter according to
the duty of a christian prince. England was a complete body within
itself; and though in the Roman empire, when united under one prince
general councils were easily assembled, yet now they were not easily
to be converted, and therefore should not be relied on ; but every prince-
ought to reform the church in his dominions by a national synod ; and
if in the ancient church such synods condemned heresies, and reformed
abuses, this might be much more done, when Europe was divided into so
many kingdoms. It was visible that though both the emperor and the
princes of Germany had for twenty years desired a general council, it
CB W.MKK's SPEECH. 329
could not be obtained of the pope; he had indeed offered one at Mantua,
but that was only an illusion.
Upon this the king desired others of his bishops to give their opinions
concerning the emperor's power of calling councils ; so Cranmer of
Canterbury, Tonstal of London, Clark of Bath and Wells, and Goodrick
of Ely, made answer, that though ancient councils were called by the
Roman emperors, yet that was done by reason of the extent of their
monarchy, which had now ceased, and other princes had an entire
monarchy within their dominions. At this assembly of prelates Cranmer
made a long speech, setting forth the necessity of reformation. He
began with the impostures and deceit used by the canonists and other
courtiers at Rome. Then he spoke to the authority of a general council ;
he shewed that it flowed not from the number of the bishops, but from
the matter of their decisions, which were received with an universal
consent ; for there were many more bishops at the council of Arimini,
which was condemned, than either at Nice or Constantinople, which
was received. Christ had named no head of the whole church, as God
had named no head of the world ; but that grew up for order's sake, as
there were archbishops set over provinces; yet some popes were con-
demned for heresy, as Liberius and others. If faith must be showed by
works, the ill lives of most popes of late shewed that their faith was to
be suspected ; and all the privileges which princes or synods granted to
that see might be recalled. Popes ought to submit themselves to general
councils, and were to be tried by them ; he showed what were the pre-
sent corruptions of the pope and his court, which needed reformation.
The pope, according to the decree of the council of Basil, was the
church's vicar, and not Christ's; and so was accountable to it. The
churches of France declared the council to be above the pope, which
had been acknowledged by many popes themselves. The power of
councils had also bounds, nor could they judge of the rights of princes,
or proceed to a sentence against a king ; nor were their canons of any
force till princes added their sanctions to them. Councils ought also to
proceed moderately, even against those that held errors, and ought not
to impose things indifferent too severely. The scriptures, and not men's
traditions, ought to be the standard of their definitions. The divines of
Paris held, that a council could not make a new article of faith that
was not in the scriptures ; and all Christ's promises to the church were
to be understood with this condition, " if they kept the faith :" there-
fore there was great reason to doubt concerning the authority of a
council -, some of them had contradicted others, and many others were
never received. The fathers had always appealed to the scriptures, as
superior in authority to councils, by which only all controversies ought
to be decided: yet, on the other hand, it was dangerous to be wise in
one's own conceit, and he thought when the fathers all agreed in the
exposition of any place of scripture, that ought to be looked on as flow-
ing from the spirit of God. He showed how little regard was to be had
to a council, in which the pope presided, and that if any common error
had passed upon the world, when that came to be discovered, every one
was at liberty to shake it off, even though they had sworn to maintain
that error: this he applied to the pope's authority. This was the state
330 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
of the court after king Henry had shaken off the pope's power, and
assumed a supremacy in ecclesiastical affairs.
The nobility and gentry were generally well satisfied with the change ;
but the body of the people were more under the power of the priests, who
studied to infuse into them great fears of a change in religion. It was
said the king now joined himself to heretics ; that both the queen,
Cranmer, and Cromwell favoured them. It was left free to dispute what
were articles of faith, and what were only the decrees of popes ; and
changes would be made under this pretence, that they only rejected those
opinions which were supported by the papal authority. The monks and
friars saw themselves left at the king's mercy. Their bulls could be no
longer useful to them. The trade of new saints, and indulgences, was
now at an end; they had also some intimations that Cromwell was form-
ing a project for suppressing them : so they thought it necessary for their
own preservation to embroil the king's affairs as much as was possible ;
therefore both in confessions and discourses, they were inspiring the
people with a dislike of his proceedings. But the practices of the clergy
at home, and of cardinal Pole abroad, the libels there were published,
and the rebellions that were afterwards raised in England, wrought so
much on the king's temper, naturally imperious and boisterous, that he
became too apt to commit acts of severity, and to bring his subjects into
trouble upon slight grounds ; and his new title of head of the church
seemed to have increased his former vanity, and made him fancy that
all his subjects were bound to regulate their belief by the measures he
set them.
The bishops and abbots did what they could to free the king of any
jealousies he might have of them; and of their own accord, before
any law was made about it, they swore to maintain the king's supre-
macy. The first act of it was making Cromwell vicar-general, and
visitor of all the monasteries and churches of England, with a delega-
tion of the king's supremacy to him ; he was also empowered to give
commissions subaltern to himself; and all wills, where the estate was
in value above 200/. were to be proved in his court. This was after-
wards enlarged, and he was made the king's vicegerent in ecclesiastical
matters, and had the precedence of all next the royal family ; and his
authority was in all points the same as the pope's legates. Pains were
taken to engage all the clergy to declare for the supremacy. At Oxford
a public determination was made, to which every member assented,
that the pope had no more authority in England than any other foreign
bishop. The Franciscans at Richmond made some opposition ; they
said that by the rule of St. Francis, they were bound to obey the holy
see. The bishop of Litchfield told them that all the bishops in England,
all the heads of houses, and the most learned divines, had signed that
proposition. St. Francis made his rule in Italy, where the bishop of
Rome was metropolitan, but that ought not to extend to England :
and it was shewed that the chapter cited by them was not written by
him, but added since; yet they continued positive in their refusal to
sign it.
It is well known that all the monks and friars, though they appeared
to comply, yet hated this new power of the king's; the people were
VISITATION OF THE MONASTERIES. 331
also startled at it : so one Dr. Leighton, who had been in the cardinal's
service with Cromwell, proposed a general visitation of all the religious
houses in England ; and thought that nothing would reconcile the nation
so much to the king's supremacy, as to see some good effect flow from
it. Others deemed this too bold a step, and feared it would provoke
the religious orders too much. Yet it was known that they were guilty
of such disorders, as nothing could so effectually check as enquiry.
Cranmer led the way to this by a metropolitan visitation, for which he
obtained the king's licence : he took care to see that the pope's name
was struck out of all the offices of the church, and that the king's
supremacy was generally acknowledged.
In October the general visitation of the monasteries commenced;
which was divided into several precincts : instructions were given them
what things to enquire after, as whether the houses had the full number
according to their foundation ? if they performed divine worship in
the appointed hours? what exemptions they had? what were their sta-
tutes ? how their heads were chosen ? and how their vows were observed ?
Whether they lived according to the severities of their orders ? how the
master and other officers did their duties ? how their lands and revenues
were managed ? what hospitality was kept ? what care was taken of the
novices ? what benefices were in their gift, and how they disposed of
them? how the inclosures of the nunneries were preserved? whether the
nuns went abroad, or if men were admitted to come to them ? how they
employed their time, and what priests they had for their confessors ?
They were also ordered to give them some injunctions in the king's
name, that they should acknowledge his supremacy, and maintain the
act of succession, and declare all to be absolved from rules or oath
that bound them to obey the pope; and that all their statutes tending to
that bond should be erased out of their books. That the abbots should
not have choice dishes, but plain tables, for hospitality ; and that the
scriptures should be read at meals ; that they should have daily lectures
of divinity; and maintain some of every house at the university. The
abbot was required to instruct the monks in true religion, and to shew
them that it did not consist in outward ceremonies, but in clearness of
heart, and purity of life, and the worship of God in spirit and truth.
Rules were given about their revenues, and against admitting any under
twenty years of age. Visitors were empowered to punish offenders, or
to bring them to answer before the visitor-general.
What the ancient British monks were is not well known ; whether
they were governed according to the rules of the monks of Egypt or
France, is matter of conjecture. They were in all things obedient to
their bishops, as all the monks of the primitive times were. But upon
the confusions which the Gothic war brought upon Italy, Benedict set
up a new order with more artificial rules for its government. Not long
after, Gregory the Great raised the credit of that order much, by his
dialogues: and Austin the monk being sent by him to convert England,
founded a monastery at Canterbury, which bore his name, and which
both the king and Austin exempted from the archbishop's jurisdiction, s
s This requires some explanation, as Austin, or Augustine, was himself archbishop of
Canterbury, and could only concur in such a measure by his will.
332 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
After that many other abbeys were founded and exempted by the kings
of England, if credit is due to the records and charters of the monas-
teries.
In the end of the eighth century, the Danes made several descents
upon England; and finding the most wealth and the least resistance in
the monasteries, they generally plundered them, insomuch that the
monks were forced to quit their seats, and leave them to the secular
clergy : so that in King Edgar's time there was scarce a monk left in
all England. He was a lewd and cruel prince: and Dunstan and other
monks taking advantage from some horrors of conscience into which he
fell, persuaded him that restoring the monastic state would be matter of
great merit ; on which he converted many of the chapters into monas-
teries. He only exempted them from all payments to the bishops ; but
others were exempted from episcopal jurisdiction. In some only the
precinct was exempted; in others, the exemption was extended to all the
lands or churches belonging to them. The latest exemption from epis-
copal jurisdiction granted by any king, is that of Battel, founded by
William the Conqueror. After this the exemptions were granted by the
popes, who pretending to an universal jurisdiction, assumed this among
other usurpations.
Some abbeys had also the privilege of being sanctuaries to all who fled
to them. The foundation of all their wealth, was the belief of purgatory,
and of the virtue that was in masses to redeem the souls of men; and
that these eased the torments of departed spirits, and at last delivered
them. Hence it passed among all for piety to parents, and of care for
their own souls and families, to endow those houses with some lands, on
condition that they should have masses said for them, as it was agreed
on more or less frequently, according to the measure of the gift. This
would have drawn the whole wealth of the nation into those houses, if
the statute of Mortmain had not put some restraint to the practice.
They also persuaded the world that the saints interceded for them, and
would take it kindly at their hands, if they made great offerings to their
shrines, and would thereupon intercede the more earnestly for them.
The credulous vulgar, measuring the court of heaven by those on earth,
believed presents might be of great efficacy there, and thought the new
favourites would have the most weight in their intercessions : so that upon
every new canonization there was a fresh fit of devotion towards the last
saint, whilst the elder was almost forgotten. Some images were believed
to have an extraordinary virtue in them, and pilgrimages to these were
much extolled. There was also great rivalry among the several orders,
as well as the different houses of the same orders, every one magnifying
their own saints, images, and relics most. The wealth of these houses
brought them under great corruptions. They were generally very disso-
lute, and grossly ignorant. Their privileges were become a public griev-
ance, and their lives gave great scandal to the world. So that, as they
had found it easy to bear down the secular clergy, when their own vices
were more secret, the begging friars found it easy to carry the esteem
of the world from them. These, under the appearance of poverty, and
coarse diet and clothing, gained much esteem, and became almost the
only preachers and confessors then in the world. They had a general
QUEEN KATHARINE'S DEATH. 333
at Rome, from whom they received such directions as the popes sent
them ; so that they were more useful to the papacy than the monks had
boon. They had also the school-learning in their hands, on which ac-
count they were generally much cherished. But living much in the
world they could not conceal their vices so artfully as the monks had
done ; and though several reformations had been made of their orders,
they had all fallen under great scandal and disesteem. The king in-
tended to erect new bishoprics; but to do this it was necessary to make
use of some of their revenues, and he thought the best way to bring
their wealth into his hands, would be to expose their vices. Cranmer
promoted this because the houses were founded on gross abuses, and
subsisted by them; which were necessary to be removed if a refor-
mation went on. The extent of many dioceses was also such, that
one man could not oversee them; to remedy which, he intended to
have more bishoprics founded, and to have houses at every cathedral
for the education of those who should be employed in the pastoral
charge.
The visitors went over England, and found in many places monstrous
disorders. The most unnatural crimes were found in many houses :
great factions and barbarous cruelties were in others ; and in some there
were found tools for coining. The report contained many abominable
things, not fit to be mentioned: some of these were printed, but the
greater part were suppressed and concealed. The first house that was
surrendered to the king was Langdon, in Kent; the abbot was found to
live with a woman who went in the habit of a lay brother. To prevent
greater evil to himself, he and ten of his monks signed a resignation of
their house to the king. Two other monasteries in the same county,
Folkstone and Dover, followed their example. And in the following
year, four others made the like surrenders.
In the year 1536, queen Katharine died. She had been resolute in
maintaining her title and state, saying that when the pope had judged
her marriage was good, she would die rather than do any thing to pre-
judice it. She desired to be buried among the Observant friars, who
had most strongly supported and suffered for her cause. She ordered
500 masses to be said for her soul ; and that one of her women should
go a pilgrimage to our lady of Walsingham, and give two hundred
nobles on her way to the poor.
When she found death approaching, she wrote to the emperor, recom-
mending her daughter Mary, who afterwards became queen, to his care.
She also wrote to the king, with this inscription, " My dear lord, king,
and husband/' She forgave him all the injuries he had done her, and
wished him to have regard to his soul. She recommended her daughter
to his protection, and desired him to be kind to her three maids, and to
pay her servants a year's wages. Strange to say, she concluded hei
letter to the king with this sentence, " Mine eyes desire you above all
things." She expired on the eighth of January, at Kimbolton, in the
fiftieth year of her age, having been thirty-three years in England. She
was devout and exemplary; used to work with her own hands, and kept
her women at work with her. Her alms-deeds, joined to her troubles, be-
gat an esteem for her among all ranks of people. The king ordered her to
334 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
be buried in the abbey of Peterborough, and was, or seemed to be,
considerably affected at her death.
The same year the parliament confirmed the act which empowered
two to revise the ecclesiastical laws ; but no time being limited for its
completion it had no effect. The chief business of this session was the
suppressing of monasteries under 200Z. a year. The act set forth the
great disorders of those houses, and the many unsuccessful attempts
made to reform them. The few truly serious people that were in them
were ordered to be placed in the greater houses, where religion was better
observed, and the revenues given to the king. The king was also em-
powered to make new foundations of such of the suppressed houses as
he pleased, which were in all three hundred and seventy. This parlia-
ment, after six years' continuance, was dissolved rather suddenly, and
somewhat against the will of the king. It was more than suspected,
by persons interested in the preservation of the remaining monasteries,
that they would soon share the fate of their predecessors, and the most
strenuous efforts were therefore made to get rid of the parliament in order
to keep a few of these obnoxious establishments in the land.
In a convocation which sat at this time, a motion was made for trans-
lating the Bible into English, which had been promised when Tindal's
translation was condemned, but was afterwards laid aside by the clergy,
as neither necessary nor expedient. It was said, that those whose office
was to teach people the word of God, did all they could to suppress it.
Moses, the prophets, and the apostles, wrote in the vulgar tongue:
Christ directed the people to search the scriptures; and as soon as any
nation was converted to the christian religion, the Bible was translated
into their language; nor was it ever taken out of the hands of the
people, till the christian religion was so corrupted, that it was deemed
impolitic to trust them with a book which would so manifestly discover
those errors : hence the legends, as agreeing better with those abuses,
were read instead of the word of God. Cranmer thought, that putting
the Bible into the people's hands would be the most effectual means of
promoting the reformation ; and therefore moved that the king might
be prayed to order it. But Gardiner and all the other party opposed
this vehemently. They pleaded that all the extravagant opinions then
in Germany rose from the indiscreet use of the scriptures. Some of
those opinions were at this time disseminated in England, both against
the divinity and incarnation of Christ, and the usefulness of the sacra-
ments. It was therefore urged that during these distractions the use of
the scriptures would prove a great snare, and proposed that instead of
them, there might be some short exposition of the christian religion put
in the people's hands, which might keep them in subjection to the king
and the church : but it was carried in the convocation for the affirmative.
At court men were much divided in this point; some said, if the king
gave way to it, he would never be able after that to govern his people,
and that they would break into many divisions : on the other hand, it was
maintained, that nothing would make the difference between the pope's
power and the king's supremacy appear more eminently, than for the
one to give the people the free use of the word of God, while the other
kept them in darkness, and ruled them by a blind obedience. It would
QUEEN ANNE SENT TO THE TOWER. 335
also go far to extinguish the interest that either the pope or the monks
had in England. The Bible would teach them, that the world had been
long deceived by their impostures, which had no foundation in the scrip-
tures. These reasons, joined with the interest that the queen had in
the king-, prevailed so far with him, that he gave order for setting about
this important affair with all possible haste; and within three years the
impression of it was finished.
The popish party saw with disappointment and concern, that the new
queen was the great obstacle to their designs. Henry had married
Anne chiefly through passionate fondness, and she grew not only in the
king's esteem, but in the love of the nation. It was reported that she
bestowed above 14,000/. in alms to the poor, and she seemed to delight
in doing good. Soon after Katharine's death, she bore a dead son,
which was believed to have made some impression on the king's mind
unfavourable to her. It was also considered that Katharine being dead,
the king might marry another papist, and thus regain the friendship of
the pope and the emperor, and that the issue by any other marriage
would never be questioned. With these reasons of state the king's
affections coincided, for he was now in love with Jane Seymour, whose
disposition was tempered between the gravity of Katharine and the
gaiety of Anne. The latter used all possible arts to re-inflame a dying
affection; but the king was changed, and even determined on her de-
struction : and her brother's wife being jealous of her husband and
her, prejudiced the king with her own extravagant apprehensions, and
filled his head with many false reports. Norris, Weston, and Brereton,
the king's servants, and Smeton a musician, were said to have been
particularly officious about her. Something was pretended to have
been sworn by the lady Wingfield at her death that determined the king,
but there is little light left to judge of that matter. The king left her,
upon which she was confined to her chamber, and the five persons
before mentioned were seized and sent to the Tower, and the next day
she was sent thither. On the river some privy counsellors came to
examine her, but she made deep protestations of her innocence ; and
on landing at the Tower she fell on her knees and prayed God to assist
her, as she was free of the crimes laid to her charge. The others who
were imprisoned on her account, denied every thing, except Smeton,
who, it is supposed through hopes of favour and acquittal, confessed that
he had been criminally connected with her. This, however, he denied
when he was brought afterwards to execution, a denial of undoubted proot
that she was indeed innocent. She was of a remarkable lively temper,
and having resided long in the French court, had imbibed in her beha-
viour somewhat of the levities of that people. She was also free from
pride, and hence, in her exterior, she might have condescended too
much to her familiar servants. She even confessed she had once rallied
Norris, and told him that he was in love with her, and only waited the
king's death to marry her: this was the head and front of her offending.
The whole court however was turned against her, and she had no
friend about the king but Cranmer : her enemies therefore procured an
order for him not to come to court; yet he put all to hazard, and wrote
the king a long letter upon this critical juncture. He acknowledged,
336 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
that if the things reported of the queen were true, it was the greatest
affliction that ever befel the king, and therefore exhorted him to bear it
with patience and submission to the will of God : he confessed he never
had a better opinion of any woman than of her; and that next to the
king he was more bound to her than to all persons living, and therefore
he begged his leave to pray that she might be found innocent : he loved
her not a little, because of the love which she seemed to bear to God
and his gospel ; but if she was guilty, all who love the gospel must hate
her, as having been the greatest slander possible to the gospel : but he
prayed the king not to entertain any prejudice to the gospel on her
account, nor give the world to say, that his love to that was founded on
the influence she had with him. But the king was inexorable. The
indictments were laid in the counties of Kent and Middlesex, the former
relating to what was done in Greenwich. Smeton pleaded guilty, as
before; the rest pleaded not guilty; but they were all condemned.
On the 15th of May the queen and her brother, who was then a peer,
were tried before the duke of Norfolk, as high steward, and a court of
twenty-seven peers. The crime charged on her was, that she had pro-
cured illicit favours from her brother and four other persons, and had
often said to them, that the king never had her heart; and this was to
the slander of the issue begotten between the king and her, which was
treason by the act which confirmed her marriage, so that this act was
now turned to her ruin. They would not now acknowledge her the
king's lawful wife, and therefore did not found the treason on the known
statute 25th Edw. III. It does not appear what evidence was brought
against her; for Smeton being already condemned could not be
subpoenaed to attest her guilt; and his never being brought face to
face against her, gave just suspicion that he was persuaded to his con-
fession by base practices. The evidence rested only on the declaration
of a dead woman; but whether that was forged or real, can never be
known till the great day discovers it. The forgery, however, rests on
the strongest suspicion.
The earl of Northumberland was one of the judges. He had for-
merly been in love with the queen, and either from reviving affection,
or from some other circumstance, he became suddenly so ill that he
could not stay out the trial. Yet all this did not satisfy the king ; he
resolved to illegitimatize his daughter, the lady Elizabeth, and in order to
that to annul his marriage with the queen. It was remembered that the
earl of Northumberland had said to cardinal Wolsey, that he had en-
gaged himself so far with her that he could not go back, which was
perhaps done by some promise conceived in words of the future tense ;
but no promise, unless in the words of the present tense, could annul
the subsequent marriage. Perhaps the queen did not understand that
difference, or probably the fear of a terrible death wrought so much on
her, that she confessed the contract; but the earl denied it positively,
and took the sacrament upon it, wishing it might turn to his damnation
if there was ever either contract or promise of marriage between them.
Upon her own confession, however, her marriage with the king was
judged null from the beginning, and she was condemned, although
nothing could be more contradictory; for if she was never the king's
ACTS AGAINST THE POPE. 33*7
wife, she could not be guilty of adultery, there being no breach of the
faith of wedlock. But the king was resolved both to be rid of her, and
to declare the daughter she had borne him illegitimate.
The day before her death, she sent her last message to the king, as-
serting her innocence, recommending her daughter to his care, and
thanking him for his advancing her first to be a marchioness, then to be
a queen, and now, when he could raise her no higher upon earth, for
sending her to be a saint in heaven. The day she died the lieutenant of
the Tower wrote to Cromwell, that it was not fit to publish the time of
her execution, for the fewer that were present it would be the better,
since he believed she would declare her innocence at the hour of her
death; for that morning she had made great protestations of it when
she received the sacrament, and seemed to long for death with great joy
and pleasure. On being told that the executioner, who had been sent
for expressly from France, was very skilful, she expressed great happi-
ness; for she said, with laughter, she had a very short neck.
A little before noon, she was brought to the place of execution; there
were present some of the chief officers and great men of the court.
She was it seems prevailed on, out of regard to her daughter, to make
no reflections on the cruel treatment she met with, nor to say any thing
touching the grounds on which sentence was passed against her. She
only desired that all would judge the best; she highly commended the
king, and then took her leave of the world. She remained for some
time in her private devotions, and concluded, "To Christ I commend
my soul;" upon which the executioner struck off her head: and so little
respect was paid to her body, that it was with brutal insolence put in a
chest of elm-tree, made to send arrows into Ireland, and then buried in
the chapel in the Tower. Norris then had his life promised him if he
would accuse her; but this faithful and virtuous servant said he knew
she was innocent, and would die a thousand times rather than defame
her : he and the three others were therefore beheaded, all of them con-
tinuing to the last to vindicate her. The day after Anne's death the
king married Jane Seymour, who gained more upon him than all his
wives before; but she was fortunate that she did not out-live his love
to her.
Pope Clement VII. was now dead, and Farnese succeeded him by the
name of Paul III., who, after an unsuccessful attempt which he made
to reconcile himself with the king, when that was rejected, thundered
out a most terrible sentence of deposition against him. Yet now, since
the two queens upon whose account the breach was made were out of
the way, he thought it a fit time to attempt the recovery of the papal
interest, and ordered Cassalli to let the king know that he had been
driven, much against his mind, to pass sentence against him, and that
now it would be easy for him to recover the favour of the apostolic see.
But the king, instead of hearkening to the proposition, caused two acts
to be passed, one for utterly extinguishing the pope's authority; in
which it was made a praemunire for any one to acknowledge it, or to
persuade others to it; and in the other, all bulls and all privileges
flowing from them were declared null and void ; only marriages or con-
secrations made by virtue of them were excepted. All who enjoyed
z
338 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
privileges by these bulls were required to bring them into the chancery,
upon which the archbishop was to make them a new grant of them,
which being confirmed under the great seal was to be of full force
in law.
The convocation sat at the same time, and was much employed : for
the house of lords was often adjourned, because the spiritual lords were
busy in the convocation. Latimer preached the Latin sermon; he was
the most celebrated preacher of that time ; the simplicity of his matter,
and his zeal in expressing it, being preferred to more elaborate compo-
sitions. They first confirmed the sentence of the divorce of the king's
marriage with queen Anne. Then the lower house made an address to
the upper house complaining of sixty-seven opinions, which they found
were much in the kingdom. These were either the tenets of the old
Lollards, or the new Reformers, or of the Anabaptists; but many of
them were only indiscreet expressions, which might have flowed from
the heat and folly of some rash zealots, who had endeavoured to disgrace
both the received doctrines and rites. They also complained of some
bishops who were wanting in their duty to suppress such abuses. This
was understood as a reflection on Cranmer, Shaxton, and Latimer, the
first of whom it was thought was now declining by queen Anne's fall.
But all these projects failed, for Cranmer was now fully established
in the king's favour; and Cromwell was sent to them with a message
from his majesty, that they should reform the rites and ceremonies
of the church according to the rules set down in scripture, which he said
ought to be preferred to all glosses or decrees of popes. There was one
Alesse, a Scotchman, whom Cromwell entertained in his house, who
being appointed to deliver his opinion, largely shewed that there was
no sacrament instituted by Christ but baptism and the Lord's supper.
Stokesly answered him in a long discourse upon the principles of the
school-divinity; upon which Cranmer took occasion to shew the vanity
of scholastic learning, and the uncertainty of tradition; and that reli-
gion had been so corrupted in the latter ages, that there was no finding
out the truth but by resting on the authority of the scriptures. Fox,
bishop of Hereford, seconded him, and told them that the world was
now awake, and would be no longer imposed on by the niceties and
dark terms of the schools ; for the laity now not only read the scriptures
in the vulgar tongues, but searched the original languages; therefore
they must not think to govern them as they had been in the times of
ignorance. Among the bishops, Cranmer, Goodrick, Shaxton, Latimer,
Fox, Hilsey, and Barlow, pressed the reformation ; but Lee, archbishop
of York, bishops Stokesly, Tonstall, Gardiner, Longland, and several
others opposed it as much. The contest would have been much sharper,
had not the king sent certain articles to be considered by them, when
the following mixture of truth and error was agreed upon.
1. That the bishops and preachers ought to instruct the people ac-
cording to the scripture, the three creeds, and the four first general
councils.
2. That baptism was necessary to salvation, and that children ought
to be baptised for the pardon of original sin, and obtaining the Holy
Ghost.
ARTICLES PROPOSED BY THE KING. 339
3. That penance was necessary to salvation, and that it consisted in
confession, contrition, and amendment of life, with the external works
of charity, to which a lively faith ought to be joined; and that confes-
sion to a priest was necessary where it might be had.
4. That in the eucharist, under the forms of bread and wine, the
very flesh and blood of Christ was received.
5. That justification was the remission of sins, and a perfect renova-
tion in Christ; and that not only outward good works, but inward
holiness was absolutely necessary. As for outward ceremonies, the
people were to be taught, that it was meet to have images in churches,
but they ought to avoid the superstition as has been usual in time past,
and not to worship the image, but only God. . That they were to honour
the saints, but not to expect those things from them which God only
gives. That they might pray to them for their intercession, but all
superstitious abuses were to cease; and if the king should lessen the
number of saints' days, they ought to obey him. That the use c f the
ceremonies was good, and that they contained many mystical significa-
tions that tended to raise the mind towards God; such were vestments
in divine worship, holy water and bread, carrying of candles, and
palms, creeping to the cross, and hallowing the font, with other exor-
cisms. That it was good to pray for departed souls, and to have masses
said for them ; but the scriptures having neither declared in what place
they were, nor what torments they suffered, that was uncertain, and to
be left to God ; therefore all abuses pf the pope's pardons, or saying
masses in special places, or before certain images, were to be put away.
These articles were signed by Cromwell, the two archbishops, sixteen
bishops, forty abbots and priors, and fifty members of the lower house.
The king afterwards added a preface, declaring the pains that he and
the clergy had taken for removing the differences in religion which
existed in the nation, and that he approved of these articles, and re-
quired all his subjects to accept them, and he would be thereby en-
couraged to take further pains in similar matters for the future. On
the publication of these points, the favourers of the reformation, though
they did not approve of every particular, yet were well pleased to see
things brought under examination; and since some were at this time
changed, they did not doubt but more changes would follow. They
were glad that the scriptures and ancient creeds were made the standards
of the faith, without adding tradition; and that the nature of justifica-
tion and the gospel-covenant was rightly stated; that the immediate
worship of images and saints was condemned, and purgatory left un-
certain. The necessity of auricular confession, and the corporeal pre-
sence, doing reverence to images, and praying to saints, were of hard
digestion to them; yet they rejoiced to see grosser abuses removed, and
a reformation once set on foot. The popish party, on the other hand,
were sorry to see five sacraments passed over in silence, and the trade
created by purgatory put down.
At the same time other things were in consultation, though not finished.
Cranmer offered some queries to shew the imposition that had been put
on the world : as that priestly absolution without contrition was of more
efficacy than contrition without it ; and that the people trusted wholly
340 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
to outward ceremonies, in which the priests encouraged them, because
of the gain they made by them. He offered a paper to the king, exhort-
ing him to proceed to further reformation, and that nothing should be
determined without clear proofs from scripture, a departure from which
occasioned all the errors that had been in the church. Many things
were now acknowledged to be erroneous, for denying which some not
long before had suffered death. He therefore proposed several points
to be discussed, as whether there were a purgatory? whether departed
saints ought to be invoked, or tradition believed? whether images ought
to be considered mere representations of history ? and whether it was
lawful for the clergy to marry? He prayed the king not to give judgment
in these points till he heard them well examined ; but no definitive mea-
sures respecting them were at present adopted.
Visitors were now appointed to survey all the lesser monasteries; they
were to examine the state of their revenues and goods, form inventories
of them, and take their seals into their keeping; they were to try how
many of the religious would return to a secular course of life; and these
were to be sent to the archbishop of Canterbury, or the lord chancellor
for licences, an allowance being granted them for their journey; but
those who intended to continue in a religious state were to be removed
to some of the great monasteries. A pension was also to be assigned to
the abbot, or prior, of each house during life ; and they were particu-
larly to examine what leases had been made during the last year. Ten
thousand of the religious were by this means driven to seek for their
livings, with forty shillings and a gown for each. Their goods and plate
were estimated at 100,000/. and the rents of their houses 32,000/. but
they were above ten times this value. The churches and cloisters were
in most places pulled down, and the materials sold, yielding an incre-
dible amount. These proceedings gave great discontent ; and the monks
were now as much pitied, as they were formerly hated. The nobility and
gentry, who provided for their younger children or friends by putting
them in those sanctuaries, were sensible of their loss. The people, who
as they travelled over the country found abbeys to be places of recep-
tion to strangers, had cause to lament their suppression. But the super-
stitious, who thought their friends must now lie still in purgatory, with-
out relief from the masses, were out of measure offended and afflicted.
But to remove this discontent, Cromwell advised the king to sell those
lands at very easy rates to the nobility and gentry, and to oblige them
to keep up the wonted hospitality.
This would both be grateful to them, and would engage them to
assist the crown in promoting the changes that had been made, since
their own interests would be interwoven with that of their sovereign.
And upon a clause in the act empowering the king to found anew such
houses as he should think fit, there were fifteen monasteries and sixteen
nunneries newly founded. These were bound to obey such rules as the
king should send them, and to pay him tenths and first fruits. But all
this did not pacify the people, for there was still a great outcry. The
clergy studied much to inflame the nation, and urged that an heretical
prince, deposed by the pope, was no more to be acknowledged; that it
was a part of the papal power to depose kings, and give away their
ATTEMPTS OF THE INSURGENTS. 341
dominions; and it had often been put in practice in almost all the parts
of Europe, and some who had been abettors of great sedition had been
canonized for it.
There were certain injunctions given by Cromwell' which increased
this discontent. All churchmen were required every Sunday for a
quarter of a year, and twice every quarter after that, to preach against
the pope's power, and to explain the six articles of the convocation. They
were forbidden to extol images, relics, or pilgrimages ; but to exhort to
works of charity. They were also required to teach the Lord's prayer,
the creed, and the ten commandments in English, and to explain these
carefully, and instruct the children well in them. They were to perform
the divine offices reverently, and to have good curates to supply their
places when they were absent. They were charged not to go to ale-
houses, or sit too long at games; but to study the scriptures, and be
exemplary in their lives. Those who did not reside in their parishes
were to give the fortieth part of their income to the poor ; and for every
hundred pounds a year, they were to maintain a pupil at some grammar
school, or the university. If the parsonage-house was in decay, they
were ordered to apply a fifth part of their benefice for the purpose of
repairing it.
The people continued quiet till they had got in their harvest; but in
the beginning of October, 20,000 rose in Lincolnshire, led by a priest in
the disguise of a cobler. They took an oath to be true to God, the king
and the commonwealth, and sent a paper of their grievances to the
king. They complained of some acts of parliament, of suppressing of
many religious houses, of mean and ill counsellors, and bad bishops;
and prayed the king to redress their grievances by the advice of the
nobility. The king sent the duke of Suffolk to raise forces against
them, and gave an answer to their petition. He said it belonged not to
the rabble to direct princes what counsellors they should choose. The
religious houses were suppressed by law, and the heads of them had
under their hands confessed such horrid scandals, that they were a re-
proach to the nation; and that as they wasted their rents in riotous
living, it was much better to apply them to the common good of the
nation. He required them to submit to his mercy, and to deliver up
two hundred of their leaders into the hands of his lieutenants.
At the same time there was a more formidable rising in Yorkshire,
which being in the neighbourhood of Scotland, was likely to draw assist-
ance from that kingdom, though their king was then gone into France
to marry Francis' daughter; which inclined Henry to make more haste
to settle matters in Lincolnshire. He sent them secret assurances of
mercy, which wrought on the greatest part, so that they dispersed them-
selves, while the most obstinate went over to those in Yorkshire. The
leader and some others were taken and executed. The distance of those
in the North gave them time to assemble, and form themselves into some
regimental order. One Ask was commander in chief, and performed his
part with great dexterity: their march was called "the Pilgrimage of
Grace;" they had on their banners and sleeves the five wounds of
Christ; they took an oath that they would restore the ^ church, suppress
heretics, preserve the king and his issue, and drive base born men and
342 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
ill counsellors from him. They became 40,000 strong in a few days,
and forced the archbishop of York and the lord Darcy to swear to their
covenant, and to proceed with them. They besieged Skipton, but the
earl of Cumberland made it good against them. Sir Ralph Evers held
out Scarborough castle, though for twenty days he and his men had no
provisions but bread and water.
There was also a rising in the other northern countries, against whom
the earl of Shrewsbury made head ; and the king sent several of the
nobility to his assistance, and within a few days the duke of Norfolk
marched with some troops and joined him. They possessed themselves
of Doncaster, and resolved to keep that pass till the rest of the forces
which the king had ordered should arrive ; for they were not in a con-
dition to engage with such numbers of desperate men ; and it was very
likely that if they met with an accident, the people might have risen
about them every where; the duke of Norfolk resolved, therefore, to
keep close at Doncaster, and let the provision and rage of the rebels
waste away, and then they might probably fall into factions and disperse.
They were now reduced to 10,000, but the king's army was not above
5000. The duke of Norfolk proposed a treaty; they were persuaded
to send their petitions to the king, who to make them more secure,
discharged a rendezvous which he had appointed at Northampton, and
sent them a general pardon, excepting six by name, and reserving four
to be afterwards named ; but this put them all in such apprehension,
that it made them more desperate : yet the king, to give his people some
content, issued injunctions requiring the clergy to continue the use of
all the ceremonies of the church: meanwhile 300 were employed to
carry the demands of the rebels to the king. - These were, a general
pardon, a parliament to be held at York, and that courts of justice
should be set up there; some acts of parliament to be repealed, that
the princess Mary might be restored to her right of succession, and the
pope to his wonted jurisdiction ; that the monasteries might be revived;
that Audley and Cromwell might be removed from the king; and that
some of the visitors might be imprisoned for their bribery and extortion.
These proposals being rejected, the rebels took heart again, and finding
that with the loss of time they lost heart, resolved to fall upon the royal
troops, and drive them into Doncaster; but at two several times in which
they had thought to ford the river, such rains fell as made it impassable.
The king, at length, sent an answer to their demands : he assured them
he would live and die in the defence of the christian faith; but the
rabble ought not to prescribe to him and to the convocation in that
matter. He answered that which concerned the monasteries as he had
done to the men of Lincolnshire. If they had just complaints to make
of any about him, he was ready to hear them; but he would not suffer
them to direct him what counsellors he ought to employ: nor could
they judge of the bishops who had been promoted, whom they knew
not. He charged them not to believe lies, nor be governed by incen-
diaries, but to submit to his mercy. On the 9th of December he signed a
proclamation of pardon without any restriction. As soon as the affair was
over, the king went on more resolutely in his design of suppressing the
monasteries; being now less apprehensive of any new commotion.
VISITATION AND SUPPRESSION OF MONASTERIES. 343
A new visitation was appointed to enquire into the conversation of the
monks, to examine how they stood affected to the pope, and how they
promoted the king's supremacy. It was likewise ordered to examine
what impostures might be among- them, either in images or relics, by
which the superstition of the credulous people was excited. Some few
houses of greater value were prevailed with the former year to sur-
render to the king. Many of the houses which had not been dissolved,
though they were within the former act, were now suppressed, and
many of the greater abbots were induced to surrender by several
motives. Some had been faulty during the rebellion, and to prevent
a storm offered a resignation. Others liked the reformation, and did it
on that account ; some were found guilty of great disorders in their
lives, and to prevent a shameful discovery, offered their houses to the
king; while others had made such wastes and dilapidations, that having
taken care of themselves, they were less concerned for others. At St.
Al ban's the rents were let so low, that the abbot could not maintain the
charge of the abbey. At Battel the whole furniture of the house and
chapel was not. above 1000/. in value, and the plate was not 300/. In
some houses there was scarcely any plate or furniture left. Many abbots
and monks were glad to accept of a pension for life, which was propor-
tioned to the value of their house, and to their innocence. The abbots
of St. Alban's and Tewksbury had 400 marks a year : the abbot of St.
Edmondsbury was more innocent and more resolute; the visitors wrote
that they found no scandals in that house; he was, however, prevailed
with by a pension of 500 marks to resign. The inferior governors had
some 30, 20, or 10/. pensions, and the monks had generally 61. or eight
marks a piece. By these means one hundred and twenty-one of these
houses were this year resigned to the king. In most cases the visitor
made the monks sign a confession of their vices and disorders, of which
there is only one original extant. They acknowledged in a long nar-
rative, their former idleness, gluttony, and sensuality, for which they said
the pit of hell was ready to swallow them up. Others were sensible
that the manner of their former religion consisted in dumb ceremonies,
by which they were blindly led, having no true knowledge of God's
laws; but that they had procured exemption from their diocesans, and
had subjected themselves wholly to a foreign power, which took no care
to reform their abuses; and therefore since the most perfect way of life
was revealed by Christ and his apostles, and that it was fit they should
be governed by the king as their supreme head, they freely resigned to
him. Some resigned in hopes that the king would found them anew;
these favoured the reformation, and intended to convert their houses to
better uses, for preaching, study, and prayer; and Latimer pressed
Cromwell earnestly, that two or three houses might be reserved for such
purposes in every county. But it was resolved to suppress all. The
common preamble to most surrenders was, "That upon full deliberation,
and of their own proper motion, for just and reasonable causes moving
their consciences, they did freely give up their houses to the king." In
short, they went on at such a rate, that one hundred and fifty-nine re-
signations were obtained before the parliament met. Some thought that
these resignations could not be valid, since the incumbents had not the
344 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
property, but only the trust for life. But the parliament afterwards
declared them good by an ex post facto law.
Others were more roughly handled. The prior of Wooburn was sus-
pected of a correspondence with the rebels, and of favouring the pope ;
he was requested to submit to the king, and prevailed on to do it, but
he was not easy in it, nor fixed to it; he complained that the new
preachers detracted from the honour due to the virgin and saints; he
thought the religion was changed, and wondered that the judgments of
God on queen Anne had not terrified others from going on to subvert
the faith. When the rebellion broke out he joined in it, as did also the
abbots of Whaley, Garvaux, and Sawley, and the prior of Burlington ;
all these were taken, attainted of treason, and executed. The abbots of
Glastonbury and Reading had also sent a great quantity of their plate to
the rebels; the former, to disguise it the better, had hired a man to break
into the house where the plate was kept : thus he was convicted both of
burglary and treason, and at his execution he confessed his crime, and
begged both God and the king's pardon for it. The abbot of Reading-
had complied so far, that he was grown into favour with Cromwell.
Many of the Carthusians were executed for denying the king's
supremacy: others were suspected of favouring them, and of receiving
books sent from beyond sea against the king's proceedings, and were
shut up in their cells, in which most of them died. The prior was a
man of extraordinary charity and good works, as the visitor reported;
but he was made to resign, with this preamble, "That many of the
houses had offended the king, and deserved that their lives should be
taken, and their goods confiscated; and therefore to avoid that, they
surrendered their houses. " Great complaints were made of the visitors,
as if they had used undue practices to make the abbots and monks
surrender ; and it was said, that they had in many places embezzled
much of the plate for their own uses; and in particular, it was com-
plained that Dr. Loudon had corrupted many nuns. The visitors, on
the other hand, published many of the vile practices that they found in
the houses, so that several books were printed upon this occasion. No
story became so public as that of the prior of Crutched-friars in London,
who was detected with a strumpet at noon-day: he fell down on his
knees, and begged that they who surprised him would not discover his
shame. They made him give them 30/. which he protested was all he
had; and he promised them as much more: but not keeping his word,
a suit followed upon it. Yet these personal blemishes did not much
concern the people. They deemed it unreasonable to extinguish noble
foundations for the fault of some individuals: therefore another way
was taken which had a better effect.
They disclosed to the world many impostures about relics and images,
to which pilgrimages had been made. At Reading they had an angel's
wing, which, they said, brought over the spear's point that pierced our
Saviour's side; and as many pieces of the cross were found, as when
joined together would have made a large cross. The rood of Grace at
Bexley, in Kent, had been much esteemed, and had attracted many
pilgrims to it: it w T as observed to bow, and roll its eyes, and look at
times well pleased or angry; which the credulous multitude imputed to
Vl'LE IMPOSTURES DISCLOSED. 345
a divine power: but all was now discovered to be a cheat, and it was
brought up to St. Paul's cross, where the springs were openly shewed
that governed its several motions. At Hales, in Gloucestershire, blood
was shewed in a vial which was pretended to be the blood of Christ;
and it was believed that none could see it who were in mortal sin
Those who could bestow liberal presents were of course gratified, by
being led to believe that they were in a state of grace. This miracle
consisted in the blood of a bird or beast, renewed every week, put in a
vial very thick on one side, and thin on the other; and either side
turned towards the pilgrim, as the priests were satisfied with their
oblations. Several other similar impostures were discovered, which
contributed much to the undeceiving of the people.
The richest shrine in England was Thomas a Becket's at Canterbury,' 1
whose story is well known. After he had long embroiled England, and
shewed that he had a spirit so turned to faction that he could not be at
quiet, some servants of Henry II. killed him in the church at Canter-
bury. He was presently canonized, and held in greater esteem than any
other saint whatever; so much more was a martyr for the papacy valued,
than any who suffered for the christian religion : and his altar drew far
greater oblations than those dedicated to Christ or the blessed Virgin,
as appears by the accounts of two years. In the first year 31. 2s. 6d.,
and in the second not a penny, was offered at Christ's altar. In the
Virgin's, there was in the first year 631. 5s. 6d., and in the second
41. Is. 8c?.; while at the shrine of Becket, there was in the first year
832/. 125. 3d., and in the second 964/. 6s. 3d. offered. The shrine
continued to grow in veneration and riches. Lewis VII. of France
came over in pilgrimage to visit it, and offered a stone esteemed the
richest in Europe. This saint had not only one holy day, the 29th of
December, called his martyrdom; but another for his translation,
namely, the 7th of July. Besides these, every fiftieth year there was a
jubilee, and an indulgence granted to all who came and visited his
tomb, which was so great a number, that on these occasions there have
been supposed to be assembled not less than 100,000 pilgrims.
The lane leading from the main street of the city to the cathedral
gate has one side of it almost occupied with very ancient houses. These
were once one entire house of accommodation called the Pilgrim's Inn.
The cellars are still in their ancient state, and give us a notion of
incredible quantities of wine being then kept in store for those pilgrims
who could pay for it. Intemperance among them was then as common
almost as superstition. Those of smaller wealth were accommodated in a
h Thomas a Becket was archbishop of Canterbury; and, seconded by the clergy, he
insisted that they should be exempted from the jurisdiction of the temporal courts in
criminal cases. His conduct was so galling to the king, and so marked with insolence,
that his majesty said hastily, " Have I no friend to rid me of this insolent enemy 'J " Upon this
four of his knights, esteeming it a signal for his death, instantly quitted the royal presence, and
hastened to Canterbury, where finding the archbishop before the altar of the church at
prayers, they slew him with their daggers. Henry found great difficulty to excuse himself
to the pope, and was obliged to do penance. It was this king who, with the French
monarch, performed the office of yeoman of the stirrup to pope Alexander. It is worthy
of remark that one of the assassins was ancestor of a most respectable and excellent family
of quakers now flourishing in this country.
346 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
suburb of the city, called to this day Wincheap — denoting the greater
cheapness of the wine there than at the Pilgrim's Inn. It is hard to
tell whether hatred to his seditious practices, or the love of his shrine,
led king Henry to unsaint Thomas a Becket. His shrine was broken,
and the gold of it was so heavy that it rilled two chests, each of which
took eight men to carry it out of the church. The skull, which had
been so idolized, was proved to be an imposture; for the true one was
safe in his coffin : his bones had either been burnt, as it was given out
at Rome ; or so mixed with others, as our writers say, that it would
have been a miracle indeed to have distinguished them.
When these things were known at Rome, all the eloquent pens there
were employed to represent king Henry as the most sacrilegious tyrant
that ever made war with Christ's vicar on earth, and his saints in heaven.
He was compared to the worst of princes; to Pharaoh, Nebuchadnezzar,
Belshazzar, Nero, and Dioclesian; but the parallel with Julian the
apostate was most insisted on. It was said, he copied after him in all
things, while his manners were worse. The pope proceeded farther; he
published all those thunders with which he had threatened him three
years before. He pretended that, as God's vicar, he had power to root
out, and to destroy ; and had authority over all the kings in the world :
and therefore, after he had enumerated all the crimes of Henry, he
required him to appear within ninety days at Rome, either in person or
by proxy, and all his accomplices within sixty days; and that if he and
they did not appear, he declared the king to have fallen from his crown,
and them from their estates. He put the kingdom under an interdict,
and absolved his subjects from their oaths of allegiance: he declared
him and his accomplices infamous; and put their children under in-
capacities. He required all the clergy to go out of England, within
five days after the stated time should expire, leaving only so many as
might serve for baptizing children or giving the sacrament to such as
died in penitence. He charged all subjects to rise in arms against the
king, and that none should assist him. He absolved all other princes
from their confederacies with him, and conjured them to have no more
commerce with him. He required all Christians to make war on him;
and to seize on the persons and goods of all his subjects, and make
slaves of them; and, in conclusion, he charged all bishops to publish
the sentence with due solemnities, and ordained it to be affixed on the
churches of Rome, Tournay, and Dunkirk. This was given out on the
30th of August, 1 535 ; but it had been suspended till the suppression
of monasteries, and the burning of Becket's bones; at which the pope
was so exasperated, that he resolved to forbear extremities no longer.
On the 17th of December this year, he therefore published the bull.
By this sentence it is certain, that either the pope's infallibility must be
confessed to be a vain assumption upon the world, or if any believe it,
they must presume that the power of deposing princes is really lodged
in that chair ; for this was not a sudden fit of passion, but done ex
Cathedra, with all the deliberation it could admit of. The sentence
was in some particulars without a precedent ; but as to the main points
of deposing the king, and absolving his subjects from their obedience,
there were numerous instances to be brought in the last five hundred
FREE CIRCULATION OF THE SCRIPTURES. 347
years, to shew that this had been always asserted as the right of* papacy.
The pope wrote to the kings of France and Scotland, to inflame them
against Henry; and had this been an age of crusades, no doubt there
had been one undertaken against him; but the thunders of the Vatican
had already begun to lose their force.
To counteract this violence, the king caused all the bishops, and emi-
nent divines of England, to sign a declaration against all churchmen
who pretended to the power of the sword, or to authority over kings;
and that all who assumed such powers were subverters of the kingdom
of Christ. Many of the bishops also signed another paper, declaring
the limits of the regal and ecclesiastical power; that both had their au-
thority from God, for several ends and different natures; and that princes
were subject to the word of God, as well as bishops ought to be obedient
to their laws. There was also another declaration signed by Cromwell,
the two archbishops, eleven bishops, and twenty divines; asserting the
distinction between the power of the keys, and that of the power of the
sword : the former of which was not absolute, but limited by the scrip-
ture. Orders were declared to be a sacrament instituted by Christ,
which were conferred by prayer and imposition of hands. It was also
decreed that in the New Testament no mention was made of any other
ranks but of deacons or ministers and of priests or bishops.
This year the English Bible was finished. The translation was first
sent over to Paris to be printed, the workmen in England not being
thought able to get through it. Bonner was at that time ambassador
at Paris ; and he obtained a licence of Francis for printing it ; but
upon a complaint made by the French clergy, the press was stopped,
and many of the copies were seized and burnt. It was therefore brought
over to England, where it was undertaken and now finished by Grafton.
Cromwell procured a general warrant from the king, allowing all his
subjects to read it; for which Cranmer wrote his thanks to Cromwell,
saying he rejoiced to see the day of reformation risen in England, since
the word of God now shone over all without a cloud. Not long after
this, Cromwell gave injunctions requiring the clergy to set up Bibles
in their churches, and to encourage all the people to read them. In-
cumbents were required to instruct and teach them the creed, the Lord's
prayer, and the ten commandments, in English; and once every quarter
to preach a sermon, to declare the true gospel of Christ; and to exhort
the people to works of charity; and not to trust to pilgrimages, or relics,
or counting their beads, which tended to superstition. Images, abused
by pilgrimages made to them, were ordered to be taken away. And
such as had formerly magnified images, or pilgrimages, were required
openly to recant, and confess that they had been in error, which covet-
ousness had brought into the church. All incumbents were required to
keep registers for christenings and marriages; and to teach the people
that it was good to omit the suffrages to the saints in the litany. Thus
was a vital stab given to some of the main points of superstition ; but
the free use of the scriptures gave the deadliest blow of all. Yet, not-
withstanding, the clergy submitted to nearly the whole change without
murmuring.
This year was celebrated by the birth of prince Edward, an event
348 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
which blasted the hopes of the popish party, chiefly built on the proba-
bility of the lady Mary's succeeding to the crown. Lee, Gardiner, and
Stokesly, now seemed to vie with the bishops of the other party, which
of them should most zealously execute the injunctions, and thereby in-
sinuate themselves into the king's favour. Gardiner had been some
years ambassador in France, but Cromwell had caused Bonner, who
seemed to be the most zealous promoter of the reformation then in
England, to be sent in his stead. Gardiner afterwards was sent to the
emperor's court with sir Henry Knevet, and there he gave occasion to
suspect that he was treating on a reconciliation with the pope's legate.
But the Italian who managed it, being sent with a message to the
ambassador's secretary, mistook Knevet's for Gardiner's, and told his
business to him. Knevet endeavoured to fathom the mystery, but could
not carry it farther; for the Italian was disowned, and put in prison
upon it, and Gardiner complained of it as a scheme laid to ruin him.
Such were his artifices and flatteries, that he was still preserved in some
degree of favour as long as the king lived. Gardiner used one topic
which prevailed much with the king, that his zeal against heresy was
giving the greatest advantage to his cause over all Europe; and there-
fore he pressed him to begin with the sacramentarists, such as denied
the corporeal presence at the sacrament. Those being condemned by
the German princes, he had the less reason to be afraid of embroiling
his affairs by his severities against them. This meeting so well with the
king's own persuasions concerning the corporeal presence, had a great
effect on him; and an occasion quickly offered itself to display his
zeal in that matter, and this was in the memorable instance of John
Lambert.
John Lambert was born in the county of Norfolk, and educated at
the university of Cambridge. Having made himself master of Greek
and Latin, he translated several books from those languages into the
English. On his conversion, however, by Bilney, he became disgusted
at the corruptions of the church ; and apprehensive of persecution, he
crossed the sea and joined himself to Tindal and Frith, with whom he
remained more than a year; and, from his piety and ability, was ap-
pointed chaplain and preacher to the English factory at Antwerp. But
there the jealousy and persecuting spirit of Sir T. More reached him,
and on the accusation of a person named Barlow, he was taken and
conveyed to London. There he was brought to examination first at
Lambeth, then removed to the bishop's house at Oxford, before Warham,
the archbishop of Canterbury, and other adversaries, having five and forty
articles brought against him, to which he drew out at considerable length
written answers, with a perspicuity and strength excelled by none of his
age. These answers were directed and delivered to Warham, archbishop
of Canterbury, about the year of our Lord 1532, at which time Lambert
was in custody in the bishop's house at Oxford, where he was deprived
of the assistance of books. But, so the providence of God wrought
for him, that in the following year archbishop Warham died, whereby
Lambert for that time was delivered.
Cranmer succeeded to the see of Canterbury. Lambert in the mean
time being delivered, partly by the death of the archbishop, partly by
ACCOUNT OF JOHN LAMBERT. 349
the coming in of queen Anne, returned unto London, and there exercised
himself in teaching youth the Greek and Latin tongues. As priests in
those days could not be permitted to have wives, he resigned his priest-
hood, and applied himself to teaching, intending shortly after to be
married. But God, who disposeth all men's purposes after the good
pleasure of his own will, did both intercept his marriage and also take
away his freedom. Having continued his profession as teacher with
great success, it happened, that in the present year, 1538, he was
present at a sermon in St. Peter's church, London, preached by Dr.
Taylor, a man in those days not far disagreeing from the gospel, and
afterwards, in the time of king Edward, made bishop of Lincoln, of
which he was again deprived in the time of queen Mary, and so ended
his life among the confessors of Jesus Christ. Dr. Taylor having spoken
something upon the corporeal presence which Lambert conceiving to be
erroneous, he felt himself urged by duty to argue the subject with him.
He, therefore, at the conclusion of the sermon, went to the doctor and began
the contest. Taylor, excusing himself at the present for other business, wish-
ed him to write his mind and to come again at a more convenient season.
Lambert was contented and departed. When he had written his
mind, he came again unto him. The sum of his arguments were ten,
approving the truth of the cause, partly by the scriptures, by good
reason, and by the doctors. These were written with great force and
authority. The first reason was the following, gathered upon Christ's
words, where it is said in the gospel, " This cup is the New Testa-
ment." " If," he added, " these words do not change the cup nor the
wine corporeally into the New Testament, by the same reason it is not
agreeable that the words spoken of the bread should turn that corpo-
really into the body of Christ." He then proceeded thus —
" It is not agreeable to a natural body to be in two places or more at
one time : wherefore it must follow of necessity that either Christ had
not a natural body, or else truly, according to the common nature of a
body, it cannot be present in two places at once, and much less in many,
that is to say, in heaven and in earth, on the right hand of his Father,
and in the sacrament." He added likewise many other positions from
the writings of the doctors. Dr. Taylor, willing and desiring, as is
supposed from goodness of heart, to satisfy Lambert in these matters,
whom he took to council, he conferred with Dr. Barnes, who, although
he otherwise favoured the gospel, and was an earnest preacher, seemed
not to favour this cause; fearing, possibly, that it would breed some
mischief among the people, in prejudice of the gospel which was now
in a good state of forwardness. He, therefore, persuaded Taylor to
submit the entire question to the superior judgment of Cranmer.
Upon these things Lambert's quarrel began, and was brought to this
point, so that from a private talk it came to be a public and common
matter. He was sent for by the archbishop, brought into the open
court, and forced publicly to defend his cause. The archbishop had
not yet favoured the doctrine of the sacrament, although afterwards he
was an earnest professor of it. In that point of disputation it is said
Lambert appealed from the bishops to the king's majesty.
Gardiner, ever awake to his worldly interest, and to every occasion of
350 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
checking that cause which in his heart he hated, learning the particulars
of the affair, went privately to the king, and with all artifice and subtlety
emptied the malice of his own heart into that of the king's, empoisoning
the royal ear with his pernicious counsels. He said that the world
viewed him with suspicion, and began to charge him with being a
favourer of heretics; and that the present affair relating to Lambert
would enable him, by proceeding against him, to banish from the hearts
of all those unfavourable suspicions and complaints. To this advice,
the king, giving ear more willingly than prudently, sent out a general
commission, commanding all the nobles and bishops of his realm to
come with speed to London, to assist the king against heretics and
heresies, upon which the king himself would sit in judgment. These
preparations made, a day was appointed for Lambert, where a great
assembly of the nobles was gathered from all parts of the country, not
without much wonder and expectation in this singular case. All the
seats and places round the scaffold were crowded. At length John
Lambert was brought from the prison under a guard of armed men, as
a lamb to fight with many lions, and placed directly opposite to the
king's seat.
Then came the king himself as judge of the controversy, with his
body-guard clothed all in white. On his right hand sat the bishops,
and behind them the celebrated lawyers, clothed in purple, according
to the manner. On the left hand sat the peers of the realm, justices,
and other nobles in their order ; behind whom were the gentlemen of
the king's privy chamber. This manner and form of the judgment was
enough of itself to abash innocence; yet the king's look, his cruel
countenance, and his brows bent to severity, augmented the terror,
plainly declaring a mind full of indignation unworthy such a prince,
especially in such a matter, and against a subject so humble and obe-
dient. Being seated on his throne, he beheld Lambert with a stern
countenance, and then turning himself to his counsellors, called forth
Day, bishop of Chichester, and commanded him to declare to the people
the cause of the present assembly and judgment.
The bishop's oration tended to this purpose: that the king in session
would have all states and degrees to be admonished of his will and
pleasure, that no man should conceive any sinister opinion of him, that
now the authority and name of the bishop of Rome being utterly
abolished, he would not extinguish all religion by giving liberty unto
heretics to perturb and trouble the churches of England, whereof he was
the head, without punishment. Moreover, that they should not think
they were assembled at that time to make any disputation upon the
heretical doctrine; but only for this purpose, that by the industry of
him and other bishops, the heresies of this man here present, and of all
like him, should be refuted or openly condemned in the presence of
them all.
The oration being concluded, the king rose, and leaning upon a
cushion of white cloth of tissue, turned himself toward Lambert with
his brow bent and said, " Ho. good fellow, what is thy name?" Then
the prisoner kneeling down, said, " My name is John Nicholson,
although by many I am called Lambert." "What!" said the king,
TRIAL OF LAMBERT BEFORE HENRY THE EIGHTH.
PAUK 350.
LAMBERT'S ADDRESS TO THE KING. 351
putting them in remembrance what
those things were which they worshipped, and how God many times had
plagued his people for running to such stocks and stones, and so would
plague them and their posterity, if they would not keep themselves from
idols. He admonished them so long, till at last his words affected some of
them, that they said they never would go a pilgrimage more. Then he went
further, and found another kissing a white lady made of alabaster, which
was in a wall behind the high altar and adorned with a fringe made like
TESTWOOD DEFACES AN IMAGE. 399
branches with hanging apples and flowers. On seeing several so super-
stitiously use the image, as to wipe their hands upon it, and then to
stroke them over their heads and faces, as though there had been great
virtue in touching the picture, he lifted up his hand, in the which he
had a key, and smote a piece of the border about the image, and with
a slight inadvertent stroke chanced to break off the idol's nose. " Lo,
good people," quoth he, " you see what it is, nothing but earth and can-
not help itself; and how then will you have it to help you? For God's
sake, brethren, be no more deceived." And as he went home to his house
the rumour was so great, that many came to see the image as it was
defaced ; and among others one William Simons, a lawyer, who seeing
the image to lack its nose, took the matter grievously, and looking down
upon the pavement, he spied the broken fragment, which he took up and
put in his purse, saying it should be a dear nose to the infidel Testwood.
Many were offended with Testwood: the canons for his speaking against
their profit, the wax merchants for hindering their market, and Simons
for an art which threatened to deprive him of certain fees and gains.
There were of the canons men that threatened to kill him : where-
upon Testwood kept his house, and durst not come forth, but sent the
whole matter in writing by his wife to Cromwell, the king's secretary,
who was his special friend. The canons hearing that Testwood would
send to Cromwell, sent the verger unto him, to induce him to come to
the church ; but he sent them word again that he was in fear of his life,
and therefore would not come. Then they sent two of the elder minor
canons to entreat him, and to assure him that no man should do him
harm. He made them a plain answer, that he had no trust in their
promises, but would complain to his friends. Then not knowing what
shift to make, for of all men they feared Cromwell, they sent post haste
for an old gentleman named Ward, a justice of peace, dwelling three or
four miles off, who on hearing the matter was loath to meddle in it.
But through their entreaty he went to Testwood, and had much ado to
persuade him ; but at last he did faithfully promise him, by the oath he
had made to God and the king, to defend him from all danger and harm,
and Testwood was content to go with him. When they were come into
the church, and were going toward the Chapter-House, where the canons
abode their coming, one of the men drew his dagger at Testwood, and
would have killed him ; but Ward with his man resisted, and got Test-
wood into the Chapter-house, causing the assassin to be called in and
sharply rebuked. Testwood, being alone in the Chapter-House with the
canons and Ward, was gently treated, and the matter so pacified that
Testwood might quietly come and go to the church, and do his duty as
he had done before.
Upon a relic Sunday, when every minister after their custom should
have borne a relic in a procession, one was brought to Testwood, which
as they said, was a rochet of bishop Becket's. But as the sexton would
have put the rochet in Testwood's hands, he pushed it from him, saying,
if he did give it to him, he would use it for an unclean purpose ; and so
the rochet was given to another. This is one among several instances of
the rash and indecent conduct of the zealous protestants of that age.
They might doubtless often have escaped annoyance and suffering had
400 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
they adopted a gentler and more prudent course. The taste of the times,
however, and the irritating provocation they received, offer considerable
apology for their ebullitions of displeasure and impropriety.
In the days of Mr. Franklin, who succeeded Dr. Sampson in the
deanery of Windsor, there was set up at the choir door a certain foolish
printed paper in rhyme to the praise and commendation of our lady,
ascribing unto her our justification, our salvation, our redemption, the
forgiveness of sins, to the great derogation of Christ : this paper one of
the canons, named Magnus, caused to be set up in despite of Test-
wood and his sect. When Testwood saw the paper, he plucked it
down secretly. The next day another was set up in the same place.
Then Testwood coming into the church, and seeing another paper
set up, and also the dean coming a little way off, made haste to be
at the choir door, while the dean stayed to take holy water ; then
reaching up his hand as he went he plucked away the paper with
him. The dean being come to his stall called Testwood to him,
and said, that he marvelled greatly how he durst be so bold to take down
the paper in his presence ; Testwood answered again, that he marvelled
much more that his reverence would suffer such a blasphemous paper to
to be set up, beseeching him not to be offended with what he had done,
for he would stand to it. After this were no more papers set up, but
poor Testwood was reviled as a heretic deserving of death. Such were
the principal causes which moved Testwood's enemies to seek his des-
truction ; but they could not attain their purpose, till that wicked Haman
Dr. Loudon came into office at Windsor as one of the prebendaries.
Anthony Pearson frequently went to Windsor, about the year of our
Lord 1540, and using the talent that God had given him in preaching,
was greatly esteemed among the people, who flocked so much to his ser-
mons both in town and country, that the great priests of the castle, with
other papists in the town, especially Simons, were sore offended : inso-
much, that Simons at the last began to take down his sermons, and to
mark his auditors; whereof ensued the death of many honest men.
About a year and more after Dr. Loudon, warden of the New College
in Oxford, was admitted one of the prebendaries of Windsor, who, at
his first coming to Windsor, began to betray his bitter aversion to the
friends of the Lutheran doctrine. At his first residence dinner which
he made to the clerks, who for the most part at that time favoured the
gospel, all his whole talk to two gentlemen, strangers at his board, was
nothing else but of heretics, and what a desolation they would bring
the realm to, if they were to be suffered. " And by St. Mary, masters,"
quoth he to the clerks at last, " I cannot tell, but there goeth a shrewd
report abroad of this house." Some made answer, it was undeserved.
"1 pray God it be. I am but a stranger, and have but small experience
amongst you ; but I have heard it said before I came hither, that there be
some in this house that will neither have prayer nor fasting."
Then Testwood could not refrain, but said, " By my troth, sir, I
think that was spoken in malice : for prayer, as you know better than
I, is one of the first lessons that Christ taught us." " Yea sir," quoth he,
" but the heretics will have no invocation to saints, which all the oli
fathers do allow." " What the old fathers do allow," quoth Testwood-
COMPLAINTS AGAINST HERETICS. 401
M 1 cannot tell ; but scripture doth appoint us to go to the Father, and to
ask our petitions of him in Christ's name." " Then you will have no mean
between you and God," quoth the doctor. " Yes, sir," quoth Testwood,
14 our mean is Christ, as St. Paul saith, 'There is one mediator between
God and man, even Jesus Christ.' " " Give us water," quoth the enraged
doctor, as though he were rendered impure by heretical company. Water
being set on the board, he said grace and washed, and so falling into
other communication with the stranger, the clerks took their leave and
departed.
When this new and haughty prebendary had been at Windsor awhile
among his catholic brethren, and learned what Testwood was, and also
of Simons what a sort of heretics were in the town and about the same,
and how they increased daily by reason of a priest called Anthony Pear-
son, he was so maliciously set against them, that he appeared almost in-
fernally bent on doing them injury. To bring his wicked purpose about
he conspired with Simons, a meet clerk to serve such a curate, how they
might compass the matter, first to have all the arch-heretics, as they
termed them, in Windsor and thereabout indicted, and if possible
punished and destroyed. They had good ground to work upon, as they
thought, which was the six articles, on which foundation they began to
build. First, they drew out certain notes of Anthony Pearson's ser-
mons, which he had preached against the sacrament of the altar, and
their popish mass. That done, they accused Sir William Hobby with
his wife, Sir Thomas Cardine, Mr. Edmund Harman, Mr. Thomas
Weldon, with one Snowball and his wife, as chief aiders and maintainers
of Anthony Pearson. Also they noted Dr. Haynes, dean of Exeter,
and a prebendary of Windsor, to be a common receiver of all suspected
persons. They wrote the names of all such as commonly attended
Anthony Pearson's sermons, and of all such as had the Testament and
favoured the gospel.
They employed spies to walk up and down the church, to hear what
men said, and to mark who did not reverence the sacrament at the eleva-
tion time, and to bring the name of every offender. Of these spies some
were chantry priests : among which there was one notable spy, Sir
William Bows, a fleering priest, as would be in every coiner of the church
pattering to himself, with his portoise in his hand, to hear and note the
gesture of men towards the sacrament. Thus, when they had gathered
as much as they could, and made a perfect book thereof, Loudon, with
two of his catholic brethren, gave them to the bishop of Winchester,
Stephen Gardiner, with a great complaint against the heretics that were
in Windsor, declaring the town was disquieted through their doctrine
and evil example, and beseeching his lordship's help, in purging both
town and castle of such wicked persons. The bishop hearing their com-
plaint and seeing their book, praised their doings, and bade them make
friends and go forward, and they should not want his help. Then they
applied to the matter seriously, sparing no money nor pains, as Marbeck
says that he heard one of them say, who was afterwards sorry for what
he had done, that it cost him that year, for his part only, an hundred
marks, besides the death of three good horses.
Bishop Gardiner now brought Wriothsley and other of the council on
2 d
402 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
his side, and went to the king, complaining what sort of heretics he had
in his realm, and how they not only crept into every corner of his court,
but even into his privy chamber, beseeching his majesty that his laws
might be executed. The king, giving credit to the council's words, was
content his laws should be executed on such as were offenders. Then
had the bishop what he desired, and forthwith procured a commission for
private search to be made in Windsor for books and letters that Anthony
Pearson intended to send abroad : this commission the king granted to
take place in the town of Windsor, but not in the castle.
About the same time the canons of Exeter, especially Suthran, trea-
surer of the church, and Brurewood the chancellor, had accused Dr.
Haynes, their dean, to the council, for preaching against holy bread
and water, and that he had said in one of his sermons that marriage and
hanging were destiny ; upon which they imputed treason to him, because
of the king's marriage. The bishop of Winchester had also informed the
council of Sir W. Hobby, how he was a supporter of Anthony Pearson,
and a great maintainer of heretics : whereupon both he and Dr. Haynes
were apprehended and sent to the Fleet. But not very long after, by
the mediation of friends, they were both released ; it was supposed by
the king's command, because marriage was too tender a subject for him
to allow to be discussed.
As to the commission for searching for books, Ward and Fachel of
Reading were appointed commissioners, and came to Windsor the
Thursday before Palm-Sunday, in the year 1543, and began their search
about eleven o'clock at night. There were then apprehended Robert
Benet, Henry Filmer, John Marbeck, and Robert Testwood, for certain
books and writings found in their houses against the six articles : they
were kept till Monday after, and then fetched up to the council, except-
ing Testwood, with whom the bailiffs of the town were charged, because
he lay diseased of the gout. The other three, being examined before
the council, were committed to prison ; Filmer and Benet to the bishop
of London's gaol, and Marbeck to the Marshalsea. His examination
we shall here give, to the great goodness of the council, and the cruelty
of the bishop. We are of opinion, and are convinced that our readers
will coincide with us, that it would deteriorate the importance of these
arguments, were we strictly to modernize the style in which they were
delivered : we have, therefore, only changed such expressions as, being
now obsolete, would not be understood by the general reader ; and the
speeches, in consequence, remain nearly as they were uttered by the
Christians and their accusers.
Marbeck had begun a great work in English, called The Concordance
of the Bible ; which not being half finished, was among his other books
taken in the search, and given up to the council. When he came into
their presence to be examined, the whole work lay before the bishop of
Winchester, Stephen Gardiner, at the upper end of the board. Looking
steadfastly at the poor man awhile the bishop said, " Marbeck, dost thou
know wherefore thou art sent for?" "No my lord," quoth he. "No!" quoth
the bishop ; " that is a marvellous thing." " Forsooth my lord," quoth
he, " unless it be for a certain search made of late in Windsor, I cannot
tell wherefore it should be." " Then thou knowest the matter well
["HE SECOND EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 403
enough," quoth the bishop; and taking up a quire of the Concordance
in his hand, said, " Understandeth thou the Latin tongue ?" " No, my
lord," quoth he, " but simply." "No!" quoth the bishop. And with
that spake Mr. Wriothsley, then secretary to the king, " He saith but sim-
ply." " I cannot tell," quoth the bishop, " but the book is translated
word for word out of the Latin Concordance," and so began to declare
to the rest of the council the nature of a Concordance, and how it was
first compiled in Latin by the great diligence of the learned men for the
ease of preachers; concluding with this reason, that if such a book
should go forth in English, it would destroy the Latin tongue. Then
casting down the quire, he reached another book, the book of Isaiah the
prophet, and turning to the last chapter, gave the book to Marbeck,
and asked him who had written the note in the margin. Marbeck look-
ing upon it, said, " Forsooth, my lord, I wrote it." " Read it," quoth
the bishop. Then he read it thus : " Heaven is my seat, and the earth
is my foot-stool." " Nay," quoth the bishop, " read it as thou hast
written it." " Then shall I read it wrong," quoth he, " for I had written it
false." " How hadst thou written it?" quoth the bishop. " I had writ-
ten it," quoth he, " Heaven is my seat, and the earth is not my foot-
stool." " Yea," quoth the bishop, " that was thy meaning." " No
my lord," quoth he, " it was but an oversight in writing; for, as your
lordship seeth, this negative is blotted out." At this time came other
matters into the council, so that Marbeck was sent out to the next cham-
ber. When he had stayed there awhile, one of the council, named Sir
Anthony Wingfield, captain of the guard, came forth, and calling for
Marbeck, committed him to one Belson of the guard, saying to him,
" Take this man and have him to the Marshalsea, and tell the keeper
that it is the council's pleasure that he should be treated gently, and if
he have any money in his purse, as I think he hath not much, take it
from him, lest the prisoners take it, and minister it to him as he shall
have need." The messenger departed with Marbeck to the Marshalsea,
and did his commission faithfully. The hope of the prisoner that he
should soon be released was revived by the result of this examination.
However on the next day, at eight o'clock in the morning, there came
one of the bishop of Winchester's gentlemen into the Marshalsea, whose
man brought after him two great books under his arm, and finding Mar-
beck walking up and down in the chapel, demanded of the keeper why
he was not in irons. " I had no such command," quoth he, " for the
messenger who brought him yesternight from the council, said it was their
pleasure he should be gently used." " My lord," quoth the gentleman,
whose name was Knight, "will not be content with you;" and so
taking the book of his man, he called for a chamber, to which he com-
manded the prisoner, and casting the books from him upon a bed, sat
down and said, " Marbeck, my lord doth favour thee well for certain good
qualities that thou hast, and hath sent me hither to admonish thee to
beware, lest thou cast away thyself wilfully. If thou wilt be plain, thou
shalt do thyself much good; if not, thou shalt do thyself much harm.
I assure thee, my lord laments thy case, for as much as he hath always
heard good report of thee ; wherefore now see to thyself, and play the
wise man. Thou art acquainted with great heretics, as Hobby and
404 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Haynes, and with many, others beside, and knowest much of their secrets ;
if thou wilt open them at my lord's request, he will procure thy deliver-
ance out of hand, and prefer thee to a better living."
" Alas, Sir," quoth he, " what secrets do I know ? I am but a poor
man, and was never worthy to be so conversant either with Mr. Hobby
or Mr. Haynes, as to know any part of their minds." " Well," quoth
the gentleman, " make it not so strange, for my lord doth know well
enough in what estimation they held both thee and Anthony Pearson,
for your religion." " For Anthony Pearson," quoth he, "I can say
nothing, for I never saw him with them in all my life ; and as for my-
self, I cannot deny but that they have always, I thank them, taken me
for an honest man, and shewed me much kindness ; but as for their
secrets, they were too wise to commit them to any such as I am."
" Perhaps," quoth the gentleman, " thou fearest to utter any thing of
them, because they were thy friends, lest hearing thereof they might
hereafter withdraw their friendship from thee: which thou needest not
to fear, I warrant thee, for they are safe enough, and never likely to
pleasure thee any more, or any man else."
With that the water stood in Marbeck's eyes. " Why weepest thou ?"
quoth the gentleman. " Oh Sir," quoth he, " I pray you pardon me ;
these men have done me good, wherefore I beseech the living God to
comfort them as I would be comforted myself." " Well," quoth the
gentleman, " I perceive thou wilt play the fool ;" and then he opened
one of the books and asked him, if he understood any Latin ? " But
a little, sir," quoth he. " How is it then," quoth the gentleman, " that
thou hast translated thy book out of the Latin Concordance, and yet.
understandest not the tongue?" " I will tell you," quoth he : " in my
youth I learned the principles of my grammar, whereby I have some
understanding therein, though it be very small." Then the gentleman
began to try him in the Latin Concordance and English Bible which he
had brought; and when he had so done, and was satisfied, he called
up his man to fetch away the'book, and so departed, leaving Marbeck
alone in the chamber, the door fast shut upon him.
About two hours after, the gentleman came again, with a sheet of
paper folded in his hand, and sat down upon the bedside, and said,
" By my troth, M-arbeck, my lord seeth so much wilfulness in thee, that
he saith it is pity to do thee good. When wast thou last with Haynes?"
" About three weeks ago," said he, " I was at dinner with him."
" And what talk," quoth the gentleman, "had heat his board?" "I
cannot tell now," quothhe. "No!" said the gentleman, " thou art not
so dull witted, to forget a thing in so short a space." " Yes, sir,"
quoth he, " such familiar talk as men use at their tables, is most com-
monly by the next day forgotten, and so it was with me." " Didst thou
never," quoth the gentleman, " talk with him, nor with any of thy fel-
lows, of the mass, or of the blessed sacrament?" " No," answered
Marbeck, firmly. " Now forsooth," quoth the gentleman, " thou liest;
for thou hast been seen to walk with Testwood, and other of thy fellows,
an hour together in the church, when honest men have walked up and
down beside you, and as they have drawn near you, ye have stopped
your talk till they have passed you, because they should not hear whereof
IHF. SECOND EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 405
you talked." " I deny not," quoth he, "but I have talked with Test-
wood and other of my fellows, I cannot tell how often, which makes
not that we talked either of the mass, or of the sacrament: for men may
commune and talk of many matters, that they would not wish every
man should hear, and yet far from any such thing; therefore it is
good to judge the best." "Well," quoth the gentleman, "thou must
be plainer with my lord than this, or else it will be wrong with thee, and
that sooner than thou weenest." " How plain will his lordship have me
to be, Sir?" quoth he. " There is nothing that I can do or say with a
safe conscience, but 1 am ready to do it at his lordship's pleasure."
"What tellest thou me," quoth the gentleman, " of thy conscience?
Thou mayst with a safe conscience tell of those that be heretics, and so
doing thou canst do God and the king no greater service." " If I knew,
sir," quoth he, "who was a heretic indeed, it were another thing; but
if I should accuse him to be a heretic that is none, what a worm would
that be in my conscience so long as I lived? yea it were a great deal
better for me to be out of this life, than to live in such torment." " In
faith," quoth the gentleman, "thou knowest as well who are heretics ot
thy fellows at home, and who are not, as I know this paper to be in my
hand : but it is no matter, for they shall all be sent for and examined :
and thinkest thou that they will not utter and tell of thee all that they
can ? Yes, I warrant thee. And what a foolish dolt art thou, that wilt
not utter aforehand what they are, seeing it standeth upon thy deliverance
to tell the truth?" "Whatsoever," quoth he, "they shall say of me,
let them do it in the name of God, for I will say no more of them, nor
of any man else, than I know." " Well," quoth the gentleman, " if
thou wilt so do, my lord requireth no more. And forasmuch as now thy
wits are troubled, so that thou canst not call things to thy remembrance,
I have brought the ink and paper, that thoumayest write such things as
shall come to thy mind." " O God !" quoth Marbeck, " what will my lord
do? Will his lordship compel me to accuse men I know not whereof?"
" No," quoth the gentleman, " my lord compelleth thee not, but gently
intreateth thee to tell the truth; therefore make no more ado, but write,
for my lord will have it so." So he laid down the ink and paper, and
went his way.
Marbeck was now so full of sorrow, that he knew not what to do,
nor how to set the pen to the book to satisfy the bishop's mind, unless
he accused men, to the wounding of his own soul. And thus being
compassed with nothing but sorrow and care, he cried out to God in his
heart, falling down weeping, and said — " O most merciful Father of
heaven, thou that knowest the secret doings of all men, have mercy upon
thy poor prisoner who is destitute of all help and comfort. Assist me.
O Lord, with thy special grace, for to save this frail and vile body which
shall turn to corruption at his time, I have no power to say or to write
any thing that may be to the casting away of my christian brother; but
rather, O Lord, let this vile flesh suffer at thy will and pleasure. Grant
this, O most merciful Father, for thy dear Son Jesus Christ's sake."
Then he rose up and began to search his conscience what he might
write, and at last framed out these words: " Whereas your lordship will
have me to write such things as I know of my fellows at home; pleaseth
406 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
it your lordship to understand, that I cannot call to remembrance
any manner of thing whereby I might justly accuse any one of them
unless it be the reading of the New Testament, which is common to all
men ; more than this I know not."
The gentleman came again, and found Marbeck walking up and
down the chamber. ''How now," quoth he, "hast thou written
nothing?" " Yes, Sir," quoth he, " as much as I know." " Well said,"
quoth the gentleman ; and took up the paper. But when he had looked
over it, he cast it from him in a great fume, swearing by our Lord's
body, that he would not for twenty pounds carry it to his lord and master.
*' Therefore," quoth he, " go to it again, and advise thyself better, or
else thou wilt set my lord against thee, and then art thou utterly un-
done." " By my troth, sir," quoth Marbeck, " if his lordship shall
keep me here these seven years I can say no more than I have said."
" Then wilt thou repent it," quoth the gentleman; and so putting up
his pen and inkhorn, departed with the paper in his hand.
The next and third examination of this excellent man was by Gardiner
himself, who seemed impatient of the result, and fearful to trust any
more to his deputy. The next day, by eight o'clock in the morning, the
bishop sent for Marbeck to his house at St. Mary Overy's, and as he
was entering into the hall, he saw the bishop himself coming out at a
door in the upper end thereof, with a roll in his hand, and going toward
the great window, who called to him and said, " Marbeck, wilt thou cast
away thyself?" " No, my lord," quoth he, " I trust." " Yes," quoth the
bishop, " thou goest about it, for thou wilt utter nothing. What the
devil made thee meddle with the scriptures ?<* Thy vocation was another
way, wherein thou hast a goodly gift, if thou didst esteem it." " Yes,
my lord," quoth he, " I do esteem it, and have done my part therein,
according to the little knowledge that God hath given me." " And why
the devil," quoth the bishop, " didst thou not hold thee there?" And
with that he went away from the window out of the hall, the poor man
following him from place to place, till he had brought him into a long
gallery, and being there, the bishop began on thiswise: "Ah, sirrah,
the nest of you is broken, I trow." And unfolding his roll, which was
about an ell long, he said, " Behold, here be your captains, both Hobby
and Haynes, with all the whole pack of thy sect about Windsor, and yet
thou wilt accuse none of them." "Alas, my lord," quoth he, "how
should I accuse them, of whom I know nothing?" "Well," quoth the bi-
shop," if thou wilt needs cast away thyself, who can help thee? what
helpers hadst thou in setting forth thy book?" "Forsooth, my lord,"
quoth he, "none." "None!" quoth the bishop, " how can that be?
It is not possible that thou shouldst do it without help." "Truly, my
lord," quoth he, " I cannot tell in what part your lordship doth take it,
but howsoever it be, I will not deny but I did it without the help of any
1 If this be a faithful record, it would appear true, as asserted of Gardiner, that he was
a profane as well as a cruel man. Indeed, these base qualities are generally found in
union. A modern member of the episcopal bench, of splendid talents, and high reputation
for his orthodox and gifted publications, is said to have been in his violent passions a most
profane swearer. Judging by the fury with which he sometimes treats his literary oppo-
nents, he might, in the age of Gardiner, have been an inquisitor equally barbarous.
EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 407
one save God alone." " Nay," quoth the bishop, " I do not discom-
mend thy diligence, but why shouldst thou meddle with that thing which
pertaineth not to thee?"
On speaking these words, one of his chaplains, called Mr. Medow,
came up, and stopped at a window, to whom the bishop said, " Here
is a marvellous thing : this fellow hath taken upon him to set out the
Concordance in English, which book when it was set out in Latin, was
not done without the help and diligence of a dozen learned men at the
least, and yet will he insist that he hath done it alone. But say what
thou wilt," quoth the bishop, " except God himself would come down
from heaven, and tell me so, I will not believe it:" and so going forth
to a window where two great bibles lay upon a cushion, the one in Latin
and the other in English, he called Marbeck unto him, and pointing his
finger to a place in the Latin bible, said, " Canst thou English this
sentence?" " Nay, my lord," quoth he, "I trow I be not so clever to
give it perfect English, but I can make out the English thereof in an
English bible." " Let us see," quoth the bishop. Then Marbeck turn-
ing the English bible, found out the place, and read it to the bishop. So
he tried him three or four times, till one of his men came up and told
him the priest was ready to go to mass.
As the bishop was going, the gentleman who had examined Marbeck
in the Marshalsea the day before, said, " Shall this fellow write nothing
while your lordship is at mass?" " It is no matter," quoth the bishop,
" for he will tell nothing;" and so went down to hear mass, leaving
Marbeck alone in the gallery. The bishop was no sooner down, but
the gentleman came up again with ink and paper. " Come, sir," quoth
he, " my lord will have you occupied till mass be done;" persuading him
with fair words that he would soon be dispatched out of trouble, if he
would use truth and plainness. " Alas, sir," quoth he, " what would
my lord have me to do? For more than I wrote to his lordship yester-
day, I cannot." "Well, well, go to," quoth the gentleman, "and
make speed," and so went his way. There was no remedy, but Marbeck
must now write something; wherefore he, calling to God again in his
mind, wrote a few words, as near as he could frame them, to those he
had written the day before. When the bishop was come from mass,
and had looked on the writing, he pushed it from him, saying, " What
will this do? It hath neither head nor foot. There is a marvellous sect
of them," quoth the bishop to his men, " for the devil cannot make one
of them betray another." Then was there nothing among the-bishop's
gentlemen, as they were making him ready to go to the court, but
erucifige* upon the poor man. And when the bishop's white rochet was
on him — " Well, Marbeck," quoth he, " I am now going to the court,
and intended, if I had found thee tractable, to have spoken to the king's
majesty for thee, and to have given thee thy meat, drink, and lodging
here in mine house ; but seeing thou art so wilful and so stubborn, thou
shalt go to the devil for me."
Then was he carried down by the bishop's men, with many railing
r This appears to have been a slang word of frequent use in that day — a term of abuse,
as though they would say eruptionize him, belch him, let him be emptied — that is compel
him to confess.
408 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
words. And coming through the great chamber there stood Dr. Loudon,
with two more of his fellows, waiting the bishop's coming by them into
the hall; he was there received by his keeper, and carried to prison
again. In half an hour after, the bishop sent one of his gentlemen
to the under keeper, called Stokes, commanding him to put irons upon
Marbeck, and to keep him fast shut in a chamber alone, and when he
should bring him down to dinner or supper, to see that he spake
to no man, and no man to him. Further, that he should suffer no
manner of person, not even his own wife, to come and see him, or give
any thing to him. When the porter, who was the cruellest man that
could be to all such as were imprisoned for any matter of religion, and
yet providentially favourable to Marbeck, had received this command
from the bishop, he put irons upon him, and shut him up, giving warn-
ing to all the house, that no man should speak or talk to Marbeck,
whensoever he was brought down: and so he continued the space
of three weeks or more, during which time, however, his wife was suffered
to visit him once or twice at least.
About three weeks before Whit Sunday, Marbeck was sent for to the
bishop of London's house, where sat in commission Dr. Capon, bishop
of Salisbury; Dr. Skip, bishop of Hereford; Dr. Goodrick, bishop of
Ely; Dr. Oking, Dr. May, and the bishop of London's clerk, having
before them all Marbeck's books. Then said the bishop of Salisbury,
" We are here in commission from the king, to examine thee of certain
things whereof thou must be sworn to answer us faithfully and truly."
" I am content, my lord," quoth he, "to tell you the truth so far as
I can," and so took his oath. Then the bishop of Salisbury laid before
him his three books of notes, demanding whose hand writing they were.
He answered they were his own, and notes which he had gathered out
of other men's works six years ago. " For what cause," quoth the
bishop of Salisbury, " didst thou gather them?" " For no other cause,
my lord, but to come to knowledge. For I being unlearned, and de-
sirous to understand some part of Scripture, thought by reading learned
men's works, to come the sooner thereby; and where I found any place
of scripture opened and expounded by them, that I noted, as ye see,
with a letter of his name in the margin, that had set out the work."
" So methinks," quoth the bishop of Ely, who had one of the books
in his hand all the time of their sitting, "thou hast read all sorts of
books, both good and bad, as seemeth by the notes." " So I have, my
lord," quoth he. " And to what purpose?" quoth the bishop of
Salisbury. " By my troth," quoth he, " for no other purpose but to
see every man's mind." Then the bishop of Salisbury drew out a quire
of the Concordance, and laid it before the bishop of Hereford, who
looking upon it awhile, lifting up his eyes to Dr. Oking, standing next
him, and said, " This man hath been better occupied than a great many
of our priests." To which he made no answer.
Then said the bishop of Salisbury, " Whose help hadst thou in setting
forth this book?" ''Truly my lord," quoth he, "no help at all." —
" How couldst thou," quoth the bishop, " invent such a book, or know
what a concordance meant, without an instructor?" " I will tell you,
my lord," quoth he, "what instructor I had to begin it. When Thomas
FOURTH EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. 409
Matthew's Bible came out in print, I was much desirous to have it,
and being a poor man, not able to buy it, determined with myself to
borrow one amongst my friends, and to write it forth. And when I had
written out the five books of Moses in fair great paper, and was entered
into the book of Joshua, my friend Turner, chanced to steal upon me
unawares, and seeing me writing out the Bible, asked me what I meant
thereby. And when I had told him the cause — * Tush,' quoth he, ' thou
goest about a vain and tedious labour. But this were a profitable work
for thee, to set out a concordance in English.' 'A concordance,' said I,
1 what is that?' Then he told me it was a book to find out any word in
the bible by the letter, and that there was such an one in Latin already.
Then I told him I had no learning to go about such a thing. * Enough,'
quoth he, ' for that matter, for it requireth not so much learning as
diligence. And seeing thou art so industrious a man, and one that
cannot be unoccupied, it were a good exercise for thee.' And this, my
lord, is all the instruction that ever I had, before or after, of any man."
" And who is that Turner?" quoth the bishop of Salisbury. " Marry,"
quoth Dr. May, " an honest learned man, and a bachelor of divinity,
and some time a fellow in Magdalen College, in Oxford." " How
couldst thou," quoth the bishop of Salisbury, "with this instruction,
bring it to this order and form as it is?" " I borrowed a Latin Con-
cordance," quoth he, " and began to practise, and at last, with great
labour and diligence, brought it into this order, as your lordship doth
see." " It is a great pity," quoth the bishop of Ely, " he had not the
Latin tongue." " So it is," quoth Dr. May. " Yet I cannot believe,"
quoth the bishop of Salisbury, " that he hath done any more in this
work than written it out after some other that is more learned than
himself."
" My lords," quoth Marbeck, " I shall beseech you all to pardon
me what I shall say, and grant my request if it shall seem good unto
you." " Say what thou wilt," quoth the bishop. " I do marvel greatly
wherefore I should be so much examined for this book, and whether I
have committed any offence in doing it or no? If I have, then were I
loth any other should be molested or punished for my fault. There-
fore, to clear all men in this matter, this is my request, that ye will try
me in the rest of the book that is undone. Ye see that I am yet but
at the letter L, begin now at M, and take out what word ye will of that
letter, and so in every letter following, and give me the words on a piece
of paper, and set me in a place alone where it shall please you, with
ink and paper, the English Bible, and the Latin Concordance; and if
I bring you not these words written in the same order and form that the
rest before is, then was it not I that did it, but some other."
" By my truth, Marbeck," quoth the bishop of Ely, " that is honestly
spoken, and then shalt thou bring many out of suspicion." "That he
shall," quoth they all. Then they bade Dr. Oking draw out such words
as he thought best on a piece of paper, and so rose up; and in the
mean time fell into familiar talk with Marbeck (as the bishops of Ely
and Hereford were both acquainted with him afore, and his friends, so
far as they durst), who perceiving the bishops so pleasantly disposed,
besought them to tell Jiim in what danger he stood. " I shall tell thee,
410 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Marbeck," quoth the bishop of Sarum, " thou art in a better case than
any of thy fellows, of whom there be some would give forty pounds to
be in no worse case than thou art," whose sayings the others affirmed.
Then came Dr. Oking with the words he had written ; and while the bishops
were perusing them over, Dr. Oking said to Marbeck, very friendly,
" Good Mr. Marbeck make haste, for the sooner you have done, the
sooner you shall be delivered." And as the bishops were going away,
the bishop of Hereford took Marbeck a little aside, and informed him a
word which Dr. Oking had written false, and also to comfort him, said,
" fear not, there can no law condemn you for any thing that ye
have done; for if ye had written a thousand heresies, so long as they
be not your sayings nor your opinions, the law cannot hurt you."
And so they all went with the bishop of Sarum to dinner, taking the
poor man with them, who dined in the hall at the steward's board, and
had wine and meat sent down from the bishop's table.
When dinner was over, the bishop of Sarum came down into the
hall, commanding ink and paper to be given to Marbeck, and the two
books to one of his men to go with him ; at whose going he demanded
of the bishop, what time his lordship would appoint him to do it in.
" Against to-morrow this time," quoth the bishop, which was about two
of the clock, and so departed. Marbeck now being in his prison-chamber
fell to his business, and so applied himself, that by the next day, when
the bishop sent for him again, he had written so much, in the same order
and form he had done the rest before, as contained three sheets of paper
and more, which, when he had delivered to the bishop of Sarum,
Dr. Oking standing by, he marvelled and said, " Well, Marbeck, thou
hast put me out of all doubt, I assure thee;" and added, putting up
the paper into his bosom, " the king shall see this ere I be twenty-four
hours older." But he dissembled every word. For afterwards the
matter being come to light, and known to the king what a book the
poor man had begun, which the bishops would not suffer him to finish,
the king said he was better occupied than they that took it from him.
So Marbeck departed from the bishop of Sarum to prison again, and
heard no more of his book till at Whitsuntide he was ordered to prepare
for another and a fifth examination at the same place. 8
On Whit Sunday following in the afternoon, Marbeck was sent for
again to St. Mary Overy's, where he found Dr. Oking and another
gentleman in a gown of damask, with a chain of gold about his neck,
sitting together in one of the stalls, their backs towards the church door,
looking upon an epistle of John Calvin's which Marbeck had written
out; and when they saw the prisoner come, they rose and had him up
to a side altar, leaving his keeper in the body of the church alone. Now
as soon as Marbeck saw the face of a gentleman which before he knew
not by reason of his apparel, he saw it was the same person that first
examined him in the Marshalsea, and caused him to write in the bishop's
8 It may please the antiquarian reader to be reminded that these lively and crafty exami-
nations took place in a chapel, which has lately excited no small portion of interest in the
public mind — our Lu dye's chapelle, at the east end of St. Saviour's church, and which, in
a restored and beautified state, now adorns the western scene of the new London bridge.
THE FIFTH EXAMINATION OF MARBECK. * 411
gallery, but never knew his name till now he heard Dr. Oking call him
Mr. Knight. This man held forth the paper to Marbeck, and said,
" Look upon this, and tell whose hand it is."
When Marbeck had taken the paper and seen what it was, he
confessed it to be all his hand, saving the first leaf and the notes
that were placed in the margin. " Then I perceive," quoth Mr.
Knight, " thou wilt not go from thine own hand." " No, Sir," quoth
he, " I will deny nothing that I have done." " Thou dost well in that,"
quoth Knight; " for if thou shouldst, we have testimonies enough to try
thy hand by: but I pray thee tell me whose hand is the first leaf?"
"That I cannot tell you," quoth Marbeck. "Then how earnest thou
by it?" quoth Knight. " There was a priest," answered he, " dwelling
with us five or six years ago, called Marshall, who sent it unto me with the
first leaf written, desiring me to write it out with speed, because the
copy could not be spared but an hour or two, and so I wrote it out,
and sent him both the copy and it again." " And how came this hand
in the margin," quoth he, "which is a contrary hand to both the
others?" " That I will tell you," quoth Marbeck. " When I wrote it
out at the first, I made so much haste that I understood not the matter,
whereof I was desirous to see it again, and to read it with more delibera-
tion : and being sent to me the second time, it was thus quoted in the
margin as you see. And shortly after this it was his chance to go beyond
the seas, by reason whereof the epistle remaineth with me; but whether
the first leaf or the notes in the margin were his hand, or whose hand
else, that I cannot tell." " Tush," quoth Dr. Oking to Mr. Knight,
" he knoweth well enough that the notes be Haynes's own hand."
" If you know so much," quoth Marbeck, " you know more than I do;
for I tell you truly, I know it not." " By my faith, Marbeck," quoth
Knight, " if thou wilt not tell by fair means, those fingers of thine shall
be made to tell." " By my truth, Sir," quoth Marbeck, " if .you do
tear my whole body in pieces, I trust in God you shall never make me
accuse any man wrongfully." " If thou be so stubborn," quoth
Dr. Oking, "thou wilt die for it." "Die! Mr. Oking," quoth he;
" wherefore should I die? You told me the last day before the bishops,
that as soon as I had made an end of the piece of concordance they
took me, I should be delivered; and shall I now die ? This is a sudden
mutation. You seemed then to be my friend. But I know the cause; ye
have read the ballad I made of Moses' chair, and that hath set you
against me; but whenever ye shall put me to death, I doubt not but
that I shall die God's true man and the king's." " How so?" quoth
Knight, " How canst thou die a true man unto the king, when thou hast
offended his laws? Are not this epistle, and most of thy notes thou
hast written, directly against the six articles?" " No, sir," quoth
Marbeck, " I have not offended the king's laws therein; for since the
first time I began with the concordance, which is almost six years ago,
I have been occupied in nothing else ; so that both this epistle, and
all the notes I have gathered, were written a great while before the six
articles came forth, and are clearly remitted by the king's general
pardon." " Trust not to that," quoth Knight, " for it will not help
thee." "No, I warrant him," quoth Dr. Oking; and so going down
412 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
to the body of the church, they committed him to his keeper, who led
him away to prison again.
Some particulars of other interesting characters must now receive our
attention. When the time drew nigh that the king (who was newly
married to lady Catharine Parr) should make his progress abroad,
the bishop of Winchester had so compassed his matters, that no man
bore so great sway about the king as he did : at which the reformers
were so concerned, that the best of them looked every hour to be
destroyed. The saying went abroad, that the bishop had bent his
bow to shoot at some of the head deer. In the mean time three or
four of the leading men were caught — Anthony Pearson, Henry
Filmer, and John Marbeck — and sent to Windsor by the sheriffs men,
the Saturday before St. James' day, and laid fast in the town jail;
and Testwood, who had kept his bed, was brought out of his house
upon crutches, and laid with them; but as for Benet, who should have
been the fifth man, his chance was to be sick of the pestilence,
and was therefore left behind in the bishop of London's jail.
These men being brought to Windsor, there was a session specially
procured to be holden the Thursday following, which was St. Anne's
day. Against these sessions, by the counsel of Dr. Loudon, and
Simons, were all the farmers belonging to the college of Windsor
warned to appear, because they could not select papists enough in the
town to go upon the jury. The judges that day were, Dr. Capon,
bishop of Salisbury; Sir William Essex; Sir Thomas Bridges; Sir
Humfrey Foster; Mr. Franklen, dean of Windsor; and Fachel of
Reading. When they had taken their places, and the prisoners were
brought forth before them, Robert Ockam, occupying for that day the
clerk of the peace's room, called Anthony Pearson, according to the
manner of the court, and read his indictment, as follows: —
ThaJ ne na d preached, two years before, in a place called Winkfield,
and there said, that " like as Christ was hanged between two thieves,
even so when the priest is at mass, and hath consecrated and lifted him
over his head, there he hangeth between two thieves, except he preach
the word of God truly, as he hath taken upon him to do." Also that
he said to the people in the pulpit — " Ye shall not eat the body of
Christ, as it did hang upon the cross, gnawing it with your teeth, that
the blood may run about your lips; but you shall eat him this day as
ye eat him to-morrow, the next day, and every day; for it refresheth
not the body but the soul." Also, that after he had preached and com-
mended the scripture, calling it the word of God, he said as follows:
"This is the word, this is the bread, this is the body of Christ." Also
he said, that Christ, sitting with his disciples, took bread, and blessed,
and brake it, and gave it to his disciples, saying, "Take and eat, this is
my body. What is this to us, but to take the scripture of God and to
break it to the people?"
To these things Anthony answered, " I will be tried by God and his
holy word, and by the true church of Christ, whether this be heresy or
no, whereof ye have indicted me this day. So long as T preached the
bishop of Rome, and his filthy traditions, I never was troubled ; but
since I have taken upon me to preach Christ and his gospel, ye have
TRIALS OF PEARSON, TESTWOOD, AND FILMER. 413
always sought my life. But it maketh no matter, for when you have
taken your pleasure of my body, I trust it shall not lie in your power to
hurt my soul." "Thou callest us thieves," quoth the bishop. "I say,"
quoth Anthony, "ye are not only thieves, but murderers, except ye
preach and teach the word of God purely and sincerely to the people;
which ye do not, nor ever did, but have allured them to idolatry, super-
stition, and hypocrisy, for your own lucre and honour's sake, through
which ye are become rather bite-sheeps, than true bishops; biting and
devouring the poor sheep of Christ, like ravening wolves, never satisfied
with blood ; which God will require at your hands one day, doubt it
not." Then spoke Simons his accuser, standing within the bar — " It is
a pity this fellow had not been burnt long ago, as he deserved." " In
faith," quoth Anthony, " if you had as you deserved, you are more
worthy to stand in this place than I am; but I trust, in the last day,
when we shall both appear before the tribunal of Christ, it will be
known which of us hath best deserved this place." " Shall I have so
long a day?" quoth Simons, holding up his finger; " nay, then I care
not;" and thus the most solemn of all seasons and subjects was turned
into laughter, which the grave bishop did not suppress.
Testwood was next called, and his indictment read, which was that
he should say in the time the priest was lifting up the sacrament — " What
wilt thou lift up so high? what higher? take heed, let him not fall."
To this charge Testwood answered it was but a thing maliciously forged
by his enemies to bring him to death. "Yes," quoth the bishop, "thou
hast been seen, that when the priest should lift up the consecrated host
over his head, then wouldst thou look upon thy book, or some other
way, because thou wouldst not abide to look upon the blessed sacra-
ment." "Ibeseehyou, my lord," quoth Testwood, " whereon did he
look that marked me so well?" " Marry," quoth Bucklayer, the king's
attorney, "he could not be better occupied, than to mark such heretics
that so despised the blessed sacrament." A striking proof this of the
arrant sophistry with which the judicious arguments of the reformers
were met by their enemies.
After Testwood, Filmer was called, and his indictment read; that he
should say that the sacrament of the altar is nothing but a similitude
and a ceremony ; and also if God be in the sacrament of the altar, he
had eaten many Christs in his day. Here it should be understood, that
these words were gathered of certain communications which passed
between Filmer and his brother. The story was as follows: — Henry
Filmer coming on a Sunday from Clewer, his parish church, in the
company of one or two of his neighbours, chanced in his way to meet
his brother, who was a poor labouring man, and asked him whither he
went? "To the church," said he. "And what to do?" quoth Filmer,
"To do," quoth he, "as other men do." "Nay," quoth Filmer, "you
go to hear mass, and to see your Christ." " What if I do so?" quoth
he. " If that be Christ," Filmer said, " I have eaten twenty Christs in
my days. Turn again, fool, and go home with me, and I will read thee
a chapter out of the Bible, that will be better than all that thou shalt
see or hear there."
This tale was no sooner brought to Dr. Loudon, by Simons, Filmer's
414 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
utter enemy, but he sent for the poor man home to his house, telling
him he should never want so long as he lived, so that Filmer, thinking
to have a daily friend in the doctor, was content to do so, and say what-
soever he and Simons would have him against his own brother. And
when the doctor had thus won the poor man, he retained him as one of
his household, until the court day was come, and then sent him up to
witness this aforesaid tale against his brother : which tale Filmer denied
utterly, saying that Dr. Loudon, for a little meat and drink, had set him
on and made him say what he pleased. " Wherefore my lord," quoth
Filmer to the bishop, " I beseech your lordship weigh the matter indif-
ferently, forasmuch as there is no man, in all this town, that can or will
testify that ever he heard any such talk between him and me ; and if he
can bring forth any that will witness it, I refuse not to die." But say
what he could it would not prevail.
On Filmer seeing that his brother's accusement would take place, he
said, "Ah, brother, what cause hast thou to shew me this unkindness?
I have always been a natural brother unto thee and thine, and helped
thee all in my power, from time to time, as thou thyself knowest; and
is this a brotherly part, thus to reward me now for my kindness? God
forgive thee, my brother, and grant thee grace to repent." Then Filmer,
looking over his shoulder, desired some good person to let him see the
book of statutes. His wife .being at the end of the hall, and hearing
her husband call for the book of statutes, ran down to the keeper, and
brought up the book, and got it conveyed to her husband. The bishop
seeing the book in his hand, started up from the bench in a great fume,
demanding who had given the prisoner that book, commanding it to be
taken from him, and to make search who had brought it, swearing by
the faith of his body that he should go to prison. Some said it was his
wife, some said the keeper. " Like enough, my lord," quoth Simons,
" for h§ is one of the same sort, and as worthy to be here as the best, if
he were rightly served." But whosoever it was, the truth was not known,
and so the bishop sat down again.
Then said Filmer, " O my lord, I am this day judged by a law, and
why should I not see the law that I am judged by? The law is, I should
have two lawful witnesses, and here is but one, who acts not by his own
will, but is forced thereunto by the suggestion of mine enemies." " Nay,"
quoth Bucklayer, the king's attorney, " thine heresy is so heinous, and
so much against thine own brother, that it forceth him to witness against
thee, which is more than two other witnesses." Thus was Filmer brought
unjustly to his death by the malice of Simons and Dr. Loudon, who had
incited his wretched brother to work his destruction. But God, who is
a just avenger of all falsehoods and wrongs, would not suffer that wretch
to live long upon earth ; but the next year he was taken up for a labourer
to go to Boulogne, and had not been there three days, when a spring-gun
took him and tore him all to pieces. Thus were the words of Solomon
fulfilled — "A false witness shall not remain unpunished."
John Marbeck was now called, and his indictment was nearly the
same as that of the others — that he should say that the holy mass, which
the priest consecrates into the body of our Lord, is polluted, deformed,
sinful, and open robbery of the glory of God, from which a christian
CONDEMNATION OF MARBECK AND OTHERS. 415
heart ought both to abhor and flee. And the elevation of the sacrament
is the similitude of setting up the images of the calves in the temple
built, by Jeroboam: and that it is greater abomination than the
sacrifices made by the Jews in Jeroboam's temple to those calves. And
that certain and sure it is, that Christ himself is made in the mass
man's laughing-stock.
To this Marbeck answered and said, that the words whereof they had
indicted him were not his, but the words of a learned man called John
Calvin, drawn out of a certain epistle which Calvin had made, which
epistle he had only written out, and that long before the six articles
came forth; so that now he was discharged of that offence by the king's
general pardon, desiring that he might enjoy the benefit thereof.
Then was the jury called, who were all farmers belonging to the
college of Windsor, whereof few or none had ever seen the men before,
on whose life and death they sat. Wherefore the prisoners, counting
the farmers as partial, desired to have the townsmen, or such as did
know them, and had heard their daily conversations, in place of the
farmers, or else to be equally joined with them; but this justice was not
allowed, for the matter was otherwise foreseen and determined.
When the jury had taken their oath, Bucklayer, the king's attorney,
began to speak; first he alleged many reasons against Anthony Pearson,
to prove him a heretic: and when Anthony would have disproved them,
the bishop said, " Let him alone, sir, he speaketh for the king:" and so
went Bucklayer on, making every man's cause as heinous to the hearers as
he could devise. When he had done, Sir Humfrey Foster spoke in favour
of Marbeck, as follows: " Masters, you see there is no man here that
accuseth or layeth any thing to the charge of this poor man, Marbeck,
saying he hath writ certain things of other men's sayings, with his own
hand, whereof he is discharged by the king's general pardon ; therefore ye
ought to have a conscience therein." Then started up Fachel, at th£ lower
end of the bench, and said, "How can we tell whether they were writ-
ten before the pardon, or after? they may as well be written since as
before, for any thing that we know." These words of Fachel, as every
one said, were the cause of Marbeck's being cast that day.
Then the jury went up to the chamber, and when they had been
together there about the space of a quarter of an hour, Simons went up
to them. After that came one of them down to the bishop, and talked
with him and the other two a good while: whereby many conjectured
that the jury could not agree. But whether it was so or no, it was not
long after his going up again, ere that they came down to give their
verdict; and being required according to the form of the Jaw to say
their minds, one Hide, the foreman, said the prisoners were all guilty of
the charges brought against them.
The judges, beholding the prisoners a good while — some of them even
with tears — contended who should give judgment. Fachel requiring
the bishop to do it, he said, "I may not." The others also being
required, said, "We will not." Then said Fachel, " It must be done;
one must do it, and if no man will, then will I." And so he, though
he was the lowest of all the bench, gave judgment. Then Marbeck,
being the last upon whom sentence was given, cried to the bishop,
416 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
saying, "Ah, my lord, you told me otherwise when I was before you
and the other two bishops. You said then, that I was in better case
than any of my fellows, and is your saying come to this? Ah, my lord,
you have deceived me!" Then the bishop, casting up his hand, said,
" I cannot do so with all," — evidently meaning that, as he could not
spare all, all must die.
The prisoners being condemned and had away, prepared to die on the
morrow, comforting one another in the death and passion of their master
Christ, who had led the way before them, trusting that the same Lord,
who had made them worthy to suffer thus far for his sake, would not
now withdraw his strength from them, but give them stedfast faith and
power to overcome all fiery torments, and of his free mercy and
goodness, for his promise sake, receive their souls. Thus lay they all
the night long, calling to God for his aid and strength, and praying for
their persecutors, who from blind zeal and ignorance had done they
knew not what; that God of his merciful goodness would forgive them,
and turn their hearts to the love and knowledge of his blessed and holy
word. Indeed, such heavenly talk was amongst them that night, that
the hearers watching the prison without, and of whom the sheriff himself
was one, with many gentlemen more, were constrained to shed tears, as
they themselves confessed
On the morrow, which was Friday, as the prisoners were all preparing
themselves to suffer, word was brought that they should not die that day.
The cause was this : the bishop of Sarum had sent a letter to the bishop of
Winchester, who was with the court at Okingham, in favour of Marbeck ;
at the sight of which the bishop straightway went to the king, and
obtained his pardon. This being granted, he caused a warrant to be
made for the sheriff's discharge, delivering the same to the messenger,
who returned with speed, bringing news of the pardon, whereat many
rejoiced. Of the cause of this pardon were divers conjectures made;
some said it was through the suit of the good sheriff Sir William
Barrington, and Sir Humfrey Foster, with other gentlemen who favoured
Marbeck, to the bishop of Sarum and the other commissioners, that the
letter was again sent. Some said again that it came through the bishop
of Sarum, and because Fachel himself was troubled in conscience for
having convicted Marbeck. Others thought again that it was a policy
of the bishops of Winchester and of Sarum, and of Dr. Loudon,
because they would for once at least seem to be merciful.
On Saturday in the morning, when the prisoners were to go to exe-
cution, came into the prison two of the canons of the college, the one
called Dr. Blithe, and the other Mr. Arch, who were both sent to be
their confessors. Mr. Arch asked them, if they would be confest? and
they said, "Yea." Then he demanded if they would receive the sacra-
ment? "Yea," said they, "with all our hearts." "I am glad," quoth
Arch, "to hear you say so; but the law is, that it may not be ministered
to any that are condemned of heresy : however, it is enough for you
that ye desire it." And so he had them up to the hall to hear their
confessions, because the prison was full of people. Dr. Blithe took
Anthony Pearson to confess, and Mr. Arch the other two. But how-
soever the matter went between the doctor and Anthony, he was not long
DEATH OF TESTWOOD, KILMER, AND PEARSON. 417
with him, but came down again, saying, " I will have no more of his
doctrine.'' Soon after the other two came down also. Then Anthony,
seeing many people in the prison, began to say the Lord's prayer,
wherein he continued till the officers came to fetch them away; then
taking their leave of Marbeck, they praised God for his deliverance,
wishing him an increase of godliness and virtue, and last of all besought
him heartily to help them with his prayer unto God, to make them
strong in their afflictions: and so kissing him one after another, they
departed.
As the prisoners passed through the people in the street, they desired
all the people to pray for them, and to stand fast in the truth of the
gospel, and not to be moved at their afflictions, for it was the happiest
thing that ever came to them. And as Dr. Blithe and Arch, who rode
on each side the prisoners, would persuade them to turn to their mother
holy church — "Away," would Anthony cry, " away with your Romish
doctrine and all your trumpery, for we will have no more of it." When
Filmer came to his brother's door, he stayed and called for his brother;
but he could not be seen, for Dr. Loudon had kept him out of sight.
When he had called for him three or four times, and saw he came not,
he said, "And will he not come? Then God forgive him, and make
him a good man." Thus they came to the place of execution, where
Anthony Pearson, with a cheerful countenance, embraced the post in
his arms, and kissing it said, " Now welcome mine own sweet wife; for
this day shalt thou and I be married together in the love and peace
of God."
When they were all three bound to the post, a young man of Filmer's
acquaintance brought him some liquor, asking if he would drink?
" Yea," quoth Filmer, " I thank you. And now, my brother, I shall
desire you in the name of the living Lord to stand fast in the truth of
the gospel of Jesus Christ, which you have received;" and so taking
the cup into his hand, asked his brother Anthony if he would drink.
"Yea, brother Filmer," quoth he, "I pledge you in the Lord."
When he had drunk, he gave the cup to Anthony, and Anthony gave
it to Testwood, of which their adversaries made a jest, reporting abroad
that they were all drunk, and knew not what they said ; though they
were no otherwise drunk than the apostles were, when the people said
they were full of new wine, as their deeds declared; for when Anthony
and Testwood had both drunk, and given the cup from them, Filmer,
rejoicing in the Lord, said, " Be merry, my brethren, and lift up your
hearts and hands unto God, for after this sharp breakfast I trust we
shall have a good dinner in the kingdom of Christ, our Lord and
Redeemer." At these words Testwood, lifting up his hands and eyes to
heaven, desired the Lord above to receive his spirit. Anthony Pearson,
pulling the straw towards him, laid a good deal thereof upon the top of
his head, saying, "This is God's hat; now I am dressed like a true
soldier of Christ, by whose merits only I trust this day to enter his joy."
Thus yielded they up their souls to the Father of Heaven, in the faith
of his dear Son Jesus Christ, with such humility and stedfastness, that
many who saw their patient suffering, confessed that they could have,
found in their hearts to have died with them.
2 E
418 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
About the same time suffered, for the cause of God and truth, Adam
Damlip, who was martyred at Calais, then belonging to the English, and
was an Englishman. The spot is still shewn, just without the city,
where he and others, at different times, endured with greater or less
constancy the fiery trial by which the reformed faith was thus early put
to the test. Calais would have witnessed many more martyrdoms, but
that England began to lose its hold of the place as the persecutions
advanced,
Adam Damlip, otherwise George Bucker, went to Calais, in the year
1539. He had formerly been a zealous papist, and chaplain to Fisher,
bishop of Rochester. After the death of the bishop, he travelled through
France, Holland, and Italy, and as he went conferred with learned men
concerning matters of controversy in religion, and thence proceeded to
Rome, where he thought to have found all godliness and sincere
religion; but instead of this, he found there, according to his assertion,
such blasphemy of God, contempt of Christ's true religion, looseness
of life, and abundance of all abominations and impurities, that his heart
abhorred any longer to remain there. He was indeed earnestly requested
by cardinal Pole, who wished him to read three lectures in the week in
his house, for which he offered him great entertainment; but he preferred
returning homeward by way of Calais. As he was waiting without the
gate of the place for a passage to England, he was perceived by certain
Calais men, named William Steven, and Thomas Lancaster, through
conference of talk, to be a learned man, and also well affected ; and
that being of late a zealous papist, he was now turned to a more perfect
knowledge of true religion; they therefore heartily entreated him to
stay at Calais awhile, and to read there a day or two, to the intent he
might do some good in the city, after his painful travel. To this request
Adam gladly consented, if he could be licensed by such as were in
authority so to do.
Whereupon Steven, at the opening of the gates, brought him to lord
Lisle, the king's deputy of the town and marshes of Calais, to whom he
declared thoroughly what conference had been between Damlip and
him; which known, the lord deputy instantly desired Damlip to stay
there, and to preach three or four days or more at pleasure, saying, that
he should have both his licence and that of Sir John Butler, his com-
missary, for that purpose. Having preached three or four times, he was
so liked, both for his learning, his utterance, and the truth of his
doctrine, that not only the soldiers and commoners, but the lord deputy
and a great part of the council, gave him great praise and thanks for it;
and the lord deputy offered him a chamber in his own house, and to
dine and sup at his own mess, to have a man or two of his to wait upon
him, and to have whatsoever he lacked, if it were to be had for money:
he also offered him his purse to buy books, or otherwise, so that he
would remain with them, and preach only so long as it should seem good
to himself. Damlip refused with much gratitude these liberal offers of
his lordship, requesting him to be only so good as to appoint him some
quiet and decent place in the town where he might not be disturbed or
molested, but have opportunity to give himself to his books, and he
would daily, once in the forenoon and again at one o'clock in the
falsi: accusations against damlip. 419
afternoon, by the grace of God, preach among them according to the
talent that God had lent him. At this the lord deputy greatly rejoiced,
and sent for William Stevens, whom he earnestly requested to lodge
Damlip in his house, promising whatsoever he should demand, to see it
paid; and moreover would send every meal from his own table of the
best unto them: and indeed so he did, although Damlip refused that
offer, shewing his lordship that thin diet was most convenient for
students; yet could he not thus restrain the generous noble, who sent the
choicest food.
This godly man, for the space of twenty days or more, once everyday
at seven o'clock, preached very learnedly and plainly the truth of the
blessed sacrament of Christ's body and blood, inveighing against all
papistry, and confuting the same, but especially those two most perni-
cious errors — transubstantiation, and the propitiatory sacrifice of the
Romish Mass. This he did by true conference of the scriptures, and
applying of the ancient doctors, earnestly therewith oftentimes exhorting
the people to return from their delusion, declaring how popish he him-
self had been, and how by the detestable wickedness that he saw uni-
versally in Rome, he was now become an enemy, through God's grace,
to all papistry, shewing therewith that if gain or ambition could have
moved him to the contrary, he might have been entertained by cardinal
Pole; but for conscience sake, joined with true knowledge, grounded
on God's most holy word, he now utterly abhorred the superstition, and
willed them most earnestly to do the same.
Thus he continued awhile reading in the Chapter-house of the White
Friars; but the place not being large enough, he was desired to read
in the pulpit,* and so proceeded in his lectures to declare how the
world was deceived by the Roman bishops, who had set forth the
damnable doctrine of transubstantiation, and the real presence in the
sacrament. He came at length to speak against the pageant, or picture
set forth of the resurrection in St. Nicholas' church, declaring the same
to be but mere idolatry, and an illusion of the French, which the
English should remove. The consequence of this was, there came a
commission from the king to the lord deputy, that search should be
made whether there were three hosts lying upon a marble stone be-
sprinkled with blood ; and if they found it so, that immediately it should
be plucked up, and so it was. For in searching thereof, as they
brake up a stone in a corner of the tomb, they found soldered, in the
cross of marble lying under the sepulchre, three plain white counters,
which had been painted like unto hosts, and a bone; all this trumpery
Damlip shewed to the people the Sunday following from the pulpit,
and after that they were sent by the deputy to the king.
Very soon, however, a prior of the White Friars, named Dove, with
Buttoll, chaplain to the lord Lisle, began to speak against him. Yet
after Adam had in three or four sermons confuted the erroneous doctrine
of transubstantiation, and of the propitiatory sacrifice of the mass; the
* This must have been the public rastrum of the city, then fixed in front of the town-
hall, and near the centre of the great market-place ; and not the pulpit of the single
church in Calais, which is in a remote corner of the place, and must then have been closed
against all reformers.
420 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
friar outwardly seemed to give place, ceasing openly to inveigh, yet
secretly practised to impeach him by letters sent unto the clergy in
England; so that within eight or ten days after, Damlip was sent for to
appear before the archbishop of Canterbury, with whom was assistant
the bishop of Winchester, the bishop of Chichester, and divers others,
before whom he constantly affirmed and defended the doctrine which
he had taught, answering, confuting, and solving the objections; so that
his adversaries, among whom was the learned and pious Cranmer, mar-
velled at it, and said plainly, that the scriptures knew not such a term
as transubstantiation. Then began the other bishops to threaten him,
shortly to confute him with their accustomed argument of fire and
fagot, if he would still stand to the defence of that he had spoken.
To this he constantly answered, that he would the next day deliver unto
them fully as much in writing as he had said, whereunto also he would
stand; and so he was dismissed.
The next day at the appointed hour for his appearance, when they
looked surely to have apprehended him, he came not; for he had secret
intimation from the archbishop of Canterbury, that if he again person-
ally appeared, he would be committed to ward and not likely to escape
a cruel death. On this he sent them four sheets of paper, learnedly
written in the Latin tongue, containing his faith, with his arguments,
conferences of the scriptures, and allegations of the doctors, by a friend
of his; which done, he with a little money given him, stepped aside and
fled into the west country; where he continued teaching a school about
a year or two, after which he was again apprehended by the inquisition
of the six articles, and brought to London. Gardiner commanded him
into the Marshalsea, and there he lay the space of other two years, or
about that time.
During his confinement in the Marshalsea, John Marbeck was com-
mitted to the same prison, on the morrow after Palm Sunday. It should
be understood that at Easter every person must needs come to confes-
sion ; whereupon Marbeck, who had never seen him before, entering
into conference with him, perceived what he was, what he had been,
what troubles he had sustained, how long he had lain in prison, which
Damlip related to him. " And now," said he, " because I think they
have forgotten me, I am fully minded to make my humble suit to the
bishop of Winchester, in an epistle, declaring therein mine obedience,
humble submission, and earnest desire to come to examination. I know
the worst: I can but lose my life at present, which I had rather do, than
remain here and not be suffered to use my talent to God's glory;
wherefore, God willing, I will surely put it to the proof."
Damlip, for honest and goodly behaviour, was beloved of all the
house; but especially by the keeper himself whose name was Massy,
whom he always called master; and being suffered to go at liberty
within the premises whither he would, he did much good among the
common and dissolute sort of prisoners, in rebuking vice and sin, and
thus kept them in such good order and awe, that the gaoler thought
him a great treasure. And no less also Marbeck himself confessed to
have found great comfort from him. For notwithstanding the strict
command given by the bishop of Winchester, that no man should come
MARTYRDOM OF DAM LI P. 421
to him, nor he to speak with any man, yet Adam many times would
find the means to comfort his companion.
Now when he had made known and drawn ont his epistle, he de-
livered it to the keeper on Saturday in the morning 1 , which was about
the second week before Whit Sunday, desiring him to deliver it at the
court to the bishop of Winchester. The keeper said he would, and so
did. Having done it, he came home at night very late, and when the
prisoners, who had waited supper for his coming, saw him sad and
heavy, they deemed something to be amiss. At last casting his eyes
upon Damlip, he said, " George, u I can tell thee tidings." " What
is that, master?" quoth he. " Upon Monday next, thou and I must go
to Calais." "To Calais! what to do?" "I know not," quoth the
keeper, and pulled out of his purse a piece of wax, with a little label
of parchment, hanging out thereat, which seemed to be a precept.
When Damlip saw it, he said, " Well, well, master, now I know what
the matter is." " What?" quoth the keeper. "Truly, master, I shall
die in Calais." " Nay," quoth the keeper, " I trust it will not be so."
" Yes, yes, master, it is most true ; and I praise God for his goodness
therein." And so the keeper with Damlip and Marbeck went together
to supper, with heavy cheer for Sir George, as they used to call him.
He notwithstanding was merry himself, and ate his meat as well as
ever: insomuch that some of the board told him they marvelled how
he could eat so well, knowing he was so near his death. " Ah, mas-
ters," quoth he, " do you think that I have been God's prisoner so
long in the Marshalsea, and have not yet learned to die ? Yes, yes,
and I doubt not but God will strengthen me therein."
On Monday, early in the morning, the keeper, with three others of
the knight -marshal's servants, setting out of London, conveyed Adam
Damlip to Calais, upon Ascension Eve, and there committed him to the
mayor's prison. On the same day, John Butler, the commissary afore-
said, and Sir Daniel, the curate of St. Peter's, were also committed to
the same prison, and commandment given for no man to speak with
Butler especially, nor generally to the rest.
The following Saturday was the day of execution for Damlip. The
cause which they laid to his charge was heresy; but by reason of an act
of parliament all such offences, done by a certain day, were pardoned.
Through this act he could not be burdened with any thing that he had
preached or taught before; yet for receiving a French crown of cardi-
nal Pole, which he gave him merely to assist him in his travelling ex-
pences, he was condemned of treason, and cruelly put to death, being
hung, drawn, and quartered.
The day before his execution, came unto him one Mr. Mote, then
parson of our Lady's church in Calais, saying, " Your four quarters
shall be hanged at four parts of the town." " And where shall my head
be?" said Damlip. "Upon the Lantern gate," said Mote. "Then,"
answered Damlip, " shall I not need to provide for my burial." At his
death, Sir R. Ellerker. then knight-marshal there, would not suffer the
innocent and godly man to declare either his faith, or the cause he died
n His names as before observed, were George Bucker, Adam Damlip.
422 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
for; but said to the executioner, "Dispatch the knave, have done!"
Mote was appointed there to preach, and declared to the people how
Damlip had been a sower of seditious doctrine; and albeit he was for
that absolved by the general pardon, yet he was condemned for being
a traitor against the king. To which when Adam Damlip would have
replied, Ellerker would not suffer him to speak a word, but commanded
him to be had away. Thus most meekly, patiently, and joyfully, the
blessed and innocent martyr took his death ; Ellerker saying, that he
would not away before he had seen the traitor's heart plucked out of his
body. Divine Providence, however, shortly after overtook this san-
guinary monster with a just punishment: for in a skirmish between the
French and English at Boulogne, he was among others slain. His
mere death sufficed not his enemies : but after they had stripped him
naked, they cut the heart out of his body, and so left him a terrible
example to all bloody and merciless men. For no cause was known
why they shewed such indignation against Sir Ralph Ellerker more than
against the rest, but that it is written, Faciens justitias Dominus fy
judicia omnibus injuria pressis. Among others who suffered there, was
a certain scholar, counted to be a Scotchman, named Dod, who coming
out of Germany was taken with certain German books about him, and
being examined, and standing constantly to the truth that he learned,
was condemned to death, and burned in the same city.
The chief thing now aimed at by the whole popish party was Cran-
mer's ruin. Gardiner employed many to insinuate to the king, that he
gave the chief encouragement to heresy of any in England, and that it
was in vain to lop off the branches, and leave the root still growing.
The king, till then, would never hear the complaints that were made
him : but now, to penetrate into the depths of this design, he was
willing to draw out all that was to be alleged. Gardiner reckoned that
this point being gained, all the rest would follow; and judging that
the king was now alienated from him, more instruments and artifices
than ever were accordingly made use of. A long paper containing
many particulars, both against Cranmer and his chaplains, was put in
the king's hands. Upon this the king sent for him; and after he had
complained much of the heresy in England, he said he resolved to find
out the chief promoter of it, and to make him an example. Cranmer
wished him first to consider well what heresy was, that so he might not
condemn those as heretics who stood for the word of God against
human inventions. Then the king told him frankly, that he was the
man complained of as most guilty; and shewed him all the informations
he had received against him. Cranmer confessed he was still of the
same mind that he had when he opposed the six articles, and submitted
himself to a trial; he confessed many things to the king — in particular
that he had a wife, but he had sent her out of England when the act
of the six articles passed; and expressed so great a sincerity, and put
so entire a confidence in the kinor, that, instead of being ruined, he was
now 7 better established with him than ever.
The king was so well pleased that he even commanded him to appoint
some to examine the contrivance that was laid to destroy him. Cranmer
answered that it was not decent for him to nominate the judge in a
A GENERAL PARDON EXCEPT FOR HERESY. 4213
cause in which himself was concerned; but the king being positive,
he named some to undertake it, and the whole secret was found out. It
appeared that Gardiner had been the chief instrument, and had en-
couraged informers to appear against him. Cranmer did not press the
kino- to give him any reparation; for he was so noted for his readiness
to forgive injuries, and to do good for evil, that it was commonly said
by the king himself, that the best way to obtain his favour, was to do
him an injury. Of this he gave signal proof at this time, both in rela-
tion to some of the clergy and laity who sought to undermine him: by
which it appeared that he was actuated by that meek and lowly spirit
which became all the followers of Christ; and more particularly one
who was so great an instrument in reforming the Christian church, and
who therefore was publicly pledged to eminent acts of charity, and him-
self to practise that which he taught others to do.
A parliament was now called, in which the great act of succession to
the crown passed. By it the crown was first to descend to prince Edward
and his heirs, or the heirs by the king's present marriage: after them to
the lady Mary, and lady Elizabeth; and in case they had no issue, or
did not observe such limitations and conditions as the king should
appoint, then it was to fall to any other whom he should name, either
by letters patent, or by his last will signed with his own hand. An oath
was appointed both against the pope's supremacy, and for maintaining
the succession according to this act, which all were required to take
under the penalty of treason. It was made treason to say or write any
thing contrary to this act, or to the slander of any of the king's heirs
named in it. Another act passed, qualifying the severity of the act of
the six articles: none were to be imprisoned but upon a legal present-
ment, except upon the king's warrant. None were to be challenged
for words but within a year ; nor for a sermon, but within forty days.
This was made to prevent such conspiracies as had been discovered
the former year. Another act passed, renewing the authority given to
thirty-two commissioners to reform the ecclesiastical law, which Cranmer
promoted much; and, to push it forward, he put out of the canon law,
a collection of many things against the regal, and for the papal au-
thority, with several other very extravagant propositions, to shew how
indecent a thing it was to let a book, in which such things were, con-
tinue still in any credit in England: but he could not bring this to
any good issue. A general pardon now was granted, out of which
heresy was excepted.
The king was now engaged in a war both with France and Scotland.
The earl of Hertford was sent with an army by sea to Scotland, who,
landing at Grantham a little above Leith, burnt both Leith and Edin-
burgh ; but neither stayed to take the castle of Edinburgh, nor did he
fortify Leith, but only wasted the country from that to Berwick. He did
too much, if it was intended to gain the hearts of that nation; and too
little, if it was intended to subdue them; for this only inflamed their
spirits more, and rendered them so united in their aversion to England,
that the Earl of Lennox, who had been cast off by France and was gone
over to the English interest, could make no party in the west, but was
forced for his own preservation to flee into concealment. Audley, the
424 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
chancellor, dying at this time, Wriothesly, who was of the popish party
was put in his place. On the other hand Dr. Petre, hitherto Cranmer's
friend, was made secretary of state : so equally did the king keep the
balance between both parties. Being to cross the seas, he left a com-
mission for the administration of affairs during his absence, to the queen,
the archbishop, the chancellor, the earl of Hertford, and secretary Petre;
with the proviso that if they should have any occasion to raise any force,
he appointed the earl of Hertford his lieutenant. He gave orders also
to translate the prayers, processions, and litanies, into the English
tongue, which gave the reformers some hope that he had not quite cast
off his design of reforming such abuses as had crept into the worship of
God. And they also hoped that the reasons which prevailed with the
king for this, would also induce him to order a translation of all the
other offices into the English tongue.
The king crossed the sea with great pomp, the sails of his ship being
of cloth of gold. He sat down before Boulogne, and took it after a
siege of two months. It was soon after almost retaken by a surprise;
but the garrison were quickly put in order, and beat out the French.
Thus the king returned victorious, and was as much flattered for taking
this single town as if he had conquered a kingdom. The next year the
king of France set out a fleet of above 300 ships; and the king of
England set out an hundred sail : on both sides they were mostly mere
merchantmen hired for the occasion. The French made two descents
upon England, but were beaten back with loss. The English made a
descent in Normandy, and burnt some towns. The people of Germany
saw their danger if this war went on ; for the pope and the emperor had
made a league for procuring obedience to the council now opened at
Trent. The emperor was raising an army, though he had made peace
both with France and the Porte ; and he was resolved to make good use
of this opportunity, the two crowns being now at war. So the Germans
sent to mediate a peace between them ; but it stuck long at the business
of Boulogne.
Lee, archbishop of York, died at this time, and Holgate was removed
from Landaff thither, who in his heart favoured the reformation.
Kitchen was put in Landaff, who turned with every change that was
made — was " tossed to and fro with every wind of doctrine." Heath
was removed from Rochester to Worcester, Holbeck was put into
Rochester, and Day was appointed bishop of Chichester. All those
were moderate men, and well disposed to a reformation, at least to
comply with it. Still the punishments for pretended heresy went on, and
the year 1546 was celebrated by the persecution and death of that
glorious martyr, George Wishart, in Scotland. But, before we proceed
to him, we shall relate the sufferings of some other martyrs of that
country, who, although not so conspicuous in history, were equally
deserving public admiration and gratitude, being all of one spirit, and
that " the spirit of wisdom and knowledge in the revelation of Jesus
Christ."
Not long after the burning of Stratton and Gurley, by the influence
of David Beaton, bishop and cardinal of St. Andrew's, and George
Treichton, bishop of Dunkeld, there arose a canon of St. Colmes and
ACCOUNT OF THOMAS FORRET. 425
vicar of Dolone, culled dean Thomas Forret, who preached every Sunday
to his parishioners out of the epistle or gospel as it fell for the time;
which then was a great novelty in Scotland, scarcely any one ever
preaching except a black or a grey friar. Therefore the friars envied
Fonet, and accused him to the bishop of Dunkeld, in whose diocese
he remained, as a heretic, and one that showed the mysteries of the
scriptures to the vulgar in English, to make the clergy detestable in the
sight of the people.
The bishop, moved by the friars' instigation, called Forret before
him and said, " I love you well, and therefore must give you my council
how you should rule and guide yourself in these days. My dear dean
Thomas, I am informed that you preach from the epistle or gospel every
Sunday to your parishioners, and that you take not the cow, nor the
uppermost cloth from your parishioners, which is very prejudicial to the
churchmen ; and, therefore, I would you took your cow and your upper-
most cloth as other churchmen do, or else it is too much to preach every
Sunday ; for in so doing you may make the people think that we should
preach likewise. v But it is enough for you, when you find any good
epistle, or any good gospel, that setteth forth the liberty of the holy
church, to preach that, and let the rest be."
Thomas answered, " My lord, I think that none of my parishioners
will complain that I take not the cow nor the uppermost cloth, but will
gladly give me the same, together with any other thing that they have;
and I will give and communicate with them anything that I have; and
so, my lord, we agree right well, and there is no discord among us. In
regard to what your lordship saith, ' it is too much to preach every
Sunday,' indeed I think it is too little; and also would w T ish that your
lordship did the like." " Nay, nay, dean Thomas, let that be," said the
bishop, " for we are not ordained to preach." Then said Thomas,
" Where your lordship biddeth me preach, when I find any good epistle,
or a good gospel, truly, my lord, I have read the new Testament and
Old, and all the epistles and gospels, and among them all I could never
find an evil epistle or an evil gospel ; but if your lordship will shew me
the good epistle and the good gospel, and the evil epistle and the evil
gospel, then I shall preach the good and omit the evil." Then spake
my lord stoutly, and said, " I thank God that I never knew what the
Old and New Testament was; w therefore, dean Thomas, I will know
nothing but my portuise and my pontificial. Go your way, and let be
all these fantasies, for if you persevere in these erroneous opinions, ye
will repent. when ye may not mend it."
Thomas said, " I trust my cause to be just in the presence of God;
and, therefore, I pass not much what do follow thereupon;" and thus
my lord and he parted at that time. Soon after a summons was directed
v What a vile criminal was this reformer, Forret, for waving his right to the cow and the
upper garment of his poor parishioners, that their families might have more milk and be
better clothed than usual, and then to think of supporting his charitable conduct by appeal-
ing to the gospels and epistles of the New Testament! And what a holy churchman was
the bishop of Dunkeld to insist upon both these novel practices being discontinued !
* From this arose the proverb so common in Scotland — " You are like the bishop of
Dunkeld, you know not either the old or the new one."
426 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
from the cardinal of Saint Andrew's and the bishop of Dunkeld, upon
the dean Thomas Forret, upon two black friars, called Kelow and
Benarage, and upon a priest of Striveling, called Duncane Sympson,
and a gentleman called Robert Foster, with three or four others of the
town of Striveling; who, at the day of their appearance, were condemned
to death, without any place for recantation; because, as was alleged,
they were heresiarchs, or chief heretics and teachers of heresy ; and
especially because many of them were at the bridal of a priest, the vicar
of Twybody, and did eat flesh in Lent at the said bridal. These were
the heinous crimes of the several prisoners, and for which they were
altogether burnt upon the castle-hill at Edinburgh, where they that were
first bound to the stake piously and marvellously did comfort them
which came behind, and by their example induced them to be equally
courageous and submissive.
Robert Lambe, William Anderson, James Hunter, James Ravelson,
James Founleson, and Hellen his wife, were not long after the victims
of a cruel persecution in the city of Perth; the occasion and preparation
of which was chiefly as follows. There was a certain act of parliament
made in the time of the lord Hamilton, earl of Arran, and governor of
Scotland, giving privilege to all men of the realm of Scotland to read
the scriptures in their mother tongue and language; yet forbidding all
reasoning, conference, and convocation of people to hear the scriptures
read or expounded. This liberty of private reading, being granted by
public proclamation, lacked not his own fruit, so that in sundry parts of
Scotland thereby were opened the eyes of the people of God to see the
truth and abhor the papistical abominations. Among these were certain
persons in Perth, then called by the ancient and ecclesiastical name of
St. Johnstone.
At this time there was a sermon by friar Spense, in Perth, affirming
prayers made to saints to be so necessary, that without them there could
be no hope of salvation to man. This blasphemous doctrine a burgess
of the town, called Robert Lambe, could not abide, but accused the friar
in open audience of erroneous doctrine, and abjured him in God's name
to utter the truth. The friar, being stricken with fear, promised to do
this, but the trouble and tumult of the people increased so, that he could
have no audience; and yet Lambe with great danger of his life, escaped
the hands of the multitude, chiefly made up of women, who contrary to
nature addressed themselves to extreme cruelty against him. The ene-
mies of truth proceeded so far as to procure John Chartuous, who
favoured the truth, and was provost of the city of Perth, to be deposed
from his office by the governor's authority: a papist, named Alexander
Marbeck, was chosen in his room, that they might the more easily
accomplish their ungodly enterprise.
After deposing the former provost, and electing the other, which
took place in the month of January on St. Paul's day, there came to
Perth the governor, the cardinal, the earl of Argyle, justice Campbel of
Lunde, justice Defort, the lord Borthwike, the bishops of Dunblane and
Orkeney, with certain others of the nobility and gentry. And although
there were many accused of the crime of heresy, as they term it, yet
these persons only were at this time apprehended : Robert Lambe,
CONDEMNATION OF ANDERSON AND OTHERS. 427
William Anderson, James Hunter, James Raveleson, James Founleson,
and Hellen his wife. They were cast that night in the Spay Tower of
the said city, to abide judgment on the morrow. When they then were
brought forth to judgment, there was laid in general to all their charge,
violating of the act of parliament before expressed, and their conference
and assemblies in hearing and expounding scripture against the tenor of
the said act. Robert Lambe was specially accused for interrupting the
friar in the pulpit; which he not only confessed, but also affirmed
constantly that it was the duty of no man, who understood and knew
the truth, to hear the same impugned without contradiction; and there-
fore any who were there present in judgment, who withheld their defence
of the truth, should bear the burden in God's presence for neglecting
the same.
William Anderson and James Raveleson, were accused of hanging up
the image of St. Francis in a cord, nailing ram's horns to his head, and
a cow's rump to his tail, and for eating a goose on Allhallows eve.
James Hunter, being a simple man and without learning, and a fletcher x
by occupation, so that he could be charged with no great knowledge in
doctrine, yet because he was often found in the company of the rest was
accused with them.
The woman, Hellen, was charged with not calling upon the name of
the Virgin Mary, being exhorted thereto by her neighbours, but only
upon God for Jesus Christ's sake; and because she said in like manner
that if she herself had been in the time of Virgin Mary, God might
have looked to her humility and base estate, as he did to the Virgin's,
in making her the mother of Christ: thereby meaning, that there was
no merit in the Virgin, which procured her the honour to be made
mother of Christ, and to be preferred before other women; but only
God's free mercy exalted her to that estate. These words were counted
most execrable in the face of all the clergy, and of the whole multitude.
James Raveleson building a house, set upon the round of his fourth pair
of stairs the triple crown of the pope in carved work, which the cardinal
took as done in derision of St. Peter, the pope, and himself; and this
procured no favour to James at his hands.
These persons, on the morrow after St. Paul's day, were condemned to
death, and that by an assize, for violating the act of parliament, for
reasoning and conferring upon scripture, for eating flesh upon days for-
bidden, for interrupting the holy friar in the pulpit, for dishonouring
images, and blaspheming the Virgin Mary. After sentence was given,
their hands were bound, and they were cruelly treated; all but the
woman ; when she desired likewise to be bound by the sergeants with
her husband for the sake of Christ.
There was great intercession made by the people of the town to the
governor for the life of these persons, and he seemed willing so to have
done, that they might have been delivered. But the governor was so
subject to the tyranny of the cruel priests, that he could not do that
which he would. They even menaced to assist his enemies and to depose
x This was a maker of arrows, an occupation which the discovery of gunpowder and other
modern means of warfare were fast reducing in importance; but. which at earlier periods
was one of the most prosperous and active concerns in the land.
428 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
him, except he assisted their cruelty. There were certain priests in
the city who had eaten and drunken before in the honest men's houses
and were much indebted to them. These priests were earnestly desired
to intreat for their friends at the cardinal's hands; but altogether
refused, desiring rather their death than their preservation. In fact no
means could be found to save them, and they were carried by a great
band of armed men to the place of execution, which was common to
the worst criminals, and that to make their cause appear more odious to
the people.
Robert Lambe made his exhortations to the people, desiring them to
fear God, and leave the leaven of papistical abominations. He prophe-
sied of the ruin and plague which came upon the cardinal thereafter.
The rest were also firm and resigned, so that every one comforting ano-
ther, and assuring themselves that they should sup together in the king-
dom of heaven that night, they commended their souls to God, died in
the Lord, and were truly blessed. The woman desired earnestly to die
with her husband, but she was not allowed ; yet, following him to the
place of execution, she gave him comfort, exhorting him to perseverance
and patience for Christ's sake, and parting from him with a kiss, said :
" Husband, rejoice, for we have lived together many joyful days ; but
this day, in which we must die, ought to be the most joyful unto us both,
because we must have joy for ever; therefore I will not bid you good
night, for we shall very very soon meet with joy in the kingdom of
heaven." The woman was taken to a place to be drowned, and though
she had a child sucking on her breast, yet this moved not the unmerci-
ful hearts of her enemies. So after she had commended her children to
the neighbours of the town for God's sake, and the sucking infant was
given to the nurse, she sealed the truth by her death.
The reader will now be introduced to George Wishart, or Wisehart,
another Scottish martyr, who suffered in 1546 at St. Andrews; but
before we enter upon the examination of this bright luminary of the
church of Christ, we will give a testimonial of his manners, written by
one of his scholars to Mr. Fox. He was commonly called Mr. George,
of Bennet's college, was a man of tall stature, bald-headed, and wore a
round French cap : judged to be of melancholy complexion by his phy-
siognomy, black- haired, long-bearded, comely of personage, well spoken
after his country of Scotland, courteous, lowly, lovely, glad to teach,
desirous to learn, and was well travelled, wearing never but a mantle or
frieze gown to the shoes, and plain black hose, coarse canvass for his
shirts, and white falling bands. All this apparel he gave to the poor,
some weekly, some monthly, some quarterly, as he liked, saving his
French cap, which he kept at least a whole year.
He was modest and temperate, fearing God and hating covetousness ;
his charity had never end, night, noon, nor day ; he forbare one meal
in three, one day in four, for the most part, except what was necessary
to sustain nature. He lay upon straw, and coarse canvass sheets, which
when he changed he gave away. He had commonly by his bed-side a
tub of water, in which he used to bathe himself. He taught the young
with great modesty and gravity. Some of his people thought him severe,
and would have slain him, but the Lord was his defence. And he, after
WISIIART'S EXAMINATION. 429
due correction for their malice, by good exhortation amended them and
went his way. His learning was no less sufficient than his desire; al-
ways pressed and ready to do good in that he was able, both in the
house privately and in the school publicly, professing and reading divers
authors. If we should declare his love to all men, his charity to the
poor, in giving, relieving, caring, helping, providing, yea, infinitely
studying how to do good unto all, and hurt to none, we should sooner
want words than just cause to commend him. This is the testimony of
a young servant and friend of the name of Tylney, who knew Wishart
well, and who was every way worthy of credit and confidence.
Wishart was by birth a Scotchman, but received his education at
Cambridge. The year before his death he returned to his own country,
and on his way preached in many places against idolatry. He made
some stay at Dundee ; but by means of Beaton he was expelled thence,
and at his departure, he denounced heavy judgment on them for reject-
ing the gospel. He then went and preached in many other places, and
entrance to the churches being denied him, he preached in the fields.
He would not suffer the people to open the church doors by violence,
for that he said became not the gospel of peace which he preached.
He heard the plague had broken out in Dundee, within four days after
he was banished ; so he returned thither, and took care of the sick, and
did all the offices of a faithful pastor among them. He shewed his gen-
tleness towards his enemies, by rescuing a priest who was coming to kill
him, but was discovered, and was almost torn in pieces by the people.
He foretold several extraordinary things; particularly his own sufferings,
and the spread of the reformation over the land. He preached last in
Lothian, and there the earl of Bothwell took him, but promised upon his
honour that no harm should be done him ; yet he delivered him to the
cardinal, who brought him to St. Andrews, and called a meeting of
bishops thither to destroy him with the more solemnity.
While imprisoned in the castle, the dean of St. Andrews was sent by
the cardinal to summon him to appear before the judge on the following
morning, to render an account of his seditious and heretical doctrine, as
they termed it. Wishart answered — " What need my lord cardinal to
summon me, when I am thus in his power and bound in irons ? Can he
not compel me to answer ; or does he believe that I am unprovided with
the means of defending my doctrine ? But to manifest yourselves, ye do
well to keep your old ceremonies and constitutions made by men."
The next morning, the lord cardinal caused his servants to clothe and
arm themselves in their warlike array, with jack, knapskal, splent, spear,
and axe, more seeming for the battle, than for defending the true word
of God. When the procession of these armed champions marching in
warlike order had conveyed the bishops into the abbey church, they sent
for Wishart, who was conducted into church by the captain of the castle
accompanied by a hundred men thus equipped, like a lamb led to the
sacrifice. As he entered the abbey church door, there was a poor man
lying, vexed with great infirmities, asking of him alms, to whom he flung
his purse. And when he came before the lord cardinal, the superior of the
abbey, called dean John Winryme, stood up in the pulpit, and made a
430 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
sermon to all the congregation, taking his matter out of the 13th chap-
ter of Matthew, and dividing his sermon into four principal parts.
The first part was a brief and short declaration of the Evangelist.
The second, part of the interpretation of the good seed. He called the
word of God the good seed, and heresy the evil seed, and declared how
heresy should be known ; which he denned thus : " Heresy is a false
opinion defended with pertinacy, clearly impugning the word of God."
The third part of the sermon was, the cause of heresy in that realm and
all other realms. " The cause of heresy, is the ignorance of them which
have the cure of men's souls : to whom it belongeth to have the true un-
derstanding of the word of God, that they may be able to refute heresies
with the word of God ; as saith St. Paul : " A bishop must be faultless,
as becometh the minister of God, not stubborn nor angry, no drunkard,
no fighter, not given to filthy lucre, but one that loveth goodness, sober-
minded, righteous, holy, temperate, and that cleaveth to the true word,
that he may be able to exhort with wholesome learning, and to answer
that which they say against him." The fourth part was, how heresies
should be known. " Heresies are known after this manner; as the gold-
smith knoweth fine gold by the touchstone ; so likewise may we know
heresy by the undoubted touchstone, the true and undefiled word of God."
At last he added, that heretics should be put down in this present life.
Here he faultered, because the gospel said," Let both grow together till
the harvest," and "The harvest is the end of the world." Nevertheless,
he affirmed that they should be put down by the civil magistrate and
law in this life.
When he ended his sermon, they caused Wishart to ascend the pulpit,
there to hear his accusation and articles. Over against him stood one
of the fed flock, John Lauder, laden full of cursings written on paper.
Of these he took out a roll, both long and also full of devilish spite and
malice, saying to the innocent George so many cruel and abominable words,
and striking him so spitefully with the pope's thunder, that the ignorant
people dreaded lest the earth would have swallowed him up quick. Not-
withstanding he stood still with great patience, hearing the dreadful say-
ings, not once moving or changing his countenance. -When Lauder had
read throughout hismenacings, he spat in Wishart's face, saying, " What
answerest thou to these sayings, thou runagate, traitor, which we have
duly proved thee to be by sufficient witness?" Wishart hearing this,
kneeled down in the pulpit, making his prayer to God. When he had
ended his prayer, sweetly and christianly, he answered as follows : —
" Many horrible sayings unto me a Christian man, many words abo-
minable to hear, ye have spoken this day, which not only to teach, but
also to think, must be great abomination. Wherefore I pray your dis-
cretion quietly to hear me, that ye may know what were my sayings, and
the manner of my doctrine. This my petition, my lord, I desire to be
heard for three causes. First, because by means of preaching the word
of God, his glory is made manifest. It is reasonable therefore, for ad-
vancing the glory of God, that ye hear me, teaching truly, as I do, the
pure word of God without any dissimulation. Second, because your
health springeth of the word of God ; for he worketh all things by his
word. It were therefore an unrighteous thing if ye should stop your ears
CHARGES AGAINST WISIIART. 431
from me, teaching truly the word of God. Third, because you utter
many blasphemous and abominable words, not coming of the inspiration
of God, but of the devil, with no less peril than of my life. It is just
therefore and reasonable, that your discretion should know what my
words and doctrine are, and what I have ever taught in this realm, that
I perish not unjustly to the great peril of your souls. Wherefore both
for the glory and honour of God, your own health, and safeguard of my
life, I beseech your patience to hear me, and in the mean time I shall
recite my doctrine without any colour."
" Since the time I came into this realm, I taught nothing but the ten
commandments of God, the twelve articles of the faith, and the prayer
of the Lord in the mother tongue. Moreover, in Dundee, I taught the
epistle of St. Paul to the Romans. And I shall shew you faithfully
what manner I used when I taught without any human dread ; so that
your discretion give your ears benevolence and attention." This was
more than his enemies could endure, and with a high voice the accuser
cried out, "Thou heretic, runagate, traitor, and thief, it was not lawful
for thee to preach. Thou hast taken the power in thine own hand,
without any authority of the church. We fo rethink that thou hast been
a preacher so long." Then all the congregation of the prelates, with
their accomplices, said : "If we give him licence to preach, he is so
crafty, and in the Holy Scriptures so exercised, that he will persuade
the people to his opinion, and raise them against us."
Seeing their malicious and wicked intent, Wishart appealed from the
lord cardinal to the lord governor, as to an indifferent and equal judge.
To whom Lauder answered, " Is not my lord cardinal the second per-
son within this realm, chancellor of Scotland, archbishop of St.
Andrews, bishop of Meropois, commendator of Aberbroshok, Legatus
?iatus, Legatus a Latere?" thus reciting all his unworthy honours. "Is
not he an equal judge of thy cause and conduct? what other desirest
thou to be thy judge!" "I refuse not my lord Cardinal," said Wishart,
" but I desire the word of God to be my judge, and the temporal estate,
with some of your lordships mine auditors, because I am here my lord
governor's prisoner." Whereupon the proud and scornful people that
stood by, mocked him, saying, "Such man, such judge! speaking
seditious and reproachful words against the governor and other nobles
meaning them also to be heretics." Then without delay and without
further process they would have given sentence upon him, had not cer-
tain men present counselled the Cardinal to read again the articles, and
to hear his answers thereupon, that the people might not complain of
his unjust condemnation.
These were the articles following, with his answers, so far as they
would give him leave to speak. For when he intended to mitigate their
falsehoods, and shew the manner of his doctrine, they stopped his mouth
with some new charge. Thus ran their bitter invectives — "Thou false
heretic, runagate, traitor, and thief, deceiver of the people, thou de-
spisest the holy church, and contemnest my lord governor's authority.
And this we know, that when thou didst preach in Dundee, and wast
charged by my lord's authority to desist, nevertheless thou wouldst not
obey, but persevered in the same ; and therefore the bishop of Brothen
432 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
cursed thee, and delivered thee into the devil's hands, and gave thee in
commandment that thou should preach no more: notwithstanding, thou
didst continue obstinately."
Wishart availed himself of a pause and said — " My lords, I have read
in the Acts of the Apostles, that it is not lawful to desist from preaching
the gospel for the threats and menaces of men. There it is written,
* We should rather obey God than man.' I have also read in the pro-
phet Malachi, ' I shall curse your blessings, and bless your cursings;'
and I believe firmly that the Lord will turn your cursing into blessings."
No longer could he speak, for they cried out — ''Thou false heretic
didst say that the priest, standing at the altar saying mass, was like a
fox wagging his tail in July." Wishart answered — " My lords, I said
not so, these were my sayings — The moving of the body outward, with-
out the inward moving of the heart, is nought else but the playing of
an ape, and not the true serving of God : for God is a secret searcher
of men's hearts; therefore whoever will truly adore and honour God,
must in spirit and verity serve and worship him."
Again they sought anew charge, and said — "Thou preachedst against
the sacrament, saying, that there were not seven sacraments." To this
absurdity he replied with caution and wisdom. — " My lords, if it be
your pleasure, I never taught the number of the sacraments, whether
they were seven or eleven. So many as are instituted by Christ are
shewed to us by the evangelists, and all these I profess openly. Except
it be the word of God, I dare affirm nothing."
Without striving to refute him, they railed again — " Thou hast openly
taught that auricular confession is not a blessed sacrament, and sayest
that we should only confess to God, and not to any priest." To this he
answered — " My lords, I say that auricular confession, seeing that it
hath no promise of the gospel, it therefore cannot be a sacrament. Of
the confession to be made to God, there are many testimonies in scripture,
as when David saith, * I said I would acknowledge mine iniquity unto
the Lord, and he forgave the punishment of my sin.' In this Psalm
xxxii, David's confession signifieth the secret knowledge of our sins
before God. When I exhorted the people in this manner I reproved
no manner of confession; but I taught what St. James saith, ' Acknow-
ledge your faults one to another, and pray one for another, that you
may be healed.'" On his speaking thus cautiously, the bishops and
their accomplices cried and grinned, saying — " See ye not what colour
he hath in his speaking, that he may beguile and seduce us to his
opinion?" One of them said, " Heretic, thou didst say openly, that it
was necessary to every man to know and understand his baptism, and what
it was, contrary to general councils and the estate of the holy church."
He answered — " My lords, I believe there be none so unwise here
that will make merchandise with a Frenchman, or any other unknown
stranger, except he know and understand first the condition or promise
made by such foreigners: so likewise I would that we understood what
thing we promise in the name of the infant unto God in baptism. For
this cause I believe ye have confirmation." Bleiter, the chaplain, then
furiously interposed, and insinuated that he had the devil within him,
and the spirit of error. On which a little child who was present, and
WISHART DEFENDS HIS DOCTRINE. 433
heard the chaplain, said, "The devil cannot speak such words as yonder
man doth speak."
This enraged his foes to madness, and one cried out — " Heretic, traitor,
thief, thou saidstthat the sacrament of the altar was but a piece of bread
baked upon the ashes, and no other thing; and that all which is there
done is but a superstitious rite against the commandment of God."
To this abuse he boldly replied thus — "As concerning the sacrament
of the altar, my lords, I never taught any thing against the Scripture,
which I shall, by God's grace, make manifest this day, being ready there-
fore to surfer death."
No one interposing, he went on — " The lawful use of the sacrament
is most acceptable unto God ; but the great abuse of it is very detestable
unto him. But what occasion they have to say such words of me, I
shall shortly shew your lordships. I once chanced to meet with a Jew
when I was sailing upon the Rhine. I did enquire of him what was the
cause of his pertinacy, that he did not believe that the true Messiah was
come, considering that he had seen all the prophecies which were spoken
of him to be fulfilled. Moreover the prophecies taken away, and the
sceptre of Judah departed; and by many other testimonies of scripture
I convinced him that Messiah was come, whom they called Jesus of
Nazareth. This Jew answered me that ' when the Messiah cometh, he
shall restore all things, and he shall not abrogate the law, which was
given to our fore-fathers, as ye do. For why? ye see the poor almost
perish through hunger amongst you; yet you are not moved with pity
toward them : but amongst us, though we be poor Jews, there are no
beggars found.' ?
" It is forbidden by the law to feign any kind of imagery of things in
heaven above, or in the earth beneath, or in the sea under the earth;
but one God only is to be honoured : while your sanctuaries and churches
are full of idols. Moreover, I must repeat what the Jew said, that a
peace of bread baked upon the ashes ye adore and worship, and say,
that it is your God. I have rehearsed here but the sayings of the Jew,
which I never affirmed to be true." Some one replied — " Thou saidst,
that extreme unction was not a sacrament." He denied the charge, " I
never taught any thing of extreme unction in my doctrine, whether it
were a sacrament or not." Again they accused him — " Thou saidst that
holy water is not so good as wash, and such like. Thou condemnest
conjuring, and saidst holy churches' cursings avail not." To this he
was as usual quick in answering — " As for holy water, what strength it
is of I never taught in my doctrine. Conjurings, and exorcisms, if they
are conformable to the word of God, I would commend them; but in-
somuch as they are not conformable to the commandment and word of
God, I reprove them."
Again — " Heretic and runagate, thou hast said, that every layman is a
priest, and such like ; thou saidst that the pope had no more power than
any other man." Wishart now felt greater need of prudence, and said
— " My lords, I have taught nothing but the word of God; I remember
that I have read in some places in St. John, and St. Peter, ' He hath
y This speech, though found among the answers of Wishart, and introduced in the place
in which he uttered it, does not appear to be so appropriate as his other replies.
2f
434 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
made us kings and priests,' and i He hath made us a royal priesthood/
Wherefore I have affirmed that any man wise in the word of God, and
the true faith of Jesus Christ, hath this power given him from God; not
by the power or violence of men, but by the virtue of the word of
God, which word is called the power of God, as St. Paul witnesseth
evidently enough. And again I say, that any unlearned man, not exer-
cised in the word of God, nor yet constant in his faith, whatsoever estate
or order he be of, I say, he hath no power to bind or loose, seeing he
wanteth the instrument, by which he bindeth or looseth; that is to say,
the word of God."
After he had uttered this admirable speech, all the bishops laughed
and mocked him. " Laugh ye, my lords?" said he; " though these say-
ings appear scornful and worthy of derision to your lordships, neverthe-
less they are very weighty to me, and of great value, because they stand
not only upon myself, but also the honour and glory of God." While
many godly men beholding the obstinacy and cruelty of the bishops
and invincible patience of Wishart, greatly mourned and lamented, his
implacable foes added to their impieties and insults, and cried out —
" False heretic, thou saidst that a man hath no free will, but like as
the stoics say, that it is not in man's will to do any thing, but that all
cometh by God, whatsoever kind it be of." To which he wisely answered
"My lords, I said not so, truly; but I said that as many as believe in
Christ firmly, unto them is given freedom, conformable to the saying of
St. John — ' If the Son make you free, then shall ye verily be free.' Of
the contrary, as many as believe not in Christ Jesus, they are bond-
servants of sin — ' He that sinneth is bound to sin.' "
"Thou saidst," they exclaimed again, " it is as lawful to eat flesh
upon the Friday as on Sunday." With another firm appeal to scrip-
ture, he replied — " I have read in the epistles of St. Paul, that ' Whoso
is clean, unto him all things are clean.' On the contrary, * To the filthy
man all things are unclean.' A faithful man, clean and holy, sancti-
fieth by the word the creature of God ; but the creature maketh no man
acceptable unto God. So that a creature may not sanctify any impure
and unfaithful man ; but to the faithful man all things are sanctified
by the word of God and prayer."
At this all the bishops, with their accomplices, said — " What need we
any witness against him? hath he not here openly spoken blasphemy ?
Heretic, thou dost say, that we should not pray to saints, but to God
only. Say whether thou hast said this or not?" To which he answered
— "My lord there are two things worthy of note; the one is certain, the
other uncertain. It is found plainly and certain in scripture, that we
should worship and honour one God, according to the saying of the first
commandment, thou shalt worship and honour thy Lord God only, with all
thy heart. As for praying to and honouring saints, there is great doubt
among many whether they hear or not any invocation made unto them.
Therefore I exhorted all men equally in my doctrine, that they should
leave the uncertain way, and follow that way which was taught us by
our master Christ. He is the only mediator, and alone maketh inter-
cession for us to God his father. He is the door by which we must enter
in : he that entereth not by this door, but climbeth another way, is a
WISH ART DEFENDS HIS DOCTRINE. 435
thief and a murderer. He is the verity and life. Every one that goeth
out of this way, there is no doubt but he shall fall into the mire; yea
verily, is fallen into it already. This is the fashion of my doctrine,
which I have ever followed. Verily, that which I have heard and read
in the uford of God I taught openly, and in no corners. And now ye
shall witness the same, if your lordships will hear me. Except it stand
by the word of God, I dare not be so bold as to affirm any thing."
Without attempting to answer these scriptural testimonies and appeals,
his enemies multiplied their absurd accusations, and said — "Thou hast
preached plainly, saying there is no purgatory, and that it is a feigned
thing for any man after this life to be punished in purgatory." Wishart
reminded them of his former answers — "As I have said heretofore,
without express witness and testimony of the scripture I dare affirm
nothing. I have oft read over the bible, and yet such a term found I
never, nor yet any place of scripture applicable to it. Therefore I was
ashamed ever to teach that thing which I could not find in the scripture."
Then said he to Lauder, his accuser — " If you have any testimony of the
scripture, by which you may prove any such place, shew it now before
this auditory." Lauder had not a word to say for himself, but was as
dumb as a beetle, except in devising a fresh charge.
This was — "Thou hast taught against the vows of monks, friars, nuns,
and priests; saying that whosoever was bound to such vows, vowed
themselves to the estate of damnation. Moreover, that it was lawful
for priests to marry." In answer, he again appealed to scripture — "My
lords, I have read in the gospel, that there are three kinds of chaste
men : ' some are eunuchs from their birth ; some are made such by
men ; and some make themselves such for the kingdom of heaven's sake!'
Verily, I say these men are blessed by the scripture of God. But as
many as have not the gift of continence, nor yet for the gospel's sake
have overcome the concupiscence of the flesh, and have vowed chastity,
ye have experience, although I should hold my peace, to what incon-
venience they have vowed themselves."
When he had said these words they were all dumb for a time,
and then one broke out and said — "False heretic, thou sayest thou wilt
not obey our general nor provincial councils." Once more he took the
sword of the Spirit: " My lords, what your general councils are I know
not, I was never exercised in them ; but to the pure word of God I gave
my labours. Read here your general councils, or else give me a book
wherein they are contained, that I may read them: if they agree with
the word of God, I will not dispute or disobey them."
Upon this they cried out — "Why do we suffer him to speak further?
Read on the rest of the articles, and do not stay upon them." Amono-
the rest, John 'Grey-fiend' Scot, standing behind Lauder's chair, hastened
him to read the rest of the articles, and not to tarry upon answers.
" For we may not abide them," quoth he, " any more than the devil
may abide the sign of the cross, when it is made." Then he turned to
Wishart — "Thou sayest, that it is in vain to build to the honour of God
costly churches, seeing that God remaineth not in the churches made
with men's hands, nor yet can God be in so little space as between the
priest's hands." He had now a sublime reply at hand — "My lords,
436 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Solomon saith, ' If that- the heaven of heavens cannot comprehend thee,
how much less this house that I have built?' and Job consenteth to the
same sentence : 'Seeing that he is higher than the heavens, therefore
what canst thou build unto him? He is deeper than hell, then how
shalt thou know him ? He is longer than the earth and broader than
the sea.' So that God cannot be comprehended in any one place,
because he is infinite. Notwithstanding, I never said that churches
should be destroyed; but the contrary, I affirm ever, that churches
should be sustained and upholden, that the people should be con-
gregated into them, there to hear of God. Moreover, wheresoever is
the true preaching of the word of God, and the lawful use of the sacra-
ments, undoubtedly there is God himself: so that both these sayings are
true together; God cannot be comprehended in any place, and where-
soever two or three are gathered together in his name, there he is present
in the midst of them. If you think otherwise, show forth reasons before
this auditory." Then Lauder, not answering one word, proceeded forth
in his articles —
" False heretic, thou contemneth fasting, and sayest thou didst not
fast." Wishart could here be at no loss with scripture and reason before
him — " My lords, I find that fasting is commended in the scripture;
therefore I were a slanderer of the gospel, if I condemned fasting. And
not so only, but I have learned, that fasting is good for the health of
the body: but God knoweth who fasteth the true fast."
Lauder proceeded — " Thou hast preached openly, saying, that the
soul of man shall sleep till the latter day of judgment, and shall not
obtain life immortal until that day." At this foul charge, Wishart was
indignant, and said — " God full of mercy and goodness forgive them
that say such things of me; I know surely by the word of God, that he
which hath begun to have the faith of Jesus Christ, and believeth firmly
in him, believeth that the soul of man shall never sleep, but ever shall
live an immortal life; which life, from day to day, is renewed in grace
and augmented; nor yet shall ever perish or have an end, but ever
immortal shall live with Christ. To which life all that believe in him
shall come, and rest in eternal glory. Amen."
When the bishops with their accomplices had thus accused this
innocent man, they next condemned him to be burnt as a heretic,
not having respect to his godly answers and true reasons which he
alleged, nor yet to their own consciences, thinking verily that they
should do to God good sacrifice, conformable to the saying of
St. John — "They shall excommunicate you: yea, and the time shall
come that he which killeth you shall think that he hath done God
service." First they made the common people, whose desire was always
to hear that innocent man speak, to disperse, after which these sons of
darkness pronounced their sentence definitive, not having respect to the
judgment of God. When all this was done and said, the cardinal
caused his warders to return again with the prisoner into the castle,
until such time as the fire was made ready. When he arrived at the
castle there came Friar Scot and his mate, saying, " Sir, you must
make your confession unto us." "I will make no confession unto you,"
replied Wishart; "go fetch me yonder man that preached this day, and
DEATH OF WISH ART. 437
I will make my confession unto him." Then they sent for the sub-prior
of the abbey, who came to him with all diligence; but what was said in
this confession is unknown.
When the fire was made ready, and the gallows at the west part of
the castle near to the priory, the lord cardinal, dreading that Wishart
should have been taken away by his friends, commanded to bend all the
ordnance of the castle right against that part, and all his gunners to be
ready and stand beside their guns, until such time as he was burned.
All this being done, they bound the martyr's hands behind him, and led
him forth with their soldiers from the castle to the place of execution.
As he came out of* the castle gate, there met him certain beggars, asking
alms for God's sake; to whom he answered, " I want my hands where-
with to give you alms, but the merciful Lord, of his benignity and
abundance of grace that feedeth all men, vouchsafe to give you neces-
saries both unto your bodies and souls." Then afterwards met him two
fiends, called friars, saying, "Master George, pray to our lady, that she
may be mediatrix for you to her Son." To whom he answered meekly,
" Cease, tempt me not, my brethren." After this he was led to the fire
with a rope about his neck, and a chain of iron for his girdle.
When he came to the fire he sunk down upon his knees, rose again,
and thrice he repeated these words: — "O thou Saviour of the world,
have mercy on me. Father of heaven, I commend my spirit into thy
holy hands." Then he turned him to the people and said — " I beseech
you. Christian brethren and sisters, that ye be not offended with the
word of God for the affliction and torments which ye see prepared for
me; but I exhort you that you love the word of God, and suffer
patiently and with a comfortable heart for the word's sake, which is
your undoubted salvation and everlasting comfort. Moreover, I pray
you shew my brethren and sisters, which have heard me oft before, that
they cease not, nor leave off the word of God which I taught them,
after the grace given to me, for any persecutions or troubles in this
world, which last not; and shew unto them that my doctrine was no old
wives' fable, after the constitution made by men. Had I taught men's
doctrine, I had gotten great thanks by men; but for the word's sake
and the true gospel, which was given to me by the grace of God, I
suffer this day by men, not sorrowfully, but with a glad heart and mind.
For this cause I was sent, that I should suffer this fire for Christ's sake.
Consider and behold my visage, ye shall not see me change my colour.
This grim fire I fear not. If any persecution come to you for the word's
sake, do not fear them that slay the body, and afterward have no power
to slay the soul. Some have said of me that I have taught that the soul
of man should sleep until the last day; but I know surely, and my faith
is such, that my soul shall sup with my Saviour Christ this night, ere it
be six hours, for whom I suffer this. I beseech thee, Father of Heaven,
to forgive them that have of any ignorance or of any evil mind forged
lies upon me; for 1 forgive them with all my heart. I beseech Christ
to forgive them that have condemned me to death this day ignorantly;
and, last of all, I beseech you brethren and sisters, to exhort your
prelates to the learning of the word of God, that they at the last may
be ashamed to do evil, and learn to do good. And if they will not
438 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
convert themselves from their wicked error, there shall hastily come upon
them the wrath of God, which they shall not eschew."
Many other faithful words said he in the mean time, taking no heed
or care of the cruel torments which were then prepared for him. At
last the hangman fell upon his knees and said — " I pray you forgive me,
for I am not guilty of your death." He answered — " Come hither to
me." When he was come to him, he kissed his cheek, and said, " Lo!
there is a token that I forgive thee. My heart, do thine office;" -and
presently he was put upon the gibbet and hanged, and there burnt to
ashes. The people beheld the glorious exit of this triumphant martyr
with sentiments of mingled wonder, sorrow, and indignation.
The clergy rejoiced much at his death, and extolled the courage of the
cardinal, for proceeding in it against the orders of the governor. But
the people looked on Wishart as a martyr and a prophet. It was also
said that his death was nothing less than murder, since no writ had
been obtained for it; and the clergy had no right to burn any one without
a warrant from the secular power. It was therefore inferred that the
cardinal deserved to die for his presumption ; for if his dignity set him
above the law, then private persons might execute that which the gover-
nor could not do. Such practices had been formerly too common in
the kingdom ; and upon this occasion some gentlemen of quality began
to think it would be an heroical action to conspire his death. His in-
solence had rendered him generally hateful; thus public and private
resentment concurring, twelve persons entered into an engagement to
kill the cardinal privately in his house. On the 30th of May, they sur-
prized the gate early in the morning; and though there were a hundred
men in the castle, yet being all asleep, they came to them apart, and
either turned them out, or shut them up in their chamber. Having
made all sure, they proceeded to the cardinal's chamber ; who, per-
ceiving they had a design upon his life, exclaimed, "Alas! alas! slay
me not, I am a priest:" but paying as little regard to him as he had
done to Wishart, they immediately slew him, and laid out his body in
the same window from which he had looked on Wishart's execution.
Some justified this act, as the killing of a robber and murderer; but it
was generally condemned; yet the accomplishment of Wishart's pre-
diction made great impression on the people.
Before we return to our English history, we shall proceed with an ac-
count of the Scottish martyrs who suffered at this time, and the few
following years. The violent death of cardinal Beaton was expected to
put a stop to all such proceedings; but his successor unhappily resolved
to continue them. The famous, or rather infamous, John Hamilton suc-
ceeded to the archbishopric of St. Andrews, who,, in the spirit of per-
secution, was not a jot inferior to his predecessor. The year following
his elevation, he brought to judgment and martyrdom Adam Wallace.
This excellent man was brought on a charge of heresy into a court
assembled at the Black Friars' Church in Edinburgh, composed of many
dignitaries and nobles in Scotland. Among them were the dean of
Glasgow ; the archbishop of St. Andrew's ; the bishops of Dunblane
and Moray ; the abbots of Dunfermline ana Glenluce ; with other
churchmen of lower estimation, as the official of St. Andrew's, and
MARTYRDOM OF GEORGE WISEHART.— PAOB 4.38.
EXAMINATION OF ADAM WALLACE. 439
some doctors of that city. The earl of Argyle, the justice, with his
deputy sir John Campbell ; the earls of Huntley and Angus; the bishop
of Galloway; the prior of St. Andrews; the bishop of Orkney; the
lord Forbes ; dean John Winryme, sub-prior of St. Andrews, were also
present; and behind the seats stood the whole senate, the clerk of the
register, and other officers of the court.
At the further end of the chancelary wall, in the pulpit, was John
Lauder, accuser, clad in a surplice and red hood, while a large congre-
gation of the people were in the body of the church, standing on the
ground. Before the examination of Wallace, John Ker, prebendary of
St. Giles's church, was accused, convicted, and condemned, for the
making and giving forth a sentence of divorce, whereby he falsely put
asunder a man and his lawful wife, in the name of the dean of Restal-
rige, and certain other judges appointed by the holy father the pope.
He confessed the falsehood, and that never any such thing was done
indeed, nor yet meant or moved by the aforesaid judges. His sentence
was to be banished the realms of Scotland and England for his life-
time, and to lose his right hand if he were found there after, and in the
mean time to forfeit his benefices for ever, and they to be vacant.
Adam Wallace was then introduced by a servant of the bishop of
St. Andrews, set in the midst of the scaffold, and commanded to look
to the accuser. He was a man of simple and humble appearance, but
was by no means daunted by the grandeur of his judges. On being
asked his name, he answered, "Adam Wallace." The accuser said
he had another name, which he granted and said he was commonly
called Fean. Then he asked, where he was born? " Within two miles
of Fayle," said he, " in Kyle." Then said the accuser, " I repent
that such a poor man as you should put these noble lords to so great
encumbrance this day by your vain speaking." " I must speak," said
he, " as God giveth me grace; and I believe I have said no evil to hurt
any body." " Would to God," said the accuser, " ye had never spoken ;
but you are brought forth for such horrible crimes of heresy, as never
were imagined nor heard of in this country before, and shall be suffi-
ciently proved, that ye cannot deny them; and I forethink that they
should be punished for hurting of weak consciences. Now I will say
no more, but thou shalt hear the points against thee.
" Adam Wallace, alias Fean: thou art openly accused for preaching
and teaching of the blasphemies and abominable heresies under-written :
— In the first, thou hast said and taught that the bread and wine on the
altar, after the words of consecration, are not the body and blood of
Christ." On this Wallace turned to the lord governor, and the whole
court, saying — " I never said, nor taught any thing but what I found in
this book (having a Bible at his belt in French, Dutch, and English),
which is the word of God ; and if you will be content that the Lord
God be judge to me, and this his holy writ, here it is; and wherein I
have said wrong, I shall take that punishment you put me to; for I
never said any thing concerning this that I am accused of, but that
which I found in this blessed book."
"What didst thou say?" said the accuser. "I said," quoth he,
" that after our Lord Jesus Christ had eaten the paschal lamb in his last
440 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
supper with his apostles, and fulfilled the ceremonies of the old law, he
instituted a new sacrament, in remembrance of his death then to come.
He took bread, he blessed, and brake it, and gave it to his disciples, and
said—' Take ye, eat ye, this is my body which shall be broken and given
for you.' And likewise the cup he blessed, and bade them drink all
thereof, for that was the cup of the New Testament which should be
shed for the forgiving of many. ' How oft ye do this, do it in my
remembrance.' "
Then said the bishop of St. Andrew's, the official of Lothian, and
others, " We know this well enough." The earl of Huntley said, "Thou
answerest not to that which is laid to thee ; say either nay or yea there-
to." He answered, "If ye will admit God and his word spoken by
the mouth of his blessed son Jesus Christ our Lord and Saviour, ye will
admit that which I have said: for I have said and taught nothing but
what the word, which is the trial and touchstone, saith ; which ought to
be judge to me, and to all the world.
" Why," said the earl, again, " hast thou not a judge good enough?
and thinkest thou that we know not God and his word? Answer to
what is spoken to thee." And then they made the accuser repeat the
question.
Wallace answered, "I never said more than the word saith, nor yet
more than I have said before. For I know well by St. Paul when he
saith, ' Whosoever eateththis bread and drinketh of this cup unworthily,
receiveth to himself damnation.' And therefore when I taught — which
was but seldom, and to them only which required and desired me — I
said, that if the sacrament of the altar were truly ministered, and used
as the Son of the living God did institute it, where that was done, there
was God himself by his divine power, by which he is over all."
The bishop of Orkney then asked him, " Believest thou not
that the bread and wine in the sacrament of the altar, after the
words of the consecration, is the very body of Christ, flesh, blood, and
bone?" To which he answered — " I know not what the word consecra-
tion meaneth. I have not much Latin, but I believe that the Son of
God was conceived of the Holy Ghost, and born of the Virgin Mary,
and hath a natural body, with hands, feet, and other members; and in
the same body he walked up and down in the world, preached and
taught, suffered death under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, dead, and
buried, and that by his godly power he raised that same body again the
third day; and the same body ascended into Heaven, and sitteth at the
right hand of the Father, which shall come again to judge both the
quick and the dead. I moreover believe that this body is a natural body
with hands and feet, and cannot be in two places at once; this he
sheweth well himself; for the which everlasting thanks be to him that
maketh this matter clear. When the woman brake the ointment on lum,
answering to some of his disciples which grudged thereat, he said, ' The
poor shall you always have with you, but me ye shall not have always,'
meaning his natural body. And likewise at his ascension said he to the
same disciples that were fleshly, and would ever have had him remaining
with them corporeally, ' It is needful for you that I pass away ; for if I
pass not away, the Comforter the Holy Ghost shall not come to you,'
EXAMINATION OF ADAM WALLACE. 441
meaning- that his natural body behoved to be taken away from them :
4 but be stout and be of good cheer, for I am with you always, unto the
world's end.' Thus you must see that the eating of his very flesh profiteth
not, as may well be known by his words which he spake in the sixth of
John ; where, after he had said, ' Except ye eat my flesh, and drink my
blood, ye shall not have life in you,' they murmuring thereat, he reproved
them for their gross and fleshly taking of his words, and said, ' What will
ye think when ye see the Son of man ascend to the place that he came
from? It is the Spirit that quickeneth, the flesh profiteth nothing,' (to
be eaten as they took it, and even so take ye it.")
" It is a horrible heresy," said the bishop of Orkney. Then the
accuser propounded the second article, and said to Wallace, " Thou saidst
likewise, and openly didst teach, that the mass is very idolatry, and
abominable in the sight of God." To this he ingeniously replied —
" I have read the word of God in three tongues, and have understood
them so far as God gave me grace, and yet never read I the word ' mass '
in any ; but I found that the thing which was highest and most in estima-
tion among men, and not in the word of God, was idolatry, and abominable
in his holy sight. And I say the mass is holden greatly in estimation,
and high amongst men, and is not founded in the divine word ; therefore
I said it was idolatry, and abominable in the sight of God. If any man
will find it in the Scripture and prove it by God's word, I will grant mine
error, and that I have failed ; otherwise not. In that case I will submit
to all lawful correction and punishment."
" Ad tertiam," said the bishop. " To the third charge."
Then said the accuser, " Thou hast said and openly taught, that the
God which we worship is but bread sown of corn, growing of the earth,
baked of men's hands, and nothing else." To this Wallace answered,
" I worship the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, three persons in
one Godhead, which made and fashioned the heaven and earth, and all
that is therein, of nought. But I know not which God you worship ;
and if you will show me whom you worship, I will show you what he is
as well as I can by my judgment."
" Believest thou not," said the accuser, " that the sacrament of the
altar, after the words of the consecration, by the priest's hands, is the
very body and blood of the Son of God, and God himself?" — " What
the body of God is," Wallace replied, " and what kind of body he
hath, I have shewed you, so far as I have found in the scripture." Then
said the accuser — " Thou has preached divers other great errors and
abominable heresies against all the seven sacraments, which for short-
ness of time I pretermit and overpass. Whether dost thou grant thy
foresaid articles that thou art accused of, or no? and thou slialt hear
them shortly." And then repeated the accuser the three articles afore-
said shortly over, and asked him whether he granted or denied them?
Wallace answered, that he had said nothing but what he thought to
agree with the holy word, so God judge him, and his own conscience
accuse him, and thereby would he abide unto the time he were better
instructed by scripture, and the contrary proved, even to the death:
and he said to the lord governor and the rest — " If you condemn me for
holding by God's word, my blood shall be required at your hands, when
ye shall be brought before the judgment seat of Christ, who is mighty
442 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM,
to defend my innocent cause ; before whom ye shall not deny it, nor yet
be able to resist its wrath, to whom I refer the vengeance, as it is written,
* Vengeance is mine and I will reward.' "
Then they gave sentence, and condemned him by the laws, and so
left him to the secular power, in the hands of Sir John Campbell, justice
deputy. He delivered him to the provost of Edinburgh to be burnt on
the Castle-hill, who put him in the uppermost house in the town, with
irons about his legs and neck, and gave charge to Sir Hugh Terry to
keep the key of the house. Terry was an ignorant man, and a creature
of the bishops, and as directed, sent to the poor man two grey
friars, to instruct him, with whom he would enter into no communing.
Soon after that were sent in two black friars, an English friar, and
another subtle sophist, called Arbuthnot : with the English friar he
would have reasoned and declared his faith by the scriptures ; but he
said he had no commission to enter into disputation with him, and so
departed and left him. Then was sent to him a man, not ungodly in
the understanding of the truth, the dean of Restalrige, who gave him
christian consolation, during which he exhorted him to believe the reality
of the sacrament after the consecration ; but he would consent to no-
thing that had not evidence in the holy scripture, and so passed over
that night in singing, and praising God, to the ears of divers hearers,
having learned the psalter of David without book, to his consolation :
for they had before taken from him his bible, which always, till after he
was condemned, was with him wherever he went. When Sir Hugh
knew that he had certain books to read and comfort his spirit, he came
in a rage and took them from him, and gave divers ungodly and inju-
rious provocations by his devilish venom, to pervert him from the patience
and hope he had in Christ his Saviour : but God suffered him not to be
moved therewith.
All the next morning he remained in irons, and preparation was com-
manded to be made for his burning against the next day. On that day
the lord governor, and all the principal both spiritual and temporal lords,
departed from Edinburgh. He soon knew of their departure, when
there came the dean of Restalrige to him again, and reasoned with him.
But Wallace answered as before, that he would say nothing concerning
his faith, but as the scripture testifieth : yea, though an angel came from
heaven to persuade him to the same ; saving that he confessed himself
to have received good consolation of the said dean in other behalf as
becometh a christian. Then came in Sir Hugh Terry again, and ex-
amined him after his old manner, and said he would force devils to come
forth of him before night. Wallace answered, " You should rather give
me consolation in my case. When I knew you were come, I prayed God
I might resist your temptations; which I thank him, he hath made me
able to do; therefore I pray you let me alone in peace." Then he asked
one of the officers that stood by — " Is your fire making ready?" who
answered him it was. " As it pleaseth God," said Wallace, " I am
ready soon or late as it shall please him ;" and then he spoke to one
true in that company, and bade him commend him to all the faithful,
being sure to meet together with them in heaven. From that time, to
his coming to the fire, no man spake with him.
At his forth-coming, the provost with great menacing words forbade
ACCUSATION OF WALTER MILLE. 443
him to speak to any one, or any to him, as probably he had command-
ment of his superiors. Coming from the town to the Castle-hill, the
common people said, " God have mercy upon you !" " And on you too,"
said he. Being beside the fire, he lifted up his eyes to heaven twice or
thrice, and said to the people, " Let it not offend you that I suffer death
this day for the truth's sake; for the disciple is not greater than his
master." On this the provost was angry that he spake. Then he looked
up to heaven again, and said, " They will not let me speak." The cord
being about his neck, the fire was lighted, and so he departed to God
constantly, and with good countenance.
About this time a remarkable schism took place in the Scotch church,
relative to the Pater-noster. Numbers of the clergy contending that it
might be addressed to any saint in heaven ; while the less superstitious
urged it was proper to be recited only to God. The first of these
opinions, in all its extravagance and blasphemy, originated with a grey
friar named Tottis, and the following distorted sophistry he used in
supporting and defending it. " If we meet an old man in the street,
we say to him, Good day, father! and, the-refore, much more may we call
the saints our fathers; and because we grant, also, that they are in
heaven, we may say to them — Our fathers, who art in heaven! God
hath made their names holy, therefore may we say to any one of them
— hallowed be thy name; and for the same cause, as they are in heaven,
we may say to them — thy kingdom come. And except their will had been
the will of God, they had never been there; consequently we may say
— thy will be done." But when he came to the fourth petition — give us
this day our daily bread, he was rather at a loss: he however got over
his difficulty, saying, that although the saints certainly could not them-
selves give us bread, yet they could intercede for us, and that we might
consequently address the prayer unto them, that they might pray unto
the Father in our behalf. Thus did he impiously gloss over the rest in
like manner.
Among other martyrs of Scotland, the constancy of Walter Mille is
not to be passed over with silence. Out of his ashes sprang thousands
of his opinion and religion in Scotland, who altogether chose rather to
die than to be any longer trodden over by the tyranny of the bishops,
abbots, monks, and friars: and so began the congregation of Scotland to
debate the true religion of Christ against the Frenchmen and papists, who
sought always to depress and keep them down. The martyrdom of
Mille was brought on by the following events.
In the year of our Lord, 1558, in the time of Mary, duchess of
Longueville, queen regent of Scotland, and John Hamilton, bishop of
St. Andrew's and primate of Scotland, Walter Mille, who in his youth
had been a papist, after he had travelled to Germany, where he had heard
the doctrine of the gospel, returned to Scotland, and, contrary to papal
celibacy took to himself a wife, which made the bishops of Scotland
suspect him of heresy; and after long watching him he was taken by
two popish priests, namely, sir George Strachen, and sir Hugh Terry,
servants to the said bishop, and imprisoned in the castle of St. Andrew's.
While in confinement, the papists earnestly laboured to seduce him,
and threatened him with torture and death, to the intent they might
444 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
cause him to recant and forsake the truth; but seeing- they could. profit
nothing thereby, and that he remained firm and constant, they laboured
to persuade him by fair promises, and offered him a monk's portion for
the remainder of his life, in the abbey of Dunfermline, so that he would
deny what he had taught, and grant that they were heresies : but he,
continuing in the truth to the end, equally despised their threatenings and
fair promises.
Then assembled together the bishops of St. Andrew's, Moray, Brechin,
Caithness, and Athens ; the abbots of Dunfermline, Lindores, Balindrinot,
and Cowpers ; with doctors in theology of St. Andrew's, as John Grison,
black friar, and dean John Winryme, sub-prior of St. Andrew's, William
Cranston, provost of the old college, with others, as sundry friars black
and grey. These being assembled, and having consulted together, he
was taken out of prison, and brought to the metropolitan church, where
he was put in a pulpit before the bishops to be accused, the twentieth
day of April. Being brought into the church, and climbing up into
the pulpit, they seeing him so weak and feeble of person, partly
by age and travel, partly by evil treatment, that without help he could
not ascend, they were out of hope to have heard him for weakness of
voice. But when he began to speak, he made the church to ring and
echo, with so great courage and stoutness, that the christians which
were present were no less rejoiced than his adversaries were confounded
and ashamed. Being in the pulpit, on his knees at prayer, Andrew
Oliphant, one of the bishop's chaplains, commanded him to rise and
answer to the articles, saying on this manner — " Sir Walter Mille, rise and
answer to the articles, for you hold my lord here over long." To whom
Walter, after he had finished his prayer, answered, saying, " We ought
to obey God more than man; I serve one more mighty, even the Omni-
potent Lord ; and I beseech you call me Walter, and not Sir Walter ;
I have been over-long one of the pope's knights. Now say what thou
hast to say."
Oliphant. What think you of priests' marriage?
Mille. I hold it a blessed band: for Christ himself maintained it, and
approved the same, and also made it free to all men ; but you think it
not free to you ; ye abhor it, and in the mean time take other men's
wives and daughters, and will not keep the band God hath made. Ye
vow chastity, and break the same. Saint Paul had rather marry than
burn ; the which I have done, for God never forbade marriage to any
man, what state or degree soever he were.
Oliphant. Thou sayst there be not seven sacraments.
Mille. Give me the Lord's Supper and Baptism, and take you the
rest, and part them among you. For if there be seven, why have you
omitted one of them, to wit, marriage, and given yourselves to
whoredom ?
Oliphant. Thou art against the blessed sacrament of the altar, and
sayst that the mass is wrong, and is idolatry.
Mille. A lord or a king sendeth and calleth many to a dinner, and
when the dinner is in readiness, he causeth a bell to ring, and the men
come to the hall, and sit down to be partakers of the dinner; but the
lord, turning his back unto them, eateth all himself, and mocketh them:
EXAMINATION OF WALTER MILLE. 445
so do ye turn your backs in the sacrament on the people you have
invited.
Oliphant. Thou deniest the sacrament of the altar to be the very body
of Christ really in flesh and blood.
Mille. The scripture of God is not to be taken carnally, but spiri-
tually, and standeth in faith only; and as for the mass it is wrong, for
Christ was once offered on the cross for man's trespass, and will never
be offered again, for then he ended all sacrifices.
Oliphant. Thou deniest the office of a bishop.
Mille. I affirm that they, whom ye call bishops, do no bishops'
works; nor use the office of bishops, as Paul biddeth, writing- to Timo-
thy, but live after their own sensual pleasure, and take no care of the
flock, nor yet regard they the word of God, but desire to be honoured
and called, my lords.
Oliphant. Thou spakest against pilgrimage, and calledst it a pilgrim-
age to whoredom.
Mille. I affirm and say, that it is not commanded in the scripture,
and that there is no greater whoredom in any place, than at your pil-
grimages, except it be in common brothels.
Oliphant. Thou preachedst secretly and privately in houses, and
openly in the fields.
Mille. Yea, man, and on the sea also, sailing in a ship, as Christ did.
Oliphant. Wilt thou not recant thy erroneous opinions? and if thou
wilt not, I will pronounce sentence against thee.
Mille. I am accused of my life; I know I must die once, and there-
fore as Christ said to Judas, what thou doest do quickly. Ye shall know
that I will not recant the truth, for I am the corn, I am no chaff; I will
not be blown away with the wind, nor burst with the flail ; but I will
abide both.
These things rehearsed they, with other trifles, to augment their final
accusation; and then sir Andrew Oliphant pronounced sentence against
him, that he should be delivered to the temporal judge, and punished
as a heretic, that is to be burnt. Notwithstanding, his boldness and
constancy moved so the hearts of many, that the bishop's steward of
his regality, provost of the town, called Patrick Lermond, refused to be
his temporal judge, to whom it appertained, if the cause had been just.
Also the bishop's chamberlain, being therewith charged, would in no
wise take upon him so ungodly an office. Indeed the whole town was
so offended with his unjust condemnation, that the bishop's servants
could not purchase for their money so much as one cord to tie him to
the stake, or a tar-barrel to burn him, but were constrained to cut the
cords of their master's own pavilion to serve their turn. At last, however,
there was one servant of the bishop's more ignorant and cruel than the
rest, named Alexander Somervaile, ambitious of the office of a temporal
judge in that part, who conveyed him to the fire, where, against all
natural reason of man, his boldness and firmness did more and more
increase, so that the Spirit of God working miraculously in him, made
it manifest to the people, that his cause and articles were most just, and
that he died innocently and in the Lord.
All things being ready for his death, he was conducted by armed men
to the fire. On arriving there, Oliphant bade him pass to the stake: but
446 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
he said, " Nay, but wilt thou put me up with thy hand and take part of my
death? thou shalt see me pass up gladly; for by the law of God I am
forbidden to put hands upon myself." Then Oliphant put him up with
his hand, and he ascended gladly, saying, Introibo ad altare Dei, and
desired that he might have space to speak to the people; the which
Oliphant and other of the burners denied, because he had spoken over-
much, for the bishops were altogether offended that the matter was so
long continued. Then some of the young men committed both the
burners and the bishops their masters to the devil, remarking that they
believed they should lament that day, and desired Walter to speak
what he pleased.
So after he made his humble supplication to God on his knees, he
arose, and standing upon the coals said on this wise: "Dear friends,
the cause why I suffer this day is not for any crime laid to my charge,
albeit I be a miserable sinner before God, but only for the defence of
the faith of Jesus Christ, set forth in the New and Old Testament unto
us; for which as the faithful martyrs have offered themselves gladly
before, being assured after death of their bodies of eternal felicity ; so
this day I praise God that he hath called me of his mercy among the
rest of his servants to seal up his truth with my life : which as I have
received it of him, so willingly I offer it to his glory. Therefore as you
will escape the eternal death, be no more seduced with the lies of priests,
monks, friars, priors, abbots, bishops, and the rest of the sect of Anti-
christ, but depend only upon Jesus Christ and his mercy, that ye may
be delivered from condemnation." While he spake there was great
mourning and lamentation of the multitude ; who perceiving his patience,
boldness, and constancy, were not only moved and stirred up, but their
hearts also were so inflamed, that he was the last martyr that died in
Scotland for the religion. After his prayer, he was hoisted up on the
stake, and being in the fire, he said, " Lord have mercy on me; pray
people whilst there is time : " and thus resigned his soul to Him who
gave it.
From Scotland we turn again to England, to the papal history of
Henry VIII. This important reign, which draws near to a conclusion,
is so replete with incidents, and the political and ecclesiastical affairs
are so connected, that we entreat the reader to pardon the breaks
and chasms he may observe, for were we to give this long chain of
events link by link, as they stand in the pages of general history,
we should too much swell the limited size of this work, which, be it
remembered, is rather a history of individuals than of countries and
general events.
The next English martyrs who stand upon record are Kerby and
Roger Clarke. They were apprehended at Ipswich, and brought before
lord Wentworth, with other commissioners appointed there to sit upon
their examinations. The night before they were arraigned, a bill was
fixed upon the town-house door, by whom it was unknown, and brought
the next day unto lord Wentworth; who answered, that it was good
counsel to render them cautious and prudent. In the mean time, Kerby
and Clarke, being in the house of the gaoler, whose name was Bird,
there came in Mr. Robert Wingfield, son of Humfrey Wingfield, knight,
with Mr. Bruess, of Wenham ; who having conference with Kerby,
CONDEMNATION OF KERBY AND CLARKE. 447
Wincfield said to him, ** Remember the fire is hot, take heed of thine
enterprise, that thou take no more upon thee than thou shalt be able tc
perform. The terror is great, the pain will be extreme, and life is sweet.
Better it were betimes to stick to mercy, while there is hope of life,
than rashly to beg-in, and then to shrink." Kerby answered — " Ah,
Mr. Wing-field, be at my burning, and you shall say, there standeth a
christian soldier in the fire: for I know that fire and water, sword and
all other things, are in the hands of God, and he will suffer no more to
be laid upon us than he will give strength to bear." "Ah, Kerby,"
said Mr. Wingfield, " if thou be at that point, I will bid thee farewell;
for I promise thee I am not so strong that I am able to burn." And so
both the gentlemen saying that they would pray for them, shook hands
with them and departed.
When Kerby and Clarke came to the judgment seat, where were
present lord Wentworth, the commissary, and others, they lifted up
their eyes and hands to heaven with great devotion, making their
prayers secretly to God for a space of time. That done, their articles
were declared to them with all circumstances of the law : and then it
was demanded and required of them, whether they believed, that after
the words spoken by a priest, as Christ spake them to his apostles,
there were not the very body and blood of Christ, flesh, blood, and
bone, as he was born of the Virgin Mary, and no bread after?" To
this usual and sweeping question they answered — " No ! we do not so
believe; but we believe the sacrament which Christ Jesus instituted at
his last supper to his disciples, was only to put them in remembrance
of his precious death and blood-shedding for the remission of sins; and
that there was neither flesh nor blood to be eaten with the teeth, but
bread and wine, and yet more than bread and wine, for they are con-
secrated to a holy use." Then with much persuasions, both with fair
means and threats were they beset, but most at the hands of Foster, an
inferior justice, a man quite ignorant of what he spoke; yet they both
continued faithful and constant, choosing rather to die than to live, and
so continued unto the end.
Then sentence was given upon them, Kerby to be burnt in the said
•town on the next Saturday, and Clarke at Bury on the Monday after.
Kerby, when his judgment was given by lord Wentworth, with most
humble reverence holding up his hands, and bowing himself devoutly,
said — " Praised be Almighty God!" and stood still without any more
words. Then did lord Wentworth talk secretly, putting his hand
behind another justice that sat near him. Clarke perceiving this, said
with a loud voice, " Speak out, my lord; and if you have any thing
contrary to your conscience, ask God mercy, and we for our parts
forgive you : and speak not in secret, for ye shall come before a judge,
and then make answer openly, even before him that shall judge all
men." Lord Wentworth, somewhat changing colour, as it was thought
through remorse, answered, " I spoke nothing of you, nor have I done
any thing unto you, but as the law is," Then were the prisoners sent
forth, Kerby to prison there, and Clarke to Bury St. Edmunds. On
quitting the court, Clarke exclaimed aloud — " Fight for your God, for
he hath not long to continue."
On Saturday, about ten o'clock, Kerby was brought to the market-
448 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
place, where a stake with wood and straw was ready. He put off his
clothes to his shirt, having a night-cap upon his head, and was then
fastened to the stake with irons; there being in the gallery lord
Wentworth, with the greater part of the justices of those quarters,
where they might see his execution, how every thing should be done,
and also might hear what Kerby had to say; there were also a great
number of people. Upon the gallery also, by lord Wentworth, stood
Dr. Rugham, who was before a monk of Bury, and sexton of the house,
having on a surplice and stole about his neck. Then silence was pro-
claimed, and the doctor began to excuse himself, as not meet to declare
the Holy Scriptures, being unprovided because the time was so short,
but that he hoped in God's assistance it should come well to pass.
While the executioners were preparing their irons, fagots, and straw,
for the martyr, he, as one that should be married with new garments,
nothing changed in cheer nor countenance, but with a most meek spirit
glorified God. Dr. Rugham at last entered into the sixth chapter of
St. John, and in handling that matter, so oft as he alleged the Scriptures,
and applied them rightly, Kerby told the people that he said true, and
bade them believe him. But when he did otherwise, he told him again,
"You say not true; believe him not, good people." Whereupon, as the
voice of the people was, they judged Dr. Rugham a false prophet.
When he had ended his collation, he said to Kerbv, " Thou, good man,
dost thou not believe that the blessed sacrament of the altar is the very
flesh and blood of Christ, and no bread, even as he was born of the
Virgin Mary?" Kerby answering boldly, said — " I do not so believe."
" How dost thou believe?" said the doctor. Kerby answered boldly,
saying, "I believe that in the sacrament which Jesus Christ instituted at
his last supper to his disciples is his death and passion and his blood-
shedding for the redemption of the world, to be remembered; and, as I
said before, yet bread, and more than bread, for that it is consecrated
to a holy use." After this the doctor spake not one word more to
Kerby.
Then the under-sheriff demanded of Kerby whether he had any thing
more to say. "Yea, sir," said he, " if you will give me leave." " Say
on then," said the sheriff. The martyr summoning all his fortitude, and
taking the cap from his head, put it under his arms as though it should
have done him service again : but remembering himself, he cast it from
him, and lifting up his hands, he repeated the Te Deum, and the belief,
with other prayers in the English tongue. Lord Wentworth, whilst
Kerby was thus doing, concealed himself behind one of the posts of the
gallery, and wept, and so did many others. " Then," said Kerby, " I
have done: you may execute your office, good sheriff." On this, fire
was set to the wood, while with a loud voice he called unto God, striking
his breast, and holding up his hands so long as his remembrance would
serve ; and so ended his life, the people giving shouts, and praising God
with great admiration of his constancy, being so simple and unlettered.
On the following Monday, about ten o'clock, Roger Clarke of Mendel-
sham was brought out of prison, and led on foot to the gate, called South-
gate, in Bury. By the way, the procession met with them; but he went on,
and would not bow, but with most vehement words rebuked their idolatry
ROGER CLARKE TURNING
AWAY FROM THE HOST. — PAGB 4+8.
PARTICULARS OF ANNE ASKEW. ! i ( )
and superstition, the officers being much offended. Without the gate,
where was the place of execution, the stake being ready, and the wood
lying- by, he came and kneeled down, and said Magnificat in the
English tongue, making as it were a paraphrase upon the same, wherein
he declared that the blessed Virgin Mary, who might as well rejoice in
pureness, as any other, yet humbled herself to our Saviour. " And
what sayest thou John Baptist," said he, " the greatest of all the children?
1 Behold the lamb of God which taketh away the sins of the world.' "
Thus with a loud voice he cried unto the people, while they were fasten-
ing him to the stake, and then the fire was set to him. His sufferings
were dreadful, for the wood was green, and would not burn, so that he was
choaked with smoke: and moreover, being set in a pitch barrel, with
some pitch sticking still by the sides, he was therewith sore pained, till
he got his feet out of the barrel. At length one standing by took a
fagot-stick, and striking at the ring of iron about his neck, and then
upon his head, he shrunk down on one side into the fire, and so was
destroyed.
The reformation now appeared to go back instead of forward for a
time. This year it was ordained and decreed, and solemnly given out
in proclamation by the king's name and authority, and his council, that
the English procession should be used throughout the kingdom, as it was
set forth by his council, and none other to be used throughout the whole
realm. In the month of November, after the king had subdued the
Scots, and joining with the emperor had invaded France, and had got
from them the town of Boulogne, he summoned his high court of par-
liament; which granted unto him, besides other subsidies of money, all
colleges, chantries, free chapels, hospitals, fraternities, brotherhoods,
guilds, and perpetuities of stipendary priests, to be disposed of at his will
and pleasure. Whereupon in the month of December following, the
king after his wonted manner, came into the parliament house to give
his royal assent to such acts as were there passed : where after an
eloquent oration made to him by the speaker, he answered him, not by
the lord chancellor, as the manner was, but in an artful speech which
he himself composed and delivered.
He first eloquently and lovingly declared his grateful heart to his
subjects for their grants and supplies offered unto him. In the second
part with no less vehemency, he exhorted them to concord, peace, and
unity; but had he sought the right way to work charity, and to help
innocency amongst his subjects, he would have taken away the impious
law of the six articles, that mother of all division. For what is it to the
purpose, to exhort charity in words, and, at the same time, to put a
weapon into the murderer's hand to run upon his naked brother, who
never in conscience can leave his cause, nor yet hath power to defend
himself? The mischief and misery produced by this law never were
more fully shewn than in its operation against two or three martyrs at
this time, upon whom it was put in force. Of these the most memorable
was Anne Askew, whose bitter persecution and merciless death tended
to shew the sanguinary spirit of the times, while they also shew the
firmness which a female can attain when aided by the power of religion
and truth.
2 G
450 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Anne Askew was descended from a good family, and had received an
accomplished education ; and the reader will best form his judgment of
her by what follows of her trial and conduct under it. Her first
examination was in the year of our Lord 1545, in the month of March.
Christopher Dare examined her at Sadler's Hall, being one of the quest,
and asked, if she did not believe that the sacrament hanging over the
altar was the very body of Christ really. Then she demanded this
question of him, Wherefore was St. Stephen stoned to death? and he
said, he could not tell. Then she answered that no more would she
answer his vain question. Then he said, that there was a woman, who
did testify that Anne Askew should read, how God was not in temples
made with hands. On this she shewed him the seventh and seventeenth
chapters of the Acts of the Apostles, what Stephen and Paul had said
therein. Whereupon he asked her how she took those sentences? She
answered, " I would not throw pearls amongst swine, for acorns were
good enough."
He proceeded to ask her why she said — " I had rather read five lines
in the Bible, than hear five masses in the temple. " She confessed she
said so, not for the dispraise of either the epistle or the gospel, but
because the one greatly edified her, and the other nothing at all. As
St. Paul doth witness in the fourteenth chapter of his first epistle to the
Corinthians, wherein he saith, " If the trumpet giveth an uncertain
sound, who will prepare himself to the battle?" On this she was
accused of saying, that if an ill priest ministered, it was the devil and
not God. To which her answer was a denial of both the words and the
sentiment. Instead of which she only said, " Whoever ministered unto
me, his ill conditions could not hurt my faith, but in spirit I received
nevertheless the body and blood of Christ." He then asked her what
she said concerning confession. She answered, " My meaning was as
St. James saith, that every man ought to acknowledge his faults to
others, and the one to pray for the other."
Enquiry was made what she said to the king's book; and she
answered him that she could say nothing to it, because she never saw
it. A priest was then sent for to examine her, and when he came to
her, he asked several questions; but the principal one was what she said
to the sacrament of the altar, and required much to know her meaning
therein. But she desired him again to hold her excused concerning
that matter: no other answer would she make him, because she per-
ceived him to be a papist. On her silence he asked her if she did not
think that private masses helped the departed souls; she said, it was
great idolatry to believe more in them, than in the death which Christ
died for us.
Then they brought her unto my lord mayor, and he examined her, as
they had before, and she answered him directly in all things in a lively
manner, on which the bishop's chancellor rebuked her, and said that she
was much to blame for uttering the scriptures. St. Paul, he said, forbade
women to speak or to talk of the word of God. She answered him that
she knew Paul's meaning as well as he, which was that a woman ought
not to speak in the congregation by the way of teaching: and then she
asked him how many women he had seen go into the pulpit and preach?
EXAMINATION OF ANNE ASKEW. 45 J
He said he never saw any. Then said she you ought to find no fault
with poor women, except they had offended the law. Then the lord
mayor was for committing her to prison, when she asked him if
sureties would not serve : he made her short answer, that he would take
none. Then was she forced to the counter, where she remained eleven
days, no friend being admitted to speak with her. In the mean time there
was a priest sent unto her, who said that he was commanded by the
bishop to examine her, and to give her good counsel, which he did not.
But first he asked her, for what cause she was put in the counter, and
she told him she could not tell. Then he said, it was great pity that she
should be there without cause, and concluded that he was very sorry for
her ; charging her with denying the sacrament of the altar : which she
answered indifferently, observing that what she had said she had said.
The priest then asked her if she were content to be shriven. She
told him, so that she might have one of these three, that is to say,
Dr. Crome, Sir Guillam, or Huntington, she was contented, because she
knew them to be men of wisdom. " As for you, or any other," she said,
" I will not dispraise, because I know you not." The priest answered,
" Think not but that I, or any other who may be brought you, shall be as
honest as they : for if we were not, you may be sure the king would not
suffer us to preach." Then she answered with the saying of Solomon,
" By communing with the wise I may learn wisdom, but by talking with
a fool I shall take scathe." Confounded by her wit, the priest changed
his course, and asked, If the host should fall, and a beast did eat it,
whether the beast did receive God or no ? She answered, "Seeing that
you have taken the pains to ask the question, I desire you also to assoil
it yourself: for I will not do it, because I perceive you come to tempt
me." He said it was against the order of schools, that he which asked
the question should answer it: when she told him she was but a woman,
and knew not the course of schools.
Then he asked her if she intended to receive the sacrament at Easter
or no? She answered, that else she were no Christian woman; and she
rejoiced that the time was so near at "hand. He then departed with
many fair words. On the 23rd of March, her cousin came unto her,
and asked her whether she might be put to bail. Then went he imme-
diately to the lord mayor, desiring him to be so good to her, that she
might be bailed. My lord answered him, that he would be glad to do
the best, but he could not bail her without the consent of a spiritual
officer; requiring him to go and speak to the chancellor of London.
For as he could not commit her to prison without the consent of a
spiritual officer, no more could he bail her without the consent of the
same.
Upon that he went to the chancellor, requiring of him, as he did
before of my lord mayor. The chancellor answered, that the matter
was so heinous, he durst not of himself do it, without my lord of London
was made privy thereto. But said he would speak to my lord of it, and
bade him repair to him the next morning, and he should know his plea-
sure. Accordingly upon the day after he came thither, and spoke to both
the chancellor and bishop of London. The bishop declared that he
was well contented that she should come forth to communication, and
452 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
appointed her to appear before him the next day, at three o'clock in
the afternoon. Moreover he said, that he wished there should be, at the
examination, such learned men as she was affectioned to, that they might
see, and also make report, that she was handled with no rigour. He
answered him, that he knew no man whom she had more affection to
than another. Then said the bishop, " Yes, as I understand, she prefers
Dr. Crome, Sir Guillam Whitehead, and Huntington, that they might
hear the matter, for she did know them to be learned and of a godly
judgment." Also he required her cousin Britain, that he should earnestly
persuade her to utter even the very bottom of her heart; and he swore
by his fidelity, that no man should take any advantage of her words,
neither yet would he lay any thing to her charge for any thing that she
should there speak; but if she said anything amiss, he, with others,
would be glad to reform her therein with godly counsel.
Next day in the forenoon, the bishop of London sent for her, and
as she came before him, he said he was sorry for her trouble, and desired
to know her opinions in such matters as were laid against her. He re-
quired her also in any wise boldly to utter the secrets of her heart,
bidding her not to fear in any points, for whatever she said in his house,
no man should hurt her for it. She answered — " As your lordship has
appointed three o'clock; and my friends will not come till that hour,
I desire you to pardon my giving answers till they arrive." Then he
said that he thought it meet to send for those who were before named
and appointed. She desired him not to put them to the trouble, be-
cause the two gentlemen who were her friends, were able enough to
testify what she should say. Afterwards he went into his gallery with
Mr. Spilman, and told him in any wise that he should exhort her to
utter all she thought. And in the meanwhile he commanded his arch-
deacon to commune with her, who said, " Mistress, wherefore are you
accused and thus troubled here before the bishop ?" She answered,
" Sir, ask my accusers, for I know not as yet." Then he took her hand,
and pointing to the bible, said, " Such book as this has brought you to
the trouble you are now in. Beware, beware, for he that made this
book, and was the author thereof, was a heretic and burned in
Smithfield." She asked him if he was certain and sure that it was true
what he had spoken. He said he knew well the book was of John
Frith's making. She asked him if he was not ashamed to judge of the
book before he saw it within, or yet knew the truth thereof; and said
also, that such unadvised hasty judgment is a token apparent of a very
slender wit. Then she opened the book and shewed it him. He said
he thought it had been another, for he could find no fault therein.
Then she desired him no more to be so unadvisedly rash and swift in
judgment, till he thoroughly knew the truth, and so he departed from
her.
Immediately after came her cousin Britain, with divers others, among
whom was a Mr. Hall of Gray's-Inn. Then my lord of London per-
suaded her cousin, as he had done oft before, that she should utter the
very bottom of her heart in any wise. My lord said after that unto her
that he would she should credit the counsel of such as were her friends
and well-wishers in this behalf, which was that she should utter all
EXAMINATION OF ANNE ASKEW. 4.33
things that burthened her conscience; for he assured her that she should
not need to stand in doubt. For as he promised them, he promised
her, and would perform it; namely, that neither he, nor any man for
him, should take her at advantage of any word, and therefore he bade
her speak her mind without fear. She answered him, that she had
nought to say, for her conscience was burdened with nothing. Then
the bishop, Bonner, began to use similitudes, and his first, especially to
a delicate female, was not a very savoury similitude: " If a man had a
wound, no wise surgeon would minister help unto it before he had seen
it uncovered. In the same manner can I give you no good counsel,
unless I know wherewith your conscience is burthened." " My con-
science," she said, " is clear in all things, and to lay a plaister unto a
whole skin w T ould appear much folly." Bonner exclaimed — " Then you
drive me to lay to your charge your own report, which is this: You
did say, he that doth receive the sacrament by the hands of an ill priest,
or a sinner, receiveth the devil, and not God." She answered, " I never
spake such words; but, as I said before, that the wickedness of the
priest did not hurt me, but in spirit and faith I received no less than the
body and blood of Christ." " What saying is this, in spirit?" demanded
he ; "I will not take you at the advantage." Then she answered, " My
lord, without faith and spirit, I cannot receive him worthily."
He said she had affirmed, that "the sacrament remaining in the pix
was not bread." She answered, she had never said so ; but indeed the
quest had asked the question, whereunto she would not reply till they
had answered her question, "Wherefore Stephen was stoned to death?"
The bishop evidently remembered this, and changing his tone, said,
that she had alleged a certain text of the scripture. She answered,
" I alleged none other but St. Paul's own saying to the Athenians, in
the 17th chapter of the Acts, that God dwelleth not in temples made
with hands." Then he inquired what her faith and belief was in that
matter? She answered him, "I believe as the scripture doth teach me."
On this he inquired, " What if the scripture doth say that it is the
body of Christ?" " I believe," she said, " as the scripture doth teach."
Then he asked again, " What if the scripture doth say that it is not the
body of Christ?" Her answer was still, " I believe as the scripture
informeth me." On this argument he tarried a great while, to have
driven her to make him an answer to his mind. Howbeit she would
not, but concluded this with him, " I believe therein, and in all other
things, as Christ and his apostles did leave them. "
The bishop, displeased that she said so little, sharply asked, " Why
she had so few words?" when she answered, " God hath given me the
gift of knowledge, but not of utterance; and Solomon saith, 'That a
woman of few words is the gift of God.' " Then he laid to her charge,
that she had said that the mass was superstitious, wicked, and no better
than idolatry. She answered him that she had not said so : adding,
" The quest asked me whether private mass did relieve departed souls or
no ? Unto whom I answered — Lord, what idolatry is this, that we
should rather believe in private masses than in the death of the dear Son
of God?" Then said the bishop again, " What an answer is that?"
"Though it be but mean," she said, "yet is it good enough for the
454 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
question. And there was a priest who did hear what I said there, before
my lord mayor and them." The chancellor then asked the priest, who
said she spake it in very deed, before the lord mayor and himself.
There were certain priests, as Dr. Standish and others, who tempted
her so much to know her mind. She answered them always thus: —
" What I have said to my lord of London, I have said." Then Dr.
Standish desired the bishop to bid her speak her mind concerning the
text of St. Paul's learning, probably to betray her, that she being- a
woman should interpret the scriptures in the presence of so many wise
and learned men. The bishop then quickly said, " I am informed that
one has asked you if you would receive the sacrament at Easter, and
you made a mock of it." To this she boldly yet calmly and meekly
replied, " I desire that my accuser might come forth" — which he would
not allow. But he said again unto her, " I sent one to give you good
counsel, and at the first word you called him Papist." " I deny not
that," she said, " for I perceived he was no less, and I made him no other
reply."
Then he rebuked her, and said that she had reported there were sent
against her threescore priests at Lincoln. " Indeed," she answered,
" I said so; for my friends told me, if I did come to Lincoln, the
priests would assault me, and put me to great trouble, as thereof they
had made their boast; and when I heard it I went thither not being
afraid, because I knew my matter to be good. Moreover I remained
there nine days, to see what would be said to me ; and as I was in the
Minster, reading the Bible, they resorted unto me by two and two,
and by greater numbers, minding to have spoken unto me, yet went
they their ways again without speaking." The bishop asked if there were
not one who had spoken to her ? She answered, " Yes, there was one of
them at the last which did speak indeed, but his words were of small
effect, so that I do not now remember them." Then said the bishop,
" There are many that read and know the scripture, and yet follow it
not, nor live thereafter." She said again, " My lord, I would wish that
all men knew my conversation and living in all points; for I am sure
myself this hour that there are none able to prove ariy dishonesty against
me. If you know that any can do it, I pray you bring them forth."
Then the bishop went away, and said he would put some of her meaning
in writing; but what it was she was uncertain, for he would not suffer
her to have the copy thereof.
A small part of it ran thus: — " Be it known of all men, that I, Anne
Askew, do confess this to be my faith and belief, notwithstanding many
reports made afore to the contrary. I believe that they which are
houseled at the hands of a priest, whether his conversation be good or
not, do receive the body and blood of Christ in substance really. Also
I do believe, that after the consecration, whether it be received or re-
served, it is no less than the very body and blood of Christ in substance.
Finally, I do believe in this and in all other sacraments of holy church
in all points, according to the catholic faith of the same. In witness
whereof, I the said Anne have subscribed my name." It is evideut that
all this was palmed on Mrs. Askew by the treacherous bishop; and
there was somewhat more in it, which because she had not the copy, she
RELEASEMENT OF ANNE ASKEW. 455
could not remember. He read it to her, and asked if she did not agree
to it? To which she said, "I believe so much thereof, as the holy
scripture cloth agree unto; wherefore I desire you that you will add
that thereunto." To this he said, that she should not teach him what
he should write; and with that he went forth into his great chamber
and read the same bill before the audience, which inveigled and willed
her to set to her hand, saying also, that she had been favoured, and
that she might thank others, and not herself for the favour she found
at his hand ; for he considered that she had good friends, and that she
came of a good family. Never sure did a bishop shew favour to a lady
with so ill a grace.
Christopher, a servant to Mr. Denny, said to his lordship, " Rather
ought you, my lord, to have done it in such case for God's sake, than
for man's." Then my lord sat down, and took her the writing to set
thereto her hand, and she wrote after this manner: — " I Anne Askew
do believe all manner of things contained in the faith of the catholic
church." Because of the latter words he flung the paper into his
chamber in great fury. With that her cousin Britain followed, desiring
him for God's sake to be a good bishop to her. He answered, that she
was a woman, and that he was nothing deceived in her. Then her
cousin Britain desired him to treat her as a woman, and not to set a
weak woman's wit to his lordship's great wisdom.
There went in unto him Dr. Weston, and said, " The cause why she
did write there the catholic church,, was, that she understood not the
church written afore." So with much ado they persuaded the bishop
to come out again, and take her name, with the names of the sureties,
which were her cousin Britain and master Spilman of Gray's Inn.
This being done, it was thought that she should have been put to bail
immediately, according to the order of the law. Howbeit he would
not suffer it, but committed her from thence to prison again until the
morrow, and then he willed her to appear in the Guildhall, which she
did. Notwithstanding they would not put her to bail there, but read
the bishop's writing unto her as before, and commanded her again to
prison. Then were her sureties appointed to come on the morrow in
Paul's church, who did so. They would once again have broken off with
them, because they would not be bound also for another woman,
whom they knew not, nor yet what matter was laid unto her charge.
Notwithstanding at the last, after much ado and reasoning to and fro,
they took a bond of them of recognizance for her forth coming: and
thus she was at the last delivered. Thus ends her first persecution, from
which, for a time, she escaped; but not conforming to the erroneous
doctrine of the sacrament, she was in 1546, again apprehended. The
following account of her examination before the council at Greenwich
is taken, like the previous one, from her own papers: only this, for its
peculiarity, is retained in her own words.
" Your request as concerning my prison-fellows I am not able to
satisfy, because I heard not their examinations. But the effect of mine
was this. I being before the council, was asked of Mr. Kyme. I an-
swered, that my lord chancellor knew already my mind in that matter.
They with that answer were not contented, but said it was the king's
456 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
pleasure that I should open the matter unto them. I answered them
plainly, I would not do so; but if it were the king's pleasure to hear
me, I would shew him the truth. Then they said it was not meet for
the king- to be troubled with me. I answered, that Solomon was
reckoned the wisest king that ever lived, yet misliked he not to hear two
poor common women ; much more his grace a simple woman and his
faithful subject. So in conclusion, I made them none other answer in
that matter. Then my lord chancellor asked of me my opinion in the
sacrament. My answer was this, I believe that so oft as I in a Christian
congregation do receive the bread in remembrance of Christ's death,
and with thanksgiving, according to his holy institution, I receive there-
with the fruits also of his most glorious passion. The bishop of Win-
chester bade me make a direct answer : I said I would not sing the song
of the Lord in a strange land. Then the bishop said I spake in parables.
1 answered, it was best for him, for if I shewed the open truth they
would not accept it. Then he said I was a parrot. 2 I told him again
1 was ready to suffer all things at his hands, not only his rebukes, but
all that should follow besides, yea, and all that gladly. Then had I
divers rebukes of the council, because I would not express my mind in
all things as they would have me. But they were not in the mean time
unanswered for all that, which now to rehearse were too much, for I
was with them about five hours. Then the clerk of the council con-
veyed me from thence to my lady Garnish.
The next day I was brought again before the council, which would
needs know what I said to the sacrament. I answered that I had
already said what I could say. After many words they bid me go
aside. Then came lord Lisle, lord Essex, and the bishop of Winchester,
requiring me earnestly that I should confess the sacrament to be
flesh, blood, and bone. I told these noblemen that it was a great
shame for them to counsel contrary to their knowledge; whereunto in
a few words they said, that they would gladly all things were well.
The bishop said he would speak with me familiarly. I said, " So did
Judas, when he betrayed Christ." Then he desired to speak with me
alone; but that I refused. He asked me why. I said, that in the
mouth of two or three witnesses every matter should stand, after
Christ's and Paul's doctrine.
Then my lord chancellor began to examine me again on the sacra-
ment. I asked him, How long he would halt on both. He asked where
I found that. I said, in the scripture. Then he went his way. The
bishop said I should be burnt. I answered, That I had searched all the
scriptures, yet could I never find that either Christ or his apostles put
any creature to death. " Well, well," said I, " God will laugh your
threatenings to scorn." Then was I commanded to stand aside; after
z This is almost the only charge against this excellent woman which has a semblance of
truth. If she had a fault it was of garrulity, so often laid to the account of her sex.
Her wit was of the quickest and most piercing kind, and not at any time unmingled with
prudence any more than piety. Before such treacherous judges, we rather rejoice than
regret that her tongue felt itself at perfect liberty. Her rebukes are a standing protest against
the assumptions of an intolerant and intolerable priesthood, and are moreover, some of the
most interesting in both expression and sentiment that tongue ever uttered or pen recorded.
ANNE ASKEWS LETTERS. 457
which came Dr. Cox and Dr. Robinson to me; but in conclusion we
could not agree. After striving to convince me they drew out a confes-
sion respecting the sacrament, urging me to set my hand thereunto; but
this I refused. On the following Sunday I was so extremely ill, that I
thought death was upon me ; upon which I desired to see Mr. Latimer,
but this was not granted. In the height of my illness I was conveyed
to Newgate, where the Lord was pleased to renew my strength.
On my being brought to trial at Guildhall they said to me there
that I was a heretic, and condemned by the law, if I would stand in
mine opinion. I answered, That I was no heretic, neither yet deserved
I any death by the law of God. But as concerning the faith which I
uttered and wrote to the council, I would not deny it, because I knew it
true. Then would they needs know if I would deny the sacrament to be
Christ's body and blood? I said, "Yea; for the sameSon of God, who
was born of the Virgin Mary, is now glorious in heaven, and will come
again from thence at the latter day. And as for that ye call your God,
it is a piece of bread. For more proof thereof, mark it when you list,
if it lie in the box three months, it will be mouldy, and so turn to no-
thing that is good. Whereupon I am persuaded that it cannot be God."
After that they willed me to have a priest; at which I smiled. Then
they asked me if it were not good? I said, I would confess my faults
unto God, for I was sure that he would hear me with favour. And so
I was condemned. And this was the ground of my sentence : — My
belief, which I wrote to the council that the sacramental bread was left
us to be received with thanksgiving, in remembrance of Christ's death,
the only remedy of our soul's recovery; and that thereby we also receive
the whole benefits and fruits of his most glorious passion. Then would
they know whether the bread in the box were God or no : I said God
is a spirit, and will be worshipped in spirit and truth. Then they
demanded, Will you plainly deny Christ to be in the sacrament? I
answered, that I believe faithfully the eternal Son of God not to dwell
there; in witness whereof I recited again the history of Bel, Dan. xix.,
Acts vii. and xvii., and Matt, xxiv., concluding thus: "I neither wish
death, nor yet fear his might: God have the praise thereof with thanks."
After this Mrs. Askew addressed a letter to the king, and sent it by the
hands of the chancellor. It ran thus: — " 1 Anne Askew, of good
memory, although God hath given me the bread of adversity, and the
water of trouble, yet not so much as my sins have deserved, desire this
to be known unto your grace, that forasmuch as I am by the law con-
demned for an evil doer, here I take heaven and earth to record, that
I shall die in my innocency ; and according to that I have said first, and
will say last, I utterly abhor and detest all heresies. And as concern-
ing the supper of the Lord, I believe so much as Christ hath said
therein, which he confirmed with his most blessed blood. I believe
so much as he willed me to follow, and believe so much as the
Catholic church of him doth teach. For I will not forsake the com-
mandment of his holy lips. But look what God hath charged me with
his mouth, that I have shut up in my heart. And thus briefly I end for
lack of learning."
This pious and gifted lady was, notwithstanding, still deemed a
458 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
heretic, and doomed to undergo farther suffering. In a few days she
was sent from Newgate to the sign of the Crown, where Mr. Rich, and the
bishop of London, with all their power and flattering words, went about
to persuade her from God; but she did not esteem their glossing pre-
tences. After them either came or was sent one Nicholas Shaxton,
who counselled her to recant as others had done. She said to him, " It
had been good for you never to have been born;" with many other like
words, chiefly from Scripture. She was then sent to the Tower, where
she remained till three o'clock, when Rich came and one of the council,
charging her upon her obedience to show unto them if she knew any
man or woman of her sect. Her answer was, " I know none." Then
they asked her of lady Suffolk, lady Sussex, lady Hertford, lady Denny,
and lady Fitzwilliam. Of whom she answered, " If I should pro-
nounce any thing against them, that I were not able to prove it." Then
said they unto her, " The king is informed that you could name, if you
would, a great number of your sect." She answered, That the king was
as well deceived in that behalf, as he was dissembled with by them in
other matters.
Then they commanded her to shew how she was maintained in the
prison, and who willed her to stick to her opinion. She answered that
there was no creature that therein did strengthen her. And as for the
help that she had in the Compter, it was by the means of her maid. For
as she went abroad in the streets, she told her case to the apprentices,
and they by her did send her money, but who they were she never knew.
On this they said, That there were several ladies that had sent her
money. She answered, That there was a man who delivered her ten
shillings, and said that my lady of Hertford sent it her; and another
gave her eight shillings, and said my lady Denny sent it her. Whether
it were true or no she could not tell, for she was not sure who
sent it her, but as the maid did say. Then they said, " There are some
of the council who maintain you," which she strictly denied.
Then did they put her on the rack, because she confessed no ladies
or gentlewomen to be of her opinion, and thereon they kept her a long
time, and because she lay still and did not cry, the lord chancellor and
Mr. Rich took pains to rack her with their own hands till she was nigh
dead — an instance of unusual cruelty even for that age. The lieutenant
then caused her to be loosed from the rack, when she immediately
swooned, and then recovered again. After that she sat two hours rea-
soning with the lord chancellor upon the bare floor, where he with many
flattering words persuaded her to leave her opinion; but her Lord God,
thanks to his everlasting goodness gave her grace to persevere. Then
she was brought to a house and laid on a bed, with as weary and
painful bones as ever had patient Job, yet expressing her thanks to God.
Then the lord chancellor sent her word, if she would leave her opinion
she should want for nothing; if she would not, she should forthwith to
Newgate, and so be burned. She sent him again word, that she would
rather die than break her faith — praying that God would open his eyes,
that the truth might take place.
Touching the order of her racking in the Tower, thus it was: first,
she was led down into a dungeon, where Sir Anthony Knevet, the lieu-
ANNE ASKEW'S ANSWERS. 459
tenant, commanded his gaoler to pinch her with the rack: which being
done st) muofa as he thought sufficient, he went about to take her down,
supposing that lie had done enough. But Wriothesley, the chancellor,
displeased that she was loosed so soon, confessing nothing, commanded
the lieutenant to strain her on the rack again, which because he refused
to do, tendering the weakness of the woman, he was threatened, the
chancellor saying, that he would signify his disobedience unto the king;
and so consequently, he and Mr. Rich, throwing off their gowns, would
needs play the tormentors themselves, first asking her, if she were with
child ; to whom she answering again, said, " Ye shall not need to spare
for that, but do your wills upon me;" and so quietly and patiently pray-
ing unto the Lord, she abode their tyranny, till her bones and joints
were almost plucked asunder, so that she was carried away in a chair.
When the racking was past, Wriothesley and his fellow left.
Meantime, while they were making their way by land, the good lieu-
tenant, eftsoons taking boat, sped him to the court in all haste to speak
with the king before the other ; who there making his humble suit to the
king, desired his pardon, and showed him the whole matter as it stood,
and of the racking of Mrs. Askew ; and that he was threatened by the
lord chancellor, because at his commandment, not knowing his high-
ness's-pleasure, he refused to rack her, which he for compassion could
not find in his heart to do, and therefore desired his highness's pardon.
This when the king had understood, he seemed not very well to like
their so extreme handling the woman, and also granted to the lieutenant
his pardon, willing him to return and see to his charge. There was
great expectation in the mean season among the warders and officers
of the Tower, waiting for his return. When they saw him come so
cheerfully, declaring unto them how he had sped with the king, they
were not a little joyous, and gave thanks to God therefore — a proof this
that persecution was more in favour with the higher than the lower
officers. The following is a letter from Mrs. Askew to a fellow martyr,
in answer to one which he had written to her : his name was John Lacel.
" O friend, most dearly beloved in God ! I marvel not a little what
should move you to judge me in so slender a faith as to fear death, which
is the end of all misery. In the Lord, I desire you not to believe of me
such weakness ; for I doubt it not, that God will perform his. work in
me, like as he hath begun. I understand the council is not a little dis-
pleased, that it should be reported abroad that I was racked in the
Tower. They say now, that what they did there was but to fear me;
whereby I perceive they are ashamed of their uncomely doings, and fear
much lest the king's majesty should have information thereof, wherefore
they would no man to noise it. Well, their cruelty God forgive them."
She was falsely accused of beginning to recant, and she thus answered
the accusation.
" I have read the process which is reported of them that know not
the truth, to be my recantation. But, as the Lord liveth, I never meant
a thing less than to recant. Notwithstanding this I confess, that in my
first troubles, I was examined by the bishop of London about the sacra-
ment. Yet had they no grant of my mouth but this, that I believed
therein as the word of God did bind me to believe. More had they
460 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
never of me. Then he made a copy, which is now in print, and required
me to set thereunto my hand; but I refused it. Then my two sureties
did will me in no wise to stick thereat, for it was no great matters,
they said. Then with much ado, at the last I wrote thus: — I, Anne
Askew, do believe this, if God's word do agree to the same, and the
true catholic church. Then the bishop being in great displeasure with
me, because I made doubts in my writing, commanded me to prison,
where I was awhile, but afterwards by the means of friends I came out
again. Here is the truth of that matter; and as concerning the thing
that ye covet most to know, resort to the sixth of John, and be ruled
always thereby. Thus fare ye well."
The reader has already seen a brief confession of this pious woman's
faith, and will delight in perusing an enlargement of the same.
" I, Anne Askew, of good memory, although my merciful Father hath
given me the bread of adversity, and the water of trouble, yet not so
much as my sins have deserved, do confess myself here a sinner before
the throne of his heavenly majesty, desiring his forgiveness and mercy.
And for so much as I am by the law unrighteously condemned for an
evil doer, concerning opinions, I take the same most merciful God of
mine, which hath made both heaven and earth, to record, that I hold
no opinions contrary to his most holy word; and I trust in my merciful
Lord, who is the giver of all grace, that he will graciously assist me
against all evil opinions which are contrary to his blessed verity; for I
take him to witness that I have done, and will,unto my life's end, utterly
abhor them to the uttermost of my power.
" But this is the heresy which they report me to hold, that after the
priest hath spoken the words of consecration, there remaineth bread
still. They both say, and also teach it for a necessary article of faith,
that after these words be once spoken, there remaineth no bread, but
even the self-same body that hung upon the cross on Good Friday, both
flesh, blood, and bone. To this belief of theirs say I, nay. For then
were our common creed false, which saith, that he sitteth on the right
hand of God the Father Almighty, and from thence shall come to judge
the quick and the dead. Lo, this is the heresy that I hold, and for it
must suffer the death. But as touching the holy and blessed supper of
the Lord,, I believe it to be a most necessary remembrance of his glori-
ous sufferings and death. Moreover, I believe as much therein as my
eternal and only Redeemer Jesus Christ would I should believe.
" Finally, I believe all those scriptures to be true, which he hath con-
firmed with his most precious blood; yea, and as St. Paul saith, those
scriptures are sufficient for our learning and salvation, that Christ hath
left here with us: so that, I believe, we need no unwritten verities to
rule his church with. Therefore look what he hath said unto me with
his own mouth in his holy gospel that I have with God's grace closed
up in my heart, and my full trust is, as David saith that it shall be a
lantern to my footsteps. There be some that say I deny the eucharist,
or sacrament of thanksgiving; but those people untruly report of me,
for I both say and believe it, that if it were ordered as Christ instituted
it and left it, a most singular comfort it were unto us all. But as con-
cerning your mass as it is now used in our days, I say and believe it to
MARTYRDOM OF ANN r. ASKEW AM) OTHERS. 461
be the most abominable idol that is in the world. For my God will not be
eaten with teeth, neither yet dieth he again ; and upon these words that
I have now spoken, will I suffer death." To this confession she added
a prayer.
" O Lord, I have more enemies now than there be hairs on my head;
yet Lord, let them never overcome me with vain words, but fight thou
Lord in my stead, for on thee cast I my care. With all the spite they
can imagine, they fall upon me who am thy poor creature. Yet, sweet
Lord, let me not set by them which are against me, for in thee is my
whole delight; and, Lord, I heartily desire of thee, that thou wilt of
thy most merciful goodness forgive them that violence which they do
and have done unto me. Open also thou their blind hearts, that they
may hereafter do that thing in thy sight, which is only acceptable before
thee, and to set forth thy verity aright, without any vain fantasy of sinful
men. So be it, O Lord, so be it."
After tLes^ refreshing things we are better prepared to speak concern-
ing her martyrdom. Being born of such stock and kindred as would
have enabled her to live in great wealth and prosperity, if she had
chosen rather to have followed the world than Christ, she now had been so
tormented, that she could neither live long in such great distress, nor
yet by her adversaries be suffered to die in secret; the day of her exe-
cution being appointed, she was brought to Smithfield in a chair,
because she could not walk, from the cruel effects of the torments.
When she was brought to the stake, she was fastened to it by the
middle with a chain that held up her body. Three others were brought
to suffer with her, and for the same offence; these were, Nicholas
Belenian, a priest of Shropshire; John Adams, a tailor; and John
Lacel, gentleman of the court and household of king Henry. The
martyrs being chained to the stake, and all things ready for the fire,
Dr. Shaxton, then appointed to preach, began his sermon. Anne Askew
hearing and answering him, where he said well, she approved; where he
said amiss, expressing firmly her dissent, saying, " He speaketh without
the book."
The sermon being finished, the martyrs, standing at three several
stakes ready to their martyrdom, began their prayers. The multitude
of the people was exceeding great, the place where they stood being
railed about to keep out the press. Upon the bench, under St. Bar-
tholomew's church, sat Wriothesley, the chancellor of England, the
old duke of Norfolk, the old earl of Bedford, the lord mayor, with
divers others. Before the fire was kindled, one of the bench hearing
that they had gunpowder about them, and being afraid lest the fagots,
by strength of the gunpowder, would come flying about their ears,
began to be afraid; but the earl of Bedford observing how the gun-
powder was not laid under the fagots, but only about their bodies to rid
them of their pain, which having vent, there was no danger to them, so
diminished that fear.
Then the lord chancellor sent to Anne Askew, offering to her the
king's pardon if she would recant: a letter said to be written by the
king was put into her hand ; but she, refusing once to look upon it,
made this answer again, "I came not hither to deny my Lord and
462 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
master." Then were letters likewise offered unto the others, who in like
manner, following the constancy of the woman, denied not only to
receive them, but also to look upon them, continuing to cheer and
exhort each other by the end of their sufferings, and the glory they
were about to enter ; whereupon the lord mayor, commanding fire to be
put to them, cried with a loud voice, "fiat justitia." Thus were these
blessed martyrs compassed in with flames of fire, as holy sacrifices unto
God and his truth. There is a letter extant, which John Lacel briefly
wrote in prison respecting the sacrament of Christ's body and blood,
wherein he confutes the error of them, who, not being contented with
the spiritual receiving of the sacrament, will leave no substance of bread
therein, and also the sinister interpretation of many thereupon.
These events were so many triumphs to the popish party, who, stimu-
lated by fresh hopes, sought to complete the victory they anticipated by
an important scheme. This was the ruin of Cranmer and the queen,
whom they considered the greatest barriers to their aims. They per-
suaded the king that Cranmer was the source of all the heresies in
England; but Henry's esteem for him was such, that none would
come in against him ; they therefore desired that he might at least be
put in the Tower, as a place of safeguard, and then it would appear
how many would inform against him. The king seemed to approve this
plan, and they resolved to execute it the next day: but in the night the
king relented, and he sent for Cranmer, and told him what was resolved
concerning him. Cranmer thanked the king for giving him notice of it,
and not leaving him to be surprised. He submitted to it, only desiring
he might be heard in answer for himself; and that he might have im-
partial judges, competent to decide. Henry wondered to see him so
little concerned in his own preservation : and told him, since he took
so little care of himself, that he must take care of him. He therefore
gave him instructions to appear before the council, and to desire to see
his accusers before he should be sent to the Tower ; and that he might
be used by them, as they would desire to be used in a similar case; and,
if he could not prevail by the force of reason, then he was to appeal to
the king in person, and was to shew the royal seal ring, which he took
from his finger and gave him, which they would know so well that they
would do nothing after they once saw it. Accordingly, on being
summoned next morning, he came over to Whitehall; there he was
detained with great insolence in the lobby before he was called into
the council chamber : but when that was done, and he had observed the
method the king had directed him to use, and at last shewed the ring,
they all rose in great confusion and went to the king. He upbraided
them severely for what they had done, and expressed his esteem and
kindness to Cranmer in such terms that his enemies were glad to get off,
by pretending that they had no other design but that of having his inno-
cence declared by a public trial. From this vain attempt they were so
convinced of the king's unalterable favour to him, that they forbore any
further designs against him.
But what they durst not do in relation to Cranmer, they thought
might be more safely tried against the queen, who was known to love
the new learning, as the reformation was now called. She used to have
Till: QUEEN'S ARGUMENTS. 463
sermons in her privy chamber, which could not be so secretly carried,
but that it came to the knowledge of her royal spouse; yet her conduct
in all other things was so exact, and she expressed such a tender care of
the king's person, that it was observed she had gained much upon him;
while his peevishness growing with his distempers, made him sometimes
impatient even to her. They used often to talk of matters of religion,
and sometimes she held the argument for the reformers so strenuously,
that he was offended at it; yet as soon as that appeared she let it fall.
But once the debate continuing long, the king expressed his displeasure
at it to Gardiner, when she went away. The crafty bishop took this
opportunity to persuade the king that she was a great cherisher of
heretics. The chancellor joined with him in the same artifice, and
filled the angry king with stories, insomuch that he signed the articles
upon which she was to be impeached. The chancellor, however, letting
the paper fall from him carelessly, it happened to be taken up by one
of the queen's friends, who carried it to her. The night following after
su pper, she was waited upon only by lady Herbert, her sister, and lady Lane,
who carried the candle before her, unto the king's bedchamber, whom
she found sitting and talking with certain gentlemen of his chamber.
Henry very courteously welcomed her, and breaking off the talk with
the gentlemen, began of himself, contrary to his manner before ac-
customed, to enter into talk of religion, seeming as it were desirous to
be resolved by the queen of certain doubts which he propounded.
The queen perceiving to what purpose this talk did tend, not being
unprovided how to behave herself towards the king, resolved his ques-
tions as the time and opportunity allowed. With a mild and reverent
countenance she answered his inquiries thus — "Your majesty doth right
well know, neither I myself am ignorant, what great imperfection and
weakness by our first creation is allotted unto us women, to be ordained
and appointed as inferior, and subject unto man as our head, from which
head all our direction ought to proceed; and that as God made man to
his own shape and likeness, whereby he, being endued with more special
gifts of perfection, might rather be stirred to the contemplation of
heavenly things, and to the earnest endeavour to obey his command-
ments, even so also made he woman of man, of whom, and by whom,
she is to be governed, commanded, and directed. Her womanly weak-
ness and natural imperfection ought to be tolerated, aided and borne
withal, so that by his wisdom such things as be lacking in her ought to
be supplied. Since then God hath appointed such a natural difference
between man and woman, and your majesty being so excellent in gifts
and ornaments of wisdom, and I so much inferior in all respects of
nature unto you, how then cometh it now to pass that your majesty,
in such diffuse causes of religion, will seem to require my judgment?
which, when I have uttered and said what I can, yet must I, and will I,
refer my judgment in this, and in all other cases to your majesty's
wisdom, as my only anchor, supreme head and governor here on earth,
next under God to lean unto."
"Not so, by St. Mary," quoth the king; "you are become a doctor,
Kate, to instruct us, and not to be instructed or directed by us."
" If your majesty take it so," replied the queen, "then hath your
464 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
majesty very much mistaken me, who have ever been of the opinion to
think it very unseemly, and preposterous, for the woman to take upon
her the office of an instructor or teacher to her lord and husband ; but
rather to learn of her husband, and to be taught by him. And whereas I
have with your majesty's leave heretofore been bold to hold talk with
your majesty, wherein sometimes in opinions there hath seemed some
difference, I have not done it so much to maintain opinion, as I did it
rather to minister talk, not only to the end your majesty might with less
grief pass over this painful time of your infirmity, being intentive to our
talk, and hoping that your majesty should reap some ease thereby; but
also that I, hearing your majesty's learned discourse might receive to
myself some profit thereby; wherein, I assure your majesty, I have not
missed any part of my desire in that behalf, always referring myself in
all such matters unto your majesty, as by ordinance of nature it is con-
venient for me to do."
"And is it even so, sweetheart?" quoth the king, " and tended your
arguments to no worse end? Then perfect friends we are now again, as
ever at any time heretofore. " And as he sat in his chair, embracing her
in his arms, and kissing her, he added this, saying, that it did him more
good at that time to hear those words of her own mouth, than if he had
heard present news of a hundred thousand pounds in money fallen unto
him; and with' great signs and tokens of marvellous joy and liking, with
promises and assurances never again in any sort more to mistake her,
entering into other very pleasant discourses with the queen and the lords,
and gentlemen standing by, about midnight he gave her leave to depart;
and in her absence to the standers by, he gave as singular and affec-
tionate commendations, as before to the bishop and the chancellor —
who then were neither of them present — he seemed to mislike of her.
The day, and almost the hour appointed being come, the king being-
disposed in the afternoon to take the air, waited upon by two gentlemen
only of his bedchamber, went into the garden, whither the queen also
came, being sent for by the king himself, the three ladies above named
waiting upon her. Henry seemed at that time disposed to be as pleasant as
ever he was in all his life before : when suddenly in the midst of their mirth
came the lord chancellor into the garden with forty of the king's guards
at his heels, intending to have taken the queen, together with the three
ladies, even then unto the Tower. The king sternly beholding them,
broke off his mirth with the queen, and stepping a little aside, called
the chancellor unto him, who upon his knees spake unto the king, but
what they were, on account of their whispering and distance, is not well
known : but it is most certain that the king's reply unto him was,
" Knave, yea, arrant knave, beast, and fool;" and then commanded
him presently to avaunt out of his presence. These words, although
they were uttered somewhat low, yet were they so vehemently whispered
out by the king, that the queen and her ladies overheard them, which
would have been not a little to her comfort, if she had known at that
time the whole cause of his coming, so perfectly as after she knew it.
Thus departed the lord chancellor out of the king's presence as he
came, with all his train, the whole mould of his device being utterly
broken.
FALL OF THE DUKE OF NORFOLK. 465
The king immediately returned to the queen, who perceived him to be
very much chafed : then, with as sweet words as she could utter, she en-
deavoured to pacify his displeasure, with request unto his majesty in behalf
of the lord chancellor, with whom he seemed to be offended ; saying-,
"Albeit I know not what just cause your majesty had at that time to be
offended with him, yet I think that ignorance, not will, was the cause of
his error ;" and so besought his majesty for him. "Ah, poor soul," quoth
he, " thou little knowest how ill he deserveth this grace at thy hands. On
my word, sweetheart, he hath been towards thee an arrant knave, and so
let him go." To this the queen, in charitable manner replying in few
words, ended that talk. Thus the design against her vanished ; and
Gardiner, who had set it on, lost the king's favour entirely by it.
Now the tall of the duke of Norfolk, and his son, the earl of Surrey,
came 'on. The father had been long treasurer, and served the king with
great fidelity and success ; his son was a man of rare qualities, and more
than ordinarily learned. He hated the earl of Hertford, and scorned
an alliance with him, which his father had projected. The Seymours
also were apprehensive of the opposition they might meet with, if the
king should die, from the earl of Surrey, who was very haughty, had a
vast fortune, and was the head of the popish party. The duke's family
was also fatally divided; his duchess had been separated from him about
four years, and now turned informer against him. His daughter also
hated her brother. Mrs. Holland, a mistress of the duke, also betrayed
him, and discovered all she could ; , yet all amounted to no more than
some complaints of the father's, who thought the services he had done
the crown were little regarded, and some threatenings of the son's. It
was also said, that the father gave the coat of arms that belonged to the
prince of Wales, and the son gave Edward the Confessor's coat. One
Southwell objected things of a higher nature to the earl of Surrey; he
denied them, and desired that, according to the martial law, they might
have a trial by combat: but that was not granted; yet both father and
son were sent to the Tower. The earl was tried by a jury of commoners,
found guilty of treason, and executed. He was much lamented by his
party, who threw the blame of his death on the Seymours, against whom
they raised a general odium. The old duke saw a parliament called to
destroy him by an act of attainder, for there was not matter enough to
ruin him at common law. To prevent that, he made a very humble
submission to the king; but it had no effect.
When the parliament met, the king was not able to come to West-
minster, but sent his pleasure to them by a commission. He intended
to have his son Edward crowned prince of Wales, and therefore desired
they would make all possible haste in the attainder of the duke of Norfolk,
so that the places which he held by patent might be disposed of to others,
who should assist at the coronation; which, though it was a very slight
excuse for so high a piece of injustice, yet it had such an effect that in
seven days both houses passed the bill. On the 27th of January, the royal
assent was given by those commissioned by the king; and the execution
was ordered to be next morning. There was no special matter in the
act, but that of the coat of arms, which he and his ancestors were used
to give, according to the records in the herald's office; so that this was
2 H
466 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
condemned as a most inexcusable act of tyranny. But the night after,
the king died ; and it was thought contrary to the decencies of govern-
ment, to begin a new reign with such an act, and so he was preserved.
Cranmer would not interfere in this matter, but that he might be out of
the way, retired to Croydon; whereas Gardiner, who had been friendly
to the duke all along, continued still about the court.
The king's distemper had been growing long upon him. He was
become so corpulent that he could not go up and down stairs, but made
use of an engine, when he intended to walk in his garden, by which he
was let down and drawn up. He had an old wound in his leg, which
pained him much, the humours of his body discharging themselves that
way, till at last all settled in a dropsy. Those about him were afraid to
let him know that his death seemed near, lest it might have been brought
within the statute of foretelling his death, which was made treason. His
will was made ready, and as it was given out, was signed by him on the
30th of December. He ordered Gardiner's name to be struck out, who
had been named one of the executors. When Sir Anthony Brown
endeavoured to persuade him not to put that disgrace on an old servant,
he continued positive in it; for he said he knew his temper, and could
govern him; but it would not be in the power of others to do it, if he
were put in so high a trust. The most material thing in the will was,
that of preferring the children of his second sister, by Sir Charles
Brandon, to the children of his eldest sister, the queen of Scotland, in
the succession to the crown. On his death-bed he finished the foundation
of Trinity-college, in Cambridge, and of Christ's-church hospital, near
Newgate; but this last was not so fully settled as was needful, till his
son completed what he had begun.
On the 27th of January his spirits sunk so that it was visible he had
not long to live. Sir Anthony Denny took the courage to tell him that
death was approaching, and desired him to call on God for his mercy.
He expressed in general his sorrow for his past sins, and his trust in the
mercies of God in Christ Jesus. He ordered Cranmer to be sent for,
but he was speechless before he could be brought from Croydon ; yet
he gave a sign that he understood what was said to him, and soon after
he died, in the fifty-seventh year of his age, after he had reigned thirty-
seven years and nine months. His death was concealed three days; for
the parliament, which was dissolved with his last breath, continued to
do business till the 31st, when his death was published. It is probable
the Seymours concealed it so long, till they made a party for putting
the government into their own hands.
The severities which Henry used against many of his subjects, in
matters of religion, made both sides write with great sharpness of him.
His temper was imperious and cruel; he was both sudden and violent in
his revenge, and stuck at nothing by which he could gratify his passions.
These were much provoked by the sentence the pope thundered against
him, by the virulent books cardinal Pole and others published, by the
rebellions that were raised in England, and the apprehensions he was in
of the emperor's greatness, and of the inclinations his people had to
join with him, together with what he had read in history of the fates of
those princes, against whom popes had thundered in former times: these
SEVERITIES OF HENRY VIII. 4G7
considerations made him think it necessary to keep his people under the
terror of a severe government, and by some public examples to secure
the peace of the nation, and thereby to prevent a more profuse effusion
of blood, which might have otherwise followed if he had been more
gentle; and it was no wonder, if after the pope deposed him, he pro-
ceeded to great severities against all who supported that authority.
The first instance of capital proceeding upon that account, was in
Easter term 1535, in which three priors and a monk of the Carthusian
order were condemned of treason, for saying that the king was not
supreme head of the church of England. It was then only premunire
not to submit to the king's supremacy; but it was made treason to deny
it, or speak against it. Hall, a secular priest, was condemned of
treason, " for calling the king a tyrant, a heretic, a robber, and an
adulterer; and saying that he would die as king John or Richard III.
died; and that it would never be well with the church till the king was
defunct : that they looked w T hen Ireland and Wales would rise ; and
were assured that three parts of four in England would join with them."
All these pleaded not guilty; but being condemned they justified what
they had said. The Carthusians were hanged in their habits. Soon
after three other Carthusians were condemned and executed at London,
and two more at York, upon the same account, for opposing the king's
supremacy. Ten other monks were shut up in their cells, of whom nine
died there, and one was condemned and hanged. These had been all
accomplices in the business of the maid of Kent, and though that was
pardoned, yet it gave the government ground to have a watchful eye
over them, and to proceed more severely against them upon the first
provocation.
After these Fisher and More were brought to their trials. The first
was tried by a jury of commoners, and was found guilty of treason, for
having spoken against the king's supremacy; but instead of the common
death in cases of treason, the king ordered him to be beheaded. On
the 22nd of June he suffered. He dressed himself with more than
ordinary care that day, for he said it was to be his wedding day.
As he was led out, he opened the New Testament at a venture, and
prayed that such a place might turn up as would comfort him in
his last moments. The words on which he cast his eyes were, "This
is life eternal, to know thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ
whom thou hast sent." So he shut the book, and continued me-
ditating on these words to the last. On the scaffold he repeated the
Te Deum, and so laid his head on the block, which was severed from
his body. He was learned and devout; but much addicted to super-
stition, and too cruel in his temper against heretics.
It was harder to find matter against Sir Thomas More, for he was very
cautious, and satisfied his own conscience by not swearing to the
supremacy, but would not speak against it. He said the act had two
eda;es, if he consented to it, it would damn his soul, and if he spoke
against it, it would condemn his body, and that the matter of supremacy
was a point of religion, to which the parliament's authority did not
extend itself. He received his sentence with that equal temper of mind
which he had shewed in both conditions of life. He expressed great
468 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
contempt of the world, and much weariness in living in it. He was
beheaded on the 6th of July, in the fifty-second or fifty-third year of
his age. In his youth he had freer thoughts, but he was afterwards
much corrupted by superstition, and became fierce for all the interests
of the clergy. His learning in divinity was but ordinary; for he had
read little more than some of St. Austin's treatises, and the canon law,
and the master of the sentences, beyond which his quotations seldom go.
There were no executions after these, till the rebellions of Lincoln-
shire and Yorkshire gave new occasions to severity ; and then not only
the lords of Darcy and Hussy, but six abbots, and many gentlemen,
the chief of whom was Sir Thomas Percy, brother to the Earl of
Northumberland, were attainted. When these judgments and executions
were over, a new and unheard-of precedent was made, of attainting
some without bringing them to make their answers, which is a blemish
on this reign that can never be washed off, and was a breach of the most
sacred and unalterable rules of justice.
In the year 1541, five priests, and ten laymen, stirred up the people
in the North to a new rebellion; but it was prevented, and they suffered
for it. In the year 1543, the bishop of Winchester's secretary, and
three other priests, were condemned and executed, for denying the
king's supremacy : and this was the last occasion given to the king to
shew his severity on that account. In all these executions it cannot be
denied but the laws were excessively severe, and the proceedings upon
them never tempered with that mildness which ought to be often applied
for the mitigating the rigour of penal statutes; but though they are much
aggravated by popish writers, they were trifling, compared with the
cruelties in Queen Mary's reign.
Before we leave the martyrdoms of this reign, justice to the memory
of two good men in humble life, who have been passed over in their
proper place, requires that some record be preserved in this work of
their sufferings. Their names were Bent and Trapnell, and they
suffered shortly after the heroic Thomas Bilney. They were Wiltshire
men; and, as one suffered at Devizes and the other at Bradford in that
county, it is likely they were born where they were martyred. Their
offence was a resolute denial of the doctrine of transubstantiation.
A curious incident follows in the order of time. In the year 1532,
there was an idol named the Rood of Dover-court, whereunto was con-
tinually a great resort of people. For at that time there was a great
rumour abroad amongst the ignorant, that the power of the idol of
Dover-court was so great, that no man could shut the church-door
where he stood; and therefore they let the door, both night and day,
continually stand open, to give more credit to their blind rumour. This
once being conceived in the heads of the vulgar sort, seemed a great
miracle unto many; but to others again, whom God had blessed with
his Spirit, was greatly suspected, especially to those whose names
follow: Robert King of Dedham, Robert Debnam of Eastbergholt,
Nicholas Marsh of Dedham, and Robert Gardiner of Dedham, whose
consciences were burthened to see the honour and power of the Almighty
God so blasphemed Wherefore they were moved by the spirit of God
to travel out of Dedham in a night suitable to their purpose, it being a
MARTYRDOM OF KING AND OTHERS. 469
hard frost, and moonlight, although the nights before were exceeding
foul and rainy. It was from the town of Dedham, to the place where
the Rood stood, ten miles. Notwithstanding, they were so willing in
that their enterprize, that they went this distance without pain, and
found the church-door open according to the blind talk of the igno-
rant people: for there durst no unfaithful body shut it. This hap-
pened well for their purpose; for they found the idol, which had as
much power to keep the door shut as to keep it open. And for proof
thereof, they took the image from its shrine, and carried it a quarter of
a mile from the place where it stood, without any resistance from itself
or any of its devotees. Whereupon they struck fire with a flint-stone,
and suddenly set the idol on a blaze, who burned out so brightly that
he lighted them homeward one good mile of the ten.
This done, there went a great talk abroad that they should have
great riches in that place ; but it was very untrue ; for it was not their
thought or enterprize, as they themselves afterwards confessed, for
there was nothing taken away but the coat, the shoes, and the tapers
of the image. The tapers they used to burn him, the shoes they had
again, and the coat one sir Thomas Rose burnt, but they had neither
penny, halfpenny, gold, groat, nor jewel. However they could not
hope to be deemed innocent, and soon three of them were indicted of
felony, and hanged in chains within half-a-year after. Robert King
was hanged in Dedham at Burchet; Robert Debnam at Cataway-
cawsey; and Nicholas Marsh at Dover-court. They all, through the
Spirit of God at their death, did more edify the people in godly learn-
ing, than all the sermons that had been preached there a long time
before. Robert Gardiner escaped their hands and fled. Although
great search was made after him, the Lord preserved him; to whom be
all honour and glory, world without end. The example of these reso-
lute men was followed in other instances. The same year there were
many images cast down and destroyed in many places : as the image
of the crucifix in the highway of Cogshal, the image of St. Petronil in
the church of great Horksleigh, the image of St. Christopher by Sud-
bury, and another image of St. Petronil in a chapel at Ipswich. The
most remarkable act was that of John Seward of Dedham, who over-
threw the cross in Stoke-park, and took two images out of a chapel in
the park, and cast them into the water. He however escaped the
punishment threatened against such desperate heretics.
We proceed to Exeter, honoured by the martyrdom of Thomas
Benet, who was born in Cambridge, and by order of degree of the
university there made M. A. He was formerly a priest, a man well
learned and of a godly disposition, intimately acquainted with Thomas
Bilney, the glorious martyr of Christ. The more he increased in the
knowledge of God and his holy word, the more he disliked the corrupt
state of religion then used ; and therefore thinking his own country to
be no safe place for him to remain in, and being desirous to live in
more freedom of conscience, he quitted the university, and went into
Devonshire, in the year 1524, and resided at Torrington, a market-town,
both town and country being to him altogether unknown, as he was
also unknown to all men there. There, for the better maintenance of
470 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
himself and his wife, he taught young children, and kept a school for
the purpose. But that town not serving his expectation, after his
abode there one year, he removed to the city of Exeter, and hiring a
house resumed his teaching, and by that means maintained his wife
and family. He was of a quiet behaviour, of a godly conversation,
and of a very courteous nature, humble to all men, and offensive to
none. His greatest delight was to be at all sermons and preachings,
whereof he was a diligent and attentive hearer, and he devoted all his
leisure to the study of the Scriptures, having no dealings nor confer-
ences with any body, saving with such as he could learn and under-
stand to be favourers of the gospel. Understanding that William Strowd,
of Newnham, in the county of Devon, Esq. was committed to the
bishop's prison in Exeter upon suspicion of heresy, although he was
not before acquainted with him, yet did he send letters of consolation
to him. In one of these letters, to avoid all suspicion which might be
conceived of him, he disclosed himself, and said — " Because I would
not be a whoremonger, or an unclean person, I married a wife, with
whom I have hidden myself in Devonshire, from the tyranny of the
antichristians these six years."
But as every tree and herb hath its due time to bring forth its fruit,
so did it appear by this man. For daily seeing the glory of God to be
so blasphemed, idolatrous religion so embraced and maintained, and
the usurped power of the bishop of Rome so extolled, he was so grieved
in conscience, and troubled in spirit, that he could not be quiet till he
uttered his mind therein. Wherefore dealing privately with certain of
his friends, he plainly disclosed how blasphemously and abominably
God was dishonoured, his word contemned, and the people, by blind
guides, carried headlong to everlasting damnation. In fact he could
no longer endure, but must needs utter their abominations publicly,
and for his own part, for the testimony of his conscience, and for the
defence of God's true religion, would yield himself most patiently, as
God would give him grace, to die and shed his blood therein; alleging
that his death should be more profitable to the church of God, and for
the edifying of his people, than his life should be. To whose per-
suasions when his friends had yielded, they promised to pray to God
for him, that he might be strong in the cause, and continue a faithful
soldier to the end. This done, he gave order for bestowing of such
books as he had, and shortly after, in the month of October, he wrote
his mind in certain scrolls of paper, which privately he affixed upon the
doors of the cathedral church of the city, in which was written — "The
pope is antichrist, and we ought to worship God only, and no saints."
These bills being found, there was no small ado, and no little search
made for the heretic who had set them up. Orders were given that the
doctors should haste to the pulpit every day, and confute this heresy.
Nevertheless, Benet keeping his own doings in secret, went the Sunday
following to the cathedral church to the sermon, and by chance sate
down 'by two men, who had been the busiest in all the city in seeking
and searching for heretics ; and they beholding Benet, said the one to
the other, Surely this fellow is the heretic that hath set up the bills, and
it were good to examine him. Nevertheless when they had well beheld
EXCOMMUNICATION OF BENET. 471
him, and saw the quiet and sober behaviour of the man, his attentive-
ness to the preacher, his godliness in the church, being always occupied
in his book, which was a Testament in the Latin tongue, they were
astonished and had no power to speak to him, but departed and left
him reading his book. Meanwhile the canons and priests, with the
officers and commons of that city, were earnestly busied, by what means
such an enormous heretic might be espied and known ; but it was long
before they obtained a clue to the man. At last the priests found out a
toy to curse him, whatsoever he were, with book, bell, and candle;
which curse at that day, seemed most fearful and terrible. The manner
of the curse was after this sort.
One of the priests, apparelled in white, ascended the pulpit. The
other rabblement, with certain of the two orders of friars, and some
superstitious monks of St. Nicholas standing round about, and the cross
being holden up with holy candles of wax fixed to the same, he began
his sermon with this theme of Joshua: Est blasphemia in castris — there
is a curse in the camp. On this he made a long protestation, but not
so long as tedious and superstitious; and concluded, that the foul and
abominable heretic who had put up such a foul and blasphemous bill,
was for that his blasphemy damnably cursed, and besought God, our
lady, St. Peter, patron of that church, with all the holy company of
martyrs, confessors, and virgins, that it might be known what heretic
had done the accursed thing ! Then followed the curse, uttered by the
priest in these words: —
" By the authority of God the Father Almighty, and of the blessed
Virgin Mary, of St. Peter and Paul, and of the holy saints, we excom-
municate, we utterly curse and ban, commit and deliver to the devil of
hell, him or her, whatsoever he or she be, that have in spite of God
and of St. Peter, whose church this is, in spite of all holy saints, and
in spite of our most holy father the pope, God's vicar here on earth, and
in spite of the reverend father in God, John our diocesan, and the
worshipful canons, masters, and priests, and clerks, which serve God
daily in this cathedral church, fixed up with wax such cursed and here-
tical bill full of blasphemy, upon the doors of this and other holy
churches within this city. Excommunicate plainly be he or she
plenally, or they, and delivered over to the devil, as perpetual male-
factors and schismatics. Accursed may they be, and given body and
soul to the devil. Cursed be they, he or she, in cities and towns, in
fields, in ways, in paths, in houses, out of houses, and in all other
places, standing, lying, rising, walking, running, waking, sleeping,
eating, drinking, and whatsoever thing they do besides. We separate
them, him or herefrom the threshold, and from all the good prayers of
the church, from the participation of the holy mass, from all sacraments,
chapels, and altars, from holy bread and holy water, from all the merits
of God's priests, and religious men, and from all their cloisters, all their
pardons, privileges, grants, and immunities, which all the holy fathers,
popes of Rome, have granted to them. We give them over utterly to
the power of the fiend, and let us quench their souls, if they be dead,
this night in the pains of hell-fire, as this candle is now quenched and
put out — with that he put out one of the candles. And let us pray to
472 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
God, if they be alive, that their eyes may be put out, as this candle
light is — then he put out the other candle: and let us pray to God and
to our lady, and to St. Peter and Paul, and all holy saints, that all the
senses of their bodies may fail them, and that they may have no feeling,
as now the light of this candle is gone — putting out the third candle —
except they, he, or she, come openly now and confess their blasphemy,
and by repentance make satisfaction unto God, our lady, St. Peter, and
the worshipful company of this cathedral church; and this holy cross
staff now falleth down, so may they, except they repent and shew them-
selves." Here one first taking away the cross, the staff fell down : and
then what a shout and noise was there! what terrible fear! what holding
up hands to heaven, to hear this terrible denunciation !
This foolish fantasy and mockery being done and played, which was
to a Christian heart a thing ridiculous, JBenet could no longer forbear,
but fell into laughter within himself, and for a great space could not
cease, by the which thing the poor man was discovered. For those that
were next to him, wondering at that great curse, and believing that it
could not but light on one or the other, asked Benet, for what cause he
should so laugh. " My friends," said he, " who can forbear, hearing
such merry conceits and interludes ?" Straightway a noise was made,
"Here is the heretic! here is the heretic! Hold him fast! hold him
fast ! "
With that there was a great confusion of voices, and much clapping of
hands, and yet they were uncertain whether he were the heretic or not.
Some say that upon the same he was taken and apprehended. Others re-
port, that his enemies, being uncertain of him, departed, and so he went home
to his house; where, he, being not able to digest the lies there preached,
renewed his former bills, and caused his boy, early in the morning follow-
ing, to replace them upon the gates of the churchyard. As the boy was
performing his office at a gate, called "The Little Stile," it chanced that
one going to the cathedral to hear mass, called Barton's Mass, which was
daily said about five of the clock in the morning, found the boy at the
gate, and asking him whose boy he was, charged him to be the heretic
which had set the bills upon the gates; wherefore pulling them down,
he brought the same together with the boy before the mayor; and there-
upon Benet, being known and taken, was violently committed to
prison.
On the morrow began both the canons and heads of the city to fall
to examination, Benet for that day had not much communication with
them, but confessed and said to them, " It was even I that put up those
bills; and if it were to do, I would do it again; for in them I have
written nothing but that is very truth." " Couldst not thou," said they,
" as well have declared thy mind by word of mouth, as by putting up
bills of blasphemy?" " No," said he, " I put up the bills, that many
should read and hear what abominable blasphemers ye are, and that
they might the better know your antichrist, the pope, to be that boar
out of the woods, which throweth down the hedges of God's church;
for if I had been heard to speak but one word, I should have been
clapped fast in prison, and the matter of God hidden. But now I
trust more of your blasphemous doings will thereby be opened and
EXAMINATION OF BENET. 473
come to light; for God so will have it, and no longer will suffer you to
prostitute his service and truth unrebuked.
The next day he was sent unto the bishop, who first committed him to
prison, where he was kept in stocks and strong irons. Then the bishop
associating' unto him one Dr. Brewer his chancellor, and other of his
lewd clergy and friars, began to examine him and burthen him, that
contrary to the Catholic faith, he denied praying to saints, and the
supremacy of the pope. To this he answered in such sober manner, and
so learnedly proved and defended his assertions, that he did not only
confound and put to silence his adversaries, but also brought them in
great admiration of him, the most part having pity and compassion on
him. The friars took great pains with him to persuade him to recant
and acknowledge his fault, touching the bills; but it was in vain, for
God had manifestly appointed him to be a witness of his holy name.
To declare here with what cruelty the officers searched his house for
bills and books, how cruelly and shamefully they handled his wife,
charging her with divers enormities, it were too long to write. But
she, like a good woman, took all things patiently, as in other things
she was contented to bear the cross with him, to fare hardly with him
at home, and to live with coarse meat and drink, that they might be
the more able somewhat to help the poor, which they did to the utter-
most of their power. Among other priests, Gregory Basset was most
busy with him. Basset was learned, and had a pleasant tongue, and
not long before had fallen from the truth, for which he had been impri-
soned in Bristol; at whose examination there was provided and set before
him a great pan of fire, where his holy brethren, as the report went
abroad, menaced to burn his hands off: whereupon he recanted, and
became afterward a mortal enemy to the truth. He was fervent with
Benet, to please the canons of the church, and marvellously tormented
his brains how to turn him from his opinions, and was so diligent with
him that he would not depart the prison, but lay there night and day.
He, notwithstanding, lost his labour: for Benet made it a point of con-
science not to deny Christ before men, upon which Gregory, with the
other holy fathers, said in open audience, " There was never so obstinate
a heretic."
The principal point between Basset and him was touching the supre-
macy of the bishop of Rome, whom in his bills he named " Antichrist,
the thief, the mercenary, and murderer of Christ's flock." These dis-
putations lasted about eight days, during which at sundry times repaired
to him both the black and grey friars, with priests and monks of that
city. They who had some learning persuaded him to leave the church,
and shewed by what tokens she is known. The unlearned railed, and
said, that the devil tempted him, and spat upon him, calling him heretic :
while he prayed God to give them a better mind and to forgive them.
He boldly said, " I will rather die, than worship such a beast, the very
whore of Babylon, and a false usurper, as manifestly doth appear by
his doings." They asked, "What doth the pope that he has not au-
thority to do, being God's vicar?" "He doth," quoth he, "sell the
sacraments for money, he selleth remission of sins for money, and so
do you likewise: for there is no day but ye say divers masses for souls
474 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
in purgatory: yea, and ye spare not to make lying sermons to the
people, to maintain your false traditions and foul gains. The whole
world begins now to note your doings, to your utter confusion and
shame." " The shame," said they, '• shall be to thee, and such as
thee, foul heretic. Wilt thou allow nothing done in holy church?"
" I am," said he, "no heretic, but a Christian, I thank Christ, and with
all my heart will allow all things done and used in the church to the
glory of God, and edifying of my soul: but I see nothing in your
church, but what maintaineth the devil." "What is our church?"
said they. " It is not my church," quoth Benet; " God give me grace
to be of a better church, for verily your church is the church of anti-
christ, the malignant church, the false church, a den of thieves, and as
far wide from the true universal and apostolic church, as heaven is dis-
tant from the earth."
" Dost not thou think," said they, " that we pertain to the universal
church?" "Yes," quoth he, "but as dead members, unto whom the
church is not beneficial: for your works are the devices of men, and
your church a weak foundation; for ye say and preach, that the pope's
word is equal with God's in every degree." "Why," said they, "did
not Christ say to Peter, to thee I will give the keys of the kingdom of
Heaven?" " He said that," quoth he, " to all the apostles as well as
Peter, and Peter had no more authority given him than the rest, or else
the churches planted in every kingdom by their preaching are no
churches. Doth not St. Paul say, ' Upon the foundations of the
apostles and prophets?' Therefore I say plainly, that the church that
is built upon a man, is a man's church and not God's. And as every
church this day is appointed to be ruled by a bishop or pastor, ordained
by the word of God for preaching and administration of the sacraments
under the prince, the supreme governor under God; so, to say that all
the churches with their princes and governors be subject unto one bishop
is detestable heresy ; and the pope, your god, challenging this power to
himself, is the greatest schismatic that ever was in the church, and the
most foul whore ; of whom John, in the Revelation, speaketh."
" thou blind and unlearned fool," said they, " is not the confes-
sion and consent of all the world as we confess and consent; that the
pope's holiness is the supreme head and vicar of Christ?" " That is,"
said Benet, "because they are blinded and know not the scriptures:
but if God would of his mercy open the eyes of princes to know their
office, his false supremacy would soon decay." " We think," said they,
" thou art so malicious, that thou wilt confess no church." " Look,"
said he, " where they are that confess the true name of Jesus Christ,
where only Christ is the head, and under him the prince of the realm,
to order bishops, ministers, and preachers, and to see them do their
duties in setting forth the glory of God by preaching his word; and
where it is preached, that Christ is our only advocate, mediator, and
patron before his Father, making intercession for us; and where the
true faith and confidence in Christ's death and passion, and his only
merits and deservings are extolled, and our own depressed; where the
sacrament is duly without superstition or idolatry administered in re-
membrance of his blessed passion, and only sacrifice upon the cross
BENET AND THE FRIAR. 475
once for all, and where no superstition reigneth — of that church
will 1 be."
11 Doth not the pope," said they, " confess the true gospel? and do
not we all the same?" " Yes," said he, "but ye deny the fruits thereof
in every point. Ye build upon the sands, not upon the rock." " And
wilt thou not believe indeed," said they, "that the pope is God's
vicar?" "No," said he, "indeed! And that because he usurpeth a
power not given him of Christ, any more than to other apostles; also
because by force of that usurped supremacy, he blinds the whole world,
and doth contrary to all that ever Christ ordained or commanded."
" What," said they, " if he do all things after God's ordinance and
commandment should he then be his vicar?" " Then," said he, " would
I believe him to be a good bishop at Rome over his own diocese, but to
have no further power. And if it pleased God, I would every bishop
did this in his diocese: then should we live a peaceable life in the
church of Christ, and there should be no seditions therein. If every
bishop would seek no further power, it were a goodly thing. But now,
because all are subject to one, they must do and consent to all wicked-
ness as he doth, or be none of his. This is the cause of great super-
stition in every kingdom ; and what bishop soever he be that preacheth
the gospel, and maintaineth the truth, is a true bishop of the church."
" And doth not," said they, " our holy father the pope maintain the
gospel?" " Yea," said he, " I think he doth read it, and peradventure
believe it, and so do you also; but neither he nor you do fix the anchor
of your salvation therein. Besides that, ye bear such a good will to it,
that ye keep it close, and no man may read it but yourselves. And
when you preach, God knows how you handle it: insomuch, that the
people of Christ know no gospel but the pope's; and so the blind lead
the blind, and both fall into the pit. In the true gospel of Christ, confi-
dence is none; but only in your popish traditions and fantastical inventions."
Then said a black friar to him, (God knoweth, a blockhead,) " Do we
not preach the gospel daily?" "Yes," said he; " but what preaching of
the gospel is that when you extol superstitious things, and make us believe
that we have redemption through pardons and bulls from Rome, a 'poena
et culpa, as ye term it ; and by the merits of your orders ye make many
brethren and sisters, ye take yearly money of them, ye bury them in your
coats, and in shrift ye beguile them : yea, and do a thousand superstitious
things more; a man may be weary to speak of them." " I see," said the
friar, " thou art a damned wretch ; I will have no more talk with thee."
Then stepped to him a grey friar, a doctor, (God knoweth, of small
intelligence,) and laid before him great and many dangers. " I take
God to record," said Benet, " my life is not dear to me ; I am content to
depart from it, for I am weary of it, seeing your detestable doings, to the
utter destruction of God's flock ; and, for my part, I can no longer for-
bear. I had rather by death, which I know is not far off, depart this life,
that I may no longer be witness of your idolatries, or be subject to anti-
christ, your pope." " Our pope," said the friar, " is the vicar of God, and
our ways are the ways of God." " I pray you," said Benet, " depart
from me, and tell not me of your ways. He is my only way who saith, ' I am
the way, the truth, and the life.' In this way will I walk, his doings shall
476 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
be my example, not yours, nor your false pope's. His truth will I em-
brace ; not the lies and falsehood of you and your pope. His everlasting
life will I seek, the true reward of all faithful people. Away from me, I
pray you. Vex my soul no longer ; ye shall not prevail. There is no
good example in you, no truth in you, no life to be hoped for at your hands.
Ye are all more vain than vanity itself. If I should hear and follow you this
day, everlasting death would hang over me, a just reward for all them that
love the life of this world. Away from me: your company liketh me not."
Never was confessor more to be admired for wisdom and courage,
purity and truth, than this holy man. Well might such a mind and
conscience be wearied with the blasphemies of his subtle adversaries.
Yet did they continue to cast at him the venom of their poisoned
tongue, and the arrows of their bitter words — thus through a whole
week, night and day, was he harassed by these hypocrites. It were an
infinite matter to declare all things done and said to him in the time of
his imprisonment; and the hate of the people that time, by means of
ignorance, was hot against him: notwithstanding they could never move
his patience; he answered to every matter soberly, and that more by the
aid of God's Spirit than by any worldly study. He was at least fifty
years old. Being in prison, his wife provided sustenance for him;
and when she lamented, he comforted her, and gave her many godly
exhortations, praying her to move him not to apply to his adversaries for
the least favour.
His enemies at length, finding both their threats and their persuasions
equally useless, proceeded to judgment, and condemned him to the
flames ; which being done, and the writ which they had procured being
brought from London, they delivered him the fifteenth of January, 1531,
unto Sir Thomas Denis, knight, then sheriff of Devonshire, to be burn-
ed. The mild martyr rejoicing that his end approached so near, as the
sheep before the shearer, yielded himself, with all humbleness, to abide
and suffer the cross of persecution. Being brought to his execution, in
a place called Livery-dole, without Exeter, he made his humble confes-
sion and prayer unto Almighty God, and requested all the people to do
the like for him, exhorting them, at the same time, with such gravity
and sobriety, and with such an impressive oration, to seek the true
honouring of God, and the true knowledge of him; as also to leave
the imaginations of man's inventions, that all the hearers were asto-
nished and in great admiration: insomuch, that most of them, as alsp
the scribe who wrote the sentence of condemnation against him, con-
fessed that he was God's servant, and a good man.
Two esquires, namely, Thomas Carew and John Barnehouse, standing
at the stake by him, first with fair promises and goodly words, but at
length through threatenings, required him to revoke his errors, to call to
our lady and the saints, and to say, Precor sanctam Mariam, et omnes
sanctos Dei. To them he with all meekness, answered, saying, " No,
no; it is God only upon whose name we must call, and we have no
advocate with him but Jesus Christ, who died for us, and now sitteth at
the right hand of the Father to intercede for us. By him must we offer
and make our prayers to God, if we will have them to take place and
be heard." With this answer Barnehouse was so enraged, that he took
BURNING OF BENET. 477
a furze-bush upon a pike, and setting it on tire, thrust it into his face,
saying, " Heretic, pray to our Lady, and say, Sancta Maria, ora pro nobis,
or by God's wounds I will make thee do it." To whom the said Thomas
Benet, with an humble and a meek spirit, most patiently answered, "Alas,
sir! trouble me not." And holding up his hands, he said, Pater! ignosce
Mis. Whereupon the gentlemen caused the wood and furze to be set on
fire, and therewith this godly man lifted up his eyes and hands to heaven,
saying, O Do mine ! recipe spiritum meum. And so, continuing in his
prayers, most patiently abode the cruelty of the fire, until his life was
ended. For this the Lord God be praised, and send us his grace and
blessing, that at the latter day we may with him enjoy the bliss and joy
prepared for the elect children of God. At his burning, such was the rage
of the blind people, that well was he that could cast a stick into the fire.
In the year 151 1, a severe persecution took place in the county of Kent,
under Warham, archbishop of Canterbury, and five were committed to the
flames. These were William Carder, of Tenterden ; Agnes Grebil, of
Tenterden, aged sixty years ; Robert Harrison, of Halden, of the same
age ; John Browne, of Ashford ; and Edward Walker, of Maidstone,
cutler. The witnesses against Agnes Grebil were her husband and her two
sons — all of whom had abjured, and, instigated by base fear, sacrificed the
life of the unhappy woman to preserve their own.
This may be a proper place for a few remarks on the laws of that day,
as they affected different offenders, extracted from the register of the said
William Warham, archbishop of Canterbury. It is first to be noted, that
the catholic fathers, in their processes of heretical depravity, had three
distinct kinds of judgments and proceeding. One class of offences required
the offenders to be burned, that, others being brought into terror, they
might therefore more quietly maintain their power. The persons thus con-
demned consisted of either such as had before abjured, and fallen again
into relapse; or else such as stood constantly in their doctrine, and refused
to abjure ; or such as they intended to make a terror and example, not-
withstanding their willingness to submit themselves, and to abjure. Against
the last, the process used was this : First, after they are suspected by some
promoter, they are denounced and cited ; then by virtue of inquisition they
are taken, and confined fast in irons in prison. Then they are brought
forth for examination, if they be not dead by famine, cold, or straitness of
the prison. Then be articles drawn, or rather wrested, out of their writings
or preachings, and they put to their oath, to answer truly to every point
and circumstance against them ; which articles if they seem to deny, or
solve by true expounding the articles, then are witnesses called in and
admitted, what witnesses soever they are, be they never so infamous,
usurers, ribalds, women, yea, and common harlots. Or, if no other wit-
nesses can be found, then is the husband brought in and forced to swear
against the wife, or the wife against the husband, or the children against
the mother, as in the example of Agnes Grebil. Or, if no such witness
at all can be found, then are they strained upon the rack, or by other
bitter torments forced to confess their knowledge, and to impeach others.
Neither must any be suffered to come to them, what need soever they
have; neither must any public or private audience be given them to speak
for themselves ; till at last sentence be read against them, to give them up
478 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
to the secular arm, or to degrade them, if they be priests, and so to burn
them. Yet the malignity of these persecutors doth not here cease. For
after the fire hath consumed their bodies, then they fall upon their books,
and condemn them to be burned ; and no man must be so hardy as to
read them, or keep them, under pain of heresy. But before they have
abolished these books, they gather articles out of them, such as they list
themselves, and so perversely wrest them after their own purpose, contrary
to the meaning of the author. This done, and the books abolished, that
no man may compare them, and espy their falsehood, they publish those
extracts which they have so carefully perverted.
To the second order belonged that sort of heretics whom the papists
condemned not to death, but assigned them to monasteries, there to con-
tinue, and to fast all their life, in pane doloris, et aqua angustice, with
bread of sorrow, and water of affliction ; and that they should not re-
move one mile out of the precinct of the monastery so long as they
lived, unless they were by the archbishop himself or his successors
dispensed withal. Frequently, however, the said persons were so dis-
pensed withal that their penance of bread and water was confined only
to Wednesdays and Fridays, or some similar punishment.
The third class of heretics were those whom they did not judge
to perpetual prison, but only enjoined them penance, either to stand
before the preacher, or else to bear a fagot about the market, or in pro-
cession; or else to wear the picture of a fagot bordered on their left
sleeves, without any cloak or gown upon it; or else to kneel at the
saying of certain masses, or to say so many pater nosters, to such or
such a saint; or to go in pilgrimage to such or such a place; or to bear
a fagot to the burning of some heretic ; or to fast certain Fridays on
bread and water.
In the year of our Lord 1539, John, a painter, and Giles German,
were accused of heresy; and whilst they were in examination in London
before the bishop and other judges, by chance there came in one of the
king's servants, named Launcelot, a very tall man, and of no less godly
mind and disposition, than strong and tall of body. This man standing by
seemed by his countenance and gesture, to favour the cause of the poor
men as though they were his friends. Whereupon, being apprehended,
he was examined and condemned together with them; and the next day,
at five o'clock in the morning, they were all carried into St. Giles*
Fields, and there burned. There was but a small company of people at
their death ; yet they behaved with remarkable firmness, and spoke to
the few around them with a pious fidelity, exhorting them to embrace
suffering rather than idolatry and sin.
In the company and fellowship of those blessed saints and martyrs
of Christ, who innocently suffered, and were burned in Smithfield about
the latter end of Cuthbert Tonstal's time, bishop of London, was one
called Stile, as is credibly reported to us by Sir Robert Outred, who was
present at his martyrdom, and an eye witness of the same. With him
there was burned also a book of the Apocalypse, which he was wont to
read. This book when he saw fastened unto the stake to be burned
with him, lifting up his voice he exclaimed, " O blessed Apocalypse !
how happy am I that I shall be burned with thee!" And so this good
IMPRISONMENT OF BROWN. 479
man and the blessed Apocalypse were both together consumed in the
same fire, whereas nothing could consume the spirit of either.
As Gardiner and other bishops set on King Henry against Anne
Askew and her fellow martyrs, so Dr. Repse, bishop of Norwich, incited
no less the old duke of Norfolk against one Rogers, in the county of
Norfolk ; who, much about the same year and time, was there condemned,
and suffered martyrdom for the six articles. This martyr must be dis-
tinguished from the clergyman of his name, one of the earliest victims
of Mary's cruelty; though in christian courage he almost equalled his
well known namesake and successor in suffering.
A certain priest, passing down to Gravesend in the common barge
about this time, where one Brown was amongst other passengers, and
disdaining that he should sit so near him in the barge, began to swell
against him. At length bursting forth in his priestly voice and dis-
dainful countenance, he asked him, " Dost thou know whom I am?
Thou sittest too near me, and sittest on my clothes." " No, sir," said
the other, " I know not who or what you are." " I tell thee," quoth
he, " I am a priest." " What, Sir, are you a parson or vicar, or some
lady's chaplain?" asked Brown. " No, I am a soul priest, I sing for a
soul," replied he. " Do you so, Sir," said Brown; " that is well done.
I pray you, Sir, where find you the soul when you go to mass,?" " I
cannot tell thee," said the priest. " I pray you, where do you leave
it, Sir, when the mass is done?" asked Brown. " I cannot tell thee,"
said the priest. "You cannot tell me where you find it when you go
to mass, nor where you leave it when the mass is done; how can you
then save the soul?" inquired Brown. " Go thy ways," said the priest,
" I perceive thou art a heretic, and I will be even with thee." And
he kept his word, for at the landing, the priest taking with him Walter
and William More, two gentlemen and brethren, rode straight to arch-
bishop Warham. John Brown, within three days after, was sent for by
the archbishop. The messengers came suddenly into his house on the
same day on which his wife was churched, and just as he was bringing
in a mess of pottage to the serving his guest: and laying hands upon
him, they set him upon his own horse, and binding his feet under the
belly of the beast, carried him away to Canterbury — neither he, nor his
wife, nor any of his friends knowing whither they went — and there was
kept the space of forty days.
During this long captivity, when he was thought to be lost, the arch-
bishop caused his bare feet to be set on hot burning coals, to make him
deny his faith; which, notwithstanding, he would not do, but patiently
abiding the pain, continued in the Lord's cause unshaken. At length,
after this cruelty, he was, on Friday before Whitsunday, sent to Ashford,
where he dwelt, the next day to be burned, his wife being all the time
ignorant of what happened. However, just after he was brought to the
town over night to be set in the stocks, it happened, as God would have
it, that a young maid of his house came by, and seeing her master, ran
home and told her mistress. Her consternation may be imagined, when
coming to him, and finding him in the stocks, appointed to be burned
the next morning: she sat by him all night long. To whom he of
course declared the whole story, or rather tragedy, how he had been
480 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM,
handled, and how his feet were burned to the bones by the archbishop
of Canterbury and bishop of Rochester, that he could not set them upon
the ground, and all to make him deny his Lord, which he would never
do — " for should I deny him in this world," he said, " he would deny
me hereafter: therefore, I pray thee, good Elizabeth, continue as thou
hast begun, and bring up thy children virtuously in the fear of God.
The next day, being Whitsun-eve, this godly martyr was burned.
Standing at the stake, he uttered this prayer, lifting up his hands and
eyes to heaven : —
" I yield, O Lord, unto thy grace,
O, let thy mercy crown my race.
Let not the fiend my soul pursue,
When death is near, and just in view ;
But while by envious foes I'm driv'n,
Save me from hell, and give me Heaven."
William Tindall, or Tyndale, although he did not suffer in England, ought
to be ranked with the martyrs of our country, of which, from his great
zeal, perseverance, and dispersing of truth, he may properly be esteemed
the apostle. Though he went to heaven from a foreign land, he came
on earth in the land of the ancient Britons. He was born on the
borders, of Wales, and brought up from a child in the university of
Oxford, where, by long continuance, he grew and increased as well in
knowledge of tongues and other liberal arts, as in the knowledge of the
scriptures, whereunto his mind was singularly addicted; insomuch, that
lying then in Magdalen-hall, he read privily to certain of the students
and fellows of that college, some parcel of divinity; instructing them
in the knowledge and truth of the scriptures; and all that knew him
reputed and esteemed him to be a man of most virtuous disposition, and
of unspotted life.
Having remained some time at Oxford, he removed to the other
university of Cambridge, where, after making great progress in his
studies, he quitted, went to Gloucestershire, and engaged himself to a
knight, named Welch, as tutor of his children. To this gentleman's
hospitable table used to resort several abbots, deans, and other beneficed
men, with whom Tindall used to converse and talk of learned men,
particularly of Luther and Erasmus; examining also many questions
relative to the scriptures. Being learned and practised in religion, he
spared not to avow unto them simply his opinions; and if they objected
to his reasonings, he would shew them the book, and lay plainly before
them the open and manifest places of the scriptures, to confute their
errors, and confirm his sayings. And thus continued they for a certain
season, reasoning and contending together, till at length they became
envious, and bore a secret grudge in their hearts against him.
Not long after this it happened that certain of these great doctors
invited Mr. Welch and his wife to a banquet, where they spoke to him
without the fear of contradiction, uttering their blindness and ignorance.
Then Welch and his wife coming home, and calling for Mr. Tindall,
began to reason with him about those matters; when Tindall as usual,
answered by scripture, maintained the truth, and reproved their false
opinions. Then said the lady Welch, a stout and wise woman, " Well
ACCUSATIONS AGAINST TINDALL. 481
there was such a doctor who spent a hundred, another two hundred,
and another three hundred pounds : and were it reason, think you, that
we should believe you before them?" Tindall gave her no answer at
the time; and after that, because he saw it would not avail, he talked
but little in those matters. However, he was about the translation of a
book called Enchiridion militis Christiani, written by Erasmus, which,
being finished, he delivered to his master and lady. After they had
read and well perused the same, the doctorly prelates were not so often
called to the house, neither had they the cheer and countenance when
they came as before. This they well perceiving, and supposing that it
came by the means of Tindall, refrained themselves, and at last utterly
withdrew from the house.
As this grew on, the priests of the country clustered together, and began
to storm upon Tindall, railing against him in ale-houses, and other
places. Tindall himself, in his prologue to the first book of Moses,
testifieth, that he " suffered much in that country by a sort of unlearned
priests, being rude and ignorant, as God knoweth; who have seen
no more Latin than that only which they read in their portueses and
missals ; which yet many of them can scarcely read, except it be
Albertus,de secretis mulierum; in which yet, though they be never so
sorrily learned, they pore day and night, and make notes therein, to
assist the midwives, as they say ; and also another called Lindwood, a
book of constitutions to gather tithes, mortuaries, offerings, customs,
and other pillage, which they call not theirs, but God's part — the duty of
holy church, to discharge their consciences withal. For they are bound
that they shall not diminish but increase an things unto the uttermost
of their powers, which pertain to holy church." Thus these blind and
rude priests flocking together to the ale-house, their preaching-place,
railed against him, affirming that his sayings were heresy ; adding,
moreover, unto his sayings of their own heads, and so accused him
secretly to the chancellor, and other of the bishop's officers.
It followed not long after this, that there was a sitting of the bishop's
chancellor appointed, and warning was given to the priests to appear
against Tindall. Whether he had any misdoubt by their threatenings,
or knowledge given him that they would lay some things to his charge,
it is uncertain ; but certain it is that he doubted their privy accusations ;
so that he, by the way, in going thitherwards, cried in his mind heartily
to God, to give him strength to stand in the truth of his word. When
the time came for his appearance before the chancellor, he threatened
him grievously, reviling and rating at him as though he had been a dog,
and laid to his charge many things whereof no accuser could be brought
forth, notwithstanding the priests of the country were there present.
And thus did Tindall escape out of their hands, and returned home.
There dwelt not far off a certain doctor, named Mummuth, who had
been formerly chancellor to a bishop, and who had been an old familiar
acquaintance with Tindall, and favoured him well. Unto him Tindall
went, and opened his mind upon divers questions of the Scripture : for to
him he durst be bold to disclose his heart. After some discourse, the
doctor said, "Do you not know that the pope is the very antichrist whom
2 i
482 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the Scripture speaketh of? but beware what you say; for if you be
perceived of that opinion, it will cost you your life ; I have been an
officer of his; but I have given it up, and defy him and all his works."
Soon after, Tindall happened to be in company of a certain divine,
accounted a learned man, and in communing and disputing with him,
he drove him to that issue, that the great doctor burst out into these
blasphemous words, " We were better to be without God's laws than
the pope's/' Tindall hearing this, full of godly zeal, and not bearing
that blasphemous saying, replied, " I defy the pope, and all his laws :"
and added, that if God spared him life, ere many years, he would cause
a boy that driveth the plough to know more of the Scripture than he
did.
The grudge of the priests now increased more against Tindall, they
never ceased barking at him, and laid many things to his charge, say-
ing that he was a heretic in sophistry, in logic, and in divinity ; more-
over, that he bare himself boldly to the gentleman in that country ; but
notwithstanding, shortly he should be otherwise talked withal. To
whom Tindall said, that he was contented they should bring him into
any county in England, giving him ten pounds a year to live with, and
binding him to no more but to teach children, and to preach the gospel
of Christ.
At length being so molested and vexed by the priests, he was con-
strained to leave that country, and to seek another place ; and coming
to Mr. Welch, he requested his permission to depart, saying, " Sir, I
perceive that I shall not be suffered to tarry long in this country, neither
shall you be able, though you would, to keep me out of the hands of
the spirituality ; and also what displeasure might grow thereby to you
by keeping me, God knoweth, for the which I should be sorry." He
accordingly departed, came up to London, and there preached awhile
as he had done in the country before, and especially about the city of
Bristol. At length bethinking himself of Tonstal, then bishop of
London, and especially for his great commendation of Erasmus, who in
his annotations so extolleth him for his learning, thus cast with himself,
that if he might attain unto his service, he were a happy man. Coming
to Sir Henry Gilford, the king's comptroller, and bringing with him an
oration of Isocrates, which he had then translated from the Greek, he
desired him to speak to the bishop for -him ; which he did, and willed
him moreover to write to the bishop, and accompany him. Thus he did
and delivered his epistle to a servant. But God, who secretly disposeth
the order of things, saw that was not the best for Tindall's purpose, nor
for the profit of his church, and therefore gave him to find little favour
in the bishop's sight, who said, that his house was full, he had more than
he could well find, and advised him to seek about in London, where
he said he could lack no service. He therefore remained in London
almost a year, marking with himself the course of the world, and espe-
cially the demeanour of the preachers, how they boasted themselves,
and set up their authority and kingdom ; also the pomp of the prelates,
with other things more which greatly vexed him. Soon he understood,
not only there to be no room in the bishop's house for him to translate
the New Testament, but also no place to do it in all England. And
TINDALL TRANSLATES THE BIBLE. 483
therefore, having some aid by God's providence from his friend Humphrey
Mummuth, and other good men, he took his leave of the realm, and
departed to Germany. There, being inflamed with a tender care and
seal of his country, he studied how by all means possible to bring his
countrymen to the same taste and understanding of God's holy word
and verity, which the Lord had endued him withal.
He perceived that the principal cause of the people's blindness, and
of the gross errors of the church, with all their evils, was the scriptures
being concealed in an unknown tongue, by which the truth was kept out
of sight, and the corruptions of the priests remained undetected. No
wonder therefore all their labour was with might and main to keep it
down, so that either it should not be read at all, or if it were, they
would darken the right sense with the mist of their sophistry, and so
entangle those who rebuked or despised their abominations, with argu-
ments of philosophy, worldly similitudes, apparent reasons of natural
wisdom; and with wresting the Scripture unto their own purpose, that
they would so delude, and amaze them, expounding it in many senses,
laid before the unlearned lay people, that though they were sure that
all were false, yet could none solve their subtle riddles. These and
other considerations moved this good man, who was no doubt stirred up
of God, to translate the scripture into his mother tongue, for the utility
and profit of the simple people of the country. He first began with the
New Testament, which he translated about the year 1527. After that
he took in hand the old Testament, finishing the five books of Moses,
with sundry learned and godly prefaces prefixed before every one, which
he also did before the New Testament. Nor was he content with trans-
lating scripture : he also wrote divers other works under sundry titles,
amongst which was, " The obedience of a Christian man," wherein with
singular dexterity he instructed all men in the office and duty of Chris-
tian obedience, with several other treatises, as, "The wicked Mammon
— The practice of prelates ;" with expositions upon certain parts of the
Scripture, and other books also, answering Sir Thomas More and other
adversaries of the truth.
His books being compiled, published, and sent over to England, it is
past description what a door of light they opened to the eyes of the
whole nation, which before were many years shut up in darkness. At
his first departure, he had taken his journey into the further parts of
Germany, to Saxony, where he had conference with Luther, and other
learned men in those quarters, whence, after he had continued a season,
he came down into the Netherlands, and resided mostly in the town of
Antwerp. His several publications, especially the New Testament, after
they came into men's hands, wrought singular profit to the godly, while
ungodly priests, envying and disdaining that the people should be wiser
than they, and fearing lest by the shining beams of truth, their hypo-
crisy and works of darkness should be discerned, took great offence; as
at the birth of Christ, Herod and all Jerusalem were troubled with him.
An accident befel our zealous and persevering martyr, which occasioned
a considerable delay. Having finished- the five books of Moses, he set
sail to Hamburgh intending to print them there. But, on his voyage,
he was shipwrecked and lost all his manuscripts, with almost all he pos-
484 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
sessed. He, however, in another vessel, pursued his voyage, and arriv-
ing at Hamburgh, where at his appointment, Mr. Coverdale tarried for
him, and helped him in translating the whole five books of Moses, from
Easter till December, in the house of Miss Margaret Van Emmerson,
anno 1529. Having dispatched his business, he returned to Antwerp
again.
When God's will was that the New Testament in the common tongue
should come abroad, Tindall added at the end a letter, wherein he
desired the learned to amend ought they found amiss. But the fathers
of the clergy, not willing to have that book to prosper, cried out against
it, that there were a thousand heresies in it, and that it was not to be
corrected, but utterly suppressed. Some said it was impossible to trans-
late the Scripture into English; others, that it was not lawful for the
laity to have it in their mother-tongue ; some that it would make them
all heretics. To induce the temporal rulers also unto their purpose,
they said that it would make the people rebel and rise against the king.
All this Tindall himself declared, shewing moreover its truth ; while
they scanned and examined every tittle and point in the translation so
narrowly, that there was not one letter therein, but if it lacked a perfect
form, they did note it, and numbered it unto the ignorant people for a
heresy. So great were then the forward devices of the English clergy,
to drive the people from the text and knowledge of the Scripture,
which they would neither translate themselves, nor yet suffer it to be
translated by others.
The bishops and prelates of the realm, thus incensed and inflamed in
their minds, and conspiring together with their councils, how to repeal
the cause of their alarm, never rested till they had brought the king at
last to their consent. By reason whereof, a proclamation in all haste
was devised and set forth under public authority, but no just reason
shewed, that the Testament of Tindall's translation, with other works
both of his and of other writers, were prohibited and denounced. This
was about the year 1527. Not contented herewith, they proceeded fur-
ther, how to entangle him in their nets, and to bereave him of his life.
The means they employed to ensnare him were these. In the registers
of London it appeareth that the bishops and Sir Thomas More brought
several poor men to be examined before them, namely, such as had been
at Antwerp : most studiously would they search and examine all things
belonging to Tindall, where and with whom he hosted, where stood the
house, what was his stature, in what apparel he went, what resort he
had. All these things when they had diligently learned, as appeared
by the examination of Simon Smith and others, then began they to
work their works of darkness.
Tindall being in the city of Antwerp, had lodged about a year in the
house of Thomas Pointz, an Englishman, who kept there an hostel of Eng-
lish merchants, when there arrived thither out of England, Henry Philips,
his father being customer of Pool, a comely fellow, and in appearance
a gentleman, having a servant with him ; but wherefore he came, or
for what purpose he was sent thither, no man could tell, unless it was
for the work of darkness already mentioned. Tindall was frequently
invited to dinner and supper amongst merchants; by the means whereof
TREACHERY OF PHILIPS. 485
this Henry Philips became acquainted with him, so that in a short space
Tindall conceived a great friendship and confidence for him, brought
him to his lodging to the house of Thomas Pointz, had him once or
twice to dinner and supper, and further entered into such friendship with
him, that through his interest he lodged in the house of Pointz. He
also shewed him his books and other secrets of his study, so little did
Tindall then mistrust this traitor.
Pointz having no great confidence in the fellow, asked Tindall how
he came acquainted with him, who answered, that he was an honest
man, tolerably learned, and very agreeable. Pointz, perceiving that he
bare such favour to him, said no more, thinking that he was brought ac-
quainted with him by some friend of his. Philips being in the city three
or four days upon a time, desired Pointz to walk with him forth of the
town to shew him the commodities thereof; and in walking together
without the town, had communication of divers things, and some of the
king's affairs ; by which talk Pointz as yet suspected nothing, but by
the sequel he perceived more what he intended. In the mean time he
learned, that he bare no great favour either to the setting forth of any
good thing, or to the proceedings of the king of England, and perceived
about him a deal of mystery, and a sort of courting him to make him
subservient to his design, by the hopes of reward, he always
appearing very full of money: but Pointz kept at a distance from all
bribery. So Philips went from Antwerp to the court of Brussels, which
is from thence twenty-four English miles, the king having there no am-
bassador ; for at that time the king of England and the emperor were
at a controversy, for the question betwixt Henry and the lady Katharine.
Philips, as a traitor both against God and the king, was there the better
retained, as also other traitors more besides him ; and after he had
betrayed Mr. Tindall into their hands, shewed himself likewise against
the king's own person. To make short, the said Philips did so much
there, that he procured to bring from thence with him to Antwerp, that
procurator-general, who is the emperor's attorney, with certain other
officers; which was not done with small charges and expenses, from whom-
soever it came.
Sometime after, Pointz sitting at his door, Philips' servant came unto
him, and asked whether Mr. Tindall were there, and said, his master
would come to him, and so departed. Whether his master Philips were
in the town or not, it was not known ; but at that time Pointz heard no
more, neither of the master nor of the man. Within three or four days
after, Pointz went on business to the town of Barrow, eighteen English
miles from Antwerp, and in his absence Philips came again to Antwerp
to the house of "Pointz, and coming in, spake with his wife, asking her
for Mr. Tindall, and whether he would dine there with him, saying,
11 What good meat shall we have?" She answered," Such as the market
will give." Then went he forth as though he would purchase food, and
set the officers which he brought with him from Brussels in the street
and about the door. About noon he returned, went to Mr. Tindall, and
desired him to lend him forty shillings ; for, said he, I lost my purse
this morning, coming over at the passage between this and Mechlin.
Tindall took him forty shillings, the which was easy to be had of him, if
486 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
he had it, for in the wily subtilties of this world he was simple and
unexpert.
Then said Philips, " Mr. Tindall, you shall be my guest hereto-day."
" No," said Tindall, " I am engaged this day to dinner, and you shall
go with me, and be my guest, where you shall be welcome." So when
it was dinner time they went. At the going out of Pointz' house, was
a long narrow entry, so that two could not go in front. Tindall would
have put Philips before him, but Philips would in no wise, but insisted
on Tindall's going before. So Tindall, being a man of no great stature,
went before, and Philips a tall and comely person, followed behind him.
He had set officers on either side of the door upon two seats, who might
see who came in the entry ; and on coming through, Philips pointed
with his finger over Tindall's head down to him, that the officers which
sate at the door might see that it was he whom they should take, as the
officers themselves afterwards told Pointz, and said, that when they had
laid him in prison, they pitied his simplicity when they took him. Then
they seized him and brought him to the emperor's procurator-general,
where he dined. Then came the procurator-general to the house of Pointz
and sent away all that was there of Mr. Tindall's, as well his books as
other things, and from thence Tindall was had to the castle of Filford,
eighteen miles from Antwerp, where he remained until he was put to
death.
By the help of English merchants, letters were sent in favour of Tin-
dall to the court of Brussels. Also, not long after, letters were directed
from England to the council at Brussels, and sent to the merchant
adventurers to Antwerp, commanding them to see that with speed they
should be delivered. Then such of the chief of the merchants as were
there at that time, being called together, required Pointz to take in hand
the delivery of those letters, with letters also from them in favour of
Tindall to the lord of Barrois and others. This lord, as it was told
Pointz by the way, at that time had parted from Brussels, as the chief
conductor of the eldest daughter of the king of Denmark, to be married
to the palesgrave, whose mother was sister to the emperor, she being
chief princess of Denmark. After he heard of his departure, he rode
the same way, and overtook him at Achon, where he delivered to him
his letters. When he had received and read them, he made no direct
answer, but somewhat objecting, said — There were of their countrymen
who had been burned in England not long before ; as indeed there were
Anabaptists burned in Smithfield : and so Pointz said to him, " Howbeit,
whatsoever the crime was, if his lordship or any other nobleman had written,
requiring to have had them, he thought they should not have been denied."
" Well," said he, " I have no leisure to write, for the prirfcess is ready to
ride." Then said Pointz, " If it please your lordship, I will attend upon
you unto the next baiting place," which was at Maestricht. " If you
will," said the lord, " I will advise myself by the way what to write."
Upon this, Pointz followed him from Achon to Maestricht, which are
fifteen English miles asunder; and there he received letters of him, one to
the council there, another to the company of the merchant adventurers,
and another also to the lord Cromwell in England.
So Pointz rode from thence to Brussels, and then and there delivered
ACCUSATIONS AGAINST POINTZ. 487
to the council the letters from England, with the lord of Barrow's letters
also, and received answers from England of the same by letters, which
he brought to Antwerp to the English merchants, who required him to
go with them into England. He very desirous to have Mr. Tindall out
of prison, forbore no pains, nor regarded the loss of time in his own
business, but diligently followed with the said letters, which he there
delivered to the council, and was commanded to wait until he had others,
of which he was not dispatched thence till a month after. At length
the letters being delivered him, he returned again, and delivered them
to the emperor's council at Brussels, and there tarried for answer of the
same. After he had impatiently and fearfully remained three or four
days, he was told by one that belonged to the chancery, that Tindall
should have been delivered to him according to the tenor of the letters;
but Philips being there, followed the suit against Tindall, and hearing
that he should be delivered to Pointz, and doubting lest he should be
put from his purpose, he knew no other remedy but to accuse Pointz,
saying, that he was a dweller in the town of Antwerp, and had been
a succourer of Tindall, and was one of the same opinion ; and that all this
was only his own labour and suit, to have Master Tindall at liberty, and
no man's else
Thus upon his information and accusation, Pointz was attached by
the procurator-general, the emperor's attorney, delivered to the keeping
of two sergeants at arms; and the same evening was sent to him one
of the chancery, with the procurator-general, who ministered an oath,
that he should truly make answer to all such things as should be in-
quired of him, thinking they would have no other examinations of him
but of his own message. The next day they came again, and had him
in examination, and so five or six days successively, upon more than an
hundred articles, as well of the king's affairs as of the messages con-
cerning Tindall, of his aiders and his religion. Out of these examina-
tions, the procurator-general drew twenty-three or four articles, and de-
clared the same against Pointz, the copy whereof he delivered to him to
make answer thereunto, and permitted him to have an advocate and
proctor in the law for his defence; and order was taken, that eight days
after he should deliver unto them his answer, and from eight days to
eight days to proceed till the process was ended. Also that he should
send no messenger to Antwerp, where his house was, although only
twenty-four English miles from Brussels, where he was now a prisoner;
nor to any other place but by the post of Brussels ; nor to send any letters,
nor any to be delivered to him, but such as were written in Dutch ; and the
procurator-general, who was party against him, was to read them and ex-
amine them thoroughly, contrary to all right and equity, before they were
sent or delivered. Neither might any be suffered to speak or talk with
him in any other tongue or language, except only in the Dutch tongue
so that his keepers who were Dutchmen, might understand what the
contents of letters or talk should be. Saving that at one certain time
the provincial of the white friars came to dinner where Pointz was pri-
soner, and brought with him a young novice, being an Englishman,
whom the provincial after dinner, of his own accord bid to talk with
Pointz, and so with him he was licensed to converse. The purpose
488 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
and great policy of this was easy to be perceived. Between Pointz and
the novice was much talk, as of Sir Thomas More, and of the bishop of
Rochester. After this Pointz delivered up his answer to the procurator-
general, and then at the days appointed he went forth with whatever he
could gather as evidence against him.
When the commissioners came to Pointz, Philips the traitor accom-
panied them to the door in following the process against him, as he had
also done against Tindall, for so they that had Pointz in keeping shewed
him. Thus Pointz was greatly troubled for his friend, and long kept in
prison ; but at length, when he saw no other remedy, by night he made
his escape, and avoided their hands. Tindall however could not so
escape, but remained in prison, and being brought unto his answer, was
offered to have an advocate and a proctor ; for in any criminal cause
there, it is permitted to have council, to make answer in the law. Ye
he refused to have any such, saying, — that he would answer for himself;
and so he did. Still nothing that he could say served him ; and at
last, after much reasoning, when no reason would avail, although he
deserved no death, he was condemned by virtue of the emperor's decree,
made in the assembly at Augsburgh, and upon that vile statute brought
forth to the place of execution, where he was tied to the stake, and
strangled first by the hangman, and afterwards burnt. His martyrdom
was at the town of Filford, anno 1536. As he stood firmly amidst
the wood, with the executioner at his side ready to strangle him, he
lifted up his eyes to heaven, and said in a loud and fervent manner —
" Lord, open the eyes of the king of England!"
Such was the power of his doctrine, and sincerity of the life of this
most amiable man and glorious martyr, that during his imprisonment,
which was a year and a half, it is said he converted the keeper, his
daughter, and other of his household. Also the prisoners that were with
him conversant in the castle reported of him, that if he were not a good
Christian, they could not tell whom to trust. Even the procurator-
general being there, left his testimony of him, that he was a most learned,
good, and godly man. An instance this remarkably resembling that
of the Centurion who said of Christ, watching his crucifixion — "Cer-
tainly this was a righteous man." It was reported of Philips who be-
trayed him, that he fell a victim to a loathsome disease, being consumed
by vermin that preyed upon his body.
To enumerate the virtues and actions of this blessed martyr would re-
quire much time and many pages. Suffice it to say, that he was one of
those who, by his works, shone as a light amidst a dark world, and gave
evidence that he had been called and commissioned to bring others to
glory, honour, immortality, and eternal life.
489
BOOK X.
CONTAINING THE ACTS AND THINGS DONE IN THE REIGN OF
KING EDWARD THE SIXTH.
Edward was the only son of Henry the Eighth, by his wife Jane Sey-
mour, who died the second day after his birth. He was born on the twelfth
of October 1537, and came to the throne in 1547, being but ten years old.
At six years of age, he was placed under Dr. Coxe and Mr. Cheek :
the one was to form his mind, and teach him philosophy and divinity ;
the other to teach him languages and mathematics. Masters were also
appointed for the other parts of his education. He discovered very
early a good disposition to religion and virtue, and a particular rever-
ence for the scriptures. As a striking proof of the latter, he was once
greatly offended with a person, who in order to reach something hastily,
laid a Bible on the floor to stand upon. He made great progress in
learning, and at the age of eight years wrote Latin letters frequently to
the king, to queen Katherine Parr, to the archbishop of Canterbury,
and his uncle the earl of Hertford. On his father's decease, the latter
nobleman and Sir Anthony Brown were sent to bring him to the Tower
of London: and when Henry's death was published, Edward was pro-
claimed king.
On his coming to the Tower, his father's will was opened, by which
it was found that he had named sixteen to be the governors of the king-
dom, and of his son's person till he should be eighteen years of age.
These were the archbishop of Canterbury, the lord Wriothesly, lord
chancellor, the lord St. John, great master, the lord Russel, lord privy
seal, the earl of Hertford, lord great chamberlain, viscount Lisle, lord
admiral, Tonstal bishop of Durham, Sir Anthony Brown, master of the
horse, Sir Willi'am Paget, secretary of state, Sir Edward North, chan-
cellor of the augmentations, Sir Edward Montague, lord chief justice of
the common pleas, judge Bromley, Sir Anthony Denny, and Sir William
Herbert, chief gentlemen of the privy chamber, Sir Edward Wotton,
treasurer of Calais, and Dr. Wotton, dean of Canterbury and York.
They were also to give the king's sisters in marriage; who, if they mar-
ried without their consent, were to forfeit their right of succession : for
the king was empowered by act of parliament to leave the crown to
them with what limitations he should think fit to appoint. There was
also a privy council named to be their assistants in the government; if
any of the sixteen died, the survivors were to continue in the adminis-
tration, without a power to substitute others in their room.
It was also proposed that one should be chosen out of the sixteen to
whom ambassadors should address themselves, and who should have the
chief direction of affairs; but should be restrained to do every thing by
consent of the greater part of the other co-executors. The chancellor,
who thought the precedence fell to him by his office, since the arch-
bishop did not meddle much in secular affairs, opposed this, and said,
" It is a change of the king's will; who has made us all equal in power
490 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
and dignity; and if any are raised above the rest in title, it will not be
possible to keep him within due bounds, since great titles make way
for high power." Notwithstanding this, the earl of Hertford was de-
clared governor of the king's person, and protector of the kingdom;
with this restriction, that he should do nothing but by advice and con-
sent of the rest. Upon this advancement and the opposition made to
it, two parties were formed, the one headed by the protector, and the
other by the chancellor : the favourers of the reformation were of the
former, and those that opposed it of the latter. The chancellor was
ordered to renew the commissions of the judges and justices of peace,
and king Henry's great seal was to be made use of till a new one should
be made. The day after this, all the executors took oaths to execute
their trust faithfully ; the privy counsellors were also brought into the
king's presence, who all expressed their satisfaction in the choice of the
protector: and it was ordered that all dispatches to foreign princes
should be signed only by him. All that held offices were required to come
and renew their commissions, and to swear allegiance to the king.
Among the rest came the bishops, and took out such commissions as
were granted in the former reign, by which they became subaltern to
the king's vicegerent: but there being no one now in that office, they
were immediately subaltern to the king. By these commissions they
were to hold their bishoprics only during the king's pleasure, and were
empowered in the king's name, as his delegates, to perform all parts of
the episcopal function. Cranmer set an example to the rest in taking
out such a commission. This check upon the bishops was judged ex-
pedient in case they should become refractory in point of religion; but
the ill-consequences of such an unlimited power being well foreseen,
the bishops, who were afterwards promoted, were not so fettered, but
were permitted to hold their bishoprics during life. The grant of so
many ecclesiastical dignities to the eail of Hertford, was no extraordinary
thing at that time, for as Cromwell had been dean of Wells, so divers
other laymen were promoted to them; which was thus excused, because
there was no cure of souls belonging to them; and during vacancies,
even in times of popery, the king had by his own authority, by the right
of the Regale, given institution to them, so that they seemed to be no
spiritual employments, and the ecclesiastics that enjoyed them, were
generally a lazy and sensual sort of men,
An accident soon fell out, that made way for great changes in the
church. The curate and churchwardens of St. Martin's in London were
brought before the council for removing the crucifix and other images,
and putting some texts of Scripture on the walls of their church. They
answered, that they going to repair their church, had removed the
images, which being rotten, they did not renew, but put words of Scrip-
ture in their room: they had also removed others, which they found had
been abused to idolatry. Great pains was taken by the popish party
to punish them severely, in order to strike a terror into others ; • but
Cranmer was for removing all images set up in churches, as expressly
contrary both to the second commandment, and the practice of Chris-
tians in the earliest and purest ages : and though in compliance with
the gross abuses of paganism, there was very early much of the pomp
GARDINER'S SUPERSTITIOUS ARGUMENTS. 491
of their worship brought into the Christian church, yet it was long
before any images were introduced. At first all were condemned by the
fathers: then they allowed the use, but condemned the worship of them;
and afterwards in the eighth and ninth centuries, the worship of them
was, after a long contest both in the East and West, both approved and
condemned. Finally they were however approved, and generally
adopted. Some, in particular, were believed to be most wonderfully
enchanted, and this was much improved by the cheats of the monks,
who enriched themselves by such means. It was grown to such a
height, that heathenism itself had not been guilty of greater absurdities
towards its idols; and the singular virtues in some images shewed they
were not worshipped only as representations, for then all should have
equal degrees of veneration paid to them. Since these abuses had risen
merely out of the use of them, and setting them up being contrary to
the command of God, and the nature of the Christian religion, which
is simple and spiritual, it seemed most reasonable to cure the disease in
its root, and to clear the churches of them all, that the people might be
preserved from idolatry.
These reasons prevailed so far, that the curate and wardens were dis-
missed with a reprimand ; they were required to beware of such rashness
for the future, and to provide a crucifix, and till that could be had, were
ordered to cause one to be painted on the wall. Upon this, Dr. Ridley,
in a sermon preached before the king, inveighed against the superstition
towards images and holy water, and spread over the whole nation a
general disposition to pull them down; which soon after commenced in
Portsmouth. Upon this, Gardiner made great complaints, and said the
Lutherans themselves went not so far, for he had seen images in their
churches. He distinguished between image and idol, as if the one,
which he said was only condemned, was the representation of a false
God, and the other of the true; and he thought, that as words con-
veyed through the ear begat devotion, so images, by conveyance through
the eye, might have the same effect on the mind. He also thought a
virtue might be both in them and in holy water, as well as there was in
Christ's garments, Peter's shadow, or Elijah's staff: and there might be
a virtue in holy water as in the water of baptism. But to these argu-
ments which Gardiner wrote in several letters, the protector answered,
that the bishops had formerly argued in another strain, namely, that
because the scriptures were abused by the vulgar readers, therefore they
were not to be trusted to them; and so made' a pretended abuse the
ground of taking away, that which by God's special appointment, was
to be delivered to all Christians. This held much stronger against
images forbidden by God. The brazen serpent set up by Moses, by
God's own directions was broken when abused to idolatry; for that was
the greatest corruption of religion possible. Yet the protector acknow-
ledged he had reason to complain of the forwardness of the people,
who broke down images without authority: to prevent which, in future,
orders were sent to the justices to look well to the peace and govern-
ment of the nation, to meet often, and every six weeks to advertise the
protector of the state of the country to which they belonged.
The funeral of the deceased king was performed with the ordinary
492 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
ceremonies at Windsor. He had left six hundred pounds a year to the
church of Windsor, for priests to say mass for his soul every day, and
for four obiits a year, and sermons, and the distributions of alms at
every one of them, and for a sermon every Sunday, and a maintenance
for thirteen poor knights, which was settled upon that church by his
executors in due form of law. Obiit was the anniversary of a person's
death, and to observe such a day with prayers, alms, or other comme-
moration, was termed keeping of the obiit. The chantries mentioned
in this work were little churches, chapels, or particular altars, endowed
with lands, or other revenues for the maintenance of one or more
priests, to sing mass daily, and to perform divine service for the souls of
the founders and such others as they appointed.
The pomps of these endowments in a more inquisitive age, led people
to examine the usefulness of soul-masses and obiits. Christ appointed
the sacrament for a commemoration of his death among the living, but
it was not easy to conceive how that was to be applied to departed souls.
For all the good that they could receive, seemed only applicable to the
prayers for them ; but bare prayers would not have wrought so much
on the people, nor would they have paid so dear for them. It was a
clear project for drawing the wealth of the world into the hands of the
priests. In the primitive church there was a commemoration of the
death, or an honourable remembrance, made in the daily offices; and
for some very small faults names were not mentioned, which would
not have been done if they had looked upon that as a thing that was
really a relief to them in another state. But even this custom grew
into abuse, and some inferred from it, that departed souls, unless they
were signally pure, passed through a purgation in the next life, before
they were admitted to Heaven; of which St. Austin, in whose time the
opinion began to be received, says, that it was taken up without any
sure ground in scripture. But what was wanting in scripture-proof
was supplied by visions, dreams, and fables, till it was generally re-
ceived. King Henry had acted like one who did not believe it, for he
could expect no good usage in purgatory from those innumerable souls
whom he had deprived of the masses that were to be said for them in
monasteries, by destroying those foundations.
Yet it seems even he intended to make sure work for himself, so that
if masses could avail departed souls, he resolved to be secure ; and as
he gratified the priests by this part of his endowment, so he pleased the
people by appointing sermons and alms to be given on such days.
Thus he died as he had lived, wavering between the two persuasions:
and it occasioned no small debate, when men sought to find out what
his opinions were in the controverted points of religion. But now the
diversions of the coronation took them off from more serious thoughts.
The protector was made duke of Somerset, the earl of Essex marquis
of Northampton, the lords Lisle and Wriothesley earls of Warwick and
Southampton; while Seymour, Rich, Willoughby, and Sheffield, were
made barons. In order to the king's coronation, the office for that
ceremony was reviewed, and much shortened : one remarkable alteration
was, that whereas formerly the king used to be presented to the people
at the corners of the scaffold, and they were asked if they would have
DIVISIONS IN ENGLAND. 493
him to be their king, now their assent and good will were taken for
granted. The former looked like a rite of an election, rather than a
ceremony of investing one that was already king. This was therefore
changed, and the people were desired only to give the duty of allegiance
they were bound to do. On the twentieth of February, Edward was
crowned, and a general pardon was proclaimed, out of which the duke
of Norfolk, cardinal Pole, and some others were shamefully excepted.
The lord chancellor, who was looked on as the head of the popish party,
now lost his place by granting a commission to the master of the rolls
and three masters of chancery, of these two were civilians, to execute
his office in the court of chancery as if he were present, only their
decrees were to be brought to him to be signed before they could be
enrolled.
The first business of consequence that required great consideration,
was the Smalcaldic war, then begun between the emperor and the
princes of that league ; the effects of which, if the emperor prevailed,
were likely to be, not only the abolition of Lutheranism, but his being
the absolute master of Germany; which the emperor ambitiously sought
after, in order to a universal monarchy, but disguised it to other princes.
To the pope he pretended that his design was only to extirpate heresy ;
to other princes he pretended it was only to repress some rebels, while
he denied all design of suppressing their new doctrines ; which he
managed so artfully, that he even divided Germany itself, and got some
Lutheran princes to declare for him, and others to be neutrals. Having
obtained a liberal supply for his wars with France and the Turks, for
which he granted an edict for liberty of religion, he made peace with
both these powers, and resolved to employ that treasure which the Ger-
mans had given him against themselves. That he might deprive them of
their chief allies, he had used means to engage king Henry and Francis
the First in a war ; but that was now in a measure composed ; for as Henry
died in January, so Francis followed him into another world in March
following. Many of their confederates began to capitulate ; and the
divided command of the duke of Saxe, and the landgrave of Hesse,
lost them great advantages the former year ; in which it had been easy
to have driven the emperor out of Germany ; but often it happened that
when the one was for engaging, the other was against it ; which made
many very doubtful of their success.
The pope had a mind to engage the emperor in a war in Germany,
that so Italy might be at quiet : and in order to that, and to embroil
him with all the Lutherans, he published his treaty so that it might appear
that the design of the war was to extirpate heresy ; though the emperor
was making great protestations to the contrary at home. He also opened
the council at Trent, which the emperor had long desired in vain ; but
it was now brought upon him when he least wished for it ; for the pro-
testants all declared, that they could not look upon it as a free general
council, since it was so entirely at the pope's command that not so
much as a reformation of some of the grossest abuses that could not be
justified, was like to be obtained, unless clogged with such clauses as
made it ineffectual. Nor could the emperor prevail with the council
not to proceed to condemn heresy : but the more he obstructed that by
494 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
delays, the more did the pope drive it on to open the eyes of the
Germans, and engage them vigorously against the emperor : yet he
gave them such secret assurances of tolerating the Augsburgh confes-
sion, that the marquis of Brandenburgh declared for him. This event,
joined with the hopes of the electorate, drew in Maurice of Saxe. The
count Palatine was old and feeble; the archbishop of Cologne would
not make resistance, but retired, being condemned both by pope and
emperor; while many of the cities submitted. And Maurice, by falling
into Saxe, forced the elector to separate from the landgrave, and return
to the defence of his own dominions. This was the state of the affairs
in Germany : so that it was a hard point to resolve on what answer the
protector should give the duke of Saxe's chancellor, whom he sent over
to obtain an aid in money for carrying on the war. It was, on the one
hand, of great importance to the safety of England to preserve the
German princes, and yet it was very dangerous to begin a war of such
consequence, under an infant king. At present they promised, within
three months, to send by the merchants 50,000 crowns to Hamburgh,
and resolved to do no more till new emergencies should lead them to
new councils.
The nation was in an ill condition for a war with such a mighty
prince, labouring under great distractions at home: moreover the
people generally cried out for a reformation, despised the clergy, and
loved the new preachers. The priests were, for the most part, both very
ignorant and immoral : many of them had been monks, and those who
had to pay them the pensions which were reserved to them at the
destruction of the monasteries, till they should be provided, took care
to get them into some small benefice. The greatest part of the par-
sonages were impropriated, for they belonged to the monasteries, and
the abbots had only granted the incumbents either the vicarage, or some
small donative, and left them the perquisites raised by masses and other
offices. At the suppression of those houses there was no care taken to
provide the incumbents better ; so that they chiefly subsisted by trentals
and other devices, which brought them in some small relief, though the
price of them was very low, for masses went often at half a groat, and
a groat was a great bounty.
Now these persons saw that a reformation of abuses took the bread
out of their mouths ; therefore their interests prevailing more than any
thing else, they were zealous against all changes : yet that same prin-
ciple made them comply with every change which was made, rather than
lose their benefices. Their poverty made them run into another abuse,
that of holding more benefices than one at a time, a corruption of so
crying and scandalous a nature, that wherever it is practised it is suffi-
cient to possess the people with great prejudices against the church
which is guilty of it : there being nothing more contrary to the plainest
impressions of reason than that every man who undertakes a cure of
souls, whom at his ordination he has vowed to instruct, feed, and govern,
ought to discharge that trust himself as the greatest and most important
of all others. The clergy were encouraged in their opposition to all
changes, by the protection they expected from Gardiner, Bonner, and
Tonstal, men of great .reputation and in power: above all, the lady
VISITATION OF THE CHURCHES. 495
Mary openly declared against all changes till the king- should be of age.
On the other hand, Cranmer resolved to proceed more vigorously : the
protector was firmly united to him, as were the young king's tutors.
Edward himself was as much engaged as could be expected from so
young a person ; for both his knowledge and zeal for true religion were
above his age. Several of the bishops also declared for a reformation;
but Dr. Ridley, now bishop of Rochester, was the person on whom he
most depended. Latimer remained with him at Lambeth, and did great
service by his sermons, which were very popular ; but he would not
return to his bishopric, choosing rather to serve the church in a more
disengaged manner. Many of the bishops were very ignorant and poor
spirited men, raised merely by court favour, and little concerned for
any thing but their revenues. Cranmer resolved to proceed by degrees,
and to state the reasons of every advance so fully, that he hoped, by
the blessing of God, to possess the nation of the fitness of what they
should do, and thereby prevent any dangerous opposition that might
otherwise be apprehended.
The power of the privy council had been much exalted in Henry's
time, by act of parliament ; and one proviso in it was, that the king's
council should have the same authority when he was under age that he
himself had at full age : it was, therefore, resolved to begin with a gene-
ral visitation of all England, which was divided into six precincts : and
two gentlemen, a civilian, a divine, and a register, were appointed for
each visit. But before they were sent out, a letter was written to all
the bishops, giving them notice of it, suspending their jurisdiction while
it lasted, and requiring them to preach nowhere but in their cathedrals ;
and the other clergy should not preach but in their own churches, with-
out licence : by this it was intended to restrain such as were not accept-
able to their own parishes, and to grant others the licences to preach in
any church of England. The greatest difficulty the reformers found, was
in the want of able and prudent men, most of whom were too hot and
indiscreet; while the few who were eminent, were required in London
and the universities. These they intended to make as useful as possible,
and appointed them to preach as itinerants and visitors. The only thing
by which the people could be universally instructed, was a book of
homilies: therefore, the twelve first homilies in the book, still known by
that name, were compiled, in framing which the chief design was to
acquaint the people aright with the nature of the gospel-covenant. The
people were taught to depend on the sufferings of Christ, and to lead
their lives according to the rules of the gospel.
Orders were also given, that a Bible should be in every church, which
though it had been commanded by Henry, yet had not been generally
obeyed ; and for understanding the New Testament, Erasmus's paraphrase
was translated into English, and appointed to be set up in every church.
His great reputation and learning, and his dying in the communion of
the Roman church, made this book to be preferable to any other, since
there lay no prejudice to Erasmus, which would have been objected to
in any other author. They renewed also all the injunctions made by
Cromwell in the former reign, which, after his fall, were but little looked
afl r, as those for instructing the people, for Removing images, and
496 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
putting down all other customs abused to superstition ; for reading the
scriptures, saying the litany in English, frequent sermons and catechising,
the exemplary lives of the clergy, their labours in visiting the sick, and
other parts of their function, such as reconciling differences, and exhort-
ing the people to charity. All who gave livings by simoniacal bargains,
were declared to have forfeited their right of patronage to the king.
A great charge was also given for the strict observation of the Lord's
day, which was appointed to be spent wholly in the service of God, it
not being enough to hear mass in the morning, and spend the rest of
the day in drunkenness and revelling, as was commonly practised ;
but it ought to be all employed, either in the duties of religion, or in
acts of charity. Direction was also given for the bidding of prayers,
in which the king as supreme head, the queen and the king's sisters, the
protector and council, and all orders of the kingdom were to be men-
tioned. There were also injunctions given for the bishops to preach
four times a year in all their dioceses, once in their cathedral, and thrice
in any other church, unless they had a good excuse to the contrary :
that their chaplains should preach often : and that they should ordain
none but such as were duly qualified.
These excellent rules were variously censured. The clergy were only
empowered to remove the abused images, and the people were restrained
from doing it; but this authority being put in their hands, it was thought
they would be slow and backward in it. The corruptions of lay-patrons
and simoniacal priests had been often complained of, but no laws nor
provisions were ever able to preserve the church from this great mischief:
which can never be removed till patrons look on their right to nominate
a man to the charge of souls, as a trust for which they are to render a
severe account to God; and till priests are cured of aspiring to that
charge, and look on it with dread and great caution. The prayer for
departed souls was now moderated, to be a prayer only for the consum 7
mation of their happiness at the last day ; whereas in king Henry's time
they prayed that God would grant them release from all sin, which
implied a purgatory.
The visitors at length ended the visitation, and had been every where
submitted to. In London, and every part of England, the images, for
refusing to bow down to which many a saint had been burnt, were now
committed to the flames. Bonner at first protested that he would obey
the injunctions, if they were not contrary to the laws of God and the
ordinances of the church : but being called before the council, he
retracted that, and asked pardon ; yet, for giving terror to others, he
was for some time put in prison. Gardiner wrote to one of the visitors,
before they came to Winchester, that he could not receive the homilies;
and if he must either quit his bishopric, or sin against his conscience,
he resolved to chose the former. Upon this he was called before the
council, and required to receive the book of homilies : but he objected
to one of them, which taught that charity did not justify, contrary to
the book set out by the late king and confirmed in parliament. He also
complained of many things in Erasmus's paraphrase ; and being pressed
to declare whether he would obey the injunctions or not, he refused to
promise it, and was inconsequence sent to the Fleet. Cranmer treated
ACT CONCERNING THE SACRAMENT. 497
in private with him, and they argued much about justification. Gar-
diner thought the sacraments justified, and that charity justified as well
as faith. Cranmer urged, that nothing- but the merits of Christ justified,
as they were applied by faith, which could not exist without charity.
Nothing could be more correct than this: for what is faith but the love
of God shed abroad in the heart — filling the believer with benevolence,
and the desire of imparting the happiness he feels to all around him?
Gardiner lay in prison till the act of general pardon, passed in par-
liament, set him at liberty. Many blamed the severity of these pro
ceedin^s, as contrary both to law and equity, and said, that all people,
even those who complained most of arbitrary power, were apt to usurp
it when in authority. Lady Mary was so alarmed at these proceedings,
that she wrote to the protector, that such changes were contrary to the
honour due to her father's memory, and it was against their duty to the
king to enter upon such points, and endanger the public peace before
he was of age. To which he answered, that her father had died before
he could finish the good things he had intended concerning religion;
and had expressed his regret both before himself and many others, that
he left things in so unsettled a state: moreover he assured her, that
nothing should be done but what would turn to the glory of God, and
the king's honour and happiness.
Parliament was opened the 4th of November, and the protector was
by patent authorized to sit under the cloth of state, on the right hand
of the throne; and to have all the honours and privileges that any uncle
of the crown ever had. Rich was made lord chancellor. The first act
that passed, five bishops only dissenting, was, " A repeal of all statutes
that had made any thing treason or felony in the late reign, which was
not so before, and of the six articles, and the authority given to the
king's proclamations, as also of the acts against Lollards. All who
denied the king's supremacy, or asserted the pope's, for the first offence
are to forfeit their goods, for the second are to be in a premunire, and
to be attainted of treason for the third. But if any intend to deprive
the king of his estate or title, that is made treason : none are to be
accused of words but within a month after they were spoken." Par-
liament also repealed the power that the king had of annulling all laws
made, till he was twenty-four years of age, and restrained it onlv to
annulling them for the time to come, but that it should not be of force
for the declaring them null from the beginning.
Another act passed, with the same dissent, for the laity receiving the
sacrament in both kinds and that the people should always communi-
cate with the priest; and by it irreverence to the sacrament was con-
demned under severe penalties. Christ had clearly instituted the
sacrament in both kinds, and St. Paul mentions both. In the primitive
church that custom was universally observed, but upon the belief of
transubstantiation, the reserving and carrying about the sacrament were
brought in: this made them first endeavour to persuade the world, that
the cup was not necessary, for wine could neither keep, nor be carried
about conveniently. It was done away by degrees, the bread was for
some time given dipped in the wine, as it is yet in the Greek church :
but it being believed that Christ was entire under either kind, the
9 K
498 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
council of Constance entirely took the cup from the laity; while the
Bohemians could not be brought to submit to the loss. The abuse
being now clearly seen, the use of the cup was, in every part, one of
the first things insisted on by those who demanded a reformation. At
first all who were present communicated, and censures were passed on
such as did it not: none were denied the sacrament but penitents, a
who were made to withdraw during the action. But as the devotion of
the world slackened, the people were still exhorted to continue their
oblations, and come to the sacrament, though they did not receive it;
and were made to believe, that the priests received it in their stead.
The name sacrifice given to it, as being a holy oblation, was so far
improved, that the world came to look on the priests officiating, as a
sacrifice for the dead and living: hence followed an infinite variety
of masses for all the accidents of human life; and that was the chief
part of the priests' trade, and occasioned many unseemly jests con-
cerning it, which were now restrained by the act that stopped the cause.
Another act passed without any dissent, that the conge d'elire, and
the election pursuant to it, being but a shadow, since the person was
named by the king, should cease for the future, and that bishops should
be named by the king's letters patent, and thereupon be consecrated;
and should hold their courts in the king's name, and not in their own,
excepting only the archbishop of Canterbury's court: and they were to
use the king's seal in all their writings, except in presentations, colla-
tions, and letters of orders, in which they might use their own seals.
The apostles chose bishops and pastors, by an extraordinary gift of
discerning spirits, and proposed them to the approbation of the people;
yet they left no rules to make that necessary in future. In times of
persecution, the clergy being maintained by the oblations of the people,
they were chosen by them. But when the emperors became Christian,
the town-councils and eminent men took the elections out of the hands
of the rabble: and the tumults in popular elections were such, that it
was necessary to regulate them. In some places the clergy, and in
others the bishops of the province made the choice. The emperors
reserved the confirmation of the elections in the great sees to themselves.
But when Charles the Great annexed vast territories and regalities to
bishoprics, a change followed. Churchmen were soon corrupted by
this undue greatness, and came to depend on the humours of those
princes to whom they owed their increase of wealth. Princes named
them, and invested them in their sees: but the popes intended to sepa-
rate the ecclesiastical state from all subjection to secular princes, and
to make themselves the heads of that state. At first they pretended to
restore the freedom of elections, but these were now engrossed in a few
hands, for only the chapters chose.
Another act was made against idle vagabonds, that they should be
made slaves for two years, by any who should seize on them; this was
chiefly designed against some vagrant monks, as appears by the provi-
a This sounds strange to modem Christian ears : but by peintents are here evidently
meant persons suspended for a time for certain offences from the communion of the
church, and are supposed to bewail what they have done.
REFORM IN POPISH CEREMONIES. 499
sions of the act. These men went about the country infusing into the
people a dislike of the government. The severity of this act excited
m the nation, ever averse to slavery, a dislike so that it was but little
attended to; and this was the reason that the other provisions for
supplying those who were truly indigent, and willing to be employed,
had no effect. After this followed the act for giving the king all those
chantries which his father had not seized on by virtue of the grant made
to him of them. Cranmer much opposed this; for the poverty of the
clergy was such that the state of learning and religion was like to suffer
greatly if it should not be relieved; and yet he saw no probable fund
for that, but the preserving these till the king should come to age, and
allow the selling them, for buying in of at least such a share of the
impropriations as might afford them some more comfortable subsistence:
yet notwithstanding he and seven other bishops dissented, it was passed.
Last of all a general pardon, but clogged with some exceptions, was
passed.
The convocation sat at the same time; and moved, that a commission
begun in the late reign of thirty-two persons for reforming the eccle-
siastical laws might be revived, and that the inferior clergy might be
admitted to sit in the house of commons, for which they alleged a clause
in the bishop's writ and ancient custom. Since some prelates had,
under the former reign, begun to alter the form of the service of the
church, they desired this might be brought to perfection; and that some
care mi^ht be had of supplying the poor clergy, and relieving them from
the taxes that lay so heavily on them. The question of the inferior
clersrv sitting in the house of commons, was the subject of some debate,
and was again set on foot, both under queen Elizabeth and king James,
but to no effect. It was, however, resolved that some bishops and
divines should be sent to Windsor, to finish some reformations in the
public offices; for the whole lower house of convocation, without a
contradictory vote, agreed to the bill about the sacrament, while it is
not known what opposition it met with in the upper house. A proposi-
tion being also set on foot concerning the lawfulness of the marriage of
the clergy, thirty-five subscribed to the affirmative, and only fourteen
dissented. Gardiner being included in the act of pardon was set at
liberty: he promised to receive and obey the injunctions, objecting only
to the homily of justification; yet he complied in that likewise: but it
was visible that in his heart he abhorred all their proceedings, though
he outwardly conformed.
Candlemas and Lent were now approaching, and the clergy and
people were much divided with respect to the ceremonies usual at those
times. By some injunctions in king Henry's reign it had been declared
that fasting in Lent was only binding by a positive law. Wakes and
games were also suppressed, and hints were given that other customs,
which were much abused, should be shortly done away. The gross
rabble loved these things, as matters of diversion, and thought divine
worship without them would be but a dull business. But others looked
on them as relics of heathenism, and thought they did not become the
gravity and simplicity of the Christian religion. Cranmer, upon this,
procured an order of council against carrying candles on Candlemas-
500 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
clay, ashes on Ash-wednesday, and palms on Palm-sunday; which was
directed to Bonner to be intimated to the bishops of the province of
Canterbury. A proclamation followed against all who should make
changes without authority. Creeping to the cross and taking holy bread
and water were put down, and power was given to the archbishop of
Canterbury to certify, in the king's name, what ceremonies should be
afterwards laid aside; and none were to preach out of their own
parishes without license from the king or the visitors, the archbishop, or
the bishop of the diocese. Soon after this, when the general order
followed for a removal of all images out of churches, there were every
where great contests whether the images had been abused to superstition
or not. Some thought the consecration of them was an abuse common
to them all. Those also which represented the Trinity as a man with
three faces in one head; or as an old man with a young man before
him, and a dove over his head; gave so great scandal, that it was no
wonder for the people as they grew more enlightened, not longer to
endure them. The only occasion given to censure in this order was,
that all shrines, and the plate belonging to them, were appointed to be
brought into the king's use.
Eighteen bishops, and other divines, were now employed to examine
the offices of the church, to see which of them needed amendment.
They began with the eucharist, and proceeded in the same manner as in
the former reign. Every one gave his opinion in writing, in answer to
the question put to him. It was clearly found that the plain institution
of the sacrament was much vitiated, with a mixture of many heathenish
rites and pomps, to raise the credit of the priests, in whose hands that
great performance was lodged. This was at first done to draw over the
heathens by those splendid rites to Christianity; but superstition once
begun had no bounds nor measures; and ignorance and barbarity
increasing in the darker ages, there was no regard paid to any thing in
religion, but as it was set off with pageantry; and the belief of the
corporeal presence raised this to a still greater height. The office was
in an unknown tongue; all the vessels and garments belonging to it
were consecrated with much devotion; great part of the service was
secret, to make it look like a wonderful charm ; the consecration itself
was to be said very softly, for words that were not to be heard agreed
best with a change that was not to be seen : many gesticulations, and
magnificent processions, all tended to raise this pageantry higher.
Masses were also said for all the turns and affairs of human life.
Trentals, a custom of having thirty masses a year on the chief festivities
for redeeming souls out of purgatory, was that which brought the priests
most money, for these were thought God's best days, in which access
was easier to him. On saints' days it was prayed, that by their inter-
cession the sacrifice might become the more acceptable, and procure a
larger indulgence; which could not be easily explained, if the sacrifice
was the death of Christ.
The first step that was now made was a new office for the communion,
that is, the distribution of the sacrament, for the office of consecration
was not at this time touched. In the exhortation, auricular confession
\o a priest is left free to be done or omitted, and all are required not to
GARDINER BROUGHT BEFORE THE COUNCIL. 501
judge one another in that matter. There was also a denunciation made,
requiring - impenitent sinners to withdraw. The bread was to be still the
same as that formerly used. In the distribution it was said, "The body
of our Lord preserve thy body;" and " the blood of our Lord preserve
thy soul." This was printed with a proclamation, requiring all to
receive it with such reverence and uniformity as might encourage the
king to proceed further, and not to run to other things before the king
gave direction, assuring the people of his earnest zeal to set forth godly
orders; and therefore it was hoped they would wait for it: the books
were sent all over England, and the clergy were appointed to give the
communion next Easter according to them.
Many were offended to find confession left indifferent, so this
matter was examined. Christ gave his apostles a power of binding
and loosing; and St. James commanded all to confess their faults
to one another. In the primitive church, all that denied the faith,
or otherwise gave scandal, were separated from the communion, and
not admitted to it till they made public confession : and according
to the degrees of their sin, the time and degree of public penitence
and their separation were proportioned : which was the chief subject
of the consultations of the councils in the fourth and fifth centuries.
Secret sins the people lay under no obligation to confess, but they
went often to the priests for direction, even for these. Near the
end of the fifth century they began to have secret penances and con-
fessions, as well as public; and in the seventh century this became
the general practice. In the eighth century the commutation of
penance for money, or other services done the church, was brought in.
Then the holy wars and pilgrimages came to be magnified. Crusades
against heretics, or princes deposed by the pope, were set up instead of
all other penances : priests managed confession and absolution, so as to
enter into people's secrets, and to govern their consciences by them ;
but they becoming very ignorant, and not so associated as to be governed
by orders that might be sent them from Rome, friars were mostly em-
ployed to hear confessions, and many reserved cases were made, in which
the pope only gave absolution. Such cases were trusted to monks, who
had the trade of indulgences put in their hands, which they managed
with as much confidence as mountebanks used in selling their medicines,
with this advantage, that the inefficiency of their devices was not so
easily discovered, for the people believed all that was told them. In
this they grew to such a pitch of confidence, that for saying some
collects, indulgences for years, and for hundreds and thousands of years
were granted ; so cheap a thing was heaven made. This trade was now
thrown out of the church, and private confession was declared indifferent.
Gardiner was again brought into trouble ; many complaints were made
of him, that he disparaged the preachers sent with the king's licence into
his diocese, and that he secretly opposed all reformation. On being-
brought before the council, he denied most of the things objected to
him, and offered to explain himself openly in a sermon before the king.
This being granted, he justified many of the changes that had been
made; but when he came to the sacrament, he contended so strongly
for the corporeal presence, that a great disturbance took place in the
502 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
church. This conduct of his being deemed seditious, he was sent to
the Tower, where, however, he was treated with the greatest lenity, which
he returned by sullen obstinacy and resentment. Now a more general
reformation of the whole liturgy was under consideration, that all the
nation might have an uniformity in the worship of God. Anciently the
liturgies were short, and had few ceremonies in them : every bishop had
one for his diocese ; but in the African churches they began first to put
them into a more regular form. Gregory the great laboured much in
this ; yet he left Austin the monk to his liberty, either to use the Roman
or French forms in England, as he found they were like to tend most
to edification. Great additions were made in every age ; for the pri-
vate devotions of some who were reputed saints, were added to the pub-
lic offices ; and mysterious significations were invented for every new
rite, which was the chief study of some ages : this swelled them up to a
vast bulk. It was not then thought of, that praying consisted in the
inventing new words, and uttering them with warmth ; and it seemed
too great a subjection of the people to their priests, that they should be
compelled to join with them in all their hearts in prayer. It was then
resolved to make a liturgy, and to bring the worship to a fit medium
between the pomp of superstition and naked simplicity. It was resolved
to change nothing merely in opposition to received practices, but rather
in imitation of what Christ did in the institution of the two sacraments
of the gospel, which consisted of rites used among the Jews, but blessed
by him to higher purposes; to comply with what had been formerly in
use as much as was possible, and thereby to gain the people. The con-
secrations of water, salt, and other things, in the church of Rome,
looked like the remainder of heathenism, and were laid aside : these
had been like spirits, which being abjured, and a divine virtue supposed
to be in them, the people came to think that by such observances they
might be sure of Heaven. The absolutions by which, on account of
the merits of the blessed virgin and the saints, the sprinklings of water,
fastings, and pilgrimages, with many other observances, sins were par-
doned, as well as on the account of the passion of Christ; these and the
absolution given to dead bodies looked like gross impostures, tending
to make the world think, that besides the painful way to Heaven in a
course of true holiness, the priests had secrets in their hands of carry-
ing people thither by another method, and on easier terms. This drew
them to purchase their favour, especially when they were dying : so that,
as their fears were then heightened, there was no other way left them, in
the conclusion of an ill life, to die with any good hopes, but as they
bargained with their priests : therefore all this was now rejected.
It was resolved to have the whole worship in the vulgar tongue ; upon
which St. Paul has copiously enlarged; and all nations, as they were
converted to Christianity, had their offices translated into their own
language. But of late it had been pretended, that it was part of the
communion of saints, that the worship should be every where in the
original tongue, though the people were hardly used, when for the sake
of some vagrant priests that might come from foreign parts, they were
kept from knowing what was said in the worship of God. It was pre-
tended that Pilate having ordered the inscription on the cross in Greek,
CHANGES IN THE PUBLIC WORSHIP. 503
Latin, unci Hebrew, these three languages were sanctified ; but it is not
easv to understand what authority the Jewish king had for conferring
■uch a privilege on them. But keeping all in an unknown tongue pre-
; id dark ages the esteem of their offices ; in which there were
such prayers and hymns, and such lessons, that if the people had under-
stood them they must have given great scandal. In many prayers the
pardon of sins and the grace of God were asked in such a stvle of the
saints, as if they had been wholly at their disposal, and as if they had
been more merciful than God or Christ. In former times, all who
officiated were peculiarly habited, and all their garments were blessed,
and these were considered as a part of the train of the mass ; but on
the other hand, white had been the colour of the priests' vestments
under the mosaical law, and had early been brought into the Christian
churches : it was a proper expression of innocence, and it being fit that
the worship of God should be in a decent habit, it was continued.
Since the sacrifices offered to idols were not thereby, according to St.
Paul, of their own nature polluted, and every creature of God was good,
it was thought, notwithstanding the former abuse, most reasonable to
use these garments still.
The morning and evening prayers were put almost in the same form
as that in which they now stand, only there was no confession nor abso-
lution. In the office for the communion there was a commemoration of
thanksgiving for the Blessed Virgin and all departed saints, and they
were commended to God's mercy and peace. In the consecration the
use of crossing the elements was retained ; but there was no elevation
of the host, which was at first used as an historical rite, to shew Christ's
being lifted up on the cross, and was afterwards done to excite the people
to adore it. No stamp was to be on the bread, and it was to be thicker
than ordinary. It was to be put in the people's mouths by the priests,
though it had been anciently put in their hands. Some in the Greek
church began to take it in spoons of gold, others in a linen cloth, called
their dominical : but after the corporeal presence was received, the
people were not suffered to touch it, and the priests' hands were peculiarly
anointed to qualify them for the mystic contact. In baptism the child's
head and breast were crossed, and abjuration was made of the devil to
depart from it : children were to be thrice dipped, or in case of weak-
ness, water was to be sprinkled on their faces, and then they were to be
anointed. The sick might also be anointed if they desired it. At
funerals, the departed soul was recommended to God's mercy.
The sacraments were formerly believed of such virtue, that they con-
ferred grace by the very receiving them ; what was called the opus
operation was deemed sufficient, though both faith and repentance were
absent. The ancients used to send portions of the eucharist to the
sick, but without any pomp : which came in when the corporeal presence
was believed. But it was now appointed that the sacraments should be
ministered to the sick, and therefore, in case of weakness, children were
allowed to be baptised in houses ; though it was more suitable to the
design of baptism, which was the admission of a new member to the
church, to do it before the whole congregation. This, which was then
a provision for weakness, is now a mark of vanity, and a piece of affected
504 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
state. It was also appointed, that theLord's supper should be given to
the sick; not to be sent from the church, but consecrated by their bed-
sides : since Christ had said, that where two or three were assembled in
his name he would be in the midst of them. But it is a gross relique of
the worst part of popery for any to imagine, that after an ill life, some
sudden sorrow for sin, with a hasty absolution, and the sacrament, will
be a passport to Heaven ; since the mercies of God in Christ are offered
in the gospel only to those who truly believe, sincerely repent, and
change the course of their lives.
The liturgy thus compiled was published with a preface concerning
ceremonies. Of course it was narrowly scanned in every part. When
the book came into all men's hands several things were censured : as
particularly the frequent use of the cross, and anointing. The former
began to be used as the badge of a crucified Saviour : but the supersti-
tion of it was so much advanced that latria — the highest kind of worship
— was given to the crosier. The using of it was also believed to have
virtue for driving away evil spirits, and preserving from dangers; so
that a sacramental efficacy was ascribed to it; which could not be
maintained, since there is no institution for it in scripture. But the
using it was made a ceremony, expressing the belief and worship of a
crucified Saviour, which could import no superstition, nor involve
idolatry. These several regulations were of great importance, because
the protestant religion now appeared almost ruined in Germany, which
made the divines of that country turn their eyes to England. Calvin
wrote to the protector, and pressed him to go on to a more complete
reformation; and that prayers for the dead, chrism, and extreme unction,
might be laid aside. He desired him to trust in God, and advance, and
wished there was more preaching, and in a more lively way than he
heard was then in the land: but above all things he prayed him to
suppress that impiety and profanity that, he heard, abounded in the
nation.
In February 1549, an act passed granting the clergy to marry. It
was declared, that it were better for priests to live unmarried, free from
all worldly cares; yet, since the laws compelling it had occasioned great
debauchery, they were repealed. The pretence of chastity in the Romish
priests had possessed the world with a high opinion of them, and had
been a great reflection on the reformers, if the world had not clearly
seen through it, and been made sensible of the ill effects of it, by the
defilement it brought into their own houses and families. Nor was
there any point in which the reformers had studied more to remove the
prejudice that lay against them. In the Old Testament the priests were
not only married, but the office descended by inheritance. In the New
Testament, marriage was declared honourable in all: among the qualifi-
cations of bishops and deacons, each being the husband of one wife
is reckoned up. Many of the apostles were married, and carried their
wives about with them, as also Aquilla did Priscilla. Forbidding to
marry is reckoned a mark of the apostacy of the latter days, and called
a doctrine of devils.
All the canons made against the married clergy, were only positive
laws which might be repealed. The priests in the Greek church still
A NEW LITURGY FORMED. 505
lived in a conjugal state. In the west the clergy generally married ;
and in Edgar's time, they were for the most part married in England.
In the ninth century, the doctrine of celibacy, though urged by pope
Nicholas, was resisted by a large majority of both priests and people.
In the eleventh century, Gregory VII. intending to set up a new eccle-
siastical empire, found that the unmarried clergy would be his best
servants, since the married clergy gave pledges to the state; therefore
he proceeded furiously to celibate the church, and called all the married
priests Nicolaitans: while in England, Lanfrac only imposed celibacy
on the prebendaries, and the clergy that lived in towns. Anseim im-
posed it on all without exception; but both he, Bernard, and Peter
Damiani, complained that lust abounded much, even among the bishops.
Not only Panormitan, but Pius II., wished that the law of celibacy was
taken away. It was therefore clear, that it was not founded on the
law of God ; and it was a sin to force churchmen to vow that which
sometimes was not in their power. It was found by examining the forms
of ordination, that the priests in England had made no such vows; and
even the vow in the Roman pontifical to live chastely, did not import a
tie not to marry, since a man might live chaste in a married state. Many
lewd stories were published of the clergy, but none seemed more remark-
able, than that of the pope's legate in the time of Henry II. who the very
same night after he had put all the married clergy from their benefices,
himself was chargeable with flagrant impurity.
Another act passed confirming the liturgy which was now finished ;
eight bishops and three temporal lords only protesting against it. There
was a long preamble, setting forth the inconvenience of the former of-
fices, and the pains that had been taken to reform them; and that
divers bishops and divines had, by the aid of the Holy Ghost, with an
uniform agreement concluded on the new book: therefore they enacted
that by Whitsunday next, all divine offices should be performed accord-
ing to it; and if any used other offices, for the first offence they should
be imprisoned six months, lose their benefices for a second, and be im-
prisoned during life for the third.
Another act also passed respecting fasting. It declared that notwith-
standing all days and meats were in themselves alike, yet fasting, being
a great help to virtue, and to subduing the body to the mind, and a dis-
tinction of meats conducing to the advancement of the fishing-trade, it
was enacted, that Lent, and all Fridays, Saturdays, and Emberdays,
should be fish-days, under several penalties, excepting the weak, or those
that had the king's licence. Christ had told his disciples, that when he
was taken from them they should fast: so in the primitive church chris-
tians fasted before Easter; but the same number of days was not ob-
served in all places : afterwards other rules and days were established ;
but St. Austin complained, that many in his time placed all their reli-
gion in observing them. Fast-days were turned to a mockery in the
church of Rome, in which clergy as well as laity sumptuously dined,
and eat fish exquisitely dressed, and drank wine, and other choice
beverage.
Both the laity and clergy granted the king subsidies, upon which the
parliament was prorogued. The first thing taken into care was the
506 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
receiving the act of uniformity. Some complaints were made of the
priests' manner of officiating ; who did it with such a tone of voice that
the people could not understand what was said any more than when
the prayers were said in Latin. Prayers were, therefore, ordered to be
said in parish churches in a plain voice; while in cathedrals the old way
was still kept up, as agreeing better with the music used in them.
Though this seemed not very decent in the confession of sins, nor in
the litany, where a simple voice, gravely uttered, agreed better with
those devotions than cadences and quavering notes, it was yet retained.
Others continued to use all the gesticulations, crossings, and kneelings,
to which they had been formerly accustomed. The people also con-
tinued the use of their beads, which had been brought in by Peter the
Hermit, in the eleventh century, by which repeating the angels saluta-
tion to the virgin was made a great part of their devotions, and was ten
times said for one Pater Noster. Instructions were given to the visitors
to put all these down in a new visitation, and to enquire if any priests
continued their trentals, their thirty masses for departed souls. Orders
were also given, that there should be no private masses at altars in the
corners of churches; also that there should be but one communion in a
day, unless in great churches, and at high festivals, in which they were
allowed to have two, one in the morning, and another at noon.
The visitors made their report, that they found the book of common-
prayer received universally over the kingdom, except that lady Mary
continued to have mass said according to the abrogated forms. Upon
this the council wrote to her to conform to the laws; pleading with her
that being so near to the king in blood, she was the more obliged to
give example to the rest of the subjects. She refused to comply, and
sent to the emperor for his protection; upon which he pressed the
English ambassador, who promised that for some time she should be
dispensed. The emperor pretended afterwards that they had made him
an absolute promise that she should never more be troubled about it;
but the ambassador said it was only a temporary one. She refused to
acknowledge the laws made when the king was under age, and carried
herself very haughtily. She well knew that the protector was then
fearful of a war with France, which made the emperor's alliance more
necessary to England: yet the council sent for the officers of her house-
hold, and required them to let her know that the king's authority was
the same while he was a child as at full age; and that it was now
lodged in them; and though as single persons, they were all inferior to
her, yet as they were the king's council, she was bound to obey them,
especially when they executed the law; which all subjects, of what-
ever rank, were bound to obey. She obstinately refused to hear any
of the bishops speak before her in favour of the reformation. Upon
this the council returned an answer to her, that her objections were
more the result of will than of reason, and therefore her grace must
be admonished neither to trust her own opinion without ground, nor to
mislike all others having ground. If hers were good, it were no hurt
if she heard the worst. If it were ill, she might do well to hear the
better.
The reformation of the greatest errors in divine worship being thus
FURTHER REFORMATION OF ERRORS. 507
established, Cranmer proceeded next to establish a form of doctrine.
The chief point hitherto untouched, was the presence of Christ in the
sacrament, which the priests magnified as the greatest mystery of the
Christian religion, and the chief privilege of Christians; with which the
simple and credulous vulgar were mightily affected. The Lutherans
received that which had been for some ages the doctrine of the Greek
church, that in the sacraments there was both bread and wine, and
also the substance of the body and blood of Christ. The Helvetians
looked on it only as a commemoration of the death of Christ. The
princes of Germany were at great pains to have these reconciled, in
which Bucer had laboured with great industry. Some took a middle
way, and asserted a real presence, while it was not easy to understand
what was meant by that expression, unless it was a real application of
Christ's death ; so that the meaning of really was effectually. Though
Bucer followed this method, Peter Martyr in his lectures declared plainly
for the Helvetians. Dr. Smith and some others intended publicly to
oppose and affront him ; and challenged him to a dispute about it, which
he readily accepted on condition that the king's council should first
approve of it, and that it should be managed in scripture terms: for the
strength of those doctors lay in. a nimble managing of those barbarous
and unintelligible terms of the schools, which, though they sounded
high, yet really had no meaning : so that the protestants resolved to
dispute in scripture terms, which were certainly more proper in matters
of divinity than the metaphysical language of schoolmen.
The council having appointed Dr. Cox and some others to preside in
the dispute, Dr. Smith went out of the way, and a little after fled out
of England : but before he went he wrote a very mean submission to
Cranmer. Other doctors disputed with Peter Martyr concerning tran-
substantiation, but it had the common fate of all public disputes, for
both sides contended that they were victors. At this time there were
also disputes at Cambridge, which were moderated by Ridley, who had
been sent down by the council. He had fallen on Bertram's book of
the sacrament, and wondered much to find so celebrated a writer in the
ninth century engage so plainly against the corporeal presence. This
disposed him to think that at that time it was not the received belief of
the church : he communicated the opinion to Cranmer, and they together
made great collections out of the fathers upon it, and both of them
wrote concerning it.
The substance of their arguments was, that as Christ called the cup
" the fruit of the vine," so St. Paul called the other element bread,
after the consecration ; which shews that their nature was not changed.
When Christ substituted the eucharist in the room of the paschal
lamb, he used such expressions as had been customary among the Jews
on that occasion ; who called the lamb the Lord's passover ; which
could not be meant literally, since the passover was the angels' passing
over their houses, when the first-born of the Egyptians were killed.
Being a commemoration of what was called the Lord's passover, in
the same sense did Christ call the bread his body : figurative expressions
being ordinary in scripture, and not improper in sacraments, which may
be called figurative actions. The Lord's supper was also appointed for
508 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
a remembrance of Christ, and that supposes absence. The elements
were also called by Christ his body broken, and his blood shed ; so it is
plain they were his body, not as it is glorified in Heaven, but as it suf-
fered on the cross : and since the scriptures speak of Christ's continu-
ance in Heaven till the last day, from thence they inferred that he was
not corporeally present. It was moreover shewed, that eating Christ's
flesh, mentioned by St. John, was not to be understood of the sacrament,
since of every partaker it is said that he has eternal life. It must there-
fore be understood only of receiving Christ's doctrine as he himself ex-
plained, when he said, "The flesh profiteth nothing; but my words,
they are spirit and they are life." 5
There were some anabaptists at this time in England, who came from
Germany. Of these there were two sorts ; the first only objected to
baptising children, and to the manner of it by sprinkling instead of
dipping. The other held many opinions, anciently condemned as here-
sies : they had raised a cruel war in Germany, and had set up a new
king at Munster : but all these bore the name of anabaptists from their
rejection of infant baptism, though that was one of the mildest opinions
they held. When they came over to England, a commission was granted
to some bishops, and others, to search them out, and to proceed against
them. Several of these persons on being taken up and brought before
the council, abjured their errors, which were, that there was not a
Trinity of persons ; that Christ was not God, and took not flesh of the
Virgin ; and that a regenerate man could not sin.
Among the most zealous and enthusiastic holders of the opinion that
Christ was not the same flesh as his virgin mother, was Joan Bocher,
generally called Joan of Kent. She was resolute in her opinions, and
rejected all the instruction offered her with scorn : she was, therefore,
condemned as an obstinate heretic, and delivered to the secular arm.
It was with the most extreme reluctance that the king signed the war-
rant for her execution ; he thought it was an instance of the same spirit
of cruelty for which the reformers condemned the papists; and, not-
withstanding all the arguments that were used with him, he was rather
silenced than satisfied. He signed the warrant with tears in his eyes,
and said to Cranmer, that since he resigned up himself to his judgment,
if he sinned in it the sin should lie at his door. This struck the arch-
bishop ; and both he and Ridley took Joan into their houses, and tried
what reason joined with gentleness could do. But she became more and
b It is remarkable that in the ninth century, many of the greatest men wrote against the
real presence, and none of them were condemned as heretics. The contrary opinion was
then received in England, as appeared by the Saxon homily, which was read on Easter-
day, in which are several of Bertram's words. It was generally received in the eleventh
century, and fully established in the fourth council in the Lateran. At first it was believed
that the whole loaf was turned into one entire body, so that in the distribution every one
had a small part given him ; and according to that conceit it was pretended, that it often
bled, and was turned into flesh. But this seemed an indecent way of handling Christ's
glorified body, so that the schoolmen invented a more seemly notion — that such a body
might be in a place after the manner of a spirit, so that in every crumb there was an entire
Christ. This, though it appeared hard to be conceived, yet generally prevailed, after which
the miracles fitted for the former opinion were no more heard of, but new ones agreeing to
this hypothesis were imposed in their stead. So dexterously did the priests deceive the
world, until the time arrived for the great standing deception of the host!
KKBELLION IN DEVONSHIRE.
509
more resolute in her profession, and at last was burnt. She was sustained
in her last moments by the peculiar fervor of her soul in the resistance of
what she called, and justly called, a most cruel and unrighteous tyranny.
Unprejudiced spirits, under full christian controul, would have mercifully
provided this poor victim of lunacy with some appropriate asylum,
rather than indulge the thought of leading her to the stake and kindling
the flames around her. Gracious God ! that this should have been done
by Christians and Protestants! and that, while they were reforming the
church, and attempting to establish on the ruins of a barbarous policy
the gospel of peace and love! Joan was not the only victim of protes-
tant misrule. George Van Parre, a Dutchman, was also condemned and
burnt for denying the divinity of Christ, and saying, that the Father only
was God. He had led a very exemplary life, both for fasting, devotion,
and a good conversation ; and he suffered with extraordinary composedness
of mind. Against the other sort of anabaptists no severities were used;
but several books were written to justify infant baptism ; and the prac-
tice of the church so clearly begun, and so universally spread, was thought
a good plea, especially being grounded on such arguments in scripture
as demonstrated at least its lawfulness and propriety.
About this time a rebellion broke out in many parts of England,
partly arising from a jealousy in the commons against the nobility and
gentry, who finding more advantage by the trade of wool than corn,
generally inclosed their grounds, and turned them to pasture, by which
a great number of persons were thrown out of employment, and a
general consternation prevailed. The other cause was the unquenched
enmity of the priests to the reformation, who endeavoured to revive in
the minds of the blinded multitude their former errors. In Devonshire,
the insurrection was very formidable ; the superstition of the priests
joining with the rage of the commons, they became quickly ten thou-
sand strong. The lord Russel was sent against them with a small force,
and ordered to try if the matter could be composed without blood : but
Arundel, a man of quality, commanding the rebels, they were not a
loose body of people so easily dispersed. They sent their demand to
court — that the old service and ceremonies might be set up again ;
that the act of the six articles, and the decrees of general councils
might be again in force : that the bible in English should be called in ;
that preachers should pray for the souls in purgatory ; that Cardinal
Pole should be restored ; that the half of the abbey lands should be
restored, to found two abbeys in every county ; and that gentlemen of
100 marks a year might have but one servant. They desired besides,
a safe conduct for their chief leaders, in order to the redress of their
particular grievances.
Cranmer wrote an answer, shewing the impropriety and superstition of
those rites and ceremonies, and of that whole way of worship of which
they were so fond : and that the amendments and changes had been made
according to the scriptures, and the customs of the primitive church :
that their being fond of a worship which they understood not, and being
desirous to be kept still in ignorance, without the scriptures, proved
that their priests had greater power over them than the common reason
of all mankind had. "As for the six articles," he added " that act. had
510 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
never passed if the king had not gone in person to the parliament, and
argued for it: yet he soon saw his error, and was slack in executing it."
After this a threatening answer was sent them in the king's name,
charging them with their rebellion and blind obedience to their priests.
In it the king's authority, though he was under age, was largely set
forth; for by the pretence of his minority the people generally were
taught to believe that their rising in arms was not rebellion. In con-
clusion, they were earnestly invited to submit to the royal mercy, as
others had done, whom the king had not only pardoned, but whose
just grievances he had fully redressed. A fast was proclaimed at court,
when Cranmer preached with great freedom and vehemence: he laid
before them their vicious lives, particularly of those who pretended a
love to the gospel; and declared the judgments of God which they
might look for; enlarging on the fresh example of the calamities of
Germany, and intimating the sad apprehensions he had of some terrible
stroke, if they did not repent and amend. The rebels continuing in
arms, troops were sent against them; and after some resistance, they
were at length every where routed, their leaders punished, and tran-
quillity restored.
A visitation of Cambridge followed soon after. Ridley was the chief
visitor. When he found that a design was laid to suppress some colleges,
under pretence of uniting them to others, and to convert some fellow-
ships that were provided for divines to the study of the civil law, he
refused his assent. He said the church was already too much robbed,
and yet some men's craving was not to be satisfied. It seems the de-
sign was laid to drive both religion and learning out of the land; and
therefore he desired leave to be gone. The visitors complained of him
to the protector, who wrote him a chiding letter : but he answered it
with the freedom that became a bishop, who was resolved to suffer all
things rather than sin against his conscience ; and the protector was so
well satisfied with him, that for his sake the college of Clare-hall, the
suppression of which he had strongly objected to, was preserved.
Bonner was now brought into trouble. It was not easy to know how
to deal with him, for he obeyed every order that was sent to him; and
yet it was known that he secretly hated and condemned the whole re-
forming system, and as often as he could declare that safely, he was
not wanting by such ways to preserve his interest with the papists :
thus though he obeyed the orders of council, he did it in so remiss a
manner that it was visible it went against him. He was therefore called
before it, and charged with several particulars, that whereas he used to
officiate himself on the great festivals, he had not done it since the new
service was set out; that he took no care to repress adultery, and that
he never preached. In the end, proving very refractory and violent,
he was deprived of his bishopric, and committed to prison during the
kind's pleasure.
The English affairs this year upon the continent were extremely un-
successful, and the protector being charged with the result, complaints
went loud against him; and his enemies, who were very numerous and
powerful, took off the mask and openly declared hostility to his govern-
ment. The earls of Southampton and Warwick were the chief; the
FALL OK THE PROTECTOR. 5:1 i
one hated him for dismissing him from office, and the other hoped to
be the chief man in the realm if he should fall. Nor was this all the
protector's peril; the privy counsellors complained, that he was become
so arbitrary in his proceedings, that he disregarded the opposition that
was made by the majority of the council to any of his designs. All
these things concurred to be^get him many enemies : and except Cranmer,
Paget, and Smith, all turned against him. The council violently com-
plained of his conduct in foreign affairs, and enlarged upon the evils
that had resulted from it.
The protector carried the king to Hampton-court, and put many of
his own people about him, which increased the jealousy against him :
upon which, nine of the privy council met at Ely-house, and assumed
to themselves the authority of the council; and secretary Petre being
sent by the king, to ask the account of their meeting, instead of re-
turning joined himself to them. They made a large declaration of the
protector's ill-government; and they resolved themselves to see to the
safety of the king and kingdom. Both the city of London, and the
lieutenant of the Tower declared for them : they also sent letters through
England, desiring the assistance of the nobility and gentry. Seven
more privy counsellors came and joined them. The protector had re-
moved the king from Hampton-court to Windsor, which had some de-
fence about it; and had armed some of his own servants, and set them
about the king's person; yet seeing himself abandoned by all but a few
friends, and finding the party against him was of such a strength that
it would be in vain to struggle any longer, he offered to submit himself
to the council. A proposition of treaty was set on foot, and the lords
in London were desired to send two of their number with their pro-
posals, and a passport was sent them for their safety. Cranmer and
two others wrote to the council, to dispose them to an agreement, and
not to follow cruel suggestions. Many false reports were abroad of the
protector, that he had threatened, if they intended to put him to death,
the king should die first, which served to increase the prejudices against
him. The council wrote to Cranmer and Paget, charging them to look
well to the king's person, that he should not be removed from Windsor;
and tk*at the protector's dependants might be put from him, and his own
sworn servants admitted. They also protested that they would proceed
with all the moderation and favour towards the duke that was possible.
Understanding that all things were prepared as they had desired, they
sent first three of their number, to see that the duke and some of his
friends, namely, Smith, Stanhope, Thynne, Wolf, and Cecil, should be
confined to their lodgings; and on the 12th of October, the whole
council went to Windsor, and made great protestations of their duty to
the king, which he received favourably, and assured them he took all
that they had done in good part.
On this the protector, with the rest of his friends except Cecil, who
was presently enlarged, were sent to the Tower, and many articles were
objected to him, that he had treated with ambassadors apart, had made
bishops and lord-lieutenants of his own will, had held a court of requests
in his house, had embased the coin and neglected the places the king
had in France, had encouraged the commons in their late insurrections,
512 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
had given out commissions, and proclaimed a pardon without con-
sent of the council; that he had animated the king against them,
had proclaimed them traitors, and had put his own servants armed
about the king's person. Hence it appears, that the crimes alleged
against him were the effects of his sudden exaltation, which had
made him too much forget that he was a subject: although in fact he
had carried his greatness with much innocence, since in all the studied
charges brought against him by his numerous enemies, no acts of
cruelty, rapine, or bribery, were objected to him. His faults were
rather errors and weaknesses, than crimes. His embasing the coin was
done upon a common mistake of weak governments, who fly to that as
their last refuge in the necessity of their affairs. In his imprisonment,
he set himself to the study of moral philosophy and divinity, and wrote
a preface to a book of patience, which had made great impressions on
him. His fall was a great affliction to all who loved the reformation,
and this was increased because they had no reason to trust much to the
two chief men of the party against him. Southampton was a known
papist, and Warwick was looked on as a man of no religion : and both
at the emperor's court, and in France, it was expected that upon this
revolution, religion would again drop into the posture in which kino-
Henry had left it. The duke of Norfolk and bishop Gardiner hoped
to be discharged, Bonner looked to be re-established in his bishopric,
and all people began to neglect the new service: this would no doubt
immediately have been the case had not the earl of Warwick, finding
the king zealously affected to the reformation, quickly forsook the
popish party, and become a mighty promoter of that cause. A court
of civilians was appointed to examine Bonner's appeal, and upon their
report the council rejected it, and confirmed the sentence that had been
upon him.
In November the parliament met, when an act was passed declaring
it treason to call any to the number of twelve together about matter of
state, if on being required they did not disperse. The bishops made a
heavy complaint of the growth of vice and impiety, and that their power
was so much abridged, they could not repress them. Accordingly a
bill was read, enlarging their authority; but it was thought to give them
too much power, and it was so moderated that the lords passed it; but
the commons rejected it, and sent up a bill that empowered thirty-two
who were to be named by the king, one half of the temporality, and
the other of the spirituality, to compile a body of ecclesiastical laws
within three years; and that these, not being contrary to the common
or statute law, and approved of by the king, should have ecclesiastical
authority in the land. Of this thirty-two, four were to be bishops, and
as many to be common lawyers. Twelve divines were also empowered
to prepare a new form of ordination ; which being confirmed under the
great seal, should take place after April. Articles were then put in
against the duke of Somerset, with a confession signed by him. He
protested that his errors had flowed rather from indiscretion than malice,
and denied all treasonable designs against the king or the realm: he
was fined in 2000Z. a year in land, and the loss of all his goods and
offices. He complained of the heaviness of this censure, and desired
CEREMONIES OF IHE LIOMISH CHURCH. 513
earnestly to be restored to the king's favour, trusting that he should
make amends for his past tollies, lie was discharged in the beginning
of February, soon after which he was pardoned, and was again brought
both to the court and council.
The reformation now proceeded with fresh vigour. The council sent,
orders over England to require all to conform themselves to the new
service, and to call in all the books of the old offices. An act passed
iu parliament to the same effect. All the old books and images were
appointed to be defaced, and all prayers to saints were to be struck out
of the primmers published by the late king. A remarkable privilege
was this session granted to the eldest sons of peers, who were allowed
as such to sit in the commons' house. The committee appointed to
prepare the book of ordinations, finished their work with common con-
sent. It was found that in the ancient church, there was nothing used
in ordinations, but prayer and imposition of hands: the additions of
anointing and giving consecrated vestments were afterwards brought
in. In the council of Florence, it w r as declared that the rite of or-
daining a priest, the delivering vessels for the eucharist, with a power
to offer sacrifices to God for the dead and living, were novelties invented
to support the belief of transubstantiation. All these additions were
now cut off, and ordination was restored to a greater simplicity ; and
the form was almost the same as that still in use, only then in ordaining
a priest, the bishop was to lay one hand on his head, and with the other
to give him a Bible, and a chalice with bread in it. In the consecration
of a bishop, the form was the same that we retain, only then the custom
was retained of giving the bishop a staff, saying these words, " Be to
the flock of Christ a shepherd."
In the middle of the sixth century, the anointing the priests' hands
was begun in France, but was not used in the Roman church for two
ages after. In the eighth century, the vestments were given w 7 ith a special
blessing, empowering priests to offer expiatory sacrifices ; then their
heads were anointed : and in the tenth century, the belief of transub-
stantiation being received, the vessels for the sacrament were delivered.
It is evident from the several forms of ordination, that the church did
not believe itself tied to one manner; and that the prayer, which in
some ages was the prayer of consecration, was in other ages esteemed
only a prayer preparatory to it. There were some sponsions promised,
as a covenant, to which the ordination was a seal: the first of these was
that the persons who came to receive orders professed that they were
inwardly moved by the Holy Ghost. If this were well considered, it
would no doubt put many that thirst after sacred offices to a stand ;
who, if they examine themselves well, dare not pretend to a gift con-
cerning which they know nothing, but that they have it not.
At this time pope Paul the third died. In the conclave that followed,
cardinal Farnese set up cardinal Pole, whose wise behaviour in the
council of Trent had greatly raised his esteem. It also appeared, that
though he was of the emperor's faction, yet he did not serve him blindly.
Some loaded him with the imputations of Lutheranism, and incontinence :
the last would not have hindered his advancement, though true, yet he
fully cleared himself from it: but the former lay heavier, for in his re-
2 L
514 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tirement at Viterbo, where he was legate, he had given himself to the
study of controversies; and Tranellius, Flaminio, and others suspected
of Lutheranism, had lived in his house; and in the council of Trent
he seemed favourable to some of their opinions. But the great suffer-
ings both of himself and family in England, seemed to set him above
all suspicions. When his friends had almost gained a sufficient number
of suffrages, he seemed little concerned at it, and rather declined than
aspired to the dignity. When a full number had agreed, and came to
adore him, according to the ordinary ceremony, he received it with his
usual coldness; and it being done in the night, he said, "God loves
light," advising them to delay it till day. The Italians, among whom
ambition passes for the character of a great mind, looked on this as
an insufferable piece of dulness ; so that the cardinals shrunk from him
before day, and chose de Monte pope, who reigned by the name of
Julius the Third. His first promotion is very extraordinary, for he gave
his cardinal's hat to a servant who kept his monkey; and being asked
the reason of it, he said, he saw as much in his servant to recommend
him to be a cardinal, as the conclave saw in him to induce them to
choose him pope.
In February, Ridley was made bishop of London and Westminster;
1000/. a year of the rents of the see were assigned him, with licence to
hold two prebends. Repse, bishop of Norwich resigned, upon which
Therleby, bishop of Westminster, was removed to Norwich ; and it was
resolved to re-unite London and Westminster, and to place them under
one man's care. Ridley's patent was not during pleasure but during
life — a strong proof of the king's favour. About this time there was a
discourse on foot of a marriage between the king and a French princess,
which grieved the reformers, who rather wished him to marry Maximilian's
daughter, who was believed to favour the reformation, and was esteemed
one of the best men of the age. Dr. Latimer preached at court, and
warned the king of the ill effects of bad marriages, which were made
up only as political bargains, without affection between the parties; and
that they occasioned so much iniquity, and so many divorces: he also
complained of the luxury and vanity of the age, and pressed the setting
up a primitive discipline in the church. He preached this as his last
sermon, and therefore used great freedom.
The see of Gloucester fell vacant, and Hooper was named to it. He
had some scruples about the episcopal vestments, and thought all those
garments having been consecrated with much superstition were to be
reckoned among the elements condemned by St. Paul: but Ridley jus-
tified the use of them, and said the elements condemned by St. Paul,
were only the Jewish ceremonies; which the apostles condemned when
they were imposed as essential, as though the Mosaical law was not
abrogated, and the Messiah was not come. Cranmer desired Bucer's
opinion concerning the lawfulness of those habits, and the obligation
lying on subjects to obey the laws about them. His opinion was that
every creature of God was good, and that no former abuse could make
a thing indifferent in itself become unlawful. Yet since those garments
had been abused to superstition, and were likely to become a subject of
contention, he wished they might be taken away by law; and that eccle-
REVIEW OF THE COMMON PRAYER BOOK. 515
siastica] discipline, and a more complete reformation might be pursued,
and a stop put to the robbing of churches; otherwise they might see,
in the present state of Germany, a dreadful prospect of that which
England ought to look for. He wished that all good men would unite
against the greater corruptions, and then lesser abuses would easily be
redressed. Peter Martyr also delivered his opinion to the same purpose.
Hooper was suspended from preaching; but the earl of Warwick wrote
to Cranmer to dispense with him in that matter: he answered, that while
the law continued in force, he could not do it without incurring a
Prcemunire. Upon this the king wrote to him, allowing him to do it,
and dispensing with the law : yet this matter was not settled till a year
after. John a Lasco, with some Germans of the Helvetian confession,
came this year into England, being driven out of Germany by persecu-
tion: they were erected by letters patent into a corporation, and a Lasco
was their superintendent. He wrote both against the habits, and against
kneeling in the sacrament. Polydore Virgil was this year suffered to
go out of England, and still to hold the preferments he had in it.
Pomet was made bishop of Rochester, and Coverdale co-adjutor to
Veysey in Exeter, the bishop of which he soon became.
A design was now set on foot for a review of the common-prayer
book, in order to which Bucer's opinion was asked. He approved the
main parts of the former book, and wished there might not only be a
denunciation against scandalous persons who came to the sacrament, but
a discipline to exclude them: that the habits might be laid aside; that
no part of the communion office might be used, except when there was
a sacrament; that communion might be more frequent; that the prayers
might be said in a plain voice; the sacrament put in the people's
hands; and that there might be no prayers for the dead. He advised
a change of some phrases in the office of the communion which seemed
to favour transubstantiation ; and that baptism might be only in
churches. He thought the hallowing water, the chrism, and the
white garment, were too scenical: nor did he approve of adjuring the
devil, nor of the god-father's answering in the child's name: he thought
confirmation should be delayed till the person was of age, and came
sincerely to renew the baptismal covenant. He advised catechising every
holy day, both of children and adults; he disliked private marriages,
extreme unction, and offerings at the churching of women : and thought
there ought to be greater strictness used in the examination of those
who came to receive orders.
At the same time he understood that the king expected a new-year's
gift from him, of a book written particularly for his own use: he, there-
fore, prepared a work for him concerning the kingdom of Christ: he
pressed much the setting up a strict discipline, the sanctification of the
Lord's day, appointed days of fasting, and that pluralities and non-
residence might be effectually condemned; that children might be cate-
chised ; that the reverence due to churches might be preserved ; that
bishops should throw off secular affairs, take care of their dioceses, and
govern them by the advice of their presbysters; that there might be
rural bishops over twenty or thirty parishes; that provincial councils
might meet twice a year; that church-lands should be restored, and a
516 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
fourth part be assigned to the poor ; that marriage without consent of
parents should be annulled ; that a second marriage might be declared
lawful, after divorce for adultery, and some other reasons ; that care should
be taken of the education of youth, and for repressing luxury ; that
the law might be reformed ; that no office might be sold, but given to
the most deserving ; that none should be put in prison upon slight
offences ; and that the severity of some laws, as that which made theft
capital, might be mitigated.
Edward was much pleased with these advices ; and upon them began
himself to form a scheme for amending many things that were amiss in
the government. This he writ with his own hand, and in a style and
manner which had much of a child in it, though the thoughts were
manly. It appears that he intended to set up a church discipline, and
settle a method of bringing up youth ; but the discourse was not finished.
He also wrote a journal of every thing that passed at home, and of the
news from beyond sea. It had clear marks of his own composing, as
well as it is written with his own hand. He wrote another discourse in
French, being a collection of all the places of scripture against idolatry,
with a preface before it, dedicated to the protector.
At this time Ridley made his first visitation to his diocese ; the articles
upon which he proceeded chiefly related to the service and ceremonies
that were abolished. He also carried some injunctions with him against
certain remainders of the former superstition, and for exhorting the
people to alms, and to come oft to the sacrament ; and that altars
might be removed, and tables put in their room, in the most con-
venient place of the chancel. In the ancient church the tables
were of wood; but the sacrament being called a sacrifice, as prayers,
alms, and all holy oblations were, they came to be called altars.
This gave the rise to the opinion of expiatory sacrifice in the mass,
and therefore it was thought fit to take away both the name
and form of altars. Ridley only advised the curates to do this ; but
upon some contests arising concerning it, the council interposed, and
required it to be done ; and sent with their order a list of reasons justi-
fying it. The following among others were most excellent reasons as-
signed in this official paper of the council for the substitution of simple
tables for carved and adorned altars.
" The form of a table shall more move the simple from the supersti-
tious opinions of the popish mass, unto the right use of the Lord's supper.
— For the use of an altar is to make sacrifice upon it ; the use of a
table is to serve for men to eat upon. Now when we come unto the
Lord's board, what do we come for? To sacrifice Christ again, and to
crucify him again, or to feed upon him that was once only crucified
and offered up for us? If we come to feed upon him, spiritually
to eat his body, and spiritually to drink his blood, which is the
use of the Lord's supper, then no man can deny but the form of a
table is more meet for the Lord's board than the form of an altar."
Then, moreover, "Jesus Christ did institute the sacrament of his body
and blood at his last supper at a table, and not at an altar, as it ap-
peareth manifestly by the three Evangelists. And St. Paul calleth the
coming to the holy communion the coming unto the Lord's supper.
PROGRESS OF HIE REFORMATION. 517
And also it is not read that any of the apostles or the primitive church
did ever use any altar in ministration of the holy communion. Where-
fore Beeing the form of a table is more agreeable to Christ's institution,
and with the usage of the apostles, and of the primitive church, than
the form of an altar, therefore the form of a table is rather to be used
than the form of an altar in the administration of the holy communion."
The government was now free of all disturbance : the coin was
reformed, and commerce was encouraged. The faction in the court
seemed also to be extinguished by a marriage between the earl of
Warwick's son and the duke of Somerset's daughter. The duke of
Lunenburgh made a proposition of marriage with lady Mary, but the
treaty with the infant of Portugal did still depend, so it was not enter-
tained. In addition the church promised well : even the popish clergy
conformed to every change that was made. Oglethorpe, afterwards
bishop of Carlisle, being informed against as favouring the old supersti-
tion, under his hand declared, that he thought the order of religion
then settled was neard the use of the primitive church than that
which was formerly received, and that he condemned transubstantiation
as a late invention, and approved the communion in both kinds,
also the people's receiving it always with the priest. Smith, w 7 ho
had written against the marriage of the clergy, and was upon some
complaints put in prison, but discharged by Cranmer's intercession,
wrote a submission to him, acknowledging the mistakes he had com-
mitted in his book, and the archbishop's gentleness towards him:
and wished he might perish if he was not sincere, and called God
a witness against his soul if he lied. Day, bishop of Chichester, also
preached at court against transubstantiation. The principle by which
most of that party governed themselves was this — they concluded they
ought to oppose all the changes before they were established by law ;
yet that being done, that they might afterwards comply with them.
Martin Bucer died in the beginning of this year. He had enter-
tained great apprehensions of a fatal revolution in England, by reason
of the ill lives of the people, the want of ecclesiastical discipline, and
the neglect of the pastoral charge. Orders were sent from the court
to Cambridge, to bury him with all the public honour to his memory
that could be devised. Speeches and sermons were made both by
Haddon, the university orator, and Parker, then Regius professor, and
afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury. He Avas one of the most extra-
ordinary men both for learning and a true judgment of things in that
time : he had differed in some points from Bucer, and yet he acknow-
ledged, that there was none alive of whom he hoped to learn so much
as he had done by his conversation with him. Bucer was inferior to
none of all the reformers in learning, and had a great zeal for preserv-
ing the unity of the church : he had not that fluency in disputing for
which Peter Martyr was admired, and the popish doctors took advantage
from that to carry themselves more insolently towards him.
Soon after this, Gardiner's process was put to an end : a commission
was issued out to Cranmer, three bishops, and some civilians, to proceed
against him, for his contempt in refusing to sign the articles that had
been offered to him The things objected to him were, that he refused
518 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
to advocate in his sermon the king's power when he was under age,
and had affronted the preachers whom the king had sent to his diocese ;
that he had been negligent in executing the king's injunctions, and refused
to confess his fault and ask the king's pardon. It was said that the
rebellions raised in England might have been prevented, if he had in
time set forth the king's authority: to which he answered, that he was
not required to do it by any order of council, but only in a private dis-
course ; yet witnesses being examined upon these particulars, the dele-
gates proceeded to sentence of deprivation against him notwithstanding
his appeal to the king in person ; and he was appointed to lie still in
the tower, where he continued till queen Mary discharged him.
By this time the greater number of the bishops were such men as
heartily received the reformation : it was, therefore, resolved to proceed
to a settlement of the doctrine of the church. Many thought that
should have been done in the first place ; but Cranmer judged it was
better to proceed slowly in such a matter : he thought corruptions in
the worship were to be first begun with, since while they remained the
addresses to God were so defiled that all people were involved in un-
lawful compliances. He thought that speculative opinions might come
last, since errors in them were not of such ill-consequence : and he
judged it necessary to lay these open, in many treatises and disputes,
before the council should proceed to make alterations, in order that all
people might be fully satisfied with what was done. Accordingly they
framed a body of articles which contained the doctrine of the church
of England : they divided them into forty-two, and afterwards some few
alterations being made in the beginning of queen Elizabeth's reign,
they were reduced to their present number, thirty nine. c
The greatest care was taken to frame these articles in the most com-
prehensive words, and the greatest simplicity united with strength.
When this was settled, commenced the review of the common prayer
book. In the daily service they added the confession and absolution,
that so the worship of God might begin in a grave and humble manner:
after which a solemn declaration of the mercy of God, according to the
terms of the gospel, was to be pronounced by the priest. This was
thought much better than giving absolution in such formal words, as,
" I absolve thee:" which begat in the superficial worshipper an opinion,
that the priest had authority to pardon sin, and which made them think
of nothing so much as how to purchase it at his hands. In the com-
munion service they ordered a recital of the commandments, with a
short devotion between every one of them. The holy oil, the use of the
cross in consecrating the eucharist, prayers for the dead, and some ex-
pressions that favoured transubstantiation, were rejected, and the book
cln the ancient church there was at first a great simplicity in their creeds; but after-
wards, upon the breaking out of heresies concerning the person of Christ, equivocal senses
being put on the terms formerly used, new ones, which could not be so easily eluded, were
invented. A humour of explaining mysteries by similes and niceties, and of passing
anathemas on all who did not receive these, was very common in the church : and though
the council of Ephesus decreed that no new additions should be made to the creed, yet
that did not restrain those who loved to make their own conceits be received as parts of
the faith.
LADY MARY REFUSES TO CONFORM. ol9
was put in the same order as that in which it continues to this day, ex-
cepting only some inconsiderable variations. A ru brick was added to
the otrice of the communion, explaining the reason of kneeling in it,
tiiat it was only an expression of reverence and gratitude upon receiving
so particular a mark of the favour of God : but that no adoration was
iuiended by it, and no intimation that Christ was corporeally present
in it. In queen Elizabeth's time this was omitted, that such as con-
formed in other things, but still retained the belief of the corporeal
presence, might not be offended at such a declaration; but it was again
inserted on the restoration of Charles II., for removing the scruples of
those who excepted to that posture. Christ at first instituted this sacra-
ment in the ordinary table gesture. Moses appointed the pascal lamb
to be eaten by the people standing, with staves in their hands, they
being then to begin their march ; yet that was afterwards changed by
the Jews, who ate it in the posture common at meals, which our Saviour's
practice justifies.
At this time six of the most eminent preachers were appointed to wait
on the court by turns, two at a time, and the other four were sent as
itinerant preachers into all the counties of England, in a circuit, for
supplying the defects of the clergy, who were generally very weak and
faulty. This was no new practice among reformers of the church.
Wickliffe and his disciples w r ent from town to town, and from county
to county, to preach the gospel ; which they proclaimed in church yards
as well as churches, and even in markets and fairs, and whatever public
places would allow of the greatest numbers to hear them. The protes-
tants of France early adopted the same custom. Even the catholics
have been examples of this zeal in defence of corruption and error,
which the reformed have found so remarkably efficient in propagating
the true faith.
The mass, which was still continued in lady Mary's chapel, was now
again challenged. The court was less afraid of the emperor's displea-
sure than formerly, and therefore would no longer bear w 7 ith so public a
breach of law : and the promise they had made being but temporary,
and never given in writing, they thought they were not bound by it.
But the emperor assured her that he had an absolute promise for that
privilege in her behalf: this encouraged her so much, that when the
council wrote, she said she would follow the catholic church, and adhere
to her father's religion. Answer was written in the king's name, requir-
ing her to obey the law, and not to pretend that the king was under
age, since the late rebels had justified themselves by that. The way of
worship then established, was also vindicated, as most consonant to the
word of God. But she refused to engage in any disputes, and said she
would continue in her former courses. She once was thinking of going
out of England, insomuch that the emperor ordered a ship to lie near
the coast for her transportation, and espoused her quarrel so warmly,
that he threatened to make war, if she should be severely used. Dr.
^'otton was sent over to the emperor, to convince him that no absolute
promise was ever made: but he pretended, that he had promised to
her mother at her death to protect her, and was therefore bound in
honour to take care of her : but now when the council were not in such
520 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
fear of the emperor's displeasure, they sent to seize on two of her chap-
lains, who had said mass in her house, when she was absent ; they kept
out of the way, and she wrote to the council to stop the prosecution,
and continued to stand upon the promise made to the emperor. A long
answer was returned to her by the council, in which after the matter of
the promise was cleared, they urged the absurdity of prayers in an
unknown tongue, offering the sacrament for the dead, and worshipping
images : the ancients appealed upon all occasions to the scriptures, by
which she might easily discover the errors and cheats of the old super-
stition, that were supported only by false miracles and lying stories.
They pleaded that being trusted with the execution of the laws, they
were obliged to proceed equally.
Mallet, one of the chaplains, was taken, and upon her earnestly
desiring that he might be set at liberty, it was denied her. The council
sent for the chief officers of her house, and required them to let her
know the king's pleasure, that she must have the new service in her
family ; and to give the like charge to her chaplains and servants. This
vexed her much, and almost cast her into sickness. She said, she
would obey the king in every thing in which her conscience was not
touched ; but charged them not to deliver the council's message to her
servants. Upon that, the lord chancellor, the lord Petre, and one
other, were sent with the same orders to her : they carried to her a letter
from the king, which she received on her knees ; but when she read it,
she cast the blame of it on Cecil, then secretary of state. The chancellor
told her, the whole council were of one mind, that they could not suffer
her to use a form of worship against law, and had ordered them to in-
timate this both to herself and her family. She made great protestations
of duty to the king; but said, she would die rather than use any form
of worship but that which was left by her father, only she was afraid
she was not worthy to suffer on so good an account. If her chaplains
refused to say mass, she could have none, for the new service she was
resolved against, and if it was forced on her, she would leave her house.
She insisted on the promise made to the emperor, and she believed him
more than them all : she gave them a token to be carried to the king,
and so dismissed them. Upon this her resolution, the council went no
further, only after this her mass was said so secretly as to give no public
offence. From Copthall, where this was done, she removed and lived
at Hunsden, where Ridley went to see her. There is something so curious
in this visit and dialogue between the bishop and Mary, that we shall
give it in Mr. Fox's own words.
About the eighth of September Dr. Ridley, then bishop of London, being
at his house at Hadham, in Hertfordshire, went to visit the lady Mary
then living at Hunsden, two miles off; and was gently entertained by
Sir Thomas Wharton and other of her officers till it was almost eleven
o'clock, about which time the lady Mary came forth into her chamber
of presence, and then the bishop saluted her grace, and said, that he
was come to do his duty to her grace. She thanked him for his pains,
and for a quarter of an hour talked with him very pleasantly, saying
that she knew him in the court when he was chaplain to her father, and
could well remember a sermon that he made before king Henry her father,
DIALOGUE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LADY MARY. 521
at the marriage of my lady Clinton that now is, to Sir Anthony Brown.
So she dismissed him to dine with her officers. After dinner was done
the bishop being called for by the lady Mary, resorted again to her grace,
between whom this communication was. First the bishop began in manner
as followeth : — "Madam, I came not only to do my duty to see your
grace, but also to offer myself to preach before you on Sunday next, if
it will please you to hear me." At this her countenance changed, and
after silence for a space, she answered thus — " My Lord, as for this last
matter I pray you make the answer to it yourself." The dialogue then
proceeded thus: —
Bishop. Madam, considering mine office and calling, I am bound in
duty to make to your grace this offer, to preach before you.
Mary. Well, 1 pray you make the answer to this matter yourself;
for ycu know the answer well enough. But if there be no remedy but
1 must make you answer, this shall be your answer ; the door of the
parish-church adjoining shall be open for you if you come, and ye may
preach if you list; but neither I nor any of mine shall hear you.
Bishop. Madam, I trust you will not refuse God's word.
Mary. I cannot tell what ye call God's word; that is not God's word
now, that was God's word in my father's days.
Bishop. God's word is all one in all times, but hath been better un-
derstood and practised in some ages than in other.
Mary. You durst not for your ears have avouched ihat for God's
word in my father's days, that now you do. And as for your new
books, I thank God I never read any of them ; I never did, nor ever
will do.
After many bitter words against the form of religion then established,
and against the government of the realm, and the laws made in the
young- years of her brother, which she said she was not bound to obey
till her brother came to perfect age, and then she affirmed she would
obey them ; she asked the bishop whether he were one of the council :
he answered, " No." " You might well enough," said she, " as the
council goeth now a days." Then she concluded with these words:
"My lord, for your gentleness to come and see me, I thank you ; but
for your offering to preach before me, I thank you never a whit ,"
The bishop was dismissed, and brought by Sir Thomas Wharton
to the place where they dined, and was desired to drink. After
he had drunk, he paused awhile, looking very sadly, and suddenly
brake out into these words: " Surely, I have done amiss!" "Why
so?" quoth Sir Thomas Wharton. " I have drunk," said he, "in that
place where God's word offered hath been refused : whereas if I had
remembered my duty, I ought to havedeparted immediately, and to have
shaken off the dust of my shoes for a testimony against this house."
These words were by the bishop spoken with such a vehemency, that
some of the hearers afterward confessed their hair to stand upright on
their heads. This done, the bishop departed, and so returned to his
house.
At this time a great creation of peers took place. Warwick was
nude duke of Northumberland, the Percies being then under an at-
tainder: Paulet was made Marquis of Winchester; Herbert, earl of
522 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Pembroke; and a little before this, Russel had been created earl of
Bedford ; and Darcy was made a lord. There was none so likely to take
the king out of Northumberland's hands, as the duke of Somerset, who
was beginning to form a new party. Therefore, upon some informations,
the duke of Somerset and his duchess, Sir Ralph Vane, Sir Thomas
Palmer, Sir Thomas Arundel, and several others, of whom some were
gentlemen of quality, and others the duke's servants, were all committed
to the Tower. Committing Palmer was a mere delusion, for he had
betrayed the duke, and was seized as an accomplice, after which, he
pretended to discover a plot: he said, the duke intended to have raised
the people, and that Northumberland, Northampton, and Pembroke,
having been invited to dine at the lord Paget's, he intended to have
set on them by the way, or have killed them at dinner; that Vane was
to have 2000 men ready ; Arundel was to have seized on the Tower, and
all the gendarmarie were to have been killed. These things were told
the young king with such specious circumstances, that he was deluded
by them, and unhappily became alienated from his uncle, judging him
guilty of so foul a conspiracy. It was added by others, that the duke
intended to have raised the city of London; one Crane confirmed
Palmer's testimony, and both the earl of Arundel and Paget were com-
mitted as accomplices.
On the first of December the duke was brought to his trial : the marquis
of Winchester, lord steward presided; and twenty-seven peers sat in
judgment, among whom were the dukes of Suffolk and Northumberland,
and the earl of Pembroke. The particular charges were, a design to
seize on the king's person, to imprison Northumberland, and to raise
the city of London. It seemed a gross dereliction of justice for Nor-
thumberland to sit as judge, when one crime alleged was a design against
his life: for though by the law of England no peer can be challenged,
yet by the law of nature no man can judge where he is a party. The
chancellor, though a peer, was left out, upon suspicion of a reconcilia-
tion which he was making with the duke. The protector was not deeply
skilled in law, and neither objected to the indictment, nor desired
counsel to plead for him, but only answered to matters of fact: he denied
all design to raise the people, or to kill Northumberland; or if he had
talked thus it was in passion, without any intention: and it was ridicu-
lous to think, that he with a small troop could destroy nine hundred
gendarmarie. The armed men he had about him were for his own de-
fence; he had done no mischief to his enemies, though it was once in
his power to have done it ; and he had surrendered himself without any
resistance: he desired the witnesses might be brought face to face, and
objected many things to them, chiefly to Palmer; but this common act
of justice was denied him, and their depositions were only read. He
carried himself during the trial with great temper, and all the sharpness
which the king's counsel expressed in pleading against him did not
provoke him to any indecent passion.
When sentence was given his courage sank a little, and he asked the
three lords, who were his enemies, pardon for his ill designs against
them, and made suit for his life, and for his wife and children. It was
generally thought that nothing being found against him but an intention
FALL OF THE DUKE OF SOMERSET. 523
to imprison a privy counsellor, which had never taken effect, one so
nearly related to the king', would not have been put to death on that
account: it was therefore necessary to raise in the king a great aversion
to him. Accordingly, a story was brought to him, as if in the Tower the
protector had confessed a design to employ means to assassinate these
lords; and the persons said to have been named for that wicked service
were all persuaded to affirm it. This being believed by the king, he
took no care to preserve him, assassination being a crime of so bar-
barous a nature, that it possessed him with a horror, even of his uncle,
when he thought him guilty of it: and thus was he given up to his ene-
mies. Stanhope, Partridge, Arundel, and Vane, were next tried : the
two first were not much pitied, for they had made an ill use of their in-
terest in the duke during his greatness: the last two were much lamented.
Arundel's jury was shut up a whole day and night, and those who were
for the acquittal yielded to the fury of the rest, only that they might
save their own lives, and not be starved. Vane had done great service
in the wars, and carried himself with considerable magnanimity. They
were all condemned: Partridge and he were hanged, the other two
were beheaded.
The lord chancellor had become a secret friend to the duke of
Somerset, which was thus discovered : he went aside once at council
and wrote a note giving the duke notice of what was then in agitation
against him, and, endorsing it only for the duke, sent it to the Tower:
but his servant, not having particular directions, fancied it was to the
duke of Norfolk, and carried it to him. He, to make Northumberland
his friend, forwarded it to him : upon Rich understanding the mistake
into which his servant had fallen, to prevent the discovery, went imme-
diately to the king, and pretending some indisposition desired to be
discharged; upon which the great seal was taken from him, and put in
the hands of the bishop of Ely. This was much censured, for all the
reformers had inveighed severely against the secular employments and
high places which bishops had held in the church of Rome. Christ
said, " Who made me a judge?" St. Paul left it as a rule, that " No
man that warreth, entangleth himself with the affairs of this life." This
Saint Cyprian and the other fathers understood as a perpetual prohibi-
tion of churchmen's meddling with secular matters, and condemned it
severely. Many canons were made against this in provincial councils,
and a very full one was decreed at Chalcedon. But as the bishops of
Rome and Alexandria grew rich and powerful, they established a sort
of secular principality in the church: and other sees, as they increased
in wealth affected to imitate them. Charles the Great raised this much
everywhere, and gave great territories and privileges to the church;
upon which bishops and abbots were not only admitted to a share in
the public counsels, by virtue of their lands, but all the chief offices of
the state were open to them ; and then ecclesiastical preferments were
given to courtiers as rewards for their services. By these means the
clergy became very corrupt, merit and learning being no longer the
standards by which men were esteemed or promoted : and bishops were
only considered as a sort of great men, who went in a peculiar habit,
and on great festivities were obliged to say mass, or perform some other
524 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
solemnities. They wholly abandoned the souls committed to their care,
and left the spiritual part of their callings to their vicars and arch-
deacons, who made no other use of it, but to oppress the inferior clergy
and the people.
We now proceed to relate the death of the Protector, as furnished by a
certain nobleman, who was present at the deed-doing, and wrote the same.
In the year of our Lord 1552, and the month of January, he was brought
out of the Tower of London, delivered to the sheriffs of the city, and
compassed about with a great number of armed men both of the guard
and others. He was conducted to the scaffold on Tower-hill, where
changing neither voice nor countenance, but in a manner and with the
same gesture which he commonly used at home, kneeling upon both his
knees and lifting up his hands, commended himself unto God. After
he had ended a few short prayers, standing up again, and turning himself
toward the east side of the scaffold, nothing at all abashed either with
the sight of the axe, nor yet of the executioner, nor of present death ;
but with the same alacrity and cheerfulness of mind and countenance
as he was accustomed to shew when he heard the causes and supplication
of others, and especially the poor, he uttered these words to the
people : —
" Dearly beloved friends, I am brought hither to suffer death, albeit
that I never offended against the king either by word or deed, and
have been always as faithful and true unto this realm as any man. But
forsomuch as I am by law condemned to die, I do acknowledge myself
as well as others to be subject thereunto. Wherefore to testify my
obedience which I owe unto the laws, I am come hither to suffer death ;
whereunto I willingly offer myself, with most hearty thanks unto God,
who hath given me this time of repentance, who might through sudden
death have taken away my life, that neither I should have acknowledged
him nor myself. Moreover, dearly beloved friends, there is yet some-
what that I must put you in mind of, as touching the Christian religion ;
which so long as I was in authority, I always diligently set forth and
furthered to my utmost power. Neither do I repent me of my doings,
but rejoice therein, seeing that now the state of Christian religion cometh
most near unto the form and order of the primitive church. Which
thing I esteem as a great benefit given of God both unto you and me ;
most heartily exhorting you all, that this which is most purely set forth
unto you, you will with like thankfulness accept and embrace, and set
out the same in your living. Which thing if you do not, without doubt
greater mischief and calamity will follow."
When he had spoken these words, there was suddenly a terrible noise
heard; whereupon there came a great fear upon all men. This noise
was as it had been the noise of some great storm or tempest, which to
some seemed to be from above ; as if a great deal of gunpowder being-
inclosed in an armory, and having caught fire, had violently broken
out. But unto some it seemed as though it had been a great multitude
of horsemen running together or coming upon them. Such a noise then
was in the ears of all, although they saw nothing. Whereby it hap-
pened that all the people being amazed without any evident cause, they
ran away, some into the ditches and puddles, and some into the houses
EXECUTION OF THE DUKE OF SOMERSET. 525
thereabouts; others fell down grovelling' unto the ground, with their
poleaxes and halberta ; and most of them cried out, " Jesus save us,
Jesus save us!" Those who remained in their places, for fear knew not
where they were ; and I myself who was there among the rest, being
also afraid in this hurly-burly, stood still amazed. It happened here,
as the evangelist wrote of Christ, when as the officers of the high priests
and pharisees, coming with weapons to take him, being astonished ran
backwards and fell to the ground.
In the meantime, whilst these things were thus in doing, the people
by chance espied one Sir Anthony Brown riding under the scaffold ;
which was the occasion of a new noise. For when they saw him coming
they conjectured that which was not true, but which they all sincerely
wished for, that the king by that messenger had sent his uncle pardon ;
and therefore with great rejoicing and casting up their caps, they cried
out, " Pardon, pardon is come, God save the king." Thus this good
duke, although he was destitute of all man's help, yet saw before his
departure, in how great love and favour he was with all men. And
truly I do not think that in so great slaughter of dukes as hath been in
England within these few years there were so many weeping eyes at one
time ; and not without cause. For all men saw in his fall the public
ruin of England, except such as indeed- did perceive nothing Mean-
time standing in the same place, the duke modestly and with a grave
countenance made a sign to the people with his hand, that they would
keep themselves quiet. Which done, and silence obtained, he spake
unto them in this manner.
" Dearly beloved friends, there is no such matter here in hand as you
vainly Jiope or believe. It seemeth thus good unto Almighty God, whose
ordinance it is meet and necessary that we all be obedient unto.
Wherefore I pray you all to be quiet, and to be contented with my
death, which I am most willing to suffer ; and let us now join in prayer
unto the Lord for the preservation of the king's majesty, unto whom
hitherto I have always shewed myself a most faithful and true subject.
I have always been most diligent about his majesty in his affairs both at
home and abroad, and no less diligent in seeking the common good of
the whole realm." At which words all the people cried out, " It is most
true." The duke on their silence proceeding, said, " Unto whose majesty
I wish continual health, with all felicity and all prosperous success."
Whereunto the people again cried out, "Amen." The duke then added
also, " I do wish unto all his counsellors the grace and favour of
God, whereby they may rule in all things uprightly with justice. Unto
whom I exhort you all in the Lord to shew yourselves obedient, as it is
your bounden duty, under the pain of condemnation, and also most pro-
fitable for the preservation and safeguard of the king's majesty.
" Moreover, as heretofore I have had oftentimes affairs with divers
men, and hard it is to please every man, therefore if there be any who
hath been offended and injured by me, I most humbly require and ask
him forgiveness; but especially Almighty God, whom throughout all my
life I have most grievously offended ; and all others whosoever they be
t!i at have offended me, I do with my whole heart forgive them. Now
I once again require you, dearly beloved in the Lord, that you will keep
526 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
yourselves quiet and still, lest through your tumult you might trouble
me. For albeit the spirit be willing and ready, the flesh is frail and
wavering, and through your quietness I shall be much more composed.
Above all I desire you to bear me witness that I die here in the faith of
Jesus Christ ; desiring you to help me with your prayers, that 1 may
persevere constant in the same unto my end."
After this, turning himself again, he kneeled down. Then Dr. Cox,
who was present to counsel and advise him, delivered a certain scroll
into his hand, wherein was contained a brief confession unto God.
This being read the duke stood up again without any trouble of mind,
and first bade the sheriffs farewell, then the lieutenant of the Tower, and
others, taking them all by the hand which were upon the scaffold with
him. Then he gave money to the executioner ; which done, he put off
his gown, and kneeling down again in the straw, untied his shirt strings.
After that, the executioner coming to him turned down his collar about
his neck and all other things which hindered him. Then lifting up
his eyes to heaven and covering his face with his own handkerchief, he
laid himself down along, shewing no trouble or fear, neither did his
countenance change. But because his doublet covered his neck, he was
commanded to rise up and put it off; and then laying himself down
again upon the block, ajad calling thrice upon the name of Jesus, say-
ing, " Lord Jesus, save me," as he was the third time repeating the
same, even as the name of Jesus was in uttering, in a moment he was
bereft both of head and life, and slept in the Lord ; being taken away
from all dangers and evils of this life, and resting in the peace of God :
in the preferment of whose truth and gospel he always shewed himselt
an excellent instrument and member, and therefore hath received the
reward of his labour.
He was a man of extraordinary virtues, of great candour, and eminent
piety: he was always a promoter of justice, and a patron of the oppressed.
He was a better soldier than statesman, being too easy and open-hearted
to be so cautious as such times and such employments required. The
people saw that all this conspiracy, for which he and the other four
suffered, was only a forgery : the other accomplices were quickly dis-
charged, and Palmer, the chief witness, became Northumberland's par-
ticular confident : and even those indiscreet words which the duke had
spoken in his warmth, and his gathering armed men about him, was
imputed to Palmer's artifices, who had put him in fear of his life, and
thus made him do and say those things for which he lost it. His four
friends all ended their lives, with the most solemn protestations of inno-
cence; and the whole matter was looked on as a contrivance of Nor-
thumberland's, by which he entirely lost the affections of the people.
The chief objection to the duke was, his having raised much of his estate
out of the spoils of bishops' lands, and his palace d out of the ruins of
some churches ; and to this was added a remark, that he did not claim
the benefit of the clergy, which would have saved him. Since he had
so spoiled the church, they imputed it to a particular judgment on him
d That beautiful building and ornament of the country, Somerset-house, in the Strand,
London.
THK COMMON PHAVER-BOOK ESTABLISHED. 527
that he forgot it ; hut in this they were mistaken, for in the act by which
he was condemned, it was provided that no clergy should purge that
felony — another proof, if it were wanting, that he was the innocent victim
of a cruel conspiracy.
The day after the duke of Somerset's execution, a session of parliament
was assembled. The first act which passed established the common prayer-
book, as it was now amended. The bishops were required to proceed by
the censures of the church against such as used it not: they also au-
thorised the book of ordinations, and enacted the same penalties against
offenders, that were in the act for the former book three years before.
The papists took occasion of the changes now made to say, that the
new doctrines and ways of worship changed as fast as the fashions. It
was answered, that it was no wonder if corruptions, which had been
creeping in for a thousand years, were not all discovered and thrown
out at once; and since they had been every age making additions of
new ceremonies, it might be excused if the purging them out was done
by such easy degrees. The book was not to be received till All-hallows,
because it was hoped that in the interval the reformation of the eccle-
siastical laws would have been finished. The following law passed for
holy-days and fasts — " No days are to be esteemed holy in their own
nature, but by reason of those holy duties which ought to be done in
them, for which they were dedicated to the service of God. Days are
esteemed to be dedicated only to the honour of God, even those in which
the saints were commemorated. Sundays, and the other holy-days,
are to be religiously observed, and the bishops are to proceed to censures
against offenders. The eves before them are to be fasts, and abstinence
from flesh are enacted both in Lent and on Fridays and Saturdays." The
liberty to tradesmen to w T ork on these days, was abused to a public pro-
fanation of them, and the stricter clauses in the act were little regarded.
An act also passed empowering churchwardens to gather collections for
the poor, and the bishops to proceed against such as refused to contri-
bute; which, though it was a bill that taxed the people, yet had its rise
in the house of lords. An act likewise passed for the marriage of the
clergy. Whereas the former act about it was thought only a permission
of it, as some other unlawful things were connived at; upon which the
wives and children of the clergy were reproachfully used, and the word
of God was not heard with due reverence ; therefore their marriages
were declared good and valid. The bishopric of Westminster was re-
united to London, only the collegiate church was still continued.
The convocation now confirmed the articles of religion which had
been prepared in the former year, and thus was the reformation of wor-
ship and doctrine brought to such a degree, that since that time there
has been very little alteration made. One branch of it was still un-
finished, and was now under consultation, touching the government of
the church, and the rules of the ecclesiastical courts. Two acts had
passed in the former reign, and one in this, empowering a commission
o revise all the laws of the church, and digest them into a body. King-
Henry had issued the commission, and the persons were named who
made some progress in it, as appears by some of Cranmer's letters to
him. In this reign it had been begun several times; but the changes in
528 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the government had caused it to be laid aside. Thirty-two were found
to be too many for preparing the first draught, so that eight were ap-
pointed to make it ready for them: these were Cranmer, Ridley, Petre,
Martyr, Trahern, Taylor, Lucas, and Gosnold, two bishops, two divines,
two civilians, and two common lawyers; but it was generally believed
that Cranmer drew it entirely by himself, while the rest only corrected
what he designed. Haddon and Cheek were employed to put it in
Latin; in which they succeeded so well, and arrived at so true a purity
in the Roman style? that it is equal to a work of the best ages. The
work was cast into fifty-one titles; perhaps it was designed to bring it
near the number of the books into which Justinian digested the Roman
law. The eight finished it, and offered it to the thirty-two; who divided
themselves into four classes, every one of which was to offer his correc-
tions, and when it had passed through them all, it was to be presented
to the king for his confirmation ; but he died before it was quite finished.
The principal objects of this bill are well worthy of being known.
The first title was concerning the catholic faith : it was made capital to
deny the christian religion. The books of scripture were reckoned up,
and the apocrypha left out. The four first general councils were re-
ceived; but both councils and fathers were to be submitted to only as
they agreed with the scriptures. The second enumerates and condemns
many heresies, extracted out of the opinions of the church of Rome,
and the tenets of the anabaptists. The judgment of heresy was to lie
in the bishop's court, except in exempted places. Persons suspected
might be required to purge themselves, and those who were convicted,
were to abjure and do penance; but such as were obstinate were de-
clared infamous, and not to have the benefit of the law, or of making
testaments, and so all capital proceedings for heresies were laid aside.
Blasphemy against God was to be punished as obstinate heresy. Bishops
were appointed once a year to call all their clergy together to examine
them concerning their flocks : and itinerant preachers were to be often
employed for visiting such precincts as might be put under their care.
All marriages were to be after bans, and to be annulled if not done
according to the book of common prayer. Corrupters of virgins were
to marry them; or if that could not be done, to give them the third
part of their goods, and suffer punishment. Marriages made by force,
or without consent of parents, were declared null. Polygamy was
forbid. A clergyman guilty of adultery was to forfeit his goods and
estate to his wife and children, or to some pious use; and to be banished
or imprisoned during life: a layman guilty of it was to forfeit the half,
and be banished or imprisoned during life : wives who were guilty were to
be punished in the same manner. The innocent party might marry again
after a divorce. Desertion, or mortal enmity, or the constant perverseness
of a husband might induce a divorce. Patrons were charged to give pre-
sentations without making bargains; to choose the fittest persons, and not
to make promises till the livings were vacant. The bishops were required
to use great strictness in the trial of those whom they ordained; all plu-
ralities and non-residence were condemned, and all who were presented
were to purge themselves of simony by oath. All superstitious purgations
were condemned. The communion was to be every Sunday in cathedrals.
REDUCED CONDITION OF THE CLERGY. 520
and a sermon to be in the afternoon : such as received the sacrament
were to give notice to the minister the day before, that he might examine
them. The catechism was appointed to be explained an hour in the
afternoon on holy-days. After the evening prayer the poor were to be
taken care of. Penances were to be enjoined to scandalous persons;
and the minister was to confer with some of the ancients of the people
concerning the state of the parish, that admonitions might be applied as
there was occasion. A rural dean was to be in every precinct to watch
over the clergy according to the bishop's directions: archdeacons were
to be over them, and the bishop over all ; who was to have yearly synods,
and visit every third year. His family was to consist of clergymen, in
imitation of St. Austin, and other ancient bishops; these he was to train
up for the service of the church. When bishops became infirm they
were to have co-adjutors; archbishops were to do the episcopal duties
in their diocese, and to visit their province. Every synod was to begin
with a communion, and after that, the ministers were to give an account
of their parishes, and follow such directions as the bishop should give
them. A scheme was drawn of excommunication, which was entrusted
to churchmen for keeping the church pure, and was not to be inflicted
but for obstinacy in some gross fault. Such as had the king's pardon
for capital offences were yet liable to church-censures. Then followed
the office of absolving penitents : they were to come to the church-door
and crave admittance, and the minister having brought them in, was to
read a long discourse concerning sin, repentance, and the mercies of
God. Then the party was to confess his sin, and to ask God and the
congregation pardon ; upon which the minister was to lay his hands on
his head, and to pronounce the absolution. Then a thanksgiving was
to be offered to God at the communion-table for the reclaiming that
sinner. The other heads of this work relate to the other parts of the
law of those courts.
There were at this time remedies under consideration for the great
misery and poverty of the clergy : but the laity were so much concerned
to oppose them, that there was no hope of bringing them to any good
effect, till the king should come to be of age, and endeavour to recover
again a competent maintenance for them out of the hands of those who
had devoured their revenues. Heath and Day, the bishops of Worcester
and Chichester, were this year deprived of their bishoprics, by a court
of delegates composed all of laymen : but it does not appear for what
offences they were suspended. The bishoprics of Gloucester and Wor-
cester were united, and put under Hooper's care; but soon after, the
former was made an exempted archdeaconry, and he was declared
bishop only of Worcester. In every see, as it became vacant, the best
manors were seized by such hungry courtiers as had the interest to pro-
cure the grant of them. It was thought, that the bishops' sees were so
enriched, that they could never be made poor enough: and such haste
was made in spoiling them, that they were reduced to a condition hardly
possible for a bishop to subsist in them. If what had been thus taken
from them had been converted to good uses, such as supplying the infe-
rior clergy, it had been some mitigation of the robbery, but their lands
2 m
}
530 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
were taken up by laymen, who thought of making no compensation for
the spoils.
This year the reformation had gained more ground in Ireland than
formerly. Henry VIII. had assumed to himself, by consent of the
parliament of that kingdom, the title of king of Ireland : the former
kings of England having only been called lords of it. The popes and
emperors pretended that such titles could be given only by them : the
former said, all power in heaven and earth was given to Christ, and by
consequence to his vicar. The latter, as carrying the title of Roman
emperor, pretended that as the imperial power anciently bestowed those
titles, so it devolved on him who retained only the name and shadow of
that great authority. But princes and states have thought they may
bring themselves under what titles they please. Though the kings of
England were well obeyed within the English pale, yet the Irish con-
tinued barbarous and uncivilized, and were guided entirely by the
heads of their names or tribes, and were obedient or rebellious as they
directed them. In Ulster they had a great dependance on Scotland,
and there were some risings there, during the war with that country,
which were quieted by giving the leading men pensions, and getting
them to come and live within the English pale. Monluc, bishop of
Valence, being then in Scotland, went over thither to raise new com-
motions; but his efforts had no effect. While he was there his lascivi-
ousness came to be discovered by an odd accident: a woman of the
town, brought to him by some English friars, and secretly kept by him,
searching among his clothes, fell on a small bottle of something very odori-
ferous, and drank it off; which being discovered by the bishop, put him
in a most violent passion, for it had been given him as a present by
Solyman the magnificent, when he was ambassador at his court. It was
called the richest balm of Egypt, and valued at 2000 crowns. His rage
grew so boisterous that all about him discovered both his passion and
lewdness at once. The reformation was set up in the English pale, but
had made small progress among the Irish. This year Basle was sent
over to labour among them. He was an eager writer, and a learned
zealous man. Goodaker was sent to be primate of Armagh, and Basle
was to be bishop of Ossory. Two Irishmen were also promoted with
them ; who undertook to advance the reformation there. The archbishop
of Dublin intended to have ordained them by the old pontifical, and all
except Basle were willing it should be so; but he prevailed that it
should be done according to the new book of ordinations: after that he
went into his diocese, but found all there in dark popery, and before
he could make any progress the king's death put an end to his
designs.
The world had long been anxiously looking for the result of the
council of Trent, trusting that it might lead to the establishment of
order throughout the European countries; which appeared no less to have
been desired both by princes and bishops in hopes that differences of
religion would have been composed, and the corruptions of the court
of Rome reformed by it. This had made the pope very apprehensive
of it: but such was the cunning of the legates, the number of Italian
bishops, and the dissensions of the princes, that it had an effect quite
AN EDICT PASSED IN FAVOUR OF THE PROTESTANTS. 53\
contrary to what all sides expected. The breach in religion became
past reconciling by the positive decisions they made: the abuses of the
court of Rome were confirmed by the provisos made in favour of the
privileges of the apostolic see: and the world was at length so cured of
their longings for a general council, that none has been since that time
desired. The history of that council was written with great exactness
and judgment by father Paul, of Venice, while it was yet fresh in all
men's memories; and though it discovered the whole secret of the trans-
actions there, yet none set himself to write against it for forty years;
then Pallavicini at last undertook it, and upon the credit of many memo-
rials. In many things he contradicts father Paul ; but in the main of the
history they both agree, so far that it is manifest things were not fairly
carried, and that matters were managed by intrigue rather than fair and
open discussion.
Prince Maurice declared for the liberty of Germany, and took Augs-
burgh, and several other towns. The king of France fell upon the em-
pire with a great force, and by surprise made himself master of Metz
and Verdun, and thought to have got Strasburgh. Maurice sent his
demands to the emperor for the landgrave's liberty, and for restoring
the freedom of the empire : but the emperor being slow in making an-
swer, he marched on to Inspruck, where he surprised a post, and was
within two miles of him before he was aware of it, so that the emperor
was forced to flee, nor stopped till he was safe in Italy. Thus the very
army and prince which had been chiefly instrumental in the ruin of the
empire, now again asserted its freedom; and the emperor's great design
on Germany was so blasted, that he could never after put any life in it.
He was forced to discharge his prisoners, and to call in the proscriptions;
and after some treaty, the edict of Passa was made by which the free
exercise of the protestant religion was granted to the princes and towns:
and thus did that storm which had almost overwhelmed the princes
of that persuasion end, without any other considerable effect beyond
the translation of the electorial dignity from John to Maurice. The
emperor's misfortunes increased on him, for against all reason he be-
sieged Metz in December, and after he had ruined his army in it he
was forced to raise the siege. He retired into Flanders in such discon-
tent that for some time he would not admit any to approach him. There
it was believed he first formed that design, which some years after he
put in execution, of forsaking the world, and exchanging the pomp of
a court for the retirement of a monastery. This strange turn in his
affairs gave a great demonstration of an over-ruling Providence govern-
ing all human affairs, and of that particular care that God had of the
reformation, in recovering it when it seemed to be lost, and hopeless of
recovery in the German states.
In the year 1553, another visitation took place in England. Visitors
were sent to examine what plate was in every church, and to leave in
each only one or two chalices of silver, with linen for the communion-
table and for surplices; to bring all other things of value to the trea-
surer of the king's household, and to sell the rest and give it to the
poor. But from these and numerous other changes, the public atten-
tion soon became diverted by a rumour of the young king's alarming
532 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
affliction. His wisdom and virtue were appreciated in all parts of the
land, and for his own sake as well as on account of the reformation,
the rumour excited deep and general lamentation.
He had contracted cold by violent exercises, which in January settled
into so obstinate a cough that all the skill of physicians and the aid of
medicine proved ineffectual. There was a suspicion taken up and spread
over all Europe that he was poisoned : but no certain grounds appear
for justifying it. During this sickness, Ridley preached before him,
and among other things spoke much on charity, and the duty of men
of high condition to be eminent in good works. The king was much
touched with this; and, after sermon, he sent for the bishop, and treated
him with such respect that he made him sit down covered : he then told
him what impression his exhortation had made on him, and desired to
be directed by him how to do his duty in that matter. Ridley took a
little time to consider of it, and after some consultation with the lord
mayor and aldermen of London, he brought the king a scheme of se-
veral foundations: one for the sick and wounded; another for such as
were wilfully idle: and a third for orphans. Without delay Edward
endowed St. Bartholomew's hospital for the first, Bridewell for the second,
and Christ church, near Newgate, for the third; enlarging the grant he
made the former year for St. Thomas's hospital in Southwark. The
statutes and warrants relating to these were not finished before the 26th
of June, though he gave order to make all the haste that was possible :
and when he set his hand to them he blessed God for prolonging his
life till he finished his designs concerning them. These houses have,
by the good government and great charities of the city of London,
continued to be so useful, and grown to be so well endowed, that they
may be reckoned among the noblest in Europe.
The king bore his sickness with great submission to the will of God,
and seemed concerned in nothing so much as the state that religion
and the church would be in after his death. The duke of Suffolk had
three daughters: the eldest was married to the loid Guildford Dudley,
son to the duke of Northumberland ; the second to the earl of Pem-
broke's eldest son ; and the third to one Keys. The duke of Northum-
berland married also his two daughters ; one to sir Henry Sydney, and
the other to the earl of Huntingdon's eldest son. He grew to be so
much hated by the people, that the jealousy of the king's being
poisoned was fastened on him. But he regarded these things little,
and resolved to improve the fears the king was in concerning religion
to the advantage of lady Jane Grey. Edward was easily persuaded to
order the judges to put some articles, which he had signed for the suc-
cession of the crown, in the common form of law. They answered that
the succession being settled by act of parliament, could not be taken
away except by the same authority; yet the king required them to do
what he commanded them. But the next time they came to the council
they declared, that it had been made treason to change the succession
by an act passed in this reign, so that they could not meddle with it.
Montague was chief justice, and spoke in the name of the rest. On
this Northumberland fell into a great passion against him, calling him
traitor for refusing to obey the king's commands. The judges were not
DEATH OF KING EDWARD VI. 533
shaken by his threatenings; and they were again brought before the
king, who sharply rebuked them for their delays: but they said that
all they could do would be of no force without a parliament, yet they
were required to perform it in the best manner they could.
At last Montague desired they might first receive pardon for what
they were to do, which being granted, all the judges, except Gosnold
and Hale, agreed to the patent, and delivered their opinion that the
lord chancellor might put the seal to it, and that then it would be good
in law. The former of these was at last wrought on; so that Hale was
the only man who stood out to the last: he was a zealous protestant,
and would not give his opinion against his conscience upon any con-
sideration whatsoever. The privy counsellors were next required to set
their hands to it: Cecil, in a relation he wrote of this transaction, says
that hearing some of the judges declare so positively that it was against
law, he refused to set his hand to it as a privy counsellor, but signed it
only as a witness to the king's subscription. Cranmer stood out long,
he came not to the council when it was passed, and refused to consent
to it when he was pressed to it; for he said he would never have a hand
in disinheriting his late master's daughters. The dying king was at
last set on him, and by his importunity prevailed with him to doit;
upon which the seal was put to the patents. The distemper continued
to increase, so that the physicians despaired of the king's recovery.
A confident woman undertook his cure, and he was put into her hands;
but she left him worse than she found him ; and this heightened the
jealousy against the duke of Northumberland, who had introduced her,
and put the physicians away. At last, to crown his designs, he got the
king to write to his sisters Mary and Elizabeth, to come and divert him
in his sickness : and the matter of the exclusion had been carried so se-
cretly, that they apprehending no danger had begun their journey.
On the 6th of July the king felt death approaching, and prepared
himself for it in a most devout manner. He was often heard offering
up prayers and ejaculations to God. A few moments before he died
he prayed earnestly that God would take him out of this wretched life,
and committed his spirit to him; interceding very fervently for his
subjects, that God would preserve England from popery, and maintain
his true religion among them. Then turning his face, and seeing who
was by him, he said unto them, "Are ye so nigh? I thought ye had
been further off." Dr. Owen said, "We heard you speak to yourself,
but what you said we know not." He then smiling said, " I was praying
to God." The last words of his life were these, "I am faint, Lord
have mercy upon me, and take my spirit." Soon after that he breathed
out his pious soul to God, his emaciated body resting in Sir Henry
Sydney's arms. Endeavours were used to conceal his death for some
days, with design to draw his sisters into the snare before they should
be aware of it, but that could not be done.
Thus died Edward VI. in the sixteenth year of his age. He was
counted the wonder of that time; e he was not only learned in the
e The preceding year, Cardan the great philosopher of that age passed through England
on his return from Scotland to the Continent. He waited on the youthful king, and was so
charmed with his great knowledge and rare qualities, that he always spoke of him as the
534 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tongues, and the liberal sciences, but knew well the state of his king-
dom. He kept a book in which he had written the characters of all
the eminent men of the nation ; he studied fortification, and understood
the mint well : he knew the harbours in all his dominions, with the
depth of water, and way of coming into them. He understood foreign
affairs so well, that the ambassadors who were sent into England pub-
lished very extraordinary things of him in the several courts of Europe.
He had great quickness of apprehension; but being distrustful of his
memory, he took notes of every thing he heard that was considerable,
in Greek characters, that those about him might not understand what
he wrote.
The following anecdote related of him may serve to shew, that the
playfulness of youth would sometimes break out amidst the dignity of
the monarch. He resided much at Greenwich, and being there on
St. George's day, in the fourth year of his reign, when he was come from
the sermon into the presence-chamber, there being his uncle the duke
of Somerset, the duke of Northumberland, with other lords and knights
of that order, called, "The Order of the Garter," he said to them,
" My lords, I pray you, what Saint is St. George, that we here so honour
him?" At which question the lords being all astonished, the lord trea-
surer gave answer and said, "If it please your majesty, I never read
in any history of St. George, but only in Legenda aurea, where it is
thus set down: ' St. George out with his sword, and run the dragon
through with his spear.' " The king could not a great while speak for
most excellent character of his age he had ever seen : and after his death, he wrote the
following account of him.
" All the graces were in him : he understood many tongues when he was yet but a child ;
together with the English, he knew both Latin and French; he also understood Greek,
Italian, and Spanish. Nor was he ignorant of logic, of the principles of natural philosophy,
or of music. The sweetness of his temper was admirable. His gravity became the ma-
jesty of a king, and his disposition was suitable to his high degree. These things are not
spoken rhetorically, and beyond the truth, but are indeed short of it. When ] was with
him, he was in his fifteenth year, in which he spake Latin politely and promptly. He asked
me what was the subject of my book, De rerum veritate, which I dedicated to him] I
answered, that in the first chapter I gave the true cause of comets, which had been long
enquired into, but was never found out before. On his asking the cause, I said it was the
concourse of the light of wandering stars. He asked how that could be, since the stars
move in different motions 1 How came it that the comets were not dissipated, or did not
move after them according to their motions! To this 1 answered, 'They do move after
them, but much quicker than they, by reason of the different aspect; as we see in crystal,
or when a rainbow rebounds from a wall : for a little change makes a great difference of
place.' The king said, ' How can that be, where there is no subject to receive that light,
as the wall is the subject for the rainbow 1 ' To this I answered, That this was as in
the milky-way, or where many candles were lighted ; the middle place where their shining
met was white and clear." From this sample it may be imagined what he was. The in-
genuity and sweetness of his disposition had raised in all good and learned men, the great-
est expectation of him possible. He began to love the liberal arts before he knew them,
and to know them that he might use them : and in him there was such an attempt of
nature, that not only England, but the world hath reason to lament his being so early
snatched away. How truly was it said of such extraordinary persons, that their lives are
short, and seldom do they come to be old ! He gave us an essay of virtue, though he did not
live long to give a pattern of it. When the gravity of a king was needful, he carried himself
like an old man, and yet he was always affable and gentle, as became his age. These ex-
traordinary blossoms gave but too good reason to fear, that a fruit which ripened so fast,
could not last long.
THE REFORMATION DISCOURAGED. 535
laughing, and at length said, " I pray you, my lord, and what did he
with his sword the while?"
His virtues were wonderful : when he was made to believe, that his
uncle was guilty of conspiring the death of the other counsellors, he
upon that abandoned him. Barnaby Fitzpatrick was his favourite, and
when he sent him to travel he often wrote to him, to keep good com-
pany, to avoid excess and luxury, and to improve himself in those things
that might render him capable of employment on his return. He was
afterwards made lord of Upper Ossory in Ireland, by queen Elizabeth,
and well answered the hopes which this excellent king had of him.
Edward was very merciful in his nature, which appeared in his unwil-
lingness to sign the warrant for burning the Maid of Kent. He took
great care to have his debts well paid, reckoning that a prince who
breaks his faith and loses his credit, has thrown up that which he can
never recover, and made himself liable to perpetual distrust and extreme
contempt. He took special care of the petitions that were given him
by poor and oppressed people. But his great zeal for religion crowned
all the rest. It was not a temporary heat about it that excited him,
but it was a true tenderness of conscience, founded on the love of God
and his neighbours.
These extraordinary qualities, set off with great sweetness and affabi-
lity, made him universally beloved by his people. Some called him
their Josiah, others Edward the Saint, and others the Phcenix that rose
out of his mother's ashes. All people concluded, that the sins of Eng-
land must have been very great, since they provoked God to deprive
the nation of so signal a blessing, as the rest of his reign would, to all
appearance, have proved. Bishop Ridley, and the other good men of
that time, made great lamentations of the vices, w 7 hichwere grown then
so common, that men had passed all shame in them. Luxury, oppres-
sion, and a hatred of religion had over-run the higher ranks of people,
who gave a countenance to the reformation, merely to rob the church ;
but by that, and their other practices, were become a great scandal to
so good a work. The inferior classes were so much in the power of the
priests, who were still, notwithstanding their outward compliance, papists
in heart, and were so much offended at the spoil they saw made of all
good endowments, without putting other and more useful ones in their
room, that they who understood little of religion, laboured under great
prejudices against every thing that was done in such a manner. And
these things, as they provoked God highly, so they disposed the
people much to that sad catastrophe which was experienced in the fol-
lowing reign.
BOOK XL
THE REIGN OF QUEEN MARY.
SECTION I.
ACCESSION AND DEPOSITION OF THE LADY JANE GREY — FIRST ENTERING
OF QUEEN MARY TO THE CROWN ALTERATIONS OF RELIGION, AND OTHER
PERTURBANCES HAPPENING THE SAME TIME IN ENGLAND.
The attention of British protestants is now called to a period of church
history which cannot fail to awaken in their hearts that sympathy for
their ancestors, which at present lies dormant in too many bosoms. A
long career of religious prosperity appears to have obliterated from their
minds the cruel persecutions of their forefathers, who for them bled in
every vein — for them were consigned to devouring flames in every part
of their country — preparing and establishing for their descendants, by
the sacrifice of themselves, genuine liberty of person and of conscience.
And while we review with gratitude and admiration effects produced by
such causes, let us learn to appreciate those blessings which, by the
continued providence of God, we have so long enjoyed.
It has been asserted by Roman catholics, that all those who suffered
death during the reign of queen Mary, had been adjudged guilty of
high treason, in consequence of their having stood up in defence of
lady Jane Grey's title to the crown. To disprove this, however, is no
difficult matter, since every one conversant in history must know, that
those who are tried on the statute of treason are to be hanged or be-
headed. How can even papists affirm that ever men in England were
burned for this crime? Some few suffered death in the ordinary way of
process at common law, for their adherence to lady Jane; but none of
those were burned. Why, if traitors, were they taken before the bishops,
who have no power to judge in criminal cases? Even allowing the
bishops, as peers, to have had power to judge, yet their own bloody
statute did not empower them to execute. The proceedings against the
martyrs are still extant, and they were carried on directly according to
the forms prescribed by their own statute. There was not one of those
burned in England ever accused of high-treason, much less were they
tried at common law. And this should teach the reader to value a
history of transactions in their own country, particularly of their blessed
martyrs, in order that they may be able to see through the veil which
falsehood has cast over the face of truth. It should also be observed,
that Mary's title to the throne was acknowledged by a very large
number whom she burned as heretics, and that none of her burnings
were considered necessary to render her throne and crown secure.
MARYS LETTER AND THE COUNCH-'S ANSWER. 537
What time king Edward, by long sickness, became more feeble and weak,
i ho marriage was provided, concluded, and shortly after solemnized in May,
15.">3, between the lord Guilford, son of the duke of Northumberland,
and lady Jane Grey, daughter of the duke of Suffolk, and grand-niece of
Henry VIII. When king Edward was dead, this lady Jane was established
in the kingdom by the nobles' consent, and proclaimed queen at London,
and in other cities where was any great resort. In the meantime, while
things were working at London, Mary, who had knowledge of her bro-
ther's death, wrote to the lords of the council, reminding them of her title
to the crown, and complaining of the preparations made to withstand her.
""Wherefore, my lords," she concluded, "we require you, and charge you
and every one of you, that of your allegiance which you owe to God and
us, and to none other, for our honour and the surety of our person, only
employ yourselves; and forthwith, upon receipt hereof, cause our right and
title to the crown and government of this realm to be proclaimed in our
city of London and other places, as to your wisdom shall seem good, and
as to this case appertaineth; not failing hereof, as our very trust is in you.
And this letter, signed with our hand, shall be your sufficient warrant in
this behalf."
To this letter the lords of the council replied, that after king Edward's
death the lady Jane was invested with and possessed the just right and
title to the imperial crown by the ancient laws of the realm, and also by
the late king's letters patent, sealed with the great seal of England in
presence of the most part of the nobles, councillors, and judges, with
divers others grave and sage personages, assenting and subscribing to the
same ; and that they must therefore, as of most bounden duty and alle-
giance, assent unto her said grace, and to none other. At the same time
reminding the lady Mary, that the marriage between her father and the
lady Katharine being declared null, she was justly made illegitimate and
uninheritable to the crown. " Wherefore," they said, " we can no less
do, but, for the quiet both of the realm and you also, advertise you to
surcease by any pretence to vex and molest any of our sovereign lady
queen Jane's subjects from their true faith and allegiance due unto her
grace : assuring you, that if you will for respect show yourself quiet and
obedient, (as you ought,) you shall find us all and several ready to do you
any service that we with duty may, and be glad, with your quietness, to
preserve the common state of this realm, wherein you may be otherwise
grievous unto us, to yourself, and to them. And thus we bid you most
heartily well to fare, your ladyship's friends, showing yourself an obedient
subject. From the Tower of London, in this ninth of July, 1553."
This letter was signed by Canterbury, Winchester, Ely, Northumberland,
Bedford, Northampton, Suffolk, Arundel, Shrewsbury, Pembroke, Riche,
and twelve other lords of the council. On receiving which the lady Mary
withdrew into Norfolk and Suffolk, where the duke of Northumberland
was hated for the service that had been done there under king Edward, in
subduing the rebels ; and there, gathering to her such aid of the common
people on every side as she might, kept herself close for a space within
Framlingham castle. Here she was joined by many who promised her
their aid, on condition that she would not attempt the alteration of the re-
ligion established by king Edward. This was readily agreed to by Mary;
538 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
upon which they asserted her right, and she promised to maintain the
true religion, and the laws of the land.
Northumberland's proceeding against the duke of Somerset, and the
suspicions that lay on him as the author of the late king's untimely
death, begat a great aversion in the people to him, which disposed them
to set up queen Mary. She in the mean time was very active. She
gathered all in the neighbouring counties about her. The men of Suffolk
were generally for the reformation, and a great body of them came to
her, and asked if she would promise not to alter the religion established
in king Edward's days. She assured them she would make no changes;
but should be content with the private exercise of her own religion.
Upon this they all vowed to live and die with her. The earl of Sussex,
and several others, raised forces and proclaimed her queen. When this
reached the knowledge of the council, they sent the earl of Huntingdon's
brother to raise men in Buckinghamshire, and meet the forces that should
be sent from London, at Newmarket.
The duke of Northumberland was ordered to command the army.
He was now much distracted in his thoughts ; for it was of equal
importance to keep London and the privy counsellors steady, and
to conduct the army well: a misfortune in either of these was likely
to be fatal to him. He was at a loss what to do: not a man of
spirit who was firm to him could be left behind; and yet it was
most necessary to disperse the force that was daily growing about
queen Mary. The lady Jane and the council were removed to the
Tower, not only for state, but for security ; for here the council were
upon the matter prisoners. He could do no more, but lay a strict
charge on the council to be firm to lady Jane's interests. He therefore
marched out of London with 2000 horse, and 6000 foot, on the 14th of
July : but no acclamations or wishes of success were to be heard as he
passed through the streets. The council gave the emperor notice of th".
lady Jane's succession, and complained of the disturbance that was
raised by Mary, and that his. ambassador had officiously meddled in
their affairs ; but the emperor would not receive the letters. Mary's
party in the mean time continued daily to augment. Hastings went over
to her with 4000 men out of Buckinghamshire, and she was proclaimed
queen in many places. At length the privy council began to see their
danger, and to think how to avoid it. The earl of Arundel hated
Northumberland. The marquis of Winchester was dexterous in shifting
sides for his advantage. The earl of Pembroke's son had married the
lady Jane's sister, which made him think it necessary to redeem the
danger he was in by a speedy turn. To these many others were joined.
They pretended it was necessary to give an audience to the foreign am-
bassadors, who would not have it in the Tower : and the earl of Pem-
broke's house was chosen, he being least suspected.
When they got out, they resolved to declare for queen Mary, and rid
themselves of Northumberland's uneasy yoke, which they knew they
must bear if he were victorious. They sent for the lord mayor and
aldermen, and easily gained their concurrence. They then went imme-
diately to Cheapside, and proclaimed the queen; and from thence they
went to St. Paul's, where Te deum was sung. They sent next to the
SUBT1LTY OF QUEEN MARY. 539
Tower, requiring the duke of Suffolk to quit the government of that
place, and the lady Jane to lay down the title of queen. To this she
submitted with as much greatness of mind as her father shewed of
abjectness. They sent also orders to Northumberland to dismiss his
forces, and to obey Mary as queen; and the earl of Arundel and lord
Paget were sent to carry these welcome tidings to her. When Nor-
thumberland heard of the change that was in London, he disbanded his
forces, went to the market-place at Cambridge, where he then was, and
proclaimed the queen. The earl of Arundel was sent to apprehend him,
and when he was brought to him, in the most servile manner he fell at
his feet to beg his favour. He and three of his sons, and Sir Thomas
Palmer — his wicked instrument against the duke of Somerset — were all
sent to the Tower. All people now flocked to implore the queen's
favour, and Ridley among the rest; but he too was sent to the Tower:
for she was both offended with him for his sermon, and resolved to put
Bonner again in the see of London. Some of the judges, and several
noblemen were also sent to the Tower; among the rest the duke of
Suffolk, who was three days after set at liberty. He was a weak man,
and could do little harm, he was consequently chosen as the first
instance towards whom the queen should express her clemency.
She came to London on the 3rd of August, and on the way was met
by her sister, lady Elizabeth, with a thousand horse, whom she had
raised to come to the queen's assistance. On arriving at the Tower, she
liberated the duke of Norfolk, the duchess of Somerset, and Gardiner;
also the lord Courtenay, son to the marquis of Exeter, who had been
kept there ever since his father's attainder, whom she made earl of
Devonshire. In this easy manner was Mary I. seated on the throne of
England. To a disagreeable person and weak mind, she united bigotry,
superstition, and cruelty. She seems to have inherited more of her
mother's than her father's qualities. Henry was impatient, rough, and
ungovernable; but Catherine, while she assumed the character of a
saint, harboured bitter rancour and hatreol against the protestants. It
was the same with her daughter Mary, as appears from a letter in her
own hand-writing, now in the British museum. In this letter, which is
addressed to bishop Gardiner, she declares her fixed intention of burning
every protestant; and it contains an insinuation, that as soon as circum-
stances would permit, she would restore back to the church the lands
that had been taken from the convents. This, however, discovers an
ignorance, equalled only by her tyranny, for the convents had been
demolished, except a few of their churches; and the rents were in the
hands of the first nobility, who, rather than part with them, would have
overturned the government both in church and state.
On some occasions Mary had discovered no small degree of subtilty.
During her father's life, " The king's displeasure at her was such," says
bishop Burnet, " that neither the duke of Norfolk nor Gardiner durst
venture to intercede for her." Cranmer was the only man who hazarded
it, and did it effectually. But after her mother's death, she hearkened
to other counsels, so that upon Anne Boleyn's fall, she made a full sub-
mission to her father, as was mentioned before. She did also in many
letters which she writ both to her father and to Cromwell, " Protest
540 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
great sorrow for her former stubbornness, and declared, that she put her
soul in his hand, and that her conscience should be always directed by
him ; and being asked what her opinion was concerning pilgrimages,
purgatory, and reliques, she answered, that she had no opinion, but
such as she received from the king, who had her whole heart in his
keeping, and might imprint upon it in these and in all other matters
whatever his inestimable virtue, high wisdom, and excellent learning,
should think convenient for her." So perfectly had she learned the
style that she knew was most acceptable to her father.
Her promise to the Suffolk men also shewed the craft of her character,
which was equalled only by its cruelty. The sword of power being now
in her hand, she began to employ it against those who had supported
the title of lady Jane Grey. This devoted victim remained with her
husband, lord Guildford, almost five months in the Tower, waiting her
pleasure. The duke of Northumberland had offers of pardon on con-
dition of renouncing his religion and hearing mass; which he not only
did, but also exhorted the people to return to the catholic faith. Not-
withstanding this, within a month after confinement he was condemned
and beheaded. The papists immediately published and spread abroad
his recantation; but the duke, in consequence of his crimes arising from
a sordid ambition, died unpitied; nay, he was insulted on the scaffold
by those who remembered in what manner he had acted to their beloved
Somerset.
Sir Thomas Palmer and Sir John Gates were the next who suffered.
The former confessed his faith in the reformed religion, and lamented
that he had not lived more conformably to its precepts. Mary having
thus begun her reign with the blood of these men, and with hearing
mass in the Tower, clearly evinced the career in which she intended to
proceed, and that she should but little regard the promise she had made
to the Suffolk men. Besides these ill omens, there were other things
which every day more and more discomfited the people, and which too
plainly betrayed the queen's aversion to the reformation. Gardiner was
made lord chancellor and bishop of Winchester. Bonner was advanced
to the bishopric of London, by displacing Ridley. Day was promoted
to the see of Durham, by displacing Scory. Tonstal was made bishop
of Chichester, and Heath bishop of Worcester: Hooper was committed
to the Fleet; and Vesie was made bishop of Exeter, by removing Miles
Coverdale. All these innovations greatly alarmed the protestants, and
afforded equal rejoicings to their enemies. Having thus laid the foun-
dation of her reign in blood and treachery, Mary removed from the
Tower to Hampton-court, and caused a parliament to be summoned on
the 10th of October ensuing.
We have mentioned Dr. Ridley, bishop of London, among those who
were removed. He was a learned and pious prelate, who in the time of
queen Jane, by order of the council, preached a sermon at Paul's Cross,
declaring his opinion concerning the lady Mary, and enumerating the
evils that might arise by admitting her to the crown : prophesying, as it
were, that she would bring in a foreign power to reign over them, and
subvert the christian religion then happily established. This, with ano-
ther sermon after things were changed, disconcerted the queen beyond
TUMULT AT PAUL'S CllOSS. 541
measure. The Sunday following her accession to the throne, Mr. Rogers
preached, discoursing very learnedly on the gospel for the day. Where-
upon Mary, perceiving things not to go forward according to her mind,
consulted with her council how to bring about by other means, what
by open law she could not well accomplish; and accordingly, by pro-
clamation, prohibited any man from preaching or reading openly the
word of God in churches, except by licence, which Gardiner took care
to give only to such as would conform to his doctrine. The clergy dif-
fered in opinion how far they were bound to obey this prohibition : some
thought they might forbear public preaching when they were so re-
quired, if they made it up by private conferences and instructions : others
thought, that if this had been only a particular hardship upon a few,
regard to peace and order should have obliged them to submit to it;
but since it was general, and done on purpose to extinguish the light
of the gospel, they ought to go on, and preach at their peril. Of this
last sort several were put in prison for their disobedience, among others
Hooper and Coverdale.
On the 22d of August, the queen declared in council, That though she
was fixed in her own religion, yet she would not compel others to its
observance ; but would leave that to the motions of God's Spirit, and
the labours of good preachers. The day after Bonner went to St. Paul's,
and Bourne his chaplain preached, and extolled Bonner much, inveigh
ing against the sufferings he had undergone. He took occasion from
the gospel of the day to speak largely in justification of Bonner, saying
that four years ago he had preached from the same text, and in the same
place, for which he was most cruelly and unjustly cast into that most
vile dungeon the Marshalsea, where he was confined during the reign of
king Edward. The sermon provoked his hearers so as to cause them to
murmur and stir in such a sort, that the mayor and aldermen feared an
uproar : some cast stones at the preacher, and one hurled a dagger at
him. In short, the tumult became so violent that Bourne was silenced,
broke off his discourse, and durst no more appear in that place ; his
discourse tended much to the dispraise of king Edward, which the
people could in no wise endure. Mr. Bradford then stood forth, at
the request of Mr. Bourne's brother, and spoke so mildly and effectually
to the people, that with a few words quite pacified them. This done,
he and Mr. Rogers conducted Mr. Bourne home ; for which generous
conduct they were both, shortly after, rewarded with long imprisonment,
and at last with fire in Smithfield, under the pretence, that the authority
they shewed in quelling the tumult was a proof of their being the authors
of it!
It has already been intimated that all the pulpits were now put under
an interdict, till the preachers should obtain a licence from Gardiner :
and that he resolved to grant licences to none but such as would preach
as he should direct them. His conduct encouraged the papists generally,
and in their love of ancient rites and superstitions they began speedily
to replace their images, and to revive their ceremonies in many of the
churches. Every thing in fact seemed to threaten a subversion of the
reformation, and the immediate re-establishment of all the errors and
enormities of the Romish church.
542 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
SECTION II.
THE REPORT OF THE DISPUTATION HAD AND BEGUN IN THE CONVOCATION
HOUSE AT LONDON, APPOINTED BY THE QUEEN, OCT. 18, 1553.
On October 18th, Dr. Weston, who had been chosen prolocutor, certified
to the house, that it was the queen's pleasure the learned men there as-
sembled should debate of matters of religion, and constitute laws, which
her grace and the parliament would ratify. " And for that," said he " there
is a book of late set forth, called the Catechism, bearing the name of this
honourable synod, and yet put forth without your consents, as I have
learned ; being a book very pestiferous, and full of heresies ; and likewise
a book of Common Prayer very abominable," as it pleased him to term
it. "I thought it therefore best, first to begin with the articles of the
Catechism, concerning the sacrament of the altar, to confirm the natural
presence of Christ in the same, and also transubstantiation. Wherefore, it
shall be lawful, on Friday next, for all men freely to speak their conscience
in these matters, that doubts may be removed, and they satisfied therein."
The Friday coming, being the 20th of October, when men had thought
they should have entered disputations of the questions proposed, the
prolocutor exhibited two bills to the house : the one for the natural pre-
sence of Christ in the sacrament of the altar, and the other concerning the
Catechism, denying its being published by the consent of that house, re-
quiring all them to subscribe to the same, as he himself had done. The
whole house assented, except the deans of Rochester and Exeter, the arch-
deacons of Winchester, Hereford, and Buckingham, and one more.
And whilst the rest were about to subscribe these two articles, John
Philpot spoke concerning the articles of the Catechism, and asserted that
it had been composed by the order and authority of the convocation.
Moreover, he said, as concerning the article of the natural presence in the
sacrament, that it was against reason and order of learning, and also very
prejudicial to the truth, that men should be moved to subscribe before the
matter were thoroughly examined and discussed. But when he saw his
allegation was to no purpose, he requested the prolocutor that there might
be an equal number of persons of both sides concerned in this disputation,
and desired that he would intercede with the lords, that some of those
that were learned, and setters-forth of the same Catechism, might be
admitted into the house ; and that Dr. Ridley and Mr. Rogers, with two
or three more, might be liberated to be present at this disputation, and to
be associated with them. This request was thought reasonable, and was
proposed to the bishops, who returned for answer, that it was out of their
power to call such persons to the house, since some of them were prisoners ;
but they would petition the council in this behalf, and in case any of them
were absent that ought to be of the house, they were agreeable to their
admission. After this, they minding to have entered into disputation,
there came a gentleman as messenger from the lord great master, signify-
ing unto the prolocutor, that the lord great master and the earl of Devon-
shire would be present at the disputations, and therefore he deferred the
same unto Monday, at one of the clock at afternoon.
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 543
Upon that day, the prolocutor made a protestation, in the presence of
many earls, lords, knights, gentlemen, and divers others of the court and
of the city also, that they of the house had appointed this disputation, not
to call in question the truth to which they had subscribed, but that those
gainsayers might be resolved respecting their doubts.
Then he demanded of Mr. Haddon, whether he would reason against
the questions proposed, or no. To whom he answered, that he had cer-
tified him before in writing that he would not, since the request of such
learned men as were demanded to be assistant with them, would not be
granted. Mr. Elmar was likewise asked, who made the like answer :
adding that they had already too much injured the truth by their sub-
scribing before the subjects were discussed. Mr. Weston, turning to Mr.
Cheney, or Cheyney, desired to know whether he would propose his
doubts concerning transubstantiation ; when the latter answered, " I would
gladly my doubts to be resolved which move me not to believe transubstan-
tiation. The first is out of St. Paul to the Corinthians, who, speaking of
the sacrament of the body and blood of Christ, called it ofttimes bread,
after the consecration. The second is out of Origen, who, speaking of
this sacrament, saith that the material part thereof goeth down to the ex-
crements. The third is out of Theodoret, who making mention of the
sacramental bread and wine after the consecration, saith, that they go not
out of their former substance, form, and shape. These be some of my
doubts, among many others, wherein I require to be answered."
Then the prolocutor assigned Dr. Moreman to answer him, who to St.
Paul answered him thus : " The sacrament is called by him, bread indeed ;
but it is thus to be understood : that it is the sacrament of bread ; that is,
the form of bread." Then Mr. Cheney alleged, that Hesychius called the
sacrament both bread and flesh. " Yea," said Moreman, " Hesychius
calleth it bread, because it was bread, and not because it is so." And,
passing over Origen, he came to Theodoret, and said, that men mistook
his authority by interpreting a general into a special, as Peter Martyr has
done in the place of Theodoret, interpreting ovola for substance, which is
a special signification of the word; whereas ovala is a general word, as
well to accidents as to substance. " And therefore I answer thus unto
Theodoret : that the sacramental bread and wine do not go out of their
former substance, form, and shape; that is to say, not out of their acci-
dental substance and shape."
After this Mr. Cheney sat down ; and by and by Mr. Elmar rose, de-
claring that Moreman's answer to Theodoret was not just or sufficient,
but an illusion and subtle evasion, contrary to Theodoret's meaning," etc.
After this stood up John Philpot ; and then began a further discussion,
in which Dr. Moreman, the dean of Rochester, and Dr. Watson took
part. The night coming on, the proculator broke up the disputation for
that time; and appointed Philpot to be the first that should begin the dis-
putation next day, concerning the presence of Christ in the sacrament.
On Wednesday, October 25th, John Philpot was prepared to enter
upon the disputation, minding first to have made a certain oration in
Latin, of the matter of Christ's presence which was then in question ;
which the prolocutor perceiving, he forbade him to make any declaration
or oration in Latin, but to deliver his arguments in English. After remind-
544 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
ing him of what he had appointed, and that his arguments were prepared
in Latin, Philpot added, " You have sore disappointed me, thus suddenly
to go from your former order : but I will accomplish your commandment,
leaving mine oration apart ; and I will come to my arguments, which, as
well as so sudden a warning can serve, I will make in English. But, be-
fore I bring forth any argument, I will, in one word, declare what manner
of presence I disallow in the sacrament, to the intent the hearers may the
better understand to what end and effect mine arguments shall tend ; not
to deny utterly the presence of Christ in his sacrament, truly ministered ac-
cording to his institution ; but only that gross and carnal presence, which
you of this house have already subscribed unto, to be in the sacrament of
the altar, contrary to the truth and manifest meaning of the Scriptures :
That by transubstantiation of the sacramental bread and wine, Christ's
natural body should, by the virtue of the words pronounced by the priest,
be contained and included under the forms of bread and wine. This kind of
presence, imagined by men, I do deny, and against this I will reason."
But before he could end his speech, he was interrupted by the prolocutor,
and commanded to descend to his argument. " I am about it," quoth
Philpot, " if you will let me alone. But first I must needs ask a question
of my respondent, Dr. Chedsey, concerning a word or two of your
supposition ; that is, of the sacrament of the altar, what he meaneth
thereby ? Dr. Chedsey answered, that in their supposition they took the
sacrament of the altar and the sacrament of the mass to be all one.
'* Then," quoth Philpot, " the sacrament of the altar, which ye reckon to
be all one with the mass, once justly abolished, and now put in full use
again, is no sacrament, neither is Christ in any wise present in it." This
he offered to prove before the whole house, the queen and her council, or
before six of the most learned men of that house of a contrary opinion,
and refused none. " And if I shall not be able to maintain, by God's
word, that I have said, and confound those six which shall take upon them
to withstand me in this point, let me be burned with as many fagots as be
in London, before the court gates !" This he uttered with great vehe-
mency of spirit.
The prolocutor, urged by some that were about him, consented that he
should be allowed an argument, so that he would be brief therein. " I
will be as brief," quoth Philpot, "as I may conveniently. And, first, I
will ground my arguments upon the authority of Scripture, whereon all
the buildings of our faith ought to be grounded ; and after I shall confirm
the same by ancient doctors of the church. And I take the occasion of
my first argument out of Matthew xxviii., of the saying of the angel to
the three Marys, seeking Christ at the sepulchre, saying, " He is
risen, he is not here;" and, Luke xxiii., the angel asketh them, " Why
seek ye the living among the dead?" Likewise the Scripture testifieth
that Christ is risen, ascended into heaven, and sitteth on the right hand
of the Father ; all which is spoken of his natural body ; therefore it is not
on earth included in the sacrament. I will confirm this yet more effectu-
ally by the saying of Christ in John xvi. : " I came from my Father into
the world, and now I leave the world and go away to my Father :" the
which coming and going he meant of his natural body. Therefore we may
affirm thereby, that it is not now in the world. But I look here to be
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 545
answered with a blind distinction of visibly and invisibly, that he is visibly
departed in his humanity, but invisibly he remaineth notwithstanding in
the sacrament. — But I will prove that no such distinction ought to take
awav the force of that argument, by the answer which Christ's disciples
uave unto him, speaking these words : ' Now thou speakest plainly, and
interest forth no proverb;' which words St. Cyril, interpreting, saith,
1 That Christ spake without any manner of ambiguity and obscure speech.'
And therefore I conclude hereby thus, that if Christ spake plainly and
without parable, saying, ' I leave the world now, and go away to my
Father,' then that obscure, dark, and imperceptible presence of Christ's
natural body to remain in the sacrament upon earth invisibly, contrary to
the plain words of Christ, ought not to be allowed ; for nothing can be
more uncertain, or more parabolical or insensible, than so to say. Here
now will I attend what you will answer, and so descend to the confirma-
tion of all that I have said, by ancient writers."
Then Dr. Chedsey took upon him to answer every point progressively.
First to the saying of the angel, " Christ is not here;" and " Why seek
ye the living among the dead?" he answered, that these sayings per-
tained nothing to the presence of Christ's natural body in the sacra-
ment, but that they were spoken of Christ's body being in the sepulchre,
when the three Marys thought him to have been in the grave still. And,
therefore, the angel said, " Why do ye seek him that liveth among the
dead ?" And to the authority of St. John, where Christ saith, " Now I
leave the world and go to my Father;" he meant that of his ascension.
And so likewise did Cyril, interpreting the saying of the disciples, who
knew that Christ would visibly ascend to heaven ; but that doth not
exclude the invisible presence of his natural body in the sacrament.
St. Chrysostom, writing to the people of Antioch, affirms the same,
comparing Elias and Christ together, and Elias's cloak, and Christ's
flesh. "When Elias," saith he, "was taken up in the fiery chariot,
he left his cloak behind him unto his disciple Elisseus. But Christ as-
cending into heaven, took his flesh with him, and left also his flesh
behind him." From whence we may justly conclude, that Christ's flesh
is visibly ascended into heaven, yet abideth invisibly in the sacrament
of the altar.
Philpot replied, " You have not directly answered to the words of the
angel, ' Christ is risen and is not here;' because you have omitted that
which was the chief point. For I proceed further, as thus, He is risen,
ascended, and sitteth on the right hand of God the Father: therefore
he is not remaining on earth. Neither is your explication of Cyril suffi-
cient. But I will presently return to your interpretation of Cyril, and
plainly declare it, after I have refuted the authority of Chrysostom,
which is one of the chief principles that you adduce to support your
carnal presence in the sacrament; which being well understood, per-
taineth nothing thereunto." The prolocutor was irritated and started
with impatience to think that one of the chief pillars on this point should
be overthrown. He therefore recited the authority in Latin, and after-
wards turned it into English, calling the attention of all present to
remark that saying of Chrysostom which he thought invincible on their
side. " But I will make it appear," said Philpot, "that it serves little
2 N
546 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
for your purpose, for I have two objections to propose ; one drawn from
Scripture, the other from the very place of Chrysostom himself.
" First, where he seemeth to say, that Christ ascending took his flesh
with him, and left his flesh also behind him, truth it is : for we all do con-
fess and believe that Christ took on him our human nature in the Virgin
Mary's womb, and through his passion in the same, hath united us to his
flesh ; and thereby are we become one flesh with him : so that Chrysostom
might thereby right well say, that Christ, ascending, took his flesh, which
he received of the Virgin Mary, away with him ; and also left his flesh
behind him, which are we that be his elect in the world, who are the
members of Christ, and flesh of his flesh, as very aptly St. Paul to the
Ephesians, chap, v., doth testify : ' We are flesh of his flesh, and bone of
his bones.' And if percase any man will reply that he entreateth there of
the sacrament, so that this interpretation cannot so aptly be applied unto
him in that place, then will I yet interpret Chrysostom another way by
himself. For in that place, a few lines before those words which were here
now lately read, are these words : that Christ, after he ascended into
heaven, left unto us, endued with his sacraments, his flesh in mysteries —
that is, sacramentally. And that mystical flesh Christ leaveth as well to
his church in the sacrament of baptism, as in the sacramental bread and
wine. St. Paul doth witness, ' As many of us as are baptized in Christ
have put upon us Christ;' and thus you may understand that St. Chrysostom
maketh nothing for your carnal and gross presence in the sacrament."
The fifth day's debate was opened on Friday, October 27th. The pro-
locutor began with observing, that the convocation had spent two days
in disputing about one father, which was Theodoret, and about one
Greek word, (ova/a ;) and now they were assembled to answer all things
tnat could be objected; therefore, he desired they would shortly pro-
pound their arguments. Upon this Haddon, dean of Exeter, requested
leave to oppose Mr. Watson, who, with Morgan and Harpsfield, were
appointed to answer him. Mr. Haddon then demanded, if any substance
of bread and wine remained after consecration? To which Watson
replied by asking another question, namely, whether he thought there
was a real presence of Christ's body or not? Mr. Haddon said, it was
a breach of order that one, who was appointed respondent, should be
opponent; nor should he, whose business was to object, answer. Mr.
Haddon then proceeded to shew, from the words of Theodoret, that the
substance of bread and wine remained; for his words are; "The same
they were before the sanctification, which they are after." Mr. Watson
said, that Theodoret meant not the same substance, but the same essence.
On this they were driven again to a discussion of the Greek word above
mentioned ; and Mr. Haddon proved it to mean a substance, both by
its etymology, and by the words of Theodoret. He then asked Watson,
when the bread and wine became symbols? Watson answered, " After
consecration, and not before." Then Mr. Haddon raised out of his
author the following syllogism :
" Theodoret saith, that the same thing the bread and wine were before
they were symbols, the same they still remain, in nature and substance,
after they are symbols. Bread and wine they were before. Therefore
bread and wine they are after."
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 547
Mr. Cheyney addressing liimself particularly to Mr. Watson, began
after this manner. " You said that Mr. Haddon was not fit to dispute,
because he had not granted the natural and real presence, but you are
much less fit to answer, because you take away the substance of the
sacrament." Watson said, that he had subscribed to the real presence,
and should not go from that; but he would explain what he meant by
subscribing to the real presence, far otherwise than they supposed. He
then prosecuted Haddon's argument, proving that the Greek word before
discussed was a substance, using the same reason that Haddon did: and
when he had received the same answer that was made to Haddon, he
told them it was but a poor refuge, when they could not answer, to
deny the author, and proved the author to be a catholic doctor; that
being proved, he further confirmed what was said of the nature and
substance.
The prolocutor perceiving that Mr. Watson was closely attacked,
called upon Mr. Morgan to help him out, who said that Theodoret did
no more than what was justifiable ; for, first he granted the truth, and
then, for fear of such as were not fully instructed in the faith, he spake
mystically: he granted the truth, by calling the bread and wine the
body and blood of Christ; after which he seems to give somewhat to
the senses and to reason : but that Theodoret was of the same opinion
with them, will appear from his words that follow, which are the cause
of what went before; therefore he says, the immortality, &c. whereby
it appears, that he meant the divine, and not the human nature.
Watson now said: " Suppose Theodoret be on your side, he is but
one; and what is one against the consent of the whole church?" Chey-
ney affirmed, that not only Theodoret was of his opinion, that the sub-
stance of bread and wine do remain, but many others also, particularly
Irenaeus, who making mention of this sacrament says: " When the cup
which is mingled with wine, and the bread that is broken, do receive
the word of God, it is made the Eucharist of the body and blood of
Christ, by which the substance of our flesh is nourished and doth con-
sist." From whence I infer, that if the thanksgiving doth nourish our
body, then there is some substance besides Christ's body. To this both
Watson and Morgan replied, observing, that the words, " by which,"
in that sentence of Irenseus, were to be referred to the next antecedent,
that is to the body and blood of Christ; and not to the wine which is in
the cup, and the bread which is broken. Mr. Cheyney said, that it was
not the body of Christ which nourished our bodies; and granting that
the flesh of Christ nourisheth to immortality, yet it doth not make for
their argument, although it might be true; no more than that answer
which was made to the allegation out of St. Paul, ' the bread which we
break, is it not the communion of the body of Christ?' with many
others; whereunto you answered, that bread was not to be taken there
in its proper signification, that is, not for that it was bread, but for that
it had been so; any more than the rod of Aaron was taken for a ser-
pent, because it had been a serpent."
After this, Mr. Cheyney brought in Hesychius, and used the same reason
that he did, of burning of symbols ; and he asked them, What was burnt ?
Watson said we must not inquire ; when Cheyney asked, Whereof came
548 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
those ashes — not from substance? or can any substance arise from
accidents?
Here Mr. Harpsfield was called to the assistance of Watson, and
began with a fair preamble about the omnipotency of God, and the
weakness of human reason as to the comprehension and attainment of
religious matters; observing, that whatsoever we saw, or tasted, it was
not convenient to trust our senses. He also related a curious legend
out of St. Cyprian, how a woman saw the sacrament burning in her
coffer! " Now that which burned there," said Harpsfield, " burneth
here, and becometh ashes; but what that was which burnt we cannot
tell." Mr. Cheyney continued still to force them with this question —
" What was it that was burnt? it was either the substance of bread,
or else the substance of the body of Christ — which is too great an ab-
surdity to grant." At length they answered, it was a miracle. At this
Mr. Cheyney smiling, said that he would then proceed no further.
Dr. Weston now asked the company, whether those men had not
been sufficiently answered? Certain priests said, "Yes;" but the mul-
titude exclaimed — " No, no!" Dr. Weston answered sharply, that he
asked not the judgment of the rude multitude, but such as were mem-
bers of that house. He then demanded of Mr. Haddon and his fellow-
disputants, whether they would answer them other three days? Haddon,
Cheyney, and Elmar all replied, " No." Upon which the archdeacon
of Winchester, Mr. Philpot, said they should be answered; and though
all others refused to answer, yet he would not ; but would himself an-
swer them all in turns. The prolocutor abused him, saying, that he
should go to Bedlam ; to whom the archdeacon seriously answered, that
he himself was much more suited to the place.
On the sixth debate, October 30th, the prolocutor, addressing himself
to Mr. Philpot, demanded whether, in the questions before propounded,
he would answer their objections? Mr. Philpot said if they would
answer but one of his arguments sufficiently, he would reply to all the
objections they could bring. The prolocutor then bid him state his
argument, and it should be resolutely controverted by some of them.
Mr. Philpot then proceeded — " On Wednesday last, I was compelled
to silence before I had prosecuted half my argument, the sum of which
was, that the human body of Christ had ascended into heaven, and
gone to the right hand of God the Father; wherefore, after the ima-
gination of man, it could not be situated upon earth invisibly in the
sacrament of the altar. My argument is this. One and the self-same
nature receiveth not any thing that is contrary to itself. But the body
of Christ is a human nature, distinct from the Deity, and is a proper
nature of itself. I infer therefore that it cannot receive any thing that is
contrary to that nature, and that varieth from itself. To be bodily pre-
sent and to be bodily absent — to be on earth, and to be in heaven — and
all at one time, are things incompatible with the nature of a human
body. Therefore, it cannot be said of the human body of Christ, that
the self-same body is both in heaven and on the earth at one instant,
either visibly or invisibly." Morgan objected to the first part of the
argument, which Philpot supported out of Vigilius, an ancient writer.
Morgan cavilled still, and said it was no scripture, and desired him
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 549
to prove the same from thence ; upon which Philpot quoted St. Paul, who
says that " Christ is made like unto us in all points, except sin ; " adding,
" As one of our bodies cannot receive in itself anything contrary to the
nature of a body, as to be in St. Paul's Church and in Westminster Abbey
at one and the same instant ; or to be in London visibly and in Lincoln
invisibly at one time; whereof he concluded that the body of Christ might
not be in more places than one, which is in heaven ; and so consequently
not to be contained in the sacrament of the altar." To this the prolocutor
answered that it was not true that Christ was like unto us in all points, as
Phiipot took it, except sin. For that Christ was not conceived by the
seed of man, as we be. Whereunto Philpot replied, that Christ's concep-
tion was prophesied before, by the angel, to be supernatural ; but after he
had received our nature by the operation of the Holy Ghost in the Virgin's
womb, he became in all points like unto us, except sin.
Morgan again cavilled ; when Philpot said that he was not destitute of
other Scriptures to confirm his argument, quoting the words of St. Peter :
" Whom heaven must receive until the consummation of all things," etc ;
which words were spoken of his humanity. " And if," said he, " heaven
must hold Christ, then can he not be here on earth, in the sacrament, as
is pretended."
After this the prolocutor spake to Philpot, and said, " Lest thou
shouldest slander the house, and say that we will not suffer you to declare
your mind, we are content that you shall come into the house as you
have done before ; so that you be apparelled in a long gown and a tippet,
like as we be, and that you shall not speak but when I command you."
"Then" quoth Philpot, " I had rather be absent altogether."
Thus did they reason, till at length, about the middle of December,
queen Mary interfered, and sending to Bonner, bishop of London,
commanded him to dissolve the convocation. Near the same time the
parliament broke up, having first repealed all such statutes as concerned
any alteration of religion, and administration of the sacraments, in the
reign of Edward VI. In this session also the parliament were ac-
quainted with the queen's intended marriage with Philip, the emperor's
son. In the mean time, cardinal Pole, having been sent for by Mary,
was requested by the emperor to stay with him, to the intent, according
to general opinion and report, that the cardinal's presence in England
should not be a bar to the marriage between his son and the queen; to
accomplish which, he sent a most splendid embassy, with full power;
which had such good success, that, after a few days, the marriage be-
tween Mary and Philip was settled on the following terms. The go-
vernment to rest solely with the queen. Her hand alone to give authority
to every thing. No Spaniard to be capable of any office. No change
to be made in the law, nor the queen to be required to go out of
England against her will, nor their issue but by consent of the nobility.
The queen to have of jointure 60,000Z. out of Spain. Their son to
inherit Burgundy and the Netherlands, as well as England. Their
daughters to succeed to her crown, and to have such portions from
Spain as were generally given to king's daughters. The prince to have
no share in the government after her death.
550 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
SECTION III.
WYATT's REBELLION — LADY JANE GREY CONVERSATION WITH FECKNAM
LETTERS BEHAVIOUR AT EXECUTION, WITH OTHER MATTERS.
The year 1554 commenced with persecution. Dr. Crome was com-
mitted to the Fleet, for preaching without, license on Christmas-day ; and
Thomas Wootton, a protestant esquire, on account of his religious profes-
sion. The publication of the queen's intended marriage was very ill re-
ceived by the people and several of the nobility ; and soon a rebellion
arose, whereof sir Thomas Wyatt was one of the chief promoters. He
said that the queen and council would, by this marriage, bring upon the
realm slavery and popery. He resided in the county of Kent, and as
soon as intelligence was received in London of the insurrection there, and
of the duke of Suffolk having fled into Warwick and Leicestershire, with
a view of raising forces in those counties, the queen caused them both,
with the Carews of Devonshire, to be proclaimed traitors. At the same
time she sent some forces, under the duke of Norfolk, into Kent; but, on
reaching Rochester-bridge, he found himself so deserted, that he was
obliged to return to London. The earl of Huntingdon was sent into
Warwickshire to apprehend the duke of Suffolk, who, entering the city
of Coventry before Suffolk, frustrated his designs In his distress, the duke
confided in a servant of his, named Underwood, in Astley-park, who, like a
false traitor, betrayed him. And so he was brought to the Tower of London.
Sir Peter Carew, hearing what was done, fled into France ; but the
others were taken. Wyatt came towards London in the beginning of
February. The queen, hearing of Wyatt's coming, came into the city to
the Guildhall, where she made a vehement oration against him. When
she had concluded, Gardiner, standing by her, with great admiration cried
to the people, "Oh, how happy are we, to whom God hath given such a
wise and learned prince !" etc.
On the 3rd of February, lord Cobham was committed to the Tower.
Wyatt was now 4000 strong, and came to Southwark, but could not force
the bridge of London : he was informed the city would all rise if he
should come to their aid ; but he could not find boats for passing into
Middlesex or Essex, so he was forced to go to the bridge of Kingston.
On reaching it, he found it cut ; yet his men repaired it, and he reached
Hyde-park the next morning. Weary and disheartened, his troops were
reduced to 500, and the queen's forces could have easily dispersed them ;
yet they let them go forward, that they might be obliged to surrender at
discretion. He marched through the Strand, and got to Ludgate. Re-
turning from thence, he was opposed at Temple-bar, and there surrendered
himself to sir Clement Parson, who brought him to court, with the re-
mains of his army, after about one hundred had been killed. A great
number of the captives were hanged ; and Wyatt was beheaded on Tower
hill, and then quartered.
It was now resolved to proceed against lady Jane Grey and her hus-
band. She had lived six months in the hourly meditation of death ; so
she was not much surprised when the catastrophe arrived. Fecknam,
LADY JANE GREY'S RELTGIOUS OPINIONS. 551
alias Howman, was sent from the queen, two days before her death, to
Commune with her, and to reduce her from the doctrine of Christ to queen
Mary's religion : the effect of which communication here followeth.
Fecknam. Madam, 1 lament your heavy case; and yet I doubt not but
that von bear out this sorrow of yours with a constant and patient mind.
Jane. You are welcome unto me, sir, if your coming be to give Chris-
tian exhortation. And as for my heavy case, I thank God, I do so little
lament it, that rather I account the same for a more manifest declaration
of God's favour towards me, than ever he showed me at any time before.
Therefore, there is no cause why either you or others which bear me good
will should lament or be grieved with this my case, being a thing so
profitable to my soul's health. <-
Fecknam. I am here come to you at this present, sent from the queen
and her council, to instruct you in the true doctrine of the right faith :
although I have so great confidence in you, that I shall have, I trust, little
need to travel with you much therein.
Jane. Forsooth, I heartily thank the queen's highness, who is not un-
mindful of her humble subject ; and I hope that you will no less do your
duty therein, truly and faithfully, according to that you were sent for.
Fecknam. What is then required of a Christian man ?
Jane. That he should believe in God the Father, the Son, and the
Holy Ghost: three Persons and one God.
Fecknam. What ? Is there nothing else to be required or looked for in
a Christian, but to believe in him ?
Jane. Yes, we must love him with all our heart, with all our soul, and
with all our mind ; and our neighbour as ourself.
Fecknam. Why ? then faith justifieth not, nor saveth not.
Jane. Yes verily, faith, as St. Paul saith, alone justifieth.
Fecknam. Why? St. Paul saith, " If I have all faith without love, it is
nothing."
Jane. True it is ; for how can I love him whom I trust not ? Or how
can I trust him whom I love not ? Faith and love go both together, and
yet love is comprehended in faith.
Fecknam. How shall we love our neighbour ?
Jane. To love our neighbour is to feed the hungry, to clothe the naked,
to give drink to the thirsty, and to do to him as we would to ourselves.
Fecknam. Why ? then it is necessary unto salvation to do good works
also, and it is not sufficient only to believe.
Jane. I deny that, and I affirm that faith only saveth ; but it is meet
for a Christian, in token that he followeth his master Christ, to do good
works ; yet may we not say that they profit to our salvation. For when
we have done all, yet we be unprofitable servants, and faith only in
Christ's blood saveth us.
Fecknam. How many sacraments are there?
Jane. Two — the one the sacrament of baptism, and the other the
sacrament of the Lord's supper.
Fecknam. No, there are seven.
Jane. By what scripture find you that ?
Fecknam. Well, we will talk of that hereafter. But what is signified
by your two sacraments ?
552 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Jane. By the sacrament of baptism, I am washed with water, and re-
generated by the Spirit ; and that washing is a token to me that I am the
child of God. The sacrament of the Lord's supper, offered unto me, is a
sure seal and testimony that I am, by the blood of Christ, which he shed
for me on the cross, made partaker of the everlasting kingdom.
Fecknam. Why, what do you receive in that sacrament ? Do you not
receive the very body and blood of Christ ?
Jane. No surely, I do not so believe. I think that at the supper I
neither receive flesh nor blood, but bread and wine ; which bread when it
is broken, and the wine when it is drunken, put me in remembrance how
that for my sins the body of Christ was broken, and his blood shed on the
cross ; and with that bread and wine I receive the benefits that come by the
breaking of his body, and shedding of his blood, for our sins on the cross.
Fecknam. Why, doth not Christ speak these words, " Take, eat, this
is my body ? " Require you any plainer words ? Doth he not say, it is
his body ?
Jane. I grant, he saith so ; and so he saith, il I am the vine, I am the
door ; " but he is never the more for that, the door or the vine. Doth not
St. Paul say, " He calleth things that are not as though they were?"
God forbid that I should say, that I eat the very natural body and blood
of Christ : for then either I should pluck away my redemption, or else
there were two bodies, or two Christs. One body was tormented on the
cross, and if they did eat another body, then had he two bodies ; or if his
body were eaten, then was it not broken upon the cross ; or if it were
broken upon the cross, it was not eaten of his disciples.
Fecknam. Why, is it not as possible that Christ, by his power, could
make his body both to be eaten and broken, and to be born of a virgin,
as to walk upon the sea, having a body, and other such like miracles as
he wrought by his power only ?
Jane. Yes verily, if God would have done at his supper any miracle,
he might have done so : but I say, that then he minded no work nor
miracle, but only to brake his body and shed his blood on the cross for our
sins. But I pray you to answer me to this one question : Where was
Christ when he said, "Take, eat, this is my body?" Was he not at the
table when he said so ? He was at that time alive, and suffered not till
the next day. What took he, but bread ? what brake he, but bread ?
and what gave he, but bread? Look, what he took he brake ; and look,
what he brake he gave : and look, what he gave they did eat : and yet
all this while he himself was alive, and at supper before his disciples, or
else they were deceived.
Fecknam. You ground your faith upon such authors as say and unsay
both in a breath ; and not upon the church, whom ye ought to credit.
Jane. No, I ground my faith on God's word, and not upon the church.
For if the church be a good church, the faith of the church must be tried
by God's word ; and not God's word by the church, neither yet my faith.
Shall I believe the church because of antiquity, or shall I give credit to
the church that taketh away from me the half part of the Lord's Supper,
and will not let any man receive it in both kinds ? which things if they deny
to us, then deny they to us part of our salvation. And I say, that it is an
evil church, and not the spouse of Christ, but the spouse of the devil, that
LADY JANE'S LETTER TO MR. HARDING. 553
alter eth the Lord's supper, and both taketli from it and addeth to it. To
that church, say I, God will add plagues; and from that church will he
take their part out of the book of life. Do they learn that of St. Paul,
when lie ministered to the Corinthians in both kinds? Shall I Relieve this
church ? God forbid !
Fecknam. That was done for a good intent of the church, to avoid a
heresy that sprang on it.
Jane. Why, shall the church alter God's will and ordinance, for good
intent? How did king Saul? The Lord God defend !
With these and such like persuasions he would have had her lean to the
church, but it would not be. There were many more things whereof they
reasoned, but these were the chiefest. After this, Fecknam took his
leave, saying that he was sorry for her : " For I am sure," quoth he,
" that we two shall never meet."
" True it is," replied lady Jane, openly, " that we shall never meet,
except God turn your heart ; for I am assured, unless you repent and turn
to God, you are in an evil case. And I pray God, in the bowels of his
mercy, to send you his Holy Spirit ; for he hath given you his great gift
of utterance, if it pleased him also to open the eyes of your heart."
A letter of the lady Jane to master Harding, late chaplain to the duke
of Suffolk, her father, and then fallen from the truth of God's most holy
word : —
" So oft as I call td mind the dreadful and fearful saying of God,
' That he which layeth hold upon the plough, and looketh back, is not
meet for the kingdom of heaven ;' and, on the other side, the comfortable
words of our Saviour Christ to all those that, forsaking themselves,, do
follow him ; I cannot but marvel at thee, and lament thy case, who
seemed sometime to be the lively member of Christ, but now the deformed
imp of the devil ; sometime the beautiful temple of God, but now the
stinking and filthy kennel of Satan ; sometime the unspotted spouse of
Christ, but now the unshamefaced paramour of antichrist ; sometime my
faithful brother, but now a stranger and apostate ; sometime a stout
Christian soldier, but now a cowardly runaway. Yea, when I consider
these things, I cannot but speak to thee, and cry out upon thee, thou
seed of Satan, and not of Judah, whom the devil hath deceived, the
world hath beguiled, and the desire of life subverted, and made thee of a
Christian an infidel. Wherefore hast thou taken the testament of the Lord
in thy mouth ? Wherefore hast thou preached the law and the will of God
to others ? Wherefore hast thou instructed others to be strong in Christ,
when thou thvself dost now so shamefully shrink, and so horribly abuse the
testament and law of the Lord ? when thou thyself preachest, not to
steal, yet most abominably stealest, not from men, but from God, and,
committing most heinous sacrilege, robbest Christ thy Lord of his right
members, thy body and soul ; and choosest rather to live miserably with
shame to the world, than to die, and gloriously with honour reign with
Christ, in whom even in death is life? Why dost thou now show thyself
most weak, when indeed thou oughtest to be most strong? The strength
of a fort is unknown before the assault, but thou yieldest thy hold before
any battery be made. O wretched and unhappy man, what art thou but
554 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
dust and ashes ? And wilt thou resist thy Maker, that fashioned thee and
framed thee? Wilt thou now forsake Him that called thee from the
custom-gathering among the Romish antichristians, to be an ambassador
and messenger of his eternal word ? He that first framed thee, and since
thy first creation and birth preserved thee, nourished and kept thee, yea,
and inspired thee with the spirit of knowledge, (I cannot say, of grace,)
shall he not now possess thee? Darest thou deliver up thyself to another,
being not thine own, but his ? How canst thou, having knowledge, or
how darest thou neglect the law of the Lord, and follow the vain tradi-
tions of men ; and, whereas thou hast been a public professor of his name,
become now a defacer of his glory? Wilt thou refuse the true God, and
worship the invention of man, the golden calf, the whore of Babylon, the
Romish religion, the abominable idol, the most wicked mass ? Wilt thou
torment again, rend and tear the most precious body of our Saviour
Christ, with thy bodily and fleshly teeth ? Wilt thou take upon thee to
offer up any sacrifice unto God for our sins, considering that Christ offered
up himself, as Paul saith, upon the cross, a lively sacrifice once for all ?
Can neither the punishment of the Israelites — which, for their idolatry,
they so oft received — nor the terrible threatenings of the prophets, nor
the curses of God's own mouth, fear thee to honour any other god than
him ? Dost thou so regard Him that spared not his dear and only Son
for thee, so diminishing, yea, utterly extinguishing his glory, that thou
wilt attribute the praise and honour due unto him to the idols, ' which
have mouths and speak not, eyes and see not, ears and hear not;' which
shall perish with them that made them ?
******
" Last of all, let the lively remembrance of the last day be always be-
fore your eyes ; remembering the terror that such shall be in at that time,
with the runagates and fugitives from Christ, which setting more by the
world than by heaven, more by their life than by Him who gave them life,
did shrink, yea, did clean fall away, from him that forsook not them :
and contrariwise, the inestimable joys prepared for them, that fearing no
peril, nor dreading death, have manfully fought, and victoriously triumphed
over all power of darkness, over hell, death, and damnation, through
their most redoubted captain, Christ. — To whom, with the Father and the
Holy Ghost, be all honour, praise, and glory everlasting. Amen."
A letter written by the lady Jane in the end of the New Testament in
Greek, the which she sent unto her sister the lady Katherine, the night
before she suffered : —
" I have here sent you, good sister Katherine, a book, which although it be
not outwardly trimmed with gold, yet inwardly it is more worth than pre-
cious stones. It is the book, dear sister, of the law of the Lord. It is his
testament and last will, which he bequeathed unto us wretches ; which
shall lead you to the path of eternal joy : and, if you with a good mind
read it, and with an earnest mind do purpose to follow it, it shall bring
you to an immortal and everlasting life. It shall teach you to live, and
learn you to die. It shall win you more than you should have gained by
the possession of your woeful father's lands. For as, if God had pros-
pered him, you should have inherited his lands ; so, if you apply diligently
EXECUTION OF LADY .TANK OKKY. 555
to this book, seeking to direct your life after it, you shall be an inheritor
of such riches, as neither the covetous shall withdraw from you, neither
thief shall steal, neither yet the moths corrupt. Desire with David, good
sister, to understand the law of the Lo.'d God. Live still to die, that you
by death may purchase eternal life. And trust not that the tenderness of
your age shall lengthen your life ; for as soon, if God call, goeth the young
as the old; and labour always to learn to die. Defy the world, deny the
devil, and despise the flesh, and delight yourself only in the Lord. Be
penitent for your sins, and yet despair not : be strong in faith, and yet
presume not ; and desire, with St. Paul, to be dissolved and to be with
Christ, with whom even in death there is life. Be like the good servant,
and even at midnight be waking, lest when death cometh and stealeth
upon you as a thief in the night, you be, with the evil servant, found
sleeping; and lest, for lack of oil, you be found like the five foolish
women ; and like him that had not on the wedding garment, and then ye
be cast out from the marriage. Rejoice in Christ, as I do. Follow the
steps of your master Christ, and take up your cross ; lay your sins on hr
back, and always embrace him. And as touching my death, rejoice as 1
do, good sister, that I shall be delivered of this corruption, and put on in-
corruption. For I am assured that I shall, for losing a mortal life, win an
immortal life, the which I pray God grant you, and send you of his grace
to live in his fear, and to die in the true Christian faith, from the which, in
God's name, I exhort you that you never swerve, neither for hope of life,
nor for fear of death. For if you will deny his truth for to lengthen your
life, God will deny you, and yet shorten your days. And if you will cleave
unto him, he will prolong your days, to your comfort and his glory : to
the which glory God bring me now, and you hereafter, when it pleaseth
him to call you. Fare you well, good sister, and put your only trust in
God, who only must help you."
A prayer made by the lady Jane in the time of her trouble, and also a
letter to her father, and part of that to Mr. Harding, are here omitted for want
of space. It remaineth now, coming to the end of this virtuous lady, to
infer the manner of her execution, with the words and behaviour of her at
the time of her death. First, when she mounted the scaffold, she said to
the people standing thereabout, " Good people, I am come hither to die,
and by a law I am condemned to the same. The fact against the queen's
highness was unlawful, and the consenting thereunto by me ; but, touch-
ing the procurement and desire thereof by me, or on my behalf, I do wash
my hands thereof in innocency before God, and the face of you, good
Christian people, this day. — I pray you all, good Christian people, to bear
me witness that I die a true Christian woman, and that I do look to be
saved by no other mean, but only by the mercy of God, in the blood of
his only Son Jesus Christ : and I confess, that when I did know the word
of God, I neglected the same, and loved myself and the world : therefore
this punishment is happily and worthily happened unto me for my sins ;
and yet I thank God, that of his goodness he hath thus given me a time
and respite to repent. And now, good people, while I am alive, I pray
you assist me with your prayers."
And then, kneeling down, she turned her to Fecknam, saying, " Shall
556 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
I say this psalm?" and he said, "Yea." Then said she the psalm of
" Miserere mei Deus," in English, in most devout manner throughout to
the end. Then she stood up, and gave her maiden, Ellen, her gloves and
handkerchief, and her book to Mr. Bruges. After this, she untied her
gown, in which the executioner offered to help her; but she, desiring him
to let her alone, turned towards her two gentlewomen, who helped her off
therewith, and also with her frowes, paaft and neckerchief, giving to her
a fair handkerchief to knit about her eyes. Then the executioner kneeled
down and asked her forgiveness, which she willingly granted, and said, " i
pray you dispatch me quickly." Then she kneeled, saying, " Will you
strike before I lay me down?" The executioner said, "No, madam/'
Then tied she the handkerchief about her eyes, and feeling for the block,
she said, " What shall I do ? Where is it?" One of the standers-by
guiding her thereunto, she laid her head down upon the block, and then
stretched forth her body, and said, " Lord, into thy hands I commend my
spirit;" and so finished her life, in the year of our Lord 1554, the 12th
day of February, about the 17th year of her age.
Thus was beheaded the lady Jane, and with her also the lord Guilford,
her husband, one of the duke of Northumberland's sons. Judge Morgan,
who gave the sentence of condemnation against her, shortly after he had
condemned her, fell mad, and in his raving cried out continually to have
the lady Jane taken away from him ; and so ended his life. Upon the
21st of the same month, Henry duke of Suffolk, the father of lady Jane,
was also beheaded at the Tower-hill ; and, about the same time, many
gentlemen and yeomen were condemned for this conspiracy, whereof some
were executed in London and some in the country.
On the 24th of the same month of February, 1554, Bonner, bishop of
London, sent down a commission to all the pastors and curates of his
diocese, for the taking of the names of such as would not come, the Lent
following, to auricular confession, and to the receiving at Easter. And on
the 4th of the next month there was a letter sent from the queen to bishop
Bonner requiring that all the canons and ecclesiastical laws of Henry the
Eighth's time should be put in execution.
Injunctions were now given to the bishops, to execute such ecclesiastical
laws as had been in force in king Henry's time : that in their courts they
should proceed in their own names ; that the oath of supremacy should be
no more exacted ; that none suspected of heresy should be put in orders ;
and that all married clergymen should separate from their wives. If they
left their wives, the bishops might put them in some other cure, or reserve
a pension for them out of their livings. Rules for ordination were
established on popish principles. The queen gave also a special commis-
sion to Bonner, Gardiner, Tonstall, Day, and Kitchin, to proceed against
the archbishop of York, and the bishops of St. David's, Chester, and
Bristol, and to deprive them of their bishoprics, for having contracted
marriage, and thereby broken their vows and defiled their function. She
also authorized them to call before them the bishops of Lincoln, Glou-
cester, and Hereford, who held their bishoprics only during their good
behaviour; and since they had done things contrary to the laws of God,
and the practice of the universal church, to declare their bishoprics void.
557
SECTION IV.
account of a public disputation which was appointed by the
queen's special command in a convocation held at st. mary's
church in oxford.
la April 1554, Cranmer, Ridley, and Latimer, were conveyed as pri-
soners from the Tower to Windsor- and from thence to Oxford, to dispute
with the divines and learned men of both the universities, Oxford and
Cambridge, concerning the presence, substance, and sacrifice of the
sacrament. The doctors and graduates appointed to dispute against
them were of Oxford — Dr. Weston, prolocutor, Dr. Tresham, Dr. Cole,
Dr. Oglethorpe, Dr. Pie, Mr. Harpsfield, and Mr. Fecknam. Of Cam-
bridge, Dr. Young, vice-chancellor, Dr. Glyn, Dr. Seton, Dr. Watson,
Dr. Sedgewick, and Dr. Atkinson. The questions of dispute were —
Whether the natural body of Christ be really in the sacrament, after the
words spoken by the priest or not ? Whether in the sacrament, after the
words of consecration, any other substance do remain, than the sub-
stance of the body and blood of Christ ? and whether in the mass there
be a sacrifice propitiatory for the sins of the quick and the dead ?
On the 13th of April the doctors of Cambridge arrived at Oxford,
and lodged all at the Cross Inn, with one Wakecline, some time a ser-
vant to bishop Bonner. After the ceremonies of welcome, and after
consultation concerning the delivery of their letters and instrument of
grace, they all repaired to Lincoln college to Dr. Weston the prolocutor,
and to Dr. Tresham the vice-chancellor, to whom they delivered their
letters, declaring what they had done touching the articles and graces.
Having concluded on a procession, sermon, and convocation, on the day
following, and that the doctors of Cambridge should be incorporated
with the university of Oxford, and the doctors of Oxford with those of
the university of Cambridge, they returned to their inn. The same day,
the three prisoners were separated, Dr. Ridley to the house of Mr. Irish,
Latimer to another house; while Cranmer remained in Bocardo, a prison
in Oxford.
The following day the vice-chancellor of Cambridge, with the other
doctors of that university, again repairing to Lincoln college, found the
prolocutor above in the chapel, with a company of the house singing
mass for the dead, and tarried there until the end. Then having con-
sulted together in the master's room, they all came to the university
church of St. Mary's, where, after another consultation in a chapel, the
vice-chancellor of Oxford caused the vice-chancellor of Cambridge,
and the rest of the doctors of that university, to send for their scarlet
robes brought from Cambridge. By this time, the regents in the con-
gregation-house, had granted all the Cambridge doctors their graces,
to be incorporate there ; and so they went up and were immediately
admitted, Dr. Oglethorpe presenting them, and the proctor reading the
statute, and giving them their oaths.
They now all came into the choir to hold the convocation of the
university: the mass of the Holy Ghost was solemnly sung before them
558 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
by the choir-men of Christ's church. First, the cause of the convocation
was opened in English by the vice-chancellor and prolocutor declaring
that they were commissioned by the queen, and wherefore they were sent;
and caused master Say, the register, openly to read the commission. That
done, the vice-chancellor read the Cambridge letters openly, and then
concluded that three notaries, one for the convocation, one for Cambridge,
and one for Oxford, should testify of their doings. Then they ordered
the notaries to provide parchment, that the whole assembly might sub-
scribe to the articles, except those who had subscribed before in the con-
vocation-house at London and Cambridge. And so the vice-chancellor
began first ; after him the rest of the Oxford men, as many as could in
the mass time.
The mass being done, they went in procession to Christ's church ; and
there the choir sang a psalm, and after that a collect was read. They then
departed to Lincoln college, where they dined with the mayor, one alder-
man, four beadles, and the Cambridge notary. After dinner they all went
again to St. Mary's church ; where, shortly after, all the commissioners
arrived, and sat before the altar, to the number of thirty-three persons :
Dr. Cranmer was then sent for, and shortly after arrived in custody. The
archbishop paid his respects to them with much humility, standing with
his staff in his hand, and though he had a stool offered him, refused to sit.
The articles against him were read, and a copy of them delivered to him ; after
which he was given in charge to the mayor, who remanded him to prison.
Dr. Ridley was next brought in, who hearing the articles against him,
immediately replied that they were all false ; and said farther, that they
sprang from a bitter and sour root. Then he was asked whether he
would dispute or not? He answered, that as long as God gave him life,
he should not only have his heart, but also his mouth and pen to defend
his truth ; but he required time and books. They said he could not have
time, but must dispute on Thursday ; and till then he should have books.
He said it was unreasonable that he might not have his own books and
time also. Then they gave him the articles, and desired him to write his
opinion upon them that night ; after which they commanded the mayor to
take him whence he came.
Last of all came in Mr. Latimer, with a kerchief and two or three caps
on his head, his spectacles hanging by a string at his breast, and a staff
in his hand, and was set in a chair. After his denial of the articles, when
he had Wednesday appointed for disputation, he alleged age, sickness,
disuse, and lack of books, saying, that he was almost as meet to dispute
as to be a captain of Calais : but he, would declare his mind either by
writing or word, and would stand to all they could lay upon him ; com-
plaining, moreover, that he was permitted to have neither pen nor ink,
nor yet any book but the New Testament in his hand, which he had read
over seven times deliberately, and yet could not find the mass in it,
neither the rnarrow-bones nor sinews of the same. At this the com-
missioners were not a little offended ; and Dr. Weston said that he
would make him grant that it had both marrow-bones and sinews in
the New Testament. To whom Latimer said again, " That you will
never do, master Doctor." And so, forthwith, they put him to silence ; so
that whereas he was desirous to tell what he meant by those terms, he could
CRANMER DISPUTING AT OXFORD. 5.39
not be suffered. The great press and throng of people were then dis-
persed, and the convocation adjourned. At nine o'clcck on Sunday
morning, Mr. Harpsfield preached at St. Mary's, where the doctors in
their robes were placed in due order of precedency. After sermon, they
all dined at Magdalen college, and supped at Lincoln college, with Dr.
Weston ; whither Cranmer sent his answer upon the articles in writing.
On Monday, Dr. Weston, with the residue of the visitors, censors, and
opponents, repairing to the divinity school, each installed himself in his
place. Cranmer was brought thither, and set in the answerer's place,
with the mayor and aldermen by him ; when the prolocutor, apparelled in
a scarlet gown, after the custom of the university, began the disputation
with this oration : —
" You are assembled hither, brethren, this day to confound the detest-
able heresy of the verity of the body of Christ in the sacrament." At
these strange words several of the learned men burst out into great
laughter, as though, in the entrance of the disputation, he had betrayed
himself and his religion, by terming the opinion of the verity of Christ's
body in the sacrament a detestable heresy ! The rest of his oration was
intended to prove, that it was not lawful to call these questions into
controversy ; for such as doubted of the words of Christ might well be
thought to doubt both of the truth and power of God. On this Dr.
Cranmer, desiring leave, answered — " We are assembled to discuss and
to lay before the world those doubtful points which ye think it unlawful
to dispute. It is, indeed, no reason that we should dispute of that which
is determined upon before the truth be tried. But if these questions be
not called into controversy, surely my answer then is looked for in vain."
Then Chedsey, the first opponent, began : " Rev. Doctor, these three
conclusions are put forth unto us at present to dispute upon — In the
sacrament of the altar, is the natural body of Christ, and also his blood,
present really under the forms of bread and wine, by virtue of God's
word pronounced by the priest ? Does there remain any of the former
substance of bread and wine after the consecration, or any other sub-
stance but the substance of God and man ? Is the lively sacrifice of
the church in the mass propitiatory, as well for the quick as the dead ?
These are the arguments on which our present controversy rests. Now,
to the end we might not doubt how you take the same, you have already
given unto us your opinion thereof. I term it your opinion, in that it
disagreeth from the catholic. Wherefore I thus argue : Your opinion
differeth from Scripture : ergo, you are deceived."
Cranmer. I deny the antecedent.
Chedsey. Christ, when he instituted his last supper, spake to his
disciples,/' Take, eat: this is my body which shall be given for you." But
his true body was given for us : ergo, his true body is in the sacrament.
Cranmer. His body is truly present to them that truly receive him ; but
spiritually. And so it is taken after a spiritual sort ; for when he said,
" This is my body," it is all one as if he had said, " This is the breaking
of my body ; this is the shedding of my blood. As oft as you shall do
this, it shall put you in remembrance of the breaking of my body, and
the shedding of my blood ; that as truly as you receive this sacrament, so
truly shall you receive the benefit promised by receiving the same worthily."
560 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Chedsey. Your opinion differeth from the church, which saith, that the
true body is in the sacrament : ergo, your opinion therein is false.
Cranmer. I say and agree with the church, that the body of Christ is
in the sacrament effectually, because the passion of Christ is effectual.
Chedsey. Christ, when he spake these words, " This is my body," spake
of the substance, but not of the effect.
Cranmer. I grant he spake of the substance, and not of the effect after
a sort : and yet it is most true that the body of Christ is effectually in the
sacrament. But I deny that he is there truly present in bread, or that
under the bread is his organical body.
And because it should be too tedious, Cranmer said, to discourse of the
whole, he delivered his written opinion to Dr. Weston, with answers to
the three propositions, requiring that it might be read openly to the
people ; which the prolocutor promised, but did not. The copy of this
writing here followeth : —
" In the assertions of the church and of religion, trifling and newfangled
novelties of words are to be eschewed, whereof ariseth nothing but con-
tention ; and we must follow as much as we can the manner of speaking
of the Scripture. In the first conclusion, if ye understand by this word
1 really ,' ' re ipsaj that is, in very deed and effectually ; so Christ, by the
grace and efficacy of his passion, is indeed and truly present to all true
and holy members. But if ye understand by this word ' really ,' ' cor-
poraliter,' that is, corporeally ; so that by the body of Christ is understood
a natural body and organical ; so, the first proposition doth vary not only
from the usual speech and phrase of Scripture, but also is clean contrary
to the holy word of God and Christian profession : when as both the
Scripture doth testify by these words, and also the Catholic church hath
professed from the beginning — Christ to have left the world, and to sit at
the right hand of the Father till he come to judgment.
" And likewise I answer to the second question, that is, that it swerveth
from the accustomed manner and speech of Scripture. The third conclu-
sion, as it is intricate and wrapped in all doubtful and ambiguous words,
and differing also much from the true speech of Scripture, so as the words
thereof seem to import no open sense, is most contumelious against our
only Lord and Saviour Christ Jesus, and a violating of his precious blood,
which, upon the altar of the cross, is the only sacrifice and oblation for the
sins of all mankind."
Chedsey. By this your interpretation which you have made upon the
first conclusion, this I understand — the body of Christ to be in the sacra-
ment only by the way of participation : insomuch as we, communicating
thereof, do participate the grace of Christ ; so that you mean hereby the
effect thereof. But our conclusion standeth upon the substance, and not
the efficacy only, which shall appear by the testimony both of Scriptures,
and of all the fathers a thousand years after Christ. And first let us con-
sider what is written in Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii., and 1 Cor. xi.
Matthew saith, " As they sat at supper, Jesus took bread," etc. In Mark
there is the same sense, although not the same words, who also for one
part of the sacrament speaketh more plainly, saying, "Jesus taking bread,"
etc. After the same sense also writeth Luke, " And when Jesus had taken
bread," etc. " In the mouth of two or three witnesses," saith the Scrip-
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 561
tare, " standeth all truth." Here we have tliree witnesses together, that
Christ said that to-be liis body, which was given tor many; and that to
be his blood, which should be shed for many ; whereby is declared the
substance, and not only the efficacy thereof. Ergo, it is not true that you
say, there is not the substance of his body, but the efficacy alone thereof.
Gran, Thus you gather upon mine answer, as though I did mean of
the efficacy, and not of the substance of the body ; but I mean of
them both, as well as of the efficacy as of the substance. And forso-
much as all things come not readily to memory, to a man that shall
speak extempore, therefore, for the more ample and fuller answer in this
matter, this writing here I do exhibit.
Hereupon Cranmer put forth a lengthened explication, which the prolo-
cutor said should be read in that place hereafter, and requested them to
fall to the arguments.
Ched. The Scriptures in many places do affirm, that Christ gave his
natural body : Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii. Ergo, I do conclude
that the natural body is in the sacrament.
Cran. To your argument I answer — If you understand by the body
natural, the organic body, that is, having such proportion and members
as he had living here, then I answer negatively. Furthermore, as con-
cerning the evangelists, this I say and grant, that Christ took bread, and
called it his body.
Ched. The text of the Scripture maketh against you, for the circum-
stance thereto annexed doth teach us, not only there to be the body, but
also teacheth us what manner of body it is, and saith, " The same body
which shall be given." That thing is here contained, that is given for us.
But the substance of bread is not given for us. And therefore the sub-
stance of bread is not here contained.
Cran. I understand not yet what you mean by this word contained.
If you mean really, then I deny your major.
Ched. The major is the text of Scripture. He that denieth the major,
denieth the Scripture : for the Scripture saith, " This is my body which is
given for you."
Cran. I grant, Christ said it was his body which should be given, but
he said not it was his body which is here contained ; " but the body that
shall be given for you." As though he should say, " This bread is the
breaking of my body, and this cup is the shedding of my blood." What
will ye say then ? Is the bread the breaking of his body, and the cup the
shedding of his blood really? If you say so, I deny it.
Ched. If you ask what is the thing therein contained ; because his
apostles should not doubt what body it was that should be given, he saith,
" This is my body which shall be given for you, and my blood which shall
be shed for many." Here is the same substance of the body, which the
day after was given, and the same blood which was shed. And I urge
the Scripture, which teacheth that it was no fantastical, no feigned, no
spiritual body, nor body in faith, but the substance of the body.
Cran. You must prove that it is contained ; but Christ said not which
is contained. He gave bread, and called it his body. I halt not in the
words of the Scripture, but in your word, which is feigned and imagined
by yourself.
2 o
562 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
The disputation went on, but only by repeating on both sides what had
already been said more than once or twice. Mr. Chedsey having at last
finished his argument, Dr. Oglethorpe, one of the arbitrators, said — " You
still come in with one evasion or starting hole to flee to. He urgeth the
Scriptures, saying, that Christ gave his very body. You say, that he gave
his body in bread. What sort of body is meant? what is the body spoken
of? the bread is the body."
Cran. I answer to the question — It is the same body which was born
of the Virgin, was crucified, ascended ; but tropically, and by a figure.
And so I say, the bread is the body, as a figurative speech, speaking
sacramentally, for it is a sacrament of his body.
Oglethorpe. It is not a likely thing that Christ hath less care for his
spouse the church, than a wise householder hath for his family in making
his will or testament. But no householder maketh his testament after
that sort.
Cran. Yes ; there are many that do so. For what matter is it, so it
be understood and perceived ? I say, Christ used figurative speech in no
place more than in his sacraments, and specially in this of his supper.
Ogle. No man of purpose doth use tropes in his testament ; for, if he
do, he deceiveth them that he comprehendeth in his testament : therefore
Christ useth none here. The good man of the house hath respect that
his heirs, after his departure, may live in quiet and without wrangling.
But they cannot be in quiet if he use tropes. Therefore, I say, he useth
no tropes.
Cran. I deny your minor, and insist that he may use them.
Weston, the prolocutor, then said — " Augustine, in his book entitled
De unitate Ecclesice-, ch. x., hath these words following : — ' What a thing is
this, I pray you? When the last words of one lying upon his death-bed
are heard, who is ready to go to his grave, no man saith, that he hath
made a lie ; and he is not accounted his heir who regardeth not those
words. How shall we then escape God's wrath, if, either not believing
or not regarding, we shall reject the last words both of the only Son of
God, and also of our Lord and Saviour, both ascending into heaven, and
beholding from thence, who despiseth, who observeth them not, and so
shall come from thence to judge all men?' "
Thereupon followed a lengthened discussion between Cranmer, Weston,
and Oglethorpe. After which Cranmer resumed : f* And why should we
doubt to call it the sacrament of the body of Christ, offered upon the cross,
seeing both Christ and the ancient fathers do so call it ? Chrysostom
himself declareth — ' O miracle ! O the good will of God towards us,
which sitteth above at the right hand of the Father, and is holden in
men's hands at the time of sacrifice, and is given to feed upon, to them
that are desirous of him ! And that is brought to pass by no subtlety or
craft, but with the open and beholding eyes of all the standers-by.' Thus
you hear Christ is seen here on earth every day, and is touched ; which
no man having any judgment will say or think to be spoken without trope
or figure."
West. What miracle is it if it be not his body, and if he spake only of
the sacrament, as though it were his body ? But hear what Chrysostom
farther saith — " I shew forth that thing on earth unto thee, which is
DKHATKS ON THE HEAT. PRESENCE. 563
worthy the greatest honour. For like as in the palace of kings, neither
the walls, nor the sumptuous bed, but the body of the king sitting under
the cloth of state, and royal seat of majesty, is of all things else the most
excellent : so is in like manner the King's body in heaven, which is now
set before us on earth. I show thee neither angels nor archangels, nor the
heaven of heavens, but the very Lord and Master of all these things.
Thou perceivest after what sort thou dost not only behold, but touchest ;
and not only touchest, but eatest that which on the earth is the greatest
and chiefest thing of all other ; and when thou hast received the same, thou
goest home : wherefore cleanse thy soul from all uncleanness." Upon this,
1 conclude that the body of Christ is showed us upon the earth.
Cran. What ! upon the earth ? No man seeth Christ upon the earth :
he is seen here with the eyes of our mind only, with faith and spirit.
West. I pray you, what is it that seemeth worthy highest honour on
earth ? Is it the sacrament, or else the body of Christ ?
Cran. Chrysostom speaketh of the sacrament ; and the body of Christ
is showed forth in the sacrament.
West. Ergo, then the sacrament is worthy greatest honour.
Cran. I deny the argument.
West. That thing is showed forth, and is now on the earth : " ostenditur
et est," which is worthy highest honour. But only the body of Christ is
worthy highest honour : ergo, the body of Christ is now on the earth.
Cran. I answer, the body of Christ to be on the earth, but so as in the
sacrament, and as the Holy Ghost is in the water of baptism.
West. Chrysostom saith, " ostendo," " I show forth," which noteth a
substance to be present.
Cran. That is to be understood sacramentally.
West. He saith, " ostendo in terra," " I show forth on earth," declar-
ing also the place where.
Cran. That is to be understood figuratively. Your major and conclu-
sion are all one.
Here Weston called upon Cranmer to answer to one part, bidding him
repeat his words ; which when he essayed to do, such was the uproar in
the divinity school, that his mild voice could not be heard. And when he
went about to explain to the people that the prolocutor did not correctly
English the words of Chrysostom, using for ostenditur in terra, " he is
showed forth on the earth," est in terra, " he is on the earth ; " whereas
Chrysostom hath not est, nor any such word implying being on the earth,
but only of showing, as the grace of the Holy Ghost, in baptismo ostenditur,
" is showed forth in baptism." And oftentimes as he did inculcate this
word ostenditur, the prolocutor rudely interrupted him, and, substituting
noise and insolence for argument, called him unlearned and impudent; at
the same time, pointing at him scornfully, urged the people to silence him
with hissing, clapping of hands, and other species of tumult, which this
reverend man most patiently and meekly did abide, as one well inured to
the suffering of such reproaches. And the prolocutor, not yet satisfied
with this rude and unseemly demeanour, did urge and call upon him to
answer the argument ; and then he bade the notary to repeat his words.
From Chrysostom the disputants went to Tertullian, from whom
Chedsey, who was better acquainted with the fathers than the prolocutor
564 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
himself, quoted as follows, for the purpose of again raising on their testi-
mony his favourite and absurd syllogism : " Tertullian, speaking of the
resurrection of the body, saith, ' Let us consider as concerning the proper
form of the Christian man, what great prerogative this vain and foul sub-
stance of ours hath with God. Although it were sufficient to it, that no
soul could ever get salvation, unless it believe while it is in the flesh ; so
much the flesh availeth to salvation : by the which flesh it cometh, that
whereas the soul is so linked unto God, it is the said flesh that causeth
the soul to be linked : yet the flesh moreover is washed, that the soul may
be cleansed ; the flesh is anointed, that the soul may be consecrated ; the
flesh is signed, that the soul may be defended ; the flesh is shadowed by
the impositions of hands, that the soul may be illuminated with the Spirit ;
the flesh doth eat the body and blood of Christ, that the soul may be fed
of God.' Whereupon I gather this argument — The flesh eateth the body
of Christ ; therefore the body of Christ is eaten with the mouth."
To this quotation Cranmer replied, with some interruption from Weston
and Chedsey, thus — "Tertullian calleth that the flesh which is the sacra-
ment. For although God works all things in us invisibly, beyond man's
reach, yet they are so manifest, that they may be seen and perceived of
every sense. Therefore he setteth forth baptism, unction, and last of all
the supper of the Lord unto us, which he gave to signify his operation in
us. The flesh liveth by the bread, but the soul is inwardly fed by Christ.
— Read that which followeth, and you shall perceive that, by things external,
an internal operation is understood. Inwardly we eat Christ's body, and
outwardly we eat the sacrament. So one thing is done outwardly, another
inwardly. Like, as in baptism, the external element, whereby the body is
washed, is one ; the internal thing, whereby the soul is cleansed, is another."
A long discussion then took place between Chedsey, Cranmer, Weston,
and Tresham. Dr. Young, vice-chancellor of Cambridge, at length strove
to change the direction of the dispute, by putting certain questions to
Cranmer relative to the nature of Christ's body, the subordination of sense
and reason to faith, and the manner in which the words of the Lord Jesus
were to be understood for the just belief of his doctrines, and the just
observance of his commands and institutions.
Young. This disputation is taken in hand that the truth might appear.
I perceive that I must go another way to work than I had thought. It
is a common saying, " Against them that deny principles, we must not
dispute." Therefore that we may agree of the principles, I demand,
whether there be any other body of Christ, than his instrumental body ?
Cran. There is no natural body of Christ, but his organical body.
Young. I demand, whether sense and reason ought to give place to faith?
Cran. They ought.
Young. Whether Christ be true in all his works ? And whether, at his
supper, he minded to do that which he spake or no ?
Cran. Yea, he is most true, and truth itself. In saying he spake, but
in saying he made not, but made the sacrament to his disciples.
Young. A figurative speech is no working thing. But the speech of
Christ is working : ergo, it is not figurative.
Cran. I said not, that the words of Christ do work, but Christ himself;
and he worketh by a figurative speech.
DEBATES ON THE HEAL PRESENCE. 565
West, If a figure work, it maketh of bread the body of Christ.
Gran. A figurative speech worketh not.
West. A figurative speech, by your own confession, worketh nothing.
But the speech of Christ in the supper, as you grant, wrought somewhat :
ergo, the speech of Christ in the supper was not figurative.
Cran. I answer, these are mere sophisms. The speech doth not work ;
but Christ, by the speech, doth work the sacrament. I look for Scrip-
tures at your hands, for they are the foundation of disputations. — Ambrose
speaketh of sacraments sacramentally. He calleth the sacraments by the
names of the things; for he useth the signs for the thing signified: and
therefore the bread is not called bread, but his body, for the excellency
and dignity of the thing signified by it. — The body is nourished both with
the sacrament, and with the body of Christ : with the sacrament to a
temporal life ; with the body of Christ to eternal life.
The discussion was carried on for some time between Cranmer, Young,
Weston, Pie, Chedsey, and Harpsfield. Cranmer, in his answers, evinced
the meekness of wisdom, and the ingenuousness and integrity of truth,
whenever their clamour would allow him to reply, or he considered their
sophistries and quibbles deserving refutation. Their disordered disputa-
tion, sometimes in Latin, sometimes in English, continued almost till two
of the clock. Being at length finished, and the arguments written and
delivered to the hands of master Say, the prisoner, Dr. Cranmer, was had
away by the mayor, and the doctors dined together at the University
college.
DISPUTATION AT OXFORD BETWEEN DR. SMITH, WITH HIS OTHER
COLLEAGUES AND DOCTORS, AND BISHOP RIDLEY.
The next day following, April 12th, was brought forth Dr. Ridley to
dispute in the divinity school ; against whom was set Dr. Smith to be
principal opponent. This Dr. Smith had often changed his religious
opinions ; but not from conviction of conscience, as appears from his re-
cantation, and also from his letter to Cranmer in king Edward's time.
The rest of his opponents were Drs. Weston, Tresham, Oglethorpe, Glin,
Seton, Cole, Watson; masters Harpsfield, Ward, Pie, Harding, Curtop,
and Fecknam : to all of whom he answered very learnedly. Dr. Weston,
the prolocutor, commenced the disputation, with the following speech : —
" Good Christian people and brethren, we have begun this day our
school, by God's good speed I trust ; and are entering into a controversy,
whereof no question ought to be moved, concerning the verity of the body
of our Lord Jesus Christ in the eucharist. Christ is true, who said the
words. The words are true which he spake, yea, truth itself that cannot
fail. Let us therefore pray unto God to send down upon us his Holy
Spirit, which is the interpreter of his word ; which may purge away errors,
and give light that verity may appear. Let us also ask leave and liberty
of the church to permit the truth received to be called this day in question
without any prejudice to the same. Your parts thereof shall be to im-
plore the assistance of Almighty God, to pray for the prosperity of the
queen's majesty, and to give us quiet and attentive ears. Now go to
your question."
Dr. Smith then said — " This day, right learned master Doctor, three
566 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
questions are propounded, whereof no controversy among Christians
ought to be moved. They are these — Whether the natural body of
Christ our Saviour, conceived of the virgin Mary, and offered for man's
redemption upon the cross, is verily and really in the sacrament by
virtue of God's word spoken by the priests. Whether in the sacrament
after the words of consecration, there be any other substance than the
body and blood of Christ ? Whether in the mass there is the sacrifice
of Christ propitiatory. Touching these questions, although you have
publicly declared your judgment on Saturday last; yet I will again de-
mand your answer on the first question; upon which I stand here now
to learn what may be answered."
Dr. Ridley then addressed the convocation as follows without any
material interruption :
" I received of you the other day, right worshipful Mr. Prolocutor,
and you my reverend masters, commissioners from the queen's majesty
and her honourable council, three propositions ; whereunto ye com-
manded me to prepare against this day, what I thought good to answer
concerning the same.
" Now whilst I weighed with myself how great a charge of the Lord's
flock was of late committed unto me, for which I am certain I must once
render an account to my Lord God (and how soon he only knoweth) and
that moreover by the commandment of the apostle Peter, I ought to
be ready always to give a reason of the hope that is in me, with meek-
ness and reverence, unto every one that shall demand the same : be-
sides this, considering my duty to the church of Christ, and to your
worships, being commissioners by public authority ; I determined with
myself to obey your commandment, and so openly to declare unto you
my mind touching the aforesaid propositions. And albeit, plainly to
confess unto you the truth of these things ye now demand of me, I
have thought otherwise in times past than now I do, yet (I call God to
record upon my soul, I lie not) I have not altered my judgment, as now
it is, either by constraint of any man or law, either for the dread of
any dangers of this world, either for any hope of commodity ; but only
for the love of the truth revealed unto me by the grace of God (as I am
undoubtedly persuaded) in his holy word, and in the reading of the
ancient fathers.
"These things I do rather recite at this present, because it may happen
to some of you hereafter, as in times past it hath done to me : I mean,
if ye think otherwise of the matters propounded in these propositions
than I now do, God may open them unto you in time to come. But
howsoever it shall be, I will in a few words do that which I think ye
all expect I should ; that is, as plainly as I can, I will declare my
judgment herein. Howbeit, of this I would ye were not ignorant, that
I will not indeed willingly speak in any point against God's word, or
dissent in any one jot from the same, or from the rules of faith, or the
christian religion : which rules that same most sacred word of God
prescribeth to the church of Christ, whereunto I now and for ever
submit myself and all my doings. And because the matter I have now
taken in hand is weighty, and ye all well know how unprepared I am
to handle it accordingly, as well for lack of time, as also of books ;
DI.BAIKS O.N 11 IK KKAL PRESENCE. 567
therefore hero I protest, that I will publicly this day require of you that
it may be lawful for me concerning all mine answers, explications, and
confirmations, to add or diminish whatsoever shall seem hereafter more
convenient and meet for the purpose, through more sound judgment, better
deliberation, and more exact trial of every particular thing. Having now,
by the way of preface and protestation, spoken these few words, 1 will
come to the answer of the propositions propounded unto me, and so to the
most brief explication and confirmation of mine answers."
THE FIRST PROPOSITION.
In the sacrament of the altar, by the virtue of God's word spoken of
the priest, the natural body of Christ, born of the Virgin Mary, and his
natural blood, are really present under the forms of bread and wine.
Ridley. In matters appertaining to God we may not speak accord-
ing to the sense of man, nor of the world : therefore, this propo-
sition or conclusion is framed after another manner of phrase, or kind
of speech, than the scripture useth. Again, it is very obscure and dark,
by means of sundry words of doubtful signification. And being taken
in the sense which the schoolmen teach, and at this time the church of
Rome doth defend, it is false and erroneous, and plainly contrary to the
doctrine which is according to godliness. How far the diversity and
newness of the phrase in all this first proposition is from the phrase of
the holy scripture, and that in every part almost, it is so plain and evi-
dent to any one who is but meanly exercised in holy writ, that I need
not now (especially in this company of learned men) spend any time
therein, except the same shall be required of me hereafter.
" First, there is a double sense in these words, By virtue of God's ivord,
for it is doubtful wdiat word of God this is, whether it be that which is
read in the evangelists, or in St. Paul, or any other. And if it be that
which is in the evangelists, or in St. Paul, what that is. If it be in none
of them, then how it may be known to be God's word, and of such
virtue that it should be able to work so great a matter.
"Again, there is a doubt of these words, of the priest, whether no man
may be called a priest, but he which hath authority to make a pro-
pitiatory sacrifice for the quick and the dead; and how it may be proved
that this authority was committed of God to any man, but to Christ
alone. It is likewise doubted after what order the sacrificing priest shall
be, whether after the order of Aaron, or else after the order of Mel-
chisedek. For as far as I know, the holy scriptures doth allow no
more.
" Moreover, there is ambiguity in this word really, whether it be taken
as the logicians term it " transcendenter," that is, most generally, and
so it may signify any manner of thing which belongeth to the body of
Christ, by any means: after which sort we also grant Christ's body to
be really in the sacrament of the Lord's supper; or whether it be taken
to signify the very same thing, having body, life, and soul, which was
assumed and taken by the word of God, into the unity of person. In
which sense, seeing the body of Christ is really in Heaven, because of
the true manner of his body, it may not be said to be here on the earth.
568 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
if There is yet a further doubtfulness in these words, under the forms of
bread and wine, whether the forms be there taken to signify the only acci-
dental and outward shows of bread and wine ; or therewithal the substantial
natures thereof, which are to be seen by their qualities, and perceived by
exterior senses. Now the error and falseness of the proposition, after the
sense of the Roman church and schoolmen, may hereby appear, in that they
affirm the bread to be transubstantiated and changed to the flesh assumed
of the word of God, and that, as they say, by virtue of the word which
they have devised by a certain number of words, and cannot be found in
any of the evangelists, or in St. Paul ; and so they gather that Christ's
body is really contained in the sacrament of the altar. Which position is
grounded upon the foundation of the transubstantiation ; which foundation
is monstrous, against reason, and destroy eth the analogy or proportion of
the sacraments : and therefore this proposition also, which is builded upon
this rotten foundation, is false, erroneous, and to be counted as a detest-
able heresy of the sacramentaries.
" There ought no doctrine to be established in the church of God, which
dissenteth from the word of God, from the rule of faith, and draweth with
it many absurdities that cannot be avoided. But this doctrine of the first
proposition is such : therefore it ought not to be established and main-
tained in the church of God.
" The major, or first part of my argument, is plain ; and the minor, or
second part, is proved thus : — This doctrine maintaineth a real, corporeal,
and carnal presence of Christ's flesh, assumed and taken of the word, to
be in the sacrament of the Lord's supper, and that not by virtue and grace
only, but also by the whole essence and substance of the body and flesh of
Christ. But such a presence disagreeth from God's word, from the rule
of faith, and cannot but draw with it many absurdities. Therefore, the
second part is true. The former part of this argument is manifest, and the
latter may yet further be confirmed thus : First of all, this presence is con-
trary to many places of the Holy Scripture. Secondly, it varieth from the
articles of the faith. Thirdly, it destroyeth and taketh away the institution
of the Lord's supper. Fourthly, it maketh precious things common to
profane and ungodly persons ; for it casteth that which is holy unto dogs,
and pearls unto swine. Fifthly, it forceth men to maintain many monstrous
miracles, without necessity and authority of God's word. Sixthly, it giveth
occasion to the heretics who erred concerning the two natures in Christ to
defend their heresies thereby. Seventhly, it falsifieth the' sayings of the
godly fathers ; it falsifieth also the Catholic faith of the church, which the
apostles taught, the martyrs confirmed, and the faithful, as one of the
fathers saith, do retain and keep until this day. Wherefore the second
part of mine argument is true."
THE SECOND PROPOSITION.
After the consecration there remaineth no substance of bread and wine,
neither any other substance, than the substance of God and man.
Ridley. The second conclusion is manifestly false, directly against the
word of God, the nature of the sacrament, and the most evident testimonies
of the godly fathers ; and it is the rotten foundation of the other two con-
clusions propounded by you, both of the first, and also of the third. I
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 56[)
will not therefore now tarry upon this answer, being contented witli that
which is already added before to the answer of the first proposition.
V It is very plain by the word of God, that Christ did give bread unto
his disciples, and called it his body. But the substance of bread is
another manner of substance, than is the substance of Christ's body,
(lod and man. Therefore the conclusion is false. That which Christ
took, on which he gave thanks, and which he brake, he gave to his
disciples, and called his body. But he took bread, gave thanks on
bread, and brake bread. Therefore the first part is true. And it is
confirmed with the authorities of the fathers, Irene, Tertullian, Origen,
Cyprian, Epiphanius, Jerome, Augustine, Theodoret, Cyril, Rabanus,
and Bede. Whose places I will take upon me to shew most manifest in
this behalf, if I may be suffered to have my books, as my request, is.
" We may no more believe bread to be transubstantiate into the body
of Christ, than the wine into his blood. The circumstances of the scrip-
ture, the analogy and proportion of the sacraments, and the testimony
of the faithful fathers, ought to rule us in taking the meaning of the
holy Scripture touching the sacrament : and they most effectually and
plainly prove a figurative speech in the words of the Lord's supper. There-
fore, a figurative sense and meaning is specially to be received in these
words, ' This is my body.' — The circumstances of the Scripture are : ' Do
this in remembrance of me.' ' As oft as ye shall eat of this bread, and
drink of this cup, ye shall show forth the Lord's death.' ' Let a man prove
himself, and so eat of this bread, and drink of this cup.' ■ They came to-
gether to break bread ; and they continued in breaking of bread.' * The
bread which we break,' etc. ' For we being many, are all one bread,' etc."
THE THIRD PROPOSITION.
In the mass is the lively sacrifice of the church, propitiable and avail-
able for the sins as well of the quick as of the dead.
Ridley. I answer to this third proposition as I did to the first ; and
moreover I say, that being taken in such a sense as the words seem to im-
port, it is not only erroneous, but withal so much to the derogation and
defacing of the death and passion of Christ, that I judge it may and
ought most worthily to be counted wicked and blasphemous against the
most precious blood of our Saviour Christ.
" Concerning the Romish mass which you use at tills day, or the lively
sacrifice thereof, propitiatory and available for the sins of the quick
and the dead, the holy scripture has not so much as one syllable. There
is ambiguity in the name mass, what it signifieth, and whether at this
day there be any such indeed as the ancient fathers used; seeing that
now there be neither Catechists nor Penitents to be sent away. And
then as touching these words, the lively sacrifice of the church, there
is doubt whether they are to be understood figuratively and sacrament-
ally, or properly and without any figure; of which manner there was
but one only sacrifice, and that once offered, namely upon the altar of
the cross. Moreover, in these words, as well as, it may be doubted
whether they be spoken in mockery, as men are wont to say in sport, of
a foolish and ignorant person, that he is apt as well in conditions as in
knowledge; being apt in neither of them. Finally, there is doubt in
570 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the word propitiable, whether it signify here that which taketh away sin,
or that which may be made available for the taking away of sin; that is
to say, whether it is to be taken in the active, or in the passive sig-
nification."
The following is an abridged form of Bishop Ridley's argument on
the sacrifice of atonement. " No sacrifice ought to be done, but where
the priest is meet to offer the same. All other priests are unmeet to
offer propitiatory sacrifices, save only Christ. Therefore, no other priests
ought to sacrifice for sin, but Christ alone.
" After that eternal redemption is found and obtained, there needeth
no more daily offering for the same. But Christ coming an high Priest,
found and obtained for us eternal redemption. Therefore, there needeth
now no more daily oblation for the sins of the quick and the dead. All
remissions of sins cometh only by shedding of blood. In the mass there
is no shedding of blood. Therefore, in the mass there is no remission
of sins; and so it followeth also that there is no propitiatory sacrifice.
In the mass, the passion of Christ is not in verity, but in a mystery re-
presenting the same. Where Christ suffereth not, there is he not offered
in verity: for the apostle saith, 'Not that he might offer up himself
oftentimes — for then must he have suffered oftentimes since the beginning
of the world.' And again — ' Christ appeared once in the latter end
of the world, to put sin to flight by the offering up of himself. And
as it is appointed to all men that they shall once die, and then cometh
the judgment; even so Christ was once offered, to take away the sins
of many. And unto them that look for him shall he appear the second
time without sin unto salvation.' Where there is any sacrifice that can
make the comers thereunto perfect, there ought men to cease from
offering any more expiatory and propitiatory sacrifices. But in the New
Testament there is one only sacrifice now already long since offered,
which is able to make the comers thereto perfect for ever. Therefore,
in the New Testament they ought to cease from offering any propitiatory
sacrifices."
Dr. Smith, the principal opponent of Ridley, now drew that holy
bishop into a most unprofitable controversy on the real presence.
Scarcely an idea occurred which has not been more than once before
the reader already. On which side the truth lay, may be seen from a
few of Ridley's answers.
" You import as though I had made a strong argument by Christ's
going up into heaven. But however my argument is made, you collect
it not rightly. For it doth not only rest upon his ascension, but upon
his abiding there also. — Of Christ's real presence there may be a double
understanding: if you take the real presence of Christ according to the
real and corporeal substance which he took of the virgin, that presence
being in heaven, cannot be on the earth also. But if you mean a real
presence, according to some thing that appertaineth to Christ's body,
certainly the ascension and abiding in heaven hinder not at all that
presence. Wherefore Christ's body after that manner is here present to
us in the Lord's supper; by grace I say, as Epiphanius speaketh it. — I
do not straightly tie Christ up in heaven, that he may not come into the
eartn at his pleasure. For when he will, he may come down from heaven,
DISl'l lAlUKN WITH RIDLEY. 571
and be on the earth, as it liketh himself. Howbeit, I do affirm, that it
is not possible for him to be both in heaven and earth at one time.
" I do not bind Christ in heaven so straitly. I see you go about to
beguile me with your equivocations. Such equivocations are to be dis-
tinguished, if you mean by his sitting in heaven, to reign with his
Father, he may be both in heaven and also on earth. But if you un-
derstand his sitting to be after a corporeal manner of sitting, so is he
always permanent in heaven. For Christ to be corporeal here on earth,
when corporeally he is resident in heaven, is clearly contrary to the
holy scriptures, as Austin saith; 'The body of Christ is in heaven,
but his truth is dispersed in every place.' Yet I do not deny that
Christ was seen, even here on earth, after he had risen. I account this
a sound and firm argument to prove the resurrection. Whether they
saw him in heaven or on earth, -it maketh no great matter. Both ways
the argument is of like strength. For whether he were seen in heaven,
or whether he were seen on earth, either maketh sufficiently for the
matter. Certain it is, he rose again: for he could not have been seen,
unless he had risen again.
": He that found the means for Stephen to behold him in heaven, even
he could bring to pass well enough, that Paul might hear him out of
heaven. — I grant he was seen visibly and corporeally: but yet have you
not proved that he was seen in earth. — Moreover, I say, that Christ was seen
of men on earth after his ascension it is certain : for he was seen of Stephen ;
lie was seen also of Paul. But whether he descended unto the earth, or
whether he being in heaven did reveal or manifest himself to Paul, when Paul
was rapt into the third heaven, I know that some contend about it : and the
Scripture, as far as I have read or heard, doth not determine it. Wherefore
we cannot but judge uncertainly of those things which be uncertain."
Smith. We have Egesippus and Linus against you, which testify that
Christ appeared corporeally on the earth to Peter after his ascension.
Peter overcome with the requests and mournings of the people, which
desired him to get him out of the city, because of Nero's lying in wait for
him, began without company to convey himself away from thence : and
when he was come to the gate, he seeth Christ come to meet him, and
worshipping him, he said, " Master, whither walk you ? " Christ answered,
" I am come again to be crucified." Linus, writing of the passion of
Peter, hath the self-same story. St. Ambrose hath the same likewise, and
also Abdias, scholar to the apostles, who saw Christ before his ascending
in heaven. With what face therefore dare you affirm it to be a thing un-
certain, which these men do manifestly witness to have been done ?
Ridley suggested the uncertainty of this account; at the same time
maintaining that even its certainty would not make against him. " I
account not these men's reports so sure as the canonical scriptures. But
if at any time Christ had to any man appeared here on the earth after
his ascension, that doth not disprove my saying. For I go not about to
tie Christ up in fetters; but that he may be seen upon the earth accord-
ing to his divine pleasure, whensoever it pleaseth him. But we affirm,
that it is contrary to the nature of his manhood, and the true manner
of his body, that he should be together and at one instant both in
heaven and earth, according to his corporeal substance."
572 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Harpsfield now took up the papal cause against Ridley, and endea-
voured to confound him by means of Chedsey's famous argument with
Mr. Philpot, respecting the bequest of Elijah's mantle and spirit to his
venerable successor in office. Of course the authority of Chrysostom
on this subject was introduced, and the popish disputant thought his
armour perfect proof, and his victory absolutely certain and secure. It
is needless to repeat the dialogue, as it contains nothing beyond what
has already appeared. It may be remarked that the wearisome repetition
of the same authorities and the same sophistries to ensnare the reformers,
is a standing proof of the desperate condition to which, both intellectually
and religiously, the cause of popery was even then reduced. What effect
such arguments at that time might have had on minds prepared for them
by superstitious discipline, we are unable to say : certain it is, however,
that in the judgment of all candid readers in the present day they must
appear altogether puerile and unworthy even of serious contempt.
Weston and Cole successively followed Harpsfield in attacking the
persecuted but patient bishop — who might well have said to either of
them what the author of " Sacred Classics," in more modern times, said
to a pert and prating chaplain, who was examining him for ordination
— " 1 have forgotten more learning than you ever possessed!" Passing
over their ridiculous efforts, we come to that of Dr. Glin, who claims
more serious notice from his having been an old friend of Dr. Ridley.
The following intercourse took place between them.
Glin. I see that you evade all scriptures and fathers; I will go to
work with you after another manner. Jesus Christ hath here his church
known on earth, of which you were once a child, although now you
speak contumeliously of the sacraments.
Rid. This is a grievous reproach, that you call me a shifter-away of
the scripture, and of the doctors: as touching the sacraments, I never
yet spake contumeliously of them. I grant that Christ hath here his
church on earth: but that church did ever receive and acknowledge the
eucharist to be a sacrament of the body of Christ, yet not the body of
Christ really, but the body of Christ by grace.
Glin. Then I ask this question — Hath the catholic church ever, or at
any time, been idolatrous?
Rid. The church is the pillar and stay of the truth, that never yet
hath been idolatrous in respect of the whole: but peradventure in
respect of some part thereof, which sometimes may be seduced by evil
pastors, and through ignorance.
Glin. That church ever hath worshipped the flesh of Christ in the
eucharist.
Rid. And I also worship Christ in the sacrament, but not because he
is included in the sacrament; even as I worship Christ also in the scrip-
tures, not because he is really included in them. Notwithstanding, I
say, that the body of Christ is present in the sacrament; but yet sacra-
men tally and spiritually, according to his grace, giving life; and in that
respect really, that is, according to his benediction, giving life. Further-
more, I acknowledge, gladly, the true body of Christ to be in the Lord's
supper, in such sort as the church of Christ doth acknowledge the same.
But the true church of Christ doth acknowledge a presence of Christ's
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENbE. 573
body in the Lord's supper to be communicated to the godly by grace, and
spiritually, as 1 have often showed, and by a sacramental signification,
but not by the corporeal presence of the body of his flesh.
Glin. Augustine against Faustus saith, " Some there were who thought
us, instead of bread and of the cup, to worship Ceres and Bacchus."
From this I gather, that there was an adoration of the sacrament among
the fathers; and Erasmus, in an epistle to the brethren of Low Germany,
saith, that the worshipping of the sacrament was before Augustine and
Cyprian.
Rid. We handle the signs reverently : but we worship the sacrament
as a sacrament, not as a thing signified by the sacrament.
Glin. What is the symbol or sacrament ?
Rid. Bread.
Glin. Therefore we worship bread.
Rid. There is a deceit in the word adoramus. We worship the symbols
when we reverently handle them. We worship Christ wheresoever we
perceive his benefits : but we understand his benefit to be greatest in the
sacrament.
Glin. Think you that Christ hath now his church ?
Rid. I do so.
Glin. But all the church adoreth Christ verily and really in the sacrament.
Rid. You know yourself that the eastern church would not acknowledge
transubstantiation, as appeareth in the council of Florence.
Cole. That is false : for in the same they did acknowledge transubstan-
tiation, although they would not in treat of the matter, for that they had
not in their commission so to do. — It was not because they did not acknow-
ledge the same, but because they had no commission so to do.
Curtop. Reverend sir, I will prove and declare, that the body of Christ
is truly and really in the eucharist : and whereas the holy fathers, both of
the west and east church, have written many things and no less manifest
of the same matter, yet will I bring forth only Chrysostom. The place is
this : " That which is in the cup, is the same that flowed from the side of
Christ." But true and pure blood did flow from the side of Christ.
Therefore, his true and pure blood is in the cup.
Watson. It is a thing commonly received of all, that the sacraments of
the new law give grace to them that worthily receive.
Rid. True it is, that grace is given by the sacrament, but as by an
instrument. The inward virtue and Christ give the grace through the
sacrament.
Wat. What is a sacrament ?
Rid. I remember there be many definitions of a sacrament in Augustine;
but I will take that which seemeth most fit to this present purpose. A
sacrament is a visible sign of invisible grace. — The society or conjunction
with Christ through the Holy Ghost is grace ; and by the sacrament we
are made the members of the mystical body of Christ, for that by the
sacrament the part of the body is grafted in the head.
Wat. But there is difference between the mystical body and natural body.
Rid. There is, I grant you, a difference; but the head of them both
is one.
Wat. The eucharist is a sacrament of the New Testament : therefore
574 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
it hath a promise of grace. But no promise of grace is made to bread
and wine : therefore bread and wine are not the sacraments of the New
Testament.
Rid. I grant that grace pertaineth to the eucharist, according to this
saying : " The bread which we break, is it not the communication or
partaking of the body of Christ?" And like as he that eateth, and he
that drinketh, unworthily of the sacrament of the body and blood of the
Lord, eateth and drinketh his own damnation ; even so he that eateth
and drinketh worthily, eateth life and drinketh life. I grant also, that
there is no promise made to bread and wine. But inasmuch as they are
sanctified, and made the sacraments of the body and blood of the Lord,
they have a promise of grace annexed unto them; namely, of spiritual
partaking of the body of Christ to be communicated and given, not to
the bread and wine, but to them who worthily receive the sacrament.
Wat. If the substance of bread and wine do remain, then the union
betwixt Christ and us is promised to them that take bread and wine.
But that union is not promised to bread and wine, but to the receivers
of the flesh and blood. " He that eateth my flesh, and drinketh my
blood hath eternal life." Therefore the substance of bread and wine
remaineth not.
Rid. The promise undoubtedly is made to the flesh and blood, but
the same is to be received in the sacrament through faith. Every sacra-
ment hath grace annexed unto it instrumentally. But there are divers
understanding of this word " habet," " hath ;" for the sacrament hath not
grace included in it ; but to those that receive it well, it is turned to
grace. After that manner the water in baptism hath grace promised, and
by that grace the Holy Spirit is given ; not that grace is included in
water, but that grace cometh by water. — There is no promise made to
him that taketh common bread and common wine; but to him that
receiveth the sanctified bread of the communion, there is a large promise
of grace made : neither is the promise given to the symbols, but to the
thing of the sacrament. But the thing of the sacrament is the flesh and
blood. — This sacrament hath a promise of grace made to those that receive
it worthily, because grace is given by it, as by an instrument; not that
Christ hath transfused grace into the bread and wine. — There is no pro-
mise made to them that receive common bread, as it were; but to those
that worthily receive the sanctified bread, there is a promise of grace
made, as Origen doth testify. — The bread which we break, is it not a
communication of the body of Christ? And we, being many, are one
bread, one body of Christ.
Wat. What doth he mean by bread in that place ?
Rid. The bread of the Lord's table, the communion of the body of Christ.
Wat. Hearken what Chrysostom saith on this place: "The bread
which we break," etc. Wherefore did he not say participation ? Because
he would signify some greater matter, and that he would declare a great
convenience and conjunction betwixt the same. For we do not commu-
nicate by participation only and receiving, but also by co-uniting, for
likewise as that body is co-united to Christ, so also we, by the same
bread, are conjoined and united to him.
Rid. Let Chrysostom have his manner of speaking, and his sentence.
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 575
If it be true, I reject it not. But let it not be prejudicial to me to
name it true bread.
Wat. "All," saith Chrysostom, "which sit together at one board, do
communicate together of one true body. What do I call," saith he,
" this communicating? We are all the self-same body. What doth
bread signify? The body of Christ. What are they that receive it?
The body of Christ. For many are but one body." Chrysostom doth
interpret this place against you. " All we be one bread, and one
mystical body, which do participate together one bread of Christ."
Rid. All we are one mystical body, which do communicate of one
Christ in bread, after the efficacy of regeneration. I speak of the bread
of the Lord's table. It is one, the church being one, because one bread
is set forth upon the table : and so of one bread altogether do par-
ticipate, who communicate at the table of the Lord. All, I say, which
at one table together have communicated in the mysteries might well so
do. But the heavenly and celestial bread is likewise one, whereof the
sacramental bread is a mystery; which being one, all we together do
participate. I do distribute this word " all ;" for all were wont together to
communicate of the one bread divided into parts : all, I say, which were
in one congregation, and which all did communicate together at one table.
Wat . What ? Do you exclude then from the body of Christ all them
which did not communicate, being present?
Fecknam. But Cyprian saith, " Bread which no multitude doth con-
sume : " which cannot be understood but only of the body of Christ.
Rid. Also Cyprian in this place did speak of the true body of Christ,
and not of material bread.
Feck. Nay, rather he did there speak of the sacrament in that tractation,
u De Coena Domini," writing upon the supper of the Lord.
Rid. Truth it is, and I grant he entreateth there of the sacrament : but,
also, he doth admix something therewithal of the spiritual manducation.
Smith. When the Lord saith, " This is my body," he useth no tropical
speech : therefore you are deceived.
Rid. I deny your antecedent.
Smith. I bring here Augustine expounding these words, " * Ferebatur
in manibus suis — He was carried in his own hands.' How may this be
understood to be done in man ? For no man is carried in his own hands,
but in the hands of other. How this may be understood of David after
the letter, we do not find ; of Christ we find it. For Christ was borne in
his own hands, when he saith, ' This is my body,' for he carried that same
body in his own hands." Augustine here did not see how this place, after
the letter, could be understood of David ; because no man can carry him-
self in his own hands: " Therefore," saith he, " this place is to be under-
stood of Christ after the letter." For Christ carried himself in his own
hands in his supper, when he gave the sacrament to his disciples, saying,
" This is my body."
Rid. I deny your argument, and I explicate the same. Augustine
could not find, after his own understanding, how this could be under-
stood of David after the letter. Augustine goeth here from others in this
exposition, but I go not from him. But let this exposition of Augus-
tine be granted to you ; although I know this place of Scripture be
576 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
otherwise read of other men, after the verity of the Hebrew text, and it
is also otherwise to be expounded. Yet to grant to you this exposition
of Augustine, I say yet, notwithstanding, it maketh nothing against my
assertion : for Christ did bear himself in his own hands, when he gave
the sacrament of his body to be eaten by his disciples. — If Augustine
could have found in all the Scripture, that David had carried the sacra-
ment of his body, then he would never have used that exposition of Christ.
He verily did bear himself, but in a sacrament : and Augustine afterwards
added quodam modo, that is, sacramentally.
Smith. You understand not what Augustine meant when he said " quo-
dam modo ;" for he meant that he did bear his very true body in that
supper, not in figure and form of a body, but in form and figure of bread.
Then Dr. Tresham began to speak, moved (as it seemed to Ridley)
with great zeal; desiring he might reduce him again to the mother church.
He was unknown to Ridley, who thought him some good old man ; but
afterwards smelled a fox under a sheep's clothing.
Tresham. I bring a place here out of the council of Lateran, the which
council, representing the universal church, wherein were congregated
three hundred bishops and seventy metropolitans, besides a great multi-
tude of others, decreed that bread and wine, by the power of God's word,
was transubstantiated into the body and blood of the Lord. Therefore
whosoever saith contrary, cannot be a child of the church, but a heretic.
Rid. Good sir, I have heard what you have cited out of the council of
Lateran, and remember that there was a great multitude of bishops and
metropolitans, as you said : but yet you have not numbered how many
abbots, priors, and friars were in that council, who were to the number of
eight hundred."
Another then came in, whom Ridley knew not, and said, " The universal
church, both of the Greeks and Latins, of the east and of the west, have
agreed in the council of Florence uniformly in the doctrine of the sacra-
ment, that there is the true and real body in the sacrament of the altar."
Rid. I deny the Greek and the east church to have agreed either in
the council at Florence, or at any time else, with the Romish church, in
the doctrine of transubstantiation of bread into the body of Christ. For
there was nothing in the council of Florence, wherein the Greeks would
agree with the Romanists ; albeit, hitherto I confess it was left free for
every church to use, as they were wont, leavened or unleavened bread.
Here cried out Dr. Cole, and said, they agreed together concerning
transubstantiation of bread into the body of Christ. Ridley meekly said
that could not be.
Weston. I, with one argument, will throw down to the ground your
opinion, out of Chrysostom ; and I will teach, not only a figure and a
sign or grace only, but the very same body, which was here conversant on
the earth, to be in the eucharist. We worship the selfsame body in the
eucharist which the wise men did worship in the manger. But that was
his natural and real body, not spiritual: therefore the real body of Christ
is in the eucharist. Again, the same Chrysostom saith, " We have not
here the Lord in the manger, but on the altar. Here a woman holdeth
him not in her hands, but a priest."
Rid. We worship the same Lord and Saviour of the world which the wise
DEBATES ON THE REAL I'RIvSKNCK. 577
men worshipped in the manger ; howbeit we do it in a mystery ; and in
the sacrament of the Lord's supper, and that in spiritual liberty, as saith
Augustine, De Doctrind Christiand : not in carnal servitude; that is, we do
not worship servilely the signs for the things ; for that should be, as he
also saith, the part of a servile infirmity. But we behold with the eyes of
faith him present after grace, and spiritually set upon the table; and we
worship him which sitteth above and is worshipped of the angels. For
Christ is always assistant to his mysteries, as Augustine also said. And
the Divine Majesty, as saith Cyprian, doth never absent itself from the
divine mysteries; but this assistance and presence of Christ, as in baptism
it is wholly spiritual, and by grace, and not by any corporal substance
of the flesh : even so it is here in the Lord's supper, being rightly and
according to the word of God duly ministered.
Weston. That which the woman did hold in her womb, the same thing
holdeth the priest.
Rid. I grant the priest holdeth the same thing, but after another man-
ner. She did hold the natural body ; the priest holdeth. the mystery of
the body. I say that Chrysostom meant it spiritually.
The prolocutor Weston, now dissolving the disputation, had these words :
" Here you see the stubborn, the glorious, the crafty, the unconstant mind
of this man. Here you see this day that the strength of the truth is with-
out foil. Therefore I beseech you all most earnestly to blow the note,
(and he began, and they followed,) f Verity hath the victory !' "
DISPUTATION HAD AT OXFORD THE 18TH DAY OF APRIL, 1554, BETWEEN
MASTER HUGH LATIMER, AND MASTER SMITH AND OTHERS.
After these disputations of bishop Ridley ended, next was brought out
master Hugh Latimer to dispute; which disputation began at eight of the
clock in such form as before, and ended about eleven : but it was most in
English, for Latimer alleged he was out of use with the Latin, and unfit for
that place. There replied unto him master Smith of Oriel College ; Dr.
Cartwright, Harpsfield, and divers others had snatches at him, and gave
him bitter taunts. He escaped not hissings and scornful laughings, no
more than they that went before him. He was very faint, and desired
that he might not long tarry; and he durst not drink for fear of vomitinc.
Latimer was not suffered to read what he had, as he said, painfully written;
but it was exhibited up, and the prolocutor read part thereof, and so pro-
ceeded unto the disputation. .
Weston. Men and brethren ! we are come together this day, by the help
of God, to vanquish the strength of the arguments, and dispersed opinions
of adversaries, against the truth of the real presence of the Lord's body in
the sacrament. And therefore, you father, if you have anything to answer,
I do admonish you that you answer in short and few words.
Latimer. I pray you, good master prolocutor, do not exact that of me
which is not in me. I have not these twenty years much used the Latin.
Weston. Take your ease, father.
Lat. I thank you, sir, I am well; let me here protest my faith, for I am
not able to dispute ; and afterwards do your pleasure with me. The con-
clusions whereunto I must answer are these : —
2 p
578 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
M The first is — That in the sacrament of the altar, by the virtue of God's
word pronounced by the priest, there is really present the natural body
of Christ, conceived by the virgin Mary, under the kinds of the appear-
ance of bread and wine ; in like manner his blood. The second is —
That after consecration there remaineth no substance of bread and wine,
nor any other substance, but the substance of God and man. The
third is — That in the mass there is the lively sacrifice of the church,
which is propitiable, as well for the sins of the quick, as of the dead.
" Concerning the first conclusion, I think it is set forth with certain
new-found terms that are obscure, and do not sound according to the
speech of the scripture. But however I understand it, this I do answer
plainly, though not without peril, that to the right celebration of
the Lord's supper, there is no other presence of Christ required than
a spiritual presence : and this presence is sufficient for a Christian, as
a presence by which we abide in Christ, and Christ abideth in us,
to the obtaining of eternal life, if we persevere. And this same presence
may be called most fitly a real presence ; that is, a presence not feigned,
but a true and a faithful presence : which thing I here rehearse lest some
sycophant or scorner should suppose me, with the Anabaptists, to make
nothing of the sacrament but a naked and bare sign. As for that which
is feigned of many, concerning their corporal presence, I for my part take
it but for a papistical invention; therefore think it utterly to be rejected.
" Concerning the second conclusion, I dare be bold to say, that it hath
no ground in God's word, but is a thing invented and found out by man,
and therefore to be taken as false ; and I had almost said, as the mother
and nurse of the other errors. It were good for my lords and masters
of the transubstantiation, to take heed lest they conspire with the Nes-
orians, for I do not see how they can avoid it.
" The third conclusion, seemeth subtilly to sow sedition against the
offering which Christ himself offered for us in his own proper person,
according to those words of St. Paul, " That Christ his own self hath
made purgation of our sins." And afterwards, " That he might be a
merciful and faithful high priest concerning those things which are to be
done with God, for the taking away of our sins." So that the expiation
of our sins may be thought rather to depend on this, that Christ was an
offering priest, than that he was offered, were it not that he was offered
of himself; and therefore it is needless that he should be offered of any
other. I will speak nothing of the wonderful presumption of man, to
dare to attempt this thing without a manifest vocation, especially in that
it tendeth to the overthrowing and making fruitless the cross of Christ;
for truly it is no base or mean thing to offer Christ. And, therefore,
well may a man say to my lords and masters, the offerers — " By what
authority do ye this? and who gave you this authority? A man cannot
take any thing, except it be given him from above ; much less then
ought any man presume to usurp any honour, before he be thereto called.
Again, " If any man sin," saith St. John, " we have (not a master and
offerer at home, which can sacrifice for us at mass) an advocate, Jesus
Christ," which once offered himself long ago; of which offering the efficacy
and effect is perdurable for ever, so that it is needless to have such offerers.
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE. 579
" What meaneth Paul when lie saitli — "They that serve at the altar,
are partakers of the altar?" and — "So the Lord hath ordained, that
they that preach the gospel, shall live of the gospel." Whereas lie
should have said, the Lord hath ordained, that they that sacrifice at
mass, should live of their sacrificing, that there might be living assigned
to our sacrificers now, as was before Christ's coming, to the Jewish
priests. For now they have nothing to allege for their living, as they
that be preachers have. So that it appeareth that the sacrificing priest-
hood is changed by God's ordinance into a preaching priesthood ; and the
sacrificing priesthood should cease utterly, saving inasmuch as all Christian
men are sacrificing priests. The supper of the Lord was instituted to provoke
us to thanksgiving, for the offering which the Lord himself did offer for us,
rather than that our offerers should do there as they do. " Feed"
saith Peter, "as much as ye may the flock of Christ;" but ye
say, Nay, rather let us sacrifice as much as we may for the flock of
Christ. If the matter be as men now make it, I can never wonder
enough, that Peter would or could forget this office of sacrificing, which
at this day is in such a price and estimation, that to feed is almost no-
thing with many. If ye cease from feeding the flock, how shall ye be
taken ? Truly catholic enough. But if you cease from sacrificing and
massing, how will that be taken ? At the least, I warrant ye shall be
called heretics. And whence I pray you come these papistical judg-
ments ? Except, perchance, they think a man feedeth the flock in sacri-
ficing for them : and then what needeth there any learned pastors? For
no man is so foolish but soon he may learn to sacrifice and mass it.
" Thus I have taken the more pains to write, because I refused to dis-
pute, in consideration of my debility thereunto : that all men may know
I have so done not without great pains, having been allowed no man
to help me. God is my witness that I would as fain obey my sove-
reign as any in this realm : but in these things I can never do it with an
upright conscience. However, the Lord God be merciful unto us.
Amen."
The prolocutor, on receiving this paper, addressed the venerable
writer, artfully leading him by a train of familiar questions into an
argument, the chief parts of which are as follow :
West. Then refuse you to dispute ? Will you here then subscribe ?
Lat. No, I pray be good to an old man. You may, if it please
God, be once old as I am : you may come to this age, and to this
debility.
West. You said on Saturday last that you could not find the mass, nor
the marrow-bones thereof, in your book. What find you then there, in
your book?
Lat. A communion ; or two communions. I find no great diversity
in them ; they are one supper of the Lord. I like the last very well ;
but I do not well remember wherein they differ.
West. You call the sacrament the supper of the Lord ; but you are
deceived in that : for they had done the supper before, and therefore
the scripture saith, "After they had supped." St. Paul findeth fault
with the Corinthians, that some of them were drunk at this supper ; and
vou know no man can be drunk at our communion.
58 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Lat. The first was called Ccena Judaica, " The Jewish Supper," when
they eat the paschal lamb together; the other Ccena Dominica, " The
Lord's Supper."
Dr. Smith now interposed and said — " Because I perceive that this
charge is laid upon my neck to dispute with you ; to the end that the
same may go forward after a right manner and order, I will propose three
questions, so as they are put forth unto me. And first I ask this ques-
tion of you, although the same indeed ought not to be called in ques-
tion ; but such is the condition of the church, that it is always vexed of the
the wicked. I ask, I say, whether Christ's body be really in the sacrament ?"
To this Latimer replied — "I trust I have obtained of master prolocutor,
that no man shall exact that thing of me which is not in me. And I am
sorry that this worshipful audience should be deceived of their expectation
for my sake. I have given up my mind in writing to master prolocutor."
Smith. Whatsoever ye have given up, shall be registered among the acts.
Lat. Disputation requireth a good memory; my memory is gone clean,
and marvellously weakened, and never the better, I think, for the prison.
I have long sought for the truth in this matter of the sacrament, and have
not been of this mind more than seven years: and my lord of Canterbury's
book hath especially confirmed my judgment herein. If I could remember
all therein contained, I would not fear to answer any man in this matter.
In answer to a charge that he was once a Lutheran, he said boldly,
"No, I was a papist : for I never could perceive how Luther could defend
his opinion without transubstantiation. — I do not take in hand to defend
Luther's sayings or doings. If he were here, he would defend himself
well enough. I told you before that I am not meet for disputations. I
pray you read mine answer, wherein I have declared my faith."
fresham. It is written, " Except ye shall eat the flesh of the Son of
man, and drink his blood, ye shall have no life in you." Which when the
Capernaites and many of Christ's disciples heard, they said, "This
is a hard saying," etc. Now that the truth may the better appear, here I
ask of you, whether Christ, speaking these words, did mean of his flesh to
be eaten with the mouth, or of the spiritual eating of the same ?
Lat. Christ meant of the spiritual eating of his flesh, as Augustine saith.
Tresham. Of what flesh meant Christ ? his true flesh, or no?
Lat. Of his true flesh, spiritually to be eaten by faith, and not corporally.
Tresham. Of what flesh mean the Capernaites ?
Lat. Of his true flesh also ; but to be taken with the mouth.
Tresham. They, as ye confess, did mean Christ's true flesh to be eaten
with the mouth. And Christ also, as I shall prove, did speak of the re-
ceiving of his flesh with the mouth. Therefore they both did understand
it of the eating of one thing, which is done by the mouth of the body.
Lat. I say, Christ understood it not of the bodily mouth, but of the
mouth of the spirit, mind, and heart.
Tresham. I prove the contrary, that Christ understandeth it of the eat-
ing with the bodily mouth. For, whereas custom is a good interpreter of
things, and whereas the acts put in practice by Christ do certainly declare
those things which he first spake ; Christ's deeds in his supper, where he
gave his body to be taken with the mouth, together with the custom which
hath been ever since that time of that eating which is done with the mouth,
DEBATES ON THE REAL PRESENCE.
581
doth evidently intimate that Christ did understand his words here cited by
me, out of John vi., of the eating with the mouth.
tat. He gave not his body to be received with the mouth, but he gave
the sacrament of his body to be received with the mouth ; he gave the
sacrament to the mouth, his body to the mind.
After further discussion with Tresham, Seton, Cartwright, and Smith,
the prolocutor Weston attacked Latimer out of St. Augustine, saying :
"Augustine, in his Enchiridion, saith, 'We must not deny that the
souls of the dead are relieved by the devotion of their friends which are
living, when the sacrifice of the Mediator is offered for them.' Where he
proveth the verity of Christ's body, and praying for the dead. And it is
affirmed that the same Augustine said mass for his mother." To which the
venerable man answered — " But that mass was not like yours, which thing
doth manifestly appear in his writings, which are against it in every place.
And Augustine is a reasonable man, who requireth to be believed no further
than he bringeth scripture for his proof, and agreeth with God's word."
The prolocutor said," Well, Mr. Latimer, this is our intent, to wish you
well, and to exhort you to come to yourself, and remember that without
Noah's Ark there is no health. What have they been that were the
beginners of your doctrine? none but a few flying apostates, running
out of Germany for fear of the fagot. What have they been which
have set forth the same in this realm ? a sort of light heads, which were
never constant in any one thing, as it was to be seen in the turning of
the table, when like a sort of apes, they could not tell which way to turn
their tails, looking one day west, and another day east ; one that way, and
another this way. They will be like, they say, to the apostles, they will
have no churches ! a hovel is good enough for them, They come to the
communion with no reverence. They get them a tankard, and one saith
I drink, and I am thankful ; the more joy of thee, saith another. In
them was it true that Hilary saith, ' We make every year and every month
a faith.' A runagate Scot took away the adoration or worshipping of
Christ in the sacrament, by whose procurement that heresy was put
into the last communion-book; so prevailed that one man's authority at
that time. You never agreed with the Zurichers, or with the Germans, or
with the church, or with yourself. Your stubbornness cometh of a vain
glory, which is to no purpose : for it will do you no good when a fagot is
in your beard. And we see all, by your own confessions, how little cause
ye have to be stubborn. The queen's grace is merciful, if ye will turn."
Latimer. You shall have no hope in me to turn. I pray for the queen
daily, even from the bottom of my heart, that she may turn from this religion.
Weston. Here you all see the weakness of heresy against the truth : he
denieth all truth, and all the old fathers.
And thus, good reader, thou hast the chief parts of this doctorly disputa-
tion showed forth unto thee, against these three worthy confessors and
martyrs of the Lord, wherein thou mayest behold the disordered usage of
the university-men, the unmannerly manner of the school, the rude tumult
of the multitude, and the fierceness and interruption of the doctors. And
what marvel, if the prolocutor, having the law in his own hand, to do what
he listed, would say for himself, " Vicit Veritas," although he said never a
true word, nor made ever a true conclusion almost, in all that disputation.
582 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
On the following Friday, April 20th, the commissioners sat at St. Mary's
church, as they had done on the Saturday before, when Dr. Weston in
an imperious manner demanded of Cranmer, Ridley, and Latimer,
whether or not they would subscribe? He rudely told Cranmer that he
had been overcome in the late disputation. The latter, in answer,
charged him and his party with unfairness and blind partiality, urging
that he had been overcome by noise only ; and that he had no chance
of success unless he had brawled as loud as they, and that four or five
of them had frequently attacked him at once. Ridley and Latimer
were asked what they would do ? they replied that they would stand to
what they had said : on which they were all called together, and sen-
tence was read over them, that they were no members of the church :
and therefore they, with their favourers and patrons, were condemned
as heretics. And in reading of it — they were asked whether they
would turn or not; but they bade them read on in the name of God,
for they were not inclined to turn. So they were all three condemned.
To this sentence Cranmer first answered — " From this your judgment
and sentence I appeal to the just judgment of God Almighty, trusting
to be present with him in heaven, for whose presence in the altar I am
thus condemned." Ridley followed the archbishop — " Although I be
rot of your company, yet doubt I not but my name is written in another
place, whither this sentence will send us sooner than we should by the
course of nature have gone." Latimer then said — " I thank God most
heartily, that he hath prolonged my life to this end, that I may in this
case glorify God by that kind of death."
On the ensuing Saturday the papists had a mass, with a general proces-
sion and great solemnity. Cranmer was caused to behold the procession
out of the grating of the Bocardo prison ; Ridley from the sheriff's house ;
and Latimer being brought to see it from the bailiff's house thought
that he should have gone thence to burning, and spake to one Augus-
tine, a peace-officer, to make a quick fire: but when he came to Carfox,
the Oxford market-place, where four ways meet, he ran as fast as his
aged bones would carry him, to one Spencer's shop, and would not
look towards the vain procession. On the following Monday, Weston
took his journey up to London, with the letters certificatory from the
university to the queen, by whom Cranmer directed his letters suppli-
catory unto the council : which the prolocutor opened by the way, and
seeing the contents, sent them back again, refusing to carry them.
Ridley also hearing of the prolocutor's going to London, sent to him
his letters, which he desired him to carry up to certain bishops in
London.
SECTION V.
PROCEEDINGS OF THE PAPISTS AGAINST THE PROTESTANTS. BEHEADING
OF THE DUKE OF SUFFOLK. DECLARATION OF MR. BRADFORD AND
OTHERS. MARRIAGE OF QUEEN MARY WITH PHILIP, PRINCE OF SPAIN.
EVENTS THAT FOLLOWED THE MARRIAGE.
Having finished our account of the disputations between the Roman
catholics and the protestant divines of the reformed religion, of Oxford,
PROCEEDINGS OF THE PAPISTS. 583
we shall now prosecute the historical narration of this tumultuous reign.
So many things happened in different parts of the realm, that it is diffi-
cult to preserve due order of time in reciting them, we shall therefore
return to the month of July, 1553, when the duke of Northumberland
was brought to London, and the following persons of distinction were
committed to the Tower with him. The earls of Warwick and of
Huntingdon; lords Ambrose, Dudley, and Hastings; Sir John and
Sir Henry Gates, Andrew Dudley, Sir Thomas Palmer, and Dr. Sands,
chancellor of Cambridge. Of these lord Hastings was the only one
who, on his complaint, obtained liberation.
The latter end of the same month several other noblemen and gentle-
men, together with the bishop of London, and the chief justices of the
king's bench and the common pleas, were committed either to the con-
finement of the Tower, or the custody of the sheriff of London.
Three days after, the queen entered the city, and her first concern
was to liberate her friends. For this purpose she first proceeded to the
Tower, where she remained seven days, and then removed to Richmond.
She gave orders for Dr. Day to be delivered out of the Fleet, and
Dr. Bonner out of the Marshalsea. The same day Tonstal and Gardiner
were liberated from the Tower, and Gardiner was received into the
queen's privy council, and made lord chancellor. The Latin Dirige
was sung within the Tower by all the king's choristers, the bishop of
Winchester being chief minister, and the queen and most of the council
were present. A few clays after, the king's remains were brought to
Westminster and there buried; on which occasion Dr. Day, bishop of
Chichester, preached. The same day a mass of Requiem was sung
within the Tower by the bishop of Winchester, who had on his mitre,
and performed all things as in times past; the queen being present.
Dr. Bourne preached at Paul's Cross soon after, and commands were
issued throughout the city, that no apprentices should come to the
sermon, nor bear any knife or dagger. Other committals to the Tower
took place, among them Mr. Bradford, Mr. Beacon, and Mr. Vernon.
The duke of Northumberland, the marquis of Northampton, and the
earl of Warwick, were arraigned at Westminster, and condemned the
same day, the duke of Norfolk presiding as high judge. Soon after
these cases were determined Sir Andrew Dudley, Sir John and Sir
Henry Gates, and Sir Thomas Palmer, were arraigned and condemned,
the lord marquis of Winchester being high judge. At the same time a
letter was sent to Sir Henry Tyrel, and to Anthony and Edmund Brown,
esquires, praying them to commit to ward all such as should contemn
the queen's order of religion, or keep themselves from church, and
there to remain until they should be conformable, and to signify their
names to the council.
In the course of the month, Dr. Watson, chaplain to the bishop of
Winchester, preached at St. Paul's Cross, at whose sermon were present
the marquis of Winchester, the earls of Bedford and Pembroke, the
lord Rich, and 200 of the guard with their halberds, lest the people
should have offered to disturb the preacher. Apostacies now began.
The duke of Northumberland, the marquis of Northampton, Sir Andrew
Dudley, Sir John Gates, and Sir Thomas Palmer, heard mass within
584 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the Tower, after which they all received the sacrament in one kind only,
as in popish times. On the same day also the queen set forth a procla-
mation, signifying to the people that she could not hide any longer the
religion which she from her infancy had professed, and prohibiting in
the proclamation all printing and preaching — so adverse are the press
and the pulpit to error.
The unhappy noblemen, however, found their apostacy unavailing to
save their lives. Two days after they had bowed before the idolatrous
mass, three of them had to bow their wretched heads beneath the axe
of the executioner. They suffered on Tower-hill ; and on the same day
several others of the nobility heard mass within the Tower, and after-
wards received the sacrament in one kind ; some of them in sad pre-
paration for the same fate. It was rumoured that Cranmer had promised
to say mass after the old manner, and that he even had said it at Can-
terbury. Upon this, in order to check the evil effects of this artifice of
his enemies, and to confirm his friends in their opinion of his steadiness,
he published the following declaration, on Sept. 7, 1553.
" As the devil, Christ's ancient adversary, is a liar, and the father of
lies, even so hath he stirred up his servants and members to persecute
Christ and his true word and religion with lying; which he ceaseth not
to do most earnestly at this present time. For whereas the prince of
famous memory, king Henry VIIL, seeing the great abuses of the Latin
mass, reformed some things therein in his life-time; and afterwards our
late sovereign lord king Edward VI. took the same wholly away, for the
manifold and great errors and abuses of the same, and restored in the
place thereof Christ's holy supper, according to his own institution,
and such as the apostles used in the primitive church. To overthrow
this the devil now goeth about by lying to restore his Latin satisfactory
mass, a thing of his own invention and device. And to bring the same
more easily to pass, some have abused the name of me Thomas, arch-
bishop of Canterbury, reporting abroad, that I have set up the mass at
Canterbury, and that I offered to say mass at the burial of our late
sovereign, king Edward VI., and before the queen's highness, at
St. Paul's church, and I know not where. And although I have
been well exercised these twenty years to suffer and bear evil reports
and lies, and have not been much grieved thereat, but have borne
all things quietly; yet when untrue reports turn to the hindrance of
God's truth, they are in no wise to be suffered. Wherefore these be
to signify unto the world, that it was not I that set up the mass at
Canterbury, but it was a false, flattering, lying and dissembling monk,
one Dr. Thornton, who caused it to be set there without mine advice or
counsel. The Lord recompense him in that day! And as for offering
myself to say mass before the queen's highness, or in any other place,
I never did it, as her grace well knoweth. But if her grace will give
me leave, I shall be ready to prove, against all that will say the
contrary, that all which is contained in the holy communion, set out by
the most innocent and godly prince king Edward VI. in his high court
of parliament, is conformable to that order which our Saviour Christ
did both observe, and command to be observed, and which his apostles
and the primitive church used many years; whereas the mass in many
MARY'S CORONATION. 585
things, not only hath no foundation of Christ, his apostles, nor the
primitive church, but is manifestly contrary to the same, and containeth
many horrible abuses in it. And although many do report that Peter
Martyr is unlearned; yet if the queen's highness will grant thereunto,
I, with the said Peter Martyr, and other four or five which I shall
choose, will, by God's grace, take upon us to defend, not only the
common prayers of the church, the ministration of the sacraments, and
other rites and ceremonies, but also all the doctrine and religion set out
by our sovereign lord king Edward VI. to be more pure, and according
to God's word, than any other that hath been used in England these
1000 years: so that God's word may be judge, and that the reasons
and proofs of both parties may be set out in writing, to the intent, as
well that all the world may examine and judge thereon, as that no man
shall start back from his writing. And where they boast of the faith,
that hath been in the church these 1500 years, we will join with them
in this point; and that the same doctrine and usage is to be followed,
which was in the church 1500 years past; and we shall prove, that the
order of the church, set out at this present in this realm by act of par-
liament, is the same that was used in the church 1500 years past; and
so shall they never be able to prove theirs."
This protest of Cranmer obtained for him an almost immediate com-
mittal to the Tower. Latimer had been conducted to the same confine-
ment the previous day. The queen was then at Richmond busied in
preparing for her coronation. Anxious to know that the foes she most
dreaded were safe, she came in little more than a week herself to the
Tower, where she staid a short time to give every necessary direction
concerning their secure custody and their purposed trial and punishment.
After two or three days she proceeded from the Tower through the city,
where many pageants were made to receive her, and thus she was
triumphantly brought to Whitehall. On the following Sunday she went
from Whitehall to Westminster Abbey, accompanied with most of the
nobility of the realm, and all the foreign ambassadors, and the mayor
of London, with all the aldermen. Out of the Abbey, to receive her,
were brought three silver crosses, accompanied by about fourscore
singing men, in very rich and gorgeous copes. Amongst them was the
dean of Westminster, and divers of the queen's chaplains, all of whom
bore some ensign in their hands; after them followed ten" bishops, all
mitred, with their crosier staves in their hands. In this order they
returned from Westminster Hall, before the queen, to the Abbey, where
she was crowned by Stephen Gardiner, bishop of Winchester, and lord
chancellor of England. At the time of the coronation, Dr. Day, bishop
of Chichester, delivered a sermon to the queen and the nobility. It
was hoped that a general pardon would have been proclaimed within
the. Abbey at the time of her coronation ; but all the prisoners of the
Tower and of the Fleet were excepted, and upwards of sixty others.
The vice-chancellor of Cambridge challenged one Mr. Pierson, who
still ministered the communion in his own parish, and received strangers
of other parishes to the same, but would not say mass. Whereupon,
within two days after, he was discharged from further ministering in his
cure. The archbishop of York also was sent to the Tower, Oct. 4, 1553.
586 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
On Sunday, the 15th of October, Laurence Saunders preached at All-
hailows in Bread Street, where he declared the abomination of the mass,
with divers other matters, very notably and godly ; whereof more will be
heard hereafter. But about noon of the same day, he was sent for by the
bishop of London, and from thence committed to the Marshalsea.
On Thursday, October 5th, the new parliament met. There had been
great violence used in many elections, and many false returns were
made : some who were known to be zealous for the reformation were
forcibly turned out of the house of commons, which was afterwards
offered as a ground upon which that parliament, and all acts made in
it, might have been annulled. There came only two of the reformed
bishops to the house of lords, the two archbishops and three bishops
being in prison; two others were turned out, the rest stayed at home, so
only Taylor and Harley, the bishops of Lincoln and Hereford, attended.
When mass began to be said, they are reported to have gone out, and
were never suffered to come to their places again : others say, they
refused to join in that worship, and were in consequence violently
thrust out. In the house of commons some of the more forward moved
that king Edward's laws might be reviewed, but things were not yet
ripe enough for that.
On Sunday, Oct. 20, Dr. Weston preached at Paul's Cross. In the
beginning of his sermon he desired the people to pray for the souls of
the departed. "You shall pray," said he, "for all them that be de-
parted, who be neither in heaven nor hell, but in a place not yet
sufficiently purged to come to heaven, that they may be relieved by
your devout prayers." He named the Lord's table an oyster-board;
said that the catechism in Latin lately published was abominable heresy,
and likened its defenders to Julian the apostate, and the book to a
dialogue written by Julian, wherein Christ and Pilate were the speakers;
with many other things. This sermon Mr. Coverdale learnedly confuted
in writing, and would have publicly read his refutation had he been
allowed.
Soon after these events the vice-chancellor of Cambridge went to
Clare Hall, and removed Dr. Madew, on account of his being married,
and placed Mr. Swynbourne in the mastership there, by virtue of the lord
chancellor's letters. On Oct. 28, the papists in King's College, Cambridge,
revived their whole service again in the Latin tongue, contrary to the
law, then not repealed ; but anticipating its repeal very soon after. The
vice-chancellor sent for the curate of the Round church in Cambridge,
commanding him not to minister any more in the English tongue,
saying, he would have one uniform order of service throughout the
town, and that in Latin, with mass, which was established about the
middle of November. The archdeacon's official visited Huntington,
where he charged to imprison all such as disturbed the queen's pro-
ceedings, in hindering the Latin service, setting up their altars, and
saying mass or any part thereof: whereby it was easy to see how these
men meant to proceed, having the law once on their side, who thus
so readily, against a manifest law, would attempt the punishment of
any man.
In December there were two proclamations at London; one for
PROCEEDINGS OF THE PAPISTS. 587
repealing certain acts made by king- Edward, and for setting up the
mass before the feast of the nativity. The other was, that no man
should interrupt any of those who would say mass after it became
established. The parliament continued till the 5th of December. In
it were dissolved, as well all the statutes made of praemunire in the time
of king- Henry VIII. as also other laws and statutes concerning religion
and administration of sacraments, decreed under Edward VI.; while it
was appointed, that on the eve of St. Thomas ensuing, the old form and
manner of church-service, used in the last year of king Henry, should
again be restored.
About this time a priest of Canterbury said mass on one day, and on
the following he came into the pulpit, and desired the people to forgive
him: for he said he had betrayed Christ, not as Judas did, but as Peter
did, and made a long sermon against the mass. At the beginning of
the new year, 1554, four ambassadors came into London from the em-
peror, and were honourably received. Their names were, le compte de
Egmont, le compte de Lalen, monsieur Corire, le chancelier Nigry. Very
soon after, there were appointed a great number of new bishops, deans,
and other church dignitaries; more than were ever made at one time
since the conquest. They were, Dr. Holyman, bishop of Bristol;
Dr. Cotes, bishop ot West-Chester; Dr. Hopton, bishop of Norwich;
Dr. Bourne, bishop of Bath; Dr. White, bishop of Lincoln ; Dr. Mores,
bishop of Rochester; Dr. Morgan, bishop of St. David's; Dr. Poole,
bishop of St. Asaph; Dr. Brookes, bishop of Gloucester; Dr. Moreman,
coadjutor to the bishop of Exeter, and after his decease bishop of Exeter;
Dr. Glyn, bishop of Bangor; Mr. Fecknam, dean of St. Paul's; Dr.
Reynolds, dean of Bristol ; with several others.
The vice-chancellor of Cambridge now called a congregation general,
wherein amongst other things he shewed, that the queen would have
there a mass of the Holy Ghost upon the 18th of the following February,
which was her birth-day. This was accordingly fulfilled on the day
appointed, and that very solemnly. For opposing this measure Dr.
Crome was committed to the Fleet, and one Addington was committed
to the Tower. The same day, the bishop of Winchester declared openly
in the court that the treaty of marriage between the queen's majesty and
the prince of Spain was concluded : and the day following, the mayor,
the aldermen, and several of the commons, were at the court, and
there they were commanded by the lord chancellor to prepare the city
to receive prince Philip of Spain; declaring unto them what a catholic,
mighty, prudent, and wise prince he was. 1
1 When the treaty of the queen's marriage came to be known, the house of commons
was much alarmed at it; and they sent their speaker with twenty of their members,
with an address to her not to marry a stranger: they were indeed so inflamed, that the
court judged it necessary to dissolve the parliament. Gardiner, upon this, let the
emperor know that the jealousies which were taken up on account of the match were such,
that unless very extraordinary conditions were offered, it would occasion a general rebel-
lion. He also wrote to him that great sums of money must be sent over, both to gratify the
nobility, and to enable them to carry the elections to the next parliament in opposition to
such as would stand against them. As for conditions, it was resolved to grant any that
should be demanded; for the emperor reckoned that if his son were once married to the
queen of England, it would be easy for him to govern the councils as he pleased.
588 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Several additional arrests were now made : the lord Marquis of Nor-
thampton was again committed to the Tower, and Sir Edward Warner
with him. Mr. Justice Hales was committed to the Marshalsea ; and
Mr. Rogers to Newgate. During several days about this time, the
Londoners prepared a number of soldiers, by the queen's command, to
go into Kent against the commons. These were commanded by the
duke of Norfolk, the earl of Wormwood, Sir Henry Jerningham, Sir
George Hayward,andten other captains. The soldiers, when they came
to Rochester bridge, where they should have set upon their enemies,
most of them left their own captains, and came wholly to the Kentish
men ; and so the captains returned to the court both void of men and
victory, leaving behind them six pieces of ordnance and treasure.
In January, the duke of Suffolk, with his brethren, departed from
his house at Shene, and went into Leicestershire ; after whom the earl
of Huntingdon was sent to take him and bring him to London ; and on
his return proclaimed the duke traitor as he rode. A few days after his
arrival in the city, he was arraigned at Westminster, and the same day
condemned to die by his peers; the earl of Arundel being chief judge.
The three sons of Lord Cobham, a noble family, every generation of
which were faithful to the reformed cause, were also arraigned at West-
minster : the youngest was condemned, whose name was Thomas ; the
other two came not to the bar. About the same time Lord John Gray
was arraigned at Westminster, and condemned. Lord Thomas Gray,
and Sir James Croft, were brought through London to the Tower, with
a number of horsemen ; and Sir Nicholas Throgmorton was committed
to the same common receptacle.
The latter end of this month February, Henry Gray duke of Suffolk,
was brought forth to the scaffold on Tower Hill, and in his coming thither
there accompanied him Dr. Weston as his spiritual father, notwithstand-
ing, as it seemed, against the will of the duke. For when the duke went
up to the scaffold, Weston, being on the left hand, pressed to go up
with him ; when he, with his hand, put him down again off the stairs;
but Weston taking hold of the duke, forced him down likewise. And
as they ascended the second time, the duke again put him down. Then
Weston said, that it was the queen's pleasure he should attend. Where-
with the duke casting his hands abroad, ascended up the scaffold, and
paused a long time after. He then said, " Masters, I have offended
the queen, and her laws, and thereby am justly condemned to die, and
am willing to die, desiring all men to be obedient, and I pray God that
this my death may be an example to all men, beseeching you all to bear
me witness, that I die in the faith of Christ, trusting to be saved by his
blood only, and by no other sacrifice ; for Christ died for me, and for
all them that truly repent, and stedfastly trust in him. And I do
repent, desiring you all to pray to God for me ; and that when you see
my breath depart from me, you will pray that he may receive my soul."
And then he desired all men to forgive him.
Dr. Weston then declared with a loud voice, that the queen's majesty
had forgiven him. With that several of the standers by said, with
audible voices, " Such forgiveness God send thee !" The duke then
kneeled, and said the psalm Miserere mei Deus unto the end, holding
EXECUTION OF SUFFOLK. 589
up his hands, and looking up to heaven. And when he had ended
he said, " Into thy hands, O Lord, I commend my spirit." Then he
arose, and delivered his cap and his scarf unto the executioner, who, on
his knees asked the duke forgiveness. " God forgive thee, and I do,"
said the duke : " and when thou dost thine office, I pray thee do it well,
and send me out of this world quickly, and God have mercy on thee."
Tlu-n stood there a man who said, " My lord, how shall I do for the
money that you owe me?" The duke said, "Alas, good fellow, I pray
thee trouble me not now, but go thy way to my officers." He then tied
a handkerchief about his face, kneeled down, and said the Lord's
prayer, and, " Christ have mercy upon me." After which he laid his
neck on the block, and the executioner took the axe, and at the first
blow struck off his head and then held it up to the people.
The same day about 240 prisoners received pardon, and came through
the city with halters about their necks. The next day Sir William
Sentlow, one of the lady Elizabeth's gentlemen, was committed as a
prisoner to the master of the horse. On the day following Sir John
Rogers was committed to the Tower. Within a few days after, all such
priests in the diocese of London as were married were divorced from
their livings, and commanded to bring their wives within a fortnight,
that they might be likewise divorced from them ; this was an act of the
bishop's own power. The next month certain gentlemen of Kent were
sent into that county to be executed, among whom we find the two
Mantels, two Knevets, and Bret. When the elder Mantel was under
the gallows, upon his being turned off the rope broke. Upon this the
priests present urged him to recant, and receive the sacrament of the
altar, promising him the queen's pardon : but this worthy gentleman
rejected their insidious council, and chose rather to die, than live by
dishonouring God.
We now come to the second year of Mary's short and affecting reign.
As Easter approached, every householder in London w r as commanded to
appear before the alderman of his ward, and all were commanded, that
they, their wives, and servants, should prepare themselves for confession,
and receive the sacrament at Easter; and that neither they, nor any of
them should depart out of the city until Easter was past. Additional
excitement was produced by the lady Elizabeth, the queen's sister, being
brought to the Tower. At the same time the marquis of Northampton,
the lord Cobham, and Sir William Cobham, were released from their
confinement. On Easter-day, in the morning, at St. Pancras in Cheap,
the crucifix, with the vessel in which the host was kept, were stolen out
of the sepulchre, before the priest declared the resurrection : so that when,
after his accustomed manner, he put his hand into the sepulchre, and
said very devoutly, " He is risen, he is not here," he found his words
true, for that which he called the body of Christ was not there indeed.
Whereupon, being half dismayed, the priests consulted among them-
selves, whom they thought the likeliest to do this; in which consultation
they remembered one Marsh, who a little before had been dismissed
from his parsonage because he was married, to whose charge thev laid
it. But when they could not prove it, being brought before the mayor,
they then charged him to have kept company with his wife, since that
they were by commandment divorced. Whereunto he answered, that
590 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
he thought the queen had done him wrong, to take from him both his living
and his wife : which words were then noted, and taken very grievously,
and he and his wife were both committed to separate prisons, though he
was ill and needed her care.
A ludicrous event distinguished the beginning of April. A cat was
hanged upon a gallows at the cross in Cheapside, apparelled like a
priest ready to say mass, with a shaven crown : her two. fore-feet were
tied over her head, with a round paper like a wafer-cake, put between
them, as though in the act of elevating the host. At this the queen
and the bishops were very angry ; and the same afternoon there was a
proclamation issued, that whosoever could bring forth the guilty party,
should have twenty nobles, which were afterwards increased to twenty
marks, but none could or would earn them.
The first occasion of setting up this gallows was well understood.
After the bishop of Winchester's sermon before the queen, for the speedy
execution of Wyat's soldiers, there were several gibbets set up in divers
parts of the city ; two in Cheapside, one at Leadenhall, one at Billings-
gate, one at St. Magnus' church, one in Smithfield, one in Fleet-street,
four in Southwark, one at Aldgate, one at Bishopsgate, one at Alders-
gate, one at Newgate, one at Ludgate, one at St. James's Park corner,
one at Cripplegate : all which remained for the terror of others, from
February to June. But at the coming in of the queen's husband they
were taken down.
It should have been remarked that when Wyat was brought to the
scaffold on Tower-hill, he spoke these words concerning the lady Eliza-
beth, and the earl of Devonshire : " Concerning what I have said of
others in my examination, to charge any as partakers of my doings, I
accuse neither my lady Elizabeth's grace, nor my lord of Devonshire.
I cannot accuse them, neither am I able to say, that to my knowledge
they knew any thing of the rising." And when Dr. Weston told him,
that his confession was otherwise before the council, he answered,
" That which I said then, I said ; but that which I say now is true."
Even at this dark and corrupt period the benefit of trial by jury was
in some instances remarkably seen. Sir Nicholas Throgmorton was sus-
pected to be of the conspiracy with the duke of Suffolk and the rest
against the queen. But he so learnedly and wisely behaved himself, as
well in clearing his own case, as also in opening such laws of the realm
as were then alleged against him, that the jury could not in conscience
find him guilty; for which the jury being substantial men of the city,
were each bound in the sum of 500 nobles, to appear before the queen's
council at a day appointed there to answer such things as should be said
against them. This conscientious jury appeared accordingly before the
council in the Star Chamber, upon Wednesday, April the 25th, from
whence, after certain questioning, they were committed to prison,
Emanuel Lucas and Mr. Whetstone to the Tower, and the other ten to
the Fleet. Sir James Croft and Mr. Winter, two friends of Sir Nicholas
Throgmorton, were imprisoned at the same time, and were soon after
arraigned. Croft was sentenced, but the other re-committed. Soon
after William Thomas was arraigned at Guildhall, and condemned ; on
the following day he was hanged, drawn, and quartered. His accusa-
THE LADY ELIZABETH IMPRISONED. 591
tion was, for conspiring the queen's death, of which he was generally
supposed innocent. This is certain, that he made a godly end, and
wrote many fruitful exhortations and letters in the prison before his
death.
A solemn disputation was now appointed at Cambridge, between Mr.
Bradford, Mr. Saunders, Mr. Rogers, and their protestant friends, and
the doctors of both universities on the papal side. Whereupon those
defenders of the truth who were in prison, having notice thereof, not-
withstanding they were destitute of books, and not ignorant of the pur-
pose of their adversaries, and how the cause had been prejudged before
at Oxford ; nevertheless they thought that they ought not refuse the
offer, if they might be quietly heard ; and therefore wisely pondering the
matter with themselves, by a public consent, directed out of prison a
declaration of their mind by writing. Wherein first, as touching the
disputation, although they knew that they should do no good, because
all things were pre-determined ; yet they would not refuse to dispute, if
the disputation might be either before the queen, or before the council,
or before the parliament, or if they might argue by writing ; for else, if
the matter were left with the popish doctors in their own schools, they had
sufficient proof by the experience of Oxford, what little good would be
done at Cambridge. Consequently, declaring the faith and doctrine of
their religion, and exhorting the people to submit with all patience and
humility, either to the will or punishment of the higher powers, they
appealed from them to be their judges in this behalf, and so ended their
protestation. This was drawn up by Miles Coverdale, late of Exon,
and signed on the 18th day of May, 1554, by thirteen reformers, among
whom were Farrar, Taylor, Bradford, Philpot, Rogers, Saunders, Wigorn,
Crome, and Glouces. Episcopus, alias John Hooper.
The lady Elizabeth, sister to the queen, now excited considerable
attention and anxiety on both sides. On the 19th of May, in this
year, she was brought to the Tower, and committed to the custody of
Sir John Williams, afterwards lord Williams of Thame, by whom her
highness was gently and courteously treated. She afterwards was sent
to Woodstock, and there committed to the keeping of Sir Henry Beni-
field, knight of Oxborough, in Norfolk; who, on the contrary, both for-
getting her estate, and his own duty, as it is reported, shewed himself
more hard and straight towards her, than either cause was given on her
part, or reason of his own should have led him. Some such restraint,
however, was thought necessary on the part of her jealous and vindictive
sister, especially in the immediate prospect of the Spanish prince, her
husband, arriving in England. He landed at Southampton July 20th.
As he placed his foot for the first time on British ground he drew his
sword, and carried it a little way naked in his hand. This was interpreted
as a sign that he intended to rule by the sword ; but his friends ingeni-
ously said, it imported that he would draw his sword for the defence of
the nation. The mayor of Southampton brought him the keys of the
town, which he took from him, and gave them back, without the least
shew of his being pleased with this expression of respect. Five days
after, the marriage took place in the cathedral church at Winchester,
by the bishop of Winchester, in the presence of a great number of noble-
592 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
men of both realms. At the altar, the emperor's ambassador being'
present, he openly pronounced that, in consideration of that marriage,
the emperor had granted and given to his son the kingdom of Naples,
and other domains and titles. Whereupon the 1st of August following,
there was a proclamation, that from that time forth the style of all
manner of writing should be altered, and the following be used through
the realm : — " Philip and Mary by the grace of God, king and queen of
England, France, Naples, Jerusalem, and Ireland, defenders of the faith,
princes of Spain and Sicily, archduke and duchess of Austria, duke
and duchess of Milan, Burgundy, and Brabant, count and countess of
Hapsburg, Flanders, and Tyrol."
Of this marriage, as the papists chiefly seemed to be very glad, so
several of them, after divers studies to shew forth their inward affections,
made interludes and pageants. Some drew forth genealogies, deriving
the pedigree of the prince from Edward III., and John of Gaunt.
Among others, Mr. White, then bishop of Lincoln, who was intoxicated
with a poet's as well as a patriot's joy at the marriage, made several
verses, which were answered by the bishop of Norwich and other sober-
minded writers. In a short time, the king and queen removed from
Winchester to several other places, and by easy journies came to
Windsor Castle, where he was installed with the Order of the Garter. A
remarkable circumstance occurred at this ceremony : a herald took down
the arms of England at Windsor, and in the place of them would have
set up the arms of Spain, but he was commanded by certain lords to
restore the former to their place.
The peculiar fondness of papists for pageantry of every kind, as well
as the general spirit of the age, was now manifested in the several pro-
gresses and processions of the new king and queen, as they were called,
through some parts of the country and streets of the city. In addition to
the display of flags and the discharge of cannon, giants were placed in
conspicuous parts with addresses in their hands; conduits were built
and adorned in the gayest manner; images of worthies, as they were
called, were placed here and there, holding presents and inscriptions. Such
was the fulsome desire to gratify the prince, that in one place were some
verses describing the five worthies of the world in five Philips, namely,
Philip of Macedon, Philip the Emperor, Philip the Bold, Philip the
Good, and Philip prince of Spain and king of England! In other
places he was saluted by an image representing Orpheus, and the English
people likened to savage beasts, following after Orpheus's harp, and
dancing after king Philip's pipe!
Bonner, bishop of London, with the pomp of all his prebendaries*
about him, in St. Paul's choir, the cross being laid along upon the
pavement, and also the doors of the church being shut, proceeded
to say and sing divers prayers: which done, they anointed the cross
with oil in divers places, and afterwards crept unto it, and kissed
it. Then they took the cross and set it in its accustomed place, and
all the while the whole choir sang Te Deum, which ended, they rang
the bells, not only for joy, but also for the notable and great fact they
had done therein. The new prince was present, and after Dr. Harps-
field had finished his oration in Latin, he set forward through Fleet
Street, and so came to Whitehall, where he with the queen remained
BTSHOP BONNER'S VISITATION. 593
four days, and from thence removed unto Richmond. The pageants
being over, all the lords had leave to depart into their counties, with
strait command to bring all their accoutrements and artillery into the
Tower of London. Now there remained no English lord at court, but
the bishop of Winchester.
The king's gravity proved very unacceptable to the English, who love
a mean between the stiffness of the Spaniards and the gaiety of the
French. But if they did not like his temper, they were out of measure
in love with his bounty and wealth : for he brought over a vast treasure
with him, the greatest part of which was distributed among those, who,
for his Spanish gold, had sold their country and religion. At his coming
to London, he procured the pardon of many prisoners, and among others,
of Holgate, archbishop of York. He also interposed for preserving
lady Elizabeth, and the earl of Devonshire. Gardiner was much set
against them, and thought they made but half work so long as she
lived. The earl of Devonshire, to be freed from all jealousy, went
beyond the sea, and died a year after in Italy, some said of poison.
Philip at first took care to preserve the lady Elizabeth on a generous
account, pitying her innocence, and hoping by so acceptable an act of
favour to recommend himself to the nation: but interest soon after for-
tified those good and wise inclinations ; for when he lost all hope of
issue by the queen, he considered that the queen of Scotland, who was
soon after married to the dauphin, was next in succession after lady
Elizabeth; so that if she should be put out of the way, the crown
of England would become an accession to the French crown; and
therefore he took care to preserve her, and perhaps hoped to have
wrought so much on her by his good offices, that if her sister should
die without children, she might be induced to marry him. But this was
the only grateful thing he did in England. He affected so extravagant
a state, and was so sullen and silent, that it was not easy for any to
come within the court ; and access to him was not to be had, without
demanding it with almost as much formality as ambassadors used when
they desired an audience: so that a general discontent was quickly
spread into most places of the kingdom. But Gardiner was well
pleased, for the conduct of affairs was put entirely in his hands.
In the month of September, bishop Bonner began his visitation. The
chief purpose of it was to see whether the old service, with all its rites,
was again set up ; and to inquire concerning the lives and labours of
the clergy, of their marriage, and their living chastely ; whether they
were suspected of heresy, or of favouring heretics. Bonner conducted
himself on this occasion like a madman ; for if either the bells were not
rung when he came near any church, or if he had not found the sacra-
ment exposed, he was ready to break out into the foulest language; and
not content with that, he was accustomed to beat his clergy when he was
displeased with any thing; for he was naturally cruel and brutal. He
took care to have those parts of scripture, that had been painted on the
walls of the churches, to be washed off: and upon this it was said, that
it was necessary to dash out the scripture, to make way for images, for
they agreed so ill, that they could not decently stand together.
Upon the Sunday following the bishop of Winchester, lord chancellor
2 Q
594 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
of England, preached at St. Paul's Cross before all the council. The
gospel whence he made his sermon was from Matthew, chap, xxii., where
the Pharisees came unto Christ, and among them one asked Christ which
was the greatest commandment. Christ answered, " Thou shalt love
the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and thy neighbour as thyself: in
these two are comprehended the law and the prophets." After a long
declaration of these words, speaking much of love and charity, at last
he had occasion to speak of the true and false teachers : saying, that all
the preachers almost in king Edward's time, preached nothing but
voluptuousness, and blasphemous lies, affirming their doctrine to be that
false doctrine whereof St. James speaketh in his third chapter, that it
was full of perverse zeal, earthly, full of discord and dissention, that
the preachers reported nothing truly, and that if a man vowed to-day,
he might break it to-morrow at his pleasure, with many other things.
When he spake of the sacrament, he said, that all the church from the
beginning have confessed Christ's natural body to be in heaven, and
here to be in the sacrament, and so concluded that matter. He con-
cluded the discourse by an extravagant piece of flattery on the king
and queen.
SECTION VI.
CARDINAL POLE ARRIVES FROM ROME. HIS ABSOLUTION. GARDINER'S
SERMON. NATION RETURNS TO POPERY. FAITHFULNESS OF THE PRO-
TESTANT LEADERS. DIFFERENCE OF SENTIMENT BETWEEN POLE AND
GARDINER RESPECTING HERETICS.
A treaty had commenced between Mary and the pope on her first
coming to the throne, when the pope's legate at Brussels sent over
Commendone, to see if he could speak with her, and to persuade her
to reconcile her kingdom to the apostolic see. The management of the
matter was left to his discretion, and the legate would not trust this secret
to Gardiner, nor any of the other bishops. Commendone came over in
the disguise of a merchant, and by accident met with one of the queen's
servants, who had lived years beyond sea, and was known to him, and
by his means procured access to the queen. She assured him of her
firm resolution to return to the obedience of that see, but charged him
to manage the matter with great prudence; for if it were too early dis-
covered, it might disturb her affairs, and obstruct the design. By him
she wrote both to the pope and to cardinal Pole; and instructed Com-
mendone, in order to the sending over Pole with a legatine power,
which accordingly took place. On his arrival, he first addressed the
king and queen, inviting them to return to the sheepfold of the church.
The queen felt a strange emotion of joy within her, as he made his
speech, which her flattering attendants encouraged her to interpret as a
sign that she should have a son! On this prediction Te Deum was sung
and bonfires soon blazed around the city. The priests proclaimed that
another John the Baptist was at hand, who had leaped on the salutation
of the vicar of Christ! ! Both houses agreed on an address to the king
CARDINAL POLE'S EMBASSAGE. 595
and queen, that they would intercede with the legate to reconcile them
to the see of Rome, and they offered to repeal all the laws they had
made against the pope's authority, in sign of their repentance. Upon
this the cardinal came to the parliament, which was held at Whitehall
on account of her majesty's confinement there by indisposition. She
sat with the prince under the cloth of state, and the cardinal sitting on
the right hand, with all the other estates of the parliament being present:
the bishop of Winchester being lord chancellor, began in this manner.
" My lords of the upper-house, and you my masters of the nether
house, here is present the right reverend father in God my lord cardinal
Pole, come from the apostolic see of Rome, as ambassador to the king
and queen's majesties, upon one of the weightiest causes that ever hap-
pened in this realm, and which pertaineth to the glory of Cod, and your
universal benefit. The which embassage their majesties' pleasure is to
be signified unto you all by his own mouth, trusting that you will receive
and accept it in benevolent and thankful wise as their highnesses have
done, and that you will give an attentive and inclinable ear unto him."
The lord chancellor having ended, the cardinal began his oration, declaring
the causes of his coming, and his desires and requests. In the mean time,
the court-gate was kept shut until he had made an end of his oration.
The next day after, the three estates assembled again in the great
chamber of the court at Westminster; where the king and queen's majesties
and the cardinal being present, they did exhibit (all kneeling on their
knees) a supplication to their highnesses; which being read, the king and
queen delivered the same unto the cardinal, who, perceiving the effects
thereof to answer his expectation, did receive the same most gladly from
their majesties: and after he had in a few words given thanks to God,
and declared what great cause he had to rejoice above all others, that his
coming from Rome into England had taken such happy success, he, by
the pope's authority, gave them this absolution : —
" Our Lord Jesus Christ, who with his most precious blood hath
redeemed and washed us from all our sins and iniquities, that he might
purchase unto himself a glorious spouse without spot or wrinkle, and
whom the Father hath appointed head over all his church, he by his
mercy absolve you. And we by apostolic authority given unto us by the
most holy lord pope Julius the third, his vicegerent on earth, do absolve
and deliver you, and every of you, with the whole realm and dominions
thereof, from all heresy and schism, and from all and every judgment,
censures, and pains, for that cause incurred : and also we do restore you
again unto the unity of our mother the holy church, as in our letters
more plainly it shall appear : in the name of the Father, of the Son,
and of the Holy Ghost."
This business finished, they all went into the chapel, and there singing
Te Deum, with great solemnity declared the joy for this reconciliation.
The report of the cardinal's quick success was with great speed sent
unto Rome ; as well by the king and cardinal's letters, which hereafter
follow, as also otherwise. Whereupon the pope caused three processions
to be made at Rome, and thanks to be given to God, with great joy, for
the conversion of England to his church ; and therefore praising the
cardinal's diligence, and the devotion of the king and queen, on
596 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Christmas eve, by his bulls he set forth a general pardon to all such as
did truly rejoice in the same.
On Sunday, December 2nd, Gardiner, bishop of Winchester, and lord
chancellor of England, preached at Paul's Cross, at which sermon the
king and cardinal Pole were present. He took for his text these words
of the epistle of St. Paul to the Romans, "This also we know the
season, brethren, that we should now awake out of sleep, for now is
our salvation nearer than when we believed. " From them he shewed
how the saying of St. Paul was verified upon the Gentiles, who had
a long time slept in dark ignorance, not knowing God : therefore
St. Paul, to stir up their heavy dulness, willed them to awake out of
their long sleep, because their salvation was nearer than when they
believed. In amplifying this matter, and comparing present times with
theirs, he took occasion to declare what difference the Jewish sacra-
ments had from those of the christians, wherein he used these words: —
" Even as the sacrament of the Jews declared Christ to come, so do
our sacraments declare him to be already come : but Christ to come,
and Christ to be come, is not all one. For now that he is come, the
Jews' sacraments are done away, and ours only remain, which declare
that he is already come, and is nearer us than he was to the fathers of
the old law; for they had him but in signs, but we have him in the
sacrament of the altar, even his very body. Wherefore now also it is
time that we awake out of our sleep, who have slept, or rather dreamed,
these twenty years past, as shall more easily appear, by declaring at
large some of the properties and effects of a sleep or a dream.
"And first, as men intending to sleep, do separate themselves from
company, and desire to be alone; even so have we separated ourselves
from the see apostolic of Rome, and have been alone, unlike any other
realm in Christendom. Secondly, as in sleep men dream sometimes of
killing, sometimes of maiming, sometimes of burning or drowning,
sometimes of such beastliness as I dare not name, but will spare your
ears; so we have in this our sleep, not only dreamed of beastliness, but
we have done it indeed. For in this our sleep hath not one brother
destroyed another? Hath not half our money been wiped away at one
time? And again, those that would defend their conscience were slain,
and others also otherwise troubled; besides infinite other things which
you all know as well as I, whereof I appeal to your own consciences.
Further, in a man's sleep all his senses are stopped, so that he can
neither see, smell, nor hear; even so, whereas tl e ceremonies of the
church were instituted to move and stir up our senses, they being taken
away, were not our senses stopped, and we fast asleep? Moreover,
when a man would gladly sleep, he will put out the candle, lest per-
adventure it may hinder his sleep, and awake him : so of late all such
writers as did hold any thing with the apostolic see, were condemned
and forbidden to be read : and images, which were laymen's books,
were cast down and broken.
" The sleep hath continued with us these twenty years, and we were
all that while without a head. For when king Henry did first take
upon him to be head of the church, it was then no church at all. After
whose death, king Edward, having over him governors and protectors,
GARDINER'S POPISH SERMON. 597
who ruled as they listed, could not be head of the church, but was only
a shadow or sign of a head, and at length it came to pass, that we had
DO head at all; no, not so much as our two archbishops. For on the
one side, the queen being a woman could not be head of the church;
and on the other side, our two archbishops were both convicted of one
crime, and so deposed. Thus while we desired to have a supreme head
among us, it came to pass that we had no head at all. When the tumult
was in the north, in the time of king Henry VIII., I am sure the king
was determined to have given over the supremacy again to the pope :
but the hour was not then come, and therefore it went not forward, lest
some would have said that he did it for fear.
" After this, Mr. Knevet and I were sent ambassadors unto the em-
peror, to desire him that he would be a means between the pope's
holiness and the king, to bring the king to the obedience of the see of
Rome, but the time was not yet come: for it might then have been said,
that it had been done for a civil policy. Again, in the beginning of
king Edward's reign the matter was moved, but the time was not yet:
for it would have been said, that the king being but a child, had been
bought and sold. Neither in the beginning of the queen's reign was the
hour come: for it would have been said, that it was done in a time of
weakness. Likewise when the king first came, if it had been done, they
might have said it had been done by force and violence. But now,
even now, the hour is come, when nothing can be objected, but that it
is the mere mercy and providence of God. Now hath the pope's
holiness sent unto us this most reverend father, cardinal Pole, an am-
bassador from his side. What to do? not to revenge the injuries done
by us against his holiness, but to give his benediction to those that
defamed and persecuted him.
" And that we may be the more meet to receive the said benediction,
I shall desire you that we may always acknowledge ourselves offenders
against his holiness; I do not exclude myself from the number. I will
' weep with them that Weep, and rejoice with them that rejoice.' And
I shall desire you, that we may defer the matter no longer, for now the
hour is come. The king and queen's majesties have already restored
our holy father the pope to his supremacy: and the three estates
assembled in the parliament, representing the whole body of the realm,
have also submitted themselves to his holiness and his successors for
ever; wherefore let us not any longer stay. And even as St. Paul said
to the Corinthians, that he was their father, so may the pope say, that
he is our father: for we received our doctrine first from Rome, therefore
he may challenge us as his own. We have all cause to rejoice, for his
holiness hath sent hither and prevented us, before we sought him : such
care hath he for us. Therefore let us say, ' This is the day which the
Lord hath made, we will rejoice and be glad in it.' Rejoice in this
day, which is of the Lord's working, that such a noble birth is come;
yea, such a holy father as my lord cardinal Pole, who can speak unto
us as unto brethren, and not as strangers. And let us now awake, who
have so long slept, and in our sleep have done so much mischief to the
sacraments of Christ, denying the blessed sacrament of the altar, and
pulling down the altar, which thing Luther himself would not do, but
598 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
rather reproved them that did it, examining them of their belief in
Christ."
The above was the sum of his sermon. He afterwards prayed, first for
pope Julius III., with all his college of cardinals, the bishop of London,
with the rest of that order; then for the king and queen, and the
nobility of this realm ; and lastly for the commons of the same, with
the souls departed lying in the pains of purgatory. A striking proof
this of the ascendancy of the priesthood in the realm, since intercession
for that entire order preceded prayer for the senators, nobles, and even
the sovereign and the royal family. Nay, departed saints must wait
their turn after the existing priesthood, foreign and domestic, supreme,
superior, and subordinate, have been blessed with the intercessions of
the congregation. This ended, the time being late, they began in
St. Paul's to ring their evening song, whereby the preacher could not
be well heard, which caused him to make an end of his sermon.
About this time a messenger was sent from the parliament to the pope,
to desire him to confirm and establish the sale of abbey and chauntry
lands: for the lords and the parliament would grant nothing in the
pope's behalf, before their purchases were fully confirmed. Meanwhile
the whole convocation, both bishops and others, were sent for to
Lambeth to the cardinal, who forgave them all their perjurations,
schisms, and heresies, and they all there kneeled down, and received
his absolution ; and after an exhortation and gratulation for their
conversion to the catholic church made by the cardinal, they departed.
The new year, 1555, commenced with several arrests of protestants
assembled for devotion. About thirty men and women of the city,
with Mr. Rose, their minister, were taken as they were in a house in
Bow church-yard, celebrating the communion, and were the same night
all committed to prison. Two days after Mr. Rose was brought before the
bishop of Winchester, the lord chancellor, and the same day committed to
the Tower, after some communication between the bishop and him. It
appears that a reference to the queen in his prayers was reported against
him. He was charged with saying, and some of his congregation with
repeating, these words — " God turn the heart of queen Mary from
idolatry, or else shorten her days." There is reason to believe that the
alternative of shortening her days was added by the accusers. The
former petition however was enough to endanger their liberty and their
lives. It was construed treason against her majesty. At the appre-
hending of Mr. Rose and his companions, word was brought thereof to
bishop Hooper, being then in the Fleet; whereupon the bishop sent a
letter of consolation to the said prisoners; enjoining them not to fear
their adversaries, though he acknowledged the papist's church was more
bloody and tyrannical, than ever was the sword of the heathens.
On Tuesday, the 8th of January, nineteen of the lower house of the
parliament, with the speaker, came to Whitehall to the king, and offered
him the government of the realm and of the issue, if the queen should
fail, which was confirmed by act of parliament within ten days after. On
the 16th of the same month, the parliament was clean dissolved; and on
the 18th all the council went unto the Tower, and there the same day
discharged and set at liberty all the prisoners, or most part of them, among
EXAMINATION OF SEVERAL PROTESTANTS. 599
whom were the late clukc of Northumberland's sons, Ambrose, Robert,
and Henry, Sir Andrew Dudley, Sir John Rogers, Sir James Crofts,
Sir Nicholas Throgmorton, Sir Nicholas Arnold, Sir George Harper,
Sir Edward Warner, Sir William Sentlow, Sir Gawen Carew, Mr.
Gibbes, Cuthbert Vaughan, with many others.
On January 22nd, all the preachers who were in prison, were called
before the bishop of Winchester, and certain others, at his house in
St. Mary Overy's. Being asked whether they would convert, and enjoy
the queen's pardon, or else stand to that they had taught; they all
answered, that they would stand to that they had taught: they were
then committed to straiter prison than before, with charge that none
should speak with them: of whom, one James George, died in prison,
being there in bonds for religion and righteousness' sake, and as he was
exempted burial in the popish church-yard, was buried in the fields.
Cardinal Pole by no means sanctioned severe measures, for when the
bishops, with the rest of the convocation-house, were before the cardinal
at Lambeth, he desired them to repair every man where his cure and
charge lay, exhorting them to treat their flock with all mildness, and to
endeavour to win the people rather by gentleness, than by extremity
and rigour, and so let them depart. Some complied ; but a large
portion remained in London further to excite the people of the metro-
polis in favour of popery. On the anniversary of St. Paul, then a high
day in the city, there was a general and solemn procession through
London, to give God thanks for their conversion to the catholic church.
To set out their glorious pomp there were fourscore and ten crosses, one
hundred and sixty priests and clerks, who had every one of them copes
upon their backs, singing loudly. There followed also, for the better
estimation of the sight, eight bishops; and last of all came Bonner,
bishop of London, carrying a splendid box containing the host under a
gorgeous canopy. There were also present the mayor, and aldermen,
and all the livery of every occupation. Moreover the king also himself,
and the cardinal, came to St. Paul's church the same day. As the king
was entering the church, at the steps going up to the choir, all the
gentlemen that of late were set at liberty out of the Tower, kneeled
before him and offered unto him themselves and their services. The
procession continued till sun set, and after the procession there was
commandment given to make bonfires at night. Whereupon did rise
among the people a doubtful talk why all this was done: some saying
it was that the queen being likely to have a son ; while others thought
that it was for joy that the realm was joined again to the see of Rome.
It would appear that Gardiner and his abettors obtained considerable
influence over the milder views of Pole, so as to induce him to sanction
their bitter proceedings against some of the more distinguished and
devoted protestants of the day : for, on Jan. 28, the bishops had com-
mission from the cardinal to sit upon, and order, according to the laws,
all such preachers and heretics as were in prison ; and according to
this commission, the same day the bishop of Winchester, and the other
bishops, with certain of the council, sat at St. Mary Overy's church, and
called before them bishop Hooper, Mr. Rogers, and Mr. Cardmaker,
who were brought thither by the sheriffs ; from whence, after communi-
600 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
cation, they were committed to prison till the next day, but Cardmaker
submitted himself. The next day Hooper, Rogers, Taylor, and Brad-
ford, were brought before them, and sentence of excommunication and
judgment ecclesiastical was pronounced upon bishop Hooper and Mr.
Rogers, by the bishop of Winchester, who sat as judge in Caiaphas's
seat, and drove them out of the church, according to their law and order.
Dr. Taylor and Bradford were re-committed to prison. On the day follow-
ing Dr. Taylor, Dr. Crome, Mr. Bradford, Mr. Saunders, and Dr. Farrar,
some time bishop of St. David's, were before the bishops. Dr. Taylor,
Saunders, and Bradford, were excommunicated ; and sentence being
pronounced upon them, they were committed to the sheriffs. Crome
desired two months respite, which was granted him : and Farrar was
again committed to prison till another time. All these men shewed
themselves to be learned, as indeed they were: but what availeth either
learning, reason, or truth itself, where arbitrary will alone beareth rule?
After the examination and condemnation of these good men and
preachers, commissions and inquisitors were sent abroad into all parts of
the realm : by reason whereof a great number of most godly and true
christians, especially of Kent, Essex, Norfolk, and Suffolk, were appre*
hended, brought up to London, cast into prison, and most of them after-
wards either consumed cruelly by fire, or else through evil handling died
in prisons, and were buried on the dung-hills or in the fields.
The parliament being dissolved, the first thing taken into consideration
was the way to proceed against the heretics. Cardinal Pole had been
suspected to bear some favour to them, but he took great care to avoid
all occasions of being any more blamed for that; and indeed he lived
in that distrust of all the English, that he opened his thoughts to very
few : his chief confidents were two Italians who came over with him,
Priuli and Ormaneto. Secretary Cecil, who in matters of religion com-
plied with the times, was observed to have more of his favour than any
other Englishman. Pole was an enemy to all severe proceedings; he
had observed that cruelty rather inflamed than cured the distemper of
heresy ; he thought the better and surer way was to begin an effectual
reformation of the manners of the clergy, since it was the scandal given
by their ill conduct and ignorance, that was the chief cause of the
growth of heresy : so he concluded, that if a primitive discipline should
be revived, the nation might in time be gained by gentle methods.
Gardiner, on the other hand, being of an abject and cruel temper himself,
thought the strict execution of the laws against the Lollards was that to
which they ought chiefly to trust: if the preachers were made public
examples, he concluded the people would be easily reclaimed : for he
pretended that it was visible, if King Henry had executed the act of
the six articles vigorously, all would have submitted. He confessed a
reformation of the clergy was a good thing, but all times could not bear
it. If they should proceed severely against scandalous churchmen, the
heretics would take advantage that to deframe the church the more,
and raise a clamour against all clergymen. The queen was for joining
both these counsels together, and intended to proceed at the same time
both against scandalous churchmen and incorrigible protestants.
BOOK XII.
CONTAINING A FURTHER ACCOUNT OF THE MURDERING OF GOD'S SAINTS,
WITH THE PROCESSES AND NAMES OF SUCH GOOD MARTYRS AS
IN THIS TIME OF QUEEN MARY WERE PUT TO DEATH.
SECTION I.
LIFE AND MARTYRDOM OF JOHN ROGERS AND LAURENCE SAUNDERS.
On the 4th of February, 1555, suffered the constant martyr of God,
master John Rogers, concerning whose life, examinations, and sufferings,
the following particulars are set forth.
John Rogers, vicar of St. Sepulchre, and reader at St. Paul's, received
his education in the university of Cambridge, and at length was chosen
chaplain to the English factory at Antwerp. There he became ac-
quainted with Mr. Tindall, whom he assisted in his translation of the
New Testament, and with Miles Coverdale, who, with several other pro-
testants, had been driven from England on account of the five articles,
in the latter end of the reign of Henry VIII. By conversing with these
undaunted and pious servants of God, Mr. Rogers became learned in
the scriptures, and finding, according to these sacred oracles, that
matrimony was honourable to all, he entered into that state, and went
with his wife to Wittenburg, in Saxony, where, through indefatigable
study and application, he in a short time attained such a knowledge of
the Dutch language as to be capable of taking charge of a christian
congregation in that part of Europe. After abandoning his popish
superstitions, this aged minister served his cure faithfully and diligently
for many years, until it pleased God to dispel the mists of papal dark-
ness from his native country and restore the glorious light of the pure
gospel of Christ, by the introduction of his chosen servant Edward VI.
to the English throne.
Mr. Rogers then complied with a request to leave his living in Saxony,
and come into England to preach the gospel, without any previous con-
dition, appointment, or establishment whatever: and having laboured
in the vineyard of his Master for a time with great success, Dr. Ridlev,
then bishop of London, gave him a prebend in his cathedral church of
St. Paul's : he was afterwards chosen by the dean and chapter one of
the divinity-lecturers in that church. There he continued till queen
602 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Mary, soon after her accession, banished the true religion, and restored
the superstition and idolatry of the church of Rome, with all the horrid
cruelties of blood-thirsty Antichrist.
When Mary was in the Tower of London, imbibing Gardiner's per-
nicious counsels, Mr. Rogers preached at Paul's Cross, confirming those
doctrines which he and others had taught in king Edward's days, and
exhorting the people, with peculiar energy, to continue stedfast in the
same, and to beware of the false tenets that were about to be introduced.
For this sermon the preacher was summoned before the council, then
filled with popish and bloody bishops ; before whom he pleaded his own
cause, in so pious and bold, yet prudent a manner, as to obviate their
displeasure for that time, and was accordingly dismissed. But after
Mary's proclamation to prohibit the doctrines of the reformed religion,
Mr. Rogers, for a contempt of the same, was again summoned before a
council of bishops, who, after having debated upon the nature of his
offence, ordered him to keep close prisoner in his own house. There he
remained a considerable time, till at the instigation of the sanguinary
Bonner, bishop of London, he was removed to Newgate, and placed
among common felons. What passed between him and the adversaries
of Christ, during the time of his imprisonment, is not certainly known;
but his examinations he left in his own hand- writing; the principal parts
of which are here given.
The examination and answer of John Rogers, made to the lord chan-
cellor Gardiner, and to the rest of the council, Jan. 22nd, 1555 : —
First, the lord chancellor said unto me thus: " Sir, you have heard the
state of the realm in which it standeth now."
Rogers. No, my lord, I have been kept in close prison; and except
there have been some general thing said at the table, when I was at dinner
or supper, I heard nothing; and there have I heard nothing whereupon
any special thing might be grounded.
Then said the lord chancellor mockingly, " General things, general
things! Ye have heard of my lord cardinal's coming, and that the par-
liament hath received his blessing, not one resisting it, but one man which
did speak against it. Such an unity, and such a miracle, hath not been seen.
And all they, of which there are eight score in one house, have with one
assent received pardon of their offences, for the schism that we have had
in England, in refusing the holy father of Rome to be head of the
catholic church. How say you ? are you content to unite yourself to
the faith of the catholic church with us, in the state in which it is now
in England ? will you do that?"
Rog. The catholic church I never did nor will dissent from.
Gar. Nay, but I speak of the state of the catholic church, in that
wise in which we stand now in England, having received the pope to be
supreme head.
Rog. I know no other head but Christ of his catholic church, neither
will I acknowledge the bishop of Rome to have any more authority
than any other bishop hath by the word of God, and by the doctrines of
the old and pure catholic church, four hundred years after Christ.
Gar. Why didst thou then acknowledge king Henry VIII. to be su-
preme head of the church, if Christ be the only head ?
EXAMINATION OF MR. ROGERS, 603
Rog. I never granted him to have any supremacy in spiritual tilings,
as are the forgiveness of sins, giving of the Holy Ghost, authority to be
a judge above the word of God.
Oar. Yea, if thou hadst said so in his days, thou hadst not been
alive now. What sayest thou ? make us a direct answer whether thou
wilt be one of this catholic church or not, with us in that state in which
we are now?
Rog. My lord, without fail I cannot believe, that ye yourselves think
in your hearts that he is supreme head in forgiving of sins, seeing you
and all the bishops of the realm have now twenty years long preached,
and some of you also written to the contrary, and the parliament hath
so long ago condescended unto it.
Gar. Tush ! that parliament was with great cruelty constrained to
abolish and put away the supremacy from the bishop of Rome.
Rog. With cruelty ? why then I perceive that you take a wrong way
with cruelty to persuade men's consciences. For it should appear by your
doings now, that the cruelty then used hath not persuaded your consciences.
How would you then have our consciences persuaded with cruelty ?
Gar. I talk to thee of no cruelty, but that they were so often and so cruelly
called upon in that parliament, to let the act go forward ; yea, and even with
force driven thereunto, whereas in this parliament it was so uniformly received.
Rog. I will first see it proved by the Scripture. Let me have pen, ink,
and books, etc., and I shall take upon me more plainly to set out the
matter, so that the contrary shall be proved to be true; and let any man
that will, confer with me by writing.
Gar. Nay, that shall not be permitted thee. Here are two things,
mercy and justice : if thou refuse the queen's mercy now, then shalt thou
have justice ministered unto thee.
Rog. I never offended, nor was disobedient unto her grace, and yet I
will not refuse her mercy. But if this shall be denied me to confer by writing
and to try out the truth, then it is not well, but too far out of the way.
Gar. If thou wilt not receive the bishop of Rome to be supreme head
of the catholic church, then thou shalt never have her mercy, thou may est
be sure. If thou wilt enter into one church with us, tell us that; or else
thou shalt never have so much proffered thee again as thou hast now.
Rog. I will find it first in the scripture, and see it tried thereby, be-
fore I receive him to be supreme head. I find not the bishop of Rome
in the creed. For the word catholic there signifieth not the Romish
church : it signifieth the consent of all true teaching churches of all
times and all ages. But how should the bishop of Rome's church be
one of them, which teacheth so many doctrines that are plainly and
directly against the word of God ? Can that bishop be the true head of
the catholic church, that doth so? That is not possible.
Gar. Shew me one of them — one ! let me hear one !
Rog. The bishop of Rome, and his church, say, read, and sing, all
that they do in their congregations, in Latin, which is directly and
plainly against 1 Cor. xiv. To speak with tongues is to speak with a strange
tongue, as Latin or Greek, etc. ; and so to speak, is not to speak unto men,
but to God. But ye speak in Latin, which is a strange tongue; where-
fore ye speak not unto men, but unto yourselves and God only.
604 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
I was willing to have declared how and after what sort these two
texts do agree ; as, to wit, " to speak not to man, but unto God," and
" to speak into the wind;" and so to have gone forward with the proof
of my matter begun, but here arose a noise and a confusion. And
here also I would have declared how they ought to proceed in these
days, and so have come again to my purpose, but it was impossible ; for
one asked one thing, another said another; so that I was fain to hold
my peace. And even when I would take hold on my proof, the lord
chancellor bade to prison with me again. Then sir Richard Southwell
said to me, " Thou wilt not burn in this gear when it cometh to the pur-
pose, I know well that." To whom I replied, " Sir, I cannot tell, but I
trust in my Lord God, yes;" lifting up mine eyes unto heaven.
Then my lord of Ely told me much of the queen's pleasure and meaning,
saying that she took them that would not receive the bishop of Rome's
supremacy to be unworthy to have her mercy, etc. I said I would not
.refuse her mercy, and yet I never offended her in all my life: and that I
besought her grace, and all their honours, to be good to me, reserving my
conscience. "A married priest, and have not offended the law!" cried
they. I said I had not broken the queen's law, nor yet any point of the
law of the realm therein; for I married where it was lawful. I married
in Dutchland. And if you had not here in England made an open law
that priests might have had wives, I would never have come home again ;
for I brought a wife and eight children with me : which ye might be
sure I would not have done if the laws of the realm had not permitted
it before. You say to me that there was never a catholic man or country
who ever yet granted that a priest might have a wife. But I say that
the catholic church never denied marriage to priests, nor yet to any
other man." On giving this answer, Rogers was about to leave the cham-
ber, the sergeant holding him by the arm ready to conduct him back
to confinement. At his departure, the bishop of Worcester, who had
before interposed with some trifling questions, taunted him with igno-
rance of what and where the true catholic church was — a taunt which
might with much more justice have been addressed to him and his
coadjutors in this persecuting course.
A second examination of Mr. Rogers soon after took place, most
of which is here given in his own words. " Being asked again by the
lord chancellor what I thought concerning the blessed sacrament;
whether I believed it to be the very body and blood of our Saviour
Christ, that was born of the Virgin Mary, and hanged on the cross,
really and substantially? I answered, 'I have often told you that it
was a matter in which I was no meddler, and therefore suspected of my
brethren to be of a contrary opinion. Notwithstanding, even as the
most part of your doctrine in other points is false, and the. defence
thereof only by force and cruelty; so in this matter I think it to be as
false as the rest. For I cannot understand the words really and sub-
stantially, to signify otherwise than corporeally : but corporeally Christ
is only in heaven, and so cannot Christ be so also in your sacrament.
My lord you have dealt with me most cruelly, for you have put me in
prison without law, and kept me there now almost a year and a half:
for I was almost half a year in my house, where I was obedient to you,
SECOND EXAMINATION OF ROGERS. 605
God knoweth, and spoke with no man. And now have I been a full
year in Newgate, at great costs and charges, having a wife and ten
children to provide for, and have not received a penny from my livings,
which was against the law.' To this Gardiner answered that Dr. Ridley,
\\\\o had given them me, was a usurper, and therefore I was the unjust
nos^ssor of them. I then asked, * Was the king then an usurper, who
g ;i\ e Dr. Ridley the bishopric ?' To which the chancellor replied — Yes !
Then he began to set out the wrongs that king Edward had done to the
bishop of London, and to himself also. ' But yet I do mis-use my
terms' — he confessed — ' to call the king usurper.'
" I asked him wherefore he put me in prison. He said, because I
preached against the queen. I answered that it was not true ; and I
would be bound to prove it, and to stand to the trial of the law, that
no man should be able to disprove me, and thereupon would set my life.
I preached, I confessed, a sermon at the Cross, after the queen came to
the Tower; but there was nothing said against the queen. He then
charged me with having read lectures after, against the commandment
of the council. To this I answered that I never did so, and said, let
that be proved, and let me die for it.
" I might and would have added, if I had been suffered to speak, that
it had been time enough to take away men's livings, and then to have
imprisoned them after that they had offended the laws, for they are
good citizens that break not laws, and worthy of praise, and not of pu-
nishment. But their purpose was to keep men in prison, until they may
catch them in their laws, and so kill them. I might have declared that I
most humbly desired to be set at liberty, sending my wife with a supplica-
tion, while I was yet in my house.
" I wrote two petitions to him out of Newgate, and sent my wife many
times to him. Master Gosnold also, who is now departed in the Lord,
laboured for me, and so did divers others take pains in the matter. These
things declare my lord chancellor's antichristian charity, which is, that he
hath and doth seek my blood, and the destruction of my wife and ten children.
" This is a short sum of the words which were spoken on the 28th of
January, in the afternoon, after that master Hooper had been the first,
and master Cardmaker the second, in examination before me. The Lord
grant us grace to stand together, fighting lawfully in his cause, till we be
smitten down together, if the Lord's will be so to permit it. Then the
clock being, as 1 guessed, about four, the lord chancellor said that he and
the church must yet use charity with me, and gave me respite till to-
morrow, to see whether I would return to the catholic church again, and
repent, and they would receive me to mercy. I said that I was never
out of the true catholic church, nor would be : but into his church would
I, by the God's grace, never come. 'Well,' quoth he, • is our church
false and antichristian?' I answered, 'Yea.' 'And what is the doctrine of
the sacrament?' ' False,' quoth I; and cast my hands abroad. ' Come
again to-morrow,' said the chancellor, ' between nine and ten.' ' I am
ready to come again whensoever you call,' quoth I. And thus was I
brought up by the sheriffs to the Compter in Southwark, master Hoopei
going before me, and a great multitude of people being present, so that
we had much to do to go in the streets."
606 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
On the morrow the third examination went on. Mr. Rogers writes —
" The next day, January 29th, we were sent for in the morning about nine
o'clock, and by the sheriffs brought from the compter in Southwark to
St. Mary Overy's. When Mr. Hooper was condemned, as I understood
afterwards, then sent they for me. My lord chancellor Gardiner said —
' Rogers, here thou wast yesterday, and we gave thee liberty to remem-
ber thyself last night, whether thou wouldst come into the holy catholic
church of Christ again or not. Tell us now what thou hast determined,
whether thou wilt be repentant and sorry, and wilt return again and
take mercy?' ' My lord/ quoth I, ' I have remembered myself right
well, what you yesterday said to me, and desire you to give me leave
to declare my mind, what I have to say thereunto; and that done I shall
answer to your demanded question. When I yesterday desired that I
might be suffered by the scripture and authority of the first, best, and
purest church, to defend my doctrine by writing, all the doctrine that
ever I had preached, you answered, that it might not, and ought not to
be granted me, for I was a private person ; and that the parliament was
above the authority of all private persons, and therefore the sentence
thereof might not be found faulty and useless by me, being but a
private person. Yet, my lord, I am able to show examples, that
one man hath come into a general council, and after the whole had
determined and agreed upon an act or article, some one man coming
in afterwards, hath by the word of God proved so clearly that
the council had erred in decreeing the said article, that he caused the
whole council to change and alter their act or article before determined.
And of these examples I am able to shew two. I can also shew the
authority of St. Augustine ; that when he disputed with a heretic, he
would neither himself, nor yet have the heretic to lean on the determina-
tion of two former councils, of which the one was made for him, and
the other for the heretic that disputed against him ; but he said that he
would have the scriptures to be their judge, which were common for
them both, and not peculiar to either of them/
" I could also shew the authority of a learned lawyer, Panormitanus,
who saith, That unto a simple layman that bringeth the word of God
with him, there ought more credit to be given, than to a whole council
gathered together. By these things will I prove that I ought not to be
denied to speak my mind, and to be heard against a whole parliament,
bringing the word of God for me, and the authority of the whole church
400 years after Christ, albeit that every man in the parliament had will-
ingly and without respect of fear and favour agreed thereunto, which
thing I doubt not a little of; especially seeing the like had been per-
mitted in the old church, even in general councils; yea, and that in one
of the chiefest councils that ever was, unto which neither any acts of
this parliament, nor yet any of the late general councils of the bishops
of Rome ought to be compared. For if Henry VIII. were alive, and
should call a parliament, and begin to determine a thing, then would
ye all say Amen: yea, and it please your grace, it is meet that it be so
enacted.
' Here my lord chancellor would suffer me to speak no more; but bade
me sit down, mockingly, saying, That I was sent for to be instructed of
CONDEMNATION OF MR. ROGERS. 607
them, and yet I would take upon me to be their instructor. To this I
said — ' My lord, I stand and sit not: shall I not be suffered to speak for
inv life ?' * Shall we suffer thee to tell a tale, and prate?' said he. And
with that lie stood up, and began to face me, after his old arrogant
proud fashion, for he perceived that I was in a way to have touched him
somewhat, which he thought to hinder by dashing me out of my tale,
and so he did : but he had much the like communication with me as he
had the day before, taunt upon taunt, and check upon check. For in
that case, being God's cause, I told him he should not make me afraid
to speak.
" The lord chancellor on this exclaimed, ' See what a spirit this fellow
hath, finding fault at mine accustomed earnestness, and hearty manner
of speaking !' On which I said — I have a true spirit, agreeing to, and
obeying the word of God; and would further have said, that I was never
the worse, but the better, to be earnest in a just and true cause, and in
my master Christ's matters : but I could not be heard. At length he
proceeded towards his excommunication and condemnation, after that
I had told him, that his church of Rome was the church of Antichrist,
meaning the false doctrine and tyrannical laws, with the maintenance
thereof by cruel persecutions used by the bishops of the said church.
To be brief, he read my condemnation before me, particularly mentioning
therein but two articles : first, that I affirmed the Roman catholic
church to be the church of Antichrist: and then that I denied the reality
of their sacrament. He caused me to be degraded and condemned,
and put into the hands of the laity, and then he gave me over into the
sheriff's hands, which were much better than his."
" After this sentence was read, bishop Gardiner sent Mr. Hooper and
me to the Clink, there to remain till night ; when it was dark, they
carried us, Mr. Hooper going before with one sheriff, and I coming
after with the other, with bills and weapons out of the Clink, and led
us through the bishop's house, and St. Mary Overy's church yard, and
so into Southwark, hence over the bridge in procession to Newgate,
through the city. When the bishop had read the condemnation, I
petitioned to see and speak to my wife, who was a stranger, and had
ten children ; but he said she was not my wife. I declared she was, for
we had been married eighteen years. He still denied it, said I main-
tained open whoredom, and that I should not see her I"
While this excellent writer as well as patient sufferer remained in
prison, he wrote his sentiments in a bold and manly strain, upon the
evils and abuses brought into the country, and held out to its rulers, the
vengeance that had fallen, in different ages, upon the enemies of truth.
The following is a sample — " I am an Englishman born, and, God
knoweth, do naturally wish well to my country. And I have often
proved that the things, which I have much feared should come to pass
have indeed followed. I pray God I may fail of my guessing in this
behalf. And as touching your rejoicing, as though God had set you
aloft to punish us by miracle, and to minister justice, if we will not
receive your holy father's mercy, and thereby do declare your church
to be true, and ours false; to that I answer thus: God's works are won-
derful, and are not to be comprehended and perceived by man's wisdom,
608 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
nor by the wit of the most wise and prudent. — Our enemies sometimes
cry out that we liken ourselves to prophets and apostles; but I answer
the charge, that we make not ourselves like unto them, in the singular
virtues and gifts of God given unto them; as of doing miracles, and
of many other things. The similitude and likeness of them and us
consisteth not in all things, but only in this, that is, that we be like
them in doctrine, and in the suffering of persecution and infamy for
the same.
" The apostles were beaten for their boldness, and they rejoiced that
they suffered for Christ's cause. Ye have also provided rods for us, and
bloody whips : yet when ye have done that which God's hand and counsel
hath determined that ye shall do, be it life or death, I trust that God
will so assist us by his Holy Spirit and grace, that we shall patiently
suffer it, and praise God for it : and whatsoever become of me and
others, which now suffer for speaking and professing the truth, yet be
ye sure, that God's word will prevail and have the upper hand, when
your bloody laws and wicked decrees, for want of sure foundation, shall
fall in the dust. — Of what force, I pray you, may a man think these par-
liaments to be, which scantily can stand a year in strength ? or what
credit is to be given to these law-makers, who are not ashamed to
establish contrary laws, and to condemn that for evil which before they
affirmed and decreed to be good? Truly ye are so ready, contrary to
all right, to change and turn for the pleasure of man, that at length I
fear God will use you like changelings, and both turn you forth of his
kingdom, and out of your own country."
After that John Rogers had been long and straitly imprisoned, lodged
in Newgate amongst thieves, often examined, very uncharitably treated,
and at length unjustly and most cruelly condemned by Gardiner, he was,
on Feb. 4th, warned suddenly by the keeper's wife of Newgate to prepare
himself for the fire; who being found asleep was with great difficulty
awoke. At length being roused, he was led down first to Bonner
to be degraded; which done, he craved of him one petition — that he
might speak a few words with his wife before his burning. But that was
denied him. " Then," said he, " you declare your charity, what it is."
Now when the time came that he should be brought out of Newgate
to Smithfield, the sheriff came to him, and asked if he would revoke his
abominable doctrines. To whom Mr. Rogers said, " That which I have
preached I will seal with my blood !" "Then," said the sheriff, " thou
art a heretic." " That shall be known," said Rogers, " at the day of
judgment." " Well," quoth the sheriff, " I will never pray for thee."
" But I will pray for you" replied Rogers; and so was brought the same
day, which was Monday the 4th of February, towards Smithfield, saying
the psalm " Miserere" by the way, all the people rejoicing at his con-
stancy, with great praises and thanks to God for the same. And there,
in the presence of Rochester, comptroller of the queen's household, sir
Richard Southwell, both the sheriffs, and many people, the fire was put
unto him; and when it had taken hold both upon his legs and shoulders,
he, as one feeling no smart, washed his hands in the flame, as though it
had been in cold water. After lifting up his hands unto heaven, not re-
moving the same until such time as the devouring fire had consumed
PARTICULARS OF LAURENCE SAUNDER*. 609
them, most mildly this happy martyr yielded up his spirit into the hands of
his heavenly Father. A little before his burning-, his pardon was brought if he
would have recanted ; but he utterly refused it. He was the first of all the
blessed martyrs that suffered in the reign of queen Mary; those which had
previously suffered having suffered as traitors. His wife and children met him
by the way as he went towards Smithfield. This sorrowful sight of his own
flesh and blood could nothing move him; but he constantly and cheerfully
took his death with wonderful patience, in defence of the gospel of Christ.
Next to this faithful and holy man followed the Rev. Laurence
Saunders, martyred at Coventry the next month. He was a man ot*
good parentage. He was placed early at Eton school, whence, at a
proper age, he was chosen to go to the King's college, in Cambridge,
where he continued a scholar three years, and profited in knowledge
and learning very much for that time ; shortly after he quitted the uni-
versity, and went to his parents, upon whose advice he consented to
become a merchant, for that his mother, who was a gentlewoman of
good estimation, being left a widow, and having a good portion for
him among his other brethren, thought to set him in the way of wealth;
and so he, coming up to London, was bound apprentice to Sir William
Chester, who afterwards chanced to be sheriff of London the same year
that Saunders was burnt at Coventry.
It happened that the master, being a good man, and hearing Saunders
in his secret prayers inwardly to mourn by himself, called him unto him,
to know the cause of his solitariness and lamentations: when, learning
him not to fancy that kind of life, and perceiving also his whole purpose
to be bent to the study of books, and spiritual contemplation, like a
good and sensible man, wrote to his friends, and giving him his in-
dentures, set him free. Thus Mr. Saunders being ravished with the love
of learning, and especially with the reading of God's word, tarried not
long in the traffic of merchandize, but shortly returned to Cambridge
again to his study, where he began to add to the knowledge of the
Latin, the study of the Greek tongue, in which he profited very much
in a little time; presently after, he joined the study of the Hebrew.
Then he gave himself wholly to the study of the holy scriptures, to
furnish himself for the office of a preacher.
In the beginning of king Edward's reign, when true religion was in-
troduced, he began to preach, and was so liked by them who then had
authority, that they had appointed him to read a divinity lecture in the
college of Fotheringhay, where, by doctrine and life, he edified the
pious, drew many ignorant to the true knowledge of God, and stopped
the mouths of adversaries. He married about that time, and in the
connubial state led a life unblameable before all men. The college of
Fotheringhay being dissolved, he was appointed a reader in the minster
at Litchfield : where he so behaved himself in teaching and living, that
his very adversaries bore testimony as well of his learning as of his
piety. After a certain space, he departed from Litchfield to a benefice
in Leicestershire, called Churchlangton, where he resided and taught
diligently, and kept a liberal house. From thence he was orderly called
to take a benefice in the city of London, called Allhallows, in Bread-
street. Then he was inclined to resign his cure in the country; and
2 R
610 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
after he had taken possession of his benefice in London, he departed
into the country, clearly to discharge himself thereof.
On Sunday, October 15th, in the forenoon, he delivered a sermon in
his parish, treating on that place which St. Paul writeth to the Corin-
thians: " I have coupled you to one man, that ye should make your-
selves chaste virgins unto Christ. But I fear lest it come to pass, that
as the serpent beguiled Eve, even so your wits should be corrupt from
the singleness which ye had towards Christ." He recited the sum of
that true christian doctrine, through which they were coupled to Christ,
to receive of him free justification through faith in his blood. The
papistical doctrine he compared to the serpent's deceiving: and lest
they should be deceived by it, he made a contrast between the voice of
God and the voice of the popish serpent; descending to more particular
declaration therefore, as it were to let them plainly see the difference
that is between the order of the church service, set forth by king Edward
in the English tongue, and comparing it with the popish service then
used in the Latin tongue.
The first, he said, was good, because it was according to the word of
God, and the order of the primitive church. The other, he said, was
evil, and though in that evil be intermingled some good Latin words,
yet was it but as a little honey or milk mingled with a great deal of
poison to make them drink up all. In the afternoon he was ready in his
church to have given another exhortation to his people. But the bishop of
London interrupted him, by sending an officer for him. This officer charged
him upon pain of contumacy forthwith to come to the bishop. And thus
was Saunders brought before Bonner, who laid to his charge treason for
breaking the queen's proclamation, and heresy and sedition for his sermon.
After much talk, the bishop willed him to write what he believed of
transubstantiation. Saunders did so ; and this writing the bishop kept for
his purpose, as shall appear hereafter. Bonner sent him to the lord chan-
cellor, who, being unable to resist his arguments, cried, "Carry away this
frenzy-fool to prison." Here Saunders continued a whole year and three
months ; in which space he sent divers letters to divers men : as one to
Cranmer, Ridley, and Latimer ; another to his wife, and also to others.
But of his cause and estate thou shalt now see what Laurence Saunders
himself did write to the bishop of Winchester, as an answer to certain
things wherewith he had before charged him : —
"Touching the cause of my imprisonment, I doubt whether I have
broken any law or proclamation. In my doctrine I did not, forasmuch
as at that time it was permitted by the proclamation to use, according
to our consciences, such service as was then established. My doctrine
was then agreeable unto my conscience and the same service then used.
The act which I did (meaning his public teaching of God's word in his
own parish, called Allhallows in Bread-street, in the city of London)
was such as being indifferently weighed, sounded to no breaking of the
proclamation, or at least no wilful breaking of it, forasmuch as I caused
no bell to be rung, neither occupied I any place in the pulpit, after the
order of sermons or lectures. But be it that I did break the proclama-
tion, this long time of continuance in prison may be thought to be
more than a sufficient punishment for such a fault.
MR. SAUNDERS' LETTER TO HIS WIFE. 611
" Touching the charging of me witli my religion, I say with St. Paul:
* I confess, that after the way which they call heresy, so worship I the
God of my forefathers, believing all things which are written in the law
and the prophets, and have hope towards God touching the resurrection
of the dead. And herein study I to have always a clear conscience
towards God and towards men.' So that God I call to witness, I have
a conscience. And this my conscience is not grounded upon vain
fantasy, but upon the infallible verity of God's word, with the witness-
ing of his chosen church agreeable unto the same.
" It is an easy thing for them which take Christ for their true pastor,
and be the very sheep of his pasture, to discern the voice of their true
shepherd, from the voice of wolves, hirelings, and strangers: forasmuch
as Christ saith, ' My sheep hear my voice, and I know them, and they
follow me.' Yea, and thereby they shall have the gift to know the
right voice of the true shepherd, and so to follow him, and to avoid the
contrary, as he also saith, 'The sheep follow the shepherd, for they
know his voice: a stranger they will not follow, but will fly from him,
for they know not the voice of a stranger.' Such inward inspiration
doth the Holy Ghost put into the children of God, being indeed taught
of God, but otherwise unable to understand the true way of their sal-
vation. And although the wolf, as Christ saith, cometh in sheep's
clothing, yet by their fruits you shall know them. That the Romish
religion is ravening and wolfish, is apparent in three principal points.
It robbeth God of his due and only honour. It taketh away the true
comfort of conscience, in obscuring, or rather burying, of Christ and
his office of salvation. It spoileth God of his true worship and ser-
vice in spirit and truth, appointed in his commandments, and driveth
men unto that inconvenience, against which Christ with the prophet
Isaiah doth speak sharply: — 'this people honoureth me with their lips,
but their hearts are far from me; they worship me in vain, teaching the
doctrines and precepts of men.' And in another place — ' Ye cast aside
the commandments of God, to maintain your own traditions.'"
As a prisoner in Christ's cause, he resigned himself in such sort as to
forbade his wife to sue for his delivery ; and when others of his friends had
by suit almost obtained it, he discouraged them, so that they did not follow
their suit, as may appear by the following letter to his wife : —
" Grace, mercy, and peace in Christ our Lord, Entirely beloved wife,
even as unto my own soul and body, so do I daily in my hearty prayer
wish unto you: for I do daily, twice at least, in this sort remember you.
And I do not doubt, dear wife, but that both I and you, as we are written
in the book of life, so we shall together enjoy the same everlastingly,
through the grace and mercy of God our dear Father, in his Son our
Lord Jesus Christ. And for this present life, let us wholly appoint
ourselves to the will of our good God to glorify him either by life or
by death; and even that same merciful Lord make us worthy to honour
him either way as pleaseth him, Amen. I am cheerful, I thank my God
and my Christ, in whom and through whom I shall be able to fight a
good fight, and finish a good course, and then receive the crown, which
is laid up in store for me, and all the true soldiers of Christ. Wherefore,
wife, let us, in the name of our God, fight lustily to overcome the flesh,
612 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the devil, and the world. What our harness and weapons be in this
kind of fight, look in the sixth chapter unto the Ephesians, and pray,
pray, pray. I would that you make no suit for me in anywise. Thank
you know whom, for her most sweet and comfortable putting me in
remembrance of my journey whither I am passing. God send us all
good speed, and a joyful meeting. I have too few such friends to
further me in that journey, which is indeed the greatest friendship.
The blessing of God be with you all, Amen.
''A prisoner in the Lord, L. Saunders."
The constancy of this faithful servant of Christ, even unto the end, is
sufficiently manifested and declared by his valiant contest with those
two powerful enemies, antichrist and death : to neither of these did he
give place, and finally triumphed over both. When he was in confine-
ment, an order was sent to the keeper that no person should speak with
him; but his wife coming to the prison gate with her young child in
her arms, the keeper, though he durst not, on account of his charge,
suffer her to come into the prison, yet he took the infant from her, and
brought him to his father. Mr. Saunders, seeing the child, said, that
he rejoiced more to have such a boy, than he should if two thousand
pounds were given him. And to the standers-by, who praised the
goodliness of the child, he said, "What man, fearing God, would not
lose his life, rather, than by prolonging it, he should adjudge this boy
to be a bastard? Yea, if there were no other cause, for which a man
of my estate should lose his life, yet who would not give it, to vouch
this child to be legitimate, and our marriage to be lawful and holy?"
I do, good reader, recite this saying, not only to let thee see what be
thought of priests' marriage; but chiefly to let all married couples learn to
bear in their bosom true affections, unfeignedly mortified to do the natural
works and offices of married couples, so long as with their doing they may
keep Christ with a free confessing faith in a conscience unsoiled.
And now to come to the examination of this good man : after that the
bishops had kept him one whole year and a quarter in prison, at length
they called him, as they did the rest of his fellows, openly to be examined.
Of which first examination the effect and purport thus followeth :
Praised be our gracious God who preserveth his from evil, and doth give
them grace to avoid all such offences as might hinder his honour, or hurt
his church. — Being convented before the queen's most honourable council,
sundry bishops being present, the lord chancellor began thus to speak ;
Lord Chan. It is not unknown, that you have been a prisoner for such
abominable heresies and false doctrine as have been sown by you; and
now it is thought good that mercy be shewed to such as seek for it.
Wherefore if now you will shew yourself conformable, and come home
again, mercy is ready. We must say that we have fallen in manner all:
but now we are risen again, and returned to the catholic church; you
must rise with us, and come home unto it. Give us forthwith a direct
answer.
Saun. My lord, and my lords all, may it please your honours to give
me leave to answer with deliberation.
Chan. Leave off your painting and pride of speech : for such is the
EXAMINATION OF MR. SAUNDERS. 613
fashion of you all, to please yourselves in your glorious words. Answer
yes, or no.
Saun. My lord, it is no time for me now to paint. And as tor pride,
there is no great cause why it should be in me; my learning I confess
to be but small; and as for riches or worldly wealth, I have none at
all. Notwithstanding, it standeth me in hand to answer your demand
circumspectly, considering that one of these two extreme perils is
likely to fall upon me, namely, the losing of a good conscience or
the losing of this my body and life. And I tell you truth, 1 love both
life and liberty, if I could enjoy them without the hurt of my con-
science.
Chan. Conscience! you have none at all, but pride and arrogancy,
dividing yourself by singularity from the church.
Saun. The Lord is the knower of all men's consciences. And where
your lordship layeth to my charge this dividing myself from the church,
I do assure you that I live in the faith wherein I have been brought up
since I was fourteen years of age; being taught that the power of the
bishop of Rome is but usurped, with many other abuses springing
thereof. Yes, this I have received even at your hands, as a thing
agreed upon by the catholic church and public authority.
Chan. But have you received, by consent and authority, all your
heresies of the blessed sacrament of the altar?
Saun. My lord, it is less offence to cut off an arm, hand, or joint
of man, than to cut off the head. For the man may live though he lose
an arm, hand, or joint; but he cannot without his head. Now you all
had agreed to cut off the supremacy of the bishop of Rome, whom now
you will have to be the head of the church again.
Bonner interposed with a single accusation, by which he hoped to
render him at once self-confounded. Addressing the chancellor, he ob-
sequiously said — " And if it please your lordship, I have this man's
hand-writing against the blessed sacrament." Then turning scornfully
to Saunders, he asked—" How are you able to answer that?"
Saun. What I have written, that I have written, and further I will
not accuse myself. Nothing have you to burden me withal, for break-
ing of your laws since they were in force.
Chan. Well, you are obstinate, and refuse liberty.
Saun. My lord, I may not buy liberty at such a price; but I beseech
your honours to be means to the queen's majesty for such a pardon for
us, that we may live and keep our consciences unclogged, and we shall
live as most obedient subjects. Otherwise, I must say for myself, that
by God's grace I will abide the utmost extremity that man may do
against me, rather than act against my conscience.
Chan. Ah, sirrah, you will live as you like. The Donatists did desire
to live in singularity ; but indeed they were not fit to live on earth : no
more are you, and that you shall understand within these seven days:
and therefore away with him.
Saun. Welcome be it, whatsoever the will of God shall be, either life
or death. And I tell you truly, I have learned to die. But I exhort
you to beware of shedding innocent blood. Truly it will cry. The
Spirit of God rest upon you all. Amen.
614 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
This examination being ended, the officers led him out of the place,
and stayed until the rest of his fellow-prisoners were likewise examined,
that they might have them all together to prison. Mr. Saunders, stand-
ing among the officers, seeing there a great multitude of people, spoke
freely, warning them all of that which by their falling from Christ to
antichrist they deserved; and therefore exhorting them by repentance
to rise again, and to embrace Christ with stronger faith, to confess him
to the end, in the defiance of antichrist, sin, death, and the devil : so
should they retain the Lord's favour and blessing. This faithful pro-
cedure did not, of course, produce either a diminution of his adversaries'
cruelty or a delay of his mortal suffering. It rather augmented the one
and accelerated the other. Almost immediately he was delivered over
to the secular power, and was brought by the sheriffs of London to the
compter, a prisoner in his own parish of Bread-street; whereat he re-
joiced greatly, both because he found there a fellow-prisoner, Mr. Card-
maker, with whom he had much christian and comfortable discourse;
and because out of prison, as before out of a pulpit, he might have an
opportunity of preaching to his parishioners.
On the fourth day of February, Bonner came to the prison to degrade
him: which when he had done, Mr. Saunders said to him, M I thank
God t am none of your church." The day following in the morning,
the sheriff of London delivered him to certain of the queen's guard,
which were appointed to carry him to the city of Coventry, there to be
burned. On his arrival there, a poor shoemaker, who used to serve him,
came to him, and said, " O my good master, God strengthen and com-
fort you." " Good shoemaker," replied he, " I desire thee to pray for
me, for I am the most unfit man for this high office that ever was ap-
pointed to it: but my gracious God and dear Father is able to make
me strong enough." The same night he was put into the common gaol
among other prisoners, where he slept little, but spent the night in
prayer, and instructing others.
The next day, being the 8th of February, he was led to the place of
execution in the park, without the city, clad in an old gown and shirt,
bare-footed, and oftentimes falling on the ground for prayer. When
he was come nigh to the place, the officer appointed to see the execution
done, said to Mr. Saunders, that he was one of them who marred the
queen's realm with false doctrine and heresy, wherefore he deserved
death ; but yet if he would revoke his heresies, the queen would pardon
him; if not, yonder fire was prepared for him. To whom Mr. Saunders
answered, " It is not I, nor my fellow-preachers of God's truth, that
have hurt the queen's realm; but it is yourself, and such as you are,
who have always resisted God's holy word ; it is you who mar the queen's
realm. I hold no heresies, but the doctrine of God, the blessed gospel
of Christ; that hold I, that believe I, that have I taught, and that will
I never revoke." With that his tormentor cried, " Away with him."
And away from him went Mr. Saunders, with a cheerful courage, towards
the fire. He fell to the ground once more and prayed : he rose up again
and took the stake to which he should be chained in his arms, and kissed
it, saying, "Welcome the cross of Christ, welcome everlasting life:"
and being fastened to the stake, and fire put to him, he sweetly slept in
EXEMPLARY CONDUCT OF HOOPER. 615
the Lord. In his life he appeared often prophetic. He had often told
his friends, that many would suffer, if ever Mary ascended the throne.
Before we take our final leave of him, one remarkable circumstance
D reference to an earlier period of his course, merits attention. He was
acquainted with one Dr. Pendleton, an earnest preacher in king
Edwards reign. Meeting together in the country, they debated upon
what they had best do in the dangerous time that Mary's accession had
brought upon them. Saunders confessed that his spirit was ready, but
he felt the flesh was at present too weak for much suffering. But
Pendleton admonished him, and appeared all courage and forwardness
to face every peril. They both came under the controul of circumstances
to London, and there, when danger arose, Pendleton shrunk from the
cross, and Saunders resolutely took it up! "Let him that thinketh to
stand, take heed lest he fall."
SECTION II.
THE LIFE AND MARTYRDOM OF JOHN HOOPER, BISHOP OF WORCESTER
AND GLOUCESTER.
John Hooper, student and graduate in the university of Oxford,
having made great advances in the study of the sciences, was stirred
with a fervent desire to the love and knowledge of the scriptures.
Advancing more and more, by God's grace, in ripeness and spiritual
understanding, and shewing withal some sparks of his spirit, being then
about the beginning of the six articles, in the time of king Henry VIII.
fell quickly into the displeasure and hatred of certain doctors in Oxford,
who soon discovered their enmity to him, till at length, by the procure-
ment of Dr. Smith, he was compelled to quit the university. Remov-
ing from thence, he was retained in the house of Sir Thomas Arundel,
in the capacity of steward, till Sir Thomas, having intelligence of his
opinions and religion, which he in no case did favour, and yet exceed-
ingly favouring the person and character of the man, found the means
to send him with a message to the bishop of Winchester, writing his
letter privily to the bishop, by conference of learning to do some good
unto him, but in any case requiring him to send home his servant to
him again. The bishop received him courteously ; but after long con-
ference with him, perceiving that neither he could do that good which
he thought to him, nor that he would take any good at his hand, ac-
cording to Arundel's request, sent him home again, commending his
learning and wit, but yet bearing in his breast a secret enmity against
him.
Not long after this, as malice is always working mischief, intelli-
gence was given to Mr. Hooper to provide for himself, for danger was
arising against him ; whereupon he left Sir Thomas Arundel's house,
and borrowing a horse of a friend, whose life he had saved, took his
journey to the sea side to go to France, sending back the horse again
by one, who indeed did not deliver him to the owner. Mr. Hooper
being at Paris, remained there not long, but in a short time returned
into England again, and was retained by Mr. Sentlow, till he was
616 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
again molested and sought for : when he was compelled under the
pretence of being captain of a ship going to Ireland, to take to the
seas, and so escaped through France to the higher parts of Germany ;
where, commencing acquaintance with learned men, he was by them
friendly and lovingly entertained, both at Basil and at Zurich : af the
latter place in particular by Mr. Bullinger. Here he also married, and
applied very studiously to the study of the Hebrew tongue.
At length, when God saw it good to end the bloody persecution
which arose from the six articles, and to give king Edward to reign
over this realm, with some peace and rest unto the church, amongst
many other English exiles who then repaired homeward, was Mr,
Hooper, who thought it his duty to forward the cause of God in his
native country. Coming to Mr. Bullinger, and other of his acquain-
tance in Zurich, to give them thanks for their singular kindness towards
him, his kind host thus addressed him, " Mr. Hooper, although we are
sorry to part with your company for your own cause, yet much greater
cause have we to rejoice, both for your sake, and especially for the
cause of Christ's true religion, that you shall now return out of long
banishment to your native country, where you may not only enjoy your
own private liberty, but also the cause and state of Christ's church by
you may fare the better, as we doubt not but it will. Another cause,
why we rejoice with you and for you, is this ; that you shall remove not
only out of exile into liberty, but leave here a barren, sour, and un-
pleasant country, rude and savage, and shall go into a land flowing
with milk and honey, replenished with all fertility. But with this our
rejoicing, one fear and care we have, lest you being absent, and so far
distant from us, or else coming to such abundance of wealth and felicity,
in your new welfare and plenty of all things, and in your flourishing
honours, where you shall come peradventure to be a bishop, and where
you shall find so many new friends, you will forget us your old acquain-
tance and well-wishers. If however you shall forget and shake us off,
yet this persuade yourself, that we will not forget our old friend. And
if you will please not to forget us, then I pray you let us hear from
you."
Mr. Hooper gave Mr. Bullinger and the rest hearty thanks, for
their singular good-will and undeserved affection, appearing not only
now, but at all times towards him ; declaring, moreover, that as the
principal cause of his removing to his country was the matter of reli-
gion ; so touching the unpleasantness and barrenness of that country of
theirs, there was no cause therein why he could not find in his heart to
continue his life there, as soon as in any place in the world, and rather
than in his own native country, if there were nothing else in his con-
science that moved him to change. And as to the forgetting his old
friends, although the remembrance of a man's country naturally delights
him, and he could not deny but God had blessed his country with many
great advantages ; yet neither the nature of country, nor pleasure of
advantages, nor newness of friends, should ever induce him to the
oblivion of such benefactors, to whom he was so entirely bound ; and
therefore they should be sure from time to time to hear from him.
But the last news of all I may not be able to write ; " for there,"
KING EDWARD'S LETTER TO HOOPER. 617
said he, (taking Mr. Bullinger by the hand) " where I shall take most
pains, there shall you hear of me to be burned to ashes : and that shall
be news which I shall not be able to write unto you, but you shall hear
o( me from other hands."
Having thus taken his farewell of Mr. Bullinger, and his friends in
Zurich, he repaired again into England, in the reign of Edward the
Sixth; and coming to London, used continually to preach, most times
twice, and at least once every day. In all his discourses, according to
his accustomed manner, he corrected sin, and sharply inveighed against
the iniquity of the world, and corrupt abuses of the church. Nor was
his example less proper : his life was so pure and good, that no kind of
slander could fasten any fault upon him. He was of strong body, his
health whole and sound, his wit very poignant, his invincible patience
able to sustain whatever adversity could inflict. He was constant of
judgment, frugal of diet, spare of words, and still more so of time.
Jn house-keeping very liberal, and sometimes more free than his living
would extend unto.
After he had practised himself in this popular preaching, he was, at
length, and that not without the great profit of many, called to preach be-
fore the king, and soon after made bishop of Gloucester by his majesty's
commands. In that office he continued two years, and behaved himself
so well, that his very enemies could find no fault in him, except in the
way in which the foes of Daniel found fault with that holy prophet —
" concerning the law of his God." After two years he received, in con-
nection with Gloucester, the bishopric of the neighbouring city of
Worcester.
But sinister and unlucky contention concerning the ordering and con-
secration of bishops, and of their apparel, with other such trifles, began
to disturb the good beginning of this bishop. For notwithstanding that
godly reformation of religion that arose in the church of England,
besides other ceremonies more ambitious than profitable, or tending to
edification, they used to wear such garments and apparel as the popish
bishops were wont to do ; first a chymere, and under that a white
rochet; then a mathematical cap with four angles, indicative of dividing
the world into four parts. These trifles tending more to superstition
than otherwise, as he could never abide, so in no wise could he be per-
suaded to wear them. For this cause he made supplication to the
king, most humbly desiring his highness, either to discharge him of the
bishopric, or else to dispense with him for such ceremonial orders : which
petition the king granted immediately, writing to the archbishop in his
behalf. The king's letter was as follows — " Right reverend father, and
right trusty and well beloved, we greet you well. Whereas we, by
advice of our councils have called and chosen our right well beloved
Mr. John Hooper, professor of divinity, to be our bishop of Gloucester,
as well for his great knowledge, deep judgment, and long study in the
scriptures; as also for his good discretion, ready utterance, and honest
life ; to the intent that all our loving subjects, which are in his said
charge and elsewhere, might by his sound and true doctrine learn the
better their duty towards God, their obedience towards us, and love
towards their neighbour ; from consecrating of whom we understand
618 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
you to stay, because he would have you omit certain rites and ceremonies
offensive to his conscience, whereby ye think ye should fall under the
laws — we have thought good, by the advice aforesaid, to dispense and
discharge you of all manner of dangers, penalties, and forfeitures, you
shall be liable to run into by omitting any of the same. And these our
letters shall be your sufficient warrant and discharge."
The earl of Warwick seconded this request of his majesty by address-
ing another letter to the archbishop, begging that he would dispense
with Mr. Hooper's being burthened by the oath commonly used in the
consecration of bishops. But these letters availed not: the bishops still
stood earnestly in defence of the ceremonies, saying, it was but a small
matter, and that the fault was in the abuse of the things, and not in the
things themselves : adding, moreover, that Mr. Hooper ought not to be
so stubborn in so light a matter, and that his wilfulness therein was not
to be suffered. This being the case, Mr. Hooper at length agreed, that
sometimes he should in his sermons shew himself apparelled as the other
bishops were. Accordingly being appointed to preach before the king,
he appeared in the objectionable habiliments. His upper garment was
a long scarlet gown down to the foot, and under that a white linen rochet,
that covered all his shoulders. Upon his head he had a geometrical, that is, a
four-squared cap. But this private contumely and reproach, in respect of the
public profit of the church, he suffered patiently. Then also very soon these
differences vanished amidst the rage of persecution ; and the trifling shades
of opinion were lost in their unanimity of essential truths; so that, while
they were in prison, several affectionate letters passed between them. a
After this discord, and not a little vexation, about vestures, at length
Mr. Hooper entering into his diocese, there employed his time, under
king Edward's reign, with such diligence as may be an example to all
bishops. So careful was he in his cure, that he left neither pains un-
taken, nor ways unsought, how to train up the flock of Christ in the
true word of salvation, continually labouring in the same. Other men
are commonly wont, for lucre or promotion's sake, to aspire to bishop-
rics, some hunting for them, and some purchasing them, as men use to
purchase lordships. To this class of worldly men bishop Hooper was
quite contrary. He abhorred nothing more than covetousness, labour-
ing always to save and preserve the souls of his flock. No father in his
household, no gardener in his garden, nor husbandman in his vineyard,
was more or better occupied, than he in his diocese amongst his flock,
a The godly reconciliation of these good men appears by the following extract from bishop
Ridley's letter to Mr. Hooper : " My dear brother — Forasmuch as I understand by your works,
which I have yet but superficially seen, that we thoroughly agree and wholly consent together
in those things which are the grounds and substantial points of our religion, against the which
the world so furiously rageth in these our days, howsoever in time past, in certain bye-matters
and circumstances of religion, your wisdom and my simplicity (I grant) have a little jarred, each
of us following the abundance of his own sense and judgment; now, I say, be you assured that
even with my whole heart, God is my witness, in the bowels of Christ I love you in the truth,
and for the truth's sake which abideth in us, and as I am persuaded shall by the grace of God
abide in us for evermore. And because the world, as 1 perceive, brother, ceaseth not to play a
pageant, and busily conspireth against Christ our Saviour, with all possible force and power
'exalting high things against the knowledge of God,' let us join hands together in Christ; and,
if we cannot overthrow, yet to our power, and as much as in us lieth, let us shake those high
altitudes, not with carnal but with spiritual weapons ; and withal, brother, let us prepare for the
day of dissolution, by the which, after the short time of this bodily affliction, by the grace of
our Lord Jesus Christ, we shall triumph together with him in eternal glory."
EXEMPLARY CONDUCT OF HOOPER. 619
going about his towns and villages teaching and preaching to the people.
The time that he had to spare from preaching, he bestowed either in
bearing public causes, or else in private study, prayer, and in visiting
schools : with his continual doctrine he adjoined due and discreet cor-
rection, not so severe to any as to those who, for abundance of riches
and wealthy state, thought they might do what they pleased. And
doubtless he spared no kind of people, but was indifferent to all, as well
rich as poor, to the great shame of many men in these days ; whereof
we see so many addicted to the pleasing of the great and rich, that in
the mean time they have no regard to the meaner sort whom Christ
hath bought as dearly as the other.
In his personal and private character how virtuous and good he was,
may be conceived and known evidently by this, that as he was hated by
none but the evil, the worst of them could not reprove his life in any par-
ticular. At home, in his domestic concerns, he exhibited an example of a
worthy prelate's life : bestowing the most part of his care upon the public
flock and congregation of Christ, for which also he spent his blood ;
yet there was nothing wanting in him to bring up his own children in
learning and good manners : insomuch that it is difficult to say, whether
he deserved more praise for his fatherly usage at home, or his public
conduct abroad. Every where he kept religion in one uniform doctrine
and integrity : so that if you entered into the bishop's palace, you would
suppose yourselves to have entered into some church or temple. In every
corner there was the beauty of virtue, good example, honest conversation,
and reading of the holy scriptures. There was not to be seen in his house
any courtly rioting or idleness ; no pomp, no dishonest word, no swear-
ing, could there be heard. As to the revenues of his bishoprics, if
any thing surmounted thereof, he saved nothing, but bestowed it in
hospitality. Twice I was, as I remember, in his house in Worcester, where,
in his common hall, I saw a table spread with good store of meat, and beset
full of beggars and poor folk ; and I asking his servants what this meant,
they told me that every day their lord and master's manner was, to have to
dinner a certain number of poor folk of the said city by course, who were
served by four at a mess, with hot and wholesome meats ; and, when they
were served, then he himself sat down to dinner, and not before. After this
sort and manner master Hooper executed the office of a most careful and
vigilant pastor, by the space of two years and more, so long as the state of
religion in king Edward's time safely flourished. And would God that all
other bishops would use the like diligence and care in their function !
After this, in the reign of queen Mary, religion being subverted and
changed, this good bishop was one of the first who was sent for by a
pursuivant to London. Two reasons were assigned for this step.
The first, that he might answer to Dr. Heath, then re-appointed bishop
of that diocese, who was deprived thereof in king Edward's days,
why he continued in an office to which he had no right ? And
next to render an account to Bonner, bishop of London, because
he had in king Edward's time been one of his accusers. Now
although he was not ignorant of the evils that should happen to-
wards him, being admonished by certain of his friends to get away, and
shift for himself, yet he would not prevent them, but remained, saying,
620 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
" Once did I flee, and take me to my feet ; but now, because I am
called to this place and vocation, I am thoroughly persuaded to remain,
and to live and die with my sheep." On reaching London, before he
could see Heath or Bonner, he was intercepted, and commanded to
appear before the queen and her council, to answer certain bonds and
obligations, wherein he was said to be bound unto her. When he
met the council, Gardiner received him very opprobriously, railing at
him, and accusing him of his religion. He freely and boldly answered,
and cleared himself. But he was, notwithstanding, commanded to ward,
and it was declared unto him at his departure, that the cause of his impri-
sonment was only for certain sums of money, for which he was indebted
to the queen, and not for religion. This, how false and untrue it was,
shall in its place more plainly appear. Here it is enough to remark
that at a second summons, such was the noise, that he could not be
permitted to plead his cause, but was deprived of his bishoprics.
Before we detail the examinations of Hooper, it will be proper to let
him relate the cruel captivity he endured for eighteen months in the
Fleet prison. "The first of September, 1553, 1 was committed unto the
Fleet, from Richmond, to have the liberty of the prison ; and within
six days after I paid five pounds sterling to the warden for fees for my
liberty ; who immediately upon payment thereof, complained unto the
bishop of Winchester, upon which I was committed to close prison
a quarter of a year in the Tower-chamber of the Fleet, and used ex-
tremely ill. By the means of a good gentlewoman, I had liberty to
come down to dinner and supper, but was not suffered to speak with
any of my friends ; but as soon as dinner and supper were done,
to repair to my chamber again. Notwithstanding, whilst I came down
thus to dinner and supper, the warden and his wife picked quarrels with
me, and complained untruly of me to their great friend the bishop of
Winchester.
" After a quarter of a year, Babington the warden, and his wife, fell
out with me respecting the wicked mass: and thereupon the warden
resorted to the bishop of Winchester, and obtained to put me into the
wards, where I have continued a long time, having nothing appointed
to me for my bed, but a little pad of straw and a rotten covering, with
a tick and a few feathers therein, the chamber being vile and stinking,
until by God's means good people sent me bedding to lie on. On one
side of the prison is the sink and filth of the house, and on the other
the town ditch, so that the stench of the house hath infected me with
sundry diseases. During this time I have been sick, and the doors, bars,
hasps, and chains being all closed upon me, I have mourned, called,
and cried for help; but the warden when he hath known me many times
ready to die, and when the poor men of the wards have called to help
me, hath commanded the doors to be kept fast, and charged that none
of his men should come at me, saying, * Let him alone, it were a good
riddance of him.' And he did this Oct. 18, 1553, as many can witness.
" I paid always like a baron to the said warden, as well in fees, as for
my board, which was twenty shillings a week, besides my man's table,
until I was wrongfully deprived of my bishoprics; and since that time,
I have paid him as the best gentleman doth in his house ; yet hath he
SEVERE TREATMENT OF HOOPKH. 621
used me worse, and more vilely, than the veriest slave that ever came
to the common side of the prison. He hath also imprisoned my man,
William Downton, and stripped him of his clothes to search for letters,
and could find none, but a little remembrance of good people's names
who had given me their alms to relieve me in prison ; and to undo them
also, the warden delivered the same bill unto Gardiner, God's enemy
and mine.
" 1 have suffered imprisonment almost eighteen months, my goods, liv-
ings, friends, and comfort taken from me; the queen owing me, by just
account, fourscore pounds or more. She hath put me in prison, and
giveth nothing to keep me, neither is there suffered any one to come at
me, whereby I might have relief. I am by a wicked man and woman
cruelly treated, so that I see no remedy, saving God's help, but I shall
be cast away in prison before I come to judgment. But 1 commit my
just cause to God, whose will be done, whether it be by life or death."
The first examination of bishop Hooper was before five bishops as com-
missioners — of London, Durham, Winchester, Chichester, and Landaff.
On his entering their presence, Gardiner, bishop of Winchester and lord
chancellor asked whether he was married. To this the good man smil-
ingly answered, " Yes, my lord, and will not be unmarried till death
unmarry me. And this is not enough to deprive me, except you do it
against the law." The subject of marriage was no more talked of
then for some time : but all began to make great outcries, and laughed,
and used such gestures as were unseemly for the place, and for
such a matter. Day, bishop of Chichester, called Hooper a hypo-
crite, with vehement voice, and scornful countenance. Tonstal, bishop
of Durham, called him beast; so did Smith, one of the clerks of
the council, and several others that stood by. At length the bishop of
Winchester said, that all men might live chaste who would, and brought
in this text. — " There are those that have become eunuchs for the king-
dom of heaven."
To this Hooper said, the text proved not that all men could live
chaste, but such to whom it was given ; and read the verse before
it. But again there was a clamour and cry, mocking and scorn-
ing, calling him beast, and exclaiming that the text could not be ex-
amined. Then Hooper said, that it appeared by the old canons, that
marriage was not forbidden unto priests, and then named the decrees.
But the bishop of Winchester sent for another part, namely, the Clemen-
tines, or the Extravagants, and perversely, against all reason, determined
that he should have no other, until he was judged by these. Then began
such a noise, tumult, and speaking together of a great many who favoured
not the cause, that nothing was done or spoken orderly or charitably.
Afterwards, judge Morgan began to rail at Hooper a long time, with
many opprobrious and foul words relative to his proceedings at Gloucester,
in punishing of men, and said there was never such a tyrant as he was.
After that the bishop of Chichester said, that the council of Ancyra, which
was before the council of Nice, was against the marriage of priests.
To this Hooper said, my lord of Chichester knoweth, that the great
council of Nice, by the means of one Paphnutius, decreed, That no
622 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
minister should be separated from his wife. Again such clamours and
cries were used, that the council of Nice was not attended to. After
alternate clamour and silence, and much illiberal speech, Tonstal, bishop
of Durham, asked him whether he believed the corporeal presence of
the sacrament. He said plainly, that there was none such, neither did
he believe any such thing. The offended bishop would then have read
out of a book; but there was such a noise and confused talk on every
side, that he did not proceed. Then the bishop of Winchester asked,
What authority had moved him to deny the corporeal presence? He
said, the authority of God's word, and alleged this text, " Whom
heaven must hold until the latter day." But the bishop of Winchester
would have made that text to serve nothing for his purpose, and said, he
might be in heaven, and in the sacrament also. Then Hooper would
have opened the text, but all who stood about the bishop prevented his
speaking with clamours and cries, so that he was not permitted to say
any more against Gardiner. Whereupon they bade the notaries write,
that he was married, and said that he would not go from his wife ; and
that he believed not the corporeal presence in the sacrament, for which
he was worthy to be deprived of his bishopric.
The next examination of Hooper took place at Winchester house,
rather more privately than the former, no doubt to prevent much of the
noise made on that occasion. On the 22nd of January, 1555, Babington,
the warden of the Fleet, was commanded to bring him before Gardiner
and some other bishops to Winchester house, in St. Mary Overy's:
where the latter moved Hooper earnestly to forsake the evil and corrupt
doctrine preached in the days of king Edward, to return to the unity
of the catholic church, and to acknowledge the pope's holiness to be
head of the same church, according to the determination of the whole
parliament : promising, likewise, that as they with other their brethren,
had received the pope's blessing, and the queen's mercy, even so mercy
was ready to be shewed to him and others, if he would arise with them,
and condescend to the pope's holiness.
Master Hooper answered, that forasmuch as the pope taught doctrine
altogether contrary to the doctrine of Christ, he was not worthy to be
accounted as a member of Christ's church, much less to be head thereof;
wherefore he would in no wise condescend to any such usurped jurisdic-
tion. Neither esteemed he the church, whereof they call him head, to be
the catholic church of Christ ; for the church only heareth the voice of
her spouse Christ, and flieth the strangers. " Howbeit," saith he, " if in
any point to me unknown I have offended the queen's majesty, I shall
most humbly submit myself to her mercy, if mercy may be had with safety
of conscience, and without the displeasure of God." Answer was made,
that the queen would show no mercy to the pope's enemies. Whereupon
Babington was commanded to carry him to the Fleet again. He did so,
and shifted him from his former chamber into another, near unto the
warden's own chamber, where he remained six days ; and, in the mean
time, his former chamber was searched by Dr. Martin and others, for
writings and books which master Hooper was thought to have made,
but none were found.
CONDEMNATION OF HOOPER AND ROGERS. 623
One more examination, or rather effort to make Hooper recant, oc-
curred at the same place, and before the same crafty and cruel inquisitors.
Jan. 28th, the bishop of Winchester, and other commissioners, again sat
in judgment at St. Mary O very 's, where Hooper appeared before them
in the afternoon, and after much reasoning and disputation, was com-
manded aside, till Mr. Rogers, who was then come, had been examined.
Examinations ended, the sheriffs were commanded, about four o'clock, to
carry them to the compter in Southwark, there to remain till the follow
ing day at nine o'clock, to see whether they would relent and come
home again to the catholic church. Hooper went before with one of
the sheriffs, and Mr. Rogers came after with the other; and being out of
the church door, Hooper looked back and stayed a little till Mr. Rogers
drew near, unto whom he said, " Come, brother Rogers, must we two
take this matter first in hand, and begin to fry these fagots?" "Yes,
sir," said Mr. Rogers, "by God's grace." " Doubt not," said Hooper,
"but God will give strength." So going forwards, there was such a
press of people in the streets, who rejoiced at their constancy, that
they had much ado to pass.
By the way the sheriff said to master Hooper, " I wonder that ye were
so hasty and quick with my lord chancellor, and did use no more patience."
He answered, " Master sheriff, I was nothing at all impatient, although
I was earnest in my Master's cause, and it standeth me so in hand, for
it goeth upon life and death ; not the life and death of this world only,
but also of the world to come." Then they were committed to the
keeper of the compter, and appointed to different chambers, with com-
mand that they should not be suffered to speak one with another, nei-
ther was any other permitted to come to them that night.
Upon the day following, January 29th, at the hour appointed, they
were brought up again by the sheriffs before Gardiner and the commis-
sioners in the church, where they were the day before. And after long
and earnest talk, when they perceived that Hooper would by no means
condescend unto them, they condemned him to be degraded, and read
unto him his condemnation. That done, Mr. Rogers was brought before
them, and treated in like manner; and both were delivered to the secular
power, the two sheriffs of London, who were ordered to carry them to
the Clink, a prison not far from the bishop of Winchester's house, and
there to remain till night. When it became dark, Hooper was led by
one of the sheriffs, with many bills and weapons, through the bishop of
Winchester's house, and over London-bridge through the city to
Newgate, and by the way some of the Serjeants were sent before, to put
out the coster-mongers' candles, who used to sit with lights in the streets;
either fearing, that the people would have made some attempt to have
taken him away from them by force, if they had seen him go to that
prison ; or else, being burdened with an evil conscience, they thought
darkness to be a most fit season for such a business. But notwithstand-
ing this device, the people having some fore-knowledge of his coming,
many of them came forth to their doors with lights, and saluted him,
praising God for his constancy in the true doctrine which he had taught
them, and desiring God to strengthen him in the same to the end. The
624 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
bishop required the people to make their earnest prayers to God for
him; and so went through Cheapside to the place appointed, and was
delivered as close prisoner to the keeper of Newgate, where he remained
six days, nobody being permitted to come to him, saving his keepers,
and such as should be appointed thereto.
During this time, Bonner, bishop of London, and others at his ap-
pointment, as Fecknam, Chedsey, and Harpsfield, resorted several times
unto him, to try if by any means they could persuade him to relent,
and become a member of their church. All the ways they could devise,
they attempted. For, besides the disputations and allegation of testi-
monies of the scriptures, and of ancient writers wrested to a wrong
sense, according to their accustomed manner, they used also all out-
ward gentleness and significations of friendship, with many great pro-
mises of worldly wealth; not omitting, at the same time, most grievous
threatenings, if with gentleness they could not prevail ; but they found
him always the same man, steadfast and immoveable. When they per-
ceived that they could by no means reclaim him to their purpose, with
such persuasions and offers as they used for his conversion, then went
they by false rumours and reports of recantations to bring him, and
the doctrine of Christ which he professed, in discredit with the people.
This being spread abroad, and believed by some of the weaker sort,
Hooper was greatly grieved thereat, that the people should give credit
to such false rumours, having so simple a ground. Hence he was con-
strained to address the following letter to his fellow protestants.
"The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with all them who unfeign-
edly look for the coming of our Saviour Christ. Dear brethren and
sisters in the Lord, and my fellow-prisoners for the cause of God's gos-
pel, I do much rejoice and give thanks unto God for your constancy
and perseverance in affliction, unto whom I wish continuance unto the
end. And as I do rejoice in your faith and constancy in afflictions that
be in prison; even so do I mourn and lament to hear of our dear
brethren that yet have not felt such dangers for God's truth, as we have
and do feel, and are daily like to suffer more, yea, the very extreme and vile
death of the fire : yet such is the report abroad, as I am credibly informed,
that I, John Hooper, a condemned man for the cause of Christ, should
now after sentence of death, a prisoner in Newgate, and looking daily
for execution, recant and abjure that which heretofore I have preached.
And that talk a*iseth from this, that the bishop of London, and his
chaplains resort unto me. Doubtless, if our brethren were as godly as
I could wish them, they would think, that in case I did refuse to talk
with him, they might have just occasion to say, that I was unlearned,
and durst not speak with learned men, or else proud, and disdained to
speak with them. Therefore to avoid just suspicion of both, I have,
and do daily speak with them when they come, not doubting but they
report that I am neither proud nor unlearned. And I would wish all
men to do as I do in this point. For I fear not their arguments, nei-
ther is death terrible unto me, praying you to make true report of
HOOPER'S RKUOYAI. TO GLOUCESTER. 625
the same, as occasion shall serve; and that I am more confirmed in the
truth which i have heretofore preached, by their coming.
"Therefore, you that may send to the weak brethren, pray them
that they trouble me not with such reports of recantations as they do.
For I have hitherto left all things of the world, and suffered great pains
and imprisonment, and I thank God I am as ready to suffer death as a
mortal man can be. It were better for them to pray for us, than to
credit or report sucli rumours that are untrue. We have enemies enough
of such as know not God truly ; but yet the false report of weak brethren
is a double cross. I wish you eternal salvation in Jesus Christ, and also
require your continual prayers, that he which hath begun in us may con-
tinue it to the end. I have taught the truth with my tongue, and with my
pen heretofore; and hereafter shortly shall confirm the same, by God's grace,
with my blood. Forth of Newgate, Feb. 2, 1555. Your brother in Christ,
John Hooper."
Upon Monday following, Bonner, bishop of London, came to Newgate,
and there degraded bishop Hooper. The same Monday at night, his
keeper g-ave Hooper a hint that he should be sent unto Gloucester
to suffer death, whereat he rejoiced very much, lifting up his eyes and
hands to heaven, and praising God that he saw it good to send him
among the people over whom he was pastor, there to confirm with his
death the truth which he had before taught them : not doubting but the
Lord would give him strength to perform the same to his glory : and
immediately he sent to his servant's house for his boots, spurs, and
cloak, that he might be in readiness to ride when he should be
called.
The day following, about four o'clock in the morning, the keeper
with others came and searched him, and the bed whereon he lay, to see
if he had written any thing; after which, he was led by the sheriffs of
London, and their officers, from Newgate to a place appointed, not far
from St. Dunstan's church in Fleet-street, where six of the queen's
guard were appointed to receive him to conduct him to Gloucester,
there to be delivered unto the sheriff, who with the lord Chandos,
Mr. Wicks, and other commissioners, were appointed to see execution
done: which guard brought him to the Angel, where he brake his fast
with them, eating his meat at that time more liberally than he had
a good while before. About break of day he leaped cheerfully on
horseback, having a hood upon his head, under his. hat, that he should
not be known, and so took his journey joyfully towards Gloucester;
and by the way the guard inquired of him, where he was accustomed
to bait or lodge, but always carried him to another inn than the one
he named.
On the Thursday following he came to Cirencester, fifteen miles from
Gloucester, and there dined at a woman's house who had always hated
the truth, and spoken all the evil she could of him. This woman, per-
ceiving the cause of his coming, shewed him all the friendship she
could, and lamented his case with tears, confessing that she before had
often reported, that if he were put to the trial, he would not stand to
his doctrine. After dinner he resumed his journey, and came to Glou-
cester about five o'clock. At a mile without the town much people
2 s
626 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
assembled, who cried and lamented his state; insomuch, that one of the
guard rode post into the town, to require aid of the mayor and sheriffs,
fearing lest he should have been taken from them. Accordingly, the
officers and their retinue repaired to the gate with weapons, and com-
manded the people to keep their houses; but there was none that gave
any signification of violence. He was lodged at one Ingram's house
in Gloucester; and that night, as he had done all the way, he eat his
meat quietly, and slept soundly, as it was reported by the guard and
others. After his first sleep, he continued in prayer until morning,
and all the day, except a little time at his meals, and when conversing
with such as the guard permitted to speak to him, he spent in prayer.
Sir Anthony Kingston, formerly Hooper's good friend, was appointed
by the queen's letters to attend at his execution. As soon as he saw the
bishop he burst into tears. Hooper did not know him at first; the
knight therefore addressing him, said, " Why, my lord, do not you know
me — an old friend of yours, Anthony Kingston?" "Yes," answered
Hooper, " Sir Anthony Kingston; I do know you well, and am glad to
see you in health, and praise God for the same." " But I am sorry to
see you, my lord, in this case," replied Kingston, " for as I understand
you are come hither to die. But alas! consider that life is sweet, and
death is bitter. Therefore seeing life may be had, desire to live; for
life hereafter may do good." " Indeed, it is true, Sir Anthony, I am
come hither to end this life, and to suffer death here, because I will
not gainsay the truth that I have heretofore taught amongst you in this
diocese, and elsewhere; and I thank you for your friendly counsel, although
it be not as I could wish. True it is that death is bitter, and life is sweet ;
but the death to come is more bitter, and the life to come is more sweet."
After these, and many other words, they took leave of each other,
Kingston with bitter tears, Hooper with tears also trickling down his
cheeks. At his departure the bishop told him, that all the trouble he
had sustained in prison, had not caused him to utter so much sorrow.
Then the bishop was committed by the guard into the custody of the
sheriffs of Gloucester. These men, named Jenkins and Bond, with the
mayor and aldermen, repaired to his lodging, and at the first meeting
saluted him, and took him by the hand. He was not insensible to their
apparent kindness, nor unaware of their resolution, notwithstanding, to
execute the law as it now stood. His remarkable and exemplary address
to them merits particular attention.
" I give most hearty thanks to you, and to the rest of your brethren,
that you have vouchsafed to take me a prisoner and a condemned man,
by the hand; whereby, to my rejoicing, it is very apparent that your
old love and friendship towards me is not altogether extinguished : and
I trust also that all the things I have taught you in times past, are not
utterly forgotten, when I was your bishop and pastor. For which most
true and sincere doctrine, because I will not now account it falsehood
and heresy, as many other men do, I am sent hither, you know, by the
queen's commands, to die, and am come where I taught it, to confirm it
with my blood. And now, master sheriffs, I understand by these good
men, and my good friends, at whose hands I have found as much favour
and gentleness on the road hither, as a prisoner could reasonably require,
HOOPER'S CONDUCT BEFORE EXECUTION. 627
for which I most heartily thank them, that I am committed to your cus-
tody, as unto those that must see me brought to-morrow to the place
of execution. My request to you shall be only, that there may be a
quick Hre, shortly to make an end; and in the mean time I will be as
obedient to you as yourselves could wish. If you think I do amiss in
anv thing, hold up your finger and I have done. For I am not come
hither as one forced or compelled to die ; for it is well known, I might
have had my life with worldly gain ; but as one willing to offer and give
my life for the truth, rather than consent to the wicked religion of the
bishop of Rome, received and set forth by the magistrates in Eng-
land to God's high displeasure and dishonour ; and I trust, by God's
grace, to-morrow to die a faithful subject to God, and a true obedient
subject to the queen."
These words bishop Hooper used to the mayor, sheriffs, and aldermen,
whereat many mourned and lamented. Notwithstanding, the two sheriffs
went aside to consult, and were determined to have lodged him in the
common gaol of the town, called Northgate, if the guard had not made
earnest intercession for him ; who declared at large how quietly, mildly,
and patiently, he had behaved on the way ; adding thereto, that any
child might keep him well enough, and that they themselves would rather
take pains to watch with him, than that he should be sent to the common
prison. It was therefore determined that he should still remain in
Robert Ingram's house; and the sheriffs, the sergeants, and other officers
agreed to watch with him that night themselves. His desire was, that
he might go to bed betime, saying, that he had many things to re-
member : accordingly he went at five o'clock, and slept one sleep
soundly, then spent the rest of the night in prayer. After he had got
up in the morning, he desired that no man should be suffered to come
into the chamber, that he might be solitary till the hour of execution.
About eight o'clock came Sir John Bridges, lord Chandos, with a
great band of men, Sir Anthony Kingston, Sir Edmund Bridges, and
other commissioners appointed to see the execution. At nine, Hooper
prepared himself to be in readiness, the time being now at hand.
Immediately he was brought down from his chamber, by the sheriffs,
who were accompanied with bills and other weapons. When he saw
the multitude of weapons, he said to the sheriffs, " I am no traitor,
neither needed you to have made such a business to bring me to the
place where I must suffer ; for if you had suffered me, I would have gone
alone to the stake, and troubled none of you." Afterwards looking
upon the multitude of people who were assembled, being by estimation
about 7000, he spake unto those who were about him, saying, " Alas !
why are these people assembled and come together? Peradventure they
think to hear something of me now, as they have in times past : but
alas ! speech is prohibited me. Notwithstanding the cause of my death
is well known unto them. When I was appointed here to be their pastor,
I preached unto them true and sincere doctrine, and that out of the
word of God; and because I will not now account the same to be heresy
and untruth, this kind of death is prepared for me." Having said this,
he went forward, led between the two sheriffs, in a gown of his host's,
his hat upon his head, and a staff in his hand to rest himself upon ; for
628 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the pain of the sciatica, which he had taken in prison, caused him some-
what to halt. All the way, being strictly charged not to speak, he could
not be perceived once to open his mouth ; but beholding the people,
who mourned bitterly for him, he would sometimes lift up his eyes to-
wards heaven, and look very cheerfully upon such as he knew; and he
was never known, during the time of his being amongst them, to look
with so happy and ruddy a countenance as he did then.
When he came to the place where he should die, he smilingly beheld
the stake, which was near to the great elm-tree over against the college
of priests, where he had been wont to preach. The place round about
the houses, and the boughs of the trees, were filled with spectators :
and in the chamber over the gate stood the priests of the college. Then he
kneeled down (forasmuch as he could not be suffered to speak unto the
people) to prayer, and beckoned six or seven times unto one whom he
well knew, that he might hear his prayer, and report faithfully the same.
When this person came to the bishop he poured tears upon his shoulders
and in his bosom, and continued his prayer for half an hour : which
prayer was drawn from the whole creed. While at his prayer a box was
brought and laid before him upon a stool, with his pardon from the
queen if he would recant. At the sight of this he cried, " If you love
my soul, away with it." The box being taken away, the lord Chandos
said, " Seeing there is no remedy, dispatch him quickly." Hooper
replied, " Good, my lord ; I trust your lordship will give me leave to
make an end of my prayers."
When he had risen from his last devotions in this world, he prepared
himself for the stake, and put off his host's gown, and delivered it to
the sheriffs, requiring them to see it restored unto the owner, and put off
the rest of his apparel, unto his doublet and hose, wherein he would
have burned. But the sheriffs would not permit that, unto whose plea-
sure he very obediently submitted himself ; and his doublet, hose, and
waistcoat were taken off. Thus being in his shirt, he took a point
from his hose himself, and trussed his shirt between his legs, where he
had a pound of gunpowder in a bladder, and under each arm the like
quantity delivered him by the guard. So desiring the people to say the
Lord's Prayer with him, and to pray for him, he went up to the stake;
when he was at it, three irons made to bind him thereto were brought :
one for his neck, another for his middle, and the third for his legs.
But he refusing them, said, " You have no need thus to trouble your-
selves. I doubt not God will give me strength sufficient to abide the
extremity of the fire without bands : notwithstanding, suspecting the
frailty and weakness of the flesh, but having assured confidence in God's
strength, I am content you do as you shall think good."
Then the hoop of iron prepared for his middle was brought, which
being somewhat too short, he shrank and pressed in his body with his
hand, until it fastened : but when they offered to have bound his neck
and legs with the other hoops, he refused them, saying, " I am well
assured I shall not trouble you." Being now ready he looked around on
all the people, of whom he'might be well seen, for he was both tall, and
stood also upon a high stool, and beheld that in every corner there was
nothing to be seen but weeping and sorrowful people. Then lifting up
LINES ON HOOPER'S MARTYRDOM. 629
his eyes and hands to heaven he prayed in silence. By and by, he that
was appointed to make the lire came to him and asked him forgiveness.
He asked why lie should forgive him, saying that he never knew any
offence he had committed against him. " O, sir," said the man, " I
am appointed to make the fire." " Therein," said Mr. Hooper, " thou
dost nothing to offend me : God forgive thee thy sins, and do thine office,
1 pray thee." Then the reeds were cast up, and he receiving two bundles
of them in his own hands embraced them, and putting one of them
under each arm, showed with his hand how the rest should be bestowed,
and pointed to the place where any were wanting.
Command was now given that the fire should be kindled. But be-
cause there were not fewer green fagots than two horses could carry,
it did not kindle speedily, but was some time before it took the reeds
upon the fagots. At length it burned about him ; but the wind having
full strength in that place, and it being a lowering cold morning, it
blew the flame from him, so that he was in a manner little more than
touched by the fire. Endeavours were then made to increase the flame,
and then the bladders of gunpowder exploded ; but did him little good,
being so placed, and the wind having such power. In this fire he
prayed with a loud voice, " Lord Jesus, have mercy upon me ! Lord
Jesus, have mercy upon me ! Lord Jesus, receive my spirit !" And these
were the last words he was heard to utter. Yet he struck his breast
with his hands, until by the renewing of the fire his strength was gone,
and his hand stuck fast in striking the iron upon his breast. So imme-
diately, bowing forwards, he yielded up his spirit. Thus lingering were
his last sufferings. He was nearly three quarters of an hour or more
in the fire, as a lamb, patiently bearing the extremity thereof, neither
moving forwards, backwards, nor to any side ; but he died as quietly
as a child in his bed ; and he now reigneth as a blessed martyr in the
joys of heaven, prepared for the faithful in Christ before the founda-
tion of the world ; for whose constancy all christians are bound to
praise God.
A POEM, BY CONRADE GESNER, ON THE MARTYRDOM OF DR. JOHN
HOOPER, BISHOP OF GLOUCESTER AND WORCESTER.
Hooper, un vanquish 'd by Rome's cruelties,
Confessing Christ in his last moments, dies :
Whilst flames his body rack, his soul doth fly,
Inflam'd with faith, to immortality !
His constancy on earth has rais'd his name,
And gave him entrance at the gates of fame,
Which neither storms, nor the cold north-wind's blast,
Nor all-devouring time shall ever waste :
For he whom God protects shall sure attain
That happiness, which worldlings seek in vain.
Example take by him, you who profess
Christ's holy doctrines ; ne'er the world caress
In hopes of riches ; or if fortune frown
With inauspicious looks, be not cast down ;
"For man ne'er 9aw, nor can his heart conceive,
What God bestows on them that righteous live.
630 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
This good bishop and servant of God whose life and martyrdom is now
declared, being in prison, wrote divers books and treatises, to the number
of twenty- four. Also divers letters most fruitful and worthy to be read, es-
pecially in these dangerous times, of those who seek to serve and follow the
Lord through all the storms of this evil world, as by the perusal of the fol-
lowing to his godly wife Anne Hooper, you shall better understand.
" Dearly beloved and godly wife,
" Our Saviour Jesus Christ in St. Matthew's gospel said to his disciples,
that it was necessary scandals should come ; and that they could not be
avoided, he perceived as well by the condition of those that should
perish and be lost for ever, as also by their affliction they should be
saved. For he saw the greatest part of the people would contemn and
neglect whatsoever true doctrine should be shewn unto them, or else
receive and use it as they thought good to serve their pleasures, without
any profit to their souls, not caring whether they lived as they were com-
manded by God's word or not ; but would think it sufficient to be
counted to have the name of a christian, with such works and fruits of
its profession as their fathers and elders, after their custom and manner,
esteem and take to be good fruits and faithful works, without trying
them by the word of God. These men by the just judgment of God, be
delivered unto the craft and subtlety of the devil, that they may be kept
by one scandalous stumbling-block or other never to come unto Christ,
who came to save those that were lost ; as you may see how God deli-
vered wicked men up unto their own lusts, to do one mischief after
another, careless of coming into a reprobate mind, that forgetteth itself,
and cannot know what is expedient to be done, or to be left undone;
because they close their eyes, and will not see the light of God's word
offered unto them : and being thus blinded, they prefer their own
vanities before the truth of God's word. Where such corrupt minds,
be, there are also corrupt notions of God's honour : so that the mind
taketh falsehood for truth, superstitions for true religion, death for life,
damnation for salvation, hell for heaven, and persecution of Christ's
members for God's service and honour. And as such persons voluntarily
reject the word of God ; so God most justly delivereth them up to
blindness of mind and hardness of heart, that they cannot understand,
nor yet consent to any thing that God would have preached, and set forth
to his glory, after his own will and word ; but they hate it mortally, and of
all things most detest God's holy word. As the devil hath entered into
their hearts, that they cannot or will not come to Christ, to be instructed
by his holy word : even so can they not abide any other person to be a
christian, and to lead his life after the word of God; but hate him, per-
secute him, rob him, imprison him, yea and kill him, if God suffer it.
And so much are these wicked men blinded, that they regard no law,
whether it be the law of God or man, but persecute such as never
offended, yea, do evil to those that have prayed daily for them, and
wish them God's grace.
" In their blind fury they have no respect to nature. For brother per-
secuted brother, and father the son : most dear friends in devilish slander
HOOPER'S LKTTKR TO HIS WIFE. 631
and offence become most mortal enemies. And no marvel ; for when
they have chosen sundry masters, the one the devil, the other God, the
one shall agree with the former and the other with the latter. For this
cause Christ said, it is expedient and necessary that scandals should
come, and many may be advised to keep the babes of Christ from the
heavenly Father. But Christ saith, Woe be unto him by whom the of-
fence cometh. Yet is there no remedy, man being of such corruption
and hatred towards God, but that the evil shall be deceived, and perse-
cute the good ; and the good shall understand the truth, and suffer per-
secution for it unto the world's end. For ' as he that was born after
the flesh, persecuted in times past him that was born after the spirit,
even so it is now.' Therefore as we live in this life amongst so many
perils and dangers, we must be well assured by God's word how to bear
them, and how patiently to take them as they be sent to us from God.
We must also assure ourselves, that there is no other remedy for chris-
tians in the time of trouble, than Christ himself hath appointed us.
In St. Luke he giveth us this commandment, 'Ye shall possess your
lives in peace.' In which words he giveth us both commandment what
to do, and also great comfort and consolation in all troubles.
" That the spirit of man may feel these consolations, the Giver of
them, the heavenly Father, must be prayed unto for the merits of Christ's
passion : for it is not the nature of man that can be contented, until it
be regenerated and possessed with God's Spirit, to bear patiently the
troubles of the mind or of the body. When the mind and heart of a
man seeth on every side sorrow and heaviness, and the worldly eye
beholdeth nothing but such things as be troubles and wholly bent to rob
the poor of what he hath, and also to take from him his life; except
we weigh these brittle and uncertain treasures with the riches of the
life to come; and this life of the body, with the life in Christ's blood; and
so for the love and certainty of the heavenly joys contemn all things
present, doubtless we shall never be able to bear the loss of goods, life,
or any other thing of this world.
"Therefore St. Paul giveth a godly and necessary lesson to all in this
short and transitory life, and therein sheweth how a man may best bear
the iniquities and troubles of this world. ' If ye be risen again with
Christ, seek the things which are above, where Christ sitteth at the right
hand of God the Father.' Wherefore, the christian's faith must be
always upon the resurrection of Christ when he is in trouble ; and in
that glorious resurrection he shall not only see continual and perpetual
joy and consolation ; but also victory and triumph over all persecution,
trouble, sin, death, hell, the devil, and other tyrants and persecutors of
Christ, and of Christ's people, the tears and weeping of the faithful
dried up, their wounds healed, their bodies made immortal in joy, their
souls for ever praising the Lord, in conjunction and society everlasting
with the blessed company of God's elect in perpetual felicity. But the
words of St. Paul in that place, if they be not marked, shall do little
profit to the reader or hearer, and give him no peace at all in this im-
patient and cruel world.
"When a man hath, by seeking the word of God, found out what the
things above be, then must he, saith Paul, ' set his affections ' on them. And
632 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM..
this commandment is more hard than the other. For men's knowledge
many time seeth the best, and knoweth that there is a life to come,
better than this life present, yet they set not their affections upon it :
they more affect and love indeed a trifle of nothing in this that pleaseth
their hearts, than the treasure of treasures in heaven, which their own judg-
ment saith is better than all worldly things. Wherefore we must " set our
affections on the things that be above ;" that is to say, when any thing
worse than heaven upon the earth offereth itself to be ours, if we will
give our good wills to it, and love it in our hearts, then ought we to see
by the judgment of God's word, whether we may have the world with-
out offence of God, and such things as be for this worldly life without
his displeasure. If we cannot, St. Paul's commandment must take place
— ' Set your affections on things that are above.' If the riches of this
world may not be gotten nor kept by God's law, neither our lives be
continued without the denial of his honour, we must set our affections
upon the riches and life that are above, and not upon things that are on
the earth. Therefore this second commandment of St. Paul requireth,
that our minds judge heavenly things to be better than things upon the
earth, and the life to come better than the life present : so we should
choose them before the other, and prefer them, and have such affection
to the best, that in no case we set the worst before it, as the most part
of the world doth and hath done, for they acknowledge the best and
prove it, and yet follow the worst.
" But these things, my godly wife, require rather thought, meditation,
and prayer, than words or talk. They are easy to be spoken of, but not
so easy to be used and practised. Wherefore seeing they be God's
gifts, and yet they may become our privileges, we must seek them at our
heavenly Father's hand, who seeth, and is privy how poor and wretched
we be, and how naked, how spoiled, and destitute of all his blessed gifts
we be by reason of sin. He did command, therefore, his disciples, when
he shewed them that they should take patiently the state of this present
life full of troubles and persecution, to pray that they might well escape
those troubles that were to come, and be able to stand before the Son of
man. When you find yourself too much oppressed — as every one shall
be sometimes with the fear of God's judgment — use the 77th psalm that
beginneth, " I will cry unto God with my voice, and he shall hearken
unto me." In which psalm is both godly doctrine and great consola-
tion unto the man or woman that is in anguish of mind.
" Use also in such trouble the 88th psalm, wherein is contained the
prayer of one that was brought to extreme anguish and misery, and
being vexed with adversaries and persecutions, saw nothing but death
and hell. Yet although he felt in himself, that he had not only man,
but also God angry towards him: 'yet he by prayer humbly resorted
unto God. Remember also that none of us must murmur against God,
but always say his judgments are right and just, and rejoice that it
pleaseth him by troubles to use us as he used heretofore such as he most
loved in this world. " Be glad, and rejoice, for your reward is great in
heaven." His promises shall by his grace, work both consolation and
patience in afflicted christians. And when our Saviour Christ hath
willed men in trouble to be content and patient, because God in the end
HOOPER'S LETTER TO 1 1 IS WIFE. 633
of trouble, in Christ hath ordained eternal consolation; he useth also to
take from us all shame and rebuke, and make it an honour to suffer for
Christ, because the wicked world doth curse and abhor such poor trou-
bled christians. Wherefore Christ placethall his honourably, and saith,
' Even so persecuted they the prophets that were before you.' We
must therefore patiently suffer, and willingly attend upon God's doings,
although they seem clean contrary, after our judgment, to our wealth
and salvation : as Abraham did, when bid to offer his son Isaac, in
whom God promised the blessing and multiplying of his seed.
" And judge things indifferently, my good wife, the troubles be not yet
generally, as they were in our good fathers' time, soon after the death
and resurrection of our Saviour Jesus Christ, whereof he spake in St.
Matthew. From which place you and I have taken many times great
consolation, and especially of the latter part of the chapter, wherein is
contained the last day and end of all troubles both for you and me,
and for all such as love the coming of our Saviour Christ to judgment.
Remember, therefore, that place, and mark it again, and you shall in
this time see this great consolation, and also learn much patience.
Were there ever such troubles as Christ threatened upon Jerusalem ?
Was there since the beginning of the world such affliction ? Who were
then best at ease ? The apostles that suffered in body persecution, and
gathered of it ease and quietness in the promises of God. And no
marvel, for Christ saith, " Lift up your heads, for your redemption is at
hand ;" that is, your eternal rest approacheth and draweth near. The
world is stark blind, and more foolish than foolishness itself, and so are
the people of this world : for when God saith, trouble shall come, they
will have ease. And when God saith, be merry and rejoice in trouble,
we lament and mourn, as though we were to be cast-away. But this
our flesh (which is never merry with virtue, nor sorry with vice : never
laugheth with grace, nor ever weepeth with sin) holdeth fast with the
world, and letteth God slip. But, my dearly beloved wife, you know
how to perceive and to beware of the vanity, and crafts of the devil
well enough in Christ. And that you may the better have patience
in the Spirit of God, read again the 24th of St. Matthew, and
mark what difference is between the destruction of Jerusalem, and
the destruction of the whole world, and you shall see, that then
there were alive many offenders to repent : but at the latter day
there shall be absolute judgment and sentence, never to be revoked,
of eternal life and eternal death upon all men : and yet towards
the end of the world we have not so much extremity as they had
then, but even as we are able to bear. So doth the merciful Father
lay upon us now imprisonment, and I suppose for my part shortly death;
now spoil of goods, loss of friends,* and the greatest loss of all, the
knowledge of God's word. His holy will be done. I wish in Christ
Jesus our only Mediator and Saviour, your constancy and consolation,
that you may live for ever and ever, whereof in Christ I doubt not ;
to whom, for his most blessed and painful passion, I commit you,
Amen. "
October 13, a.d. 1553.
634 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
While in prison, Hooper received a letter from his learned and
pious friend Henry Bullinger, of Zurich. It was well worthy of its au-
thor and of the spirit of a saint. He exhorted him to bear with firmness
that awful task to which the Lord had appointed to him, and to look
beyond his troubles to the crown that awaited him. a One more incident
amongst other memorable things worthy to be remembered in the history
of Hooper, is not to be forgotten : it happened a little after the beginning
of his imprisonment.
A friar came from France to England with great vaunt, asking who
was the greatest heretic in England, thinking no doubt to do some great
act upon him. To whom answer was made, that Dr. Hooper had then
the greatest name to be the chiefest ringleader, who was then in the
Fleet. The friar coming to him, asked why he was committed to prison?
He said for debt. " Nay," said he, " it was for heresy;" which when
Hooper had denied, " What sayest thou," quoth he, " to hoc est corpus
meumV Hooper, being partly moved at the sudden question, desired
that he might ask of him another, which was this, " what remains after
the consecration in the sacrament, any bread or no?" " No bread at
all," said the friar. " And when you break it, what do you break —
whether bread or the body?" said Hooper. " No bread," said the friar;
"but the body only." " If ye do so," said Hooper, "you do great
injury, not only to the body of Christ, but also to the scriptures,
which say, Ye shall not break of him one bone." With that the friar
having nothing to answer, recoiled back, and with circles and crosses
began to use exorcism as though Hooper had bewitched him !
SECTION III.
THE LIFE AND MARTYRDOM OF DR. ROWLAND TAYLOR, WHO SUFFERED
FOR THE TRUTH OF GOD'S WORD, UNDER THE TYRANNY OF THE ROMAN
BISHOPS, THE 9TH DAY OF FEBRUARY, 1555.
The town of Hadley was one of the first that received the word of God
in all England, at the preaching of Thomas Bilney ; by whose industry the
gospel of Christ had such gracious success, and took such root there, that
a great number became exceedingly learned in the holy Scriptures, as well
women as men. Of this parish Dr. Rowland Taylor was vicar, being
doctor both in the civil and canon laws, and a right perfect divine. In
addition to eminent learning, his known attachment to the pure prin-
a " Go forwards," he wrote, " constantly to confess Christ, and to defy Antichrist, being
mindful of this most holy and most true saying of our Lord Jesus Christ : ' He that overcometh
shall possess all things ; and I will be his God, and he shall be my son.' The first death is soon
overcome, although a man must burn for the Lord's sake : for they say well that do affirm this
our fire to be scarcely a shadow of that which is prepared for unbelievers, and them that fall
from the truth. Moreover, the Lord granteth unto us, that we may easily overcome by his
power the first death, the which he himself did taste and overcome; promising withal such joys
as never shall have end, unspeakable, and passing all understanding, the which we shall possess
so soon as ever we do depart hence. — Therefore, seeing you have such a large promise, be strong
in the Lord, fight a good fight, be faithful to the Lord unto the end. I and all my household,
with my sons-in-law and kinsmen, are in good health in the Lord. They do all salute you, and
pray for your constancy ; being sorrowful for you and the rest of the prisoners. If there be any-
thing wherein I may do any pleasure to your wife and children, they shall have me wholly at
commandment. The Lord Jesus preserve and deliver you from all evil, with all them that call
upon his name. Farewell, and farewell eternally. You know the hand, H. B."
ALTERCATION BETWEEN DR. TAYLOR AND POSTER. (iM. r >
eiples of Christianity recommended him to the favour and friendship of
Cranmer, with whom he lived, till through his interest he obtained the
vicarage of Hadley. This charge he attended with the utmost diligence,
recommending and enforcing the doctrines of the gospel, not only by
his judicious discourses from the pulpit, but also by the whole tenor of
his life and conversation.
Dr. Taylor continued promoting the interest of the great Redeemer,
and the souls of mankind, both by his preaching and example during
the reign of king Edward; but on his demise, and on the succession of
Mary to the throne, he could not escape the cloud that burst on the
protestant community. Two of his parishioners, Foster an attorney,
and Clark a tradesman, out of blind zeal, resolved that mass should be
celebrated in all its superstitious forms, in the parish church at Hadley,
on the Monday before Easter. They had even caused an altar to be
built in the chancel for that purpose, which being pulled down by the
protestant inhabitants, they erected another, and prevailed with the
minister of an adjacent parish to celebrate mass in the passion-week.
Taylor being employed in his study, was alarmed by the ringing of
bells at an unusual time, and went to the church to inquire the cause.
He found the great doors fast, but lifting up the latch of the chancel
door, he entered, and was surprised to see a priest in his habit pre-
pared to celebrate mass, and guarded by a party of men under arms,
to prevent interruption
Being vicar of the parish, he demanded of the priest the cause of such
proceeding without his knowledge or consent; and how he dared pro-
fane the temple of God with abominable idolatries. Foster, the lawyer,
insolently replied — " Thou traitor, how darest thou to intercept the exe-
cution of the queen's orders?" but the doctor undauntedly denied the
charge of traitor, and asserted his mission as a minister of Christ, and
delegation to that part of his flock, commanding the priest as a wolf
in sheep's clothing to depart, nor infect the pure church of God with
popish idolatry. A violent altercation then ensued, between Foster and
Dr. Taylor, the former asserting the queen's prerogative, and the other
the authority of the canon-law, which commanded that no mass be said,
but at a consecrated altar. Meanwhile the priest, intimidated by the
intrepid behaviour of the protestant minister, would have departed
without saying mass, but Clark said to him, " Fear not, you have a
super altare;" which is a consecrated stone, commonly about a foot
square, which the popish priests carry instead of an altar, when they
say mass in gentlemen's houses. Clark then ordered him to proceed
in his present duty. They then forced the doctor out of the church,
celebrated mass, and immediately informed the bishop of Winchester of
his behaviour, who summoned him to appear and answer the complaints
alleged against him.
Dr. Taylor upon receipt of the summons cheerfully prepared to obey
the same : and on some of his friends advising him to fly beyond sea, in
order to avoid the cruelty of his inveterate enemies, he told them that
he was determined to go to the bishop; and he accordingly repaired to
London and waited on him. As soon as Gardiner saw him, according
to his common custom he reviled him, calling him knave, traitoi,
636 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
heretic, with many other villanous reproaches, which Taylor, having
patiently heard for some time, at last answered thus without fear or
impropriety—" My lord, I am neither traitor nor heretic, but a true
subject, and a faithful christian, and am come according to your com-
mandment, to know the cause of your lordship's sending for me."
"Art thou come, thou villain?" said the violent Gardiner; "how
darest thou look me in the face for shame? Knowest thou not who I
am?" " Yes," said Dr. Taylor, " I know who you are, Dr. Stephen
Gardiner, bishop of Winchester, and lord chancellor, and yet but a
mortal man. But if I should be afraid of your lordly looks, why fear
you not God, the Lord of us all? How dare you for shame look any
christian in the face, seeing you have forsaken the truth, denied our
Saviour Christ and his word, and done contrary to your own oath and
writing? With what countenance will you appear before the judgment
seat of Christ, and answer to your oath made first unto king Henry,
and afterwards unto Edward, his son?"
The bishop answered, "That was Herod's oath, unlawful; and there-
fore worthy to be broken: I have done well in breaking it; and I thank
God I am come home again to our mother, the catholic church of Rome,
and so I would thou shouldest do. Our holy father the pope hath dis-
charged me of it." Then said Dr. Taylor, " But you shall not be so dis-
charged before Christ, who doubtless will require it at your hands, as a
lawful oath made to our liege and sovereign lord the king, from whose
obedience no man can quit you, neither the pope nor any of his." " I see,"
quoth the bishop, " thou art an arrogant knave and a very fool." " My
lord," said Dr. Taylor, " I am a Christian man ; and you know that ' he
that saith to his brother, Raca, is in danger of a council : and he that saith,
Thou fool, is in clanger of hell fire/ " The bishop answered, '* Ye are
false and liars, all the sort of you." " Nay," quoth Dr. Taylor, "we are
true men, and know that it is written, ' The mouth that lieth, slayeth the
soul.* And therefore we abide by God's word, which ye deny and forsake."
"Thou hast resisted the queen's proceedings," said Gardiner, "and would
not suffer the parson of Aldham, (a very virtuous and devout priest,) to say
mass in Hadley." Dr. Taylor answered, " My lord, I am parson of Hadley ;
and it is against all right, conscience, and laws, that any man should come
into my charge, and presume to infect the flock committed unto me with
the venom of the popish idolatrous mass." With that the bishop waxed
very angry, and said, " Thou art a blasphemous heretic indeed, that blas-
phemest the blessed sacrament, (and put off his cap,) and speakest against
the holy mass, which is made a sacrifice for the quick and the dead."
Dr. Taylor answered, " Nay, I blaspheme not the blessed sacrament which
Christ instituted, but I reverence it as a Christian man ought to do ; and
confess that Christ ordained the holy communion in the remembrance of
his death and passion. — Christ gave himself to die for our redemption upon
the cross, whose body there offered was the propitiatory sacrifice, full, per-
fect, and sufficient unto salvation for all them that believe in him. And this
sacrifice did our Saviour Christ offer in his own person himself once for all,
neither can any priest any more offer him, nor we need any more sacrifice."
Then the bishop called his men, and said, " Have this fellow to the King's
Bench, and charge that he be straitly kept." Then Taylor knelt, and held
DEGRADATION ()!•' DR. TAYLOR. G37
up both his hands and said, " Good Lord, I thank thee! and from the
tyranny of the bishop of Rome, and all his detestable errors, idolatries,
and abominations, good Lord deliver us! and God be praised for good
king Edward." They carried him to prison to the King's Bench, where
he was confined almost two years. Of course Gardiner's command for
strict confinement was obeyed. These several particulars are mentioned
in a letter that Dr. Taylor wrote to a friend of his, thanking God for
his grace, at the same time that he had confessed his truth, and was
found worthy for truth to suffer prison and bonds, beseeching his friends
to pray for him, that he might persevere constant unto the end.
In January, 1555, Dr. Taylor, Mr. Bradford, and Mr. Saunders, were
again called to appear before the bishops of Winchester, Norwich,
London, Salisbury, and Durham, and being again charged with heresy
and schism, a determinate answer was required, whether they would
submit themselves to the Roman bishop, and abjure their errors, or hear
their condemnation. Dr. Taylor and his fellows answered stoutly and
boldly, that they would not depart from the truth which they had
preached in king Edward's days, neither would they submit to the
Romish Antichrist ; but they thanked God for so great mercy, that he
would call them to be worthy to suffer for his word. When the bishops
saw them so boldly, constantly, and unmovably fixed in the truth, they
read the sentence of death upon them, which when they heard they most
joyfully gave God thanks, and stoutly said unto the bishops, " We
doubt not, but God the righteous judge will require our blood at your
hands ; and the proudest of you all shall repent this receiving again of
Antichrist, and your tyranny that ye now show against the flock of
Christ."
W r hen Dr. Taylor had lain in the Compter in the Poultry about a week,
on Feb. 4, 1555, bishop Bonner, with others, came to degrade him, bringing
with them such ornaments as do appertain to their massing-mummery. He
called for Taylor to be brought unto him; the bishop being then in the
chamber where the keeper of the Compter and his wife lay. Dr. Taylor
was accordingly brought down from the chamber to Bonner. " I wish
you would remember yourself, and turn to your holy mother church, so
may you do well enough, and I will sue for your pardon," said Bonner.
Dr. Taylor answered — " I wish that you and your fellows would turn to
Christ. As for me, I will not turn to antichrist." Said the bishop, " I
am come to degrade you: wherefore put on these vestures." Dr. Taylor
said resolutely, " I will not." " Wilt thou not? I shall make thee, ere I
go," replied Bonner. " You shall not, by the grace of God," said
Taylor. Again Bonner charged him upon his obedience to do it, but
he would not. Upon this he ordered another to put them upon his
back; and being thoroughly furnished therewith, he set his hands to his
side, walking up and down, and said — " How say you, my lord, am not
I a goodly fool? How say you, my masters, if I were in Cheapside,
should I not have boys to laugh at these apish toys and trumpery?" At
this Bonner was so enraged, that he would have g;iven Dr. Taylor a
stroke on the breast with his crosier-staff, when his chaplain said — "My
lord, strike him not, for he will certainly strike again." The bishop
638 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
then laid his curse upon him, but struck him not. Dr. Taylor said,
" Though you curse me, yet God doth bless me."
The night after his degradation r his wife, his son, and his servant,
came to him, and were, by the keepers, permitted to sup with him: at
their coming, they kneeled down and prayed. After supper, walking
up and down, he gave God thanks for his grace that had so called him,
and given him strength to abide by his holy word; and turning to his
son he said — " My dear son, Almighty God bless thee, and give thee
his Holy Spirit, to be a true servant of Christ, to learn his word, and
constantly to stand by his truth all thy life long : and see that thou fear
God always. Flee from all sin and wicked living : be virtuous, serve
God with daily prayer, and apply to the holy book. In any wise see
that thou be obedient to thy mother, love her and serve her; be ruled
by her now in thy youth, and follow her good counsel in all things.
Beware of the lewd company of young men that fear not God, but who
follow their lusts and vain appetites. Fly from whoredom, and hate all
filthy living, remembering that I, thy father, die in the defence of holy
marriage. Another day, when God shall bless thee, love and cherish
the poor people, and count that thy chief riches is to be rich in alms ;
and when thy mother is waxed old, forsake her not ; but provide for
her to thy power, and see that she lack nothing : for so will God bless
thee, and give thee long life upon earth and prosperity, which I pray
God to grant thee." And then turning to his wife, he said —
" My dear wife, continue stedfast in the fear and love of God : keep
yourself undefiled from popish idolatries and superstition. I have been
unto you a faithful yoke-fellow, and so have you to me, for which I pray
God to reward you, and doubt not but he will reward it. Now the time
is come that I shall be taken from you, and you discharged of the wed-
lock bond towards me : therefore I will give you the counsel which I
think most expedient for you. You are yet a child-bearing woman, and
therefore it will be most convenient for you to marry."
On the following morning the sheriff of London with his officers,
came by two o'clock, and brought him forth, and without any light led
him to the Woolpack, an inn without Aldgate. Mrs. Taylor, suspecting
that her husband would that night be carried away, watched all night
in St. Botolph's church porch, without Aldgate, having with her two
children, the one named Elizabeth, an orphan, whom the doctor had
adopted at three years old; the other named Mary, his own daughter.
When the sheriff and his company came against St. Botolph's church,
the grateful little Elizabeth cried — "O my dear father! mother, mother,
here is my father led away!" "Rowland," said his wife, " where art
thou?" for it was so dark a morning, that the one could not see the
other. " Dear wife, I am here," said the doctor, and stopped. The
sheriff's men would have forced him on; but the sheriff said — " Stay a
little, I pray you, and let him speak to his wife."
She then came to him, when he took his daughter Mary in his arms,
while he, his wife, and Elizabeth, kneeled down and said the Lord's
prayer. At which sight the sheriff wept much, as did several others of
the company. The prayer finished, Taylor rose up and kissed his wife,
DR. TAYLOR'S MEETING WITH HIS WIFE. 639
and pressing her hand, lie said — " Farewell, my dear wife; be of good
comfort, for I am quiet in my conscience. God shall stir up a father
tor inv children." And then he kissed his daughter Mary, and said, " God
bless thee, and make thee his servant:" and kissing- Elizabeth, he said,
God bless thee. I pray you all, stand strong and stedfast unto Christ and
his word, and beware of idolatry." Then said his wife unto him, "God
be with thee, mv dear Rowland: I will, with God's grace, meet thee at
Hadley."
He was then led on, while his wife followed him. As soon as he
came to the YVoolpack, he was put into a chamber, wherein he was kept
with four yeomen of the guard, and the sheriff's men. As soon as he
entered the chamber, he fell on his knees, and gave himself wholly to
prayer. The sheriff then seeing Mrs. Taylor there, would in no case
grant her to speak any more with her husband, but gently desired her
to go to his house, and use it as her own, promising her, that she should
lack nothing, and sending two officers to conduct her thither. Not-
withstanding this, she desired to go to her mother's, whither the officers
led her, and charged her mother to keep her there till they came again.
Meanwhile the journey to Hadley was delayed. Dr. Taylor was con-
fined at the Woolpack by the sheriff and his company, till eleven
o'clock, by which time the sheriff of Essex was ready to receive him;
when they sat him on horseback within the inn, the gates being shut.
On coming out of the gates his servant John Hull stood at the rails
with young Taylor. When the doctor saw them, he called them saying
— " Come hither, my son Thomas." John Hull lifted the child up, and
set him on the horse before his father; who then put off his hat, and
said to the people — " Good people, this is mine own son, begotten in
lawful matrimony: and God be blessed for lawful matrimony." Then
he lifted up his eyes towards heaven and prayed for his child, placing
his hat upon his head. After blessing him, he delivered him to his
faithful servant, whom he took by the hand and said — " Farewell, John
Hull, the most faithful servant ever man had." After this they rode
forth, the sheriff of Essex, and four yeomen of the guard, and the sheriff's
men leading them.
When they were come almost to Brentwood, one Arthur Faysie, a man
of Hadley, who formerly had been Dr. Taylor's servant, met with them,
and he, supposing him to have been at liberty, said — " Master, I am
glad to see you again at liberty," and took him by the hand. " Sir,"
returned the sheriff, "he is a prisoner; what hast thou to do with him?"
" I cry your mercy," said Arthur, "I knew not so much, and I thought
it no offence to talk to a true man." The sheriff was very angry with
this, and threatened to carry Arthur with him to prison ; notwithstanding
he bid him get quickly away. And so they rode forth to Brentwood,
where they caused to be made for Dr. Taylor a close hood. This they
did, that no man should know him, nor he to speak to any man ; which
practice they used also with others.
All the way, Dr. Taylor was joyful and merry, as one that accounted
himself going to a most pleasant banquet or bridal. He spake many
notable things to the sheriff and yeomen of the guard that conducted him,
and often moved them to weep through his much earnest calling upon
640 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
them to repent, and turn to the true religion. Of these yeomen of the
guard three used him very tenderly, but the fourth, named Holmes,
treated him most unkindly. The party supped and slept at Chelmsford]
At supper the sheriff earnestly besought him to return to the popish
religion, thinking with fair words to persuade him, and said — " Good
Doctor, we are sorry for you, considering the loss of such a man as
you. You would do much better to revoke your opinions, and return
to the catholic church of Rome, acknowledge the pope's holiness to be
the supreme head of the church, and reconcile yourselves to him. You
may do well yet if you will : doubt not but you shall find favour at the
queen's hands. I and all these your friends will be suitors for your
pardon; this council I give you, Doctor, of a good heart and will to-
wards you : and therefore I drink to you." In this joined all the rest.
When the cup was handed to him, he staid a little, as one studying
what answer he might give. At last he said — " Mr. Sheriff, and my
masters all, I heartily thank you for your goodwill; I have attended
to your words, and marked well your counsels. And to be plain with
you, I find that I have been deceived myself, and am like to deceive
a great -many of Hadley of their expectation." With that word they
all rejoiced. " Yes, Doctor," said the sheriff, " God's blessing on
your heart; hold you there still. It is the most comfortable word we
have heard you speak yet." The cheerful man then explained himself,
" 1 will tell you how I have been deceived, and, as I think, I shall
deceive a great many. I am, as you see, a man of a very large body,
which I thought should have been buried in Hadley church-yard, had I
died as I hoped I should have done ; but herein I was deceived ; and
there are a great number of worms in Hadley church yard, which would
have had merry feeding upon me ; but now I know we shall be deceived,
both I and they ; for this carcass must be burned to ashes, and they
shall lose their feast." When the sheriff and his company heard him say
so, they were amazed, and looking one on another, marvelled at his con-
stant mind, that thus without fear he could speak of the torment and
death now prepared for him.
At Chelmsford he was delivered to the sheriff of Suffolk, and by him
conducted to Hadley. On their arrival at Lavenham, the sheriff staid
there two days ; and thither came to him a great number of gentlemen
and justices, who were appointed to aid him. These endeavoured very
much to reduce the Doctor to the Romish religion, promising him his
pardon, which they said they had for him. They also promised him
great promotions, even a bishopric if he would take it : but all their
labour and flattery were in vain.
When they came to Hadley, and were passing the bridge, there waited
a poor man with five children ; who when they saw Dr. Taylor, fell
down upon their knees, and holding up their hands, cried with a loud
voice — " O dear father and good shepherd ! God help and succour thee
as thou hast many a time succoured us !" Such witness had the ser-
vant of God of his virtuous and charitable life. The streets of Hadley
were crowded with men and women of the town and country, who waited
to see him ; and in beholding him led to death, with weeping eyes and
lamenting voices they cried one to another — " Ah, good Lord! there
BURNING OF DR. ROWLAND TAYLOR. 641
goeth our good shepherd from us, who so faithfully hath taught us, so
fatherly hath cared for us, and so godly hath governed us ! Good Lord,
strengthen and comfort him." Arriving over against the alms-houses, which
he well knew, he cast money to the poor people, that remained out of what
had been given him in the time of his imprisonment. His living of Hadley
they took from him at his first going to prison, so that he was sustained
by the charitable alms of good people that visited him.
At the last, coming to Aldham-common, and seeing a great multitude,
he asked, " What place is this, and what meaneth it that so much people
are gathered hither?" It was answered, "It is Aldham-common, the place
where you must suffer ; and the people are come to behold you." Then
said he, "Thanked be God, I am even at home;" and so alighted from
his horse, and with both his hands rent the hood from his head. When the
people saw him, they cried, " God save thee, good Dr. Taylor ! Jesus
Christ strengthen thee and help thee; the Holy Ghost comfort thee :" with
such other like godly wishes. Then desired Dr. Taylor license of the
sheriff to speak ; but he denied it him. Perceiving that he could not be
suffered to speak, he sat down, and seeing one named Soyce, he called
him, and said — " Soyce, I pray thee come and pull off my boots, and
take them for thy labour : thou hast long looked for them, now take
them." Then he rose up and put off his clothes unto his shirt, and
gave them away. Which done, he said with a loud voice — " Good
people, I have taught you nothing but God's holy word, and those les-
sons that I have taken out of God's blessed book, the Holy Bible: and
I am come hither this day, to seal it with my blood."
On hearing his voice, the yeoman of the guard who had used him cruelly
all the way, gave him a great stroke upon the head and said — " Is that
keeping thy promise, thou heretic?" Then seeing they would not permit
him to speak, he kneeled down and prayed, and a poor woman who was
among the people stepped in and prayed with him : they endeavoured
to thrust her away, and threatened to tread her down with their
horses : notwithstanding this she would not remove, but abode and
prayed with him. When he had finished his devotions, he went to
the stake and kissed it, and set himself into a pitch barrel, which
they had brought for him to stand in, and thus stood with his
back upright against the stake, with his hands folded together, and
his eyes towards heaven, and continually prayed. Then they bound
a chain around him, and the sheriff called Richard Donningham, a
butcher, and commanded him to setup the fagots; but the man refused,
and said — " I am lame, sir, and not able to lift a- fagot." The sheriff
on this threatened to send him to prison ; still he would not do it. The
sheriff then compelled several worthless fellows of the multitude to set
up the fagots and make the fire, which they most diligently did : and
one of them cruelly cast a fagot at the martyr, which struck him on
the face, and the blood ran down. He meekly said — " O friend, I
have suffering enough, what needed that?"
Sir John Shelton standing by, as Dr. Taylor was speaking, and say-
ing the psalm Miserere in English, struck him on the lips — '■* You knave,"
he said, "speak Latin, or I will make thee." At last they kindled
the fire ; when the martyr, holding up his hands, called upon God, and
2 T
642 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
said, " Merciful Father of heaven, for Jesus Christ my Saviour's sake,
receive my soul into thy hands." He then remained still without either
crying or moving, with his hands folded together, till Soyce with an hal-
berd struck him on the head so violently, that his brains fell out, and
the dead corpse fell down into the fire. Thus rendered he his soul
into the hands of his merciful Father, and to his most dear and certain
Saviour Jesus Christ, whom he most entirely loved, faithfully and
earnestly preached, obediently followed in living, and constantly glorified
in death.
These severities were very hateful to the nation. It was observed
that in king Edward's time, those that opposed the laws were only
turned out of their benefices, and some few of them were imprisoned ;
but now men were put in prison on trifling pretences, and kept there till
laws were made, by which they were condemned merely for their opinions,
when they had acted nothing contrary to law. One piece of cruelty was
remarkable — when the council sent away those who were to be burnt in
the country, they threatened to cut out their tongues if they would not
promise to make no speeches to the people ; to which they, to avoid
that butchery, consented. Those who loved the reformation were now
possessed with great aversion to the popish party, and the body of the
nation now detested this cruelty, and began to hate king Philip for it.
Gardiner and the other counsellors had openly said, that the queen set
them on to it, so that the blame of it was laid on the king, the sourness
of whose temper, together with his bigotry in matters of religion, made
it seem reasonable. He finding that this was likely to raise such pre-
judices against him as might probably spoil his design of making himself
master of England, took care to vindicate himself. Accordingly his con-
fessor, Alphonsus, a Franciscan, preached a sermon at court against
taking people's lives for opinions in religion ; and inveighed against the
bishops for doing it; thus the blame of it was turned back on them, and
this made them stop for some weeks ; but at last they resolved rather to
bear it avowedly, than not advance in their favourite career of blood !
At this time a petition was printed beyond sea, by which the reformers
addressed themselves to the queen : they set before her the danger of
being carried by a blind zeal to destroy the members of Christ, as St.
Paul had done before his conversion : they reminded her of Cranmer's
interposing to preserve her life in her father's time : they cited many
passages out of the books of Gardiner, Bonner, and Tonstal, by which
she might see that they were not actuated by true principles of conscience,
but were turned as their fears or interests led them. They shewed her
how contrary persecution was to the spirit of the gospel ; that Christians
tolerated Jews ; and that Turks, notwithstanding the barbarity of their
tempers, and the cruelty of their religion, yet tolerated Christians.
They reminded her, that the first law for burning in England was
made by Henry the IV. as a reward to the bishops who had helped him
to depose Richard the II. and so to mount the throne. They repre-
sented to her, that God had trusted her with the sword, which she ought
to employ for the protection of her people, and not to abandon them to
the cruelty of wolves. The petition also appealed to the nobility and
the rest of the nation, on the dangers of a Spanish yoke, and a bloody
CRUELTIES OF BONNER. 643
inquisition set before them. Upon this the popish authors wrote several
books in justification of those proceedings- They observed that the
Jews were commanded to put blasphemers to death ; and said, the
heretics blasphemed the body of Christ, and called it only a piece of
bread. Various other pleas were set up, and the nation had bitter
experience in the coming years of the vigilance and industry with
which they were acted upon.
SECTION IV.
AN ACCOUNT OF SEVERAL PROTESTANTS, WHO WERE PERSECUTED, TOR-
MENTED, AND MOST OF THEM BURNED, UNDER THE TYRANNY OF
BONNER, BISHOP OF LONDON.
Stephen Gardiner, having condemned and burned several great and
learned men, presumed that these examples would deter all in future
from opposing the popish religion : but in this he found himself deceived,
for within eight or nine days after sentence had passed against bishop
Hooper and others, six other christians were brought to be examined for
the same cause. Gardiner seeing this, became discouraged, and from
that day meddled no more in such kind of condemnations ; but referred
the whole of this cruel business to the more sanguinary Bonner, bishop
of London ; who called before him in his consistory at St. Paul's (the lord
mayor and several aldermen sitting with him) the six persons, upon the
8th of February, and on the next day read the sentence of condemna-
tion upon them. But as their death did not take place till the next
month, we will defer the account till we come to the time of their suf-
fering, and proceed with other incidents of this bloody reign. What
occasioned their execution to be delayed even a month, cannot with
certainty be declared ; conjecture, however, reasonably ascribes it to
the lenient sermon of Alphonsus, the king's confessor : for, added to
the discourse already mentioned, he preached other sermons of the same
kind, in which he pleaded the cause of reasoning to convert heretics,
rather than burning to destroy them.
Dr. Robert Farrar, bishop of St. David's, was about this time appre-
hended, and sent to his diocese, where, as we shall soon perceive, he
suffered the usual cruel death. Some trifling disturbances in London
were made a pretext for arresting and imprisoning other protestants.
The lord chancellor caused the image of Thomas a. Becket to be set up
over the Mercers' chapel door, in Cheapside,in the form and shape of a
bishop, with mitre and cross, but within two days after its erection, its
head was taken off; whereupon arose great trouble, and many were
suspected : among whom one Mr. John Barnes, mercer, dwelling over
against the chapel, was vehemently by the lord chancellor charged as
the offender, and the rather as he was a professor of the truth. Where-
fore he and three of his servants were committed to prison : and at his
delivery, although nothing could be proved against him, he was bound
in a great sum of money, as well to build it up again so often as it
should be broke down, as also to watch and keep the same. Therefore
644 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the image was again set up; but in a few days the head was again
broken off; which offence was so heinously taken, that the next day,
there was a proclamation that whoever would discover the perpetrator,
should not only have his pardon, but also one hundred crowns of gold,
with hearty thanks. But it was never known who did it.
Queen Mary at length, after long delay, made full answer to the king
of Denmark, who had written two letters to her in the behalf of Mr.
Coverdale, for his deliverance, who at that time went under sureties, and
was in great danger, had he not been rescued by the suit and letters of
the Danish monarch. An intimation was set forth in Februarv 15/55, in the
name of bishop Bonner, wherein was contained a general monition, and
strict charge given to every man and woman within his diocese, to pre-
pare themselves against the approaching Lent, to receive the glad tidings
of peace and reconciliation sent from pope Julius III. by Pole his car-
dinal and legate.
Judge Hales, of Kent, was now brought before the lord chancellor,
and examined respecting his having resisted the ceremony of the mass,
or rather for having acted according to his duty as a justice, and as
the law then stood, when several Romish priests had been indicted and
brought before him. Not giving satisfactory answers to the chancellor,
he was committed to prison. While there he was waited upon by
Dr. Day and judge Portman, who by some means so worked upon his
mind that he was filled with despair; and after in vain attempting to
destroy himself by a penknife, he found means of drowning himself in
a shallow river. This unhappy gentleman had, at the death of king
Edward, stood firmly in defence of Mary's claim and title to the crown.
But this service was found insufficient to protect him from the perse-
cuting rage of the Roman catholic bishops and priests.
Mention was made before of six prisoners brought before Bonner the 8th
of February, whose names were Tomkins, Pygot, Knight, Haukes, Law-
rence, and Hunter. Thomas Tomkins, a weaver by occupation, and an
honest Christian, dwelling in Shoreditch, was kept in prison six months,
and treated with the utmost cruelty. Bonner's rage was so great against
him that he beat him about the face, and plucked off a piece of his beard
with his own hands : yet was Tomkins so endued with God's mighty
Spirit, and so constantly planted in the perfect knowledge of God's truth,
that by no means could he be removed therefrom. Whereupon the bishop,
being greatly vexed, devised another practice not so strange as cruel, fur-
ther to try his constancy. So being at his palace at Fulham, and having
with him Dr. Chedsey, masters Harpsfield, Pembleton, Willerton, and
others standing by, he called for Tomkins; who coming before the bishop,
and standing as he was wont in defence of his faith, Bonner fell from
beating to burning. For, having a taper or wax candle of three or four
wicks standing upon the table, he took Tomkins by the fingers, and held
his hand directly over the flame, supposing that by the smart and pain of
the fire being terrified, he would leave off the defence of his doctrine which
he had received. Tomkins, thinking that he was there presently to die,
began to commend himself unto the Lord, saying, " O Lord, into thy hands
I commend my spirit," etc. His hand being in burning, Tomkins afterwards
reported to one James Hinse, that his spirit was so rapt that he felt no
FIRST EXAMINATION OF TOMKINS. 645
pain. In the burning he never shrunk, till the veins shrunk, and the
sinews burst, and the water spurted in Mr. Harpsfield's face: insomuch
that he, moved witli pity, desired the bishop to stay, saying, that he had
tried him enough."
When he had been half a year in prison, he was brought with several
others before bishop Bonner in his consistory, to be examined. Against
him first was brought forth a certain bill or schedule subscribed with
his own hand, the fifth day of the same month, containing these words
following — "Thomas Tomkins of Shoreditch, and of the diocese of
London, hath believed and doth believe, that in the sacrament of the
altar, under the forms of bread and wine, there is not the very body
and blood of our Saviour Jesus Christ in substance, but only a token
and remembrance thereof, the very body and blood of Christ being only
in heaven and no where else. By me, Thomas Tomkins."
On this being read he was asked, whether he did acknowledge the
same subscription to be of his own hand. He granted it so to be. The
bishop then went about to persuade him with fair words, rather than
with good reasons, to relinquish his opinions, and to return to the unity
of the catholic church, promising if he would do so to remit all that
was past. B-ut he constantly refused. When the bishop saw he could
not convince him, he brought forth and read to him another writing,
containing articles and interrogatories, whereunto he should come the
next day and answer : in the mean time he should deliberate with him-
self what to do : and then either to revoke and reclaim himself, or else
in the afternoon of the same day to come again and have justice ad-
ministered unto him. The copy of the articles is as follows.
" Thou dost believe, that in the sacrament of the altar, under the forms
of bread and wine, there is not by the omnipotent power of Almighty
God, and his holy word, really, truly, and in very deed, the very true
and natural body of our Saviour Jesus Christ, as touching the sub-
stance thereof, which was conceived in the womb of the Virgin Mary,
and hanged upon the cross, suffering death there for the life of the
world.
" Thou dost believe, that after the consecration of the bread and wine
prepared for the use of the sacrament of the altar, there doth remain
the substance of material bread and material wine, not changed noi
altered in substance by the power of Almighty God, but remaining as
it did before.
" Thou dost believe, that it is an untrue doctrine, and a false belief,
to think or say, that in the sacrament of the altar there is, after conse-
cration of the bread and wine, the substance of Christ's natural body
and blood, by the omnipotent power of Almighty God, and his holy
word.
" Thou dost believe that thy parents, kinsfolks, friends, and acquaint-
ance, and also thy godfathers and godmothers, and all people did err,
and were deceived, if they did believe, that in the sacrament of the
altar there was, after consecration, the body and blood of Christ,
and that there did not remain the substance of material bread and
wine."
To these several articles Tomkins declared his free and full consent;
646 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM
acknowledging after each, that what he was charged with believing he
did believe.
The next day, Tomkins was again brought before the bishop and his
assistants, where the articles were again propounded unto him : where-
unto he answered in substance as he had done before, avowing at the
same time his belief in the scriptures, and his persuasion that popery-
was opposed to them. After this answer he also subscribed his name
to what he had declared. Whereupon, the bishop drawing out of his
bosom another confession subscribed with Tomkins* hand, and also the
article that was the first day objected against him, caused the same to
be openly read, and then willed him to revoke and deny his opinions,
which he utterly refused to do : therefore he was commanded to appear
before the bishops again in the same place at two in the afternoon.
Agreeably with this mandate, being brought before the bloody tribunal
of bishops, and pressed to recant his errors and return to the mother-
church ; he maintained his fidelity, nor would swerve in the least from
the articles he had signed. Having therefore declared him an obstinate
and damnable heretic, they delivered him up to the secular power, and
he was burned in Smithfield, March 6th, 1555, triumphing in the midst
of the flames, and adding to the noble company of martyrs, who had
preceded him through the path of the fiery trial to the realms of im-
mortal glory.
The second of this noble band of intrepid saints was an apprentice
of only nineteen years of age. His name was William Hunter. He
had been trained to the doctrine of the reformation from his earliest
youth, being descended from religious parents, who carefully instructed
him in the principles of true religion.
When queen Mary succeeded to the crown, orders were issued to the
priests of every parish, to summon all their parishioners to receive the
communion at mass, the Easter after her accession; and Hunter, re-
fusing to obey the summons, was threatened to be brought before the
bishop. His master, fearful of incurring ecclesiastical censure, desired
him to leave him for a time ; upon which he quitted his service, went
down to Brentwood, and resided with his father about six weeks. One
day, finding the chapel open, he entered and began to read in the
English bible, which lay upon the desk, but was severely reprimanded
by an officer of the bishop's court, who said to him — " William, why
meddlest thou with the bible? Understandest thou what thou readest?
Canst thou expound scripture?" He replied — " I presume not to ex-
pound scripture; but finding the bible here, I read for my comfort and
edification."
The officer then informed a neighbouring priest of the liberty the
young man had taken in reading the bible; the priest therefore severely
chid him, saying — " Sirrah, who gave thee leave to read the bible and
expound it?" To this fierce rebuke he answered as he had done to the
officer; and on the priest's telling him, that it became him not to meddle
with the scriptures, he frankly declared his resolution to read them as
long as he lived, as well as reproved the vicar for discouraging persons
from that practice, which the scripture so strongly enjoined. On this
the priest upbraided him as a heretic : he denied the charge, and being
EXAMINATION OF WILLIAM HUNTER. 647
asked his opinion concerning the corporeal presence in the sacrament
of the altar, he replied, that he esteemed the bread and wine but as
figures, an( J looked upon the sacrament as an institution in remembrance
of the death and sufferings of our blessed Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ.
He was then openly declared a heretic, for not believing in the sacra-
ment of the altar, and the vicar threatened to complain of him to the
bishop.
A neighbouring justice, named Brown, having heard that he main-
tained heretical principles, sent for his father and enquired of him
concerning his son; the old man assured him that he had left him, that
he knew not whither he was gone: and on the justice threatening to
imprison him, he said with tears in his eyes — "Would you have me seek
out my son to be burned?" The old man, however, was obliged to seek
him; and by accident meeting him, with tears said, that it was by
command of the justice who threatened to imprison him. The son, to
prevent his father incurring danger, said that he was ready to ac-
company him home; on which they returned together. The following
day, he was taken and kept in the stocks four and twenty hours ; and
then brought before the justice, who called for a bible, and turning to
the sixth chapter of St. John, desired his opinion of the meaning of it,
as it related to the sacrament of the altar. He, fearlessly gave the same
explanation as he had done to the priest, persisting in his denial of the
corporeal presence: the justice upbraided him with damnable heresy,
and wrote to the bishop of London, to whom this valiant young martyr
was soon conducted.
After Bonner had read the letter, he caused William to be brought
into a chamber, where he began to reason with him in this manner — " I
understand, William Hunter, by Mr. Brown's letter, that you have had
communication with the vicar of Welde, about the blessed sacrament of
the altar, and that you could not agree; whereupon Mr. Brown sent for
you to bring you to the catholic faith, from which, he saith, you have
departed. Howbeit, if you will be ruled by me, you shall have no harm
for any thing said or done in this matter." To this William answered —
" I am not fallen from the catholic faith of Christ, I am sure; but do
believe it, and confess it with all my heart."
Said the bishop — " How sayest thou to the blessed sacrament of the
altar? Wilt thou not recant thy saying before Mr. Brown, that Christ's
body is not in the sacrament of the altar, the same that was born of the
Virgin Mary?" No way daunted, William said — "My lord, I under-
stand that Mr. Brown hath certified you of the talk which he and I had
together, and thereby you know what I said to him, which I will not
recant by God's help." Then said the bishop, " I think thou art
ashamed to bear a fagot, and recant openly ; but if thou wilt recant
privately, I will promise that thou shalt not be put to open shame : even
speak the word here now between me and thee, and I will promise it
shall go no further, and thou shalt go home again without any hurt."
To this cunning, William replied — " My lord, if you let me alone, and
leave me to my conscience, I will go to my father and dwell with him,
or else with my master again, and if nobody disquiet nor trouble my
conscience, I will keep my conscience to myself."
648 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Then said the bishop, " I am content, so that thou wilt go to the church,
and receive, and be shriven ; and so continue a good catholic Christian."
" No," quoth William, " I will not do so for all the good in the world."
"Then," quoth the bishop, " if you will not do so, I will make you sure
enough, I warrant you." " Well," replied William, " you can do no more
than God will permit you." " Wilt thou not recant by any means ?" said
the bishop. " No," quoth William, " never while I live, God willing ! "
Then the bishop commanded his men to put William in the stocks in
his gatehouse, where he sat two days and two nights, only with a crust of
bread and a cup of water. At the two days' end the bishop came, and
finding the crust and the water still by him, said to his men, "Take him
out of the stocks, and let him break his fast with you." After breakfast,
Bonner sent for William, and demanded whether he would recant or no.
But he made answer, how that he would never recant as concerning his
faith in Christ. Then the bishop said that he was no Christian ; but he
denied the faith in which he was baptized. But William answered, "I
was baptized in the faith of the Holy Trinity, which I will not go from,
God assisting me with his grace." Then the bishop sent him to the con-
vict prison, and commanded the keeper to lay irons upon him, as many as
he could bear ; and moreover asked him how old he was. William said
that he was nineteen years old. " Well," said the bishop, " you will be
burned ere you be twenty years old, if you will not yield yourself better
than you have done yet." William answered, " God strengthen me in his
truth." And then he parted, the bishop allowing him a halfpenny a day
to live on, in bread or drink. Thus he continued in prison three quarters
of a year : in the which time he was before the bishop five times, besides
when he was condemned in the consistory in St. Paul's, the 9th day of
February ; at the which his brother, Robert Hunter, (who continued with
his brother William till his death, and sent the true report unto us,) was
present, and heard the bishop condemn him and the five others.
At one time the bishop, calling for Hunter, asked him if he would recant,
saying, " If thou wilt yet recant, I will make thee a freeman in the city,
and give thee forty pounds in good money to set up thine occupation
withal ; or I will make thee steward of my house, and set thee in office ; for I
like thee well, thou hast wit enough, and I will prefer thee if thou recant."
But William answered, " I thank you for your great offers : notwithstand-
ing, my lord, if you cannot persuade my conscience with Scriptures, I
cannot find in my heart to turn from God for the love of the world ; for
I count all things worldly, but loss and dung, in respect of the love of
Christ." Then said the bishop, " If thou diest in this mind, thou art con-
demned for ever." William answered, " God judgeth righteously, and
justifieth them whom man condemneth unjustly."
Then the bishop departed, and William and the other prisoners returned
to Newgate. About a month after, Hunter was sent to Brentwood, on
the Saturday before the Annunciation of the Virgin Mary that followed
on the Monday after ; he therefore remained till the Tuesday, because they
would not put him to death then, for the holiness of the day. In the
mean time William's father and mother came to him, and desired heartily
of God that he might continue as he had begun : and his mother said to
him, that she was glad that ever she bare such a child, who could find in
MARTYRDOM OF WILLIAM HUNTER. 649
his heart to lose his life for Christ's sake. To this he replied — "For the
little pain I shall suffer, which will soon be at an end, Christ hath
promised me, mother, a crown of joy; should not you be glad of that?"
With that his mother kneeled down, saying — "I pray God strengthen
thee, my son, to the end: yea, I think thee as well bestowed as any
child I ever bore." His father, suppressing his tears, then said — " I was
afraid of nothing but that my son would have been killed in the prison
by hunger and cold;" a result, however, which the good parent had
prevented as well as apprehended, for he was at the expence of the very
best food and clothing he could send him, which the son gratefully
acknowledged.
He continued at the Swan inn, Brentwood, whither resorted many
people to see him: and many of William's acquaintance came to him,
and reasoned with him, and he with them, exhorting them to come away
from the abomination of popish superstition and idolatry. The short
time before his martyrdom was thus usefully passed. On Monday ni^ht,
William dreamed that he was at the place where the stake was pitched,
at which he should be burned : he also thought that he met with his
father, and that there was a priest at the stake who wanted him to
recant; to whom he said — "Away, false prophet!" and exhorted the
people to beware of him, and such as he was : all which came to pass.
In the morning he was commanded by the sheriff to prepare for his fate.
At the same time, the sheriff's son came to him, and embraced him,
saying — " William, be not afraid of these men with bows and weapons
prepared to bring you to the place where you shall be burned." " I
thank God I am not afraid," replied the undaunted youth, " for I
have reckoned what it will cost me already." Then the sheriff's son
could speak no more to him for weeping".
Hunter then took up his gown, and went forward cheerfully, the
sheriff's servant taking him by one arm, and his brother by the other;
and going along he met with his father according to his dream, who said
to him weeping — " God be with thee, son William." " God be with
you, good father," said he, " and be of good comfort; for I hope we
shall meet again, when we shall be joyful." He then went to the place
where the stake stood, even according to his dream; where all things
not being ready, he kneeled and read the 51st Psalm, till he came to
these words — "The sacrifice of God is a contrite spirit, a contrite and a
broken heart, O God, thou wilt not despise." As one was attempting
to dispute the translation of the words, the sheriff brought a letter from
the queen, and said — " If thou wilt recant, thou shalt live; if not, thou
shalt be burned." " I will not recant, God willing," answered the noble
youth: on which he rose up and went to the stake, and stood upright
against it. Addressing the justice, he said — " Mr. Brown, now you
have that which you sought, and I pray God it be not laid to your
charge in the last day; howbeit I forgive you. If God forgive you, I
shall not require my blood at your hands."
He then prayed — " Son of God, shine upon me!" and immediately
the sun in the element shone out of a dark cloud so full in his face, that
he was constrained to look another way; whereat the people wondered,
because it was much obscured before. He then took up a fagot of
650 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
broom, and embraced it. The priest which he had dreamed of now came
to his brother Robert, with a popish book to carry to William, that he
might recant; which book his brother would not meddle with. Then
William, seeing the priest, and perceiving how he would have showed him
the book, said, "Away, thou false prophet! Beware of them, good
people, and come away from their abominations, lest ye be partakers of
their plagues." " Then," quoth the priest, " look how thou burnest here,
so shalt thou burn in hell." William answered, "Thou liest, thou false
prophet ! Away, thou false prophet, away ! " Then was there a gentle-
man who said, " I pray God have mercy upon his soul." The people
said, "Amen, Amen!" Immediately after, the fire was made. Then
William cast his psalter to his brother, who said, " William ! think on
the holy passion of Christ, and be not afraid of death." And William
answered, " I am not afraid." Then lift he up his hands to heaven, and
said, " Lord, Lord, Lord, receive my spirit;" and, casting down his head
again into the smothering smoke, he yielded up his life for the truth, seal-
ing it with his blood to the praise of God.
Mention has already been made of six persons who were examined and
condemned by bishop Bonner, of the which two were burned as ye have
heard, viz., Tomkins on the 16th of March, and Hunter on the 26th of the
same month. Three others, to wit, William Pygot and Stephen Knight
suffered upon the 28th of March, and John Laurence on the following day.
At their examinations it was first demanded of them what their opinion
was of the sacrament of the altar. Whereunto they severally answered
and also subscribed, that in the sacrament of the altar, under the forms of
bread and wine, there is not the very substance of the body and blood of
our Saviour Jesus Christ, but a special partaking of the body and blood of
Christ ; the very body and blood of Christ being only in heaven, and
nowhere else. This reply thus made, the bishop caused certain articles to
be read unto them, tending to the same effect as did the articles before of
Tomkins, and their answers were very similar. The present examination
ended, they were commanded to appear again the next day, being the 9th
of February, at eight o'clock in the morning, and in the meanwhile to be-
think themselves what they would do.
The next day, before their open appearance, Bonner sent for Pygot and
Knight into his great chamber in his palace, where he persuaded with them
to recant, and deny their former profession. They answered that they
could not in their consciences abjure their opinions, whereunto they had
subscribed. The bishop also had certain talk with John Laurence only,
who answered that he was a priest, and was consecrated and made a priest
about eighteen years past ; that he was some time a black friar professed ;
as also that lie was assured unto a maid, whom he intended to have
married. And being again demanded his opinion upon the sacrament, he
said that it was a remembrance of Christ's body, and that many have been
deceived in believing the true body of Christ to be in the sacrament of the
altar ; and that all such as do not believe as he doth, do err. Being all
three brought openly into the consistory, the same articles were propounded
unto them as unto Thomas Tomkins, and thereto they also subscribed
these words, " I do so believe." After many fair words and threatenings,
they were all of them commanded to appear again in the afternoon.
PYGOT, KNIGHT, AND LAURENCE MARTYRED. 651
At that hour they returned thither, and there after the accustomed
manner were exhorted to recant and revoke their doctrine, and receive the
faith. To the which they constantly answered that they would not, but
would stick to that faith that they had declared and subscribed unto; for
that they did believe that it was no error which they believed, but that the
contrary thereof was very heresy. When the bishop saw that neither his
flatterings nor his threatening would prevail, he gave them severally their
judgments. And because John Laurence had been one of their anointed
priests, he was by the bishop there solemnly degraded. Their sentence of
condemnation and this degradation ended, they were committed unto the
custody of the sheriffs of London, who sent them unto Newgate, where
they remained with joy together, until they were carried into Essex : and
there, on the 28th day of March, the said William Pygot was burned at
Braintree; and Stephen Knight at Maldon, who at the stake, kneeling
upon the ground, said this prayer which here followeth, the spirit of which
the reader should mark, and compare with the prayer of the papists at the
sacrifice of the mass : —
" O Lord Jesus Christ, for whose love I leave willingly this life, and
desire rather the bitter death of thy cross, with the loss of all earthly
things, than to abide the blasphemy of thy most holy name, or to obey
men in breaking thy holy commandment: thou seest, O Lord, that
where I might live in worldly wealth to worship a false God, and honour
thine enemy, I choose rather the torment of the body, and the loss of
this life, and have counted all things but vile dust and dung, that I
might win thee; which death is dearer unto me than thousands of gold
and silver. Such love, O Lord, hast thou laid up in my breast, that I
hunger for thee, as the wounded deer desireth the pasture. Send thy
holy comforter, O Lord, to aid, comfort, and strengthen this weak piece
of earth, which is empty of all strength in itself. Thou rememberest,
Lord, that I am but dust, and able to do nothing that is good; there-
fore, O Lord, as of thine accustomed goodness and love thou hast in-
vited me to this banquet, and accounted me worthy to drink of thine
own cup amongst thine elect; even so give me strength, O Lord, against
this raging element, which as to my sight is most irksome and terrible,
so to my mind it may at thy commandment be sweet and pleasant; that
by the strength of thy Holy Spirit, I may pass through the rage of this
fire into thy bosom, according to thy promise, for this mortal receive an
immortal life, and for this corruptible put on incorruption. Accept
this burnt offering, O Lord, not for the sacrifice, but for thy dear Son's
sake my Saviour, for whose testimony I offer it with all my heart and
with all my soul. O heavenly Father, forgive me my sins, as I forgive
all the world. O sweet Son of God my Saviour, spread thy wings over
me. O blessed and Holy Ghost, through whose merciful inspiration I
am come hither, conduct me into everlasting life. Lord, into thy hands
1 commend my spirit. Amen."
The next day Mr. Laurence was taken to Colchester. The irons he
had worn in prison had so injured his limbs, and his body was so re-
duced by want of food, that he was taken to the fire in a chair, and so
sitting, was in his constant faith consumed. An incident worthy of
remark occurred at his martyrdom : several young children came about
652 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the fire, and cried, as well as they could speak, " Lord, strengthen thy
servant, and keep thy promise: strengthen thy servant, according to
thy promise." God answered their prayer, for Mr. Laurence died as
firmly and calmly as any one could wish to breathe his last.
Thomas Causton, of Thundersby in Essex, and Thomas Higbed, of
Horndon on the Hill, were zealous and religious in the true service of God.
As they could not dissemble with the Lord, nor flatter with the world,
so in this age of darkness and idolatry, they could not long lie hid from
such a number of adversaries; but at length were perceived, and dis-
covered to Bonner, by whose command they were committed to the
officers of Colchester, to be safely kept, together with a servant of
Causton, who was not inferior to his master in true piety.
Bonner perceiving these gentlemen to be of good estate, and of great
estimation in their county, lest any tumult should thereby arise, went
himself, accompanied by Mr. Fecknam and several others, thinking to
reclaim them ; so that great labour and diligence was taken therein, as
well by terrors and threatenings, as by great promises and all fair
means, to reduce them again to the unity of the mother church. Finding,
however, after all that nothing could prevail, and that they remained
steady in their doctrine, setting out also their confession in writing, the
bishop departed thence, and carried them both with him to London, and
with them certain other prisoners, who about the same time were appre-
hended in those parts. They were brought to open examination at the
consistory in St. Paul's, February 17th, 1555, where they were demanded
as well by Bonner, as also by the bishop of Bath and others, whether
they would recant their errors and perverse doctrine, and come to the
unity of the popish church. On their refusing, the bishop ordered
them to appear again next day; when he read several articles, and gave
them respite until the following day to answer to the same, till which
time they were again committed.
The articles being given them in writing, a week was assigned them
to give up and exhibit their answers to them. Accordingly on the 1st
of March, being brought before the bishop in the consistory, they there
exhibited their answers to the articles, in which they declared the true
faith. Then the bishop, reading their former articles and answers to the
same, asked them if they would recant; which when they denied, they
were again dismissed, and commanded to appear in another week. On
the 8th of March, therefore, Mr. Causton was first called to be re-ex-
amined before the bishop and others in his palace, and there had read
unto him his aforesaid articles with his answers. The bishop again ex-
horted and persuaded him to recant, but he answered — " No, I will not
abjure. You said that the bishops who were lately burned were heretics,
but I pray God make me such a heretic as they were."
The bishop then leaving Mr. Causton, called for Mr. Higbed, using
with him the like persuasions that he did with the other; but he answered,
" I will not abjure; for I have been of this mind and opinion that I am
now these sixteen years : and do what ye can, ye shall do no more than
God will permit you to do ; and with what measure you measure us,
look for the same again at God's hands." Then Fecknam asked his
opinion in the sacrament of the altar. To whom he answered, " I do not
BURNING OF CAUSTON AND HIGBED. 653
believe that Christ is in the sacrament as ye will have him, which is of
man's making." Both their answers thus severally made, they were again
commanded to depart for that time, and to appear the next day in the
consistory at St. Paul's, between one and three in the afternoon.
At which day and hour, being 1 the 9th of March, they were both brought
thither. The bishop caused Causton's articles and answers first to be
read openly, and after persuaded with him to recant and abjure his
heretical opinions, and to come home now, at the last, to their mother
the catholic church, and save himself. But Causton answered again,
" No, I will not abjure; for I came not hither for that purpose:" and
therewithal he did exhibit in writing unto the bishop (as well in his own
name, as also in Thomas Higbed's name) a confession of their faith, to
the which they would stand. He required leave to read the same, which
after great suit was obtained ; and he read it openly in the hearing of the
people. When he had thus delivered their confession, the bishop, still
persisting sometimes in fair promises, sometimes threatening to pronounce
judgment, asked them if they would stand to this their confession and
other answers. To whom Causton said, " We will stand to our answers
written with our own hands, and to our belief therein contained. After
which answer the bishop began to pronounce sentence against him. Then
Causton said that it was much rashness, and without all love and mercy,
to give judgment without answering to their confession by the truth of
God's word, to which they submitted themselves most willingly. "And
therefore," he said, "because I cannot have justice at your hand, but that
ye will thus rashly condemn me, I do appeal from you to my lord cardinal."
Then Dr. Smith said that he would answer their confession. But the
bishop (not suffering him to speak) willed Harpsfield to say his mind, for
the stay of the people; who, taking their confession in his hand, neither
touched nor answered one sentence thereof. After this, Bonner pro-
nounced sentence, first against the said Thomas Causton, and then calling
Thomas Higbed, caused his articles and answers likewise to be read.
Then the bishop asked him again, Whether he would turn from his error,
and come to the unity of their church? To whom he said, "No; I
would ye should recant — for I am in the truth, and you in error." Where-
upon Bonner gave judgment on him as he had done upon Causton.
When all this was thus ended, they were both delivered to the sheriffs,
and so by them sent to Newgate, where they remained fourteen days,
praised be God, not so much in afflictions as in consolations. These
fourteen days expired, they were on the 23rd of March fetched from
Newgate at four o'clock in the morning, and so led through the city to
Aldgate, where they were delivered unto the sheriff of Essex. Being
bound fast in a cart, they were brought to their appointed places of
burning; that is to say, Thomas Higbed to Horndon on the Hill, and
Thomas Causton to Raleigh, (both in the county of Essex,) where they
did most constantly, on the 26th day of March, seal their faith with the
shedding of their blood by most cruel fire, to the glory of God, and great
rejoicing of the godly. At the burning of Higbed, justice Brown and
divers gentlemen in the shire were also present, for fear belike lest he
should be taken from them. And thus much concerning the apprehen-
sion, examination, and burning of these two godly martyrs of God.
654 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Of those who sealed the truth of Christ with their blood at this period
no one merits distinct mention more than Dr. Farrar, the venerable
bishop of St. David's. This excellent and learned prelate had been pro-
moted to his bishopric by the lord protector, in the reign of Edward ;
but after the fall of his patron, he also had fallen into disgrace, through
the malice of several enemies, among whom was George Constantine,
his own servant. Articles, to the number of fifty-six, were preferred
against him, in which he was charged with many negligences and con-
tumacies of church government. These he answered and denied. But
so many and so bitter were his enemies, that they prevailed, and he was
in consequence detained in prison till the death of king Edward, and the
coming in of queen Mary and popish religion, whereby a new trouble rose
upon him, being now accused and examined not for any matter of prae-
munire, but for his faith and doctrine. Whereupon he was called before
the bishop of Winchester, with master Hooper, master Rogers, master
Bradford, master Saunders, and others, on the 4th day of February.
On the which day he should also with them have been condemned ;
but because leisure or list did not so well then serve the bishop, his con-
demnation was deferred, and he sent to prison again, where he continued
till the 14th day of the said month of February. What his examinations
and answers were, before the said bishop of Winchester, so much as re-
mained and came to our hands I have here annexed in manner as followeth.
At his first coming and kneeling before the lord chancellor Gardiner,
bishop of Winchester, the bishop of Durham, and the bishop of Worcester,
who sat at the table ; and master Rochester, master Southwell, master
Bourne, and others, standing at the table's end, the lord chancellor first
addressed him in such questions as these: " Now, sir, have you heard how
the world goeth here? What say you? do you not know things abroad,
notwithstanding you are a prisoner ? Have you not heard of the coming
in of the lord cardinal ?
Farrar. I know not my lord cardinal; but I heard that a cardinal was
come in : but I did not believe it, and I believe it not yet.
Winchester. The queen's majesty and the parliament have restored re-
ligion into the same state it was in at the beginning of the reign of king
Henry VIII. Ye are in the queen's debt; and her majesty will be good
unto you, if you will return to the catholic church.
Farrar. In what state I am concerning my debts to her majesty, in the
court of exchequer, my lord treasurer knoweth : and the last time that I
was before your honour, and the first time also, I showed you that I had
made an oath never to consent nor agree that the bishop of Rome should
have any power or jurisdiction within this realm : and further I need not
rehearse to your lordship ; you know it well enough.
Bourne. You were once abjured for heresy in Oxford.
Farrar. That was I not : it is not true.
Bourne. You went from St. David's to Scotland.
Farrar. That did I never : but I went from York into Scotland.
Bourne. You carried books out of Oxford to the archbishop of York.
Farrar. That I did not ; but I carried old books from St. Oswald's.
Bourne. You supplanted your master.
Farrar. That did I never in my life; but did shield and save my master
EXAMINATIONS OF BISHOP FARIIAR. 655
from danger ; and that I obtained of king Henry VIII., for my true ser-
vice, I thank God there-for.
" My lord," said master Bourne to my lord chancellor, " he hath an ill
name in Wales as ever had any."
Farrar. That is not so : whosoever saith so, they shall never be able to
prove it.
Bourne. He hath deceived the queen in divers sums of money.
Farrar. That is utterly untrue : I never deceived king or queen of one
penny in my life ; and you shall never be able to prove that you say.
Winchester. Thou art a false knave.
Then Farrar stood up unbidden, (for all that while he kneeled,) and
said, " No, my lord, I am a true man ; I thank God for it ! I was born
under king Henry VII.; I served king Henry VIII. and king Edward VI.
truly ; and have served the queen's majesty that now is, truly, with my
poor heart and word : more I could not do ; and I was never false, nor
shall be, by the grace of God.
Winchester. How sayest thou ? wilt thou be reformable ?
Farrar. My lord, if it like your honour, I have made an oath to God,
and to king Henry VIII., and also to king Edward, and in that to the
queen's majesty, the which I can never break while I live, to die for it.
Winchester. You made a profession to live without a wife ?
Farrar. No, my lord, if it like your honour; that did I never. I made
a profession to live chaste — not without a wife.
Winchester. Well, you are a froward knave : we will have no more to
do with you, seeing that you will not come ; we will be short with you,
and that you shall know within this seven-night.
Farrar. I am as it pleaseth your honour to call me; but I cannot break
my oath, which your lordship yourself made before me, and gave in exam-
ple, the which confirmed my conscience. Then I can never break that oath
whilst I live, to die for it.
Durham. Well ! he standeth upon his oath : call another.
My lord chancellor then did ring a little bell; and master Farrar said,
" I pray God to save the king and queen's majesties long to continue in
honour to God's glory and their comforts, and the comfort of the whole
realm ; and I pray God save all your honours :" and so he departed.
After this examination bishop Farrar remained in prison uncon-
demned, till the 14th day of February, and then was sent down into
Wales, there to receive sentence of condemnation. Upon the 26th
of February, in the church of Carmarthen, being brought by Griffith
Leyson, esq. sheriff of the county of Carmarthen, he was there per-
sonally presented before the new bishop of St. David's and Constan-
tine the public notary : who did there and then discharge the said
sheriff, and receive him into their own custody, further committing him
to the keeping of Owen Jones; and thereupon declared unto Dr. Farrar
the great mercy and clemency that the king and queen's highness' plea-
sure was to be offered unto him, which they there did offer ; that if he
would submit himself to the laws of the realm, and conform himself to
the unity of the catholic church, he should be received and pardoned.
Seeing that Dr. Farrar give no answer to the premises, the bishop minis-
tered unto him these articles following —
656 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Whether he believed the marriage of priests lawful by the laws of
God, and his holy church, or not? and whether he believed that in the
blessed sacrament of the altar, after the words of consecration duly pro-
nounced by the priest, the very body and blood of Christ is really and
substantially contained, without the substance of bread and wine ? Upon
the bishop requiring Dr. Farrarto answer upon his allegiance, the latter,
doubting the bishop's authority said, he would answer when he saw a
lawful commission, and would make no further answer at that time.
Whereupon the bishop, taking no advantage upon the answer, committed
him to prison until a new monition ; in the mean time to deliberate with
himself for his further answer to the premises.
It has been intimated that a new bishop was placed at St. David's :
this was one Henry Morgan, a furious papist, who now became the chief
judge of his persecuted predecessor. This Morgan, sitting as judge,
ministered unto bishop Farrar certain articles and interrogatories in
writing ; which being openly read unto him a second time, Farrar still
refused to answer, till he might see his lawful commission and authority.
Whereupon Morgan pronounced him as contumax, and for the punish-
ment of this his contumacy to be counted pro confesso, and so did pro-
nounce him in writing. This done, he committed him to the custody of
Owen Jones, until the 4th of March, then to be brought again into
the same place, between one and two.
The day and place appointed, the bishop appeared again before his
haughty successor, submitted himself as ready to answer to the arti-
cles and positions above mentioned, gently required a copy of the
articles, and a competent term to be assigned unto him, to answer for
himself. This being granted, and the Thursday next being assigned
to him between one and three to answer precisely and fully, he was com-
mitted again to custody. On the appointed day he again appeared and
exhibited a bill in writing, containing in it his answer to the articles
objected and ministered unto him before. Then Morgan offered him
again the articles in this brief form: That he willed him being a priest
to renounce matrimony — to grant the natural presence of Christ in the
sacrament, under the forms of bread and wine — to confess and allow
that the mass is a propitiatory sacrifice for the quick and the dead —
that general councils lawfully congregated never did, and never can
err — that men are not justified before God by faith only, but that hope
and charity are also necessarily required to justification — and that the
catholic church only hath authority to expound scriptures and to define
controversies of religion, and to ordain things appertaining to public
discipline.
To these articles he still refused to subscribe, affirming that they were
invented by man, and pertain nothing to the catholic faith. After this
Morgan delivered unto him the copy of the articles, assigning him
Monday following, to answer and subscribe to them either affirmatively
or negatively. The day came, and he exhibited in a written paper his
mind and answer to the articles, adding these words, tenens se de
cequitate et justitia esse episcopum Menevensem. The bishop assigned
the next Wednesday, in the forenoon, to hear his final and definitive
sentence. On that day, Morgan demanded of him whether he would
ACCOUNT OF RAWLINS WHITE. 657
renounce and recant his heresies, schisms, and errors, which hitherto he
had maintained, and if he would subscribe to the catholic articles
otherwise than lie had done before.
Upon this Farrai did exhibit a certain schedule written in English,
and remaining in the acts, appealing from the bishop, as from an incom-
petent judge, to cardinal Pole and other the highest authorities. This,
however, did not avail him. Morgan proceeding in his rage, pronounced
the definitive sentence against him: by which sentence he pronounced
him as a heretic excommunicate, and to be given up forthwith to the
secular power, namely to the sheriff of the town of Carmarthen, Mr.
Leyson. After which his degradation followed of course.
Thus was this godly bishop condemned and degraded, and committed
to the secular power, and not long after was brought to execution in
the town of Carmarthen, where in the market-place on the south side
of the cross, on the 30th of March, being Saturday before Passion-
Sunday, he most constantly sustained the torments of the fire. Among
the incidents of this martyrdom worthy of mention is the following ;
one Richard Jones, a young gentleman, and son of a knight, coming
to Dr. Farrar a little before his death, seemed to lament the painfulness
of what he had to suffer : unto whom the bishop answered, that if he
saw him once to stir in the pains of his burning, he should then give no
credit to his doctrine. And as he said, so he performed ; for so patiently
he stood, that he never moved, till one Richard Gravell, with a staff,
struck him down, that he fell amidst the flames, and expired, or rather
rose to heaven to live for ever.
Among more private persons who suffered at this period was Rawlins
White, by occupation a fisherman, in the town of Cardiff. With respect
to his religion at first, it cannot otherwise be known, than that he
was a great partaker of the superstition and idolatry which prevailed in
the reign of Henry VIII. But after God of his mercy had raised up
the light of his gospel, through the government of king Edward VI.
White began partly to dislike that which before he had embraced, and
to have some good opinion of that which before by the iniquity of the
times had been concealed from him ; and happily impressed with the
importance of truth, he began to be a diligent hearer, and a great
searcher of the word of God.
Because the good man was unlearned, and withal very simple, he
knew no ready way how he might satisfy his great desire. At length he
took the following remedy to supply his necessity: he had a little boy,
his own son, whom he sent to school to learn to read English. Now
after the child could read indifferently well, his father every night after
supper would have him read part of the holy scripture, and now and
then of some other good book. In this kind of virtuous exercise the
good man had such delight, that as it seemed, he rather practised
himself in the study of the scripture, than in the trade or science which
before-time he had used : so that within a few years in the time of king
Edward, through the help of his little son, and through much conference
besides, he so profited and went so forward, that he was able not only to
resolve himself touching his own former blindness and ignorance, but
2 u
658 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
also to admonish and instruct others; and therefore when occasion
served, he would go from one place to another teaching the truth.
He had thus continued in his new profession about five years, when
king Edward died, upon whose decease queen Mary succeeded, and
with her came persecution ; the extremity and force whereof at last so
pursued this good man, that he looked every hour to go to prison ;
whereupon many who had received comfort by his instructions, began
to persuade him to shift for himself, and dispose of his goods by some
reasonable order to the use of his wife and children. Fearless, how-
ever, White continued in his good purposes, till at last he was taken by
the officers of his town, as a man suspected of heresy, upon which
apprehension he was convened before the bishop of LandafF, then at his
house near Chepstow: by whom, after divers combats and conflicts with
him and his chaplains, he was committed to Chepstow prison. Thence
he was removed to the castle of Cardiff, where he continued a whole
year; during which time Mr. Dane, who furnished this account, resorted
to him very often, with money and other relief from Mrs. Dane, his
mother, who was a great favourer of those that were in affliction in
those days, and others of his friends, which he received with great
praises to God.
At the expiration of a year, the bishop of LandafF caused him to be
brought from the castle of Cardiff unto his own house near Chepstow;
and while he continued there, the bishop endeavoured by various means
to reduce him to conformity. When he found his threatenings and
promises ineffectual, the bishop desired him to advise and determine
with himself; for he must either recant his opinions, or else suffer the
rigour of the law; and thereupon gave him a day of determination.
This day being come, the bishop with his chaplains went into his chapel,
with a great number of the neighbours who had the curiosity to see their
proceedings. Being placed in order, White was brought before them.
The bishop began bv making a long discourse, declaring that the cause
of his being sent for was that he was well known to hold heretical
opinions, and that by his instructions many were led into blind error.
In the end, he exhorted him to consider his own state wherein he stood,
at the same time offering favour if he recanted. At the close of the
bishop's address, Rawlins boldly said — " My lord, I thank God I am a
christian man, and I hold no opinions contrary to the word of God;
and if I do, I desire to be reformed out of the word of God, as a
christian ought to be." The bishop then told him plainly, that he must
proceed against him by the law, and condemn him as a heretic. —
"Proceed by your law, in God's name" — said the fearless Rawlins;
" but for a heretic you shall never condemn me while the world
stands!" This intrepid answer somewhat startled and confounded the
bishop, who, after a moment's silence turned to some about him and
said — " Before we proceed any further with him, let us pray to God
that he would send some spark of grace upon him, and it may so
chance, that God through our prayers will here turn his heart." Ac-
cordingly having prayed, the bishop asked — " Now, Rawlins, wilt thou
revoke thy opinions or not?" The man of truth replied — " Surely, my
lord, Rawlins you left me, Rawlins you find me, and by God's grace
MARTYRDOM OF RAWLINS WHITE. 659
Rawlins I will continue." When the bishop perceived that his artifice
took no effect, he with sharp words reproved him, and forthwith was
ready to read the sentence; but upon some advice given to him by his
chaplains, he thought it best first to have a mass, thinking' that by so
doing some wonderful change would be wrought in his prisoner's mind.
During the mass Rawlins betook himself to prayer in a secret place,
until the priest came to the sacring, as they term it, which is a principal
part of the idolatry. When Rawlins heard the sacring-bell ring, he rose
out of his place, came to the choir door, and there standing awhile,
turned himself to the people, speaking these words — " Good people, if
there be any brethren amongst you, or at least if there be but one
brother amongst you, the same one bear witness at the day of judgment,
that I bow not to this idol" — meaning the host that the priest held over
his head.
Mass being ended, Rawlins was called again, when the bishop re-
peated his persuasions; but the blessed man continued so stedfast in
his profession, that the prelate found his discourse altogether in vain.
Whereupon he caused the definitive sentence to be read. This being
ended, Rawlins was dismissed, and from thence he was carried again to
Cardiff, there to be put into the prison of the town, a very dark,
loathsome, and vile dungeon. Having continued a prisoner there some
time, about three weeks before the day on which he suffered, the officers
of the town who had the charge of his execution, wished to burn him to
be the sooner rid of him, although they had not a writ of execution
awarded as by the law they should have : but by the advice of the
recorder of the town, they sent to London for the writ, upon the receipt
whereof they hastened the execution. On the night before his death
Rawlins was engaged in preparing himself by devotion; and on finding
his end so near, he sent to his wife, and desired her by the messenger,
that in any wise she should make ready and send unto him his wedding-
garment, meaning the vest in which he was to be martyred. This
request, or rather commandment, his wife with grief of heart performed,
and early in the morning sent it to him.
The hour of his execution being come, the martyr was brought out of
prison, having on his wedding garment, and an old russet-coat which he
was wont to wear. Thus being equipped, he was accompanied or rather
guarded with a great number of bills and weapons. When he beheld
this, he said, " Alas! what meaneth it? By God's grace I will not run
away: with all my heart and mind I give God most hearty thanks that
he hath made me worthy to abide all this for his holy name's sake."
Arriving at a place where his poor wife and children - stood weeping and
making great lamentation, the sudden sight of them so pierced his
heart, that the tears trickled down his face. But soon after, as though
he were ashamed of this infirmity of his flesh, he began to be as it
were altogether angry with himself: insomuch, that striking his breast
with his hand, he said, "Ah, flesh, hinderest thou me so? Well, I
tell thee, do what thou canst, thou shalt not, by God's grace, have the
victory."
By this time he approached the stake ready set up, with some wood
as prepared for the fire; which when he beheld, he set forward verv
660 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
boldly: but in going towards the stake, he fell upon his knees and
kissed the ground; and in rising again, a little earth sticking on his
face, he said, " Earth unto earth, and dust unto dust; thou art my
mother, and unto thee I shall return." Then he went on, and cheer-
fully set his back close to the stake. A smith came with a great chain
of iron, whom when he saw, he cast up his hand, and with a loud voice
gave God great thanks. When the smith had fastened him to the stake,
the officers began to lay on more wood, with a little straw and reeds:
wherein the good man was no less occupied than the best ; for as far as
he could reach his hands, he would pluck the straw and reeds, and lay
it about him in places most convenient for his speedy death.
When all things were ready, directly over against the stake, in the
face of the martyr, there was a standing erected, to which ascended a
priest, addressing himself to the people, which were many in number,
because it was market-day. Rawlins perceived him, and considered
the cause of his coming; but paid little attention to him. Then went
the priest forward in his sermon, wherein he spake of many things
touching the authority of the church of Rome. At last, he came to the
sacrament of the altar, when he began to inveigh against Rawlins's
opinions: in which harangue he cited the common place of scripture.
When Rawlins heard that he strove not only to preach and teach false
doctrine, but also to confirm it by scripture, he suddenly started up,
and beckoned his hands to the people, saying twice, " Come hither,
good people, and hear not a false prophet preaching." And then said
unto the preacher, " Ah! thou wicked hypocrite, dost thou presume to
prove thy false doctrine by Scripture?* Look in the text what folio weth:
did not Christ say, ' Do this in remembrance of me !' "
Then some that stood by cried out, " Put fire, set to fire !" which being
set to, the straw and reed cast up both a great and sudden flame : in the
which flame this good and blessed man bathed his hands until the sinews
shrunk, and the fat dropped away; saving that once he did, as it were,
wipe his face with one of them. All this while he cried with a loud voice,
" O Lord, receive my soul ! O Lord, receive my spirit !" until he could
not open his mouth. At the last, the extremity or' the fire was so vehement
against his legs, that they were consumed almost before the rest of his
body was burned, which made the whole body fall over the chain into the
fire sooner that it would have done. Thus died this godly and old man
(for he was upwards of sixty years of age) for the testimony of God's truth,
being now rewarded, no doubt, with the crown of everlasting life.
a Upon the Shrove-Sunday in this year, 1555, a certain priest named Nightingale, parson of
Crundal near Canterbury, preached a sermon on the words of St. John, "He that saith he
hath no sin is a liar, and the truth is not in him." And so upon the same he declared all such
articles as were set forth by the pope's authority, and by commandment of the bishops; saying
moreover, "Now, masters and neighbours, rejoice and be merry, for the prodigal son is come
home. For 1 know that the most part of you be as 1 am, for I know jour hearts well enough.
And I shall tell you what hath happened in this week past : I was before my lord cardinal Pole's
grace, and he hath made me as free from sin as I was at the font-stone : and on Thursday last
being before him, he hath appointed me to notify the same unto you, and I will tell you what It
is." — And after reading the pope's bull of pardon that was sent into England, he added that he
believed that by the virtue of that bull he was as clean from sin as the night he was born. Im-
mediately upon the same he fell suddenly down out of the pulpit, and never more stirred hand
nor foot. This was testified by Robert Austen of Cartham, who both heard and saw the same,
and was witnessed also by the whole country round about.
661
SECTION V.
THE ABBEY LANDS RKSTORED — DEATH OF POPE JULIUS EXAMINATIONS
AND BURNING OF GEORGE MARSH AT CHESTER.
On the 19th of February, the bishop of Ely and the lord Montacute, with
seven score horse, were sent as ambassadors from the king and queen unto
Rome ; and on the 28th day of March the queen summoned four of her
privy council, touching the restoring again of abbey lands ; declaring that
they were taken away from the church by unlawful means, and that her
conscience would not suffer her to detain them. "Therefore," she said,
" I here expressly refuse either to claim or to retain the said lands for
mine ; but with all my heart, freely and willingly, without all paction or
condition, here, and before God, I do surrender and relinquish the said
lands and possessions, or inheritances whatsoever, and do renounce the
same with this mind and purpose, that order and disposition thereof may
be taken, as shall seem best liking to our most holy lord the pope, or else
his legate the lord cardinal, to the honour of God, and wealth of this our
realm." This intimation coming to the cardinal's hand, he despatched a
copy thereof to the pope, who not long after set forth a bull of excommu-
nication against all who kept any of the church or abbey lands ; by virtue
of which bull he also excommunicated all such princes, bishops, noblemen,
justices, and others, who refused to put the same in execution. Albeit
neither Winchester nor any of the pope's clergy would greatly stir in this
matter, perceiving the nobility to be too strong for them, and therefore
were contented to stay while time might better serve their purpose.
About the latter end of March pope Julius died ; and upon command-
ment from the king and queen, on Wednesday in Easter week there were
hearses set up, and dirges sung for the said Julius in divers places, although
this pope had led a very unholy life. At which time it chanced a woman
to come into St. Magnus' church, in London, and there seeing a hearse
and other preparations, asked what it meant. Another, who stood by, said
that it was for the pope, and that she must pray for him. " Nay," quoth
she, "that I will not, for he needeth not my prayers : and seeing he could
forgive us all our sins, I am sure he is clean himself; therefore I need not
to pray for him." She was heard speak these words of certain that stood
by, who after awhile carried her unto the cage at London bridge, and bade
her cool herself there.
George Marsh was born in the parish of Deane, in the county of Lan-
caster, and having received a good education, his parents brought him
up in the habits of trade and industry. About the 25th year of his
age, he married a young woman of the country; with whom he con-
tinued living upon a farm, having several children. His wife dying, he
having formed a proper establishment for his children, went into the
university of Cambridge, where he studied, and much increased in
learning, and was a minister of God's holy word and sacraments, and
was for awhile curate to the Rev. Laurence Saunders. In this situation
he continued for a time, earnestly setting forth the true religion, to the
weakening of false doctrine, by his godly readings and sermons, as
well there and in the parish of Deane, as elsewhere in Lancashire.
662 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
But such a zealous protestant could hardly be safe. At length he was
apprehended, and kept close prisoner in Chester, by the bishop of that
see, about the space of four months, not being permitted to have the
relief and comfort of his friends; but charge being given unto the
porter, to mark who they were that asked for him, and to signify their
names to the bishop, as the particular description of his story, testified
and recorded with his own pen, more evidently will shew.
" On the Monday before Palm Sunday, which was the 12th of March,
it was told me at my mother's house, that Roger Wrinstone, with other
of Mr. Barton's servants, made diligent search for me in Bolton; and
when they perceived that I was not there, they gave strict charge to
Robert Ward and Robert Marsh to find and bring me to Mr. Barton
the day following, with orders that I should be brought before the earl
of Derby to be examined in matters of religion. On knowing this, my
mother and other friends advised me to fly, and avoid the peril, as I in-
tended at first to have done. To their counsel my weak flesh would gladly
have consented, but my spirit did not fully agree; thinking and saying
to myself, that if I fled away, it would be said, that I did not only fly
the country, and my nearest and dearest friends, but much rather from
Christ's holy word, according as these years past I had with my heart,
or at least with my outward living, professed, and with my word and
mouth taught, according to the small talent given me of the Lord.
Being thus with their counsel and advice, and the thoughts and coun-
sels of my own mind, drawn as it were divers ways, I went from my
mother's house, saying, I would come again in the evening.
" In the mean time I ceased not by earnest prayer to seek counsel of
God, the giver of all good gifts, and of my friends, whose pious judg-
ments and knowledge I much trusted to. After this I met with one
of my friends on Deane-moor, about sun-set, and after we had con-
sulted together, not without hearty prayer, we departed. Not fully de-
termining what to do, but taking my leave of my friend, I said I doubted
not but God would give me such wisdom and counsel, as should be most
to his honour and glory, the profit of my neighbours and brethren in
the world, and to the obtaining my eternal salvation by Christ in heaven.
I then returned without fear to my mother's house, where several of
Mr. Barton's servants had been seeking me; and when they could not
find me they strictly charged my brother and William Marsh to seek
me that night, and bring me to Smethehills the next day. They being
so charged, were gone to seek me in Adderton, or elsewhere. Thus in-
tending before to have been all night with my mother, but now consi-
dering that my tarrying there would disquiet her, I departed, and went
beyond Deane church, and stayed all night with an old friend.
" At my first awaking, a person came to me from a friend, with letters,
who said that their advice was that I should in no wise fly, but abide
and boldly confess the faith of Jesus Christ. At these words I was so
confirmed and established in my conscience, that from henceforth I
consulted no more whether it were better to fly or to remain; but was
determined that I would not fly, but go to Mr. Barton, and there
present myself, and patiently bear such cross as it should please God
to lay upon my shoulders. Rising therefore early the next morning,
after I had said the English litany with other prayers, kneeling by my
EXAMINATION OF MR. MARSH. 663
friend's bod-side, I prepared myself to go toward Smethehills; and on
niv way I wont into the houses of several relations and friends, desiring
thom to pray for me, and have me commended to all my friends, and
to comfort my mother, and be good to my little children; for I supposed
they would see my face no more. I then took leave of them, not
without tears shed on both sides, and came to Smethehills about nine
o'clock, when I presented myself to Mr. Barton; who shewed me a
letter from the earl of Derby, wherein he was commanded to send me
with others to Latham ; where he told me I was to be brought the next
day by ten o'clock, before the earl or his council.
" We accordingly went to my mother's, where praying, I took my
leave of her, the wife of Richard Marsh, and both their households,
they and I both weeping. I then went towards Latham, lay all night
within a mile and a half of it, and the next day we came to it betimes,
and remained there till four o'clock in the afternoon. Then was I called
before my lord and his council. After a little while my lord turned
towards me and asked what was my name. I answered, Marsh. He
then asked me whether I was one of those who sowed dissention amongst
the people: which I denied, desiring to know my accusers, and what
could be laid against me. This, however, I could not learn.
" He next asked me whether I was a priest? I said, no. What had
been my living? I answered, I was a minister, served a cure, and kept
a school. Then said he to his council, 'This is a wonderful thing: be-
fore he said he was no priest, and now he confesseth himself to be one.'
I answered, ' By the laws now used in this realm I am none.' They
then demanded who had given me orders, or whether I had taken any.
I answered, I received orders of the bishops of London and Lincoln.
Then said they, 'Those are of the new heretics:' and asked me what
acquaintance I had with them. I answered, I never saw them but when
I received orders.
"They desired to know how long I had been curate, and whether I
had ministered with a good conscience. I answered I had been curate
but one year, and had ministered with a good conscience, I thanked
God; and if the laws of the realm would have suffered me, I would
have minisiered still; and if they at any time hereafter would suffer me
to minister after that sort, I would minister again. Then they asked
me what my belief was.
" I answered, I believed in God the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Ghost, according as the scriptures of the Old and New Testaments
teach, and according to the four symbols or creeds, namely, the creed
commonly called the Apostle's, the creed of the council of Nice, of
Athanasius, and of Austin and Ambrose. I said I believed that who-
ever, according to Christ's institution, received the holy sacrament of
Christ's body and blood, did eat and drink Christ's body, and with all
the benefits of his death and resurrection, to their eternal salvation;
for Christ is ever present with his sacrament. When they asked me
whether the bread and wine, by virtue of the words pronounced by the
priest, were changed into the flesh and blood of Christ, and that the
sacrament was the very body of Christ? I made answer, I knew no
farther than I had said.
" After many other questions, which I avoided as well as I could, re-
664 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
membering the saying of St. Paul, ' Foolish and unlearned questions
avoid, knowing they gender strife;' my lord commanded me to come
to the board, when he gave me pen and ink, and commanded me to
write my answers to the questions of the sacrament. Accordingly I
wrote as I had answered before. Being much offended, he commanded
me to write a more direct answer. I then took the pen and wrote that
further I knew not. On this he said, I should be put to death like a
traitor, with other like words; but sometimes giving me fair words, if I
would turn and be conformable as others were. In the end, after much
ado, he commanded me to ward, in a cold, windy, stone-house, where
was little room: there I lay without any bed, saving a few canvass tent
clothes, and so continued till Palm-Sunday, occupying myself as well
as I could in meditation, prayer, and study; for no man was suffered
to come to me but my keeper twice a-day, when he brought me meat
and drink.
" On Palm-Sunday after dinner, I was again sent for to my lord
and his council, amongst whom were Sir John Biron, and the vicar of
Prescot. After I had communed apart with the vicar of Prescot a
good while concerning the sacrament, he returned with me to my lord
and his council, telling them that the answer which I had made before,
and still made, was sufficient for a beginner, and as one who did not
profess a perfect knowledge in the matter, until such times as I had
learned further. Wherewith the earl was very well pleased, saying, he
doubted not but by the means and help of the vicar of Prescot I should
be conformable in other things; and after many fair words he com-
manded I should have a bed, with fire, and liberty to go amongst his
servants, on condition I would do no harm with my communication with
them. Thus, after so much conference, I departed, much more troubled
in my mind than before, because I had not with more boldness confessed
Christ, but in such sort as mine adversaries thought they should prevail
against me ; whereat I was much grieved : for hitherto I went about as
much as in me lay, to rid myself out of their hands, if by any means, with-
out open denying of Christ and his word, that could be done. This con-
sidered, I cried more earnestly unto God by prayer, desiring him to
strengthen me with his Holy Spirit, with boldness to confess him.
" A day or two after I was sent for to the vicar of Prescot and the parson
of Grappenhall ; where our most communication was concerning the mass :
and he asked what offended me in it. I answered, the whole did offend
me, because it was in a strange language, whereby the people were not
edified, contrary to St. Paul's doctrine, 1 Cor. xiv.; and because of the
manifold and intolerable abuses contained therein, contrary to Christ's
priesthood and sacrifice. Then they asked me in what place thereof: and
I named certain places; which places they went about with gentle and far-
sought interpretations to mitigate, saying, those places were understood far
otherwise than the words did purport, or than I did take them. Then they
caused a mass-book to be sent for, and showed me where, in some places
of the mass, was written, "sacrificium laudis." Whereto I answered, that
it followed not therefore that in all places it signified a sacrifice or oblation
of praise or thanksgiving ; and although it did, yet was it not a sacrifice
of praise or thanksgiving to be offered for the sins of the people ; for that
did Christ, by his own passion, once offer on the cross."
FURTHER EXAMINATION OF MR. MARSH. 665
After this, Mr. Marsh was sent to Lancaster castle; and being brought
with other prisoners to the sessions, he was made to hold up his hand
with the malefactors; when the earl of Derby had the following con-
versation with him, which, like the preceding statements, are given to
us partly in his own expressive and unaffected language.
" I told his lordship, that I had not dwelt in the country these three or
four years past, and came home but lately to visit my mother, children,
and other friends, and that I meant to have departed out of the country
before Easter, and to have gone out of the realm. Wherefore I trusted,
seeing nothing could be laid against me, wherein I had offended against
the laws, that his lordship would not with captious questions examine
me, to bring my body into danger of death, to the great discomfort of
my mother. On the earl asking me into what land I would have gone?
I answered, I would have gone either into Germany, or else into
Denmark. He said to his council, that in Denmark they used such
heresy as they have done in England : but as for Germany the emperor
had destroyed it.
" I then said that I trusted, as his lordship had been of the honour-
able council of the late king Edward, consenting and agreeing to acts
concerning faith towards God and religion, under great pain, would
not so soon after consent to put poor men to shameful deaths for be-
lieving what he had then professed. To this he answered that he, with
the lord Windsor, lord Dacres, and others, did not consent to those acts,
and that their refusal would be seen as long as the parliament-house
stood. He then rehearsed the misfortune of the dukes of Northumber-
land and Suffolk, with others, because they favoured not the true reli-
gion ; and again the prosperity of the queen's highness, because she
favoured the true religion ; thereby gathering the one to be good, and
of God, and the other to be wicked, and of the devil; and said that
the duke of Northumberland confessed so plainly."
And thus you have heard the whole trouble which George Marsh sus-
tained both at Latham and also at Lancaster. While at Latham it was
falsely reported that he had consented, and agreed in all things with the
earl and his council ; and while at Lancaster many came to talk with him,
giving him such counsel as Peter gave Christ : but he answered that he
could not follow their counsel, but that by God's grace he would live and
die with a pure conscience, and as hitherto he had believed and professed.
Within a few days after, the said Marsh was removed from Lancaster ;
and coming to Chester, was sent for by Dr. Cotes, then bishop, to appear
before him in his hall, nobody being present but they twain. Then he
asked him certain questions concerning the sacrament, and Marsh made
such answers as seemed to content the bishop, saving that he utterly denied
transubstantiation, and allowed not the abuse of the mass, nor that the lay
people should receive under one kind only, contrary to Christ's institution ;
in which points the bishop went about to persuade him, howbeit, (God be
thanked,) all in vain. Much other talk he had with him, to move him to
submit himself to the universal church of Rome; and when he could not
prevail he sent him to prison again. And after, being there, came to him
divers times one Massie, a fatherly old man, one Wrench the schoolmaster,
one Hensham the bishop's chaplain, and the archdeacon, with many more ;
who, with much philosophy, worldly wisdom, and deceitful vanity, after the
666 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tradition of men, but not after Christ, endeavoured to persuade him to
submit himself to the church of Rome, to acknowledge the pope
as its head, and to interpret the scripture no otherwise than that
church did.
To these Mr. Marsh answered, that he did acknowledge and believe
one only catholic and apostolic church, without which there is no sal-
vation; and that this church is but one, because it ever hath confessed
and shall confess and believe one only God, and one only Messiah, and
in him only trust for salvation : which church also is ruled and led by
one Spirit, one word, and one faith; and that this church is universal
and catholic, because it ever hath been since the world's beginning, is,
and shall endure to the world's end, and comprehending within it all
nations, kindreds, and languages, degrees, states, and conditions of
men : and that this church is built only upon the foundations of the
prophets and apostles, Jesus Christ himself being the chief corner stone,
and not upon the Romish laws and decrees, whose head the bishop of
Rome was. And where they said the church did stand in ordinary suc-
cession of bishops, being ruled by general councils, holy fathers, and
the laws of the holy church, and so had continued for the space of
fifteen hundred years and more; he replied, that the holy church, which
is the body of Christ, and therefore most worthy to be called holy, was
before any succession of bishops, general councils or Romish decrees:
neither was it bound to any time or place, ordinary succession, or tra-
ditions of fathers; nor had it any supremacy over empires and king-
doms; but it was a poor simple flock, dispersed abroad, as sheep without
a shepherd in the midst of wolves; or as a family of orphans and father-
less children : and that this church was led and ruled by the word of
Christ, he being the supreme head of this church, and assisting suc-
couring, and defending it from all assaults, errors and persecutions,
wherewith it is ever encompassed about. He also shewed by plain
evidence, by the flood of Noah, the destruction of Sodom, the Israelites
departing out of Egypt, the parable of the sower, of the king's son's
marriage, of the great supper, and other plain sentences of scripture,
that this church was of no estimation, and little in comparison with the
church of hypocrites, and wicked worldlings.
After the bishop of Chester had taken pleasure in punishing his prisoner,
and often reviling him, giving taunts and odious names of heretic, etc., he
caused him to be brought forth into a chapel in the cathedral church, called
Our Lady Chapel, before him the said bishop, at two o'clock in the after-
noon ; when were also present the mayor of the city, Dr. Wall and other
priests assisting him, George Wensloe, chancellor, and one John Chetham,
registrar. Then they caused George Marsh to take an oath to answer truly
unto such articles as should be objected against him. Upon which oath
taken, the chancellor laid unto his charge, that he had preached and openly
published most heretically and blasphemously, within the parishes of Dean,
Eccles, Bolton, Bury, and many other parishes within the bishop's diocese,
in the months of January and February last preceding, directly against the
pope's authority, and catholic church of Rome, the blessed mass, the
sacrament of the altar, and many other articles. Unto all which in
sum he answered, that he neither heretically nor blasphemously preached
or spake against any of the said articles; but simply and truly, as occa-
EXAMINATION OF MR. MARSH. 667
sion served, and as it were thereunto forced in conscience, maintained
the truth respecting the same articles, as he said all now present did
likewise acknowledge in the time of king Edward VI.
Then they examined him severally of every article, and bade him
answer yes, or no, without equivocation ; for they were come to examine,
and not to dispute at that present. He accordingly answered them every
article very modestly, agreeably to the doctrine by public authority
received, and taught in this realm at the death of king Edward ; which
answers were every one written by the registrar, to the uttermost that could
make against him. This ended, he was returned to his prison again.
Within three weeks after this, in the said chapel, and in like sort as be-
fore, the bishop and others before named, there being assembled, the said
George Marsh was brought before them. Then the chancellor, by way of
an oration, declared unto the people present, that the bishop had done
what he could in showing his charitable disposition towards the said Marsh,
but that all that he could do would not help ; so that he was now deter-
mined, if the said Marsh would not relent and abjure, to pronounce sen-
tence definitive against him. Wherefore he bade the said George Marsh
to be now well advised what he would do, for it stood upon his life ; and
if he would not at that present forsake his heretical opinions, it would (after
the sentence given) be too late, though he might never so gladly desire it.
Then the chancellor read all his answers that he made at his former ex-
amination ; and at every one he asked, whether he would stick to the
same, or no? To the which he answered again, " Yea, yea." Here also
others took occasion to ask him (for that he denied the bishop of Rome's
authority in England) whether Linus, Anacletus, and Clement, that were
bishops of Rome, were not good men, and he answered, " Yes, and divers
others. But," said he " they claimed no more authority in England than
the bishop of Canterbury doth at Rome ; and I strive not with the place,
neither speak I against the person of the bishop, but against his doctrine ;
which in most points is repugnant to the doctrine of Christ." " Thou art an
arrogant fellow indeed then," said the bishop. "In what article is the doc-
trine of the church of Rome repugnant to the doctrine of Christ?"
To whom George Marsh said, " O my lord, I pray you judge not so of me,
I stand now upon the point of life and death : and a man in my case
hath no cause to be arrogant, neither am I, God is my record. And
as concerning the disagreement of the doctrine, among many other
things, the church of Rome erreth in the sacrament. For Christ in the
institution thereof did as well deliver the cup as the bread, saying,
" Drink ye all of this," and St. Mark reporteth that they did drink of
it. In like manner St. Paul delivered it unto the Corinthians. In the
same sort also it was used in the primitive church for the space of many
hundred years. Now the church of Rome doth take away one part of
the sacrament from the laity. Wherefore if I could be persuaded in
my conscience by God's word that it were well done, I could gladly
yield in this point." Then said the bishop, "There is no disputing
with a heretic." Therefore, when all his answers were ready, he asked
him whether he would stand to the same, or else forsake them, and come
unto the catholic church? to which Mr. Marsh answered, that he held
no heretical opinion, but utterly abhorred all kind of heresy, although
668 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
they did so slander him. And he desired all to bear him witness, that
in all articles of religion he held no other opinion than was by law
established, and publicly taught in England at the death of Edward VI;
and in the same pure religion and doctrine he would, by God's grace,
stand, live, and die.
The bishop of Chester then took a writing out of his bosom, and
began to read the sentence of condemnation ; but when he had pro-
ceeded half through it, the chancellor called him, and said, " Good my
lord, stay, stay! for if you read any further it will be too late to call it
again." The bishop accordingly stopped, when several priests, and
many of the ignorant people, called upon Mr. Marsh, with many earnest
words, to recant. They bade him kneel down and pray, and they would
pray for him : so they kneeled down, and he desired them to pray
for him, and he would pray for them. When this was over the
bishop again asked him, whether he would not have the queen's mercy
in time? he answered, he gladly desired the same, and loved her
grace as faithfully as any of them ; but yet he durst not deny his
Saviour Christ, lest he lose his mercy everlasting, and so win everlasting
death.
The bishop then proceeded with the sentence for about five or six
lines, when again the chancellor with flattering words and smiling
countenance stopped him and said, " Yet, good my lord, once again
stay, for if that word be spoken, all is past, no relenting will then
serve." Then turning to Mr. Marsh, he asked, " How sayest thou ?
wilt thou recant?" Many of the priests and people again exhorted him
to recant and save his life. To whom he answered, " I would as fain
live as you, if in so doing I should not deny my master Christ; but
then he would deny me before his Father in heaven.
The bishop then read his sentence unto the end, and afterwards
said unto him, " Now I will no more pray for thee, than I will for a
dog." Mr. Marsh answered, that notwithstanding, he would pray for
his lordship. He was then delivered to the sheriffs of the city ; when
his late keeper finding he should lose him, said with tears, " Farewell,
good George ;" which caused the officers to carry him to a prison at
the north gate, where he was very strictly kept until he went to his
death, during which time he had little comfort or relief of any creature.
For being in the dungeon or dark prison, none that would do him
good could speak with him, or at least durst attempt it, for fear of ac-
cusation ; and some of the citizens who loved him for the gospel's sake,
although they were never acquainted with him, would sometimes in the
evening call to him and ask him how he did. He would answer them
most cheerfully, that he did well, and thanked God highly that he
would vouchsafe of his mercy to appoint him to be a witness of his
truth, and to suffer for the same, wherein he did most rejoice ; beseech-
ing that he would give him grace not to faint under the cross, but
patiently bear the same to his glory, and to the comfort of his church.
The day of his martyrdom being come, the sheriffs of the city, with
their officers, went to the Northgate, and thence brought him forth,
with a lock upon his feet. As he came on the way towards the place
of execution, some proffered him money, and looked that he should
Mil. MARSH'S LETTERS TO Ills FRIENDS. 669
have gone with a little purse in his hand, in order to gather money to
give unto a priest to say masses for him after his death: but Mr. Marsh
said, he would not be troubled to receive money, but desired some good
man to take it if the people were disposed to give any, and give it to
the prisoners or the poor. He went all the way reading intently, and
many said, " This man goeth not unto his death as a thief, or as one
that deserveth to die." On coming to the place of execution without
the city, a deputy chamberlain of Chester shewed Mr. Marsh a writing
under a great seal, saying, that it was a pardon for him if he would
recant. He answered, Forasmuch as it tended to pluck him from God,
he would not receive it upon that condition.
He now began to address the people, shewing the cause of his death,
and would have exhorted them to be faithful unto Christ : but one of
the sheriffs told him there must be no sermoning now. He then kneeling
down prayed earnestly, and was then chained to the post, having a
number of fagots under him, and a barrel with pitch and tar in it, over
his head. The fire being unskilfully made, and the wind driving it to
and fro, he suffered great extremity in his death, which notwithstanding
he bore very patiently. When the spectators supposed he had been
dead, suddenly he spread abroad his arms, saying, " Father of heaven,
have mercy upon me," and so yielded his spirit into the hands of the
Lord. Upon this, many of the people said he was a martyr, and died
marvellously patient ; which caused the bishop shortly after to make
a sermon in the cathedral church, and therein to affirm, that the said
Marsh was a heretic, burnt as such, and was then a fire-brand in hell.
Besides his examinations, this good man, George Marsh, wrote divers
and sundry letters out of prison, addressed to the faithful in Christ Jesus.
That concerning his examinations here followeth, as also an extract from
one sent to certain friends in Manchester.
" Here you have, dearly beloved friends in Christ, the chief articles
of christian doctrine briefly touched, which heretofore I have believed,
professed, and taught, and as yet do believe, profess, and teach, and am
surely purposed, by God's grace, to continue in the same until the last day.
I want both time and opportunity to write out at large the probations,
causes, parts, effects, and errors of these articles, which whoso desireth to
know, let them read over the common places of those pious and learned
men, Philip Melancthon and Erasmus Sarcerus, whose judgment in these
matters of religion I do chiefly follow. The Lord give us understanding
in all things, and deliver us out of the mouth of the lion, and from all
evil doing, and keep us unto his everlasting and heavenly kingdom.
"Though Satan be suffered as wheat to sift us for a time, yet our faith
faileth not through Christ's aid, but that we are at all times able to
confirm the faith of our weak brethren, and always ready to give an
answer to every man that asketh us a reason of the hope that is in us,
with meekness and fear; having a good conscience, that whereas they
back-bite us as evil doers, they may be ashamed, when they falselv
accuse our good conversation in Christ. I thought myself of late
years well settled with my loving and faithful wife and children, and also
well quieted in the peaceable possession of that pleasant Euphrates ; but
670 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the Lord, who worketh all things for the best to them that love him,
would not there leave me, but did take my dear and beloved wife from
me ; whose death was a painful cross to flesh and blood.
"Also I thought myself of late well placed under my most loving
and gentle Mr. Laurence Saunders, in the cure of Langdon. But the
Lord of his great mercy would not suffer me long there to continue,
though for the time I was in his vineyard I was not an idle workman.
But he hath provided me to taste of a far other cup ; for by violence
hath he driven me out of that pleasing Babylon, that I should not
taste too much of her wanton pleasures, but with his most dearly beloved
disciples to have my inward rejoicing in the cross of his Son Jesus Christ; '
the glory of whose church, I see it well, standeth not in the harmonious
sound of bells and organs, nor yet in the glittering of mitres and copes,
neither in the shining of gilt images and lights, but in continual labour
and daily affliction for his name's sake.
"Take heed and beware of the leaven of the scribes and of the
sadducees; I mean the erroneous doctrine of the papists which with
their glosses deprave the scriptures. The apostle Peter doth teach us,
' There shall be false teachers amongst us, which privily shall bring in
damnable heresies and many shall follow their pernicious ways, by
whom the way of truth shall be evil spoken of; and through covetousness
they shall with feigned words make merchandise of us.' Christ also ear-
nestly warneth us, to ' Beware of false prophets, which come to us in
sheep's clothing, but inwardly they are ravenous wolves. By their fruits
you shall know them.' The fruits of the prophets are their doctrine ;
and here we are taught, that we should try the preachers that come
under colour to set forth true religion unto us, according to the saying
of St. Paul, ' Prove all things, hold fast that which is good.'"
Of the letter to his Manchester friends we can give only an extract;
one, however, of great force as well as truth and beauty. " Beloved
in Christ, let us not faint because of affliction, wherewith God trieth
all that are sealed to life everlasting ; for the only way into the kingdom
of God is through much tribulation. For the kingdom of heaven is
like unto a city built and set upon a broad field, and full of all good
things ; but the entrance thereof is narrow, like as it were a burning
flame on one hand and deep water on the other ; and as it were one
straight path between them, so narrow that one person only can pass at
a time. If this city were now given to an heir, and he never went
through the perilous way, how could he receive his inheritance? Where-
fore, seeing we are in this narrow way, which leadeth to the most joyful
city of everlasting life, let us not halt or turn back afraid of the danger;
but follow Christ and be fearful of nothing, no not even of death itself,
for this must lead to our journey's end, and ooen to us the gate of ever-
lasting life."
671
SECTION VI.
EXAMINATION AND MARTYRDOM OF WILLIAM FLOWER, JOHN CARDMAKER,
JOHN WARNE, JOHN SIMSON, AND JOHN ARDELEY.
Willtam Flower, (otherwise named Branch,) was born at Snailwell,
in Cambridgeshire, at which place he went to school some years,
and thence to the abbey of Ely ; where, after he had remained a
while, he became a professed monk, according to the order and rule of
the house, wearing the usual habit, and observing the regulations until
the age of twenty-one years; before which he had been a priest and
celebrated mass. By reason of a visitation, and certain injunctions by
the authority of Henry the VIII. he forsook the house, and casting from
him the monk's habit and religion, took upon him the habit of a secular
priest, returned to Snailwell, and there celebrated mass, and taught
children for about half a year.
He then went into Suffolk, where he served as a secular priest about
a quarter of a year ; from thence he went to Stoniland, where he acted
in the same capacity until the coming out of the six articles : when he
departed and went into Gloucestershire, where after he had abode awhile,
according to God's holy ordinance, he took a wife, with whom he ever
after faithfully and honestly continued ; and after his marriage, he
tarried in Tewkesbury about two years, and from thence he went to
Bursley, where he remained three quarters of a year, and practised
physic and chirurgery. From thence he removed into Northamptonshire,
where he assisted a gentleman in teaching children to read and write.
At length he came to London ; after that, being desirous to see his
country, he returned to Snailwell, thence to Braintree, then to Coggle-
shall, where he also taught children. Coming to Lambeth, near London,
he hired a house, where he and his wife dwelt together. Being at
home upon Easter-Sunday, about ten or eleven o'clock in the forenoon
of the same day, he came over the water to St. Margaret's church at
Westminster ; when seeing a priest, named John Cheltam, administer-
ing the sacrament of the altar to the people, he was so provoked and
inflamed, that he struck and wounded him upon the head, and also
upon the arm and hand, the priest having at the same time in his hand a
chalice, with certain consecrated hosts therein. For this he was imme-
diately examined before bishop Bonner, and confessed he had done
wrong, submitting himself willingly to punishment, whenever it should
come. Howbeit touching his belief in the sacrament, and the popish
ministration, he neither would nor did submit himself.
Being apprehended and laid in the Gatehouse at Westminster, having
as many irons as he could bear, he was summoned again before bishop
Bonner, April 19th, 1555, when the bishop, after he had sworn him upon
a book, ministered articles and interrogatories to him. Previous to this
the following conversation took place between Mr. Flower and Mr.
Robert Smith, a fellow prisoner.
Smith. Friend, as I understand that you profess the gospel, and that
672 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
you have done so a long season, I am bold to come unto you, and
in the way of communication to demand and learn a truth at your own
mouth, of certain things by you committed, to the astonishment not only
of me, but of others that also profess the truth.
Flower. I praise God for his great goodness in shewing me the light
of his holy word ; and I give you hearty thanks for your visitation, in-
tending by God's grace to declare all the truth that you shall demand
lawfully of me, in all things.
Smith. Then I desire you to shew me the truth of your deed, com-
mitted on John Cheltam, priest, in the church, as near as you can, that
I may hear from your own mouth how it was.
Flower. I came from my house at Lambeth over the water, and en-
tering into St. Margaret's church, and there seeing the people falling
down before a most detestable idol, being moved with extreme zeal for
God, whom I saw before my face dishonoured, I drew forth my hanger,
and struck the priest which ministered the same unto them ; whereupon
I was immediately apprehended.
Smith. Did you not know the person that you struck, or were you not
zealous upon him for any evil will or hatred between you at any time ?
Flower. No, verily, I never to my knowledge saw the person before,
neither had evil will or malice ; for if he had not had it, another should,
if I had at any time come where the like occasion had been ministered,
if God had permitted me to do it.
Smith. Do you think that thing to be well done, and after the rule of
the gospel?
Flower. I confess all flesh to be subject to the power of Almighty
God, whom he maketh his ministers to do his will and pleasure ; as for
example, Moses, Aaron, Phineas, Joshua, Zimri, Jehu, Judith, Mattathias,
with many others, not only changing decrees, but also planting examples
of zeal to his honour, against all order and respect of flesh and blood.
For, as St. Paul saith, " His works are past finding out." By his Spirit
I have also given my flesh at this present unto such order, as it shall
please the good will of God to appoint in death, which before the act
committed I looked for.
Smith. Think you it is convenient for me, or any other, to do the like
by your example?
Flower. No verily, neither do I know whether I could do it again :
for I was up very early at St. Paul's church upon Christ's day in the
morning, to have done it in my jealousy : but when I came there, I was
no more able to do it, than now to undo that which is done ; and yet
now being compelled by the Spirit, not only to come over the water,
and to enter the church, but being also in mind fully content to die for
the Lord, I gave over my flesh willingly, without all fear, I praise
God. Wherefore I cannot learn you to do the like ; first, because
I know not what is in you; secondly, because the rules of the gospel
command us to suffer with patience all wrongs and injuries. Yet never-
theless, if he make you worthy that hath made me zealous, you shall
not be letted, judged, nor condemned ; for he doth in his people his
unspeakable works in all ages, which no man can comprehend. I
humbly beseech you to judge the best of the Spirit, and condemn not
ARTICLES EXHIBITED AGAINST MR. FLOWKR. 673
God's doings: for I cannot express with my mouth the great mercies
that God hath shewed me in this thing, which I repent not.
Smith. Are you not assured to have death ministered unto you for the
act, and even with extremity?
Flower. I did, before the deed committed, adjudge my body to die
for the same : whereupon I carried about me, in writing, my opinion of
the holy scriptures ; that if it had pleased God to have given them leave
to have killed my body in the church, they might in the said writing
have seen my hope, which I praise God, is laid up safe within my breast
notwithstanding any death that may be ministered upon my body in this
world; being ascertained of everlasting life through Jesus Christ our
Lord, and being most heartily sorry for all my offences committed in
this flesh, and trusting shortly, through his mercy, to cease from the
same.
Smith. I need not examine or commune with you of the hope that
you have any further : for I perceive, God be praised, you are in good
state, and therefore I beseech God, for his mercies, to spread his wings
over you, that as for his love you have been zealous, even to the loss of
this life, so he may give you his Holy Spirit to conduct you out of this
world into a better life, which I think will be shortly.
Flower. I hunger for the same, dear friend, being fully ascertained
that they can kill but the body, which I am assured shall receive life
again everlasting, and see no more death ; entirely desiring you and all
that fear the Lord, to pray with me to Almighty God, to perform the
same in me shortly.
On the next examination before Bonner, Mr. Flower had the following
articles exhibited against him.
" That thou being of lawful age and discretion, at the least seventeen
years old, wast a professed monk in the late abbey of Ely, wherein after
thy profession thou remainedst until the age of twenty-one years, using
all the mean-time the habit and religion of the same house, and wast
reputed and taken notoriously for such a person.
" That thou wast ordained and made priest, according to the laudable
custom of the catholic church, and afterwards thou didst execute and
minister as a priest, and wast commonly reputed, named, and taken for
a priest.
''That after the premises, thou, forgetting God, thy conscience,
honesty, and the laudable order of the catholic church, didst, contrary
to thy profession and vow, take as thy wife, one woman, commonly
called Alice Pulton, in the parish of Tewksbury, with whom thou hadst
mutual cohabitation, as man and wife, and had by her two children.
"That thou being a religious man and a priest, didst, contrary to the
order of the ecclesiastical laws, take upon thee to practise in divers
places within the diocese of London, physic and chirurgery, when thou
wast not admitted, expert, nor learned.
" That upon Easter day last, within the church of St. Margaret's, at
Westminster, thou didst maliciously, outrageously, and violently pull
out thy wood knife or hanger. And whereas the priest and' minister
there, called John Cheltam, was executing his cure and charge, especially
in doing his service, and administering the sacrament of the altar to
2 x
674 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
communicants, then didst thou wickedly and abominably smite with thy
said weapon the said priest, first upon the head, and afterwards upon his
hands and other parts of his body, drawing blood abundantly from him,
he then holding the said sacrament in his hand, and giving no occasion
why thou shouldst so hurt him, the people being grievously offended
therewith, and the said church polluted thereby, so that the inhabitants
were compelled to repair to another church to communicate, and receive
the said sacrament.
"That by reason of the premises, thou wast and art by the eccle-
siastical laws of the church, amongst other penalties, excommunicated
and accursed in very deed, and not to be accompanied withal, neither
in the church nor elsewhere, but in special cases.
"That thou, concerning the truth of Christ's natural body and blood
in the sacrament of the altar, hast been for the space of one or more
years, and yet art at this present of this opinion, that in the sacrament
of the altar, after the words of consecration, there is not really, truly,
and in very deed contained under the form of bread the very true and
natural body of our Saviour Jesus Christ.
" That thou for the hatred and disdain that thou hadst and didst bear
against the said sacrament, and against the said priest administering the
same, didst smite, and hurt him in manner before declared.
" That thou art also, by order of the ecclesiastical laws of the church,
to be reputed, taken, and adjudged a very heretic, and to be punished
by and with the pains due for heresy, by reason of the said heresy and
damnable opinion.
"That all the premises be true, manifest, notorious, and famous, and
that upon the same, and every part thereof, there was and is within the
said parish of St. Margaret's, and other places thereabouts, a public
voice and fame."
It is unnecessary minutely to detail the answers of Mr. Flower to
these charges. To the greater part of them, as an honest man he
pleaded guilty, and as a faithful christian he gloried in the plea, and
was ready to say — " If this be to be vile I will be more vile still." He
denied, however, having at any time been a monk in his heart, declaring
that wearing the habit had offended his conscience. On the main point
— his violently assailing the priest at the altar — he answered with
caution, or rather with silence, declining to explain his conduct or its
motives; evidently under the conviction, on the one hand that he had
acted from a divine impulse, and on the other that such an assertion
before a papal court would only have been turned into an occasion of
profane scoffing.
After the deposition of certain witnesses were taken, the bishop asked
him, if he knew any cause why sentence should not be read, and he be
pronounced a heretic. Mr. Flower answered, " I have nothing at all
to say, for I have already said unto you all that I have to say; and what
I have said, I will not go from : therefore do what you will." The bishop
then proceeded to the sentence, condemning and excommunicating him
for a heretic; and after, pronounced him to be degraded, and then
committed him to the secular power. Upon the 24th day of April he
was brought to the place of martyrdom, which was in St. Margaret's
PARTICULARS OF JOHN CARDMAKER. 675
churchyard at Westminster, where the fact was committed. There one
Mr. Chohnley came to him, desiring him to recant his heresy, whereby he
might do iiood to the people ; or else lie would be damned. Flower an-
Bwered, " Sir, I beseech you, for God's sake, be contented ; for what I
have said, I have said : and I have been of this faith from the beginning;
and I trust to the living God he will give me his Holy Spirit so to continue
to the end." Then he desired all the world to forgive him whom he had
offended, as he forgave all the world. This done, his right hand being
held up against the stake was struck off; and then fire was set unto him.
While burning therein, he cried with a loud voice, " O the Son of God,
have mercy upon me ! O the Son of God, receive my soul !" three times ;
when his speech was taken from him. Thus endured this constant witness
for God the extremity of the fire, being therein cruelly handled by reason
of there not being fagots sufficient to burn him, so that they were fain to
strike him down into the fire ; where he lying along upon the ground, his
nether part was consumed in the fire, while his upper part was clean with-
out the fire, his tongue in all men's sight still moving in his mouth.
May 3rd, 1555, a letter was sent to George Colt and Thomas Daniel,
to search for and apprehend John Bernard and John Walsh, who used
to repair to Sudbury, and carrying about with them the bones of Pygot
who was burned, shewed them to the people, and persuaded them to be
constant in his religion; and upon examination to commit them to
further ordering, according to the laws. The same day Stephen Appes
was committed to the Little Ease in the Tower, there to remain two or
three days till further examination.
On the 30th of May suffered together, in Smithfield, John Cardmaker,
alias sir John Taylor, prebendary of the church of Wells; and John Warne,
upholsterer, of St. John's, Walbrook. Cardmaker was an observant friar
before the dissolution of the abbeys. He afterwards married, and in Edward's
time was appointed a reader in St. Paul's, where the papists were so
enraged against him for his doctrine's sake, that while he was reading
they cut and mangled his gown with their knives. Mr. Cardmaker being
apprehended in the beginning of queen Mary's reign, with Mr. Barlow,
bishop of Bath, was brought to London and put in the Fleet prison,
king Edward's laws being yet in force. But after the sitting of that
parliament, the pope was again admitted as supreme head of the English
church, and the bishops had also gotten power and authority, officially
to exercise their tyranny : Barlow and Cardmaker were therefore brought
before the bishop of Winchester, and others appointed by commission,
to examine the faith of such as were then prisoners: and as he had done
unto others before, so now he did to them — offered the queen's mercy, if
they would agree to be conformable to the papal church. Such were
their answers to this, that the chancellor with his fellow commissioners
mistook them for papists. Barlow was led again to the Fleet, from whence
he was afterwards delivered, and did by exile constantly bear witness to the
truth of Christ's gospel. Cardmaker was conveyed to the Compter in Bread
street, the bishop of London publishing that he should shortly be delivered,
after that he had subscribed to transubstantiation and certain other articles.
Some of the articles objected by Bonner against Cardmaker were, that
in times past he did profess the rule of St. Francis, and vowed to keep
676 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
poverty, chastity, and obedience, according to that rule ; that lie did re-
ceive all the orders of the church then used ; that after the said profession
and orders, he took to wife a widow, and with her lived in wedlock, break-
ing- thereby his vow and order, and also the ordinance of the church ; that
Christ, at his last supper, taking bread into his hands, blessing it, breaking
it, giving it to his apostles, and saying, "Take, eat : this is my body," did
institute a sacrament there, willing that his body really and truly should be
contained in the said sacrament — no substance of bread and wine there
remaining, but only the accidents thereof.
To these articles Cardmaker replied, that while under age he did profess
the said order and religion, but that he was absolved therefrom by king
Henry VIII. ; that he had received all the orders of the church ; that by
marriage he brake no vow, being set at liberty by the laws of the realm,
and also by the laws and ordinances of the English church. To the last
article he answered, that he doth believe that it is true; that is to say, that
Christ, taking bread at his last supper into his hands, blessing it, breaking
it, giving it to his disciples, and saying, "Take, eat: this is my body,"
did institute a sacrament there. And to the other part of this article, viz.
that his body really and truly should be contained in the said sacrament,
no substance of bread and wine there remaining, but only the accidents
thereof — he answereth, that he doth not believe the same to be true.
Cardmaker, calling to mind the cavillings of the papists, and thinking he
had not fully answered the last article, did the next day add the following:
" Whereas in my answers to your articles I deny the presence of Christ
m the sacrament, I mean not his sacramental presence, for that I
confess; but my denial is of his carnal presence in the same. But yet
further, because this word is oftentimes taken by the holy fathers, not
only for bread and wine, but also for the whole administration and
receiving of the same according to Christ's institution; so I say, that
Christ is present spiritually too, and in all them who worthily receive
the sacrament; so that my denial is still of the real, carnal, and cor-
poreal presence in the sacrament, and not of the sacramental nor
spiritual presence. This I have thought good to add to my former
answer, because no man should misunderstand it."
Mr. John Warne, a respectable tradesman of London, was the next
selected for trial before this iniquitous court. Some little variety dis-
tinguished the articles alleged against this individual, as the following
sample will shew.
"Thou hast said, that about a twelvemonth ago and more, a rough
spaniel of thine was shorn on the head, and had a crown like a priest
made on the same, thou didst laugh at it, and like it, though thou didst
it not thyself, nor knewest who did it.
" Thou neither this Lent last past, nor at any time since the queen's
majesty's reign, hast come into the church, or heard mass, or been con-
fessed, or received the sacrament of the altar; and hast said that thou
art not sorry that thou hast so done, but that thou art glad, because
thou hast not therewith defiled thy conscience.
"Thou wast in time past here in the city of London, accused of heresy
against the sacrament of the altar, according to the order of the laws of
this realm of England in the time of king Henry VIII. and when
MARTYRDOM OF WARNE AND CARDMAKER. 677
alderman Barnes was then sheriff, and the Thursday after Anne Askew
was burnt in Smithtiekl; and thereupon thou wast sent a prisoner to
Newgate, to whom Edmund, bishop of London, did repair with his
chaplains, to instruct thee in the true faith of Christ, touching the said
sacrament of the altar, and to bring thee from thy error, which was, that
in the sacrament of the altar there is not the body of Christ, nor any
corporeal presence of Christ's body and blood, under the forms of
bread and wine ; but that in the said sacrament there is only material
bread and wine, without any substance of Christ's body and blood at
all : and because thou wouldst not leave and forsake thy said heresy
therein, but would persist obstinately therein, thou wert, according to
the said laws, condemned to be burnt; and thereupon suit being made
for thee to the king and others in the court, thou hadst a pardon of
king Henry VIII. and thereby didst save thy life. Nevertheless in thy
heart and conscience thou didst both then, and also afore believe no
otherwise than at this present thou dost believe; that in the sacrament
of the altar there is neither the very true body or blood of Christ, nor
any other substance but the substance of material bread and wine; and
to receive the said material bread and wine, and to break it, and to
distribute it among the people, only is the true receiving of Christ's
body, and no otherwise. In which thine opinion thou hast ever hitherto
since continued, and so dost continue at this present, thou confessing all
this to be true, and in witness thereof subscribing thy name thereunto."
Mr. Warne being examined upon the above articles on the 23rd of
May, answered for the same, confessing the articles and contents thereof
to be true, according as they were Objected in every part, subscribing
also the same with his hand. Such strength and fortitude God's Holy
Spirit wrought in him, to stand firmly and confidently to the defence of
the sincere doctrine of his Son.
The bishop, however, exhorted him with many persuasions to leave
his heresies, and return to the bosom of his mother the holy church,
and commanded him to appear again the next day. On being brought
up, he answered as before, and was again earnestly exhorted by the
bishop to recant. He answered, that he would not depart from his
received profession, unless he were thoroughly persuaded by the holy
scriptures. Upon which he was ordered to come again the following
day, at one in the afternoon; when the bishop examined him again upon
all his former articles objected, to which he still constantly adhered, with
this further answer — " 1 am persuaded that I am in the right opinion,
and I see no cause to recant; for all the filthiness and idolatry is in
the church of Rome."
The bishop seeing that notwithstanding all his fair promises and ter-
rible threatenings he could not prevail, pronounced the definitive sen-
tence of condemnation against him, and charged the sheriffs of London
with him, under whose custody he remained in Newgate until the 30th
of May. Which day being appointed for execution, he, with John
Cardmaker, were brought by the sheriffs to the place where they should
suffer; and being come to the stake, first the sheriffs called Mr. Card-
maker aside, and talked with him secretly, during which time Mr. Warne
having prayed, was chained to the stake, and had wood and reeds set
678 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
about him. The people had before heard a rumour that Mr. Cardmaker
would recant, and were greatly afflicted, thinking indeed that he would
now recant at the burning of Mr. Warne. At length Mr. Cardmaker
left the sheriffs, came towards the stake, and kneeled down and made
a long prayer in silence to himself. His prayer ended, he rose, and
advanced with a bold courage to the stake, and kissed it: then taking
Mr. Warne by the hand, he heartily comforted him, and cheerfully
gave himself to be bound. The people seeing this so suddenly done,
contrary to their fearful expectation, as men delivered out of a great
doubt, cried out for joy, saying — " God be praised, the Lord strengthen
thee, Cardmaker, the Lord Jesus receive thy spirit." And this continued
while the executioner put fire to them, and both passed through the
flame to the blessed rest and peace among God's holy saints and martyrs,
to enjoy the crown of triumph and victory prepared for the soldiers of
Christ Jesus in his kingdom.
John Simson and John Ardeley were brought before the same court,
and condemned for the same cause and on the same day with Cardmaker
and Warne, namely the 25th of May. It would appear strange that
so strict a search and so severe a proceeding were taken in reference to
four individuals of no distinction in society. The surprise, however,
may be dismissed on finding that on the preceding day Bonner had
received a letter from their majesties at Hampton-court relative to the
further persecution of the protestants, which acted as a stimulus upon
the cruelty and craft of this sanguinary man, and was, doubtless, a
means of hastening the condemnation, as well as multiplying the number
of the martyrs. The letter is remarkable as a proof of the cruel dis-
position of Philip and Mary, and of the sophistry with which they could
proceed to gratify them.
" Right reverend father in God, right trusty and well beloved, we
greet you well. And whereas of late we addressed our letters to the
justice of peace within every of the counties of this our realm, whereby
amongst other instructions given them for the good order and quiet
government of the country round about them, they are willed to have
a special regard unto such disordered persons as do lean to any erroneous
and heretical opinions, refusing to shew themselves conformable to the
catholic religion of Christ's church; wherein if they cannot by good
admonitions and fair means reform them, they are willed to deliver them
to the ordinary, to be by him charitably travelled withal, and removed
from their naughty opinions, or else, if they continue obstinate, to be
ordered according to the laws provided in that behalf: understanding
now, to our no little marvel, that divers of the said disorderly persons,
being by the justices of the peace, for their contempt and obstinacy,
brought to the ordinaries to be used as aforesaid, are either refused to be
received at their hands, or if they be received, are neither so travelled
with as christian charity requireth, nor yet proceeded withal according
to the order of justice, but are suffered to continue in their errors, to
the dishonour of Almighty God, and dangerous example of others; like
as we find this matter very strange, so we have thought convenient both
to signify our knowledge, and therewith also to admonish you to have
in this behalf such regard henceforth to the office of a good pastor and
EXAMINATION OF SIMSON AND ARDELEY. 679
bishop, as when any such offenders shall be by the said officers or jus-
tices of the peace brought unto you, you use your good wisdom and
discretion in procuring to remove them from their errors, if it may be,
or else in proceeding against them according to the order of the laws;
so as through your good furtherance, both God's glory may be better
advanced, and the common-wealth more quietly governed. Given under
our signet at our manor of Hampton-court, the 24th of May, the first
and second years of our reign."
The first article against Simson and Ardeley was of the most sweeping
kind; that they had not believed, and did not believe, that there is on
earth one catholic and universal whole church, which doth hold all the
faith and religion of Christ, and all the necessary articles and sacra-
ments. Secondly, that they had not believed, nor did believe, that they
were necessarily bounden, under the pain of damnation, to give full
faith and credence unto the said catholic and universal church, and to
the religion of the same, in all necessary points of the said faith and
religion, without wavering or doubting in the said faith or religion, or
m any part thereof. Thirdly, that they had not believed that that faith
and religion which both the church of Rome and all other churches in
Europe do believe and teach, is agreeing with the said catholic and universal
church and the faith and religion of Christ ; but contrariwise, that that
faith and religion which the church of Rome and all the other churches
aforesaid have believed, and do now believe, is false, and ought in no wise to
be believed and kept of any Christian man. The four other articles alleged
that they would not acknowledge the corporeal presence in the eucharist,
or the sacrifice of the mass ; and that they condemned as superfluous,
vain, and unprofitable, auricular confession, and all the ceremonies and
services of the church, saying that services in a foreign tongue were
unlawful and naught.
The answers of John Simson, and also of John Ardeley, to the foresaid
articles, taken out of the bishops' own registers : —
To the first they believe, that here on earth there is one catholic and
universal holy church, which doth hold and believe as is contained in the
first article ; and that this church is dispersed and scattered abroad
throughout the whole world. To the second, they believe that they are
bound to give faith and credence unto it, as is contained in the second
article. To the third, as concerning the faith and religion of the church
of Rome, of Italy, Spain, France, Ireland, Scotland, and other churches
in Europe, they have nothing to do with that faith and religion : but as
concerning the faith and religion of England, that if the said church of
England be ruled and governed by the Word of Life, then the church of
England hath the faith and religion of the catholic church, and not other-
wise ; and do say also, that if the church of England were ruled by the
Word of Life, it would not go about to condemn us and others of this
heresy. To the fourth they answer, that in the sacrament of the altar
there is very bread and very wine, not altered or changed in substance in
any wise; and that he that receiveth the said bread and wine, doth
spiritually and by faith only receive the body and blood of Christ ; but
not the very natural body and blood of Christ in substance under the forms
of bread and wine. To the fifth they say they have answered in answering
680 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
to the said fourth article. To the sixth they say they believe that the
mass is of the pope, and not of Christ; and therefore it is not good, nor
having in it any goodness, saving the " Gloria in excelsis," the epistle and
gospel, the creed and the Lord's prayer ; and for this cause they have not,
nor will they come and hear mass.
To the seventh, John Ardeley answered that he believeth the same to be
true ; but John Simson doth answer, that he is not fully resolved with
himself what answer to make thereunto, and further saith that as touching
the common and daily service said and used in the church, he saith that
he never said that the service in the church ought to be said but in the
English tongue ; nor yet he never said, that if it be otherwise said and
used than in English, it is unlawful and naught.
These articles being to them objected, and their answers made unto the
same, the bishop, according to the mode of his consistory court, respited
them to the afternoon. At which time the bishop repeating again the
said articles unto them, and beginning with John Ardeley, urged and
solicited him to recant. But he constantly standing to his religion an-
swered — " My lord, neither you, nor any of your religion, are of the
catholic church; for you are of a false faith: and I doubt not but ye
shall be deceived at length, bear as good a face as ye can. Ye will
shed the innocent blood, and ye have killed many, and yet go about
to kill more. And if every hair of my head were a man, I would suffer
death in the opinion and faith that I am now in." These, with many
other words, he spake. Then the bishop yet demanded if he would
relinquish his erroneous opinions, and be reduced again to the unity
of the church. He answered, " No! God foreshield that I should so do,
for then I should lose my soul."
After this, the bishop asking John Ardeley if he knew any cause why
he should not have sentence condemnatory against him, read the con-
demnation, as he also did against John Simson, standing likewise in the
same cause and constancy with John Ardeley. So were they both com-
mitted to the secular power, that is, to the hands of the sheriffs, on the
25th day of May, 1555, to be conveyed to the place where they should be
executed. Being thus delivered to the sheriffs, they were shortly after
sent down from London to Essex, where they were both put to death
about the 10th of June. John Simson suffered at Rochford ; and John
Ardeley, on the same day, at Rayleigh, finished his martyrdom most quietly
in the quarrel of Christ's gospel.
Furthermore it is not unworthy to be noted of all men, and known to
all posterity, concerning the examinations of Ardeley and his company,
how that they, on being brought before the commissioners, were by them
greatly charged with stubbornness and vain glory. Unto whom they
answered in defence of their own simplicity, that they were content willingly
to yield to the queen all their goods and lands, so that they might be
suffered to live under her, in keeping their conscience free from all idolatry
and popery. Yet this would not be granted, although they had offered
all to their heart's blood ; so greedy and so thirsty be these persecutors of
Christian blood. The Lord give them repentance, if it be his will, and
keep from them the just reward of such cruel dealing ! Amen.
68]
SECTION VII.
CONTAINING THE EXAMINATION AND MARTYRDOM OF MR. THOMAS HAUKES
AND MR. THOMAS WATTS J WITH SOME OTHER INCIDENTS OF THE PERIOD.
While Gardiner and Bonner thirsted for the blood of living- reformers,
cardinal Pole, possessed of somewhat less cruelty but even greater super-
stition, directed his attention to every means of degrading the remains of
those who were dead. By his order, the bones of Martin Bucer and
Paulus Phagius, who had been nearly two years in their graves, were
taken up and burned to ashes at Cambridge. And because he would
shew some token of his diligence in this degrading work in both univer-
sities, he caused the remains of the wife of Peter Martyr, who had been
buried in St. Mary's church-yard, to be dug up and cast on a dunghill!
Nor was the cardinal contented with thus treating the relics of dis-
tinguished persons; where the least public profession of the reformed
opinions had appeared, he was anxious to follow it up with this dis-
graceful treatment of what remained of those who made it. Thus,
because one Tooly, who had robbed a Spaniard and was executed for
the crime at Charing-cross, read from a reformed book under the
gallows, and spoke against the papal church before he suffered, he
became an object of the cardinals vengeance, who instigated the
authorities to disturb the slumber of this unhappy man in his igno-
minious grave, and to burn the corpse of him whom they had omitted to
consume before. To be sure he had been a sinner against the Romish
church of no small degree; for not only had he robbed a countryman
of king Philip, as he was called ; but at his execution for the crime had
said that, as he and his fellows had stolen through covetousness, so the
bishop of Rome sold his masses and trentals from the same motives.
Mention has already been made of six men brought before bishop
Bonner upon the 8th day of February, of which number was Thomas
Haukes, who w r as condemned likewise with the other five on the 9th day
of the foresaid month, though his execution was prolonged till the 10th of
June following. As touching his education and order of life, first he was
of the county of Essex, born of an honest stock, in calling and profession
a courtier, brought up daintily from his childhood, and like a gentleman.
He was a man of great comeliness and stature, well endued with excellent
qualities; but his gentle behaviour towards others, and his fervent study and
singular love unto true religion and godliness, did surmount all the rest.
Haukes following the fashion of the court, as he grew in years, entered
into service with the lord of Oxford, with whom he remained a good
space, being esteemed and loved by all the household, so long as
Edward VI. lived. But he dying, all things began to go backward,
religion to decay, true piety not only to wax cold, but also to be in
danger every where, and chiefly in the houses of the great. Haukes
misliking the state of things, and forsaking the nobleman's house,
departed thence to his own home, where he might more freely give
himself to God, and use his own conscience. Meanwhile he had born
unto him a son, whose baptism was deferred to the third week, because
682 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
he would not suffer him to be baptized after the papal manner. This
his adversaries would not suffer, but laid hands upon him, brought him
to the earl of Oxford, there to be reasoned with as not sound in religion,
but seeming to contemn the sacraments of the church.
The earl, either intending not to trouble himself in such matters, or
else seeing himself not able to contend with him in such points of
religion, sent him up to London with a messenger and the following
letter to the bishop of London—" Most reverend father in God, be it
known unto you that I have sent you Thomas Haukes of the county of
Essex, who hath a child that hath remained unchristened more than
three weeks; who being upon the same examined hath denied to have
it baptized, as it is now used in the church, whereupon I have sent him
to your good lordship, to use as you think best by your good discretion."
Thus willing to clear his own hands, he put him in the hands of Bonner,
bishop of London, who began to communicate with Mr. Haukes, first
asking, what should move him to leave his child unchristened so long?
To this he answered — " Because we are bound to do nothing contrary
to the word of God. His institution I do not deny; but I deny all
things invented and devised by man: your oil, your cream, your salt,
your spittle, your candle, and your conjuring of water." Then the
dialogue thus went on.
Bonner. Will you deny that which the whole world and your fore-
fathers have been contented withal ?
Haukes. What my fathers and all the world have done, 1 have nothing
to do with: but what God hath commanded me to do, to that stand I.
Bonner. The catholic church hath taught it.
Haukes. What is the catholic church?
Bonner. It is the faithful congregation, wheresoever it be dispersed
throughout the whole world.
Haukes. Who is the head thereof?
Bonner. Christ is the head thereof.
Haukes. Are we taught in Christ, or in the church now?
Bonner. Have you not read in the fourteenth of St. John where he
said, He would send his comforter which should teach you all things?
Haukes. I grant you it is so, that he would send his comforter, but to
what end? Forsooth to this end, that he should lead you into all truth
and verity, and that is not to teach a new doctrine.
Bonner. Ah, sir, you are a right scripture man; for you will have
nothing but the scripture. There are a great number of your country-
men of your opinion.
Mr. Haukes himself informs us that at this point of the dialogue the
bishop sent for a preacher of Essex of the name of Baget. He knew
and respected Mr. Haukes, and yet the bishop hoped to have influence
enough over him to induce him to impeach his friend. At first he could
not succeed; but after a little private conversation with Baget the con-
versation was thus resumed —
Bonner. How say you now unto baptism? Say whether it be to be
frequented and used in the church, as it is now, or not?
Baget. Forsooth, my lord, I say it is good.
Bonner. Befool your heart, could you not have said so before? You
DIALOGUE BETWEEN BONNER AND HAUKES. 683
have wounded this man's conscience. How say you now, sir, this man
is turned and converted ?
Haukes. I build not my faith upon this man, neither upon you, but
upon Christ Jesus only, who, as St. Paul saith, is the founder and
author of all men's faith.
Bonne?'. I perceive you are a stubborn fellow; I must, therefore, go
to work another way with you, to win you.
Haukes. Whatsoever you do, 1 am ready to suffer it; for I am in
your hands to abide it.
Bonner. Well, you are so; come on your ways, you shall go in, and
I will use you christian-like: you shall have meat and drink, such as I
have in my house: but in any wise talk not.
Haukes. I purpose to talk nothing but the word of God and truth.
Bon?ier. I will have no heresy talked of in my house.
Haukes. Why, is the truth become heresy? God hath commanded
that we should have none other talk in our houses, in our beds, at our
meat, and by the way, but all truth.
Bonner. If you will have my favour be ruled by my counsel.
Haukes. Then I trust you will grant me my request.
Bonner. What is that?
Haukes. That your doctors and servants give me no occasion : for if
they do, I will surely utter my conscience.
Upon this the bishop commanded his men to take in Baget, that
Haukes and he might not have an opportunity to talk together. And
so thus they departed and went to dinner, dining at the steward's table,
After dinner, the bishop's chaplains and his men began to talk with
Mr. Haukes; and in the company there was one Darbyshire, principal
of Broadgates, in Oxford, and the bishop's kinsman, who said that
Haukes was too curious: " for ye will have," said he, "nothing but
your little pretty God's book."
"And is not that sufficient for my salvation?" Haukes enquired.
" Yes," said he, " it is sufficient for our salvation, but not for our
instruction." At the time that they thus reasoned, Bonner came in; and
after reproving Haukes for talking, they all went into his orchard again,
when the bishop resumed the dialogue.
Bonner. Would not ye be contented that your child should be
christened after the book that was set out by king Edward ?
Haukes. Yes, with a good will: it is what I desire.
Bonner. I thought so : ye would have the same thing. The principal
is in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, and in the
necessity it may serve. Will ye be content to tarry here, and your
child shall be baptized, and you shall not know of it, so that you will
agree to it?
Haukes. If I would so have done, I needed not to have come to you :
for I had the same counsel given before.
Bonner. You seem to be a lusty young man ; you will not give your
head for the washing; you will stand in the defence of it for the honour
of your country. Do ye think that the queen and I cannot command it
to be done in spite of your teeth?
684 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Haukes. What the queen and you can do I will not stand in it: but
ye get my consent never the sooner.
Bonner. Well, you are a stubborn young man; I perceive f must
work another way with you.
Haukes. Ye are in the hands of God, and so am I.
Bonner. Whatsoever you think, I will not have you speak such words
unto me.
They departed until even-song time: and ere even-song was begun,
my lord called Haukes into the chapel, and said — " Haukes, thou art a
proper young man, and God hath done his part unto thee; I would be
glad to do thee good. Thou knowest that I am thy pastor, and one that
should answer for thee. If I would not teach thee well I should answer
for thy soul."
Haukes. That I have said, J will stand to it, God willing: there is no
way to remove it.
Bonner. Nay, nay, Haukes, thou shalt not be so wilful. Remember
Christ bade two go into his vineyard; the one said he would, and went
not; the other said he would not, and went. Do thou likewise, and I
will talk friendly with thee; how sayest thou? It is in the sixth of
St. John — " I am the bread of life, and the bread that I will give is my
flesh, which I will give for the life of the world. And whosoever eateth
my flesh and drinketh my blood, hath everlasting life. My flesh is
meat indeed, and my blood is drink indeed. And he that eateth my
flesh and drinketh my blood, dwelleth in me, and I in him." Do ye
believe this?
Haukes. Yea, I must needs believe the scriptures.
Bonner. Why, then I trust that you be sound in the blessed sa-
crament.
Haukes. I beseech your lordship to feel my Conscience no farther
than in that which I was accused in unto you.
Bonner. Well, well, let us go unto even-song. Why will you not
tarry even-song?
Haukes. Because I have no edifying thereby, for I understand no Latin.
Bonner. Why, you may pray by yourself. What books have you ?
Haukes. I have the New Testament, the book of Solomon, and Psalter.
Bonner. Then I pray you tarry here, and pray you on your Psalter.
Haukes. I will not pray in this place, nor in any such.
Then said one, " Let him go, my lord." So Bonner went to even-song ;
and within an hour after sent for Haukes into his chamber.
Bonner. You know of the talk that was between you and me, as
concerning the sacrament.* You would not have your conscience sought
any farther, than in that you were accused of.
Haukes. I thought you would not be both mine accuser and judge.
Bonner. Well, you shall answer me to the sacrament of the altar, the
sacrament of baptism, the sacrament of penance, and the sacrament of
matrimony.
Haukes. There are none of these, but I dare speak my conscience in
them.
Bonner. The sacrament of the altar you seem to be sound in.
Haukes. In the sacrament of the altar? Why, sir, I do not know it.
DIALOGUE BETWEEN HARPSFIELD AND HAUKES* 685
Bonner. Well, we will make you to know it, and believe in it too,
before we have done with you.
llaukes. No, that shall ye never do. What God thinketh meet to be
done, that shall ye do, and more ye shall not do.
Bonner. Do you not believe that there remaineth in the blessed sacra-
ment of the altar, after the words of consecration be spoken, no more
bread, but the very body and blood of Christ? Why, did not Christ
say, "Take, eat, this is my body?"
Haukes. Christ said so: but therefore it followeth not that the sacra-
ment of the altar is so as you teach, neither did Christ ever teach it so
to be.
Bonner. Why, the catholic church taught it so, and they were of
Christ's church.
Haukes. How prove you it? The apostles never taught it so. Neither
St. Peter nor St. Paul ever taught it, nor instituted it so.
Bonner. Ah, sir, you will have no more than the scripture teacheth,
but even as Christ hath left it bare.
Haukes. He that teacheth me any otherwise, I will not believe him.
Bonner. Why, then you must eat a lamb, if you will have but Christ's
institution only.
Haukes. Nay, that is not so, for before Christ instituted the sacra-
ment, that ceremony ceased, and then began the sacrament. Except
you teach me by the word of God, I never will credit you, nor believe you.
And thus they concluded. The next day the bishop went to London,
for Fecknam was made dean that day. Upon the Monday morning, very-
early, the bishop called for Haukes, having with him Harpsfield, archdeacon
of London, to whom he said, " This is the man which I told you of, who
would not have his child christened, nor will have any ceremonies."
Archdeacon. Christ used ceremonies. Did he not take clay from the
ground, and took spittle, and made the blind man to see?
Haukes. That I well know; but Christ never used it in baptism. If
ye will needs have it, put it to the use that Christ put it unto.
Archdeacon. Admit your child die unchristened, what a heavy case
you stand in ! Marry, then are you damned, and your child both. Do
you not know that your child is born in original sin ? and how is original
sin washed away ?
Haukes. By true faith and belief in Christ Jesus.
Archdeacon. How can your child, being an infant, believe?
Haukes. The deliverance of it from sin standeth in the faith of his
parents. "The unbelieving man is sanctified by the believing woman,
and the unbelieving woman is sanctified by the believing man, or else
were your children unclean, but now are they holy."
Bonner. Recant, recant : do you not know that Christ said, " Except
ye be baptised, ye cannot be saved?"
Haukes. I say as St. Peter saith, " Not the washing of water purgeth
the filthiness of the flesh, but a good conscience consenting unto God."
Bonner. Let us make an end here. How say you to the mass?
Haukes. I say it is detestable, abominable, and unprofitable.
Bonner. What, nothing profitable in it? What say you to the epistle
and gospel ?
686 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Haukes. It is good if it be used as Christ left it to be used.
Bonner. How say you to the Confiteor?
Haukes. I say it is abominable and detestable, yea, and a blasphemy
against God, and his son Jesus Christ, to call upon any, to trust to any,
or to pray to any, save only Christ Jesus.
Archdeacon. What books have you ?
Haukes. The New Testament, Solomon's books, and the psalter.
Archdeacon. Will you read any other books?
Haukes. Yes, Latimer's books, my lord of Canterbury's book,
Bradford's sermons, and Ridley's books.
Bonner. Away, away, he will have no books but such as maintain his
heresies !
The next day came an old bishop, who had a pearl in his eye, and he
brought with him unto my lord a dish of apples, and a bottle of wine.
For he had lost his living because he had a wife. Then the bishop
called Mr. Haukes again into the orchard, and said to the old bishop,
" This young man hath a child, and will not have it christened."
Haukes. I deny not baptism.
Bonner. Thou art a fool; thou canst not tell what thou wouldst have.
Haukes. A bishop must be blameless, sober, discreet, no brawler, nor
given to anger.
Bonner. Thou judgest me to be angry : no, by my faith I am not.
With that he struck himself upon the breast. Then the old bishop
said to Mr. Haukes, " Alas, good young man, you must be taught by
the church, and by your elders, and do as your forefathers have done
before you."
Bonner. No, no, he will have nothing but the scriptures, and God
knows, he doth not understand them. He will have no ceremonies in
the church, no not one: what say you to holy water? The scriptures
allow it? We prove it in the book of Kings, where Elisha threw salt
into the water.
Haukes. You say truth, that it is written in the Kings, the children
of the prophets came to Elisha, saying — " The dwelling of the city is
pleasant, but the waters be corrupted." This was the cause that Elisha
threw salt into the water, and it became sweet and good : and so when
our waters be corrupted, if you can, by putting in salt, make them sweet,
clear, and wholesome, we will the better believe your ceremonies.
Bonner. How say you to holy bread? Have you not read where
Christ fed five thousand men with five loaves and two small fishes.
Haukes. Will ye make that holy bread? There Christ dealt fish with
his holy bread. He did not this miracle, or other, because we should
do the like miracle, but because we should believe and credit his doc-
trine thereby.
Thus closed the dialogue with the bishop for the present. Mr. Haukes
now went to dinner, and, if a humble and holy consciousness of attach-
ment to the word of God amidst personal danger could impart appetite
for the food of this life, his meal must have been a source of real en-
joyment. After dinner he was called into the hall again, when his
lordship desired the old bishop to take him into his chamber, to see if
he could convert him. So he took him, and sat himself down in a chair,
DIALOGUE BETWEEN CIIEDSEY AND HAUKES. 687
and said — "I would to God I could do you some good: you are a
young- man, and I would not wish you to go too far, but learn of your
elders to bear somewhat." To this Haukes answered — " I will bear
nothing- that is contrary to the word of God."
Next day, Fecknam came and said, "Are you he that will have no cere-
monies? You will not have your child christened but in English, and
you will have no ceremonies." To this Haukes replied — " Whatsoever
the scripture commandeth to be done, I refuse not."
A short conversation then followed between Haukes and Fecknam
concerning the real presence and the true interpretation of the words
of Christ — "This is my body." The usual arguments on both sides
were repeated. At length Fecknam said — "I perceive you hang and build
on them that be at Oxford ; I mean Latimer, Cranmer, and Ridley.
Haukes. I build my faith upon no man, and that shall ye well know :
for if those men, and as many more as they be, should recant and deny that
they have said and done, yet will I stand to it ; and by this shall ye know
that I build my faith upon no man.
Bonner. If any of those recant, what will ye say to it ?
Haukes. When they recant, I will make you an answer.
Bonner. Then thou wilt say as thou dost now for all that ?
Haukes. Yes indeed will I, and that, trust to it, by God's grace.
Bonner. I dare say Cranmer would recant, so that he might have his living.
And so the bishop and Fecknam departed from Haukes with great laugh-
ing, and he went again to the porter's lodge. The next day came Dr. Chedsey
to the bishop ; and then was Haukes called into the garden again. After
some talk, Chedsey inquired, " What say ye to the church of Rome?"
Haukes. I say it is a church composed of vicious cardinals, priests,
monks, and friars, which I will never credit nor believe.
Chedsey. What say you to the bishop of Rome?
Haukes. From him and all his detestable enormities, good Lord de-
liver us.
Bonner. He will by no means come within my chapel, nor hear mass:
for neither the mass nor the sacrament of the altar can he abide, nei-
ther will he have any service but in English.
Chedsey. Christ never spake in English.
Haukes. Neither did he ever speak in Latin, but always in such a
tongue as the people might be edified thereby. And St. Paul saith that
tongues profit us nothing. He maketh a similitude between the pipe
and the harp, and except it be understood what the trumpet meaneth,
who can prepare himself to the battle? So if I hear a tongue that I
do not understand, what profit have I thereby? no more than he hath
by the trumpet, that knoweth not what it meaneth.
Chedsey. If you understand St. Paul's saying, he speaketh it under
a prophecy — " If one prophesy to you in tongues."
Haukes. St. Paul maketh a distinction between prophecying and
tongues, saying — " If any man speak with tongues, let it be two or three
at the most, and let another interpret it. But if there be no interpreter,
let them keep silence in the congregation, and let himself pray unto
God : and then let the prophets speak two or three, and that by course,
and let the others judge: and if any revelation be made to him that
688 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
sitteth by, let the first hold his peace:" so that it seemeth that St. Paul
maketh a distinction between tongues and prophesying.
Chedsey. Hath any man preached other than Christ's doctrine unto you?
Haukes. Yea ; I have been taught, since I came here, praying to saints
and to our Lady, trusting in the mass, holy bread, holy water, and idols.
Chedsey. He that teaches you so, teacheth not amiss.
Haukes. Cursed be he that teacheth me so! for I will not trust him,
nor believe him.
The next day Dr. Chedsey preached in the bishop's chapel, and did
not begin his sermon until the service was done : and then came the
porter for Haukes, and said — " My lord would have you come to the
sermon;" and so he went to the chapel and stood without the door, and
when Bonner commanded him in, Haukes refused and answered, "I
will come no nearer," and so stood at the door.
Then Dr. Chedsey put the stole about his neck, and carried the holy
water unto the bishop, who blessed him, and sprinkled him with holy
water, and so he went to his sermon. His text was the sixteenth of
St. Matthew — " Whom do men say that I the Son of Man am? Peter
said, Some say that thou art Elias, some that thou art John the Baptist,
some say thou art one of the prophets. But whom say ye that I am ?
Then said Peter, Thou art Christ the Son of the living God." Then he
left the text there, and said," * Whose sins soever ye bind, are bound: '
which authority is left to the heads of the church, as my lord here is
one, and so unto all the rest that be underneath him. But the church
hath been much kicked at since the beginning: yet kick the heretics,
spurn the heretics ever so much, the church doth stand and flourish."
Then he went straightway to the sacrament, and said his mind on it,
exalting it above heaven, as most of them do, and so returned to this
place again, saying, " Whose sins ye do remit, are remitted and for-
given :" and so he applied it to the bishops and priests to forgive sins,
and said, " All that be of the church will come and receive the same."
And this he attempted to prove by St. John saying, that Christ came
to raise Lazarus, who, when he was risen, was bound in bands: then
said Christ to them that were in authority, " Go ye and loose him, let
him go." And this was the effect of his sermon, applying all to the
bishops, that they have the same authority that Christ spake of to his
apostles.
The several parties separated after this sermon for dinner. After
dinner Mr. Haukes was called into the chapel, where were several of
the queen's servants, and other strangers whom he did not know. The
conversation was thus resumed —
Bonner. Haukes, how like you the sermon? What, are you not
edified thereby? It was made only because of you.
Haukes. Why, then I am sorry that you had no more heretics here,
as you call them: I am sorry that you have bestowed so much labour
on one, and that the labour was so little regarded by him.
Bonner. Well, I will leave you here, for I have business; I pray
my friends to talk with him, for if you could do him good, I would
be glad.
This the bishop spake to the queen's men, who said unto Haukes,
EXAMINATION OF THOMAS HAUKES. 689
" Ahis! what mean you to trouble yourself about such matters against
the queen's proceedings?"
Haukes. This matter have I answered before them in authority :
and unless I see you have a further commission, I will answer you
nothing at. all.
The bishop had borne with answers equally firm and decisive as this;
but the servants were more haughty than their lord, and instantly re-
sented what they affected to consider an insult. They loudly exclaimed
as with one heart and voice, " Fagots! burn him! hang him! to prison
with him ! it is pity he liveth ! lay irons upon him !" and with a great
noise they spake these words. In the midst of all their rage he departed
from them to the porter's lodge again. The next day the bishop called
him into his chamber, and said, "You have been with me a great while,
and you are never the better, but worse and worse : and therefore I
will delay the time no longer, but send you to Newgate. Come on
your ways, you shall see what I have written." Then did he shew
certain articles, and this is the substance of them — whether the catholic
church doth teach and believe, that Christ's real presence doth remain in
the sacrament or no, after the words of consecration, according to these
words of St. Paul; " Is not the bread which we break the partaking of
the body of Christ, and the cup which we bless, the partaking of the
blood of Christ?" which, if it were not so, St. Paul would never have
said it.
Haukes. What your church doth understand I cannot tell : but I am
sure that the holy catholic church doth never so take it, nor believe it.
Bonner. Whether doth the catholic church teach and believe the
baptism that now is used in the church, or no?
Haukes. I answered to it as I did to the other question before.
Again the opponents separated for the night. The next morning,
which was the first of July, the bishop called Haukes from the porter's
lodge, commanding him to make himself ready to go to prison, and to
take such things with him as he had of his own. Then he wrote his
warrant to the keeper of the Gate-house at Westminster, and delivered
it to Harpsfield, who, with his own man and one of the bishop's, brought
him to prison, and delivered the warrant to the keeper, which ran as
follows — " I will and command you, that you receive him who cometh
named in this warrant, and that he be kept as a safe prisoner, and that
no man speak with him, and that you deliver him to no man, except it
be to the council, or to a justice; for he is a sacramentary, and one that
speaketh against baptism, a seditious man, a perilous man to be abroad
in these perilous days."
There he remained thirteen days, when the bishop sent two of his
men unto him, saying, " My lord would be glad to know how you do."
He answered them, " I do like a poor prisoner." They said, " My
lord would know whether you be the same man that you were when
you departed." He said, " I am no changeling." They said, " My
lord would be glad that you should do well." He said, " If my lord
will do me any good, I pray you desire him to suffer my friends to come
to me." They said they would speak for him, but he heard no more
of them. In fact he remained in close confinement, neglected by his
2 Y
690 HTSTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
enemies, insulted by those who had the charge of him, and denied the
society and advice of his friends, for nearly two months, during which
it afterwards appeared that Bonner was devising every crafty method to
prepare him, either for a public recantation or a dreadful death; or
perhaps for both, and for the one as the immediate precursor of the
other.
His second examination took place on the 3rd of September, imme-
diately after a sermon by Gardiner at St. Paul's Cross. In answer to a
question from Bonner whether he would attend and hear the discourse,
Mr. Haukes said — "Yes, my lord, I pray you let me go; and that
which is good I will receive, and the rest I will leave behind me."
Bonner soon perceived that the sermon, though prepared and preached
by one who was bishop of Winchester and lord chancellor at the same
time, produced no effect in the mind of his steadfast prisoner, except
rendering him more steadfast in the true faith. He therefore retired to
prepare a paper that Haukes would be required to sign ; meanwhile he
left the latter to be reviled and taunted by some of his menials. Among
these was one Smith, who was an apostate from the reformed church, and
appears to have been retained by Bonner as a fit instrument of his evil
designs against the reformers. Mr. Haukes observes of him in his
journal — "As I stood there, Dr. Smith came unto me, who once re-
canted, as it appeared in print, saying, he would be glad to talk
brotherly with me. I asked him what he was? Then said they that
stood by, he is Dr. Smith. Then said I, Are you he that did recant?
And he said, It was no recantation, but a declaration. " To this
Mr. Haukes answered with a smile, " You were best to term it well for
your own honesty : but to be short with you, I will know whether you
will recant any more or not before I talk with you, credit you, or
believe you! and so I departed from him to the other side of the
chamber."
It would be trifling with the reader's patience to record the conversa-
tions which Mr. Haukes was compelled to hold with other individuals
even of a meaner stamp : it may be remarked, however, that he per-
fectly confounded every one of them — being constrained to exercise his
talent for satire, and to answer the fools according to their folly. At
length the bishop, having finished his paper, came to Mr. Haukes and
laid it before him to sign — first reading the following portion of it — " I
Thomas Haukes do hereby confess and declare before my said ordinary,
Edmund, bishop of London, that the mass is abominable and detestable,
and full of all superstition, and also as concerning the sacrament of the
body and blood of Christ, commonly called the sacrament of the altar,
that Christ is in no part thereof, but only in heaven : this I have be-
lieved, and this I do believe." At this point Mr. Haukes said, " Stop
there, my lord: what I have believed, what have you to do withal? but
what I do believe, to that stand I and will." Altering the paper ac-
cordingly, the bishop went farther with his writing, and said, " I Thomas
Haukes have talked with my said ordinary, and with certain good, godly,
and learned men; notwithstanding I stand still in mine opinion."
Here Mr. Haukes was constrained to protest — " Shall I grant you to
be good, godly, and learned men, and yet allow myself to stand in a
CONDEMNATION OF THOMAS IIAUKES. 691
contrary opinion? No, I will not grant you to be good, godly, and
learned men."
Bonner. Ye will grant that ye have talked with us : the other I will put
out for your pleasure.
Then said all his doctors, " If your lordship be ruled by him, he will
cause you to put out all together." And then he read more : " Here unto
this bill have I set my hand," and then he offered Haukes the bill and his
pen, and bade him set his hand to it.
Haukes. Ye get not my hand to anything of your making or devising.
Bonner. Wilt not thou set to thy hand ? It shall be to thy shame for
the denying of it.
And then he called all his doctors, and said he would have every man's
hand to it that was in the chamber. And so he had all their hands to it,
and said, " He that will not set his hand to it, I would he were hanged ;"
and so said all his chaplains and doctors with a great noise. Then the
bishop thrust Haukes on the breast with great anger, saying he would be
even with him, and with all such proud knaves in Essex.
Haukes. Ye shall do no more than God shall give you leave.
Bonner. This gear shall not go unpunished — trust to it.
Haukes. As for your cursings, railings, and blasphemings, I care not for
them : for I know the moths and worms shall eat you, as they eat cloth, etc.
Bonner. I will be even with you when time shall come.
Haukes. You may in your malice destroy a man ; but, when you have
done, ye cannot do so much as make a finger ; and ye are meetly even
with some of us already.
Then Bonner took the bill, and read it again ; and when he saw that he
could not have his hand to it, then he would have had him to take it into
his hand, and to give it to him again.
Haukes. What needeth that ceremony ? Neither shall it come into my
hand, heart, or mind. — Then the bishop wrapt it up, put it in his bosom,
and in great anger went his way, and called for his horse ; for the same
day he rode in visitation into Essex.
After all these private conferences, persuasions, and long debatings had
with Thomas Haukes in the bishop's house, the bishop, seeing no hope to
win him to his wicked ways, was fully set to proceed openly against him
after the ordinary course of his popish law. Whereupon Thomas Haukes,
shortly after, was cited with the rest of his other fellows above specified,
to wit, Thomas Tomkins, Stephen Knight, William Pygot, John Lawrence,
and William Hunter, to appear in the bishop's consistory, the 8th day of
February, 1555. Upon which appearance was laid against him, in like
order as to the others, first the bill of his confession, written with Bonner's
hand, to the which bill ye heard before how this blessed servant of God
denied to subscribe. After which bill of confession being read, and he
constantly standing to the said confession, the bishop then assigned him,
with the other five, the day following to appear before him again, to give
a resolute answer what they would stick unto.
Being exhorted the next day by the bishop to return again to the bosom
of the mother church, he .answered, " No, my lord, that will I not; for if
I had a hundred bodies, I would suffer them all to be torn in pieces, rather
than I will abjure and recant." Whereupon Bonner, at the last, read the
692 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
sentence of death uptfn him ; and so was he condemned the same day with
the residue of his fellows, which was the 9th of February. Nevertheless
his execution was prolonged, and he remained in prison till the 10th day
of June. Then was he committed to the hands and charge of the lord
Rich, who, being assisted with power sufficient of the worshipful of the
shire, had the foresaid Thomas Haukes down into Essex, with six other
fellow-prisoners, whose stories hereafter follow, there to suffer martyrdom ;
Haukes at Coggleshall, the others severally in other several places.
By the way, Thomas Haukes used great exhortation to his friends ;
and whensoever opportunity served to talk with them, he would familiarly
admonish them. When the day and hour of his execution arrived, being
led to the place appointed for trie slaughter, he there mildly and patiently
prepared himself for the fire, having a strait chain cast about his middle,
with a multitude of people on every side, unto whom he spake many
things. At length, after his fervent prayers first made and poured out
unto God, the fire was set unto him ; in the which when he had continued
long, and when his speech was taken away by violence of the flame, his
skin also drawn together, and his fingers consumed, so that now all men
thought that he had certainly been gone, suddenly this blessed servant of
God (being mindful of a promise secretly made unto his friends) reached
up his hands burning on a light fire over his head to the living God, and
with great rejoicing, as it seemed, struck or clapped them three times
together : and so the blessed martyr of Christ, straightway sinking down
into the fire, gave up his spirit, June 10, 1555.
Thomas Watts, of Billericay in Essex, and of the diocese of London,
was by his occupation a linen draper. Before he was apprehended he
disposed of his stock in trade, giving much of his cloth to the poor ; and
being in daily expectation of his enemies' virulence, he set his affairs in order,
for the sake of his wife and children. On the 26th of April he was
apprehended and brought before the lord Rich and other commis-
sioners at Chelmsford, and there being accused for not coming to the
church, was upon the same examined before the lord Rich, Sir Anthony
Brown, Edmund Tyrel, and several other magistrates of the county.
When Mr. Watts first came before the justices at the sessions at
Chelmsford, lord Rich thus addressed him, " Watts, you be brought
hither, as I understand, because of disobedience to the king and queen's
laws. You will not come to the church, you will not hear mass; but
have your conventicles a sort of you in corners, contrary to the king
and queen's proceedings."
To this Mr. Watts answered, " My lord, if I have offended a law, I
am subject to the law." Then justice Brown said to him, " W T atts, I
pray thee tell me who has been thy schoolmaster to teach thee this
religion, or where didst thou first learn it?" " Forsooth," said Watts,
" even of you, sir, you taught it me, and none more than you. For in
king Edward's days in open sessions you spake against the religion now
used, no preacher more. You then said the mass was abominable, and
all their trumpery besides, wishing and earnestly exhorting that none
should believe therein, and that our belief should be only in Christ:
and you then said, that whosoever should bring in any strange nation
to rule here, it were treason, and not to be suffered."
EXAMINATION OF THOMAS WATTS. 693
•
Then said Brown to my lord Rich, " He belies me, my lord. What a
knave is this! he will soon belie me behind my back, when he doth it
before my face." And my lord Rich said again, " I dare say he doth so."
In conclusion, the commissioners being; weary of him, or else not willing
to meddle further in such high matters, sent him up to the bishop of
London, with their letter withal, importing the cause of his sending up.
On Thursday, the 2nd of May, Thomas Watts was accordingly brought
before the bishop of London ; and there being examined, upon his words
had before the lord Rich and others, as is contained in their letters, he did
earnestly affirm the same to be true. Whereupon the bishop objected,
and examined him upon these articles following. (1) That he was of
Billericay, and so of the jurisdiction of the bishop of London. (2) That
he believed not in the sacraments of the church of Rome. (3) That he
believeth, and also hath taught others, that the substance of material bread
and wine doth remain in the sacrament after the consecration. (4) That
he believeth that the very true presence of Christ's body and blood, in
substance, is not in the sacrament, but only in heaven, and nowhere else.
(5) That he believeth that the mass now used in the church of Rome is
full of idolatry, abomination, and wickedness, and that Christ did never
institute it. (6) That he believeth auricular confession to be not necessary,
but superfluous. (7) That he believeth that Luther, WicklifFe, Dr. Barnes,
and all others that have holden against the sacrament, and suffered death
by fire for the maintenance of the said opinion, were good men, and faithful
servants and martyrs of Christ in so believing and dying. (8) That he
hath and doth believe that to fast, pray, or to do alms-deeds, is a thing
utterly unprofitable. (9) That coming unto the open court at the sessions,
he there said openly, that all that is now used and done in the church is
abominable, heretical, schismatical, and altogether naught. (10) That he
the said Thomas, by reason of the premises, was and is a manifest and
open heretic ; and for the same is to be declared accursed ; and being
obstinate and incorrigible, is to be delivered to the secular power, there to
be punished as a heretic. (11) That he, besides all these offences, had
believed and deliberately spoken, that the church of Rome, in her rites,
ceremonies, sacraments, constitutions, and traditions, is the synagogue of
Satan. (12) That the premises and every part thereof be true, notorious,
manifest, and openly spoken and talked of. — To these articles the said
Thomas Watts answered : The first he confessed to be true. To the second,
that he believed in all the sacraments according to Christ's institution, but
not according to the bishop of Rome's church. To the third, that he hath
and doth believe that Christ's body is in heaven, and nowhere else ; and
further, that he will never believe that Christ's body is in the sacrament.
To the fourth, that he believed the same to be true. To the fifth, that he
believed that the mass is abominable, and would not go from that belief.
To the sixth, that the priest could not absolve him of his sins, though he
allowed it to be good to ask counsel at the priest's mouth. To the seventh,
that he knew not what the opinions of the said persons were. To the
eighth, he denied having thus spoken ; but said that fasting, prayers, and
almsdeeds, be works of a lively faith. To the ninth, that he did thus
speak, and desired God that he might die in that faith and belief, wherein
he now is. To the tenth, that he will submit himself to the order of the
694 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
law ; and further said, that he trusteth that with God he shall be blessed,
although with men he be accursed. To the eleventh, that he believed the
bishop of Rome to be a mortal enemy to Christ and his church. To the
twelfth, that all which before he confessed to be true, is true ; and all that
he hath denied to be true, he denieth again to be true, and believeth the
same to be according to such things as he hath confessed.
Thus having answered the articles, the bishop commanded Mr. Watts
to appear again in the same place at three o'clock in the afternoon ;
when, after many persuasions to cause him to recant, he ordered him to
depart, and come again on Saturday at eight o'clock in the morning.
The bishop being then absent, Harpsfield, the archdeacon, represented
him, and earnestly exhorted Watts to deny his opinions. But he being
still resolute, as one whose house was built upon a rock, Harpsfield
ordered him to appear there again upon Friday, the 10th day of the
same month. Upon which day the bishop sent for him privately into
his chamber ; but finding all persuasion in vain, he was again dismissed
until the 17th of May, and then commanded to appear in the consistory;
when being condemned he was delivered to the sheriffs of London, by
whom he was sent to Newgate, where he remained until the 9th of June
when he was carried to Chelmsford, to an inn, where, as he and his
fellow sufferers were eating, they prayed together both before and after
their meal. When this was over, Mr. Watts retired, and prayed private-
ly, and afterwards came to him his wife and six children, when having
exhorted them to remain steadfast in the faith, he bade them farewell.
Being brought to the stake, he kissed it, after which he thus addressed
lord Rich: " My lord, beware, beware, for you do against your own
conscience herein, and without you repent, the Lord will avenge it ; for
you are the cause of my death."
Mention was made before, in the story of Thomas Haukes, of six
prisoners which were sent down with him to Essex ; of which six, three
were sent to be burned, and three to recant and do penance. Their names
were, Thomas Osmond, fuller ; William Bamford, weaver ; Nicholas
Chamberlain, weaver ; Thomas Osborne, fuller ; Thomas Brodehill,
weaver ; Richard Web, weaver ; being all of the town of Coggleshall.
The articles objected against Osmond, Bamford, and Chamberlain were
similar to those of Watts and others, and their answers equally firm and
decided. After these had been propounded and answered, they were dis-
missed till the afternoon ; at which time the bishop and his assistants, by
fair and flattering speeches, tried to make them recant and revoke their
opinions. They, notwithstanding, remained firm, and therefore were sent
away again until the next day ; in the afternoon of which the bishop con-
demned them as heretics, and so delivered them to the sheriffs, in whose
custody they remained until they were delivered to the sheriff of Essex,
and by him executed: Chamberlain at Colchester, on the 14th of June;
Thomas Osmond at Manningtree, and William Bamford at Harwich on
the day following.
Long persuasion had been in England with great expectation, for the
space of half a year or more, that the queen was conceived with child.
This report was made by the queen's physicians, and others nigh about the
court ; so that divers were punished for saying the contrary. Command-
MARY'S SUPPOSED PREGNANCY. 695
meiit was given, that in all churches supplication and prayer should be
made for the queen's sate delivery; as may appear by provision made
hi* fore in act of parliament for the child. Such was the public excite-
ment that about Whitsuntide, the time that this young prince should
come into the world, a rumour was blown in London of the prosperous
deliverance of the queen, and the birth of a son! Then the bells were
rung-, bonfires and processions made, not only in London, and in most
other parts of the realm, but also in Antwerp guns were shot off upon
the river by the English ships, and the mariners thereof rewarded with
a hundred pistolets, or Italian crowns, by the lady regent, who was
the queen of Hungary. Yea, divers preachers, after procession and
Te Deum, took upon them to describe the proportion of the child, how
fair, how beautiful, and great a prince it was, as the like had not been
seen!
It is said that a simple man, dwelling within four miles of Berwick,
who never had been before half way to London, cried out concerning
the bonfires made for the supposed child — " Here is a joyful triumph,
but at length all will not prove worth a mess of pottage;" as indeed it
came to pass: for in the end it proved quite contrary, and the joy and
expectations of men were much deceived. One thing of mine own hearing
and seeing I cannot pass over unwitnessed : There came to me, whom I
did both hear and see, one Isabel Malt, a woman dwelling in Aldersgate-
street, in Horn-alley, who before witness made this declaration : that she
being delivered of a man-child upon the 11th of June, 1555, there came
to her the lord North, and another lord to her unknown, dwelling then
about Old Fish-street, demanding of her if she would part with her child,
and would swear that she never knew nor had any such child ; which, if
she would, her son (they said) should be well provided for, she should take
no care for it ; with many fair offers if she would part with her child : but
she in no wise would let go her son, who at the writing hereof being alive,
and called Timothy Malt, was of the age of thirteen years and upward.
Among many other great preparations made for the queen's deliverance
of child, there was a cradle very sumptuously and gorgeously trimmed,
upon which these lines were written both in Latin and English :
The child which thou to Mary, Lord of Might ! hast send,
To England's joy, in health preserve ! — keep, and defend !
About this time there came over a certain English book, warning
Englishmen of the Spaniards, and disclosing certain close practices for re-
covery of abbey-lands, which book was called, " A Warning for England."
By the occasion of this book, upon the 13th day of this month came out
a certain proclamation, in the name of the king and queen, repealing and
disannulling all manner of books written or printed, whatsoever should touch
any thing to the impairing of the pope's dignity ; whereby not only much
godly edification was hindered, but also great peril grew among the people.
Now as these papists have in this present proclamation condemned these
books above recited ; so I desire thee to give thy censure upon their books,
by them allowed, and upon the matter in them contained, and mark well
what good stuff it is. And to begin with the Primer in English for children,
after the use of Salisbury, called "Our Lady's Matins;" let us repeat and
696 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
survey some part thereof, beginning with the first lesson of our Lady in
these words : —
" Holy Mary, mother most pure of virgins all,
Mother and daughter of the King Celestial,
So comfort us iu our desolation,
That by thy prayer and special mediation
We enjoy the reward of thy heavenly reign," etc.
Confer this with the Scriptures, good reader, and judge uprightly,
whether this doctrine be tolerable in the church or not. It followeth
more in the second lesson : —
"Holy Mary, of all godly the godliest,
Pray for us, of all holy the holiest;
That He our prayers accept may in good wise
Which of thee was born, and reigneth above the skies," etc.
The Versicle. — " Pray for the people, entreat for the clergy, make
intercession for the devout woman-kind ; let all feel thy help, that worthily
solemnize thy memorial," etc.
" Holy Mother of God, make thy petition,
That we may deserve Christ's promission," etc.
And in the anthem after Benedictus, thus it followeth : — " We beseech
thee of thy pity to have us in remembrance, and to make means for us
unto Christ, that we, being supported by thy help, may deserve to attain
the kingdom of heaven !"
Item. — " Holy Mother, succour the miserable, comfort the weak-spirited,
give courage to the desperate, pray for the people, make intercession for
the clergy, and be a means for the devout woman-kind," etc.
Another blasphemy in the said Primer: — "Hail Queen! mother of
mercy, our life, our sweetness, our hope ! Unto thee do we cry and sigh,
weeping and wailing. Come off, therefore, our patroness ; cast upon us
thy pitiful eyes ; and after this our banishment, shew to us the blessed
fruit of thy womb. O Gate of glory, be for us a reconciliation unto the
Father and the Son. From the wretched their faults expel : remove the
spots of sins unclean," etc.
And thus much of this catholic primer, called our Lady's Matins.
Whereunto, if it were not tedious for the reader, we would also adjoin our
Lady's Psalter, to the intent that all indifferent readers, as they have seen
what books these catholic fathers have condemned and do condemn for
heretical ; so they may also see and judge what books on the other side
they approve as lawful and catholic. And forasmuch as it is not known
peradventure to all men what our Lady's Psalter is, or what it meaneth,
here therefore we will first produce the name of the author, who was
Bonaventure, a seraphical doctor, bishop also and cardinal, canonized
moreover by pope Sixtus IV., anno 1482, for a saint in the calendar, who,
to show himself a devout servant to his Lady, hath taken every Psalm of
David, (which peculiarly refer to Almighty God,) and hath in divers of the
said psalms and verses put out the name of the Lord, and hath placed in
the name of our Lady. This being done, it is now called our Lady's
Psalter, used to be sung and said in the praise and service of our Lady.
A brief taste whereof, for example's sake, (for, to show all, it were too
long,) here followeth: "Blessed is the man which understandeth thy
EXTRACTS FROM OUR LADY'S PSALTER. 67
Bon. Why, is God's order changed in baptism? In what point do we
dissent from the word of God?
Smith. First, in hallowing your water; in conjuring of the same;
in baptising of children with anointing and spitting in their mouths,
mingled with salt; and with many other lewd ceremonies, of which not
one point is able to be proved in God's order.
Bon. By the mass, this is the most unshame-faced heretic that ever I
heard speak.
Smith. Well sworn, my lord ; you keep a good watch.
Bon. Well, Mr. Comptroller, you catch me at my words : but I will
watch thee as well. I warrant.
Smith. It is a shameful blasphemy against Christ, so to use any
mingle-mangle in baptising young infants.
Bon. I believe, I tell thee, that if they die before they be baptised,
they be damned.
Smith. You shall never be saved by that belief. But I pray you, my
lord, shew me, are we saved by water, or by Christ?
Bon. By both.
Smith. Then the water died for our sins : and so must ye say, that the
water hath life; and it being our servant, and created for us, is our
Saviour. This, my lord, is a good doctrine, is it not?
Bon. W r hy, how understandeth thou the scriptures? " Except a man
be born of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom
of God." And how readest thou again Christ's words — " Suffer these
children to come unto me ?" and if thou wilt not suffer them to be bap-
tised after the laudable order, thou hinderest them to come unto Christ.
Smith. When you allege St. John — " Except a man be born of water
and of the spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God," and will
thereby prove the water to save, and so the deed or work to save and
put away sins ; I will send you to St. Paul, who asketh of the Galatians,
" Whether they received the Spirit by the deeds of the law, or by the
preaching of faith ?" and there concludeth, that the Holy Ghost accom-
panieth the preaching of faith, and with the word of faith entereth into
the heart. So now, if baptism preach unto me the washing in Christ's
blood, so doth the Holy Ghost accompany it, and it is unto me as a
preacher and not a Saviour. And whereas ye say, I hinder the children
to come unto Christ, it is manifest by our Saviour's words that you
hinder them to come that will not suffer them to come unto him without
the necessity of water. For he Saith " Suffer them to come unto me,"
and not unto the water ; and therefore if you condemn them, you con-
demn both the merits and words of Christ. For our Saviour saith,
" Except ye turn and become as children, ye cannot enter the kingdom
of God."
Bon. Well, sir, what say you to the sacrament of orders?
Smith. You may call it the sacrament of disorders ; for all orders
are appointed of God. But as for your shaving, anointing, greasing,
polling, and rounding, there are no such things appointed in God's book,
and therefore I have nothing to do to believe your orders. And as for
you, if you had grace and intelligence, you would not so disfigure your-
self as you do.
768 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Bon. Sayest thou so? Now, by my troth, I will go shave myself to
anger thee withal.
That Bonner should have had the folly to put his ridiculous threat
into execution, and that at the moment and upon the spot, is almost
past belief even of that strange man. Yet Mr. Smith's narrative of the
affair goes on to say that " he sent for his barber, who immediately
came : and before my face at the door of the next chamber, he shaved
himself, desiring me before he went, to answer to these articles."
Bon. What say you to holy bread and holy water, to the sacrament
of anointing, and to all the rest of such ceremonies of the church?
Smith. I say they be baubles for fools to play withal, and not for the
children of God to exercise themselves in, and therefore they may go
among the refuse.
" My lord then left me with certain doctors, of whom I asked this
question."
Smith. Where were you all the days of king Edward, that you spake
not that which you speak now?
Doct. We were in England.
Smith. Yea, but then ye had the faces of men ; but now ye have put
on lions' faces again, as saith St. John. Ye show yourselves as full of
malice as ye may be ; for ye have for every time a vizor ; yea, and if
another king Edward should arise, ye would then say, " Down with the
pope, for he is antichrist, and so are all his angels."
" Then was I reviled, and so sent away, and brought in again before
these men ; when one of them asked me if I disallowed confession ? I an-
swered, l Look in mine articles, and they shall show you what I allow.'"
Doct. Your articles confess that you allow not auricular confession.
Smith. Because the word alloweth it not, nor commandeth it.
Doct. Why, it is written, thou shalt not hide thy sins and offences.
Smith. No more do I when I confess them to Almighty God.
Doct. Why, you cannot say that you can hide them from God, and
therefore you must understand the words are spoken to be uttered to
them that do not know them.
Smith. You have made a good answer: then the priest must confess
himself to me, as well as I to him; for I know his faults and secrets no
more than he knoweth mine. But if you confess to the priest and not
unto God, you shall have the reward that Judas had; for he confessed
himself to the priest, and presently went and hanged himself; and so
many as do not acknowledge their faults to God are said to hide them.
Doct. What did they that came to John to be baptised?
Smith. They came and confessed their sins to Almighty God.
Doct. And not unto John?
Smith. If it were unto John, as you are not able to prove, yet it was
to God, before John and the whole congregation.
Doct. Why, John was alone in the wilderness.
Smith. Indeed! and yet the scriptures say he had many disciples,
and that many pharisees and sadducees came to his baptism ! Here the
scriptures and you agree not. If they confessed themselves to John, as
you say, it was to all the congregation, as St. Paul doth to Timothy,
and to all that read his epistles, in opening to all the hearers, that he
w*« not worthy to be called an apostle, bernn^p ^<* had been a tyrant.
EXAMINATION OF ROBERT SMITH. 760
But as for car-confession, you never knew it allowed by the word. The
prophet David made his confession unto God, and saith — "I will confess
my sins unto the Lord." Daniel maketh his confession unto the Lord.
Judith, Toby, Jeremy, Manasseh, with all the fathers, did even so. And
the Lord hath said — "Call upon me in the time of trouble, and I will
deliver thee." This is the word of God; now bring somewhat of the
word to help yourself withal. You call me a dog! Nay, you are dogs,
that because holy things are offered, will slay your friends. For I may
say with St. Paul, " I have fought with beasts," in the likeness of men.
Bonner now returned to the assault, boasting of having been shaved ;
and exclaiming as he entered — " How standeth it, doctors, have you
done any good?"
Doct. No, my lord, we can do no good to such an evil man.
Smith. Then it is fulfilled which is written, " How can an evil tree
bring forth good fruit?"
Bon. Well, wilt thou neither hear them nor me?
Smith. Yes, I am compelled to hear you; but you cannot compel me
to follow you.
Bon. Well, thou shalt be burnt at a stake in Smithfield, if thou wilt
not turn.
Smith. And you shall burn in hell, if you repent not: but, my lord,
to put you out of doubt, because I am weary, I will strain courtesy with
you : I perceive you will not with your doctors come unto me, and I am
determined not to come unto you, by God's grace. For I have hardened
my face against you as brass.
Mr. Smith was now dismissed for some days. " On the 12th of July
I was with my brethren brought into the consistory, and mine articles
read before the lord mayor and sheriffs, with all the assistants: to which
I answered as I had done before. Then my lord proceeded with the
rest of my articles, demanding of me if I said not as was written. To
which I answered — 'No!' And turning to my lord mayor, I said — '1
require you, my "lord, in God's behalf, unto whom pertaineth your
sword and justice, that I may here before your presence answer to these
objections that are laid against me, and have probation of the same;
and if any thing that I have said, or will say, be proved heresy, I shall
not only with all my heart forsake the same, and cleave to the truth,
but also recant wheresoever you shall assign me, and all this audience
shall be witness to the same.'
L. Mayor. Why, Smith, thou canst not deny but this writing contains
what thou saidst!
Smith. Yes, my lord, I deny that which he hath written, because he
hath both added to, and diminished from the same; but what I have
spoken I will never deny. I denied what you call the blessed sacrament
of the altar to be any sacrament, and I do here stand to make probation
of the same : but if my lord or any of his doctors be able to prove either
the name or usage of the same, I will recant mine error.
Bon. By my troth, Mr. Speaker, you shall preach at a stake, or I am
no saint.
Smith. No, my lord, nor yet a good bishop. For a bishop, saith
St. Paul, should be faultless, and a vessel dedicated unto God; and are
3 D
770 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
you not ashamed to sit in judgment and be a blasphemer, condemning
innocents?
Bon. Well, Mr. Comptroller, you are faultless.
Smith. My lord mayor, I require you in God's name, that I may have
justice. We be here to-day a great many innocents wrongfully accused
of heresy. And I require you, if you will not seem to be partial, let
me have the favour at your hands that the apostle had at the hands of
Festus and Agrippa, who being heathens and infidels, gave him leave to
speak for himself, and also heard the probation of his cause. This
require I at your hands, who being a christian judge I hope will not
deny me that right, which the heathen have suffered : if you do, then
shall all this audience, yea, and the heathen, speak shame of your act.
For all that do well come to the light, and they that do evil hate the
light.
" At this the lord mayor hanging down his head, said nothing; but the
bishop told me, I should preach at the stake, and the sheriff cried with
the bishop for the officers to take me away. I had now been before
them four times, desiring justice, but could have none: at length my
friends required the same with one voice, but could not have it; so we
had sentence; and then being carried out, were brought in again, and
received it separately. But before the bishop gave me sentence, he told
me in derision of my brother Tankerfield, a tale between a gentleman
and his cook. To this I answered, ' My lord, you fill the people's ears
with fantasies and foolish tales, and make a laughing matter at blood;
but if you were a true bishop, you should leave these railing sentences,
and speak the words of God.'"
Bon. Well, I have offered to that naughty fellow, Mr. Speaker, your
companion the cook, that my chancellor should here instruct him, but.
he hath with great disdain refused it. How sayest thou, wilt thou have
him instruct thee, and lead thee into the right way?
Smith. My lord, if your chancellor will do me any good, and take
any pains, as you say, let him take mine articles in his hands, that you
have objected against me, and either prove one of them heresy, or any
thing that you do to be good: and if he be able so to do, I stand here
with all my heart to hear him; if not, I have no need, I praise God, of
his sermon : for I come to answer for my life, and not to hear a sermon.
Then began the sentence, " In the name of God." To which I
answered, that he began in a wrong name, requiring of him, where he
learned in scripture to give sentence of death against any man for his
conscience sake. To which he made no answer, but went forward to
the end, and immediately cried — "Away with him!" Then I turned
to the mayor, and said — M Is it not enough for you, my lord mayor, and
you that are the sheriffs, that you have left the straight way of the
Lord, but you must condemn Christ causeless?"
Bon. Well, Mr. Comptroller, now you cannot say but I have offered
you fair, to have instruction. And now, I pray thee, call me bloody
bishop, and say, I seek thy blood.
Smith. Well, my lord, if neither I nor any of this congregation do
report the truth of your fact, yet shall these stones cry it out rather
than it shall be hidden.
SMITH'S POETICAL LETTER TO HIS ( III LDREN.
77 i
Bon. Away with him, away with him!
I then turned to my fellow-sufferers and said — "Well, good friends,
you have seen and heard the great wrong that we have received this
day, and you are all witnesses that we have desired the probation of
our cause by God's book, and it hath not been granted : but we are
condemned, and our cause not heard. Nevertheless, my lord mayor,
forasmuch as you have here exercised God's sword causeless, and will
not hear the right of the poor, I commit my cause to Almighty God,
who will judge all men according to right, before whom we shall both
stand without authority; and there will I stand in the right, and have
judgment, to your great confusion, except you repent, which the Lord
grant you to do, if it be his will." And then was I with the rest of my
brethren carried to Newgate.
Thus was this steady martyr condemned on the 12th of July. While
he remained in prison, between the periods of his sentence and his
death, he was very active in exhorting and encouraging his fellow
martyrs, and teaching the way of life to those who were confined for
criminal offences, many of whom he converted to the truth. He ter-
minated his triumphant career at Uxbridge, on the 8th of August,
rejoicing in the cross even in the midst of the flames. While in prison,
he wrote several letters to his friends, some of which were in verse,
a proof, that he could not be under any impression of fear at his ap-
proaching death. His verses discover more of the genius of piety than
poetry. Considering the backward state and the paucity of English
poetry in the age in which he lived, his verse, at the same time, displays
an ease and prettiness by no means unworthy of perusal. But that the
reader may judge for himself, we insert the following specimen, ad-
dressed to his children. A longer poem, on religious subjects gene-
rally, precedes this in some former editions; but the domestic one here
inserted will be more acceptable both for its brevity, and the touching
nature of the theme.
Give ear, my children, to my words,
Whom God hath dearly bought :
Lay up my law within your heart,
And print it in your thought.
For I your father have foreseen
The frail and filthy way
Which flesh and blood would follow fain,
E'en to their own decay.
For all and every living beast
Their crib do know full well ;
But Adam's heirs, above the rest,
Are ready to rebel :
And all the creatures on the earth
Full well can keep their way :
But man, above all other beasts,
Is apt to go astray.
For earth and ashes is his strength,
His glory and his reign ;
And unto ashes at the length,
Shall he return again.
For flesh doth flourish like a flower,
And grow up like the grass,
And is consumed in an hour,
As it is brought to pass.
In me the image of your years,
Your treasure and your trust :
Whom ye do see before your face,
Dissolved into dust.
For as you see your father's flesh
Converted into clay :
Even so shall ye, my children dear,
Consume and wear away.
The sun and moon, and all the stars,
That serve the day and night ;
The earth and ev'ry earthly thing,
Shall be consumed quite.
And all the worship that is wrought,
That have been heard or seen,
Shall clean consume and come to nought,
As it had never been.
Therefore that ye may follow me,
Your father and your friend,
And enter into that same life,
Which never shall have "end: —
I leave you here a little book,
For you to look upon :
That you may see your father's face
When I am dead and gone.
772
HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Who for the hope of heavenly things,
While he did here remain,
Gave over all his golden years
In prison and in pain.
Where I among mine iron bands,
Inclosed in the dark,
Not many days before my death
Did dedicate this work,
To you mine heirs of earthly things,
YVhich I have left behind,
That ye may read and understand,
And keep it in your mind ;
That as you have been heirs of that,
Which once shall wear away ;
Even so ye may possess the part
Which never shall decay.
In following of your father's foot,
In truth and also love :
That ye may likewise be his heirs
For evermore above.
And in example to your youth,
To whom I wish all good,
I preach you here a perfect taith,
And seal it with my blood.
Have God always before your eyes,
In all your whole intents :
Commit not sin in any wise,
Keep his commandments.
Abhor that arrant whore of Rome,
And all her blasphemies ;
And drink not of her decretals,
Nor yet of her decrees.
Give honour to your mother dear,
Remember well her pain :
And recompense her in her age,
In like with love again.
Be always aiding at her hand,
And let her not decay:
Remember well your father's fall,
That should have been her stay.
Give of your portion to the poor,
As riches do arise :
Ami from the needy naked soul,
Turn not away your eyes.
For he that will not hear the cry
Of such as are in need,
Shall cry himself and not be heard,
When he would hope to speed.
If God have given you great increase,
And blessed well your store :
Remember ye are put in trust,
To minister the more.
Beware of foul and filthy lust,
Let whoredom have no place :
Keep clean your vessels in the Lord,
That he may you embrace.
Ye are the temples of the Lord,
For ye are dearly bought:
And they that do defile the same,
Shall surely come to nought.
I'ossess not pride in any case,
Build not your nests too high :
But have always before your face,
That ye were born to die.
Defraud not him that hired is,
Your labours to sustain ;
But give him always out of hand,
His penny for his pain.
And as ye would that other men,
Against you should proceed ;
Do ye the same again to them
When they do stand in need.
And part your portion with the poor,
In money and in meat :
And feed the fainted feeble soul,
With that which ye should eat.
That when your body lacketh meat,
And clothing to your back,
Ye may the better think on them
That now do live and lack.
Ask counsel also at the wise ;
Give ear uuto the end :
Refuse not you the sweet rebuke
Of him that is your friend.
Be thankful always to the Lord,
With prayer and with praise :
Desire you him in all your deeds,
For to direct your ways :
And sin not like that swinish sort,
Whose bellies being fed —
Consume their years upon the earth
From belly unto bed.
Seek first, I say, the living God ;
Set him always before ;
And then be sure that he will bless
Your basket and your store.
And thus if you direct your days
According to this book,
Then shall they say that see your ways,
How like me ye do look.
And when you have so perfectly,
Upon your fingers' ends,
Possessed all within your book,
Then give it to your friends.
And I beseech the living God,
Replenish you with grace,
That I may have you in the heav'ns,
And see you face to face.
And though the sword have cut me off,
Contrary to my kind,
That I could not enjoy your love,
According to my mind.
Yet I do hope when that the heav'ns
Shall vanish like a scroll,
I shall receive your perfect shape,
In body and in soul.
And that 1 may enjoy your love,
And you enjoy the land,
I do beseech the living God
to hold you in his hand.
Farewell, my children, from the world,
My children and my friends ;
I hope to God to have you all,
When all things have their ends.
AC( Ol x\T OK SKVLRAL MARTYRS. 11 W
And it you do libiilo in God, God grant you so to end your years
As you have now begun; As iie shall think it best;
Your course 1 warrant will be short, That ye may enter into heav'n,
\ e have not far to run. Where 1 do hope to rest.
A third letter in prose, addressed to his brother, on the education of
his daughter, appears in some editions; and a fourth — "to all who
unfeignedly love God" — appears in others. From the latter an extract
will interest our readers. After reviewing the principal truths for which
he and other martyrs were called to lay clown their lives, he says —
" These doctrines have all the blessed martyrs of Christ's church
witnessed with their blood to be true. To this truth have the con-
sciences of all true believers subscribed ever since the ascension of
Christ. This witness is not of man, but of God. What better can ye
give your lives for than the truth. He who does this takes the readiest
way to life eternal. He that hath the pope's curse for the truth, is sure
of Christ's blessing. Well then, my brethren, what shall now hinder
your going forward as ye have begun? Hold on the right way — look
not back — have the eye of your soul fixed upon Christ — and follow
him whithersoever he is pleased to lead you. Away with the thorns
that choke the heavenly seed of the gospel. Do not those gain who
find heavenly and immortal treasure for earthly and corruptible riches?
Loseth that man any thing who is forsaken of all the world, when he is
received to be the heir of God, and joint heir with Christ? Heavenly
for earthly — immortal for mortal — permanent for transitory — is infinite
gain for a christian conscience."
Two martyrs named Harwood and Fust suffered about the same time
as their brethren, Smith and Tankerfield, in whose company they were
condemned by bishop Bonner. As the proceedings against them were
so much alike, it would be superfluous to repeat the particulars. Har-
wood was burnt at Stratford, and Fust at Ware. It is worth observing
of Mr. Fust, that on his last examination, when Bonner was persuading
him to recant, he answered with great boldness — " No, my lord, for no
truth cometh out of your mouth, but all lies : you condemn men, and
will not hear the truth."
An equally remarkable example of intrepid fidelity, in his behaviour
before the same cruel judge, was one William Hale, who was sent to
bishop Bonner by Sir Nicholas Hare and other commissioners. He be-
longed to Thorp, in the county of Essex. When Bonner pronounced
his sentence, the fearless man looked around on the assembly and said —
"Ah, good people, beware of this idolater, and this antichrist, "pointing
to the bishop. He was then delivered to the sheriffs to be burnt as a
heretic, who sent him to Barnet, where about the latter end of August
he most constantly sealed the faith with his death.
Three others were devoted to death at the same time; but a fatal
sickness while in prison deprived them of the honour of a public mar-
tyrdom. The names of these martyrs were George King, Thomas Leyes,
and John Wade. Their close confinement, and the hardships to which
they were subjected, in Lollard's tower, made them the prey of lingering
and loathsome disease ; which, however, they bore with signal patience till
774 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
death, nearly at the same time, put a period to their sufferings and de-
gradation ; but not to their enemies' malice — for their bodies were cast
out into the fields to be the prey of beasts, and would have been un-
buried but for the care of some humble and faithful brethren, who
interred them under cover of a dark night.
The same charitable attention was paid by other friends to the remains
of a worthy protestant mechanic of the name of William Andrew, of
Horsley, in the county of Essex, who was brought to Newgate the 1st
day of April, 1555. His principal persecutor was the lord Rich, whose
influence in the county obtained his arrest. Andrew being twice
examined before bishop Bonner, boldly stood in defence of his religion.
At length, by the severe usage he met with in Newgate, he there lost his
life, which otherwise would have been taken away by fire : and so after
the popish manner he was cast out into a field, and by night was pri-
vately buried by the hands of good men and faithful brethren, remind-
ing us of the impressive fact of christian history — "Devout men carried
Stephen to his burial, and made great lamentation over him."
At Cobdock, near Ipswich, in the county of Suffolk, lived a justice
of the peace named Foster, remarked for his zeal and hatred against
the faithful, whom he took every means of persecuting. Among many
whom he had troubled, was Mr. Samuel, in king Edward's days a very
holy and faithful preacher of God's word, who for his constant beha-
viour in his sermons, seems worthy of high admiration. He was mi-
nister at Barfold, in Suffolk, where he industriously and successfully
taught the flock which the Lord had committed to his charge, so long
as the time would suffer him to do his duty.
At last he was removed from the ministry, and deprived of his be-
nefice, and although he could not escape the violence of the time, yet
would he not give over his care for his flock, but continued to teach
them by stealth, when he could not openly do it. On the or'der being
given by the queen, that all priests who had been married in king Ed-
ward's days, should put away their wives, and be compelled to return
to a single life, Mr. Samuel would not obey, because he knew it to be
manifestly abominable; but determining with himself, that God's laws
were not to be broken for man's traditions, he still kept his wife at
Ipswich, and gave his diligence in the mean time to instructing others
which were about him, as occasion served. At last Mr. Foster having
intelligence thereof, being very officious in those parts, spared no time
nor diligence, but quickly sent his spies abroad, laying close wait for
Mr. Samuel, that if he came home to his wife at any time, they might
apprehend him, and carry him to prison.
In conclusion, they espied him at home with his wife, and brought
word to the officer, who came to the house, and beset it with a great
company, and so took him in the night, because they durst not do it in
the day-time for fear of trouble and tumult, although Mr. Samuel did
not withstand them at all, but meekly yielded himself into their hands.
When they had thus caught him, they put him into Ipswich jail, where
lie patiently spent his time among his pious brethren, so long as he was
permitted to continue there. However, not long after, he Avas carried to
Norwich, where Dr. Hopton, bishop of that diocese, and Dr. Dunnings,
MARTYRDOM OF MR. SAMUEL. 775
his chancellor, exercised great cruelty against him. These men were
most abhorred instruments of cruelty, exceeding all the rest of their
class in tormenting' the bodies of the martyrs. For although the others
were sharp enough in their generation, yet would they be satisfied with
imprisonment and death, and could go no farther.
The bishop therefore, or else his chancellor, thinking that he might
as easily prevail with Mr. Samuel, as he had done with several before,
kept him in a very close prison at his first coming, where he was chained
upright to a great post, in such sort, that standing only on tip-toe, he
was fain to stay up the whole poise of his body by the chain. And to
this they added a far more grievous torment, keeping him without meat
and drink, whereby he was unmercifully vexed through hunger and
thirst; saving that he had every day allowed him two or three mouthfuls
of bread, and three spoonfuls of water, to the end rather that he might
be reserved to farther torment, than that they would nourish his life.
O worthy constancy of the martyr! O pitiless hearts of papists, worthy
to be complained of, and to be accused before God and nature ! won-
derful strength of Christ in his members ! Whose heart, though it had
been made of adamant stone, would not have relented at the intoler-
able vexations, and extreme pains above nature!
At last, when he was brought forth to be burned, which was but a
trifle in comparison of those pains that he had passed, there were
several that heard him declare what strange things had happened to
him during the time of his imprisonment : namely, that after he had
been famished or pined with hunger two or three days together, he then
fell into a delicious slumber, at which time one clad all in white seemed
to stand before him, who administered comfort unto him by these words
— " Samuel, Samuel, be of good cheer, and take a good heart unto thee;
for after this day shalt thou never be either hungry or thirsty !" This
came to pass accordingly, for soon after he was burned ; ancl from his
dream to his death he felt neither hunger nor thirst. And this he de-
clared, to the end, as he said, that all men might behold the wonderful
work of God ! Many other matters concerning the great comfort he
had of Christ in his afflictions he could utter, he said, besides this, but
that modesty would not suffer him to utter it. And yet if it had pleased
God, I wish he had been less modest in that behalf, that the love and
care that Christ hath of his servants, might have the more appeared
thereby unto us by such present arguments, for the more plentiful com-
fort of the godly, though there be sufficient testimonies of the same in
the holy scriptures already.
No less memorable is it, and worthy also to be noted, concerning the
three ladders which he said he had seen in his sleep set up towards
heaven; of which there was one somewhat longer than the rest, but yet
at length they became one, joining, as it were, all three together. This
was a forewarning revealed unto him, declaring undoubtedly the mar-
tyrdom first of himself, and then of two honest women, who were brought
forth and suffered in the same town not long after.
As Mr. Samuel was going to the stake, a certain female came to him,
and kissed him, which being marked by them that were present, she
was sought for the next day after to be had to prison and burned : how-
776 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
ever, as God of his goodness would have it, she escaped their fiery
hands, keeping herself secret in the town a good while after. But
while this female, called Ptose Nottingham, was marvellously preserved
by the providence of God, two other honest women did fall into the
rage and fury of that time ; the one was the wife of a brewer named
Potten, the other of a shoemaker named Trunchfield. With these two
Rose was very familiar and well acquainted, and advised one of them,
that she should convey herself away while she had time and space,
seeing she could not bear the queen's proceedings; but her friend an-
swered her, that it is well enough to fly away, which remedy she might
use if she pleased. " My case standeth otherwise," she said ; " I am tied to
a husband, and have besides young children at home; and then I know
not how my husband, being a carnal man, will take my departure from
him; therefore I am minded, for the love of Christ and his truth, to
stand to the extremity of the matter."
The day after that on which Mr. Samuel suffered, these two pious
wives, Potten and Trunchfield, were apprehended and imprisoned toge-
ther. As they were both by sex and nature somewhat tender, so they
were at first less able to endure the straitness of the prison, and es-
pecially the brewer's wife was cast into great agony and trouble of
mind thereby. But Christ beholding the weak infirmity of his servant,
did not fail to help her when she was in this necessity. At length they
both suffered after Samuel, February 19th, 1556; greatly supported
by many things that were said of him as well as by him. It was re-
ported by some who were present at his sufferings, and saw him burn,
that his body did shine as bright as new tried silver in the eyes of all
that stood by. If, too, these holy women had read or heard of Mr.
Samuel's letter left behind him, exhorting the faithful to patience and
perseverance in the cause of Christ, it must have contributed much to
their final support.
"A man knoweth not his time; but as the fish is taken with the angle,
and as the birds are caught with a snare, so are men caught and taken
in the perilous time when it cometh upon them. The time cometh;
the day draweth near. Better were it to die than to live and see the
miserable works which are done under the sun ; such sudden and strange
mutation, such woeful, heinous, and lamentable divisions so fast approach,
and none, or very few, thoroughly repent. Alas, for this sinful nation,
a people of great iniquity and seed of ungraciousness, corrupting their
ways. They have forsaken the Lord, they have provoked the Holy One
of Israel to anger, and are gone backward. Who now liveth not in
such security and rest, as though all dangers were clean overpast? Who
now blindeth and bufFeteth not Christ, and then asketh him to tell the
smiter? Yea, who liveth not now in such felicity, worldly pleasures
and joys, wholly seeking the world, providing and craftily shifting for
the earthly clod and carnal appetite, as though sin were clean forgotten,
overthrown, and devoured? Like hoggish Gergesites, we are more afraid
and ashamed of Christ our Messiah, fearing the loss of our filthy pigs, I
mean our transitory goods, and disquieting our sinful and mortal bodies
in this short, uncertain, and miserable life, thah of a legion of devils,
MR. SAMUEL'S LETTER. 777
seducing and driving us from hearing-, reading, and believing in Christ,
God's eternal Son, and his word, the power to save our souls, unto
vanities, lies, and fables, and to this bewitching world.
ff Let us be constant in obeying God rather than men. For although
thev slay our sinful bodies for God's verity ; yet they cannot do it but
by God's sufferance and good will, to his praise and honour, and to our
eternal joy and felicity. For our blood shed for the gospel, shall
preach it with more fruit, and greater furtherance, than did our mouths,
lives, and writings; as did the blood of Abel, and Stephen, with many
others. What though they laugh Christ and his word to scorn, who sit
in the chair of perverse pestilent scoffers; to whom, as to the wise
Gentiles of the world, the gospel of Christ is but foolishness, as it was
to the Jews a slander and a stumbling stone, whereat they now being-
fallen, have provoked the wrath and vengeance of God upon them.
"Let us therefore with an earnest faith lay fast hold on the promises in
the gospel, and let us not be separated from the same by any temptation,
tribulation, or persecution. Let us consider the verity of God to be
invincible, inviolable, and immutable, promising and giving us, his
faithful soldiers, life eternal. It is he only that hath deserved it for us:
it is his only benefit, and of his only mere mercy, and unto him only
must we render thanks. Let not therefore the vain fantasies and dreams
of men, and foolish gaudy toys of the world, nor the crafty delusions
of the devil, drive and separate us from our hope of the last day. O
that happy and joyful day, I mean to the faithful, when Christ by his
covenant shall grant and give unto them that overcome, and keep
his words to the end, that they may ascend and sit with him, as he as-
cended and sitteth on the throne with his Father. The same body and
soul that is now with Christ afflicted, shall then with Christ be glorified:
now in the butcher's hands, as sheep appointed to die, then sitting at
God's table, with Christ in his kingdom, as God's honourable and dear
children ; where we shall have heavenly riches for earthly poverty ;
saturity of the pleasant presence of the glory of God, for hunger and
thirst; celestial joys in the company of angels, for sorrows, troubles, and
cold irons; and life eternal for bodily death. O happy precious souls!
O welcome death, and evermore blessed, right dear in the eyes of God !
to you the spring of the Lord shall ever be flourishing. Then, as saith
Isaiah, 'The redeemed shall return and come again unto Sion, praising
the Lord, and eternal mercies shall be over their heads: and they shall
obtain mirth and solace; sorrow and woe shall be utterly vanquished.'
'Yea, I am he,' saith the Lord, 'that in all things giveth you ever-
lasting consolation.' To whom with the Father and the Holy Ghost,
be glory and praise for ever. Amen."
" ROBEllT SA.MUEL."
After the suffering of Mr. Samuel, about the beginning of September,
William Allen, a labouring man, was burnt in Walsingham in the
same county of Norfolk. Being brought before the bishop, and asked
the cause why he was imprisoned, he answered, That he was put in
prison because he would not follow the cross, meaning, that he would
778 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
never go in procession after the popish crucifix. Then being willed
by the bishop to return again to the catholic church, he answered,
that he would turn to the catholic church, but not to the Romish
church : adding, that if he saw the king and queen, and all others
follow the cross, or kneel down to the cross, he would not. For
this, sentence of condemnation was given against him on the 12th
of August, to be burnt at the town of his abode and birth. He
declared such constancy at his martyrdom, and had such credit with
the justices, by reason of his well-tried conversation among them, that
he was suffered to go unbound to his execution, and there being fastened
with a chain, stood quietly without shrinking until he died.
The next martyr worthy of notice was a venerable patriarch of the
name of Roger Coo, who suffered at Yoxford, where he had chiefly
lived, about the same time as Mr. Allen atWalsingham, and Mr. Samuel
at Ipswich. All these towns being in the diocese of Norwich, the mar-
tyrdoms of Suffolk as well as Norfolk must be ascribed to the " tender
mercies" of the bishop of that see, Dr. Hopton. Being brought before
that cruel prelate, Coo was first asked by him why he was imprisoned ;
and answered boldly — "At the justice's commandment."
Bish. There was some cause why you were imprisoned ?
Coo. Here is my accuser, who alleges that I would not receive the
sacrament. But I thought I had transgressed no law, because there
was no law to transgress. I have been in prison a long time, and know
not the law that now is.
Accuser. No, nor will not. My lord, ask him when he received the
sacrament.
Coo. I pray you, my lord, let him sit down, and examine me yourself.
I will not receive, because the bishop of Rome hath changed God's
ordinances, and given the people bread and wine instead of the gospel,
and the belief of the same.
Bish. Is not the holy church to be believed? It hath charge of your
soul.
Coo. I believe it, if it be built upon the word of God : but if you
have charge of my soul, and you go to the devil for your sins, what shall
become of me ?
Bish. Do you not believe as your father did ? Was not he an honest
man ?
Coo. It is written, that after Christ hath suffered, " There shall come
a people with the prince that shall destroy both city and sanctuary."
I pray you shew me whether this destruction was in my father's time, or
now ? I will obey the laws of the kingdom as far as they agree with the
word of God ; but no farther.
Bish. Whether they agree with the word of God or not, we are bound
to obey them; yea and if the king were an infidel. 1
Coo. If Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego had so done, Nebuchad-
nezzar had not confessed the living God. 1 may say the same of Daniel
and others.
» A modern prelate discovered exactly the same spirit ; who said in the House of Lords,
that the poor had nothing to do with the laws but to obey them.
ACCOUNT OV SKA BRAL M?ART¥RS. 779
Bish. These two-and-twrnty years we have been governed by such
kings.
Coo: My lord, why were you then dumb, and did not speak or bark ?
Bish, I durst not for fear of death.
This hasty, and to all appearance inadvertent and unintended con-
fession, operated as much against the bishop's cause as even the bold
and ingenuous answers of honest Roger Coo. One resource was opened
to the baffled bishop, he could report his prisoner to be contumacious
and contemptuous to the ecclesiastical court. This was done ; on which
account Coo says in his narrative — "I recollected and wrote down my
railing, as they called it, that light should not be taken for darkness,
nor sin for holiness, and the devil for God, who ought to be feared and
honoured both now and for ever, Amen." At length, after sundry
troubles and conflicts with his adversaries, he was committed to the fire
at Yoxford, in the county of Suffolk, where he most blessedly ended his
aged years, about Michaelmas 1555.
Our next noble confessor, of ignoble birth and occupation, was one
Thomas Cobb, a butcher of Haverhill, who was condemned on the 12th
day of August, and executed in the month of September. Being
brought and examined by Michael Dunnings, the bloody chancellor of
Norwich, whether he believed that Christ is really and substantially in
the sacrament of the altar ? he answered, That the body of Christ, born of
the Virgin, was in heaven, and otherwise he would not answer, because
he had read it in the scriptures, that Christ did ascend, and never did
descend since ; and therefore said, that he had not learned in the scrip-
ture, that Christ should be in the sacrament. Then being demanded
whether he would obey the laws of the realm of England, made for the
unity of the faith, or no ? he answered, That his body should be at the
king and queen's commandment so far as the law of God would suffer.
In fine, being condemned, he was burnt in the town of Thetford.
We must now return from the counties of Norfolk and Suffolk, to
Kent and the diocese of Canterbury : and here five worthy martyrs, whose
lives were forfeited for the true testimony of Christ and his gospel, await
our attention. George Catmer, and Robert Streater, were inhabitants
of Hythe, a town on the southern coast. Anthony Burward was of Chal-
lock ; George Brodbridge, of Broomfield ; and James Tutty, of Brenchley.
These good men were all together brought before Dr. Thornton, suf-
fragan of Dover, and his accomplices, and were jointly and severally
examined upon the usual articles, touching the sacrament of the altar,
auricular confession, and the other peculiarities of the dominant church.
Catmer, who was first examined, made answer thus — "Christ sitteth in
heaven on the right hand of God the Father, and therefore I do not
believe him to be in the sacrament of the altar ; but he is in the
worthy receiver spiritually ; and the sacrament, as you use it, is an abo-
minable idol." Next to him Robert Streater was asked, Whether he did
believe the real presence of Christ in the sacrament of the altar ? At
once the resolute and honest man said — " I do not so believe, for you
do maintain heresy and idolatry, in that you teach to worship a false
god in the sacrament, enclosed in a box. It is you that are the malig-
780 HTSTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
nant of the church : for in your church there are twenty things used
against the law of God." Anthony Burward, though more brief, was
equally firm and conclusive.
After him it was demanded of George Brodbridge what he said to
those articles? He answered, that he would not be confessed by a
priest, because no man could forgive his own sins. He further said,
that in the sacrament of the altar there is no real body of our Saviour
Christ, but bread given in remembrance of him. " Moreover," he said,
" as for your holy bread, your holy water, and your holy mass, I do
utterly defy them." Last of all, James Tutty made and confirmed tire
foregoing answers, though in words somewhat different. On this they
were condemned as heretics, and were all five burned at Canterbury in
one fire, about the middle of July then next following.
Although the rage and vehemency of the terrible persecutio)i in queen
Mary's days chiefly existed in London, Essex, Norfolk, Suffolk, and
Kent, as hath been partly declared; yet notwithstanding, few parts of
the realm were free from this fatal storm, but in almost all places some
were put to death for the cause of righteousness. In the diocese of
Litchfield and Coventry were two persons, Thomas Hayward and John
Goreway, both condemned as heretics, and burnt at Litchfield about the
time of the martyrdoms just detailed.
Unto this present time pertaineth also the memorable martyrdom of
Mr. Robert Glover, gent., in the diocese of Litchfield and Coventry. He
was apprehended, and put to death in September; but his apprehension
and troubles cannot well be treated of, without mentioning some things
relating to John Glover, for whom the commission was chiefly sent
down, although it pleased God that John escaped, and Robert in his
stead was apprehended and martyred. In describing some part of their
virtuous order of life, we shall begin with John the eldest, who, being-
heir to his father in the town of Manchester, was endowed with con-
siderable possessions and worldly goods; but much more plentifully was
he enriched with God's heavenly grace, which so wrought in him, that
he with his brethren, Robert and William, received and embraced the
happy light of Christ's holy gospel, and also most zealously professed it,
and lived accordingly.
John Glover was a man of a very tender conscience, and seemed to
have a deeper sense of heavenly things than the others. His spiritual
conflicts were very extraordinary. For a long time he had dwelt under
the fearful impression of having committed the sin against the Holy
Ghost, as spoken of by the Lord Jesus, k which, precluding from his
k As the opinions of commentators and learned men, respecting the sin against the Holy
Ghost, have been swelled into volumes, and as it still remains a mystery in the minds of
multitudes, we -here present to our readers an extract upon the subject, from an author
who has, in our opinion, the clearest views upon it. After having satisfactorily answered
all the objections which could reasonably be made to his arguments, he thus proceeds.
" In a word, the conclusion of the whole may again be collected thus — In the days of
Moses, and before Moses from the beginning, not to believe the Holy Ghost and what he
then witnessed, by whomsoever, or in whatsoever manner he chose to declare the saving
truth, was to sin against the Holy Ghost. From Moses down to the coming of the Holy
One and the Just, not to believe the doctrine then delivered by the inspiration of the Holy
ACCOUNT OF JOHN GLOVJ.K. /«1
miiul all hope of future happiness, rendered him extremely miserable ;
so that, he could enjoy nothing", but was worn as by a baleful disease.
At length it pleased God to give him faith, when his fears were dis-
persed, and he could cry Abba, Father. He now was filled with joy
and peace, became dead to the world, and seemed like one in heaven,
abhorring in his mind all profane doings. Neither was his talk any
thing different from the fruits of his life, never throwing out an idle,
vile, or vain word. The most part of his lands he distributed to the use
of his brethren, and committed the rest to the management of his
servants and officers, whereby he might the more quietly give himself
up to his godly study, as to a continual sabbath. This was about the
latter end of king Henry's reign, and continued in the time of the young
and pious Edward.
After this, in the persecuting days of queen Mary, as soon as the
bishop of Coventry heard of his fame, and of his being so ardent and
zealous in the gospel of Christ, he immediately wrote a letter to the
mayor and officers of Coventry to apprehend him as soon as possible.
But by the good providence of God, it happened otherwise : for God
disposeth all things after his own pleasure. Therefore, of his divine
wisdom, thinking it too much that one man should be so overcharged
Ghost, was the very sin against the Holy Ghost, in those days. When the Messiah, after
John the Baptist, his forerunner, came and taught and wrought miracles, the unbelievers
sinned against the Holy Ghost still more and more. But when Jesus was declared the Son
of God, with power, according to the Spirit of holiness, by the resurrection from the dead ;
and the gospel, by the Holy Ghost from heaven, was preached to every creature under
heaven, whithersoever the apostles with their doctrines were sent, as they now are unto us,
at this day, — the sin of blasphemy against the Holy Ghost arrived at the very highest pitch
of aggravation. And who, sayest thou, is guilty of it? — Thou, thy very individual self,
O reader! art indeed at this present moment of God's long suffering and forbearance, guilty
of this most alarming sin and blasphemy against the Holy Ghost ; holding him for a liar in
his testimony concerning the Son of God, if thou hast not verily set to thy seal that God is
true, and hast not attained the same precise, honourable, divine faith, as all the apostles
themselves had, and which they preached by the Holy Ghost, and have also recorded in
their writings, which are our standard: for the faith of all God's elect is one, and their hope
one in the Lord. ' Be not deceived — God is not mocked : as a man soweth, so shall he
also reap- These things are written, that ye may believe that Jesus is the Christ, the Son
of God, and that believing ye may have life through his name.'
Hence it appears, that this dreadful sin is neither more nor less than the resisting and
discrediting the word of God ; which was written at the inspiration of the Holy Ghost.
So that ' Whatsoever is not of faith is sin. He that believeth on the Sox hath everlasting
life, and he that believeth not the Son, shall not see life ; but the wrath of God abioeth
on imi.'
Such is the note of Milner, in the edition of 1806. To this the editor of the present
edition begs leave to append the following somewhat qualifying remarks from the admirable
" Conversations" of the Rev. Richard Watson. " On our Lord's return to Capernaum
he cast out a devil which had inflicted both blindness and dumbness upon an unhappy man.
This was a case of peculiarly afflictive and notorious possession : and it was the impression
made by this miracle in favour of his Messiahship upon the minds of the people, which led
the Pharisees to utter the blasphemy — 'This fellow doth not cast out devils, but by Beel-
zebub the prince of the devils ! ' This was the wretched argument by which they steeled
their perverted consciences against all conviction, and which constituted that sin against the
Holy Ghost, whose power co-operated with Christ in working his miracles, which was de-
clared to be beyond forgiveness. This is the only unpardonable sin. It is not every sin
against the Holy Ghost which is unpardonable, though some make awful approaches to
that which is so : but this sin, the only one excepted from divine mercy, is defined to be
blasphemy against Him."
782 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
with so many sufferings, did provide, that Robert his brother, being both
stronger in body, and also better furnished with helps of learning to
answer the adversaries, should sustain that conflict, and even so it came
to pass. For as soon as the mayor of Coventry had received the bishop's
letters for the apprehending of Mr. John Glover, he forthwith sent private
notice to him to convey himself away, who accordingly escaped with his
brother William.
But when the officer had searched a long time for him in vain, he
went into an upper chamber, where he found Robert lying on his bed,
he having been long sick, and brought him immediately before the
sheriff. The sheriff, notwithstanding, favouring Robert and his cause,
would indeed fain have dismissed him, and wrought what means he
could, saying, that he was not the man for whom they were sent: yet,
being terrified with the threats of the officer, who insisted on his being
detained till the bishop's coming, he was constrained to carry him
against his will, and so confined him till the bishop arrived. To enter,
however, upon the story and martyrdom of Mr. Robert Glover, as the
whole narration of the same by his own record and testimony in writing
was sent unto his wife, it seems best, for the more credit of the matter, to
exhibit extracts from his own letter : —
" To my entirely beloved wife, Mary Glover,
" The peace of conscience which passeth all understanding, the sweet
consolation, comfort, strength, and boldness of the Holy Ghost, be con-
tinually increased in your heart, through a fervent, earnest, and steadfast
faith in our most dear and only Saviour Jesus Christ. I thank you
heartily, for your letters sent to me in my imprisonment. I read them
with tears more than once or twice; with tears of joy and gladness, that
God had wrought in you so merciful a work; an unfeigned repentance,
a humble and hearty reconciliation, a voluntary submission and obedience
to the will of God in all things. Which when I read in your letters,
and judged them to proceed from your heart, I could not but be
thankful to God, rejoicing for you, and these his great mercies poured
upon you.
"After I came into prison, and had reposed myself there a while, I
wept for joy and gladness, musing much of the great mercies of God,
and saying to myself — O Lord, who am I, on whom thou shouldst
bestow this great mercy, to be numbered among the saints that suffer
for the gospel's sake! Not long after, Mr. William Brasbridge, Mr.
Charles Phineas, and Mr. Nicholas Hopkins, came unto me, persuading
me to be dismissed upon bonds. But I answered, that as the masters
had nothing to burden me withal ; if I should enter into bonds, I should
in so doing accuse myself; and seeing they had no matter to lay to my
charge, they might as well let me pass without bonds as with them.
"They, however, used many worldly persuasions to me to avoid the
present peril, and also how to avoid the forfeiture if I brake my promise.
I said, I had cast up my pennyworth by God's help. They undertook
also to make the bond easy. — Then the second day after the bishop's
coming to Coventry, Mr. Warren came to the Guildhall, and ordered
the chief jailor to carry me to the bishop. I laid to Mr. Warren's
ROBERT GLOVKR'S LETTER TO HIS WIFE. 783
charge the cruel seeking- of my death; and when lie would have excused
himself, I told him he could not wipe his hands so; for he was as guilty
of my Mood before God, as though he had murdered me with his own
hands. Thus he departed from me, saying, I needed not to fear if I
would be of his belief.
" When I came before the bishop in Mr. Denton's house, he began
with the protestation, that he was my bishop for lack of a better, and
willed me to submit myself. Mr. Chancellor standing by, said I was a
master of arts. Then my lord laid to my charge my not coming to the
church. Here I might have dallied with him, and put him to his proof,
forasmuch as I had not been in his diocese for a long season, neither were
any of the citizens able to prove any such matter against me. Notwith-
standing I answered him through God's merciful help, that I neither had,
nor would come to their church, so long as their mass was used there, to
save, if 1 had them, five hundred lives. I desired him to shew me one
jot or tittle in the scriptures for the proof and defence of the mass. To
this he answered, he came to teach, and not to be taught. I told him
I was content to learn of him, so far as he was able to teach me by the
word of God.
" ' Who shall judge the word?' then asked the bishop. I answered —
' Christ was willing that the people should judge his doctrine by search-
ing the scriptures, and so was Paul; methinks you should claim no
further privilege nor pre-eminence than they had. — If you will be
believed because you are a bishop, why find you fault with the people
that believed bishop Latimer, bishop Ridley, and bishop Hooper?'
' Because they were heretics/ he quickly answered. I then asked —
'And may not you err as well as they?' I expected my lord to use
some learned arguments to persuade me, but instead of that he op-
pressed me only with his authority. He said, I dissented from the
church, and asked me where my church was before king Edward's time?
But I desired him to shew me where their church was in Elias's time,
and what outward shew it had in Christ's time? To this he answered,
' Elias's complaint was only of the ten tribes that fell from David's
house, whom he called heretics.' But I said confidently — ' You are
not able to shew any prophets that the other two tribes had at that same
time.'
" My lord making no answer to that, Mr. Rogers, one of the masters
of the city, cometh in the mean season, taking upon him as though he
would answer to the text. But my lord forthwith commanded me to be
committed to some tower, if they had any besides the common jail,
saying, he would at the end of the visitation of his diocese, drive out
such wolves. Mr. Rogers willed him to content himself for that night,
till they had taken further order for me. ' Even where it pleaseth you,'
said I to my lord — ' I am content;' and so I was returned at that time
to the common jail again from whence I came.
" Certain serjeants and constables at Coventry being appointed to
convey us to Litchfield, to be delivered there to one Jephcot, the chan-
cellor's man, sent from Coventry with us for the same purpose, we were
commanded to be on horseback about eleven o'clock on Friday, it being
a market day, in order that we might be the more gazed at : and to set
784 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the people's hearts more against us, they exhibited a letter concerning a
proclamation made for calling in and disannulling all such books as truly
expounded the scriptures. We arrived at Litchfield about four o'clock,
and had leave to repose ourselves till supper-time. The house we put
up at was the sign of the Swan, where we were entertained friendly and
gently.
" I was put into a prison that same night, where I continued till I
was condemned, in a place next the dungeon, where was small room, a
strong building, and very cold, with little light; and there I was allowed
a bundle of straw instead of my bed, without chair, form, or any thing
else to rest myself upon. God of his mercy gave me great patience
through prayer that night, so that if it had been his pleasure, I could
have been contented then to have ended my life: but Jephcot, and one
Percy, the bishop's man, who afterwards was my continual keeper for
the most part, came to me in the morning, to whom I said — ' This is a
great extremity, God send us patience.' Upon which they consented
that I should have a bed of my own procuring. But I was allowed no
help, neither night nor day, nor company of any kind, notwithstanding
my great sickness; nor yet paper, pen, ink, or books, except my New
Testament in Latin, and a Prayer-book which I brought privily in.
" Within two days after, Mr. Chancellor, and Mr. Temsey, a pre-
bendary there, came into my prison. The first exhorted me to conform
myself to my lord and to the church. He wished no more hurt to my
soul than he did to his own; perhaps this was because I had laid to his
charge at Coventry the seeking of my blood unjustly and wrongfully.
I answered, that I refused not to be ruled by that church, which was
content to be governed by the word of God. He asked me, ' How know
you the word of God, but by the church?' I answered — 'The church
sheweth which is the word of God, therefore the church is above the
word of God ! This is no good reason in learning, Mr. Chancellor. For
it is like unto this — 'John sheweth the people who Christ was; therefore
John was above Christ!'
" He said, he came not to reason with me, and so departed. And I
remained for the space of eight days without further conference with
any man, until the bishop's coming: in which time I gave myself con-
tinually to prayer and meditation on the merciful promises of God unto
all, without exception of person, that call upon the name of his Son
Jesus Christ. I found in myself daily amendment of health of body,
increase of peace in conscience, and many consolations from God, by
the help of his Holy Spirit, and sometimes as it were a taste and glim-
mering of the life to come.
"At the bishop's first coming to Litchfield after my imprisonment, I
was called into a by-chamber next to my prison to meet him. When I
came before him, and saw none but his officers, chaplains, and servants,
except it were an old priest, I was partly amazed, and lifted up my
heart to God for his merciful help and assistance. He asked me how I
liked my imprisonment; but I gave him no answer touching that ques-
tion. He then proceeded to persuade me to be a member of his church,
which had continued so many years. As for my church, he said to me,
it was not known but lately in Edward's time. To this I answered, that
MARTYRDOM OF ROBERT GLOVER. 785
I professed myself to be a member of that church which is built upon
the foundation of the apostles and prophets, Jesus Christ being- the head
corner-stone; and so alleged the place of St. Paul to the Ephesians.
And this church hath "been from the beginning, though it bear no
glorious shew before the world, being ever for the most part, under the
cross and affliction, contemned, despised, and persecuted. When my
lord contended on the other side, that they were the church, I said —
1 So cried all the clergy against the prophets of Jerusalem, saying,
' The church of the Lord, the church of the Lord.' And always when
I was about to speak any thing, my lord cried, ' Hold thy peace, I
command thee by the virtue of thy obedience to hold thy peace,' calling
me a proud arrogant heretic. Upon this contemptuous abuse, I desired
him to lay something to my charge in particular, and then to convince
me with some scriptures and good learning.
" He began to move certain questions. I refused to answer him in
corners, requiring that I might make my answer openly. He said I
should answer him there. I stood with him upon that point till he said
I should go to prison again, and there have neither meat nor drink till
I had answered him. Then I lifted up my heart to God, that I might
stand and agree with the doctrine of his most holy word; while he pre-
pared to ask me — How many sacraments Christ instituted to be used in
the church? I answered without hesitation — The sacrament of baptism,
and the sacrament that he instituted at his last supper. He expressed
surprise that I mentioned no other* sacraments, and asked me further,
Whether I allowed their confession, and absolution? to which I
answered, 'No:' adding thus — 'To all those who declare a true and
unfeigned repentance, a sure hope and trust in the death of Christ; to
such the ministers of Christ have authority to pronounce in his name the
remission of sins.' Then the bishop would know my mind, what I
thought of the presence of Christ's body in the sacrament. To which
I answered — That their mass was neither sacrifice nor sacrament, be-
cause they had taken away the true institution, which, when they
restored again, I would tell them my judgment concerning Christ's
body in the sacrament."
Thus much did this worthy martyr of God leave behind him in his
own hand-writing, concerning the manner of his usage in prison, and
also of his disputes with the bishop and his chancellor. More examina-
tions he had, no doubt, with the bishop in the public consistory, before
he was brought forth to be condemned, which he would also have left
unto us, if either length of life or leisure of time had permitted him to
finish what he intended; but by reason of the writ of his burning being
sent from London, want of time did neither serve him so to do, neither
could the records of his last examination be procured.
Only this could be learned by the relation of one Austen Bernher,
a minister, and a familiar friend of his. Mr. Robert Glover, after he was
condemned by the bishop, and was now to be delivered out of this
world, found his heart heavy, and desolate of all spiritual consolation,
and felt in himself no willingness, but rather a heaviness and dullness
of spirit, to bear the bitter cross of martyrdom. This led to serious
and devout self-examination; fearing in himself lest the Lord had
3e
786 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
utterly withdrawn his wonted favour from him, he made his moan to
this Bernher, his friend, signifying unto him how earnestly he had
prayed day and night unto the Lord, and yet could receive no sense of
comfort from him. By a faithful friend, but one kind of advice could
be given. Bernher desired him patiently to wait the Lord's pleasure,
and howsoever his present feeling was, yet seeing his cause was just
and true, he exhorted him constantly to adhere to the same, and to play
the man, nothing doubting but that the Lord in his good time would
visit him, and satisfy his desire with plenty of consolation.
The night before his martyrdom was spent in praying for strength
and courage to endure manfully the fiery trial ; but strange to say that
strength and courage which he sought were delayed till almost the
moment that he needed them. When the time came of his martyrdom,
as he was going to the place, and was come within sight of the stake,
suddenly he was so mightily replenished with God's holy comfort and
heavenly joy, that he cried out, clapping his hands to Austen, "Austen,
he is come, he is come!" and that with such joy and alacrity as one
seeming rather to be risen from some deadly danger to liberty and life,
than as one passing out of the world by any pains of death. Such
was the change of the marvellous working of the Lord's hand upon that
good man. It is impossible to read such a memorial of divine interpo-
sition, preceded by a mysterious absence of courage and comfort, without
calling to mind several remarkable passages of holy writ. " God is our
refuge and strength — a very present help in time of trouble. — The Lord
shall judge his people, and repent himself for his servants, when lie
seeth that their strength is gone, and there is none shut up or left. — It
shall come to pass in that day the light shall not be clear nor dark: but
it shall be one day which shall be known unto the Lord, not day nor
night; and it shall come to pass that at evening time it shall be
light." — Psa. xlvi. I ; Deut. xxii. 36 ; Zech. xiv. 6, 7.
In the same fire with Mr. Glover was Cornelius Bungay, of Coventry,
likewise burnt. He also was condemned by the bishop of Coventry and
Litchfield. It was objected against him, that for three years past, in
the cities of Coventry and Litchfield, and places thereabout, he did
hold, maintain, argue, and teach, that the priest hath no power to ab-
solve from sins. That by baptism sins are not washed away, because
that the washing of the flesh purgeth the flesh outwardly, and not the
soul. That there are in the church only two sacraments, baptism and
the Lord's supper. That in the sacrament of the altar was not the
real body and blood of Christ, but the substance of bread and wine
there remaining still, because St. Paul calleth it bread and wine. That
the pope is not the head of the visible church here on earth. That all
these premises are true, manifest, and notorious, and that upon the same
there hath been and is a public voice and fame, as well in the places
above rehearsed as in other quarters also about.
To these articles Mr. Bungay answered much in the manner of his
suffering brethren preceding him ; without fear of the consequence of
confessing their general application to himself; at the same time pru-
dently qualifying all points wherein the charge against him was pushed
beyond the truth, and he was made responsible for what he did not
ACCOUNT OF SEVERAL MARTYRS. 787
believe. His condemnation soon followed, and the citizens of Coventry
were excited by the spectacle of two of the worthiest of their fraternity
consumed to ashes for no crime, but for their resolute preservation of a
good conscience and a pure faith.
John and William Glover, the brothers of Robert Glover, ought not
to be omitted in this history : although they were not called to martyr-
dom, yet they were cast out of the church, and excommunicated even
after they were dead, by having christian burial denied them. When
the sheriffs, with their under officers and servants, were sent to seek
John Glover, they came into his house, where he and his wife were. It
chanced as he was in a chamber by himself, the officers bursting into
the house, and searching other rooms, came to the very room where
John was, who holding the latch softly in his hand, perceived and heard
the officers bustle about the door, one of whom having the string in his
hand, was ready to draw the same. Meanwhile another coming by,
whose voice he heard and knew, bade them come away, saying, they
had been there before. Whereupon they departing thence, went to
search other corners of the house, till they found Agnes Glover, his wife,
who being carried to Litchfield, and examined before the bishop, at
length was constrained to give place to their tyranny. Her husband,
in the mean time, partly for care of his wife, partly through cold
taken in the woods where he lay, caught an ague, of which he lost
his life, which the cruel papists so long had sought for.
Six weeks after he was dead and buried in the church-yard, without
priest or clerk, Dr. Dracot, then chancellor, sent for the parson of the
town, and demanded how it happened that he was buried there. The
parson answered that he was sick at the time, and knew not of it. Then
the chancellor commanded him to go home, and cause the body to be
taken up, and cast over the wall into the highway. The parson an-
swered, that it had been six weeks in the earth, and that in consequence
none were able to undertake it. " Well," said Dr. Dracot, " then take
this bill and pronounce him in the pulpit a damned soul, and a twelve-
month after take up his bones, when the flesh will be consumed, and cast
them over the wall, that the horses may tread upon them, and then I
will come and hallow again that place in the church-yard where he was
buried." This was recorded by the parson of the town, and told to Mr.
Robert Glover's wife, by whose credible information we received the same.
Similar usage was practised also by these catholic tyrants upon the
body of William, the third brother, whom it had pleased Almighty God
about the same season to call out of this vale of misery. The well-dis-
posed people of the town of Wem, in Shropshire, where he died, brought
the body into the parish church, intending there to have buried it. But
one Bernard, curate of the said church, in order to stop the burial, rode
to the bishop to inform him of the matter, and to have his advice
therein. In the mean time the body having lain a whole day, in the
night time Richard Maurice, a tailor, would have interred him, but he
was hindered by John Thorlyne, of Wem, with some others, who would
not suffer the body to be buried; expressing the contrary examples of
good Tobit; for as he was religious in burying the dead, so this man's
religion consisted in not burying it. So that after he had lain there two
788 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
clays and a night, Bernard, the curate, came with the bishop's letter, 1
which forbad the interment of the body, and which commanded the
church- wardens to assist the curate in hindering any persons who should
attempt to put it in the ground. Accordingly they who brought the
corpse to the church were obliged to carry it back again at their own
charges. But as it was corrupted, they were forced to draw it with
horses into a broom-field, and there bury it.
The same example of charitable affection was also to be seen and
noted in the burying of one Edward Burton, Esq. who in the diocese of
Chester, departing this world the day before queen Elizabeth was
crowned, required of his friends, as they would answer for it, that his
body should be buried in his parish church, which was St. Chad's, in
Shrewsbury, and that no Romish priest should be present thereat.
This thing being declared to the curate of that parish, John Marshall,
and the body being brought to the burial, upon the same day when the
queen was crowned, the curate said plainly that it should not be buried
in the church there. Whereunto one of the friends of the deceased,
named George Torpelley, answering again, said, That God would judge
him in the last day. Then said the priest, * Judge, God, or devil, the
body shall not come there!' And so they buried him in his own garden.
In the same county, one Oliver Richardine, of the parish of Whitchurch,
was burnt in Haverford-west, Sir John Yonge being sheriff the same time,
which seemeth to have been about the last year of king Henry VIII.
William Wolsey and Robert Pygot were the next who followed Robert
Glover and Cornelius Bungey to martyrdom. They were both of the
town of Wisbeach, and were judged and condemned at Ely, by John
Fuller, the bishop's chancellor, Dr. Shaxton, his suffragan, Robert
Steward, dean of Ely, and John Christopherson, dean of Norwich,
October 9, 1555. William Wolsey was a constable, and was very
harshly treated by one Everard, a justice, who caused him to put in
sureties for his good behaviour and appearance at the next general
sessions held within the isle of Ely. Being called again at the next
sessions, he was still constrained to put in new sureties, which at length
he refused to do, and in consequence was committed to jail at the assize
held at Ely in Lent.
In the Easter week following, Dr. Fuller, the chancellor, with Chris-
topherson, and Dr. Young, came to confer with him, and charged him
with being out of the catholic faith, desiring him to meddle no further
with the scriptures, than it became such a layman as he was to do.
Wolsey stood still a great while, suffering them to speak their pleasure;
1 " Understanding that one Glover, a heretic, is dead in the parish of Wem, which Glover hath for
all the time of my being in this country been known for a rebel against our holy faith and religion,
a contemner of the holy sacraments and ceremonies used in the holy church, and hath separated
himself from the holy communion of all good Christian men, and never required to be recon-
ciled to our mother holy church, nor in his last days did call for his ghostly father, but died
without all rites belonging to a Christian man ; I thought it good, not only to command the
curate of Wem that he should not be buried with Christian man's burial, but also will and com-
mand all the parish of Wem, that no man procure help, nor speak to haye him buried in holy-
ground : but I do charge and command the churchwardens of Wem, in special, and all the
parish of the same, that they assist the said curate in defending, and letting, and procuring that
he be not buried in the church, or within the walls of the churchyard: and likewise I charge
those that brought the body to the place to carry it away again, and that at their charge, as they
will answer at their peril. At Eccleshall, this 6th day of September, anno 1558,
".By your ordinary, Radulfh Coventry and Litchfield."
ACCOUNT OF WOLSEY AM) PYGOT. 789
at last he answered — " Good Mr. Doctor, what did our Saviour Christ
mean, when lie spake these words — ' Woe unto you scribes and phari-
sees, hypocrites; for ye shut up the kingdom of heaven against men:
for ye neither go in yourselves, neither suffer ye them that are entering to
go in." To this Dr. Fuller answered that he must understand, that Christ
spake to the scribes and pharisees. Nothing daunted, Wolsey made this
smart reply — " Nay, Mr. Doctor, Christ spake even to you, and your
fellows here present, and to all such as you are." To ward off this
charge, Dr. Fuller left him a book to read, of a learned man's writing,
that is to say, Dr. Watson's, who was then bishop of Lincoln.
Wolsey receiving the book, diligently read it over, and found it in
many places manifestly contrary to God's word. At length, a fortnight
or three weeks following, Dr. Fuller resorting again to the prison to
converse w r ith W r olsey, asked him how he liked the book. Wolsey re-
plied, that he liked the book no otherwise than he thought before he
should find it. Whereupon the chancellor taking his book, departed
home. But at night, when Dr. Fuller came to his chamber to look on
it, he found in many places, contrary to his mind, the book rased with
a pen by Wolsey, and being vexed therewith, called him an obstinate
heretic.
The assizes to be held at Wisbeach drawing nigh, Dr. Fuller came
again to Wolsey, and spake to him on this manner — "Thou dost much
trouble my conscience, wherefore I pray thee depart, and rule thy tongue,
so that I hear no more complaint of thee, and come to the church when
thou wilt; and if thou be complained upon, so far as I may, I promise
thee I will not hear of it." The bold and just answer of Wolsey to
this crafty proposal was in admirable keeping with apostolic precedent.
When an earthquake had shaken to the foundation the gaol in which
Paul and Silas were imprisoned at Philippi, the magistrates issued a per-
mission for them to depart : but Paul said unto the messenger — " They
have cast us uncondemned into prison, and now would privily thrust
us out: nay, verily; but let them come themselves and fetch us out."
In the same spirit of truth and justice, Wolsey said — " Doctor, 1 was
brought hither by a law, and by a law I will be delivered." Being then
brought to the sessions, he was laid in the castle at Wisbeach, he and
all his friends thinking that he should have suffered there at that present
time, but it proved otherwise.
Robert Pygot was a painter, and being at liberty, was presented by
some evil disposed persons, sworn men as they called them, for not
coming to the church. Being called in the sessions, he would not absent
himself, but appeared before Sir Clement Hygham, who was judge, who
said unto him — "Ah, are you the holy father the painter? How chance
you came not to the church?" Pygot said — " I am not out of the church,
I trust in God." The judge, evading the subject, said — " No, Sir, this
is no church, this is a hall." To which Pygot answered — " I know very
well it is a hall : but he that is in the true faith of Jesus Christ, is never
absent, but ever present in the church of God." On this the judge ex-
claimed — "Ah, sirrah! you are too high for me to talk with, wherefore
I will send you to them that are better learned than I am." He
790 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
straightway commanded him to the jail where Wolsey lay; and the
sessions being ended, they were carried again to Ely prison.
In the mean time some of their neighbours of Wisbeach being at Ely,
came to see how they did. There visited them also a chaplain of bishop
Goodrike, a Frenchman, named Peter Valentius, who said to Wolsey
and Pygot — " My brethren, according to my office I am come to talk
with you, for I have been almoner here these twenty years and above.
Wherefore I must desire you, to take it in good part that I am come.
I promise you not to pull you from your faith. But I both require and
desire in the name of Jesus Christ, that you stand to the truth of the
gospel and word, and I beseech the Almighty God, for his son Jesus
Christ's sake, to preserve both you and me in the same unto the end.
For I know not myself how soon I shall be at the same point that you
are." Thus with many like words he proceeded, causing all that were
there present to water their cheeks with tears, contrary to the expectation
they all had of him.
A short time after Pygot and Wolsey were called to judgment, be-
fore Dr. Fuller, then chancellor, with old Dr. Shaxton, Christopherson,
and others in commission, who laid earnestly to their charge for their
belief in divers articles, but especially of the sacrament of the altar.
To this their answer was, That the sacrament of the altar was an idol,
and that the natural body and blood of Christ were not present really
in the sacrament; and to this opinion they said they would keep, per-
fectly believing the same to be no heresy, but the very truth. On this
the doctors said, that they were out of the catholic faith. Shaxton
added, " Good brethren, remember yourselves, and become new men,
for I myself was in this fond opinion that you are now in, but I am now
become a new man." Wolsey answered, " Ah! are you become a new
man? Woe be to thee, thou wicked new man, for God shall justly judge
thee." "Say nought unto him," Dr. Fuller then said; " this Wolsey
is an obstinate fellow, and one that I could never do good upon. But
as for the painter, he is a man quiet and indifferent, as far as I perceive,
and is soon reformed, and may very well be delivered for an ill opinion
I find in him."
In this, however, Fuller was mistaken, for on Christopherson writing
a confession for Pygot to sign, the latter refused, on the ground that it
was their faith and not his. On this the writer of the confession taunted
Fuller, and said — " Lo, Doctor! you would have let this fellow go, who
is as much a heretic as the other." And so immediately judgment was
given upon them to die. Which done, after the sentence was read, they
were sent again to prison. On the day appointed for their execution,
one Peacock, a bachelor of divinity, being to preach, took his text out
of the first epistle of St. Paul to the Corinthians, of one that had lived
inordinately by abusing his father's wife; comparing the martyrs to the
same man, oftentimes saying that such members must be cut off from
the congregation; most maliciously reporting Wolsey to be out of
the faith, and in many places palpably opposing the very letter of
scripture.
His sermon being ended, the prisoners were brought to the place of
MARTYRDOM OF WOLSEY AND PYGOT. 791
execution, and bound to the stake with a chain; thither came Richard
Collinson, a priest, who said unto Wolsey — " Brother Wolsey, the
preacher hath openly reported in his sermon this day, that you are
quite out of the catholic faith, and deny baptism, and that you do err
in the holy scripture; wherefore I beseech you, for the certifying- of
my conscience, with others here present, that you declare in what place
of the scripture you do err and find fault." To this Wolsey solemnly
answered — " I take the eternal and everlasting God to witness, that I
do deny no part or point of God's book, the holy bible, but hold and
believe in the same to be most firm and sound doctrine in all points
most worthy for my salvation, and for all other christians to the end of
the world. Whatsoever mine adversaries report of me, God forgive
them there-for." With that came one to the fire with a great sheet
full of books to burn, like as they had been New Testaments. Said
Wolsey — " O do give me one of them!" Pygot desired another; both
of them clapping them close to their breasts, saying the 106th Psalm,
desiring all the people to say, Amen ! They then were soon enveloped
in flames, committing their souls to the Lord Jesus Christ."
Wolsey, while in prison at Ely, was visited by Thomas Hodilo,
brewer. To whom he delivered certain money to be distributed, part
to his wife, and part to his kinsfolks and friends, and especially six
and eight-pence to Richard Denton, a smith at Wellney, Cambridge-
shire, with his commendation, that he marvelled he tarried so long
behind him, seeing that he was the first who delivered the book of
scripture into his hand, and assured him that it was the truth. Hodilo
both to avoid the danger of the time, and to have a witness to the
transaction, delivered the sum of money to Mr. Lawrence, a preacher,
in Essex, to be distributed as Wolsey had appointed; which thing he
performed, riding from place to place. When this six shillings and
eight-pence were delivered to Richard Denton, with the message, his
answer was this, " I confess it is true, but alas! I cannot burn." This
was almost a year after Wolsey had suffered. But he that could not
burn for the cause of Christ, was afterwards burnt against his will,
even after Christ had given peace to his church. For in the year 1564,
his house was set on fire, and he endeavouring to save his goods,
perished in the flames, with two others — an event interpreted by most
as a judgment for his fearfulness. Not much unlike this, was the
example of Mr. West, chaplain to bishop Ridley, who refusing to
suffer in the cause of Christ, with his master, said mass against his
conscience, and died soon after.
n Mr. Fox remarks in addition that he received from a friend, from the university of
Cambridge, the following comparison of these *wo excellent martyrs — each excellent in his
way. " Pygot was mild, humble, and modest, promising that he would conform to his
persecutors, if they could persuade him by the scriptures. Wolsey was stout, strong, and
vehement, as one having the fulness of the Spirit, and detested all their doing. Hence he
was jealous over his friend, lest his gentle nature should have been overcome by the entice-
ments of his foes: with whom therefore he was unwilling he should converse."
792 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM,
SECTION XVI.
HISTORY AND MARTYRDOM OF BISHOP RIDLEY AND BISHOP LATIMER, AND
CHARACTER OF STEPHEN GARDINER, BISHOP OF WINCHESTER.
On the 16th of October, 1555, those two pillars of Christ's church,
Dr. Nicholas Ridley, bishop of London, and Mr. Hugh Latimer, some-
time bishop of Worcester, were burnt in one fire at Oxford. Men ever
memorable for their piety, learning*, and incomparable ornaments and
gifts of grace, joined with no less commendable sincerity of life.
Dr. Ridley was born in the county of Northumberland, and was
descended from a most respectable family. He received the rudiments
of his education at Newcastle; and, when a child, discovered great
promptness in learning. From Newcastle he was removed to the
university of Cambridge, where in a short time he became so famous,
that for his singular aptness, he was called to higher functions and
offices of the university, by degrees pertaining thereunto, and was at
length placed at the head of Pembroke-hall, and there made doctor of
divinity. After this, departing from thence he travelled to Paris, and
at his return was made chaplain to king Henry VIII., and promoted
afterwards to the bishopric of Rochester, and from thence, in king
Edward's days, translated to the more important bishopric of London.
In his several offices he so diligently applied himself by preaching
and teaching the true and wholesome doctrine of Christ, that no good
child was more singularly loved by his dear parents, than he by his
flock and diocese. Every holiday and Sunday he preached in one
place or other, except he were otherwise hindered by weighty affairs and
business; and to his sermons the people resorted in great numbers,
swarming about him like bees; and so faithfully did his life pourtray
his doctrines, that even his very enemies could not reprove him in any
thing. His learning, moreover, was superior, his memory was great,
and he had attained such reading withal, that he deserved to be com-
pared to the best men of his age, as his works, sermons, and sundry
disputations in both the universities well testified. He was also wise of
counsel, deep of wit, and very politic in all his doings. He was
anxious to gain the papists from their erroneous opinions, and sought
by gentleness to win them to the truth, as his gentleness and courteous
treatment of Dr. Heath, who was prisoner in his house a whole year,
sufficiently proved. In fine, he was in all points so good, pious, and
spiritual a man, that England never saw his superior.
He was comely in his person, and well proportioned. He took all
things in good part, bearing no malice nor rancour against any one,
but straightways forgetting all injuries and offences done against him.
He was very kind and faithful to his relations; and yet not bearing
with them any otherwise than right would require, giving them always
for a general rule, yea to his own brother and sister, that they doing
evil should look for nothing at his hand, but should be as strangers and
aliens to him, and that to be his brother and sister in deed and in truth,
CHARACTER OF 1)11. RIDLKV. 793
they must be children of God, disciples of Christ, and live towards all
men in peace and love.
He used all kinds of ways to mortify himself, and was much given to
prayer .and contemplation : for duly every morning, as soon as he was
dressed, he went to his chamber, and there upon his knees prayed for
half an hour; which being done, immediately he went to his study
where he continued till ten o'clock, and then came to the common
prayer daily used in his house. These being done he went to dinner;
where he talked little, except where occasion required, and then it was
sober, discreet, and wise, and sometimes merry if reasonable cause
allowed and justified it.
The dinner done, which was not very long, he used to sit an hour, or
thereabouts, talking, or playing at chess: he then returned to his study,
and there would continue, except visiters or business abroad prevented
him, until five o'clock, when he would come to common prayer, as in
the forenoon ; which being finished, he went to supper, behaving him-
self there as at his dinner before. After supper he recreated himself
again at chess, a-fter which he would return again to his study; continuing
there till eleven o'clock at night, which was his common hour of going
to bed, after saying his prayers upon his knees as in the morning when
he rose. When at his manor of Fulham, he used to read daily a lecture
to his family at the common prayer, beginning at the Acts of the
Apostles, and so going through all the epistles of St. Paul, giving to
every man that could read a New Testament, rewarding them also with
money, for learning by heart certain principal chapters ; being marvel-
lously careful over his family, that they might be a pattern of all virtue
and honesty to others. In short, as he was godly and virtuous himself,
so nothing but virtue and godliness reigned in his house, feeding them
with the food of our Saviour Jesus Christ.
The following is a striking instance of the benevolence of his temper,
shewn to Mrs. Bonner, mother of Dr. Bonner, bishop of London.
When at his manor of Fulham he always sent for Mrs. Bonner, who
dwelt in a house adjoining his own, to dinner and supper, with Bonner's
sister. She was always placed in the chair at the head of the table,
being as gently treated and welcomed as his own mother, and he would
never have her displaced from her seat, although the king's council had
been present; saying, when any of them were there, " By your lordship's
favour, this place of right and custom is for my mother Bonner." How
well he was recompensed for this singular kindness and gentle pity
afterwards at the hands of Dr. Bonner, is too well known. For who
afterwards was a greater enemy to Dr. Ridley than Dr. Bonner? Who
went more about to seek his destruction than he? Recompensing his
gentleness with extreme cruelty ; as well appeared by the severity
against Dr. Ridley's own sister and her husband : whereas the gentle-
ness of the other permitted Bonner's mother, sister, and others of his
kindred, not only quietly to enjoy all that which they had from bishop
Bonner, but also entertained them in his house, shewing much courtesy
and friendship daily unto them ; while, on the other side, Bonner being
restored again, would not suffer the brother and sister of bishop Ridley,
and other of his friends, to enjoy that which they had by their brother,
794 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
but also churlishly, without all order of law or honesty, wrested from
them all the livings they had in their own right.
Dr. Ridley was first called to the favouring of Christ and his gospel,
by the reading of Bertram's book of the sacrament; and the conference
with archbishop Cranmer, and with Peter Martyr, did not a little con-
firm him in that belief. Being now, by the grace of God, thoroughly
won and brought to the true way, as he was before blind and zealous in
his old ignorance, so was he constant and faithful in the right knowledge
which the Lord had opened unto him, and so long he did much good,
when power and authority defended the gospel, and supported the peace
and happiness of the church. But after it pleased God to bereave us
of our stay, in taking from us king Edward, the whole state of the
church of England was left desolate and open to the enemy's hand : so
that bishop Ridley, after the coming in of queen Mary, was one of the
first upon whom they laid their hands, and committed to prison, as hath
been sufficiently declared ; first in the Tower, and from thence conveyed
with archbishop Cranmer and bishop Latimer, to Oxford, and with them
inclosed in the common prison of Bocardo ; but at length being
separated from them, he was committed to custody in the house of one
Irish, where he remained till the day of his martyrdom, which was
upwards of eight months.
While he continued in prison with his fellow-sufferer Latimer, they
would sometimes confer together by letter, when they could not with
safety converse with the tongue. The following is a specimen of this
kind of prison conversation.
Ridley says, " In writing again you have done me an unspeakable
pleasure, and I pray that the Lord may requite it you in that day. For
I have received great comfort at your words : but yet I am not so filled
withal, but that I thirst much more now than before, to drink more of
that cup of yours, wherein you mingle unto me profitable with pleasant.
I pray you, good father, let me have one draught more to comfort my
stomach. For surely, except the Lord assist me with his gracious aid,
in the time of his service, I know I shall play but the part of a white-
livered knight. But truly my trust is in him, that in mine infirmity he
should try himself strong, and that he can make the coward in his cause
to fight like a man. I now begin almost every day to look when
Diotrephes with his warriors shall assault me : wherefore I pray you,
good father, for that you are an old soldier, and an expert warrior, and
God knoweth I am but a young soldier, and as yet of small experience
in these feats, help me, I pray you, to buckle my harness. And now I
would have you to think, that these darts are cast at my head by some
one of Diotrephes' or Antonius' soldiers.''
Latimer answers, " ' Except the Lord help me/ ye say. Truth it
is : ' for without me,' saith he, ' ye can do nothing ;' much less suffer
death of our adversaries, through the bloody law now prepared against
us. But it followeth, * If you abide in me, and my word abide in you,
ask what you will, and it shall be done for you.' What can be more
comfortable? Sir, you make answer yourself so well, that I cannot
better it. Sir, I begin now to smell what you mean by travelling thus
with me ; you use me as Bilney did once, when he converted me, pre-
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AM) LATIMER. 795
tending as though lie would be taught by me, he sought ways and means
to teach me, and so do you. 1 thank you therefore most heartily. For
indeed you minister armour unto me, whereas I was unarmed before and
unprovided, saving that I give myself to prayer for my refuge.
The objector, whose darts Ridley apprehended, visited both these
good men in prison, and thus assailed them.
Obj. All men marvel greatly, why you, after the liberty granted unto
you, more than the rest, do not go to mass, which is a thing much
esteemed by all men, yea, of the queen herself.
Rid. Because no man that layeth hand on the plough and looketh
back is fit for the kingdom of God, and also for the self-same cause why
St. Paul would not suffer Titus to be circumcised, which is, that the
truth of the gospel might remain with us incorrupt. And also, "If I
build again the things which I destroyed, I make myself a trespasser."
This is likewise another cause : lest I should seem by outward fact to
allow the thing, which I am persuaded is contrary to sound doctrine,
and so should be a stumbling-block unto the weak. But "woe be unto
him by whom offence cometh : it were better for him that a mill -stone
were hanged about his neck, and he cast into the midst of the sea."
Obj. What is it then that offendeth you so greatly in the mass, that
you will not vouchsafe once either to hear or see it? And from whence
cometh this new religion upon you ? Have you not been used in times
past to say mass yourself?
Rid. I confess my fault and ignorance ; but know you that for these
matters I have done penance long ago, both at St. Paul's Cross, and
also openly in the pulpit at Cambridge, and I trust that God hath for-
given me this mine offence : for I did it ignorantly. But if you be
desirous to know, and will vouchsafe to hear what things offend me in
the mass, I will rehearse those which be most clear, and seem most
manifestly to impugn God's word, and they are these — The strange
tongue; the want of the shewing of the Lord's death; the breaking of
the Lord's commandment of having a communion ; the sacrament is not
communicated to all under both kinds, according to the word of the
Lord ; the sign is servilely worshipped for the thing signified ; Christ's
passion is injured, forasmuch as this mass-sacrifice is affirmed to remain
for the purging of sins; to be short, the manifold superstitions, and
trifling fooleries which are in the mass, and about the same.
Lat. Better a few things well pondered, than to trouble the memory
with too much; you shall prevail more with praying, than with studying,
though mixture be best, for so one shall alleviate the tediousness of the
other. I intend not to contend much with them in words, after a
reasonable account of my faith given; for it will be but in vain. They
will say as their fathers said, when they have no more to say — " We
have a law, and by our law he ought to die." " Be you steadfast and
immoveable, abounding in the work. — Stand fast." How oft is this
repeated — " If you abide in me, and in my word." But we shall be called
obstinate, sturdy, ignorant, heady, and what not; so that a man hath
need of much patience, having to do with such men.
Obj. But you know how great a crime it is to separate yourself from
the communion or fellowship of the church, and to make a schism, or
796 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
division. You have been reported to have hated the sect of the ana-
baptists, and always to have impugned the same. Moreover, this was
the pernicious error of Novatus, and of the heretics called Cathari, that
they would not communicate with the church.
Rid. I know that the unity of the church is to be retained by all
means, and the same is necessary to salvation. But I do not take the
mass, as it is at this day, for the communion of the church, but a popish
device, whereby both the commandment and the institution of our
Saviour, for the oft frequenting of the remembrance of his death, is
eluded, and the people of God are miserably deluded. The sect of the
anabaptists, and the heresy of the Novatians, ought of right to be
condemned, forasmuch as without any just or necessary cause, they
wickedly separated themselves from the communion of the congregation ;
for they did not allege that the sacraments were unduly administered;
but turning their eyes from themselves, wherewith, according to St.
Paul's rule, they ought to examine themselves, and casting their eyes
ever upon others, they always reproved something, for which they
abstained from the communion, as from an unholy thing.
Lat. I remember that Calvin begin neth to confute the Interim after
this sort, with this saying of Hilary — " The name of peace is beautiful,
and the opinion of unity is fair : but who doubteth that to be the true
and only peace of the church, which is Christ's?" I would you had that
little book, there would you see how much is to be given to unity.
St. Paul, when he requireth unity, joineth with it, according to Jesus
Christ, no further. Diotrephes now of late, did always harp upon
unity. Yea, Sir, said I, but in verity, not popery. Better is diversity,
than unity in popery.
Obj. But admit there be in the mass what peradventure might be
amended, or at least made better; yea, seeing you will have it so*, admit
there be a fault; if you do not consent thereto, why do you trouble
yourself in vain? Do you not know both by Cyprian and Augustine,
that communion of sacraments doth not defile a man, but consent of
deeds?
Rid. If it were any one trifling ceremony, or if it were some one thing
of itself indifferent, for the continuance of the common quietness I
could be content to bear it. But forasmuch as things done in the, mass
tend openly to the overthrow of Christ's institution, I judge that by no
means either in word or deed I ought to consent unto it. As for that
which is objected out of the fathers, I acknowledge it to be well spoken,
if it be well understood. But it is meant of them which suppose they
are defiled, if any secret vice be either in the ministers, or in them that
communicate with them ; and is not meant of them which abhor super-
stition, and wicked traditions of men, and will not suffer the same to be
thrust upon themselves, or upon the church, instead of God's word and
the truth of the gospel.
Lat. The mass is altogether detestable, and by no means to be borne
withal; so that of necessity, the mending of it is to abolish it for ever.
For if you take away oblation and adoration, which hang upon conse-
cration and transubstantiation, most of the papists will not set a button
by the mass, as a thing which they esteem not, but for the gain that
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LATIMKH, 797
followeth thereon. For if the English coinmnnion, wliich of late was
used, were as gainful to them as the mass hath been heretofore, they
would strive no more for their mass: from thence groweth the grief.
Obj. Consider into what dangers you cast yourself, if you forsake the
church; and you cannot but forsake it, if you refuse to go to mass.
For the mass is the sacrament of unity; without the ark there is no sal-
vation. The church is the ark and Peter's ship. You know this saying
well enough — " He shall not have God to be his Father, which acknow-
ledged not the church to be his mother." Moreover, without the church,
as Augustine saith, be the life ever so well spent, none shall inherit the
kingdom of heaven.
Rid. The holy catholic or universal church, which is the communion
of saints, the house of God, the city of God, the spouse of Christ, the
body of Christ, the pillar and stay of truth ; this church I believe ac-
cording to the creed ; this church I do reverence and honour in the
Lord. But the rule of this church is the word of God, according to
which rule we go forward unto life. "And as many as walk according to
this rule," I say with St. Paul, " peace be upon them, and upon Israel,
which pertaineth unto God." The guide of this church is the Holy
Ghost. The marks whereby this church is known unto me in this dark
world, and in the midst of this crooked and froward generation, are —
the sincere preaching of God's holy word, the due administration of the
sacraments, charity, and faithful observing of ecclesiastical discipline,
according to the word of God. And that church or congregation which
is garnished with these marks, is in very deed that heavenly Jerusalem,
which consisteth of those that be born from above. This is the mother
of us all, and by God's grace I will live and die the child of this church.
Out of this, I grant, there is no salvation; and I suppose the rest of the
places objected are rightly to be understood of this church only. • In
times past, there were many ways to know the church of Christ, that is
to say, by good life, by miracles, by chastity, by doctrine, by administer-
ing the sacraments. But from the time that heresies took hold of the
church, it is only known by the scriptures which is the true church.
They have all things in outward show, which the true church hath in
truth. They have temples like unto ours. ' Wherefore only by the
scriptures do we know which is the true church. To that which they
say, that the mass is the sacrament of unity, I answer — The bread which
we break, according to the institution of the Lord, is the sacrament of the
unity of Christ's mystical body. " For we being many, are one bread
and one body, forasmuch as we are all partakers of one bread." But
in the mass, the Lord's institution is not observed; for we are not all
partakers of one bread, but one devoureth all. So that it may seem a
sacrament of singularity, and of a certain special privilege for one sect
of people, whereby they may be discerned from the rest, rather than a
sacrament of unity, wherein our knitting together in one is represented.
This passage of Ridley — this definition of the true church, and of the certain marks by
which it may be known — this distinction between the method of ascertaining the church
before and after it became Roman and papal — merits the utmost attention, and deserves to
be written in letters of gold. Tf Ridley had never written or spoken any thing else, this
would have been sufficient to convince the world that, on every thing relating to the evi-
798 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Lat. Yea, what fellowship hath Christ with antichrist? Therefore it
is not lawful to bear the yoke with papists. " Come forth from among
them, and separate yourselves from them," saith the Lord. It is one
thing to be the church indeed, another thing to counterfeit it. Would
to God it were well known what is the forsaking of the church. In
king Edward's days, who was the church of England? The king and
his favourers, or mass-mongers in corners? If the king and the fa-
vourers of his proceedings, why were we not now the church, abiding in
the same proceeding? If private mass-mongers might be of the church,
and yet contrary to the king's proceedings, why may we not be of the
church contrary to the queen's proceedings? Not all that are covered
with the title of the church, are the church indeed. Separate thyself
from them that are such, saith St. Paul. From whom? The text hath
before — " If any man follow other doctrines, he is puffed up and
knoweth nothing." Weigh the whole text, that you may perceive what
is the fruit of contentious disputations. But wherefore are such men
said to know nothing, when they know so many things? You know the
old verses —
Hoc est nescire, sine Christo plnrima scire:
Si Christum bene scis, satis est, si ccetera nescis.P
Therefore would St. Paul know nothing but Jesus Christ and him
crucified. As many as are papists and mass-mongers, they may well
be said to know nothing. For they know not Christ, forasmuch as in
their massing, they take much away from the benefit and merit of
Christ.
Obj. That church which you have described to me is invisible, but
Christ's church is visible and known. For else why should Christ have
said, "Tell it unto the church?" For he had commanded in vain to go
unto the church, if a man cannot tell which it is.
Rid. The church which I have described is visible, it hath members
which may be seen; and also I have before declared, by what marks
and tokens it may be known; but if either our eyes be so dazzled, that
we cannot see, or that Satan hath brought such darkness into the world,
that it is hard to discern the church, that is not the fault of the church,
but either of our blindness, or of Satan's darkness. But yet in this
most deep darkness, there is one most clear lamp, which of itself alone
is able to put away all darkness. " Thy word is a lamp unto my feet,
and a light unto my steps."
Obj. The church of Christ is a catholic or universal church, dis-
persed throughout the whole world ; this church is the great -house of
God, in which are good men and evil mingled together, goats and sheep,
dences of religious truth and sacred scriptural worship, he would have been equal as a
disputant to the most enlightened who ever opened his lips or employed his pen in such a
cause.
p To give full effect to these admirable lines, we present the reader with the following
rather free, but still fair and faithful translation.
To know all things here, and yet not Christ to know,
Is ignorance deep as the deepest below :
To know the Lord Jesus, and know nothing more,
Is knowledge the highest to which we can soar.
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LATIMER. 799
corn and chaff: it is the net which gathereth all kinds of fishes. This
chinch cannot err, because Christ hath promised it his Spirit, whicli
shall lead it into all truth, and that the gates of hell shall not prevail
against it; that he will be with it unto the end of the world; whatsoever
it shall loose or bind upon earth shall be loosed or bound in heaven.
This church is the pillar and stay of truth; this is it for which St.
Augustine saith, he believeth the gospel. But this universal church
alloweth the mass, because the greater part of the same alloweth it.
Rid.' I grant that the name of the church is taken after three clivers
manners in the scripture. Sometimes for the whole multitude of them
who profess the name of Christ, of which they are also named Christians.
But as St. Paul saith of the Jews, not every one is a Jew, that is so
outwardly; neither yet all that be of Israel are counted the seed; even
so, not every one that is a christian outwardly is a christian indeed.
For if any man have not the spirit of Christ, the same is none of his.
Therefore that church which is his body, and of which Christ is the
head, standeth only on living stones, and true christians, not only
outwardly in name and title, but inwardly in heart and in truth. But
forasmuch as this church, as touching the outward fellowship, is con-
tained within the great house, and hath with the same outward society
of the sacraments and ministry of the word, many things are spoken of
that universal church which cannot truly be understood, but only of
that pure part of the church. So that the rule of Ticonius concerning
the mingled church, may here well take place; where there is attributed
unto the whole church that which cannot agree to the same, but by
reason of the one part thereof; that is, either for the multitude of good
men, which is the very true church indeed; or for the multitude of evil
men, which is the malignant church and synagogue of Satan. And
there is also a third taking of the church; of which although there be
seldom mention in the scriptures in that signification, yet in the world,
even in the most famous assemblies of Christendom, this church hath
borne the greatest sway. This distinction pre-supposed of the three
sorts of churches, it is an easy matter, by a figure called synecdoche,
to give to the mingled and universal church that which cannot truly be
understood, but only of the one part thereof. But if any man will
affirm that universality doth so pertain unto the church, that whatsoever
Christ hath promised to the church, it must needs be understood of that,
I would gladly know of the same man where that universal church was
in the times of the patriarchs and prophets, of Noah, Abraham, and
Moses, of Elias, and Jeremiah, of Christ and the apostles, in the time
of Arius, when Constantius was emperor, and Felix, bishop of Rome,
succeeded Liberius. It is worthy to be noted, what Lyra writeth upon
Matthew— " The church doth not stand in men by reason of their power
or dignity, whether it be ecclesiastical or secular. For princes and
popes, and other inferiors, have been found to have fallen away from
God. Therefore the church consisteth in those persons, in whom is true
knowledge and confession of the faith, and of the truth. Evil men are
in the church in name, and not in deed." And St. Augustine saith —
" Whoever is afraid to be deceived by the darkness of this question, let
him ask counsel at the same church of it; which church the scripture
800 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
doth point out without any doubtfulness/' All my notes which I have
written and gathered out of such authors as I have read in this matter,
and such like, are come into the hands of such as will not let me have
the least of all my written books; wherein I am enforced to complain
of them unto God : for they spoil me of all my labours, which I have
taken in my study these many years. My memory was never good, for
help whereof I have used for the most part, to gather out notes of my
reading, and so to place them, that thereby I might have had the use of
them when the time required. But who knoweth whether this be God's
will, that I should be thus ordered, and spoiled of the poor learning I
had in store, to the intent that I, now destitute of that, should from
henceforth with St. Paul learn only to know Christ and him crucified?
The Lord grant me herein to be a good young scholar, and to learn this
lesson so well, that neither death nor life, wealth nor woe, make me ever
to forget it.
Lat. I have no more to say in this matter; for you yourself have
said all that is to be said. The strong saying of St. Augustine — I would
not believe the Gospel, but as the church declareth it — was wont to trouble
many men; as I remember, I have read it well qualified by Philip
Melancthon. This it is in effect: the church is not a judge but a
witness. There were some in his time that lightly esteemed the testi-
mony of the church, and the outward ministry of preaching, and rejected
the outward word itself, cleaving only to their inward revelations. Such
rash contempt of the word provoked and drove St. Augustine into that
excessive vehemency. In which, after the bare sound of the words, he
might seem to such as do not attain unto his meaning, that he preferred
the church far before the gospel, and that the church hath a free au-
thority over the same ; but that pious man never thought so. It were
a saying worthy to be brought forth against the Anabaptists, who thought
the open ministry to be a thing not necessary, if they any thing esteemed
such testimonies. I would not hesitate to affirm, that the most part of
the whole universal church may easily err. And again I would not
hesitate to affirm, that it is one thing to be gathered together in the
name of Christ, and another thing to come together with a mass of the
Holy Ghost going before. For in the first, Christ ruleth ; in the latter,
the devil beareth the sway; and how can any thing be good which they
thus go about? From this latter shall our six articles come forth again
into the light, they themselves being very darkness. But it is demanded,
whether the sounder or better part of the catholic church may be seen
of men? St. Paul saith — "The Lord knoweth them that are his."
What manner of speaking is this in commendation of the Lord, if we
knew as well as he who are his? Well, thus is the text — "the sure
foundation of God standeth still, and hath this seal, The Lord knoweth
them that are his; and let every man that nameth the name of Christ
depart from iniquity." Now how many are there of the whole catholic
church of England who depart from iniquity? How many of the noble-
men, how many of the bishops or clergy, how many of the rich men,
or merchants, how many of the queen's counsellors, yea, how many
of the whole realm ? In how small room then, I pray you, is the true
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LATIMER. 801
church within the realm of England? And where is it? And in what
state ?
Obj. General councils represent the universal church, and have this
promise of Christ — " Where two or three be gathered together in my
name, there am 1 in the midst of them." If Christ be present with two
or three, then much more where there is so great a multitude. But in
general councils mass hath been approved and used.
Rid. Of the universal church which is mingled of good and bad,
thus I think — Whensoever they which be chief in it, which rule and
govern the same, and to whom the whole mystical body of Christ doth
obey, are the lively members of Christ, and walk after the guiding and
rule of his word, and go before the flock to everlasting life, then un-
doubtedly councils gathered together of such guides and pastors of the
christian flock, do indeed represent the christian church; and being so
gathered in the name of Christ, they have a promise of the gift and
guiding of his Spirit into all truth. But that any such council hath at
any time allowed the mass, such an one as ours was of late, in a strange
tongue, and stuffed with so many absurdities, errors, and superstitions;
that I utterly deny, and affirm it to be impossible. For like as there is
no agreement betwixt light and darkness, betwixt Christ and Belial; so
surely superstition and the sincere religion of Christ, will-worship and
the pure worshipping of God, such as God requireth of his, in spirit
and truth, never can agree together. You will say, where so great a
company is gathered together it is not credible but there are two or
three gathered in the name of Christ. I answer, If there be one hun-
dred good, and two hundred bad, what can the less number of voices
avail? It is a known thing, and a common proverb, oftentimes the
greater part overcometh the better.
Lat. As touching general councils, at this present I have no more
to say than you have said. Only I refer you to your own experience,
to think of our country parliaments and convocations, how and what
you have seen and heard. The greater part in my time did bring
forth six articles: for then the king would have it so, being seduced of
certain. Afterward the greater part did repel the same, our good Josias
willing to have it so. The same articles now again another great but
worse part hath restored. O what an uncertainty is this ! But after
this manner most commonly are men's proceedings. God be merciful
unto us! Who shall deliver us from such torments of mind? Therefore
is death the best physician unto the faithful, whom he together and at
once delivereth from all griefs.
Obj. If the matter should go thus, that in general councils men
should not stand to the greater number of the multitude, then should
no certain rule be left unto the church, by which .controversies in
weighty matters might be determined ; but it is not to be believed, that
Christ would leave his church destitute of so necessary a help and
safeguard .
Rid. Christ, who is the most loving spouse of his church, who also
gave himself for it, that he might sanctify it unto himself, did give unto
it abundantly all things which are necessary to salvation ; but yet so,
that the church should declare itself obedient unto him in all things,
3 F
802 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
and keep itself within the bounds of his commandments, and not to
seek any thing which he teacheth not, as necessary unto salvation. Now
for determination of all controversies in his religion, Christ himself hath
left unto the church not only Moses and the prophets, whom he willeth
in all doubts to go unto, and ask counsel at, but also the gospels, and
the rest of the body of the New Testament; in which whatsoever is
heard of Moses and the prophets, and whatsoever is necessary to be
known unto salvation, is revealed and opened. So that now we have
no need to say — " Who shall climb up into heaven, or who shall go
down into the depth," to tell us what is needful to be done? Christ
hath done both, and hath commended to us the word of faith, which
also is abundantly declared to us; so that hereafter, if we walk earnestly
in this way to the searching out of the truth, it is not to be doubted but
through the certain benefit of his Spirit, which he hath promised unto
us, we may find it, and obtain everlasting life. Should men ask counsel
of the dead for the living? saith Isaiah. Let them go rather to the
law and to the testimony. Christ sendeth them that be desirous to know
the truth unto the scriptures, saying — " Search the scriptures." I re-
member a like thing well spoken of St. Jerome — " Ignorance of the
scriptures is the mother and cause of all errors." And in another
place, as I remember, in the same author — "The knowledge of the
scriptures is the food of everlasting life." But now methinks I enter
into a very broad sea, in that I begin to shew, either out of the scrip-
tures themselves, or out of the ancient writers, how much the holy
scripture is of force to teach the truth of our religion. But this is it
that I am now about, that Christ would have the church, his spouse, in
all matters of doubt to ask counsel at the word of his Father, written
and faithfully left, and commended unto it in both Testaments. Neither
do we read, that Christ in any place hath laid so great a burden upon
the members of his spouse, that he hath commanded them to go to the
universal church. " Whatsoever things are written, are written for our
learning." Christ gave unto his church, "some apostles, some prophets,
some evangelists, some shepherds and teachers, to the edifying of the
saints, till we come all to the unity of the faith." But that all men
should meet together out of all parts of the world, to define the articles
of our faith, I neither find it commanded by Christ, nor written in the
word of God.
Lat. There is difference between things pertaining to God or faith,
and politic and civil matters. For in the first we must stand only to the
scriptures, which are able to make us all perfect and instructed unto
salvation, if they be well understood. And they offer themselves to be
well understood only to them, which have good-wills, and give them-
selves to study and prayer. Neither are there any men less apt to
understand them, than the prudent and wise men of the world. But
in the other, that is, in civil and politic matters, oftentimes the magis-
trates tolerate a less evil for avoiding a greater. And it is the property
of a wise man to dissemble many things, and he that cannot dissemble,
cannot rule. In which they betrayed themselves, that they do not
earnestly weigh what is just, and what is not. Wherefore for as much
as man's laws, if they be but in this respect only, that they be devised
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LATIMER. 803
by men, are not able to bring- any thing- to perfection, but are enforced
of necessity to suffer many things out of square, and are compelled
sometimes to wink at the worst things; seeing they know not how to
maintain the common peace and quiet otherwise, they do ordain that
the greater part shall take place. You know what these kind of
speeches mean; I speak after the manner of men; you walk after the
manner of men; all men are liars. St. Augustine well saith — " If ye
live after man's reason, ye do not live after the will of God."
Obj. If you say that councils have sometimes erred, or may err, how
then should we believe the catholic church? since councils are gathered
by the authority of the catholic church.
Rid. From "may be," to "be indeed," is no good argument; but from
"being," to "may be," no man doubteth but it is a most sure argument.
That councils have sometimes erred, it is manifest. How many were
there in the eastern world, which condemned the Nicene council? and
all those who would not forsake the same, they called by a slanderous
name, Homousians. Were not Athanasius, Chrysostom, Cyril, and Eusta-
chius, men very well learned, and of godly life, banished and condemned
as famous heretics, and that by evil councils ? How many things are
there in the canons and institutions of the councils, which the papists
themselves do much dislike? But here perad venture one man will say
unto me, We will grant you this in provincial councils, or councils
of some one nation, that they may sometimes err, forsomuch as they
do not represent the universal church; but it is not to be believed, that
the general and full councils have erred at any time. I will recite one
place only out of St. Augustine which, in my judgment, may suffice in
this matter instead of many. " Who knoweth not that the holy scrip-
ture is so set before us, that it is not lawful to doubt of it; and that
the letters of bishops may be reproved by other men's words, and by
councils; and that the councils themselves which are gathered by pro-
vinces and countries, do give place to the authority of the general
and full councils; and that the former and general councils are
amended by the latter, when as by some experience of things, either what
was shut up is opened, or that which was hid is known?" Thus much
out of St. Augustine. But I will plead our Antonian, upon matter
confessed. Here with us as when popery reigned, I pray you how doth
that book, which was called, "The bishop's book," composed in the time
of king Henry VIII. whereof the bishop of Winchester is thought
to be either the first father, or chief gatherer; how doth it sharply re-
prove the Florentine council, in which was decreed the supremacy of
the bishop of Rome, and that with the consent of the emperor of Con-
stantinople, and of the Grecian heads? So that in those days our
learned ancient fathers and bishops of England did not hesitate to affirm,
that a general council might err. But methinks I hear another man
despising all that I have brought forth, and saying — " These which you
have called councils, are not worthy to be called councils, but rather
assemblies and conventicles of heretics." I pray you, Sir, why do you
judge them worthy of so scandalous a name? Because they decreed
things heretical, contrary to sound doctrine and true godliness, and
against the faith of true religion ? The cause must be weighty, for which
804 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
they ought of right so to be called. But if it be so that all councils
ought to be despised which decree any thing contrary to sound doctrine,
and the true word, which is according to godliness, forsomuch as the
mass such as we had here of late, is openly against the word of God ;
forsooth, it must of necessity follow, that all such councils as have ap-
proved such masses, ought to be shunned and despised, as conventicles
and assemblies that stray from the truth.
Another man alleged unto me the authority of the bishop of Rome,
without which, neither can the councils be lawfully gathered, nor being
gathered, determine any thing concerning religion. But this objection
is only grounded upon the ambitious and shameless maintenance of the
Romish tyranny and usurped dominion over the clergy; which tyranny
we Englishmen long ago, by the consent of the whole realm, have ex-
pelled and abjured. And how rightly we have done it, a little book
set forth of both the powers doth clearly shew. I grant that the Romish
ambition hath gone about to challenge to itself, and to usurp such a
privilege of old time. But the council of Carthage, in the year of our
Lord 457, did openly withstand it, and also the council at Milevite, in
which St. Augustine was present, did prohibit any applications to be
made to bishops beyond the sea.
Obj. St. Augustine saith, the good men are not to be forsaken for
the evil ; but the evil are to be borne withal for the good. You will
not say that in our congregations all be evil.
Rid. I speak nothing of the goodness or badness of your congrega-
tions; but I fight in Christ's quarrel against the mass, which doth utterly
take away and overthrow the ordinance of Christ. Let that be taken
quite away, and then the partition wall that made the strife shall be
broken down. Now to the place of St. Augustine, for bearing with
the evil for the good's sake, there ought to be added other words, which
the same writer hath expressed in other places; that is, if those evil
men do cast abroad no seeds of false doctrine, nor lead others to de-
struction by their example.
Obj. It is perilous to attempt any new thing in the church, which
lacketh example of good men. How much more so is it to commit
any act, unto which the examples of the prophets, of Christ, and of
the apostles, are contrary? But unto this your fact, in abstaining from
the church by reason of the mass, the examples of the prophets, of
Christ, and of the apostles, are clean contrary. The first part of the
argument is evident, and the second part I prove thus, In the times of
the prophets of Christ, and his apostles, all things were most corrupt.
The people were miserably given to superstition, the priests despised
the law of God ; and yet notwithstanding we read not that the prophets
made any schisms or divisions; and Christ himself frequented the
temple, and taught in the temple of the Jews. Peter and John went
up into the temple at the ninth hour of prayer. Paul after the
reading of the law, being desired to say something to the people, did
not refuse to do it. Yea further, no man can shew that either the
prophets, or Christ, or his apostles, did refuse to pray together with
others, to sacrifice, or to be partakers of the sacrament of Moses' law.
Rid. I grant the former part of your argument; and to the second
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LATIMER. 805
part I say, that although it contain many true tilings, as of the corrupt
state in the times of the prophets, and the apostles; and of the temple
being frequented by Christ and his apostles; yet the second part of
your argument is not sufficiently proved. For you ought to have
proved, that either the prophets, or Christ, or his apostles, did in the
temple communicate with the people in any kind of worshipping which
is forbidden by the law of God, or repugnant to the word of God. But
that can no where be shewed. And as for the church, I am not angry
with it, and I never refused to go to it, and to pvay with the people, to
hear the word of God, and to do all other things whatsoever, that may
agree with the word of God. St. Augustine, speaking of the ceremonies
of the Jews, although he grants they grievously oppressed that people,
both for the number and bondage of the same, yet he calleth them
burdens of the law, which were delivered unto them in the word of God ;
not presumptions of men, which notwithstanding, if they were not con-
trary to God's word, might in some measure be borne withal. But
now, seeing they are contrary to such things as are written in the word
of God, whether they ought to be borne by any christian, let him judge
who is spiritual, who feareth God more than man, and loveth everlasting
life more than this short and transitory one. To that which was said,
that my fact lacketh example of the godly fathers that have gone be-
fore, the contrary is most evident in the history of Tobit; of whom it is
said, that when all others went to the golden calves, which Jeroboam
the king of Israel had made, he himself alone fled from their company,
and got him to Jerusalem unto the Lord, and there worshipped the
Lord God of Israel. Did not the man of God threaten grievous plagues
both unto the priests of Bethel, and to the altar which Jeroboam had
there made after his own fantasy? Which plagues king Josias, the true
minister of God, did execute at the time appointed. And where do we
read, that the prophets or the apostles did agree with the people in their
idolatry? For what cause, I pray you, did the prophets rebuke the
people so much, as for their false worshipping of God after their own
minds, and not after God's word? For what was so much war in Israel
as for that? Wherefore the false prophets ceased not to accuse the
true prophets of God: therefore they beat them, and banished them.
How else, I pray you, can you understand what St. Paul allegeth,
when he saith — " What concord hath Christ with Belial? or what part
hath the believer with the infidel? Or how agreeth the temple of God
with idols? For ye are the temple of the living God, as God himself
hath said; I will dwell among them, and will be their God, and they
shall be my people. Wherefore, come out from among them, and
separate yourselves from them, and touch no unclean thing; so will I
receive you, and be a Father unto you, and you shall be my sons and
daughters, saith the Lord God Almighty."
Judith, that holy woman, would not suffer herself to be defiled with
the meats of the wicked. All the saints of God, which truly feared
God, when they have been provoked to do any thing which they knew
to be contrary to God's laws, have chose to die rather than forsake the
laws of their God. Wherefore the Maccabees put themselves in danger
of death for the defence of the law, and at length died manfully in the
806 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
defence of the same. If we praise the Maccabees, and that with great
admiration, because they did stoutly stand even unto death, for the law
of their country ; how much more ought we to suffer all things for our
baptism, for the sacrament of the body and blood of Christ, and for all
the points of his truth? As to the supper of the Lord, such a one as
Christ commanded us to celebrate, the mass utterly abolisheth, and
corrupteth most shamefully.
Lat. Who am I, that should add any thing to this which you have
spoken? Nay, I rather thank you, you have vouchsafed to minister so
plentiful an armour to me, being otherwise altogether unarmed, saving,
that he cannot be left destitute of help, who rightly trusteth in the help
of God. I only learn to die in reading of the New Testament, and am
always praying unto my God, that he will be an helper unto me in
time of need.
Obj. Seeing you are obstinately set against the mass, as you affirm,
because it is done in a tongue not understood by the people, and for
other causes, I cannot tell what; therefore it is not the true sacrament
ordained of Christ. I begin to suspect you, that you think not catho-
licly of baptism also. Is our baptism which we use in a tongue un-
known to the people, the true baptism of Christ, or not? If it be, then
the strange tongue doth not hurt the mass. If it be not the baptism of
Christ, tell me how you were baptised. Or will you have, as the
anabaptists insist, all which were baptised in Latin, baptised again in
the English tongue?
Rid. Although I would wish baptism to be given in the vulgar tongue,
for the people's sake which are present, that they may the better un-
derstand their own profession, and also be more able to teach their
children the same, yet, notwithstanding, there is not like necessity of the
vulgar tongue in baptism, as in the Lord's supper. Baptism is given
to children, who, by reason of their age, are not able to understand
what is spoken to them, whatsoever it be. The Lord's supper is and
ought to be given to them that are at years of maturity. Moreover, in
baptism, which is accustomed to be given to children in the Latin
tongue, all the substantial points which Christ commanded to be done,
are observed. And therefore I judge your baptism to be a true baptism;
and that it is not only not needful, but also not lawful, for any man so
baptised, to be baptised again. But yet they ought to be taught the
catechism of the christian faith, when they come to years of discretion;
which catechism whosoever despiseth, or will not desirously embrace
and willingly learn, in my judgment he playeth not the part of a
christian. But in the popish mass are wanting certain substantials,
that is to say, things commanded by the word of God, to be observed
in the ministration of the Lord's supper; of which there is sufficient
declaration made before.
Lat. Where you say, " I would wish," surely I would wish that you had
spoken more strongly, and to have said, It is of necessity that all things
in the congregation should be done in the vulgar tongue, for the edifying
and comfort of them that are present, notwithstanding that the child itself
is sufficiently baptized in the Latin tongue.
Obj. Forasmuch as I perceive you are so wedded to your opinion,
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AM) LATIMER. 307
that no gentle exhortations, no wholesome counsels, can call you home
to a bettor mind, there remaineth that which in like cases was wont to
be the only remedy against stubborn persons, that you must be hampered
by the laws, and compelled to obey; or else suffer that which a rebel to
the laws ought to suffer. Do you not know, that whosoever refuseth to
obey the laws of the realm betray eth himself to be an enemy to his
country ? Do you not know, this is the readiest way to stir up sedition
and civil war? It is better that you should bear your own sin, than
through the example of your breach of the common laws, the common
quiet should be disturbed. How can you say you will be the queen's
true subjects, when you openly profess that you will not keep her laws?
Rid. O heavenly Father, the Father of all wisdom, understanding, and
true strength, I beseech thee, for thy only Son our Saviour Christ's sake,
look mercifully upon me, wretched creature, and send thine Holy Spirit into
my breast, that not only I may understand according to thy wisdom how this
pestilent and deadly dart is to be borne off, and with what answer it is to be
beaten back, but also when I must join to fight in the field for the glory of thy
name, that then 1, being strengthened with the defence of thy right hand, may
manfully stand in the confession of thy faith, and of truth, and continue in the
same unto the end of my life, through the same our Lord Jesus Christ. Amen.
Now to the objection. I grant it to be reasonable, that he, which
by words and gentleness cannot be made to yield to that which is right
and good, should be bridled by the strait correction of the laws : that
is to say, He that will not be subject to God's word, must be punished
by the laws. It is true that is commonly said, " He that will not obey
the gospel, must be tamed and taught by the rigour of the law." But
these things ought to take place against him who refuseth to do that
which is right and just according to true godliness, not against him who
cannot quietly bear superstitions, but doth hate and detest from his
heart such kind of proceedings, and that for the glory of the name of
God. To that which you say, a transgressor of the common laws
betrayeth himself to be an enemy of his country, surely a man ought
to look unto the nature of the laws, what manner of laws they be which
are broken : for a faithful christian ought not to think alike of all
manner of laws. But that saying ought only truly to be understood of
such laws as are not contrary to God's word. Otherwise, whosoever love
their country in truth, they will always judge, if at any time the laws of
God and man be the one contrary to the other, that a man ought rather
to obey God than man. And they that think otherwise, and pretend a
love to that country, forasmuch as they make their country to fight as
it were against God, in whom consisteth the only stay of their country,
surely I think such are to be judged most deadly enemies and traitors
to their country. For they that fight against God, who is the safety of
their country, what do they else but go about to bring upon their country
a present ruin and destruction !
But this is the readiest way, you say, to stir up sedition, to trouble
the quiet of the commonwealth; therefore are these things to be re-
pressed in time by force of law. Behold, Satan doth not cease to prac-
tise his old guiles and accustomed subtleties. He hath ever his dart in
readiness to. hurl against his adversaries, to accuse them of sedition,,
that he may bring them, if he can, in danger of the higher powers.
808 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
For so hath he by his ministers always charged the prophets of God.
Ahab said unto Elias, "Art thou he that troubleth Israel?" The false
prophets also complained to their princes of Jeremy, that his words were
seditious, and not to be suffered. Did not the scribes and pharisees
falsely accuse Christ as a seditious person, and one that spake against
Caesar? Did they not at last cry, " If thou let this man go, thou
art not Csesar's friend?" The orator Tertullus, how doth he accuse
Paul before Felix the high deputy? "We have found this man a
pestilent fellow, and stirrer of sedition, unto all the Jews in the whole
world." But, I pray you, were these men, as they were called,
seditious persons? Christ, Paul, and the prophets? God forbid But
they were by false men falsely accused. And for what, I pray you, but
because they reproved before the people their guiles, superstition, and
deceits? For that which was objected last, that he cannot be a faithful
subject to his prince, who professeth openly that he will not observe the
laws which the prince hath made ; here I would wish that I might have
an impartial judge, and one that feareth God, to whose judgment in
this cause I promise I will stand. I answer, therefore, a man ought to
obey his prince, but in the Lord, and never against the Lord. For he
that knowingly obeyeth him against God, doth not a duty to the prince,
but is a deceiver, and an helper unto him to work his own destruction.
He is also unjust who giveth not to the prince that which is the prince's,
and to God that which is God's. Here cometh to my remembrance that
notable saying of Valentinian the emperor, for choosing the bishop of
Milan — " Set him in the bishop's seat, to whom, if we, as men, do
offend at any time, we may submit ourselves." Polycarp the most con-
stant martyr, when he stood before the chief rulers, and was commanded
to blaspheme Christ, and to swear by the fortune of Caesar, answered
with a mild spirit — "We are taught to give honour unto princes, and
those powers which be of God ; but such honour as is not contrary to
God's religion."
Thus the answers to the objector appear at present to end : what fol-
lows seems to have been addressed by Ridley to Latimer in a more pri-
vate conference.
" Hitherto you see, good father, how I have in word only made, as it
were, a flourish before the fight, which I shortly look for, and how I
have begun to prepare certain kinds of weapons to fight against the
adversary of Christ, and to muse with myself how the darts of the old
enemy may be borne off, and after what manner I may smite him again
with the sword of the Spirit. I learn also to accustom myself to
armour, and to try how I can go armed. InTynedale, where. I was born,
not far from the borders of Scotland, I have known my countrymen to
watch night and day in their harness, such as they had, and their spears
in their hands, especially when they had any private warning of the
coming of the Scots. And so doing, although at every such bicker-
ing some of them spent their lives, yet by such means, like valianf
men, they defended their country. And those that so died, I think
that before God they died in a good quarrel, and their offspring
and progeny were loved by all the country the better for their father's
sake. And in the quarrel of Christ our Saviour, in the defence
CONFERENCE BETWEEN RIDLEY AND LATIMER. 809
of his own divine ordinances, by which lie giveth unto us life and
immortality; yea, in the quarrel of faith and the christian religion,
wherein resteth our everlasting salvation, shall we not watch? Shall we
not go always armed? Always looking when our adversary shall come
upon us by reason of our slothfulness? Yea, and woe be unto us if he
can oppress us unawares, which undoubtedly he will do, if he find us
sleeping. Let us awake, therefore ; for if the good man of the house
knew at what hour the thief would come, he would surely watch, and
not suffer his house to be broken up. Let us awake, therefore, I say :
let us not suffer our house to be broken up. ' Resist the devil, and he
will fly from you.' Let us resist him manfully, and taking the cross
upon our shoulders, let us follow our captain Christ, who, by his own
blood, hath dedicated and hallowed the way which leadeth unto the
Father, that is, to the light which no man can attain, the fountain of
everlasting joys. Let us follow, I say, whither he calleth and inviteth
us, that after these afflictions, which last but for a moment, whereby he
trieth our faith, as gold by the fire, we may everlastingly reign and
triumph with him in the glory of the Father, and that through the merit
of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ ; to whom, with the Father and
the Holy Ghost, be all honour and glory, now and for ever, Amen.
Amen.
" Good father, forasmuch as I have determined with myself to pour
forth these my cogitations into thy bosom, here, methinks, I see you
suddenly lifting up your head towards heaven, after your manner, and
then looking upon me with your prophetical countenance, say, l Trust
not, my son, to these word- weapons; for the kingdom of God is not in
word, but in power.' And remember always the words of the Lord:
'Do not imagine beforehand, what and how you will speak; for it
shall be given you in the same hour what ye shall speak. For it is not
you that speak, but the Spirit of your Father which speaketh in you/
I pray you, therefore, father, pray for me, that I may cast my whole
care upon him, and trust upon him in all perils. For I know, and am
surely persuaded, that whatsoever I can imagine or think beforehand it
is nothing, except he assist me with his Spirit when the time is. I be-
seech you therefore father, pray for me, that such a complete harness of
the Spirit, such a boldness of mind, may be given unto me, that I may
out of a true faith say with David, ' I will not trust in my bow, and it
is not my sword that shall save me. For he hath no pleasure in the
strength of an horse: but the Lord's delight is in them that fear him,
and put their trust in his mercy.' I beseech you pray, pray that I may
enter this fight only in the name of God, and that when all is past, I
being not overcome, through his gracious aid, may remain and stand
fast in him till that day of the Lord, in which to them that obtain the
victory shall be given the lively manna to eat, and a triumphant crown
for evermore. Now, father, I pray you to help me to buckle on this
harness a little better. For you know the deepness of Satan, being an
old soldier, and you have collared with him ere now; blessed be God,
who hath ever aided you so well. I suppose he may well hold you at the
bay. But truly he will not be so willing, I think, to join with you as
810 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
with us youngsters. Sir, I beseech you, let your servant read this unto
you, and now and then, as it shall seem unto you best, let your pen run
on my book : spare not to blot my paper ; I give you good leave."
To this admirable communication of Ridley, Latimer returned the
following characteristic answer. " Sir, I have caused my man not
only to read your armour unto me, but also to write it out, for it is not
only solid armour, but also well buckled armour. 1 see not how it
could be better. I thank you even from the bottom of my heart for it,
and my prayers you shall not lack, trusting that you do the like for me;
for indeed there is the 'help in time of need.' And if I were learned
as well as St. Paul, I would not bestow much amongst them, further
than gall them, and spur-gall too, when and where occasion were
given, and matter came to mind ; for the law shall be our sheet-anchor,
stay, and refuge. Therefore there is no remedy, now when they have the
master-bowl in their hand, but patience. Better is it to suffer what
cruelly they will put upon us, than to incur God's high indignation.
Wherefore, my good lord, be of good cheer in the Lord, with due con-
sideration what he requireth of you, and what he doth promise you.
Our common enemy shall do no more than God will permit him. God
is faithful, who will not suffer us to be tempted above our strength. Be
at a point what you will stand unto ; stick unto that, and let them both
say and do what they list. They can but kill the body, which otherwise
is of itself mortal. Neither yet shall they do that when they list, but
as God will suffer them, when the hour appointed is come. It will be
but in vain to use many words with them, now they have a bloody and
deadly law prepared for you.
" The number of the criers under the altar must needs be fulfilled : if
we be separated thereunto, happy be we. That is the greatest promotion
that God giveth in this world, to be such Philippians, ' to whom it is
given not only to believe, but also to suffer for the sake of Christ.' But
who is able to do these things? Surely all our ability, all our sufficiency
is of God. He requireth and promiseth. Let us declare our obedience
to his will when it shall be requisite in the time of trouble, yea, in the
midst of the fire. When the number that cry under the altar is fulfilled
which I suppose will be shortly, then have at the papists, when they
shall say, Peace, all things are safe, when Christ shall come to keep
his great parliament to redress all things that are amiss. But he shall
not come as the papists feign him, to hide himself, and to play bo-peep
as it were under a piece of bread ; but he shall come gloriously, to
the terror and fear of all his enemies and to the great consolation and
comfort of all that will here suffer for him. Comfort yourselves and
one another with these words.
" Lo, Sir, here have I blotted your paper vainly, and played the fool
egregiously; but so I thought better than not to fulfil your request at
this time. Pardon me, and pray for me* pray for me I say, pray for me.
For I am sometimes so fearful, that I would creep into a mouse-hole;
sometimes God doth visit me again with his comfort. So he cometh and
goeth, to teach me to feel and to know mine infirmity, to the intent to
give thanks to him that is worthy, lest I should rob him of his due, as so
many do, and almost all the world. What belief is to be given to papists
BISHOP RIDLEY'S LETTERS. 811
may appear by their racking, writing, wrenching, and monstrously in-
juring- of God's holy scripture, as appeareth in the pope's law. But I
dwell here now in a school of forgetful ness. Fare you well once again,
and be you steadfast and unmoveable in the Lord. Paul loved Timothy
marvellously well, notwithstanding he saith unto him — ' Be thou par-
taker of the afflictions of the gospel;' and again, ' Harden thyself to
suffer afflictions. Be faithful unto death, and I will give thee a crown
of life.'"
The following letter is an interesting communication from Pudley to
Bradford and his prison-fellows in the King's Bench, Southwark, 1554.
" Well beloved in Christ our Saviour, we all with one heart wish to
you, with all those that love God in deed and truth, grace and health,
and especially to our dearly beloved companions which are in Christ's
cause, and the cause both of their brethren and of their own salvation,
to put their neck willingly under the yoke of Christ's cross. How
joyful it was to us to hear the report of Dr. Taylor, and of his godly
confession, I assure you it is hard for me to express. Blessed be God,
which was and is the giver of that, and of all godly strength and support
in the time of adversity. As for the rumours that have or do go abroad,
either of our relenting or massing, we trust, that they which know God
and their duty towards their brethren in Christ, will not be too easy of
belief. For it is not the slanderer's evil tongue, but a man's evil deed
that can with God defile a man; and, therefore, with God's grace, you
shall never have cause to do otherwise than you say you do, that is, not
to doubt but that we will by God's grace continue steadfast and un-
moveable. Like rumours as you have heard of our coming to London,
have been here spread of the coming of certain learned men prisoners
hither from London; but as yet we know no certainty which of these
rumours is or shall be more true. Know you that we have you in our
daily remembrance, and wish you and all the rest of our foresaid com-
panions well in Christ.
" It would much comfort us, if we might have knowledge of the state
of the rest of our most dearly beloved, which in this troublesome time
do stand in Christ's cause, and in the defence of the truth thereof. We
have heard somewhat of Mr. Hooper's matter, but nothing of the rest.
We long to hear of father Crome, Dr. Sands, Mr. Saunders, Veron,
Beacon, Rogers, and others. We are in good health, thanks be to God,
and yet the manner of using us doth change as sour ale in summer. It
is reported to us by our keepers, that the university beareth us heavily.
A coal happened to fall in the night out of the chimney, and burnt a
hole in the floor, and no more harm was done, the bailiff's servant sitting
by the fire. Another night there chanced, as the bailiffs told us, a
drunken fellow to multiply words, and for the same he was set in
Bocardo. Upon these things, as is reported, there is a rumour risen in
the town and country about, that we would have broke the prison with
such violence, as that if the bailiffs had not played the pretty men, we
should have made an escape. We had out of our prison a wall that we
might have walked upon, and our servants had liberty to go abroad in
the town or fields, but now both they and we are restrained from both.
812 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
" My lord of Worcester passed through Oxford, but he did not visit
us. The same day our restraint began to be more close, and the book
of the communion was taken from us by the bailiffs at the mayor's
command, as the bailiffs did report to us. No man is licensed to come
unto us; before they might, that would see us upon the wall, but that is
so grudged at, and so evil reported, that we are now restrained. Blessed
be God, with all our evil reports, grudges, and restraints, we are merry
in God, all our care is and shall be, by God's grace, to please and serve
him, of whom we look and hope, after these temporal and momentary
miseries, to have eternal joy and perpetual felicity with Abraham, Isaac,
and Jacob, Peter, and Paul, and all the heavenly company of the angels
in heaven, through Jesus Christ our Lord. As yet there has no learned
man, nor any scholar, been to visit us since we came into Bocardo, which
now in Oxford may be called a college of Quondams. For as you know
we are no fewer than three, s and I dare say every one well contented
with his portion, which I do reckon to be our heavenly Father's good
and gracious gift. Thus fare you well. We shall, by God's grace, one
day meet together, and be merry. The day assuredly approacheth
apace; the Lord grant that it may shortly come. For before that day
come, I fear the world will wax worse and worse. But then all our
enemies shall be overthrown and trodden under foot: righteousness and
truth then shall have the victory, and bear the bell away, whereof the
Lord grant us to be partakers, and all that love truly the truth.
" We all pray you, as we can, to cause all our commendations to be
made unto all such as you know did visit us and you when we were in
the Tower, with their friendly remembrances and benefits. Mrs. Wilk-
son and Mrs. Warcup* have not forgotten us, but ever since we came to
Bocardo, with their charitable and friendly benevolence have comforted
us: not that else we did lack, (for God be blessed, he hath always suf-
ficiently provided for us) but that is a great comfort, and an occasion
for us to bless God, when we see that he maketh them so friendly to
tender us, whom some of us were never familiarly acquainted withal."
A selection only of the letters of Ridley can be made. The next
deserving special attention is one addressed generally to all his suffering
brethren through the country.
" Grace, peace, and mercy, be multiplied among you. What worthy
thanks can we render unto the Lord for you, my brethren; namely, for
the great consolation which, through you, we have received in the Lord,
who, notwithstanding the rage of Satan, that goeth about by all manner
of subtle means to beguile the world, and also busily laboureth to restore
and set up his kingdom again, that of late began to decay and fall to
ruin; you remain yet still immoveable, as men surely grounded upon a
• Cranmer was the other individual of the three; and though nothing is hinted of his
taking a share in the correspondence of these illustrious prisoners, it is evident, by the in-
cidental mention of him in this place, that he had not yet become shaken, nor that he yet
thought of recanting.
1 Two excellent women to whom some of Bradford's best letters were addressed. It
would appear from their ministrations to the Oxford as well as London prisoners, that they
devoted themselves to a general attention to the wants of the martyrs of that day.
BISHOP RIDLEY'S LETTERS. 813
strong rock. And now, albeit that Satan by his soldiers and wicked
ministers, daily draweth numbers unto him, so that it is said of him, that
he plucketh the very stars out of heaven, while he driveth into some
men the fear of death, and loss of all their goods, and sheweth to others
the pleasant baits of the world; namely, riches, wealth, and all kinds
of delights and pleasures, fair houses, great revenues, fat benefices, and
what not; and all to the intent that they should fall down and worship,
not the Lord, but the dragon, the old serpent, which is the devil, that
great beast and his image, and should be enticed to commit fornication
with the strumpet of Babylon, together with the kings of the earth, with
the lesser beast, and with the false prophets, and so to rejoice and be
pleasant with her, and to get drunk with the wine of her fornication :
yet blessed be God the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, which hath
given unto you a manly courage, and hath so strengthened you in the
inward man, by the power of his Spirit, that you can contemn so well
all the allurements of the world, esteeming them as vanities, mere trifles,
and things of nought; who hath also wrought, planted, and surely es-
tablished in your hearts, so steadfast a faith and love of the Lord Jesus
Christ, joined with such constancy, that by no engines of antichrist, be
they ever so terrible or plausible, you will suffer any other Jesus, or any
other Christ, to be forced upon you, besides him whom the prophets
have spoken of before, the apostles have preached, the holy martyrs of
God have confessed and testified with the effusion of their blood.
"In this faith stand you fast, my brethren, and suffer not yourselves
to be brought under the yoke of bondage and superstition any more.
For you know, brethren, how our Saviour warned us before hand, that
such should come as would point unto the world another Christ, and
would set him out with so many false miracles, and with such deceivable
and subtle practices, that even the very elect, if it were possible, should
thereby be deceived : such strong delusion to come did our Saviour give
warning of before. But continue you faithful and constant, and be of
good comfort, and remember that our great captain hath overcome the
world : for he that is in us is stronger than he that is in the world, and
the Lord promiseth us, that for the elect's sake, the days of wickedness
shall be shortened. In the mean season abide you and endure with
patience as you have begun : ' Endure,' I say, and ' reserve yourselves unto
better times,' as one of the heathen poets said ; cease not to shew your-
selves valiant soldiers of the Lord, and help to maintain the travailing
faith of the gospel.
" * You have need of patience, that after you have done the will of God
you may receive the promises. For yet a very little, and he that shall
come, will come, and will not tarry; and the just shall live by faith:
but if any withdraw himself, my soul shall have no pleasure in him.'
These are the words of the living God. * But we are not they which
do withdraw ourselves unto damnation, but they which believe unto the
salvation of the soul.' Let us not suffer these words of Christ to fall
out of our hearts by any manner of terror, or threatenings of the world.
' Fear not them which kill the body,' the rest you know. For I write
not unto you, as men which are ignorant of the truth, but who know
the truth; and to this end only, that we agreeing together in one faith,
814 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
may comfort one another, and be more confirmed and strengthened
thereby. We never had a better, or more just cause either to contemn
our life, or shed our blood ; we cannot take in hand the defence of a
more certain, clear, and manifest truth. For it is not any ceremony for.
which we contend; but it toucheth the very substance of our whole
religion, yea, even Christ himself. Shall we, or can we receive any other
Christ instead of him, who is alone the everlasting Son of the everlasting
Father, and is the brightness of the glory, and a lively image of the
substance of the Father, in whom only dwelleth corporeally the fulness
of the Godhead, who is the only way, the truth, and the life? Let such
wickedness, let such horrible wickedness be far from us. For although
there be that be called gods, whether in heaven or in earth, as there may
be many gods, and many lords, yet unto us there is but one God, who
is the Father, of whom are all things, and we by him; but every man
hath not knowledge. This is life eternal, that they know thee to be the
only true God, and Jesus Christ whom thou hast sent. If any therefore
would force upon us any other God, besides him whom Paul and the
apostles have taught, let us not hear him, but let us fly from, and hold
him accursed.
" Brethren, you are not ignorant of the deep and profound subtleties
of Satan ; for he will not cease to range about you, seeking by all means
possible whom he may devour: but play you the men, and be of good
comfort in the Lord. And although your enemies and the adversaries
of the truth, armed with all worldly force and power that may be, do
set upon you: yet be you not faint-hearted, and shrink not therefore,
but trust unto your captain Christ, trust unto the Spirit of truth, and
trust to the truth of your cause; which as it may by the malice of Satan
be darkened, so can it never be clean put out. For we have most
plainly, evidently, and clearly on our side, all the prophets, all the
apostles, and undoubtedly all the ancient ecclesiastical writers which
have written, until of late years past.
" Let us be hearty and of good courage therefore, and thoroughly
comfort ourselves in the Lord. Be in no wise afraid of your adversaries;
for that which is to them an occasion of perdition, is to you a sure token
of salvation, and that of God. For unto you it is given, that not only
you should believe on him, but also suffer for his sake. And when you
are railed upon for the name of Christ, remember that by the voice of
Peter, yea, and of Christ our Saviour also, ye are counted with the
prophets, with the apostles, and with the holy martyrs of Christ, happy
and blessed for ever: for the glory and Spirit of God resteth upon you.
On their part our Saviour Christ is evil spoken of, but on your part
he is glorified. For what can they else do unto you by persecuting you,
and working all cruelty and villany against you, but make your crowns
more glorious, yea beautify and multiply the same, and heap upon them-
selves the horrible plagues and heavy wrath of God? and therefore, good
brethren, though they rage ever so fiercely against us, yet let us not wish
evil unto them again, knowing that while for Christ's cause they vex and
persecute us, they are like mad-men, most outrageous and cruel against
themselves, heaping hot burning coals upon their own heads: but rather
wish well unto them, knowing that we are thereunto called in Christ
ACCOUNT OF BISHOP LATIMI.R. 815
Jesus, that we should be heirs of the blessing. Let us pray therefore
unto God, that he would drive out of their hearts this darkness of errors,
and make the light of his truth to shine unto them, that they acknow-
ledging- their blindness, may with all humble repentance be converted
unto the Lord, and with us confess him to be the only true God, which
is the Father of light, and his only Son Jesus Christ, worshipping him
in spirit and truth. The Spirit of our Lord Jesus Christ comfort your
hearts in the love of God, and patience of Christ, Amen. Your brother
in the Lord, whose name this bearer shall signify unto you, ready always
by the grace of God to live and die with you."
Grindal, afterwards archbishop of Canterbury, was at this time an
exile in the city of Frankfort. Thence he addressed a letter to bishop
Ridley, lamenting his sufferings, and entreating him to be constant and
valiant for the truth. In the course of the letter he desires to know the
mind of Ridley in regard to printing a manuscript of his on the subject
of transubstantiation. Ridley answers that he does nor think it worth
while to translate or print the work till it is seen how he, the author, is
likely to be disposed. There is nothing in the other parts of his answer
to Grindal that is remarkable, unless it be the following paragraph,
which shews him to have been a man of humour and wit as well as true
wisdom and virtue : " Of us three prisoners at Oxford, I am kept most
strict ; because the man in whose house I am a prisoner is governed by
his wife — a morose superstitious old woman, who thinks she shall merit
by having me closely confined. The man himself, whose name is Irish,
is civil enough to all, but too much ruled by his wife. Though I never
had a wife, yet from this daily usage I begin to understand how great
and intolerable a burden it is to have a bad one. The wise man says
rightly — a good wife is the gift of God, and he who has a good wife is
a blessed man."
Having commenced this chapter with a sketch of the life of Ridley,
it will now be proper to review the leading incidents in the history of
Latimer. He was the son of Hugh Latimer, of Thurcaster, in the
county of Leicester, a husbandman in good repute, with whom he was
brought up till he was about four years old: when his parents, seeing
him to be of a ready, prompt, and sharp wit, purposed to train him up
to literature; wherein he so profited in the common schools of his own
country, that at fourteen years of age he was sent to the university of
Cambridge: where, after some continuance in the exercise of other
things, he devoted himself to the school divinity of that age. Zealous
he was then in the popish religion, and therewith so scrupulous, as him-
self confessed, that being a priest, and officiating at the mass, he was
so servile an observer of the Romish decrees, that he thought he had
never sufficiently mingled his massing wine with water ; and moreover,
that he should never be damned, if he were once a professed friar, with
many such superstitious fantasies. And in this blind zeal he was a
great enemy to the professors of Christ's gospel; as both his oration,
when he commenced bachelor of divinity, against Melancthon, and his
other works, plainly declared. He also was strongly excited against
816 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Mr. Stafford, reader of the divinity lectures in Cambridge, at whom he
most spitefully railed, and persuaded the youth of Cambridge in no
wise to believe him.
Notwithstanding, such was the purpose of God, that when he saw his
good time, by which he thought utterly to have defaced the professors
of the gospel, and true church of Christ, he was himself by a member of
the same caught in the blessed net of God's word. For Mr. Thomas
Bilney, seeing Mr. Latimer to have a zeal, although not according to
knowledge, felt a brotherly pity towards him, and began to consider by
what means he might win this zealous ignorant brother to the truth.
Wherefore, after a short time, he came to Mr. Latimer's study, and
desired him to hear his confession, which he willingly did; when he
was, by the good Spirit of God, so touched, that immediately he forsook
the study of the school-doctors, and other such fopperies, and became
an earnest student in true divinity. So that whereas before he was an
enemy, and almost a persecutor of Christ, he was now a zealous seeker
after him, changing his old manner of cavilling and railing, into a dili-
gent kind of conferring, both with Mr. Bilney and others, and went also
to Mr. Stafford before he died, and desired his forgiveness.
After his own conversion, he was not satisfied without endeavouring
to bring about that of others. He therefore became both a public
preacher, and a private instructor to the rest of his brethren within the
university, for the space of three years, spending his time partly in the
Latin tongue among the learned, and partly amongst the simple people
in his native language. But the Prince of darkness soon found a means
to disturb this happy state. There was an Augustine friar, who took
occasion upon certain sermons of Mr. Latimer, which he preached about
Christmas, 1529, as well in the church of St. Edward, as also in that
of St. Augustine, within the university of Cambridge, to inveigh
against him, because Mr. Latimer in the said sermons, according to the
common usage of the season, gave the people certain cards out of the
5th, 6th, and 7th chapters of St. Matthew, whereupon they might, not
only then, but at all other times, occupy their time. For the chief
triumph in the cards he limited the heart, as the principal thing they
should serve God withal, whereby he quite overthrew all hypocritical
and external ceremonies, not tending to the necessary furtherance of
God's holy word and sacraments. For the better attaining hereof, he
wished the scriptures to be in English, in order that the common people
might be better enabled to learn their duty to God and to their neigh-
bours. His treatment of this subject was so apt for the time, and so
pleasantly applied by him, that it not only declared the wit and dexte-
rity of the preacher, but also wrought in the hearers much fruit, to the
overthrow of popish superstition.
This happened on the Sunday before Christmas-day; on which day
coming to the church, he entered the pulpit, taking for his text the
words of the gospel aforesaid, "Who art thou?" &c. And in deliver-
ing the cards as above mentioned, he made the heart to be Triumph,"
exhorting and inviting all men thereby to serve the Lord with inward
u The word trump, as now used, is a corruption from triumph — the triumph card.
i:\iuaci from lahmer's sermon. 817
heart and true affection, and not with outward ceremonies : adding
moreover, to the praise of that Triumph,, that though it were ever so
small, yet it would take up the best court card beside in the bunch,
yea, though it were the king of clubs: meaning thereby how the Lord
would be worshipped and served in simplicity of heart and verity,
wherein consisteth true christian religion and not in the outward deeds
of the letter only, or in the glittering shew of man's traditions, or
pardons, pilgrimages, ceremonies, vows, devotions, voluntary works,
and works of supererogation, foundations, oblations, the pope's supre-
macy, &c. so that all these either were needless, where the other is
present; or else were of small estimation, in comparison of the other.
As these sermons were so important in their consequences, we here
present the reader with the following beautiful extract from one of
them, written in Cambridge about the year of our Lord 1529 : —
" Tu quis es ? Which words are as much as to say in English, ' Who
art thou V These be the words of the Pharisees, which were sent by the
Jews unto John the Baptist in the wilderness, to have knowledge of
him who he was; which words they spake unto him of an evil intent,
thinking that he would have taken on him to be Christ, and so they
would have had him done by their good wills, because they knew
that he was more carnal and given to their laws, than Christ indeed
should be, as they perceived by their old prophecies: and also, because
they marvelled much at his great doctrine, preaching, and baptising,
they were in doubt whether he was Christ or not: wherefore they said
unto him, "Who art thou?" Then answered John, and confessed
that he was not Christ. Now here is to be noted the great and prudent
answer of John the Baptist unto the Pharisees, that when they re-
quired of him who he was, he would not directly answer of himself,
what he was himself; but he said he was not Christ, by which saying
he thought to put the Jews and Pharisees out of their false opinion and
belief towards him, in that they would have had him to exercise the
office of Christ, and so declared further unto them of Christ saying —
" He is in the midst of you, and amongst you, whom ye know not, the
latchet of whose shoe I am not worthy to unloose." By this you may
perceive that St. John spake much in the praise of his master Christ,
professing himself to be in no wise like unto him. So likewise it shall
be necessary unto all men and women of this world, not to ascribe unto
themselves any goodness of themselves, but all unto our Lord God, as
shall appear hereafter, when this question Who art thou? shall be moved
unto them: not as the Pharisees did unto John, from an evil pur-
pose, but of a good and simple mind, as may appear hereafter.
" Now then, according to the preacher, let every man and woman, of
a good and simple mind, contrary to the Pharisees' intent, ask this
question — Who art thou ? This question must be moved to themselves,
what they be of themselves, on this fashion — What art thou of thy only
and natural generation between father and mother, when thou earnest
into the world? What substance, what virtue, what goodness art thou
of thyself? Which question, if thou rehearse oftentimes to thyself, thou
shalt well perceive and understand, how thou shalt make answer to it:
3 G
818 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
which must be made in thiswise: I am of myself, and by myself, coming
from my natural father and mother, the child of the anger and indig-
nation of God, the true inheritor of hell, a lump of sin, and working
nothing of myself, but all towards hell, except I have better help of
another, than I have of myself. Now we may see in what state we enter
into this world, that we be of ourselves the true and just inheritors of
hell, the children of the ire and indignation of Christ, working all towards
hell, whereby we deserve of ourselves perpetual damnation, by the right
judgment of God, and the true claim of ourselves: which unthrifty state
that we be born unto is come unto us for our own deserts, as proveth
well this example following.
"Let it be admitted for the probation of this, that it might please the
king's grace now being, to accept into his favour a mean man, of simple
degree and birth, not born to any possessions; whom the king's grace
favoureth, not because this person hath of himself deserved any such
favour, but that the king casteth his favour unto him of his own mere
motion and fancy : and because the king's grace will more declare his
favour unto him, he giveth unto this said man a thousand pounds in
lands, to him and his heirs, on this condition, that he shall take upon
him to be the chief captain and defender of his town of Calais, and to
be true and faithful to him in the custody of the same, against the
Frenchmen especially above all other enemies. This man then taketh
on him this charge, promising this fidelity thereunto; it chanceth in
process of time, that by the singular acquaintance and frequent fami-
liarity of this captain with the Frenchmen, these Frenchmen give unto
the said captain of Calais a great sum of money, so that he will be but
content and agreeable, that they may enter into the said town of Calais
by force of arms, and so thereby possess the same unto the crown of
France. Upon this agreement the Frenchmen do invade the said town
of Calais, only by the negligence of this captain.
" Now the king hearing of this invasion, cometh with a great puissance
to defend this his said town, and so by good policy of war overcometh
the said Frenchmen, and entereth again into his town of Calais. Then
he being desirous to know how these enemies of his came thither, maketh
strict search and inquiry by whom this treason was conspired; by this
search it was known and found his own captain to be the very author
and the beginner of the betraying it. The king seeing the great in-
fidelity of this person, dischargeth this man of his office, and taketh from
him and his heirs this thousand pounds' possessions. Think you not that
the king doth use justice unto him, and all his posterity and heirs? Yes
truly, the said captain cannot deny himself but that he had true jus-
tice, considering how unfaithfully he behaved himself to his prince, con-
trary to his own fidelity and promise: so likewise it was of our first
father Adam. He had given unto him the spirit and science of know-
ledge, to work all goodness therewith; this said spirit was not given only
to him, but unto all his heirs and posterity. He had also delivered him
the town of Calais, that is to say, paradise in earth, the most strong and
fairest town in the world, to be in his custody: he nevertheless, by the
instigation of these Frenchmen, that is, the temptation of the fiend, did
KMRACr FROM LATIMER'S SERMON. 819
consent unto their desire, and so he broke his promise and fidelity, the
Commandment of the everlasting King his master.
" Now then, the king seeing this great treason in his captain, dispos-
sessed him of the thousand pounds' of lands, that is to say, from ever-
lasting life and glory, and all his heirs and posterity: for likewise as he
had the spirit of science and knowledge for him and his heirs; so in like
manner when he lost the same, his heirs also lost it by him, and in him.
So now this example proveth, that by our father Adam we had once in
him the very inheritance of everlasting joy; and by him, and in him
again we lost the same. The heirs of the captain of Calais could not
by any manner of claim ask of the king the right and title of their
father in the thousand pounds, by reason the king might answer and
say unto them, that although their father deserved not of himself to
enjoy so great possessions, yet he deserved by himself to lose them,
and greater, committing so high treason as he did, against his prince's
commandment; whereby he had no wrong to lose his title, but was un-
worthy to have the same, and had therein true justice; let not you think,
which be his heirs, that if he had justice to lose his possessions, you
have wrong to lose the same.
" In the same manner it may be answered unto all men and women now
in being, that if our father Adam had true justice to be excluded from
his possessions of everlasting glory in paradise, let us not think the
contrary that be his heirs, but that we have no wrong in losing also the
same; yea, we have true justice and right. Then in what miserable
estate we are, that of the right and just title of our own deserts have lost
the everlasting joy, and claim of ourselves to be true inheritors of hell!
For he that committeth deadly sin willingly, bindeth himself to be an
inheritor of everlasting pain : and so did our forefather Adam willingly
eat of the apple forbidden. Wherefore he was cast out of the everlast-
ing joy in paradise, into this corrupt world among all vileness, whereby
of himself he was not worthy to do any thing laudable or pleasant to
God, evermore bound to corrupt affections and beastly appetites, trans-
formed into the uncleanest and most variable nature that was made
under heaven, of whose seed and disposition all the world is lineally
descended ; insomuch that this evil nature is so much diffused and shed
from one into another, that at this day there is no man or woman living,
who can of themselves wash away this abominable vileness: and so we
must needs grant ourselves to be in like displeasure unto God, as our
father Adam was; by reason hereof, as I said, we are of ourselves the
very children of the indignation of God, the true inheritors of hell, and
working all towards hell, which is the answer to this question, made to
every man and woman by themselves — Who art thou?
" And now the world standing in this damnable state, cometh in the
occasion of the incarnation of Christ; the Father in heaven perceiving
the frail nature of man, that he by himself and of himself could do
nothing for himself, by his prudent wisdom sent down the second per-
son in the Trinity, his Son Jesus Christ, to declare unto man his plea-
sure and commandment: and so at the Father's will, Christ took on him
human nature, being willing to deliver man out of this miserable way,
and was content to suffer cruel passion in shedding his blood for all
820 HISTORY Of CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
mankind, and so left behind for our safeguard, laws and ordinances, to
keep us always in the right path unto everlasting life, as the gospels,
the sacraments, the commandments; which if we do keep and observe
according to our profession, we shall answer better unto this question
— 'Who art thou V than we did before: for before thou didst enter into
the sacrament of baptism, thou wert but a natural man or a natural
woman; as I might say, a man, a woman; but after thou takest on thee
Christ's religion, thou hast a longer name; for then thou art a christian
man, a christian woman. Now then, seeing thou art a christian man,
what shall be the answer of this question — 'Who art thou?'
"The answer of this question is, when I ask it unto myself, I must say
that I am a christian man, a christian woman, the child of ever-
lasting joy, through the merits of the bitter passion of Christ. This
is a joyful answer. Here we may see how much we are bound and
indebted unto God, that hath revived us from death to life, and saved
us that were condemned; which great benefit we cannot well consider
unless we remember what we were of ourselves before we meddled with
him or his laws: and the more we know our feeble nature, and set less
by it, the more we shall conceive and know in our hearts what God hath
done for us : and the more we know what God hath done for us, the
less we shall set by ourselves, and the more we shall love and please
God; so that in no condition we shall either know ourselves or God,
except we utterly confess ourselves to be mere vileness and corruption.
Well now it is come unto this point, that we are christian men, christian
women, I pray you, what doth Christ require of a christian man, or of
a christian woman ? Christ requireth nothing else of a christian man or
woman, but that they will observe his rules."
To relate at full the alarm the preaching of this and the other sermons
occasioned at Cambridge, would require too much time and space. A
prior of Black Friars, named Buckenham, attempted to prove that
it was not expedient for the scriptures to be in English, lest the ignorant
and vulgar sort, through the occasion thereof, might be brought in danger
of leaving their vocations, or else of running into some inconvenience.
As an example he said, "The ploughman, when he heareth this in the
gospel, ' No man that layeth his hand on the plough and looketh back,
is meet for the kingdom of God/ might peradventure cease from his
plough. Likewise the baker, when he hears that a little leaven cor-
rupteth a whole lump of dough, may perchance leave our bread unlea-
vened, and so our bodies shall be unseasoned. Also the simple man,
when he heareth in the gospel, ' If thine eye offend thee, pluck it out
and cast it from thee,' may make himself blind, and so fill the world
with beggars." These, with some others, this clerkly friar brought out,
to prove his purpose of keeping scripture in a strange tongue, and from
the common people !
Mr. Latimer hearing the sermon of Buckenham, came shortly after
to the church to answer him. To hear him came a multitude, as well
of the university as of the town, both doctors and other graduates, with
great expectation to learn what he could say : among whom also,
directly in the face of Latimer, underneath the pulpit, sat Buckenham,
with his black friar's cowl about his shoulders. Then Latimer, first
BENEVOLENCE OF MR. LATIMKR. 821
repeating the reasons of Buckenham, whereby he would prove it a dan-
gerous thing- for the vulgar to have the scriptures in their own tongue,
so refuted the friar, so answered to his objections, so ridiculed his bald
reason of the ploughman looking back, of the baker leaving his bread
unleavened, and of the simple man plucking out his eye, that the vanity
of the friar might to all men appear, well proving and declaring to the
people, that there was no such danger from the scriptures being in
English. And proceeding moreover in his sermon, he be^an to dis-
course of the mystical speeches and figurative phrases of the scriptures;
which he said were not so diffuse and difficult as pretended.
Besides this Buckenham, there was also another railing friar, a doctor
and a foreigner, named Venetus, who likewise in his sermons railed
and raged against Mr. Latimer, calling him a mad and brainless man,
and persuading the people not to believe him. To whom Mr. Latimer
answering again, took for his ground the words of our Saviour Christ,
"Thou shalt not kill, and whosoever shall kill shall be in danger of the
judgment. But I say unto you, Whosoever is angry with his neighbour
shall be in danger of judgment; and whosoever shall say unto his
neighbour Raca, shall be in danger of the council: and whosoever shall
say to his neighbour, Fool, shall be in danger of hell-fire." The discuss-
ing of which, first he divided the offence of killing into three branches,
one to be with hand, the other with heart, the third with word. With
hand, when we use any weapon drawn, to spill the blood of our neighbour.
With heart, when we be angry with him. With word, when we dis-
dainfully rebuke our neighbour, or despitefully revile him.
But why should we here decipher the names of his adversaries, when
whole swarms of friars and doctors flocked against him on every side,
almost through the whole university, preaching against and abusing him?
Amongst whom was Dr. Watson, master of Christ's college, whose
scholar Latimer had been. In short, almost as many as were heads of
houses, so many were the enemies of this worthy standard-bearer of
Christ's gospel. At last came Dr. West, bishop of Ely, who preaching
against him at Barnwell-abbey, forbad him within the churches of that
university to preach any more. Notwithstanding, so the Lord provided,
that Dr. Barnes, prior of the Augustine friars, did license Mr. Latimer
to preach in his church of the Augustines, and he himself preached at
St. Edward's church, which was the first sermon of the gospel that Dr.
Barnes preached, being Sunday and Christmas Eve. Whereupon cer-
tain articles were gathered out of his sermon, and brought against him
by Mr. Tyrell fellow of the King's-hall, and so by the vice-chancellor
they were presented to the cardinal.
Thus Mr. Latimer being baited by the friars, doctors, and masters of
that university, about the year 1529, notwithstanding the malice of these
malignant adversaries, continued yet in Cambridge preaching for about
three years together, with favour and applause of the godly, also with
such admiration of his enemies who heard him, that the bishop himself
coming in, and witnessing his merit, wished himself to have the like,
and was compelled to commend him upon it. After this, Mr. Latimer
and Mr. Bilney continued in Cambridge for some time, where they so
frequently conferred together, that the field wherein they usually walked
822 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
was long after called the heretics' hill. As their intimacy was much
noted by many of the university, so was it full of many good examples,
to all who would follow them, both in visiting the prisoners, and reliev-
ing the needy. The following interesting story will exemplify the bene-
volence of Mr. Latimer. It happened that, with Mr. Bilney, he went
to visit the prisoners in the tower of Cambridge, and being there, among
others was a woman who was accused of having killed her own child,
which act she plainly and steadfastly denied. Whereby it gave them
occasion to search for the matter, and at length they found that her
husband loved her not, and therefore sought all means to destroy her.
The particulars were thus: —
A child of hers had been sick a whole year, and at length died in
harvest time, as it were in a consumption : which when it was gone,
she sought her neighbours to help her at the burial, but all being abroad
in the harvest, she was forced with heaviness of heart, to prepare the
child alone for the burial. Her husband coming home, accused her
of murdering the child. This was the cause of her trouble ; and Mr.
Latimer, by earnest inquisition of conscience, thought the woman not
guilty. Immediately after this he was called to preach before king
Henry VIII. at Windsor, and after his sermon the king sent for him,
and talked familiarly with him. At which time Mr. Latimer, find-
ing an opportunity, kneeled down, opened the whole matter to the king,
and desired her pardon, which he granted, and gave it to him at his
return home. In the mean time the woman was delivered of a child in
the prison, to which Mr. Latimer stood godfather. But all the while
he would not tell her of the pardon, but laboured to have her confess
the truth of the matter. At length the time came when she expected
to suffer, and Mr. Latimer came as he was wont, to instruct her; when
she made great lamentations, to be purified before her suffering, for she
thought she must be damned if she died without purification. Mr.
Bilney being with Mr. Latimer, told her, that law was made for the
Jews, and not for us, and that women were as well in the favour of
God before they be purified as after ; and that it was appointed for
a civil and politic law. They then argued with her till they had better
instructed her, and at length shewed her the king's pardon, and liberated
her.
Besides this, many other actions equally benevolent, were known to
originate from this zealous christian; insomuch, that the enemies of
truth, instigated by envy, soon sought a means to interrupt the har-
mony of him and his friend. So much virtue provoked envy in many.
Among the rest of this number was Dr. Redman, a man favouring
more of superstition than of true religion, after the zeal of the Pharisees,
yet not so malignant or hurtful, but of a mild disposition, and also
liberal in well doing, so that few poor scholars were in that university
who fared not the better by his purse. He was a man of great authority
in the university of Cambridge, and perceiving the boldness of Mr.
Latimer, in publishing in sincerity the genuine truths of the gospel,
endeavoured by a letter to persuade him from his manner of preaching.
To this Mr. Latimer wrote the following laconic answer.
BENEVOLENCE OF MR. LATIMER. 823
•' Reverend Mr. Redman, it is even enough for me, that Christ's sheep
hear no man's voice but Christ's: and as for you, you have no voice of
Christ against me; whereas for my part, I have a heart that is ready to
hearken to any voice of Christ that you can bring me. Thus fare you
well, and trouble me no more from talking with the Lord my God."
Mr. Latimer having thus laboured in preaching and teaching in Cam-
bridge about three years, was at length called up to Cardinal Wolsey for
heresy, by the procurement of some of the university, where he was
content to subscribe and grant to such articles as they then propounded
to him. After that he again returned to the university, where shortly
after, by the means of Dr. Butts, the king's physician, a singular good
man, he was placed in the number of those who laboured in the cause of
the king's supremacy. On this he went to the court, where he remained
a certain time in Dr. Butts's chamber, and preached very often in
London. At last being weary of the court, and having a benefice
offered by the king, at the suit of the lord Cromwell and Dr. Butts, he
gladly accepted it, and withdrew from the court, wherewith in no case
he could agree.
The royal gift was at West Kingston, in Wiltshire, in the diocese of
Sarum. Here this good preacher exercised himself with much diligence,
teaching his flock and all the country about. In fine, his diligence was
so great, his preaching so powerful, the manner of his teaching so
zealous, that there also he could not escape enemies. So true it is what
St. Paul foretelleth us — "Whosoever will live godly in Christ shall suffer
persecution." It so happened, that as he was preaching upon the Virgin
Mary, and reserving all honour to Christ our only Saviour, certain popish
priests being therewith offended, sought and created much trouble against
him, drawing out articles and impositions which they falsely and un-
charitably imputed unto him — That he should preach against our Lady,
for that he reproved in a sermon the superstitious rudeness of certain
blind priests, who taught that she never had any sin, and that she was
not saved by Christ — that he should say, that saints were not to be wor-
shipped — that Ave Maria was a salutation only, and no prayer — that
there was no material fire in hell — and that there was no purgatory,
trifling with the subject and saying, that he had rather be in purgatory
than in Lollard's Tower.
The chief enemies and molesters of him, besides these country priests,
were Dr. Powel, of Salisbury, Dr. Wilson, sometime of Cambridge, a
Mr. Hubberdin, and Dr. Sherwood. Of whom some preached and some
wrote against him; insomuch that by their procurement he was cited up,
and called to appear before Warham, archbishop of Canterbury, and
Stokesly, bishop of London, January 29th, 1531. Against which cita-
tion, although Mr. Latimer did appeal to his own ordinary, yet notwith-
standing that, he was brought to London before Warham and Stokesly,
where he was greatly molested, and detained a long time from his
cure at home, being called thrice every week before the bishops, to
make answer for his preaching, and had certain articles or propositions
drawn out and laid to him, whereunto they required him to subscribe.
At length he not only perceiving their practical proceedings, but being
824 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
also much grieved with their troublesome unquietness, who neither
would preach themselves, not yet suffer him; he wrote to the archbishop,
partly excusing his infirmity, whereby he could not appear at their com-
mandment, partly expostulating with them for so troubling and detain-
ing him from doing his duty, and that for no just cause, but only for
preaching the truth against certain vain abuses crept into religion, much
needful to be spoken against. The letter is as follows.
" MOST REVEREND GOVERNOR,
" Had not sickness prevented me, I had myself waited on you at
your palace; but these fresh troubles have brought on me a sharp
return of an old distemper, so that I can't be able to wait on you to-
day without great pain; but that your lordship might no longer m vain
expect my coming, I have sent these lines scribbled with mine own hand
to your grace, as to a most upright judge, of my excuse, in which 1 wish
I had more time or more judgment to frame a just expostulation with
your grace for detaining me so long against my will from my cure, and
that so unseasonably, at a time when it most behoves every pastor to be
with his flock. But what shall I say, if it is lawful for so mean a
prisoner to plead with so great a father? If we esteem a priest good for
doing his duty, who, while he remains in this earthly tabernacle, never
ceaseth to teach and admonish his congregation, and so much the more
as he draws nearer his last home, what must we think of those who
neither preach themselves now, nor permit those who are desirous to do
it, unless they are bound to do and say nothing but what they please.
At first I thought it safe to submit myself entirely to your clemency, but
now it seems as safe to justify myself a little, since one thing was
pretended in the beginning, but now another, and what will be the end
I have great room to doubt; but I hope truth only will be used. First
I was sent to London, where I was before the court of Canterbury;
then all was stopped that had been done, and the matter had bounds
and limits set to it by him who sent me; but so the business was
handled and brought into doubt, that at length there seemed no end of
it, but that it must be infinitely prolonged. For while, without either
method or design, I was questioned of one thing after another, whether
pertinent or impertinent, now by one and then by another, if I gave
them no answer, or if I answered them to the purpose — which I thought
was not imprudent sometimes to put an end to the dispute — I was
equally uncivil ; while one answers to many and of many things, he
may inadvertently say something that may prejudice the most righteous
cause. None ought to judge me wicked for what at most they can call
but an error of conscience ; and to remember all things, it behoves a
man to remember the foundation of the other world. When a man acts
against conscience, he doth it to gain, to maintain, or defend his own;
but what they charge me with is far different, and I believe without ex-
ample, wickedly requesting to know the cause of my confinement. If
any person is disposed to attack my sermons, that they are obscure, or
not cautiously enough worded, I am prepared either to explain or vindi-
cate them, for I never preached any thing against the truth, against the
councils of the fathers, or the catholic faith. All that my adversaries
or detractors truly charge me with, is what I have long desired, and do
LATIMER'S EPISTLE. 825
desire, namely, the improving the common people's judgment. I
heartily desire that all men might know and comprehend the disagree-
ment of things, the worth, place, time, degrees, and order proper for
each, and how much they are concerned in those things which God has
prepared for them to walk in : every man ought to be very diligent in
doing the works of his calling; after which, many things indifferent
may be done with equal diligence, amongst which are all things which
no law has forbid, unless we forbid them to ourselves. It is lawful
to use images, to go on pilgrimages, to invocate saints, to remember
the souls in purgatory, but these which are voluntary acts are to be so
restrained, that they diminish not the just esteem of the precepts
of God, which bestow eternal life on those who follow them: they who
use them otherwise, are so far from gaining the love of God, that they
rather incur his hatred. The true love of God is to keep his command-
ments, as our Saviour says, * He who heareth my words and doeth them,
he it is who loveth me.' Let no man then have so mean an opinion of
the laws of God, as to make them equal to the fancies of men, since by
those at the last day before the tribunal of Christ we shall all be judged,
and not by these ; as Christ says, i The word that I speak, that shall
judge you at the last day:' and what man is able to make amends for
the breach of one of those commands, by any or all of these specious
additions? O that we would be but as ready, as diligent, as devoted to
do his will, as we are to follow our own empty notions! Many things
done with an upright heart God accepts of, making allowance for our
infirmities, though he has not commanded or required them; but these
things ought to be taken away when they begin to have the force of
commands, lest while we do these we omit those that are absolutely
necessary; and what can be more absurd than to revere as ordinances
of God, the idle fancies of men, whilst his true ordinances are neglect-
ed : whence I in behalf of the commandments of God stand hitherto
immoveable, not seeking my own but Christ's gain, not my own but
God's glory: and whilst I live I will stand steadfast.
" Thus all the German divines have hitherto complained of the intoler-
able abuse of these things, that no man desirous of the glory of Christ can
accept of the ministry without doing what is against his conscience, and
if some have submitted to this hardship purely to do good, yet what doth
the christian religion suffer by it? unless we are so miserably blinded as
to think that these things are to be dispensed with for our own filthy
gain, though they are not for the honour of God. Now who can justify
the constant practice of such things which in themselves are highly
criminal? Some things are constantly performed which ought never,
while others are omitted which ought always to be done : now who can-
not see this manifest abuse? And who sees, and does not grieve? And
who grieves, that would not labour to remove it? And when shall it be
removed, while it is constantly preached and commended ? Why, it is
hardly possible for it not to be universal. It is one thing barely to
permit, and another to enforce as law. ' Go,' says Christ, * and teach
the people whatsoever I have commanded you.' Let us therefore, by
the help of God, go and do this; let us employ our whole strength to
preach the sincere word of God, not to flatter or cook up our sermons
826 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
to men's depraved taste, then shall we be true preachers of God's word.
Careless as men are in what relates to God, they are diligent enough in
what relates to themselves, to this they want no spurs; but they are
miserably deceived by an unjust esteem of things, and an early super-
stition received in their tender years from their forefathers, which we
are hardly able to remember by any preaching, how frequent, how
earnest, how sincere and pure soever, which God doth now permit;
for in these evil days they who ought to preach themselves, forbid them
to preach who are willing and able, and on the contrary, compel time-
servers, who damnably detain the miserable people in superstition and
false confidence; but the Lord have mercy upon us, and grant we may
know his way upon earth, not to be found amongst those to whom he
says, ' My ways are not your ways, neither are my thoughts your
thoughts. ' Hence I dare not subscribe to these propositions, most
honoured father, because I would no ways be accessary to the longer
continuance of these popular superstitions, lest I should be the author
of my own damnation. Were I worthy, I would even give you some
advice, but that impertinent thing, the heart, can do little else than
guess, none knowing the things of a man but the spirit of a man which
is in him. It is not any pride that hinders me from subscribing to these
propositions; on the contrary, I am very sorry I cannot wholly perform
your request. I know how great a crime it is to disobey the fathers
and governors of the church, but then regard is to be had to what they
command, in which case we ought always to obey God rather than man.
" My head aches so much ; and my body is so weak, that I can neither
come, nor write over again and correct these lines; but your lordship
I hope, will approve, if not the judgment, yet the endeavours of your
lordship's devoted servant."
The ; several articles which he was required by the bishops to subscribe
were these — " I believe that there is a purgatory to purge the souls of the
dead after this life; that the souls in purgatory are holpen with the
masses, prayers, and alms of the living; that the saints do pray as
mediators now for us in heaven ; that they are to be honoured by us in
heaven; that it is profitable for Christians to call upon the saints, that
they may pray as mediators for us unto God; that pilgrimages and obla-
tions done to the sepulchres and relics of saints are meritorious; that
they which have vowed perpetual chastity may not marry, nor break
their vow, without the dispensation of the pope; that the keys of binding
and loosing, delivered to Peter, do still remain with the bishops of Rome
his successors, although they live wickedly, and are by no means, nor
at any time, committed to laymen ; that men may merit and deserve at
God's hand by fasting, prayer, and other good works of piety; that they
which are forbidden by the bishop to preach, as suspected persons, ought
to cease until they have purged themselves before the said bishop, or
their superiors, and be restored again ; that the fast which is used in Lent
and other fasts prescribed by the canons, and by custom received of
the Christians, are to be observed and kept; that God in every one of
the seven sacraments giveth grace to a man, rightly receiving the same;
that consecrations, sanctifyings, and blessings, by use and custom received
in the church, are laudable and profitable; that it is laudable and pro-
ARTICLES PRESENTED TO LATIMER. 827
fitable, that the venerable images of the crucifix and other saints should
be had to the churches as a remembrance, and to tlie honour and wor-
ship of Jesus Christ and his saints; that it is laudable and profitable to
deck and to clothe those images, and set up burning lights before them
to the honour of the said saints."
To these articles, whether he did subscribe or not, it is uncertain. It
appears by his letter above, that he durst not consent to them ; for he
says — " I dare not subscribe to these propositions, because I would no
ways be accessary to the longer continuance of these popular supersti-
tions, lest I be the author of my own damnation." But whether he was
compelled afterwards to agree, through the cruel dealings of the
bishops, remains a doubt. By the words and the title in Tonstal's
register prefixed before the articles, it may seem that he did subscribe.
The words of the register are these — "Hugh Latimer, bachelor of
divinity, of the university of Cambridge, in a convocation held at West-
minster before the lord archbishop of Canterbury, the lord bishop of
London, and the rest of the clergy, has acknowledged and made the
following confession of his faith, as in these articles, March 21st, 1531."
If these words be true, it may be thought that he subscribed. But it
ought to be received with great doubt, considering the subtlety, artifice,
and want of candour, that prevailed amongst the Romish party. The
following curious incident was related by himself in a sermon preached
at Stamford, October 9th, 1550.
" I was once in examination before five or six bishops, where I had
much trouble: thrice every week I came to examinations, and many
snares and traps were laid to get something. Now God knoweth I was
ignorant of the law, but that God gave me wisdom what I should speak ;
it was God indeed, or else I had never escaped them. At last I was
brought forth to be examined into a chamber hung with arras, where
I was wont to be examined : but now at this time the chamber was
somewhat altered. For whereas before there was wont always to be a
fire in the chimney, now the fire w 7 as taken away, and an arras hung
over the chimney, and the table stood near the fire-place. There was
amongst the bishops who examined me, one with whom I had been very
familiar, and took him for my great friend, an aged man, and he sat
next to the table's end. Then amongst other questions he put forth a
very subtle and crafty one, and such an one indeed, as I could not think
so great danger in. And when I should make answer, one said, ' I
pray you, Mr. Latimer, speak out, I am very thick of hearing, and here
may be many that sit far off.' I marvelled at this that I was bid to
speak out, and begun to suspect, and give an ear to the chimney ; and
there I heard a pen writing in the chimney behind the cloth. They had
appointed one there to write all mine answers, for they made sure that
I should not start from them: there was no starting from them. God
was my good Lord, and gave me answer, I could never else have
escaped it."
The question then and there objected to him was — Whether he thought
in his conscience that he had been suspected of heresy? This was a cap-
tious question. There was no holding of peace; for that was to grant
himself faulty. To answer it was everyway full of danger. But God,
828 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
who always giveth in need what to ajiswer, helped him, or else he had
never escaped their bloody hands. Although what was his answer he
doth not there express.
Amongst these hard and dangerous straits, it had been hard for him,
and almost impossible to have escaped and continued so long, had not
the almighty helping hand of the Highest preserved him through the
power of his prince; who with much favour embraced him, and with his
mere power sometimes rescued and delivered him out of the crooked
claws of his enemies. Moreover, at length, also through the interest of
Dr. Butts and lord Cromwell, he advanced him to the dignity of a bishop,
namely, bishop of Worcester. It were too long to stand particularly
upon such things as might be brought to the commendation of this pious
prelate; but the days then were so dangerous and variable, that he could
not in all things do what he would. Yet what he could do, that he per-
formed to the utmost of his strength, so that although he was not utterly
able to extinguish all the sparkling relics of superstition, yet he so
wrought that they were, in a great measure, lessened of their evil. As
for example, in this thing, and divers others, it appeared that when it
could not be avoided, but that holy water and holy bread must needs
be received, yet so he prepared and instructed them of his diocese, with
such informations and lessons, that in receiving thereof superstition
should be excluded, and some remembrance taken thereby, teaching
and charging the ministers of his diocese, in delivering the holy water
and the holy bread, to use these forms. On giving the water, which
had been blessed, they were to say to the people —
" Remember your promise in baptizing ;
Christ, his mercy and blood-shedding,
By whose most holy sprinkling,
Of all your sins you have free pardoning."
And on giving the people the consecrated bread, they were to say —
" Of Christ's body this is a token,
Which on the cross for our sins was broken :
Wherefore of your sins you must be forsakers,
If of Christ's death you will be partakers."
Thus this good man behaved himself in his diocese. But still, both
in the university and at his benefice, he was tossed and troubled by
wicked and evil disposed persons; so in his bishopric also, he was not
free from some that sought his trouble. As among many other evil
willers, one especially there was, and he no small person, who accused
him then to the king for his sermons. He thus explained himself in
another discourse — " In the king's days that is dead, a great many of
us were called together before him, to speak our minds in certain matters.
In the end one kneeleth down and accuseth me of having preached
seditious doctrine. A heavy salutation, and a hard point of such a man's
doing, as if I should name you would not think. The king turned to
me and said — ' What say you to that, Sir?' Then I kneeled down, and
turned first to my accuser, and asked him — ' Sir, what form of preach-
ing would you appoint me in preaching before a king? Would you
PREACHING OF LATIMER BEFORE KING EDWARD. 829
have me preach nothing as concerning a king in a king's sermon?
Have yon any commission to appoint me what I shall preach?' Besides
this, I asked him divers other questions, and he would make no answer
to any of them all; he had nothing to say.
" Then I turned to the king, and submitted myself to his grace, and
said — ' I never thought myself worthy, nor did I ever sue to be a
preacher before your grace, but I was called to it, and would be willing
to give place to my betters; for I grant that there be a great many
more worthy of the room than I am. And if it be your grace's plea-
sure so to allow them for preachers, I could be content to carry their
books after them. But if your grace allow me for a preacher, I would
desire you to give me leave to discharge my conscience, and thus to
frame my doctrine according to my audience. I had been a very
blockhead to have preached so at the borders of your realm, as I preach
before your grace.' And I thank Almighty God that my sayings were
well accepted of the king; for like a gracious lord he turned into an-
other communication. It is even as the scripture saith — 'The Lord
directeth the king's heart.' Some of my friends came to me with tears
in their eyes, and told me, they expected I should have been in the
Tower the same night."
Besides this, divers other conflicts and combats this godly bishop
sustained in his own country and diocese, in taking the cause of right
and equity against oppression and wrong. Thus he continued in his
laborious function of a bishop till the coming in of the six articles. Then
being distressed through the straitness of time, he must either sacrifice
a good conscience, or else forsake his bishopric ; the latter of which he
freely did, and Dr. Shaxton, bishop of Salisbury, resigned likewise with
him. At which time he threw off his rochet in his chamber among his
friends, and suddenly gave a leap for joy, on being discharged of
such a heavy burden. However, he was not so lightened, but that
troubles and labours followed him wheresoever he went. For a little
after he renounced his bishopric, he was much bruised by the fall of a
tree: then coming up to London for remedy, he was molested and
troubled by the bishops, and was at length sent to the Tower, where he
remained prisoner till king Edward came to the crown, by which means
the golden mouth of this preacher, long shut up before, was now opened
again. He continued all the reign of Edward labouring in the Lord's
harvest most fruitfully, discharging his talent at Stamford, and before
the duchess of Suffolk, and many other places in this realm, as at Lon-
don in the Convocation-house, and especially before the king at the
court. In the inner garden, which had been applied to lascivious and
courtly pastimes, there he dispensed the fruitful word of the glorious
gospel of Jesus Christ, preaching before the king and his whole court,
to the edification of many; for the most part twice every Sunday,
although being so bruised by the fall of a tree, and above sixty-seven
years of age.
As the diligence of this man of God never ceased all the time of king
Edward, to profit the church both publicly and privately, so it is like-
wise to be observed, that the same good Spirit of God who assisted and
comforted him in preaching the gospel, did also enable him to foretell
830 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
all those plagues which afterwards ensued ; if England ever had a pro-
phet, he seemed to be one. And for himself, he ever affirmed that the
preaching of the gospel would cost him his life, to which he no less cheer-
fully prepared himself; for after the death of king Edward, and not
long after Mary was proclaimed queen, a pursuivant was sent down
into the country to call him up, of whose coming, although Mr. Latimer
lacked no forewarning, being informed thereof about six hours before
by one John Careless, yet he was so far from endeavouring to escape,
that he prepared himself for his journey before the officer came to his
house.
At this the pursuivant marvelled, when Mr. Latimer said unto him —
" My friend, you are a welcome messenger unto me. And be it known
unto you and to all the world, that I go as willingly to London at this
present, being called by my prince to render a reckoning of my doctrine,
as ever I was at any place in the world. I doubt not but that "God, as he
hath made me worthy to preach his word before two excellent princes, so
will he able me to witness the same unto the third, either to her comfort
or discomfort eternally." When the pursuivant had delivered his letters,
he departed, affirming that he had command not to wait for him. By this
it was manifest that they would not have had him appear, but rather to
have fled out of the realm, knowing that his constancy would deface them
in their popery, and confirm the godly in the truth.
Coming up to London, and entering by Smithfield he merrily said,
that Smithfield had long groaned for him. He was then brought before
the council, where he patiently bearing all the mocks and taunts given
him by the scornful papists, was again sent to the Tower: there being-
assisted by the heavenly grace of Christ, he meekly endured imprison-
ment a long time, notwithstanding the cruel and unmerciful usage of his
enemies, who then thought their kingdom would never fall; yet he
shewed himself not only patient, but also merry and cheerful, above all
that they could work against him : yea, such a valiant spirit the Lord
gave him, that he was able not only to despise the terrors of prisons and
torments, but also to deride and laugh to scorn even the cruel proceed-
ings of his enemies. It is well known to many what answer he made to
the lieutenant when he was in the Tower. For when the lieutenant's
man upon a time came to him, the aged father, kept without fire in the
frosty winter, and well nigh starved with cold, bade the man tell his
master, that if he did not look better after him, perchance he might
deceive him — meaning by a premature death.
The lieutenant hearing this, and not knowing what to make of so odd
a speech, and fearing that he would in earnest make his escape, began
to look more strictly to his prisoner, and so coming to him, charged him
with his words, at the same time reciting them. His answer was — " So
I said, for I suppose you expect that I should burn; but except you let
me have some fire, I am like to deceive your expectation, for I am in
danger of starving herewith cold." Thus this good man passing a long
time in the Tower, with as much patience as a man in his case could do,
from thence was carried to Oxford, with Cranmer and Ridley, there to
dispute upon articles sent down from Gardiner, bishop of Winchester,
as before mentioned : the manner and order of which disputations be-
LATIMER'S COMMUNICATION TO MR. MORRICE. 831
twcen them and the university doctors, having been sufficiently expressed.
Where also is declared, how and by whom Mr. Latimer, with his fellow-
prisoners, were condemned after disputations, and so committed again
to the prison, where they continued from the month of April till October,
occupied either with brotherly conference, fervent prayer, or fruitful
writing.
Mr. Latimer, by reason of the feebleness of his age, wrote least of all
the distinguished martyrs of the day, especially in the latter time of his
imprisonment ; but in prayer he was fervently occupied, earnestly sending
up to the throne of grace the following among numerous other petitions
— That as God had appointed him to be a preacher of his word, so also
he would give him grace to stand to his doctrine until his death. That
God of his great mercy would restore his gospel to England once again.
That of his good providence he would preserve the lady Elizabeth, whom
in his prayer he used to name, and even with tears desiring God to make
her a comfort to England. The answer to this prayer especially reminds
us that " the prayer of a righteous man availeth much." So it appeared
in the present case : indeed all the requests of this faithful servant were
fully granted. His letters were equal to his prayers. Many of them were
written in Latin ; and they are so numerous and so long, that our limits
will not admit of their insertion.
The following is a letter of Master Latimer to Master Morrice, con-
cerning the articles which were falsely and untruly laid against him : —
" Right worshipful and mine own good master Morrice, health in
Christ Jesus. And I thank you, for all hearty kindness, not only here-
tofore shewed unto me, but also that now of late you would vouchsafe
to write unto me, so poor a wretch, to my great comfort among all these
my troubles, I trust and doubt nothing in it, but God will reward you
for me, and abundantly supply my inability. Mr. Morrice, you would
wonder to know how I have been treated at Bristol, I mean by some of
the priests, who first desired me, welcomed me, made me cheer, heard
what I said, and allowed my saying in all things while I was with them;
but when I was gone home to my benefice, perceiving that the people
favoured me so greatly, and that the mayor had appointed me to preach
at Easter, privily they procured an inhibition for all them that had not
the bishop's license, which they knew well enough I had not, and so
craftily defeated master mayor's appointment, pretending they were
sorry for it, procuring also certain preachers to rail against me, as
Hubberdin and Powel, with others ; whom when I had brought before
the mayor, and the wise council of the town, to know what they could
lay to my charge, wherefore they so declaimed against me, they said
they spake as they were informed. However no man could be brought
forth that could stand to any thing: so that they had place and time
to belie me shamefully, but they had no place or time to lay to my
charge when I was present and ready to make them answer. God
amend them, and assuage their malice, that they have against the
truth and me.
" They did belie me to have said that our Lady was a sinner, when I
832 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
had said nothing of the sort; but to reprove certain, both priests and
beneficed men, which do give so much to our Lady, as though she had
not been saved by Christ, a whole Saviour, both of her, and of all that
be or shall be saved. I did reason after this manner, that either she
was a sinner, or no sinner; if a sinner, then she was delivered from sin
by Christ; so that he saved her, either by delivering or preserving her
from sin, so that without him neither she nor any other could be saved. v
And to avoid all offence, I shewed how it might be answered, both to
certain scriptures, which maketh all generally sinners, and also unto
Chrysostom and Theophylact, who make her namely and specially a
sinner. But all would not serve, their malice was so great; notwith-
standing that 500 honest men can and will bear record. When they
cannot reprove that thing that I do say, then will they belie me to say
that thing which they can reprove; for they will needs appear to be
against me."
This was not the only subject of calumny which Latimer's enemies
took up. He proceeds thus to describe them.
" So they lied when I had shewn certain divers significations of this
word 'saints' among the vulgar people : First, images of saints are called
saints, and so they are not to be worshipped : take worshipping of them
for praying to them ; for they are neither mediators by way of redemp-
tion, nor yet by way of intercession. And yet they may be well used
when they be applied to the uses for which they were ordained, to be
laymen's books for remembrance of heavenly things, exciting the living
to ' follow them who through faith and patience inherit the promises.'
Take saints for inhabitants of heaven, and worshipping of them, for
praying to them; I never denied, but that they might be worshipped,
and be our mediators, though not by way of redemption, in which Christ
alone is a whole Mediator, both for them and for us ; yet by the way of
intercession. w
" Although they have charged me with denying pilgrimage, I never
denied it. And yet I have said that much scurf must be pared away,
ere ever it can be well done : superstition, idolatry, false faith, and trust
in the pilgrimage, unjust estimation of the thing, setting aside God's
ordinances for doing of the tiling; debts must be paid, restitution made,
wife and children must be provided for, duty to our neighbours dis-
charged. And when it is at the best, before it be vowed, it need not be
done, for it is neither under the command of God nor man to be done.
v Mary was indeed, according to the salutation of Elizabeth, highly blessed among
women in bearing that sacred body wherein her God became incarnate ; but still she was
a daughter of Adam, and consequently not without sin, and needing the atoning blood
of Christ and his righteousness, as much as any of her fellow creatures — a fact indirectly
conveyed by the words of Christ himself, who, when a certain woman exclaimed — "Blessed
is the womb that bare thee, and the paps which thou hast sucked ! " — answered " Yea,
rather, blessed are they who hear the word of God and keep it." Nothing can be clearer
than that a humble believer in Christ is superior to the virgin as such, and that her chief
excellence consists in her own humble and holy faith in his salvation.
w This may seem a harmless opinion ; but no warrant for it can be drawn from scripture.
We see neither in the Prophets nor the Apostles any examples of praying to saints. All
requests are to be made known unto God through Christ, Psa. xlv. 17 ; Ixxii. 15; Acts
iv. 12; Phil, ii 9—11; 1 Tim. ii. 5, 6; Ileb. ix. 14, 15,
GODLY LKTTKRS OF HUGH LATIMER. 833
And wives must advise with their husbands, and husbands and wives with
curates, before it be vowed to be done, etc.
" \s for the Ave Maria," who can think that I would deny it? I said it
was a heavenly greeting or saluting of our blessed Lady, wherein the
angel Gabriel, sent from the Father of heaven, did annunciate and shew
unto her the good-will of God towards her, what lie would with her,
and to what he had chosen her. But I said it was not properly a prayer
as the Pater Noster, which our Saviour Christ himself made for a pro-
per prayer, and bid us to say it for a prayer, not adding that we should
say ten or twenty Ave Marias withal : and I denied not but that we may
well say Ave Maria also, but not so that we shall think that the Pater
Noster is not good, a whole and perfect prayer, and cannot be well said
without Ave Maria: so that I did not speak against the well saying
of it, but against the superstitious saying of it, and of the Pater Noster
too; and yet I put a difference betwixt it, and that which Christ made
to be said for a prayer.
"Whoever could think or say that I alleged that there was no fire
whatever in hell ? However, good authors do make a difference betwixt
suffering in the fire with bodies, and without bodies. The soul without
the body is a spiritual substance, which they say cannot receive a cor-
poreal quality; and some make it a spiritual fire, and some a corporeal
fire. And as it is called a fire, so it is called a worm, and it is thought
of some not to be a material worm, that is, a living reptile, but it is a
metaphor, but that is nothing to the purpose ; for a fire it is, a worm it
is, pain it is, torment it is, anguish it is, a grief, a misery, a sorrow, a
heaviness inexplicable and intolerable, whose nature and condition in
every point, who can tell, but he that is of God's privy council? God
give us grace rather to be diligent to keep us out of it, than to be curious
to discuss the property of it ; for certain we be, that there is little ease,
yea, none at all, but weeping, wailing, and gnashing of teeth, which be
the effects of extreme pain, rather certain token what pain there is, than
what manner of pain there is."
The subject of Purgatory has already been before the reader in refer-
ence to Latimer. He writes thus —
" He that sheweth the state and condition of it, doth not deny it.
But I had rather be in it than Lollard's Tower, the bishop's prison, for
divers reasons. In this I might die bodily for lack of meat and drink;
in that I could not. In this I might die spiritually for fear of pain, or
lack of good counsel ; there I could not. In this I might be in extreme
necessity ; in that I could not, if it be peril of perishing. In this I
might lack charity ; there I could not. In this I might lose my
patience; in that I could not. In this I might be in danger of death;
in that I could not. In this I might be without surety of salvation ; in
that I could not. In this I might dishonour God ; in that I could not.
In this I might murmur and grudge against God; in that I could not.
a To speak with the least harshness of this, it was certainly a work of supererogation
and of will worship. Mr. Latimer, in these answers, doubtless discovers an apprehension
of speaking the simple truth, which many of his brother martyrs were quite free from.
This, however, was in an early part of his career; as he advanced he became more firm
and clear, untd all obscurity vanished.
3 n
834 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
In this I might displease God ; in that I could not. In this I might
be displeased with God; in that I could not. In this I might be
judged to perpetual prison, as they call it; in that I could not. In
this I might be craftily handled ; in that I could not. In this I might
be brought to bear a fagot; in that I could not. In this I might be
discontented with God; in that I could not. In this I might be sepa-
rated and dissevered from Christ; in that I could not. In this I might
be a member of the devil ; in that I could not. In this I might be an
inheritor of hell; in that I could not. In this I might pray out of
charity, and in vain ; in that I could not. In this my lord and his
chaplains might manacle me by night ; in that they could not. In this
they might strangle me, and say that I hanged myself; in that they
could not. In this they might have me to the consistory, and judge
me after their fashion ; from thence they could not. Therefore I had
rather to be there than here. For though the fire be called ever so hot,
yet if the bishop's two fingers can shake away a piece, a friar's cowl
another part, and ' scali cceli ' altogether, I will never found abbey,
college, nor chauntry, for that purpose. For seeing there is no pain
that can break my charity, break my patience, cause me to dishonour
God, to displease God, to be displeased with God, cause me not to joy
in God, nor that can bring me to danger of death, or to danger of des-
peration, or from surety of salvation, that can separate us from Christ,
or Christ from us, I care the less for it. Chrysostom saith, the greatest
pain that damned souls have, is to be separate and cut off from Christ
for ever: which pain the souls in purgatory neither have nor can have.
" Consider, Mr. Morrice, whether provision for purgatory hath not
brought thousands to hell. Debts have not been paid ; restitution of
evil-gotten lands and goods hath not been made ; christian people whose
necessities we see, to whom whatsoever we do Christ reputeth done to
himself, to whom we are bound under pain of condemnation to do for,
as we would be done for ourselves, are neglected and suffered to perish;
last wills unfulfilled and broken; God's ordinance set aside; and also
for purgatory, foundations have been taken for sufficient satisfaction;
so we have trifled away the ordinances of God and restitutions. Thus
we have gone to hell with masses, dirges, and ringing of many a bell.
And who can pill pilgrimages from idolatry, and purge purgatory from
robbery, but he shall be in peril to come in suspicion of heresy with
them? so that they may fleece one with pilgrimage, and spoil with pur-
gatory. And verily the abuse of them cannot be taken away, but
great lucre and advantage shall fall away from them, who had rather
have profit with abuse, than lack the same with use; and that is the
wasp that doth sting them, and maketh them to swell. And if purgatory
were purged of all that it hath gotten, by setting aside restitution, and
robbing of Christ, it would be but a poor purgatory; so poor, that it
should not be able to feed so fat, and trick up so many idle and slothful
lubbers.
" I take God to witness, I would hurt no man, but it grieveth rne to
see such abuse continue without remedy. I cannot understand what
they mean by the pope's pardoning of purgatory, but by way of suf-
frage; and as for suffrage, unless he do his duty, and seek not his own,
GODLY LETTERS OF HUGH LATIMER. 835
but Christ's glory, I had rather have the suffrage of Jack of the scullery,
who in Ins calling' doth exercise both faith and charity ; but for his mass.
And that is as good of another simple priest as of him. For, as for au-
thority of keys, it is to loose from guiltiness of sin and eternal pain, due to
the same, according to Christ's word, and not to his own private will.
And as for pilgrimage, you would wonder what juggling there is to get
money withal. I dwell within half a mile of the Foss-way ; and you would
wonder to see how they come by flocks out of the west country to many
images, but chiefly to the blood of Hayles. And they believe verily that
it is the very blood that was in Christ's body, shed upon the mount of
Calvary for our salvation ; and that the sight, of it with their bodily eye
doth certify them, and putteth them out of doubt, that they be clean in
life, and in state of salvation without spot of sin, which doth bolden them
to do many things. For you would wonder if you should commune with
them both coming and going what faith they have : for, as for forgiving
their enemies, and reconciling their Christian brethren, they cannot away
withal ; for the sight of that blood doth requite them for a time.
".I read in Scripture of two certifications; one to the Romans: * We
being justified by faith have peace with God.' If I see the blood
of Christ with the eye of my soul, that is true faith, that his blood
was shed for me, etc. Another in the epistle of St. John : ' We know
that we are translated from death to life, because we love the brethren."
But I read not that I have peace with God, or that I am translated from
death to life, because I see with my bodily eye the blood of Hayles. It
is very probable, that all the blood that was in the body of Christ, was
united and knit to his Divinity, and then no part thereof shall return to
his corruption. And I marvel that Christ shall have two resurrections.
And if it were that they did violently and injuriously pluck it out of
his body when they scourged him and nailed him to the cross, did see
it with their bodily eye, yet they were not in clean life. And we see
the self-same blood in form of wine, when we have consecrated, and
may both see it, feel it, and receive it to our damnation, as touching
bodily receiving. And many do see it at Hayles without confession, as
they say. God knoweth all, and the devil in our time is not dead.
" Christ hath left a doctrine behind him, wherein we be taught how to
believe, and what to believe ; he doth suffer the devil to use his crafti-
ness, for our trial and probation. It were little thank- worthy to believe
well and rightly, if nothing should move us to false faith, and to be-
lieve superstitiously. It was not in vain that Christ said, " Beware of
false prophets." But we are secure and careless as though false pro-
phets could not meddle with us, and as if the warning of Christ were no
more earnest and effectual, than is the warning of mothers when they
trifle with their children. Lo, Sir, how I run at riot beyond measure.
When I began, I was minded to have written but half a dozen lines;
but thus I forget myself, whenever I write to a trusty friend, who will
take in worth my folly, and keep it from mine enemy.
"As for Dr. Wilson, I know not what I should say: but I pray God
endue him with charity. Neither he nor any of his countrymen did
ever love me, since I did inveigh against their factions, and partiality in
Cambridge. Before that, who was more favoured of him than I ? That
836 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
is the bile that may not be touched. A certain friend showed me, that
Dr. Wilson is gone now into his country, about Beverley in Holderness,
and from thence he will go a journey through Yorkshire, Lancashire,
Cheshire, and so from thence to Bristol. What he intendeth by this
progress God knoweth, and not I. If he come to Bristol, I shall hear.
" As for Hubberclin he is a man of no great learning, nor yet of stable
wit. He is here servus hominum ; for he will preach whatsoever the
bishops will bid him. Verily in my mind they are more to be blamed
than he. He doth magnify the pope more than enough. As for our
Saviour Christ and christian kings, they are little beholden to him. No
doubt he did miss the cushion in many things. Howbeit, they that did
send him, men think, will defend him; I pray God amend him and
them both. They would fain make matter against me, intending so
either to deliver him by me, or else to rid us both together, and so they
would think him well bestowed.
"As touching Dr. Powel, how highly he took upon him in Bristol, and
how little he regarded the sword, which representeth the king's person,
many can tell you. I think there is never an earl in this realm that
knoweth his obedience by Christ's commandment to his prince, and
knoweth what the sword doth signify, that would have taken upon him
so stoutly. However, master mayor, as he is a profound wise man, did
flout him prettily; it were too long to write all. Our pilgrimages are
not a little beholden to him, in favour of which he alleged this text:
"Whoever leaveth father, house, wife, kindred, and his own life also
for me, shall be my disciple." But that you may perceive his hot zeal
and crooked judgment. Because I am so belied, I could wish that it.
would please the king's grace to command me to preach before his high-
ness a whole year together every Sunday, that he himself might perceive
how they belie me, saying, that I have neither learning nor utterance
worthy thereunto. I pray you pardon me, I cannot make an end."
Besides his letter to master Morrice, and two epistles in Latin, he also
wrote other letters, as two to sir Edward Baynton, which contain much
fruitful matter and worthy to be known, albeit space can here be had only
for a few extracts. The letter from which these are given was an answer
to one from Baynton, the purport of which is shown in Latimer's reply :
" Either I am certain or uncertain that it is truth that I preach. If it be
truth, why may not I say so, to courage my hearers to receive the same
more ardently, and ensue it more studiously? If I be uncertain, why dare
I be so bold to preach it? And if your friends, in whom ye trust so greatly,
be preachers themselves, after their sermon I pray you to ask them whether
they be certain and sure that they taught you the truth or no ; and send
me word what they say, that I may learn to speak after them. If they say
they be sure, ye know what followeth : if they say they be unsure, when
shall you be sure, that have so doubtful teachers and unsure ? And you
yourselves, whether are you certain or uncertain that Christ is your Saviour?
And so forth of other articles that ye be bounden to believe.
" Our knowledge here, you say, is but 'per speculum in eenigmate:' what
then? ergo, it is not certain and sure. I deny your argument; yea, if it be
by faith, it is much sure, 'because the certainty of faith is the most surest
certainty;' there is a great discrepance between certain knowledge and clear
GODLY LETTERS OF HUGH LATIMER. 837
knowledge, for that may be of things absent that appear not, this re-
quireth the presence of the object, 1 mean of the tiling known ; so that
1 certainly and surely know the thing which I perfectly believe, though
1 do not clearly and evidently know it. I know your school subtleties
as well as you, which dispute as though enigmatical knowledge, that is
to sav, dark and obscure knowledge, might not be certain and sure
knowledge, because it is not clear, manifest, and evident knowledge; and
yet there have been which have had a zeal, but not after knowledge. True
it is there have been such, and yet are too many to the great hindrance
of Christ's glory, which nothing doth more obscure, than a hot zeal
accompanied with great authority without right judgment. There have
been also, which have had knowledge without any zeal of God, who
holding the verity of God in unrighteousness, shall be beaten with many
stripes, while they knowing the will of God do nothing thereafter. I
mean not among Turks and Saracens that be unchristened, but of them
that be christened. And there have been also, they that have lost the
spiritual knowledge of God's word which they had before, because they
have not followed after it, nor promoted the same, but rather with their
mother's wits have impugned the wisdom of the Father, and hindered
the knowledge thereof, which therefore hath been taken away from them ;
that Christ may be justified in his sayings, and overcome when he is
judged: threatening to him that hath not, that also which he hath
(that is, that which he seemeth to have) shall be taken from him : be-
cause to abuse that which a man hath, or not use it well, is as not to
have it ; and also seeing it is true, that God's wisdom will not dwell in
a body subject to sin, albeit it abound in carnal wisdom too much : for
the mere carnal and philosophical understanding of God's Scriptures is
not the wisdom of God, which is hid from the wise, and is revealed to
little ones. And if to call this or that truth requireth a deep and pro-
found knowledge, then every man hath either a deep and profound
knowledge, or else no man can call this or that truth ; and it behoveth
every preacher to have this deep and profound knowledge, that he may
call this or that truth, which this or that he taketh in hand to preach
for the truth ; and yet he may be ignorant and uncertain in many
things, as Apoilos was ; but which things he will not attempt to preach
for the truth. As for myself, I trust in God I have my senses well
enough exercised to discern good and evil in those things, which (being
without deep and profound knowledge in many things) I preach not :
yea, there be many things in Scripture in the which I cannot certainly
discern ' bonum et malum ' — I mean, * verum et falsum ' — not with all
the exercise that I have in Scripture, nor yet with help of all interpreters
that I have, to content myself and others in all scrupulosity that may
arise ; but in such I am wont to wade no further into the stream, than
that I may either go over or else return back again, having ever respect,
not to the ostentation of my little wit, but to the edification of them
that hear me, as far forth as I can, neither passing mine own nor yet their
capacity.
" And such manner of argumentations might well serve the devil contra
pusillanimes, to occasion them to wander and waver in the faith, and to
be uncertain in things in which they ought to be certain : or else it may
838 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
appear to make and serve against such preachers as will define great
subtleties and high matters in the pulpit, which no man can be certain
and sure of by God's word to be truth, unless a man had a superlative
sense to discern good and evil. — Such arguments might appear to make
well against such preachers, not against me, which simply and plainly
utter true faith and the fruits of the same, which be the good works of
God, that he hath prepared for us to walk in, every man to do the
thing that pertaineth to his office and duty in his degree and calling, as
the word appointeth, which thing a man may do with soberness, having
a sense but indifferently exercised to discern good and evil. For it is
but foolish humility, willingly to continue always an infant in Christ
and in infirmity. In reproof of which it was said — " Ye have need of
milk and not of strong meat." For St. Paul saith not — " Be ye humble,
so as to deceive yourselves by ignorance." For though he would not that
we should think arrogantly of ourselves, and above what it becometh
us to think of ourselves, but so to think of ourselves that we may be
sober and modest; yet he biddeth us so to think of ourselves, as God
hath distributed to every one the measure of faith. For he that may
not with meekness think in himself what God hath done for him, and
of himself as God hath done for him, how shall he, or when shall he
give due thanks to God for his gifts? And if your friends will not allow
the same, I pray you inquire of them, whether they may with sobriety
and modesty follow St. Paul's advice, where he saith unto us all — " Be
not children in understanding, but in maliciousness be ye infants." God
give us all grace to keep the mean, and to think of ourselves neither
too high nor too low, but so that we may restore unto him who hath
sent abroad his gifts again, with good use of the same, so that we do
our part with the same, to the glory of God.
" I pray you what mean your friends by a Christian congregation? All
those who have been baptised? But many of those be in a worse con-
dition, and shall have greater damnation, than many unbaptised. For
it is not enough to a christian congregation that is of God, to have
been baptised : but it is to be considered what we promise when we are
baptised, to renounce satan, his works, his pomps. Which things if we
busy not ourselves to do, let us not boast that we profess Christ's name
in a Christian congregation in one baptism. And whereas they add, * in
one Lord,' I read in Matt, xvii., ' Not every one that saith Lord, Lord,' etc.
And in Luke the Lord himself complaineth and rebuketh such professors
and confessors, saying to them, I Why call you me Lord, Lord, and do
not that I bid you?' Even as though it were enough to a Christian man,
or to a Christian congregation, to say every day, ' Domine, dominus noster,'
and to salute Christ with a double ' domine.' But I would your friends
would take the pains to read over Chrysostome, super Matthseum, horn. 49.
cap. 24, to learn to know a Christian congregation, if it will please them to
learn at him. And whereas they add, ? in one faith.' St. James saith
boldly, ' Show me thy faith by thy works.' And St. Jerome, ' If we
believe, we show the truth in working.' And the Scripture saith, ' He that
believeth God, attendeth to his commandments :' and the devils do believe
to their little comfort. I pray God to save you and your friends from that
believing congregation, and from that faithful company !
GODLY LETTERS OF HUGH LATIMER. 839
" But now your friends have learned of St. John, that ' every one that
confesseth Jesus Christ in flesh, is of God :' and I have learned of St. Paul,
that there have been, not among the heathen, but among; the Christians,
which confess Christ with their mouth, and deny him with their acts : so
that St. Paul should appear to expound St. John, saving; that I will not
affirm anything as of myself, but leave it to your friends to show you,
' utrum qui factis negant Christum et vita sint ex Deo necne per solam oris
confessionem :' for your friends know well enough by the same St. John,
' qui ex Deo est, non peccat :' and there both have been and be now too
many, ' which with mouth only confess Christ to be come in the flesh;'
but will not effectually hear the word of God, by consenting to the same,
notwithstanding that St. John saith — ' He who is of God, heareth God's
word ; you hear not, because you are not of God.' And many shall hear,
1 1 never knew you,' which shall not alonely be christened, but also shall
' prophetare,' and do puissant things in the name of Christ. St. Paul
said, there would come ravening wolves, which would not spare the flock :
meaning of them who should with their lips confess Christ in the flesh, and
yet usurp the office ; which Christ biddeth us beware of, saying, ' They shall
come in sheep's clothing;' not feeding, but smiting their fellows, eating and
drinking with the drunken, which shall have their portion with hypocrites.
They are called servants, I suppose, because they confess Christ in the
flesh; and naughty they are called, because they deny him in their
deeds, not giving meat in due season, and exercising mastership over
the flock. And yet your friends reason as though there could none
bark and bite at true preachers, but they that be unchristened, notwith-
standing that St. Augustine, upon the same epistle of St. John, calleth
such confessors of Christ, antichrist; and so making division, not be-
tween christened and unchristened, but between christians and anti-
christians, when neither tongue nor pen can divide the antichristian
from their blind folly.
" Sir, I have had more business in my little cure since I spake with you,
what with sick folks, and what with matrimonies, than I have had since
I came to it, or than I would have thought a man should have in a great
cure. I wonder how men can go quietly to bed, who have great and
many cures, and yet peradventure are in none of them all. But I pray
you to tell none of your friends that I spake so foolishly, lest I make a
dissension in a christian congregation, and divide a sweet and peaceable
union, or as many as may rest with this in such an age. Sir, I had just
made an end of this scribbling, and was beginning to transcribe it more
correctly, but there came a man of my lord of Farley's, with a citation
to appear before my lord of London in haste, to be punished for such
excesses as I committed at my last being there, so that I could not
perform my purpose; I doubt whether you can read it as it is If you
can, well be it; if not, I pray you send it me again, and that you so
do, whether you can read it or not. Jesus, mercy, what a world is this,
that I should be put to so great labour and pains, besides great charges,
above my power, for preaching a poor simple sermon ! But I think
our Saviour Christ said true, I must needs suffer: so dangerous a thing
it is to live virtuously with Christ, yea, in a christian congregation. God
make us all Christians, after the right fashion, Amen."
840 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Master Latimer growing 1 in some favour with the king, and seeing the
great decay of Christ's religion by reason of proclamations forbidding the
reading of God's holy Scriptures, and touched therefore with the zeal of
conscience, directed unto king Henry a long letter, thereby intending by
all means possible to persuade the king's mind to set open again the freedom
of God's holy word amongst his subjects. The whole letter would well
repay perusal, but space will only serve to exhibit the following extracts :
" To the most mighty prince, king of England, Henry the Eighth, grace,
mercy, and peace from God the Father, by our Lord Jesus Christ. The
holy doctor, St. Augustine, in an epistle which he wrote to Casalandus,
saith, that he which for fear of any power hideth the truth, provoketh the
wrath of God to come upon him, for he feareth men more than God. And
according to the same, the holy St. John Chrysostom saith, that he is not
only a traitor to the truth, which openly for truth teacheth a lie ; but he also
which doth not freely pronounce and show the truth that he knoweth.
These sentences, most redoubted king, when I read now of late, and
marked them earnestly in the inward parts of mine heart, they made me
sore afraid, troubled, and vexed me grievously in my conscience ; and at
the last drave me to this strait, that either I must show forth such things
as I have read and learned in Scripture, or else be of that sort who provoke
the wrath of God upon them, and be traitors unto the truth : the which
thing, rather than it should happen, I had rather suffer extreme punishment.
" First, and before all things, I will exhort your grace to mark the life
and process of our Saviour Christ, and his apostles, in preaching and
setting-forth of the gospel ; and to note also the words of our master
Christ, which he said to his disciples when he sent them forth to preach
his gospel ; and to these have ever in your mind the golden rule of our
master Christ, ' The tree is known by the fruit :' for by the diligent
marking of these, your grace shall clearly know and perceive who be the
true followers of Christ, and teachers of his gospel, and who be not. And
concerning the first, all Scripture showeth plainly, that our Saviour Jesus
Christ's life was very poor.
" But this he did to show us, that his followers and vicars should not
regard and set by the riches and treasures of this world, but after the saying
of David we ought to take them, which saith thus : " If riches, promotions,
and dignity happen to a man, let him not set his affiance, pleasure, trust,
and heart upon them.' So that it is not against the poverty in spirit,
which Christ preacheth in the gospel of St. Matthew, chapter v., to be
rich, to be in dignity and in honour, so that their hearts be not fixed and
set upon them so much, that they neither care for God nor good men.
But they be enemies to this poverty in spirit, have they never so little, that
have greedy and desirous minds to the goods of this world, only because
they would live after their own pleasures and lusts. And they also be privy
enemies (and so much the worse) which have professed, as they say, wilful
poverty, and will not be called worldly men; and they have lords' lands,
and kings' riches. Yea, rather than they would lose one jot of that which
they have, they will set debate between king and king, realm and realm,
yea, between the king and his subjects, and cause rebellion against the
temporal power, to the which our Saviour Christ himself obeyed, and paid
tribute, as the gospel declareth ; unto whom the holy apostle St. Paul
LATIMER'S LETTER TO KING HENRY. 841
teacheth every Christian man to obey : yea, and beside all this, tliey will
curse and ban, as much as in them lieth, even into the deep pit of hell, all
that gainsay their appetite, whereby they think their goods, promotions,
or dignities should decay. — And although I named the spiritualty to be
corrupt with this unthrifty ambition, yet I mean not all to be faulty therein,
for there be some good of them : neither will I that your grace should take
away the goods due to the church, but take away such evil persons from
the goods, and set better in their stead.
" The holy apostle St. Paul saith, that ' every man that will live godly
in Christ Jesus, should suffer persecution.' And also he saith further, in
the Epistle written to the Philippians, in the first chapter, that ' it is not
only given to you to believe in the Lord, but also to suffer persecution for
his sake.' Wherefore take this for a sure conclusion, that there, where
the word of God is truly preached, there is persecution, as well of the
hearers as of the teachers : and where is quietness and rest in worldly
pleasure, there is not the truth. For the world loveth all that are of the
world, and hateth all things that are contrary to it. And, to be short, St.
Paul calleth the gospel the word of the cross, the word of punishment.
And the holy Scripture doth promise nothing to the favourers and followers
of it in this world, but trouble, vexation, and persecution, which these
worldly men cannot suffer, nor away withal. Therefore pleaseth it your
good grace to return to this golden rule of our Master and Saviour Jesus
Christ, which is this, ' By their fruits you shall know them.'
" But as concerning this matter, other men have showed your grace their
minds, how necessary it is to have the Scripture in English. The which
thing also your grace hath promised by your last proclamation : the which
promise I pray God that your gracious highness may shortly perform, even
to-day, before to-morrow. — Seeing that our Saviour Christ hath sent his
servants, that is to say, his true preachers, and his own word also, to com-
fort our weak and sick souls, let not these worldly men make your grace
believe that they will cause insurrections and heresies, and such mischiefs
as they madly imagine, lest that he be avenged upon you and your realm, as
he hath ever upon them which have obstinately withstood his word.
*' Wherefore, gracious king, remember yourself, have pity upon your
soul ; and think that the day is even at hand, when you shall give account
of your office, and of the blood that hath been shed with your sword. In
the which day that your grace may stand steadfastly, and not be ashamed,
but be clear and ready in your reckoning, and to have (as they say) your
' quietus est' sealed with the blood of cur Saviour Christ, which only
serveth at that day, is my daily prayer to him that suffered death for our
sins, which also prayeth to his Father for grace for us continually. To
whom be all honour and praise for ever, Amen. The Spirit of God pre-
serve your grace. — Anno Domini 1530- Prim, die Decembris."
In this letter of master Latimer we have to consider his good conscience
to God, his good-will to the king, the duty of a right pastor unto truth,
and his tender care to the church of Christ. Further, we may note the
subtle practices of prelates in abusing the name and authority of kings, to
set forth their own malignant proceedings ; and also the great boldness of this
man, who durst, in defence of Christ's gospel, so freely and plainly counsel
842 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
that which no other durst once speak of. And yet God so wrought with
his servant's bold adventure that no danger nor displeasure rose to him
thereby, but rather thanks and good-will of his prince, who soon after
advanced him to the bishopric of Worcester.
During the time that the said master Latimer was prisoner in Oxford,
we read not of much that he did write besides his conference with Dr.
Ridley, and his protestation at the time of his disputation. Otherwise of
letters we find very kw, or none, save only these few lines, which he wrote
to one Mrs. Wilkinson of London, a godly matron, and an exile afterward
for the gospel's sake : who, so long as she remained in England, was a
singular patroness to the £Ood saints of God, and learned bishops, as to
Hooper, to the bishop of Hereford, to Coverdale, to Latimer, to Cranmer,
and many others. The copy of his letter to Mrs. Wilkinson here followeth :
" If the gift of a pot of cold water shall not be in oblivion with God, how
can God forget your manifold and bountiful gifts, when he shall say to you,
' I was in prison, and you visited me ? ' God grant us all to do and suffer,
while we be here, as may be his will and pleasure. — Yours, Hugh Latimer."
Touching the memorable acts and doings of this worthy man, among
many others this is not to be neglected, what a bold enterprise he attempted
in sending to king Henry a present, the manner whereof is this. There
was then, and remaineth still, an ancient custom received from the old
Romans,* that upon New-year's day, every bishop with some handsome
New-year's gift should gratify the king; and so they did, some with gold,
some with silver, some with a purse full of money, and some one thing,
some another. But master Latimer, being bishop of Worcester then, among
the rest, presented a New Testament for his New-year's gift, with a napkin
having this posy about it, " Fornicatores et adulteros judicabit Dominus."
And thus thou hast, gentle reader, a sketch of the life both of master
Ridley and of master Latimer severally by themselves set forth and
described, with their chief proceedings from time to time until this present
month of October 1555: in the which month they were brought forth
together to their final examination and execution. Wherefore as they were
together joined both in one cause and martyrdom, we will, by the grace
of Christ, so prosecute the rest that remaineth concerning their latter
examination, degrading, and constant suffering.
First, after the appearing of Thomas Cranmer, archbishop of Canterbury,
before the pope's delegate, and the queen's commissioners, in St. Mary's
church at Oxford, about the 12th of September, (whereof more shall be
said, by God's grace, when we come to the death of the said archbishop ;)
shortly after, on the 28th of the said month, was sent down to Oxford
another commission from cardinal Pole, legate a latere, to John White,
bishop of Lincoln, to Dr. Brooks, bishop of Gloucester, and Dr. Holyman,
bishop of Bristol. The contents and virtue of which commission were,
that the said bishops should have full power and authority to cite,
examine, and judge master Latimer and Dr. Ridley, for divers and sundry
erroneous opinions, which the said Hugh Latimer and Nicholas Ridley did
hold and maintain in open disputations had in Oxford, in the months of
May, June, and July, in the year of our Lord 1554, as long before, in the
time of perdition, and since. Which opinions, if they would now recant,
;,
■ I - • i ' il '' ! ii ' H -' ----- i
I
lifiii
i-i
»»/..
|
■
RIDLEY BEFORE THE CONVOCATION AT OXFORD. — FAGB 843.
EXAMINATION OF NICHOLAS RIDLEY. 843
giving- and yielding themselves to the determination of the universal
and catholic church planted by Peter in the blessed see of Rome, that
then the deputed judges, by the authority of their commission, should
have power to receive the penitent persons, and forthwith administer
unto them the reconciliation of the holy father the pope. But if they
would stoutly and stubbornly maintain their erroneous opinions, then
the said lords by their commission should proceed in form of judgment,
according to the law of heretics; that is, degrade them from their promo-
tion and dignity of bishops, priests, and all other ecclesiastical orders,
pronounce them as heretics, cut them off from the church, and deliver
them up to receive the punishment due to such heresy and schism.
Wherefore, the last of September, Nicholas Ridley and Hugh Latimer
were cited to appear before the said lords, in the divinity school at Oxford,
at eight of the clock. At which time thither repaired the lords, placing
themselves in the high seat made for public lectures and disputations, ac-
cording to the usage of that school. And after the said lords were placed
and set, the said Latimer and Ridley were sent for ; and first appeared
Dr. Ridley, and anon master Latimer. But because it seemed good
severally to examine them, Latimer was kept back until master Ridley
was thoroughly examined. Therefore, soon after the coming of Ridley
into the school, the commission was published by an appointed notary,
and openly read. Ridley at first stood bareheaded, but as soon as he
had heard the cardinal named, and the pope's holiness, he put on his
cap. Wherefore after the commission was published, the conference
thus proceeded.
Lincoln. Mr. Ridley, although neither I, nor yet my lords here, in
respect of our own persons, look for cap or knee, yet because we bear
and represent such persons as we do, that is, my lord cardinal's grace,
legate a latere to the pope's holiness, as well in that he is of a noble
parentage (here Dr. Ridley moved his cap with low obeisance) descend-
ing from the royal blood, as in that he is a man worthy to be reverenced
with all humility, for his great knowledge and learning, noble virtues
and godly life, it would have become you at this name to have unco-
vered your head. Wherefore except you will of your ownself take the
pains to put your hand to your head, and at the nomination, as well of
the said cardinal, as of the pope's holiness, uncover the same, you will
cause us to oblige some man to pluck off your cap.
Rid. Respecting what you said, my lord, that you of your own per-
sons desire no cap or knee, but only require it in consideration of your
representing the cardinal's grace, I would have you know, that I put
on my cap at the naming of him, not for any contumacy that I bear
towards your own persons, nor for any derogation of honour towards
the lord cardinal. For I know him to be a man worthy of all humility,
reverence, and honour, in that he came of the most regal blood, and
in that he is a man endued with manifold graces of learning and virtue ;
and as touching these virtues and points, I, with all humility (here* he
put off his cap and bowed his knee) and obeisance, reverence, and
honour his grace. But as he is a legate to the bishop of Rome (and
therewith put on his cap) whose usurped supremacy and abused autho-
rity I utterly refuse and renounce, I may in no wise give obeisance or
844 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
honour unto him, lest my so doing might be prejudicial to mine oath,
and a derogation to the verity of God's words : therefore that I might
not only by confession profess the truth, in not reverencing the renounc-
ed authority, contrary to God's word, but also in gesture, in behaviour,
and all my doings, express the same, 1 have put on my cap, and for
this consideration only, and not for any contumacy to your lordships,
neither contempt of this worshipful audience, or derogation of honour
due to the cardinal's grace.
Lin. Mr. Ridley, you excuse yourself of that with which we pressed
you not, in that you protest you keep on your cap, neither for any con-
tumacy towards us, nor for any contempt of this audience; which al-
though justly they may, yet in this case do not require any such obeis-
ance of you; neither in derogation of any honour due to my lord cardinal
for his regal descent (at which word Dr. Ridley moved his cap) and
excellent qualities; for although in all the premises honour be due, yet
in these respects we require none of you, but only in that my lord car-
dinal's grace is here in England, deputy of the pope's holiness, (at which
word the lords and others put off their caps, and Dr. Ridley put on his)
and therefore we say unto you the second time, that except you take the
pains yourself, to put your hand to your head, and put off your cap,
you shall put us to the pains to cause some man to take it from you,
except you allege some infirmity and sickness, or other more reason-
able cause, upon the consideration whereof we may do as we think
good.
Rid. The premises I said only for this end, that it might as well appear
to your lordships, as to this worshipful audience, why and for what con-
sideration I used such kind of behaviour, in not humbling myself to your
lordships with cap and knee: and as for my sickness, I thank my Lord
God, that I am as well at ease as I have been this long time; and there-
fore I do not pretend that which is not, but only this, that it might
appear by this my behaviour, that I acknowledge in no point that
usurped supremacy of Rome, and therefore contemn and utterly despise
all authority coming from him.
Then the bishop of Lincoln, after the third admonition, commanded
one of the beadles to take his cap from his head. Dr. Ridley bowing his
head to the officer, gently permitted him to take it away. After this
the bishop of Lincoln, in a long oration, exhorted Ridley to recant,
and submit himself to the universal faith of Christ, endeavouring to
prove the right of supremacy in the church of Rome, charging him also,
with having formerly been favourable to their doctrines and ceremonies.
Ridley heard him patiently, and when he had concluded, desired his
patience to suffer him to speak somewhat of the premises, lest the mul-
titude of things might confound his memory; and having leave granted
him, he thus spake:
" I most heartily thank your lordship, as well for your gentleness, as
for "your good and favourable zeal in this learned exhortation, in which
I have marked especially three points, by which you sought to persuade
me to leave my doctrine and religion, (which I perfectly know to be
grounded, not upon man's imaginations and decrees, but upon the infallible
truth of Christ's gospel,) and to return to the Romish see. First, the first
EXAMINATION OF NICHOLAS RIDLKV. 84,}
point is this, that the see of Rome taking its beginning from Peter, upon
whom you say Christ hath builded his church, hath in all ages lineally,
from bishop to bishop, been brought to this time. Second, that even the
holy fathers have in their writings confessed the same. Third, that I myself
was of the same opinion, and together with you I did acknowledge the same.
"First, as touching the saying of Christ, from whence your lordship
gathereth the foundation of the church upon Peter, truly the place is
not to be understood as you take it, as the circumstance of the place
will declare. For after Christ had asked his disciples whom men judged
him to be, and they answered, that some had said he was a prophet,
some Elias, some one thing, some another; then he said, ' Whom say ye
that I am?' Then Peter answered, ' I say that thou art Christ the Son of
God.' To whom Christ answered, 'I say thou art Peter, and upon this
stone I will build my church ;' that is to say, Upon this stone, not mean-
ing Peter himself, as though he would have constituted a mortal man,
so frail and brittle a foundation of his stable and infallible church : but
upon this rock-stone, that is, this confession of thine, that I am the
Son of the living God, I will build my church. For this is the founda-
tion and beginning of all Christianity, with word, heart, and mind, to
confess that Christ is the Son of God. Here we see upon what founda-
tion Christ's church is built, not upon the frailty of man, but upon the
stable and infallible word of God.
"As touching the lineal descent of the bishops in the see of Rome,
true it is, that the patriarchs of Rome in the apostles' time, and long
after, were great maintainers of Christ's glory, in which, above all other
countries and regions, there especially was preached the true gospel,
the sacraments were most duly administered ; and as, before Christ's
coming, it was a city so valiant in prowess, and martial affairs, that all
the world was in a manner subject to it; and after Christ's passion
divers of the apostles there suffered persecution for the gospel's sake : so
after that the emperors, their hearts being illuminated, received the
gospel, and became christians, the gospel there, as well for the fame
of the place, flourished most, whereby the bishops of that place were
had in more reverence and honour, most esteemed in all councils and
assemblies, not because they acknowledged them to be their head, but
because the place was most reverenced and spoken of, for the great
power and strength of the same. As now here in England, the bishop
of Lincoln, in sessions and sittings, hath the pre-eminence of other
bishops, not that he is the head and ruler of them; but for the dignity
of the bishopric. Wherefore the doctors in their writings have spoken
most reverently of this see of Rome, and in their writings preferred it;
and this is the prerogative which your lordship did rehearse the ancient
doctors to give to the see of Rome. In the same manner I cannot nor
dare but commend, reverence, and honour the see of Rome, so long as
it continued in the promotion and setting forth of God's glory, and in
due preaching of the gospel, as it did many years after Christ. But
after that the bishops of that see, seeking their own pride, and not
God's honour, began to set themselves above kings and emperors, chal-
lenging to them the title of God's vicars, the dominion and supremacy
over all the world, I cannot but with St. Gregory, a bishop of Rome also,
846 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
confess that place is the very true Antichrist, whereof St. John speaketh
by name of the whore of Babylon; and say, with Gregory, 'He that
maketh himself a bishop over all the world, is worse than Antichrist.'
" Whereas you say St. Augustine should seem not only to give such
a prerogative, but also supremacy to the see of Rome, in that he saith
all the christian world is subject to the church of Rome, and therefore
should give to that see a certain kind of subjection; I am sure that
your lordship knoweth, that in Augustine's time there were four patriarchs,
of Alexandria, Constantinople, Antioch, and Rome, which patriarchs
had under them certain countries ; as in England the archbishop
of Canterbury hath under him certain bishoprics in England and
Wales, to whom he may be said to be their patriarch. Also your lord-
ship knoweth right well, that at the time Augustine wrote that book he
was then bishop in Africa.. Farther, you are not ignorant, that between
Europe and Africa lieth the sea called the Mediterranean sea, so that
all the countries in Europe to him which is in Africa, may be called
countries beyond the sea. Hereof Augustine saith, ' All the christian
countries beyond the seas and remote regions, are subject to the see of
Rome.' If 1 should say all countries beyond the sea, I do except
England, which to me now, being in England, is not beyond the sea.
In this sense, Augustine saith, ' All the countries beyond the sea are
subject to the see of Rome;' declaring thereby that Rome was one of
the sees of the four patriarchs, and under it Europe. By what subjection
I pray you? only for a pre-eminence; as we here in England say,
that all the bishoprics are subject to the archbishoprics.
" For this pre-eminence also the other doctors say, that Rome is the
mother of churches, as the bishopric of Lincoln is mother to the bis-
hopric of Oxford, because the bishopric of Oxford came from the
bishopric of Lincoln, and they were once both one; and so is the arch-
bishopric of Canterbury mother to the other bishoprics which are in her
province. In like manner the archbishopric of York, is mother to the
north bishoprics; and yet no man will say, that Lincoln, Canterbury,
or York, is supreme head to the other bishoprics; neither then ought we
to confess the see of Rome to be supreme head, because the doctors, in
their writings, confess the see of Rome to be mother of churches.
"Where you say, I was once of the same religion as you are of, the
truth is, I cannot but confess the same. Yet so was St. Paul a perse-
cutor of Christ. But in that you say, I was one of you not long ago,
in that I, in doing my message to my lord of Winchester, should desire
him to stand stout in that gross opinion of the supper of the Lord :
in very deed I was sent, as your lordship said, from the council to my
lord of Winchester, to exhort him also to receive the true confession of
justification; and because he was very refractory, I said to him, ' What
make you so great a matter herein? you see many anabaptists rise
against the sacrament of the altar; I pray you, my lord, be diligent in
confounding of them!' for at that time my lord of Winchester and
I had to do with two anabaptists in Kent. In this sense I willed my
lord to be stiff in the defence of the sacraments against the detestable
errors of anabaptists, and not in the confirmation of that gross and
carnal opinion now maintained.
EXAMINATION OF NICHOLAS RIDLEY. 847
11 In like manner, respecting the sermon which I made at St. Paul's
Cross, you shall understand, that there were at St. Paul's, and divers
other places, fixed railing bills against the sacrament, terming it Jack
of the Box, the Sacrament of the Halter, round Robin, with other un-
seemly terms; for which causes, to rebuke irreverent behaviour of certain
evil-disposed persons, I preached as reverently of that matter as I might,
declaring what estimation and reverence ought to be given to it, what
danger ensued the mishandling thereof; affirming in that sacrament to
be truly and verily the body and blood of Christ, effectually by grace
and spirit; which words the unlearned understanding not, supposed
that I had meant of the gross and carnal being which the Romish decrees
set forth, that a body having life and motion should be indeed under
the shapes of bread and wine."
Lin. Well, Dr. Ridley, thus you wrest places to your own pleasure.
I could bring many more places of the fathers for a confirmation of what
I have advanced; but we came not hither to dispute with you, but only
to take your answers to certain articles; and used this in the way of dis-
putation, in which you interrupted me: wherefore I will return thither
again. You must, first of all, consider that the church of Christ lieth
not hid, but is a city on the mountain, and a candle in the candlestick.
The church of Christ is catholic, and universally spread throughout the
world. Wherefore, for God's love, be you not singular; acknowledge
with all the realm the truth, it shall not be prejudicial to the crown;
for their majesties the king and queen have renounced that usurped
power taken of their predecessors, and justly have renounced it. I
am sure you know there are two powers, the one declared by the sword,
the other by the keys. The sword is given to kings and rulers of coun-
tries; the keys were delivered by Christ to Peter, and of him left to all
the successors.
Consider your state, remember your former degrees, spare your
body; especially consider your soul, which Christ so dearly bought
with his precious blood. Do not rashly cast away that which was precious
in God's sight; enforce us not to do all that we may do, which is not
only to publish you to be none of us, but to cut you off from the church.
We do not, nor can we condemn you to die, (as most untruly hath been
reported of us) but that is the office of the temporal judges; we only
declare you to be not of the church, and then you must, according to
the tenor of them, and pleasure of the rulers, abide their determination,
so that we, after we have given you up to the temporal rulers, have no
further to do with you. But I cannot help to hope and trust, Dr.
Ridley, we shall not have occasion to do what we may. I trust you
will suffer us to rest in that point of our commission, which we most
heartily desire, that is, upon recantation and repentance to receive, to
reconcile you, and again to join you to the unity of the church.
Rid. My lord, I acknowledge an unspotted church of Christ, in which
no man can err, without which no man can be saved, which is the con-
gregation of the faithful ; neither do I bind the same to any one place
as you said, but confess the same to be universal ; and where Christ's
sacraments are duly administered, his gospel truly preached and followed
there doth Christ's church shine as a city upon a hill, and as a candle
848 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
in the candlestick : but rather it is such as you that would have the
church of Christ bound to a place, who appoint the same to Rome, that
there and no where else is the foundation of Christ's church. But I am
fully persuaded that Christ's church is every where founded, in every
place where his gospel is truly received, and effectually followed. And
in that the church of God is in doubt, Luse herein the counsel of Vincen-
tius Lyrinensis, whom I am sure you will allow, who giving precepts how
the catholic church may be in all schisms and heresies known, writeth in
this manner, "When one part is corrupted with heresies, then prefer the
whole world before that one part; but if the greatest part be infected,
then prefer antiquity." In like manner now, when I perceive the
greatest part of Christianity to be infected with the poison of the see
of Rome, I repair to the usage of the primitive church, which I find
quite contrary to the pope's decrees : as in that the priest receiveth alone,
that it is made unlawful to the laity to receive in both kinds, and such
like: wherefore it requireth, that I prefer the antiquity of the primitive
church before the novelty of the Romish.
Lin. Dr. Ridley, these faults which you charge the see of Rome
withal, are indeed no faults. For first, it was never forbid the laity,
but that they might, if they demanded, receive under both kinds. You
know also, that Christ after his resurrection, at the time he went with his
apostles to Galilee, opened himself by breaking of bread. — So that the
church seemeth to have authority by the Holy Ghost, whom Christ said
he would send after his ascension, which should teach the apostles all
truth, to have power to alter such points of the scripture, ever reserving
the foundation. But we came not, as I said before, to reason the
matter with you, but we have certain instructions ministered unto us,
according to which we must proceed, proposing certain articles, unto
which we require your answer directly, either denying or granting them,
without further disputations, which articles you shall hear now ; and to-
morrow we will require and take your answers, and then according to the
same proceed. If you require a copy of them, you shall have it, pen, ink,
and paper; also such books as you shall demand, if they be to be gotten.
The articles referred to were then jointly and severally ministered to Dr.
Ridley and master Latimer, by the pope's deputy : they were these — " In
the name of God, Amen. We John Lincoln, James Gloucester, and John
Bristol, bishops : (1.) We do object to thee, Nicholas Ridley, and to thee,
Hugh Latimer, jointly and severally ; first, that thou Nicholas Ridley, in
this high university of Oxford, anno 1554, in the months of April, May,
June, and July, or in some one or more of them, hast affirmed and openly
defended and maintained, and in many other times and places besides, that
the true and natural body of Christ, after the consecration of the priest, is
not really present in the sacrament of the altar. (2.) That in the said
year and months aforesaid, thou hast publicly affirmed and defended, that
in the sacrament of the altar remaineth still the substance of b'ead and
wine. (3.) That in the said year and months thou hast openly affirmed
and obstinately maintained, that in the mass is no propitiatory sacrifice for
the quick and the dead. (4.) That in the year, place, and months afore-
said, these thy foresaid assertions solemnly have been condemned by the
scholastical censure of this school, as heretical and contrary to the catholic
EXAMINATION OF NICHOLAS RIDLEY. 849
faith,' by the worshipful Dr. Weston, prolocutor then of the convocation-
house, as also by other learned men of both the universities. (5.) That
all and singular the premises be true, notorious, famous, and openly known
by public fame, as well to them near hand, as also to them far off."
All these articles I thought good here to place together, that, as often as
hereafter rehearsal shall be of any of them, the reader may have recourse
hither, and so not trouble the story with several repetitions thereof. After
these articles were read, the bishops took counsel together. At the last
the bishop of Lincoln said, " These are the very same articles which you,
in open disputation here in the university, did maintain and defend. What
say you unto the first ? I pray you answer affirmatively, or negatively."
Rid. Why, my lord, I supposed that you would have given me until
to-morrow, that upon good advice I might bring a determinate answer.
Lin. Yea, master Ridley, I mean not that your answers now shall be
prejudicial to your answers to-morrow. I will take your answers at this
time, and yet notwithstanding it shall be lawful for you to add, diminish,
alter, and change these answers to-morrow what you will.
Rid. Seeing you appoint me a time to answer to-morrow, and yet would
take mine answers out of hand, I require the notaries to take and write
my protestation, that in no point I acknowledge your authority, or admit
you to be my judges, in that point that you are authorized from the pope.
Therefore, whatsoever I shall say or do, I protest I neither say nor do it
willingly, thereby to admit the authority of the pope; and if your lordship
will give me leave, I will show the causes which move me thereunto.
Lin. No, w r e have instructions to the contrary. We may not suffer you.
Rid. I will be short : I pray you suffer me to speak but three words.
Lin. To-morrow you shall speak forty. The time is far past ; therefore
we require your answer determinately. What say you to the first article ?
Rid. I answer, that in the sacrament is the very true and natural body
and blood of Christ, even that which was born of the Virgin Mary, which
ascended into heaven, which sitteth on the right hand of God the Father,
which shall come from thence to judge the quick and the dead, only we
differ in modo, in the way and manner of being : we confess all one thing
tp be in the sacrament, and dissent in the manner of being there. I, being
fully by God's word persuaded, confess Christ's natural body to be in the
sacrament indeed by spirit and grace, because that whosoever receiveth
worthily that bread and wine, receiveth effectuously Christ's body, and
drinketh his blood, (that is, he is made effectually partaker of his passion ;)
and you make a grosser kind of being, enclosing a natural, a lively, and a
moving body, under the shape or form of bread and wine. Now, this
difference considered, to the question thus I answer, that in the sacrament
of the altar is the natural body and blood of Christ verk et realiter, indeed
and really, for spiritually, by grace and efficacy ; for so every worthy
receiver receiveth the very true body of Christ. But, if you mean really
and indeed, so as to include a lively and a movable body under the forms
of bread and wine, then, in that sense, is not Christ's body in the sacrament.
This answer taken, the bishop of Lincoln proposed the second article.
Rid. In the sacrament is a certain change, in that, that bread, which
was before common bread, is now made a lively presentation of Christ's
body. Notwithstanding this sacramental mutation, the true substance and
3 i
850 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
nature of bread and wine remaineth : with the which the body is in like
sort nourished, as the soul is by grace and Spirit with the body of Christ.
Then the notaries penned that he answered affirmatively to the second
article; and the bishop recited the third, and required a direct answer.
Rid. Christ, as St. Paul writeth, made one perfect sacrifice for the sins
of the whole world, neither can any man reiterate that sacrifice of his, and
yet is the communion an acceptable sacrifice to God of praise and thanks-
giving. But to say that thereby sins are taken away (which wholly and
perfectly was done by Christ's passion, of the which the communion is only
a memory) that is a great derogation of the merits of Christ's passion : for
the sacrament was instituted, that we, receiving it, and thereby recognising
and remembering his passion, should be partakers of the merits of the
same. For otherwise doth this sacrament take upon it the office of Christ's
passion, whereby it might follow that Christ died in vain.
The notaries penned this his answer to be affirmatively. And then
the bishop of Lincoln recited the fourth article ; to the which Ridley
answered, that in some part it was true, and in some part false : true, in
that those his assertions were condemned as heresies, although unjustly ;
false, in that it was said they were condemned scientid scholasticd, in that
the disputations were in such sort ordered, that it was far from any school act.
This answer penned of the notaries, the bishop of Lincoln rehearsed the
fifth article. To the which Ridley answered, that the premises were in
such sort true, as in these his answers he had declared. Whether that all
men spake evil of them he knew not, in that he came not much abroad.
This answer also written, the bishop said: "To-morrow you shall appear
before us in St. Mary's church ; and because we cannot well agree upon
your answer to the first article, you may, if it please you, write your answer."
Now master Latimer, being also brought to the divinity school, there
tarried till they called him ; and after that Ridley was committed to the
mayor, the bishop of Lincoln commanded the bailiffs to bring him in, who
eftsoons as he was placed said to the lords : " My lords, if I appear again,
I pray you not to send for me until you be ready : for I am an old man,
and it is great hurt to mine old age to tarry so long gazing upon the cold
walls." Then said the bishop of Lincoln, " Master Latimer, I am sorry
you are brought so soon, although it is the bailiff's fault, and not mine :
but it shall be amended." Then Latimer bowed his knee down to the
ground, holding his hat in his hand, having a kerchief on his head, and
upon it a night-cap or two, and a great cap, (such as townsmen use, with
two broad flaps to button under the chin,) wearing an old threadbare
Bristol frieze-gown girded to his body with a penny leather girdle, at the
which hanged by a string of leather his Testament, and his spectacles
without case, depending about his neck upon his breast. After this the
bishop of Lincoln began a long oration, in the which, as he had by Dr.
Ridley, he declared their commission, charged him with his errors; spake of
the unity and infallibility of their church, entreated him back to the same,
and if stubbornly perverse, threatened him with the consequences. After
the bishop had somewhat paused, Latimer lifted up his head, (for before
he leaned on his elbow;) and asking whether his lordship had done, said,
" Then will you give me leave to speak a word or two ?"
Lin. Yea, so you use a modest kind of talk, without railing or taunts.
EXAMINATION OF UUGU LATIMER. 851
Lett. 1 beseech your lordship* license me to sit down.
Lin. At your pleasure, Mr. Latimer, take as much ease as you will.
Lat. Your lordship gently exhorted me in many words to come to the
unity of the church. I confess, my lord, a catholic church, spread
throughout all the world, in which no man may err, without which unity
of the church no man can be saved; but I know perfectly by God's
word, that this church is in all the world, and hath not its foundation in
Koine only, as you say; and methought your lordship brought a place
out of the scriptures to confirm the same, that there was a jurisdiction
given to Peter, in that Christ bade him govern his people. Indeed, my
lord, St. Peter did his office well and truly, in that he was bid to govern;
but since, the bishops of Rome have taken a new kind of government.
Indeed they ought to govern, but how, my lord? not as they will them-
selves; but this government must be hedged and ditched in. They
must rule, only according to the word of God. But the bishops of Rome
have turned the rule according to the word of God into the rule according
to their own pleasures, and as it pleaseth them best ; as there is a book
set forth which hath divers points in it, and, amongst others, this point is one,
which your lordship went about to prove ; and the argument which he
bringeth forth for the proof of that matter is taken out of Deuteronomy,
where it is said, " If there ariseth any controversy among the people, the
priests of the order of Levi shall decide the matter according to the law
of God, so it must be taken." This book, perceiving this authority to be
given to the priests of the old law, taketh occasion to prove the same to
be given to the bishops and others the clergy of the new law: -but, in
proving this matter, whereas it was said there, as the priests of the order
of Levi should determine the matter " according to God's law," that
" according to God's law" is left out, and only is recited, as the priests of
the order of Levi shall decide the matter so it ought to be taken of the
people ; a large authority I assure you. What gelding of Scripture is
this? what clipping of God's coin ? This is much like the " ruling" which
your lordship talked of. Nay, nay, my lords, we may not give such
authority to the clergy, to rule all things as they will. Let them keep
themselves within their commission. I trust, my lord, I do not rail yet.
Lin. No, master Latimer, your talk is more like taunting than railing ;
but in that I have not read nor know the book, I can say nothing therein.
Lat. The book is open to be read, my lord; it is by one who is bishop
of Gloucester, whom I never knew, neither did see to my knowledge.
With that the people laughed, because the bishop of Gloucester sat
there in commission. Then the bishop stood up, and said it was his book.
Lat. Was it yours, my lord ? Indeed I knew not your lordship, neither
ever did I see you before, nor yet now, through the brightness of the sun
shining betwixt you and me. (Then the audience laughed again.) Why,
my masters, this is no laughing matter : I answer upon life and death.
The bishop of Lincoln commanded silence, and then said, " Master
Latimer, if you had kept yourself within your bounds, if you had not used
such scoffs and taunts, this had not been done." After this Gloucester said,
in excusing his book, " Hereby every man may see what learning you have."
Lat. Lo, you look for learning at my hands who have gone so long
to the school of oblivion, making the bare walls my library, keeping
852 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
me so long in prison without book, or pen and ink; and now you let
me loose to come and answer to articles. You deal with me as though
two were appointed to fight for life and death, and over night the one
through friends and favour, is cherished, and hath good counsel given
him how to encounter with his enemy. The other, for envy or lack of
friends, all the whole night is set in the stocks. In the morning when
they shall meet, the one is in strength and lusty; the other is stiff in
his limbs, and almost dead for feebleness. Think you, that to run
through this man with a spear is not a goodly victory?
Glou. I went not about to recite any places of scripture in that place
of my book ; for then if I had not recited faithfully, you might have
had just occasion of reprehension : but I only in that place formed an
argument a majore, in this sense ; that if in the old law the priests had
power to decide matters of controversy, much more then ought the au-
thority to be given to the clergy in the new law : and I pray you, in
this point what availeth their rehearsal, according to the law of God?
Lat. Yes, my lord, very much. For I acknowledge authority to be
gvien to the spiritualty to decide matters of religion ; and as my lord said
even now, to rule ; but they must do it according to the word and law of
God, and not after their own wills, imaginations, and fantasies.
Then Lincoln said they came not to dispute, but to take his answers;
and so began to propose to master Latimer the same articles as proposed
to Ridley, requiring his answer to the first. Then Latimer, making his
protestation that notwithstanding his answers it should not be taken that
thereby he would acknowledge any authority of the bishop of Rome, saying
that he was their majesties' subject, and not the pope's, neither could
serve two masters at one time ; required the notaries to take his protesta-
tion, that whatsoever he should say or do, it should not be taken as though
he did thereby agree to any authority that came from the bishop of Rome.
Lin. Your protestation shall be so taken; and I require you to answer
briefly, affirmatively or negatively, to the first article.
Lat. I do not deny, my lord, that in the sacrament by spirit and grace
is the very body and blood of Christ; because that every man by receiv-
ing bodily that bread and wine, spiritually receiveth the body and blood
of Christ, and is made partaker thereby of the merits of Christ's passion :
but I deny that the body and blood of Christ is in such manner in the
sacrament as you would have it.
Lin. Then you answer affirmatively; and what say you, Mr. Latimer
to the second article ?
Lat. There is, my lord, a change in the bread and wine, and such a
change as no power, but the omnipotency of God can make, in that that
which before was bread, should now have the dignity to exhibit Christ's
body; and yet the bread is still bread, and the wine still wine ; for the
change is not in the nature, but the dignity, because now that which
was common bread hath the dignity to exhibit Christ's body : for where-
as it was common bread, it is now no more common bread, neither
ought it to be so taken, but as holy bread sanctified by God's word.
Lin. Lo, Mr. Latimer, see what steadfastness is in your doctrine.
That which you abhorred and despised most, you now most establish :
for whereas you most railed at holy bread, you now make your commu-
RIDLEY'S WRITTEN ANSWER. 853
nion holy bread. Is not this your answer, that the substance of bread
and wine remaineth utter the words of consecration ?
Lat. Yes, verily, it must needs be so. For Christ himself callcth it
bread ; St. Paul calleth it bread ; the doctors confess the same; the
nature of a sacrament confirmeth the same; and I call it holy bread:
not in that 1 make no difference between your holy bread and this, but
for the holy office which it beareth, that is, to be a figure of Christ's
body, and not only a bare figure but effectually to represent the same.
Lin. What say you to the third question?
Lat. Christ made one perfect sacrifice for all the whole world, neither
can any man offer him again, neither can the priest offer up Christ
again for the sins of man, which he took away by offering himself once
for all upon the cross : neither is there any propitiation for our sins
saving his cross only.
Lin. What say you to the fourth ? Do you not hear me?
Lat. Yes, but I do not understand what you mean thereby.
Lin. Marry, only this, that these your assertions were condemned by Dr.
Weston as heresies; is it not so, master Latimer?
Lat. Yes, I think they were condemned. But how unjustly, he that
shall be Judge of all knoweth.
So the notaries took his answer to this article to be affirmatively, as they
did also to the other three before recited.
Lin. What say you, master Latimer, to the fifth article?
Lat. I know not what you mean by these terms. I am no lawyer;
I wish you would propose the matter plainly.
Lin. In that we proceed according to the law, we must use their terms
also. The meaning only is this, that these your assertions are notorious,
evil spoken of, and yet common and frequent in the mouths of the people.
Lat. I cannot tell how much, nor what men talk of them. I come
not so much among them, for I have been secluded a long time. What
men report of them I know not, and care not.
Lin. Mr. Latimer, we mean not that these your answers shall be pre-
judicial to you. To-morrow you shall appear before us again, and then
it shall be lawful for you to alter and change what you will. We give
you respite till then, trusting that after you have pondered well all
things against that time, you will not be ashamed to confess the truth.
Lat. Now, my lord, I pray you give me license in three words to de-
clare the causes why I refused the authority of the pope.
Lin. Nay, Mr. Latimer, to-morrow you shall have license to speak
forty words.
Lat. Nay, my lords, I beseech you to do with me now as it shall
please your lordships. I require no respite, for I am at a point ; you
shall give me respite in vain : therefore I pray you let me not trouble
you to-morrow.
Lin. Yes, for we trust God will work with you against to-morrow.
There is no remedy, you must needs appear again to-morrow at eight
o'clock in St. Mary's church.
And forthwith the bishop charged the mayor with master Latimer, and
dismissed him : he then brake up their sessions for that day, at one o'clock.
The next day (the first of October) the said lords repaired to St. Mary's ;
854 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
and after they were set in a high throne, then appeared Ridley, who was set
at a framed table a good space from the bishop's feet, and the place
was encompassed about- in a quadrate form, partly for gentlemen who
repaired thither, and for the heads of the university to sit, and partly
to keep off the press of the audience : for the whole body, as well of
the university as of the town, came to see the end of these two persons.
After Dr. Ridley's appearance, and the silence of the audience, the
bishop of Lincoln commenced speaking.
Lin. Mr. Ridley, yesterday we took your answers to certain articles,
which we then proposed unto you : but because we could not be tho-
roughly satisfied with your answer then to the first article, neither could
the notaries take any determinate answer of you, we granted you license
to bring your answer in writing, and thereupon commanded the mayor
that you should have pen, paper, and ink, yea, any books also that you
would require, if they were to be got: we licensed you then also to alter
your former answers this day at your pleasure : therefore we are now
come hither, to see if you are in the same mind now, that you were yes-
terday, or contrary, contented to revoke your former assertions, and in
all points consent to submit yourself to the determination of the uni-
versal church; and I for my part most earnestly exhort you, not because
my conscience pricketh me, as you said yesterday, but because I see
you a rotten member, and in the way of perdition. Now, Dr. Ridley,
what say you to the first article ? If you have brought your answer in
writing, we will receive it : but if you have written any other matter, we
will not receive it.
Then Ridley took a sheet of paper out of his bosom, and began to read
that he had written: but Lincoln ordered the beadle to take it from him.
Rid. Why, my lord, will you require my answer, and not suffer me to
publish it? I beseech you, let the audience bear witness in this matter.
Lin. Well, Dr. Ridley, we will first see what you have written, and then
if we shall think it good to be read, you shall have it published ; but, ex-
cept you will deliver it first, we will take none at all from you.
With that, master Ridley, seeing no remedy, delivered it to an officer,
who immediately delivered it to the bishop of Lincoln ; who, after he had
secretly communicated it to the other two bishops, declared the sense, but
would not read it as it was written, saying, that it contained words of
blasphemy ; therefore he would not fill the ears of the audience there-
withal, and so abuse their patience. Notwithstanding, Ridley desired very
instantly to have it published; saying that, except a line or two, there was
nothing contained but the ancient doctors' sayings, for the confirmation of
his assertions. After the said bishops had secretly perused the whole, then
the bishop of Lincoln said, " In the first part, master Ridley, is nothing
contained but your protestation, that you would not have these your
answers so to be taken as though you seemed thereby to consent to the
authority or jurisdiction of the pope's holiness."
Rid. No, my lord : pray read it out, that the audience may hear it.
This the bishop of Lincoln would in no wise grant; but recited the first
article, and required Ridley's answer to it. Then Ridley said his answer was
there in writing, and desired it might be published : but the bishop would
not read the whole, but here and there a piece of it. And when he had
RIDLEY'S WRITTEN ANSWER. 855
read what, he pleased, he recited the second article, and required an
answer. Dr. Ridley again referred him to his answer in writing exhi-
bited now, and also before at the time of disputation : and like answers
were taken to all the rest of the articles. The bishop of Gloucester then
addressed him thus.
" It' you would once empty your stomach, captivate your senses, sub-
due your re, a sum, or principal, or whole. So that catholic church, or
catholic faith, is as much as to say, as the first, whole, sound, or chiefest
faith.
Bon. Doth St. Augustine say so as he allegeth it? or doth he mean
as he taketh the same? How say you, Mr. Curtop ?
Curtop. Indeed, my lord, St. Augustine hath such a saying, speaking
against the Donatists, that the catholic faith ought to be esteemed of
things in time past, and as they are practised according to the same,
and ought to be through all ages, and not after a new manner, as the
Donatists began to profess.
Phil. You have said well, Mr. Curtop, and after the meaning of St.
Augustine, and to confirm that which I have said for the signification
of catholic.
Cov. Let the book be seen, my lord.
Bon. I pray you, my lord, be content, or in good faith I will break
even off, and let all alone. Do you think that the catholic church
(until within these few years, in which a few upon singularity have
swerved from the same) hath ever been in error?
Phil. I do not think that the catholic church can err in doctrine :
but I require you to prove this church of Rome to be the catholic
church.
Cur. I can prove that Ireneus (which was within a hundred years
after Christ) came to Victor, then bishop of Rome, to ask his advice
about the excommunication of certain heretics, which he would not
have done, if he had not taken him to be supreme head.
Cov. Mark well this argument. How are you able to answer the
same? Answer if you can.
Phil. It is soon answered, my lord, for that is of no force; neither
doth this fact of Ireneus make any more for the supremacy of the
bishop of Rome, than mine hath done, who have been at Rome, as well
as he, and might have spoken with the pope if I had list; and yet I
would none in England did favour his supremacy more than I.
St. Asaph. You are more to blame for that you favour the same no
better, since all the catholic church have taken him to be the supreme
head of the church, besides this good man Ireneus.
Phil. It is not likely Ireneus so took him, or the primitive church:
for I am able to shew seven general councils after Ireneus's time, where-
in he was never taken for supreme head.
Cov. This man will never be satisfied, say what we can. It is but
folly to reason any more with him.
888 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Phil. O, my lords, would you have me satisfied with nothing? Judge,
I pray you, who hath better authority, he which bringeth the example of
one man going to Rome, or I that by these many general councils am
able to prove, that the pope was never so taken in many hundred years
after Christ, as by Nicene, Ephesine, the first and second Chalcedon,
Constantinopolitan, Carthaginese, Aquileia.
Cov. Why will you not admit the church of Rome to be the catholic
church? Wherein doth it dissent?
Phil. It followeth not the primitive catholic church, neither agreeth
with the same. It were too long to recite all, but two things I will
name, supremacy and transubstantiation.
Saverson. I wonder you will stand so steadfast in your error to your
own destruction.
Phil. I am sure we are in no error, by the promise of Christ made
to the faithful once, which is, that he will give to his true church such
a spirit of wisdom, that the adversaries thereof should never be able to
resist. And by this I know we are of the truth, for that neither by rea-
soning, neither by writing, your synagogue of Rome is able to answer.
Where is there one of you all that ever hath been able to answer any of
the godly ministers of Germany ? Which of you all, at this day, is able
to answer Calvin's Institutions, who is minister of Geneva?
Saver. A godly minister indeed, a receiver of cut-purses and runagate
traitors! And of late, I can tell you, there is such contention fallen
between him and his own sects, that he was obliged to fly the town
about predestination. I tell you truth, for I came by Geneva here.
Phil. I am sure you blaspheme him and that church where he is
minister. It is your church's disposition, when you cannot answer men
by learning, to oppress them with blasphemies and false reports. For in
the matter of predestination he is in no other opinion than all the
doctors of the church be, agreeing to the scriptures.
Saver. Men are able to answer him if they will. And I pray which
of you has answered bishop Fisher's book?
Phil. Yes, Mr. Doctor, that book is answered, and answered again :
you, if you like to seek what hath been written against him, may do so.
Dr. Storey, you have done me great injury, and without law have straitly
imprisoned me, more like a dog than a man. And besides this you have
not kept promise with me, for you promised that I should be judged the
next day after.
Storey. I am come now to keep promise with thee. Was there ever
such a fantastical man as this is? These heretics be worse than brute
beasts; for they will upon a vain singularity take upon them to be wiser
than all men, being indeed very fools, not able to maintain that which
of an arrogant obstinacy they do stand in.
Phil. I am content to abide your railing judgment of me now. Say
what you will, I am content, for I am under your feet to be trodden on
as you like. God forgive it you ; yet I am no heretic. Neither you
nor any other shall be able to prove that I hold one jot against the word
of God otherwise than a christian man ought.
Storey. The word of God, forsooth ! It is but folly to reason with these
heretics, for they are incurable and desperate. But yet I may reason
EXAMINATION OF MR. PHILPOT. 889
with thee, not that I have any hope to win thee. Whom wilt thou
appoint to judge of the word whereto thou standest ?
Phil. Verily the word itself.
Storey. Do you not see the ignorance of this beastly heretic ? he willeth
the word to be judged of the word. Can the word speak? Let us hear
what wise authority thou canst bring in ?
Phil. It is the word of Christ in St. John, " The word which I have
spoken, shall judge in the last, day." If the word shall judge in the
last day, how much more ought it to judge of our doings now? and I
am sure I have my judge on my side, who will absolve and justify me
in another world. Howsoever now it shall please you by authority
unrighteously to judge of me and others, sure I am in another world to
judge you.
Storey. Well, sir, you are like to go after your fathers, Latimer the
sophister, and Ridley, who had nothing to allege for himself but that
he learned his heresy of Cranmer. But I dispatched them; and I tell
thee that there never yet hath been one burnt, but I have spoken with
him, and have been a cause of his dispatch.
Phil. You will have the more to answer for, Mr. Doctor, as you
shall feel in another world, how much soever you now triumph.
Storey. I tell thee I will never be confessed thereof. And because I
cannot now tarry, I pray one of you tell my lord, that my coming was to
signify to his lordship that he must out of hand put this heretic away.
Phil. I thank you there-for with all my heart, and God forgive it you.
Storey. What, dost thou thank me? If I had thee in my study half
an hour, I think I should make thee sing another song.
Phil. No, I stand upon too sure ground to be overcome by you now.
And thus they departed all away from me, until I was left alone. After-
wards with my keeper going to my coal-house, I met my lord of London,
who spake unto me gently, saying, " Philpot, if there be any pleasure I
may show you in my house, I pray you require it, and you shall have it."
Phil. My lord, the pleasure that I will require of your lordship is to
hasten my judgment which is committed unto you, and so to despatch me
forth of this miserable world, unto my eternal rest.
And for all his fair speech I cannot attain hitherto, this fortnight's space,
neither fire nor candle, nor good lodging. But it is good for a man to be
brought low in this world, and to be counted amongst the vilest, that he
may in time of reward receive exaltation and glory. Therefore praised be
God that hath humbled me, and given me grace to be content therewithal.
The sixth examination of John Philpot took place on the 6th of Novem-
ber, before the lord Chamberlain, viscount Hereford, lords Rich, St. John,
Windsor, and Chandos, sir John Bridges, lieutenant of the Tower, and
two more, with the bishop of London and Dr. Chedsey.
Before that I was called afore the lords, and whiles they were in sitting
down, the bishop of London whispered in mine ear, willing me to use myself
before the lords of the queen's council prudently. And after that the lords
were set, he placed himself at the end of the table ; where I kneeling down,
the lords commanded me to stand up, and the bishop spake to me thus:
" Master Philpot, I have heretofore both privately myself, and openly
before the lords of the clergy, more times than once, caused you to be
890 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
conversed with, to reform you of your errors, but I have not yet found
you so tractable as I could wish : wherefore now I have desired these
honourable lords of the temporalty, and of the queen's majesty's coun-
cil, who have taken pains with me this day, I thank them for it, to hear
you and what you can say, that they may be judges whether I have
sought all means to do you good or not : and I dare be bold to say in
their behalf, that if you shew yourself conformable to the queen's pro-
ceedings, you shall find as much favour for your deliverance as you can
wish. I speak not this to fawn upon you, but to bring you home unto
the church. Now let them hear what you have to say."
Philpot. I thank God that I have this day such an honourable audience
to declare my mind before. And I cannot but commend your lordship's
equity in this behalf, which agreeth with the order of the primitive church ;
which was, if anybody had been suspected of heresy, as I am now, he should
be called before the archbishop or bishop of the diocese where he was
suspected, in the presence of others his fellow-bishops and learned elders,
and in hearing of the laity : where, after the judgment of God's word de-
clared, with the assent of other bishops and consent of the people, he was
condemned to exile for a heretic, or absolved. The second point of that
good order I have found at your lordship's hands already, in being call-
ed before you and your fellow bishops ; and now I have the third sort
of men, at whose hands I trust to find more righteousness in my cause
than I have found with the clergy. God grant that I may have at last
the judgment of God's word concerning the same."
Bonner. Mr. Philpot, I pray you ere you go any further, tell my lords
here plainly, whether you were by me or by my procurement committed
to prison or not, and whether I have shewn you any cruelty since you
have been committed to my prison.
Phil. If it shall please your lordship to give me leave to declare forth
my matter, I will touch that afterward.
Lord Rich. Answer first of all to my lord's two questions, and then
proceed to the matter. How say you ? Were you imprisoned by my
lord or not? Can you find any fault since with his cruel using of you?
Phil. I cannot lay to my lord's charge the cause of my imprisonment,
neither may I say that he hath used me cruelly ; but rather for my part
I may say, that I have found more gentleness at his hands than I did
at my own ordinary's, for the time I have been within his prison, because
he hath called me three or four times to mine answer, to which I was
not called in a year and a half before.
Rich. Well, now go to your matter.
Phil. The matter is, that I am imprisoned for the disputations held
by me in the convocation-house against the sacrament of the altar, which
matter was not moved principally by me, but by the prolocutor, with
the consent of the queen's majesty and of the whole house, and that
house, being a member of the parliament-house, which ought to be a
place of free speech for all men of the house, by the ancient and laud-
able custom of this realm. Wherefore I think myself to have sustained
hitherto great injury for speaking my conscience freely in such a place
as I might lawfully do it: and I desire your honourable lordships' judg-
ment who are of the parliament, whether of right I ought to be im-
EXAMINATION OF MR. PHILPOT. 891
peached for the same, and sustain the loss of my living, and moreover
of my life, as it is sought.
Rich. You are deceived herein, for the convocation-house is no part of
the parliament-house.
Phil. My lord, I have always understood the contrary by such as
are more expert men in things of this realm than I: and again, the
title of every act leadeth me to think otherwise, which allegeth the
agreement of the spiritualty and temporalty assembled together.
Rich. That is meant of the spiritual lords of the upper house. The
convocation-house is called together by one writ of the summons of the
parliament of an old custom : notwithstanding that house is no part
of the parliament-house.
Phil. My lords, I must be contented to abide your judgment in this
behalf.
Rich. We have told you the truth. And yet we would not that you
should be troubled for any thing that there was spoken, so that you
having spoken amiss, do declare now that you are sorry for what you
have said.
Bon. My lords, he hath spoken there manifest heresy, yea, and there
stoutly maintained the same against the blessed sacrament of the altar,
and would not allow the real presence of the body and blood of Christ
in the same : yet, my lords, God forbid that I should endeavour to shew
him extremity for so doing, in case he will repent and revoke his wicked
sayings; and if in faith he will so do, with your lordships' consent, he
shall be released by and by; if he will not, he shall have the extremity
of the law, and that shortly.
Chamberlain. My lord speaketh reasonably unto you. Take it whiles
it is offered you.
Rich. How say you, will you acknowledge the real presence of the body
and blood of Christ, as all learned men of this realm do, in the mass, and
as I do, and will believe as long as I live, I do protest it?
Phil. My lord, I acknowledge in the sacrament of the body and blood
of Christ such a presence as the word of God doth allow and teach me.
Bon. A sacrament is the sign of a holy thing; so that there is both
the sign, which is the accident (as the whiteness, roundness, and shape
of bread,) and there is also the thing itself, as very Christ both God
and man. But these heretics will have the sacrament to be but bare
signs. How say you? declare unto my lords here whether you allow
the thing itself in the sacrament, or no.
Phil. I do confess that in the Lord's supper there are in due respects
both the sign and the thing signified, when it is duly administered after
the institution of Christ. If I have not plainly declared my judgment
unto you,, it is because I cannot speak without the danger of my life.
Rich. There is none of us here who seek thy life, or mean to take
any advantage of that thou shalt speak.
Phil. Although I mistrust not your lordships that be here of the
temporalty ; yet here is one that sitteth against me that will lay it to my
charge even to death. Notwithstanding, seeing you require me to
declare my mind of the presence of Christ in the sacrament, that ye may
perceive I am not ashamed of the gospel of Christ, neither do main-
892 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tain any opinion without probable and sufficient authority of Scripture, I
will show you frankly my mind, whatsoever shall ensue unto me there-
for. There are two things principally, by which the clergy at this day
deceive the whole realm ; that is the sacrament of the body and blood
of Christ, and the name of the catholic church : which they do both
usurp, having indeed neither of them. And as touching their sacrament
which they term of the altar, I say that it is not the sacrament of Christ
neither in the same is there any manner of Christ's presence. Where-
fore they deceive the queen, and you, the nobility of this realm, in
making you to believe that to be a sacrament which is none, and cause
you to commit manifest idolatry in worshipping that for God, which is
no God. And in testimony of this to be true, besides manifest proof,
which I am able to make, I will yield my life; which to do, if it were
not upon sure ground, it were to my utter damnation. And where they
take on them the name of the catholic church, they are nothing so,
calling you from the true religion which was revealed and taught in
king Edward's time, unto vain superstition. And this I will say for the
trial hereof, that if they can prove themselves to be the catholic church,
I will never be against their doings, but revoke all that I have said.
And I shall desire you, my lords, to be a means for me to the queen's
majesty, that I may be brought to the just trial hereof. Yea, I will not
refuse to stand against any ten of the best of them in this realm : and it
they be able to prove otherwise than I have said, I will here promise to
recant whatsoever I have said, and to consent to them in all points.
Rich. All heretics boast of the Spirit of God, and every one would have
a church by himself; as Joan of Kent, and the Anabaptists. I had myself
Joan of Kent a week in my house after the writ was out for her being
burnt, where my lord of Canterbury and bishop Ridley resorted almost
daily unto her : but she was so high in the Spirit that they could do
nothing with her for all their learning. But she went wilfully into the
fire, as you do now.
Phil. As for Joan of Kent she was a vain woman — I knew her well, and
a heretic indeed, well worthy to be burnt, because she stood against one
of the manifest articles of our faith, contrary to the Scriptures. And such
vain spirits be soon known from the true Spirit of God and his church, for
the same abideth within the limits of God's word, and will not go out of it.
Bon. I pray you, how will you join me these two scriptures together :
"The Father is greater than I ; " and, " I and the Father are one." Now
show your cunning, and join these two scriptures by the word, if you can.
Phil. Yes, that I can right well. For we must understand that in
Christ there be two natures, the divinity and humanity ; and in respect of
his humanity it is spoken of Christ, " The Father is greater than I." But
in respect of his deity, he said again, " The Father and I are one." I have
sufficient scripture for the proof of that I have said. For the first, it is
written of Christ in the Psalms, " Thou hast made him a little lesser than
angels." And the second scripture itself declareth, that notwithstanding
Christ did abase himself in our human nature, yet he is still one in deity
with the Father. And this Paul to the Hebrews doth more at large set forth,
Bon. How can that be, seeing St. Paul saith that " the letter killeth,
but it is the spirit that giveth life ?"
EXAMINATION OF MR. PIIILPOT. 893
Phil. St. Paul meaneth not that the word of God written in itself killctli,
which is the word of life, and faithful testimony of the Lord ; but that the
word is unprofitable, and killeth him that is void of the Spirit of God,
although he be the wisest man of the world. And therefore Paul said that
the gospel to some was a savour of life unto life, and to some other a savour
of death unto death. Also an example hereof we have in John vi. of them
who hearing the word of God without the Spirit were offended thereby :
wherefore Christ said, "The flesh profiteth nothing; it is the Spirit that
quickeneth."
Bon. You see, my lords, that this man will have his own mind ; and
will wilfully cast himself away. I am sorry for him.
Phil. The words that I have spoken are none of mine, but the gospel,
whereon I ought to stand. And if you, my lord of London, can bring better
authority for the faith you would draw me unto, than that which I stand
upon, I will gladly hear the same, by you or by any other in this realm.
Rich. What countryman be you? Are you of the Philpots of Hampshire?
Phil. Yea, my lord ; I was sir P. Philpot's son of Hampshire.
Rich. He is my near kinsman ; wherefore I am the more sorry for him.
Phil. I thank your lordship that it pleaseth you to challenge kindred
of a poor prisoner.
Rich. In faith I would go a hundred miles on my bare feet, to do you
good. You said even now, that you would desire to maintain your belief
before ten of the best in the realm. — I dare be bold to procure for you of
the queen's majesty that you shall have ten learned men to reason with
you, and twenty or forty of the nobility to hear, so you will promise to
abide their judgment. How say you, will you promise here, afore my
lords, so to do ?
Phil. There are causes why I may not so do, unless I were sure they
would judge according to the word of God.
Rich. O, I perceive you will have no man judge but yourself, and
think yourself wiser than all the learned men in this realm.
Phil. My lord, I seek not to be mine own judge, but am willing to
be judged by others, so that the order of judgment in matters of religion
be kept as it was in the primitive church, which is, that God's will by his
word was sought; and therefore both the spiritualty and temporalty
were gathered together, and gave their consents and judgment, and such
kind of judgment I will stand to.
Rich. I marvel why you do deny the express words of Christ in the
sacrament, saying, "This is my body :" and yet you will continue to
say it is not his body. Is not God omnipotent? And is not he able as
well by his omnipotency to make it his body, as he was to make man
flesh of a piece of clay? Did not he say, " This is my body which shall
be betrayed for you!" And was not his very body betrayed for us?
Therefore it must needs be his body.
Bon. My lord Rich, you have said wonderful well and learnedly.
But you might have begun with him before also, in the sixth of John,
where Christ promised to give his body in the sacrament of the altar,
saying, "The bread which I will give is my flesh." How can you
answer to that?
Phil. You may be soon answered : that saying of St. John is, that
894 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the humanity of Christ, which he took upon him for the redemption of
man, is the bread of life whereby our souls and bodies are sustained to
eternal life, of which the sacrament bread is a lively representation, to
all such as believe on his passion. And as Christ saith in the same
sixth of John, "I am the bread that came down from Heaven;" but
yet he is not material, neither natural bread: likewise the bread is his
flesh, not. natural or substantial, but by signification, and by grace in
the sacrament.
And now to my lord Rich's argument. I do not deny the express
words of Christ in the sacrament, "This is my body:" but I deny that
they are naturally and corporeally to be taken : they must be taken
spiritually, according to the express declaration of Christ, saying that
the words of the sacrament which the Capernaumites took carnally, as
the Papists now do, ought to be taken spiritually and not carnally, as
they falsely imagine, not weighing what interpretation Christ hath made
in this behalf, neither following the institution of Christ, neither the use
of the apostles and of the primitive church.
Bon. What say you to the omnipotency of God? Is not he able to
perform that which he spake, as my lord Rich hath very well said ?
I tell thee, that God by his omnipotency, may make himself to be this
carpet if he will.
Phil. As concerning the omnipotency of God, I say, that God is able
to do whatsoever he willeth; but he willeth nothing that is not agree-
able to his word; that is blasphemy which my lord of London
hath spoken, that God may become a carpet. For, God cannot
do that which is contrary to his nature, and it is contrary to the nature
of God to be a carpet. A carpet is a creature; and God is the
creator; and the creator cannot be the creature: wherefore, unless
you can declare by the word, that Christ is otherwise present with us
than spiritually and sacramentally by grace, as he hath taught us,
you pretend the omnipotency of God in vain.
Bon. Why, wilt thou not say that Christ is really present in the sacra-
ment? Or do you deny it?
Phil. I deny not that Christ is really present in the sacrament to the
receiver thereof according to Christ's institution. I mean by really
present, present indeed.
Bon. Is God really present every where?
Phil. He is so. the prophet Isaiah saith that God filleth all places:
and Christ saith that wheresoever there be two or three gathered together
in his name, there is he in the midst of them. Not his humanity, but
the Deity, according to that you demanded.
Rich. My lord of London, I pray you let Dr. Chedsey reason with
him, and let us see how he can answer him, for I tell thee he is a
learned man indeed, and one that I do credit before a great many of
you, whose doctrine the queen's majesty and the whole realm doth well
allow, therefore hear him.
Ched. You have of the scriptures the four evangelists for the proba-
tion of Christ's real presence to be in the sacrament after the words of
consecration, with St. Paul to the Corinthians; which all say, "This
is my body." They say not, as you would have me believe, this is not
EXAMINATION OF MR PHILPOT. 895
the body. But especially the 6th of John proveth this most manifestly,
where Christ promised to give his body, which he performed in his last
supper, as it appeareth by these words — "The bread which I will give
is my flesh, which I will give for the life of the world."
Phil. My lord Rich, with your leave I must needs interrupt him a
little, because he speaketh open blasphemy against the death of Christ :
for if that promise, brought in by St. John, was performed by Christ in
his last supper, then he needed not to have died after he had given the
sacrament.
Windsor. There were never any that denied the words of Christ as
you do. Did he not say, " This is my body?"
Phil. My lord, I pray you be not deceived. We do not deny the
words of Christ: but we say, these words are of none effect, being
spoken otherwise than Christ did institute them in his last supper. For
example : Christ biddeth the church to baptise in the name of the Father,
of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. If a priest say these words over
the water, and there be no child to be baptised, these words only pro-
nounced do not make baptism. And again, baptism is only baptism to
such as be baptised, and to none other standing by.
Lord Chamberlain. My lord, let me ask him one question. What
kind of presence in the sacrament, when it is duly administered accord-
ing to Christ's ordinance, do you allow?
Phil. If any come worthily to receive, then do I confess the presence
of Christ wholly to be with all the fruits of his passion, unto the said
worthy receiver, by the Spirit of God, and that Christ is thereby joined
to him, and he to Christ.
Bon. My lords, take no heed of him, for he goeth about to deceive
you. His similitude that he bringeth in of baptism, is nothing like to
the sacrament of the altar. For if I should say to Sir John Bridges,
being with me at supper, and having a fat capon, " Take, eat, this is
a capon," although he eat not thereof, is it not a capon still? And
likewise of a piece of beef, or of a cup of wine, if I say, " Drink, this
is a cup of wine," is it not so, even when he drinketh not thereof?
Phil. My lord, your similitudes are too gross for so high mysteries as
we have in hand, ' Like must be compared to like, and spiritual things
with spiritual, and not spiritual things with corporeal things. The
sacraments are to be considered according to the word which Christ
spake of them, of which — " Take ye, and eat ye," be some of the chief
concurrent to the making of the same, without which there can be no
sacraments. And, therefore, the sacrament of the body and blood of
Christ is called communion.
Bon. My lords, I am sorry I have troubled you so long with this obstinate
man, with whom we can do no good ; I will trouble you no longer now.
Thus endeth the sixth examination. The seventh took place on the
19th of November, before the bishops of London and Rochester, the
chancellor of Lichfield, Dr. Chedsey, and master Dee, bachelor of divinity.
Bon. Sirrah, come hither. How chance you came no sooner? Is it
well done of you to make master chancellor and me to tarry for you this
hour ? By the faith of my body, half an hour before mass, and half an
hour even at mass, looking for your coming !
896 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Phil. My lord, it is well known to you that I am a prisoner, and that
the doors be shut upon me, and I cannot come when I please ; but as
soon as the doors of my prison were open, I came immediately.
Bon. We sent for thee to the intent that thou shouldst have come to
mass. How say you, would you have come to mass or no, if the doors
had been sooner opened?
Phil. My lord, that is another manner of question, which I need not
answer, because I was confined till now.
Bon. Lo, master chancellor, I told you we should have a froward
fellow of him; he will answer directly to nothing. I have had him
before the spiritual lords and the temporal, thus he fareth still ; yet he
reckoneth himself better learned than all the realm. Yea, before the
temporal lords the other day, he was so foolish as to challenge the
best: he would make himself learned, and is a very ignorant fool
indeed.
Phil. I reckon I answered your lordship before the lords plain enough ;
so that the lord chamberlain himself acknowledged that he was well
answered.
Bon. Why answerest thou not directly, whether thou wouldst have
gone to mass or not if thou hadst come in time ?
Phil. Mine answer shall be thus, that if your lordship can prove
your mass, whereunto you would have me to come, to be the true service
of God, whereunto a christian ought to come, I will afterwards come
with a good will.
Bon. Look, I pray you; the king and queen, and all the nobility of
the realm do come to mass, and yet he will not. By my faith, thou art
too well handled ; thou shalt be worse handled hereafter, I warrant thee.
Phil. If to lie in a blind coal-house may be counted good handling,
both without fire and candle, then may it be said I am well handled. Your
lordship hath power to entreat my body as you list.
Bon. Thou art a very ignorant fool. Master chancellor, in good faith
1 have handled him and his fellows with as much gentleness as they can
desire. I did let their friends come unto them to relieve them. And wot
you what? the other day they had gotten themselves up into the top of
the leads, with a number of apprentices, gazing abroad as though they
had been at liberty. But I will cut off your resort: and as for the appren-
tices, they were as good not to come to you, if I take them.
Phil. My Lord, we have no such resort to us, as your lordship
imagineth, and there come very few unto us. And of apprentices I
know not one, neither have we any leads to walk on over our coal-house,
that I know of: wherefore your lordship hath mistaken your mark.
Bon. Nay, now you think because my lord chancellor is gone, that
we will burn no more ; yes, I warrant thee, I will dispatch you shortly,
unless you recant.
After much further discussion, my lord chancellor said to Dr. Chedsey,
" Well, master doctor, you see we can do no good in persuading of him. Let
us minister the articles which my lord hath left us unto him. How say you,
master Philpot, to these articles? Master Johnson, write his answers.
Phil. Master chancellor, you have no authority to inquire of me my
belief in such articles as you go about, for I am not of my lord of
EXAMINATION OF MR. PHILPOT. 897
London's diocese; and, to be brief with you, I will make no further
answer heroin than I have already to the bishop.
" Why then," said my lord chancellor, " let us go our ways, and let his
keeper take him away." Thus endeth the seventh part of this tragedy.
The next day in the morning betimes, the bishop sent for master Philpot ;
and the day after, an hour before day, he sent for him again by the keeper.
Philpot. I wonder what my lord meaneth, that he sendeth for me thus
early. I fear he will use some violence towards me, wherefore I pray you
make him this answer, that if he did send for me by an order of law, I will
come and answer ; otherwise, since I am not of his diocese, neither is he
mine ordinary, I will not come, unless I be violently constrained.
The keeper went away to the bishop, and returned with two others, say-
ing I must come, whether I would or no ; and therewith one of them took
me with force by the arm, and I was led up into the bishop's gallery.
Bonner. What ! thou wilt not come without thou be fetched and forced.
Phil. I am brought indeed, my lord, by violence unto you, and your
cruelty is such, that I am afraid to come before you; I would your lord-
ship would gently proceed against me by the law.
Bon. I am blamed by the lords the bishops, that I have not dispatched
thee ere this ; and am commanded to take a further order with thee;
and in good faith if thou wilt not relent, I will make no further delay.
Marry, if thou wilt yet be conformable, I will forgive thee all that is
past, and thou shalt have no hurt for any thing that is already spoken
or done.
Phil. My lord, I have answered you already in this behalf, what I
will do.
Bon. Hadst thou not a pig brought thee the other day with a knife
in it? Wherefore was it but to kill thyself? or, as it is told me, to kill
me? But I fear thee not; I think I am able to tread thee under my feet
do the best thou canst.
Phil. My lord, I cannot deny but that there was a knife in the pig
that was brought me. But who put it in, or for what purpose, I know
not, unless it were because he that sent the meat, thought I was without
a knife. But other things your lordship needeth not to fear; for I was
never without a knife, since I came to prison. And touching your own
person, you shall live long if you should live till I go about to kill you;
and I confess, by violence your lordship is able to overcome me.
Bon. I charge thee to answer to mine articles. Hold him a book.
Thou shalt swear to answer truly to all such articles as I shall demand.
Phil. I refuse to swear in these causes before your lordship, because you
are not mine ordinary.
Bon. I am thine ordinary, and here do pronounce by sentence peremp-
tory, that I am thine ordinary, and that thou art of my diocese. And I
make thee [taking one of his servants by the arm] to be my notary. And
now hearken to my articles.
When he had read them, he monished me to make answer ; and said to
the keeper, " Fetch me his fellows, and I shall make them to be witnesses
against him." In the meanwhile came in one of the sheriffs of London,
whom the bishop placed by him, saying, " Master sheriff, I would you should
understand how I do proceed against this man. You shall hear what
3 M
898 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
articles this man doth maintain ; " and so he read a rabblement of feigned
articles : that I should deny baptism to be necessary to them that were
born of Christian parents ; that I denied fasting and prayer, and all other
good deeds ; and I maintained only bare faith to be sufficient to salvation,
whatsoever a man did besides ; and I maintained God to be the author of
all sin and wickedness.
Phil. Hah, my lord ! have you nothing of truth to charge me withal,
but you must be fain to imagine these blasphemous lies against me ! You
might as well have said I had killed your father. The Scriptures say,
" God will destroy all men that speak lies." And is not your lordship
ashamed to say, before this gentleman, (who is unknown to me,) that I
maintain what you have rehearsed? which if I did I were well worthy
to be counted a heretic, and to be burnt to ashes. Before I answer
you I will first know you to be my ordinary, and that you may lawfully
charge me with such things.
Bon. Well, then, I will make thy fellows to be witnesses herein against
thee: where are they? Come hither, sirs; you shall swear by the contents
of that book, that you shall say the truth of all such articles as shall
be demanded of you concerning this man here present, and take you
heed of him that he doth not deceive you, as I am afraid he doth and
strengthened! you in your errors.
Prisoners. My lord, we will not swear, except we know whereto; we
can accuse him of no evil, we have been but awhile acquainted with
him.
Phil. I wonder your lordship, knowing the law, will go about, con-
trary to the same, for your lordship doth take them to be heretics, and
by the law a heretic cannot be a witness.
Bon. Yes, one heretic against another may be well enough. And,
master sheriff, I will make one of them to be witness against another.
Prisoners. No, my lord.
Bon. No, you will not? I will make you swear, whether you will or
no. I ween they be Anabaptists, master sheriff: they think it not lawful
to swear before a judge.
Phil. We think it lawful to swear for a man judicially called, as we
are not now, but in a blind corner.
.Bon Why, then, seeing you will not swear against your fellow, you
shall swear for yourselves; and I do here in the presence of the sheriff
object the same articles unto you, as I have done unto him, and require
you, under pain of excommunication, to answer particularly unto every
one of them when you shall be examined, as you shall be soon, by my
register and some of my chaplains.
Prisoners. My lord, we will not accuse ourselves. If any man can
lay any thing against us, we are here ready to answer thereto : otherwise
we pray your lordship not to burthen us ; for some of us are here before
you, we know no just cause why.
Here Bonner turning to master sheriff, said, " I will trouble you no
longer with these fro ward men." And so he rose up, and was going away,
talking with the sheriff; when Philpot said, " Master sheriff, I pray you
record how my lord proceedeth against us in corners, without all order of
law, having no just cause to lay against us."
EXAMINATION OF MR. PHILPOT. S99
And after this we were all commanded to the stocks, in which we
were confined the whole of the day, and only released at night by
special and secret favour from the keeper.
The Sunday after, the bishop came into the coal-house at night, with
the keeper, and viewed the house, saying that he was never there before :
whereby a man may guess how he kept God's commandment in visiting
the prisoners. Between eight and nine he sent for me.
Bon. Sir, I have great displeasure of the queen and council for keep-
ing you so long, and letting you have so much liberty ; and besides
that, you strengthen the other prisoners in their errors, as I have laid
wait for your doings, and am certified of you well enough : I will
sequester you therefore from them, and you shall hurt them no more as
you have done, and I will out of hand dispatch you as I am commanded
unless you will be a conformable man.
Phil. My lord, you have my body in your custody, you may transport
it whither you please, I am content. And I wish you would make as
quick expedition in my judgment, as you say; I long for it: and as for
conformity, I am ready to yield to all truth, if any can bring better
than I.
Bon. Why, will you believe no man but yourself, whatsoever they say?
Phil. My belief must not hang upon men's sayings, without sure
authority of God's word, which if they can shew me, I will be pliant to
the same ; otherwise I cannot go from my certain faith to that which is
uncertain.
Bon. Have you then the truth only ? Are you the man of wisdom,
and must it die with you?
Phil. My lord, I will speak my mind freely unto you, and upon no
malice that I bear to you, before God. You have not the truth, neither
are you of the church of God ; but you persecute both the truth and
the true church of God, for which cause you cannot prosper long.
You see God doth not prosper your doings according to your expecta-
tions: he hath of late shewed his just judgment against one of your
greatest doers, who by report died miserably/ I envy not the autho-
rity you are in. You that have learning, should know best how to -rule.
And seeing God hath restored you to your dignity and living again, use
the same to God's glory, and to the setting forth of his true religion ;
otherwise it will not continue, do w T hat you can.
Bon. That good man was punished for such as thou art. Where is
the keeper? Come, let him have him to the place that is provided for
him. Go your way before : keep all men from him, and narrowly search
him: also let two of your men watch him.
" I afterwards passed through St. Paul's up to Lollards' Tower, and
after that turned along the west-side of St. Paul's through the wall, and
passing through six or seven doors, came to my lodging through many
straits; where I called to remembrance that strait is the w r ay to heaven.
And I was confined in a tower, right on the other side of Lollards' Tower,
as high almost as the battlements of St. Paul's, eight feet in breadth,
f Gardiner, bishop of Winchester ; of whose miserable death, as well as evil life, a sketch
is given in a preceding page.
900 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
and thirteen in length, and almost over the prison where I was before,
having a window opening towards the east, by which 1 could look over
the tops of a great many houses, but saw no man passing into them.
When I came to my place, the keeper took off my gown, searched me
very narrowly, and took away a pen-case, ink-horn, girdle, and knife,
but I had an inkling a little before I was called, of my removal, and
thereupon made an errand to the stool, where I cast away many a
friendly letter ; but that which I had written of my last examination
before, I thrust into my hose, thinking the next day to have made an
end thereof, and with walking it was fallen down to my leg, which he
by feeling soon found out, and asked what that was. I said, they were
certain letters ; and with that he was very busy to have them out.
" Then he went away, and as he was going, one of them that came
with him, said, that I did not deliver the writing I had in my hose, but
two other letters I had in my hand before. ' No did ? ' quoth he, ' I will
go search him better:' the which I hearing, conveyed my examination I
had written into another place near my bed, and took all the letters I had
in my purse, and was tearing them when he came again ; and as he came
I threw the same out of the window, saying that I heard what he said."
The eighth examination took place before the bishops of London and
St. David's, master Mordant, and others, in the bishop's chapel. The
ninth and tenth examinations were before Bonner and his chaplains. The
eleventh was on St. Andrew's day, before the bishops of London, Durham,
Chichester, and Bath, Dr. Chedsey, the prolocutor, and several others.
The twelfth took place, on the 4th of December, before the bishops of
Lqndon, Worcester, and Bangor. The thirtheenth took place the day
after, before the archbishop of York, and divers other bishops. To relate
the whole of these would be tedious repetition of points already discussed.
We therefore proceed to his fourteenth and final examination.
The bishop having sufficiently taken his pleasure with master Philpot in
his private talks, and seeing his zealous, learned, and immutable constancy,
thought it now high time to rid his hands of him ; and therefore on the
13th, 14th, and 16th of December, sitting judicially in the consistory at
Paul's, he caused him to be brought thither before him and others, as it
seemeth more for order's sake than for any good affection to justice and
right judgment. The bishop first speaking to master Philpot, said :
Bon. Master Philpot, amongst other things that were laid and objected
unto you, these three things ye were especially charged and burdened
withal. The first is, that you being fallen from the unity of Christ's catholic
church, do refuse and will not come to be reconciled thereunto. The second
is, that you have blasphemously spoken against the sacrifice of the mass,
calling it idolatry. And that you have spoken against the sacrament of the
altar, denying the real presence of Christ's body and blood to be in the
same. According to the will and pleasure of the synod legative, ye have
been oft by me invited and required to go from your said errors and heresies,
and to return to the unity of the catholic church, which if ye will now
willingly do, ye shall be mercifully and gladly received, charitably used,
and have all the favour I can show you. And now, to tell you true, it
is assigned and appointed me to give sentence against you, if you stand
herein, and will not return. Wherefore, if ye so refuse, I do ask of
EXAMINATION OF MR. PHILPOT. MI
you whether you have any cause that you can shew why I now should
not give sentence against you.
To this Mr. Philpot answered. " Under protestation, not to go from
my appeal that 1 have made, and also not to consent to you as my com-
petent judge, I say, respecting your first objection concerning the
catholic church, I neither was nor am out of the same. And as to the
sacrifice of the mass, and the sacrament of the altar, I never spoke
against the same. a And as concerning the pleasure of the synod, 1 say
that these twenty years I have been brought up in the faith of the true
catholic church, which is contrary to your church, whereunto you
would have me come: and in that time I have been many times sworn
both in the reign of king Henry VIII. and of Edward his son, against
the usurped power of the bishop of Rome, which oath I am bound in
my conscience to keep, because I must perform unto the Lord my vow.
But if you, or any of the synod, can by God's word persuade me that
my oath was unlawful, and that I am bound by his law to come to
your church, I will gladly yield unto you, otherwise not."
Bonner, not able with all his learned doctors to accomplish this
offered condition, had recourse as usual to promises and threats; to
which Mr. Philpot answered — " You and others of your sort are hypo-
crites, and I wish all the world knew your hypocrisy, your tyranny,
ignorance, and idolatry." On this the bishop for that time dismissed
him, commanding that on Monday the 16th of the same month, he
should again be brought there to have the definitive sentence of con-
demnation pronounced against him, if he then remained resolved.
The day being come, Mr. Philpot was accordingly presented before
the bishops of London, Bath, Worcester, and Litchfield, when the former
thus began. " My lords, my predecessor, when he went to give sentence
against a heretic, used to make this prayer — Deus qui errantibus, ut
in viam possint redire , justifies veritatisque tuce lumen ostendis, da cunctis
qui Christiana professione censentur, et ilia respuere qua hide inimica sint
nomini, et ea qiuz sint apta sectari per Christum Dominum nostrum,
Amen. This example I will follow. And so he repeated it with a loud
voice in Latin. Then Mr. Philpot said, " I wish you would speak in
English, that all men might understand you: for St. Paul willeth that
all things spoken in the congregation to edify, should be spoken in a
tongue that all men might understand."
Whereupon the bishop did read it in English : and when he came to
these words, " To refuse those things which are foes to his name," Philpot
said, "Then they all must turn away from you; for you are enemies to
that name, (meaning Christ's name;) and God save us from such hypocrites
as would have things in a tongue that men cannot understand. I am sorry
to see you sit in the place that you now sit in, pretending to execute
justice, and to do nothing less but deceive all men in this realm." And
turning to the people, he said, "Oh! all you gentlemen, beware of these
men, (the bishops,) and all their doings, contrary to the primitive church.
I would know of you, my lord, by what authority you proceed against me?"
Bon. Because I am bishop of London.
a Here either the registrar belieth Philpot, or else he meant as not offending the law, thereby
to be accused : for his former examinations do declare that he spake against the sacrament.
902 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Phil. Well, then you are not my bishop, nor have I offended in your
diocese : and, moreover, I have appealed from you, and therefore by
your own law you ought not to proceed against me, especially being
brought hither from another place by violence. Is it not enough, my
lord, for you to worry your own sheep, but you must also meddle with
those of other men?
Then the bishop delivered two books to Mr. Philpot, one of the civil,
and the other of the canon law, out of which he would have proved that
he had authority to proceed against him as he did. Mr. Philpot perus-
ing them, and seeing the small and slender proof that was there alleged,
said to the bishop — "I perceive that your law and divinity is all
one ; for you have knowledge in neither of them; and I wish you knew
your own ignorance : but you dance in a net, and think that no man
doth see you." Hereupon they had much talk: Bonner said, "Philpot, as con-
cerning your objections against my jurisdiction, you shall understand
that both the civil and canon laws make against you : and as for your
appeal, it is not allowed in this case : for it is concluded in the law,
that there is no appeal from a judge executing the sentence of the law."
Mr. Philpot, undaunted by this speech, replied, " My lord, it appeareth
by your interpretation of the law, that you have no knowledge therein,
and that you do not understand the law; for if you did, you would not
bring in that passage. You profess Christ, and maintain antichrist;
you profess the gospel, and maintain superstition, and you are able to
charge me with nothing. You are foes to all truth, and all your doings
are full of idolatry, saving the article of the Trinity.
Whilst they were thus debating, there came thither Sir William
Garret, then mayor of London, Sir Martin Bowes, and Thomas Leigh,
then sheriff of the city, and sat down with the bishops in the consistory.
No sooner were they seated than Bonner again addressed Mr. Philpot
with the prayer, and again repeated the charge against him; after
which he addressed him in a formal exhortation, which he had no sooner
ended than Mr. Philpot turned himself to the lord-mayor, and said —
"I am glad, my lord, now to stand before that authority, that hath
defended the gospel and the truth of God's word : but I am sorry to see
that that authority, which representeth the king and queen's persons,
should now be changed, and be at the command of antichrist; and I
am glad that God hath given me power to stand here this day, to declare
and defend my faith, which is founded on Christ.
"As touching your first objection, I say, that I am of the catholic
church, whereof I never was out, and that your church is the church of
Rome, and so the Babylonian, and not the catholic church ; of that church
I am not. As touching your second objection, that I should speak against
the sacrifice of the mass, I do say, that I have not spoken against the
true sacrifice, but I have spoken against your private masses that you
use in corners, which is blasphemy to the true sacrifice; for your daily
sacrifice is reiterated blasphemy against Christ's death, and it is a lie
of your own invention ; and that abominable sacrifice which you set
upon the altar, and use in your private masses, instead of the living
sacrifice, is idolatry. And wherein you lay to my charge, that I deny
the body and blood of Christ to be in the sacrament of the altar, I can-
not tell what altar you mean, whether it be the altar of the cross, or the
I'AAMINATION OF MR. PHILPOT. - 903
altar of stone: and if you call it the sacrament of the altar in respect of
the altar of stone, then 1 deny your Christ, for it is a false one.
"And as touching- your transubstantiation, I utterly deny it, for it
was first brought in by a pope. As concerning your otter made from the
synod, which is gathered together in antichrist's name; prove tome
that you be of the catholic church, and I will follow you, and do as
you would have me. But you are idolators, and traitors ; for in your
pulpits ye rail against good kings, as king Henry and king Edward his
son, who have stood against the usurped power of the pope of Rome;
against whom I have also taken an oath, which, if you can shew me by
God's law that I have taken unjustly, I will then yield unto you: but
I pray God turn the king and queen's heart from your church."
Here the bishop of Coventry began, saying : In our true catholic church
are the apostles, evangelists, and martyrs ; but before Martin Luther there
was no apostle, evangelist, or martyr of your church.
Phil. Will you know the cause why? Christ did prophesy that in the
latter days there should come false prophets and hypocrites, as you be.
Cov. Your church of Geneva is that which Christ prophesied of.
Phil. I allow the church of Geneva, and the doctrine of the same ; for
it is una, catholica, et apostolica, and doth follow the apostles' doctrine.
And after this they had great conference together ; but when Bonner
saw that by learning they were not able to convince master Philpot, he
brought forth a knife and a bladder full of powder, and turning himself unto
the mayor, said : li My lord, this man had a roasted pig brought to him, and
this knife was put secretly between the skin and flesh thereof. And also
this powder under pretence that it was good and comfortable for him
to eat and drink ; which powder was only to make ink to write withal.
For when his keeper perceived it, he took it and brought it unto me:
which when I saw I thought it had been gunpowder, and thereupon put
fire to it, but it would not burn. Then I took it for poison, and so gave
it to a dog, but it was not so. I then took a little water, and made as
good ink as ever I did write withal. Therefore, my lord, you may un-
derstand what a naughty fellow this is."
Phil. Ah, my lord, have you nothing else to charge me withal, but
these trifles, seeing I stand upon life and death ? Doth the knife in the
pig prove the church of Rome to be the catholic church ? Doth the ink
powder certify transubstantiation and purgatory?
Then the bishop brought forth a certain instrument, containing
articles and questions, agreed upon both in Oxford and Cambridge.
Also he exhibited two books in print : the one was the catechism com-
posed in king Edward's days, in the year 1552, the other concerning
the report of the disputation in the convocation-house, mention whereof
is above expressed. Moreover he brought forth two letters, and laid
them to Mr. Philpot's charge : the one was addressed to him by a friend,
complaining of the bishop's ill usage of a young man named Bartlet
Green ; the other was a consolatory letter from Lady Vane. Besides
these, was produced a memorial drawn up by Mr. Philpot to the queen
and parliament, stating the irregularity of his being brought to bishop
Bonner, he not being of his diocese ; also complaining of the severity
of his treatment. These various documents having been read, the bishop
demanded of him, if the book intitled — " The true report of the dispu-
904 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tation,' 1 were of his penning or not? To this Mr. Philpot answered in
the affirmative.
The bishops growing weary, and not being able by any sufficient
ground, either of God's word, or of the true ancient catholic fathers,
to convince and overcome him, began with flattering speech to per-
suade him ; promising, that if he would revoke his opinions, and return
to their Romish and Babylonian church, he would not only be pardoned
that which was past, but also they would, with all favour and cheer-
fulness of heart, receive him again as a true member thereof. But when
Bonner found that it would take no effect, he demanded of Mr. Philpot,
whether he had any just cause to allege why he should not condemn
him as a heretic? In answer, he again disowned and denounced the
papal church; and in the end the bishop, seeing his steadfastness in the
truth, openly pronounced the sentence of condemnation against him.
In the reading whereof, when he came to these words — " And you an
obstinate, pernicious, and impenitent heretic," Mr. Philpot said — " I
thank God that I am a heretic out of your cursed church ; I am no
heretic before God. But God bless you, and give you grace to repent
your wicked doings ; and let all men beware of your bloody church."
Moreover, while Bonner was about the midst of the sentence, the bishop
of Bath pulled him by the sleeve, and said, " My lord, my lord, know of
him first whether he will recant or not." Then Bonner said, " O let him
alone," and so read forth the sentence. And when he had ended, he de-
livered him to the sheriffs ; and so two officers brought him through the
bishop's house into Paternoster-row, and there his servant met him, and
when he saw him, he said, " Ah ! dear master." Then Philpot said to his
man, " Content thyself, I shall do well enough ; for thou shalt see me again."
The officers then thrust the servant away, and took the master to
Newgate, where they delivered him to the keeper. Then his man
strove to go in after him, and one of the officers said unto him, Hence,
fellow, what wouldst thou have? And he said — " I would speak with
my master." Mr. Philpot then turned about, and said to him — "To-
morrow thou shalt speak with me."
When the under keeper understood it to be his servant, he gave
him leave to go in with him. And Mr. Philpot and his man were
turned into a little chamber on the right hand, and there remained a
short time, when Alexander, the chief keeper, came unto him; who
said — "Ah, hast thou not done well to bring thyself hither?" The
martyr replied — " I must be content, for it is God's appointment; and
I shall desire you to let me have your gentle favour, for you and I have
been of old acquaintance." The keeper now attempted to change his
views. " If you will recant," said he, " I will shew you any pleasure
I can." Mr. Philpot answered — " I will never recant that which I
have spoken, whilst I have my life, for it is most certain truth, and in
witness hereof I will seal it with my blood." Then Alexander said, —
" This is the saying of the whole pack of you heretics." Whereupon
he commanded him to be set upon the block, and as many irons to be
put upon his legs as he could bear! Well might it be said to the
keeper — " Is this thy kindness to a friend?"
Then the clerk told Alexander in his ear, that Mr. Philpot had given
CONDEMNATION OF MR. PHILPOT. 90.5
his man money. Alexander asked what money had his master given
him? lie answered, none: upon which Alexander determined to search
him and seize it.
" Do with me as yon like, and search me all you can," quoth his
servant: " he hath given me a token or two to send to his friends, to
his brothers and sisters. Then said Alexander unto Mr. Philpot, "Thou
art a maintainer of heretics, thy man should have gone to some of thine
affinity, but he shall be known well enough." " Nay," said Mr. Philpot,
" I do send it to my friends; there he is, let him make answer to it.
But, good Mr. Alexander, be so much my friend, that these irons may
be taken off." Alexander said, " Give me my fees, and I will take
them off; if not, thou shalt wear them still." Then said Philpot, " Sir,
what is your fee?" He said four pound was his fees. " Ah," said Philpot,
" I have not so much ; I am but a poor man, and have been long a prisoner."
" What wilt thou give me then ? " asked Alexander. " Sir," said he, " I
will give you twenty shillings, and that I will send my man for ; or else
1 will lay down my gown to gage. For the time is not long, I am sure,
that I shall be with you: for the bishop said I should be soon dispatched."
Then said the gaoler, "What is that to me?" And with that he de-
parted from him, and commanded him to be had into limbo.
Then one Witterence, steward of the house, took him on his back,
and carried him down, his man knew not whither. Wherefore Mr.
Philpot told his servant, to go to the sheriff, and shew him how he was
used, and desire him to be good to him. So his servant went, and took
another person with him. When they came to the sheriff, and shewed
him how Mr. Philpot was treated in Newgate, he took his ring from off
his finger, and delivered it to the person that came with Mr. Philpot's
man, and bade him go unto Alexander, the keeper, and commanded
him to take off his irons, and to handle him more gently, and to give
his man again that which he had taken from him. . They went to Alex-
ander, and delivered their message from the sheriff. He took the ring
and said — "Ah, I perceive that Mr. Sheriff is a bearer with him, and
all such heretics as he is, therefore to-morrow I will shew it to his
betters." He went however in to Mr. Philpot where he lay, and took off
his irons, and gave him such things as he had before taken from his
servant.
On Tuesday, the 1 7th of December, while he was at supper, there
came a messenger from the sheriffs, and bade Mr. Philpot make ready,
for the next day he should suffer, and be burned at the stake. Mr.
Philpot answered — "I am ready; God grant me strength, and a joyful
resurrection." And so he went into his chamber, and poured out his
spirit unto the Lord God, giving him most hearty thanks, that he had
made him worthy to suffer for his truth. In the morning the sheriffs
came according to order, about eight o'clock, and calling for him, he
most joyfully came down to them. AncL there his man met him, and
said, "Dear master farewell." His master answered, " Serve God, and
he will help thee." And so he went with the sheriffs to the place of
execution; and when he was entering into Smithfield, the way was foul,
and two officers took him up to bear him to the stake. Then he said
merrily, " What, will you make me a pope ? I am content to goto
906 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
my journey's end on foot." But on entering into Smithfield, he kneeled
down, and said, " I will pay my vows in thee, O Smithfield."
On arriving at the place of suffering, he kissed the stake, and said,
" Shall I disdain to suffer at this stake, seeing my Redeemer did not
refuse to suffer the most vile death upon the cross for me?" And then
with an obedient heart he repeated the cvi. cvii. and cviii. Psalms : and
when he had made an end of his prayers, he said to the officers, " What
have you done for me?" And every one of them declared what they had
done ; and he gave to every one of them money. Then they bound him
to the stake, and set fire unto that constant martyr, who on the 18th day
of December, in the midst of the fiery flames, yielded his soul into the
hands of Almighty God, and full like a lamb gave up his breath.
Thus hast thou, gentle reader, the life and doings of this learned and
worthy soldier of the Lord, John Philpot ; with the greater part of his ex-
aminations, first penned and written with his own hand, being marvellously
preserved from the sight and hand of his enemies; who, by all manner of
means, sought not only to stop him from all writing, but also to spoil and
deprive him of that which he had written. For the which cause he was
many times stripped and searched in the prison by his keeper : but yet so
happily these his writings were conveyed and hid in places about him, or
else his keeper's eyes so blinded, that, notwithstanding all this malicious
purpose of the bishops, they are yet remaining and come to light.
There are also numerous letters extant of this excellent man's ; but the
limits of our work will not admit their insertion. The chief are addressed
to the lady Vane, to his own sister, to his fellow-prisoner, to John Careless,
to master Robert Harrington, and to certain godly brethren whose names
do not appear. One addressed to a dear friend, prisoner with him at the
same time in Newgate, and who afterwards died in the faith as this letter
did persuade him, concludes with the following exhortation : —
" I beseech thee, dear brother in the gospel, follow the steps of the
glorious in the primitive church, and of such as at this day follow the
same; decline from them neither to the right hand nor to the left. Then
shall death, be it ever so bitter, be more sweet than this life: then shall
Christ, with all the heavenly Jerusalem, triumphantly embrace your
spirit with unspeakable gladness and exultation, who in this earth was
content to join your spirit with their spirits, according as it is com-
manded by the word, that the spirit of the prophets should be subject
to the prophets. One thing ask with David ere you depart, and require
the same, that you may dwell with a full accord in his house, for there
are glory and worship: and so with Simeon in the temple embracing
Christ, depart in peace : to which peace Christ bring both you and me,
and all our loving brethren that love God in the unity of faith, by such
ways as shall please him, to his glory. Let the bitter passion of Christ,
which he suffered for your sake, and the horrible torments which the
godly martyrs of Christ have endured before us, and also the inesti-
mable reward of your life to come, which is hidden yet a little while from
you with Christ, strengthen, comfort, and encourage you to the end of
that glorious race which you are in, Amen.
"Your yoke-fellow in captivity for the verity of Christ's gospel, to
live and die with you in the unity of faith — John Philpot."
907
SECTION XIII.
THE STORY OF SEVEN MARTYRS SUFFERING TOGETHER AT LONDON —
FIVE OTHER MARTYRS BURNED TOGETHER AT CANTERBURY.
The catholic prelates of the pope's band, being: as yet not satisfied with
this their one year's murdering of the members of Christ's church, continued
still this next year also in no less cruelty. Wherefore, as the first-fruits
thereof, about the 27th of January, 1556, were burned in Smithfield these
seven persons hereafter following-, to wit : Thomas Whittle, priest ; Bartlet
Green, gentleman; John Tuclson, artificer; John Went, artificer; Thomas
Browne; Isabel Foster; and Joan Warne, alias Lashford. The articles
exhibited against them, and their answers, are here briefly set forth : —
(1.) That they believed that there is in earth a catholic church, in the
which the faith and religion of Christ is truly professed. (2.) That there
were seven sacraments, instituted and ordained by God, and by the con-
sent of the holy church allowed and received. (3.) That they were in times
past baptized in the faith of the said catholic church. (4.) That coming
to the age of fourteen years, and so to the age of discretion, they did not
depart from the said profession and faith. (5.) That, notwithstanding the
premises, they had of late spoken against the mass, the sacrament of the altar,
and the unity of the church, maligning the authority of the see of Rome.
(6.) That they had refused, and did still refuse, to be reconciled to the said
see of Rome. (7.) That they had refused to come to their parish church
to hear mass, and to receive the said sacrament : but had openly said that
in the sacrament of the altar there is not the very body and blood of our
Saviour Christ ; that the mass was idolatry and abomination ; and that in
the sacrament there was none other substance but only material bread and
wine, which were tokens of Christ's body and blood. (8.) That being
convented before certain judges, and being found obstinate, wilful, and
heady, they were sent to be examined by the said Bonner. (9.) That all
and singular the premises have been and be true and manifest, and that
they were of the jurisdiction of Edmund bishop of London.
To the first article they all agreed. To the second they said, they ac-
knowledged but two sacraments — baptism and the supper of the Lord. The
third they confessed to be true, that they were baptized in the faith of
Christ. To the fourth they agreed: John Went, John Tudson, and Isabel
Foster adding, that when they came to years of mature discretion they
began to mislike the ministration of the sacrament of the altar, and the
ceremonies of the church. Concerning the fifth, they answered the same
to be true, according to the contents thereof: Thomas Whittle, Joan Lash-
ford, and Bartlet Green adding, that they had not swerved from the catholic
faith, but only from the church of Rome. The sixth they confessed to be
true. To the seventh, they confessed the contents thereof to be true, giving
the reason and cause of their so doing. Concerning the eighth, they granted
the same to be so. And to the ninth, that as they believed the premises
before by them confessed to be true, so they denied not the same to be
manifest. — Having briefly expressed their articles and answers, it remaineth
more fully to discourse the stories of the seven foresaid martyrs as follow.
908 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Mention has been made, in Mr. Philpot's story, of a married priest,
whom he found in bishop Bonner's coal house at his first going thither,
in heaviness of mind and great sorrow, for recanting the doctrine which
he had taught in king Edward's days. This was Thomas Whittle a curate
of Essex. After he had been expelled from the place in Essex where
he served, he went abroad, where he might, now here and there, as
occasion offered, preach the gospel of Christ. At length being appre-
hended by one Edmund Alablaster, in hope of reward and promotion,
which he miserably gaped after, he was brought first as prisoner before
the bishop of Winchester, who was lately fallen sick of his disease,
whereof not long after he died. But the apprehender for this proffered
service was highly checked by the bishop, who asked if there were no
man unto whom he might bring such rascals, but to him? The greedy
cormorant being thus defeated of his desired prey, yet thinking to seek
and to hunt further, carried his prisoner to the bishop of London, with
whom what ill-usage this Whittle had, and how he was by the bishop
beaten and buffetted about the face, by this his own narration, in a
letter sent to his friend, manifestly may appear.
"Upon Thursday, the tenth of January, the bishop of London sent
for me out of the porter's lodge, where I had been all night, lying on
the earth, on a little low bed, where I had as painful a night of sickness
as ever I endured. When I came before him, he talked with me upon
many things of the sacrament so grossly, as is not worthy to be re-
hearsed. Amongst other things, he asked me, if I would have come
to mass that morning if he had sent for me. I answered, that 1
would have come to him at his commandment, but to his mass I
had small affection. At which answer he was sore displeased, and
said, I should be fed with bread and water. And as I followed him
through the great hall, he turned back, and beat me with his fist, first
on the one cheek, and then on the other, and the sign of my beating
did many days appear. And then he led me to a little salt-house, where
I had neither straw nor bed, but lay two nights on a table, and slept
soundly.
"On the Friday after, I was brought to my lord, when he gave me
many fair words, and said he would be good to me. And so he going
to Fulham committed me to Dr. Harpsfield, that he and I that afternoon
should commune together, and draw out certain articles, whereunto, if
I would subscribe, I should be dismissed. But Dr. Harpsfield sent not
for me till night, and then persuaded me very much to forsake my
opinions. I answered, I held nothing but the 'truth, and therefore I
could not so lightly turn therefrom. So I thought I should at that time
have had no more ado: but he had made a certain bill, which the re-
gister pulled out of his bosom and read. The bill indeed was very easily
made, and therefore more dangerous; for the effect thereof was to
detest all errors and heresies against the sacrament of the altar, and
other sacraments, and to believe the faith of the catholic church, and
live accordingly.
"To this bill I did set my hand, being much desired and counselled
so to do ; and the flesh being always desirous to have liberty, I considered
MARTYRDOM OF MR. WHITTLE. 909
not thoroughly the inconvenience that might come therefrom : speedy
respite I desired to have and very earnestly they desired me to subscribe.
But when I had done so, I had little joy thereof; for by and by my
mind and conscience told me by God's word that I had done evil, by
such a slight means to shake off the sweet cross of Christ; and yet it
was not my seeking, as God knoweth, but altogether came of them.
Well, the night after I had subscribed I was sore grieved, and for sorrow
of conscience could not sleep. For in the deliverance of my body out
of bonds, which I might have had, I could find no joy nor comfort, but
still was in my conscience tormented more and more, being assured, by
God's Spirit and his word, that through evil counsel and advice, I had
done amiss. And both with disquietude of mind, and with my other
cruel handling, I was sick; lying upon the ground when the keeper
came: and I desired him to pray Dr. Harpsfield to come to me, and
he did so.
" And when he came, and the register with him, I told him that I was
not well at ease, but that I was grieved very much in my conscience
and mind because I had subscribed. I said that my conscience had so
accused me, through the just judgment of God and his word, that I
felt hell in my conscience, and Satan ready to devour me ; and therefore
I prayed Mr. Harpsfield to let me have the bill again, for I would not
stand to it. So he gently commanded it to be fetched, and gave it me
and suffered me to put out my name, whereof I was right glad when I
had so done, although death should follow. And hereby I had experience
of God's providence and mercy towards me, who trieth his people, and
suffereth them to fall, but not to be lost : for in the midst of this temp-
tation and trouble, he gave me warning of my deed, and also delivered
me; his name be praised for evermore, Amen. Neither devil nor evil
man, life nor death can pluck any of Christ's sheep out of his hand.
Of which flock of Christ's sheep I trust undoubtedly I am one, by
means of his death and blood-shedding, and shall at the last day stand
at his right hand, and receive with others his blessed benediction. And
now being condemned to die, my conscience and mind, I praise God,
were quiet in Christ, and I by his grace was very willing and content
to give over this body to the death, for the testimony of his truth and
pure religion, against Antichrist and all his false religion and doctrine.
" By me, Thomas Whittle, minister."
Upon the 14th day of January, Bonner, with other his fellow Bonner-
lings, sitting in his consistory at the afternoon, first called forth Thomas
Whittle, with whom he began in effect as followeth : " Because you be a
priest, as I and other bishops here be, and did receive the order of priest-
hood after the right and form of the catholic church, ye shall not think but
I will minister justice as well unto you as unto others." And then the said
Bonner proceeded to rehearse the several charges against him, and after-
ward to un priest him of all his priestly trinkets and clerkly habit. To make
short, Whittle, strengthened with the grace of the Lord, stood strong and
immovable in that he had affirmed. Wherefore the sentence being read,
the next day following he was committed to the secular power ; and so, in
few days after, brought to the fire with the other six aforenamed, sealing
up the testimony of his doctrine with his blood, as witness for the truth.
910 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Next folio weth in order to speak of Bartlet Green, who the next day
after was likewise condemned. This Green was of a good house, and had
such parents as favoured learning. After some entrance in inferior schools,
he was sent unto the university of Oxford, where through his diligence
he made great advances in his studies: but was, for a time, so far from
feeling any interest in eternal things, that he was utterly averse to the
subject. At length, by attending the lectures of Peter Martyr, then
reader of the divinity-lecture, his mind was struck with the importance
of religion. Having once tasted of divine grace, it became unto him
as the fountain of living water that our Saviour Christ spake of to the
woman of Samaria. Insomuch that when he was called by his friends
from the university, and was placed in the Temple at London, there to
study the common laws of the realm, he still continued, with great ear-
nestness, to read and search the scriptures.
But, such is the frailty of our corrupt nature without the special assist-
ance of God's Holy Spirit, he sadly declined, through the continual
accompanying and fellowship of such worldly youths as are commonly
in that and the like places. He became by little and little a partner in
their follies, as well in his apparel as also in banquetings, and other
superfluous excesses; which he afterwards bewailed sorely, as appeareth
by his own testimony left in a book belonging to Mr. Bartram Calthorp,
one of his friends, written a little before his death. He there remarks,
" Two things very much troubled me while I was in the Temple, pride
and gluttony ; which under the colour of glory and good-fellowship,
drew me almost from God. Against both there is one remedy, by
earnest prayer, and without ceasing. And forasmuch as vainglory is so
subtle an adversary, that almost it woundeth deadly ere ever a man can
perceive himself to be smitten, therefore we ought so much the rather by
continual prayer to labour for humbleness of mind. Truly, gluttony
beginneth under a charitable pretence of mutual love and society, and
hath in it most uncharitableness. When we seek to refresh our bodies,
that they may be more apt to serve God, and perform our duties toward
our neighbours, then it stealeth in as a privy thief, and murdereth both
body and soul, that now it is not apt to pray, or serve God, apt to study
or labour for our neighbour. Let us therefore watch and be sober : for
our adversary the devil walketh about like a roaring lion, seeking whom
he may devour."
Thus we see the fatherly kindness of our most gracious and merciful
God, never suffereth his children so to fall, that they lie still in security
of sin, but oftentimes quickeneth them up by such means as perhaps
they think least of. For the better maintenance of himself in his studies
and other affairs, Green had a large exhibition of his grandfather, Dr.
Bartlet, who, during the time of his imprisonment, made him large offers
of great livings, if he would recant and return to the church of Rome.
But his persuasions took small effect in his faithful heart. He was a
man beloved of all, and so he well deserved ; for he was of a meek,
humble, discreet, and gentle behaviour to all ; injurious to none, bene-
ficial to many, especially to those who were of the household of faith.
The cause of Mr. Green's sufferings originated from a letter of his
being intercepted. This letter was written to an exiled friend , who having
MARTYRDOM OF BARTLET GREEN. 911
in a letter to the said Green, required to have the certainty of the report
spread amongst them on the other side of the seas, that the queen was dead,
he had answered simply, and as the truth then was, that she was not dead;
with certain questions abroad in London. This letter, with others to divers
of the godly exiles, by their friends in England, being delivered to a
messenger to carry over, came, by the apprehension of the bearer, into
the hands of the king and queen's council ; who at their leisure perused
the whole number of the letters, and amongst them espied that of Mr.
Green, written to his friend, Christopher Goodman ; in the contents
whereof they found these words — " The queen is not dead." These
words were only written as a simple answer. Howbeit they seemed very
heinous words, yea treason they would have made them, if the law would
have suffered. Which when they could not do, they then examined the
writer upon his faith in religion, but upon what points it is certainly not
known. It was clear, however, that his answers displeased them ; for
he was committed to prison, and after being confined for some time, was
at length sent to bishop Bonner.
Many other conferences and examinations they brought him to. But
in the end, seeing his steadiness of faith to be such that neither their
threatenings nor their flattering promises could prevail against it, the
bishop caused him, with the rest before mentioned, to be brought into
the consistory of St. Paul's ; where being set in his judgment seat, ac-
companied by Mr. Fecknam, then dean of the same church, and others
his chaplains, after he had condemned the other six, he called for Bart-
let Green, and again repeated the articles to him. After which Dr.
Fecknam disputed with him upon the real presence of Christ in the
sacrament, and other points. At length, impatient of longer delay,
bishop Bonner demanded if he would recant and return to his Romish
mother ; and on his answering in the negative, he pronounced the defi-
nitive sentence against him, and then committed him to the sheriffs of
London, who sent him to Newgate.
As he was going thither, there met him two gentlemen, particular
friends, minding to comfort this their persecuted brother : but their
hearts not being able to contain their sorrow, they wept. "Ah," said
the martyr, " is this the comfort you are come to give me, in this my
occasion of heaviness ? Must I, who needed to have consolation minis-
tered to me, become now a comforter to you?" And thus declaring his
most quiet and peaceable mind and conscience, he cheerfully spake to
them and others until he came to the prison door, into which he joyfully
entered, and there remained always either in prayer, or else in some other
godly meditations and exercises, unto the 27th day of January, when he,
with his other above-mentioned brethren, went most cheerfully to the
place of their torments, often repeating, as well by the way as also at the
stake, these Latin verses following —
Christe Dens, sine te spes est mihi nulla sahitis:
Te duce vera sequor, te duce falsa nego.
The third of this martyred company was Thomas Browne, a man of
great firmness and courage. He was born in the parish of Histon, within
the diocese of Ely, and came afterwards to London, where he dwelt in
912 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
the parish of St. Bride's in Fleet-street. He was a married man aged
thirty-seven, and his troubles first arose because he came not to his
parish-church, for which neglect he was presented by the constable of
the parish to bishop Bonner. Being brought to Fulham with the others
to be examined, he was required to come into the chapel to hear mass,
which he refusing to do, went into the warren, and there kneeled
among the trees. For this he was greatly charged by the bishop as for
a heinous matter, because he said it was done in despite and contempt
of their mass. At length being produced to his last examination before
the bishop, the 15th day of January, there to hear the definitive sentence
against him, he was required, with many fair words and glossing promises,
to revoke his doctrine. But he resisted with steadfast faith, and told the
bishop he was a blood-thirsty man, saying : " You condemn me because I
will not confess and believe the bread in the sacrament of the altar (as you
call it) to be the body of Christ." After this Bonner read his sentence,
and so committed him to the sheriffs to be burned the 27th of January.
The same day and time was also produced John Tudson, with the rest
of the company, unto the like condemnation. This John Tudson was born
in Ipswich, and apprenticed to George Goodyear, of St. Mary Botolph, within
the diocese of London. Being complained of to Sir Richard Cholmley
and Dr. Storey, he was by them sent to Bonner, and was divers times
before him in examination. On his last examination, when the bishop
promised, on condition of his recanting, to forgive him all his offences,
he demanded wherein he had offended. Then said the bishop, " In your
answers." Tudson denied this and said, I have not therein offended;
and you, my lord, pretend charity, but nothing thereof appeareth in
your works. Thus after a few words, the bishop pronounced against
him sentence of condemnation ; which being read, the martyr was com-
mitted to the secular power, and so with much patience finished his life
with his fellow-sufferers.
John Went is the fifth individual of this class to whose life as well as
death some reference should be made. He was born at Langham, in
Essex, within the diocese of London, was of the age of twenty-seven,
and was a shearman by occupation. He was first examined, as is partly
mentioned before, by Dr. Storey, upon the sacrament of the altar; and
because the poor man did not accord with him thoroughly in the real
presence of the body and blood of Christ, Storey sent him up to Bonner,
who likewise, after various examinations upon the articles in the con-
sistory, attempted the like manner of persuasions with him as he did
with the others, to recant and return. To whom, in very few words,
Went answered again, he would not ; but that by the leave of God, he
would stand firm and constant in what he had said. Whereupon being
condemned by the bishop's sentence, he was committed unto the sheriffs
and so brought to his martyrdom, which he with no less constancy suf-
fered to the end, with the rest of that blessed society.
The last two of these six martyrs were of the weaker sex ; but were
both strong in faith, giving glory unto God. Isabel Foster was born in
Greystock, in the diocese of Carlisle, and was married to John Foster,
cutler, of the parish of St. Bride's, in Fleet-street, being of the age of
fifty-five years. She likewise, for not coming to church, was sent to
ACCOUNT OF SEVERAL MARTYRS. 9L3
bishop Bonner, who put her in prison, and examined her sundry times,
but she would never be removed from the constant confession of Christ's
gospel. At length coming unto her final examination before the bishop,
she was tried again whether she would yet go from her former answers ?
Whereunto she gave this resolute answer ; that she would not go from
them, by God's grace. The bishop promising both life and liberty if
she would associate herself in the unity of the catholic church, she said
again, that she trusted she was never out of the catholic church ; and
so persisting in the same, continued constant till the sentence was pro-
nounced, when she was committed, by command of the bishop, to the
secular power, and brought a few days after to the stake.
Mention has already been made of one Elizabeth Warne, who with her
husband John Warne, in the beginning of queen Mary's reign, was appre-
hended in Bow Church-yard, for being there at a communion; and both
suffered for the same, first the man in the month of May, then the wife in
July after ; and now the daughter, in the month of January, followed her
parents in the same martyrdom. This Joan Lashford was the daughter of
one Robert Lashford, cutler, and of the foresaid Elizabeth, who afterward
was married to the said John Warne, upholsterer. Ministering to her mother
and father-in-law in prison, suspected and known to be of the same doc-
trine and religion, she was sent to Bonner by Dr. Storey, and so committed
to the Compter in the Poultry, where she remained five weeks ; and from
thence was had to Newgate, where she continued the space of certain months.
After that, remaining prisoner in Bonner's custody, and being examined,
her confession was, that for above a twelvemonth before she came not
to the popish mass service in the church, neither would, either to receive
the sacrament of the altar or to be confessed, because her conscience
would not allow her so to do; protesting against the real presence of
Christ's body and blood ; and denying that auricular confession or ab-
solution, after the popish sort, was necessary; but said, that these sacra-
ments, confessions and absolutions, and the mass, with all their other
superfluous sacraments, ceremonies, and divine service, as then used in
this realm of England, were most vile, and contrary to Christ's word and
institution ; so that they were neither at the beginning, nor shall be at
the latter end. " This resolute maid, feeble in constitution and tender in
age, yet strong by grace in her confession and faith, stood so firm that
neither the promises nor threats of the bishops could move her ; and on
being exhorted by the bishop to return to the catholic unity of the church,
she boldly said, " If you will leave off your abomination, 1 will return,
and otherwise I will not. Do as it pleaseth you, and I pray God that
you may do that which may please him." Thus she, constantly perse-
vering in the truth, was condemned and committed to the sheriffs, by
whom she with the rest was brought to the stake, and there washed her
soul in the blood of the Lamb, dying most constantly for his word and
truth. And thus much concerning the life, story, and condemnation of
these seven martyrs above specified. •
Shortly after, in the same month, followed another like fellowship of
godly martyrs at Canterbury. John Lomas of Tenterden, was detected to
be of that religion the papists call heresy, and cited to appear at Canterbury,
where he was examined of the first article, whether he believed the ca-
3 N
914 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tholic church or not ? he answered, that he believed so much as was
contained in God's book, and no more. Then being assigned to appear
again under the pain of the law the following Wednesday, which was
the 17th day of January, he was examined whether he would be confess-
ed by a priest or not; he said, that he found it not written that he should
be confessed to any priest in God's book, neither would he be confessed,
unless he were accused by some man of sin. Again, being examined
whether he believed the body of Christ to be in the sacrament of the
altar really under the forms of bread and wine after the consecration, he
answered, that he believed no reality of Christ's body to be in the sacra-
ment ; neither found he it written, that he is there under form, but he
believed so much as was written. Being then demanded whether he be-
lieved that there was a catholic church or no, and whether he would be
content to be a member of the same, he answered, that he believed so
much as was written in God's book, and other answer than this he re-
fused to give. Whereupon the sentence was given and read against
him on the 18th of January, and he was committed to the secular
power, and afterwards constantly suffered for the conscience of a true
faith, with the four women here following.
Agnes Snoth comes next in this record, and first of the female majo-
rity of this company. She was a widow, of the parish of Smarden, and
was likewise cited and accused for her faith. She was divers times ex-
amined, and being compelled to answer to such articles and interroga-
tories as should be administered unto her, she first denied to be confessed
to a priest. And as touching the sacrament of the altar, she protested
that if she or any other did receive the sacrament so as Christ and his
apostles after him did deliver it, then she and they did receive it to their
comfort: but as it is now used in the church, she said that no man could
otherwise receive it than to his damnation, as she thought. Afterwards
sentence being read, she was committed to the sheriffs, and suffered witli
the rest, as a witness of Christ and of his truth, the 31st day of January.
Against Anne Albright, likewise appearing before the judge and his col-
leagues, it was also objected concerning the same matter of confession :
whereunto she answered in these words, " that she would not be confessed
of a priest;" and added moreover, speaking unto the priests, "You
priests," said she, " are the children of perdition, and can do no good by
your confession." She was condemned with the other four, and with them
also suffered quietly, and with great comfort, for Christ's religion.
In like manner Joan Sole, of the parish of Horton, was condemned of
the same Pharisees and priests, for not allowing confession auricular, and
for denying the real presence and substance of Christ to be in the sacra-
ment: who, after their pharisaical sentence being promulgated, was brought
to the stake with the other four, and sustained the like martyrdom.
The fifth and last of this heavenly company of martyrs was Joan Catmer,
of Hythe, wife of George Catmer, burned before. Being asked what she
said to confession, she denied to be confessed. And the judge speaking of
the sacrament of the altar, she affirmed that as then used it was a very idol.
In this her confession remaining and persisting, she was by the like sentence
cruelly of them condemned ; and so suffered with the aforesaid, ratifying
and confessing the true knowledge and doctrine of Christ Jesus our Saviour.
915
SECTION XIV.
THE LITE, STATE, AND MARTYRDOM OF THE REVEREND PASTOR AND
PREIATE, THOMAS CRANMER, ARCHBISHOP OF CANTERBURY.
As concerning the life and estate of Thomas Cranmer, late archbishop of
Canterbury, it is first to be noted and considered that the same Thomas
Cranmer, coming of an ancient parentage, from the conquest to be deducted,
was born in a village called Aslacton, in Nottinghamshire. Being from his
infancy kept at school, and brought up not without much good civility, he
came in process of time unto the university of Cambridge ; and there pros-
pering in right good knowledge amongst the better sort of students, was
chosen fellow of Jesus college in Cambridge. It was at that time, when
all good authors and fine writers being neglected, filthy barbarousness was
embraced in all schools and universities. The names and numbers of
liberal arts did only remain, the arts themselves were clean lost; and
divinity was fallen into the state, that being laden with articles and distinc-
tions, it served rather for the gain of a few than for the edification of many.
At length the tongues and other good learning began, by little and little, to
spring up again, and the books of Faber and Erasmus began to be much
occupied and had in good estimation, with a number of good authors be-
sides : in whom the said Cranmer took no small pleasure. At length, when
Martin Luther was risen up, the more bright and happy days of God's
knowledge did waken men's minds to truth ; at which time, he being about
thirty years old, gave his whole mind to discuss matters of religion.
So Cranmer, being master of arts, and fellow of Jesus college, it chanced
that he married a gentleman's daughter, by which he lost his fellowship, and
became a reader in Buckingham college. In order that he might with
the more diligence apply himself to his office of reading, he placed his
wife at an inn, in Cambridge, the mistress of which was a relation of
hers. On account of his frequent visits he was much noticed by some
popish merchants: on this arose the slanderous noise and report against
him, after he was preferred to the archbishopric of Canterbury. He
continued reader in Buckingham college till his wife died in child
birth. After this the masters and fellows of Jesus college, desirous of
their old companion, for his eminent learning, chose him again fellow of
the same college. Remaining at his study, he became in a few years
reader of the divinity lecture, and in such estimation was he held by the
whole university, that when doctor of divinity, he was commonly ap-
pointed to examine such as yearly proceed in commencement, either
bachelors or doctors, and by whose approbation the whole university
licensed them to proceed unto their degree, or by whose non-approbation
the university retained them until they were better furnished with know-
ledge and qualified for advancement.
Dr. Cranmer, ever favouring the knowledge of the scripture, would
not permit any to proceed in divinity, unless they were substantially
versed in the history of the Bible : by which certain friars and other
religious persons, who were principally brought up in the study of
916 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
school-authors, without regard to the authority of the scriptures, were
commonly rejected by him, so that he was greatly hated; yet it came
to pass in the end, that many of them, thus compelled to study the
scriptures, became afterwards very learned ; insomuch, that when they
became doctors of divinity, they could not too much extol Cranmer's
goodness towards them, who for a time had put them back, to initiate
them in better knowledge. His merit soon spreading abroad, he was
much solicited by Dr. Capon, to be one of the fellows in the founda-
tion of Cardinal Wolsey's college in Oxford, which he refused, not
without danger of offending. While he continued in Cambridge, the
important cause of Henry's divorce with the lady Katherine came into
question ; which being many ways, for the space of two or three years
amongst the canonists, civilians, and other learned men, diversely dis-
puted and debated, it came to pass that Dr. Cranmer, on account of
the plague being in Cambridge, resorted to Waltham-Abbey, to the
house of Mr. Cressey, whose wife was his relation, and whose two sons
he brought with him from Cambridge, they being his pupils.
During this summer, cardinals Campeins and Wolsey, being in commis-
sion from the pope, to hear and determine the great cause in controversy
between the king and queen, delayed until the month of August in hear-
ing the cause debated. When August was come, the cardinals little
caring to proceed to give sentence, took occasion to finish their commis-
sion, and to determine no further therein, pretending that it was not
permitted by the laws to keep courts of ecclesiastical matters in harvest
time. This sudden interruption so much enraged the king, that taking
it as a mock at the cardinals' hands, he commanded the dukes of Nor-
folk and Suffolk to dispatch immediately to Rome cardinal Campeius:
and in haste removed himself to Waltham for a night or two, while his
household removed to Greenwich : by which means it happened that the
harbingers, Dr. Stephen Gardiner, secretary, and Dr. Foxe, almoner,
came to lodge in the house of Mr. Cressey, where Dr. Cranmer resided.
When supper-time came, the three doctors met together; Gardiner and
Foxe were very much surprised at Cranmer being there. He declared
the cause, namely, because the plague was in Cambridge: and as they
were old acquaintance, the secretary and the almoner very well enter-
tained Dr. Cranmer, intending to learn his opinion concerning the great
business they had in hand. And as this occasion served, while they
were at supper, they conferred with Dr. Cranmer concerning the king's
cause, requesting him to give his opinion of it.
Cranmer answered, That he could say little to the matter, as he had
not studied nor looked for it. Notwithstanding, in his opinion they
made more ado in prosecuting the ecclesiastical law than needed. It
were better, he thought, that the question — Whether a man may marry
his brother's wife, or no? were discussed by the divines, and by the
authority of the word of God, whereby the conscience of the prince
might be better satisfied and quieted, than thus from year to year, by
unnecessary delays, to prolong the time, leaving the very truth of the
matter unsettled. There was but one truth in it, which the scripture
will soon make manifest, being by learned men well handled, and that
may be as well clone in England in the universities here, as at Rome,
ACCOUNT OF ARCHBISHOP CRANMKK. 917
or elsewhere in any foreign nation, the authority whereof will soon
compel any judge to come to definitive sentence: end therefore as he
took it, they might that way have made an end of the matter long
since. When Dr. Cranmer had thus ended his tale, the other two
liked well his device and wished they had proceeded so before, and
thereupon conceived some matter of council to instruct the king with,
who was then thinking to send to Rome again for a new commission.
Now the next day, when the king removed to Greenwich, recollecting
in himself, how he had been used by the cardinals, in thus deferring his
cause, his mind was very uneasy, and desirous to see an end of this
long and tedious suit, he called unto him the two principal managers of
his cause, Gardiner and Foxe, who related their conference with Dr.
Cranmer, and told the king the plan he had suggested for a more speedy
termination of the affair. The king accordingly sent for Dr. Cranmer,
approved and adopted his scheme, received him into favour, and advanced
him, on the death of archbishop Warham, to the see of Canterbury,
anno 1530.
Although the said Cranmer was now exalted to so great dignity and
honour, still was he compassed about by mighty enemies, and by many
crafty trains impugned; yet, through God's mighty providence working in
the king's heart to favour him, he rubbed out all king Henry's time ; and
under the government and protection of his son king Edward (to whom
Cranmer was godfather) his state was rather more advanced. Afterward,
this king Edward falling sick, and perceiving that his death was at hand,
and knowing that his sister Mary was wholly wedded unto popish religion,
bequeathed the succession of the realm to the lady Jane Grey, by consent
of all his council and lawyers. When all the nobles of the realm, states
and judges, had subscribed to this testament, they sent for the archbishop,
and required that he also would subscribe. Cranmer refused at the first ;
but after that he had spake with the king, and when they all agreed that by
law of the realm it might be so, with much ado he subscribed. Well, not
long after this king Edward died, a.d. 1553, being almost sixteen years
of age, to the great sorrow but greater calamity of the whole realm.
At the oppression of the good lord Cromwell, in king Henry's time, it
was fully determined that Cranmer also should be committed to prison ;
but he privily obtaining speech of the king, there upon his knees declared
his innocence in the matter of which he was accused ; and the king
delivered him his signet, saying, " Go thy ways ! if thou deceive me, I will
never trust thy bald pate again while I live." And thus he escaped that
present danger. Here also may be noted the saying which is constantly
affirmed of divers persons, that the said archbishop, with the lord Wriothes-
ley, saved the life of queen Mary, the king being determined to have off
her head for certain causes cf stubbornness ; whereupon the king afterward
said that Cranmer made intercession for her, which would his destruction,
and would trouble them all.
After king Edward's decease immediately it was commanded that the lady
Jane should be proclaimed queen ; but Mary, hearing of the death of her
brother, was established in the possession of the realm by the assistance of
the commons as ye heard before. This queen Mary, coming to London,
caused the duke of Northumberland and the duke of Suffolk to be executed,
918 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
and likewise the lady Jane, together with her husband. The rest of the
nobles, paying fines, were forgiven, the archbishop of Canterbury only
excepted ; for as yet the old grudge against Cranmer, for the divorcement
of her mother, remained hid in the bottom of her heart ; and besides she
remembered the state of religion changed, the cause whereof was imputed
to him.
Not long after Cranmer was condemned of treason, and committed to
the Tower ; and when the queen could not honestly deny him his pardon,
seeing all the rest were discharged, she released to him his action of
treason, and accused him only of heresy. Thus stood the cause of Cran-
mer, till at length it was determined by the queen and the council that he
should be removed from the Tower to Oxford, there to dispute with the
doctors and divines, to whom word was sent privily to prepare themselves.
After these said disputations were finished in Oxford, between the doctors
of both universities, and the three worthy bishops, Cranmer, Ridley, and
Latimer, ye heard then how sentence condemnatory was ministered against
them by Dr. Weston and others of the university ; whereby they were
judged to be heretics, and so committed to the mayor and sheriffs of Oxford.
But forasmuch as the sentence given against them was void in law, (for, at
that time, the authority of the pope was not yet received into the land,)
therefore was a new commission sent from Rome, and a new process framed
for the conviction of these reverend and learned men aforesaid.
At the coming down of the said commissioners, which was upon Thurs-
day the 12th of September, 1555, there was erected a solemn scaffold in
the east end of the church of St. Mary, over against the high altar, with
cloth of state very richly and sumptuously adorned, for bishop Brooks as
pope's legate, apparelled in pontificalibus, representing the pope's person.
On the right hand beneath him sat Dr. Martin, and on the left hand Dr.
Storey, the king and queen's commissioners, which were both doctors of
the civil law; and underneath them other doctors, scribes, and pharisees
also, with the pope's collector, and a rabblement of such other like.
And thus these bishops being placed in their pontificalibus, the bishop
of Canterbury was sent for to come before them. He came forth of the
prison to the church of St. Mary, set round with bills and glaves for fear
he should start away, being clothed in a fair black gown, with his hood on
both shoulders, such as doctors of divinity in the university use to wear,
and in his hand a white staff. After he was come into the church, and
did see them sit in their pontificalibus, he did not put off his cap to any
of them, but stood still till that he was called. . And anon one of the
proctors for the pope, or else his doctor, called, "Thomas archbishop of
Canterbury ! appear here, and make answer to that shall be laid to thy
charge ; that is to say, for blasphemy, incontinency, and heresy ; and make
answer here to the bishop of Gloucester, representing the pope's person !"
Upon this, Cranmer being brought more near unto the scaffold, where the
foresaid bishop sat, he first well viewed the place of judgment, and spying
where the king and queen's majesties' proctors were, putting off his cap,
he (first humbly bowing his knee to the ground) made reverence to the
one, and after to the other. That done, beholding the bishop in the face,
he put on his bonnet again; making no manner of token of obedience to-
wards him at all: whereat the bishop, being offended, said that it might
ACCOUNT OF ARCHBISHOP CRANMER. 919
beseem him right well, weighing the authority he did represent, to do his
duty unto him. Whereunto Dr. Cranmer answered, that he had once
taken a solemn oath, never to consent to the admitting of the bishop of
Rome's authority into this realm of England again ; that he had done it
advisedly, and meant by God's grace to keep it; and therefore would
commit nothing either by sign or token which might argue his consent to
the receiving of the same; and so he desired the said bishop to judge of
him. He did it, he said, not for any contempt to his person, which he
could have been content to have honoured as well as any of the others, if
his commission had come from as good an authority as theirs. When,
after many means used, they perceived that the archbishop would not
move his bonnet, the bishop of Gloucester proceeded with studied elo-
quence and painted art in his oration ; and after he had finished, Dr.
Martin took the matter in hand.
After that Dr. Martin had ended his oration, the archbishop said, " My
lord, I do not acknowledge this session of yours, nor yet you y my mislawful
judge ; neither would I have appeared this day before you, but that I was
brought hither as a prisoner. And therefore I openly here renounce you
as my judge, protesting that my meaning is not to make any answer, as in
a lawful judgment, (for then would I be silent,) but only for that I am
bound in conscience to answer every man of that hope which I have in
Jesus Christ, by the counsel of St. Peter ; and lest by my silence many of
those who are weak, here present, might be offended. And so I desire
that my answers may be accepted as extra judicialia." When he had
ended his protestation he said, " Shall I then make my answer ?" To whom
Dr. Martin answered, " As you think good ; no man shall let you." And
here the archbishop, kneeling down on both knees towards the west, said
first the Lord's Prayer; then, rising up, he reciteth the articles of the creed;
which done he entereth on his profession of faith.
Toward the close of the session, Dr. Martin demanded of Dr. Cranmer,
who was supreme head of the church of England ? " Marry," quoth my
lord of Canterbury, " Christ is head of this member, as he is of the whole
body of the universal church." " Why," quoth Dr. Martin, "you made
king Henry the eighth supreme head of the church." " Yea," said the
archbishop, " of all the people of England, as well ecclesiastical as tem-
poral." " And not of the church ?" said Martin. " No," said he ; "for
Christ only is the head of his church, and of the faith and religion of the
same. The king is head and governor of his people, which are the visible
church." " What," quoth Martin, "you never durst tell the king so."
" Yes, that I durst," quoth he; " and in the publication of his style, wherein
he was named supreme head of the church, there was never other thing
meant." A number of other fond and foolish objections were made, with
repetition whereof I thought not to trouble the reader.
After that they had received his answers to all their objections, they
cited him to appear at Rome within fourscore days, to make there his per-
sonal answers; which he said, if the king and queen would send him, he
would be content to do. And so thence he was carried to prison again,
where he continually remained, notwithstanding that he was commanded
to appear at Rome. Furthermore, though the said archbishop was detained
in strait prison, so that he could not appear, (as was notorious both in
920 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
England and also in the Romish court,) yet in the end of the said fourscore
days was that worthy martyr decreed " contumax," that is, sturdily, fro-
wardly, and wilfully absent, and in pain of the same his absence con-
demned and put to death.
And as touching the said executory letters of the pope sent to the king
and queen, by virtue of that commission, the bishop of Ely, and Bonner
bishop of London, were assigned by the king and queen to proceed in the
execution thereof upon the 14th day of February. These two coming to
Oxford upon St. Valentine's day, as the pope's delegates with a new com-
mission from Rome, by the virtue thereof commanded the archbishop afore-
said to come before them, in the choir of Christ's church, before the high
altar ; where they sitting (according to their manner) in their pontificalibus,
first began to read their commission, the which came from the pope,
" plenitudine potestatis ;" supplying all manner of defects in law or pro-
cess committed in dealing with the archbishop, and giving them full
authority to proceed to deprivation and degradation of him, and so upon
excommunication to deliver him up to the secular power, " omni appella-
tione remota." When the commission was read they proceeded thereupon
to his degradation ; and when they would have taken his crosier-staff out of
his hand, he held it fast, and refused to deliver the same ; and withal, imitat-
ing the example of Martin Luther, pulled an appeal out of his left sleeve,
which he there and then delivered unto them, saying, " I appeal to the
next general council ; and herein I have comprehended my cause and form
of it, which I desire to be admitted ; " and prayed divers of the standers
by, by name to be witnesses, and especially master Curtop.
This appeal being put up to Thirleby the bishop of Ely, he said, " My
lord, our commission is to proceed against you, ' omni appellatione remota,'
and therefore we cannot admit it. But," he added, '.' if it may be ad-
mitted, it shall," and so received it of him. Then began he to persuade
earnestly with the archbishop to consider his state, promising to become a
suitor to the king and queen for him. Afterward, they proceeded with
his degradations ; and whilst they were thus doing Cranmer said, " All
this needed not; I had myself done with this gear long ago." Last of all
they stripped him out of his gown into his jacket, and put upon him a
poor yeoman-beadle's gown, full bare and nearly worn, a townsman's cap
on his head, and so delivered him to the secular power.
While the archbishop was thus remaining in durance, (whom they had
kept now in prison almost three years,) the doctors and divines of Oxford
busied themselves all that ever they could, to have him recant, essaying
by all crafty practices and allurements they might devise how to bring their
purpose to pass, specially Henry Sydal and John de Villa Garcia. First,
they set forth how acceptable it would be both to the king and queen, and
especially how gainful to him, and for his soul's health. They added how
the council and noble men bare him good will ; and put him in hope that
he should not only have his life, but also be restored to his ancient dignity,
saying, it was but a small matter and so easy that they required him to do,
only that he would subscribe to a few words with his own hands ; which, if
he did, there should be nothing in the whole realm that the queen would
not easily grant him, whether he would have riches or dignity ; or else if
he had rather live a private life in quiet rest, in whatsoever place he listed,
.ACCOUNT OF AIICIIBISIIOP CRANMER. 921
witliout all public ministry, only that he would set his name in two words to
a little loaf of paper. But if he refused there was no hope of health and
pardon, for the queen was so purposed that she would have Cranmer a
catholic, or else no Cranmer at all. Moreover, they exhorted him that he
would look to his wealth, his estimation and quietness, saying that he was
not so old but that many years yet remained in this his so lusty age ; and
if he would not do it in respect of the queen, yet he should do it for respect
of his life, and not suffer that other men should be more careful for his
health than he was himself. Finally, if the desire of life did nothing move
him, yet he should remember that to die is grievous in all ages, and espe-
cially in these his years and flower of dignity it were more grievous ; but
to die in the fire and such torments is most grievous of all.
With these and like provocations, these fair flatterers ceased not to
solicit and urge to their side ; whose force his manly constancy did a great
while resist. But at last, when they made no end of calling and crying
upon him, the archbishop being overcome, whether through their impor-
tunity, or by his own imbecility, or of what mind I cannot tell, at length
gave his hand, though it was against his conscience. But so it pleaseth
God, that so great virtues in this archbishop should not be had in too
much admiration of us witliout some blemish, or else that the falsehood of
the popish generation by this means might be made more evident, or
else to minish the confidence of our own strength, that in him should appear
an example of man's weak imbecility.
This recantation was soon caused by the doctors and prelates to be im-
printed, and set abroad in all men's hands. All this while Cranmer was
in uncertain assurance of his life, although the same was faithfully promised
to him by the doctors; but after that they had their purpose, the rest they
committed to all adventure, as became men of that religion to do. The
queen received his recantation very gladly, but of her purpose to put him
to death she would nothing relent. And now was Cranmer's cause in a
miserable taking, who neither inwardly had any quietness in his own con-
science, nor yet outwardly any help in his adversaries.
. In the meantime, while these things were adoing in the prison among the
doctors, the queen taking secret counsel how to dispatch Cranmer out of the
way, appointed Dr. Cole, and secretly gave him in commandment, that
against the 21st of March he should prepare a funeral sermon for Cran-
mer's burning. Soon after, the lord Williams of Thame, and the lord
Chandos, sir Thomas Bridges, and sir John Brown were sent for, with other
worshipful men and justices, and commanded in the queen's name to be
at Oxford at the same day, with their servants and retinue, lest Cranmer's
death should raise there any tumult.
Cole the doctor, having this lesson given him before, and charged by her
commandment, returned to Oxford ready to play his part ; who, two days
before the execution, came into the prison to Cranmer, to try whether he
abode in the catholic faith wherein before he had left Jiim. To whom,
when Cranmer had answered, that by God's grace he would daily be more
confirmed in the catholic faith ; Cole, departing for that time, the next
day repaired to the archbishop again, giving no signification as yet of his
death that was prepared. In the morning appointed for his execution, the
said Cole, coming to him, asked him if he had any money ; to whom
922 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
when Cranmer answered that he had none, he delivered him fifteen crowns
to give to the poor to whom he would ; and so exhorting him so much as
he could to constancy in faith, departed thence about his business.
By this partly, and other like arguments, Cranmer began more and more
to surmise what they went about. Then there came to him the Spanish
friar, John de Villa Garcia, witness of his recantation, bringing a paper with
articles which Cranmer should openly profess in his recantation before the
people. But the archbishop, thinking that the time was at hand in which
he could no longer dissemble the profession of his faith with Christ's peo-
ple, put secretly into his bosom his prayer with his exhortation, which he
minded to recite to the people, before he should make the last profession
of his faith, fearing lest, if they had heard the confession of his faith first,
they would not afterward have suffered him to exhort the people.
Soon after, about nine of the o'clock, the lord Williams, sir Thomas
Bridges, sir John Brown, and the other justices, with certain other noble-
men that were sent of the queen's council, came to Oxford with a great
train of waiting men. Also of the multitude on every side (as is wont in
such a matter) was made a great concourse, and greater expectation.
Cranmer at length cometh from the prison of Bocardo into St. Mary's
church, (the chief church in the university,) with the mayor and aldermen,
walking between two friars. There was a stage set over against the pulpit,
where Cranmer had his standing, waiting until Cole made him ready to
his sermon. He that was late archbishop, metropolitan, and primate of
all England, and the king's privy councillor, being now in bare and ragged
gown, and ill-favouredly clothed, with an old square cap, exposed to the
contempt of all men, did admonish men not only of his own calamity, but
also of their state and fortune. In this habit, when he had stood a good
space upon the stage, turning to a pillar near adjoining thereunto, he
lifted up his hands to heaven, and prayed unto God once or twice, till
at the length Dr. Cole coming into the pulpit began his sermon. Pro-
ceeding a little from the beginning, he took occasion by and by to turn his
tale to Cranmer, and with many hot words reproved him, that once he,
being indued with the favour and feeling of wholesome and catholic doc-
trines, fell into the contrary opinion of pernicious error.
All this meantime, with the greatest grief, Cranmer stood hearing his
sermon: one while lifting up his hands and eyes unto heaven, and then
again for shame letting them down to the earth, while the tears gushed
from his eyes. Great commiseration and pity moved all men's hearts,
that beheld so heavy a countenance, and such abundance of tears in an
old man of so reverend dignity. Cole having ended his sermon, he
called back the people that were ready to depart. " Brethren," said
he, " lest any man should doubt of this man's earnest conversion and
repentance, you shall hear him speak before you; and therefore I pray
you, Mr. Cranmer, to perform that now which you promised not long
ago; namely, that you would openly express the true and undoubted
profession of your faith, that you may take away all suspicion from men
and that all men may understand that you are a catholic indeed."
To this Cranmer, rising up and uncovering his head, replied thus:
" I will do it, and that with a good will. Good people, my dearly
beloved brethren in Christ, I beseech you most heartily to pray for me
ACCOUNT OF ARCHBISHOP CRANMER. 923
to Almighty God, that he will forgive mc all my sins and offences,
which are without number, and great above measure. But yet one
thing grieveth my conscience more than all the rest, whereof, God
willing, I intend to speak more hereafter. But how great and how many
soever my sins be, I beseech you to pray to God of his mercy to pardon
and forgive them all." And here kneeling down he said the following
prayer.
" O Father of heaven, O Son of God, Redeemer of the world, O
Holy Ghost, three persons and one God, have mercy upon me, most
wretched caitiff and miserable sinner. I have offended both against
heaven and earth, more than my tongue can express. Whither then
may I go, or whither shall I flee; to heaven I may be ashamed to lift
up mine eyes, and in earth I find no place of refuge or succour. To
thee, therefore, O Lord, do I run ; to thee do I humble myself. O Lord
my God, my sins be great, but yet have mercy upon me for thy great
mercy. The great mystery that God became man was not wrought for
little or few offences/ Thou didst not give thy Son, O heavenly Father,
unto death for small sins only, but for all the greatest sins of the
world, so that the sinner return to thee with his whole heart, as I do at
this present. Wherefore have mercy on me, O God, whose property
is always to have mercy; have mercy upon me, O Lord, for thy great
mercy/ I crave nothing for mine own merits, but for thy name's sake,
that it may be allowed thereby, and for thy dear Son Jesus Christ's sake.
And now, therefore, our Father of heaven, hallowed be thy name," etc.
Rising he said — "Everyman, good people, desireth at the time of his
death to give some good exhortation, that others may remember the
same before their death, and be the better thereby: so I beseech God
grant me grace that I may speak something at this my departing, whereby
God may be glorified, and you edified. It is a heavy cause to see that
so many folk so much dote upon the love of this false world, and be so
careful for it, that of the love of God, or the world to come, they seem
to care very little or nothing. Therefore this shall be my first exhorta-
tion, that you set not your minds overmuch upon this deceitful world,
but upon God, and upon the world to come, and to learn to know what
this lesson meaneth which St. John teacheth, that the love of this world
is hatred against God.
" Next unto God, you obey your king and queen willingly and gladly
without murmuring or grudging; not for fear of them only, but much
more for the fear of God ; knowing that they be God's ministers, appointed
by God to rule and govern you : and, therefore, whosoever resisteth them,
resisteth the ordinance of God. Then I further entreat that you love alto-
gether like brethren and sisters. For, alas ! pity it is to see what contention
and hatred one christian man beareth to another, not taking each other as
brother and sister, but rather as strangers and mortal enemies. But I
pray you learn and bear well away this one lesson, to do good unto all
men, as much as in you lieth, and to hurt no man, no more than you
would hurt your own natural loving brother or sister. For this you may
be sure of, that whosoever hateth any person, and goeth about mali-
ciously to hinder or hurt him, surely, and without all doubt, God is not
with that man, although he think himself ever so much in God's favour.
924 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
" I exhort them that have great substance and riches of this world,
that they will well consider and weigh three sayings of the scripture:
one is of our Saviour himself, who saith, ' It is hard for a rich man to
enter into the kingdom of heaven.' A sore saying, and yet spoken by
him who knoweth the truth. Another is of St. John, whose saying is
this — 'He that hath the substance of this world, and seeth his brother
in necessity, and shutteth up his mercy from him, how can he say that
he loveth God?' One more saying I wish you to remember is of St.
James, who speaketh to the covetous rich man, after this manner —
'Weep you and howl for the misery that shall come upon you: your
riches do rot, your clothes be moth-eaten, your gold and silver doth
canker and rust, and their rust shall bear witness against you, and con-
sume you like fire; you gather a hoard or treasure of God's indigna-
tion against the last day.' Let them that be rich ponder well these
three sentences: for if they ever had occasion to shew their charity,
they have it now at this present, the poor people being so many, and
victuals so dear.
"And now forasmuch as I am come to the end of my life, whereupon
hangeth all my life past, and all my life to come, either to live with my
Master Christ for ever in joy, or else to be in pain for ever with wicked
devils in hell, and I see before mine eyes presently either heaven ready
to receive me, or else hell ready to swallow me up : I shall therefore
declare unto you my very faith how I believe, without any colour of dissi-
mulation; for now is no time to dissemble, whatsoever I have said or
written in times past." He then recited the creed, and added — " I believe
every article of the catholic faith, every word and sentence taught by
our Saviour Christ, his apostles and prophets, in the New and Old
Testament.
" And now I come to the great thing which so much troubleth my con-
science, more than any thing that ever I did or said in my whole life, and
that is the setting abroad of a writing contrary to the truth ; which now
I here renounce and refuse, as things written with my hand contrary to
the truth which I thought in my heart, and written for fear of death,
and to save my life if it might be; and that is, all such bills and papers
which I have written or signed with my hand since my degradation,
wherein I have written many things untrue. And forasmuch as my hand
hath offended, writing contrary to my heart, therefore my hand shall
first be punished ; for when I come to the fire, it shall be first burned.
As for the pope, I refuse him, as Christ's enemy and antichrist, with all
his false doctrine. As for the sacrament, I believe as I have taught in
my book against the bishop of Winchester, which my book teacheth so
true a doctrine of the sacrament, that it shall stand at the last day before
the judgment of God, where the papistical doctrine contrary thereto
shall be ashamed to shew her face."
Here the standers-by were all astonished and amazed, and looked
upon one another, whose expectation he had so notably deceived. Some
began to admonish him of his recantation, and to accuse him of false-
hood. Briefly, it was a world to see the doctors beguiled of so great a
hope; for they looked for a glorious victory by this man's retractation. As
soon as they heard these things they began to rage, fret, and fume : and so
MARTYRDOM OF ARCHBISHOP CRANMER. 925
much the more, because they could not revenge their grief; for they
could no longer threaten or hurt him. For the most miserable man in
the world can die but once ; whereas of necessity he must needs die
that day. And so when they could do nothing else to him, yet lest they
should say nothing, they ceased not to object unto him his falsehood
and dissimulation. To this he replied — "Ah, my masters, do not you
take it so. Always since I lived hitherto, I have been a hater of false-
hood, and a lover of simplicity, and never before this time have I dis-
sembled." In saying this he wept bitterly. And when he began to speak
more of the sacrament and of the papacy, some of them began to cry
out and bawl, especially Cole, who cried out, "Stop the heretic's mouth
and take him away ! "
Then Cranmer being pulled down from the stage, was led to the fire,
accompanied by those friars, vexing, troubling, and threatening him
most cruelly. " What madness," say they, " has brought thee again
into this error, by which thou wilt draw innumerable souls with thee into
hell ? " To whom he answered nothing, but directed all his talk to the
people, saving that to one troubling him in the way he spake, and ex-
horted him to get home to his study, and apply to his book diligently ;
saying, if he did earnestly call upon God, by reading more, he should
get knowledge. But the other, raging and foaming was almost out of
his wits, always having this in his mouth, Nonfecisti ? Didst thou it not?
When he came to the place where the holy bishops and martyrs of
God, Latimer and Ridley, were burnt before him for a confession of the
truth, kneeling down he prayed to God; and not long tarrying in his
prayers, putting off his garments to his shirt, he prepared himself to death.
His shirt was made long, down to his feet, which were bare; likewise his
head, when both his caps were off, was so bare that one hair could not
be seen upon it. His beard was so long and thick, that it covered his
face, and his reverend countenance moved the hearts both of his friends
and enemies. Then the Spanish friars, John and Richard, began to
exhort him, and play their parts with him afresh ; but Cranmer, with
steadfast purpose, abiding in the profession of his doctrine, gave his
hand to certain old men and others that stood by, bidding them farewell.
When he had thought to have done so likewise to Mr. Ely, the latter
drew back his hand and refused, saying, it was not lawful to salute he-
retics, and especially such an one as falsely returned to the opinions he
had forsworn. And if he had known before that he would have done so,
he would never have used his company so familiarly, and chid those
Serjeants and citizens who had not refused to give him their hands. This
Mr. Ely was a student in divinity, and had been lately made a priest,
being then one of the fellows in Brazen-nose college.
Then was an iron chain tied about Cranmer, whom when they perceived
to be more steadfast than that he could be moved from his sentence, they
commanded the fire to be set unto him. And when the wood was kindled
and the fire began to burn near him, stretching out his arm, he put his
right hand into the flame, which he held so steadfast and unmovable,
(saving that once with the same hand he wiped his face,) that all men might
see his hand burned before his body was touched. His body did so abide
the burning of the flame with such constancy and steadfastness, that standing
926 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
always in one place without moving his body, he seemed to move no more
than the stake to which he was bound; his eyes were lifted up into heaven,
and oftentimes he repeated " his unworthy right hand," so long as his
voice would suffer him ; and using often the words of Stephen, " Lord
Jesus, receive my spirit," in the greatness of the flames he gave up the
ghost, in the sixty-seventh year of his age.
And this was the end of this learned archbishop, whom, lest by evil
subscribing he should have perished, by well recanting God preserved ;
and lest he should have lived longer with shame and reproof, it pleased
God rather to take him away, to the glory of his name and profit of his
church. So good was the Lord to his church, in fortifying the same with the
blood and testimony of such a martyr ; and so good also to the man with this
cross of tribulation, to purge his offences in this world, not only of his re-
cantation, but also of his standing against John Lambert and master Allen,
or if there were any other with whose burning and blood his hands had
been before anything polluted. Thus have you the story of the life and
death of this reverend archbishop and martyr of God, and also of divers
other the learned sort of Christ's martyrs burned in queen Mary's time, of
whom Cranmer was the last, being burned about the very middle time of
the reign of that queen, and almost the very middle man of all the martyrs
which were burned in all her reign besides.
Divers books, treatises, and letters the said Thomas Cranmer wrote,
both in prison and out of prison, the which we have no space here to in-
sert, saving an extract from a letter to queen Mary, which here followeth :
" I learned by Dr. Martin, that on the day of your majesty's corona-
tion, you took an oath of obedience to the pope of Rome, and at the
same time you took another oath to this realm, to maintain the laws,
liberties, and customs of the same. And if your majesty did make an
oath to the pope, I think it was according to the other oaths which he
useth to administer to princes; which is, to be obedient to him, to defend
his person, to maintain his authority, honour, laws, lands, and privileges.
And if it be so, then I beseech your majesty to look upon your oath made
to the crown and realm, and to compare and weigh the two oaths to-
gether, to see how they do agree, and then do as your majesty's conscience
shall direct you : for I am surely persuaded, that willingly your majesty
will not offend, nor do against your conscience for any thing.
"Butlfear there are contradictions in your oaths, and that those who
should have informed your grace thoroughly, did not their duties therein.
And if your majesty ponder the two oaths diligently, I think you shall
perceive you were deceived ; and then your highness may use the mat-
ter as God shall put in your heart. Furthermore, I am kept here from
the company of learned men, from books, from counsel, from pen and
ink, except at this time, to write unto your majesty, which were all ne-
cessary for a man in my case. Wherefore I beseech your majesty that
I may have such of these as may stand with your majesty's pleasure.
And as for my appearance at Rome, if your majesty wiil give me leave,
I will appear there. And I trust that God shall put in my mouth to
defend his truth there as well as here. But I refer it wholly to your
majesty's pleasure."
927
SECTION XV.
CONTINUATION OF FAITHFUL MARTYRS FOR THE CAUSE OF CHRIST
WHO SUFFERED BETWEEN MARCH AND SEPTEMBER 1556.
About the same time that archbishop Cranmer was burned at Oxford,
suffered likewise in Ipswich, Agnes the wife of Robert Potten, and Joan
wife of Michael Trunchtield, a shoemaker. Their opinion was that in the
sacrament was the memorial only of Christ's death and passion. For this
they were burned. In whose suffering their constancy worthily was to be
wondered at, who, being' so simple women, so manfully stood to the con-
fession and testimony of God's word and verity ; insomuch that when they
had prepared themselves ready to the fire, with comfortable words of the
Scripture they earnestly required the people to credit and to lay hold on
the word of God, and not upon man's devices and inventions. Albeit both
of them did so joyfully suffer, as it was marvelled at of those that knew
them, and did behold their end. The Lord grant we may do the like. Amen.
After these two women of Ipswich succeeded three men, which were
burnt the same month in one fire at Salisbury. Their names were John
Spicer, freemason ; William Coberley, tailor; John Maundrel, husband-
man. These three on a certain Sunday agreed together to go to their
parish church called Keevil, where the said Maundrel and the other two,
seeing the parishioners in the procession to follow and worship the idol
there carried, advertised them to leave the same, and return to the living
God. After this the vicar came into the pulpit, who there being about to
read his bead-roll, and to pray for the souls in purgatory, the said John
Maundrel cried, "That was the pope's pinfold," the other two affirming
the same. After which words, by commandment of the priest, they were
had to the stocks, where they remained till their service was done. They
were then brought before a justice ; and so the next day carried to
Salisbury, and presented before bishop Capon, W. Geffrey being chancellor
of the diocese ; by whom they were imprisoned, and oftentimes examined
of their faith in their houses, but seldom openly.
At their last examination in the parish church of Fisherton Anger, the
chancellor read their condemnation, and so delivered them to the sheriff;
and the next day after, being the 24th of March 1556, they were carried
out of the common gaol to a place betwixt Salisbury and Wilton, where
were two posts set for them to be burnt at. Coming to the place, they
kneeled down, and made their prayers secretly together ; and then being
disclothed to their shirts, John Maundrel spake with a loud voice, " Not
for all Salisbury !" which words men judged to be an answer to the sheriff,
which offered him the queen's pardon if he would recant. And after that,
in like manner spake John Spicer, saying : " This is the joyfullest day
that ever I saw." Thus they most constantly gave their bodies to the fire
and their souls to the Lord, for the testimony of his truth.
About the 23rd day of April, 1556, were burned in Smithfield in one
fire, these six constant martyrs of Christ, suffering for the profession of the
gospel, namely, Robert Drakes, minister; William Tyms, curate; Richard
Spurge, shearman ; Thomas Spurge, fuller ; John Cavel, weaver ; and
928 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
George Ambrose, fuller. These were all inhabitants of Essex, and so of
the diocese of London, and were sent up, some by the lord Rich, and
some by others, at different times, to Gardiner, bishop of Winchester,
then lord chancellor of England, about the 22nd day of March, 1555 ;
who, after a short examination, sent them, some unto the King's-bench,
and others unto the Marshalsea ; where th§y remained almost the whole
year, until the death of the bishop, and had during that time nothing
said unto them. Whereupon, after that Dr. Heath, archbishop of York,
was chosen to the office of lord chancellor, four of these persecuted
brethren, weary of their long imprisonment, made their supplication to
Dr. Heath, requiring his aid for their deliverance. Accordingly they
were examined, first by Sir Richard Reed, an officer in the court of
chancery, and afterwards brought before Bonner.
Robert Drakes was parson of Thundersley, in Essex, and had theie
remained for three years. He was first made deacon by Dr. Taylor, of
Hadley, at the command of Dr. Cranmer. And within one year after,
he was, by the archbishop and Dr. Ridley, admitted minister of God's
holy word and sacraments, and was presented to the benefice of Thun-
dersley. On his coming to the bishop of Winchester, he was by him
demanded whether he could conform himself like a subject to the laws
of this realm then in force. To whom he said he would abide all laws
that stood with the laws of God ; thereupon he was committed to prison,
where he and the rest above named did remain ever since.
William Tyms, curate of Hockley in Essex, was brought into his troubles
by justice Tyrrel, in whose woods he had preached twice, by whom he
was sent to London to the bishop, and from him to the bishop of Win-
chester, and so from him to the King's Bench. On the 21st of March
the said William Tyms and Thomas Drakes, with the other four, were
brought before bishop Bonner, who inquired of them their faith upon the
sacrament of the altar. To whom they answered, that the body of Christ
was not in the sacrament of the altar really and corporally, after the words
of consecration by the priest : of which opinion they had been long time.
About the 28th of the same month they were again brought before Bonner ;
when, on adhering to the articles objected against them, they were con-
demned, committed to the custody of the sheriffs of London, and sealed
their faith with the shedding of their blood the 14th clay of April.
John Harpole, of Rochester, and Joan Beach, a widow of Tunbridge,
suffered martyrdom at this time ; having been condemned by Maurice,
bishop of Rochester. John Hullier, a clergyman educated in Eton
school, from whence he went to King's college, in Cambridge suffered
also under doctor Thirleby, bishop of Ely, and his chancellor, for the
sincere preaching of the gospel. By certain letters which he left behind,
it appeareththathe was zealous in the doctrine of truth, which every true
christian ought to embrace. His martyrdom was on the second day of
April, 1556. Six faithful brethren also suffered for their confession at
Colchester, on the 28th of the same month. Their names were,
Christopher Lyster, of Dagenham, husbandman; John Mace, of Col-
chester, apothecary; John Spencer, of Colchester, weaver; Simon
Joyne, sawyer; Richard Nichols, of Colchester, weaver; John Ham-
mond, of Colchester, tanner.
ACCOUNT OF THOMAS DROWRY. 929
Hugh Laverock, a lame old man, of the parish of Barking, and John
Ap price, a blind man, were burned at Stratford-le-Bow the 15th day of
May. Being - had before Bonner, in the consistory of Paul's, the 9th day
of the same month, the bishop asked Apprice what he would sayi To
whom he answered, " Your doctrine that ye set forth and teach is so
agreeable with the world, and embraced of the same, that it cannot be
agreeable with the scripture of God. And ye are not of the catholic
church ; for ye make laws to kill men, and make the queen your hang-
man." At which words, the bishop being very loth to delay their con-
demnation, commanded that they should be brought after him to Fulham,
whither he before dinner did go : and there in the afternoon, after his
solemn manner, in the open church, he pronounced the definitive sentence
against them. At their death, Hugh Laverock, after he was chained, cast
away his crutch ; and comforting John Apprice, his fellow-martyr, said to
him, " Be of good comfort, my brother, for my lord of London is our good
physician. He will heal us both shortly ; thee of thy blindness, and me of
my lameness." And so patiently these two saints of God together suffered.
The next day after were brought to the fire three women, with whom
also was adjoined another. The names of these were : Katherine Hut of
Bocking, widow ; Joan Horns of Billericay, maid ; Elizabeth Thackvel of
Great Burstead, maid ; Margaret Ellis of Billericay, maid ; who, witli
divers others, were persecuted and sent up to Bonner by sir John Mor-
daunt and Edmund Tyrrel, esquire, justices of peace. Katherine Hut,
being required of the sacrament to say her mind, openly protested, saying,
" I deny it to be God ; because it is a dumb God, and made with men's
hands." They all persisting in the like constancy were condemned of
Bonner to the fire ; but as touching Margaret Ellis, before the time of her
burning came, she was prevented by death in Newgate prison. The other
three were had to Smithfield, and there gave their bodies to the tormentors
and their spirits to God, for whose glory they were willing to suffer.
Ye heard a little before of two men, the one blind, and the other lame.
And here is not to be forgotten another as godly a couple, which suffered
for the same cause at Gloucester : of the which two, the one was a blind
boy, named Thomas Drowry, and the other a bricklayer, named Thomas
Croker. Concerning the blind boy, how long he was in prison, and in
what year he suffered, I am not certain. Of this, credible intelligence I
have received by the testimony of the registrar then of Gloucester, that the
said blind boy at his last examination was brought by the officers before
Dr. Williams, then chancellor, sitting judicially with the said registrar in
the consistory in the church of Gloucester. The chancellor having minis-
tered unto the boy such articles as were accustomed in such cases, asked
him — " Dost thou not believe, that after the words of consecration spoken
by the priest, there remaineth the very real body of Christ in the sacrament
of the altar?" To whom the blind boy answered, " No, that I do not."
Chan. Then thou art a heretic, and shalt be burned. But who hath
taught thee this heresy ?
Drowry. You, master chancellor ; even in yonder place, [pointing with
his hand towards the pulpit, standing upon the north side of the church :]
when you preached there [naming the day] a sermon to all men, as well
as to me, upon the sacrament. You said, the sacrament was to be received
3o
930 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
spiritually by faith, and not carnally and really, as the papists have
heretofore taught.
Chan. Then do as I have done, and thou shalt live as I do, and
escape burning.
Drowry. Though you can so easily dispense with yourself, and mock
with God, the world, and your own conscience, yet will I not so do. 1
will not recant.
Chan. Then the Lord have mercy upon thee, for I will read the con-
demnation sentence against thee.
Drowry. God's will be fulfilled.
The registrar being herewith somewhat moved, stood up, and said to
the chancellor : " Fie for shame, man ! will you read the sentence against
him, and condemn yourself? Away, away, and substitute some other to
give sentence and judgment." To whom the chancellor replied, " No,
registrar, I will obey the law, and give sentence myself, according to mine
office. " And so he read the sentence condemnatory against the boy, (with
an unhappy tongue, and a more unhappy conscience,) delivering him over
to the secular power; who on the 15th of May brought the blind boy to
the place of execution, at Gloucester; together with Thomas Croker, con-
demned also for the like testimony of the truth, where both, in one fire, most
constantly and joyfully yielded their souls to the hands of the Lord Jesus.
After the death of these above rehearsed, were three men burnt at
Beccles in Suffolk, in one fire, about the 21st of May, anno 1556, whose
names are here specified: Thomas Spicer of Winston, labourer; John
Denny, and Edmund Poole. They were condemned by Dr. Dunning, com-
mitted to the secular power, and the next day after were all burnt together.
Whereupon it is thought, that the writ was not yet come down, nor could
be, the lord chancellor bishop Heath being the same time at London.
By the procurement of sir John Tyrrel and others of his colleagues, many
persons were driven from their homes in Suffolk. Among whom was
Mrs. Twaites, a lady of upwards of 60 years of age. The following
June, about the 6th of the month, four martyrs suffered together at
Lewes; their names were, Thomas Harland, John Oswald, Thomas
Avington and Thomas Reed, who had all suffered a long imprisonment
in the King's-Bench. Soon after, in the same town, were burned
Thomas Whood, minister, and Thomas Milles, for resisting the erroneous
doctrine of the church of Rome. And in a few days William Adderhall,
minister, died in the prison of the King's-Bench, and was buried in the
prison-yard : also John Clement, wheelwright, who was buried upon the
dunghill. There was also about that time a young man, a merchant's
servant, who for the like godliness suffered cruel persecution from the
papists, and was burnt at Leicester. And not long after the death of
this youth, there were burned in one fire at Stratford le Bow, by London,
eleven men and two women! These were named, Henry Adlington,
Laurence Parnam, Henry Wye, William Hallywel, Thomas Bowyer,
George Searles, Edmund Hurst, Lyon Cawch, Ralph Jackson, John
Derifall, John Routh, Elizabeth Pepper, Agnes George. Unto these
Dr. Darbyshire, Bonner's chancellor, in form of law, ministered the
same articles that were pronounced unto Thomas Whittle and his com-
panions, mentioned before.
CONDEMNATION OF JULIUS PALMER AND OTHERS. 931
When these thirteen were condemned, and tlie day had arrived on
which they should suffer, which was the 27th of June, 1556, they were
canned from Newgate in London, to Stratford, and there divided into
two classes and placed in two several chambers. Afterwards the sheriff,
who there attended upon them, came to the one part, and told them
that the other had recanted, that their lives would therefore be saved,
exhorting them to do the like, and not to cast themselves away. Unto
whom they answered, that their faith was not built upon man, but on
Christ crucified. Then the sheriff perceiving no good to be done with
them, went to the other part, and said the like to them, that they with
whom they had been before, had recanted, and should therefore not
suffer death, counselling them to the like, and not wilfully to kill them-
selves, but be wise. Unto whom they also answered as their brethren
had done before, that their faith was not built on man, but on Christ
and his word. He then led them to the place where they should suffer,
and being there altogether, they most earnestly prayed unto the Lord,
and then joyfully went to the stake and kissed it, and embraced it very
heartily. The eleven men were tied to three stakes, and the two women
loose in the middle without any stake, and thus they were all burnt in
one fire.
About the same time were burned in one fire, at Bury in Suffolk,
Roger Bernard, Adam Foster, and Robert Lawson. In an early part
of July died in the King's Bench, where he had suffered a long impri-
sonment, Mr. John Careless, of Coventry, a weaver. He was a young
man, had a wife and a young family. He left behind him several letters,
which discovered a considerable knowledge of scripture and great firm-
ness and piety.
About July 16 suffered Julius Palmer, John Gwin, and Thomas Askin.
Palmer was a young man of respectable family, his father having been
mayor of Coventry, at which town Julius was born. He had been
placed at Magdalen College, Oxford, where he had made unusual pro-
gress in his studies, and was remarked for the sharpness of his wit and
for his powers of disputation. During the reign of Edward, he was a
zealous advocate for the Romish church, and for the contumacy he
shewed to the protestant teachers, and his hostile disposition towards
them, he was expelled the college. Soon after the accession of Mary,
however, he was restored to his living, when, happening to read with
attention Calvin's Institutes, he was convinced of the truth, renounced,
the errors of popery, openly avowed the protestant doctrines, and con-
sequently became a subject of persecution. In his distress he applied
to his mother for aid ; but he got nothing but curses from her for his
heresy, as she termed it, telling him, that she would give him nothing
but fagots to burn him with. In return for this, the follower of Christ
blessed her and departed. He was seized at Reading in his bed, having
been betrayed by a confidant to whom he had related his story. He
was soon brought to trial before Dr. Jeffrey, who acted for the bishop of
Sarum, and the sheriff of the county. After two examinations, the said
Dr. Jeffrey proceeded to read the popish sentence of his cruel condemna-
tion ; and so was he delivered to the charge of the secular power, and was
burnt the same day in the afternoon, together with the other two.
932 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Within an hour before they went to the place of execution, Palmer, in
the presence of many people, comforted his fellows with these words :
" Brethren," saith he, " be of good cheer in the Lord, and faint not.
Remember the words of our Saviour Christ, where he saith, ' Happy are
you when men revile you and persecute you for righteousness' sake. Rejoice
and be glad, for great is your reward in heaven. Fear not them that kill
the body, and be not able to touch the soul. God is faithful, and will not
suffer us to be tempted further than we shall be able to bear it.' We shall
not end our lives in the fire, but make a change for a better life. Yea, for
coals, we shall receive pearls : for God's Holy Spirit certifieth our spirit,
that he hath even now prepared for us a sweet supper in heaven, for his
sake who suffered for us."
When they were come to the place appointed for their suffering, they
all three fell to the ground, and Palmer, with an audible voice, pro-
nounced the 31st psalm, while the other two made their prayers secretly
to Almighty God. And as Palmer began to rise, there came behind
him two popish priests, exhorting him to recant and save his soul.
Palmer answered and said — "Away, away, tempt me no longer! Away,
I say, from me all you that work iniquity; for the Lord hath heard the
voice of my tears !" And so forthwith they put off their raiment, and
went to the stake and kissed it. And when they were bound to the post,
Palmer said, " Good people, pray for us, that we may persevere to the
end. And for Christ's sake beware of popish teachers, for they deceive
you." As he spake this, a servant of one of the bailiffs threw a fagot at
his face, that the blood gushed out in divers places : for the which fact
the sheriff reviled him, calling him cruel tormentor, and with his walking-
staff break his head, that the blood likewise ran about his ears. When
the fire was kindled, and began to take hold upon their bodies, they lifted
up their hands towards heaven, and quietly and cheerily, as though they
had felt no smart, they cried — " Lord Jesus, strengthen us; Lord Jesus,
assist us ; Lord Jesus, receive our souls !" And so they continued without
any struggling, holding up their hands, and knocking their hearts, and
calling upon Jesus until they had ended their mortal lives.
Among other things this is also to be noted, that after their three heads,
by force of the raging and devouring flames of fire, were fallen together in
a lump or cluster, which was marvellous to behold, and that they all were
judged already to have given up the ghost, suddenly Palmer, as a man
waked out of sleep, moved his tongue and jaws, and was heard to pro-
nounce this word " Jesus!" So, being resolved into ashes, he yielded to
God as joyful a soul (confirmed with the sweet promises of Christ) as any
one that ever was called beside to suffer for his blessed name. God grant
us all to be moved with the like spirit, working in our hearts constantly to
stand in confession of Christ's holy gospel, to the end. Amen.
Amongst all and singular histories touched in this book before, as there
be many pitiful, divers lamentable, some horrible and tragical; so is there
none almost either in cruelty to be compared, or so far off from all com-
passion and sense of humanity, as this merciless fact of the papists, done
in the Isle of Guernsey upon three women and an infant, whose names
were Katherine Cawches, the mother ; Guillemine Gilbert, the daughter ;
Perotine Massey, the other daughter ; and an infant, the son of Perotine.
TRIAL OF THREE WOMEN AT GUERNSEY. 933
The circumstances whereupon did rise this tragical cruelty were these : In
a town in Guernsey, called St. Peter's Port, was a naughty woman named
Vincent Gosset, who on the 17th of May, anno 1556, wens at night to the
house of one Nicholas le Conronney ; and there taking the key of the
house (lying under the door) entered into a chamber toward the street,
and took away a silver cup out of a cupboard. Immediately aftp", (whether
by counsel or what occasion else I have not to say,) she brought the said
cup to Perotine Massey, who, suspecting the same to be stolen, answered
that she would not take it : yet nevertheless having knowledge of the
owner thereof, to the end she should not carry it to another, gave her six-
pence, minding herself to restore the cup to whom it did appertain. The
said Perotine giving knowledge to Conronney of the trespass, he attached
the said Vincent Gosset; who, being apprehended and examined, imme-
diately confessed the fact, desiring to have one sent with her with sixpence
to fetch again the goblet, where it was ; and so she did.
The next day the king's officers assembled the justices there to inquire
further, as well upon that fact of Vincent Gosset, as upon other griefs and
things there. So that after the declaration made by the officers and con-
stable before the justices, for that the said constable did report to have
found a certain vessel of pewter in the house of the foresaid Perotine
Massey (who then dwelt with her mother and sister) which did bear no
inark, and especially a pewter dish whereof the name was scraped out ;
their bodies upon the same were attached and put in prison, and their
movable goods taken by inventory. The cause being debated on the 5th
of June* following, they were found not guilty of that they were charged
with, but to have lived always as honest women among their neighbours ;
saving only that to the commandments of holy church they had not been
obedient, etc. Upon this trial and verdict it was in fine adjudged, first,
that the said Vincent Gosset, being attainted of felony and condemned for
the same, should be whipped, and after, her ear being nailed to the pillory,
should so be banished out of the isle without further punishment. And
as touching the other three women, the mother with her two daughters,
for their not coming to the church they were returned prisoners again into
the castle the 1st of July.
The bailiff, the lieutenants, and the jurats, thinking the matter not to
pertain to them but to the clergy, forthwith wrote to the dean and to the
curates of the said isle ; whereupon, a few days after, the said women were
examined apart severally by the foresaid dean and curates, and returned
again into prison. On the 14th day of the said month of July was de-
livered before the justice, under the seal of the dean and under the signs
of the curates, a certain act and sentence, the sum whereof was, that
Katherine Cawches and her two daughters were found heretics, and such
they reputed them, and have delivered them to justice, to do execution
according to the sentence. "When this was done, commandment was given
to fetch the said women from the castle, to hear the sentence against them.
After this was pronounced, the said women did appeal unto the king and
queen, and their honourable council, saying, that against reason and right
they were condemned, and for that cause they made their appeal : not-
withstanding they could not be heard, but were delivered by the bailiffs to
the officers, to see the execution done on them according to the sentence.
934 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
The time arriving when these three innocents should suffer, in the
place where they should consummate their martyrdom were three stakes
set up. At the middle post was the mother, the eldest daughter on the
right hand, the youngest on the other. They were first strangled, but the
rope brake before they were dead, and so the poor women fell into the
fire. Perotine, who was then great with child, did fall on her side, where
happened a rueful sight, not only to the eyes of all that there stood, but
also to the ears of all true-hearted Christians that shall read this history.
For as the belly of the woman burst asunder by the vehemency of the
flame, the infant, being a fair man-child, fell into the fire, and eftsoons
being taken out of the fire by one W. House, was laid upon the grass.
Then was the child had to the provost, and from him to the baififf, who
gave censure, that it should be carried back again, and cast into the fire,
where it was burnt with the silly mother, grandmother, and aunt, very
pitiful to behold. And so the infant baptised in his own blood, to fill up
the number of God's innocent saints, was both born and died a martyr,
leaving behind to the world, which it never saw, a spectacle wherein the
whole world may see the Herodian cruelty of this graceless generation of
popish tormentors, ad perpetuam rei infamiam.
Now forsomuch as this story percase, for the horrible strangeness
of the fact, will be hardly believed by some, but rather be thought to
be forged, or else more amplified than truth will bear out, therefore, to
discharge my credit herein, I have not only foretold a little before, how
I received this story by the faithful relation both of the French and
English, of them which were there present witnesses and lookers on,
but also have hereto annexed the true supplication of the inhabitants
of Guernsey, and of the brother of Katherine Cawches, complaining to
Queen Elizabeth and her commissioners, concerning the horribleness of
the act. The petition, after stating the cruelty of the case, solicits the
restoration of the property of the martyrs, which had been confiscated,
to him, as the rightful heir. This being presented to the queen's com-
missioners, in the year 1562, such order therein was taken, that the
matter being returned again down to the said country, further to be
examined, the dean, who had been instrumental in the tragical event,
was committed to prison, and dispossessed of all his livings. So that,
in conclusion, both he and all other partakers of that bloody murder,
whether of conscience, or for fear of the law, were driven to acknow-
ledge their trespass, and to submit themselves to the queen's mercy.
As the rage of this persecution spared neither man, woman, nor child,
wife nor maid, lame, blind, nor cripple ; so neither was there any condition
or quality respected of any person ; but whosoever he were that held not
as they did on the pope, and sacrament of the altar, were he learned or
unlearned, wise or simple, all went to the fire. Thomas Moor, a simple
poor creature and innocent soul, was apprehended for saying that his
Maker was in heaven, and not in the pix. Coming before his ordinary,
he was first asked, whether he did not believe his Maker there to be,
(pointing to the high altar:) which he denied. Then asked the bishop,
** How dost thou believe?" The young man answered again, As his creed
did teach him. To whom the bishop said, " And what is yonder that thou
seest above the altar?" He answering said, " Forsooth I cannot tell what
BURNING OF JOAN WASTE AND OTHERS. 935
you would have me to see. I see there fine clothes, with golden tassels,
and other gay gear hanging about the pix : what is within I cannot see."
'* Why, dost thou not believe," said the bishop, " Christ to be there, flesh,
blood, and bone?" " No, that I do not," said he. Whereupon the bishop
iead the sentence in St. Margaret's church in Leicester ; in which town he
suffered a joyful and glorious martyrdom about the 26th of June 1556.
Thomas Dung-ate, John Foreman, and Mother Tree, suffered at Grin-
stead in Sussex, patiently abiding what the furious rage of man could work
against them, on the 18th of July, in the year aforesaid.
On the 1st day of August suffered likewise at Derby a certain poor
honest godly woman, being blind from her birth, and unmarried, about
the ag^e of twenty-two, named Joan Waste, of the parish of All-hallows.
This poor woman had by her labour gotten and saved so much money as
bought her a New Testament; and though she was unlearned, and by
reason of her blindness unable to read, yet for the great desire she had to
understand the holy Scriptures, she acquainted herself chiefly with one John
Hurt, a sober grave man of the age of three score and ten years, who did
for his exercise daily read unto her some one chapter of the New Testament.
Not long after, through the fatal death of blessed king Edward, followed
the woeful ruin of religion ; and this poor blind woman, continuing in a
constant conscience, was soon called before Ralph Banes, bishop of the
diocese, and others, when sentence was pronounced against her. On the
day that she should suffer, she was first led into the parish church of All-
Saints, where Dr. Draicot declared unto the people that she was condemned
for denying the blessed sacrament of the altar; and said that as her body
should be presently consumed with material fire, so her soul should be
burnt in hell with everlasting fire, saying it was not lawful to pray for her.
Afterwards, this poor blind creature was carried to a place called Windmill-
pit, where she cried upon Christ to have mercy upon her while life served.
About the beginning of September, a certain godly, devout person,
and zealous of the Lord's glory, born in Wiltshire, named Edward Sharpe,
of the age of forty or thereabouts, was condemned at Bristol to the like
martyrdom ; in whose death, as in the death of all his other saints, the
Lord be glorified and thanked for his great grace of constancy.
Next after Edward Sharpe, followed four which suffered at Mayfield in
Sussex, the 24th of September : namely, John Hart, Thomas Ravensdale,
a shoemaker, and a currier ; which said four, being at the place where
they should suffer, after they had made their prayer, and were at the stake
ready to abide the force of the fire, they constantly and joyfully yielded
their lives for the testimony of the glorious gospel of Jesus Christ.
The day after the martyrdom of these foresaid at Mayfield, a young man,
a carpenter, whose name we have not, was put to death for the like testimony
at Bristol. And not long after the death of this young man, were two more
godly martyrs consumed by fire at Wootton-under-Edge in Gloucestershire;
namely, one John Horn and a woman. They died in a constant faith: so
gloriously did the Lord work in them, that death unto them was life, and
life with a blotted conscience was death.
When I had finished the story of the Guernsey martyrs, and also had
passed the burning of the poor blind woman at Derby, I well hoped I
should have found no more such stories of unmerciful cruelty; but now I
936 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
find another showed against a woman in child-bed, as far from all charity
and humanity as hath been any other story rehearsed. At Wootton-under-
Edge, near Bristol, was dwelling one William Dangerfield, who by Joan
Danger-field his wife had nine children, and she now lying in child-bed of
the tenth. This William, after he had been abroad a certain space for
fear of persecution, hearing that his wife was brought to bed, repaired
home to visit her, as natural duty required, and to see his children, she
being now delivered /our days. His return was no sooner known to some
of his unkind and uncharitable neighbours, but they, incensed with the
spirit of papistry, eftsoons beset the house, and there took the said William
Dangerfield and carried him to prison ; and so at length he was brought
to the bishop, being then Brooks, in whose cruel handling he remained so
long that his legs almost were fretted off with the irons.
After the apprehension of the husband, the wife likewise was taken, with
her young-born child, being but fourteen days old, and carried into the
common jail; where both she and her poor innocent found so small charity
amongst the catholic men, that she never could come to any fire, but was
driven to warm the clothes she should put about the child in her bosom.
While they lay thus enclosed in several prisons, the bishop began with the
husband, falsely persuading him that his wife had recanted, and asking
him wherefore he should more stand in his own conceit than she ; and so
subtilely drew out a form of recantation, wherewith he deceived the simple
soul : whereunto after that he had once granted that he would consent,
they suffered him to go to his wife. Then they with melting hearts open-
ing their minds one to another, when he saw his wife not released, he de-
clared unto her the whole matter, how falsely he was circumvented by the
subtle flatterings of the bishop, bearing him in hand that certainly she had
recanted : " And thus deceiving me," said he, " brought this unto me;"
and so plucked out of his bosom the copy of the recantation, whereunto
he had granted his promise. At sight whereof the wife's heart clave asunder,
say ing, "Alack ! thus long have we continued one, and hath Satan so prevailed
to cause you to break your first vow made to Christ in baptism V And
so they parted, with what hearts the Lord knoweth. Then began the said
William to bewail his promise, and to make his prayer to Almighty God,
desiring that he might not live ; and so departed toward his house, where
by the way (as it is affirmed) he took his death, and shortly after departed,
according to his prayer. Joan his wife still continued in prison, with her
tender babe so long as her milk served ; till at length the child, starved
for cold and famine, was sent away when past all remedy, and so shortly
after died ; and not long after the mother also followed. Besides, the old
woman, mother of the husband, upwards of eighty years of age, being left
in the house after their apprehension, for lack of comfort perished also.
John Kurde, a shoemaker, late of Syresham, in Northamptonshire, was
imprisoned in Northampton castle for denying transubstantiation. The sen-
tence was pronounced against him by the archdeacon of Northampton, in
the church of All Saints ; and in September he was led without the north
gate, and in the stone-pits was burnt. In October died three godly con-
fessors in the castle of Chichester. In November were fifteen innocent
martyrs together in Canterbury castle, of which number five were famished
in strait prison, and the other ten afterwards burnt.
937
SECTION XVI.
THK VISITATION OF THE UNIVERSITIES — BURNING OF THE DEAD BODIES
OF BUCER AND PIIAGIUS — WITH THE CRUEL HANDLING OF GOD's SAINTS
IN OTHER PARTS OF THIS REALM, IN THE YEAR 1557.
Cardinal Pole, three years after his return into England, having some-
what withdrawn his mind from other affairs of the realm, and having in all
points established the Romish religion, began to have an eye to the univer-
sity of Cambridge, which place among others specially seemed to need
reformation. To perform this charge were chosen Cuthbert Scot, not long
before consecrated bishop of Chester ; Nicholas Ormanet, an Italian, arch-
priest of the people of Bozolo, in Verona, professed in both the laws, and
bearing the name of the pope's datary ; Thomas Watson, bishop of Lincoln ;
John Christopherson, bishop of Chichester; and Henry Cole, provost of
the college of Eton. These persons thus appointed sent their letters, with
the cardinal's citation, before to Dr. Andrew Perne, vice-chancellor then of
Cambridge, with the other commissioners associate, commanding him to
warn all the graduates of the university, in their name, to be in readiness
against the 11th day of January, betwixt eight and ten of the clock, in the
church of St. Mary the Virgin ; willing him especially to be there himself
in presence, and also to set forward all the residue, to whose charge it
belonged, that they should search out all statutes, books, privileges, and
monuments appertaining to the university, or to any of the colleges, or
finally to any of themselves ; and these to present before them at the day
appointed, and every man to appear there personally.
After this, upon the 24th of December, the vice-chancellor with the
heads of the houses, meeting together in the schools, it was there concluded
that the visitors' charges should be borne by the university and colleges,
(which then cost the university a hundred pounds thick,) and also that no
master of any college should suffer any of the fellows, scholars, or ministers
to go forth of the town, but to return before the visitation. The inquisitors
arrived at Cambridge on the 9th of January ; and the day after they in-
terdicted the two churches, namely, St. Mary's, where Bucer, and St.
Michael's, where Paulus Phagius lay buried. On the 11th, being the day
appointed, the vice-chancellor of the university, with the masters and presi-
dents of the colleges, and all the graduates of every house, were commanded
to appear before the said commissioners. They assembled in great number
to Trinity college, having the university cross borne before them ; and in
the Gatehouse a form was set and covered with cushions, and carpet on
the ground, for the visitors. Master John Stokes, common orator of the
university, one of the popish superstition, (for none but such, in those days,
might be promoted to any worship,) made an oration in the name of all
the rest; and when he had ended, the bishop of Chester answered thereto.
These things being finished, they were brought processionaliter to King's
college, by all the graduates of the university, where was sung a mass of
the Holy Ghost with great solemnity, nothing wanting in that behalf that
might make to the setting forth of the same. From thence they attended
all upon the legates to St. Mary's church, which we declared before to
938 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
have been interdicted ; in the which place, forsomuch as it was suspended,
although no mass might be sung, yet there was a sermon made in open
audience by master Peacock in the Latin tongue, preaching against heresies
and heretics, as Bilney, Cranmer, Latimer, Ridley, etc. The which being
ended, they proceeded eftsoons to the visitation, where first Dr. Harvy
did, in the cardinal's name, exhibit the commission to the bishop of Chester,
with a few words in Latin. Which being accepted, and by master clerk
openly read to the end, then the vice-chancellor with an oration did exhibit
the certificate under his seal of office, with the cardinal's citation annexed,
containing every man's name in the university and colleges, with the
officers and all the masters of houses. After the formal solemnity of
these things thus accomplished, all the masters of the houses only being
cited, every man for awhile departed home to his own house, with com-
mandment to be at the common schools of the said university at one of
the clock the same day.
The next day being the 12th of January, they resorted to the King's
college to make inquisition, either because the same was chief and sovereign
of all the residue, or else because that that house had been counted, time
out of mind, never to be without a heretic (as they termed them) or twain:
and at that present time, albeit many of late had withdrawn themselves
from thence, yet they judged there were some remaining still.
The order and manner how they would be entertained of every college,
when they should come to make inquisition, they themselves appointed,
which was in this sort. They commanded the master of every house,
together with the residue, as well fellows as scholars, appareled in priest-
like garments, (which they call habits,) to meet them at the uttermost
gate of their house towards the town : the master himself to be dressed in
like apparel as the priest when he harnesseth himself to mass ; saving that
he should put on uppermost his habit, as the rest did. The order of their
going they appointed to be in this wise : the master of the house to go
foremost; next unto him, every man in his order as he was of degree,
seniority, or of years. Before the master should be carried a cross and
holy water to sprinkle the commissioners withal ; and then, after that, the
said commissioners to be censed. And so after this meeting and mumbling
of a few devotions, they determined with this pomp and solemnity to be
brought to the chapel.
Three days long lasted the inquisition there. This was now the third
day of their coming, and it was thought that the case of Bucer and Phagius
was delayed longer than needed. The vice-chancellor and the masters of
the colleges assembled at the common schools, where every man gave his
verdict what he thought meet to be done in this matter of Bucer. After
much debating, they agreed altogether in this determination : that foras-
much as Martin Bucer, while he lived, had not only sowed pernicious and
erroneous doctrine among them, but also himself had been a sectary and
famous heretic, erring from the catholic church, and giving others occasion
to fall from the same likewise, a supplication should be made to the lords
commissioners, in the name of the whole university, that his dead carcase
might forthwith be digged up, (for so it was needful to be clone,) to the
intent that inquisition might be made as touching his doctrine, etc. They
gave the same verdict, by common assent, upon Phagius also.
TllK BONES OF BUCER AND PIIAGIUS BURNED. 939
The day after, the vice-chancellor, Andrew Peine, waited upon the com-
missioners, according to the appointment, about seven of the clock in the
morning. He had scarce declared the cause of his coming:, but he had not
onlv obtained his suit, but also even at the very same time received the
sentence of condemnation, for taking up of Bucer and Phagius, fair copied
out by Ormanet the datary himself, which was soon after signed with the
common seal of the university.
This condemnation being openly read, then Dr. Peine desired to send
out process to cite Bucer and Phagius to appear, or any others that would
take upon them to plead their cause, and to stand to the order of the
court against the next Monday. The commissioners condescended to his
request, and the next day process w r ent out to cite the offenders. This
citation Vincent of Noally, their common notary, having first read it over
before certain witnesses appointed for the same purpose, caused to be fixed
up in places convenient, to wit, upon St. Mary's church-door, the door of
the common schools, and the cross in the market-stead. In this was
specified, that whosoever would maintain Bucer and Phagius, or stand in
defence of their doctrine, should, at the eighteenth day of the same month,
stand forth before the lord commissioners in St. Mary's church, and there
every man should be sufficiently heard what he could say.
When the day came, and that neither Bucer nor Phagius would appear
at their call in the court, nor that any put forth himself to defend them,
the commissioners put off the judgment day unto the 26th of the same
month. Upon this day the vice-chancellor was sent for to their lodging,
with whom they agreed concerning the order of publishing the sentence.
And because there should want no solemnity in the matter, they com-
manded him further to warn the mayor of the town to be there at the day
appointed with all his burgesses.
On the day aforesaid all met together in St. Mary's church, where, after
reciting the process, Dr. Scot, one of the inquisitors, made a long ora-
tion ; after which he read the sentence condemning Bucer and Phagius of
heresy. He then commanded their bodies to be digged out of their graves,
and being degraded from holy orders, delivered them to the secular powder :
for it was not lawful for such innocent persons as they were, abhorring from
all bloodshed, and detesting all desire of murder, to put any man to death !
Upon the 6th day of February, their dead bodies were borne into the
market-place, (Bucer in the chest that he was buried, and Phagius in a
new,) with a great train of people following them. This place was pre-
pared before, and a great post was set fast in the ground to bind the car-
cases to, and a great heap of wood was laid ready to burn them withal.
The chests were set up on end, with the dead bodies in them, and fastened
on both sides with stakes, and bound to the post with a long iron chain as
if they had been alive. Fire being forthwith put to, as soon as it began
to flame round about, a great sort of books that were condemned with
them were cast into the same.
In the mean time that they were roasting in the fire, Watson went into
the pulpit in St. Mary's church, and there, before his audience, railed upon
their doctrine, as wicked and erroneous, saying that it was the ground of
all mischief that had happened of a long time in the commonweal. Many
things he slanderously and falsely alleged against Bucer, whose doctrine
940 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
either he would not understand, or else he was minded to slander. And
yet he was not ignorant that Bucer taught none other things than the
very same whereunto he and Scot, in the reign of king Edward the sixth,
had subscribed to with their own hands.
The next day following, the aforesaid Scot, bishop of Chester, with
much ceremonial solemnity, reconciled the two churches of St. Mary and
St. Michael, which we declared to have been interdicted before. After
this they bestowed a few days in punishing and amercing such as they
thought had deserved it. Some they suspended from giving voices either
to their own preferment or that of any other; some they forbade to have
the charge of pupils ; others they chastised wrongfully without any desert,
punishing contrary to all right and reason ; and last of all they set forth cer-
tain statutes by the which they would have the university hereafter ordered.
The commissioners were now ready to go their ways; and the university,
coveting to show some token of courtesy to them for so great benefits,
dignified Ormanet and Cole with the degree of doctorship, for all the
residue had received that order before. Thus, at length, were sent away
these peacemakers, that came to pacify strifes and quarrels, who, through
provoking every man to accuse one another, left such gaps and breaches
in men's hearts at their departure, that to this day they could never be
closed nor joined together again !
Having thus considered the doings of these iniquisitors at Cambridge,
we will proceed to discourse of the despiteful handling of Peter Martyr's wife
at Oxford. For because the one university should not mock the other, like
cruelty was also declared upon the dead body of the said Peter Martyr's wife,
an honest, grave, and sober matron, while she lived, and of poor people a
great helper, who departed this life in the year of our Lord 1552. Brooks,
bishop of Gloucester, Nicholas Ormanet, datary, Robert Morewen, presi-
dent of Corpus-Christi college, Cole and Wright, doctors of the civil
law, came thither as the cardinal's visitors ; and, among other things, had
in commission to take up this good woman again out of her grave, and to
consume her carcase with fire, not doubting but that she was of the same
religion that her husband had professed before.
To be short, after these visitors had sped the business they came for, they
gat them to the cardinal again, certifying him that, upon due inquisition
made, they could learn nothing upon which by the law they might burn
her. Notwithstanding the cardinal, a good while after, wrote to Marshal,
then dean of Frideswide's, that he should dig her up, and lay her out of
Christian burial, because she was interred nigh unto St. Frideswide's relics,
sometime had in great reverence in that college. Dr. Marshal, like a
pretty man, calling his spades and mattocks together in the evening,
caused her to be taken up and buried in a dunghill.
Howbeit, when it pleased God under good queen Elizabeth to give
quietness to his church, Dr. Parker, archbishop of Canterbury, Edmund
Grindal, bishop of London, Richard Goodrick, with divers others, her
majesty's high commissioners in matters of religion, willed certain of that
college to take her out of that unclean and dishonest place where she lay,
and solemnly, in the face of the whole town, to bury her again in a more
decent and honest monument. Wherefore master James Calfield, then
sub-dean of the college, diligently provided that from Marshal's dunghill
TWENTY-TWO PRISONERS SENT TO BONNER. 941
she was restored and translated to her proper place again, yea, and withal
coupled her with Frideswide's bones, that in case any cardinal will be so
mad hereafter to remove this woman's bones again, it shall be hard for
them to discern the bones of her from the other.
Moreover, the commissioners under good queen Elizabeth, having also
received commission to make reformation of religion in the university of
Cambridge and other parts of the realm, decreed that the aforesaid Bucer
and Phagius should be set in their places again. For the performance
whereof they addressed their letters to the vice-chancellor and the graduates
of the university, when by the verdict and open consent of the whole
university they were fully restored, and all acts done against them and
their doctrine repealed and disannulled, about the twenty-second day of
July, in the year of our Lord 1560.
In January 1557, ten godly and Christian martyrs were committed unto
the fire, and there consumed to ashes, by Thornton, suffragan of Dover,
and Nicholas Harpsfield, archdeacon of the said province. Their names
were John Philpot, Matthew Bradbridge, and Nicholas Final, of Tenterden ;
William Waterer and Thomas Stephens, of Biddenden ; Stephen Kempe
of Norgate; William Hay of Hy the; Thomas Hudson of Selling; William
Lowick of Cranbrooke ; William Prowting of Thornham. Of these, six
were burned at Canterbury, about the 15th of January; two at Ashford
the day following ; and other two at Wye, about the same month.
On the 8th of the next month following, which was February, came out
another bloody commission from the king and queen, to kindle up the fire
of persecution, as though it were not hot enough already. After this
commission was given out at London, the new inquisitors, especially some
of them, began to ruffle, and to take upon them not a little ; so that all
quarters were full of persecution, and prisons almost full of prisoners,
namely, in the diocese of Canterbury, whereof (by leave of Christ) we will
say more anon.
In the mean time, about the town of Colchester, the wind of persecution
began fiercely to rise ; insomuch that three-and-twenty together, fifteen
men and eight women, were apprehended at one clap, of the which one
escaped. The other twenty-two were driven like a flock of Christian
lambs to London, with two or three leaders with them at most, ready to
give their skins to be plucked off for the gospel's sake. When they entered
into the towns their keepers called them into array, to go two and two
together, having a band or line going between them, they holding the same
in their hands, having another cord every one about his arm, as though
they were tied. And so were they carried up to London, the people by
the way praying to God for them, to give them strength. Notwithstanding
the bishops, afraid belike of the numbers to put so many at once to death,
sought means to deliver them; and so they did, drawing out a very easy
submission for them, or rather suffering them to draw it out themselves :
notwithstanding divers of them afterward were taken again and suffered,
as hereafter ye shall hear (God willing) declared.
In this story of persecuted martyrs, next in order follow five others
burned at London, in Smithfield, on the 12th of April. Their names were,
Thomas Loseby, Henry Ramsey, Thomas Thirtel, Margaret Hide, and
942 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Agnes Stanley ; who being, some by the lord Riche, some by other
justices of peace, and constables (their own neighbours) at the first accused,
and apprehended for not coming to their parish churches, were in the end
sent unto Bonner, bishop of London ; and, by his commandment, the 27th
day of January were examined before Dr. Darbyshire, then chancellor to
the said bishop. In their answers they confessed there was one true and
catholic church, whereof they steadfastly believed, and thought the church
of Rome to be no part or member thereof; so in the same church they
believed there were but two sacraments, that is to say, baptism and the
supper of the Lord.
After this, the 1st day of April, they were again convented before the
bishop in his palace at London, where little appeareth to be done, except
it were to know whether they would stand to their answers, and whether
they would recant or no. But when they refused to recant and deny the
received and infallible truth, the bishop caused them to be brought into
the open consistory, the 3rd day of the same month of April, where, first
understanding by them their immutable constancy and steadfastness, he
pronounced the sentence of condemnation against them, and charged the
sheriff of London with them ; who being thereunto commanded, the 12th
day of the same month, brought them into Smithfield, where altogether
in one fire most joyfully and constantly they ended their temporal lives,
receiving there-for the life eternal.
After these, moreover, in the month of May, followed three others that
suffered in St. George's-fields in Southwark : William Morant, Stephen
Gratwick, with one King. Among other histories of the persecuted and
condemned saints of God, I find the condemnation of none more strange
nor unlawful than of this Stephen Gratwick : who first was condemned by
the bishops of Winchester and Rochester, which were not his ordinaries.
Secondly, when he did appeal from those incompetent judges to his right
ordinary, his appeal could not be admitted. Thirdly, when they had no
other shift to colour their inordinate proceedings withal, they suborned
one of the priests to come in for a counterfeit and false ordinary, and sit
upon him. Fourthly, being openly convinced and overturned in his own
arguments, yet the said bishop of Winchester, Dr. White, neither would
yield to the force of truth, nor suffer any of the audience assistant once to
say, God strengthen him. Fifthly, as they brought in a false ordinary to
sit upon him, so they pretended false articles against him which were no
part of his examinations, but of their devising, to have his blood. Sixthly
and lastly, having no other ground nor just matters against him, but only
for saying these words, "That which 1 said, I have said," they read the
sentence against him.
I showed a little before, how after the universal proclamation was sent
and set forth by the king and queen in the month of February last, the
storm of persecution began in all places to rise, but yet in no place more
than in the country and diocese of Canterbury, especially by reason of
Richard Thornton suffragan of Dover, and Harpsfield archdeacon of
Canterbury, who of their own nature were so furious and fiery against the
harmless flock of Christ, that there was no need of any proclamation to
stir up the coals of their burning cruelty, by reason whereof many a godly
saint lyeth slain under the altar, as in divers places of this book appear.
TEN FAITHFUL MARTYRS BURNED AT LEWES. 943
On the 18th of June were seven Christian and true faithful martyrs of
Christ burned at Maidstone, whose names here follow : Joan Brad bridge
of Staph hurst ; Walter Appleby of Maidstone; Petronil, his wife; Edmund
Allin of Frittendcn, and Katherine, his wife ; John Manning's wife, of Maid-
Stone ; and Elizabeth, a blind maiden. As concerning the general articles
commonly objected to them in the public consistory, and the order of their
condemnation, it differeth not much from the usual manner expressed be-
fore, neither did their answers in effect much differ from the others that suffered
under the same ordinary, in the foresaid diocese of Canterbury.
On the 19th of the said month of June, four women and three men were
burnt together at Canterbury : namely, John Fishcock, Nicholas White,
Nicholas Pardue, Barbara Final, widow ; Bradbridge's widow, who was
thought to be with child ; Wilson's wife, and Benden's wife. The latter
was accused of her own husband, and kept in prison nine weeks upon
bread and water, lying upon a little short straw between a pair of stocks
and a stone wall, during all which time she never changed her apparel,
whereby she became at the last a most piteous and loathsome creature to
behold. Being brought to the place where they should suffer for the
Lord's cause, they undressed themselves joyfully to the fire ; and being
ready thereto, they all (like the communion of saints) kneeled down and
made their humble prayers unto the Lord, with such zeal and affection as
even the enemies of the cross of Christ could not but like it. When they
had made invocation together, they rose and went to the stake, where,
being compassed with horrible flames of fire, they yielded their souls and
lives gloriously into the hand of the Lord, unto whose eternity the Son of
God bring us all. Amen.
Matthew Plaise, a weaver, of the same county of Kent, and a faithful
Christian, was apprehended and imprisoned likewise for the testimony of
a good conscience, in the castle of Canterbury. He was brought to ex-
amination before the bishop of Dover, and Harpsfield the archdeacon ;
but what became of him after, whether he died in prison, or was executed,
or delivered, I have as yet no certain knowledge.
In the town of Lewes were ten faithful servants of God put in one fire
the 22nd day of June, whose names follow : Richard Woodman ; George
Stevens; W. Mainard ; Alexander Hosman, his servant; Thomasin a
Wood, Mainard's maid ; Margery Moris ; James Moris, her son ; Dennis
Burgis ; Ashdon's wife ; and Grove's wife. Of the which number, Richard
Woodman was the first. He was by his occupation an iron-maker, in the
parish of Warbleton, Sussex, in the diocese of Chichester, about the age
of thirty years. The occasion of his first apprehension was this : There
was a man named Fairebanke, who sometime had been a married priest,
and served the cure of Warbleton, where he had often persuaded the people
not to credit any other doctrine but that which he preached in king-
Edward's days. But in the beginning of queen Mary's reign, this Fairebanke
preached contrary to that which he had before taught. Whereupon
Richard Woodman, hearing him so to preach contrary to himself, ad
monished him of his inconstancy, how beforetime he had taught them
one thing, and now another, and desired him to teach them the truth.
For the which words he was apprehended, and brought before mastei
John Ashbornham, master Tonston, master Culpepper, and master Roberts,
944 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
justices of peace in the county of Sussex, and by them committed to the
King's Bench, where he continued from June, the space almost of a year
and a half; and from thence was transferred by Dr. Storey into Bonner's
coal-house, where he remained a month before he came to examination.
At length, the same day when master Philpot was burned, which was
the 18th of December, he with four other prisoners was set at liberty by
Bonner himself. Notwithstanding, shortly after he was sought for again,
and at last found out and taken by means of his father, brother, and
certain other friends, and so was sent up again to London to bishop
Bonner, where he remained in the coal-house for the space of eight weeks.
He was there six times examined, and twenty-six times before, so that
his examinations were in all thirty-two, from his first apprehension to his
condemnation. With Woodman also were burnt the nine others ; of
which number the eight last were apprehended (as is said) either the same
day or the second or third day before, and so with the said Woodman and
Stevens were together committed to the fire ; in which space no writ
could come down from London to the justices for their burning. Where-
fore what is to be said to such justices, or what reckoning they will make
to God and to the laws of this realm, I refer that to them that have to do
in the matter.
After these ten above-named, about the same time and month, one
Ambrose died in Maidstone prison, who else should have been burnt in the
like cause and quarrel as the others were.
In the registers of Gilbert, bishop of Bath and Wells, I find a certificate
made to king Philip and queen Mary, of one Richard Lush, there con-
demned and given to the secular power to be burnt for the cause of
heresy ; and also a certificate directed by the bishop aforesaid to the king
and queen, whereby we have apparently to understand that the said
Richard Lush, thus condemned bv bishop Bourne, was there burnt and
executed, unless peradventure in the mean season he died, or was made
away in the prison, whereof I have no certainty to express.
In the month of July next ensued the martyrdom of Simon Miller, of
Lynn, and Elizabeth Cooper, of Norwich. They were condemned by the
bishop of Norwich and his chancellor, about the 13th day of July. Being
at the stake to be burnt, when the fire came unto the good woman she a
little shrank thereat, crying, " Hah !" which, when the said Simon heard,
he willed her to be strong and of good cheer ; " for, good sister," said he,
"we shall have a joyful and sweet supper:" whereat she being as it
seemed thereby strengthened, stood as still and as quiet as one most glad
to finish that good work which before most happily she had begun. So,
in fine, she ended her life with her companion joyfully, committing her
soul into the hands of Almighty God.
Mention was made a little before of twenty-two which were sent up
prisoners together from Colchester to London, the which through a gentle
submission put unto them were afterwards released and delivered. In the
number of these was one William Mount of Much-Bentley, in Essex,
husbandman, with Alice his wife, and Rose Allin, maid, the daughter of
the said Alice Mount ; which coming home again to their house refrained
themselves from the unsavoury service of the popish church, and frequented
the company of good men and women, which gave themselves diligently
BURNING OF ROSE ALLIN'S HAND. 945
to reading, invocating and calling upon the name of God through Christ ;
whereby they so fretted the wicked priest of the town, called sir Thomas
Tye, and others like unto him, that casting their heads together, they
made a pestilent supplication to the lord Darcy, in the name of the whole
parish, praying his lordship to award a warrant for the said William
Mount, his wife, and Rose her daughter.
When Judasly this wicked priest had thus wrought his malice against
the people of God, within awhile after the storms began to arise against
these poor persecuted, William Mount and his company, whereby they
were enforced to hide themselves. At last, on the 7th day of March,
being the first Sunday in Lent, by two of the clock in the morning, one
master Edmund Tyrrel (who came of the house of those Tyrrels who
murdered king Edward the fifth and his brother) took with him the bailiff
of the hundred, called William Simuel, dwelling in Colchester, and the two
constables of Much-Bentley, with divers others a great number ; and be-
setting the house of the said William Mount round about, called to them
at length to open the door : which being done, master Tyrrel with certain
of his company went into the chamber where the husband and wife lay,
willing them to rise ; " for," said he, " you must go with us to Colchester
castle." Mother Mount hearing that, being very sick, desired that her
daughter might first fetch her some drink. Then Tyrrel gave her leave,
and bade her go. So the daughter, Rose Allin, took a stone pot in one
hand, and a candle in the other, and went to draw drink for her mother :
and as she came back again through the house, Tyrrel met her, and
willed her to give her father and mother good counsel, and advertise them
to be better catholic people.
Rose. Sir, they have a better instructor than I ; for the Holy Ghost
doth teach them, I hope, which I trust will not suffer them to err.
Tyrrel. Why, art thou still in that mind, thou naughty housewife?
Marry, it is time to look upon such heretics indeed.
Rose. Sir, with that which you call heresy do I worship my Lord God;
I tell you truth.
Tyrrel. Then I perceive you will burn, gossip, with the rest, for com-
pany's sake.
Rose. No, sir, not for company's sake, but for my Christ's sake, if so I
be compelled ; and I hope in his mercies if he call me to it, he will enable
me to bear it.
So Tyrrel, turning to his company, said, " Sirs, this gossip will burn :
do you not think it?" " Marry, sir," quoth one, " prove her, and you
shall see what she will do by and by." Then that cruel Tyrrel, taking the
candle from her, held her wrist, and the burning candle under her hand,
burning crosswise over the back thereof so long till the very sinews cracked
asunder, as witnessed by William Candler, then dwelling in Much-Bentley,
who was there present and saw it. In which time of his tyranny, he said
often to her, " Why, whore ! wilt thou not cry? Thou young whore!
wilt thou not cry ?" Unto which she always answered, that she had no
cause, she thanked God, but rather to rejoice. He had (she said) more
cause to weep than she, if he considered the matter well. In the end,
when the sinews (as I said) brake, that all the house heard them, he then
thrust her from him violently, and said, " Ah ! strong whore ; thou shame-
3 p
946 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
less beast ! thou beastly whore !" etc., with such like vile words. But she,
quietly suffering his rage for the time, at the last said, " Sir, have ye done
what ye will do ?" And he said, " Yea ; and if thou think it be not well,
then mend it." " Mend it !" said Rose ; " nay, the Lord mend you, and
give you repentance, if it be his will. And now if you think it good, begin
at the feet and burn to the head also : for Jie that set you a work shall
pay you your wages one day, I warrant you." And so she went and
carried her mother drink, as she was commanded.
With the said William Mount and his family was joined also in the same
prison at Colchester another faithful brother, named John Johnson, of
Thorpe, in Essex, labourer. Other six prisoners lay in Mote-hall, in the
said town of Colchester, whose names were William Bongeor, glazier ;
Thomas Benold, tallow chandler; William Purcas, fuller; Agnes Silver-
side ; Helen Ewring, wife of John Ewring, miller, who was one of the
twenty-two prisoners mentioned before sent up in bands from Colchester
to London. All these poor condemned lambs were delivered into the
hands of the secular power ; and on the 2nd day of August, 1557, betwixt
six and seven of the clock in the morning, the last-named six were brought
from Mote-hall unto a plat of ground hard by the town-wall of Colchester.
All things being prepared for their martyrdom, these constant martyrs
kneeled down and made their humble prayers to God ; and when they had
ended they rose and made them ready to the fire. When they were
nailed at their stakes, and the fire about them, they clapped their hands
for joy in the fire, that the standers-by, which were, by estimation, thou-
sands, cried generally almost, " The Lord strengthen them ; the Lord
comfort them ; the Lord pour his mercies upon them !" Thus yielded they
up their souls and bodies into the Lord's hands, for the true testimony of
his truth. The Lord grant we may imitate the same in the like quarrel (if
he so vouch us worthy) for his mercy's sake. Amen.
In like manner the said day in the afternoon, were brought forth into
the castle-yard, to a place appointed, William Mount, John Johnson, Alice
Mount, and Rose Allin aforesaid : which godly constant persons, after they
had made their prayers, and were joyfully tied to the stakes, calling upon
the name of God, and exhorting the people earnestly to flee from idolatry,
suffered their martyrdom with such triumph and joy that the people did
no less shout thereat to see it than at the others that were burnt the same
day in the morning.
At the taking of William Mount and his family, the said Tyrrel searched
the house for more company, and at last found one John Thurston and
Margaret his wife there also, whom they carried with the rest to Colchester
castle immediately. This John Thurston afterward, about the month of
May, died in the said castle, a constant confessor of Jesus Christ.
Among other martyrs of singular virtue and constancy, one George
Eagles deserveth not the least admiration, but is so much the more to be
commended, for that he, having little learning or none, most manfully
served and fought under the banner of Christ's church. For he, wander-
ing abroad into divers and far countries where he could find any of his
brethren, did there most earnestly encourage and comfort them, now tarry-
ing in this town, and sometime abiding in that, certain months together,
as occasion served, lodging sometimes in the country, and sometimes, for
ACCOUNT OF GEORGE EAGLES. 947
fear, living in fields and woods. Oftentimes he did lie abroad in the night
without covert, spending the most part thereof in devout and earnest prayer.
His diet was so above measure spare and slender, that for three years he
used for the most to drink nothing but very water ; and after, when he per-
ceived that his body, by God's providence, proved well enough with this
diet, he thought best to mure himself therewithal against all necessities.
Now when the said Eagles had profited Christ's church in this sort, by
going about and preaching the gospel a year or two, and especially in
Colchester and the quarters thereabout, a grievous edict was proclaimed
in the queen's name throughout four shires, Essex, Suffolk, Kent, and
Norfolk, promising the party that took him twenty pounds for his pains,
doubtless a worthy hire to entice any Jew to treachery. At length it came
to pass that this George, being seen by chance at Colchester upon Mary
Magdalen's day, at which time they kept a fair in the town, should have
forthwith been delivered to his adversaries, if he perceiving the same (as
God would have it) had not conveyed himself away as fast as he could, a
great multitude pursuing after, and seeking diligently for him. He first
hid himself in a grove, and from thence stole into a cornfield, and so lay
secretly couched that all his pursuers, saving one, past hope of taking him,
were ready to depart their way. This one, having more subtlety and
wicked craft in his head, climbed up into a high tree, there to view and
espy if he might see Eagles anywhere stir or move. The poor man, think-
ing all sure enough by reason that he heard no noise abroad, rose up on
his knees, and lifting up his hands, prayed unto God. And whether it
were for that his head was above the corn, or because his voice was heard,
the lurker, perceiving his desired prey that he hunted after, forthwith came
down, and suddenly laying hands on him, brought him as prisoner to
Colchester.
This George Eagles, not without great lamentation of divers good men,
and great lack unto the church of God, (of which to his power he was a
worthy instrument,) was committed to prison there ; and from thence,
within four days after, conveyed to Chelmsford, where he abode all that
night in devout prayer, and would not sleep, neither would eat or drink
but bread and water. The next day he was carried to London to the
bishop or the council, and there remained a certain time ; and then was
brought down to Chelmsford to the sessions, and there was indicted and
accused of treason, because he had assembled companies together, contrary
to the law and statutes of the realm in that case provided. For so it was
ordained a little before to avoid sedition, that if men should flock secretly
together above the number of six, they should be attached of treason :
which strait law was the casting away of the good duke of Somerset before
mentioned. His indictment did run much after this fashion: " George
Eagles, thou art indicted for that thou didst such a day make thy prayer,
that God should turn queen Mary's heart, or else take her away." He
denied that he prayed that God should take her away, but he confessed
he prayed that God would turn her heart in his prayer. Well, notwith-
standing he was condemned for a traitor, although the meaning thereof
was for religion.
This thing done, he was carried to the new inn, called the sign of the
Crown, in Chelmsford. In process of time, he was laid upon a sledge, with
948 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
a hurdle on it, and drawn to the place of execution, being fast bound,
having in his hand a Psalm-book, of the which he read very devoutly all
the way with a loud voice, till he came there. With him were cast certain
thieves also the day before ; and now when they were brought out to be
executed with him, there happened a thing that did much set forth and
declare the. innocency and godliness of this man. For being led between
two thieves to the place where he should suffer, when as he exhorted both
them and all others to stand steadfastly to the truth, one of these turned
the counsel he gave into a jesting matter, and made but a flout of it.
" Why should we doubt to obtain heaven," saith he, " forasmuch as this
holy man shall go before us, as captain and leader unto us in the way ?
We shall flee thither straight, as soon as he hath once made us the entry."
In this George Eagles and that other did greatly reprove him ; who, on
the other side gave good heed to George's exhortation, earnestly bewailing
his own wickedness, and calling to Christ for mercy. But the more that
the first was bid to be still, and to leave off his scoffing, the more perverse
he did continue in his foolishness and his wicked behaviour. At length he
came to the gallows where they should be hanged ; but George was carried
to another place there-by, to suffer. Between the two, it was the godlier's
chance to go the foremost, who being upon the ladder, after he had ex-
horted the people to beware and to take heed to themselves, how they did
transgress the commandments of God, and then had committed his soul
into God's hands, he ended his life after a godly and quiet manner. The
mocker's turn cometh next, which would have said likewise somewhat,
but his tongue did fumble and faulter in his head, that he was not able to
speak a word. Then did the under-sheriff bid him say the Lord's prayer,
which he could not say neither, but stutteringly, as a man would say, one
word to-day, and another to-morrow. Then did one begin to say it, and
so bade him say after. Such as were there, and saw it, were very much
astonished, especially those that did behold the just punishment of God
against him that had mocked so earnest a matter.
George Eagles in the meanwhile, after he had hanged a small time,
having a great check with the halter, immediately one of the bailiffs cut
the halter asunder, and he fell to the ground being still alive, although
much amazed with the check he had off the ladder. Then one William
Swallow of Chelmsford, a bailiff, did draw him to the sled that he was
drawn thither on, and laid his neck thereon, and with a cleaver (such as
is occupied in many men's kitchens, and blunt) did hackle off his head,
and sometimes hit his neck and sometimes his chin, and did foully mangle
him, and so opened him. Notwithstanding this blessed martyr of Christ
abode steadfast and constant in the very midst of his torments, till such
time as his tormentor William Swallow did pluck the heart out of his
body. The body being divided in four parts, and his bowels burnt, was
brought to the foresaid Swallow's door, and there laid upon the fish-stalls
before his door, till they made ready a horse to carry his quarters, one to
Colchester, and the rest to Harwich, Chelmsford, and St. Osyth's. His
head was set up at Chelmsford on the market-cross, on a long pole, and
there stood till the wind did blow it down ; and lying certain days in the
street tumbled about, one caused it to be buried in the churchyard in the
night
ACCOUNT OF MISTRESS JOYCE LEWES. 919
About tins time suffered at Norwich a godly man and a constant martyr
of Christ, called Richard Crashfield. He was examined and condemned by the
chancellor Dunning, and brought to the stake the 5th of August. About
the same time and month, one named Frier, with a woman accompanying
him, who was the sister of George Eagles, in the like cause of righteous-
ness suffered the like martyrdom by the unrighteous papists.
Mistress Joyce Lewes, a gentlewoman born, and delicately brought up
in the pleasures of the world, was married first to one called Appleby, and
afterward to Thomas Lewes of Manchester. In the beginning of queen
Mary's time she went to the church, and heard mass as the others; but
when she heard of the burning of that most godly and learned martyr,
Laurence Saunders, who suffered in Coventry, she began to take more
heed to the matter, and inquired earnestly of such as she knew feared God
the cause of his death. When she perceived it was because he refused to
receive the mass, she began to be troubled in conscience, and waxed very
unquiet ; and because her house was even hard by master John Glover's,
of whom mention was made before, she did oftentimes resort to him, and
desire him to tell her the faults that were in the mass, and other things
that at that time were urged as necessary to salvation. At a time when
she was compelled by the furiousness of her husband to come to the church,
when the holy water was cast, she turned her back towards it, and showed
herself to be displeased with their blasphemous holy water, injurious to
the blood of Christ ; whereupon she was accused before the bishop for
the despising of their sacramentals.
Immediately a citation was sent for her to her husband's house, to appear
before the bishop incontinently. The sumner that brought the citation
delivered it to her husband, who perceiving what it was, was moved with
anger, willing the sumner to take the citation with him again, or else he
would make him to eat it. The sumner refused to take it again, and in
the end Lewes compelled him to eat the citation indeed, by setting a dagger
to his heart ; and when he had eaten it he caused him to drink to it, and
so sent him away. But immediately after the said Lewes with his wife
were commanded to appear before the bishop, where he by and by sub-
mitted, and desiring the bishop to be good to him, excused himself after the
best fashion he could. Whereupon the bishop was content to receive his
submission, with condition that his wife should submit herself also. But
she stoutly told the bishop that by refusing of the holy water she had
neither offended God nor any part of his laws. The bishop gave her one
month's respite, binding her husband in a hundred pounds to bring her
again unto him at the month's end : and so were they both let go.
When they came to their own house, the said mistress Joyce Lewes gave
herself to most diligent prayer, resorting continually to the above-named
John Glover, who did most diligently instruct her with God's word, willing
her in any case not to meddle in that matter in respect of vain-glory, or
to get her a name, showing her the great danger she was like to cast herself
in, if she should meddle in God's matters otherwise than Christ doth teach-
When the month was almost expired, her husband was advertised by
the said John Glover and others not to carry her to the bishop, but to
seek some ways to save her, or if the worst should come to be content to
forfeit so much money, rather than to cast his own wife into the fire. He
950 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
answered he would not lose or forfeit anything for her sake ; and so he
carried her to the bishop, where she was examined, and found more stout
than she was before. After examination, she was sent to such a stinking
prison, that a certain maid which was appointed to keep her company did
swoon in the same prison.
Being thus kept in prison, oftentimes examined, and ever found stout,
at the length she was brought in judgment, and pronounced a heretic
worthy to be burnt. When the bishop reasoned with her, why she could
not come to the mass, and receive the sacraments and sacramentals of the
Holy Ghost: she answered, " Because I find not these things in God's
word, which you so urge and magnify as things most needful for men's
salvation. If these things were in the same word of God commanded, I
would with all my heart receive, esteem, and believe them." The bishop
answered, " If thou wilt believe no more than is in the Scriptures, concern-
ing matters of religion, thou art in a damnable case." At which words
she was wonderfully amazed, and being moved by the Spirit of God, told
the bishop that his words were ungodly and wicked.
After her condemnation she continued a whole twelvemonth in prison,
because she was committed to the sheriff that was of late chosen, who
could not be compelled to put her to death in his time, as he affirmed :
for the which thing, after her death, he was sore troubled, and in danger
of his life. When the time drew near, the writ being brought down from
London, she desired certain of her friends to come to her, with whom she
consulted how she might behave herself that her death might be more
glorious to the name of God, comfortable to his people, and discomfortable
unto the enemies of God. " As for death," said she, " I do not greatly
pass. When I behold the amiable countenance of Christ, my dear Saviour,
the uglisome face of death doth not greatly trouble me." In the which
time also she reasoned most comfortably out of God's word, of God's
election and reprobation.
In the evening before the day of her suffering, two of the priests of
Lichfield came to the under-sheriff's house where she lay, and sent word
to her that they were come to hear her confession : for they would be
sorry she should die without. She sent them word again, she had made
her confession to Christ her Saviour, at whose hands she was sure to have
forgiveness of her sins. As concerning the cause for the which she should
die, she had no cause to confess that, but rather to give unto God most
humble praise ; and as concerning that absolution that they were able to
give unto her, being authorized by the pope, she did defy the same even
from the bottom of her heart. The which thing when the priests heard,
they said to the sheriff, " Well, to-morrow her stoutness will be proved
and tried : for although perhaps she hath now some friends that whisper
her in her ears, to-morrow we will see who dare be so hardy as to come
near her." And so they went their ways with anger, that their confession
and absolution was nought set by.
The next morning she was brought through the town to the place of
execution, with a number of bill-men, a great multitude of people being
present, led by two of her friends, Michael Rcniger and Augustine Bernher.
And because the place was far off, and the throng of the people great, one
of her Mends sent a messenger to the sheriff's house for some drink ; and
BURPING OK TWO WOMEN AT COLCHESTER. 051
after she had prayed three several times, in the which prayer she desired
God most instantly to abolish the idolatrous mass, and to deliver this
realm from papistry, she took the cup into her hands, saying, " I drink to
all them that unfeignedly love the gospel of Jesus Christ, and wish for the
abolishment of papistry." When she had drank, they that were her friends
drank also. After that a great number, specially the women of the town,
did drink with her; which afterward were put to open penance in the
church by the cruel papists, for drinking with her.
When she was tied to the stake with the chain, she showed such a
cheerfulness that it passed man's reason, being so well coloured in her face,
and being so patient, that the most part of them that had honest hearts
did lament, and even with tears bewail the tyranny of the papists. When
the fire was set upon her, she neither struggled nor stirred, but only lifted
up her hands towards heaven, being dead very speedily : for the under-
sheriff, at the request of her friends, had provided such stuff by the which
she was suddenly despatched out of this miserable world.
In searching out the certain number of the faithful martyrs of God that
suffered within the time and reign of queen Mary, I find that about the
17th day of September were burned at Islington, nigh unto London, these
four constant professors of Christ — Ralph Allerton, James Austoo, Margery
Austoo, his wife, and Richard Roth. They were condemned by the cruel
Bonner, delivered unto the sheriff, and most joyfully ended their lives in
one fire at Islington, as before is declared.
A little before, gentle reader, was mention made of ten that suffered
martyrdom at Colchester ; at which time there were two other also, one
called Margaret Thurston, and the other Agnes Bongeor, that should have
suffered with them, being condemned at the same time, and for the like
cause. On the morning that the four were taken from the castle, Margaret
Thurston went aside to pray. And whilst she was praying came in the
gaoler and his company, and took the other prisoners and left her alone.
Shortly after she was removed out of the castle, and put into the town-
prison, where she continued until Friday sevennight after her company
were burnt. That day, not two hours before her death, she was brought
to the castle again, where she declared thus much to one Joan Cook.
The other, Agnes Bongeor, who should have suffered with the six that
went out of Mote-hall, was kept back at that time because her name was
wrong written within the writ. The morning that the said six were called
out to go to their martyrdom, she also was called with them by name of
Agnes Bovver. Wherefore the bailiffs, understanding her to be wrong
named within the writ, commanded her to prison again, and so from Mote-
hall that day sent her to the castle, where she remained until her death.
When these foresaid good women were brought to the place in Colchester,
where they should suffer, the 17th day of September, they fell down upon
both their knees, and made their humble prayers unto the Lord : which
thing being done, they rose and went to the stake joyfully, and were im-
mediately thereto chained ; and after the fire had compassed them about,
they with great joy and glorious triumph gave up their souls, spirits, and
lives into the hands of the Lord : under whose government and protection,
for Christ's, sake we beseech him to grant us his holy defeuce and help for
evermore. Amen !
952 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
In the month of September this present year 1557, or (as some report)
in the year past, suffered the blessed martyr John Noyes. He was con-
demned at Norwich, and from thence sent to Eye-prison ; and upon the
21st day of September, about midnight, was brought from Eye to Laxfield
to be burnt. On the next day morning he was brought to the stake, where
were ready against his coming, master justice Thurston, master Waller,
then being under-sheriff, and master Thomas Lovel, high constable ; the
which commanded men to make ready all things meet for that sinful
purpose. Now the fire in most places of the street was put out, saving
a smoke was espied by the said Lovel proceeding out from the top of a
chimney, to the which house the sheriff and his man went, and brake
open the door, and thereby got fire, and brought the same to the place of
execution.
When John Noyes came to the place, he kneeled down and said the
50th Psalm, with other prayers; and then they, making haste, bound him
to the stake. And being bound, Noyes said, " Fear not them that can kill
the body, but fear Him that can kill both body and soul, and cast it into
everlasting fire." When he saw his sister weeping, he bade her that she
should not weep for him, but weep for her sins ; and when one brought a
fagot and set it against him, he took it up and kissed it, and said, " Blessed
be the time that ever I was born to come to this." Then he delivered his
Psalter to the under-sheriff, desiring him to be good to his wife and chil-
dren, and to deliver to her that same book. After that he said to the
people, " They say they can make God of a piece of bread; believe them
not ! Good people, bear witness that I do believe to be saved by the
merits and passion of Jesus Christ, and not by mine own deeds." And so
the fire was kindled, and burnt about him. Then he said, " Lord have
mercy upon me ! Christ have mercy upon me ! Son of David have mercy
upon me !" And so he yielded up his life; and when his body was burnt,
they made a pit to bury the coals and ashes, and amongst the same they
found one of his feet that was unburnt, whole up to the ankle, with the
hose on ; and that they buried with the rest.
About the 23rd day of the said month of September, next after the
above-mentioned, suffered at Norwich, Cicely Ormes, wife of Edmund
Ormes, worsted -weaver, dwelling in St. Laurence's parish in Norwich.
She was taken at the death of Simon Miller and Elizabeth Cooper above-
mentioned, in a place called the Lollards'-pit without Bishop's-gate, at
Norwich, for that she said she would pledge them of the same cup that
they drank on. For so saying she was sent to the chancellor, who asked
her what she said unto the sacrament of Christ's body; and she said, that
she did believe it was the sacrament of the body of Christ. " Yea," said
the chancellor, " but what is that that the priest holdeth over his head ?"
She said, " It is bread : and if you make it any better, it is worse." At
which words the chancellor sent her to the bishop's prison, with many
threatening and hot words, as a man being in a great chafe.
The 23rd of July she was called before the chancellor again, who sat in
judgment with master Bridges and others. The chancellor offered her, if
she would go to the church and keep her tongue, she should be at liberty,
and believe as she would. But she told him she would not consent to his
wicked desire therein, do with her what he would: and soon after he read
BURNINGS IN THE DIOCESE OF CHICHESTER. 953
the bloody sentence of condemnation against lier ; and so delivered her to
the secular power of the sheriffs, who immediately carried her to the Guild-
hall in Norwich, where she remained until her death.
She was burnt the 23rd day of September, between seven and eight of
the clock in the morning, the two sheriffs and about two hundred people
being present. When she came to the stake, which was the same that
Simon Miller and Elizabeth Cooper were burnt at, she kneeled down and
made her prayers to God : that being done, she rose up and said, "Good
people ! I believe in God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy
Ghost, three persons and one God. This do I not, nor will I recant : but I
recant utterly from the bottom of my heart the doings of the pope of
Rome, and all his popish priests and shavelings. I utterly refuse and
never will have to do with them again, by God's grace. And good people !
I would you should not think of me that I believe to be saved in that I
offer myself here unto death for the Lord's cause, but I believe to be saved
by the death and passion of Christ ; and this my death is and shall be a
witness of my faith unto you all here present. Good people ! as many of
you as believe as I believe, pray for me." Then she laid her hand on the
stake and said, "Welcome the sweet cross of Christ!" and so gave herself
to be bound thereto. After the tormentors had kindled the fire to her,
she said, "My soul doth magnify the Lord, and my spirit rejoiceth in God
my Saviour." And in so saying she set her hands together right against
her breast, casting her eyes and head upward ; and so stood heaving up
her hands by little and little, till the very sinews of her arm did break
asunder, and then they fell. But she yielded her life unto the Lord as
quietly as if she had been in a slumber, or as one feeling no pain ; so
wonderfully did the Lord work with her : his name therefore be praised
for evermore. Amen !
What place was there almost in all the realm where the pope's ministers
did not bestir them, murdering some or other, as in the Acts of this Eccle-
siastical History may appear ? In the diocese of Chichester, although we
have little to report thereof, for lack of certain relation and records of that
country, yet divers there were condemned and martyred for the true testi-
mony of righteousness, within the compass of queen Mary's reign, in the
number of whom were these : — John Foreman, of East Grinstead ; John
Warner, of Bourne; Christian Grover, of Lewes ; Thomas Athoth, priest;
Thomas Avington, of Ardingly; Dennis Burgis, of Buxted ; Thomas
Ravensdale, of Rye; John Milles, of Hellingley ; Nicholas Holden, of
Withyam ; John Hart, of Withyam ; Margery Morice, of Heathfield ;
Anne Try, of East Grinstead ; John Oseward, of Woodmancott ; Thomas
Harland, of Woodmancott ; James Morice, of Heathfield ; Thomas Dou-
gate, of East Grinstead ; John Ashedon, of Cattesfield. The greatest doers
against these godly and true faithful martyrs, and setters upon their con-
demnation, were these : Christopherson, bishop of Chichester ; Richard
Briesley, doctor of law, and chancellor of Chichester ; Robert Tailor,
bachelor of law, his deputy; Thomas Paccard, civilian ; Anthony Clarke;
Aibane Longdale, bachelor of divinity, etc.
Thomas Spurdance, one of queen Mary's servants, was taken by two of
his fellow-servants, named John Haman and George Looson,both dwelling
in Coddenham, in Suffolk, who carried him to one master Gosnall, in the
954 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
same town, and by him he was sent to Bury, where he remained in prison.
He was afterwards burnt in the month of November, being condemned by
the bishop of Norwich.
Not long after the martyrdom of the two good women at Colchester
above-named, were three faithful witnesses of the Lord's testament tor-
mented and put to death in Smithfield, at London, the 18th of November,
whose names were John Hallingdale, William Sparrow, and Richard Gib-
son. They were condemned by Bonner and his chancellor, and committed
to the secular power. Being brought to the stake, after their prayer made,
they were bound thereunto with chains, and wood set unto them ; and,
after wood, fire; in the which being compassed about, and the fiery flames
consuming their flesh, at the last they yielded gloriously and joyfully their
souls and lives into the holy hands of the Lord, to whose tuition and
government I commend thee, good reader.
In this furious time of persecution were also burned these two constant
and faithful martyrs of Christ, John Rough, a minister, and Margaret
Mearing. This Rough was born in Scotland, and at the age of seventeen
did profess himself into the order of Black Friars at Stirling. Here he
remained sixteen years, when he was dispensed of his habit and order at
the suit of the lord Hamilton, governor of Scotland, who wished him to
serve as his chaplain. He continued in his service one whole year, during
which time it pleased God to open his eyes, and to give him some know-
ledge of his truth ; and thereupon was by the said governor sent to preach
in the freedom of Ayr, where he continued four years. After the death of
the cardinal of Scotland he was appointed to abide at St. Andrew's, and
there had assigned unto him a yearly pension of twenty pounds from king
Henry the eighth. Howbeit, at last, weighing with himself his own danger,
and also abhorring the idolatry and superstition of his country, and hearing
of the freedom of the gospel in England, he soon after came unto Carlisle,
and from thence unto the duke of Somerset, then lord protector; and by
his assignment had appointed unto him out of the king's treasury twenty
pounds of yearly stipend, being sent as a preacher to serve at Carlisle,
Berwick, and Newcastle, where he took a country-woman of his to wife.
From hence he was called by the archbishop of York unto a benefice nigh,
in the town of Hull, where he continued until the death of that blessed and
good king Edward the sixth.
In the beginning of the reign of queen Mary, (perceiving the alteration
of religion, and the persecution that would thereupon arise, and feeling his
own weakness,) he fled with his wife into Friesland, where he laboured for
his living, knitting of caps, hose, and such like things, till about the end
of October last before his death. At which time, lacking yarn and other
necessary provision for his occupation, he came over again unto England,
here to provide for the same. He arrived in London on the 10th day of
November, where he joined himself unto the holy congregation of God's
children ; and afterwards, being elected their minister, continued in that
godly fellowship, teaching and confirming them in the truth of the gospel
of Christ. But in the end, on the 12th day of December, he, with Cutbert
Symson and others, through the crafty and traitorous suggestion of a dis-
sembling brother, was apprehended by the vice-chamberlain of the queen's
house, at the Saracen's Head in Islington. Rough and Symson were
JOHN ROUGH AM) CI rBERT SVMSON. 955
carried before the council, who charged them to have assembled together
to celebrate the communion or supper of the Lord; and therefore, after
sundry examinations and answers, they sent the said Rough unto Newgate;
but his examinations they sent unto the bishop of London, with a letter
signed with their hands.
Bonner, minding to make quick despatch, did within three days after
the receipt of the letter send for this Rough out of Newgate, and in his
palace at London ministered unto him twelve articles which were chiefly
objected against the martyrs and saints of God. After his answers to these
he was dismissed ; and the next day, being the 19th of December, he was
again brought before the said bishop and others; who, when they perceived
his constantness, determined the next day after to bring him openly into
the consistory, there to adjudge and condemn him as a heretic. He was
degraded by Bonner, and his body committed to the secular power, who
carried him unto Newgate.
It is before declared, that in the company of John Rough was burnt
one Margaret Hearing, (being one of the congregation of which he was
chief pastor.) At her last examination, when Bonner demanded if she
would stand to her answers, she said, "I will stand to them unto the
death ; for the very angels of heaven do laugh you to scorn, to see your
abomination that you use in your church/' After the which words, the
bishop pronounced the sentence of condemnation against her ; and then
delivering her unto the sheriffs, she was, with the forenamed John R.ough,
carried unto Newgate ; from whence they were both together led unto
Smithfield the 22nd day of December, and there most joyfully gave their
lives for the profession of Christ's gospel.
Next after the martyrdom of master Rough, minister of the congregation
above-mentioned, succeeded in like martyrdom the deacon also of that
godly company, named Cutbert Symson. This Symson was a man of a
faithful and zealous heart to Christ and his true flock, insomuch that he
never ceased labouring and studying most earnestly to preserve them with-
out corruption of the popish religion, and to keep them together without
peril or danger of persecution. The pains, travail, zeal, patience, and
fidelity of this man, in caring and providing for this congregation, as it is
not lightly to be expressed, so is it wonderful to behold the providence of
the Lord by vision, concerning the troubles of this faithful minister and
godly deacon, as in this here following may appear : —
The Friday at night before master Rough, minister of the congregation,
(of whom mention is made before) was taken, being in his bed, he dreamed
that he saw two of the guard leading Cutbert Symson, deacon of the said
congregation ; and that he had the book about him, wherein were written
the names of all them which were of the congregation. Whereupon being
sore troubled, he awaked, and called his wife, saying, " Kate, strike a
light, for I am much troubled with my brother Cutbert this night." When
she had so done, he gave himself to read in his book awhile, and then
feeling sleep to come upon him, he put out the candle, and so gave himself
again to rest. Being asleep, he dreamed the like dream again; and,
awaking therewith, he said, "O Kate! my brother Cutbert is gone."
So they lighted a candle again, and rose. And as the said master Rough
was making him ready to go to Cutbert, to see how he did, in the mean
956 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
time the said Cutbert came in with the book containing the names and
accounts of the congregation : whom when master Rough had seen, he
said, " Brother Cutbert, ye are welcome ; for I have been sore troubled
with you this night;" and so told him his dream. After he had so done,
he willed him to lay the book away from him, and to carry it no more
about him. Unto which Cutbert answered, he would not so do : for
dreams, he said, were but fantasies, and not to be credited. Then master
Rough straitly charged him, in the name of the Lord, to do it. Where-
upon the said Cutbert took such notes out of the book, as he had willed
him to do, and immediately left the book with master Rough's wife. The
next day following, in the night, the said master Rough had another dream
in his sleep concerning his own trouble ; the matter whereof was this. He
thought in his dream, that he was carried himself forcibly to the bishop,
and that the bishop plucked off his beard, and cast it into the fire, saying
these words, " Now I may say that I have had a piece of a heretic burned
in my house : " and so accordingly it came to pass.
To return to Cutbert again, it remaineth to story also of his pains and
sufferings upon the rack, and otherwise, as he wrote it with his own hand
in a letter to certain of his friends : —
" A true report how I was used in the Tower of London, being sent
thither by the council, the 13th day of December. — On the Thursday after
I was called into the warehouse, before the constable of the Tower and the
recorder of London, master Cholmley : they commanded me to tell whom
I did will to come to the English service. I answered, I would declare
nothing. Whereupon I was set in a rack of iron, the space of three hours
as I judged. Then they asked me if I would tell them. I answered as
before. Then was I loosed, and carried to my lodging again. On the
Sunday after I was brought into the same place again before the lieutenant
and the recorder of London, and they examined me. As before I had said,
I answered. Then the lieutenant did swear by God I should tell. Then
did they bind my two fore-fingers together, and put a small arrow betwixt
them, and drew it through so fast that the blood followed, and the arrow
brake. Then they racked me twice. Then was I carried to my lodging
again ; and ten days after the lieutenant asked me, if I would not confess
that which before they had asked me. I said, I had said as much as I
would. Then, five weeks after, he sent me unto the high priest, where I
was greatly assaulted, and at whose hand I received the pope's curse, for
bearing witness of the resurrection of Jesus Christ. — And thus I commend
you unto God, and to the word of his grace, with all them that unfeign-
edly call upon the name of Jesus, desiring God of his endless mercy,
through the merits of his dear Son Jesus Christ, to bring us all to his
everlasting kingdom, Amen. I praise God for his great mercy showed
upon us. Sing ' Hosanna unto the highest,' with me Cutbert Symsou.
God forgive me my sins ! I ask all the world forgiveness, and I do forgive
all the world; and thus I leave this world, in hope of a joyful resurrection."
With Cutbert likewise was apprehended and also suffered Hugh Foxe
and John Devenish ; who being brought to their examinations with the said
Cutbert, before Bonner, the 19th day of March, had articles and inter-
rogatories to them ministered by the said officer, albeit not all at one time.
For first to the said Cutbert several articles were propounded ; then other
THREE MEN CONDEMNED AT NORWICH. 957
articles in general were ministered to them altogether ; and after their an-
swers given, the bishop calling them all together objected to them other
positions and articles. These three above-named persons, being condemned,
suffered in Smithfield about the 28th day of March, 1558, in whose perfect
constancy the same Lord in whose cause and quarrel they suffered, (Giver
of t: race and Governor of all things,) be exalted for ever. Amen.
We find in all ages from the beginning, that Satan hath not ceased at
all times to molest the church of Christ with one affliction or other, to the
trial of their faith ; but yet never at any time so apparently as when the
Lord hath permitted him power over the bodies of his saints : as in these
latter days of queen Mary, we have felt, heard, and seen practised upon
God's people. Among whom we find recorded one William Nichol, an
honest poor man, who was apprehended by the champions of the pope, for
speaking certain words against the cruel kingdom of Antichrist, and the
9th day of April, anno 1558, was butcherly burnt and tormented at Haver-
ford-west in Wales, where he ended his life in a most blessed and happy
state, and gloriously gave his soul into the hands of the Lord.
Immediately after William Nichol succeeded in that honourable and
glorious vocation of martyrdom, three constant godly men at Norwich,
who were cruelly and tyrannically put to death for the true testimony of
Jesus Christ, the 19th day of May, whose names be these : William Sea-
man, Thomas Carman, and Thomas Hudson. The said Seaman was a
husbandman of the age of twenty-six years, dwelling in Mendlesham, in
Suffolk, who was sundry times sought for by the commandment of sir
John Tyrrel, and at last he himself in the night searched his house and
other places for him ; notwithstanding he somewhat missed of his purpose,
God be thanked. Then he gave charge to two of his servants to seek for
him ; who, having no officer, went in the evening to his house, where he
being at home, they took him and carried him to their master. When he
came, Tyrrel asked him why he would not go to mass, and receive the
sacrament, and so to worship it? Unto which William Seaman answered,
denying it to be a sacrament, but said it was an idol, and therefore would
not receive it. After which words spoken, sir John Tyrrel shortly sent
him to Norwich, to Dr. Hopton, then bishop ; and there, after con-
ference and examination had with him, the bishop read his bloody sentence
of condemnation against him ; and afterward delivered him to the secular
power, who kept him unto the day of martyrdom. This Seaman left be-
hind him a wife and three children very young, who was also persecuted
out of the said town of Mendlesham, because that she would not go to hear
mass; and all her goods and corn seized and taken away by master
Christopher Coles's officers, he being lord of the said town.
Thomas Carman, (who, as is said, pledged Richard Crashfield at his
burning, and thereupon was apprehended,) being prisoner in Norwich, was
about one time with the rest, examined and brought before the said bishop,
who answered no less in his Master's cause than the other, and therefore
had the like reward, being delivered to the secular power, who kept him
with the other until the day of slaughter.
Thomas Hudson was of Aylsham in Norfolk, by occupation a glover, a
very honest poor man, having a wife and three children. He bare so good
will to the gospel, that, in the days of king Edward the sixth, he learned to
958 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
read English of Anthony and Thomas Norgate of the same town, wherein
he greatly profited about the time of alteration of religion. For when
queen Mary came to reign, and had changed the service in the church —
putting in for wheat draft and darnel, and for good preaching blasphem-
ous crying out against truth and godliness — he absented himself from his
house, and went into Suffolk a long time, travelling from one place to
another as occasion offered. At the last he returned back again to Norfolk,
to his house at Aylsham, to comfort his wife and children, being heavy
and troubled with his absence.
Now when he came home, and perceived his continuance there would
be dangerous, he and his wife devised to make him a place among his
fagots to hide himself in, where he remained all the day, reading and pray-
ing continually, for the space of half a year ; and his wife, like an honest
woman being careful for him, used herself faithfully and diligently towards
him. In the mean time came the vicar of the town, named Berry, (who
was one of the bishop's commissaries, a very evil man,) and inquired of
his wife for her husband : unto whom she answered, as not knowing where
he was. Then the said Berry rated her, and threatened to burn her, for
that she would not bewray her husband. After that, when Hudson un-
derstood it, he waxed every day more zealous, and continually read and
sang psalms to the wonder of many, the people openly resorting to him,
to hear his exhortations and vehement prayers. At the last he walked
abroad for certain days in the town, crying out continually against the
mass and all their trumpery; and in the end coming home he sat him down
upon his knees, having his book by him, reading and singing psalms con-
tinually without ceasing for three days and three nights together, refusing
meat and other talk.
Then one John Crouch, his next neighbour, w T ent to the constables in
the night to certify them thereof; for Berry commanded openly to watch
him : and the constables, understanding the same, went cruelly to catch
him in the break of the day, the 22nd of April, 1558. When Hudson
saw them come in, he said, " Now mine hour is come. Welcome friends,
welcome ! You be they that shall lead me to life in Christ. I thank God
there-for, and the Lord enable me thereto for his mercy's sake." For his
desire was, and ever he prayed, (if it were the Lord's will,) that he might
suffer for the gospel of Christ. Then they took him, and led him to Berry
the commissary, who among other matters asked him, " Dost thou not be-
lieve in the sacrament of the altar? What is it?" " It is worms' meat,"
quoth Hudson : " my belief is Christ crucified." " Doth thou not believe
the mass to put away sins ? " " No, God forbid ! it is a patched monster,
and a disguised puppet; more longer a piecing than ever was Solomon's
temple." At which words Berry stamped, fumed, and showed himself as
a madman, and said, "Well, thou villain, thou! I will write to the
bishop, my good lord : and, trust unto it, thou shalt be handled according
to thy deserts." Then he asked the said Hudson whether he would recant
or no; unto which he said, "The Lord forbid! I had rather die many
deaths than do so."
Then, after long talk, the said Berry, seeing it booted not to persuade
with him, took his pen and ink, and wrote letters to the bishop thereof,
and sent this Hudson to Norwich, bound like a thief, which was eight
PERSECUTIONS IN THE TOWN OF MENDLESHAM. 959
miles from thence, who with joy and singing cheer went thither as merry
as ever he was at any time before. In prison he was a month, where he
did continually read and invocate the name of God. These three Chris-
ti ins and constant martyrs, after they were condemned the 19th day of
May, were carried out of prison to the place where they should suffer,
which was without Bishop's-gate at Norwich, called Lollards'-pit ; and
being all there they made their humble petitions unto the Lord. That
being done, they rose and went to the stake; and standing all there with
their chains about them, immediately this said Thomas Hudson cometh
forth from them under the chain, to the great wonder of many ; whereby
divers feared and greatly doubted of him. For some thought he would
have recanted ; others judged rather that he went to ask further day, and
to desire conference ; and some thought he came forth to ask some of his
parents' blessing. So some thought one thing, and some another : but his
two companions at the stake cried out to comfort him what they could,
exhorting him in the bowels of Christ to be of good cheer, etc. But this
sweet Hudson felt more in his heart and conscience than they could con-
ceive in him : for, alas, good soul ! he was compassed (God knoweth) with
great dolour and grief of mind, not for his death, but for lack of feeling of
his Christ: and therefore, being very careful, he humbly fell down upon
his knees, and prayed vehemently and earnestly unto the Lord, who at
the last (according to his old mercies) sent him comfort ; and then rose he
with great joy, as a man new changed even from death to life, and said :
" Now, I thank God, I am strong, and pass not what man can do unto
me." So, going to the stake to his fellows again, in the end they all
suffered most joyfully, constantly, and manfully the death together, and
were consumed in fire, to the terror of the wicked, the comfort of God's
children, and the magnifying of the Lord's name, to whom be praise for ever.
After this, the foresaid commissary Berry made great stir about others
which were suspected within the said town of Aylsham, and caused two
hundred to creep to the cross at Pentecost, besides other punishments
which they sustained. On the Sunday after queen Mary was dead, being
the 19th of November, 1558, the said Berry went to church ; and in going
from church homeward after evensong, he fell down suddenly with a heavy
groan, and never stirred after, neither showed any one token of repentance.
The Lord grant we may observe his judgments !
About this time, or somewhat before, was one Joan Seaman, mother to
the foresaid William Seaman, being of the age of threescore and six years,
persecuted of the said sir John Tyrrel also out of the town of Mendlesham,
because she would not go to mass, and receive against her conscience ;
which good old woman being from her house, was glad sometimes to lie
in bushes, groves, and fields, and sometime in her neighbour's house. Her
husband being at home, about the age of eighty years, fell sick; and she hear-
ing thereof, with speed returned home, not regarding her life, but consider-
ing her duty ; and showed her. diligence to her husband most faithfully,
until God took him away by death. Then by God's providence she fell
sick also, and departed this life within her own house shortly after. And
when Symonds the commissary heard of it, dwelling thereby, he commanded
that she should be buried in no Christian burial, (as they call it,) where-
through her friends were compelled to lay her in a pit, under a moat's side.
960 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
In the town of Wetheringset by Mendlesham, aforesaid, a very honest
woman called mother Benet, a widow, was persecuted out of the same
town because she would not go to mass ; but, at the last, she returned
home again secretly, and there departed this life joyfully. But sir John
Tyrrel and master Symonds would not let her be buried in the church-
yard : so was she laid in a grave by the highway side.
Thou hast heard, good reader, of the forenamed three that were burned
at Norwich, whose blood quenched not the persecuting thirst of the papists :
for immediately after, even the 26th of the same month, was seen the like
murder at Colchester in Essex, of two good men and a woman, lying there
in prison appointed ready to the slaughter, whose names were William
Harris, Richard Day, and Christian George. These three good souls were
brought unto the stake the day appointed, and there fervently and joyfully
made their prayers unto the Lord. At the last, being settled in their
places, and chained unto their posts, with the fire flaming fiercely round
about them, they triumphantly praised God within the same, and offered
up their bodies a lively sacrifice unto his holy Majesty ; in whose habita-
tion they have now their everlasting tabernacles : his name therefore be
praised for evermore. Amen.
The said Christian George's husband had another wife burnt before, whose
name was Agnes George, which suffered, as you have heard, with the thir-
teen at Stratford-le-Bow. And, after the death of the said Christian, he
married an honest godly woman again ; and so they both (I mean the said
Richard George and his last wife) in the end were taken also, and laid in
prison, where they remained till the death of queen Mary ; and at last
were delivered by our most gracious sovereign lady queen Elizabeth, whom
the Lord grant long to reign among us, for his mercies' sake. Amen.
In the month of June, 1558, came out a certain proclamation, short but
sharp, from the king and queen, against wholesome and godly books, which,
under the false title of heresy and sedition, there in the said proclamation
were wrongfully condemned.
In a back close in a field by Islington, were gathered together a com-
pany of innocent persons, to the number of forty men and women. As
they were sitting together at prayer, and virtuously occupied in the
meditation of God's holy word, first cometh a certain man to them un-
known, who looking over unto them, stayed and saluted them, saying,
that they looked like men that meant no hurt. Then one of the com-
pany asked the man if he could tell whose close that was, and whether
they might be so bold to sit there. He answered yes, because they
seemed to be such persons as intended no harm; and so departed.
Within a quarter of an hour after, came the constable of Islington,
named King, with six or seven more, one with a bow, another with a
bill, and the rest with weapons. The constable, and one with him, went
before to view them ; and going a little forward, and returning back
again, ordered them to deliver their books. They understanding that he
was a constable, refused not so to do. Then came up the rest of the
gang, who bade them stand and not depart. They answered again, they
would be obedient and go whithersoever they would have them. They
accordingly carried them before Sir Roger Cholmley. But some of the
women had escaped; for they were carried in such a manner as it was
EXAMINATION OF SEVEN MARTYRS. 961
not difficult for them to escape that would. In fine, they that were carried
to sir Roger Cholmley were twenty-seven; which sir Roger Cholmley and
the recorder taking their names in a bill, and calling- them one by one, so
many as answered to their names he sent to Newgate, which were twenty-
two. These were in the said prison seven weeks before they were examined,
to whom word was sent by Alexander the keeper, that if they would hear
mass, they should be delivered. Of these foresaid two-and-twenty were
burnt thirteen: in Smithfield seven, at Brentford six. Two died in prison
in Whitsun week ; and the other seven escaped with their lives, although
not without much trouble, (one of them, named Hinshawe, being scourged
by Bonner himself, so long as the fat-paunched bishop could endure with
breath ;) yet, as God would, without burning.
The first seven were brought to examination before Bonner in his consistory
on the 14th of June, to make answer to such articles and interrogatories
as by the said bishop should be ministered unto them. The names of these
seven were, Henry Pond, Reinald Eastland, Robert Southam, Matthew
Ricarby, John Floyd, John Holiday, and Roger Holland. After the articles
were ministered unto them, and they had again given their answers, they
were assigned by the bishop to appear before him on the 17th day of June.
Being there present as they were commanded, the articles were again re-
cited, and they all declared they would stand to their answers made to the
same. Whereupon the bishop dissevering them apart one from another,
proceeded with them severally, first beginning with Reinald Eastland, who
there declared that he had been uncharitably handled and talked withal
since his first imprisonment. Then being required to reconcile himself
again to the catholic faith, and go from his opinions, he said that he knew
nothing why he should recant ; and therefore would not conform himself.
And so the sentence was read against him, and he given to the secular power.
After him was called in John Holiday, who likewise being advertised to
renounce his heresies, (as they called them,) and to return to the unity of
their church, said, that he was no heretic, nor did hold any heresy, neither
any opinion contrary to the catholic faith, and so would offer himself to be
judged therein. Whereupon he likewise persisting in the same, the sen-
tence was pronounced against him, condemning him to be burnt.
Next to him was condemned, with the like sentence, Henry Pond, be-
cause he would not submit to the Romish church, saying to Bonner, that
lie had done or spoken nothing whereof he was or would be sorry ; but
that he did hold the truth of God, and no heresy, etc. After whom next
followed John Floyd, who likewise denied to be of the pope's church, and
said his mind of the Latin service, that the prayers made to saints are
idolatry, and that the service in Latin is profitable to none, but only to
such as understand the Latin. Moreover, being charged by Bonner of
heresy, and saying, that whatsoever he and such others now-a-days do, all is
heresy; for this he was condemned with the same butcherly sentence.
Then Robert Southam, after him Matthew Ricarby, and last of all
Roger Holland, were severally produced. This Roger Holland with his
fellows (as ye heard) standing to their answers, and refusing to acknowledge
the doctrine of the Romish church, were altogether condemned, the sen-
tence being read against them; and so all seven, by secular magistrates
being sent away to Newgate the 17th of June, not long after, about the
3q
962 HISTOEY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
27th day of the said month, were had to Smithfield, and there ended their
lives in the glorious cause of Christ's gospel. The day they suffered, a
proclamation was made that none should be so bold to speak or talk any
word unto them, or receive anything of them, or to touch them upon pain
of imprisonment, without either bail or mainprize ; with divers other cruel
threatening words, contained in the same proclamation. Notwithstanding
the people cried out, desiring God to strengthen them ; and they likewise
still prayed for the people, and the restoring of his word.
Not long after the death of the forenamed, were the six other faithful
witnesses of the Lord's true testament martyred at Brentford, seven
miles from London, the 14th day of July, in this same year 1558. Their
names were Robert Mills, Stephen Cotton, Robert Dynes, Stephen Wight,
John Slade, and William Pikas or Pikes. These six had their articles
ministered unto them by Thomas Darbyshire, Bonner's chancellor, at
sundry times ; and though they were several times examined, yet had they
all one manner of articles administered unto them, yea and the selfsame
that were ministered unto the other seven aforesaid. In the end, the
chancellor commanded them to appear before him again the 11th of July
after, in the said place at Paul's. Where when they came, he required of
them whether they would turn from their opinions to mother holy church ;
and if not, that then whether there were any cause to the contrary, but
that he might proceed with the sentence of condemnation. Whereunto
they all answered, that they would not go from the truth, nor relent from
any part of the same while they lived.
Then he charged them to appear before him again the next day in the
afternoon to hear the definitive sentence read against them, according to
the ecclesiastical laws then in force. At which time, he sitting in judgment
talking with these godly and virtuous men, at last came into the said place
sir Edward Hastings and sir Thomas Cornwallis, knights, two of queen
Mary's officers of her house; and being there, they sat them down over
against the chancellor, in whose presence the said chancellor condemned
those good poor lambs, and delivered them over to the secular power, who
received and carried them to prison immediately, and there kept them in
safety till the day of their death.
In the mean time this naughty chancellor slept not, I warrant you, but
that day in which they were condemned, he made certificate into the lord
chancellor's office, from whence the next day after was sent a writ to burn
them at Brentford aforesaid, which accordingly was accomplished in the
same place, the said 14th day of July ; whereunto they being brought,
made their humble prayers unto the Lord Jesus, undressed themselves,
went joyfully to the stake, (whereunto they were bound,) and the fire
flaming about them, they yielded their souls, bodies, and lives into the
hands of the omnipotent Lord, for whose cause they did suffer, and to
whose protection I commend thee, gentle reader. Amen.
Among these six was one William Pikes, (as ye have heard,) who some-
time dwelt in Ipswich in Suffolk, by his occupation a tanner, a very honest
godly man, and of a virtuous disposition, a good keeper of hospitality, and
beneficial to the persecuted in queen Mary's days. This said William Pikes,
in the third year of queen Mary's reign, a little after Midsummer, being
then at liberty, went into his garden, and took with him a Bible of Rogers's
ACCOUNT OF RICHARD YKOMAN. 963
translation, where he, sitting with his face towards the south, reading on
the said Bible, suddenly fell down upon his book, between eleven and
twelve o'clock of the day, four drops of fresh blood, and he knew not from
whence it came. Then he, seeing the same, was sore astonished, and
could by no means learn (as I said) from whence it should fall : and wiping
out one of the drops with his finger, he called his wife and said, " In the
virtue of God, wife, what meaneth this ? will the Lord have four sacrifices ?
I see well enough the Lord will have blood : his will be done, and give me
grace to abide the trial ! Wife, let us pray," said he, " for I fear the day
diaweth nigh." Afterward, he daily looked to be apprehended of the
papists ; and it came to pass accordingly, as ye have heard. Thus much
thought I good to write thereof, to stir up our dull senses in considering
the Lord's works, and reverently to honour the same. His name there-for
be praised for evermore ! Amen.
After the story of these twenty-two taken at Islington, proceeding now,
(the Lord willing,) we will prosecute likewise the taking and cruel handling
of Richard Yeoman, minister; which Yeoman had been, before, Dr.
Taylor's curate, a godly devout old man of seventy years, which had many
years dwelt in Hadley, well seen in the Scriptures, and giving godly ex-
hortations to the people. With him Dr. Taylor left his cure at his depar-
ture : but as soon as master Newall had gotten the benefice, he drove away
good Yeoman, as is before said, and set in a popish curate to maintain
and continue their Romish religion, which now they thought fully stablished.
Then wandered he long time from place to place, moving and exhorting
all men to stand faithfully by God's word, earnestly to give themselves unto
prayer, with patience to bear the cross now laid upon them for their trial,
with boldness to confess the truth before the adversaries, and with an un-
doubted hope to wait for the crown and reward of eternal felicity. But
when he perceived his adversaries to lie in wait for him, he went into Kent,
and with a little packet of laces, pins, and points, and such like things, he
travelled from village to village, selling such things ; and by that poor shift
got himself somewhat to the sustaining of himself, his wife, and children.
At the last, a justice of Kent, called master Moyle, took poor Yeoman,
and set him in the stocks a day and a night ; but having no evident matter
to charge him with, he let him go again. So came he again to Hadley,
and tarried with his poor wife, who kept him secretly in a chamber of the
town-house, commonly called the Guildhall, more than a year ; all the
which time the good old father abode in a chamber, locked up all the day,
and spent his time in devout prayer, and reading the Scriptures, and in
carding of wool, which his wife did spin. His wife also did go and beg
bread and meat for herself and her children, and by such poor means sus-
tained they themselves. Thus the saints of God sustained hunger and
misery, while the prophets of Baal lived in jollity, and were costly pampered
at Jezebel's table.
At the last parson Newall (I know not by what means) perceived that
Richard Yeoman was so kept by his poor wife, and, taking with him the
bailiff's deputies and servants, came in the night-time, and brake up five
doors upon Yeoman, whom he found in a bed with his poor wife and
children : whom when he had so found, he irefully cried, saying, " I
thought I should find a harlot and a whore together." And he would
964 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
have plucked the clothes off from them ; but Yeoman held fast the clothes,
and said unto his wife, " Wife, arise, and put on thy clothes." And unto
the parson he said, " Nay parson, no harlot, nor whore, but a married
man and his wife, according unto God's ordinance ; and blessed be God
for lawful matrimony I thank God for this great grace, and I defy the
pope and all his popery." Then led they Richard Yeoman unto the cage,
and set him in the stocks until it was day.
There was then also in the cage an old man named John Dale, who had
sitten there three or four days, because when the said parson Newall with
his curate executed the Romish service in the church, he spake openly
unto him, and said, " O miserable and blind guides, will ye ever be blind
leaders of the blind ? will ye never amend ? will ye never see the truth of
God's word? will neither God's threats nor promises enter into your
hearts ? will the blood of martyrs nothing mollify your stony stomach ? O
indurate, hard-hearted, perverse, and crooked generation ! O damnable
sort, whom nothing can do good unto ! "
These and like words he spake in ferventness of spirit against the super-
stitious religion of Rome. Wherefore, parson Newall caused him forthwith
to be attached, and set in the stocks in the cage. So was he there kept
till sir Henry Doyle, a justice, came to Hadley.
Now when poor Yeoman was taken, the parson called earnestly upon
sir Henry Doyle to send them both to prison. Sir Henry Doyle earnestly
laboured and entreated the parson, to consider the age of the men, and
their poor estate : they were persons of no reputation, nor preachers ;
wherefore he would desire him to let them be punished a day or two, and
so to let them go — at the least John Dale, who was no priest ; and there-
fore, seeing he had so long sitten in the cage, he thought it punishment
enough for this time. When the parson heard this, he was exceeding mad,
and in a great rage called them pestilent heretics, unfit to live in the com-
monwealth of Christians. " Wherefore I beseech you, sir," quoth he,
" according to your office, defend holy church, and help to suppress these
sects of heresies, which are false to God, and thus boldly set themselves,
to the evil example of others, against the queen's gracious proceedings."
Sir Henry Doyle, seeing he could do no good in the matter, and fearing
also his peril, if he should too much meddle in this matter, made out the
writ, and caused the constables to carry them forth to Bury gaol. For
now were all the justices, were they never so mighty, afraid of every shaven
crown, and stood in as much awe of them as Pilate did stand in fear of
Annas and Caiaphas, and of the Pharisaical brood, which cried, "Crucify
him, Crucify him! If thou let him go, thou art not Caesar's friend."
Wherefore, whatsoever their consciences were, yet, if they would escape
danger, they must needs be the popish bishops' slaves and vassals. So
they took Richard Yeoman and John Dale, pinioned ; and bound them
like thieves, set them on horseback, and bound their legs under the horses'
bellies, and so carried them to the gaol at Bury, where they were tied in
irons ; and for that they continually rebuked popery, they were thrown
into the lowest dungeon, where John Dale, through sickness of the prison,
and evil keeping, died in prison, whose body, when he was dead, was thrown
out and buried in the fields. He was a man of forty-six years of age, a
weaver by his occupation, well learned in the holy Scriptures, faithful and
STORY OF JOHN ALCOCK. 965
honest in all his conversation, steadfast in confession of the true doctrine of
Christ set forth in king Edward's time; for the which he joyfully suffered
prison and chains, and from this worldly dungeon he departed in Christ to
eternal glory, and the blessed paradise of everlasting felicity.
After that John Dale was dead, Richard Yeoman was removed to
Norwich prison, where, after strait and evil keeping, he was examined of
his faith and religion. Then he boldly and constantly confessed himself to
be of the faith and confession that was set forth by the late king of blessed
memory, holy king Edward the sixth ; and from that he would in no wise
vary. Being required to submit himself to the holy father the pope, " I
defy him," quoth he, " and all his detestable abominations : I will in no
wise have to do with him, nor anything that appertaineth to him." The
chief articles objected to him, were his marriage and the mass-sacrifice.
Wherefore when he continued steadfast in confession of the truth, he was
condemned, degraded, and not only burnt, but most cruelly tormented in
the fire. So ended he his poor and miserable life, and entered into the
blessed bosom of Abraham, enjoying with Lazarus the comfortable quiet-
ness that God hath prepared for his elect saints.
There was also in Hadley a young man, named John Alcock, which
came to Hadley seeking work, for he was a shearman by his occupation.
This young man after the martyrdom of Dr. Taylor, and taking of
Richard Yeoman, used first in the church of Hadley to read the service in
English, as partly is above touched. At length, after the coming of parson
Newall, he, being in Hadley church upon a Sunday, when the parson
came by with procession, would not once move his cap, nor show any sign
of reverence, but stood behind the font. Newall, perceiving this, when he
was almost out of the church door, ran back again, and caught him, and
called for the constable. Then came Robert Rolfe, with whom this young
man wrought, and asked, " Master parson ! what hath he done, that ye
are in such a rage with him?" " He is a heretic and a traitor," quoth
the parson, " and despiseth the queen's proceedings. Wherefore I com-
mand you in the queen's name, move him to the stocks, and see he be
forthcoming." " Well," quoth Rolfe, " he shall be forthcoming : proceed
you in your business, and be quiet." " Have him to the stocks," quoth
the parson. " I am constable," quoth Rolfe, " and may bail him, and
will bail him ; he shall not come in the stocks, but he shall be forthcoming."
So went the good parson forth with his holy procession, and so to mass.
At afternoon Rolfe said to this young man, " I am sorry for thee, for
truly the parson will seek thy destruction, if thou take not good heed what
thou answerest him." The young man answered, " Sir, I am sorry that
it is my hap to be a trouble to you. As for myself, I am not sorry, but I
do commit myself into God's hands, and I trust he will give me mouth
and wisdom to answer according to right." " Well," quoth Rolfe, "yet
beware of him ; for he is malicious and a blood-sucker, and beareth an
old hatred against me ; and he will handle you the more cruelly, because
of displeasure against me." " I fear not," quoth the young man. " He
shall do no more to me than God will give him leave ; and happy shall I
be if God will call me to die for his truth's sake."
After this talk, they then went to the parson, who at the first asked him,
"Fellow, what sayest thou to the sacrament of the altar?" "I say,"
966 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
quoth he, " as ye use the matter, ye make a shameful idol of it; and ye
are false idolatrous priests all the sort of you." <4 1 told you," quoth the
parson, " he was a stout heretic." So after long talk, the parson com-
mitted him to ward, and the next day rode he up to London, and carried
the young man with him. And so came the young man no more again to
Hadley ; but, after long imprisonment in Newgate, where, after many ex-
aminations and troubles, for that he would not submit himself to ask for-
giveness of the pope, and to be reconciled to the Romish religion, he was
cast into the lower dungeon, where with evil keeping and sickness of the
house, he died in prison. Thus died he a martyr for Christ's verity, which
he heartily loved and constantly confessed, and received the garland of a
well-foughten battle at the hand of the Lord. His body was cast out, and
buried in a dunghill ; for the papists would in all things be like themselves.
Therefore would they not so much as suffer the dead bodies to have honest
and convenient sepulture.
Thomas Benbridge, a gentleman, single and unmarried, in the diocese
of Winchester, although he might have lived a pleasant life in the posses-
sions of this world, yet to follow Christ had rather enter into the strait gate
of persecution, to the heavenly possession of life in the Lord's kingdom,
than here to enjoy pleasures present, with unquietness of conscience.
Wherefore manfully standing against the papists for the defence of the sin-
cere doctrine of Christ's gospel, he spared not himself to confirm the doc-
trine of the gospel. For the which cause he being apprehended for an
adversary of the Romish religion, was forthwith had to examination before
Dr. White, bishop of Winchester, where he sustained sundry conflicts for
the truth against the said bishop and his colleagues.
The articles being ministered unto him, and he continuing steadfast in
his answers, the said bishop proceeded to his condemnation. After which
he was brought to the place of martyrdom by the sheriff, sir Richard
Pecksal ; where he, standing at the stake, began to untie his points, and
to prepare himself. Then he gave his gown to the keeper, being belike
his fee. His jerkin was laid on with gold lace, fair and brave, which he
gave to sir Richard Pecksal, the high sheriff. His cap of velvet he took
off from his head, and threw it away. Then lifting his mind to the Lord,
he made his prayers. That done, being now fastened to the stake, Dr.
Seaton willed him to recant, and he should have his pardon. But when
he saw it prevailed not to speak, the said dreaming and doltish doctor
willed the people not to pray for him unless he would recant, no more than
they would pray for a dog.
Master Benbridge, standing at the stake with his hands together in such
manner as the priest holdeth his hands in his memento, the said Dr. Seaton
came to him again, and exhorted him to recant : unto whom he said,
11 Away, Babylonian, away !" Then said one that stood by, M Sir, cut
out his tongue;" and another, being a temporal man, railed on him worse
than Dr. Seaton did a great deal, who, as is thought, was set on by some
other. Then when they saw he would not yield, they bade the tormentors
to set to fire ; and yet he was nothing like covered with fagots. First, the
fire took away a piece of his beard, whereat he nothing shrank at all.
Then it came on the other side, and took his legs ; and the nether stock-
ings of his hose being leather, made the fire to pierce the sharper, so that
ALEXANDER GOUCII AND ALICE DRIVER. 967
the intolerable heat thereof made him to cry, "I recant." And suddenly
therewith he thrust the fire from him ; and having two or three of his
friends by, that wished his life, they stepped to the fire, and helped to take
it from him also ; who for their labour were sent to prison. The sheriff
also of his own authority took him from the stake, and sent him to prison
again, for the which he was sent unto the Fleet, and there lay a certain
time. But before he was taken from the stake, the said Seaton wrote
articles to have him to subscribe unto them, as touching the pope, the
sacrament, and such other trash. But the said master Benbridge made
much ado ere he would subscribe them, insomuch that Dr. Seaton willed
them to set to fire again. Then with much pain and grief of heart he
subscribed to them upon a man's back. That being done, he had his
gown given him again, and so was led to prison. Being in prison he wrote
a letter to Dr. Seaton, and recanted those words he spake at the stake,
unto which he had subscribed ; for he was grieved that ever he did sub-
scribe unto them. Whereupon expressing his conscience, he was, the same
day seven-night after, burnt indeed, where the vile tormentors did rather
broil him than burn him. The Lord give his enemies repentance !
In the last year of queen Mary's reign, Dr. Hopton being bishop of
Norwich, and Dr. Spenser bearing the room of his chancellor, about St.
James's tide, at St. Edmund's Bury were wrongfully put to death four
Christian martyrs: to wit, John Cooke, a sawyer; Robert Milles, alias
Plummer, shearman; Alexander Lane, wheelwright; and James Ashley.
Master Noone, a justice in Suffolk, dwelling in Martlesham, hunting
after good men to apprehend them, at the length had understanding of
one Gouch of Woodbridge, and Driver's wife of Grundisburgh, to be at
Grundisburgh together, a little from his house ; and immediately took his
men with him, and went thither, and made diligent search for them, where
the poor man and woman were compelled to step into an hay-golph, to
hide themselves from their cruelty. At the last they came to search the hay
for them, and by gauging thereof with pitchforks at the last found them :
so they took them, and led them to Melton gaol, where they, remaining a
time, at the length were carried to Bury, against the assizes at St. James's
tide ; and being there examined of matters of faith, did boldly stand to
confess Christ crucified, defying the pope, with all his papistical trash.
Among other things, Driver's wife likened queen Mary in her persecution
to Jezebel ; for which cause sir Clement Higham, being chief judge there,
adjudged her ears immediately to be cut off, which was accomplished ac-
cordingly ; and she joyfully yielded herself to the punishment, and thought
herself happy that she was counted worthy to suffer anything for the name
of Christ.
After the assize at Bury, they were carried to Melton gaol again, where
they remained a time. From thence they were carried to Ipswich ; and
there examined before Dr. Spenser, the chancellor of Norwich, chiefly of
the sacrament and other ceremonies of the popish church. They were both
condemned, committed to the secular power, and burnt at Ipswich the 4th
day of November. Being come to the place where the stake was set, by
seven of the clock in the morning, (notwithstanding they came the self-
same morning from Melton gaol, which is six miles from Ipswich,) being
in their prayers, and singing of psalms both of them together, sir Henry
968 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Dowell then being sheriff, was very much offended with them, and willed
the bailiffs to bid them make an end of their prayers, (they kneeling upon a
broom fagot.) Then one of the bailiffs commanded them to make an end,
saying, " On, on, have done ; make an end ; nail them to the stake :"
yet they continued in prayer.
Then sir Henry sent one of his men, that they should make an end.
Then Gouch stood up and said unto the sheriff, " I pray you, master
sheriff, let us pray a little while, for we have but a little time to live here;"
and the sheriff said, "Come off, have them to the lire!" Then the said
Gouch and Alice Driver said, " Why, master sheriff and master bailiff, will
you not suffer us to pray V " Away," said sir Henry ; " to the stake
with them !" Gouch answered, " Take heed, master sheriff. If you forbid
prayer, the vengeance of God hangeth over your heads." Then they being
tied to the stake, and the iron chain being put about Alice Driver's neck,
" Oh !" said she, " here is a goodly neckerchief; blessed be God for it."
Then divers came and took them by the hand as they were bound, standing
at the stake. The sheriff cried, " Lay hands on them, lay hands on them !"
With that a great number ran to the stake ; and the sheriff, seeing that,
let them all alone, so that there was not one taken.
Although our history hasteth apace (the Lord be praised) to the happy
death of queen Mary, yet she died not so soon, but some there were burnt
before, and more should have been burnt soon after them, if God's provi-
dence had not prevented her with death. In the number of them which
suffered in the same month when queen Mary died, were three that were
burnt at Bury, whose names were Philip Humfrey, John David, and
Henry David, his brother.
Although in such an innumerable company of godly martyrs, which in
sundry quarters of this realm were put to torments of fire in queen Mary's
time, it be hard so exactly to recite every particular person that suffered, but
that some escape us, either unknown or omitted ; yet I cannot pass over
a certain poor woman, the wife of one Prest, dwelling not far from Laun-
ceston, burnt under the said reign in the city of Exeter. She dwelt some-
time about Cornwall, having a husband and children there much addicted
to the superstitious sect of popery, who many times drove her to the church,
to their idols and ceremonies, to shrift, to follow the cross in procession, to
give thanks to God for restoring antichrist again in this realm, etc.; which,
when her spirit could not longer abide to do, she departed from them,
seeking her living by labour and spinning as well as she could, here and
there for a time. At length she was brought home to her husband, where
she was accused by her neighbours, and so brought to Exeter to be pre-
sented before the bishop and his clergy. The name of the bishop was
Turberville : his chancellor (as I gather) was Blackstone. The chiefest
matter whereupon she was charged and condemned was for the sacrament
(which they call of the altar,) and for speaking against idols.
Blackstone and others persuaded the bishop that she was a mazed crea-
ture, and not in her perfect wit, (which is no new thing for the wisdom of
God to appear foolishness to carnal men of this world;) and therefore they
consulted together that she should have liberty. So the keeper of the
bishop's prison had her home to his house, where she fell to spinning and
carding, and did all other work as a servant in the said keeper's house,
THE BURNING OF PREST'S WIFE. 969
and went about, the city, when and whither she would, and divers had
delight to talk with her. And ever she continued talking of the sacrament
of the altar, which of all things they could least abide. Then was her
husband sent for, but she refused to go home with him.
After that, divers of the priests had her in handling, persuading her to
leave her wicked opinion about the sacrament of the altar, the natural
body and blood of our Saviour Christ. But she made them answer, that
it was nothing but very bread and wine, and that they might be ashamed
to say that a piece of bread should be turned by a man into the natural
body of Christ, which bread doth vinow [grow musty], and mice oftentimes
do eat it, and it doth mould and is burned : " And," said she, " God's own
body will not be so handled, nor kept in prison, or boxes, or aumbries.
Let it be your God, it shall not be mine; for my Saviour sitteth on the
right hand of God, and doth pray for me. And to make that sacramental
or significative bread, instituted for a remembrance, the very body of Christ,
and to worship it, it is very foolishness, and devilish deceit." " Now
truly," said they, " the devil hath deceived thee." " No," said she, " I
trust the living God hath opened mine eyes, and caused me to understand
the right use of the blessed sacrament, which the true church doth use,
but the false church doth abuse." Much other talk there was between
her and them, which here were two tedious to be expressed.
In the mean time, during this her month's liberty granted to her by the
bishop, it. happened that she entering into St. Peter's church, beheld there
a cunning Dutchman, how he made new noses to certain fine images which
were disfigured in king Edward's time: " What a mad man art thou,"
said she, " to make them new noses, which within a few days shall all lose
their heads." The Dutchman accused her, and laid it hard to her charge;
and then was she sent for, and clapped fast ; and after that time she had
no more liberty.
During the time of her imprisonment divers resorted to her, some sent
of the bishop, some of their own voluntary will ; and albeit she was of
such simplicity, and without learning, yet you could declare no place of
Scripture but she would tell you the chapter; yea, she would recite you
the names of all the books in the Bible.
At the last, when they perceived her to be past remedy, and had con-
sumed all their threatenings, that neither by prisonment nor liberty, by
menaces nor flattery, they could bring her to sing any other song, nor
win her to their vanities and superstitious doings, then they cried out, " An
Anabaptist, an Anabaptist !" Then, at a day, they brought her from the
bishop's prison to the Guildhall ; and after that delivered her to the tem-
poral power, according to their custom, where she was by the gentlemen
of the country exhorted yet to call for grace, and to leave her foul opinions.
In fine, when they had played the part of the cat with the mouse, they at
length condemned her, and delivered her over to the secular power. Then
the indictment being given and read, which was, that she should go to the
place whence she came, and from thence be led to the place of execution,
then and there to be burned with flames till she should be consumed, she
lifted up her voice, and thanked God, saying, " I thank thee, my Lord,
my God ; this day have I found that which I have long sought. But such
outcries as there were again, and such mockings, were never seen upon a
970 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
poor silly woman ; all which she most patiently took. Then was she de-
livered to the sheriff; and innumerable people beholding her, she was led
by the officers to the place of execution, without the walls of Exeter,
called Southernhay, where again these superstitious priests assaulted her;
and she prayed them to have no more talk with her, but cried still, " God
be merciful to me a sinner, God be merciful to me a sinner ! " And so,
while they were tying her to the stake, thus still she erred, and would give
no answer to them ; but with much patience took her cruel death, and was
with the flames and fire consumed. Thus was the mortal life ended of as
constant a woman in the faith of Christ as ever was upon earth ; for whose
constancy God be everlastingly praised. Amen.
In writing of the blessed saints which suffered in the bloody days* of
queen Mary, I had almost overpassed the names and story of three godly
martyrs, which with their blood gave testimony likewise to the gospel of
Christ, being condemned and burnt in the town of Bristol : Richard Sharp,
Thomas Benion, and Thomas Hale.
First, Richard Sharp, weaver, of Bristol, was brought the 9th day of
March, anno 1556, before master Dalby, chancellor of the town or city of
Bristol; and, after examination, concerning the sacrament of the altar,
was persuaded by the said Dalby and others to recant ; and the 29th of the
same month was enjoined to make his recantation before the parishioners
in his parish church. Which when he had done, he felt in his conscience
such a tormenting hell, that he was not able quietly to work in his occupa-
tion, but decayed and changed both in colour and liking of his body ; who
shortly after, upon Sunday, came into his parish church, called Temple,
and after high mass, came to the choir-door, and said with a loud voice,
" Neighbours ! bear me record that yonder idol," and pointed to the altar,
" is the greatest and most abominable that ever was ; and I am sorry that
ever I denied my Lord God." Then the constables were commanded to
apprehend him ; but none stepped forth, but suffered him to go out of the
church. After, by night, he was apprehended and carried to Newgate ;
and shortly after he was brought before the lord chancellor, denying the
sacrament of the altar to be the body and blood of Christ ; and said, it
was an idol ; and therefore was condemned to be burnt, by the said Dalby.
He was burnt the 7th of May, 1557 ; and died godly, patiently, and con-
stantly, confessing the articles of our faith.
The Thursday, in the night, before Easter, anno 1557, came one master'
David Herris, alderman, and John Stone, to the house of one Thomas
Hale, a shoemaker of Bristol, and caused him to rise out of his bed, and
brought him forth of his door. To whom the said Thomas Hale said,
" You have sought my blood these two years, and now much good do you
with it :" who, being committed to the watchman, was carried to Newgate
the 24th of April, the year aforesaid, was brought before master Dalby
the chancellor, committed by him to prison, and after by him condemned
to be burnt, for saying the sacrament of the altar to be an idol. He was
burned the 7th of May with the foresaid Richard Sharp; and godly,
patiently, and constantly embraced the fire with his arms. Richard
Sharp and Thomas Hale were bound back to back.
Thomas Benion, a weaver, at the commandment of the commissioners,
was brought by a constable the 13th day of August, anno 1557, before
FIVE MARTYRS BURNT AT CANTERBURY. 971
master Dalby, chancellor of Bristol, who committed him to prison for
saving there "was nothing but bread in the sacrament, as they used it.
Wherefore, the 20th day of the said August, he was condemned to be
burnt bv the said Dalby, for denying five of their sacraments, and affirm-
ing two, that is, the sacrament of the body and blood of Christ, and the
sacrament of baptism. He was burnt the 27th of the said month and
year; and died godlv, constantly, and patiently, with confessing the articles
of our Christian faith.
The last that suffered in queen Mary's time, were five at Canterbury,
burnt about six days before the death of queen Mary, whose names follow
hereunder written : John Corneford, of Wrotham ; Christopher Brown, of
Maidstone ; John Herst, of Ashford ; Alice Snoth ; and Katherine Knight,
otherwise called Katherine Tynley, an aged woman. These five (to close
up the final rage of queen Mary's persecution,) for the testimony of that
word for which so many had died before, gave up their lives meekly and
patiently, suffering the violent malice of the papists ; which papists,
although they then might have either well spared them, or else deferred
their death, knowing of the sickness of queen Mary; yet such was the
implacable despite of that generation, that some there be that say, the
archdeacon of Canterbury the same time being at London, and understand-
ing the danger of the queen, incontinently made all post-haste home to
despatch these, whom, before then, he had in his cruel custody.
The matter why they were judged to the fire was for confessing that an
evil man doth not receive Christ's body, " Because no man hath the Son
except it be given him of the Father." That it is idolatry to creep to the
cross ; and St. John forbidding it, saith, " Beware of images." For con-
fessing that we should not pray to our Lady, and other saints, because
they be not omnipotent. For these and other such articles of Christian
doctrine were these five condemned. Against whom when the sentence
should be read, and they excommunicate, after the manner of the papists,
John Corneford, stirred with a vehement spirit of the zeal of God, pro-
ceeding in a more true excommunication against the papists, in the name
of them all, pronounced sentence against them in these words as follow :
" In the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of the most mighty
God, and by the power of his Holy Spirit, and the authority of his holy
catholic and apostolic church, we do here give into the hands of Satan, to
be destroyed, the bodies of all those blasphemers and heretics that do
maintain any error against his most holy word, or do condemn his most
holy truth for heresy, to the maintenance of any false church or feigned
religion ; so that by this thy just judgment, O most mighty God, against
thy adversaries, thy true religion may be known to thy great glory and our
comfort, and to the edifying of all our nation. Good Lord, so be it."
These godly martyrs, in their prayers which they made before their
martyrdom, desired God that their blood might be the last that should be
shed, and so it was.
If bloody torments and cruel death of a poor innocent, suffering for no
cause of his own, but in the truth of Christ and his religion, do make a
martyr, no less deserveth the child of one John Fetty to be reputed in the
catalogue, who in the house of bishop Bonner unmercifully was scourged
to death, as by the sequel of this story here following may appear.
972 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Amongst the persecuted for the gospel, and yet delivered by the in-
terposing Providence of God, was John Fetty, a poor man dwelling in
Clerkenwell. He was accused unto one Brokenbury, a parson of the
same parish, by his own wife, because he would not come to the church,
and be partaker of their idolatry ; and therefore, through tlie said priest's
procurement, he was apprehended. However, immediately upon his
apprehension, his wife, apparently by the just judgment of God, was
stricken mad, which declared a dreadful example of the justice of God
against such unnatural treachery. And although this example little
moved the consciences of these men to cease their persecution, yet na-
tural pity towards that ungrateful woman so wrought in their hearts, that
for the preservation and support of her and her two children, they for
the present let her husband alone, and would not carry him to prison,
but suffered him to remain quietly in his house. During this time,
forgetting the unkind fact of his wife, he did yet so cherish and provide
for her, that within the space of three weeks she had recovered some
stay of her wit and sense. But such was the power of Satan in the ma-
licious heart of the woman, that so soon as she had recovered her health
she did again accuse her husband ; whereupon he was the second time
apprehended, and carried before Sir John Mordaunt, one of the queen's
commissioners, and he upon examination sent him unto the Lollards'
Tower ; where he was put into the stocks.
After Fetty had thus lain in prison for fifteen days, hanging in the
stocks, sometimes by one leg and one arm, sometimes by the other, and
sometimes by both, it happened that one of his children, a boy of the
age of eight or nine years, came unto the bishop's house to speak with
his father. At his coming thither, one of the bishop's chaplains met
with him, and asked him what he would have. The child answered, that
he came to see his father; the chaplain asked again who was his father.
The boy then told him, and pointing towards Lollards' Tower, shewed
him that his father was there in prison. " Why," said the priest, " thy
father is a heretic !" The child being of a bold and quick spirit, answered,
" My father is no heretic; for you have Balaam's mark !" On that the
priest took the child by the hand, and carried him into the bishop's
house, where amongst them they did most shamefully, and without pity,
so whip and scourge this tender child, that he was in one gore of blood.
They then caused Cluny, having his coat upon his arm, to carry the
child in his shirt unto his father in prison.
On his coming to his father the child fell upon his knees and asked
his blessing. The poor man, seeing him so cruelly arrayed, cried out
for sorrow, and said, "Alas, who hath done this to thee?" The boy
then explained; and while his father was condoling with him, Cluny
violently plucked him out of his hands, and carried him back into the
bishop's house, where they kept him three days after. At the three days
end, Bonner (minding to make the matter whole, and somewhat to appease
the poor man for this their horrible fact) determined to release him ; and
therefore caused him early in a morning to be brought out of Lollards' Tower
into his bed-chamber. While this Fetty was there waiting, he espied
hanging about the bishop's bed a great pair of black beads : whereupon
he said, " My lord, I think the hangman is not far off; for the halter'*
EXAMINATION OF ELIZABETH YOUNG. 973
(pointing to the beads) " is here already." At which words the bishop
was in a marvellous rage. Then, immediately after, Fetty espied a little
crucifix, and asked the bishop what it was ; and he answered that it was
Christ. "Was he handled so cruelly as he is here pictured?" quoth
Fetty. "Yea, that he was," said the bishop. "And even so cruelly,"
replied the other, " will you handle such as come before you. For you
are unto God's people as Caiaphas was unto Christ." The bishop being
in a great fury, said, "Thou art a vile heretic; and I will burn thee, or
else I will spend all that I have, unto my gown." " Nay, my lord," said
Fetty, " ye were better to give it a poor body, that he may pray for you."
But yet Bonner, bethinking in himself of the danger that the child was
in by their whipping, and what peril might ensue thereupon, thought
better to discharge him. Whereupon, after this and such like talk, the
bishop at last willed him to go home, and carry his child with him ; which
he so did, and that with a heavy heart, to see his poor boy in such extreme
pain and grief. But within fourteen days after, the child died, whether
through this cruel scourging or other infirmity, I know not. But howso-
ever it was, the Lord yet used their cruel and detestable fact as a means
of his providence for the delivery of this good poor man and faithful
Christian : his name be ever praised there-for. Amen.
Among those who were persecuted, and yet escaped and passed through
the pikes,* (being yet, as I hear say, alive,) was one Elizabeth Young,
who, coming from Embden to England, brought with her divers books,
and dispersed them abroad in London : for the which she being at length
espied and laid fast, was brought to examination thirteen times before the
catholic inquisitors of heretical pravity. Her first examination was before
one master Hussy, who examined her of many things : first, where she
was born, who was her father and mother.
Young. Sir, all this is but vain talk, and very superfluous. It is to
fill my head with fantasies, that I should not be able to answer such
things as I came for. You have not, I think, put me in prison to
know who is my father and mother. But, I pray you, go to the matter
I came hither for.
Hussy. Wherefore wentest thou out of the realm? and when wast
thou at mass?
Young. To keep my conscience clean, I departed; and have not been
at mass these three years.
Hussy. Then wast thou not there three years before that? How old
art thou?
Young. No, Sir, nor yet three years before that: for if I were I
had evil luck. I am forty years old and upwards.
Hussy. Twenty of those years you went to mass: why not go now ?
* In the goodly company of those persecuted in divers ways for the cause of Christ's gospel,
in the cruel reigu of queen Mary, who also escaped the fire, may be numbered the following :
John Hunt, Richard White, John Willes, Robert Willes, Thomas Hinshaw, R. Bailey, Hudle\s,
T. Coast, Roger Sandy, Richard Wilmot, Thomas Fairfax, Thomas Green, James Harris, Robert
"Williams, William and Julian Living, John Lithal, Edward Grew, William Brown, Elizabeth
Lawson, Thomas Christenmass, William Wats, John Glover, Alexander Wimshurst, Dabney,
lady Knevet, John Davis, mistress Roberts, mistress Ami Lacy, one Crossman's wife, Edward
Benet, Jeffrey Hurst, William Wood, the duchess of Suffolk, Thomas Horton, Thomas Sprat,
John Cornet, Thomas Bryce, Gertrude Crokhay, William Maldon, Robert Horneby, mistress
Sands, Thomas Rose, doctor Sands or Sandys, etc.
974 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Young. Yea, and twenty more I may, and yet come home as wise as
I went thither first, for I understand it not. My conscience will not
suffer me : for I had rather all the world should accuse me than mine
own conscience.
Hussy. What if an insect stick upon thy skin, and bite thy flesh?
thou must make a conscience in taking her off, is there not a conscience
in it?
Young. That is but a sorry argument to displace the scriptures, and
especially in such a part as my salvation dependeth upon; for it is but
an easy conscience that a man can make.
Hussy. But why wilt thou not swear upon the evangelists before a
judge?
Young. Because I know not what a book-oath is.
Then he began to teach her the book-oath.
Young. Sir, I do not understand it, and therefore I will not learn it.
" Thou wilt not understand it," said he; and with that he went his way.
At her second examination before Dr. Martin, he said to her, " Thou
rebel and traitorly whore, thou shalt be so racked and handled, that thou
shalt be an example to all such traitorly whores and heretics ; and thou
shalt be made to swear by the holy evangelists, and confess to whom thou
hast sold all and every one of these heretical books that thou hast sold :
for we know what number thou hast sold and to whom; but thou shalt be
made to confess it in spite of thy blood."
Young. Here is my carcase: do with it what you will. And more than
that you cannot have, master Martin : ye can have no more but my blood.
Then said he, " Martin! why callest thou me Martin?"
Young. Sir, I know well enough : for I have been before you ere now.
Ye delivered me once at Westminster.
Martin. Where didst thou dwell then ?
Young. I dwelt in the Minories.
Martin. I delivered thee and thy husband both ; and I thought then,
that thou wouldest have done otherwise than thou dost now. For if thou
hadst been before any bishop in England, and said the words that thou
didst before me, thou hadst fried a fagot: and though thou didst not burn
then, thou art like to burn or hang now."
Young. Sir, I promised you then, that I would never be fed with an
unknown tongue, and no more will I yet.
Martin. I shall feed thee well enough. Thou shalt be fed with that (1
warrant thee) which shall be smally to thine ease.
Young. Do what God shall suffer you to do : for more ye shall not.
And then he arose, and so departed, and went to the keeper's house,
and said to the wife, " Whom hast thou suffered to come to this vile trai-
torly whore and heretic, to speak with her?" Then said she, "As God
receive my soul, here came neither man, woman, nor child to ask for her."
Martin. If any man, woman, or child come to ask for her, I charge
thee, in pain of death, that they be laid fast; and give her one day bread,
and another day water.
Young. If ye take away my meat, I trust God will take away my hunger.
And so he departed and said, " that was too good for her :" and then
was she shut up under two locks in the Clink, where she was before, unto
EXAMINATION OF ELIZABETH YOUNG. 975
the time of further examinations: for she was brought before the bishop,
the dean, and the chancellor, and other commissioners, first and last, thir-
teen times. In her fifth examination before the bishop's chancellor, he
asked her, "When thou receivest the sacrament of the altar, dost thou not
believe that thou dost receive Christ's body?"
Young. Sir, when I do receive the sacrament which Christ instituted the
night before he was betrayed, and left to his disciples, I believe that spi-
ritually and by faith I receive Christ. And of this sacrament, I know
Christ himself to be the author, and none but he. And this same
sacrament is an establishment to my conscience, and an augmenting to
my faith.
Chan. Why, did not Christ take bread, and give thanks, and brake
it, and gave it to his disciples, saying — " Take, eat, this is my body that
is given for you?" Did he give them his body, or no?
Young. He also took the cup, and gave thanks to his Father, and
gave it to his disciples, saying — " Drink ye all hereof: for this is the
cup of the new Testament in my blood, which shall be shed for many."
Now, I pray you, sir, let me ask you one question : Did he give the
cup the name of his blood, or the wine that was in the cup?
Chan. Dost thou think that thou hast a hedge-priest in hand?
Young. No, sir, I take you not to be a hedge-priest; I take you for
a doctor.
Chan. So I think. Thou wilt take upon thee to teach me.
Young. No, sir, but I let you know what I know ; and by argument
one shall know more. Christ said — " As oft as ye do this, do it in re-
membrance of me;" but a remembrance is not of a thing present, but
absent. Likewise St. Paul saith — " So oft as ye shall eat of this bread
and drink of this cup, ye shall shew forth the Lord's death till he come;"
then we must not look for him here, until his coming again at the latter
day. Again, is not this article of our belief true — " He sitteth at the
right hand of God the Father Almighty ; from thence he shall come
to judge both the quick and the dead?" But if he come not before
he come to judgment, how then is he present in your sacrament of the
altar ? Wherefore I believe that the human body of Christ occupieth no
more than one place at once: for when he was here, he was not there.
In this year, 1558, thirty-nine persons were brought to tne stake: and
the whole number burnt during the reign of Mary, amounted to two
hundred and eighty-four; and near four hundred fell a sacrifice on these
sad occasions, including those who died by imprisonment and famine.
There were burnt, five bishops, twenty-one divines, eight gentlemen,
eighty-four artificers, one hundred husbandmen, servants, and labourers,
twenty-six wives, twenty widows, nine virgins, two boys, and two infants.
Sixty-four more were persecuted for their religion, whereof seven were
whipped, sixteen perished in prison, and twelve were buried in dunghills.
It is to be observed, that the persecution raged most in Bonner's diocese
(London) and in Kent. Several protestant books printed on the con-
tinent, were secretly conveyed to England ; upon which a proclamation
was issued, enacting, that any person who might receive such books, and
did not instantly burn them, without either reading, or shewing them to
any person, should be forthwith executed by martial law.
976
SECTION XVII.
GOD'S PROVIDENCE IN PRESERVING THE LADY ELIZABETH— UNPROSPER-
OUSNESS OF QUEEN MARY'S REIGN DIVINE JUDGMENTS ON PERSE-
CUTORS CONCLUSION.
When all hath been said and told touching the admirable working of
God's present hand in defending and delivering any one person out of
thraldom, never was there since the memory of our fathers any example
wherein the Lord's mighty power hath more admirably and blessedly
showed itself than in the miraculous custody and outscape of the lady Eliza-
beth, in the strait time of queen Mary her sister. The princess Elizabeth
was born at Greenwich anno 1533, being the daughter of Henry the eighth
and his queen Anne Boleyn. She was baptized in the Grey Friars' church
at Greenwich, having to her godfather Thomas Cranmer, archbishop of
Canterbury. After that, she was committed to godly tutors and governors,
under whom she increased in all manner of virtue and knowledge of learn-
ing. One of her schoolmasters reported of her to a friend, that he learned
every day more of her than she of him : " I teach her words," quoth he,
" and she me things. I think she is best inclined and disposed of any in
all Europe." Likewise an Italian, which taught her his tongue, said once,
that he found in her two qualities which are never, lightly, yokefellows in
one woman ; which were, a singular wit, and a marvellous meek stomach.
When Mary was first queen, before she was crowned, she would go no
whither but would have the lady Elizabeth by the hand, and send for her
to dinner and supper ; but, after she was crowned, she never dined nor
supped with her, but kept her aloof from her. After this it happened upon
the rising of sir Thomas Wyat, that the lady Elizabeth, at that time lying
in queen Mary's house at Ashridge, and the lord Courteney were charged
with false suspicion. Whereupon the queen, whether for that surmise, or
for what other cause I know not, the next day after sent to her three of
her councillors ; and howbeit she was then very sick, they willed her to
prepare against the next morning, at nine of the clock, to go with them to
London. On the next morrow, at the time prescribed, they had her forth
as she was, very faint and feeble, and in such case that she was ready to
swoon three or four times between them. Proceeding in her journey from
Ashridge, all sick in the litter, she came to Redbourn, where she was
guarded all night. From thence to St. Alban's, to sir Ralph Rowlet's
house, where she tarried that night, both feeble in body and comfortless
in mind. From that place they passed to master Dodde's house at
Mimms, where also they remained that night : and so from thence she
came to Highgate, where she, being very sick, tarried that night and the
next day ; during which time there came many pursuivants and messengers
from the court, but for what purpose I cannot tell. From that place she
was conveyed to the court, where by the way came to meet her many
gentlemen, accompanying her highness, which were very sorry to see her
in that case. But especially a great multitude of people by the way,
nocking about her litter, lamented and bewailed greatly.
PRESERVATION OF THE LADY ELIZABETH. 977
Now when she came to the court, her grace was straightways shut up,
and kept as close prisoner a fortnight, seeing neither king nor queen, nor
lord nor friend, all that time ; but only the lord chamberlain, sir John
Gage, and the vice-chamberlain, which were attendant unto the doors.
The Friday before Palm Sunday, the bishop of Winchester, with nineteen
other of the council, came unto her from the queen, and burdened her with
Wyat's conspiracy, which she utterly denied, affirming that she was alto-
gether guiltless therein. They, being not contented with this, charged her
with business made by sir Peter Carew, and the rest of the gentlemen of the
west country : which also she utterly denying, cleared her innocency therein.
In conclusion, after long debating of matters, they declared unto her
that it was the queen's will and pleasure that she should go unto the
Tower, while the matter was further tried and examined. Whereat she,
being aghast, said that she trusted the queen's majesty would be a more
gracious lady unto her, and that her highness would not otherwise conceive
of her but that she was a true woman: declaring furthermore to the lords,
that she was innocent in all those matters wherein they had burdened her,
and desired them therefore to be a further mean to the queen her sister,
that she might not be committed to so notorious and doleful a place; pro-
testing that she w T ould request no favour at her hand if she should be
proved to have consented unto any such kind of matter as they laid unto
her charge. Whereunto the lords answered again, that there was no
remedy, for that the queen's majesty was fully determined that she should
go unto the Tow T er : wherewith the lords departed with their caps hanging
over their eyes.
Within the space of an hour or little more, came the lord treasurer, the
bishop of Winchester, the lord steward, and the earl of Sussex, with the
guard ; who, warding the next chamber to her, secluded all her gentlemen
and yeomen, ladies and gentlewomen; saving that for one gentleman-
usher, three gentlewomen, and two grooms of her chamber, were appointed,
in their rooms, three other men of the queen's, and three waiting-women
to give attendance upon her, that none should have access unto her grace.
Upon Saturday following, the earl of Sussex and one other lord of the
council came and certified that forthwith she must go unto the Tower, the
barge being prepared for her, and the tide now ready, which tarrieth for
nobody. In heavy mood her grace requested the lords that she might
tarry another tide, trusting that the next would be better and more com-
fortable ; but one of them replied, that neither time nor tide was to be
delayed. And when she requested that she might be suffered to write to
the queen's majesty, he answered that he durst not permit that; adding,
that in his judgment it would rather hurt than profit her grace in so doing.
But the other lord, more courteous and favourable, (who was the earl of
Sussex,) kneeling down, told her grace that she should have liberty to
write, and, as he was a true man, he would deliver it to the queen's high-
ness, and bring an answer of the same, whatsoever came thereof. Where-
upon she wrote : albeit she could in no case be suffered to speak with the
queen, to her great discomfort. And thus the time and tide passing away
that season, they privily appointed all things ready that she should go the
next tide, which fell about midnight; but for fear she should be taken by the
way, they durst not. So they stayed till the next day, being Palm Sunday,
3 R
978 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
when about nine of the clock these two returned again, declaring it was
time for her grace to depart. She answered, " If there be no remedy, I
must be contented ;" willing the lords to go on before. Being come forth
into the garden, she cast her eyes towards the window, thinking to have
seen the queen, which she could not. In the mean time, commandment
was given in all London, that every one should keep the church, and carry
their palms ; while in the mean season she might be conveyed, without all
recourse of people, into the Tower.
After this she took her barge, with the two foresaid lords, three of the
queen's gentlewomen, and three of her own, her gentleman-usher, and two
of her grooms. At landing she first stayed, and denied to land at those
stairs where all traitors and offenders customably used to land, neither well
could she, unless she should go over her shoes. The lords were gone out
of the boat before, and asked why she came not. One of the lords went
back again to her, and brought word she would not come. Then said one
of the lords, which shall be nameless, that she should not choose : and
because it did then rain, he offered to her his cloak, which she, putting it
back with her hand with a good dash, refused. So she coming out, having
one foot upon the stair, said, " Here landeth as true a subject, being
prisoner, as ever landed at these stairs ; and before thee, O God ! I speak
it, having no other friends but thee alone." To whom the same lord an-
swered again, that if it were so, it was the better for her.
At her landing there was a great multitude of their servants and warders
standing- in their order. " What needed all this?" said she. " It is the
use," said some, " so to be, when any prisoner comes thither." " And if
it be," quoth she, " for my cause, I beseech you that they may be dis-
missed." Whereat the poor men kneeled down, and with one voice
desired God to preserve her grace ; who the next day were released of
their cold coats. After this, passing a little further, she sat down upon a
cold stone, and there rested herself. To whom the lieutenant then being
said, " Madam, you were best to come out of the rain; for you sit un-
wholesomely." She then replying, answered again, " It is better sitting
here than in a worse place ; for God knoweth, I know not whither you will
bring me." With that her gentleman-usher wept : she demanding of him
what he meant so uncomfortably to use her, seeing she took him to be her
comforter, and not to dismay her ; especially for that she knew her truth
to be such, that no man should have cause to weep for her. But forth
she went into the prison. The doors were locked and bolted upon her,
which did not a little discomfort and dismay her grace : at what time she
called to her gentlewoman for her book, desiring God not to suffer her to
build her foundation upon the sands, but upon the rock, whereby all blasts
of blustering weather should have no power against her. The doors being
thus locked, and she close shut up, the lords had great conference how to
keep ward and watch, every man declaring his own opinion in that behalf,
agreeing straitly and circumspectly to keep her.
Then one of them, which was the lord of Sussex, swearing said, " My
lords, let us take heed, and do no more than our commission will bear us
out in, whatsoever shall happen hereafter. And further, let us consider
that she was the king our master's daughter : and therefore let us use
such dealing, that we may answer it hereafter, if it shall so happen : for
PRESERVATION OF THE LADY ELIZABETH. 979
jus! dealing,*' quoth he, " is always answerable." Whereunto the other
lords agreed that it was well said of him, and thereupon departed. Being
in the Tower, within two days commandment was, that she should have
mass within her house. One master Young was then her chaplain, and
because there were none of her men so well learned to help the priest to
say mass, the mass stayed for that day.
Within five days after, the bishop of Winchester, Stephen Gardiner,
.vith divers others of the council came unto her, and examined her of the
;alk that was at Ashridge, betwixt her and sir James Croft, concerning
her removing from thence to Donnington-castle, requiring her to declare
what she meant thereby. At the first she, being so suddenly asked, did
not well remember any such house ; but within awhile, well advising her-
self, she said, " Indeed, I do now remember that I have such a place, but
I never lay in it in all my life. And as for any that hath moved me there-
unto, I do not remember."
Then to force the matter, they brought forth sir James Croft. The
bishop of Winchester demanded of her, what she said to that man. She
answered, that she had little to say to him, or to the rest that were then
prisoners in the Tower. " But my lords," quoth she, " you do examine
every mean prisoner of me, wherein, methinks, you do me great injury.
If they have done evil, and offended the queen's majesty, let them answer
to it accordingly. I beseech you, my lords, join not me, in this sort, with
any of these offenders. And as concerning my going unto Donnington-
castle, I do remember that master Hobby and mine officers, and you sir
James Croft, had such talk ; but what is that to the purpose, my lords,
but that I may go to mine own houses at all times?" The lord of
Arundel kneeling down, said, " Your grace saith true, and certainly we are
very sorry that we have so troubled you about so vain matters." She then
said, " My lords, you do sift me very narrowly: but well I am assured,
you shall not do more to me than God hath appointed ; and so God for-
give you all." At their departure sir James Croft kneeled down, declaring
that he was sorry to see the day in which he should be brought as a wit-
ness against her grace. " But I assure your grace," said he, " I have been
marvellously tossed and examined touching your highness, which (the
Lord knoweth) is very strange to me : for, I take God to record before all
your honours, I do not know anything of that crime that you have laid to
my charge, and will thereupon take my death, if I should be driven to so
strict a trial.
After this sort, having lien a whole month there in close prison, and
being very evil at ease therewithal, she sent for the loid chamberlain, and
the lord Chandos, to come and speak with her ; who coming, she requested
them that she might have liberty to walk in some place, for that she felt
herself not well. To the which they answered, that they were right sorry
that they could not satisfy her grace's request : for that they had com-
mandment to the contrary, which they durst not in any wise break. Fur-
thermore, she desired of them, if that could not be granted, that she might
walk but into the queen's lodging. No, nor yet that (they answered) could
by any means be obtained without a further suit to the queen and her
council. " Well," said she, " my lords, if the matter be so hard, that
they must be sued unto for so small a thing, and that friendship be so
980 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
strict, God comfort me." And so they departed, she remaining in her old
dungeon still, without any kind of comfort but only God.
The next day after the lord Chandos came again unto her grace, declar-
ing unto her, that he had sued unto the council for further liberty. Some
of them consented thereunto, divers other dissented, for that there were so
many prisoners in the Tower. But, in conclusion, they did all agree that
her grace might walk into those lodgings, so that he and the lord cham-
berlain, and three of the queen's gentlewomen did accompany her, the
windows being shut, and she not suffered to look out at any of them :
wherewith she contented herself, and gave him thanks for his good will in
that behalf. Afterwards there was liberty granted to her grace to walk in
a little garden, the doors and gates being shut up, which notwithstanding
was as much discomfort unto her, as the walk in the garden was pleasant
and acceptable. At which times of her walking there, the prisoners on that
side straitly were commanded not to speak or look out at the windows into the
garden, till her grace were gone out again, having, in consideration thereof,
their keepers waiting upon them for that time. Thus her grace, with this
small liberty, contented herself in God, to whom be praise there-for.
The 5th day of May, the constable of the Tower was discharged of his
office of the Tower, and one sir Henry Benifield placed in his room, a man
unknown to her grace, and therefore the more feared ; which so sudden
mutation was unto her no little amaze. He brought with him a hundred
soldiers, in blue coats, wherewith she was marvellously discomforted, and
demanded of such as were about her, whether the lady Jane's scaffold
were taken away or no ; fearing, by reason of their coming, lest she should
have played her part. To whom answer was made, that the scaffold
was taken away, and that her grace needed not to doubt of any such
tyranny ; for God would not suffer any such treason against her person.
Wherewith being contented, but not altogether satisfied, she asked who
sir Henry Benifield was ; and whether he was of that conscience, or no,
that if her murdering were secretly committed to his charge he would see
the execution thereof. She was answered, that they were ignorant what
manner of man he was. Howbeit they persuaded her that God would not
suffer such wickedness to proceed. "Well," quoth she, "God grant it be
so. For thou, O God, canst mollify all such tyrannous hearts, and disappoint
all such cruel purposes ; and I beseech thee to hear me, thy creature,
which am thy servant and at thy commandment, trusting by thy grace
ever so to remain."
In conclusion, on Trinity Sunday, being the 19th day of May, she was
removed from the Tower, the lord treasurer being then there, for the lading
of her carts, and discharging the place of the same; where sir Henry
Benifield (being appointed her jailer) did receive her, with a company of
rake-hells to guard her, besides the lord of Derby's band, waiting in the
country about, for the moonshine in the water. Unto whom at length
came my lord of Tame, joined in commission with the said sir Henry, for
the safe guiding of her to prison ; and they together conveyed her grace to
Woodstock, as hereafter folio weth. The first day they conducted her to
Richmond, where she continued all night, being restrained of her own men,
which were lodged in out-chambers, and sir Henry Benifield's soldiers
appointed in their rooms to give attendance on her person. Whereat she
PRESERVATION OF THE LADY ELIZABETH. 981
being marvellously dismayed, thinking- verily some secret mischief to be
a-working towards her, called her gentleman-usher, and desired him with
the rest of his company to pray for her : " For this night," quoth she, " I
think to die." Wherewith he being stricken to the heart, said, " God
forbid that any such wickedness should be pretended against your grace."
So, comforting her as well as he could, at last he burst out into tears, and
went from her down into the court, where were walking the lord of Tame,
and sir Henry Benifield.
Then he, coming to the lord of Tame, (who had proffered to him much
friendship,) desired to speak with him a word or two ; unto whom he
familiarly said, he would with all his heart. Which when sir Henry,
standing by, heard, he asked what the matter was. To whom the gentleman-
usher answered, " No great matter, sir," said he, " but to speak with my lord
a word or tw y o." Then when the lord of Tame came to him, he spake on
this wise : " My lord," quoth he, " you have been always my good lord,
and so I beseech you to remain. The cause why I come to you at this
time is, to desire your honour unfeignedly to declare unto me, whether
any danger is meant towards my mistress this night, or no ; that I and my
poor fellows may take such part as shall please God to appoint : for certainly
we will rather die, than she should secretly and innocently miscarry."
" Marry," said the lord of Tame, " God forbid that any such wicked
purpose should be wrought; and rather than it should be so, I with my men
are ready to die at her foot also." And so (praised be God) they passed
that doleful night, with no little heaviness of heart.
Afterwards, passing over the water at Richmond, going towards Windsor,
her grace espied certain of her poor servants standing on the other side,
which were very desirous to see her. Whom when she beheld, turning to
one of her men standing by, she said, " Yonder I see certain of my men :
go to them and say these words from me, ' Tanquam ovis ;' " that is,
Like a sheep to the slaughter. So she passing forward to Windsor, was
lodged there that night in the dean of Windsor's house, a place more meet
indeed for a priest than a princess. And from thence her grace was guarded
and brought the next night to master Dormer's house, where, much people
standing by the way, some presented to her one gift, and some another,
so that sir Henry was greatly moved therewith, and troubled the poor
people very sore, for showing their loving hearts in such a manner, calling
them rebels and traitors, with such vile words. Besides, as she passed
through the villages, the townsmen rang the bells, as being joyful of her
coming, thinking verily it had been otherwise than it was indeed, as the
sequel proved after to the said poor men. For immediately the said sir
Henry, hearing the same, sent his soldiers thither, who apprehended some
of the ringers, setting them in the stocks, and otherwise uncourteously
misusing other some, for their good wills.
On the morrow, her grace, passing from master Dormer's, (where was,
for the time of abode there, a strait watch kept,) came to the lord of Tame's
house, where she lay all the night, being very princely entertained both of
knights and ladies, gentlemen and gentlewomen. The next day she took
her journey from Ricot to Woodstock, where she was enclosed, as before
in the Tower of London, the soldiers guarding and warding both within
and without the walls, every day to the number of sixty, and in the night,
982 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
without the walls, forty, during the time of her imprisonment there. At
length she had gardens appointed for her walk, which was very comfort-
able to her grace. But always, when she did recreate herself therein, the
doors were fast locked up, in as strict manner as they were in the Tower,
being at the least five or six locks between her lodging and her walks ; sir
Henry himself keeping the keys, and trusting no man therewith. Where-
upon she called him her jailer; and he, kneeling down, desired her grace
not to call him so, for he was appointed there to be one of her officers.
" From such officers," quoth she, " good Lord deliver me !" Hearing
upon a time out of her garden at Woodstock a certain milkmaid singing
pleasantly, the said lady Elizabeth wished herself to be a milkmaid as she
was ; saying, that her case was better, and life more merry than was hers,
in that state as she was.
After her grace had been there a time, she made suit to the council that
she might be suffered to write to the queen ; which at last was permitted.
So sir Henry Benifield brought her pen, ink, and paper ; and standing by
her while she wrote, (which he straitly observed,) always, she being weary,
he would carry away her letters, and bring them again when she called
for them. In the finishing thereof, he would have been messenger to the
queen of the same ; whose request her grace denied, saying, one of her
own men should carry them ; and that she would neither trust him nor any
of his therein. Then he answered again, saying, " None of them durst be
so bold," he trowed, " to carry her letters, being in that case." " Yes,"
quoth she, " I am assured I have none so dishonest that would deny my
request in that behalf, but will be willing to serve me now as before."
"Well," said he, " my commission is to the contrary, and I may not
so suffer it." Her grace, replying again, said, " You charge me very often
with your commission; I pray God, you may justly answer the cruel deal-
ing you use towards me." Then he, kneeling down, desired her grace to
think and consider how he was a servant, and put in trust there by the
queen to serve her majesty; protesting that if the case was hers, he would
as willingly serve her grace, as now he did the queen's highness. For
the which his answer her grace thanked him, desiring God that she might
never have need of such servants as he was; declaring further to him,
that his doings towards her were not good nor answerable; but more than
all the friends he had would stand by. To whom sir Henry replied and
said, that there was no remedy but his doings must be answered, and so
they should, trusting to make good account thereof. The cause which
moved her grace so to say, was for that he would not permit her letters to
be carried four or five days after the writing thereof. But, in fine, he was
content to send for her gentleman from the town of Woodstock, demand-
ing of him whether he durst enterprise the carriage of her grace's letters to
the queen, or no : and he answered, " Yea, sir, that I dare ; and will
with all my heart :" whereupon sir Henry, half against his stomach, took
them unto him.
Then about the 8th of June came down Dr. Owen and Dr. Wendy,
sent by the queen to her grace, for that she was sickly; who, ministering
to her, and letting her blood, tarried there and attended on her grace five
or six days. Then she being well amended, they returned again to the
court, making their good report to the queen and the council of her grace's
PRESERVATION OF THE LADY ELIZABETH. 983
behaviour and humbleness towards the queen's highness ; which her
majesty hearing, took very thankfully : but the bishops thereat repined,
looked black in the mouth, and told the queen, they marvelled that she
submitted not herself to her majesty's mercy, considering that she had
offended her highness.
About this time, her grace was requested by a secret friend, to submit
herself to the queen's majesty, which would be very well taken, and to her
great quiet and commodity. Unto whom she answered, that she would
never submit herself to them, whom she never offended. " For," quoth
she, " if I have offended and am guilty, I then crave no mercy, but the
law ; which I am certain," quoth she, " I should have had ere this, if it
could be proved by me. For I know myself (I thank God) to be out of
the danger thereof, wishing that I were as clear out the peril of my enemies ;
and then I am assured I should not be so locked and bolted up within walls
and doors as I am. God give them a better mind when it pleaseth him."
About this time there was a great consulting among the bishops and
gentlemen, touching a marriage for her grace, which some of the Spaniards
wished to be with some stranger, that she might go out of the realm with
her portion ; some saying one thing, and some another. A lord, who
shall be here nameless, being there, at last said, that the king should never
have any quiet commonwealth in England, unless her head were stricken
from the shoulders. Whereunto the Spaniards answered, saying, God
forbid that their king and master should have that mind, to consent to
such a mischief.
This was the courteous answer of the Spaniards to the Englishmen,
speaking after that sort against their own country. From that day the
Spaniards never left off their good persuasions to the king, that the like
honour he should never obtain, as he should in delivering the lady Eliza-
beth's grace out of prison ; whereby at length she was happily released
from the same. Here is a plain and evident example of the good clemency
and nature of the king and his councillors toward her grace (praised be
God there-for !) who moved their hearts therein. Then hereupon she
was sent for, shortly after, to come to Hampton Court.
While the said lady Elizabeth was a prisoner in the Tower, a writ came
down, subscribed with certain hands of the council, for her execution ;
which, if it were certain, as it is reported, Winchester (no doubt) was de-
viser of that mischievous drift. And, doubtless, the same Ahithophel had
brought his impious purpose that day to pass, had not the fatherly provi-
dence of Almighty God (who is always stronger than the devil) stirred up
master Bridges, lieutenant the same time of the Tower, to come in haste to
the queen, to give certificate thereof, and to know further her consent,
touching her sister's death. Whereupon it followed, that all that device
was disappointed, and Winchester's devilish platform, which he said he
had cast, through the Lord's great goodness came to no effect.
Now, after these things thus declared, to proceed further there where
we left before, sir Henry Benifield and his soldiers, with the lord of Tame,
and sir Ralph Chamberline, guarding and waiting upon her, the first night
from Woodstock she came to Ricot ; in which journey such a mighty wind
did blow, that her servants were fain to hold down her clothes about her :
insomuch that her hood was twice or thrice blown from her head. Where-
984 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
upon she, desiring to return to a certain gentleman's house there near, could
not be suffered by sir Henry Benifield so to do, but was constrained, under
a hedge, to trim her head as well as she could. After this, the next night
they journeyed to master Dormer's, and so to Colnbrooke, where she lay
all that night at the George; and by the way, coming to Colnbrooke,
certain of her grace's gentlemen and yeomen met her, to the number of
three-score, much to all their comforts, which had not seen her grace of
long season before : notwithstanding they were commanded, in the queen's
name, immediately to depart the town, to both their and her grace's no
little heaviness, who could not be suffered once to speak with them. So that
night all her men were taken from her, saving her gentleman-usher, three
gentlewomen, two grooms, and one of her wardrobe, the soldiers watching
and warding about the house, and she close shut up within her prison.
The next day following, her grace entered Hampton Court on the back
side, into the prince's lodging, the doors being shut to her; and she,
guarded with soldiers as before, lay there a fortnight at the least, ere any
had recourse unto her. At length came the lord William Haward, who
marvellous honourably used her grace. Whereat she took much comfort,
and requested him to be a mean that she might speak with some of the
council ; to whom, not long after, came the bishop of Winchester, the lord
of Arundel, the lord of Shrewsbury, and secretary Peter, who, with great
humility, humbled themselves to her grace. She again, likewise, saluting
them, said, " My lords, I am glad to see you : for methinks I have been
kept a great while from you desolately, alone. Wherefore I would desire
you to be a mean to the king and queen's majesties, that I may be delivered
from prison, wherein I have been kept a long space, as to you, my lords,
it is not unknown."
When she had spoken, Stephen Gardiner, the bishop of Winchester,
kneeled down, and requested that she would submit herself to the queen's
grace ; and in so doing he had no doubt but that her majesty would be
good to her. She made answer, that rather than she would so do, she
would lie in prison all the days of her life ; adding, that she craved no
mercy at her majesty's hand, but rather desired the law, if ever she did
offend her majesty in thought, word, or deed. " And besides this, in
yielding," quoth she, u I should speak against myself, and confess myself
to be an offender, which I never was, towards her majesty, by occasion
whereof the king and the queen might ever hereafter conceive of me an
evil opinion. And therefore I say, my lords, it were better for me to lie in
prison for the truth, than to be abroad and suspected of my prince." And
so they departed, promising to declare her message to the queen.
On the next day the bishop of Winchester came again unto her grace,
and kneeling down declared, that the queen marvelled that she would
so stoutly use herself, not confessing that she had offended : so that it
should seem that the queen's majesty had wrongfully imprisoned her grace.
M Nay," quoth the lady Elizabeth, " it may please her to punish me as she
thinketh good." "Well," quoth Gardiner, "her majesty willeth me to
tell you, that you must tell another tale ere that you be set at liberty."
Her grace answered, that she had as lieve be in prison with honesty and
truth, as to be abroad suspected of her majesty : " and this that I have
said, I will," said she, " stand unto ; for I will never belie myself." Win-
PRESERVATION OF THE LADY ELIZABETH. 985
Chester again kneeled down, and said, u Then your grace hath the vantage
of me, and other the lords, for your wrong and long imprisonment."
" What vantage I have," quoth she, " you know : taking God to record, I
seek no vantage at your hands for your so dealing with me ; but God for-
give you and me also !" With that the rest kneeled, desiring her grace
that all might be forgotten, and so departed, she being fast locked up again.
A sevennight after, the queen sent for her grace, at ten of the clock in
the night, to speak with her : for she had not seen her in two years before.
Yet, for all that, she, amazed at the sudden sending for, thinking it had
been worse than afterwards it proved, desired her gentlemen and gentle-
women to pray for her ; for that she could not tell whether ever she should
see them again or no. At which time sir Henry Benifield with mistress
Clarencius coming in, her grace was brought into the garden, unto a stair's
foot that went into the queen's lodging, her grace's gentlewomen waiting
upon her, her gentleman-usher and her grooms going before with torches ;
where her gentlemen and gentlewomen being commanded to stay all, saving
one woman, mistress Clarencius conducted her to the queen's bed-chamber,
where her majesty was. At the sight of whom her grace kneeled down,
and desired God to preserve her majesty, not mistrusting but that she
should try herself as true a subject towards her majesty, as ever did any ;
and desired her majesty even so to judge of her : and said, that she should
not find her to the contrary, whatsoever report otherwise had gone of her.
To whom the queen answered, " You will not confess your offence, but
stand stoutly to your truth : I pray God it may so fall out." " If it doth
not," quoth the lady Elizabeth, '■■' I request neither favour nor pardon at
your majesty's hands." " Well," said the queen, " you stiffly still persevere
in your truth. Belike you will not confess but that you have been wrong-
fully punished." " I must not say so, if it please your majesty, to you."
" Why then," said the queen, " belike you will to others." " No, if it
please your majesty," quoth she, u I have borne the burden, and must
bear it. I humbly beseech your majesty to have a good opinion of me,
and to think me to be your true subject, not only from the beginning
hitherto, but for ever, as long as life lasteth." And so they departed with
very few comfortable words of the queen in English : but what she said
in Spanish, God knoweth. It is thought that king Philip was there
behind a cloth, and that he showed himself a very friend in that matter.
Thus her grace departing, went to her lodging again, and that day seven-
night was released of sir Henry Benifield, (her jailer as she termed him,) and
his soldiers. And so her grace being set at liberty from imprisonment, went
into the country, and had appointed to go with her sir Thomas Pope, one
of queen Mary's councillors, and one of her gentlemen-ushers, master Gage ;
and thus straitly was she looked to, all queen Mary's time. And this is
the discourse of her highness's imprisonment.
After so great afflictions falling upon this realm from the first beginning
of queen Mary's reign, we are come at length (the Lord be praised !) to
the 17th day of November, which day as it brought to the persecuted
members of Christ rest from their mourning, so it easeth me somewhat
likewise of my laborious writing, by the death, I mean, of queen Mary ;
who, being long sick before, upon the said 17th day of November, 1558,
986 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
about three or four o'clock in the morning yielded life to nature, and her
kingdom to queen Elizabeth her sister. As touching the manner of her
death, some say that she died of a tympany, some (by her much sighing
before her death) supposed she died of thought and sorrow. Whereupon
her council, seeing her sighing, and desirous to know the cause that they
might minister the more ready consolation, feared, as they said, that she
took that thought for the king's majesty her husband, which was gone
from her. To whom she said, " Indeed that may be one cause, but that
is not the greatest wound that pierceth my oppressed mind :" but what
that was she would not express to them. Albeit, afterward, she opened
the matter more plainly to master Rise and mistress Clarencius (if it be
true that they told me, which heard it of master Rise himself;) who being
familiar with her and most bold about her, said also that they feared she
took thought for king Philip's departing from her. " Not that only,"
said she; " but when I am dead and opened, you shall find Calais lying
in my heart."
Now forasmuch as queen Mary, during all the time of her reign, was
such a vehement adversary and persecutor against the sincere professors
of Christ Jesus and his gospel : for the which there be many which do
highly magnify and approve her doings therein, reputing her religion to
be sound and catholic, and her proceedings to be most acceptable and
blessed to Almighty God : to the intent therefore that all men may
understand how the blessing of God did not only not proceed with her
proceedings, but contrariwise how his manifest displeasure ever wrought
against her, in plaguing both her and her realm, and in subverting all her
counsels and attempts, whatsoever she took in hand, we will bestow a
little time therein.
Gamaliel, speaking his mind in the council of the Pharisees, concerning
Christ's religion, gave this reason : that if it were of God it should con-
tinue, whosoever said nay ; if it were not, it could not stand. So may it
be said of queen Mary and her Romish religion ; that if it were so perfect
and catholic as they pretend, and- the contrary faith of the gospellers so
detestable and heretical as they make it, how cometh it then, that this so
catholic a queen, such a necessary pillar of his spouse the church, con-
tinued no longer, till she had utterly rooted out of the land this heretical
generation ? yea, how chanced it rather, that Almighty God, to spare these
poor heretics, rooted out queen Mary so soon from her throne, after she
had reigned but only five years and five months ?
Now furthermore, how God blessed her ways and endeavours in the
mean time, until she thus persecuted the true servants of God, remaineth
to be discussed ; where this is first to be noted, that when she first began
to stand for the title of the crown, and yet had wrought no resistance
against Christ and his gospel, but had promised her faith to the Suftblk-
men, to maintain the religion left by king Edward her brother, so long
God went with her, advanced her, and, by the means of the gospellers,
brought her to the possession of the realm. But after that she, breaking
her promise with God and man, began to take part with Stephen Gardiner,
and had given over her supremacy unto the pope, by-and-by God's bless-
ing left her, neither did anything well thrive with her afterward, during
the whole time of her regiment.
UNPROSPEROUSNESS OF QUEEN MARY'S REIGN. 987
For first, incontinently, the fairest and greatest ship she had, called
Great Harry, was burnt ; such a vessel as in all these parts of Europe was
not to be matched. Then would she needs bring in king Philip, and by
her strange marriage with him, to make the whole realm of England sub-
ject unto a stranger. And all that notwithstanding, (that she either did,
or was able to do,) she could not bring to pass to set the crown of England
upon his head. With king Philip also came in the pope and his popish
mass ; with whom also her purpose was to restore again the monks and
nuns unto their places ; neither lacked there all kind of attempts to the
uttermost of her ability ; and yet therein also God stopped her of her will,
that it came not forward. After this, what a dearth happened in her time
here in her land ! the like whereof hath not lightly in England been seen,
insomuch that in sundry places her poor subjects were fain to feed oft
acorns, for want of corn. Furthermore, where other kings are wont to be
renowned by some worthy victory and prowess by them achieved, let us
now see what valiant victory was gotten in this queen Mary's days. King
Edward the sixth, her blessed brother, how many rebellions did he sup-
press in Devonshire, in Norfolk, in Oxfordshire, and elsewhere ! What a
famous victory in his time was gotten in Scotland, by the singular working
(no doubt) of God's blessed hand, rather than by any expectation of man !
King Edward the third, (which was the eleventh king from the conquest,)
by princely puissance purchased Calais unto England, which had been
kept English ever since, till at length came queen Mary, the eleventh
likewise from the said king Edward, which lost Calais from England again ;
so that the winnings of this queen were very small — what the losses were
let other men judge.
Hitherto the affairs of queen Mary have had no great good success, as
you have heard. But never worse success had any woman, than had she
in her child-birth. For seeing one of these two must needs be granted,
that either she was with child or not with child : if she were with child and
did travail, why was it not seen ? if she were not, how was all the realm
deluded ! And in the meanwhile, where were all the prayers, the solemn
processions, the devout masses of the catholic clergy ? why did they not
prevail with God, if their religion were so godly as they pretend ? If their
masses, " ex opere operato," be able to fetch Christ from heaven, and to
reach down to purgatory, how chanced then they could not reach to the
queen's chamber, to help her in her travail, if she had been with child
indeed ? if not, how then came it to pass, that all the catholic church of
England did so err, and was so deeply deceived ?
Queen Mary, after these manifold plagues and corrections, which might
sufficiently admonish her of God's disfavour provoked against her, would
not yet cease her persecution, but still continued more and more to revenge
her catholic zeal upon the Lord's faithful people, setting fire to their poor
bodies by half dozens and dozens together. Whereupon, God's wrathful
indignation increasing more and more against her, ceased not to touch her
more near with private misfortunes and calamities. For after that he had
taken from her the fruit of children, (which chiefly and above all things
she desired,) then he bereft her of that, which of all earthly things should
have been her chief stay of honour, and staff of comfort, that is, withdrew
from her the affection and company even of her own husband, by whose
988 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
marriage she had promised before to herself whole heaps of such joy and
felicity. But now the omnipotent Governor of all things so turned the
wheel of her own spinning against her, that her high buildings of such
joys and felicities came all to a castle-come-down ; her hopes being con-
founded, her purposes disappointed, and she now brought to desolation;
who seemed neither to have the favour of God, nor the hearts of her sub-
jects, nor yet the love of her husband ; who neither had fruit by him while
she had him, neither could now enjoy him whom she had married, neither
yet was at liberty to marry any other whom she might enjoy. Mark here,
Christian reader, the woeful adversity of this queen, and learn withal what
the Lord can do, when man's wilfulness will needs resist him, and will
not be ruled.
I At last, when all these fair admonitions would take no place with the
queen, nor move her to revoke her bloody laws, nor to stay the tyranny of
her priests, nor yet to spare her own subjects, but that the poor servants
of God were drawn daily by heaps most pitifully as sheep to the slaughter,
it so pleased the heavenly majesty of Almighty God, when no other remedy
would serve, by death to cut her off; which in her life so little regarded
the life of others, giving her throne, which she abused to the destruction
of Christ's church and people, to another, who more temperately and
quietly could guide the same, after she had reigned here the space of
five years and five months. The shortness of which years and reign, scarce
we find in any other story of king or queen since the conquest or before,
(being come to their own government,") save only in king Richard III.
And thus much here, as in the closing up of this story, I thought to
insinuate, touching the unlucky and rueful reign of queen Mary : not for
any detraction to her place and state royal, whereunto she was called of
the Lord, but to this only intent and effect : that forsomuch as she would
needs set herself so confidently to work and strive against the Lord and
his proceedings, all readers and rulers may not only see how the Lord did
work against her there-for, but also by her may be advertised and learn
what a perilous thing it is for men and women in authority, upon blind
zeal and opinion, to stir up persecution in Christ's church, to the effusion
of Christian blood, lest it prove in the end with them, (as it did here,)
that while they think to persecute heretics, they stumble at the same stone
as did the Jews, in persecuting Christ and his true members to death, to
their own confusion and destruction.
Leaving now queen Mary, being dead and gone, I come to them which
under her were the chief ministers and doers of this persecution, the
bishops and priests to whom the queen gave all the execution of her
power, as did queen Alexandra to the Pharisees after the time of the
Maccabees, of whom Josephus says : " She only retained to herself the
name and title of the kingdom, but all her power she gave to the Pharisees
to possess." Touching which prelates and priests here is to be noted in
like sort the wonderful and miraculous providence of Almighty God, which
as he abridged the reign of their queen, so he suffered them not to escape
unvisited. First beginning with Stephen Gardiner, the arch-persecutor of
Christ's church, whom he took away about the midst of the queen's reign,
of whom sufficient hath been touched before. After him dropped others
away also, some before the death of queen Mary, and some after ; as
DIVINE JUDGMENTS ON PERSECUTORS. 989
Morgan, bishop of St. David's, who sitting upon the condemnation of
bishop Farrar, unjustly usurping his room, not long after was stricken by
God's hand after such a strange sort, that his meat would not go down,
but rise and pick up again, sometimes at his mouth, sometimes blown out
at his nose, most horrible to behold ; and so he continued till his death.
This foresaid bishop Morgan bringeth me also in remembrance of justice
Morgan, who sat upon the death of the lady Jane, and not long after fell
mad, and was bereft of his wits; and so died, having ever in his mouth,
" Lady Jane, lady Jane !"
Before the death of queen Mary died Dr. Dunning, the wretched
chancellor of Norwich, who after he had most rigorously condemned and
murdered so many simple and faithful saints of the Lord, died in Lincoln-
shire, being suddenly taken, as some say, sitting in his chair. The like
sudden death fell also upon Berry, commissary in Norwich, as is before
showed in the story of Thomas Hudson. Bishop Thornton, suffragan of
Dover, after he had exercised his cruel tyranny upon so many godly men
at Canterbury, coming upon a Saturday from the chapter-house at Canter-
bury to Bourne, and there, upon the Sunday following, looking upon his
men playing at the bowls, fell suddenly in a palsy, and so had to bed, was
willed to remember God : " Yea, so I do," said he, " and my lord cardinal
too." After him succeeded another bishop, ordained by the foresaid
cardinal, who brake his neck falling down a pair of stairs in the cardinal's
chamber at Greenwich, as he had received the cardinal's blessing.
To these examples may be added the terrible judgment of God upon
the parson at Crundale in Kent, of which read before. Not long before
the death of queen Mary, died Dr. Capon, bishop of Salisbury ; and about
the same time followed the unprepared death of Dr. Jeffrey, chancellor of
Salisbury, who in the midst of his buildings, suddenly being taken by the
mighty hand of God, yielded his life, which had so little pity of other
men's lives before. Here is to be noted that the foresaid chancellor
departing upon a Saturday, the next day before the same he had appointed
to call before him ninety persons, and not so few, to examine them by
inquisition ; had not the goodness of the Lord prevented him with death,
providing for his poor servants in time. Such is the merciful dealing of
the Almighty with his people, whom after he scourged a little, in his dis-
pleasure, at length he burned the rod.
And now to come from priests to laymen, we find in them also no less
terrible demonstration of God's heavy judgment upon such as have been
vexers and persecutors of his people. In the story of master Bradford,
mention was made of master Woodroofe the sheriff, who used much to
rejoice at the death of the poor saints in Christ; and so hard he was in his
office, that when master Rogers was in the cart going toward Smithfield,
and in the way his children were brought unto him, the people making a
lane for them to come, master Woodroofe bade the carman's head should
be broken, for staying his cart. But what happened ? He was not come
out of his office the space of a week, but he was stricken by the sudden
hand of God, the one half of his body ; in such sort, that he lay benumbed
and bedridden, not able to move himself but as he was lifted of others;
and so continued in that infirmity the space of seven or eight years, till
his dying day.
990 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Likewise touching Ralph Lardin, the betrayer of George Eagles, it is
thought of some, that the said Ralph afterward was attached himself,
arraigned, and hanged ; who, being at the bar, had these words before
the judges there, and a great multitude of people : " This is most justly
fallen upon me," saith he, " for that I have betrayed the innocent blood
of a good and just man, George Eagles, who was here condemned in the
time of queen Mary's reign, through my procurement, who sold his blood
for a little money." Not much unlike stroke of these severally was
showed upon William Swallow of Chelmsford, and his wife ; also upon
Richard Potto, and justice Brown, cruel persecutors of the said George
Ea«les, concerning whose story read before.
Alexander the keeper of Newgate, a cruel enemy to those that lay there
for religion, died very miserably, being so swollen that he was more like a
monster than a man, and so rotten within, that no man could abide the
smell of him. This cruel wretch, to hasten the poor lambs to the slaughter,
would go to Bonner, Storey, Cholmley, and others, crying out, " Rid my
prison ; rid my prison ! I am too much pestered with these heretics."
The son of the said Alexander called James, having left unto him by his
father great substance, within three years wasted all to nought : and when
some marvelled how he spent those goods so fast, " Oh !" said he, " evil
gotten, evil spent." And shortly after, as he went in Newgate-market,
he fell down suddenly, and there wretchedly died. John Peter, son-in-law
to this Alexander, and a horrible blasphemer of God, and no less cruel to
the said prisoners, rotted away, and so most miserably died; who com-
monly when he would affirm anything, were it true or false, used to say,
" If it be not true, I pray God* I rot ere I die." — Witness the printer
hereof, with divers others.
And thus much concerning those persecutors, as well of the clergy-sort
as of the laity, which were stricken, and died before the death of queen
Mary. With whom also are to be numbered in the race of persecuting
bishops, which died before queen Mary, these bishops following : Cotes,
bishop of Chester ; Parfew, bishop of Hereford ; Glyn, bishop of Bangor ;
Brookes, bishop of Gloucester ; King, bishop of Tame ; Petow, elect of
Salisbury ; Day, bishop of Chichester ; Holyman, bishop of Bristol.
Now, after the queen, immediately following, or rather waited upon
her, the death of cardinal Pole, who the next day departed : of what
disease, although it be uncertain to many, yet by some it is suspected,
that he took some Italian physic, which did him no good. Then followed
these bishops in order : John Christopherson, bishop of Chichester ;
Hopton, bishop of Norwich ; Morgan, bishop of St. David's ; John White,
bishop of Winchester ; Ralph Bayne, bishop of Lichfield and Coventry ;
Owen Oglethorpe, bishop of Carlisle ; Cuthbert Tonstall, bishop of
Durham ; Thomas Reynolds, elect of Hereford, after his deprivation died
in prison. Besides these bishops, first died at the same time, Dr.
Weston, dean of Westminster, afterwards dean of Windsor ; chief disputer
against Cranmer, Ridley, and Latimer. Master Slethurst, master of
Trinity college in Oxford, who died in the Tower. Seth Holland, dean of
Worcester, and warden of All Souls' college in Oxford. William Cobinger,
monk of Westminster, who bare the great seal before Stephen Gardiner,
after the death of the said Gardiner made himself monk in the house of
DIVINE JUDGMENTS ON PERSECUTORS. 991
Westminster; and shortly after fell mad, and died in the Tower. Dr.
Steward, dean of Winchester.
To behold the working of God's judgments, it is wondrous. In the
first year of queen Mary, when the clergy were assembled in the Convoca-
tion-house, and also afterward, when the disputation was in Oxford against
Dis. Cranmer and Ridley, and master Latimer, he that had seen then Dr.
Weston the prolocutor in his ruff, how highly he took upon him in the
schools, and how stoutly he stood in the pope's quarrel against simple
and naked truth, full little would have thought, and less did he think
himself, I dare say, that his glory and lofty looks should have been
brought down so soon, especially by them of his own religion, whose part
he so doughtily defended.
But such is the reward and end commonly of them who presump-
tuously oppose themselves to strive against the Lord, as by the example
of this doctorly prolocutor right well may appear. For not long after the
disputation above mentioned against bishop Cranmer and his fellows, God
so wrought against the said Dr. Weston, that he fell in great displeasure
with cardinal Pole and other bishops, because he was unwilling to give up
his deanery, and house of Westminster, unto the monks and religious men,
whom indeed he favoured not, although in other things he maintained the
church of Rome : who notwithstanding, at last, through importunate suit,
gave up Westminster, and was dean of Windsor ; where, not long after,
he was apprehended in adultery, and for the same was by the cardinal
put from all his spiritual livings. Wherefore he appealed to Rome, and
purposed to have fled out of the realm, but was taken by the way, and
committed to the Tower of London ; and there remained until queen
Elizabeth was proclaimed queen, at which time he being delivered, fell
sick and died. The common talk was, that if he had not so suddenly
ended his life, he would have opened and revealed the purpose of the chief
of the clergy, (meaning the cardinal,) which was to have taken up king
Henry's body at Windsor, and to have burned it. And thus much of
Dr. Weston. The residue that remained of the persecuting clergy, and
escaped the stroke of death, were deprived, and committed to prisons.
Concerning Dr. Chedsey here is to be noted, that in the beginning of
king Edward's reign, he recanted, and subscribed to thirty-four articles,
wherein he then fully consented and agreed, with his own handwriting, to
the whole form of doctrine approved and allowed then in the church, as
well concerning justification by faith only, as also the doctrine of the two
sacraments then received; denying as well the pope's supremacy, transub-
stantiation, purgatory, invocation of saints, elevation and adoration of the
sacrament, the sacrifice and veneration of the mass, as also all other like
excrements of popish superstition, according to the king's book then set forth.
Wherefore the more marvel it is, that he, being counted such a famous
and learned clerk, would show himself so fickle and unstable in his asser-
tions, so double in his doings, to alter his religion according to time, and
to maintain for truth, not what he thought best, but what he might most
safely defend. So long as the state of the lord protector and of his
brother stood upright, what was then the conformity of this Dr. Chedsey,
his own articles in Latin, written and subscribed with his own hand, do
declare, which I have to show, if he will deny them. But after the decay
992 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
of the king's uncles, the fortune of them turned not so fast, but his religion
turned withal ; and eftsoons he took upon him to dispute against Peter
Martyr, in upholding transubstantiation at Oxford, which, a little before,
with his own handwriting he had overthrown. After this ensued the time
of queen Mary, wherein Dr. Chedsey, to show his double diligence, was
so eager in his commission to sit in judgment, and to bring poor men to
their death, that in the last year of queen Mary, when the lord chancellor,
sir Thomas Cornwallis, lord Clinton, and divers other of the council had
sent for him, by a special letter, to repair unto London out of Essex, he,
writing again to the bishop of London, sought means not to come at the
council's bidding, but to continue still in his persecuting progress. The
copy of whose letter I have also in my hands, if need were, to bring forth.
To these add also the stinking death of Edmund Bonner, commonly
named the bloody bishop of London ; who, not many years ago, in the
time and reign of queen Elizabeth, after he had long feasted and banqueted
in durance at the Marshalsea, as he wretchedly died in his blind popery,
so as strikingly and blindly, at midnight, was he brought out and buried
in the outside of all the city, amongst thieves and murderers, a place right
convenient for such a murderer ; with confusion and derision both of men
and children, who, trampling upon his grave, well declared how he was
hated both of God and man. What else be all these, I say, but plain
visible arguments, testimonies, and demonstrations even from heaven,
against the pope, his murdering religion, and his bloody doctrine? For
who can deny their doings not to be good, whose end is so evil ? If Christ
bid us to know men by their fruits, and especially seeing by the end all
things are to be tried, how can the profession of that doctrine please God,
which endeth so ungodly ? Esaias, prophesying of the end of God's
enemies, which would needs walk in the light of their own setting up,
and not in the light of the Lord's kindling, threateneth to them this final
malediction, " In doloribus," saith he, " dormietis;" i.e. " In sorrow shall
ye sleep." Innumerable examples more to the same effect might be
added, but these may suffice, which I here notify unto the children of the
murdering mother church of Rome, (of whom it may well be said, " Your
hands be full of blood,") to the intent that they by the example of their
fellows may be admonished to follow the prophet's counsel, " Be you
washed, and make yourselves clean," etc ; and not to presume too far
upon their own security, nor think themselves the further off from God's
hand, because man's hand forbeareth them.
I know and grant, that man hath no further power upon any than God
from above doth give. And what the laws of this realm could make
against them, as against open murderers, I will not here discuss, because
they shall not say that we desire their blood to be spilt, but rather to be
spared; but yet this I say, and wish them well to understand, that the
sparing of their lives which have been murderers of so many is not for
want of power in magistrates, nor for lack of any just law against them,
whereby they might justly have been condemned; but because Almighty
God peradventure in his secret purpose, having something to do with these
persecutors, hath spared them hitherto ; not that they should escape un-
punished, but that he will take his own cause into his own hand, either
by death to take them away, (as he did by Bonner and others,) or else to
SETTLING OF RELIGION IN THE REIGN OF ELIZABETH. 993
make them persecute themselves ; or stir up their consciences to their own
contusion, in such sort as the church shall have no need to lay any hands
upon them. Wherefore with this short admonition to close up the matter,
I wish all whom God's lenity suffereth yet to live wisely to ponder with
themselves, that as their cruel persecution hurteth not. the saints of God,
whom they have put to death, so the patience of Christ's church suffering
them to live doth not profit them, but rather heapeth the greater judgment
of God upon them in the day of wrath, unless they repent in time, which
I pray God they may.
And now to re-enter again to the time of queen Elizabeth. It cannot
sufficiently be expressed what felicity and blessed happiness this realm
hath received in receiving her at the Lord's almighty and gracious hand ;
whose coming in was not only so calm, so joyful, and so peaceable, with-
out shedding any blood, but also her reign, during the first twenty-four
years and more, so quiet, that all that time her sword was spotted and
polluted with no drop of blood. In commendation of her clemency also,
here might be added how mildly her grace forgave the foresaid sir Henry
Benifield, suffering him to enjoy goods, life, lands, and liberty.
Towards the end of March, 1559, a conference was held by command
of the queen's most excellent majesty at Westminster, between the papists
and the protestants ; eight persons, that is to say, four bishops and four
doctors, being appointed on either side. The matter of the conference
was comprehended in these three propositions: 1. It is against the word
of God, and the custom of the ancient church, to use a tongue unknown
to the people, in common prayers, and the administration of the sacra-
ments. 2. Every church hath authority to appoint, take away, and
change ceremonies and ecclesiastical rites, so the same be to edification.
3. It cannot be proved by the word of God, that there is, in the mass,
offered up a sacrifice propitiatory for the quick and the dead.
About this time also was a parliament summoned at Westminster,
wherein was much debating about matters touching religion ; and although
some diversity there was of judgment and opinion between parties, yet,
notwithstanding, through the merciful goodness of the Lord, the true cause
of the gospel had the upper hand, the papists' hope was frustrate, and
their rage abated, the order and proceedings of king Edward's time con-
cerning religion were revived again, the supremacy of the pope abolished,
the articles and bloody statutes of queen Mary repealed; briefly, the
furious firebrands of cruel persecution, which had consumed so many poor
men's bodies, were now extinct and quenched.
Finally, the old bishops were deposed, for that they refused the oath in
renouncing the pope, and not subscribing to the queen's just and lawful
title : in whose rooms and places, first for cardinal Pole succeeded Dr.
Matthew Parker, archbishop of Canterbury. In the place of Heath suc-
ceeded Dr. Young. Instead of Bonner, Edmund Grindall was bishop of
London. For Hopton, Thirlby, Tonstall, Pates, Christopherson, Petow,
Cotes, Morgan, Voysey, White, Oglethorpe, etc., were placed Dr. John
Parkhurst in Norwich, Dr. Coxe in Ely, Jewell in Salisbury, Pilkinton in
Durham, Dr. Sands in Worcester, master Downham in West-Chester,
Bentham in Coventry and Lichfield, Davies in St. David's, Alley in
994 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Exeter, Home in Winchester, Scory in Hereford, Best in Carlisle,
Bullingham in Lincoln, Scambler in Peterborough, Barkley in Bath,
Guest in Rochester, Barlow in Chichester, etc.
And now to conclude, good Christian reader, this present tractation, not
for lack of matter, but to shorten rather the matter for largeness of the
volume, I here stay for this present time, without further addition of more
discourse, either to overweary thee with longer tediousness, or overcharge
the book with longer prolixity ; having hitherto set forth the acts and
proceedings of the whole church of Christ, namely, of the church of
England, although not in such particular perfection, that nothing hath
overpassed us ; yet in such general sufficiency, that I trust not very much
hath escaped us, necessary to be known, touching the principal affairs,
doings, and proceedings of the church and churchmen. Wherein may be
seen the whole state, order, descent, course, and continuance of the same,
the increase and decrease of true religion, the creeping in of superstition,
the horrible troubles of persecution, the wonderful assistance of the
Almighty in maintaining his truth, the glorious constancy of Christ's
martyrs, the rage of the enemies, the alteration of times, the travails and
troubles of the church, from the first primitive age of Christ's gospel, to
the end of queen Mary, and the beginning of this our gracious queen
Elizabeth. During the time of her happy reign, which hath hitherto con-
tinued (through the gracious protection of the Lord) the space now of
twenty-four years, as my wish is, so I would be glad the good will of the
Lord were so, that no more matter of such lamentable stories may ever be
offered hereafter to write upon. But so it is, I cannot tell how, the elder
the world waxeth, the longer it continueth, the nearer it hasteneth to its
end, the more Satan rageth ; giving still new matter of writing books and
volumes : insomuch that if all were recorded and committed to history,
that within the said compass of this queen's reign hitherto hath happened,
in Scotland, Flanders, France, Spain, Germany, besides this our own
country of England and Ireland, with other countries more, I verily
suppose one Eusebius, or Polyhistor, which Pliny writeth of, would not
suffice thereunto.
But of these incidents and occurrents hereafter more, as it shall please
the Lord to give grace and space. In the mean time, the grace of the
Lord Jesus work with thee, gentle reader, in all thy studious readings.
And while thou hast space, so employ thyself to read, that by reading
thou mayest learn daily to know that which may profit thy soul, may
teach thee experience, may arm thee with patience, and instruct thee
in all spiritual knowledge more and more to thy perpetual comfort
and salvation in Christ Jesus our Lord ; to whom be glory in secula
seculorum. Amen.
APPENDIX,
SECTION I.
MASSACRES IN THE VALTELINE, AND CRUEL PERSECUTIONS OF THE
FAITHFUL IN DIVERS OTHER PLACES.
In 1620, a dreadful massacre occurred in the Valteline, a fertile valley of
Switzerland, inhabited chiefly by Roman catholics. The ringleaders entered
the valley one night about six o'clock, taking care that all the ways and pas-
sages were well guarded, that their bloody purpose might not be defeated.
Four muskets were discharged before the palace of the seignior Podesta,
principal magistrate of Tyrane, and the great bell rung, upon which signal
the inhabitants took the alarm, and made toward the palace. The murderers
then ordered the bridge to be broken which lay towards Bruce, and there
planted a strong guard : all this was done before day. At dawn of day
the bells rang another peal at the church of Marello. The wretches
ranged themselves together, so that when the protestants, without fear or
suspicion, came out of their houses to see what was the matter, they were
instantly shot. Others by force entered the houses, dragged their victims
from their beds, and slew them. One poor gentleman hid himself in a
garret, but the villains finding him threw him out of window, and after-
wards dispatched him with the blow of a club. Antonia de Salva, chan-
cellor in that valley, a man of great authority, was dragged out of his
house, and shot. The governor of Teglio, a man of great worth, very
learned and skilled in many languages, being by chance at Tyrane, was
also with his servant strangled, in the chamber where he was found.
The pastor of the church of Tyrane, and the pastor of Marello, withdrew
themselves into a hall, where they were discovered and murdered. The
wretches cut off the head of the former, and carried it into the church,
fixing it upon a pole in the pulpit where he used to preach. The palace
of the chequer of Tyrane was besieged, John de Cappaul being at that time
governor. The chancellor Michael Lazarone was hated by the papists for
his piety, and pursued even thither by these hell-hounds, who threatened to
fire the palace, unless he were delivered into their hands. Lazarone, see-
ing that, secretly left the house in the evening, and hid himself about the
banks of the river Adda, wherein he covered himself, and lay close three
hours. His enemies, however, at length found him, and dragged him out
of the water ; and though in tears he begged for his life, in consideration
of his children, they answered, that this was no time for pity and favour :
but if he would swear by the pope's bull, and abjure his faith, they would
grant him his life. He answered, " God forbid that I, for the love of this
temporal life, should deny my Lord Jesus Christ, who with his precious
996 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
blood, did at so dear a rate redeem me. I say, God forbid!" Upon
this they immediately murdered him.
The same evening 1 , the gate of the palace was burnt to the ground by
these rebels, who the next morning entered into it, raging with fury, and
took the governor prisoner, with his young son ; spoiling and maiming
wives and maidens, and carrying away all they could lay hands on.
The governor was taken away, and after he had remained a long time
prisoner, was shot. In endeavouring to resist, one John Antonio
Mazano and his wife defending him, was with herself and two young
children cruelly killed. John Antonio Schlosser, a Gardonese, having
made long resistance, and killed one of the rebels, was at last taken,
tied to a tree, and shot. In brief, these rebels had regard to neither
young, old, weak, or strong, many of all sorts were either shot to death,
or cut in pieces, or in one manner or other destroyed.
The ladies who were not slain, were constrained to change their reli-
gion, and to go to mass, except the wife of the Lazarone and her
daughters, and niece, who by the assistance of Almighty God continued
in safety. On the 8th of August, these were released, and retired them-
selves into Retia, leaving behind them in the Valteline one daughter
and two young sons, who could not obtain leave to depart the country.
At the massacre of Teglio were murdered about sixty persons. A
number of wicked wretches, apparelled in red cassocks, and well mounted
on horseback, marched in the morning to Tellat, at the hour when the
sermon was, and ran like wolves to the Volta church; the protestants who
were assembled, observing the evil intention of those villains, arose sud-
denly from their seats, endeavoured to shut the dcor, and to barricade
the place with the benches. They without laboured with all their
power to enter the church; but not being able so speedily to do it, some
climbed up into the windows, and discharged their muskets among the
people without respect of any person, and killed many. At last they
opened the door, entered, and slew all they found, except a few who
promised to go to mass. Some of the men and women with their chil-
dren fled into the belfry to save themselves; but they set fire to the
place, and burnt all that were within.
At the massacre at Sondres, in the mountain of Sondrium and Malenk,
were left dead about one hundred and forty persons. Annaidai Lita,
wife of Anthoni Grotti, of Chio, in the territory of Vincentine, of an
honourable and ancient house, was come out of Italy but a few years
before for the liberty of her conscience. She was first exhorted to change
her religion; but constantly persevering therein, she was admonished to
have a care of her young infant which she held in her arms, being about
two months old ; otherwise she and her babe too should die: but with
an undaunted courage she answered, that she had not departed from her
native country, neither had she forsaken all the estate she had, to renounce
at last that faith which had been inspired into her by the Lord Jesus
Christ. " And how" — said she — "should I have regard in this cause of
my infant, since God spared not his only Son, but delivered him up to
death for the love of me and of all sinners?" Then giving thern the
child, she said — "Behold the child! the Lord God, who hath the care
of the birds of the air, will much more be able to save this poor creature,
ACCOUNT OF SEVERAL MARTYRS. 997
although by you it were left in those wild mountains." So unlacing her
gown, she said — "Here is the body which you have power to kill ; but
my soul, on which you have no power to lay hands, that I commend to
my God." Immediately she was cut in pieces, being- thirty-five years of
age. The infant, because it was a lovely babe to look on, was suffered
to live, and was delivered to a popish woman to nurse. The husband
of this gentlewoman was murdered for the faith a little before.
Some women were by force taken up to the tops of high and craggy
mountains, and threatened to be thrown down headlong with their chil-
dren, unless they would go to mass. And yet those that were moved
and terrified with the horrors of death, and had consented to change
their religion, yet were they murdered for all that without any pity at all.
An aged man of sixty-seven years was set upon an ass, his face turned
to the tail, which he held in his hand instead of a bridle, and in his
other hand a book, whom in this manner they carried through Sondres.
Then they cut off his ears, nose and cheeks, boring holes into divers parts
of his body, with a strange and unparalleled barbarity, until they had
quite killed him.
Anthony de Prati, of the hills, was exhorted with many words to
abjure his religion; but he refused with all the constancy of a martyr, and
made a most powerful impression on all who witnessed his courage and
calmness in his dying moments, calculated to establish them the more firmly
in their most holy faith. They were astonished, and gave glory to God,
publicly bearing witness of the martyr's triumphant end. Paulo Beretta,
of Chio, in the province of Vicence, aged seventy-five years, a maiden lady
of a noble and ancient family, who came twenty-seven years before to
Sondres to embrace the gospel, was carried through Sondres in scorn,
having a mitre of paper on her head, her face besmeared with dirt, and
many buffets given on her cheeks. Being required to call upon the holy
virgin and the saints, and to place her trust in them, she smiling readily
answered them — "My trust and my salvation is in my Saviour Jesus
Christ, and in him only will 1 trust." At last she was carried away to be
sent to Milan. On the eighteenth of July an elderly woman was found
murdered in the highway, in the plain of St. Gregory, in the Valteline,
which was conjectured to be the body of this gentlewoman.
Many hid themselves in dens, and caves, and woods, out of which
they durst not come but by night to get some food, and that with great
fear and terror, on account of the watching of the enemy, while others
for want of convenient food to eat, and others that fed only upon roots,
leaves, and grass, made an end of their lives; and many were murdered
in divers places, who had no burial at all ; so that several carcases were
to be seen in groves and woods in the mountains, and in the waters in
many places. At the massacre of Berbonne, were slain about eleven
persons. And likewise at Caspano and Trahorn, about the same num-
ber; one of them, a tradesman, being discovered by his countrymen
and kindred, was taken and carried to Morbegnio, and burnt, being-
sixty years old.
Giovan Pietro Malacrida, although he was little of stature, yet was
he great and mighty in his confession of the truth, insomuch that for
the love of his Saviour he suffered death with singular cheerfulness,
998 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
being; forty years of age. His example was devoutly and constantly
imitated by Elizabeth his wife, who was killed in the thirty-eighth year
of her age : and moreover these murderers not therewith content, ob-
serving a daughter of hers, an infant of three years old, to lie in the
cradle, they took the innocent babe by the feet, and dashed out her
brains against the wall. Upon impartial investigation it every way appears,
that these several persons underwent their sufferings for the truth of the
gospel, and were honest and faithful martyrs of Christ.
SECTION II.
ATTEMPTS OF THE PAPISTS TO OVERTURN THE PROTESTANT GOVERNMENT
—THE GUNPOWDER PLOT— HORRIBLE MASSACRES IN IRELAND.
Returning to our own country, we observe with much gratitude the
auspicious measures commencing the reign of Elizabeth. The secure
establishment of this princess on the throne of England, put a stop to
the rage of the papists ; for the authority of the pope vanished, and
peace and liberty rested on the nation. But the papists thought it a
sin to live peaceably under a heretical princess, especially one against
whom two popes had thundered out excommunications, freeing her sub-
jects from their allegiance, and threatening them with the wrath of God
if they did assist her, and promising rewards to all persons who
should lay hands upon her, which was to be paid out of the church, with
full pardon of all their sins. But when they saw that the queen's sub-
jects were too faithful to engage in any such villanous designs, they
then proceeded to secret plots, as that wherein the duke of Norfolk and
Robert Biddulph were engaged, in 1566, and for which the Duke suf-
fered at York. In 1578, the invasion of Ireland, at the charge of the
pope, was happily prevented. The next year James Fitz Morris was sent
into Ireland, with Saunders the Jesuit, who carried consecrated banners
to them. The year following San Joseph was sent thither with 700
Spanish soldiers, and the pope's promise of a million of crowns, to
carry on the work of rebellion ; and to them joined the earl of Desmond
and his brothers; but they being all happily defeated, they next con-
spired the death of the queen, and made several attempts to murder
her; first by Somervile and Hall, two priests ; one of whom being con-
demned, was found murdered for fear he should discover others. After
this followed the devices of Mendoza, the Spanish ambassador, with
Throgmorton and Parry, who had letters, with plenary pardon, sent
them by the pope for killing the queen. The same year, Savage and
Babington, engaged to commit the like wicked act, by procurement of
Ballard a Jesuit ; but being happily discovered, were condemned and exe-
cuted, and were registered for martyrs in the Romish Calendar. Stafford
and Moody were dealt withal to commit the like villany, proposing to
lay a bag of gun-powder under the queen's bed-chamber, which, by
the mercy of heaven, was detected, as well as all the other plots.
POPISH CONSPIRACIES AGAINST THE QUEEN. 999
These schemes providentially failing, the pope instigated Philip II. of
Spain to invade England, though in queen Mary's time he had affected great
kindness towards the princess Elizabeth. For this purpose the pope fur-
nished him with a consecrated banner, and fresh bulls for excommunicating
the queen as a heretic, publishing a crusade against her, and absolving her
subjects from their oath of allegiance. Philip equipped a most formidable
armament, which the Spaniards, proud of their power and elated with the
vain hopes of victory, named the Invincible Armada. It consisted of one
hundred and thirty sail of ships, containing 57,808 tons, wherein were
engaged 8,350 seamen, 19.290 soldiers, and two thousand and eighty galley
slaves, besides gentlemen and volunteers in abundance; so that scarce
a family in Spain but had either a son, brother, or cousin in the fleet.
There were likewise on board 2,340 cannon, with powder, bullets, match,
muskets, pikes, spears, swords, knives, daggers, chains, and whips, to
torment and murder English protestants ; and with them came swarms
of capuchins, mendicants, and Jesuits. There lay in Flanders 50,000
old soldiers, with 288 vessels ready to transport them, under the duke
of Parma; all the king of Spain's best soldiers, even as far as America,
being drawn forth for this boasted crusade. The whole of the expedi-
tion cost the Spaniards twelve millions of crowns; added to which the
pope contributed a million of gold. But the mercy of God defended
England, discomfiting this mighty armada, and driving it back with
shame, loss, and confusion; so that of 134 ships which sailed out of
Lisbon, only thirty eight returned; the Spaniards losing in this voyage
eighty-one ships, 13,500 soldiers, and 2000 more taken prisoners in
England, Ireland, and the Low-Countries: the rest of the navy being
destroyed by the English and Dutch, the seas, rocks, sands, and tem-
pests, all seeming to conspire to defeat this insolent attempt.
Yet these people no sooner recovered breath, than they sent over new
commissioners and emissaries disguised in all shapes into England, with
new contrivances. Lopez and his confederates, Cullen, York, Williams,
Squire, Hesket, all entered into a conspiracy to kill the queen, being
encouraged by the Jesuits and the Spanish ministers of state. These
proving abortive, in 1599 the earl of Tyrone made a new rebellion in
Ireland, having the same pardons to offer as were given by the popes to
those who fight against the Turks. And in 1601, the king of Spain
sent a great fleet to the same country, to assist the rebels. But notwith-
standing all these designs, Elizabeth having outlived four kings and
eight popes, died in a good old age. She had, previously intimated her
desire that the king of Scotland should succeed her, in which the whole
nation seemed to concur. He mounted to the English throne with the
title of James 1st. He was the son of Henry Stuart, lord Darnley, and
Mary, queen of Scots, the only child of James V. of Scotland, son of
James IV. and Margaret his queen, who was the eldest daughter of
Henry VII. king of England. He arrived at the Charterhouse, in Lon-
don, May 7th, and was crowned at Westminster, July 25th, 1603.
Among subsequent efforts to overturn the reformed government, the
gunpowder conspiracy is the most signal. The chief persons concerned
in this diabolical plot were Robert Catesby, a gentleman of Northamp-
1000 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
tonshire ; Thomas Percy, the earl of Northumberland's cousin ; John
Grant, Ambrose Rockwood, John and Christopher Wright, Francis
Tresham, Guy Fawkes, Sir Everard Digby, Robert and Thomas Winter
Thomas Bates, and Robert Keyes. Some of these consulting together
at their first meeting how they might restore the popish religion in Eng-
land, Percy, one of the most zealous, proposed to kill the king, and
offered to perform it himself. To whom Catesby answered, that if the
king was taken off, there were still two young princes and princesses,
with the greatest part of the nobility and gentry, devoted to the pro-
testant religion ; and unless these were involved in the same fate with
the king, they should render their condition rather worse than better,
by attempting his majesty's life only. He proposed therefore the
blowing up the king, queen, and prince, with both the houses of lords
and commons, at the next assembly of the parliament, when the king
should come to the house, to make his speech, at the opening of the
sessions. This being approved by the rest as a most glorious undertaking,
it was resolved to put it into execution ; but some, scrupling the law-
fulness of committing so terrible a slaughter on a religious account, they
agreed, before they proceeded in it, to ask the opinion of their confes-
sors ; whereupon Henry Garnet, the superior, with Oswald Tesmond
and John Gerard, two other priests of the Jesuits' order, were consulted;
who did not only declare the enterprise lawful, but applauded the design
as just, and even pious ; since it was to be executed upon excommuni-
cated heretics.
An oath of secrecy was then taken by the conspirators; and mass
being celebrated by Gerard, they also took the sacrament to be true to
each other, and promote the plot with all their powers; after which,
Percy took a house adjoining to the house of lords, from whence they
proposed to dig a mine under it, which would contain a sufficient quan-
tity of gunpowder to blow up the whole building; and they began to
work on their mine about Christmas 1604. But the parliament being
prorogued, first to February, then to October, and again to the 5th of
November, 1605, they had time enough, or rather too much, to effect
their design, though they were obliged to dig through the foundation
of a very thick wall. When the conspirators had almost conquered this
difficulty, they were surprised to hear a noise and the talking of people
near the place where they were at work, and began to conclude they
were discovered ; but sending out Guy Faukes for intelligence, he
brought them word, that the voices they had heard were in an adjoining
cellar, where coals were 'exposed to sale; and that it was exactly under
the house of lords, and now offered to be let. Whereupon Percy went
immediately and hired it, putting thirty-six barrels of gunpowder into
it, which he had imported from Holland, and covered them with coals
and fagots.
Having thus provided for their grand design, it was considered that
though the king and prince might be taken off by this means, yet the
duke of York and princess Elizabeth would be out of their power; and
consequently the success of their enterprize would still be very doubtful:
but Percy being one of the band of pensioners, and well acquainted with
flie palace, undertook to secure the duke of York; and it was looked
LETTER TO LORD MONTEAGLE. 100 1
upon as no difficult matter to surprise the princess, who resided at the
lord Harrington's, in Warwickshire, under a pretence of a hunting
match. It was next considered, what money and horses they could raise
towards effecting their purpose: whereupon Dig-by promised fifteen
hundred pounds, Tresham two hundred, Percy the rents of Northumber-
land, which he was empowered to receive, and computed they would
amount to 4000Z. He also engaged to provide ten horses from the same
quarter; and the rest of the conspirators promised to raise what money
and troops they could, that they might be able to make a stand, and
encourage their friends to take arms in defence of their religion, when
the great blow was given. It was debated also, whether they should
require the assistance of any princes of their communion ; but it was
thought necessary to defer this till after the act was committed, lest
the piot should be discovered by being communicated to too many.
It was resolved to proclaim the princess Elizabeth queen, when they
had assembled their troops, a proclamation being drawn up with this
view, in which they made no mention of the intended alteration of reli-
gion; this being agreed to be deferred till their forces should be joined
by some of the catholic powers. In the mean time, they resolved to
charge the Puritans with the destruction that was intended : and it is
supposed they designed to assassinate the duke of York, by their pro-
mising to proclaim the princess Elizabeth.
The conspirators having thus formed their scheme, and proceeded so
far in the execution of it, there remained little more for them to do, than
to set fire to the train they had laid for blowing up the king, the queen
the prince, the nobility, and the representatives of a great and flour-
ishing people. When, on a sudden, an unaccountable fit of tenderness
seized one of the party, who, by his endeavouring to rescue a friend, lord
Monteagle, from this unparalleled destruction, discovered the design.
The following is a copy of the letter which was sent about ten days be-
fore the meeting of parliament.
''My lord.
Out of the love I bear to some of your friends, I have regard to your
preservation ; therefore would advise you, as you tender your life, to
invent some excuse to put off your attendance at this parliament; for
God and man have concurred to punish the wickedness of these times.
Think not slightly of this advice, but retire yourself into the country,
where you may expect the event in safety ; for though there be no ap-
pearance of any stir, yet, I say, they shall receive a terrible blow in this
parliament, and shall not see who they are that hurt them. This coun-
sel is not to be contemned, because it may do you good, and can do
you no harm, for the danger is past, as soon as you have burnt the letter:
and I hope God will give you the grace to make good use of it. To
whose holy protection I commit you."
His lordship carried the letter, the same evening he received it, to
secretary Cecil ; who communicated it to some other members of the
council; but they did not think it of that consequence, to make any
inquiries about the matter, till the king should return from Royston,
where he was gone to hunt : he did not return till the last day of October.
1002 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
The next day this letter was shewn to his majesty; who, upon perusing
it, said, he did not think it was to be contemned : to which Cecil an-
swered, he was of opinion, that it was written either by a fool or a
madman, by that expression in it — " The danger is past, as soon as you
have burnt the letter:" for, he observed, the warning given by it could
be of no use, if the burning the letter would remove the danger ; but
the king interpreted it, That the danger would be over in as little time
as he could burn the letter ; having great regard to that passage,
" They should receive a terrible blow this parliament," and yet, "should
not see who hurt them." Which sudden blow, he apprehended, would
be the effect of gunpowder; and therefore ordered all the cellars, and
all other places near the parliament house, to be searched. The earl of
Suffolk, who was then lord-chamberlain, and whose proper place it was
to see all places prepared for the king's reception, put off the search till
the day before the meeting of parliament ; and then, taking the lord
Monteagle with him, viewed all the rooms about the parliament-house,
and particularly the cellar under the house of lords ; which he found
full of wood and coals : and having inquired who it belonged to, was
answered, to lord Percy ; who being a servant of his majesty, and one
who made some figure at court, the earl returned, and acquainted the
king in what state he found things, without searching further. But the
king's suspicion being rather increased than diminished by this report,
he ordered all the wood and coals in the cellar to be removed forthwith;
and Sir Thomas Knevet, a justice of peace for Westminster, and gentle-
man of the privy-chamber, was ordered to see it done, though it was
then late at night. This gentleman was so fortunate, as to discover the
six and thirty barrels of powder hidden under the coals! He also found
a man standing near the place, booted and spurred, with his cloak on,
whom he searched, and found upon him a dark lanthorn and three
matches. This person proved to be Guy Faukes, one of the conspira-
tors, who passed for Percy's man ; who seeing their hopeful plot dis-
covered, swore, when he was apprehended, that had he been found with-
in the cellar, he would have blown up himself, and them likewise. This
discovery being made, the secretary and the lord-chamberlain immedi-
ately acquainted the king therewith, who was then in bed; and the pri-
soner, being examined before the council, was so far from being in any
consternation, that he acknowledged the villanous design, took it all
upon himself, said his religion and conscience prompted him to it, and
would name none of his accomplices; only observing that the devil had
betrayed a very good design, and that there was no crime in destroying
a heretical king. However, being carried to the Tower the next day
and threatened with the rack, he confessed the conspiracy, and named
his accomplices; who having some intimation of the discovery, fled into
Warwickshire; where some of their friends were preparing to rise in arms
and surprise the princess Elizabeth, according to the scheme they had
laid. They had actually broken open a stable belonging to one Benock,
and seized seven or eight managed horses for their purpose: but under-
standing from their friends who fled from London, that the enterprise
was entirely defeated, they assembled about a hundred horse, and
endeavoured to persuade their brethren, the papists, to take arms in the
HORRIBLE MASSACRES IN IRELAND. 1003
defence of their religion : but nobody joining them they fled, and were
pursued by Sir Foulk Greville, deputy-lieutenant of Warwickshire, and
the sheriff of that and the neighbouring counties, till the rebels took
shelter in a house, at a place called Holbach, in Staffordshire. Here
they endeavoured to defend themselves, when a spark of fire falling into
a parcel of gunpowder, which they were drying by the fire, blew up
part of the house ; whereupon they endeavoured to sally out at the gate,
and make their way with their swords in their hands, but were repulsed.
Catesby, Percy, and Winter, setting themselves back to back, resolved
to die fighting: the two first had their desire, but Winter was wounded
and taken; Digby, Rockwood, Grant, and Boter surrendered. Mr.
Tresham, Robert Winter, and Littleton, were apprehended at their lodg-
ings in London, and all of them committed to the Tower.
Thomas Winter, upon his examination, confessed the whole conspiracy
and acknowledged their crimes were too great to be forgiven ; while
Digby, on the other hand, said they were provoked to this desperate
attempt through the severe usage they met with from the government,
after hopes had been given them of a toleration ; and Tresham, in his
examination, accused Garnet the Jesuit as privy to the conspiracy, though
he afterwards retracted it, and pretended he had not seen Garnet for
sixteen years. Such was the terror in which the clergy held the laity
of the catholic church in that day.
The protestants in Ireland were happily preserved from persecution in
the reign of the cruel queen Mary, by the following singular providence.
Mary, resolving to persecute them^ appointed Dr. Cole, a bloody agent
of Bonner, one of the commissioners for this purpose. He arrived at
Chester with his commission, and the mayor of that city being a papist
waited upon him ; when the doctor taking out of his cloak-bag a leathern
box, said — " Here is a commission that shall lash the heretics of Ireland."
The good woman of the house, being a protestant, and having a brother
in Dublin, named John Edmonds, was greatly troubled at what she heard.
But watching her opportunity, whilst the mayor was taking his leave,
and the doctor complimenting him down stairs, she opened the box, took
out the commission, and instead thereof laid a sheet of paper, with a
pack of cards, and the knave of clubs at top. The doctor not suspect-
ing any thing, put up the box, and arrived with it in Dublin in September
1558. Then waiting upon the lord Fitz-Walters, at that time viceroy,
he presented the box to him, w T hich being opened, nothing was found
therein but a pack of cards. This startling all the persons present, the
lord-deputy said — 'We must procure another commission; and in the
mean time let us shuffle the cards/ Dr. Cole was returning to England
to get another commission ; but waiting for a wind, news came that
queen Mary was dead, very happily for the protestants, who by this
means escaped a most cruel persecution. The above relation is con-
firmed by historians of the greatest credit, who add, that queen Elizabeth
settled a pension of forty pounds per annum upon Elizabeth Edmonds,
for having thus saved the lives of her protestant subjects.
Another generation had, however, scarcely passed away before the
protestants of Ireland were most cruelly visited with persecution.
1004 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
So greatly had the Irish ecclesiastics increased under Charles I. by
titular Romish archbishops, bishops, deans, &c. that in the year 1629,
it was deemed necessary to forbid the public exercise of the popish rites
and ceremonies. But notwithstanding this prohibition, soon after, the
Romish clergy erected a new popish university in Dublin. They also
proceeded to build monasteries and nunneries in various parts of the
kingdom; in which the priests, and the chiefs of the Irish, held frequent
meetings; and, from thence, used to pass, to and fro, to France, Spain,
Flanders, Loraine. and Rome; where the plot of 1641, was maturing
by the family of the O'Neil's and their followers. A short time before
the conspiracy broke out, the papists of Ireland had presented a remon-
strance to the lords-justices of that kingdom, demanding the free exer-
cise of their religion, and a repeal of all laws to the contrary. To this
both houses of parliament in England solemnly answered, that they
would not allow any toleration to the popish religion in that kingdom.
Irritated by this, the papists hastened to put in execution the con-
certed plot, for the destruction of the protestants. The great design
was, that a general insurrection should take place at the same time
throughout the kingdom; and that all the protestants without exception
should be murdered. The day fixed for this horrid massacre was
the 23rd of October, 1641, the feast of Ignatius Loyala, founder of the
Jesuits; and the chief conspirators, in the principal parts of the king-
dom, made the necessary preparations for the intended conflict. In
order that this detested scheme might the more infallibly succeed, the
most distinguished artifices were practised by the papists; whose beha-
viour, in their visits to the protestants, at this time, was with more seem-
ing kindness than they had hitherto shewn, which was done more com-
pletely to effect their inhuman and treacherous designs.
The carrying the conspiracy into effect was delayed till the approach
of winter, that the sending of troops from England might be attended
with greater difficulty. Cardinal Richelieu, the French minister, had
promised the conspirators a considerable supply of men and money;
and many Irish officers had given the strongest assurances, that they
would heartily concur with their catholic brethren, as soon as the in-
surrection appeared. The day preceding that which was appointed for
this horrid transaction arrived, when, happily for the metropolis of the
kingdom, the conspiracy was discovered by one Owen O'Connelly, an
Irishman. k
The lords-justices had but just time to put themselves, and the city,
in a proper posture of defence. The lord M'Guire, who was the prin-
cipal leader here, with his accomplices, were seized the same evening in
the city: and in their lodgings were found swords, hatchets, pole-axes,
hammers, and such other instruments of death as had been prepared for
the destruction and extirpation of the protestants in that part of the
kingdom. The metropolis was thus happily preserved ; but the bloody
part of the intended tragedy was past prevention. The conspirators
were in arms all over the kingdom early in the morning of the day ap-
pointed, and every protestant who fell in their way was immediately
k For this signal piece of service, the English parliament voted O'Connelly the sum of
500/. and a pension during life of 200/.
HORRIBLE MASSACRES IN IRELAND. 1005
murdered. On the 22nd of October, Sir Phclim O'Neil, upon pretence
of paying a visit to lord Charlemont, first perfidiously seized him in his
castle, killed his servants before him, and, in a few days murdered his
lordship, with some others, in cold blood, as clearly appeared on the
trial of lord M'Guire, who was executed for high treason, in London,
in 1664.
The scene of blood having been begun, it flowed all over the country.
No age, no sex, no condition was spared. The wife weeping for her
butchered husband, and embracing her helpless children, was pierced
with them, and perished by the same stroke. The old, the young, the
vigorous, and the infirm, underwent the same fate, and were blended
in one common ruin. In vain did flight save from the first assault :
destruction was every where let loose, and met the hunted victims at every
turn. In vain was recourse had to relations, to companions, to friends:
all connections were dissolved, and death was dealt by that hand, from
which protection was implored and expected. Without provocation,
without opposition, the astonished English, living in profound peace,
and, as they thought, in full security, were massacred by their nearest
neighbours, with whom they had long maintained a continued inter-
course of kindness and good offices. Nay, even death was the slightest
punishment inflicted by these monsters in human form: all the tortures
which wanton cruelty could invent, all the lingering pains of body, the
anguish of mind, the agonies of despair, could not satiate revenge excited
without injury, and cruelly derived from no cause whatever. Depraved
nature, even perverted religion, though encouraged by the utmost licence
cannot reach to a greater pitch of ferocity than appeared in these mer-
ciless barbarians. Even the weaker sex, naturally tender to their own
sufferings, and compassionate to those of others, here emulated their
robust companions in the practice of every cruelty. The very children
taught by example, and encouraged by the exhortation of their parents,
dealt their feeble blows on the dead carcases of defenceless children of
the English.
Neither was the avarice of the Irish sufficient to produce the least re-
straint on their cruelty. Such was their frenzy, that the cattle they had
seized, and by rapine had made their own, were, because they bore the
name of English, wantonly slaughtered, or, when covered with wounds,
turned loose into the woods, there to perish by slow and lingering tor-
ments. All the commodious habitations of the planters were laid in
ashes, or levelled with the ground. And where the wretched owners had
shut themselves up in the houses, and were preparing for defence, they
perished in the flames, together with their wives and children. The
bigoted and merciless papists had no sooner begun to imbrue their
hands in blood, than they repeated the horrid tragedy day after day;
and the protestants in all parts of the kingdom fell victims to their fury
by deaths of the most unheard-of nature.
The vain and ignorant Irish were more strongly instigated to execute
the infernal business by the Jesuits, priests, and friars, who, when the
day for the execution of the plot was agreed on, recommended, in their
prayers, diligence in the great design, which they said would greatly
tend to the prosperity of the kingdom, and to the advancement of the
1006 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
catholic cause. They every where declared to the common people, that
the protestants were heretics, and ought not to be suffered to live any
longer among them ; adding, that it was no more sin to kill an English-
man than to kill a dog ; and that the relieving or protecting them was
a crime of the most unpardonable nature. Such was the general des-
cription of this unparalleled massacre ; but we must now proceed to
particulars.
When the papists besieged the town and castle of Longford, and the
inhabitants of the latter, who were protestants, surrendered on condi-
tion of being allowed quarter, the besiegers, the instant the towns-
people appeared, attacked them in the most unmerciful manner, their
priest, as a signal for the rest to fall on, first ripping open the body of
the English protestant minister ; after which his followers murdered all
the rest, some of whom they hung, others were stabbed or shot, and
great numbers knocked on the head with axes provided for the purpose.
The garrison at Sligo was thus treated by O'Connor Slygah ; who
upon the protestants quitting their holds promised them quarter, and to
convey them safe over the Carlow mountains, to Roscommon. But he
first imprisoned them in a most loathsome gaol, allowing them only
grains for their food. Afterwards, when some papists were merry over
their cups, who were come to congratulate their wicked brethren for
their victory over these unhappy creatures, those protestants who sur-
vived were brought forth by the White-friars, and were either killed, or
precipitated over the bridge into a swift water, where they were soon
destroyed. It is added, that this wicked company of White-friars went
some time after, in solemn procession, with holy water in their hands,
to sprinkle the river; on pretence of cleansing and purifying it from the
stains and pollution of the blood and dead bodies of the heretics, as
they called the unfortunate protestants who were inhumanly slaughtered
at this very time.
At Kilmore, Dr. Bedell, bishop of that see, had charitably settled and
supported a great number of distressed protestants, who had fled from
their habitations to escape the diabolical cruelties committed by the
papists. But they did not long enjoy the consolation of living toge-
ther; the good prelate was forcibly dragged from his episcopal residence,
which was immediately occupied by Dr. Swiney, the popish titular
bishop of Kilmore, who said mass in the church the Sunday following,
and then seized on all the goods and effects belonging to the persecuted
bishop. Immediately after this, the papists forced Dr. Bedell, his two
sons, and the rest of his family, with some of the chief of the protes-
tants whom he had protected into a ruinous castle, called Lochwater,
situated in a lake near the sea. Here he remained with his companions
some weeks, all of them daily expecting to be put to death. The greatest
part of them were stripped naked, by which means, as the season was
cold and the building in which they were confined open at the top, they
suffered the most severe hardships.
In this situation they continued till the 7th of January, when they
were all released. The bishop was courteously received into the house
of Dennis O'Sheridan, one of his clergy, whom he had made a convert
to the church of England. He was at that time in the seventy-first
HORRIBLE MASSACRES IN IRELAND. 1007
year of his age, and being afflicted with a violent ague caught in his
late cold and desolate habitation on the lake, it soon threw him into a
fever of the most dangerous nature. Finding his dissolution at hand,
he received it with joy, like one of the primitive martyrs just hastening
to his crown of glory. After having addressed his little flock, and ex-
horted them to patience in the most pathetic manner, as they saw their
own last day approaching ; after having solemly blessed his people, his
family and his children, he finished the course of his ministry and life
together, on the 7th of February, 1642. Some of the better disposed
of his foes, who had venerated him when living, attended his funeral,
and when his remains were deposited in the grave, they discharged a
volley of shot, crying out, Requiescat in pace ultimus Anglorum: that
is — " May the last of the English rest in peace." Adding, that as he
was one of the best, so he should be the last English bishop found
among them. 1
In the barony of Trelawney, the papists, at the instigation of their
friars, compelled above forty English protestants, some of whom were
women and children, to the hard fate either of falling by the sword or
of drowning in the sea. These choosing the latter, were accordingly
forced, by the naked weapons of their inexorable persecutors, into the
deep, where, with their children in their arms, they first waded up to
their chins, and afterwards sunk down and perished together. In the
castle of Lisgool upwards of 150 men, women, and children, were all
burnt together; and at the castle of Moneah not less than 100 were
all put to the sword. Great numbers were also murdered at the castle
of Tullah, which was delivered up to M'Guire on condition of having
fair quarter ; but no sooner had that base villain got possession of the
place, than he ordered his followers to murder the people, which was
immediately done with the greatest cruelty.
Several others were put to death in the most horrid manner, such
as could have been invented only by dsemons in the form of men. Some
were laid with the centre of their backs on the axle-tree of a carriage,
with their legs resting on the ground on one side, and their arms and
head on the other. In this position one of the savages scourged the
wretched object on the thighs and legs; while another set on furious
dogs, who tore to pieces the arms and upper parts of the body ; and in
this dreadful manner were they deprived of their existence. Several
were fastened to horses' tails, and the beasts being set on full gallop by
their riders, the wretched victims were dragged along till they expired.
Many were hung on lofty gibbets, and a fire being kindled under them,
they finished their lives, partly by hanging, and partly by burning. Nor
did the more tender sex escape the fullest share of cruelty that could
be projected by their merciless and furious persecutors. Many women
of all ages, were put to deaths of the most cruel nature. Some in par-
1 Very extensive was his learning, and he would have given the world a greater proof of
it, had he printed half that he wrote. Scarce any of his writings were saved ; the papists
having destroyed most of his papers, and his library. He had gathered a vast heap of
critical expositions of scripture, all which, with a great trunk full of his manuscripts, fell
into the hands of the Irish. Happily his great Hebrew MS. was preserved, and is now in
the library of Emanuel College, Oxford.
1008 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
ticular were fastened with their backs to strong posts, and being stripped
to the waists, the inhuman monsters cut off their right breasts with shears,
which of course put them to the most excruciating torments ; and in
this position they were left, till, from the loss of blood, they expired.
Such was the savage ferocity of these barbarians, that even unborn
infants were dragged from the womb to become victims to their rage.
Many unhappy mothers were hung naked on the branches of trees, and
their bodies being cut open, the innocent offsprings were taken from
them, and thrown to dogs and swine. And to increase the horrid scene,
they would oblige the husband to be a spectator before he suffered him-
self. There were upwards of a hundred Scottish protestants at the town
of Lissenskeath to whom were shewed no more mercy than to the
English.
M'Guire, going to the castle of that town, desired to speak with the
governor, when being admitted, he immediately burnt the records of
the county, which were kept there. He then demanded a thousand
pounds of the governor, which having received, he immediately com-
pelled him to hear mass, and to swear that he would continue so to do.
And to complete his horrid barbarities, he ordered the wife and children
of the governor to be hung up before his face; besides massacreing at
least one hundred of the inhabitants. There were more than a thousand
men, women, and children, driven, in different companies, to Porten-
down bridge, which was broken in the middle, and they were compelled
to throw themselves into the water: such as attempted to reach the
shore were knocked on the head. In the same part of the country, at
least four thousand persons were drowned in different places. The
inhuman papists, after first stripping them, drove them like beasts to the
spot fixed on for their destruction; and if any, through fatigue or in-
firmities, were slack in their pace, they pricked them with their swords
and pikes ; and to strike terror on the multitude they murdered some
by the way. Many of these poor wretches, when thrown into the water
endeavoured to save themselves by swimming to the shore : but their
persecutors prevented their endeavours taking effect, by shooting them
in the water.
At one place one hundred and forty English, after being driven for
many miles in the most severe weather, were all murdered on the same
spot, some being hanged, others burnt, some shot, and many of them
buried alive ; and so cruel were their tormentors, that they would not
suffer them to pray before they robbed them of their existence. They
took other companies under pretence of safe-conduct, who, from that
consideration, proceeded cheerfully on their journey; but when the
treacherous papists had got them to a convenient spot, they butchered
them all in the most cruel manner.
About one hundred and fifteen men, women, and children, were con-
ducted, by order of Sir Phelim O'Neil, to Portendown bridge, where
they were all forced into the river, and drowned. One woman, named
Campbel, finding no probability of escaping, suddenly clasped one of
the chief of the papists in her arms, and held him so fast, that they
were both drowned together. Forty-eight families were massacred in
Killoman, among whom twenty-two were burnt together in one house.
HORRIBLE MASSACRES IN IRELAND. 1009
The rest were either hanged, shot, or drowned. The people of Kilmore
comprised about two hundred families, and all fell victims to their rage.
Some of them sat in the stocks till they confessed where their money
was; after which they put them to death. The whole country was one
common scene of butchery, and many thousands perished in a short
time, by sword, famine, fire, water, and all other the most cruel deaths
that rage and malice could invent.
These bloody villains shewed so much favour to some as to dispatch
them immediately ; but they would by no means suffer them to pray.
Others they imprisoned in filthy dungeons, putting heavy bolts on their
legs, and keeping them there till they were starved to death. They thrust
all the protestants at Cashel into a loathsome dungeon, where they kept
them together for several weeks in the greatest misery. At length they
were released, when some of them were barbarously mangled, and left
on the highways to perish at leisure ; others were hanged, and some were
buried in the ground upright, with their heads above the earth; the
papists, to increase their misery, treating them with derision during their
sufferings.
Nine hundred and fifty-four protestants in the county of Antrim were
murdered in one morning ; and afterwards about twelve hundred more
in that county. Twenty-four protestants were forced into a house, at a
town called Lisnegary, which was fired, and they were all burned together,
their outcries, in derision, being counterfeited by their foes. Among other
acts of cruelty, they took two children belonging to an English woman,
and dashed out their brains before her face ; after which they threw the
mother into a river, and she was drowned. They served many other
children in the like manner, to the great affliction of their parents, and
the disgrace of human nature.
All the protestants in Kilkenny, without exception, were put to death,
and some of them in so cruel a manner, as perhaps, was never before
thought of. They beat an English female protestant with such barba-
rity, that she had scarce a whole bone left; after which they threw her
into a ditch; but not satisfied with this, they took her child, a girl about
six years of age, and after stabbing it, threw it to its mother, there to
languish till it perished. One man they forced to go to mass, after
which they ripped open his body, and in that manner left him. They
sawed another asunder, cut the throat of his wife, and after having
dashed out the brains of their infant, threw it to the swine, who greedily
devoured it.
Having committed these, and many other horrid cruelties, they took
the heads of seven protestants, and among them that of a pious minister,
all which they fixed up at the market cross. They put a gag into the
minister's mouth, then slit his cheeks to his ears, and laying a leaf of
a bible before it, bid him preach, for his mouth was wide enough. They
did several other things by way of derision, and expressed the greatest
satisfaction at having thus murdered, and exposed the unhappy protes-
tants. It is in fact impossible to imagine the pleasure these monsters
took in exercising their cruelty ; and to increase the misery of those who
fell into their hands, when they butchered them they would say — "Your
soul is thus sent to the devil." One of these miscreants would come
3 T
1010 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
into a house with his hands imbrued in blood, and boast that it was
English blood, and that his sword had pierced the white skins of the
protestants even to the hilt !
As soon as any one of them had killed a protestant, others would
come and receive a gratification in cutting and mangling the body ;
after which they left it exposed to be devoured by dogs ; and when they
had slain a number of them they would boast, that the devil was be-
holden to them for sending so many souls to hell ! In the church of
Powerscourt they burnt the pulpit, pews, chests, and bibles belonging
to it. They took other bibles, and after wetting them with dirty water,
dashed them in the faces of the protestants, saying — " We know you
love a good lesson ; here is an excellent one for you ; come to-morrow,
and you shall have as good a sermon as this." Many of the protestants
they dragged by the hair of their heads into the church, where they
stripped and whipped them in the most cruel manner, telling them, at
the same time, that if they came to-morrow, they should hear the like
sermon.
There were put to death several ministers in Munster, in the most
shocking manner. One in particular, they stripped stark naked, and
driving him before them, pricked him with swords and darts till he fell
down and expired. In some places they plucked out the eyes, and cut
off the hands of the protestants, and in that manner turned them into
the fields, to wander out their miserable existence Many young men
they also obliged to force their aged parents to a river, where they were
drowned. One young man was compelled in one place to kill his father,
and then was himself immediately hanged. In another they forced a
woman to kill her husband, then obliged the son to kill her, and after-
wards shot him through the head.
At a place called Glaslow, a popish priest, with some others, prevailed
on forty protestants to be reconciled to the church of Rome. They had
no sooner done this, than they told them they were in a good faith, and
that they would prevent their falling from it, and turning heretics, by
sending them out of the world, which they did by immediately putting
them to death. Upwards of thirty protestants, men, women, and chil-
dren, in the county of Tipperary, fell into the hands of the papists,
who after stripping them naked, murdered them with stones, pole-axes,
swords, and other instruments. In the county of Mayo about sixty
protestants, fifteen of whom were ministers, were, upon covenant, to be
safely conducted to Galway, by one Edmund Burke and his soldiers;
but that inhuman monster by the way drew his sword, as an intimation
of his design to the rest, who immediately followed his example, and
murdered the whole.
Great numbers in Queen's County were put to the most shocking
deaths. Fifty or sixty were placed together in one house, which being
set on fire, they all perished in the flames. Several were stripped naked,
and being fastened to horses by ropes placed round their middles, were
dragged through bogs till they expired in the greatest torture. Several
were suspended by the feet to tenter-hooks driven into poles; and left
till they perished in that wretched posture. Some were fastened to the
UOHKIHLE MASSAC ItES IN IRELAND. 101 1
trunk of a tree, vvitli a branch at top. Over this branch hung one arm,
which principally supported the weight of the body; and one of the
legs was turned up, and fastened to the trunk, while the other hung
straight. In this dreadful posture did they remain, as long as life would
permit, pleasing spectacles to their blood-thirsty persecutors.
Seventeen men were buried alive at Clownes; and an Englishman, his
wife, five children, and a servant maid, were all hung together, and
their bodies afterwards thrown into a ditch. Many were hung by the
arms to branches of trees, with a weight to their feet; and others by the
middle, in which postures they left them till they expired. Others were
fastened to windmills, and before they were half dead, the barbarians
cut them in pieces with their swords. Some men, women, and children,
they cut and hacked in various parts of their bodies, and left them
wallowing in their blood to perish where they fell. One poor woman
they hung on a gibbet, with her child, an infant about a twelvemonth
old, the latter of whom was hung by the neck with the hair of its
mother's head, and in that manner finished its short but miserable
existence.
No less than three hundred protestants were drowned in one day in
the county of Tyrone; and many others were hanged, burned, and
otherwise put to death. The rector of Tyrone, Dr. Maxwell, lived at
this time near Armagh, and suffered greatly from these merciless savages.
This clergyman in his examination, taken upon oath before the king's
commissioners, declared, that the Irish papists owned to him, that at
several times they had destroyed, in one place, 12,000 protestants, whom
they inhumanly slaughtered atGlynwood, in their flight from the county
of Armagh. The river Bann being not fordable, and the bridge broken
down, the Irish forced thither, at different times, a great number of
unarmed and defenceless protestants, and with pikes and swords vio-
lently thrust above one thousand into the river, where they miserably
perished.
The cathedral of Armagh did not escape the fury of these barbarians,
it being maliciously set on fire by their leaders, and burnt to the ground.
And to extirpate, if possible, the very race of those unhappy protestants,
who lived in or near Armagh, the Irish first burnt all their houses, and
then gathered together many hundred of innocent people, young and
old, on pretence of allowing them a guard and safe-conduct to Colerain :
when they treacherously fell on them by the way, and inhumanly mur-
dered them all. Similar barbarities were practised on the wretched
protestants in almost all parts of the kingdom; and, when an estimate
was afterwards made of the number who were sacrificed to gratify the
diabolical souls of the papists, it amounted to one hundred and fifty
thousand !
Flushed with success and insolence, these desperate wretches soon
got possession of the castle of Newry, where the king's stores and am-
munition were lodged; and, with as little difficulty, made themselves
masters of Dundalk. They afterwards took the town of Ardea, where
they murdered all the protestants, and then proceeded to Drogheda.
The garrison of Drogheda was in no condition to sustain a siege, not-
1012 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
withstanding which, as often as the Irish renewed their attacks, they
were vigorously repulsed, by a very unequal number of the king's
forces, and a few faithful protestant citizens under sir Henry Tichborne,
the governor, assisted by the lord viscount Moore. The siege of Drog-
heda began on the 30th of November, 1641, and held till the 4th of
March, 1642, when sir Phelim O'Neil, and the Irish miscreants under
him, were forced to retreat. During this proceeding, ten thousand
troops were sent from Scotland to the relief of the remaining protestants
in Ireland, which being properly divided in the most capital parts of
the kingdom, happily overpowered the Irish savages; and the protes-
tants, for a time, lived happy and unmolested.
In the reign of king James II., however, they were again interrupted,
for in a parliament held at Dublin in the year 1689, great numbers of
the protestant nobility, clergy, and gentry of Ireland, were attainted of
high treason. The government of the kingdom was, at that time, in-
vested in the earl of Tyrconnel, a bigoted papist, and an inveterate
enemy to the protestants. By his order they were again persecuted in
various parts of the kingdom. The revenues of the city of Dublin were
seized, and most of the churches converted into prisons. And had it
not been for the resolution and uncommon bravery of the garrisons of
the city of Londonderry, and the town of Inniskillen, there had not one
place remained for refuge to the distressed protestants in the whole
kingdom; but all must have been given up to king James, and to the
furious popish party.
On the 18th of April, 1689, the remarkable siege of Londonderry was
opened by twenty thousand papists, the flower of the Irish army. The
city was not properly circumstanced to sustain a siege, the defenders,
consisting of a body of raw undisciplined protestants, who had fled thither
for shelter, and half a regiment of lord Mountjoy's disciplined soldiers,
with the principal part of the inhabitants, making in all only seven
thousand three hundred and sixty-one fighting men. At first the
besieged hoped that their stores of corn and other necessaries, would
be sufficient ; but, by the continuance of the siege, their wants increased ;
and these became at last so heavy, that for a considerable time before
the siege was raised, a pint of coarse barley, a small quantity of greens,
a few spoonfuls of starch, with a very moderate proportion of horse-
flesh, were reckoned a week's provision for a soldier. And they were,
at length, reduced to such extremities, that they ate whatever they could
procure.
While their miseries increased with the siege, many through mere
hunger and want pined and languished away, or fell dead in the streets.
And it is remarkable, that when their long expected succours arrived
from England, they were upon the point of being reduced to this alter-
native, either to preserve their existence by eating each other, or at-
tempting to fight their way through the Irish, which must have infallibly
produced their destruction. Most seasonably and happily these succours
were brought by the ship Mountjoy, of Derry, and the Phoenix, of
Colerain, at which time they had only nine lean horses left, with a pint
of meal to each man. By hunger, and the fatigues of war, their seven
THE BURNING OF LONDON. 1013
thousand three hundred and sixty-one fighting men were reduced to
four thousand three hundred, one-fourth part of whom were rendered
unfit for service.
As the calamities of the besieged were very great, so likewise were
the terrors and sufferings of their protestant friends and relations; all
of whom were forcibly driven from the country thirty miles round, and
inhumanly reduced to the sad necessity of continuing some days and
nights, without food or covering, before the walls of the town ; and
were thus exposed to the continual fire both of the Irish army from
without, and the shot of their friends from within. The succours from
England happily arriving, put an end to their afflictions; and the siege
was raised on the 31st of July, having been continued upwards of three
months before. The day before the siege of Londonderry was raised,
the Inniskilliners engaged a body of six thousand Irish Roman catholics,
at Newton Butler, or Crown-Castle, of whom near five thousand were
slain. This, with the defeat at Londonderry, dispirited the papists, and
they gave up all farther attempts to persecute the protestants. In the
following year, viz. 1690, the Irish took up arms in favour of James II.,
but were totally defeated by his successor king William III.
SECTION III.
THE FIRE OF LONDON— MURDER OF SIR EDMUND GODFREY— EXECUTION OF
THE EARL OF ESSEX, LORD RUSSEL, ALGERNON SIDNEY, AND OTHERS.
Much controversy has been expended about the cause of the great fire of
London. Without affecting to decide the question of its being caused in
whole or in part by the papists, such incidents only are here inserted as
tend to the affirmative. It broke out about two o'clock in the morning of
Sept. 2, 1666, at a baker's house in Pudding-lane, near Fish-street-hill.
It raged with extreme violence, by means of a strong north-east wind;
so that notwithstanding all means used for extinguishing it, it spread
far and near, and so continued for near four days, till it had burnt down
13,200 houses, which stood upon 337 acres of ground, within the walls,
and 63 acres three rods without, besides 89 parish churches, the spacious
cathedral of St. Paul, the Royal Exchange, the Guild-hall, the Custom-
house, many other halls, several principal city-gates, and other public
edifices. It was accompanied with the loss of vast quantities of rich
household stuff, and goods of all sorts, but especially books, of which
alone were lost near the value of 150,000 pounds; together with a
great quantity of tobacco, sugar, wines, and plums : so that the whole
loss was computed to be 9,900,000 pounds; and yet not above seven
or eight persons, through God's providence, were burnt in this vast
desolation.
On Sept. 18th, the parliament met, and the commons appointed a
committee to examine into the causes of the fire, and to take informa-
tions concerning it; and in a short time many and considerable in-
formations were brought in, that the papists were the contrivers and
managers of this dreadful fire. Among other things, it plainly appeared
1014 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
that several of the popish party™ were made acquainted with it before
it happened. Mr. Light, of RadclifT, deposed — That being in discourse
with Mr. Richard Langham (afterwards executed for high-treason) in
February before the fire, concerning religion, Langham took him by the
hand, and said to him — " You expect great things in sixty-six, and
think that Rome will be destroyed, but what if it be London!" A
Frenchman told one Elizabeth Stiles, in April before the fire — That
English maids would love Frenchmen better, when there was not a
house left standing between Temple-bar and London-bridge; to which
she replied — She hoped his eyes would never see that. He said, "This
will happen betwixt June and October."
Robert Hubert, a French papist of Normandy, is said to have begun
the fire of London, having been hired thereto by Stephen Piedelow,
likewise a papist; but Hubert observing the ruin and desolation that
followed, could not rest till he had freely discovered the whole matter;
affirming, that by Piedelow's directions he had put a fire-ball to the
end of a long pole, and lighting it with a piece of a match, put it into
the baker's window, and staid till the house was in a flame. A French
merchant went to Hubert in the White Lion prison in Southwark, and
told him, he did not believe him guilty of what he had confessed. He
replied — " Yes, sir, I am guilty of it, and have been brought to it by
the instigation of Mr. Piedelow; yet not out of any malice to the
English nation, but from a desire of reward which he promised me,
upon my return into France." Hubert was tried and executed for this
horrid fact, owning to the last his doing thereof by the instigation of
Piedelow.
The Jesuits and their partizans finding the burning of London had
not completed their work, since in a few years it rose more glorious than
before, resolved, by the assistance of France, to extinguish the protestant
cause, or what they were pleased to term, the northern heresy. This
mighty project was to be accomplished by the murder of King Charles
II. they finding him not to possess courage enough, though he shewed
his inclination, for perfecting this pious design. But Dr. Titus Cates,
who had been chaplain to the duke of Norfolk, being reconciled to
the church of Rome, hearing some whisperings among the popish priests,
of a vast contrivance in hand, and desiring to know the extent of it, he
by opening some letters sent by the Jesuits to their confederates in
Spain, became acquainted with the whole conspiracy, which upon his
return into England he discovered to the king, council, and parliament;
charging Edward Coleman, secretary to the duchess of York, of corres-
m Dr.Oate6, in his narrative, says, that in July, 1678, one Strange, a Jesuit, told him,
that they had got fourteen thousand pounds by the fire of London, in 1666, and spent
seven hundred fire-balls to effect their villany; and that when the fire-merchants were at
work, other papists, both men and women, were employed to plunder: that they had a
warehouse in Wild-street, where some of their stolen goods were laid ; and other goods
were concealed in Somerset-house, as hollands, cambrics, fine cloth, and considerable quan-
tities of plate, with a box of jewels. Dr. Oates asked Strange how the king came to escape 1
for it seems his death was designed then. He replied, " Indeed we were resolved to have
cut him off, but seeing him so industrious about quenching the fire, we could not find in
our hearts to do it." He further said, there were eighty-six employed in it ; and J. Grove,
afterwards executed for high treason, told Dr.Oates that he fired Southwark, and that the
Jesuits got two thousand pounds by that fire.
MURDER OF SIR EDMUND GODFREY. 1015
ponding with father de la Chaise, confessor to the French king, for reducing
these three kingdoms to popery and slavery ; of which Coleman's let-
ters that were seized, gave a full confirmation : and it appeared, that
several noblemen and gentlemen had commissions to command in the
army that was to be raised for effecting the business. It was afterwards
discovered, that many cities and great towns i« England were to be
fired, upon the murder of king Charles ; and a general massacre was
intended by an army of 50,000 men, mostly French and Irish, who,
they gave out, were enough, upon a surprise, to slay many thousand
protestants ; the militia of London and Westminster being at that time
undisciplined. This and a great deal more being discovered, both
houses of parliament were fully satisfied of the reality of the plot.
A singular and barbarous murder of a worthy gentleman named Sir
Edmond Godfrey, now occurred. Sir Edmond appearing zealous in the
discovery and prosecution of the popish plot, of which Dr. Oates had
given him information upon oath, so enraged the conspirators, that they
resolved to take him off, to deter all others from intermeddling therein.
Several popish priests were concerned in contriving his death, which
they at length accomplished. On October 12, 1678, Sir Edmond going,
about nine o'clock in the evening, by Somerset-house in the Strand,
Hill, servant to Dr. Godden, the Jesuit, stepped out of the gate hastily,
and intreated him for God's sake to come in, for that there were two
men quarrelling, and he was afraid there would be blood shed. To give
an appearance of truth to this, Kelly, an Irish priest, and Berry, porter
to Somerset-house, pretended to, quarrel on purpose. Sir Edmond at
first refused to go in, but his importunity prevailing, Hill entered the gate
first and after him Sir Edmond; Girald, another Irish priest, and Green,
cushion-man to queen Catherine, followed just behind. Prance, the
queen's goldsmith, watched at the gate, that nobody else should enter.
Sir Edmond going towards those that pretended to quarrel, Green threw
a cravat about his neck, and presently all four pulled it so that he could
make no noise ; they then violently beat him on the breast with their
knees, and Green, with all his force, wrung his neck almost round. For
the disposal of the body, they carried it into a little chamber of Hill's,
another of the murderers, who had been, or was Dr. Godden's man, where
it lay till Monday night, when they moved it into another room, and
thence back again till Wednesday, when they carried him out in a sedan
about twelve o'clock, and afterwards upon a horse, with Hill behind him,
to support him, till they got to Primrose-hill, near a public house, and
there threw him into a ditch, with his gloves and cane on a bank near
him, and his own sword run through him, on purpose to persuade the
world he had killed himself. Thus making choice of a place, where they
might think he would be some time concealed, and near where he had
been seen walking the same day, if the affidavits to this purpose in Sir
Roger's book may be relied upon.
All this Mr. Prance swore upon the trial of the murderers, with whom
he acknowledged to have had several consultations before, concerning
it; whose evidence was confirmed, not only by innumerable other cir-
cumstances, but Bedlow's confession, who was to have been present at
the action, had not remorse of conscience hindered him, having been
1016 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
engaged by the conspirators for a great reward : he was also afterwards
to have had a considerable part of it for carrying off the body. Green,
Hill, and Berry were tried and executed for this murder. At the same
time the following persons being found guilty, upon the fullest evidence
of the conspiracy against the king's person, were also executed, namely
Edward Coleman, William Ireland, Thomas Pickering, John Grove,
Thomas Whitebread, William Harcourt, John Fenwick, John Gavan,
Anthony Turner, Richard Langhorn, and Oliver Plunket. And about
the same time the lord Stafford, being impeached by the house of com-
mons, before his peers in Westminster-hall, was found guilty of high
treason, and beheaded on Tower-hill.
The Roman catholics, incensed that their plot had miscarried, and
that so many of their party had fallen in their cause, resolved, with the
assistance of several great persons at court, to be revenged of their ene-
mies. To bring this about, a pretended protestant plot was advanced,
which was said to have the iniquitous design of murdering the king and
the duke of York. To this, many of the best persons in England fell a
sacrifice.
Mr. Arnold, a vigorous opponent of priests and Jesuits, was at this
time assailed by their vigilance and malice, and would have suffered
violent death at their hands but for some providential interposition more
than once of friendly individuals to rescue him. The first assault was
in the Temple-lane, of which he was seasonably apprised, and for which
he was sufficiently prepared. The second and more serious attack was
soon after near the same spot, when he would have been murdered but
for the sudden appearance of a youth with a light, when the assassins
fled.
The next who suffered was Mr. Stephen College, who was first known
to the public at the trial of lord Stafford, being called up as collateral
witness for Mr. Dugdale. He was accused by Heins and Macnamarra,
and one or two of the apostate evidences of the popish plot. These
persons swore against him the most extravagant things, such as his
taking Whitehall, and dragging the king from it; in short, so incon-
gruous was their story, and so ill were their own characters, that the
London jury refused to find the bill, but returned it ignored. Notwith-
standing this, contrary to all justice, he was tried again at Oxford, and
condemned. His behaviour at his execution, was such as convinced
many of his greatest enemies of his innocence. He maintained, that
he was perfectly innocent of what he died for. "I did deny it," says
he, " before the council, and do deny it upon my death : I never was
in any kind of plot in my days; and if I had any such design as these
have sworn against me, I take God to witness, as I am a dying man,
and on the terms of my salvation, I know not one man upon the face of
the earth who would have stood by me. And lower, I knew not of any
part of what they swore against me, till I heard it sworn at the bar.
Again, all the arms we had were for our defence, in case the papists
should have made any attempt by way of massacre. 11 God is my wit-
n There was at this time a general, though perhaps, considering the disparity of numbers
between the Roman catholics and the protestants in England, a groundless apprehension of
this ; yet, such were the impressions upon the public mind, that many prepared themselves
with arms in case of danger.
DEATH OF THE EARL OF ESSEX. 1017
ness, this is all I know. It is thee, O God, I trust in. I disown all
dispensations, and will not go out of the world with a lie in my mouth.
From the sincerity of my heart, I declare again, that these are the very
sentiments of my soul, as God shall have mercy upon me."
The next sufferer in the protestant cause at this period was Arthur,
earl of Essex, a person whom it was the highest interest of the popish
faction to have out of the way. He had a large interest, a plentiful
estate, a great deal of courage, understood the world, and the princi-
ples and practices of the papists as well as any man, having also been
of several secret committees in the examination of the plot, for which
very reason there was as much necessity for his dying as for Sir Edmond
Godfrey being put to death. With respect to the immediate subject
of his death, the manner and circumstances thereof: it must first be
granted, that for the present only supposing he was murdered by the
hands of the papists, they would, certainly, make it their business to
render the manner of it as dark as the hell in which it was contrived.
Murders, especially of that magnitude, are not used to be committed in
the face of all the world, and at noon-day.
The earl of Essex was found with his throat cut in the Tower, on the
13th of July 1683, about eight or nine in the morning, at which time
the duke of York, the king's brother, and a bigoted papist, his known
and bitter enemy, was present. Every thing tended to excite a suspicion
of his having been murdered, although, as in the case of Sir E. Godfrey
it was intended that he should be thought to have killed himself. A
deputy coroner only was present at the inquest, instead of a legal one ;
and none of the relations were called to attend the inquest. The
body was removed from the place where it was first laid, stripped, the
clothes taken away, the body and rooms washed from the blood, and
the clothes denied the view of the jury! The principal witnesses exam-
ined were only Bomeny his man, and Russet his warder, who might be
so justly suspected of being privy to, if not actors in it. The jury has-
tened and hurried the verdict, when so great a man, a peer of the realm,
and such a peer was concerned, who was the king's prisoner. When
Sir Thomas Overbury had been before murdered in the Tower, and his
jury brought in an unrighteous verdict, the case was adjourned. When
even Sir Edmond Godfrey's jury were so much cried out against for their
ill-management, they adjourned their verdict, and staid considerably
before they brought it in. This was at a time when the lord Russel
was to be tried for a share in the plot, in which the earl was also accused
of being concerned.
One branch of this conspiracy, and which it was so much the papists'
interest to have the belief fixed on it, was a barbarous murder of the
duke and king; and nothing could so immediately and critically tend to
the earl of Essex's ruin. The news of his death was instantly, with much
diligence, conveyed from the Tower to the Sessions-house, Bench, Bar,
and Jury, and harped upon by the lord Howard and by others in after-
trials, as by more than a thousand witnesses, as a proof of the finger of
God. After this, the very centinel, who that day stood near the place,
was found dead in the Tower ditch, and captain Hawley barbarously
murdered at Rochester ; and ill methods used to prevent the truth of
1018 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
all from coming to light. Mr. Braddon was harassed, prosecuted, impri-
soned, and fined for stirring in it. On the fair and impartial consideration
of these things, every one of which is but notorious matter of fact, is it not
evident he was murdered by the popish party ?
From the manner, too, in which the deed was perpetrated, it appeared
impossible, that the earl could have done it himself. His throat was cut
from one jugular to the other, and lay the aspera arteria and windpipe,
to the vertebrae of the neck, both the jugulars being thoroughly divided;
so that from the great flux of blood which must necessarily have fol-
lowed on the dividing of one jugular, as well as all those strong muscles
which lie in the way, he must have fainted, and been rendered unable
to go round to the other. In this evident and conclusive manner does
guilt often attach itself with unerring certainty to its actual perpetra-
tors ; and leave the inference in the power of the simplest reasoner.
The next who fell under their cruelty, and to whose death that of the
earl of Essex was but a prologue, was lord Russel ; without all dispute
one of the most accomplished gentlemen that ever England bred ; and
whose pious life and virtue was much more treason against the court, by
affronting them with what was so much hated there, than anything else that
was sworn against him. That he must be viewed as a martyr to the
cruelty of a rising papal faction, there can be no doubt. Being marked
out, and among others destined for the slaughter, he was taken
and imprisoned in the Tower, and brought to his trial the 13th of
July, 1683, the very day on which Essex was murdered. He was
brought to the Old Bailey, and the same morning tried for high treason.
He earnestly desired that he might have respite, and not be tried that
day, since he had some witnesses who could not be in town till the night:
but they were so eager for his blood, that they would not stay so much
a till the afternoon, pretending it was against precedent, and they could
not do it without the attorney- general's consent. Just at that time,
news was brought into the house, that my lord Essex had that morning
prevented justice : and several of the jury afterwards confessed, that
they had never found Russel guilty, had it not been for that accident.
His indictment ran in these words — " He did conspire and compass our
lord the king, his supreme lord, not only of his kingly state, title, power
and government of this his kingdom of England, to deprive and throw
down ; but also our said sovereign lord the king to kill, and the ancient
government of this kingdom of England to change, alter, and wholly
subvert, and to cause a miserable slaughter among the subjects of our
said lord the king through his whole kingdom of England."
That all this was not intended as a matter of form only, is clear, by
the king's counsel opening the evidence. The first said, " He was
indicted for no less than conspiring the death of the king's majesty ; and
that in order to the same, he and others did meet and conspire together,
to bring our sovereign lord the king to death, to raise war and rebellion
against him, and to massacre his subjects; and in order to compass
these wicked designs, being assembled, did conspire to seize the king's
guards, and his majesty's person : and this is the charge against him."
The attorney-general fell a little lower, and told them, that the mean-
ing of all these tragical words, was a consultation about a rising, about
TRIAL OF LORD RUSSEL. 1019
seizing the guards, and receiving messages from the earl of Shaftsbury
concerning an insurrection. Yet the proof against him came not up
so high even as this, though all care was used for that purpose, and kind
questions put very frequently to lead and draw the evidence; only one
of them witnessing to any one point in particular.
Colonel Rumsey first swore, That he was sent with a letter from lord
Shaftsbury, who lay concealed atWapping, to meet lord Russel, Ferguson
and others, at Shepherd's, to know of them what resolution they were come
to concerning the rising designed at Taunton. That when he came
thither, the answer was, that Mr. Trencher had failed them, and no
more would be done at that time. That Mr. Ferguson spoke the most
part of that answer; but that lord Russel was present, and that he did
speak about the rising of Taunton, and consented to it. That the com-
pany was discoursing also of viewing the guards, in order to surprise
them, if the rising had gone on ; and that some undertook to view them;
and that the lord Russel was by, when this was undertaken. But this
being the main hinge of the business, and this witness not yet coming
up to the purpose, they thought it convenient to refresh his memory,
asking him, Whether he found my lord Russel averse, or agreeing to
it? He answered, Agreeing. But being afterwards on the trial asked,
Whether he could swear positively, that my lord Russel heard the
message, and gave any answer to it ? — all that he said was, That when
he came in, they were at the fire-side, and that they all came from the
fire-side to hearken to his words.
The chief that Shepherd witnessed, was, That my lord Russel and
others being at his house, there was a discourse of surprising the king's
guards; and Sir Thomas Armstrong having viewed them when he came
thither another time, said, that they were remiss, and the thing was
seizable, if there were strength to do it. And upon being questioned too,
as Rumsey before him, whether my lord Russel was there, he said he was
at the time they talked of seizing the guards.
Lord Howard was the next witness. After a long and florid harangue,
he at last made his evidence bear directly upon the point for which he
came thither, and swore, that after my lord Shaftsbury went away, their
party resolved still to carry on the design of the insurrection without
him; for the better management whereof they erected a little cabal
among themselves, which consisted of six persons, whereof my lord Rus-
sel and himself were two: that they met for that purpose at Mr. Hamp-
den's house, and there adjusted the place and manner of the intended
insurrection. That about ten days after, they had another meeting on
the same business at my lord Russel's, where they resolved to send some
persons to engage Argyle and the Scots in the design, and that he was
sure my lord Russel was there. Being asked whether he said anything,
he answered, That every one knew him to be a person of great judg-
ment, and not very lavish of discourse. Being again goaded on by
Jeffreys, with the question — did he consent? " We did," he said, " put
it to the vote, it went without contradiction, and I took it that all there
gave their consent accordingly."
Now as to colonel Rumsey the first witness; my lord Cavendish proved
on the trial, that lord Russel had a very ill opinion of him, and therefore
1020 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
it was not likely he would intrust him with a secret of such importance.
Then as the evidence, forced out of him, as it was, in both branches
of the design, seizing the guards, and the rising of Taunton, he says in
terms very general — That he was agreeing to one, and spoke about, and
consented to the other. For his agreeing to the seizing of the guards, he
might think, as the lord Howard did, that silence gives consent; for it
did not appear, nor did he swear, that my lord spoke one word about it.
But he himself, in his last speech, and which there is all the reason in
the world to believe exactly true, since, as he himself says in it, He al-
ways detested lying, though ever so much to his advantage; and hoped
none would be so unjust, or uncharitable, to think he would venture on
it in these his last words, for which he was soon going to give an account
to the great God, the searcher of hearts, and judge of all things. In this
last speech he protests, that at this time of which Rumsey swears, there
was no undertaking of securing and seizing the guards, nor none ap-
pointed to view or examine them, only some discourse there was of the
practicability of it; he heard it mentioned as a thing which might easily
be effected, but never consented to it as a thing fit to be done.
Shepherd's evidence amounted to nothing: he spoke not a syllable to
the purpose, or any thing which affected lord Russel. He could hardly
tell whether he was there when there was the discourse of seizing the
guards, but spake not a word of the prisoner's hearing, or in the least
wise consenting to the same. With regard to lord Howard, his evidence
was equally vague and undecisive. He said, that when they had in-
quired how matters stood in the country, and that the duke of Monmouth
had found Trenchard and the west country failed them, the design was
put off again, and this about the 17th or 18th of October. Now this
same action Rumsey spoke of, but took a larger scope as to the time,
the end of October, or the beginning of November, far enough from the
17th or 18th of the month before.
Rumsey said, on this disappointment of the Taunton men and
Trenchard, Shaftsbury resolved to be gone. Lord Howard, that, he was
so far from it, that he and his party resolved to it without the lords, and
had set one time and the other, and at last the 17th of November, which
also not taking effect, then Shaftsbury went off. As to his evidence,
which was closer; the story of the council of six, besides the former
improbability, that he, among all others, should be chosen one of them;
it is remarkable, that in their former greater consultations at Shepherd's,
which he and Rumsey mentioned, the lord Howard was never present,
nor did he so much as touch on it in his evidence; though here, if any
where, the grand affair of seizing the guards, and the answer to Shafts-
bury about Taunton was concerted. All that appears of truth in the
matter, seems to be what lord Russel acknowledged, that those persons
named, met very often; that there was no formed design, but. only
loose talk about those concerns. That there was no debate of any such
thing as was sworn, nor putting anything in a method ; but my lord
Howard being a man of voluble tongue, they were all delighted to hear
his oratory.
It appears then from his own acknowledgement, that Howard, Arm-
strong, and such others, had sometimes discoursed of ill designs and
MARTYRDOM OF LORD RUSSEL. 1021
matters in is company: and as he said in his speech, "What the heats,
wickedness, passions, and vanities of other men had occasioned, he ought
not to be answerable for, nor could he repress them. Nay more, he did
sufficiently disapprove those things which he heard discoursed of with
more heat than judgment. But for himself, he declared solemnly, that
he was never in any design against the king's life, or any man's what-
ever; nor ever in any contrivance of altering the government/' It would
after all this, be almost superfluous to go any further, or insert the evi-
dence given by Dr. Tillotson, Burnet, Cox, and others, not only of his
virtuous and honourable behaviour, but especially of his judgment about
popular insurrections, that he was absolutely against them, that it was
folly and madness till things came to be regulated in a parliamentary
way, and thought it would ruin the best cause in the world to take any
such ways towards its preservation.
But all this and more would not do, die he must, the duke ordered it,
the witnesses swore it, the judges directed it, the jury found it; and
when the sentence came to be passed, the judge asked, as is usual,
What he had to say why it should not be pronounced? He answered,
that whereas he had been charged in the indictment with conspiring
the death of the king, which he had not taken notice of before, he
appealed to the judge and court, whether he were guilty within the
statute on which he was tried, the witnesses having sworn an intention
of levying war, but not of killing the king, of which there was no proof
by any one witness. The recorder told him, that was an exception
proper to be made before the verdict. Whether the evidence did amount
to prove the charge, was to be observed by the jury; for if the evidence
came short of the indictment, they could not find it to be a true charge;
but when once they had found it, their verdict did pass for truth, and
the court was bound by it, as well as his lordship, and they were to go
according to what the jury had found, not their evidence. Now it should
be asked, what was the reason of the prisoner being asked that question,
What he had to say for himself? Was it only formality, or banter? He
made an exception, whieh the judge himself confessed proper. But who
was counsel for the prisoner? Was not the bench? Or, did it not pre-
tend to be so? And why was not this observed by them in their direc-
tion to the jury? Being found guilty, against all truth, sentence was
accordingly past upon him ; and he was removed to Newgate. While
there, the importunity of his friends, lest they should think him sullen
or stubborn, prevailed with him to sign petitions, and make an address
for his life, though it was not without difficulty that he did any thing
that was begging to save it. To the last, he owned that doctrine, which
other good men, who were then of another judgment, have since been
forced into, namely, the lawfulness of resistance against unlawful vio-
lence, from whomsoever it proceeds.
After fruitless applications for pardon; after a farewell and adieu in
this world, to one of the best of women, who stood by him, and assisted
him in his trial, and did not leave his presence, till at last on Saturday
the 21st of July, he went into his own coach about nine o'clock with
Dr. Tillotson and Dr. Burnet; whence he was carried to Great Lincoln's-
inn-field to the scaffold prepared for him, where, among all the numerous
1022 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
persons, he was one of the most unconcerned. Very few rejoiced at so
doleful a spectacle, except the papists, who indeed had sufficient reason ;
my lord Powis's people expressing, as it is said, a great deal of pleasure
and satisfaction. There, after he had again solemnly protested his
innocency, and that he was far from any design against the king's
person, or of altering the government: nay, that he did upon the words
of a dying man profess, that he knew of no plot against the king's life
or government; and delivering one of the finest speeches in the world
to the sheriff, he prayed by himself, and with Dr. Tillotson's assistance;
and embracing him and Dr. Burnet, he submitted to the fatal strokes,
for the executioner took no less than three before he could sever his
head. When it was held up, as usual, there was so far from being any
shout, that a considerable groan was heard round the scaffold. His
body was given to his friends, and conveyed to Chenies in Buck-
inghamshire, where it was buried among his ancestors. During the
day of his execution there was a great storm, and many loud claps
of thunder.
The story of captain Walcot and his fellow-sufferers, should have been
first related, they having been convicted before lord Russel, and exe-
cuted on Friday, as he was on Saturday. But lord Russel's fate having
so immediate a dependance on the earl of Essex's, and all the plot
hanging on him; especially they being the most conspicuous of any
who suffered on this occasion ; it looked more natural and proper to
begin with them, and reserve the other to this place.
Captain Walcot was a gentleman of a considerable estate in Ireland,
and had eight children all living. The supposed crime for which Walcot
suffered, and which West and others witnessed against him, was con-
sulting the death of the king, and charging the guards at his return
from Newmarket, while the dreadful blunderbuss was to be fired into
the coach by Rumbald, or some others. His privity to discourses about
the king's death was but misprision. For his acting in it, they could
not have pitched on a more unlikely man to command a party in so
desperate an attempt as charging the guards, than one who was bed-
ridden of the gout, as about this time, and often besides, the captain
was. Nor seems West's pretence more likely, that he refused to be active
in the assassination, because of the baseness of it, but offered to charge
the guards, while others did it. This he denied with indignation in his
speech, and appealed to all that knew him, whether they thought him
such an idiot, that he should not understand it was the same thing to
engage the king's guards, while others killed him, as to kill him with
his own hands? Here then, it is plain, lay the truth of the business.
West, Rumsey, and others, had been frequently discoursing at this vil-
Ianous rate: West was most impatiently eager of having it done; he
proposed the killing him at a play, which he said would be in their own
calling.
Colonel Rumsey and West were the main pillars, and almost the only
witnesses on which the credit of that action depended, who appear
throughout the great and almost sole managers thereof, and who accuse
others for being concerned in it. West said, that Walcot joined in the
direction about the nature and size of the arms, intended for the assas-
EXFXUTION OF CAPTAIN WALCOT AND OTHERS. 1023
sination of the king and duke; that he was very intimate and familiar
with Rumbald, who was to be the principal actor in the assassination.
But Rumbald's death cleared himself and Walcot, and shewed what
West was. In another place he affirmed, that Walcot told him Ferguson
had the chief management of the intended assassination. To sum up
the whole, the world is left to its liberty to believe, at least three dying
men's asseverations, against those who so plainly swore away the life
of others to save their own.
All this duly considered, a fair supposition lies of the innocency of
captain Walcot and others of what they were accused, found guilty,
sentenced, and died for; it being on West's evidence, and such as his,
that he and others were arraigned and condemned ; the captain's de-
fence being much the same with what he says in his speech. It is well
known, that the witnesses against captain Walcot swore for their own
lives with halters as it were about their necks; and it is as true that most
of the witnesses had talked at a mad rate, in the hearing of some of
those whom they destroyed ; but mark what captain Walcot in a most
solemn manner with his last breath declared.
He denied any design of killing the king, or of engaging the guards
whilst others killed him, and said, that the witnesses invited him to
meetings, where some things were discoursed of, in order to the asserting
our liberties and properties; which we looked upon to be violated and
invaded : that they importuned and perpetually solicited him, and then
delivered up him to be hanged. That they combined together to swear
him out of his life, to save their own; and that they might do it ef-
fectually, they contrived an untruth. That he forgave them, though
guilty of his blood; but withal, earnestly begged, that they might be
observed, that marks might be set upon them, whether their end were
in peace or misery and woe.
Rouse, who was tried with the captain, was charged with such a
parcel of mad romance, as was scarce ever heard of; and one would
wonder how perjury and malice, which used to be sober sins, could ever
be so extravagant as to think of it. He was to seize the Tower, pay the
rabble, uncase the aldermen, to be pay-master, and a great deal more
to the same tune. In his defence he says no great matter, but yet what
looks a thousand times more like truth than his accusation ; that the
Tower business was only discourse of the feasibleness of the thing; but
without the least intent of bringing it to action ; that all he was con-
cerned in any real design he had from Lea, and was getting more out
of him, with an intention to make a discovery.
Hone was likewise accused, and owned himself guilty of a design to
kill the king and the duke of York, or one, or neither, for it was im-
possible to make any sense of him. When they came to suffer, Walcot
read a paper, in which was a good rational confession of his faith ; then
came to the occasion of his death; for which, he said he neither blamed
the judges, jury, nor council, but only some men, that in reality were
deeper concerned than he, who had combined together to swear him out
of his life to save their own, and that they might do it effectually, con-
trived an untruth. He forgave the world and the witnesses; gave his
friends advice to be more prudent than he had been; prayed that his
1024 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
might be the last blood spilled on that account; wished the king would
be merciful to others; said he knew nothing of Ireland; and concluded
with praying God to have mercy on him. He had then some discourse
with Cartwright, wherein he told him, that he was not for contriving the
death of the king, nor for having any hand in it.
The next victim was colonel Algernon Sidney. He was of the ancient
and noble family of the Sidneys, and deservedly famous to the utmost
bounds of Europe. As the ingenious Mr. Hawles observed, he was
merely talked to death, under the notion of a commonwealth man, and
found guilty by a jury who were not much more proper judges of the
cause, than they would have been had he written in Greek or Arabic.
He was arraigned for a branch of this plot at Westminster, the 17th of
November, 1683; where, though it cannot be said the grand jury knew
not what they did, when they found the bill against him, since, no
doubt, they were well instructed what to do; yet it appears, that they
found it almost before they knew what it was, being so well resolved
on the case, and agreed on their verdict, that had he been indicted for
breaking open a house, or robbing on the highway, it was doomed to
have been billa vera, as much as it was now. For although the indict-
ment was never presented to them before they came into the hall, yet
they immediately found it: the substance whereof was, for a conspiracy
to depose the king, and stirring up rebellion, and writing a libel for that
purpose. The most part of the evidence brought against him, was only
hear-say, as against my lord Russel; nay, West, whose evidence was
then refused, now was admitted to tell a long story of what he had from
one and the other. Rumsey's was much of the same nature. In the
rear came that never-failing evidence, lord Howard, who witnessed that
he was one of the council of six, and engaged as one of the deepest in
their consults. And more than this, he exercised his own faculty very
handsomely, in an account of two speeches Mr. Hampden made on the
occasion, which indeed were such fine things, that some might think it
worth the while to swear against a man, only to have the reputation of
reciting them; and let any man judge whom they are most like, Mr.
Hampden, or my lord's own witty self.
A paper was the next evidence, said to be of Sidney's writing, which
was found in his study. The subject was an enquiry into the forms of
government and the reasons of their decay; the rights of the people,
the bounds of sovereignty, and the origin of power. That which, gave
the greatest offence in it lies in the following sentence. " The king is
subject to the law of God, as a man, and to the people who made him
such, as a king." And examples of evil kings and tyrants, whom
sometimes a popular fury had destroyed; at others, the Ordines Regni
either reduced, or set them aside, when their government was a curse
instead of a blessing to their people. If there were any mistakes, as he
said in his speech, they ought to have been confuted by law, reason, and
scripture, not scaffolds and axes. In the first place, it was not proved
to be his writing, nor did he confess it; treason and life are critical
things: one ought to be as fairly proved, as the other to be cautiously
proceeded against. Though he might write it, he had the liberty of an
Englishman, not to accuse himself: the very same thing which was
MARTYRDOM OF ALGERNON SIDNEY. 1025
afterwards put in practice by those reverend persons, who, later than lie,
and cheaper too, defended their country's liberty with only the loss of
their own. Still here being not a syllable in these papers respecting
king Charles, any more than of the great mogul, against whom they
might as well have made it treason; it was all supplied by the innuendo,
that is, such interpretation as they would please to affix on his words.
Thus when he writes Tarquin, or Pepin, or Nero, they say, he meant
king Charles.
Such was my lord Howard's evidence, that had the jury been any but
what they were, and Sidney describes them, they would not have hanged
a Jesuit upon the credit of it; he having, one would think, taken a
pride in damning himself deeper and deeper against every new appear-
ance in public, on purpose to try the skill and face of the counsel in
bringing him off again. To the evidence brought against him in my
lord Russel's case, he had taken care to add the following: — That the
earl of Clare witnessed, that he said, after Sidney's imprisonment, if
questioned again, he would never plead, and that he thought colonel
Sidney as innocent as any man breathing.
Now, though there was no reasonable answer could be given to all
this ; though Sidney pleaded the obligations my lord Howard had to
him, and the great conveniency he might think there might be in his
death, since he was some hundreds of pounds in his debt, which would
be the readiest way of paying him ; and had besides, as it appeared, a
great mind to have the colonel's plate secured at his own house; though
never man in the world certainly ever talked stronger sense, or better
reasoned or more evidently bantered the judges, and left them nothing
but railing; yet it was all a case with him, as well as the others; and
the petty jury could as easily have found him guilty, without hearing
his trial, as the grand jury did, as soon as ever they saw the bill. Never
was any thing more base and barbarous, than the summing up the evi-
dence and directions to the jury, who yet stood in no great need of
them : nor more uncivil and saucy a reflection on the noble family and
name of the Sidneys, than the judges saying that he was born a traitor.
Never was any thing braver, or more manly, than his remonstrance to
the king for justice, and another trial: nor, lastly, more Roman, and
yet truly Christian than his end. The brave old man came upon the
scaffold, as undauntedly as if he had been going to fight, and as lively
as if he had been a Russel. In his last speech he gave almost the
substance of those books which were lately written in the defence of the
late transactions. He there said as much in a little space as ever man
did — that magistrates were set up for the good of nations, not to the
contrary. If that be treason, king Charles I. was guilty of it against
himself, who said the same thing — that the power of magistrates was
what the laws of the country made it — that those laws and oaths have
the force of a contract, and if one part is broken, the other ceases.
And other maxims of the same necessity and usefulness. He, besides
this, gave a full account of the design of his book, of his trial, and the
injustice done him therein; of the juries being packed, and important
points of law overruled; and ended with a most compendious prayer,
in which he desired God would forgive his enemies, but keep them
3 u
1026 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
from doing any more mischief; he then laid down his head in eternal
repose.
Before this excellent character is dismissed, let the reader attend to
the substance of an address delivered at his death. Having first excused
his not speaking, as well because it was an age that made truth pass for
treason, for the truth of which, he instances his trial and condemnation,
and that the ears of some present were too tender to bear it, as because
of the rigour of the season, and his infirmities; then after a short re-
flection upon the little said against him by other witnesses, and the little
value that was to be put on the lord Howard's testimony, whom he
charges with an infamous life, and many palpable perjuries, and to be
biassed only by the promise of pardon, and makes, even though he had
been liable to no exceptions, to have been but a single witness; he
proceeds to answer the charge against him from the writings found in
his closet by the king's officers, which were pretended, but not lawfully
evidenced to be his,° and pretends to prove, that had they been his,
they contained no condemnable matter, but principles more safe both
to princes and people too, than the pretended high-flown plea for ab-
solute monarchy, composed by Filmer, against which they seemed to be
levelled; and which he says, all intelligent men thought were founded
on wicked principles, and such as were destructive both to magis-
trates and people too. Which he attempts to make out after this
manner.
First, he says, if Filmer might publish to the world, that men were
born under a necessary and indispensable subjection to an absolute king,
who could be restrained by no oath, whether he came to it by creation,
inheritance, or any other right cause, nay, or even by usurpation; why
might he — Algernon Sidney — not publish his opinion to the contrary,
without the breach of any known law? This opinion, he professes, con-
sisted in the following particulars: — That God hath left nations at the
liberty of modelling their own governments. That magistrates were
instituted for nations, and not a contra. That the right and power of
magistrates were fixed by the standing laws of each country. That
those laws, sworn to on both sides, were matter of a contract between
the magistrates and people, and could not be broken without danger
of dissolving the whole government. That usurpation could give no
right ; and that kings had no greater enemies than those who asserted
that, or were for stretching their power beyond its limits. That such
usurpations commonly affecting the slaughter of the reigning person,
the worst of crimes was thereby most gloriously rewarded. That such
doctrines are more proper to stir up men to destroy princes, than all
the passions that ever yet swayed the worst of them, and that no prince
In his petition to the king, speaking of those papers, he says : " That whosoever wrote
them, they were but a small part of a polemical discourse, in answer to a book written
thirty years before, upon general propositions, applied to no time, nor to any particular case ;
that the confusion and errors in the writing showed that they had never been so much as
revised ; and that being written in a hand that no man could well read, they were not fit
for the press, nor could be for some years. But they being only the crude and private
thoughts of a man for the exercise of his own understanding in his studies, and never shown
to any, or applied to any particular case, could not fall under the statute of Edward III.,
the statute falsely pleaded, and artfully perverted, for his condemnation and death."
MARTYRDOM OF ALGERNON SIDNEY. 1027
could be safe, if his murderers may hope for such rewards; and that
few men would be so gentle as to spare the best kings, if by their de-
struction a wild usurper could become God's anointed, which he says
was the scope of the whole treatise, and asserts to be the doctrine of the
best authors of all nations, times, and religions, and of the scripture,
and so owned by the best and wisest princes, particularly by Louis XIV.
of France, in his declaration against Spain, anno 1667, and by king
James, of England, in his speech to the parliament, 1603; and adds,
that if the writer had been mistaken, he should have been fairly refuted,
but that no man was ever otherwise punished for such matters, or any
such thing referred to a jury. That the book was never finished, nor
ever seen by them whom he was charged to have endeavoured by it
to draw into a conspiracy : that nothing in it was particularly or mali-
ciously applied to time, place, or person, but distorted to such a sense
by inuendoes, as the discourses of the expulsion of Tarquin, &c. and
particularly of the translation made of the crown of France from one
race to another, had been applied by the then lawyers' inuendoes, to
the then king of England; never considering, that if such acts of state
be not allowed good, no prince in the world has any title to his crown,
and having by a short reflection shewn the ridiculousness of deriving
absolute monarchy from patriarchal power, he appeals to all the world,
whether it would not be more advantageous to all kings, to own the de-
rivation of their power to the consent of willing nations, than to
have no better title than force, which may be overpowered by superior
force.
Notwithstanding the innocence and loyalty of that doctrine, he was
told he must die, or the plot must die; and he complained that in order
to the destroying the best protestants in England, the bench was filled
with such as had been blemishes to the bar ; and instanced that against
law, they had advised with the king's counsel about bringing him to
death, had suffered a jury to be picked by the king's solicitors: refused
him a copy of his indictment, or to suffer the act of the 46th of Edward III.
to be read, which allows it hath over-ruled the most important points of
law, without hearing, and assumed to themselves a power to make con-
structions of treason, though against law, sense, and reason, which by
the statute of the 25th of Edward III. by which they pretended to try
him, was reserved only to the parliament; and so praying God to forgive
them, and to avert the evils that threatened the nation, to sanctify those
sufferings to him, and though he fell a sacrifice to idols, not to suffer
idolatry to be established in this land. He concluded with a thanks-
giving, That God had singled him out to be a witness of his truth, and
for that good old cause, in which from his youth he had been engaged.
Such was the substance of the writing delivered to the sheriffs a minute
before his execution.
Our next victim to the tyranny of the day was Mr. James Holloway.
This gentleman was by profession a merchant; but the greater part
of his trade lay in linen manufacture, which, as it appears from his pa-
pers, he had brought to such a height in England, as, had it met with
suitable encouragement, would, as he made it appear, have employed
80,000 poor people, and 40,000 acres of land, and be 200,000/. a year
1028 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
advantage to the public revenue. The return of the Habeas Corpus writ
stated him, late of London, merchant, though he lived mostly at Bristol.
He seems to be a person of sense, courage, vivacity of spirit, and a
man of business. All we can have of him is from that public print,
called his Narrative, concerning which it must be remembered, that
we have no firm authority to assure us all therein contained was
his own writing; and perhaps it might be thought convenient that he
should die, for fear he might contradict some things published in his
name. But on the other side, where he contradicts the other witnesses,
his evidence is strong, since surely that was not the interest of the
managers to invent of their own accord ; some truth they might utter,
though displeasing, to gain credit to the rest.
Mr. Holloway was accused for the plot, as one who was acquainted
with West, Rumsey, and the rest; and having been really present at
their meetings and discourses on that subject, absconded when the pub-
lic news concerning the discovery came into the country; though this,
as he told the king, was more for fear, that if he were taken up, his cre-
ditors would never let him come out of gaol, than any thing else. After
some time he got to sea in a little vessel, went over to France, and so
to the West-Indies, among the Caribee Islands, where much of his
concern lay : but writing to his factor at Nevis, he was by him trea-
cherously betrayed, and seized by the order of Sir William Stapleton,
and thence brought prisoner to England. After examination, and a
confession of at least all that he knew, having been outlawed in his
absence on an indictment of treason, he was on the 21st of April 1684,
brought to the King's-Bench, to shew cause why execution should not
be awarded against him, as is usual in that case; he opposed nothing
against it, only saying, if an ingenuous confession of truth could merit
the king's pardon he hoped he had done it. The attorney being called
for, ordered the indictment to be read, and gave him the offer of a trial,
waving the outlawry, which he refused, and threw himself on the king's
mercy; on which execution was awarded, though the attorney, who
had not so much law even as Jeffrey, was for having judgment first
pass against him, which is never done in such cases. He was executed
at Tyburn April the 30th.
Sir Thomas Armstrong was not long after called to sacrifice his life in
the same cause. He had been all his life a firm servant and friend to
the royal family, in their exile and afterwards : had been in prison for
them under Cromwell, and in danger both of execution and starving;
for all which they now rewarded him. He had a particular honour and
devotion for the duke of Monmouth, and pushed on his interest on all
occasions, being a man of as undaunted English courage as ever our
country produced. He was with the duke formerly in his actions in
Flanders, and shared there in his danger and honour. His accusation
was, his being concerned in the general plot, and that too of killing the
king; but he was indeed hanged for running away, and troubling them
to send so far after him. The particulars pretended against him, were
what the lord Howard witnessed in Russel's trial, of his going to kill
the king when their first design failed. But this was only imaginary,
though advanced into a formal accusation, and aggravated by the attor-
EXECUTION OF SIR THOMAS ARMSTRONG. 1029
ney, as the reason why he had a trial denied him, when Holloway had
one offered, both of them being alike outlawed. On which outlawry
Sir Thomas was kidnapped in Holland, brought over in chains, and
robbed by the way in the bargain. Being brought up, and asked what
he had to plead that sentence should not pass upon him, he pleaded
the 6th of Edward VI. wherein it is provided — That if a person out-
lawed render himself in a year after the outlawry pronounced, and tra-
verse his indictment, and shall be acquitted on his trial, he shall be
discharged of the outlawry. On which he accordingly then and there
made a formal surrender of himself to the lord chief justice, and asked
the benefit of the statute, and a fair trial for his life, the year not being
yet expired. But this availed him nothing : sentence was passed upon
him and he suffered on the following Friday.
At the place of execution he deported himself with courage becoming
a great man, and with the seriousness and piety suitable to a Christian.
Sheriff Daniel told him, he had leave to say what he pleased, and should
not be interrupted, unless he upbraided the government ; Sir Thomas
thereupon told him that he should not say any thing by way of speech;
but delivered him a paper, which he said contained his mind; he
then called for Dr. Tennison, who prayed with him, and then he prayed
alone.
He thus expressed himself in his paper, that he thanked Almighty
God he found himself prepared for death, his thoughts set upon another
world, and weaned from this ; yet he could not but give so much of his
little time, as to answer some calumnies, and particularly what Mr.
Attorney accused him of at the bar, namely, with being one of those
that were to kill the king ; he took God to witness, that he never had a
thought to take away the king's life, and that no man ever had the im-
pudence to propose so base and barbarous a thing to him ; and that he
never was in any design to alter the government. He then concluded
with observing, that if he had been tried, he could have proved lord
Howard's base reflections upon him, to be notoriously false ; he con-
cluded, that he had lived, and now died of the reformed religion, and
heartily wished he had lived* more strictly up to what he believed : that
lie had found the great comfort of the love and mercy of God, in and
through the blessed Redeemer, in whom alone he trusted, and verily
hoped that he was going to partake of that fulness of joy which is in
his presence, the hopes whereof infinitely pleased him.
SECTION IV.
ACCESSION OF JAMES II.— MONMOUTH'S REBELLION, WITH SOME ACCOUNT
OF THOSE WHO WERE UNJUSTLY PUT TO DEATH.
The duke of York, having ascended the English throne under the title of
James II., soon manifested his tyranny and his intentions. In violation of
a statute-law, he erected a new ecclesiastical commission court; had a Je-
suit confessor; and filled all the places, both civil and military, with papists.
The interests of Rome engrossed his attention, and such was his zeal for the
1030 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
catholic religion, that Pope Innocent XI. to whom he had sent his
favourite agent, Beryl, cautioned him not to be too hasty. Although,
on his accession, he had in his address, declaimed all arbitrary princi-
ples, and promised to protect the honour of the nation, and deserve its
confidence, he soon evinced his insincerity. In a sort of triumph, he
produced some papers of his brother Charles II. by which it appeared,
that he had died a Roman catholic, and in contempt of the feelings of
the people, on the first Sunday of his reign, James went publicly to mass.
The duke of Norfolk, who carried the sword of state, stopt at the chapel
door. " My lord," said the king, "your father would have gone fur-
ther." — " Your majesty's father," replied the spirited nobleman, "would
not have gone so far." While James was proceeding thus, and indulg-
ing himself in the prospect of subverting the established religion, the
duke of Monmouth, who, on the death of lord Russel, had gone over
to Flanders, trusting to the affections he possessed in the hearts of the
protestants, whose cause he had ever espoused, formed the design of
bringing about a revolution. To this rash and unhappy enterprise, he was
chiefly instigated by the active spirit of the duke of Argyle. Having
prepared a squadron of six vessels, badly manned, and very ill supplied,
they divided, and with three each, sailed for the places of their destina-
tion : Monmouth landed at Lyme, in Dorsetshire, on the 13th of June
1683, with 150 men, and marching thence to Taunton, his army in-
creased to 6000.
In the mean while, the duke of Argyle had landed in Argyleshire,
where he found the militia prepared to oppose him. But being imme-
diately joined by his brave vassals and faithful partizans, he instantly
penetrated into the western counties, hoping to be joined by the disaf-
fected covenanters. But his little squadron being captured, and his
brave followers having lost their baggage in a morass in Renfrewshire,
every hope was extinguished, and they were necessitated to disperse for
immediate preservation. The unfortunate nobleman assumed a disguise,
but was soon taken by two peasants, and conducted to Edinburgh, were
he was executed. At his death, he discovered all that heroic firmness,
which he had uniformly manifested in his life, together with a great
degree of piety. "Job tells us" said he, " that man that is born of
a woman is of few days and full of trouble ; and I am a clear instance
of it. I know afflictions spring not out of the dust : they are not only
foretold, but promised to Christians ; and they are not only tolerable but
desirable. We ought to have a deep reverence and fear of God's dis-
pleasure, but withal, a firm hope and dependance on him for a blessed
issue, in compliance with his will ; for God chastens his own to refine,
and not to ruin them. We are neither to despise, nor to faint under
afflictions. I freely forgive all who have been the cause of my being
brought to this place ; and I entreat all people to forgive me wherein I
have offended, and pray with me, that the merciful God would sanctify
my present trial, and for Christ's sake, pardon all my sins, and receive
me to his eternal glory."
The fatal news of the above nobleman and his followers, no sooner
reached the duke of Monmouth than he sunk into despondency. He
now began to see the temerity of his undertaking. To provide for his
DEFEAT AND DEATH OF MONMOUTH. 1031
safety was not quite impossible. He therefore began to retreat till he
re-entered Bridgewater, while the royal army being in his rear. Here
he ascended a tower, from whence viewing the army of Feversham, his
hopes again revived, while he meditated an attack. He accordingly
made most skilful arrangements, but committing an important post to
lord Grey, that dastardly soldier betrayed him. Seeing the conflict
hopeless, he galloped off the field, and continued his flight for twenty
miles until his horse sunk under him, while the unfortunate noble,
almost exhausted as the animal, wandered on foot for a few miles
further, and then sunk down with hunger and fatigue. In the battle,
two thousand of Monmouth's troops were slain, and a great number
made prisoners, of whom some hundreds were afterwards executed.
Five days after, the poor duke was discovered lying in a ditch, almost
in a lifeless state. On being recovered, the remembrance of the recent
incident, affected him so powerfully, that he wept aloud. He was con-
veyed to London, and on the 15th of July, was brought to the scaffold
being in the thirty-sixth year of his age.
Previously to his death, he said that he repented of his sins, and was
more particularly concerned for the blood that had been spilt on his
account. " Instead" said he, "of being accounted factious and rebel-
lious, the very opposing of popery and arbitrary power, will sufficiently
apologize for me. I have lived, and now die in this opinion, that God
will work a deliverance for his people. I heartily forgive all who have
wronged me, even those who have been instrumental to my fall, earnestly
praying for their souls. I hope that king James will shew himself to
be of his brother's blood, and extend his mercy to my children, they
being not capable to act, and, therefore, not conscious of any offence
against the government. He entreated the executioner to spare him
the second blow; but the man, whose heart was unfit for his office,
failed to strike off his head at the first blow, on which the duke
gently turning himself round, cast a look of tender reproach upon him,
and then again meekly submitted his head to the axe, while the tears of
the spectators spoke how well he was beloved.
That ambition had a share in moving both these unfortunate noble-
men to the step, which ended in their death, cannot be denied : but,
among their partisans, numbers were doubtless actuated by purer
motives, even the love of the cause of truth ; and though we cannot but
lament that ignorance and mistaken zeal, that led them to assume the
sword, in order to advance the glory of Him, whose weapons are not
carnal, but spiritual, we must not refuse to enrol their names with those
of the martyrs : their offences, however, and the manner of their death
being the same, much enlargement is needless.
The unjust execution of Alderman Cornish, and the cruel mode and
place of that outrage are well known, and in the view of protestants
generally have given that worthy citizen a rank among modern martyrs.
The alderman was seized in October 1685: and the Monday after his
commitment, which was on the previous Friday, he was arraigned for
high-treason, having no notice given him till Saturday noon. His charge
was for conspiring to kill the king, and promising to assist the duke of
Monmouth, &c. in their treasonable enterprises. He desired his trial
1032 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
might be deferred, because of the short time for preparation; and that
he had a considerable witness a hundred and forty miles off, and that
the king had left it to the judges, whether it should be put off or not.
But it was denied him ; the attorney telling him, he had not deserved
so well of the government as to have his trial delayed. Rumsey and
Goodenough were evidences against him. They both swore to things
that were most flagrantly extravagant and false; the first contradicting
the evidence he had given at the trial of lord Russel, and the last
swearing that Cornish had talked with him of seizing the Tower, when
it was proved, that the alderman had ever entertained so ill an opinion
of Goodenough, that he would not have trusted him with the most
trifling secret.
He was found guilty in spite of all, and condemned, and even that
Christian serenity of mind and countenance, wherewith it was visible he
bore his sentence, the bench turned to his reproach. Nevertheless he
continued in the same excellent temper whilst in Newgate, and gave the
world a noble instance of the happiness of such persons as live a pious
life, when they come to make an end of it, let the way be ever so vio-
lent and unjust.
Approaching the press-yard, on his way to execution, and seeing the
halter in the officer's hand, he said — " Is this for me?" The officer an-
swered in the affirmative. The alderman replied — " Blessed be God,"
and kissed it; and after said — " O blessed be God for Newgate, I have
enjoyed God ever since I came within these walls, and blessed be God
who hath made me fit to die. I am now going to that God who will not
be mocked, to that God who will not be imposed upon, to that God who
knows the innocency of his poor creature." And a little after he said
— " Never did any poor creature come unto God with greater confidence
'n his mercy, through Jesus Christ; for there is no other name given
under heaven whereby we can be saved, but the name of Jesus." Then
speaking to the officers, he said — " Labour every one of you to be fit
to die, for I tell you, you are not fit to die: I was not before I came
hither; but blessed be God, he hath made me fit and willing to die! In
a few moments I shall have the fruition of the blessed Jesus, and that
not for a day, but for ever. I am going to the kingdom, where I shall
enjoy the presence of God the Father, and of God the Son, and of God
the Holy Spirit, and of all the holy angels: I am going to the general
assembly of the first-born, and of the spirits of just men made perfect
O that God should ever do so much for me! blessed be his name! this
was his design from all eternity, to give his only Son to die for poor
miserable sinners." Then the officers going to tie his hands, he said —
" What, must I be tied then? Well, a brown thread might have served
the turn; you need not tie me at all, I shall not stir from you, for thank
God I am not afraid to die." As he was going out, he said — " Fare-
well, Newgate: farewell all my fellow prisoners here; the Lord comfort
you, the Lord be with you all."
He was then led to the place of execution, which, to the outrage of
all humanity, was before his own door near Guildhall. If anything was
wanting in his trial, from the haste of it, for the clearing his innocence,
he sufficiently made it up in solemn asseverations on the scaffold. " God
ASSASSINATION OF MR. DANGERFIELD. 1033
is my witness," said lie, " the crimes laid to my charge were falsely and
maliciously sworn against me by the witnesses; for I never was at any
consultation or meeting where matters against the government were dis-
coursed of. I never heard or read any declaration tending that way.
Again, as for the crimes for which I suffer, upon the words of a dying
man, I am altogether innocent." The cruelty of his enemies was not
satiated by his death. His quarters were set up on Guildhall, in terrorem,
and for the same reason, no doubt, he was executed so near it — to strike
early terror into the hearts of the numerous protestants of the city, who
could not be well affected towards the popery of the new king; but who
betrayed not the least symptom of confederacy against his government
or his person.
Alderman Cornish was condemned as a sharer in the preceding plot:
and one more individual suffered for that inexplicable affair. He was a
surgeon of considerable repute, and a man of a liberal and enlarged
understanding: his name was Bateman. During his imprisonment he
sunk into a deep melancholy, and when brought to trial, he was quite
deranged, so that he was unable to speak in his own defence, and to
confront his accusers, who were Rouse, Lee, and Goodenough. His own
son, therefore, undertook to plead his cause ; and could but what he
brought for him have been allowed its due weight, he must have escaped.
But he was found guilty; and just before his execution very much re-
covered himself, dying as much like a christian, and with as great a
presence of mind as most of the others. From all these instances, it
appears that some violent actions were intended by some designing men,
who had artfully insinuated themselves into the confidence of these pro-
testant patriots; but who, when detected, in order to save their own
worthless lives, betrayed those virtuous men, and charged upon them
the guilt which was meant to be put in execution only by themselves.
The cruel assassination of Mr. Dangerfield, next claims our attention.
His father, a gentleman of Waltham, had been a great sufferer in the
cause of Charles I. He died about the time of the discovery of the
plot, and with his last breath charged his son to have no hand in any
thing against the government; which he promised and faithfully ob-
served. He was a man of business and courage, and therefore em-
ployed by the papists, while among them, in their desperate and most
dangerous concerns. The great thing which brought him before the
public, was Mrs. Celier's business, called the Meal-Tub plot. The
papists had designed to kill two birds with one stone, divert the laws and
people from themselves, and ruin their enemies; for which end they had
amongst them made a plot to bring the best patriots of the nation into
a pretended design against the king and government, by a kind of an
association, like that which afterwards took better effect. For this trans-
action Mr. Dangerfield was made choice of, a list of their names, with
the design, being by him, according to order, conveyed into colonel
Mansel's chamber. But he was discovered, and seized in the design,
and acknowledged all the intrigue, giving so clear an account of it,
that they had never the impudence to pretend any contradiction. But
there was somewhat yet deeper in the case, which he afterwards revealed
in his depositions before the parliament, namely, that he was employed
1034 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
by the same party to kill the king, and encouraged and promised im-
punity and reward, and part of it given him by a great person for that
purpose.
While the stream ran violently for popery, he went over, for security,
into Flanders, but continued not long there. Returning back, he was
some time after seized, and carried before the council, where, before the
king himself, persisting in all his former evidence, he was committed to
Newgate; and after having lain there for some time, petitioned for
a trial, which they could not do upon any account but Scandalum
Magnatum, and that in a matter which lay only before the parliament
to whom he had revealed it. Yet for that he was tried, and found
guilty, as Williams the speaker was afterwards for licensing his narrative
by order of parliament. He was to undergo a whipping. Before he
went out, he had strong forebodings of his death, and chose the follow-
ing text for his funeral sermon — "There the wicked cease from troubling
and there the weary are at rest." After the sentence was executed on
him, on his return home, one Francis, stabbed him in the eye, and the
instrument touching his brain, he was hardly sensible after, but died of
the wound in a few hours, not without great suspicion of poison, his
body being swelled and black, and full of great blains. The murderer
fled, but was pursued by the rabble, who had torn him to pieces, had
not the officers rescued him. He defended and justified the act whilst
in Newgate, saying, he had the greatest men in the kingdom to stand
by him ; to whom, after his trial, and being found guilty upon clear
evidence, great applications were made, which had been successful for
his pardon, had not Jeffreys himself gone to Whitehall, and told the
king he must die, for that the rabble were now thoroughly heated, and,
that great danger might ensue; accordingly, the poor state martyr was
put to death.
We now come to the sufferings of Benjamin and William Hewling,
two most accomplished and amiable youths, and who, from first to last
displayed such heroic constancy and christian piety, that a general officer
in the royal army, used frequently to exclaim, " If you would learn to
die, go to the young men of Taunton" — at which place the elder suf-
fered on the 12th of September 1685. The elder of these brothers was
a superior scholar, well versed in the mathematics and philosophy
generally. He had the command of a troop of horse in the duke's army
in Holland ; while his brother was a lieutenant of foot. They signalised
themselves in several partial actions ; but were too late in joining the
duke's army at Sedgemore to save him from defeat and destruction.
After attempting to escape by sea, they were driven back, apprehended,
and committed to Exeter goal. The younger brother, who was under
twenty, suffered at Lyme on the same day that the elder was put to
death at Taunton. Let the junior be judged of by the following extract
from his last letter — " I am going to launch into eternity, and I hope
and trust into the arms of my blessed Redeemer, to whom I commit
you and all my dear relations." The elder possessed an equally pious
as well as protestant spirit, and both were examples of as pure a patriot-
ism as ever glowed in the bosom of an Englishman. We cannot with-
hold one extract from Benjamin's letter to his mother, but two hours
DEATH OF LADY LISLE. 1035
before his death. " Honoured mother — I know there has been nothing
left undone by you for saving my life, for which I return my hearty
thankfulness. Pray give my duty to all my relations, and friends.
Tell them all how precious an interest in Christ is when we come to die,
and advise them never to rest in a christless state. For if we are his,
it is no matter what the world do to us — they can but kill the body,
while the soul is out of their reach : though I question not but their malice
wishes the death of that also, which has too evidently appeared by their
deceitful flattering promises. The Lord God of heaven be your comfort
under these sorrows, and your refuge from these miseries, the Lord carry
you through this vale of tears with a resigned submissive spirit, and at
last bring you to himself to glory — where I question not you will meet
your dying sons."
Next to these heroic youths we mention Mr. Christopher Battiscomb,
a gentleman of good family and fine prospects in the world. He had
been confined in Dorchester goal from the time of Lord Russel's death ;
but released upon nothing being proved against him. He joined
the duke of Monmouth to resist the aggression of popery and arbitrary
power, and after his defeat was again imprisoned at Dorchester. Tried
by the infamous Jeffreys he was not likely to escape. Because he had
studied in the temple for the bar, the cruel judge was for hanging him
without trial ; but some form and plea of justice were necessary, which
were followed by condemnation and execution. He suffered at Lyme
with great fortitude. When his friends left him, he said with the utmost
serenity — ''Though we part here, we shall meet in heaven."
Mr. William Jenkyn follows. For his protestant and patriotic sen-
timents, freely avowed, his father had been committed to Newgate, where
close confinement soon deprived him of life. The son partook of the
parent's spirit, and uniting himself with those whom his conscience
deemed the true friends of his country and his God, he fell into the
hands of the papal faction, and paid the forfeiture of his life at Dor-
chester. Some of his last words were — " Parting with my friends, and
their grief for me, are my greatest difficulty ; but it will be only for a
very short time, and we shall meet again in endless joys, where my dear
father is already entered, whom I shall presently and triumphantly
embrace."
Lady Alicia Lisle, from the inexorable temper of judge Jeffreys, who,
like another Bonner, delighted in blood, was most cruelly sacrificed.
She was condemned by one of those dormant laws that were scarcely
known, and seldom executed. Her pretended offence was, that of hold-
ing a correspondence with Nelthorpe, an outlawed person, and for giving
him shelter in her house. She was so old, that she slept during her
trial, yet notwithstanding, she found no mercy, but was beheaded at
Winchester. Nelthorpe, at his death, afterwards declared, that he was
wholly a stranger to her, and had never even heard her name till he was
taken. Juvenal says of Priam, when he was sacrificed, that he had
scarce blood enough left to tinge the knife of the sacrificer. So it might
have been said of Lady Lisle. Her extreme age, however, found no
pity in the bosom of her foes, while her perfect serenity enraged them
even more than her pretended crime. Parliament, convinced of the
1036 H [STORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
injustice of her death reversed the sentence ; but it was too late — her
hoary head had received a crown of glory.
The individual with whom she was charged with corresponding, but
who deposed his entire ignorance of her, Mr. Richard Nelthorpe, suf-
fered at London. He had been outlawed, for being in the plot for as-
sassinating the late king. He, however, solemnly averred his utter de-
testation of any such design, neither did he know of such a thing being
in agitation. He often avowed it his duty to sacrifice life for the main-
tenance of the protestant faith and the consequent liberties of England.
His dying speech was excellent but too long to be inserted entire, and we
are fearful of marring its effects by slight quotations. It thus concludes
— " Grant me thy love, O God my dearest father! stand by me in the
hour of death, and give thine angels charge over me. Deliver me from
the rage of the evil one, and receive me into thine eternal kingdom."
Mrs. Elizabeth Gaunt was burnt at Wapping She was a woman
zealous for the protestant cause, and full of charity to such of its pro-
fessors as stood in need of relief. She was most basely betrayed by a
person named Barton, whom, with his wife and family, she had pre-
served from starving; and although he was an outlaw, and his outlawry
was not reversed, his evidence, contrary to all justice, was admitted
against her.
We now come to Scotland, to notice a few examples of patient suffering
in the same hallowed cause in that country. The duke of Argyle is en-
titled to the first place in this catalogue, in point of time as well as rank.
He was put to death at Edinburgh on the 30th of June 1685. His
speech on the scaffold was mostly scripture, and has been called a ser-
mon of considerable ingenuity as well as seriousness. Nearly at the
same time Colonel Rumbold suffered He was proceeding in his last
address to explain some parts of his political conduct, when drums were
beaten to drown his voice. His character may be judged by the
following loyal and christian sentiments. " For the cause of the
king, were every hair of my head and beard a life, I would joyfully
sacrifice them all. I was never anti-monarchical in my principles,
but for a king and free parliament; the king having power enough to
make him great, and the people to make them happy. I die in the
defence of the just laws and liberties of the nation." And being asked
if he thought not his sentence dreadful? he answered, " I wish I had
a limb for every town in Christendom."
Mr. John King was executed at Edinburgh, on the 14th of August,
1679. He, at his death, made a long and interesting address to the
people— too long for insertion, yet too good for abridgement. On the
same day also, and at the same place, Mr. John Kidd suffered. He
likewise addressed the spectators at considerable length, and discovered
great resignation and piety. The following were his last words, " O that
God would pass by Scotland once again, and make our time a time of
love! come, Lord Jesus, come quickly! The Lord is my light and life,
my joy, and song, and salvation ; whom then can I fear? The God of
his chosen be my mercy this day, and the enriching comforts of the
Holy Ghost keep up and carry me fair through, to the glory of his grace
the edification of his people, and my own eternal advantage."
EXECUTION OF SEVERAL PROTESTANTS. 1037
Mr. Matthew Bragg suffered death at Dorchester. This gentleman's
case was particularly severe, as he had never intended to join in the
rebellion; but being met by a party of the duke's horse, they forced
him to escort them to the house of a Roman catholic, which they wanted
to plunder for arms. They also detained his horse for the service of the
duke, and strove to persuade him to join them. This, however, he re-
fused, and went home on foot. His having been among the duke's party
thus accidentally, being made public by some malicious persons, he was
brought to trial and condemned. His condemnation was followed in two
days by a barbarous execution. The short interval, including the sab-
bath, was spent in remarkably fervent and doubtless sincere devotions,
in which he was joined by an excellent clergyman, who afterwards
testified to the eminent piety he evinced, and the distinguished prepara-
tion for heaven which preceded his departure from earth.
Among those who innocently suffered with Mr. Bragg, was Mr.
Smith of Chardstock; and Mr. Speed of Collumpton. Both from their
confessions and characters appear to have been men of eminent piety.
In his last address, Mr. Smith spoke thus — " God forgive my passionate
judge, and my cruel hasty jury. Father, forgive them, for they know not
what they do ! God bless the king; and though his judges have no mercy
on me, I hope he may find mercy when he most standeth in need of it."
Concerning Mr. Speed, it is sufficient to observe that the guards around
the scaffold were so struck with his magnanimity and resignation that
they relented in their tyranny, and were constrained to acknowledge ther
convictions of his innocence and excellence.
At Bridport, Mr. John Sprage, suffered death, with twelve others. At
Lyme, among the first who was brought to death was captain Holmes, a
man very zealous for the duke, and withal very brave. He suffered in
company with eleven more persons whom he embraced at the place of
execution, and strengthened them with spiritual advice. He said, among
other things — " It is a glorious sun-shining day, and I doubt not, though
our breakfast be sharp and bitter, it will make us meet for a comfortable
supper with our God and Saviour in heaven, where all sin and sorrow
shall be done away for ever. You see I am imperfect, having left one
arm in the field; I therefore want some assistance to help me up this
tragical stage."
About the same time, also, suffered Mr. Samuel Larke, a man greatly
beloved for the goodness of his life; and with him, Mr. Christopher
Battiscomb, Dr. Temple, captains Matthews, Madders, and Kidd, Mr.
Joseph Tyler, and five others. These were executed in Somerset and
Devonshire. At Bristol Mr. Tyler and Mr. Cox suffered; the latter,
with his two sons had joined the duke on his first landing; both the
youths were condemned as well as their father ; but they were providential-
ly preserved. In Sherborne, twelve persons suffered death, for their ad-
herence to the same cause. Among these were Messrs. Glisson, Savage,
Hall, Sprague, and Clegg. At Axminster were executed Mr. Rose and
Mr. Evans. The former was a gunner, and had come over with the duke :
he was a man of great resolution, and, finding the hopes of his master
frustrated, appeared to prefer death to life. Mr. Port, a young sur-
geon, and very amiable man, suffered at Honiton, and discovered at his
death, a great share of christian piety, with a knowledge of eternal
1038 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
things, surpassing his years, he being about twenty. At the same place,
soon after, suffered the Rev. J. Evans, who, between the time of his
sentence and its execution, devoted himself wholly to the teaching of
eternal things, and received his death with a cheerfulness, that mani-
fested his hopes of eternal glory.
Mr. Simon Handing suffered at Taunton. He was so far from joining
in the rebellion, that he had walked from his house in the country, about
three miles from Taunton, on purpose to persuade his son to take no
part in the affair; judging all resistance in a professor of Christ, as un-
lawful; but, being a protestant dissenter, he was seized, and not offer-
ing to his corrupt judges any money for his ransom, he was condemned
and executed. Mr. Cratchett also suffered innocently; he being a con-
stable of the hundred, was surprised by a party of the duke's horse, who
shewed him a warrant to bring in provisions for the army, and threatened
in case of refusal to burn his house : so that, for his immediate preserva-
tion, he was obliged to comply. Among many other sufferers, in various
parts, were Mr. Samuel Robins, Mr. Charles Speak, Mr. Parrot, Mr.
Henry Bodly, and Mr. John Hicks. This last gentleman made a long
and peculiarly eloquent harangue, in justification of himself, of the
wickedness of the times, and in exhorting his hearers to follow after the
things that regarded their eternal welfare.
At Taunton, besides those already named, with many others, Mr.
J. Gatchill, Mr. Simon Hamling, and Mr. Hucker, were executed.
In addition numbers perished in prison, while several were brought to
death without any trial, especially by the cruel and sanguinary Kirk,
so well known in the records of blood. At Bath, more exempt from
blood than most cities of the realm, Mr. William Hussey, seventy years
old, and Mr. Thomas Paul, nearly of the same age, were executed.
Likewise, a young man named Trip, who was carried to his execution
in blankets, being at the point of death of a malignant fever. This
act of cruelty, however, met its reward, as many of the soldiers, and
those concerned in his death, caught the disease, and from them it
spread far and wide about the country.
Great numbers of those who suffered through this enterprise of the
duke of Monmouth, a were innocent of the offence, many of them never
having taken any part in it, and many others having been forced into
it, in order to save their properties and their lives. It has been re-
marked, and may be remarked again with confidence, that whatever
political and civil pleas were urged for their condemnation and death,
most of them were hurried violently out of the world through fear of
the influence of their example as sound protestants, and men esteemed
in their generation.
Chief-justice Jeffreys, and the corrupt judges under him, seemed ac-
tuated by the spirit of furies, and whole parishes were, by their means,
a "The cruelty of the king's officers towards the prisoners which they took a* Sedgemoor,
exceeds all credit. The earl of Feversham ordered about twenty to be hung immediately after
the action. Nineteen others were put to death at Bridgewater, by colonel Kirke, an inhuman
wretch, who continued to execute others occasionally for his diversion, with circumstances of
wanton barbarity. Judge Jeffreys was now sent the western circuit, to finish the horrid tragedy.
At Dorchester he ordered nine and twenty persons to be executed immediately after conviction.
He prosecuted the same work of carnage at Exeter and Taunton ; and two hundred and fifty per-
sons are said to have been sacrificed, in this circuit, under colour of justice." — Clarendon.
POPERY EXPELLED FROM ENGLAND. 103!)
depopulated. Nor was his rage and violence displeasing at court. King
James was so delighted at his success, that in a proclamation for a
thanksgiving, lie declared that now nothing remained, which could pos-
sibly disturb the future quiet of his reign. He then procured the
opinion of his judges — That it was in his power to dispense with the
penal laws; upon which followed a declaration for liberty of conscience,
and suspending the taking the oaths of allegiance and supremacy, and
several papists were put into offices. Soon after, the vice-chancellor
of Cambridge, and the fellows of Magdalen College in Oxford, were
suspended and turned out, for not admitting popish priests and friars,
contrary to their oaths. The bishop of London was suspended for re-
fusing to suspend Dr. Sharp, for preaching against popery. Seven
bishops were committed to the Tower for refusing to order the declara-
tion for liberty of conscience to be read in their several dioceses: they
were tried at Westminster-hall, and brought in " Not Guilty," to the
great joy of the people.
In this sad state was the protestant religion in 1688; and, to crown
all, it was pretended the queen had a son, who was declared prince of
Wales, and was designed by the papists to finish the work his father
might not have time to do; namely, to entail popery and slavery upon
the nation for ever hereafter. The ancient glory of the English nation,
and the liberties and properties of all degrees therein, seeming now to
be in inevitable danger, the nobility and gentry of the kingdom having
no where else under heaven to place their hope and confidence but in
her highness, the heiress apparent to the crown, and in the celebrated
virtue and renown of his highness the prince of Orange, for military
conduct and heroic magnanimity. They humbly represented their griev-
ances so effectually to them, that at length the prince was induced to
appear in their defence, and landed with an army of 15000 men. Being
joined by great numbers of the nobility and gentry at Exeter, and after-
wards by several of James's own army, the king was so affrighted, that
he sent the queen and the pretended prince of Wales to France; and
father Peters, with the rabble of priests, monks, and friars, packed up
their trinkets to shift for themselves. The lord chancellor Jeffreys fled
likewise, but was taken, and died in the Tower; king James himself
soon after abdicated, and retired into France. After this the whole
nation by their representatives, made it their humble request, that the
prince of Orange with his royal consort, would be pleased to accept of
the crown; and they were accordingly proclaimed king and queen, with
great joy, on February 13, 1688, whereby the nation was restored to its
ancient liberties, and freed from the dangers of popery and slavery.
Casting an eye as we conclude on the continent, an affecting instance
of wholesale persecution and virtual martyrdom distinguished and dis-
graced the eighteenth century. But few lives indeed were sacrificed, and
none by the fatal violence of the moment ; yet some hundreds were re-
duced to extreme misery, and expatriated without mercy, by the eccle-
siastical powers of Saltzburgh in the year 1731. The edict was issued
in the winter, and fourteen days only were allowed for its execution. At
the expiration of this short time the soldiers drove the protestants,
amounting to some thousands, in troops from every city and town, every
village and hamlet, of the realm. Most of them were stripped of every
1040 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
thing but the raiment they wore. It is no little relief, amidst this scene,
to find that subscriptions were opened in every protestant state in Europe,
to supply their wants, and provide a refuge for them. The greater part
obtained an asylum in Prussia. A letter from Liepsic gives the follow-
ing account of their arrival in that city. "Upwards of 2000 protestant
emigrants, driven destitute from their homes, have sought shelter within
our hospitable walls. As soon as news of their approach arrived, at
least ten thousand of the inhabitants went out to meet them. The weary
pilgrims were of all ages and descriptions. Some were bent with age
and were supported by their children: others had prattling infants in
their arms, or new-born babes at their breasts ; while the greater part
were almost dead with hunger and fatigue. They were met at the gates
by the clergy, and entered the city in as regular procession as possible —
those who could use their voices singing Luther's hymn. In the market
place they halted, and were quartered by the magistrates in the different
inns and other houses of the city. Every family seemed to vie with the
rest in hospitality and benevolence. On Sunday they assembled in the
church and a collection was made at the doors. Many of the rich mer-
chants subscribed a thousand dollars each. There was scarcely a ser-
vant or an apprentice boy who did not contribute his part. The women,
even the poorest, took their handkerchiefs and aprons, when they had
nothing else, and bestowed upon them." At Halle and Wittemburg the
poor wanderers received equally kind attention ; and at Potsdam the
king himself came out to meet them. They then for the first time broke
their ranks, to surround the sovereign and fall at his feet. He received
them in the most generous manner, and those who survived their suffer-
ings settled in his dominions, while such as w 7 ere declining towards death
had their latter days soothed by his beneficence and that of his subjects.
We have thus given some account of almost every martyr who suffered
for the faith of Christ, of whom record is preserved. That there were
hundreds of Christians martyred for the cause of the Redeemer, of whom
history knows nothing, cannot be doubted ; for, a hundred volumes would
not contain the history of all the worthies who were destroyed in the dif-
ferent ages of the Christian church. We have purposely omitted any
account of the disasters which have happened through popular fanaticism
in modern times. It may be thought that we have gone too far in classing
the sufferers under James and Jeffreys with the martyrs for our holy re-
ligion ; but it should be remembered that, although some were politically
guilty, the greater number were really condemned by the popish party on
account of their adherence to the Protestant faith. W r e have not, however,
any apprehension that the superior light and religion of our day will suffer
the martyr-fires to be rekindled, unless our country return to its former
faithlessness to God and to itself.
1(41
SECTION V.
PERSECUTIONS AND SUFFERINGS OF THE FRENCH PROTESTANTS FROM
THE REION OF HENRY III. TO LOUIS XVIII.*
France has its " noble army of martyrs," and its martyrology is large.
In a former section of this work, ending at page 213, the reader has been
furnished with a brief account of the cruelties of popery in that country
down to the year 1573.
In 1576 was formed the famous League, the chief promoter of which
was the duke of Guise ; and the pretence, the preservation of the Catholic
religion. Henry III., then king, was a bigoted papist; but the increasing
power of the duke of Guise so alarmed him, that to secure himself the
better against his intrigues, he favoured the Protestants, and they obtained
an edict for the free exercise of their religion in 1577. This was called the
edict of Poictiers. Popish bigotry did not, however, long admit the
privileges of this edict to be enjoyed by the Protestants.
Henry IV. succeeded to the throne in 1589, and being a Protestant,
though he renounced his professed religion, yet he still showed kindness to
those with whom he had been accustomed to worship ; and during a visit
at Nantes, he published the famous edict named after that town. This edict
continued for a number of years as the safeguard of the reformed church. It
secured to the Protestants free worship, and all the rights of citizens, and it
was registered as perpetual and irrevocable. Henry IV. was stabbed in his
coach by an execrable wretch named Ravaillac, who assigned as a reason
for committing the crime, that he believed the king to be still in heart a
Protestant.
Louis XIII., his successor, was not guilty of Protestantism. He was a
weak bigot ; and the popish clergy adored him because he sanctioned their
superstitions, and allowed them to use his power in persecuting his Pro-
testant subjects, whom he hated. The Jesuits, who had been banished from
France for attempting the life of Henry IV., a. d. 1593, were recalled, and be-
came favourites at the court ; and their doctrine obtained popularity, that
" princes may put heretics to death, and therefore they ought to put them
to death." An artful priest got raised to the rank of cardinal, and was
prime minister. This man, cardinal Richelieu, endeavoured by every artifice
to prejudice the mind of Henry against the Protestants ; and having assured
him that it was a principle with them that kings might be deposed by their
people, excited him to adopt those measures which created a civil war, in
which the Protestants were great losers. Five years afterwards, war was
renewed; and the last fortified town, Rochelle, which was left to the Pro-
testants, endured a siege, in which, out of 18,000 inhabitants, no less than
13,000 perished, chiefly by famine. This was a severe blow to the Pro-
* This section, and those following, are added by the writer of the Essay on Popery prefixed
to the present Edition.
3 x
1042 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
testants. The king, however, confirmed anew the edict of Nantes. Many
Protestants saw a storm gathering, and fled the country in 1634. In less
than ten years from this time, both Richelieu and Louis were called to give up
their final account. Notwithstanding the persecutions of this reign, the
Protestants had however greatly increased, and their numbers now amounted
to not less than two millions — thus resembling the palm-tree, which beneath
the pressure revives and flourishes.
Louis XIV., now five years of age, ascended the throne on the demise of
his father, a.d. 1 643. The queen-mother was appointed sole regent during his
minority, and cardinal Mazarine, a creature of Richelieu's, was her prime
minister. The edict of Nantes was again confirmed, and the confirmation
repeated when the king attained his majority. Louis was a tool of the
Jesuits, and soon adopted the resolution of extirpating the Protestants.
He tempted the great with rank and office. He ordered the priests to preach
down the reform faith ; and when unanswerable replies were published against
their arguments, he forbade the Protestants to print. And now com-
menced a series of minor and vexatious persecutions, till at length he
revoked what had been called " The perpetual and irrevocable edict of
Nantes." With this revocation he banished the Protestants from his
kingdom ; though, in so doing, he lost a mass of wealth and industry which
France could never recover. This revocation took place on the 22nd of
October, 1685.
The most cruel proceedings followed : " Now," says Saurin, " we were
banished ; then we were forbidden to quit the kingdom on pain of death.
Here we saw the glorious rewards of some who betrayed their religion ;
and there we beheld others who had the courage to confess it, a haling to
a dungeon, a scaffold, or a galley. Here we saw our persecutors drawing
on a sledge the dead bodies of those who had expired on the rack ; there
we beheld a false friar tormenting a dying man, who was terrified, on the
one hand, with the fear of hell if he should apostatize, and, on the other,
with the fear of leaving his children without bread, if he should continue in
the faith ; yonder they were tearing children from their parents, while the
tender parents were shedding more tears for the loss of their souls than
for that of their bodies or lives." "It is impossible," says Robert Robin-
son, " to meet with parallel instances of cruelty among the heathens in
their persecutions of the primitive Christians. The bloody butchers who
were sent to them under the name of dragoons, invented a thousand tor-
ments to tire their patience, and to force an abjuration from them."
" They cast some," says Claude, " into large fires, and took them out when
they were half-roasted. They hanged others with large ropes under their
armpits, and plunged them several times into wells, till they promised to
renounce their religion. They tied them like animals on the rack ; and
poured wine with a funnel into their mouths, till, being intoxicated, they
declared that they consented to turn Catholics. Some they slashed and
cut with penknives ; others they took by the nose with red-hot tongs,
and led them up and down the rooms till they promised to turn Catholics."
These barbarous deeds made eight hundred thousand Protestants quit the
kingdom, who, besides their talents and industry, contrived to carry off
twenty millions of property. The silk manufactory in Spital Fields origin-
ated in this emigration. The pastor Charnier, who had drawn up the edict
PERSECUTIONS IN THE SOUTH OF FRANCE. 1043
of Nantes, perished in this persecution, and ranks among the number of
illustrious martyrs.
Four hundred thousand Protestants yet remained in France ; and the
merciless Catholics gave them no rest. They compelled them to go to mass
and to receive the communion ; but some refused to swallow the water, for
which crime they were burned alive. Others, who refused to receive the
sacrament when they were dying, were dragged upon hurdles and thrown
into the common sewers. The punishment of death was decreed against
those who met for worship, and against any Protestant minister who should
return from banishment. Claude Brousson, a man of undaunted spirit,
was first an advocate at Toulouse, and having entered the ministry returned
to Nismes. ' Public worship being prohibited, he projected the plan of
meeting to worship God in another way ; and preached to numerous as-
semblies in deserts, in caverns, and during the night. At length he was
betrayed and conveyed to Montpellier, where he was broken alive upon
the wheel, under pretence that he had corresponded with the king's ene-
mies. He died for the cause of Christ in the fifty-first year of his age, and
displayed all the heroism of a primitive martyr.
The Protestants could find shelter nowhere, for they were pursued and
sought out in their strongholds in dens, woods, rocks, and caves ; till at length
they were, for the most part, obliged to disperse and flee the country.
After this time there was no public worship ; a few only met privately by
stealth, and occasionally a religious pastor ventured his life by visiting the
remnant of his oppressed flock.
Louis XIV. died in 1715, and left behind him his example as a model
for tyrants. He had blighted France with a curse from which it has never
recovered, and shed those torrents of tears and blood, in addition to those
caused by the cruelty and perfidy of Charles IX., for which a righteous
Judge has visited that guilty nation in subsequent revolutions, the like of
which has no existence in the pages of history.
Louis XV. was great grandson of the last king, whose arbitrary reign
had extended through seventy-two years. The young king was too much
occupied with his gallantries to care about the consciences of his subjects,
so that he did not directly interfere in matters of religion. But the arbi-
trary laws of his predecessor were left in full operation. During his reign
several Protestant ministers were put to death. A few facts will show the
shocking state of the French Protestants at this time.
Eighteen persons were sentenced to the galleys for their religion, in the
year 1745; among whom were a physician, and two old officers, knights
of St. Louis ; and in the same year, twenty-one meetings of Protestants
for public worship were condemned to fines and costs, to the amount of
41,000 livres.
Fifty-four persons were condemned to prison in 1746, besides eleven
young females, who were taken from their parents, and forced into different
convents. One aged mother was also imprisoned, with others, for not giving
up her sons to vengeance and her daughters to the cloister.
The following horrible cruelties, committed at this time, have also been
attested by the most credible witnesses : — " I accompanied M. de Beau-
vais," said M. de Bouffle'rs, " in a reconnaisance on the shores of Languedoc.
We arrived at Aiguesmortes, at the foot of the Tour de Constance. We
1044 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
found. at the entrance an officious jailer, who, after having conducted us
by some back and winding staircases, opened with a tremendous noise a
frightful door, on which we might have expected to have seen the inscrip-
tion of Dante. No language can describe the effect of a spectacle to
which our eyes were unaccustomed ; it was at once hideous and affecting,
and disgust increased its horror. We saw a large round hall, deprived of
air and light ; fourteen women languished there in misery and in tears.
The commandant could scarcely contain his emotion ; and doubtless, for
the first time, these unhappy beings perceived compassion on a human
countenance. I see them still. At this sudden appearance they fell at
our feet, bathed them with tears, attempted to speak, but found only sighs;
and at length, emboldened by consolations, related to us all at once their
common sufferings. Alas! all their crime was that they were educated in
the religion of Henry IV. The youngest of these martyrs was nearly fifty
years of age — she was only eight when they seized her, as she was going
to the sermon with her mother, and her punishment had not yet terminated."
" I have also seen this Tour de Constance," says Monsieur Boissy
d'Anglas, addressing his children. " It must excite in you a double interest,
since the ancestor of your mother, accused of having attended preaching,
and being confined there during her pregnancy, gave birth to a daughter,
from whom you are descended. I declare that nothing I have ever seen
was so calculated to insure ineffable remembrance. It was towards the
year 1763; five or six years before the circumstance related by M. de
Boufflers, and so honourable to M. de Beauvais. My mother had brought
me to visit one of our relations, who resided a league from Aiguesmortes ;
she wished to see the unhappy victims of the religion we professed, and
she took me with her. There were more than twenty-five prisoners ; and
the description of their misery by M. de Boufflers is but too exact; only
instead of a simple gaoler, they were under the care of a royal lieutenant,
who alone could open the Tour, and give permission to enter. The prison
was composed of two large round halls, one above another ; the lower
room received light from the upper, by a circular hole about six feet in
diameter, and the upper from a similar hole, made in the terrace which
formed the roof. The fire was lighted in the centre ; the smoke could
only escape through openings, by which air and light, and unhappily with
them rain and wind, were admitted. I saw the prisoner who had been
shut up from the time she was eight years old. Thirty-two years she had
been there when I saw her, and she had been there thirty-eight when she
was liberated. Her mother died in her arms some time after their captivity.
Her name was Mademoiselle Durand."
" I dare not attempt," says M. Wilks, *' to sketch merely an outline of
the bitter sufferings, cruel tortures, and glorious deaths which compose the
annals of this period. M. Desubas, an excellent and zealous minister,
twenty-six years of age, was arrested December 11, 1745, at D'Aggrene,
and the next day ^lieutenant and thirty men conducted him to Vernoux.
Some Protestant peasants, informed of the seizure of their minister, as-
sembled on the route, without arms, to implore his liberation ; the only
answer was a discharge of musketry — six were killed ^ and four were made
prisoners Arrived at Vernoux, the tidings spread, and the poor people,
alarmed for the life of their pastor, collected in crowds. Old men, women,
PERSECUTIONS IN THE SOUTH OF FRANCE. 1045
and children, united in tears and intreaties for their beloved M. Desubas.
Two of the Catholic bourgeois gave them some hope of success, but it
was only the more effectually to prepare their destruction. The escort
and the Catholics fired from the windows on a defenceless multitude,
amounting to 2000 persons. Two hundred Protestants were wounded,
the greater part of them mortally, and thirty-six were killed.
The cruel martyrdom of the aged John Calas, whose fate is recorded
on page 252 of this work, occurred in the latter part of this reign.
From the time of the death of Calas, to whose memory justice was after-
wards done, the Protestants of France experienced some mitigation of
their sufferings, and were generally allowed to worship God publicly and
in peace.
Louis XV. died after a reign of fifty-nine years, and was succeeded by
his grandson in 1774.
Louis XVI. was the best of the Bourbon race ; but during the early part
of his reign, the Protestants suffered much under the intolerant laws which
encouraged their persecutors. Among other oppressions the sufferers were
called to endure, was the non-recognition of the Protestant marriages,
and the consequent illegitimacy pronounced against the children, who were
too often deprived of their rights by unjust and avaricious Catholics. At
length, in 1787, an edict restored the Protestants to the enjoyment of their
civil rights; but some opposition was made to it in parliament; and one
enthusiastic papist, presenting a crucifix, peremptorily inquired if they were
going to crucify the Son of God afresh ? There were, however, political
and pecuniary motives connected with the granting of these favours; and,
notwithstanding this edict, partial persecutions still existed.
The national assembly in 1789 decreed, " that no man should be dis-
turbed in his religious opinions, nor troubled in the exercise of his religion;"
and during the existence of the republic, and the subsequent reign of
Napoleon, this served as a basis for the laws respecting liberty of worship.
In 1790, a member, however, showed the cloven foot of the persecuting
Catholic, by proposing that the Catholic, Apostolic, and Roman religion
should be the only public and authorized worship ; but his proposal was lost
Still, at this period, liberty of worship was not fully enjoyed. Infidelity
reigned among the ruling authorities, and the refractory priests were sub-
jected to severities which they had themselves before inflicted on the Pro-
testants. Popery was popery still — the same sanguinary superstition as
it ever had been. The following brief narrative will confirm the truth of
the remark : —
In 1815, M. Maigre, a venerable octogenarian and large silk manufacturer
at Nismes, fled from his house in a carriage, with his son, his son's wife,
two children, and two female servants. They were arrested on the road
by a patrol, to whom M. Maigre showed a regular passport. Two
postilions returning from Beaucaire, cried to the patrol, " Why do you
suffer these people to pass — they are Protestants ? " At this moment
M. Maigre discovered in the crowd an old servant: "Andre," said he,
" do you not know me? are you not interested for me ?" " Ah, that was
formerly," said the ingrate ; "it is very different now;" and immediately
aimed a terrible blow at his old master. A postilion leaped from his horse,
and threw a rope round the neck of his youngest daughter, intending to
1046 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
strangle her; but one of the servants flew to her rescue, and drew on
herself the fury of the monster, who, throwing the instrument of his cruelty
round her, endeavoured to hang her to a tree : fortunately, the cord was
too short. The infuriated mob then determined to convey their prisoners
to Remoulins. They arrived at the village of La Foux, overwhelmed with
menaces and imprecations ; and seeing a capuchin, they solicited his pro-
tection. He acknowledged that he knew them, but refused to intercede
for them, and shut himself up in the first house. They were forced into
the bark in which they were to cross to Remoulins, while the people on
the shore cried, " Throw them into the water — drown them !" The family
then embraced each other, exclaiming in agony, " We are all lost !" A
man seized the aged father, and threw him into the stream ; he tried to
swim to the bank, but was struck by a stone, and his strength failing he
was drowned. His son, more vigorous, made more resistance ; with one
hand he seized a peasant, with the other he grasped the mast. To secure
him, they promised him his life ; but at the moment he quitted his hold,
they threw him overboard. He swam to the shore, where a gentleman ran
to his assistance, and tried to staunch the blood which was flowing fast
from his wounds. A man approached, and pointed a fusil. " Spare this
good man," said his protector ; " he is not guilty of any crime : in saving
his life, you will render an important service to your country." " Yes,"
said M. Maigre, " we have injured no one. It is true we differ in our reli-
gious opinions ; but should this lead you to take my life ? Ask this gentle-
man — he knows me well." M. Sere then assured the murderers that the
family was generally respected. " You are yourself one of the same kind,"
said a peasant. " No, I am a Roman Catholic; and to prove my assertion,
here is my prayer-book, and a cross which belongs to my daughter.*'
" You shall, however, both march to prison," said the peasants. " Alas!* 4
cried M. Maigre, seizing the hand of his friend, " to what danger has your
generosity exposed you !" On the road, a man aimed twice at M. Maigre
with a musket, saying, " Stand away, let me kill him;" while M. Sere
threw himself on the musket, knelt at their feet, and kissed the hands of
the murderer, earnestly imploring the life of the unfortunate. " Retire,"
said the savage, " unless you wish to share the same fate." A woman,
alarmed at the danger to which the intrepid courage of Sere had exposed
himself, drew him away. M. Maigre was assassinated, and thrown into
a stream which flowed by the village. A reaper drew his body from the
water with his scythe, took his money, his snuff-box, and his watch, and
cast the corpse again into the river. The wife and daughters had taken
refuge in an inn } the assassins pursued them with the intention of immo-
lating the whole family ; and had not the innkeeper assured them that the
ladies had escaped into the country, and the marechaussee almost imme-
diately appeared, they would inevitably have been sacrificed by the
murderers of their husband and brother.
When Bonaparte was first consul, he concluded a concordat with the
pope, in which he well secured the Protestants ; a circumstance that gave
great dissatisfaction to the Roman Catholics, who tried in vain to induce
him to make some alterations in their favour. The condition of the
Protestants was greatly improved during the elevation of Napoleon, a
circumstance which could not fail to attach them to his dynasty.
PERSECUTIONS IN THE SOUTH OF FRANCE. 1047
Louis XVIII., having been placed on the throne by the forces of the allied
powers, was soon surrounded by interested priests, and efforts were made
to restore to the Catholics paramount influence. But suddenly Napoleon
boldly invaded France with his miniature army, and resumed his seat on
the throne. His hundred days' reign was terminated by the battle of
Waterloo, a. d. 1815.
Louis XVIII. returned. The Catholics now felt themselves secure in the
prospect of renewed authority, and the Protestants dreaded that their
vengeance, which had been dammed up for so long a time, would now
burst forth like a mountain-torrent. During the hundred days they had not
hesitated to pronounce their threats, and to intimate that if Louis returned
they would denounce the Protestants as Bonapartists. The time of ven-
geance arrived; and in the month of July, 1815, about four hundred Pro-
testants were inhumanly murdered in the department of the Garde. These
persecutions were stubbornly denied by the Roman Catholics, both at home
and abroad; and when they were obliged to admit the facts, they contra-
dicted the causes, and as usual, in all cases of popish persecution, attributed
them to political differences. There were great numbers of Bonapartists
among the population of Nismes, but not one of them suffered ; while even
royalists were said to have perished among the Protestants. Prior to
the return of Napoleon, the esplanade or public walk at Nismes resounded
with songs, in which men, women, and children repeated that they would
" wash their hands in the blood of Protestants : that with their liver and
lights they would make a mess to feed upon, and that they would make
black puddings of the blood of Calvin s children !" The most worthless
vagabonds were employed to sing these songs, and were paid, according to
their age and services, from twopence halfpenny to fifteen pence each day.
Protestants were not safe from cruel assaults, if found in a spot where
they could be secretly committed ; and when the injured parties called for
justice, the magistrates disregarded their appeals. The declamations of
the Catholics became more bold : " We will no longer suffer amongst us
these villains, these monsters of Protestants ; we must rid ourselves of
them ; annihilate even the last of them." The Protestants were insulted
every instant ; and Catholics were accustomed to soap cords publicly, in
their presence, with which they declared they would tie them to the
gallows prepared for their execution. M. de Vallongne, afterwards mayor
of Nismes, a man of rank, education, and family, was heard to say that
a second St. Bartholomew was necessary. The Duke D'Angouleme
visited Nismes. Complaints were made to him, and all the facts above
related were laid before him ; but he refused to believe them, or to make
any inquiry, but arrested twelve of the principal Protestants accused by
the Catholics of being Bonapartists. Among the arrested was the worthy
M. Vincens St. Laurence, counseller of the prefecture. When he was led
to the state prison amidst the sanguinary vociferations of the populace,
M. Boyer Brun, advocate-secretary to the prince, said, on seeing him pass,
" At last we shall overcome those villains of Protestants !" The army
marched to encounter Napoleon on his return, but the Catholics threatened
that when they returned they would massacre every Protestant. When
Bonaparte resumed his power, the Protestants, so far from retaliating, showed
that degree of kindness to their enemies that made them ashamed ; but the
1048 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
return of the Bourbons to power was the signal for renewing the cruel
persecutions. The Protestants suffered imprisonment under false accusa-
tions ; their vineyards were spoiled, their houses plundered, their places of
worship burned ; they experienced the most cruel insults and assaults, and
large numbers suffered death — some under the most aggravated forms.
The perpetrators of these crimes escaped punishment. One barbarian,
more cruel than the rest, boasted that with his own hands he had killed
forty Protestants, and should not be satisfied till he had killed fifty ! This
bloodthirsty wretch, originally a street-sweeper, whose name was Trestaillon,
alias Toilajon, alias Lafont, died only a short time since, when his zeal was
not forgotten, for he was buried by the priests with considerable splendour.
He had received a commission in the army. About ten thousand, who saw
the approach of the storm, fled to the mountains of Cevennes to avoid the
threatening danger ; but the prefect persuaded the principal persons to
return, and great numbers of these were assassinated.
This chapter might be extended to a volume, and the number of the victims,
in various ways, be greatly augmented ; but it is necessary to study brevity.
A few well-attested facts shall conclude the account of the persecutions of
the French Protestants in 1815.
Two parties glutted their savage appetites on the farm of Madame
Frat. The first, after eating, drinking, breaking the furniture, and stealing
what they thought proper, took leave by announcing the arrival of their
comrades, " compared with whom," they said, " they should be thought
merciful." Their predictions were fulfilled. Three men and an old woman
were left on the premises : at the sight of the second company, two of the
men fled. The banditti entered the kitchen, seized the old woman, and
demanded, " Are you a Catholic?" " Yes." " Repeat, then, your Pater
and Ave." Terrified by the recollection of the past and the apprehension
of the future, she hesitated, and was instantly knocked down with a
musket. On recovering her senses, she took an opportunity to leave the
house; and in going out she met Ladet, a servant of the farm, who was
bringing in a salad, which the depredators had ordered him to cut as they
entered. She entreated him to fly ; but the good man, confident in his
age and innocence, refused to abandon the property of his employers, and
for the last time approached the house of his mistress. " Are you a Pro-
testant ?" they exclaimed. " I am," he replied; and immediately a
musket was presented at him, and he fell wounded, but not dead. To
consummate their work, the monsters lighted a fire with straw and boards
threw their yet living victim into the flames, and suffered him to expire in
the most dreadful agonies. They left the remains not wholly consumed ;
part of which were devoured by the dogs. The prefect of the Garde, in
order to cover the crime, declared again and again that the man was a
Catholic; but the Protestant pastors, MM. Juillerat and Rabaut, publicly
contradicted the apologist, and declared that the murdered man and all
his family were Protestants. The unfortunate victim was in his sixty-third
year, and left a widow and four children dependent on the bounty of his
Protestant brethren. This and the subsequent barbarities were practised
chiefly about Nismes.
An old unmarried man aged sixty, named Lafond, lived in a very retired
manner; he had neither the inclination nor the ability to engage in political
PERSECUTIONS IN THE SOUTH OF FRANCE. 1049
plots or discussions. His only crime was that lie professed the reformed
religion. He was singled out as one of the first victims. Trestaillon,
accompanied by other ruffians, went to his house, forced open the street
door, and went up to his apartment, which was on an upper Hoor. Regard-
less of his cries and entreaties, they dragged him by his white locks to the
landing-place, and precipitated him from the top of the balustrade. They
thought he was dead, and left him ; but returning soon after, they found
him only stunned, and much wounded : they brought him to his door, and
there, amidst the acclamations of the populace, literally cut him into pieces
with axes and broadswords.
A Protestant in the national guard, one night being on piquet with
Catholics, who were going to relieve a post stationed at one of the gates,
descried by the light of the moon two female bodies, with their faces
turned towards the ground. When they were turned up, the miserable
man recognised his wife and daughter, who had been murdered as they
returned from the country. The cries of agony he raised on the discovery
of his misfortune irritated the barbarians who accompanied him. They
levelled their muskets, saying it was a pity he should be separated from
those he so much loved, fired, and he fell on the dead bodies. He, however,
lingered till the next morning, when he told his distressing tale and expired.
One Bigot, a carter, was attacked in his house, where he defended
himself, with the assistance of his wife and sister-in-law. They were com-
pelled to yield to the assailants, who, in spite of their cries, tears, and
entreaties, cut the throat of Bigot, and left him to bleed to death. His
wife and sister, whom they forced to be present at the horrid scene, were
afterwards killed on his body with axes.
An old man, aged eighty, was farmer on the estate of M. Chambeau :
about thirty banditti went to his house, and after they had levied a con-
tribution, asked him if he was not a Protestant. On his answering " Yes,"
they ordered him to kneel down, and shot him; they then lighted up a
large fire, and burnt his body to ashes !
In 1801, M. Saussine retired from the army, (which he* had entered in
1777,) with the rank of captain, and his two sons had since fallen on the
field of battle. He was sixty-five years of age, infirm and deaf; and
living in peace and privacy. It was enough that he was a Protestant.
At six o'clock in the morning he was found at his residence on the road
to Uzes, in the department of the Garde, and killed on the spot. Tru-
phemy drove the widow from her home, and Trestaillon took possession
of it as a dwelling for his sister. Madame Saussine died soon after of
grief and persecution.
At Nismes, as in all France, the inhabitants wash their clothes either
at the fountains or on the banks of streams. There is a large basin near
the fountain, where every day great numbers of women may be seen
kneeling at the edge of the water, and beating the linen with heavy pieces
of wood in the shape of battledoors. This spot became the scene of the
most cruel and indecent practices. The Catholics vented their fury on
the wives, widows, and daughters of Protestants, by a newly-invented
punishment. They turned their lower garments over their heads, and so
fastened them as to favour their shameful exposure, and their subjection
to chastisement ; and nails being placed in the wood of the battoirs in the
1050 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
form of fleurs-de-lis, they beat them till the blood streamed from their
bodies, and their screams rent the air. The fete of the Assumption, pro-
fessedly designed by the Catholics to recall the most exalted purity and
the Divine benevolence, was observed by those of Nismes, by the most
revolting violation of female modesty, and by brutal gratifications at which
even savages might blush. Often was death demanded as a commutation
of this ignominious punishment, but death was refused with malignant
joy ; murder was to perfect, and not prevent, the obscene and cruel sport.
To carry their outrage to the highest degree, they assailed in this manner
several who were in a state of pregnancy !
Madame Rath, when near her confinement, was attacked by about
sixty of the purest Catholics armed with knotted cords, battoirs, and
stones. It was with difficulty that she escaped instant death, and only
by extraordinary skill that her life was preserved in premature childbirth.
Her babe just breathed and expired. Her mother had already lost an
eye from the discharge of a pistol fired at her by Trestaillon. The loss
of her child, the distressing situation of her mother, and her own agony and
shame, were the punishments inflicted on her for being guilty of Calvinism !
Madame Gautiere and Madame Domerque, in a similar critical period,
were treated with similar indignity. Madame Reboul died in a few days
of the injuries she had received. The daughter of Benouette was beaten
and torn with nails, by a young man named Merle, assisted by an inhuman
rabble of both sexes. One of the daughters of Bigonette, who was thrown
into a well and drowned, died of the ill-treatment she experienced : one
orphan sister, in terror, had become a Catholic ; but the other, although
at the risk of her life, refused to abandon her religion. A female servant
was stripped of all her clothes, and left on the public road, covered with
blood, and exposed to the jests of a degraded populace : a soldier took
off his great coat, threw it on her, and conducted her to the town.
But it is time to stop, though the list might be greatly enlarged. Yet,
notwithstanding the authenticated accounts of numerous victims of popish
brutality, the half has not been told. For the scandalous nature of these
outrages prevented many of the sufferers from making them public, and
especially from relating the most aggravating circumstances. The practice
continued for several months. Where were the authorities ? What
punishment was inflicted on the criminals ? The agents of the government
made light of the transactions, and deceived public opinion ; a force was
at the command of the authorities, but they never honestly employed it.
A party had resolved, if possible, to extirpate the Protestants in this their
principal seat.
Allured by specious proclamations, many who had fled returned, but only
to be slaughtered ; and many Protestant fathers thus fell by the hands of
the Catholic assassins while in the bosom of their families. The most
horrible cruelties were committed in a wholesale manner; and when any of
the murderers were taken, they were soon again set at liberty. The crimi-
nals were none of them strangers, neither were they few, but there was no
justice for the unfortunate Protestants. A much-esteemed Protestant
ex-mayor was shot in the streets of Ners. Three Protestant friends and
companions of the deceased were accused of the crime. They were taken
before the authorities, and instantly ordered to be shot.
PERSECUTIONS IN THE SOUTH OF FRANCE. 1051
The king and his ministers were not ignorant of what was passing.
Memorials were forwarded to them by stealth. From one of these the
following is an extraet : " Those men, Sire, who are described as your
enemies, perish without a struggle, that they may not appear to disobey
your authority. Protestant princes surround them, and they have not
preferred a complaint, nor solicited their mediation. Are such men
rebels ? [It was under shelter of this charge that the criminals pursued
their savage persecutions.] But, Sire, patience may be exhausted, and it
may be difficult to restrain by reason the vengeance of a people too cruelly
persecuted. Anticipate, Sire, this dire alternative; reorganize the national
guard ; dissolve the bands assembled in defiance of your authority ; and
remove from their administrative functions those who have caused or
suffered our blood to flow. But, if reserved for continued persecution,
at least let our fate be distinctly announced. Ministers of Louis XVIII.,
would you be more inexorable than Louis XIV., against whom Europe
uttered the cry of execration ? If so, satisfy the hatred of our enemies,
but give us time to assemble our dispersed families, to dispose of the
property we have acquired in enriching the country still so dear to our
hearts. We will seek again a refuge on foreign shores ; we will once more
implore the compassion of those hospitable nations in which our forefathers
found an asylum, where their names are still held in honour, and their
memories are revered." " If," said another memorial, " the Protestants
are authorized to profess the principles which the king has proclaimed,
why should they be tormented, decimated, treated as wild beasts? Why
should they not return to their homes, and at least resume their labours,
and the ruins of their dilapidated shops ? Why should they not be per-
mitted the exercise of their religious worship, more necessary to their
comfort than eve*, but suspended by the dispersion of both the pastors
and the flocks ?"
While the Protestants were thus suffering in despair, the Catholics, the
constituted authorities, and their friends, were not only free from anxiety,
but surrounded with splendid prosperity, and distinguished by festivities
and mirth ; while the midnight sky was illuminated with the flames which
were seen in all directions, blazing and ascending from the country houses
of the Protestants.
Sham proclamations were issued, expressing a sort of regret at these
proceedings ; while the assassins and Catholics in general were allowed to
retain their arms, but the Protestants were left without any to protect
themselves.
Among other acts of fanaticism, the persecutors proceeded to tear infants
from their mothers, even when just put to the breast, that they might be
baptized in the Catholic church; and they endeavoured to terrify the
women, by declaring that if their children lived unbaptized Catholics,
they would be cursed, and if they died, they would be buried like heretic
dogs. Such was popery in France in the years 1815 and 1816!
The Protestants had to flee from their homes, or barricade their houses
and secrete their property. Yet great numbers were imprisoned, ill-treated,
and cruelly butchered ; while some of the murderers publicly declared how
many Protestants they would kill for their share, and fixed on their next
martyrs. Country houses, warehouses, shops, town dwellings, vineyards,
1052 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
property of every kind was involved in ruin, and robbery and pillage
everywhere added to murder. All worship was suspended, pastors fled,
or, if they remained, were exposed to prison and death, and the Protestant
temples were sacked by the Catholic multitude. The re-restoration of
Louis XVIII. was followed by the like persecutions ; and the tribunals
before which the causes of the Protestants were tried, condemned
Protestants to death, who were known to be innocent of crime, but
acquitted the wretches who were the notorious ringleaders of the Catholic
mobs. These were Trestaillons, alias Lafont, etc., Quatretaillons or
Graffan, and Truphemy. Some of these murderers demanded the Pro-
testants shut up in prison, marched them out in pairs, and obliging them
to kneel down on the ashes of their yet burning property, shot them in
slow succession. These were the men that found advocates among the
highest ranks in society, and, which was not at all surprising, among the
Catholic clergy, who became their warm intercessors !
At length the Protestant temples which had been shut up for several
months were ordered to be re-opened, under the auspices of the Due D'An-
gouleme, whose attachment to popery none could dispute ; and urged by
General Lagarde, who had promised the prince to see his desires executed,
the consistory ventured to obey. But fearing a tumult, the greatest
caution and silence were used, and private information only was given to
the worshippers.
M. Juillerat Chasseur was appointed to perform a service at Nismes.
On his way, he heard these exclamations and remarks from the Catholics :
" What ! have they still the audacity to dare to pray to God ?" " This is
the moment to give them the last blow." " Yes, and neither women nor
children must be spared." " Ah," said one, " they dare to come again ;
I will go and get my musket, and ten for my share ! " When the worship-
pers arrived, they found persons in possession of the adjacent streets, and
the steps of the church, who vowed that the worship should not be per-
formed ; and expressed their rage in the most furious language, crying,
"Down with the Protestants!" "Kill the Protestants!" The service
began. In a few moments a rush of persons into the church interrupted
the minister, and shouts were raised of " Vive le Roi !" " Death, death
to the Protestants ! kill, kill !" The gendarmes forced out the fanatics.
The noise was increased outside. The house of God resounded with
groans and shrieks. The pastors were inaudible. They attempted in
vain to sing the forty-second Psalm. Madame Juillerat, the excellent
wife of the preacher, stood at the foot of the pulpit with her infant
daughter in her arms, and expected instant death. " We shall be slain,"
said she, " at the altar of our God, the victims of a sacred duty, and
heaven will open to receive us and our unhappy brethren." She blessed
the Redeemer, and waited the approach of the expected murderers. At
length a detachment of soldiers arrived, and under their wing the assembly
escaped.. The Catholics were enraged ; for too much ardour had deranged
their plan. It was intended to suffer the worship to terminate, and then
to rush with arms on the unsuspecting Protestants as they left the temple,
and massacre them all. The aged pastor, Olivier Desmond, was reported
in England to have been killed ; and when it was found that he was not,
the Catholic periodicals of the day impudently denied the whole affair,
PERSECUTIONS IN THE SOUTH OF FRANCE. 1053
ana' maligned those who had raised a naturally exaggerated report. But
the fact was, that he was saved only by the greatest resolution. The
venerable man was actually surrounded by murderers ; they put their
fists in his face, and cried, " Kill the chief of brigands!" His life was only
preserved by the firmness of some officers, among whom was his own son,
an officer in the royal troops of the line. They made a bulwark round
him with their bodies, and amidst their naked sabres conducted him to
his home. M. Juillerat, with his wife and child, was pursued and assailed
with stones, and his mother received a severe and dangerous blow on the
head. Several females were cruelly treated, and died of their injuries ; and
the number of Protestants more or less ill-treated, amounted to between
seventy and eighty.
General Lagarde was informed of these outrages. He instantly
resolved to disperse the assailants. For this purpose, he mounted his
horse, and entered one of the streets, where a mob had assembled. A
villain seized his bridle, another presented the muzzle of a pistol close to
his body, and asked in a vociferating tone, " Wretch ! you make me
retire?" He immediately fired; and perceiving that the general retained
his seat, he added, " Ah ! brigand, I have not killed you." The murderer
was Louis Boissin, a serjeant in the company of the national guards, com-
manded by M. Vidal. Boissin was known to everybody, but no one
endeavoured to arrest him, and he effected his escape without difficulty.
As soon as the general found himself wounded, he gave orders to the
commander of the gendarmerie to protect the Protestants, and set off in
a gallop to his hotel. Immediately on his arrival, he fainted. On re-
covering from the swoon, he prevented the surgeon from examining his
wound till he had written a letter to the government, that, in case of his
death, it might be known from what quarter the blow had been aimed,
and that none might dare to accuse the Protestants of the crime from
which he suffered.
In the evening the Catholics again visited the temple, broke open the
doors, robbed the poor-box, rent the ministers' robes in pieces, tore the
books into fragments, stripped and defiled the pulpit by numberless inde-
cencies, ransacked the closets, and would have destroyed the records, but
were at that time providentially prevented.
After this, more victims were added to the number of the murdered.
Upwards of six hundred Protestants were suffered to remain in the prisons
of Nismes, detained without a warrant, and unable to procure trial or
liberation. Every day the fanatics sent emissaries to the dungeons to en-
deavour to obtain, by promises or threats, abjurations of faith, and conver-
sions to the Apostolic, Catholic, and Roman religion. The families of the
imprisoned Protestants were necessarily insulted and tormented with simi-
lar importunities. The pastors were either absent or unable to strengthen
the sufferers by their counsel and their prayers ; the public ordinances of
their religion had been long denied ; fraternal visits were difficult, and often
impossible ; charitable relief could not be administered ; and unfortunate
individuals, who had neither work nor bread, were urged and invited to
embrace a religion rendered hateful by their own persecution, and the
imprisonment and murder of their dearest relations. That in such cir-
cumstances some should profess a change they felt not is scarcely sur-
1054 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
prising, when it is remembered what multitudes under the dragonades of
Louis XIV. were received into the bosom of the Catholic church as sound
converts, who were afterwards condemned and murdered as heretics re-
lapsed. But to the honour of the persecuted, and to the glory of God,
who strengthens the infirmity of his creatures in the hour of trial, the
Protestants had hitherto generally preferred insult, outrage, spoliation,
imprisonment, and death, to all the allurements connected with the adop-
tion, even feigned, of a religion which their consciences disavowed. But
now the system of forced conversions made regular and fearful progress ;
and these were the subjects of boasting and triumph among the Catholics.
The Protestants were some time before they could reassemble for worship ;
and when they did it was under the protection of a strong guard, and after
they had agreed to give up their places of worship, which were unjustly
claimed by the Catholics, in lieu of which new places were to be erected.
During these persecutions the interference of foreign aid was never
sought. But the editor of these pages, having received documents relative
to this persecution, ventured to publish them to the world under the title
of" Statements of Persecutions of the Protestants in the South of France."
This pamphlet, amidst the clashing sentiments of the times, brought some
furious attacks upon the author. For the statements were denied by high
authority, because they inevitably reflected on the Bourbon dynasty.
They, however, contained authentic documents sufficient to excite the at-
tention of the Corporation of London, the Deputies of the Three Denomi-
nations, the three denominations of dissenting ministers themselves, and
the Society for the Protection of Religious Liberty. Large extracts from
the pamphlet were read at Guildhall ; and a circular published by " The
Protestant Society" stated, that " A pamphlet prepared by the Rev. I.
Cobbin attracted the particular attention of the committee." These
societies all adopted resolutions founded on the statements. But the dis-
senting ministry did more; and as contradictory statements were abroad,
they deputized the Rev. Clement Perrot, of Guernsey, to visit the depart-
ment of the Garde, and ascertain facts more correctly. He did so with
some difficulty and danger; and on his return published his " Report of
the Persecution of the French Protestants," from which it appeared that
the half had not been told. The agents of France were enraged at this
bold publication of the truth. " The interference of the police," says
Mr. Perrot, "I experienced throughout my journey; and even since I
have happily arrived in my native land, I have the most authentic proofs
that the sub-prefect of St. Maloes, M. Petit Thouars, has written to the
inspector of aliens at Jersey, to make inquiries respecting my journey, and
has also declared his determination to arrest me if I came to that port to
embark for Guernsey." But the statements and Report produced their
desired effect, and the covert persecutors were too much exposed and
ashamed to pursue their course. Sir Samuel Romilly made a stir on the
subject in the British parliament, and entered accurately into the whole
history of the persecutions, vindicating the character of the Protestants
as peaceable subjects, and exposing the malice and subtlety of their
enemies. The measure towards redress was opposed by Lord Castlereagh,
then in power, and who had recently returned from a long residence in
the court of France.
PERSECUTIONS IN THE SOUTH OF FRANCE. 1055
The storm did not now rage as before; but the prisons remained filled
with Protestants, an impartial judge was displaced, and more victims were
immolated under the semblance of justice, though the witnesses against them
contradicted each other. The unfortunate victims of perjury were con-
demned to imprisonment — the pillory — branding with hot irons — the
galleys for limited terms or for life, and some to death.
In July, 1816, two months after the efforts of sir Samuel Romilly in be-
half of the Protestants, three of their number were doomed to perpetual
labour, and five to be executed. The executions took place at Nismes
and at Arpaillaigues, in the month of September. The unhappy Protes-
tants, accompanied by two pastors, ascended the scaffold with a confidence
which the Catholics attributed to arrogance, but which religion only could
inspire. Dame Verdus was the first ; and she mounted the guillotine
singing, in the words of the twenty-fifth Psalm, " Unto thee, O Lord, do
I lift up my soul. O my God, I trust in thee, let me not be ashamed ;
let not mine enemies triumph over me," etc. Reboul died, recommend-
ing his family to God, and imploring for himself his grace and mercy.
Bresson said, "Though young, I do not regret life; I leave the world
with resignation, because I am confident that the God with whom my
religion has made me acquainted, will be more merciful and more just
than those who have condemned me to this shameful death : but I feel for
my aged father, who depended on me, and has no one left for his support."
The widow Boucoiran, before being taken to the place of execution,
offered up an affecting prayer with her friends, and sang the fifty-first
Psalm. As she and two pastors who attended her passed the town of
Uzes, she caught a view of the steeple of the Protestant church, and ex-
claimed, " Blessed temple, where I loved so much to worship, I shall never
see you more ; but I shall go to one still more glorious in heaven, and
angels will conduct me there." When the vehicle arrived at the village of
Arpaillaigues, " There," said she, " I am about to die, before my own house :
my children are perhaps there concealed ; and I must leave the world with-
out giving and receiving one embrace. Ah! this is indeed, painful to a
mother's heart; but the will of the Lord be done." Looking around, she
continued, " Everything in nature dies — trees, flowers, all perish. We
are like flowers ; why should not I die also ? But when I am no more,
watch over my children ; let them, I beseech you, be well instructed in
religion, that they may find it support them, as it has supported me, and
as it now supports me in my last trial. Make them learn the catechism
thoroughly, and let them be taught trades, that they may gain an honest
livelihood, and be placed above the temptation of abandoning their religion."
When the pastor Roux had addressed the condemned and prayed, he
raised the widow and conducted her on to the scaffold, which she ascended
with an energy and fortitude altogether above her sex. Her resignation ;
the prayers which she offered, with an unaltered tone, for her own salva-
tion ; the forgiveness of her enemies, which she repeatedly pronounced,
astonished and affected many of the spectators. Till the moment that the
head was severed from her body, the voice of prayer was heard to issue
from her lips. Her pastor prayed also, beside her, till she had passed
into an eternal world ; and then, covered with her blood, he prayed for
her companion, Boisson, a venerable man of seventy-eight years of age,
1016 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
who also ascended with a firm step, pardoned his persecutors, implored
the grace of God, and resigned himself to death with a calm and dignified
confidence, of which the multitude had never beheld an example. The
Catholics exulted in the execution of the unfortunate victims, and even
longed for the gratification of insulting their lifeless remains, which were
deposited in two holes prepared for them the night before.
The widow Boucorian left four orphan children ; the eldest, a girl of
thirteen years of age, was thrown into prison, charged with a capital crime,
and brought before the court of assizes. While in prison she was separated
from her mother, and exposed to numerous inducements to renounce the
Protestant religion, and embrace the Catholic faith.
In 1820, the assasination of the Due de Berri at Paris, by Louvel,
furnished a splendid occasion, after a short interval of rest, for the perse-
cutors to resume their sanguinary work. Trestaillons, who had fled lest
he should at length be made to answer for his crimes, reappeared at
Nismes triumphant. " He is come to revenge the death of the prince on
the Protestants!" "Why did not we make an end of the race in 1815?"
" Let us murder these wretches ; their blood will produce royalists."
Such was the declamatory language of the persecutors. The accusation
was so obviously false, that the government at Paris more decidedly inter-
fered, and prevented a renewal of carnage.
At this critical period, Providence raised up an advocate for the Pro-
testants in the person of M. Madier of Montjau, a Catholic, a magistrate,
and a royalist. In a petition to the Chamber of Deputies, he revealed all
the facts of the long and inconceivable persecution. " He exposed the
brutality of the populace, the intrigues of their leaders, the guilt of the
magistrates, the scandal of the tribunals ; asserted the innocence and the
virtue of the Protestants ; demanded the destruction of the secret armed
force, and the punishment of the guilty." The statements of M. Madier
could not be controverted. He had witnessed every transaction, and his
reputation was irreproachable. Several deputies eloquently pleaded the
cause of the Protestants. France could not but pronounce a verdict in
favour of the persecuted.
The widows, orphans, and relations of the murdered Protestants appealed
for justice on the guilty. Quatretaillons was accused before the tribunals,
but noble Catholics and eminent royalists withdrew him from the danger
of the storm, and protected him! M. Madier was charged with impro-
priety of conduct, and summoned before the court of cassation. His crime
was revealing the dangerous circumstances of the Protestants. The public
prosecutor demanded the erasure of his name from the list of magistrates,
but he was only censured for telling the truth.
1057
SECTION VI.
DESTRUCTION OF THE SPANISH INQUISITION AT MADRID— INSTRUMENTS
OF TORTURE DISCOVERED— LIBERATION OF THE PRISONERS.
In 1809, Colonel Lehmanowsky was attached to that part of Napoleon's
army stationed at Madrid ; and while in that city, the Colonel used
to express his opinions freely among the people, respecting the priests and
Jesuits of the Inquisition. It had been decreed by the French emperor
that the Inquisition and monasteries should be suppressed, but the decree
was not executed. Months had passed away, and the prisons of the In-
quisition had not been opened. One night, about twelve o'clock, as the
Colonel was walking along one of the streets of Madrid, two armed men
sprang upon him from an alley, and made a furious attack. He instantly
drew his sword, put himself in a posture of defence, and, while struggling
with them, he saw at a distance the lights of the patroles — French
soldiers mounted, who carried lanterns, and rode through the streets of
the city at all hours of the night, to preserve order. He called to them
in French, and, as they hastened to his assistance, the assailants took to
their heels, and escaped — not, however, before he saw by their dress that
they belonged to the guards of the Inquisition. He went immediately to
Marshal Soult, then governor of Madrid, told him what had taken place,
and reminded him of the decree to suppress the institution. Marshal Soult
replied that he might go and destroy it. The Colonel having told him that
his regiment — the 9th of the Polish Lancers — was not sufficient for such a
service, without the aid of two additional regiments, the troops required
were granted : one of these regiments was the 17th, under the command of
Colonel de Lile, subsequently pastor of an evangelical church in Marseilles.
The troops marched to fulfil their destined object, the Inquisition being
about five miles from the city. It was surrounded by a wall of great
strength, and defended by a company of soldiers.
When they arrived at the walls, the Colonel addressed one of the senti-
nels, and summoned the holy fathers to surrender to the imperial army, and
open the gates of the Inquisition. The sentinel who was standing on the
wall appeared to enter into conversation for a moment with some one
within, at the close of which he presented his musket, and shot one of the
Colonel's men. This was a signal of attack, and he ordered his troops to
fire upon those that appeared on the walls. It was soon obvious that it
was an unequal warfare. The walls of the Inquisition were covered with
the soldiers of the holy office ; there was also a breastwork upon the walls,
behind which they partially exposed themselves as they discharged their
muskets. The French troops were in the open plain, and exposed to a
destructive fire. They had no cannon, nor could they scale the walls ; and
the gates successfully resisted all attempts at forcing them. The Colonel
could not retire, and send for cannon to break through the walls, without
giving them time to lay a train for blowing up the French troops. He
saw, therefore, that it was necessary to change the mode of attack, and
3 Y
1058 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
directed that some trees should be cut down and trimmed, to be used as
battering-rams. Two of these were taken up by detachments of men, as
numerous as could work to advantage, and brought to bear upon the walls
with all the power that they could exert ; while the troops kept up a fire
to protect them from that poured upon them from the walls. Presently
the walls began to tremble, a breach was made, and the imperial troops
rushed into the Inquisition. Here they met with an incident, to which
nothing but Jesuitical effrontery is equal. The inquisitor-general, followed
by the father-confessors in their priestly robes, all came out of their rooms
as the French were making their way into the interior of the Inquisition ;
and with long faces and their arms crossed over their breasts, their fingers
resting on their shoulders, as though they had been deaf to all the noise of
the attack and defence, and had just learned what was going on, they
addressed themselves in the language of seeming rebuke to their own
soldiers, and asked, " Why do you fight our friends the French?"
Their intention was, doubtless, to make their assailants think that the
resistance was wholly unauthorized by them ; and if they could have suc-
ceeded in making a temporary impression in their favour, they would have
had an opportunity, iri the confusion of the moment, to escape. But their
artifice was too shallow, and did not succeed. Colonel Lehmanowsky
caused them to be placed under guard, and all the soldiers of the Inquisition
to be secured as prisoners. He then proceeded to examine all the rooms
of the stately edifice. He passed from room to room, and found all perfectly
in order. The apartments were richly furnished, with altars and crucifixes
and wax candles in abundance, but no evidence could be discovered of
iniquity being practised there ; there were none of those peculiar features
which might have been expected in an Inquisition. Splendid paintings
adorned the walls. There was a rich and extensive library. Beauty and
splendour appeared everywhere, and the most perfect order on which eyes
ever rested. The architecture, the proportions were perfect. The ceiling
and floors of wood were scoured and highly polished. The marble floors
were arranged with a strict regard to order. There was everything to
please the eye and gratify a cultivated taste ; but where were those horrid
instruments of torture which were reported to be there, and where those
dungeons in which human beings were said to be buried alive? The search
seemed to be in vain. The holy fathers assured the Colonel that they had
been belied, and that he had seen all. The commanding officer began to
think that this Inquisition was different from others of which he had heard,
and was inclined to give up the search. But Colonel de Lile was of a
different mind. Addressing Colonel Lehmanowsky, he said, " Colonel,
you are commander to-day, and as you say so it must be ; but if you will
be advised by me, let this marble floor be examined. Let water be brought
and poured upon it, and we will watch and see if there is any place through
which it passes more freely than others." " Do as you please, Colonel,"
replied the commander, and ordered water to be brought accordingly.
The slabs of marble were large, and beautifully polished. When the water
had been poured over the floor, much to the dissatisfaction of the inqui-
sitors, a careful examination was made of every seam in the floor, to see if
the water passed through. Presently Colonel de Lile exclaimed that he
had found it. By the side of one of these marble slabs the water passed
DESTRUCnOf* OF THE SrANISII INQUISITION. 1059
through fast, as though there was an opening beneath. All hands were
now at work for further discovery ; the officers with their swords, and the
soldiers with their bayonets, cleared out the seam, and endeavoured to
raise the slab ; others with the but-ends of their muskets struck the slab
with all their might in order to break it ; while the priests remonstrated
against the desecration of their holy and beautiful house. While thus en-
gaged, a soldier who was striking with the but-end of his musket struck
a spring, and the marble slab flew up. The faces of the inquisitors instantly
grew pale as Belshazzar when the hand-writing appeared on the wall, and
they shook with fear from head to foot. Beneath the marble slab, now
partly up, there was a staircase. The commander stepped to the altar,
and took from the candlestick one of the lighted candles four feet in
length, that he might explore the room below. One of the inquisitors
endeavoured to prevent him; and laying his hand gently on his arm, with
a very demure and sanctified look, he said, " My son, you must not take
those lights with your bloody hands: they are holy." " Never mind,"
said the commander, " I will take a holy thing to shed light on iniquity ;
I will bear the responsibility !" Colonel Lehmanowsky then took the light,
and proceeded down the staircase. When he and his companions in arms
reached the foot of the stairs, they entered a large square room which was
called the Hall of Judgment. In the centre of it was a large block, and a
chain fastened to it. On this they had been accustomed to place the
accused, chained to his seat. On one side of the room was an elevated
seat, called the Throne of Judgment, which the inquisitor-general occupied ;
and on either side were seats less elevated, for the holy fathers when en-
gaged in the solemn business of the Holy Inquisition.
From this room the party proceeded to the right, and obtained access
to small cells extending the entire length of the edifice ; and here they
were presented with the most distressing sights. These cells were places
of solitary confinement, where the wretched objects of inquisitorial hate
were confined year after year, till death released them from their sufferings :
and there their bodies were suffered to remain until they were entirely
decayed, and the rooms had become fit for others to occupy. To prevent
this being offensive to those who occupied the Inquisition, there were flues
or tubes extending to the open air, sufficiently capacious to carry off the
odour. In these cells were the remains of some who had paid the debt of
nature; of whom some had been dead apparently but a short time; while
of others nothing remained but their bones, still chained to the floor of
their dungeon. In other cells were found living sufferers of both sexes
and of every age, from threescore years and ten down to fourteen or fifteen
years, all in a state of complete nudity, and all in chains ! Here were old
men and aged women, who had been shut up for many years. Here, too,
were the middle-aged, and the young man, and the maiden of fourteen
years old. The soldiers immediately went to work to release these captives
from their chains, and took from their knapsacks their overcoats and other
clothing, which they gave to cover their nakedness. They were exceedingly
anxious to bring them out to the light of day ; but Colonel Lehmanowsky,
aware of the danger, had food given them, and then brought them gradually
to the light as they were able to bear it.
The military party then proceeded to explore yet another room on their
1060 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
left. Here they found the instruments of torture, of every kind which the
ingenuity of men or devils could invent. The first instrument noticed was
a machine by which the victim was confined, and then, beginning with the
fingers, all the joints in the hands, arms, and body were broken and drawn
one after another, until the sufferer died. The second was a box in which
the head and neck of the victim were so closely confined by a screw, that
he could not move in any way. Over the box was a vessel, from which
one drop of water fell upon the head of the victim every second, each suc-
cessive drop falling upon precisely the same place; by which, in a few
moments, the circulation was suspended, and the sufferer had to endure the
most excruciating agony. The third was an infernal machine, laid hori-
zontally, to which the victim was bound ; the machine then being placed
between two beams, in which were scores of knives so" fixed that, by turn-
ing the machine with a crank, the flesh of the sufferer was all torn from
his limbs into small pieces. The fourth surpassed the others in fiendish
ingenuity. Its exterior was a large doll, richly dressed, and having the
appearance of a beautiful woman, with her arms extended ready to embrace
her victim. A semicircle was drawn around her, and the person who passed
over this fatal mark touched a spring which caused the diabolical engine
to open ; its arms immediately clasped him, and a thousand knives cut
him in as many pieces, while in the deadly embrace.
The sight of these engines of infernal cruelty kindled the fire of indigna-
tion in the bosoms of the soldiers. They declared that every inquisitor
and soldier of the inquisition should be put to the torture. Their rage was
ungovernable. Colonel Lemanowsky did not oppose them : they might have
turned their arms against him, if he had attempted to arrest their work.
They then began punishing the holy fathers. The first was put to death
in the machine for breaking joints. The torture of the inquisitor that suf-
fered death by the dropping of water on his head was most excruciating:
the poor wretch cried out in agony to be taken from the fatal machine.
Next the inquisitor-general was brought before the infernal engine called
"the Virgin." He was ordered to embrace her, and begged hard to be
excused. *' No," said the soldiers ; " you have caused others to kiss her,
and now you must do it." They interlocked their bayonets, so as to form
large forks, and with these pushed him over the deadly circle. The beau-
tiful image, prepared for the embrace, instantly clasped him in its arms,
and cut him into innumerable pieces. The French commander, after having
witnessed the torture of four of the barbarous inquisitors, sickened at the
awful scene, and he left the soldiers to wreak their vengeance on the other
guilty inmates of that prison-house of hell.
In the mean time it was reported through Madrid, that the prisons of
the Inquisition were broken open, and multitudes hastened to the fatal
spot. Oh, what a meeting was there ! It was like a resurrection. About
a hundred who had been buried for many years were now restored to life.
There were fathers who found their long-lost daughters ; wives were re-
stored to their husbands, sisters to their brothers, and parents to their
children ; and there were few who could recognise no friend among the
multitude. The scene was such as no tongue can describe. When the
multitude had retired, Colonel Lehmanowsky caused the library, paintings,
furniture, and other articles of value, to be removed ; and having sent to
PERSECUTIONS IN POLAND. 1061
the city for a wagon-load of powder, he deposited a large quantity in the
vaults beneath the building, and placed a slow match in connexion with it.
All having withdrawn to a distance, in a few moments the walls and turrets
of the massive structure rose majestically in the air, impelled by a tremen-
dous explosion, and then fell back to the earth an immense heap of ruins.
The Inquisition was no more !
It is to be regretted that in the papal countries, in the northern
parts of the continent, similar cruelties are, however, still inflicted. The
odious name of Inquisition is indeed dropped ; but there are dungeons
and tortures, and the like instruments are used to inflict suffering and
death ; while multitudes of unhappy victims for conscience' sake are dying
daily, wasted away by a cruel and lingering death. May the prison doors
soon be opened, the captives' chains be for ever broken, and the heralds
of the everlasting gospel go forth themselves unfettered, and proclaim
" the acceptable year of the Lord !"
SECTION VII.
PERSECUTIONS IN POLAND, AUSTRIA, AND HUNGARY.
The Greek and Roman religions are twins; but the corruptions of the
former are even too bad to be coupled with the latter. The emperor
Nicholas wished to bring all his subjects to one standard, and pope Gregory
XVI. was pleased to accommodate himself to the wishes of the arbitrary
autocrat. In the year 1834, his holiness therefore issued a bull, by which he
anathematized the Roman Catholics of Poland, for not obeying the abso-
lute commands of the czar of the Muscovites : " We Gregory XVI., the
servant of God's Servant, send our salutes and blessings to our beloved
brethren in Jesus Christ. We command and order, by the power given
us by Jesus Christ and his successors, that you may be obedient in every
thing to your emperor, whom God has given you as a ruler, and know
that all the power comes from God, I received a report that you have
rebelled against the power of your monarch : therefore, if you do not return
to obedience, I shall forget you ; God will abandon you ; he shall retain
the heavenly dew ; your land shall deny its fruits ; you shall starve from
hunger, wandering in deserts like wild beasts, and live on grass like king
Nebuchadnezzar. Power is given to me to open the kingdom of heaven
to my obedient children, and shut it up to the disobedient. I hope you
will obey your holy father ; if not — I will anathematize you and your
posterity unto the ninth generation ! Whosoever shall oppose my com-
mands, let him be accursed for ever!"
This cursing letter is to be found in the archives of every parish in Poland
at this very day. It was read by force from every pulpit of every religious
denomination, on every Sunday and fast-day, during a Deriod of four
months, in the presence of a Muscovian policeman.
1062 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
As if to confound the impudence of Rome — to prove that he pope is
nothing else but a lying imposter, Divine Providence caused that the
anathematized land of Saimatra should produce in the next year, 1835,
such abundant crops of corn, fruits, and vegetables, that the oldest inha-
bitants could not recollect such rich proofs of God's bounty ! The people
aroused from Roman degradation, cried out unanimously, " This is a great
sign — a miracle ! " Hundreds of honest sensible young priests, joined the
people, and, throwing away the slavish fears, which characterize every
Roman priest, they began to preach to the nations the true gospel of
Christ. Centuries had elapsed since a change had taken place. -* Down
with the pope ! Down with Rome ! Down with the Greek schism !
Down with the monks and Jesuits ! " re-echoed from one end of the land
to the other ; and if this first outbreak is hushed for a moment, it is only
to gather strength for a last and prevailing explosion of truth and justice.
Such a reformation has, however, to contend with great difficulties. The
Jesuits, who take the habits of monks, kidnap every protesting Sclavonian,
whom they destroy in the secret dungeons; while the czar of Muscovia
exterminates by millions every protesting Roman Catholic, every Jew and
every Protestant, who does not embrace the debasing tenets of the Russian,
that is, the Greek church.
These facts are concealed as much as possible from the rest of Europe,
and the public oracles of intelligence have powerful motives to suppress
them. One only of recent date shall be here recorded. In the town of
Lenezyca in Poland, is a convent of the Bernardines, of which Francis
Paidloski is custos provinc'ice, or chief, and where is founded a Roman
theological college, of which Erasm Wnorowski is the dejinitor, or first
professor. Wladislaus Hentzel, who has abjured popery for ever, was the
second professor : he has since removed his residence to the diocese of
Breslau, in Silesia, where he is now known as a protestant minister. Every
student in this college is dressed as a monk, and obliged in his turn to
wander round the country, and defraud the people by a wholesale system
of insolent mendicity, from which the fathers are able to spend their lives
in comforts, luxuries, and debaucheries. In 1834, after the excommuni-
cation of the Poles by the pope of Rome, the turn to go on a begging ex-
pedition fell upon the laic, or novice, Raymond Ziemnowiez — one ot
those young reformers who waited but for an opportunity to denounce
the baneful system of Popery. He went directly to the village of Topola,
near Lenezyca ; and there, hanging his monkish cowl and habit on the
wooden cross in the village cemetery, began to preach the gospel, and to
demonstrate the tyrannies and impositions of the Roman pontiffs.
In spite of the villagers, who applauded the boldness of this young
apostle, he was imprisoned by the parish priest and the Muscovites, and
sent into his convent to be punished for having spoken the truth. But
Raymond, well aware of the secret assassinations practised by the monks,
implored the protection of the major of Lenezyca, Baldowski, and requested
to be judged by the laws of the country. Moreover, he was well known
in the town, and had numerous influential friends : hence, the monks, not
able to murder him as a heretic, made him clericus perpetuus, a perpetual
servant of the convent, never to go out, nor to be ordained a priest. Their
vengeance was not however satiated ; they had recourse to the old stratagem
PERSECUTIONS IN AUSTRIA. 1063
of popish persecutors, and denounced him as a conspirator against the czar:
a falsehood which all the monks confirmed as truth, and poor Raymond
Ziemnowiez was banished to Siberia for life !
Raymond, however, was not a subject of Russia. He was born in
Galicia ; and having relations in Bohemia and Hungary, all his friends
combined to save him from destruction, and to confound the impudent
monks. After five years of unremitting exertions and expences, the un-
fortunate Raymond was released from the dungeons of Siberia, under
the condition not to leave the country ; and even the Muscovian govern-
ment granted him, as a recompense, a pension for life. Had he had the
misfortune of being a Russian subject, he would never have been re-
leased from the murdering grasp of the monks, and from the imperial
dungeons ; nor would his friends have dared to appeal to the czar for
justice. The Protestant who may visit Lenezyca will there find the half-
martyr Raymond with his face marked with the burning iron, bearing the
brand — Siberia !
It may be added that another victim of the pope and czar, the preacher
Benjamin, of the town of Konin, was less fortunate than Raymond Ziem-
nowiez ; he was sent to Siberia for having dared to preach the pure gospel
of Christ, and being a Russian subject none dare intercede in his behalf.
Among the bitter persecutors of the protesting Christian families of
Poland are Valentinus Tomaszewski, bishop of Kalizz, and the bishop of
Sandornir, Joseph Goldman. Both wretches are renowned for their
crimes, robberies, and villanies ; both have brought thousands of families
to beggary by false denunciations ; both are loaded with execrations by
millions of unfortunates, who expire, through their instrumentality, in the
dungeons of Siberia daily ; both are recompensed with the numerous
estates of those Christian families whom they have sent by force to the
mountains of the Ural, to perish in misery ; and both are received into
favour with the czar.
The Roman Catholic Austrian dungeons at Speilberg have been crammed
with protesting Poles. Since the expulsion of Metternich, those dungeons
have been opened, and it is to be hoped the whole of the victims of popish
cruelty were released. But in the Siberian mines they are expiring daily
by hundreds under their tortures. Men worthy of a better lot perish at
the rate of from one hundred to five hundred a day ! It is not to be sup-
posed that all are Christians in the best sense of the word ; but numbers
are, and the rest are honest men not ashamed to avow their protesting
sentiments against the crimes of popery. New victims have been
found to replace daily the dying ones, who crammed into a large pit by
hundreds, are covered with fagots and burnt to ashes, as the cheapest
mode of burial.
Such is the spirit of persecution and tyranny in Poland and Austria; yet
Protestantism is not wholly suppressed. Five thousand staunch disciples
of Christ, scattered secretly among the people, still expose Roman and
schismatic idolatries and superstitions; and in Switzerland, France, and
England some thousands of ex-catholics of Poland have united in a Pro-
testant Evangelical Union, and ex-popish priests are labouring assiduously
as protestant missionaries.
1064 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
The kingdom of Hungary, unfortunately under the dominion of Austria,
has suffered much from her oppressions ; and the popish priesthood have
availed themselves of the advantages afforded under that power for crush-
ing freedom of worship. " The sufferings of Protestantism in Trance —
the history of all the cruel edicts applied for by the priests, granted by the
civil power, and put in force by the dragoons, through the different quarters
of that kingdom — have long had an abiding place in the mind of evan-
gelical Christendom ; but, if the history of Hungary were known, the
persecutions which devout Protestants have endured in these distant
countries would perhaps exceed in interest those of the Huguenots under
the Valois and Bourbons."
At his coronation every king of Hungary was obliged to take an oath
of fidelity to a constitution which guaranteed the equality of religious con-
fessions. But, alas ! what is a constitution to the partizans of the papacy ?
In 1609, under Leopald II., at the instance of the Jesuits, the evangelical
ministers were cited to Presburg ; and they were shut up in the dungeons
of Tyrnau. Some were forced to recant, others were banished, others
after frightful tortures were sent in chains to the galleys at Naples ; and
many were tortured to death. From 1702 to 1783, the evangelical
churches of Hungary, with few exceptions, were without pastors. Though
some districts under the Turkish government enjoyed religious liberty,
whenever they again became subject to their former princes that liberty
was anew withdrawn. Evangelical Christians were excluded from offices
of public trust ; and, when they ventured to complain of this, were subjected
to heavy fines or to corporal punishments. Did it happen that a Romish
procession passed a Protestant temple, and could get admission, the priest
muttered some prayers, and by this process took possession of it in the
name of the church. Such a procession took place, on one occasion, at
Vadasfa. The Protestants fearing that their adversaries might look with
envy on their church, surrounded it with carriages, forming on all sides a
solid entrenchment, and themselves mounted guard inside. Suddenly the
sound of chanting was heard, the great popish procession drew near, the
more zealous of the devotees attempted to throw down the barriers, a con-
flict ensued, and, unfortunately, a papist fell dead. Immediately after, that
neighbourhood was subjected to military occupation, numerous arrests
were made, and the venerable pastor, M. Fabry, was, notwithstanding his
innocence, himself put in fetters in the prison of the Comitat. His unhappy
wife rushed to Vienna, and threw herself in an agony of grief at the feet
of Maria Theresa. That princess, however, unfortunately prevented by the
Jesuits, repulsed her from her feet, saying, " Begone, Lutheran courtesan ! "
Joseph II., by the edict of toleration, restored to the Protestants of
Hungary their pastors and churches ; but the oppression under which they
had groaned for seventy years rendered this benefit almost illusory. More
than three thousand pastors were wanted at once ; and though some were
found ready for the work, numbers were employed who were not worthy
of the office. The Magyar Protestants yet numbered several thousands
in the year 1849, but much crippled in their state, owing to the recent
struggles of the Hungarian nation to obtain their liberties.
1065
SECTION VIII.
PERSECUTIONS IN TARTARY— ACCOUNT OF ABDALLAH AND SABAT.
The brief history of the following martyrdom bears a striking resemblance
to that of Stephen, not in the manner of its being executed, but in the
circumstance of a young man witnessing the execution and consenting to
the death, who afterwards himself became a convert to the truth as it is
in Jesus.
Converts among Mohammedans, where their laws are in force, are indeed
very rare, for they have slender means of coming to the knowledge of the
Saviour. If they avow it, they are exposed to certan death, as stated and
seen in the subjoined narrative : an illustrious proof of the grace of God, both
in the conversion and martyrdom of a young Arabian, as well as the conver-
sion of his friend and companion. The latter resided some time with the
distinguished scholar and missionary Dr. Claudius Buchanan, whose state-
ment is here recorded in his own words : —
" Abdallah and Sabat were intimate friends, and being young men of
family in Arabia, they agreed to travel together, and to visit foreign
countries. They w r ere both zealous Mohammedans. Sabat is the son of
Ibrahim Sabat, a noble family of the line of Beni-Sabat, who trace their
pedigree to Mohammed. The two friends left Arabia, after paying their
adorations at the tomb of their prophet at Mecca, and travelled through
Persia, and thence to Cabul. Abdallah was appointed to an office of
state under Zemoun Shah, king of Cabul; and Sabat left him there, and
proceeded on a tour through Tartary.
" While Abdallah remained at Cabul, he was converted to the Christian
faith by the perusal of a Bible, as is supposed, belonging to a Christian
from Armenia, then residing at Cabul : the Armenian Christians in Persia
having among them a few 7 copies of the Arabic Bible. In the Mohammedan
states it is death for a man of rank to become a Christian. Abdallah en-
deavoured for a time to conceal his conversion, but rinding it no longer
possible, he determined to flee to some of the Christian churches near
the Caspian Sea. He accordingly left Cabul in disguise, and had gained
the great city of Bochara, in Tartary, when he was met in the streets of
that city by his friend Sabat, who immediately recognized him. Sabat
had heard of his conversion and flight, and was filled with indignation at
his conduct. Abdallah knew his danger, and threw himself at the feet of
Sabat. He confessed that he was a Christian; and implored him, by the
sacred tie of their former friendship, to let him escape with his life. ' But,
sir,' said Sabat, when relating the story himself, ' I had no pity, I caused
my servants to seize him, and I delivered him up to Morad Shah, king of
Bochara. He was sentenced to die, and a herald went through the city
of Bochara, announcing the time of his execution. An immense multitude
attended, and the chief men of the city. I also went and stood near to
1066 HISTORY OF CHRISTIAN MARTYRDOM.
Abdallah. He was offered his life, if he would abjure Christ, the execu-
tioner standing by him with his sword in his hand. " No," said he, (as if
the proposition were impossible to be complied with,) " I cannot abjure
Christ." Then one of his hands was cut off at the wrist. He stood firm,
his arm hanging by his side with but little motion. A physician by desire
of the king offered to heal the wound, if he would recant. He made no
answer, but looked up steadfastly towards heaven, like Stephen the first
martyr, his eyes streaming with tears. He did not look with anger
towards me. He looked at me, but it was benignly, and with the counte-
nance of forgiveness. His other hand was then cut off. But, sir/ continued
Sabat, in his imperfect English, ■ he never changed, he never changed !
And when he bowed his head to receive the blow of death, all Bochara
seemed to say, What new thing is this V "
This was a wonderful instance of the sovereignty and power of Divine
grace, as well as of the efficacy of the word of God, through the secret
teaching of the Holy Spirit, in leading a sinner to Jesus, when he sincerely
sought after a Saviour, and left his mind open to conviction. We know not
of all the subjects of the Redeemer: they are found where we should never
have sought for them. Nor probably are all the eminent martyrs for
Christ found in our martyrologies. Here was one of whom we should
perhaps never have known, had it not been for the subsequent conversion
of his friend and accuser. He stood alone amidst thousands of his coun-
trymen, an individual witness to the truth as it is in Jesus. No brother
Christian cheered him by his sympathy ; no Christian spectator witnessed
his heroism ; no other Christian knew of his martyrdom to encourage
him by his prayers. There was nothing but the love of Jesus in his heart,
and the promises of Jesus treasured up in his memory, to stimulate and
support him amidst his excruciating sufferings. But these were enough.
He had Christ in his heart, "the hope of glory," and he was willing to
be offered up. Thus he " witnessed a good confession before many wit-
nesses," and his happy spirit winged its way to join the noble army of
martyrs.
The subsequent history of the accuser must not be separated from this
narrative : — " Sabat had indulged the hope that Abdallah would have re-
canted when he was offered his life ; but when he saw that his friend was
dead, he resigned himself to grief and remorse. He travelled from place
to place, seeking rest and finding none. At last he thought that he would
visit India. He accordingly came to Madras about five years ago, [that
is, in 1804.] Soon after his arrival, he was appointed Mufti, or ex-
pounder of the Mohammedan law, by the English government ; his great
learning and respectable station in his own country rendering him emi-
nently qualified for that office. And now the period of his own conversion
drew near. While he was at Visagapatam, in the northern Circars, exercis-
ing his professional duties, Divine Providence brought in his way a New
Testament in Arabic. He read it with deep thought, the Koran lying before
him. He compared them together ; and at length the truth of the word
of God fell on his mind, as he expressed it, like a flood of light. Soon
afterwards he proceeded to Madras, a journey of three hundred miles, to
seek Christian baptism ; and having made a public confession of his faith
he was baptized by the Rev. Dr. Kerr, in the English church at that place,
PERSECUTIONS IN TARTARY. 1067
)ciii779-211!
****** ff*
J* '•
.*mm
tyfa-mr '•/
Vty*
r-i zr\
■' t\
Wm
m*it?e
m&mm^
LIBRARY OF CONGRESS
000ED^3E24
la
»HI
an
m
I
um